summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
path: root/old
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
Diffstat (limited to 'old')
-rw-r--r--old/30031-8.txt16266
-rw-r--r--old/30031-8.zipbin0 -> 307438 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/30031-h.zipbin0 -> 407926 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/30031-h/30031-h.htm16424
-rw-r--r--old/30031-h/images/illus-emb.pngbin0 -> 4464 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/30031-h/images/illus-fpc.jpgbin0 -> 71206 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/30031.txt16266
-rw-r--r--old/30031.zipbin0 -> 307375 bytes
8 files changed, 48956 insertions, 0 deletions
diff --git a/old/30031-8.txt b/old/30031-8.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..34001a4
--- /dev/null
+++ b/old/30031-8.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,16266 @@
+The Project Gutenberg EBook of The Eye of Dread, by Payne Erskine
+
+This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
+almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
+re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
+with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
+
+
+Title: The Eye of Dread
+
+Author: Payne Erskine
+
+Illustrator: George Gibbs
+
+Release Date: September 19, 2009 [EBook #30031]
+
+Language: English
+
+Character set encoding: ISO-8859-1
+
+*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE EYE OF DREAD ***
+
+
+
+
+Produced by Roger Frank and the Online Distributed
+Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+[Illustration: "Listen. Go with the love in your heart--for me."
+FRONTISPIECE. _See Page 329._]
+
+
+
+
+THE EYE OF DREAD
+
+By PAYNE ERSKINE
+
+Author of "The Mountain Girl," "Joyful Heatherby," Etc.
+
+With Frontispiece by
+
+GEORGE GIBBS
+
+A. L. BURT COMPANY, PUBLISHERS
+
+114-120 East Twenty-third Street--New York
+
+Published by Arrangement With Little, Brown & Company
+
+
+
+
+Copyright, 1913,
+
+By Little, Brown, and Company.
+
+All rights reserved
+
+Published, October, 1913
+
+Reprinted, October, 1913
+
+
+
+
+CONTENTS
+
+BOOK ONE
+
+ I. BETTY 1
+ II. WATCHING THE BEES 9
+ III. A MOTHER'S STRUGGLE 23
+ IV. LEAVE-TAKING 34
+ V. THE PASSING OF TIME 49
+ VI. THE END OF THE WAR 59
+ VII. A NEW ERA BEGINS 69
+ VIII. MARY BALLARD'S DISCOVERY 87
+ IX. THE BANKER'S POINT OF VIEW 97
+ X. THE NUTTING PARTY 110
+ XI. BETTY BALLARD'S AWAKENING 125
+ XII. MYSTERIOUS FINDINGS 139
+ XIII. CONFESSION 157
+
+BOOK TWO
+
+ XIV. OUT OF THE DESERT 168
+ XV. THE BIG MAN'S RETURN 183
+ XVI. A PECULIAR POSITION 198
+ XVII. ADOPTING A FAMILY 208
+ XVIII. LARRY KILDENE'S STORY 219
+ XIX. THE MINE--AND THE DEPARTURE 237
+ XX. ALONE ON THE MOUNTAIN 252
+ XXI. THE VIOLIN 267
+ XXII. THE BEAST ON THE TRAIL 282
+ XXIII. A DISCOURSE ON LYING 295
+ XXIV. AMALIA'S FÊTE 305
+ XXV. HARRY KING LEAVES THE MOUNTAIN 318
+
+BOOK THREE
+
+ XXVI. THE LITTLE SCHOOL-TEACHER 331
+ XXVII. THE SWEDE'S TELEGRAM 342
+ XXVIII. "A RESEMBLANCE SOMEWHERE" 354
+ XXIX. THE ARREST 365
+ XXX. THE ARGUMENT 376
+ XXXI. ROBERT KATER'S SUCCESS 387
+ XXXII. THE PRISONER 408
+ XXXIII. HESTER CRAIGMILE RECEIVES HER LETTER 422
+ XXXIV. JEAN CRAIGMILE'S RETURN 433
+ XXXV. THE TRIAL 445
+ XXXVI. NELS NELSON'S TESTIMONY 453
+ XXXVII. THE STRANGER'S ARRIVAL 463
+ XXXVIII. BETTY BALLARD'S TESTIMONY 475
+ XXXIX. RECONCILIATION 487
+ XL. THE SAME BOY 499
+
+
+
+
+THE EYE OF DREAD
+
+
+BOOK ONE
+
+CHAPTER I
+
+BETTY
+
+
+Two whip-poor-wills were uttering their insistent note, hidden
+somewhere among the thick foliage of the maple and basswood trees that
+towered above the spring down behind the house where the Ballards
+lived. The sky in the west still glowed with amber light, and the
+crescent moon floated like a golden boat above the horizon's edge. The
+day had been unusually warm, and the family were all gathered on the
+front porch in the dusk. The lamps within were unlighted, and the
+evening wind blew the white muslin curtains out and in through the
+opened windows. The porch was low,--only a step from the ground,--and
+the grass of the dooryard felt soft and cool to the bare feet of the
+children.
+
+In front and all around lay the garden--flowers and fruit quaintly
+intermingled. Down the long path to the gate, where three roads met,
+great bunches of peonies lifted white blossoms--luminously white in
+the moonlight; and on either side rows of currant bushes cast low,
+dark shadows, and here and there dwarf crab-apple trees tossed pale,
+scented flowers above them. In the dusky evening light the iris
+flowers showed frail and iridescent against the dark shadows under the
+bushes.
+
+The children chattered quietly at their play, as if they felt a
+mystery around them, and small Betty was sure she saw fairies dancing
+on the iris flowers when the light breeze stirred them; but of this
+she said nothing, lest her practical older sister should drop a
+scornful word of unbelief, a thing Betty shrank from and instinctively
+avoided. Why should she be told there were no such things as fairies
+and goblins and pigwidgeons, when one might be at that very moment
+dancing at her elbow and hear it all?
+
+So Betty wagged her curly golden head, wise with the wisdom of
+childhood, and went her own ways and thought her own thoughts. As for
+the strange creatures of wondrous power that peopled the earth, and
+the sky, and the streams, she knew they were there. She could almost
+see them, could almost feel them and hear them, even though they were
+hidden from mortal sight.
+
+Did she not often go when the sun was setting and climb the fence
+behind the barn under the great locust and silver-leaf poplar trees,
+where none could see her, and watch the fiery griffins in the west?
+Could she not see them flame and flash, their wings spreading far out
+across the sky in fantastic flight, or drawn close and folded about
+them in hues of purple and crimson and gold? Could she not see the
+flying mist-women flinging their floating robes of softest pink and
+palest green around their slender limbs, and trailing them delicately
+across the deepening sky?
+
+Had she not heard the giants--nay, seen them--driving their terrible
+steeds over the tumbled clouds, and rolling them smooth with noise of
+thunder, under huge rolling machines a thousand times bigger than
+that Farmer Hopkins used to crush the clods in his wheat field in the
+spring? Had she not seen the flashes of fire dart through the heavens,
+struck by the hoofs of the giants' huge beasts? Ah! She knew! If
+Martha would only listen to her, she could show her some of these true
+things and stop her scoffing.
+
+Lured by these mysteries, Betty made short excursions into the garden
+away from the others, peering among the shadows, and gazing wide-eyed
+into the clusters of iris flowers above which night moths fluttered
+softly and silently. Maybe there were fairies there. Three could ride
+at once on the back of a devil's riding horse, she knew, and in the
+daytime they rode the dragon flies, two at a time; they were so light
+it was nothing for the great green and gold, big-eyed dragon flies to
+carry two.
+
+Betty knew a place below the spring where the maidenhair fern grew
+thick and spread out wide, perfect fronds on slender brown stems,
+shading fairy bowers; and where taller ferns grew high and leaned over
+like a delicate fairy forest; and where the wild violets grew so thick
+you could not see the ground beneath them, and the grass was lush and
+long like fine green hair, and crept up the hillside and over the
+roots of the maple and basswood trees. Here lived the elves; she knew
+them well, and often lay with her head among the violets, listening
+for the thin sound of their elfin fiddles. Often she had drowsed the
+summer noon in the coolness, unheeding the dinner call, until busy
+Martha roused her with the sisterly scolding she knew she deserved and
+took in good part.
+
+Now as Betty crept cautiously about, peering and hoping with a
+half-fearing expectation, a sweet, threadlike wail trembled out toward
+her across the moonlit and shadowed space. Her father was tuning his
+violin. Her mother sat at his side, hushing Bobby in her arms. Betty
+could hear the sound of her rockers on the porch floor. Now the
+plaintive call of the violin came stronger, and she hastened back to
+curl up at her father's feet and listen. She closed her vision-seeing
+eyes and leaned against her father's knee. He felt the gentle pressure
+of his little daughter's head and liked it.
+
+All the long summer day Betty's small feet had carried her on
+numberless errands for young and old, and as the season advanced she
+would be busier still. This Betty well knew, for she was old enough to
+remember other summers, several of them, each bringing an advancing
+crescendo of work. But oh, the happy days! For Betty lived in a world
+all her own, wherein her play was as real as her work, and labor was
+turned by her imaginative little mind into new forms of play, and
+although night often found her weary--too tired to lie quietly in her
+bed sometimes--the line between the two was never in her thoughts
+distinctly drawn.
+
+To-night Betty's conscience was troubling her a little, for she had
+done two naughty things, and the pathetic quality of her father's
+music made her wish with all the intensity of her sensitive soul that
+she might confess to some one what she had done, but it was all too
+peaceful and sweet now to tell her mother of naughty things, and,
+anyway, she could not confess before the whole family, so she tried to
+repent very hard and tell God all about it. Somehow it was always
+easier to tell God about things; for she reasoned, if God was
+everywhere and knew everything, then he knew she had been bad, and had
+seen her all the time, and all she need do was to own up to it,
+without explaining everything in words, as she would have to do to her
+mother.
+
+Brother Bobby's bare feet swung close to her cheek as they dangled
+from her mother's knee, and she turned and kissed them, first one and
+then the other, with eager kisses. He stirred and kicked out at her
+fretfully.
+
+"Don't wake him, dear," said her mother.
+
+Then Betty drew up her knees and clasped them about with her arms, and
+hid her face on them while she repented very hard. Mother had said
+that very day that she never felt troubled about the baby when Betty
+had care of him, and that very day she had recklessly taken him up
+into the barn loft, climbing behind him and guiding his little feet
+from one rung of the perpendicular ladder to another, teaching him to
+cling with clenched hands to the rounds until she had landed him in
+the loft. There she had persuaded him he was a swallow in his nest,
+while she had taken her fill of the delight of leaping from the loft
+down into the bay, where she had first tossed enough hay to make a
+soft lighting place for the twelve-foot leap.
+
+Oh, the joy of it--flying through the air! If she could only fly up
+instead of down! Every time she climbed back into the loft she would
+stop and cuddle the little brother and toss hay over him and tell him
+he was a baby bird, and she was the mother bird, and must fly away and
+bring him nice worms. She bade him look up to the rafters above and
+see the mother birds flying out and in, while the little birds just
+sat still in their nests and opened their mouths. So Bobby sat still,
+and when she returned, obediently opened his mouth; but alas! he
+wearied of his rôle in the play, and at last crept to the very edge of
+the loft at a place where there was no hay spread beneath to break his
+fall; and when Betty looked up and saw his sweet baby face peering
+down at her over the edge, her heart stopped beating. How wildly she
+called for him to wait for her to come to him! She promised him all
+the dearest of her treasures if he would wait until "sister" got
+there.
+
+Now, as she sat clasping her knees, her little body grew all trembling
+and weak again as she lived over the terrible moment when she had
+reached him just in time to drag him back from the edge, and to cuddle
+and caress him, until he lifted up his voice and wept, not because he
+was in the least troubled or hurt, but because it seemed to be the
+right thing to do.
+
+Then she gave him the pretty round comb that held back her hair, and
+he promptly straightened it and broke it; and when she reluctantly
+brought him back to dinner--how she had succeeded in getting him down
+from the loft would make a chapter of diplomacy--her mother reproved
+her for allowing him to take it, and lapped the two pieces and wound
+them about with thread, and told her she must wear the broken comb
+after this. She was glad--glad it was broken--and she had treasured it
+so--and glad that her mother had scolded her; she wished she had
+scolded harder instead of speaking words of praise that cut her to the
+heart. Oh, oh, oh! If he had fallen over, he would be dead now, and
+she would have killed him! Thus she tortured herself, and repented
+very hard.
+
+The other sin she had that day committed she felt to be a double sin,
+because she knew all the time it was wrong and did it deliberately.
+When she went out with the corn meal to feed the little chicks and
+fetch in the new-laid eggs, she carried, concealed under her skirt, a
+small, squat book of Robert Burns' poems. These poems she loved; not
+that she understood them, but that the rhythm pleased her, and the odd
+words and half-comprehended phrases stirred her imagination.
+
+So, after feeding the chicks and gathering the eggs, she did not
+return to the house, but climbed instead up into the top of the
+silver-leaf poplar behind the barn, and sat there long, swaying with
+the swaying tree top and reading the lines that most fascinated her
+and stirred her soul, until she forgot she must help Martha with the
+breakfast dishes--forgot she must carry milk to the neighbor's--forgot
+she must mind the baby and peel the potatoes for dinner. It was so
+delightful to sway and swing and chant the rythmic lines over and over
+that almost she forgot she was being bad, and Martha had done the
+things she ought to have done, and the baby cried himself to sleep
+without her, and lay with the pathetic tear marks still on his cheeks,
+but her tired mother had only looked reproachfully at her and had not
+said one word. Oh, dear! If she could only be a good girl! If only she
+might pass one day being good all day long with nothing to regret!
+
+Now with the wailing of the violin her soul grew hungry and sad, and a
+strange, unchildish fear crept over her, a fear of the years to
+come--so long and endless they would be, always coming, coming, one
+after another; and here she was, never to stop living, and every day
+doing something that she ought not and every evening repenting
+it--and her father might stop loving her, and her sister might stop
+loving her, and her little brother might stop loving her, and Bobby
+might die--and even her mother might die or stop loving her, and she
+might grow up and marry a man who forgot after a while to love
+her--and she might be very poor--even poorer than they were now, and
+have to wash dishes every day and no one to help her--until at last
+she could bear the sadness no longer, and could not repent as hard as
+she ought, there where she could not go down on her knees and just cry
+and cry. So she slipped away and crept in the darkness to her own
+room, where her mother found her half an hour later on her knees
+beside the bed fast asleep. She lovingly undressed the limp, weary
+little girl, lifted her tenderly and laid her curly head on the
+pillow, and kissed her cheek with a repentant sigh of her own,
+regretting that she must lay so many tasks on so small a child.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER II
+
+WATCHING THE BEES
+
+
+Father Ballard walked slowly up the path from the garden, wiping his
+brow, for the heat was oppressive. "Mary, my dear, I see signs of
+swarming. The bees are hanging out on that hive under the Tolman
+Sweet. Where's Betty?"
+
+"She's down cellar churning, but she can leave. Bobby's getting
+fretful, anyway, and she can take him under the trees and watch the
+bees and amuse him. Betty!" Mary Ballard went to the short flight of
+steps leading to the paved basement, dark and cool: "Betty, father
+wants you to watch the bees, dear. Find Bobby. He's so still I'm
+afraid he's out at the currant bushes again, and he'll make himself
+sick. Keep an eye on the hive under the Tolman Sweet particularly,
+dear."
+
+Gladly Betty bounded up the steps and darted away to find the baby who
+was still called the baby by reason of his being the last arrival,
+although he was nearly three, and an active little tyrant at that.
+Watching the bees was Betty's delight. Minding the baby, lolling under
+the trees reading her books, gazing up into the great branches, and
+all the time keeping an eye on the hives scattered about in the
+garden,--nothing could be pleasanter.
+
+Naturally Betty could not understand all she read in the books she
+carried out from the library, for purely children's books were very
+few in those days. The children of the present day would be dismayed
+were they asked to read what Betty pondered over with avidity and
+loved. Her father's library was his one extravagance, even though the
+purchase of books was always a serious matter, each volume being
+discussed and debated about, and only obtained after due preparation
+by sundry small economies.
+
+As for worldly possessions, the Ballards had started out with nothing
+at all but their own two hands, and, as assets, well-equipped brains,
+their love for each other, a fair amount of thrift, and a large share
+of what Mary Ballard's old Grannie Sherman used to designate as
+"gumption." Exactly what she intended should be understood by the word
+it would be hard to say, unless it might be the faculty with which,
+when one thing proved to be no longer feasible as a shift toward
+progress and the making of a living for an increasing family, they
+were enabled to discover other means and work them out to a productive
+conclusion.
+
+Thus, when times grew hard under the stress of the Civil War, and the
+works of art representing many hours of Bertrand Ballard's keenest
+effort lay in his studio unpurchased, and even carefully created
+portraits, ordered and painstakingly painted, were left on his hands,
+unclaimed and unpaid for, he quietly turned his attention to his
+garden, saying, "People can live without pictures, but they must
+eat."
+
+So he obtained a few of the choicest of the quickly produced small
+fruits and vegetables and flowers, and soon had rare and beautiful
+things to sell. His clever hands, which before had made his own
+stretchers for his canvases, and had fashioned and gilded with gold
+leaf the frames for his own paintings, now made trellises for his
+vines and boxes for his fruits, and when the price of sugar climbed to
+the very top of the gamut, he created beehives on new models, and
+bought a book on bee culture; ere long he had combs of delicious honey
+to tempt the lovers of sweets.
+
+But how came Bertrand Ballard away out in Wisconsin in a country home,
+painting pictures for people who knew little or nothing of art, and
+cared not to know more, raising fruits and keeping bees for the means
+to live? Ah, that is another story, and to tell it would make another
+book; suffice it to say that for love of a beautiful woman, strong and
+wise and sweet, he had followed her farmer father out into the newer
+west from old New York State.
+
+There, frail in health and delicate and choice in his tastes, but
+brave in spirit, he took up the battle of the weak with life, and
+fought it like a strong man, valiantly and well. And where got he his
+strength? How are the weak ever made strong? Through strength of
+love--the inward fire that makes great the soul, while consuming the
+dross of false values and foolish estimates--from the merry heart that
+could laugh through any failure, and most of all from the beautiful
+hand, supple and workful, and gentle and forceful, that lay in his.
+
+But this is not the story of Bertrand Ballard, except incidentally as
+he and his family play their part in the drama that centers in the
+lives of two lads, one of whom--Peter Craigmile, Junior--comes now
+swinging up the path from the front gate, where three roads meet,
+brave in his new uniform of blue, with lifted head, and eyes grave and
+shining with a kind of solemn elation.
+
+"Bertrand, here comes Peter Junior in a new uniform," Mary Ballard
+called to her husband, who was working at a box in which he meant to
+fit glass sides for an aquarium for the edification of the little
+ones. He came quickly out from his workroom, and Mary rose from her
+seat and pushed her mending basket one side, and together they walked
+down the path to meet the youth.
+
+"Peter Junior, have you done it? Oh, I'm sorry!"
+
+"Why, Mary! why, Mary! I'm astonished! Not sorry?" Bertrand took the
+boy's hand in both his own and looked up in his eyes, for the lad was
+tall, much taller than his friend. "I would go myself if I only had
+the strength and were not near-sighted."
+
+"Thank the Lord!" said his wife, fervently.
+
+"Why, Mary--Mary--I'm astonished!" he said again. "Our country--"
+
+"Yes, 'Our Country' is being bled to death," she said, taking the
+boy's hand in hers for a moment; and, turning, they walked back to the
+house with the young volunteer between them. "No, I'm not reconciled
+to having our young men go down there and die by the thousands from
+disease and bullets and in prisons. It's wrong! I say war is
+iniquitous, and the issues, North or South, are not worth it. Peter, I
+had hoped you were too young. Why did you?"
+
+"I couldn't help it, Mrs. Ballard. The call for fifty thousand more
+came, and father gave his consent; and, anyway, they are taking a
+younger set now than at first."
+
+"Yes, and soon they'll take an older set, and then they'll take the
+small and frail and near-sighted ones, and then--" She stopped
+suddenly, with a contrite glance at her husband's face. He hated to be
+small and frail and near-sighted. She stepped round to his side and
+put her hand in his. "I'm thankful you are, Bertrand," she said
+quietly. "You'll stay to tea with us, won't you, Peter? We'll have it
+out of doors."
+
+"Yes, I'll stay--thank you. It may be the last time, and mother--I
+came to see if you'd go up home and see mother, Mrs. Ballard. I kind
+of thought you'd think as father and Mr. Ballard do about it, and I
+thought you might be able to help mother to see it that way, too. You
+see, mother--she--I always thought you were kind of strong and would
+see things sort of--well--big, you know, more--as we men do." He held
+his head high and looked off as he spoke.
+
+She exchanged a half-smiling glance with her husband, and their hands
+clasped tighter. "Maybe, though--if you feel this way--you can't help
+mother--but what shall I do?" The big boy looked wistfully down at
+her.
+
+"I may not be able to help her to see things you want, Peter Junior.
+Maybe she would be happier in seeing things her own way; but I can
+sympathize with her. Perhaps I can help her to hope for the best, and
+anyway--we can--just talk it over."
+
+"Thank you, Mrs. Ballard, thank you. I don't care how she sees it,
+if--if--she'll only be happier--and--give her consent. I can't bear to
+go away without that; but if she won't give it, I must go anyway,--you
+know."
+
+"Yes," she said, smiling, "I suppose we women have to be forced
+sometimes, or we never would allow some things to be done. You
+enlisted first and then went to her for her consent? Yes, you are a
+man, Peter Junior. But I tell you, if you were my son, I would never
+give my consent--nor have it forced from me--still--I would love you
+better for doing this."
+
+"My love, your inconsistency is my joy," said her husband, as she
+passed into the house and left them together.
+
+The sun still shone hotly down, but the shadows were growing longer,
+and Betty left baby asleep under the Harvest apple tree where she had
+been staying patiently during the long, warm hours, and sat at her
+father's feet on the edge of the porch, where apparently she was
+wholly occupied in tracing patterns with her bare toes in the sand of
+the path. Now and then she ran out to the Harvest apple tree and back,
+her golden head darting among the green shrubbery like a sunbeam. She
+wished to do her full duty by the bees and the baby, and at the same
+time hear all the talk of the older ones, and watch the fascinating
+young soldier in his new uniform.
+
+As bright as the sunbeam, and as silent, she watched and listened. Her
+heart beat fast with excitement, as it often did these days, when she
+heard them talk of the war and the men who went away, perhaps never to
+return, or to return with great glory. Now here was Peter Junior
+going. He already had his beautiful new uniform, and he would march
+and drill and carry a gun, and halt and present arms, along with the
+older men she had seen in the great camp out on the high bluffs which
+overlooked the wide, sweeping, rushing, willful Wisconsin River.
+
+Oh, if she were only a man and as old as Peter Junior, she would go
+with him; but it was very grand to know him even. Why was she a girl?
+If God had only asked her which she would rather be when he had made
+her out of dust, she would have told him to make her a man, so she
+might be a soldier. It was not fair. There was Bobby; he would be a
+man some day, and he could ride on a large black horse like the
+knights of old, and go to wars, and rescue people, and do deeds of
+arms. What deeds of arms were, she little knew, but it was something
+very strong and wonderful that only knights and soldiers did.
+
+Betty heaved a deep sigh, and put out her hand and softly touched
+Peter Junior's trousers. He thought it was the kitten purring about.
+No, God had not treated her fairly. Now she must grow up and be only a
+woman, and wash dishes, and sweep and dust, and get very tired, and
+wear dresses--and oh, dear! But then perhaps God had to do that way,
+for if he had given everybody a choice, everybody would choose to be
+men, and there would be no women to mind the home and take care of the
+little children, and it would be a very sad kind of world, as she had
+often heard her father say. Perhaps God had to do with them as Peter
+Junior had done with his mother when he enlisted first and asked her
+consent afterwards; just make them girls, and then try to convince
+them afterwards that it was a fine thing to be a girl. She wished she
+were Bobby instead of Betty--but then--Bobby might not have liked
+that.
+
+She glanced wistfully at the sleeping child and saw him toss his arms
+about, and knew she ought to be there to sway a green branch over him
+to keep the little gnats and flies from bothering him and waking him;
+and the bees might swarm and no one see them.
+
+"Father, is it three o'clock yet?"
+
+"Yes, deary, why?"
+
+"Goody! The bees won't swarm now, will they? Will you bring Bobby in,
+father?"
+
+"He is very well there; we won't disturb him."
+
+Peter Junior looked down on the little girl, so full of vitality and
+life and inspiration, so vibrant with enthusiasm, and saw her vaguely
+as a slightly disturbing element, but otherwise of little moment in
+the world's economy. His thoughts were on greater things.
+
+Betty accepted her father's decision without protest, as she accepted
+most things,--a finality to be endured and made the best of,--so she
+continued to run back and forth between the sleeping child and the
+porch, thereby losing much interesting dialogue,--all about camps and
+fighting and scout duty,--until at last her mother returned and with a
+glance at her small daughter's face said:--
+
+"Father, will you bring baby in now and put him in his cradle? Betty
+has had him nearly all day." And father went. Oh, beautiful mother!
+How did she know!
+
+Then Betty settled herself at Peter Junior's feet and looked up in his
+eyes gravely. "What will you be, now you are a soldier?" she asked.
+
+"Why, a soldier."
+
+"No, I mean, will you be a general--or a flag carrier--or will you
+drum? I'd be a general if I were you--or else a drummer. I think you
+would be very handsome for a general."
+
+Peter Junior threw back his head and laughed. It was the first time he
+had laughed that day, and yet he was both proud and happy. "Would you
+like to be a soldier?"
+
+"Yes."
+
+"But you might be killed, or have your leg shot off--or--"
+
+"I know. So might you--but you would go, anyway--wouldn't you?"
+
+"Certainly."
+
+"Well, then you understand how I feel. I'd like to be a man, and go to
+war, and 'Have a part to tear a cat in,' too."
+
+"What's that? What's that? Mary, do you hear that?" said her father,
+resuming his seat at Peter's side, and hearing her remark.
+
+"Why, father, wouldn't you? You know you'd like to go to war. I heard
+what you said to mother, and, anyway--I'd just like to be a man and
+'Have a part to tear a cat in,' the way men have."
+
+Bertrand Ballard looked down and patted his little daughter's head,
+then caught her up and placed her on his knee. He realized suddenly
+that his child was an entity unfathomed, separate from himself,
+working out her own individuality almost without guidance, except such
+as he and his Mary were unconsciously giving to her by their daily
+acts and words.
+
+"What books are those you have there? Don't you know you mustn't take
+father's Shakespeare out and leave it on the grass?"
+
+Betty laughed. "How did you know I had Shakespeare?"
+
+"Didn't you say you 'Would like a part to tear a cat in'?"
+
+"Oh, have you read 'Midsummer Night's Dream'?" She lifted her head
+from his bosom and eyed him gravely a moment, then snuggled
+comfortably down again. "But then, I suppose you have read everything."
+Her father and Peter both laughed.
+
+"Were you reading 'Midsummer Night's Dream' out there?"
+
+"No, I've read that lots of times--long ago. I'm reading 'The Merry
+Wives of Windsor' now."
+
+"Mary, Mary, do you hear this? I think it's time our Betty had a
+little supervision in her reading."
+
+Mary Ballard came to the door from the tea table where she had been
+arranging her little set of delicate china, her one rare treasure and
+inheritance. "Yes, I knew she was reading--whatever she fancied, but I
+thought I wouldn't interfere--not yet. I have so little time, for one
+thing, and, anyway, I thought she might browse a bit. She's like a
+calf in rare pastures, and I don't think she understands enough to do
+her harm--or much good, either. Those things slide off from her like
+water off a duck's back."
+
+Betty looked anxiously up at her mother. What things was she missing?
+She must read them all over again.
+
+"What else have you out there, Betty?" asked her father.
+
+Betty dropped her head shamefacedly. She never knew when she was in
+the right and when wrong. Sometimes the very things which seemed most
+right to her were most wrong. "That's 'Paradise Lost.' It was an old
+book, father. There was a tear in the back when I took it down. I like
+to read about Satan. I like to read about the mighty hosts and the
+angels and the burning lake. Is that hell? I was pretending if the
+bees swarmed that they would be the mighty host of bad angels falling
+out of heaven."
+
+Again Peter flung back his head and laughed. He looked at the child
+with new interest, but Betty did not smile back at him. She did not
+like being laughed at.
+
+"It's true," she said; "they did fall out of heaven in a swarm, and it
+was like over at High Knob on the river bank, only a million times
+higher, because they were so long falling. 'From morn till noon they
+fell, from noon till dewy eve.'" Betty looked off into space with
+half-closed eyes. She was seeing them fall. "It was a long time to be
+in suspense, wasn't it, father?" Then every one laughed. Even mother
+joined in. She was putting the last touches to the tea table.
+
+"Mary, my dear, I think we'd better take a little supervision of the
+child's reading--I do, really."
+
+The gate at the end of the long path to the house clicked, and another
+lad came swinging up the walk, slightly taller than Peter Junior, but
+otherwise enough like him in appearance to be his own brother. He was
+not as grave as Peter, but smiled as he hailed them, waving his cap
+above his head. He also wore the blue uniform, and it was new.
+
+"Hallo, Peter! You here?"
+
+"Of course I'm here. I thought you were never coming."
+
+"You did?"
+
+Betty sprang from her father's lap and ran to meet him. She slipped
+her hand in his and hopped along at his side. "Oh, Rich! Are you
+going, too? I wish I were you."
+
+He lifted the child to a level with his face and kissed her, then set
+her on her feet again. "Never wish that, Betty. It would spoil a nice
+little girl."
+
+"I'm not such a nice little girl. I--I--love Satan--and they're going
+to--to--supervise my reading." She clung to his hand and nodded her
+head with finality. He swung her along, making her take long leaps as
+they walked.
+
+"You love Satan? I thought you loved me!"
+
+"It's the same thing, Rich," said Peter Junior, with a grin.
+
+Bertrand had gone to the kitchen door. "Mary, my love, here's Richard
+Kildene." She entered the living room, carrying a plate of light, hot
+biscuit, and hurried out to Richard, greeting him warmly--even
+lovingly.
+
+"Bertrand, won't you and the boys carry the table out to the garden?"
+she suggested. "Open both doors and take it carefully. It will be
+pleasanter here in the shade."
+
+The young men sprang to do her bidding, and the small table was borne
+out under the trees, the lads enumerating with joy the articles of
+Mary Ballard's simple menu.
+
+"Hot biscuits and honey! My golly! Won't we wish for this in about two
+months from now?" said Richard.
+
+"Cream and caraway cookies!" shouted Peter Junior, turning back to the
+porch to help Bertrand carry the chairs. "Of course we'll be wishing
+for this before long, but that's part of soldiering."
+
+"We're not looking forward to a well-fed, easy time of it, so we'll
+just make the best of this to-night, and eat everything in sight,"
+said Richard.
+
+Bertrand preferred to change the subject. "This is some of our new
+white clover honey," he said. "I took it from that hive over there
+last evening, and they've been working all day as if they had had new
+life given them. All bees want is a lot of empty space for storing
+honey."
+
+Richard followed Mrs. Ballard into the kitchen for the tea. "Where are
+the other children?" he asked.
+
+"Martha and Jamie are spending a week with my mother and father. They
+love to go there, and mother--and father, also, seem never to have
+enough of them. Baby is still asleep, and I must waken him, too, or
+he won't sleep to-night. I hung a pail of milk over the spring to keep
+it cool, and the butter is there also--and the Dutch cheese in a tin
+box. Can you--wait, I'd better go with you. We'll leave the tea to
+steep a minute."
+
+They passed through the house and down toward the spring house under
+the maple and basswood trees at the back, walking between rows of
+currant bushes where the fruit hung red.
+
+"I hate to leave all this--maybe forever," said the boy. The corners
+of his mouth drooped a little, and he looked down at Mary Ballard with
+a tender glint in his deep blue eyes. His eyes were as blue as the
+lake on a summer's evening, and they were shaded by heavy dark brown
+lashes, almost black. His brows and hair were the same deep brown.
+Peter Junior's were a shade lighter, and his hair more curling. It was
+often a matter of discussion in the village as to which of the boys
+was the handsomer. That they were both fine-looking lads was always
+conceded.
+
+Mary Ballard turned toward him impulsively. "Why did you do this,
+Richard? Why? I can't feel that this fever for war is right. It is
+terrible. We are losing the best blood in the land in a wicked war."
+She took his two hands in hers, and her eyes filled. "When we first
+came here, your mother was my dearest friend. You never knew her, but
+I loved her--and her loss was much to me. Richard, why didn't you
+consult us?"
+
+"I hadn't any one but you and your husband to care. Oh, Aunt Hester
+loves me, of course, and is awfully good to me--but the Elder--I
+always feel somehow as if he expects me to go to the bad. He never had
+any use for my father, I guess. Was my father--was--he no good? Don't
+mind telling me the truth: I ought to know."
+
+"Your father was not so well known here, but he was, in Bertrand's
+estimation, a royal Irish gentleman. We both liked him; no one could
+help it. Never think hardly of him."
+
+"Why has he never cared for me? Why have I never known him?"
+
+"There was a quarrel--or--some unpleasantness between your uncle and
+him; it's an old thing."
+
+Richard's lip quivered an instant, then he drew himself up and smiled
+on her, then he stooped and kissed her. "Some of us must go; we can't
+let this nation be broken up. Some men must give their lives for it;
+and I'm one of those who ought to go, for I have no one to mourn for
+me. Half the class has enlisted."
+
+"I venture to say you suggested it, too?"
+
+"Well--yes."
+
+"And Peter Junior was the first to follow you?"
+
+"Well, yes! I'm sorry--because of Aunt Hester--but we always do pull
+together, you know. See here, let's not think of it in this way. There
+are other ways. Perhaps I'll come back with straps on my shoulders and
+marry Betty some day."
+
+"God grant you may; that is, if you come back as you left us. You
+understand me? The same boy?"
+
+"I do and I will," he said gravely.
+
+That was a happy hour they spent at the evening meal, and many an
+evening afterwards, when hardship and weariness had made the lads seem
+more rugged and years older, they spoke of it and lived it over.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER III
+
+A MOTHER'S STRUGGLE
+
+
+"Come, Lady, come. You're slow this morning." Mary Ballard drove a
+steady, well-bred, chestnut mare with whom she was on most friendly
+terms. Usually her carryall was filled with children, for she kept no
+help, and when she went abroad, she must perforce take the children
+with her or spend an unquiet hour or two while leaving them behind.
+This morning she had left the children at home, and carried in their
+stead a basket of fruit and flowers on the seat beside her. "Come,
+Lady, come; just hurry a little." She touched the mare with the whip,
+a delicate reminder to haste, which Lady assumed to be a fly and
+treated as such with a switch of her tail.
+
+The way seemed long to Mary Ballard this morning, and the sun beating
+down on the parched fields made the air quiver with heat. The unpaved
+road was heavy with dust, and the mare seemed to drag her feet through
+it unnecessarily as she jogged along. Mary was anxious and dreaded the
+visit she must make. She would be glad when it was over. What could
+she say to the stricken woman who spent her time behind closed blinds?
+Presently she left the dust behind and drove along under the maple
+trees that lined the village street, over cool roads that were kept
+well sprinkled.
+
+The Craigmiles lived on the main street of the town in the most
+dignified of the well-built homes of cream-colored brick, with a wide
+front stoop and white columns at the entrance. Mary was shown into the
+parlor by a neat serving maid, who stepped softly as if she were
+afraid of waking some one. The room was dark and cool, but the air
+seemed heavy with a lingering musky odor. The dark furniture was set
+stiffly back against the walls, the floor was covered with a velvet
+carpet of rich, dark colors, and oil portraits were hung about in
+heavy gold frames.
+
+Mary looked up at two of these portraits with pride, and rebelled that
+the light was so shut out that they must always be seen in the
+obscurity, for Bertrand had painted them, and she considered them her
+husband's best work. In the painting of them and the long sittings
+required the intimacy between the two families had begun. Really it
+had begun before that, for there were other paintings in that
+home--portraits, old and fine, which Elder Craigmile's father had
+brought over from Scotland when he came to the new world to establish
+a new home. These paintings were the pride of Elder Craigmile's heart,
+and the delight of Bertrand Ballard's artist soul.
+
+To Bertrand they were a discovery--an oasis in a desert. One day the
+banker had called him in to look at a canvas that was falling to
+pieces with age, in the hope that the artist might have the skill to
+restore it. From that day the intimacy began, and a warm friendship
+sprang up between the two families, founded on Bertrand's love for the
+old works of art, wherein the ancestors of Peter Craigmile, Senior,
+looked out from their frames with a dignity and warmth and grace
+rarely to be met with in this new western land.
+
+Bertrand's heart leaped with joy as he gazed on one of them, the one
+he had been called on to save if possible. "This must be a genuine
+Reynolds. Ah! They could paint, those old fellows!" he cried.
+
+"Genuine Reynolds? Why, man, it is! it is! You are a true artist. You
+knew it in a moment." Peter Senior's heart was immediately filled with
+admiration for the younger man. "Yes, they were a good family--the
+Craigmiles of Aberdeen. My father brought all the old portraits coming
+to him to this country to keep the family traditions alive. It's a
+good thing--a good thing!"
+
+"She was a beautiful woman, the original of that portrait."
+
+"She was a great beauty, indeed. Her husband took her to London to
+have it done by the great painter. Ah, the Scotch lasses were fine!
+Look at that color! You don't see that here, no?"
+
+"Our American women are too pale, for the most part; but then again,
+your men are too red."
+
+"Ah! Beef and red wine! Beef and red wine! With us in Scotland it was
+good oatcakes and home-brew--and the air. The air of the Scotch hills
+and the sea. You don't have such air here, I've often heard my father
+say. I've spent the greater part of my life here, so it's mostly the
+traditions I have--they and the portraits."
+
+Thus it came about that owing to his desire to keep up the line of
+family portraits, Peter Craigmile engaged the artist to paint the
+picture of his gentle, sweet-faced wife. She was painted seated, a
+little son on either side of her; and now in the dimness she looked
+out from the heavy gold frame, a half smile playing about her lips, on
+her lap an open book, and about the low-cut crimson velvet bodice
+rare old lace pinned at the bosom with a large brooch of wrought gold,
+framing a delicately cut cameo.
+
+As Mary Ballard sat in the parlor waiting, she looked up in the dusky
+light at this picture. Ah, yes! Her Bertrand also was a great painter.
+If only he could be where he might become known and appreciated! She
+sighed for another reason, also, as she regarded it: because the two
+little sons clasped by the mother's arms were both gone. Sunny-haired
+Scotch laddies they were, with fair, wide brows, each in kilt and
+plaid, with bare knees and ruddy cheeks. What delight her husband had
+taken in painting it! And now the mother mourned unceasingly the loss
+of those little sons, and of one other whom Mary had never seen, and
+of whom they had no likeness. It was indeed hard that the one son left
+them,--their firstborn,--their hope and pride, should now be going
+away to leave them, going perhaps to his death.
+
+The door opened and a shadow swept slowly across the room. Always pale
+and in black--wrapped in her mourning the shadow of sorrow never left
+this mother; and now it seemed to envelop even Mary Ballard, bright
+and warm of nature as she was.
+
+Hester Craigmile barely smiled as she held out her slender,
+blue-veined hand.
+
+"It is very good of you to come to me, Mary Ballard, but you can't
+make me think I should be reconciled to this. No! It is hard enough to
+be reconciled to the blows God has dealt me, without accepting what my
+husband and son see fit to give me in this." Her hand was cold and
+passive, and her voice was restrained and low.
+
+Mary Ballard's hands were warm, and her tones were rich and full. She
+took the proffered hand in both her own and drew the shadow down to
+sit at her side.
+
+"No, no. I'm not going to try to make you reconciled, or anything.
+I've just come to tell you that I understand, and that I think you are
+justified in withholding your consent to Peter Junior's going off in
+this way."
+
+"If he were killed, I should feel as if I had consented to his
+death."
+
+"Of course you would. I should feel just the same. Naturally you can't
+forbid his going,--now,--for it's too late, and he would have to go
+with the feeling of disobedience in his heart, and that would be cruel
+to him, and worse for you."
+
+"I know. His father has consented; they think I am wrong. My son
+thinks I am wrong. But I can't! I can't!" In her suppressed tones
+sounded the ancient wail of women--mothers crying for their sons
+sacrificed in war. For a few moments neither of them spoke. It was
+hard for Mary to break the silence. Her friend sat at her side
+withdrawn and still; then she lifted her eyes to the picture of
+herself and the children and spoke again, only breathing the words:
+"Peter Junior--my beautiful oldest boy--he is the last--the others are
+all gone--three of them."
+
+"Peter Junior is splendid. I thought so last evening as I saw him
+coming up the path. I took it home to myself--what I should feel, and
+what I would think if he were my son. Somehow we women are so
+inconsistent and foolish. I knew if he were my son, I never could give
+my consent to his going, never in the world,--but there! I would be so
+proud of him for doing just what your boy has done; I would look up
+to him in admiration, and be so glad that he was just that kind of a
+man!"
+
+Hester Craigmile turned and looked steadily in her friend's eyes, but
+did not open her lips, and after a moment Mary continued:--
+
+"To have one's sons taken like these--is--is different. We know they
+are safe with the One who loved little children; we know they are safe
+and waiting for us. But to have a boy grow into a young man like Peter
+Junior--so straight and fine and beautiful--and then to have him come
+and say: 'I'm going to help save our country and will die for it if I
+must!' Why, my heart would grow big with thanksgiving that I had
+brought such an one into the world and reared him. I--What would I do!
+I couldn't tell him he might go,--no,--but I'd just take him in my
+arms and bless him and love him a thousand times more for it, so he
+could go away with that warm feeling all about his heart; and
+then--I'd just pray and hope the war might end soon and that he might
+come back to me rewarded, and--and--still good."
+
+"That's it. If he would,--I don't distrust my son,--but there are
+always things to tempt, and if--if he were changed in that way, or if
+he never came back,--I would die."
+
+"I know. We can't help thinking about ourselves and how we are
+left--or how we feel--" Mary hesitated and was loath to go on with
+that train of thought, but her friend caught her meaning and rose in
+silence and paced the room a moment, then returned.
+
+"It is easy to talk in that way when one has not lost," she said.
+
+"I know it seems so, but it is not easy, Hester Craigmile. It is
+hard--so hard that I came near staying at home this morning. It seemed
+as if I could not--could not--"
+
+"Yes, what I said was bitter, and it wasn't honest. You were good to
+come to me--and what you have said is true. It has helped me; I think
+it will help me."
+
+"Then good-by. I'll go now, but I'll come again soon." She left the
+shadow sitting there with the basket of fruit and flowers at her side
+unnoticed and forgotten, and stepped quietly out of the darkened room
+into the sunlight and fresh air.
+
+"I do wish I could induce her to go out a little--or open up her
+house. I wish--" Mary Ballard said no more, but shut her lips tightly
+on her thoughts, untied the mare, and drove slowly away.
+
+Hester Craigmile stood for a moment gazing on the picture of her
+little sons, then for an hour or more wandered up and down over her
+spacious home, going from room to room, mechanically arranging and
+rearranging the chairs and small articles on the mantels and tables.
+Nothing was out of place. No dust or disorder anywhere, and there was
+the pity of it. If only a boy's cap could be found lying about, or
+books left carelessly where they ought not to be! One closed door she
+passed again and again. Once she laid her hand on the knob, but passed
+on, leaving it still unopened. At last she turned, and, walking
+swiftly down the long hall, entered the room.
+
+There the blinds were closed and the curtains drawn, and everything
+set in as perfect order as in the parlor below. She sat down in a
+chair placed back against the wall and folded her hands in her lap.
+No, it was not so hard for Mary Ballard. It would not be, even if she
+had a son old enough to go. Mary had work to do.
+
+On the wall above Hester's head was one of the portraits which helped
+to establish the family dignity of the Craigmiles. If the blinds had
+been open, one could have seen it in sharp contrast to the pale moth
+of a woman who sat beneath it. The painting, warm and rich in tone,
+was of a dame in a long-bodiced dress. She held a fan in her hand and
+wore feathers in her powdered hair. Her eyes gazed straight across the
+room into those of a red-coated soldier who wore a sword at his side
+and gold on his shoulders. Yes, there had been soldiers in the family
+before Peter Junior's time.
+
+This was Peter Junior's room, but the boy was there no longer. He had
+come home from college one day and had entered it a boy, and then he
+came out of it and down to his mother, dressed in his new uniform--a
+man. Now he entered it no more, for he stayed at the camp over on the
+high bluff of the Wisconsin River. He was wholly taken up with his new
+duties there, and his room had been set in order and closed as if he
+were dead.
+
+Sitting there, Hester heard the church clock peal out the hour of
+twelve, and started. Soon she would hear the front door open and shut,
+and a heavy tread along the lower hall, and she would go down and sit
+silently at the table opposite her husband, they two alone. There
+would be silence, because there would be nothing to say. He loved her
+and was tender of her, but his word was law, and in all matters he was
+dictator, lawmaker, and judge, and from his decisions there was no
+appeal. It never occurred to him that there ever need be. So Hester
+Craigmile, reserved and intense, closed her lips on her own thoughts,
+which it seemed to her to be useless to utter, and let them eat her
+heart out in silence.
+
+At the moment expected she heard the step on the floor of the
+vestibule, and the door opened, but it was not her husband's step
+alone that she heard. Surely it was Peter Junior's and his cousin's.
+Were they coming to dinner? But no word had been sent. Hester stepped
+out of the room and stood at the head of the stairs waiting. She did
+not wish to go down and meet her son before the others, and if he did
+not find her below, he would know where to look for her.
+
+Peter Senior was an Elder in the Presbyterian Church, and he was
+always addressed as Elder, even by his wife and son. On the street he
+was always Elder Craigmile. She heard the men enter the dining room
+and the door close after them, but still she waited. The maid would
+have to be told to put two more places at the table, but Hester did
+not move. The Elder might attend to that. Presently she heard quick
+steps returning and knew her son was coming. She went to meet him and
+was clasped in his arms, close and hard.
+
+"You were waiting for me here? Come, mother, come." He stroked her
+smooth, dark hair, and put his cheek to hers. It was what she needed,
+what her heart was breaking for. She could even let him go easier
+after this. Sometimes her husband kissed her, but only when he went a
+journey or when he returned, a grave kiss of farewell or greeting; but
+in her son's clasp there was something of her own soul's pent-up
+longing.
+
+"You'll come down, mother? Rich came home with me."
+
+"Yes, I heard his voice. I am glad he came."
+
+"See here, mother! I know what you are doing. This won't do. Every one
+who goes to war doesn't get killed or go to the bad. Look at that old
+redcoat up in my room. He wasn't killed, or where would I be now? I'm
+coming back, just as he did. We are born to fight, we Craigmiles, and
+father feels it or he never would have given his consent."
+
+Slowly they went down the long winding flight of stairs--a flight with
+a smooth banister down which it had once been Peter Junior's delight
+to slide when there was no one nigh to reprove. Now he went down with
+his arm around his slender mother's waist, and now and then he kissed
+her cheek like a lover.
+
+The Elder looked up as they entered, with a slight wince of
+disapproval, the only demonstration of reproof he ever gave his wife,
+which changed instantly to as slight a smile, as he noticed the faint
+color in her cheek, and a brighter light in her eyes than there was at
+breakfast. He and Richard were both seated as they entered, but they
+rose instantly, and the Elder placed her chair with all the manner of
+his forefathers, a courtesy he never neglected.
+
+Hester Craigmile forced herself to converse, and tried to smile as if
+there were no impending gloom. It was here Mary Ballard's influence
+was felt by them all. She had helped her friend more than she knew.
+
+"I'm glad to see you, Richard; I was afraid I might not."
+
+"Oh, no, Aunt Hester. I'd never leave without seeing you. I went into
+the bank and the Elder asked me to dinner and I jumped at the
+chance."
+
+"This is your home always, you know."
+
+"And it's good to think of, too, Aunt Hester."
+
+She looked at her son and then her nephew. "You are so like in your
+uniforms I would not know you apart on the street in the dark," she
+said. Richard shot a merry glance in his uncle's eyes, then only
+smiled decorously with him and Peter Junior.
+
+"I wish you'd visit the camp and see us drill. We go like clockwork,
+Peter and I. They call us the twins."
+
+"There is a very good reason for that, for your mother and I were
+twins, and you resemble her, while Peter Junior resembles me," said
+the Elder.
+
+"Yes," said Hester, "Peter Junior looks like his father;" but as she
+glanced at her son she knew his soul was hers.
+
+Thus the meal passed in quiet, decorous talk, touching on nothing
+vital, but holding a smoldering fire underneath. The young men said
+nothing about the fact that the regiment had been called to duty, and
+soon the camp on the bluff would be breaking up. They dared not touch
+on the past, and they as little dared touch on the future--indeed
+there might be no future. So they talked of indifferent things, and
+Hester parted with her nephew as if they were to meet again soon,
+except that she called him back when he was halfway down the steps and
+kissed him again. As for her son, she took him up to his room and
+there they stayed for an hour, and then he came out and she was left
+in the house alone.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER IV
+
+LEAVE-TAKING
+
+
+Early in the morning, while the earth was still a mass of gray shadow
+and mist, and the sky had only begun to show faint signs of the flush
+of dawn, Betty, awake and alert, crept softly out of bed, not to
+awaken Martha, who slept the sleep of utter weariness at her side.
+Martha had returned only the day before from her visit to her
+grandfather's, a long carriage ride away from Leauvite.
+
+Betty bathed hurriedly, giving a perfunctory brushing to the tangled
+mass of curls, and getting into her clothing swiftly and silently. She
+had been cautioned the night before by her mother not to awaken her
+sister by getting up at too early an hour, for she would be called in
+plenty of time to drive over with the rest to see the soldiers off.
+But what if her mother should forget! So she put on her new white
+dress and gathered a few small parcels which she had carefully tied up
+the night before, and her hat and little white linen cape, and taking
+her shoes in her hand, softly descended the stairs.
+
+"Betty, Betty," her mother spoke in a sleepy voice from her own room
+as the child crept past her door; "why, my dear, it isn't time to get
+up yet. We shan't start for hours."
+
+"I heard Peter Junior say they were going to strike camp at daybreak,
+and I want to see them strike it. You don't need to get up. I can go
+over there alone."
+
+"Why, no, child! Mother couldn't let you do that. They don't want
+little girls there. Go back to bed, dear. Did you wake Martha?"
+
+"Oh, mother. Can't I go downstairs? I don't want to go to bed again.
+I'll be very still."
+
+"Will you lie on the lounge and try to go to sleep again?"
+
+"Yes, mother."
+
+Mary Ballard turned with a sigh and presently fell asleep, and Betty
+softly continued her way and obediently lay down in the darkened room
+below; but sleep she could not. At last, having satisfied her
+conscience by lying quietly for a while, she stole to the open door,
+for in that peaceful spot the Ballards slept with doors and windows
+wide open all through the warm nights. Oh, but the world was cool and
+mysterious, and the air was sweet! Little rustling noises made her
+feel as if strange beings were stirring; above her head were soft
+chirpings, and somewhere a bird was calling an undulating, long-drawn
+note, low and sweet, like a tone drawn from her father's violin.
+
+Betty sat on the edge of the porch and put on her shoes, and then
+walked down the path to the gate. The white peonies and the iris
+flowers were long since gone, and on the Harvest apple trees and the
+Sweet Boughs the fruit hung ripening. All Betty's life long she never
+forgot this wonderful moment of the breaking of day. She listened for
+sounds to come to her from the camp far away on the river bluff, but
+none were heard, only the restless moving of her grandfather's team
+taking their early feed in the small pasture lot near by.
+
+How fresh everything smelled! And the sky! Surely it must be like
+this in heaven! It must be heaven showing through, while the world
+slept. She was glad she had awakened early so she might see it,--she
+and God and the angels, and all the wild things of earth.
+
+Slowly everything around her grew plainer, and long rays of color,
+faintly pink, streamed up into the sky from the eastern horizon; then
+suddenly some pale gray, floating clouds above her head blossomed into
+a wonderful rose laid upon a sea of gold, then gradually turned
+shell-pink, then faded through changing shades to daytime clouds of
+white. She wondered if the soldiers saw it, too. They were breaking
+camp now, surely, for it was day. Still she swung on the gate and
+dreamed, until a voice roused her.
+
+"So Betty sleeps all night on the gate like a chicken on the fence." A
+pair of long arms seized her and lifted her high in the air to a pair
+of strong shoulders. Then she was tossed about and her cheeks rubbed
+red against grandfather Clide's stubby beard, until she laughed aloud.
+"What are you doing here on the gate?"
+
+"I was watching the sky. I think God looked through and smiled, for
+all at once it blossomed. Now the colors are gone."
+
+Grandfather Clide set her gently on her feet and stood looking gravely
+down on her for a moment. "So?" he said.
+
+"The soldiers are striking camp over there, and then they are going to
+march to the square, and then every one is to see them form and
+salute--and then they are to march to the station, and--and--then--and
+then I don't know what will be--I think glory."
+
+Her grandfather shook his head, his thoughtful face half smiling and
+half grave. He took her hand. "Come, we'll see what Jack and Jill are
+up to." He led her to the pasture lot and the horses came and thrust
+their heads over the fence and whinnied. "See? They want their oats."
+Then Betty was lifted to old Jack's bare back and grandfather led him
+by the forelock to the barn, while Jill followed after.
+
+"Did Jack ever 'fall down and break his crown,' grandfather?"
+
+"No, but he ran away once on a time."
+
+"Oh, did Jill come running after?"
+
+"That she did."
+
+The sun had but just cast his first glance at High Knob, where the
+camp was, and Mary Ballard was hastily whipping up batter for
+pancakes, the simplest thing she could get for breakfast, as they were
+to go early enough to see the "boys" at the camp before they formed
+for their march to the town square. The children were to ride over in
+the great carriage with grandfather and grandmother Clide, while
+father and mother would take Bobby with them in the carryall. It was
+an arrangement liked equally by the three small children and the
+well-content grandparents.
+
+Betty came to the house, clinging to her grandfather's hand. He drew
+the large rocking-chair from the kitchen--where winter and summer it
+occupied a place by the window, that Bertrand in his moments of rest
+and leisure might sit and read the war news aloud to his wife as she
+worked--out to a cool grass plot by the door, so that he might still
+be near enough to chat with his daughter, while enjoying the morning
+air.
+
+Betty found tidy little Martha, fresh and clean as a rosebud,
+stepping busily about, setting the table with extra places and putting
+the chairs around. Filled with self-condemnation at the sight of her
+sister's helpfulness, she dashed upstairs to do her part in getting
+all neat for the day. First she coaxed naughty little Jamie, who, in
+his nightshirt, was out on the porch roof fishing, dangling his shoe
+over the edge by its strings tied to his father's cane, to return and
+be hustled into his trousers--funny little garments that came almost
+to his shoe tops--and to stand still while "sister" washed his face
+and brushed his curly red hair into a state of semi-orderliness.
+
+Then there was Bobby to be kissed and coaxed, and washed and dressed,
+and told marvelous tales to beguile him into listening submission.
+"Mother, mayn't I put Bobby's Sunday dress on him?" called Betty, from
+the head of the stairs.
+
+"Yes, dear, anything you like, but hurry. Breakfast is almost ready;"
+then to Martha, "Leave the sweeping, deary, and run down to the spring
+for the cream." To her father, Mary explained: "The little girls are a
+great help. Betty manages to do for the boys without irritating them.
+Now we'll eat while the cakes are hot. Come, Bertrand."
+
+It was a grave mission and a sorrowful one, that early morning ride to
+say good-by to those youthful volunteers. The breakfast conversation
+turned on the subject with subdued intensity. Mary Ballard did not
+explain herself,--she was too busy serving,--but denounced the war in
+broad terms as "unnecessary and iniquitous," thus eliciting from her
+husband his usual exclamation, when an aphorism of more than ordinary
+daring burst from her lips: "Mary! why, Mary! I'm astonished!"
+
+"Every one regards it from a different point of view," said his wife,
+"and this is my point." It was conclusive.
+
+Grandfather Clide turned sideways, leaned one elbow on the table in a
+meditative way he had, and spoke slowly. Betty gazed up at him in
+wide-eyed attention, while Mary poured the coffee and Martha helped
+her mother by passing the cakes. Bobby sat close to his comfortable
+grandmother, who seemed to be giving him all her attention, but who
+heard everything, and was ready to drop a quiet word of significance
+when applicable.
+
+"If we bring the question down to its primal cause," said grandfather,
+"if we bring it down to its primal cause, Mary is right; for the cause
+being iniquitous, of course, the war is the same."
+
+"What is 'primal cause,' grandfather?" asked Betty.
+
+"The thing that began it all," said grandfather, regarding her
+quizzically.
+
+"I don't agree with your conclusion," said Bertrand, pausing to put
+sirup on Jamie's cakes, after repeated demands therefor. "If the cause
+be evil, it follows that to annihilate the cause--wipe it out of
+existence--must be righteous."
+
+"In God's good time," said grandmother Clide, quietly.
+
+"God's good time, in my opinion, seems to be when we are forced to a
+thing." Grandfather lifted one shaggy eyebrow in her direction.
+
+"At any rate, and whatever happens," said Bertrand, "the Union must be
+preserved, a nation, whole and undivided. My father left England for
+love of its magnificent ideals of government by the people. Here is to
+be the vast open ground where all nations may come and realize their
+highest possibilities, and consequently this nation must be held
+together and developed as a whole in all its resources, and not cut up
+into small, ineffective, quarrelsome factions. To allow that would
+mean the ruin of a colossal scheme for universal progress."
+
+Mary brought her husband's coffee and put it beside his plate, as he
+was too absorbed to take it, and as she did so placed her hand on his
+shoulder with gentle pressure and their eyes met for an instant. Then
+grandfather Clide took up the thread.
+
+"Speaking of your father makes me think of my father, your old
+grandfather Clide, Mary. He fought with his father in the Revolutionary
+War when he was a lad no more than Peter Junior's age--or less. He lived
+through it and came to be a judge of the supreme court of New York, and
+helped to frame the constitution of that State, too. I used to hear
+him say, when I was a mere boy,--and he would bring his fist down on
+the table with an emphasis that made the dishes rattle, for all he
+averred that he never used gesticulation to aid his oratory,--he used to
+say,--I remember his words, as if it were but yesterday,--'Slavery is a
+crime which we, the whole nation, are accountable for, and for which we
+will be held accountable. If we as a nation will not do away with it by
+legislation or mutual compact justly, then the Lord will take it into
+his own hands and wipe it out with blood. He may be patient for a long
+while, and give us a good chance, but if we wait too long,--it may
+not be in my day--it may not be in yours,--he will wipe it out with
+blood!' and here was where he used to make the dishes rattle."
+
+"Maybe, then, this is the Lord's good time," said grandmother.
+
+"I believe in preserving the Union at any cost, slavery or no
+slavery," said Bertrand.
+
+"The bigger and grander the nation, the more rottenness, if it's
+rotten at heart. I believe it better--even at the cost of war--to wipe
+out a national crime,--or let those who want slavery take themselves
+out of it."
+
+Betty began to quiver through all her little system of high-strung
+nerves and sympathies. The talk was growing heated, and she hated to
+listen to excited arguments; yet she gazed and listened with
+fascinated attention.
+
+Bertrand looked up at his father-in-law. "Why, father! why, father!
+I'm astonished! I fail to see how permitting one tremendous evil can
+possibly further any good purpose. To my mind the most tremendous evil
+that could be perpetrated on this globe--the thing that would do more
+to set all progress back for hundreds of years, maybe--would be to
+break up this Union. Here in this country now we are advancing at a
+pace that covers the centuries of the past in leaps of a hundred years
+in one. Now cut this land up into little, caviling factions, and where
+are we? Why, the very motto of the republic would be done away
+with--'In Union there is strength.' I tell you slavery is a sort of
+Delilah, and the nation--if it is divided--will be like Sampson with
+his locks shorn."
+
+"Well, war is here," said Mary, "and we must send off our young men to
+the shambles, and later on fill up our country with the refuse of
+Europe in their stead. It will be a terrible blood-letting for both
+North and South, and it will be the best blood on both sides. I'm as
+sorry for the mothers down there as I am for ourselves. Did you get
+the apples, Bertrand? We'd better start, to be there at eight."
+
+"I put them in the carryall, my dear, Sweet Boughs and Harvest apples.
+The boys will have one more taste before they leave."
+
+"Father, we want to carry some. Put some in the carriage too," said
+Martha.
+
+"Yes, father. We want to eat some while we are on the way."
+
+"Why, Jamie, they are for the soldiers; they're not for us," cried
+Betty, in horror. To eat even one, it seemed to her, would be greed
+and robbery.
+
+In spite of the gravity of the hour to the older ones, the occasion
+took on an air of festivity to the children. In grandfather's
+dignified old family carriage Martha sat with demure elation on the
+back seat at her grandmother's side, wearing her white linen cape, and
+a wide-brimmed, low-crowned hat of Neapolitan straw, with a blue
+ribbon around the crown, and a narrow one attached to the front, the
+end of which she held in her hand to pull the brim down to shade her
+eyes as was the fashion for little girls of the day. She felt well
+pleased with the hat, and held the ribbon daintily in her shapely
+little hand.
+
+At her feet was the basket of apples, and with her other hand she
+guarded three small packages. Grandmother wore a gray, changeable
+silk. The round waist fitted her plump figure smoothly, and the skirt
+was full and flowing. Her bonnet was made of the same silk shirred on
+rattan, and was not perched on the top of her head, but covered it
+well and framed her sweet face with a full, white tulle ruching set
+close under the brim.
+
+Grandfather, up in front, drove Jack and Jill, who, he said, were
+"feeling their oats." Betty did not wonder, for oats are sharp and
+must prick their stomachs. She sat with grandfather,--he had promised
+she should the night before,--and Jamie was tucked in between them. He
+ought to have been in behind with grandmother, but his scream of
+rebellion as he was lifted in brought instant yielding from Betty,
+when grandfather interfered and took them both. But when Jamie
+insisted on holding the reins, grandfather grew firm, and when screams
+again began, his young majesty was lifted down and placed in the road
+to remain until instant obedience was promised, after which he was
+restored to the coveted place and away they went.
+
+Betty's white linen cape blew out behind and her ribbons flew like
+blue butterflies all about her hat. She forgot to hold down the brim,
+as polite little girls did who knew how to wear their Sunday clothes.
+She, too, held three small packages in her lap. For days, ever since
+Peter Junior and Richard Kildene had taken tea with them in their new
+uniforms, the little girls had patiently sewed to make the articles
+which filled these packages.
+
+Mary Ballard had planned them. In each was a needle-book filled with
+needles large enough to be used by clumsy fingers, a pin ball, a
+good-sized iron thimble, and a case of thread and yarn for mending,
+buttons of various sizes, and a bit of beeswax, molded in Mary
+Ballard's thimble, to wax their linen thread. All were neatly packed
+in a case of bronzed leather bound about with firm braid, and tucked
+under the strap of the leather on the inside was a small pair of
+scissors. It was all very compact and tied about with the braid.
+Mother had done some of the hardest of the sewing, but for the most
+part the stitches had been painstakingly put in by the children's own
+fingers.
+
+The morning was cool, and the dust had been laid by a heavy shower in
+the night. The horses held up their heads and went swiftly, in spite
+of their long journey the day before. Soon they heard in the distance
+the sound of the drum, and the merry note of a fife. Again a pang shot
+through Betty's heart that she had not been a boy of Peter Junior's
+age that she might go to war. She heaved a deep sigh and looked up in
+her grandfather's face. It was a grizzled face, with blue eyes that
+shot a kindly glance sideways at her as if he understood.
+
+When they drew near, the horses danced to the merry tune, as if they
+would like to go, too. All the camp seemed alive. How splendid the
+soldiers looked in their blue uniforms, their guns flashing in the
+sun! Betty watched how their legs with the stripes on them seemed to
+twinkle as they moved all together, marching in companies. Back and
+forth, back and forth, they went, and the orders came to the children
+short and abrupt, as the men went through their maneuvers. They saw
+the sentinel pacing up and down, and wondered why he did it instead of
+marching with the other men. All these questions were saved up to ask
+of grandfather when they got home. They were too interested to do
+anything but watch now.
+
+At last, very suddenly it seemed, the soldiers broke ranks and
+scattered over the greensward, running hither and thither like ants.
+Betty again drew a long breath. Now they were coming, the soldiers in
+whom they were particularly interested.
+
+"Can they do what they please now?" she asked her grandfather.
+
+"Yes, for a while."
+
+All along the sentry line carriages were drawn up, for this hour from
+eight till nine was given to the "boys" to see their friends for the
+last time in many months, maybe years, maybe forever. As they had come
+from all over the State, some had no friends to meet them, but guests
+were there in crowds, and every man might receive a handshake whether
+he was known or not. All were friends to these young volunteers.
+
+Bertrand Ballard was known and loved by all the youths. Some from the
+village, and others from the country around, had been in the way of
+coming to the Ballard home simply because the place was made an
+enjoyable center for them. Some came to practice the violin and others
+to sing. Some came to try their hand at sketching and painting and
+some just to hear Bertrand talk. All was done for them quite
+gratuitously on his part, and no laugh was merrier than his. Even the
+chore boy came in for a share of the Ballards' kindly help, sitting at
+Mary Ballard's side in the long winter evenings, and conning lessons
+to patch up an education snatched haphazard and hardly come by.
+
+Here comes one of them now, head up, smiling, and happy-go-lucky.
+"Bertrand, here comes Johnnie. Give him the apples and let him
+distribute them. Poor boy! I'm sorry he's going; he's too easily led,"
+said Mary.
+
+"Oh! Johnnie, Johnnie Cooper! I've got something for you. We made
+them. Mother helped us," cried Martha. Now the children were out of
+the carriage and running about among their friends.
+
+Johnnie Cooper snatched Jamie from the ground and threw him up over
+his head, then set him down again and took the parcel. Then he caught
+Martha up and set her on his shoulder while he peeped into the
+package.
+
+"Stop, Johnnie. Set me down. I'm too big now for you to toss me up."
+Her arms were clasped tightly under his chin as he held her by the
+feet. Slowly he let her slide to the ground and thrust the little case
+in his pocket, and stooping, kissed the child.
+
+"I'll think of you and your mother when I use this," he said.
+
+"And you'll write to us, won't you, Johnnie?" said Mary. "If you
+don't, I shall think something is gone wrong with you." He knew what
+she meant, and she knew he knew. "There are worse things than bullets,
+Johnnie."
+
+"Never you worry for me, Mrs. Ballard. We're going down for business,
+and you won't see me again until we've licked the 'rebs.'" He held her
+hand awkwardly for a minute, then relieved the tension by carrying off
+the two baskets of apples. "I know the trees these came from," he
+said, and soon a hundred boys in blue were eating Bertrand's choicest
+apples.
+
+"Here come the twins!" said some one, as Peter Junior and Richard
+Kildene came toward them across the sward. Betty ran to meet them and
+caught Richard by the hand. She loved to have him swing her in long
+leaps from the ground as he walked.
+
+"See, Richard, I made this for you all myself--almost. I put C in the
+corner so it wouldn't get mixed with the others, because this I made
+especially for you."
+
+"Did you? Why didn't you put R in the corner if you meant it for me? I
+think you meant this for Charley Crabbe."
+
+"No, I didunt." Betty spoke most emphatically. "Martha has one for
+him. I put C because--you'll see when you open it. Everything's bound
+all round with my very best cherry-colored hair ribbon, to make it
+very special, and that is what C is for. All the rest are brown, and
+this is prettier, and it won't get mixed with Peter Junior's."
+
+"Ah, yes. C is for cherry--Betty's hair ribbon; and the gold-brown
+leather is for Betty's hair. Is that it?"
+
+"Yep."
+
+"Haven't I one, too?" asked Peter Junior.
+
+"Yep. We made them just alike, and you can sew on buttons and
+everything."
+
+Thus the children made the leave-taking less somber, to the relief of
+every one.
+
+Grandfather and grandmother Clide had friends of their own whom they
+had come all the forty miles to see,--neighbor boys from many of the
+farms around their home, and their daughter-in-law's own brother, who
+was like a son to them. There he stood, lithe and strong and genial,
+and, alas! too easy-going to be safe among the temptations of the
+camp.
+
+Quickly the hour passed and the call came to form ranks for the march
+to the town square, where speeches were to be made and prayers were to
+be read before the march to the station.
+
+Our little party waited until the last company had left the camp
+ground and the excited children had seen them all and heard the sound
+of the fife and drum to their last note and beat as the "boys in blue"
+filed past them and off down the winding country road among the trees.
+Nothing was said by the older ones of what might be in the future for
+those gallant youths--yes, and for the few men of greater years with
+them--as they wound out of sight. It was better so. Bobby fell asleep
+in Mary Ballard's arms as they drove back, and a bright tear fell from
+her wide-open, far-seeing eyes down on his baby cheek.
+
+It was no lack of love for his son that kept Elder Craigmile away at
+the departure of the boys from their camp on the bluff. He had
+virtually said his say and parted from his son when he gave his
+consent to his going in the first place. To him war meant sacrifice,
+and the parting with sons, at no matter what cost. The dominant idea
+with him was ever the preservation of the Union. At nine o'clock as
+usual that morning he had entered the bank, and a few minutes later,
+when the troops formed on the square, he came out and took his
+appointed place on the platform, as one of the speakers, and offered a
+closing prayer for the confounding of the enemy after the manner of
+David of old--then he descended and took his son's hand, as he stood
+in the ranks, with his arm across the boy's shoulder, looked a moment
+in his eyes; then, without a word, he turned and reëntered the bank.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER V
+
+THE PASSING OF TIME
+
+
+It was winter. The snow was blowing past the windows in blinding
+drifts, and the road in front of the Ballards' home was fast filling
+to the tops of the fences. A bright wood-fire was burning in the great
+cookstove, which had been brought into the living room for warmth and
+to economize steps, as all the work of the household devolved on Mary
+and little Betty, since Martha spent the week days at the Deans in the
+village in order to attend the high school.
+
+Mary gazed anxiously now and then through the fast-frosting window
+panes on the opaque whiteness of the storm without, where the trees
+tossed their bare branches weirdly, like threatening gray phantoms,
+grotesque and dimly seen through the driving snow. It was Friday
+afternoon and still early, and brave, busy little Martha always came
+home on Fridays after school to help her mother on Saturdays.
+
+"Oh, I hope Martha hasn't started," said Mary. "Look out, Bertrand.
+This is the wildest storm we have had this year."
+
+"Mrs. Dean would never allow her to set out in this storm, I'm sure,"
+said Bertrand. "I cautioned her yesterday when I was there never to
+start when the weather seemed like a blizzard."
+
+Bertrand had painted in his studio above as long as the light
+remained, and now he was washing his brushes, carefully swishing the
+water out of them and drawing each one between his lips to shape it
+properly before laying it down. Mary laid the babe in her arms in its
+crib, and rocked it a moment while she and Bertrand chatted.
+
+A long winter and summer had passed since the troops marched away from
+Leauvite, and now another winter was passing. For a year and a bit
+more, little Janey, the babe now being hushed to sleep, had been a
+member of the family circle. Thus it was that Mary Ballard seldom went
+to the village, and Betty learned her lessons at home as best she
+could, and tended the baby and helped her mother. But Bertrand and his
+wife had plenty to talk about; for he went out and saw their friends
+in the village, led the choir on Sundays, taught the Bible class,
+heard all the news, and talked it over with Mary.
+
+Thus, in one way or another, all the new books found their way into
+the Ballards' home, were read and commented on, even though books were
+not written so much for commercial purposes then as now, and their
+writers were looked up to with more respect than criticism. The
+_Atlantic Monthly_ and _Littell's Living Age_, _Harper's Magazine_,
+and the _New York Tribune_ also brought up a variety of subjects for
+discussion. Now and then a new poem by Whittier, or Bryant, or some
+other of the small galaxy of poets who justly were becoming the
+nation's pride, would appear and be read aloud to Mary as she prepared
+their meals, or washed the dishes or ironed small garments, while
+Betty listened with intent eyes and ears, as she helped her mother or
+tended the baby.
+
+That afternoon, while the storm soughed without, the cow and horse
+were comfortably quartered in their small stable, which was banked
+with straw to keep out the cold. Indoors, Jamie was whittling behind
+the warm cookstove over a newspaper spread to catch the chips, while
+Bobby played quietly in a corner with two gray kittens and a worsted
+ball. Janey was asleep in the crib which Betty jogged now and then
+while she knit on a sock for the soldiers,--Mary and the two little
+girls were always knitting socks for the soldiers these days in their
+spare moments and during the long winter evenings,--Mary was kneading
+white loaves of bread with floury hands, and Bertrand sat close beside
+the window to catch the last rays of daylight by which to read the war
+news.
+
+Bertrand always read the war news first,--news of battles and lists of
+wounded and slain and imprisoned, and saddest of all, lists of the
+missing,--following closely the movements of their own company of
+"boys" from Leauvite. Mary listened always with a thought of the
+shadow in the banker's home, and the mother there, watching and
+waiting for the return of her boy. Although their own home was safe,
+the sorrow of other homes, devastated and mourning, weighed heavily
+upon Mary Ballard, and she needed to listen to the stirring editorials
+of the _Tribune_, which Bertrand read with dramatic intensity, to
+bolster up her faith in the rightness of this war between men who
+ought to be brothers in their hopes and ambitions for the national
+life of their great country.
+
+"I suppose it is too great a thing to ask--that such a tremendous and
+mixed nation as ours should be knit together for the good of all men
+in a spirit of brotherly love--but what a thing to ask for! What a
+thing to try for! If I were a man, I would pray that I might gain
+influence over my fellows just for that--just--for that," said Mary.
+
+"Ah," replied her husband, with fond optimism, "you need not say 'If I
+were a man,' for that. It is the women who have the influence; don't
+you know that, Mary?"
+
+Mary looked down at her work, an incredulous smile playing about her
+lips.
+
+"Well, my dear?" Bertrand loved a response.
+
+"Well, Bertrand? Men do like to talk about our 'sweet influence,'
+don't they?" Then she laughed outright.
+
+"But, Mary--but, Mary, it is true. Women do more with their influence
+than men can do with their guns," and Bertrand really meant what he
+said. Dusky shadows filled the room, but if the light had been
+stronger, he would have seen that little ironical smile still playing
+about his wife's lips.
+
+"Did you see Judge Logan again about those Waupaca lots?"
+
+Bertrand wondered what the lots had to do with the subject, but
+suffered the digression patiently, for the feminine mind was not
+supposed to be coherent. "Yes, my love; I saw him yesterday."
+
+"What did you do about them? I hope you refused."
+
+"No, my dear. I thought best not. He showed me very conclusively that
+in time they will be worth more--much more--than the debt."
+
+"Then why did he offer them to you for the debt? The portrait you
+painted for him will be worth more, too, in time, than the debt. You
+remember when you asked me what I thought, I said we needed the money
+more now."
+
+"Yes, I remember; but this plan is a looking toward the future. I
+didn't think it wise to refuse."
+
+Mary said nothing, but went out, returning presently with two lighted
+candles. Bertrand was replenishing the fire. Had he been looking at
+her face with the light of the candles on it as she carried them, he
+would have noticed that little smile about her lips.
+
+"I'm very glad we brought the bees in yesterday," he said. "This storm
+would have made it impossible to do it to-day, and we should have lost
+them."
+
+"How about those lectures, dear? The 'boys' are all gone now, and you
+won't have them to take up your time evenings, so you can easily
+prepare them. They will take you into the city now and then, and that
+will keep you in touch with the world outside this village." Bertrand
+had been requested to give a series of lectures on art in one of the
+colleges in the city. He had been well pleased and had accepted, but
+later had refused because of certain dictatorship exercised by the
+Board, which he felt infringed on his province of a suitable selection
+of subjects. He was silent for a moment. Again Mary had irrelevantly
+and abruptly changed the subject of conversation. Where was the
+connection between bees and lectures? "I really wish you would, dear,"
+urged Mary.
+
+"You still wish it after the affront the Board has given me?"
+
+"I know, but what do they know about art? I would give the lectures if
+it was only to be able--incidentally--to teach them something. Be a
+little conciliatory, dear."
+
+"I will make no concessions. If I give the lectures, I must be allowed
+to select my courses. It is my province."
+
+"Did you see Elder Craigmile about it?"
+
+"I did."
+
+"And what did he say?"
+
+"He seemed to think the Board was right."
+
+"I knew he would. You remember I asked you not to go to him about it,
+and that was why."
+
+"Why did you think so? He assumes to be my friend."
+
+"Because people who don't know anything about art always are satisfied
+with their own opinions. They don't know anything to upset them. He
+knows more than some of them, but how much is that? Enough to know
+that he owns some fine paintings; but you taught him their value, now,
+didn't you?" Bertrand smiled, but said nothing, and his wife
+continued. "Prepare the lectures, dear, for my sake. I love to know
+that you are doing such work."
+
+"I can't. The action of the Board is an insult to my intelligence.
+What are you smiling about?"
+
+"About you, dear."
+
+"Mary, why, Mary! I--"
+
+But Mary only smiled the more. "You love my irrelevance and
+inconsistency, you say,--"
+
+"I love any weakness that is yours, Mary. What are you keeping back
+from me?"
+
+"The weakness that is mine, dear." Again Mary laughed outright. "It
+would be useless to tell you--or to try to explain. I love you, isn't
+that enough?"
+
+Bertrand thought it ought to be, but was not sure, and said so. Then
+Mary laughed again, and he kissed her, shaking his head dubiously, and
+took up his violin for solace. Thus an hour passed; then Betty set the
+table for supper, and the long evening followed like many another
+evening, filled with the companionship only comfortably married
+people know, while Bertrand read from the poets.
+
+Since, with a man's helplessness in such matters, he could not do
+the family mending, or knit for the soldiers, or remodel old garments
+into new, it behooved him to render such tasks pleasant for the busy
+hand and brain that must devise and create and make much out of little
+for economy's sake; and this Bertrand did to Mary's complete
+satisfaction.
+
+Evenings like these were Betty's school, and they seemed all the
+schooling she was likely to get, for the family funds were barely
+sufficient to cover the expenses of one child at a time. But, as Mary
+said, "It's not so bad for Betty to be kept at home, for she will read
+and study, anyway, because she likes it, and it won't hurt her to
+learn to be practical as well;" and no doubt Mary was right.
+
+Bertrand was himself a poet in his appreciation and fineness of
+choice, and he read for Mary with all the effectiveness and warmth of
+color that he would put into a recitation for a large audience,
+carried on solely by his one sympathetic listener and his love for
+what he read; while Betty, in her corner close to the lamp behind her
+father's chair, listened unnoticed, with eager soul, rapt and
+uplifted.
+
+As Bertrand read he commented. "These men who are writing like this
+are doing for this country what the Lake Poets did for England. They
+are making true literature for the nation, and saving it from
+banality. They are going to live. They will be classed some day with
+Wordsworth and all the rest of the best. Hear this from James Russell
+Lowell. It's about a violin, and is called 'In the Twilight.' It's
+worthy of Shelley." And Bertrand read the poem through, while Mary
+let her knitting fall in her lap and listened. He loved to see her
+listen in that way.
+
+"Read again the verse that begins: 'O my life.' I seem to like it
+best." And he read it over:--
+
+ "O my life, have we not had seasons
+ That only said, Live and rejoice?
+ That asked not for causes and reasons,
+ But made us all feeling and voice?
+ When we went with the winds in their blowing,
+ When Nature and we were peers,
+ And we seemed to share in the flowing
+ Of the inexhaustible years?
+ Have we not from the earth drawn juices
+ Too fine for earth's sordid uses?
+ Have I heard, have I seen
+ All I feel, all I know?
+ Doth my heart overween?
+ Or could it have been
+ Long ago?"
+
+"And the next, Bertrand. I love to hear them over again." And he
+read:--
+
+ "Sometimes a breath floats by me,
+ An odor from Dreamland sent,
+ That makes the ghost seem nigh me
+ Of a splendor that came and went,
+ Of a life lived somewhere, I know not
+ In what diviner sphere,
+ Of memories that stay not and go not,
+ Like music heard once by an ear
+ That cannot forget or reclaim it,
+ A something so shy, it would shame it
+ To make it a show,
+ A something too vague, could I name it,
+ For others to know,
+ As if I had lived it or dreamed it,
+ As if I had acted or schemed it,
+ Long ago!"
+
+"And the last verse, father. I like the last best," cried Betty,
+suddenly.
+
+"Why, my deary. I thought you were gone to bed."
+
+"No, mother lets me sit up a little while longer when you're reading.
+I like to hear you." And he read for her the last verse:--
+
+ "And yet, could I live it over,
+ This life that stirs my brain,
+ Could I be both maiden and lover,
+ Moon and tide, bee and clover,
+ As I seem to have been, once again,
+ Could I but speak it and show it,
+ This pleasure more sharp than pain,
+ That baffles and lures me so,
+ The world should once more have a poet,
+ Such as it had
+ In the ages glad,
+ Long ago!"
+
+Then, wishing to know more of the secret springs of his little
+daughter's life, he asked: "Why do you love that stanza best, Betty,
+my dear?"
+
+Betty blushed crimson to the roots of her hair, for what she carried
+in her heart was too precious to tell, but she meant to be a poet.
+Even then, in the pocket of her calico dress lay a little book and a
+stubbed lead pencil, and in the book was already the beginning of her
+great epic. Her father had said the epic was a thing of the past, that
+in the future none would be written, for that it was a form of
+expressions that belonged to the world's youth, and that age brought
+philosophy and introspection, but not epics.
+
+She meant to surprise her father some day with this poem. The great
+world was so full of mystery--of seductive beauty and terror and of
+strange, enticing charm! She saw and felt it always. Even now, in the
+driving, whirling storm without, in the darkness of her chamber, or
+when she looked through the frosted panes into the starry skies at
+midnight, always it was there all about her,--a something unexpressed,
+unseen, but close--close to her,--the mystery which throbbed through
+all her small being, and which she was one day to find out and
+understand and put into her great epic.
+
+She thought over her father's question, hardly knowing why she liked
+that last stanza best. She slowly wound up her ball of yarn and thrust
+the needles through it, and dropped it into her mother's workbasket
+before she replied; then, taking up her candle, she looked shyly in
+her father's eyes.
+
+"Because I like where it says: 'This pleasure more sharp than pain,
+That baffles and lures me so.'" Then she was gone, hurrying away lest
+they should question her further and learn about the little book in
+her pocket.
+
+Thus time passed with the Ballards, many days swiftly flying, laden
+with a fair share of sweetness and pleasure, and much of harassment
+and toil, but in the main bringing happiness.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER VI
+
+THE END OF THE WAR
+
+
+It was three years after the troops marched away from High Knob
+encampment before either Peter Junior or Richard Kildene were again in
+Leauvite, and then only Peter returned, because he was wounded, and
+not that he was unwilling to enlist again, as did Richard and many of
+the boys, when their first term of service was ended. He returned with
+the brevet of a captain, for gallant conduct in the encounter in which
+he received his wound, but only a shadow of the healthy, earnest boy
+who had stood in the ranks on the town square of Leauvite three years
+before; yet this very fact brought life and hope to his waiting
+mother, now that she had the blessed privilege of nursing him back to
+strength.
+
+It seemed as though her long period of mourning ended when Peter
+Junior, pallid in his blue uniform, his hair darkened and matted with
+the dampness caused by weakness and pain, was borne in between the
+white columns of his father's house. When the news reached him that
+his son was lying wounded in a southern hospital, the Elder had, for
+the first time in many, many years, followed an impulse without
+pausing to consider his act beforehand. He left the bank on the
+instant and started for the scene of battles, only hurrying home to
+break the news first to his wife. Yielding to a rare tenderness, he
+touched her hair as he kissed her, and enjoined on her to remember
+that their son was not slain, but by a merciful Providence was only
+wounded and might be spared to them. She must thank the Lord and be
+ready to nurse him back to life.
+
+Why Providence should be thus merciful to their son rather than to
+many another son, the good Elder did not pause to consider. Possibly
+he thought it no more than just that the prayers of the righteous
+should be answered by a supernatural intervention between their sons
+and the bullets of the enemy. His ideas on this point were no doubt
+vague at the best, but certain it is that he returned from his long
+and difficult journey to the seat of strife after his boy, with a
+clearer notion of what war really was, and a more human sympathy for
+those who go and suffer, and, as might be anticipated with those of
+his temperament, an added bitterness against those whom he felt were
+to blame for the conflict.
+
+When Peter Junior left his home, his father had enjoined on him to go,
+not in the spirit of bitterness and enmity, but as an act of duty, to
+teach a needed lesson; for surely the Lord was on the side of the
+right, and was using the men of the North to teach this needed lesson
+to those laboring in error. Ah! it is a very different point of view
+we take when we suffer, instead of merely moralizing on the suffering
+of others; especially we who feel that we know what is right, and lack
+in great part the imagination to comprehend the other man's viewpoint.
+To us of that cast of mind there is only one viewpoint and that is our
+own, and only a bodily departure to the other man's hilltop or valley,
+as the case may be, will open the eyes and enlarge the understanding
+to the extent of even allowing our fellows to see things in another
+light from our own.
+
+In this instance, while the Elder's understanding had been decidedly
+enlarged, it had been in but one direction, and the effect had not
+been to his spiritual benefit, for he had seen only the suffering of
+his own side, and, being deficient in power to imagine what might be,
+he had taken no charitable thought for the other side. Instead, a
+feeling of hatred had been stirred within him,--a feeling he felt
+himself justified in and therefore indulged and named: "Righteous
+Indignation."
+
+The Elder's face was stern and hard as he directed the men who bore
+his boy on the litter where to turn, and how to lift it above the
+banister in going up the stair so as not to jar the young man, who was
+too weak after the long journey to do more than turn his eyes on his
+mother's face.
+
+But that mother's face! It seemed to him he had never seen it so
+radiant and charming, for all that her hair had grown silvery white in
+the three years since he had last kissed her. He could not take his
+eyes from it, and besought her not to leave his side, even when the
+Elder bade her go and not excite him, but allow him to rest.
+
+No sooner was her son laid on his own bed in his old room than she
+began a series of gentle ministrations most sweet to the boy and to
+herself. But the Elder had been told that all he needed now was rest
+and absolute quiet, and the surgeon's orders must be carried out
+regardless of all else. Hester Craigmile yielded, as always, to the
+Elder's will, and remained without, seated close beside her son's
+door, her hands, that ached to serve, lying idle in her lap, while the
+Elder brought him his warm milk and held it to his lips, lifting his
+head to drink it, and then left him with the command to sleep.
+
+"Don't go in for an hour at least," he enjoined on his wife as he
+passed her and took his way to the bank, for it was too early for
+closing, and there would still be time for him to look into his
+affairs a bit. Thus for the banker the usual routine began.
+
+Not so for Hester Craigmile. Joy and life had begun for her. She had
+her boy again--quite to herself when the Elder was away, and the tears
+for very happiness came to her eyes and dropped on her hands
+unchecked. Had the Elder been there he would have enjoined upon her to
+be controlled and she would have obeyed, but now there was no need,
+and she wept deliciously for joy while she still sat outside the door
+and listened. Intense--eager--it seemed almost as if she could hear
+him breathe.
+
+"Mother!" Hark! Did he speak? "Mother!" It was merely a breath, but
+she heard and went swiftly to him. Kneeling, she clasped him, and her
+tears wet his cheek, but at the same time they soothed him, and he
+slept. It was thus the Elder found them when he returned from the
+bank, both sweetly sleeping. He did not take his wife away for fear of
+waking his son, nevertheless he was displeased with her, and when they
+met at table that evening, she knew it.
+
+The whole order of the house was changed because of Peter Junior's
+return. Blinds, windows, and doors were thrown open at the direction
+of the physician, that he might be given all the air and sunlight it
+was possible to admit; else he would never gain strength, for so long
+had he lived in the open air, in rain and sun, that he had need now of
+every help nature could give.
+
+A bullet had struck him in the hip and glanced off at a peculiar
+angle, rendering his recovery precarious and long delayed, and causing
+the old doctor to shake his head with the fear that he must pass the
+rest of his life a cripple. Still, normal youth is buoyant and
+vigorous and mocks at physicians' fears, and after a time, what with
+heart at rest, with loving and unceasing care on his mother's part,
+and rigorous supervision on his father's, Peter Junior did at length
+recover sufficiently to be taken out to drive, and began to get back
+the good red blood in his veins.
+
+During this long period of convalescence, Peter Junior's one anxiety
+was for his cousin Richard. Rumors had reached him that his comrade
+had been wounded and taken prisoner, yet nothing definite had been
+heard, until at last, after much writing, he learned Richard's
+whereabouts, and later that he had been exchanged. Then, too ill and
+prison-worn to go back to his regiment, he appeared one day, slowly
+walking up the village street toward the banker's house.
+
+There he was welcomed and made much of, and the two young men spent a
+while together happily, the best of friends and comrades, still filled
+with enthusiasm, but with a wider knowledge of life and the meaning of
+war. These weeks were few and short, and soon Richard was back in the
+army. Peter Junior, envying him, still lay convalescing and only able
+with much difficulty to crawl to the carriage for his daily drive.
+
+His mother always accompanied him on these drives, and the very first
+of them was to the home of the Ballards. It was early spring, the air
+was biting and cool, and Peter was unable to alight, but Mary and her
+husband came to them where they waited at the gate and stood long,
+talking happily. Jamie and Bobby followed at their heels and peered up
+curiously at the wounded soldier, but Betty was seized with a rare
+moment of shyness that held her back.
+
+Dear little Betty! She had grown taller since Peter Junior had taken
+that last tea at the Ballards. No longer care free, the oldest but
+one, she had taken many of her mother's burdens upon her young
+shoulders, albeit not knowing that they were burdens, since they were
+wholly acts of love and joyously done. She was fully conscious of her
+advancing years, and took them very seriously, regarding her acts with
+a grave and serene sense of their importance. She had put back the
+wild hair that used to fly about her face until her father called her
+"An owl in an ivy bush" and her mother admonished her that her "head
+was like a mop." Now, being in her teens, she wore her dresses longer
+and never ran about barefooted, paddling in the brook below the
+spring, although she would like to do so; still she was child enough
+to run when she should walk, and to laugh when some would sigh.
+
+Her thoughts had been romantically active regarding Peter Junior, how
+he would look, and how splendid and great he was to have been a real
+soldier and come home wounded--to have suffered and bled for his
+country. And Richard, too, was brave and splendid. He must have been
+in the very front of the battle to have been taken prisoner. She
+wondered a little if he remembered her, but not much, for how could
+men with great work to do, like fighting and dying for their country,
+stop to think of a little girl who was still in short dresses when
+they had seen her last?
+
+Then, when the war was ended at last, there was Richard returned and
+stopping at his uncle's. In the few short visits he made at the
+Ballards' he greeted Betty as of old, as he would greet a little
+sister of whom he was fond, and she accepted his frank, old-time
+brotherliness in the same spirit, gayly and happily, revealing but
+little of herself, and holding a slight reserve in her manner which
+seemed to him quite delightful and maidenly. Then, all too suddenly,
+he was gone again, but in his heart he carried a memory of her that
+made a continual undercurrent in his thoughts.
+
+And now Betty's father and mother were actually talking with Peter
+Junior at their very gate. Impulse would have sent her flying to meet
+him, but that new, self-conscious shyness stayed her feet, for he was
+one to be approached with reverence. He was afflicted with no romantic
+shyness with regard to her, however. He quite forgot her, indeed,
+although he did ask in a general way after the children and even
+mentioned Martha in particular, as, being the eldest, she was best
+remembered. So Betty did not see Peter Junior this time, but she stood
+where she could see the top of the carriage from her bedroom window,
+whither she had fled, and she could see the blue sleeve of his coat as
+he put out his arm to take her mother's hand at parting. That was
+something, and she listened with beating heart for the sound of his
+voice. Ah, little he dreamed what a tumult he had raised in the heart
+of that young being whose imagination had been so stirred by all that
+she had read and heard of war, and the part taken in it by their own
+young men of Leauvite. That Peter Junior had come home brevetted a
+captain for his bravery crowned him with glory. All that day Betty
+went about with dreams in her head, and coursing through them was the
+voice of the wounded young soldier.
+
+At last, with the slow march of time, came the proclamation of peace,
+and the nation so long held prostrate--a giant struggling against
+fetters of its own forging, blinded and strangling in its own
+blood--reared its head and cried out for the return of Hope, groping
+on all sides to gather the divine youth to its arms, when, as a last
+blow, dealt by a wanton hand, came the death of Lincoln.
+
+Then it was that the nation recoiled and bowed itself for a time,
+beaten and crushed--both North and South--and vultures gathered at the
+seat of conflict and tore at its vitals and wrangled over the spoils.
+Then it was that they who had sowed discord stooped to reap the
+Devil's own harvest,--a woeful, bitter, desperate time, when more
+enmity and deep rancor was bred and treasured up for future sorrow
+than during all the years of the honest and active strife of the war.
+
+In the very beginning that first news of the firing on Fort Sumter
+flew through the North like a tragic cry, and men felt a sense of doom
+hanging over the nation. Bertrand Ballard heard it and walked
+sorrowfully home to his wife, and sat long with bowed head, brooding
+and silent. Neighbor Wilcox heard it, and, leaving his business,
+entered his home and called his household together with the servants
+and held family worship--a service which it was his custom to hold
+only on the Sabbath--and earnestly prayed for the salvation of the
+country, and that wisdom might be granted its rulers, after which he
+sent his oldest son to fight for the cause. Elder Craigmile heard it,
+and consented that his last and only son should enter the ranks and
+give his life, if need be, for the saving of the nation. Still,
+tempering all this sorrow and anxiety was the chance for action, and
+the hope of victory.
+
+But now, in this later time, when the strength of the nation had been
+wasted, when victory itself was dark with mourning for sons slain, the
+loss of the one wise leader to whom all turned with uplifted hearts
+seemed the signal for annihilation; and then, indeed, it appeared that
+the prophecy of Mary Ballard's old grandfather had been fulfilled and
+the curse of slavery had not only been wiped out with blood, but that
+the greater curse of anarchy and misrule had taken its place to still
+further scourge the nation.
+
+Mary Ballard's mother, while scarcely past her prime, was taken ill
+with fever and died, and immediately upon this blow to the dear old
+father who was not yet old enough by many years to be beyond his
+usefulness to those who loved and depended on him, came the tragic
+death of Lincoln, whom he revered and in whom all his hopes for the
+right adjustment of the nation's affairs rested. Under the weight of
+the double calamity he gave up hope, and left the world where all
+looked so dark to him, almost before the touch of his wife's hand had
+grown cold in his.
+
+"Father died of a broken heart," said Mary, and turned to her husband
+and children with even more intensity of devotion. "For," she said,
+"after all, the only thing in life of which we can be perfectly sure
+is our love for each other. A grave may open at our feet anywhere at
+any time, and only love oversteps it."
+
+With such an animating spirit as this, no family can be wholly sad,
+and though poverty pinched them at times, and sorrow had bitterly
+visited them, with years and thrift things changed. Bertrand painted
+more pictures and sold them; the children were gay and vigorous and
+brought life and good times to the home, and the girls grew up to be
+womanly, winsome lasses, light-hearted and good to look upon.
+
+Enough of the war and the evils thereof has been said and written and
+sung. Animosity is dead, and brotherhood and mutual service between
+the two opposing factions of one great family have taken the place of
+strife. Useless now to say what might have been, or how otherwise that
+terrible time of devastation and sorrow could have been avoided.
+Enough to know that at last as a nation, whole and undivided, we may
+pull together in the tremendous force of our united strength, and that
+now we may take up the "White Man's Burden" and bear it to its
+magnificent conclusion to the service of all mankind and the glory of
+God.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER VII
+
+A NEW ERA BEGINS
+
+
+Bertrand Ballard's studio was at the top of his house, with a high
+north window and roughly plastered walls of uncolored sand, left as
+Bertrand himself had put the plaster on, with his trowel marks over
+the surface as they happened to come, and the angles and projections
+thereof draped with cobwebs.
+
+When Peter Junior was able to leave his home and get about a little on
+his crutches, he loved to come there and rest and spend his idle
+hours, and Bertrand found pleasure in his companionship. They read
+together, and sang together, and laughed together, and no sound was
+more pleasant to Mary Ballard's ears than this same happy laughter.
+Peter had sorely missed the companionship of his cousin, for, at the
+close of the war, no longer a boy and unwilling to be dependent and
+drifting, Richard had sought out a place for himself in the work of
+the world.
+
+First he had gone to Scotland to visit his mother's aunts. There he
+found the two dear old ladies, sweetly observant of him, willing to
+tell him much of his mother, who had been scarcely younger than the
+youngest of them, but discreetly reticent about his father. From this
+he gathered that for some reason his father was under a cloud. Yet he
+did not shrink from trying to learn from them all they knew about him,
+and for what reason they spoke as if to even mention his name was an
+indiscretion. It was really little they knew, only that he had gravely
+displeased their nephew, Peter Craigmile, who had brought Richard up,
+and who was his mother's twin brother.
+
+"But why did Uncle Peter have to bring me up? You say he quarreled
+with my father?"
+
+"Weel, ye see, ye'r mither was dead." It was Aunt Ellen, the elder by
+twenty years, who told him most about it, she who spoke with the
+broadest Scotch.
+
+"Was my father a bad man, that Uncle 'Elder' disliked him so?"
+
+"Weel now, I'd no say that; he was far from that to be right fair to
+them both--for ye see--ye'r mither would never have loved him if he'd
+been that--but he--he was an Irishman, and ye'r Uncle Peter could
+never thole an Irishman, and he--he--fair stole ye'r mither from us
+a'--an--" she hesitated to continue, then blurted out the real horror.
+"Your Uncle Peter kenned he had ance been in the theayter, a sort o'
+an actor body an' he couldna thole that."
+
+But little was to be gained with all his questioning, and what he
+could learn seemed no more than that his father had done what any man
+might be expected to do if some one stood between him and the girl he
+loved; so Richard felt that there must be something unknown to any one
+but his uncle that had turned them all against his father. Why had his
+father never appeared to claim his son? Why had he left his boy to be
+reared by a man who hated the boy's father? It was a strange thing to
+do, and it must be that his father was dead.
+
+At this time Richard was filled with ambitions,--fired by his early
+companionship with Bertrand Ballard,--and thought he would go to
+France and become an artist;--to France, the Mecca of Bertrand's
+dreams--he desired of all things to go there for study. But of all
+this he said nothing to any one, for where was the money? He would
+never ask his uncle for it, and now that he had learned that he had
+been all his young life really a dependent on the bounty of his Uncle
+Peter, he could no longer accept his help. He would hereafter make his
+own way, asking no favors.
+
+The old aunts guessed at his predicament, and offered to give him for
+his mother's sake enough to carry him through the first year, but he
+would not allow them to take from their income to pay his bills. No,
+he would take his way back to America, and find a place for himself in
+the new world; seek some active, stirring work, and save money, and
+sometime--sometime he would do the things his heart loved. He often
+thought of Betty, the little Betty who used to run to meet him and say
+such quaint things; some day he would go to her and take her with him.
+He would work first and do something worthy of so choice a little
+mortal.
+
+Thus dreaming, after the manner of youth, he went to Ireland, to his
+father's boyhood home. He found only distant relatives there, and
+learned that his father had disposed of all he ever owned of Irish
+soil to an Englishman. A cousin much older than himself owned and
+still lived on the estate that had been his grandfather Kildene's, and
+Richard was welcomed and treated with openhearted hospitality. But
+there, also, little was known of his father, only that the peasants on
+the estate remembered him lovingly as a free-hearted gentleman.
+
+Even that little was a relief to Richard's sore heart. Yes, his father
+must be dead. He was sorry. He was a lonely man, and to have a
+relative who was his very own, as near as a father, would be a great
+deal. His cousin, Peter Junior, was good as a friend, but from now on
+they must take paths that diverged, and that old intimacy must
+naturally change. His sweet Aunt Hester he loved, and she would fill
+the mother's place if she could, but it was not to be. It would mean
+help from his Uncle Peter, and that would mean taking a place in his
+uncle's bank, which had already been offered him, but which he did not
+want, which he would not accept if he did want it.
+
+So, after a long and happy visit at his cousin Kildene's, in
+Ireland, he at last left for America again, and plunged into a new,
+interesting, and vigorous life, one that suited well his energetic
+nature. He found work on the great railway that was being built across
+the plains to the Pacific Coast. He started as an engineer's
+assistant, but soon his talent for managing men caused his employers
+to put him in charge of gangs of workmen who were often difficult and
+lawless. He did not object; indeed he liked the new job better than
+that he began with. He was more interested in men than materials.
+
+The life was hard and rough, but he came to love it. He loved the
+wide, sweeping prairies, and, later on, the desert. He liked to lie
+out under the stars,--often when the men slept under tents,--his gun
+at his side and his thoughts back on the river bluffs at Leauvite. He
+did a lot of dreaming and thinking, and he never forgot Betty. He
+thought of her as still a child, although he was expecting her to grow
+up and be ready for him when he should return to her. He had a vague
+sort of feeling that all was understood between them, and that she was
+quietly becoming womanly, and waiting for him.
+
+Peter Junior might have found other friends in Leauvite had he sought
+them out, but he did not care for them. His nature called for what he
+found in Bertrand's studio, and he followed the desire of his heart
+regardless of anything else, spending all the time he could reasonably
+filch from his home. And what wonder! Richard would have done the same
+and was even then envying Peter the opportunity, as Peter well knew
+from his cousin's letters. There was no place in the village so
+fascinating and delightful as this little country home on its
+outskirts, no conversation more hopeful and helpful than Bertrand's,
+and no welcome sweeter or kinder than Mary Ballard's.
+
+One day, after Richard had gone out on the plains with the engineers
+of the projected road, Peter lay stretched on a long divan in the
+studio, his head supported by his hand as he half reclined on his
+elbow, and his one crutch--he had long since discarded the other--within
+reach of his arm. His violin also lay within reach, for he had been
+playing there by himself, as Bertrand had gone on one of his rare
+visits to the city a hundred miles away.
+
+Betty Ballard had heard the wail of his violin from the garden, where
+she had been gathering pears. That was how she knew where to find him
+when she quickly appeared before him, rosy and flushed from her run to
+the house and up the long flight of stairs.
+
+As Peter lay there, he was gazing at the half-finished copy he had
+been making of the head of an old man, for Peter had decided, since in
+all probability he would be good for no active work such as Richard
+had taken up, that he too would become an artist, like Bertrand
+Ballard. To have followed his cousin would have delighted his heart,
+for he had all the Scotchman's love of adventure, but, since that was
+impossible, nothing was more alluring than the thought of fame and
+success as an artist. He would not tie himself to Leauvite to get it.
+He would go to Paris, and there he would do the things Bertrand had
+been prevented from doing. Poor Bertrand! How he would have loved the
+chance Peter Junior was planning for himself as he lay there dreaming
+and studying the half-finished copy.
+
+Suddenly he beheld Betty, standing directly in front of the work,
+extending to him a folded bit of paper. "Here's a note from your
+father," she cried.
+
+Looking upon her thus, with eyes that had been filled with the aged,
+rugged face on the canvas, Betty appealed to Peter as a lovely vision.
+He had never noticed before, in just this way, her curious charm, but
+these months of companionship and study with Bertrand had taught him
+to see beauty understandingly, and now, as she stood panting a little,
+with breath coming through parted lips and hair flying almost in the
+wild way of her childhood, Peter saw, as if it were a revelation, that
+she was lovely. He raised himself slowly and reached for the note
+without taking his eyes from her face.
+
+He did not open the letter, but continued to look in her eyes, at
+which she turned about half shyly. "I heard your violin; that's how I
+knew you were up here. Oh! Have you been painting on it again?"
+
+"On my violin? No, I've been playing on it."
+
+"No! Painting on the picture of your old man. I think you have it too
+drawn out and thin. He's too hollow there under the cheek bone."
+
+"Is he, Miss Critic? Well, thank your stars you're not."
+
+"I know. I'm too fat." She rubbed her cheek until it was redder than
+ever.
+
+"What are you painting your cheeks for? There's color enough on them
+as they are."
+
+She made a little mouth at him. "I could paint your old man as well as
+that, I know."
+
+"I know you could. You could paint him far better than that."
+
+She laughed, quickly repentant. "I didn't say that to be horrid. I
+only said it for fun. I couldn't."
+
+"And I know you could." He rose and stood without his crutch, looking
+down on her. "And you're not 'too long drawn out,' are you? See? You
+only come up to--about--here on me." He measured with his hand a
+little below his chin.
+
+"I don't care. You're not so awfully tall."
+
+"Very well, have it so. That only makes you the shorter."
+
+"I tell you I don't care. You'd better stop staring at me, if I'm so
+little, and read your letter. The man's waiting for it. That's why I
+ran all the way up here." By this it may be seen that Betty had lost
+all her awe of the young soldier. Maybe it left her when he doffed his
+uniform. "Here's your crutch. Doesn't it hurt you to stand alone?" She
+reached him the despised prop.
+
+"Hurt me to stand alone? No! I'm not a baby. Do you think I'm likely
+to grow up bow-legged?" he thundered, taking it from her hand without
+a thank you, and glaring down on her humorously. "You're a bit cruel
+to remind me of it. I'm going to walk with a cane hereafter, and next
+thing you know you'll see me stalking around without either."
+
+"Why, Peter Junior! I'd be so proud of that crutch I wouldn't leave it
+off for anything! I'd always limp a little, even if I didn't use it.
+Cruel? I was complimenting you."
+
+"Complimenting me? How?"
+
+"By reminding you that you had been brave--and had been a soldier--and
+had been wounded for your country--and had been promoted--and--"
+
+But Peter drowned her voice with uproarious laughter, and suddenly
+surprised himself as well as her by slipping his arm around her waist
+and stopping her lips with a kiss.
+
+Betty was surprised but not shocked. She knew of no reason why Peter
+should not kiss her even though it was not his custom to treat her
+thus. In Betty's home, demonstrative expressions of affection were as
+natural as sunlight, and why should not Peter like her? Therefore it
+was Peter who was shocked, and embarrassed her with his sudden
+apology.
+
+"I don't care if you did kiss me. You're just like my big brother--the
+same as Richard is--and he often used to kiss me." She was trying to
+set Peter at his ease. "And, anyway, I like you. Why, I supposed of
+course you liked me--only naturally not as much as I liked you."
+
+"Oh, more! Much more!" he stammered tremblingly. He knew in his heart
+that there was a subtle difference, and that what he felt was not what
+she meant when she said, "I like you." "I'm sure it is I who like you
+the most."
+
+"Oh, no, it isn't! Why, you never even used to see me. And I--I used
+to gaze on you--and be so romantic! It was Richard who always saw me
+and played with me. He used to toss me up, and I would run away down
+the road to meet him. I wonder when he's coming back! I wish he'd
+come. Why don't you read your father's letter? The man's waiting, you
+know."
+
+"Ah, yes. And I suppose Dad's waiting, too. I wonder why he wrote me
+when he can see me every day!"
+
+"Well, read it. Don't stand there looking at it and staring at me. Do
+you know how you look? You look as if it were a message from the king,
+saying: 'You are remanded to the tower, and are to have your head
+struck off at sundown.' That's the way they did things in the olden
+days." She turned to go.
+
+"Stay here until I see if you are right." He dropped on the divan and
+made room for her at his side.
+
+"All right! That's what I wanted to do, but I thought it wouldn't be
+polite to be curious."
+
+"But you wouldn't be polite anyway, you know, so you might as well
+stay. M-m-m. I'm remanded to the tower, sure enough. Father wants me
+to meet him in the director's room as soon as banking hours are over.
+Fine old Dad! He wouldn't think of infringing on banking hours for any
+private reasons unless the sky were falling, and even then he would
+save the bank papers first. See here--Betty--er--never mind. I'll tell
+you another time."
+
+"Please tell me now! What is it? Something dreadful, Peter Junior?"
+
+"I wasn't thinking about this; it--it's something else--"
+
+"About what?"
+
+"About you."
+
+"Oh, then it is no consequence. I want to hear what's in the letter.
+Why did you tell me to stay if you weren't going to tell me what's in
+it?"
+
+"Nothing. We have had a little difference of opinion, my father and I,
+and he evidently wants to settle it out of hand his way, by summoning
+me in this official manner to appear before him at the bank."
+
+"I know. He thinks you are idling away your time here trying to paint
+pictures, and he wishes to make a respectable banker of you." She
+reached over and began picking the strings of his violin.
+
+"You musn't finger the strings of a violin that way."
+
+"Why not? I want to see if I can pick out 'The Star Spangled Banner'
+on it. I can on the flute, father's old one; he lets me."
+
+"Because you'll get them oily."
+
+She spread out her two firm little hands. "My fingers aren't greasy!"
+she cried indignantly; "that's pear juice on them."
+
+Peter Junior's gravity turned to laughter. "Well, I don't want pear
+juice on my strings. Wait, you rogue, I'm going to kiss you again."
+
+"No, you're not, you old hobble-de-hoy. You can't catch me." When she
+was halfway down the stairs, she called back, "The man's waiting."
+
+"Coward! Coward!" he called after her, "to run away from a poor old
+cripple and then call him names." He thrust the letter into his
+pocket, and seizing his crutch began deliberately and carefully to
+descend the stairs, with grave, set face, not unlike his father's.
+
+"Catch, Peter Junior," called Betty from the top of the pear tree as
+he passed down the garden path, and tossed him a pear which he caught,
+then another and another. "There! No, don't eat them now. Put them in
+your desk, and next month they'll be just as sweet!"
+
+"Will they? Just like you? I'll be even with you yet--when I catch
+you."
+
+"You'll get pear juice on your strings. There are lots of nice girls
+in the village for you to kiss. They'll do just as well as me."
+
+"Good girl. Good grammar. Good-by." He waved his hand toward Betty,
+and turned to the waiting servant. "You go on and tell the Elder I'm
+coming right along," he said, and hopped off down the road. It was
+only lately he had begun to take long walks or hops like this, with
+but one crutch, but he was growing frantic to be fairly on his two
+feet again. The doctor had told him he never would be, but he set his
+square chin, and decided that the doctor was wrong. More than ever
+to-day, with the new touch of little pear-stained fingers on his
+heart, he wanted to walk off like other men.
+
+Now he tried to use his lame leg as much as possible. If only he might
+throw away the crutch and walk with a cane, it would be something
+gained. With one hand in his pocket he crushed his father's letter
+into a small wad, then tossed it in the air and caught it awhile, then
+put it back in his pocket and hobbled on.
+
+The atmosphere had the smoky appearance of the fall, and the sweet
+haze of Indian summer lay over the landscape, the horizon only faintly
+outlined through it. Peter Junior sniffed the air. He wondered if the
+forests in the north were afire. Golden maple leaves danced along on
+the path before him, whirled hither and thither by the light breeze,
+and the wild asters and goldenrod powdered his dark trousers with
+pollen as he brushed them in passing. All the world was lovely, and he
+appreciated it as he had never been able to do before. Bertrand's
+influence had permeated his thoughts and widened thus his reach of
+happiness.
+
+He entered the bank just at the closing hour, and the staid, faithful
+old clerks nodded to him as he passed through to the inner room, where
+he found his father awaiting him. He dropped wearily into a swivel
+chair before the great table and placed his crutch at his feet; wiping
+the perspiration from his forehead, he leaned forward, and rested his
+elbows on the table.
+
+The young man's wan look, for the walk had taxed his strength,
+reminded his father of the day he had brought the boy home wounded,
+and his face relaxed.
+
+"You are tired, my son."
+
+"Oh, no. Not very. I have been more so." Peter Junior smiled a
+disarming smile as he looked in his father's face. "I've tramped many
+a mile on two sound feet when they were so numb from sheer weariness
+that I could not feel them or know what they were doing. What did you
+want to say to me, father?"
+
+"Well, my son, we have different opinions, as you know, regarding your
+future."
+
+"I know, indeed."
+
+"And a father's counsel is not to be lightly disposed of."
+
+"I have no intention of doing so, father."
+
+"No, no. But wait. You have been loitering the day at Mr. Ballard's?
+Yes."
+
+"I have nothing else to do, father,--and--" Peter Junior's smile
+again came to the rescue. "It isn't as though I were in doubtful
+company--I--there are worse places here in the village where I
+might--where idle men waste their time."
+
+"Ah, yes. But they are not for you--not for you, my son." The Elder
+smiled in his turn, and lifted his brows, then drew them down and
+looked keenly at his son. The afternoon sunlight streamed through the
+high western window and fell on the older man's face, bringing it into
+strong relief against the dark oak paneling behind him, and as Peter
+Junior looked on his father he received his second revelation that
+day. He had not known before what a strong, fine old face his father's
+was, and for the second time he surprised himself, when he cried
+out:--
+
+"I tell you, father, you have a magnificent head! I'm going to make a
+portrait of you just as you are--some day."
+
+The Elder rose with an indignant, despairing downward motion of the
+hands and began pacing the floor, while Peter Junior threw off
+restraint and laughed aloud. The laughter freed his soul, but it sadly
+irritated the Elder. He did not like unusual or unprecedented things,
+and Peter Junior was certainly not like himself, and was acting in an
+unprecedented manner.
+
+"You have now regained a fair amount of strength and have reached an
+age when you should think seriously of what you are to do in life. As
+you know, it has always been my intention that you should take a place
+here and fit yourself for the responsibilities that are now mine, but
+which will some day devolve on you."
+
+Peter Junior raised his hand in protest, then dropped it. "I mean to
+be an artist, father."
+
+"Faugh! An artist? Look at your friend, Bertrand Ballard. What has he
+to live on? What will he have laid by for his old age? How has he
+managed to live all these years--he and his wife? Miserable
+hand-to-mouth existence! I'll see my son trying to emulate him! You'll
+be an artist? And how will you support a wife if you ever have one?
+You mean to marry some day?"
+
+"I mean to marry Betty Ballard," said Peter Junior, with a rugged set
+of his jaw.
+
+Again the Elder made that despairing downward thrust with his open
+hands. "Take a wife who has nothing, and a career which brings in
+nothing, and live on what your father has amassed for you, and leave
+your sons nothing--a pretty way for you to carry on the work I have
+begun for you--to--establish an honorable family--"
+
+"Father, father, I mean to do all I can to please you. I'll be always
+dutiful--and honorable--but you must leave me my manhood. You must
+allow me to choose my own path in life."
+
+The Elder paced the floor a few moments longer, then resumed his chair
+opposite his son, and, leaning back, looked across the table at his
+boy, meditatively, with half-closed eyes. At last he said, "We'll take
+this matter to the Lord, and leave it in his hands."
+
+Then Peter Junior cried out upon him: "No, no, father; spare me that.
+It only means that you'll state to the Lord what is your own way, and
+pray to have it, and then be more than ever convinced that it is the
+Lord's way."
+
+"My son, my son!"
+
+"It's so, father. I'm willing to ask for guidance of the Lord, but I'm
+not willing to have you dictate to the Lord what--what I must do, and
+so whip me in line with the scourge of prayer." Peter Junior paused,
+as he looked in his father's face and saw the shocked and sorrowful
+expression there instead of the passionate retort he expected. "I am
+wrong to talk so, father; forgive me; but--have patience a little. God
+gave to man the power of choice, didn't he?"
+
+"Certainly. Through it all manner of evil came into the world."
+
+"And all manner of good, too. I--a man ought not to be merely an
+automaton, letting some one else always exercise that right for him.
+Surely the right of choice would never have been given us if it were
+not intended that each man should exercise it for himself. One who
+does not is good for nothing."
+
+"There is the command you forget; that of obedience to parents."
+
+"But how long--how long, father? Am I not man enough to choose for
+myself? Let me choose."
+
+Then the Elder leaned forward and faced his son as his son was facing
+him, both resting their elbows on the table and gazing straight into
+each other's eyes; and the old man spoke first.
+
+"My father founded this bank before I was born. He came from Scotland
+when he was but a lad, with his parents, and went to school and
+profited by his opportunities. He was of good family, as you know.
+When he was still a very young man, he entered a bank in the city as
+clerk, and received only ten dollars a week for his services, but he
+was a steady, good lad, and ambitious, and soon he moved higher--and
+higher. His father had taken up farming, and at his death, being an
+only son, he converted the farm, all but the homestead, which we still
+own, and which will be yours, into capital, and came to town and
+started this bank. When I was younger than you, my son, I went into
+the bank and stood at my father's right hand, as I wish you--for your
+own sake--to do by me. We are a set race--a determined race, but we
+are not an insubordinate race, my son."
+
+Peter Junior was silent for a while; he felt himself being beaten.
+Then he made one more plea. "It is not that I am insubordinate father,
+but, as I see it, into each generation something enters, different
+from the preceding one. New elements are combined. In me there is that
+which my mother gave me."
+
+"Your mother has always been a sweet woman, yielding to the judgment
+of her husband, as is the duty of a good wife."
+
+"I know she was brought up and trained to think that her duty, but I
+doubt if you really know her heart. Did you ever try to know it? I
+don't believe you understood what I meant by the scourge of prayer.
+She would have known. She has lived all these years under that lash,
+even though it has been wielded by the hand of one she loves--by one
+who loves her." He paused a second time, arrested by his father's
+expression. At first it was that of one who is stunned, then it
+slowly changed to one of rage. For once the boy had broken through
+that wall of self-control in which the Elder encased himself. Slowly
+the Elder rose and leaned towering over his son across the table.
+
+"I tell you that is a lie!" he shouted. "Your mother has never
+rebelled. She has been an obedient, docile woman. It is a lie!"
+
+Peter Junior made no reply. He also rose, and taking up his crutch,
+turned toward the door. There he paused and looked back, with flashing
+eyes. His lip quivered, but he held himself quiet.
+
+"Come back!" shouted his father.
+
+"I have told you the truth, father." He still stood with his hand on
+the door.
+
+"Has--has--your mother ever said anything to you to give you reason to
+insult me this way?"
+
+"No, never. We can't talk reasonably now. Let me go, and I'll try to
+explain some other time."
+
+"Explain now. There is no other time."
+
+"Mother is sacred to me, father. I ought not to have dragged her into
+this discussion."
+
+The Elder's lips trembled. He turned and walked to the window and
+stood a moment, silently looking out. At last he said in a low voice:
+"She is sacred to me also, my son."
+
+Peter Junior went back to his seat, and waited a while, with his head
+in his hands; then he lifted his eyes to his father's face. "I can't
+help it. Now I've begun, I might as well tell the truth. I meant what
+I said when I spoke of the different element in me, and that it is
+from my mother. You gave me that mother. I know you love her, and you
+know that your will is her law, as you feel that it ought to be. But
+when I am with her, I feel something of a nature in her that is not
+yours. And why not? Why not, father? There is that of her in me that
+makes me know this, and that of you in me that makes me understand
+you. Even now, though you are not willing to give me my own way, it
+makes me understand that you are insisting on your way because you
+think it is for my good. But nothing can alter the fact that I have
+inherited from my mother tastes that are not yours, and that entitle
+me to my manhood's right of choice."
+
+"Well, what is your choice, now that you know my wish?"
+
+"I can't tell you yet, father. I must have more time. I only know what
+I think I would like to do."
+
+"You wish to talk it over with your mother?"
+
+"Yes."
+
+"She will agree with me."
+
+"Yes, no doubt; but it's only fair to tell her and ask her advice,
+especially if I decide to leave home."
+
+The Elder caught his breath inwardly, but said no more. He recognized
+in the boy enough of himself to know that he had met in him a power of
+resistance equal to his own. He also knew what Peter Junior did not
+know, that his grandfather's removal to this country was an act of
+rebellion against the wishes of his father. It was a matter of family
+history he had thought best not to divulge.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER VIII
+
+MARY BALLARD'S DISCOVERY
+
+
+Peter Junior's mind was quite made up to go his own way and leave home
+to study abroad, but first he would try to convert his father to his
+way of thinking. Then there was another thing to be done. Not to
+marry, of course; that, under present conditions, would never do; but
+to make sure of Betty, lest some one come and steal into her heart
+before his return.
+
+After his talk with his father in the bank he lay long into the night,
+gazing at the shadowed tracery on his wall cast by the full harvest
+moon shining through the maple branches outside his window. The leaves
+had not all fallen, and in the light breeze they danced and quivered,
+and the branches swayed, and the shadows also swayed and danced
+delicately over the soft gray wall paper and the red-coated old
+soldier standing stiffly in his gold frame. Often in his waking dreams
+in after life he saw the moving shadows silently swaying and dancing
+over gray and red and gold, and often he tried to call them out from
+the past to banish things he would forget.
+
+Long this night he lay planning and thinking. Should he speak to Betty
+and tell her he loved her? Should he only teach her to think of him,
+not with the frank liking of her girlhood, so well expressed to him
+that very day, but with the warm feeling which would cause her cheeks
+to redden when he spoke? Could he be sure of himself--to do this
+discreetly, or would he overstep the mark? He would wait and see what
+the next day would bring forth.
+
+In the morning he discarded his crutch, as he had threatened, and
+walked out to the studio, using only a stout old blackthorn stick he
+had found one day when rummaging among a collection of odds and ends
+in the attic. He thought the stick was his father's and wondered why
+so interesting a walking stick--or staff; it could hardly be called a
+cane, he thought, because it was so large and oddly shaped--should be
+hidden away there. Had his father seen it he would have recognized it
+instantly as one that had belonged to his brother-in-law, Larry
+Kildene, and it would have been cut up and used for lighting fires.
+But it had been many years since the Elder had laid eyes on that
+knobbed and sturdy stick, which Larry had treasured as a rare thing in
+the new world, and a fine antique specimen of a genuine blackthorn. It
+had belonged to his great-grandfather in Ireland, and no doubt had
+done its part in cracking crowns.
+
+Betty, kneading bread at a table before the kitchen window, spied
+Peter Junior limping wearily up the walk without his crutch, and ran
+to him, dusting the flour from her hands as she came.
+
+"Lean on me. I won't get flour on your coat. What did you go without
+your crutch for? It's very silly of you."
+
+He essayed a laugh, but it was a self-conscious one. "I'm not going to
+use a crutch all my lifetime; don't you think it. I'm very well off
+without, and almost myself again. I don't need to lean on you--but I
+will--just for fun." He put his arm about her and drew her to him.
+
+"Stop, Peter Junior. Don't you see you're getting flour all over your
+clothes?"
+
+"I like flour on my clothes. It will do for stiffening." He raised her
+hand and kissed her wrist where there was no flour.
+
+"You're not leaning on me. You're just acting silly, and you can
+hardly walk, you're so tired! Coming all this way without your crutch.
+I think you're foolish."
+
+"If you say anything more about that crutch, I'll throw away my cane
+too." He dropped down on the piazza and drew her to the step beside
+him.
+
+"I must finish kneading the bread; I can't sit here. You rest in the
+rocker awhile before you go up to the studio. Father's up there. He
+came home late last night after we were all in bed." She returned to
+her work, and after a moment called to him through the open window.
+"There's going to be a nutting party to-morrow, and we want you to go.
+We're going out to Carter's grove; we've got permission. Every one's
+going."
+
+Peter Junior rubbed the moisture from his hair and shook his head. He
+must get nearer her, but it was always the same thing; just a happy
+game, with no touch of sentiment--no more, he thought gloomily, than
+if she were his sister.
+
+"What are you all going there for?"
+
+"Why, nuts, goosey; didn't I say we were going nutting?"
+
+"I don't happen to want nuts." No, he wanted her to urge and coax him
+to go for her sake, but what could he say?
+
+He left his seat, took the side path around to the kitchen door, and
+drew up a chair to the end of the table where she deftly manipulated
+the sweet-smelling dough, patting it, and pulling it, and turning it
+about until she was ready to put the shapely balls in the pans,
+holding them in her two firm little hands with a slight rolling motion
+as she slipped each loaf in its place. It had never occurred to Peter
+Junior that bread making was such an interesting process.
+
+"Why do you fuss with it so? Why don't you just dump it in the pan any
+old way? That's the way I'd do." But he loved to watch her pink-tipped
+fingers carefully shaping the loaves, nevertheless.
+
+"Oh--because."
+
+"Good reason."
+
+"Well--the more you work it the better it is, just like everything
+else; and then--if you don't make good-looking loaves, you'll never
+have a handsome husband. Mother says so." She tossed a stray lock from
+her eyes, and opening the oven door thrust in her arm. "My, but it's
+hot! Why do you sit here in the heat? It's a lot nicer on the porch in
+the rocker. Mother's gone to town--and--"
+
+"I'd rather sit here with you--thank you." He spoke stiffly and
+waited. What could he say; what could he do next? She left him a
+moment and quickly returned with a cup of butter.
+
+"You know--I'd stop and go out in the cool with you, Peter, but I must
+work this dough I have left into raised biscuit; and then I have to
+make a cake for to-morrow--and cookies--there's something to do in
+this house, I tell you! How about to-morrow?"
+
+"I don't believe I'd better go. All the rest of the world will be
+there, and--"
+
+"Only our little crowd. When I said everybody, you didn't think I
+meant everybody in the whole world, did you? You know us all."
+
+"Do you want me to go? There'll be enough others--"
+
+She tossed her head and gave him a sidelong glance. "I always ask
+people to go when I don't want them to."
+
+He rose at that and stood close to her side, and, stooping, looked in
+her eyes; and for the first time the color flamed up in her face
+because of him. "I say--do you want me to go?"
+
+"No, I don't."
+
+But the red he had brought into her cheeks intoxicated him with
+delight. Now he knew a thing to do. He seized her wrists and turned
+her away from the table and continued to look into her eyes. She
+twisted about, looking away from him, but the burning blush made even
+the little ear she turned toward him pink, and he loved it. His
+discretion was all gone. He loved her, and he would tell her now--now!
+She must hear it, and slipping his arm around her, he drew her away
+and out to the seat under the old silver-leaf poplar tree.
+
+"You're acting silly, Peter Junior,--and my bread will all spoil and
+get too light,--and my hands are all covered with flour, and--"
+
+"And you'll sit right here while I talk to you a bit, if the bread
+spoils and gets too light and everything burns to a cinder." She
+started to run away from him, and his peremptory tone changed to
+pleading. "Please, Betty, dear! just hear me this far. I'm going away,
+Betty, and I love you. No, sit close and be my sweetheart. Dear, it
+isn't the old thing. It's love, and it's what I want you to feel for
+me. I woke up yesterday, and found I loved you." He held her closer
+and lifted her face to his. "You must wake up, too, Betty; we can't
+play always. Say you'll love me and be my wife--some day--won't you,
+Betty?"
+
+She drooped in his arms, hanging her head and looking down on her
+floury hands.
+
+"Say it, Betty dear, won't you?"
+
+Her lip quivered. "I don't want to be anybody's wife--and, anyway--I
+liked you better the other way."
+
+"Why, Betty? Tell me why."
+
+"Because--lots of reasons. I must help mother--and I'm only seventeen,
+and--"
+
+"Most eighteen, I know, because--"
+
+"Well, anyway, mother says no girl of hers shall marry before she's of
+age, and she says that means twenty-one, and--"
+
+"That's all right. I can wait. Kiss me, Betty." But she was silent,
+with face turned from him. Again he lifted her face to his. "I say,
+kiss me, Betty. Just one? That was a stingy little kiss. You know I'm
+going away, and that is why I spoke to you now. I didn't dare go
+without telling you this first. You're so sweet, Betty, some one might
+find you out and love you--just as I have--only not so deeply in love
+with you--no one could--but some one might come and win you away from
+me, and so I must make sure that you will marry me when you are of age
+and I come back for you. Promise me."
+
+"Where?--why--Peter Junior! Where are you going?" Betty removed his
+arm from around her waist and slipped to her own end of the seat.
+There, with hands folded decorously in her lap, with heightened color
+and serious eyes, she looked shyly up at him. He had never seen her
+shy before. Always she had been merry and teasing, and his heart was
+proud that he had wrought such a miracle in her.
+
+"I am going to Paris. I mean to be an artist." He leaned toward her
+and would have taken her in his arms again, but she put his hands
+away.
+
+"Will your father let you do that?" Her eyes widened with surprise,
+and the surprise nettled him.
+
+"I don't know. He's thinking about it. Anyway, a man must decide for
+himself what his career will be, and if he won't let me, I'll earn the
+money and go without his letting me."
+
+"Wouldn't that be the best way, anyway?"
+
+"What do you mean? To go without his consent?"
+
+"Of course not--goosey." She laughed and was herself again, but he
+liked her better the other way. "To earn the money and then go.
+It--it--would be more--more as if you were in earnest."
+
+"My soul! Do you think I'm not in earnest? Do you think I'm not in
+love with you?"
+
+Instantly she was serious and shy again. His heart leaped. He loved to
+feel his power over her thus. Still she tantalized him. "I'm not
+meaning about loving me. That's not the question. I mean it would look
+more as if you were in earnest about becoming an artist."
+
+"No. The real question is, Do you love me? Will you marry me when I
+come back?" She was silent and he came nearer. "Say it. Say it. I must
+hear you say it before I leave." Her lips trembled as if she were
+trying to form the words, and their eyes met.
+
+"Yes--if--if--"
+
+Then he caught her to him, and stopped her mouth with kisses. He did
+not know himself. He was a man he had never met the like of, and he
+gloried in himself. It seemed as if he heard bells ringing out in joy.
+Then he looked up and saw Mary Ballard's eyes fixed on him.
+
+"Peter Junior--what are you doing?" Her voice shook.
+
+"I--I'm kissing Betty."
+
+"I see that."
+
+"We are to be married some day--and--"
+
+"You are precipitate, Peter Junior."
+
+Then Betty did what every woman does when her lover is blamed, no
+matter how earnestly she may have resisted him before. She went
+completely over to his side and took his part.
+
+"He's going away, mother. He's going away to be gone--perhaps for
+years; and I've--I've told him yes, mother,--so it isn't his fault."
+Then she turned and fled to her own room, and hid her flaming face in
+the pillow and wept.
+
+"Sit here with me awhile, Peter Junior, and we'll talk it all over,"
+said Mary.
+
+He obeyed her, and looking squarely in her eyes, manfully told her his
+plans, and tried to make her feel as he felt, that no love like his
+had ever filled a man's heart before. At last she sent him up to the
+studio to tell her husband, and she went in and finished Betty's task,
+putting the bread--alas! too light by this time--in the oven, and
+shaping the raised biscuit which Betty had left half-finished.
+
+Then she paused a moment to look out of the window down the path
+where the boys and little Janey would soon come tumbling home from
+school, hot and hungry. A tear slowly coursed down her cheek, and,
+following the curves, trembled on the tip of her chin. She brushed it
+away impatiently. Of course it had to come--that was what life must
+bring--but ah! not so soon--not so soon. Then she set about
+preparations for dinner without Betty's help. That, too, was what it
+would mean--sometime--to go on doing things without Betty. She gave a
+little sigh, and at the instant an arm was slipped about her waist,
+and she turned to look in Bertrand's eyes.
+
+"Is it all right, Mary?"
+
+"Why--yes--that is--if they'll always love each other as we have. I
+think it ought not to be too definite an engagement, though, until his
+plans are more settled. What do you think?"
+
+"You are right, no doubt. I'll speak to him about that." Then he
+kissed her warm, flushed cheek. "I declare, it makes me feel as Peter
+Junior feels again, to have this happen."
+
+"Ah, Bertrand! You never grew up--thank the Lord!" Then Mary laughed.
+After all, they had been happy, and why not Betty and Peter? Surely
+the young had their rights.
+
+Bertrand climbed back to the studio where Peter Junior was pacing
+restlessly back and forth, and again they talked it all over, until
+the call came for dinner, when Peter was urged to stay, but would not.
+No, he would not see Betty again until he could have her quite to
+himself. So he limped away, feeling as if he were walking on air in
+spite of his halting gait, and Betty from her window watched him pass
+down the path and off along the grassy roadside. Then she went down to
+dinner, flushed and grave, but with shining eyes. Her father kissed
+her, but nothing was said, and the children thought nothing of it, for
+it was quite natural in the family to kiss Betty.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER IX
+
+THE BANKER'S POINT OF VIEW
+
+
+There was no picnic and nutting party the next day, owing to a
+downpour of rain. Betty had time to think quietly over what had
+happened the day before and her mind misgave her. What was it that so
+filled her heart and mind? That so stirred her imagination? Was it
+romance or love? She wished she knew how other girls felt who had
+lovers. Was it easy or hard for them to say yes? Should a girl let her
+lover kiss her the way Peter Junior had done? Some of the questions
+which perplexed her she would have liked to ask her mother, but in
+spite of their charming intimacy she could not bring herself to speak
+of them. She wished she had a friend with a lover, and could talk it
+all over with her, but although she had girl friends, none of them had
+lovers, and to have one herself made her feel much older than any of
+them.
+
+So Betty thought matters out for herself. Of course she liked Peter
+Junior--she had always liked him--and he was masterful--and she had
+always known she would marry a soldier--and one who had been wounded
+and been brave--that was the kind of a soldier to love. But she was
+more subdued than usual and sewed steadily on gingham aprons for
+Janey, making the buttonholes and binding them about the neck with
+contrasting stuff.
+
+"Anyway, I'm glad there is no picnic to-day. The boys may eat up the
+cookies, and I didn't get the cake made after all," she said to her
+mother, as she lingered a moment in the kitchen and looked out of the
+window at the pouring rain. But she did not see the rain; she saw
+again a gray-clad youth limping down the path between the lilacs and
+away along the grassy roadside.
+
+Well, what if she had said yes? It was all as it should be, according
+to her dreams, only--only--he had not allowed her to say what she had
+meant to say. She wished her mother had not happened to come just then
+before she could explain to Peter Junior; that it was "yes" only if
+when he came back he still wanted her and still loved her, and was
+sure he had not made a mistake about it. It was often so in books. Men
+went away, and when they returned, they found they no longer loved
+their sweethearts. If such a terrible thing should happen to her! Oh,
+dear! Or maybe he would be too honorable to say he no longer loved
+her, and would marry her in spite of it; and she would find out
+afterward, when it was too late, that he loved some one else; that
+would be very terrible, and they would be miserable all their lives.
+
+"I don't think I would let the boys eat up the cookies, dear; it may
+clear off by sundown, and be fine to-morrow, and they'll be all as
+glad as to go to-day. You make your cake."
+
+"But Martha's coming home to-morrow night, and I'd rather wait now
+until Saturday; that will be only one day longer, and it will be more
+fun with her along." Betty spoke brightly and tried to make herself
+feel that no momentous thing had happened. She hated the constraint of
+it. "By that time Peter Junior will think that he can go, too. He's
+so funny!" She laughed self-consciously, and carried the gingham
+aprons back to her room.
+
+"Bless her dear little heart." Mary Ballard understood.
+
+Peter Junior also profited by the rainy morning. He had a long hour
+alone with his mother to tell her of his wish to go to Paris; and her
+way of receiving his news was a surprise to him. He had thought it
+would be a struggle and that he would have to argue with her, setting
+forth his hopes and plans, bringing her slowly to think with
+quiescence of their long separation: but no. She rose and began to
+pace the floor, and her eyes grew bright with eagerness.
+
+"Oh, Peter, Peter!" She came and placed her two hands on his shoulders
+and gazed into his eyes. "Peter Junior, you are a boy after my own
+heart. You are going to be something worth while. I always knew you
+would. It is Bertrand Ballard who has waked you up, who has taught you
+to see that there is much outside of Leauvite for a man to do. I'm not
+objecting to those who live here and have found their work here; it is
+only that you are different. Go! Go!--It is--has your father--have you
+asked his consent?"
+
+"Oh, yes."
+
+"Has he given it?"
+
+"I think he is considering it seriously."
+
+"Peter Junior, I hope you won't go without it--as you went once,
+without mine." Never before had she mentioned it to him, or recalled
+to his mind that terrible parting.
+
+"Why not, mother? It would be as fair to him now as it was then to
+you. It would be fairer; for this is a question of progress, and then
+it was a matter of life and death."
+
+"Ah, that was different, I admit. But I never could retaliate, or seem
+to, even in the smallest thing. I don't want him to suffer as I
+suffered."
+
+It was almost a cry for pity, and Peter Junior wondered in his heart
+at the depth of anguish she must have endured in those days, when he
+had thrust the thought of her opposition to one side as merely an
+obstacle overcome, and had felt the triumph of winning out in the
+contest, as one step toward independent manhood. Now, indeed, their
+viewpoints had changed. He felt almost a sense of pique that she had
+yielded so joyously and so suddenly, although confronted with the
+prospect of a long separation from him. Did she love him less than in
+the past? Had his former disregard of her wishes lessened even a
+trifle her mother love for him?
+
+"I'm glad you can take the thought of my going as you do, mother." He
+spoke coldly, as an only son may, but he was to be excused. He was
+less spoiled than most only sons.
+
+"In what way, my son?"
+
+"Why--in being glad to have me go--instead of feeling as you did
+then."
+
+"Glad? Glad to have you go? It isn't that, dear. Understand me. I'm
+sorry I spoke of that old time. It was only to spare your father. You
+see we look at things differently. He loves to have us follow out his
+plans. It is almost--death to him to have to give up; and with me--it
+was not then as it is now. I don't like to think or speak of that
+time."
+
+"Don't, mother, don't!" cried Peter, contritely.
+
+"But I must to make you see this as you should. It was love for you
+then that made me cling to you, and want to hold you back from going;
+just the same it is love for you now that makes me want you to go out
+and find your right place in the world. I was letting you go then to
+be shot at--to suffer fatigue, and cold, and imprisonment, who could
+know, perhaps to be cruelly killed--and I did not believe in war. I
+suppose your father was the nobler in his way of thinking, but I could
+not see it his way. Angels from heaven couldn't have made me believe
+it right; but it's over. Now I know your life will be made broader by
+going, and you'll have scope, at least, to know what you really wish
+to do with yourself and what you are worth, as you would not have, to
+sit down in your father's bank, although you would be safer there, no
+doubt. But you went through all the temptations of the army safely,
+and I have no fear for you now, dear, no fear."
+
+Peter Junior's heart melted. He took his mother in his arms and
+stroked her beautiful white hair. "I love you, mother, dear," was all
+he could say. Should he tell her of Betty now? The question died in
+his heart. It was too much. He would be all hers for a little, nor
+intrude the new love that she might think divided his heart. He
+returned to the question of his father's consent. "Mother, what shall
+I do if he will not give it?"
+
+"Wait. Try to be patient and do what he wishes. It may help him to
+yield in the end."
+
+"Never! I know Dad better than that. He will only think all the more
+that he is in the right, and that I have come to my senses. He never
+takes any viewpoint but his own." His mother was silent. Never would
+she open her lips against her husband. "I say, mother, naturally I
+would rather go with his consent, but if he won't give it--How long
+must a man be obedient just for the sake of obedience? Does such
+bondage never end? Am I not of age?"
+
+"I will speak to him. Wait and see. Talk it over with him again to-day
+after banking hours."
+
+"I--I--have something I must--must do to-day." He was thinking he
+would go out to the Ballards' in spite of the rain.
+
+The dinner hour passed without constraint. In these days Peter Junior
+would not allow the long silences to occur that used often to cast a
+gloom over the meals in his boyhood. He knew that in this way his
+mother would sadly miss him. It was the Elder's way to keep his
+thoughts for the most part to himself, and especially when there was
+an issue of importance before him. It was supposed that his wife could
+not take an interest in matters of business, or in things of interest
+to men, so silence was the rule when they were alone.
+
+This time Peter Junior mentioned the topic of the wonderful new
+railroad that was being pushed across the plains and through the
+unexplored desert to the Pacific.
+
+"The mere thought of it is inspiring," said Hester.
+
+"How so?" queried the Elder, with a lift of his brows. He deprecated
+any thought connecting sentiment with achievement. Sentiment was of
+the heart and only hindered achievement, which was purely of the
+brain.
+
+"It's just the wonder of it. Think of the two great oceans being
+brought so near together! Only two weeks apart! Don't they estimate
+that the time to cross will be only two weeks?"
+
+"Yes, mother, and we have those splendid old pioneers who made the
+first trail across the desert to thank for its being possible. It
+isn't the capitalists who have done this. It's the ones who had faith
+in themselves and dared the dangers and the hardships. They are the
+ones I honor."
+
+"They never went for love of humanity. It was mere love of wandering
+and migratory instinct," said his father, grimly.
+
+Peter Junior laughed merrily. "What did old grandfather Craigmile pull
+up and come over to this country for? They had to cross in sailing
+vessels then and take weeks for the journey."
+
+"Progress, my son, progress. Your grandfather had the idea of
+establishing his family in honorable business over here, and he did
+it."
+
+"Well, I say these people who have been crossing the plains and
+crawling over the desert behind ox teams in 'prairie schooners' for
+the last twenty or thirty years, braving all the dangers of the
+unknown, have really paved the way for progress and civilization. The
+railroad is being laid along the trail they made. Do you know
+Richard's out there at the end of the line--nearly?"
+
+"He would be likely to be. Roving boy! What's he doing there?"
+
+"Poor boy! He almost died in that terrible southern prison. He was the
+mere shadow of himself when he came home," said Hester.
+
+"The young men of the present day have little use for beaten paths and
+safe ways. I offered him a position in the bank, but no--he must go to
+Scotland first to make the acquaintance of our aunts. If he had been
+satisfied with that! But no, again, he must go to Ireland on a fool's
+errand to learn something of his father." The Elder paused and bit his
+lip, and a vein stood out on his forehead. "He's never seen fit to
+write me of late."
+
+"Of course such a big scheme as this road across the plains would
+appeal to a man like Richard. He's doing very well, father. I wouldn't
+be disturbed about him."
+
+"Humph! I might as well be disturbed about the course of the Wisconsin
+River. I might as well worry over the rush of a cataract. The lad has
+no stability."
+
+"He never fails to write to me, and I must say that he was considered
+the most dependable man in the regiment."
+
+"What is he doing? I should like to see the boy again." Hester looked
+across at her son with a warm, loving light in her eyes.
+
+"I don't know exactly, but it's something worth while, and calls for
+lots of energy. He says they are striking out into the dust and alkali
+now--right into the desert."
+
+"And doesn't he say a word about when he is coming back?"
+
+"Not a word, mother. He really has no home, you know. He says Scotland
+has no opening for him, and he has no one to depend on but himself."
+
+"He has relatives who are fairly well to do in Ireland."
+
+The Elder frowned. "So I've heard, and my aunts in Scotland talked of
+making him their heir, when I was last there."
+
+"He knows that, father, but he says he's not one to stand round
+waiting for two old women to die. He says they're fine, decorous old
+ladies, too, who made a lot of him. I warrant they'd hold up their
+hands in horror if they knew what a rough life he's leading now."
+
+"How rough, my son? I wish he'd make up his mind to come home."
+
+"There! I told him this is his home; just as much as it is mine. I'll
+write him you said that, mother."
+
+"Indeed, yes. Bless the boy!"
+
+The Elder looked at his wife and lifted his brows, a sign that it was
+time the meal should close, and she rose instantly. It was her habit
+never to rise until the Elder gave the sign. Peter Junior walked down
+the length of the hall at his father's side.
+
+"What Richard really wished to do was what I mentioned to you
+yesterday for myself. He wanted to go to Paris and study, but after
+visiting his great-aunts he saw that it would be too much. He would
+not allow them to take from their small income to help him through, so
+he gave it up for the time being; but if he keeps on as he is, it is
+my opinion he may go yet. He's making good money. Then we could be
+there together."
+
+The Elder made no reply, but stooped and drew on his india-rubber
+overshoes,--stamping into them,--and then got himself into his
+raincoat with sundry liftings and hunchings of his shoulders. Peter
+Junior stood by waiting, if haply some sort of sign might be given
+that his remark had been heeded, but his father only carefully
+adjusted his hat and walked away in the rain, setting his feet down
+stubbornly at each step, and holding his umbrella as if it were a
+banner of righteousness. The younger man's face flushed, and he turned
+from the door angrily; then he looked to see his mother's eyes fixed
+on him sadly.
+
+"At least he might treat me with common decency. He need not be rude,
+even if I am his son." He thought he detected accusation of himself
+in his mother's gaze and resented it.
+
+"Be patient, dear."
+
+"Oh, mother! Patient, patient! What have you got by being patient all
+these years?"
+
+"Peace of mind, my son."
+
+"Mother--"
+
+"Try to take your father's view of this matter. Have you any idea how
+hard he has worked all his life, and always with the thought of you
+and your advancement, and welfare? Why, Peter Junior, he is bound up
+in you. He expected you would one day stand at his side, his mainstay
+and help and comfort in his business."
+
+"Then it wasn't for me; it was for himself that he has worked and
+built up the bank. It's his bank, and his wife, and his son, and his
+'Tower of Babel that he has builded,' and now he wants me to bury
+myself in it and worship at his idolatry."
+
+"Hush, Peter. I don't like to rebuke you, but I must. You can twist
+facts about and see them in a wrong light, but the truth remains that
+he has loved you tenderly--always. I know his heart better than
+you--better than he. It is only that he thinks the line he has taken a
+lifetime to lay out for you is the best. He is as sure of it as that
+the days follow each other. He sees only futility in the way you would
+go. I have no doubt his heart is sore over it at this moment, and that
+he is grieving in a way that would shock you, could you comprehend
+it."
+
+"Enough said, mother, enough said. I'll try to be fair."
+
+He went to his room and stood looking out at the rain-washed earth and
+the falling leaves. The sky was heavy and drab. He thought of Betty
+and her picnic and of how gay and sweet she was, and how altogether
+desirable, and the thought wrought a change in his spirit. He went
+downstairs and kissed his mother; then he, too, put on his rubber
+overshoes and shook himself into his raincoat and carefully adjusted
+his hat and his umbrella. Then with the assistance of the old
+blackthorn stick he walked away in the rain, limping, it is true, but
+nevertheless a younger, sturdier edition of the man who had passed out
+before him.
+
+He found Betty alone as he had hoped, for Mary Ballard had gone to
+drive her husband to the station. Bertrand was thinking of opening a
+studio in the city, at his wife's earnest solicitation, for she
+thought him buried there in their village. As for the children--they
+were still in school.
+
+Thus it came about that Peter Junior spent the rest of that day with
+Betty in her father's studio. He told Betty all his plans. He made
+love to her and cajoled her, and was happy indeed. He had a winsome
+way, and he made her say she loved him--more than once or twice--and
+his heart was satisfied.
+
+"We'll be married just as soon as I return from Paris, and you'll not
+miss me so much until then?"
+
+"Oh, no."
+
+"Ah--but--but I hope you will--you know."
+
+"Of course I shall! What would you suppose?"
+
+"But you said no."
+
+"Naturally! Didn't you wish me to say that?"
+
+"I wanted you to tell the truth."
+
+"Well, I did."
+
+"There it is again! I'm afraid you don't really love me."
+
+She tilted her head on one side and looked at him a moment. "Would you
+like me to say I don't want you to go to Paris?"
+
+"Not that, exactly; but all the time I'm gone I shall be longing for
+you."
+
+"I should hope so! It would be pretty bad if you didn't."
+
+"Now you see what I mean about you. I want you to be longing for me
+all the time, until I return."
+
+"All right. I'll cry my eyes out, and I'll keep writing for you to
+come home."
+
+"Oh, come now! Tell me what you will do all the time."
+
+"Oh, lots of things. I'll paint pictures, too, and--I'll write--and
+help mother just as I do now; and I'll study art without going to
+Paris."
+
+"Will you, you rogue! I'd marry you first and take you with me if it
+were possible, and you should study in Paris, too--that is, if you
+wished to."
+
+"Wouldn't it be wonderful! But I don't know--I believe I'd rather
+write than paint."
+
+"I believe I'd rather have you. They say there are no really great
+women artists. It isn't in the woman's nature. They haven't the
+strength. Oh, they have the delicacy and all that; it's something else
+they lack."
+
+"Humph! It's rather nice to have us lacking in one thing and another,
+isn't it? It gives you men something to do to discover and fill in the
+lacks."
+
+"I know one little lady who lacks in nothing but years."
+
+Betty looked out of the window and down into the yard. "There is
+mother driving in. Let's go down and have cookies and milk. I'm sure
+you need cookies and milk."
+
+"I'll need anything you say."
+
+"Very well, then, you'll need patience if ever you marry me."
+
+"I know that well enough. Stop a moment. Kiss me before we go down."
+He caught her in his arms, but she slipped away.
+
+"No, I won't. You've had enough kisses. I'll always give you one when
+you come, hereafter, and one when you go away, but no more."
+
+"Then I shall come very often." He laughed and leaned upon her instead
+of using his stick, as they slowly descended.
+
+Mary Ballard was chilled after her long drive in the rain, and Betty
+made her tea. Then, after a pleasant hour of chat and encouragement
+from the two sweet women, Peter Junior left them, promising to go to
+the picnic and nutting party on Saturday. It would surely be pleasant,
+for the sky was already clearing. Yes, truly a glad heart brings
+pleasant prognostications.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER X
+
+THE NUTTING PARTY
+
+
+Peter Junior made no attempt the next day to speak further to his
+father about his plans. It seemed to him better that he should wait
+until his wise mother had talked the matter over with the Elder.
+Although he put in most of the day at the studio, painting, he saw
+very little of Betty and thought she was avoiding him out of girlish
+coquetry, but she was only very busy. Martha was coming home and
+everything must be as clean as wax. Martha was such a tidy housekeeper
+that she would see the least lack and set to work to remedy it, and
+that Betty could not abide. In these days Martha's coming marked a
+semimonthly event in the home, for since completing her course at the
+high school she had been teaching in the city. Bertrand would return
+with her, and then all would have to be talked over,--just what he had
+decided to do, and why.
+
+In the evening a surprise awaited the whole household, for Martha
+came, accompanied not only by her father, but also by a young
+professor in the same school where she taught. Mary Ballard greeted
+him most kindly, but she felt things were happening too rapidly in her
+family. Jamie and Bobby watched the young man covertly yet eagerly,
+taking note of his every movement and intonation. Was he one to be
+emulated or avoided? Only little Janey was quite unabashed by him, and
+this lightened his embarrassment greatly and helped him to the ease
+of manner he strove to establish.
+
+She led him out to the sweet-apple tree, and introduced him to the
+calf and the bantams, and invited him to go with them nutting the next
+day. "We're all going in a great, big picnic wagon. Everybody's going
+and we'll have just lots of fun." And he accepted, provided she would
+sit beside him all the way.
+
+Bobby decided at this point that he also would befriend the young man.
+"If you're going to sit beside her all the way, you'll have to be
+lively. She never sits in one place more than two minutes. You'll have
+to sit on papa's other knee for a while, and then you'll have to sit
+on Peter Junior's."
+
+"That will be interesting, anyway. Who's Peter Junior?"
+
+"Oh, he's a man. He comes to see us a lot."
+
+"He's the son of Elder Craigmile," explained Martha.
+
+"Is he going, too, Betty?"
+
+"Yes. The whole crowd are going. It will be fun. I'm glad now it
+rained Thursday, for the Deans didn't want to postpone it till
+to-morrow, and then, when it rained, Mrs. Dean said it would be too
+wet to try to have it yesterday; and now we have you. I wanted all the
+time to wait until you came home."
+
+That night, when Martha went to their room, Betty followed her, and
+after closing the door tightly she threw her arms around her sister's
+neck.
+
+"Oh, Martha, Martha, dear! Tell me all about him. Why didn't you let
+us know? I came near having on my old blue gingham. What if I had?
+He's awfully nice looking. Is he in love with you? Tell me all about
+it. Does he make love to you? Oh, Martha! It's so romantic for you to
+have a lover!"
+
+"Hush, Betty, some one will hear you. Of course he doesn't make love
+to me!"
+
+"Why?"
+
+"I wouldn't let him."
+
+"Martha! Why not? Do you think it's bad to let a young man make love
+to you?"
+
+"Betty! You mustn't talk so loud. Everything sounds so through this
+house. It would mortify me to death."
+
+"What would mortify you to death: to have him make love to you or to
+have someone hear me?"
+
+"Betty, dear!"
+
+"Well, tell me all about him--please! Why did he come out with you?"
+
+"You shouldn't always be thinking about love-making--and--such things,
+Betty, dear. He just came out in the most natural way, just because
+he--he loves the country, and he was talking to me about it one day
+and said he'd like to come out some Friday with me--just about asked
+me to invite him. So when father called at the school yesterday for
+me, I introduced them, and he said the same thing to father, and of
+course father invited him over again, and--and--so he's here. That's
+all there is to it."
+
+"I bet it isn't. How long have you known him?"
+
+"Why, ever since I've been in the school, naturally."
+
+"What does he teach?"
+
+"He has higher Latin and beginners' Greek, and then he has charge of
+the main room when the principal goes out."
+
+Betty pondered a little, sitting on the floor in front of her sister.
+"You have such a lovely way of doing your hair. Is that the way to do
+hair nowadays--with two long curls hanging down from one side of the
+coil? You wind one side around the back knot, and then you pin the
+other up and let the ends hang down in two long curls, don't you? I'm
+going to try mine that way; may I?"
+
+"Of course, darling! I'll help you."
+
+"What's his name, Martha? I couldn't quite catch it, and I did not
+want to let him know I thought it queer, so wouldn't ask over."
+
+"His name is Lucien Thurbyfil. It's not so queer, Betty."
+
+"Oh, you pronounce it T'urbyfil, just as if there were no 'h' in it.
+You know I thought father said Mr. Tubfull--or something like that,
+when he introduced him to mother, and that was why mother looked at
+him in such an odd way."
+
+The two girls laughed merrily. "Betty, what if you hadn't been a dear,
+and had called him that! And he's so very correct!"
+
+"Oh, is he? Then I'll try it to-morrow and we'll see what he'll do."
+
+"Don't you dare! I'd be so ashamed I'd sink right through the floor.
+He'd think we'd been making fun of him."
+
+"Then I'll wait until we are out in the woods, for I'd hate to have
+you make a hole in the floor by sinking through it."
+
+"Betty! You'll be good to-morrow, won't you, dear?"
+
+"Good? Am I not always good? Didn't I scrub and bake and put flowers
+all over the ugly what-not in the corner of the parlor, and get the
+grease spot out of the dining room rug that Jamie stepped butter
+into--and all for you--without any thought of any Mr. Tubfull or any
+one but you? All day long I've been doing it."
+
+"Of course you did, and it was perfectly sweet; and the flowers and
+mother looked so dear--and Janey's hands were clean--I looked to see.
+You know usually they are so dirty. I knew you'd been busy; but Betty,
+dear, you won't be mischievous to-morrow, will you? He's our guest,
+you know, and you never were bashful, not as much as you really ought
+to be, and we can't treat strangers just as we do--well--people we
+have always known, like Peter Junior. They wouldn't understand it."
+
+But the admonition seemed to be lost, for Betty's thoughts were
+wandering from the point. "Hasn't he ever--ever--made love to you?"
+Martha was washing her face and neck at the washstand in the corner,
+and now she turned a face very rosy, possibly with scrubbing, and
+threw water over her naughty little sister. "Well, hasn't he ever put
+his arm around you or--or anything?"
+
+"I wouldn't let a man do that."
+
+"Not if you were engaged?"
+
+"Of course not! That wouldn't be a nice way to do."
+
+"Shouldn't you let a man kiss you or--or--put his arm around you--or
+anything--even when he's trying to get engaged to you?"
+
+"Of course not, Betty, dear. You're asking very silly questions. I'm
+going to bed."
+
+"Well, but they do in books. He did in 'Jane Eyre,' don't you
+remember? And she was proud of it--and pretended not to be--and very
+much touched, and treasured his every look in her heart. And in the
+books they always kiss their lovers. How can Mr. Thurbyfil ever be
+your lover, if you never let him even put his arm around you?"
+
+"Betty, Betty, come to bed. He isn't my lover and he doesn't want to
+be and we aren't in books, and you are getting too old to be so
+silly."
+
+Then Betty slowly disrobed and bathed her sweet limbs and at last
+crept in beside her sister. Surely she had not done right. She had let
+Peter Junior put his arm around her and kiss her, and that even before
+they were engaged; and all yesterday afternoon he had held her hand
+whenever she came near, and he had followed her about and had kissed
+her a great many times. Her cheeks burned with shame in the darkness,
+not that she had allowed this, but that she had not been as bashful as
+she ought. But how could she be bashful without pretending?
+
+"Martha," she said at last, "you are so sweet and pretty, if I were
+Mr. Thurbyfil, I'd put my arm around you anyway, and make love to
+you."
+
+Then Martha drew Betty close and gave her a sleepy kiss. "No you
+wouldn't, dear," she murmured, and soon the two were peacefully
+sleeping, Betty's troubles quite forgotten. Still, when morning came,
+she did not confide to her sister anything about Peter Junior, and she
+even whispered to her mother not to mention a word of the affair to
+any one.
+
+At breakfast Jamie and Bobby were turbulent with delight. All outings
+were a joy to them, no matter how often they came. Martha was neat and
+rosy and gay. Lucien Thurbyfil wanted to help her by wiping the
+dishes, but she sent him out to the sweet-apple tree with a basket,
+enjoining him to bring only the mellow ones. "Be sure to get enough.
+We're all going, father and mother and all."
+
+"It's very nice of your people to make room for me on the wagon."
+
+"And it's nice of you to go."
+
+"I see Peter Junior. He's coming," shouted Bobby, from the top of the
+sweet-apple tree.
+
+"Who does he go with?" asked Martha.
+
+"With us. He always does," said Betty. "I wonder why his mother and
+the Elder never go out for any fun, the way you and father do!"
+
+"The Elder always has to be at the bank, I suppose," said Mary
+Ballard, "and she wouldn't go without him. Did you put in the salt and
+pepper for the eggs, dear?"
+
+"Yes, mother. I'm glad father isn't a banker."
+
+"It takes a man of more ability than I to be a banker," said Bertrand,
+laughing, albeit with concealed pride.
+
+"We don't care if it does, Dad," said Jamie, patronizingly. "When I
+get through the high school, I'm going to hire out to the bank." He
+seized the lunch basket and marched manfully out to the wagon.
+
+"I thought Peter Junior always went with Clara Dean. He did when I
+left," said Martha, in a low voice to Betty, as they filled bottles
+with raspberry shrub, and with cream for the coffee. "Did you tie
+strings on the spoons, dear? They'll get mixed with the Walters' if
+you don't. You remember theirs are just like ours."
+
+"Oh, I forgot. Why, he likes Clara a lot, of course, but I guess they
+just naturally expected him to go with us. They and the Walters have
+a wagon together, anyway, and they wouldn't have room. We have one all
+to ourselves. Hello, Peter Junior! Mr. Thurbyfil, this is Mr.
+Junior."
+
+"Happy to meet you, Mr. Junior," said the correct Mr. Thurbyfil. The
+boys laughed uproariously, and the rest all smiled, except Betty, who
+was grave and really seemed somewhat embarrassed.
+
+"What is it?" she asked.
+
+"Mr. Thurbyfil, this is Mr. Craigmile," said Martha. "You introduced
+him as Mr. Junior, Betty."
+
+"I didn't! Well, that's because I'm bashful. Come on, everybody,
+mother's in." So they all climbed into the wagon and began to find
+their places.
+
+"Oh, father, have you the matches? The bottles are on the kitchen
+table," exclaimed Martha.
+
+"Don't get down, Mr. Ballard," said Lucien. "I'll get them. It would
+never do to forget the bottles. Now, where's the little girl who was
+to ride beside me?" and Janey crawled across the hay and settled
+herself at her new friend's side. "Now I think we are beautifully
+arranged," for Martha was on his other side.
+
+"Very well, we're off," and Bertrand gathered up the reins and they
+started.
+
+"There they are. There's the other wagon," shouted Bobby. "We ought to
+have a flag to wave."
+
+Then Lucien, the correct, startled the party by putting his two
+fingers in his mouth and whistling shrilly.
+
+"They have such a load I wish Clara could ride with us," said Betty.
+"Peter Junior, won't you get out and fetch her?"
+
+So they all stopped and there were greetings and introductions and
+much laughing and joking, and Peter Junior obediently helped Clara
+Dean down and into the Ballards' wagon.
+
+"Clara, Mr. Thurbyfil can whistle as loud as a train, through his
+fingers, he can. Do it, Mr. Thurbyfil," said Bobby.
+
+"Oh, I can do that," said Peter Junior, not to be outdone by the
+stranger, and they all tried it. Bertrand and his wife, settled
+comfortably on the high seat in front, had their own pleasure together
+and paid no heed to the noisy crew behind them.
+
+What a day! Autumn leaves and hazy distances, soft breezes and
+sunlight, and miles of level road skirting woods and open fields where
+the pumpkins lay yellow among the shocks of corn, and where the fence
+corners were filled with flaming sumac, with goldenrod and purple
+asters adding their softer coloring.
+
+It was a good eight miles to Carter's woods, but they bordered the
+river where the bluffs were not so high, and it would be possible to
+build a fire on the river bank with perfect safety. Bertrand had
+brought roasting ears from his patch of sweet corn, and as soon as
+they arrived at their chosen grove, he and Mary leisurely turned their
+attention to the preparing of the lunch with Mrs. Dean and Mrs.
+Walters, leaving to the young people the gathering of the nuts.
+
+Mrs. Dean, a slight, wiry woman, who acted and talked easily and
+unceasingly, spread out a fresh linen cloth and laid a stone on each
+corner to hold it down, and then looked into each lunch basket in
+turn, to acquaint herself with its contents.
+
+"I see you brought cake and cookies and jam, Mrs. Ballard, besides all
+the corn and cream--you always do too much, and all your own work to
+look after, too. Well, I brought a lot of ham sandwiches and that
+brown bread your husband likes so much. I always feel so proud when
+Mr. Ballard praises anything I do; he's so clever it makes me feel as
+if I were really able to do something. And you're so clever too. I
+don't know how it is some folks seem to have all the brains, and then
+there's others--good enough--but there! As I tell Mr. Dean, you can't
+tell why it is. Now where are the spoons? Every one brings their own,
+of course; yes, here are yours, Mrs. Walters. It's good of you to
+think of that sweet corn, Mr. Ballard.--Oh, he's gone away; well,
+anyway, we're having a lot more than we can eat, and all so good and
+tempting. I hope Mr. Dean won't overeat himself; he's just a boy at a
+picnic, I always have to remind him--How?"
+
+"Did you bring the cups for the coffee?" It was Mrs. Walters who
+interrupted the flow of Mrs. Dean's eloquence. She was portly and
+inclined to brevity, which made her a good companion for Mrs. Dean.
+
+"I had such a time with my jell this summer, and now this fall my
+grape jell's just as bad. This is all running over the glasses. There,
+I'll set it on this paper. I do hate to see a clean cloth all spotted
+with jell, even if it is a picnic when people think it doesn't make
+any difference. I see Martha has a friend. Well, that's nice. I wish
+Clara cared more for company; but, there, as I tell Mr. Dean--Oh, yes!
+the cups. Clara, where are the cups? Oh, she's gone. Well, I'm sure
+they're in that willow basket. I told Clara to pack towels around them
+good. I do hate to see cups all nicked up; yes, here they are. It's
+good of you to always tend the coffee, Mrs. Walters; you know just how
+to make it. I tell Mr. Dean nobody ever makes coffee like you can at a
+picnic. Now, if it's ready, I think everything else is; well, it soon
+will be with such a fire, and the corn's not done, anyway. Do you
+think the sun'll get round so as to shine on the table? I see it's
+creeping this way pretty fast, and they're all so scattered over the
+woods there's no telling when we will get every one here to eat. I see
+another tablecloth in your basket, Mrs. Ballard. If you'll be good
+enough to just hold that corner, we can cover everything up good, so,
+and then I'll walk about a bit and call them all together." And the
+kindly lady stepped briskly off through the woods, still talking,
+while Mrs. Ballard and Mrs. Walters sat themselves down in the shade
+and quietly watched the coffee and chatted.
+
+It was past the noon hour, and the air was drowsy and still. The
+voices and laughter of the nut gatherers came back to them from the
+deeper woods in the distance, and the crackling of the fire where
+Bertrand attended to the roasting of the corn near by, and the gentle
+sound of the lapping water on the river bank came to them out of the
+stillness.
+
+"I wonder if Mr. Walters tied the horses good!" said his wife. "Seems
+as if one's got loose. Don't you hear a horse galloping?"
+
+"They're all there eating," said Mary, rising and looking about. "Some
+one's coming, away off there over the bluff; see?"
+
+"I wonder, now! My, but he rides well. He must be coming here. I hope
+there's nothing the matter. It looks like--it might be Peter Junior,
+only he's here already."
+
+"It's--it's--no, it can't be--it is! It's--Bertrand, Bertrand! Why,
+it's Richard!" cried Mary Ballard, as the horseman came toward them,
+loping smoothly along under the trees, now in the sunlight and now in
+the shadow. He leaped from the saddle, and, throwing the rein over a
+knotted limb, walked rapidly toward them, holding out a hand to each,
+as Bertrand and Mary hurried forward.
+
+"I couldn't let you good folks have one of these fine old times
+without me."
+
+"Why, when did you come? Oh, Richard! It's good to see you again,"
+said Mary.
+
+"I came this morning. I went up to my uncle's and then to your house
+and found you all away, and learned that you were here and my twin
+with you, so here I am. How are the children? All grown up?"
+
+"Almost. Come and sit down and give an account of yourself to Mary,
+while I try to get hold of the rest," said Bertrand.
+
+"Mrs. Dean has gone for them, father. Mrs. Walters, the coffee's all
+right; come and sit down here and let's visit until the others come.
+You remember Richard Kildene, Mrs. Walters?"
+
+"Since he was a baby, but it's been so long since I've seen you,
+Richard. I don't believe I'd have known you unless for your likeness
+to Peter Junior. You look stronger than he now. Redder and browner."
+
+"I ought to. I've been in the open air and sun for weeks. I'm only
+here now by chance."
+
+"A happy chance for us, Richard. Where have you been of late?" asked
+Bertrand.
+
+"Out on the plains--riding and keeping a gang of men under control,
+for the most part, and pushing the work as rapidly as possible." He
+tossed back his hair with the old movement Mary remembered so well.
+"Tell me about the children, Martha and Betty; both grown up? Or still
+ready to play with a comrade?"
+
+"They're all here to-day. Martha's teaching in the city, but Betty's
+at home helping me, as always. The boys are getting such big fellows,
+and little Janey's as sweet as all the rest."
+
+"There! That's Betty's laugh, I know. I'd recognize it if I heard it
+out on the plains. I have, sometimes--when a homesick fit gets hold of
+me out under the stars, when the noise of the camp has subsided. A
+good deal of that work is done by the very refuse of humanity, you
+know, a mighty tough lot."
+
+"And you like that sort of thing, Richard?" asked Mary. "I thought
+when you went to your people in Scotland, you might be leading a very
+different kind of life by now."
+
+"I thought so, too, then; but I guess for some reasons this is best.
+Still, I couldn't resist stealing a couple of days to run up here and
+see you all. I got off a carload of supplies yesterday from Chicago,
+and then I wired back to the end of the line that I'd be two days
+later myself. No wonder I followed you out here. I couldn't afford to
+waste the precious hours. I say! That's Betty again! I'll find them
+and say you're hungry, shall I?"
+
+"Oh, they're coming now. I see Martha's pink dress, and there's Betty
+in green over there."
+
+But Richard was gone, striding over the fallen leaves toward the spot
+of green which was Betty's gingham dress. And Betty, spying him,
+forgot she was grown up. She ran toward him with outstretched arms,
+as of old--only--just as he reached her, she drew back and a wave of
+red suffused her face. She gave him one hand instead of both, and
+called to Peter Junior to hurry.
+
+"Well, Betty Ballard! I can't jump you along now over stocks and
+stones as I used to. And here's everybody! Why, Jamie, what a great
+man you are! I'll have to take you back with me to help build the new
+road. And here's Bobby; and this little girl--I wonder if she
+remembers me well enough to give me a kiss? I have nobody to kiss me
+now, when I come back. That's right. That's what Betty used to do.
+Why, hello! here's Clara Dean, and who's this? John Walters? So you're
+a man, too! Mr. Dean, how are you? And Mrs. Dean! You don't grow any
+older anyway, so I'll walk with you. Wait until I've pounded this old
+chap a minute. Why didn't I write I was coming? Man, I didn't know it
+myself. I'm under orders nowadays. To get here at all I had to steal
+time. So you're graduated from a crutch to a cane? Good!"
+
+Every one exclaimed at once, while Richard talked right on, until they
+reached the riverside where the lunch was spread; and then the babble
+was complete.
+
+That night, as they all drove home in the moonlight, Richard tied his
+horse to the rear of the Ballards' wagon and rode home seated on the
+hay with the rest. He placed himself where Betty sat on his right, and
+the two boys crowded as close to him as possible on his left. Little
+Janey, cuddled at Betty's side, was soon fast asleep with her head in
+her sister's lap, while Lucien Thurbyfil was well pleased to have
+Martha in the corner to himself. Peter Junior sat near Betty and
+listened with interest to his cousin, who entertained them all with
+tales of the plains and the Indians, and the game that supplied them
+with many a fine meal in camp.
+
+"Say, did you ever see a real herd of wild buffalo just tearing over
+the ground and kicking up a great dust and stampeding and everything?"
+said Jamie.
+
+"Oh, yes. And if you are out there all alone on your pony, you'd
+better keep away from in front of them, too, or you'd be trampled to
+death in a jiffy."
+
+"What's stampeding?" said Bobby.
+
+So Richard explained it, and much more that elicited long breaths of
+interest. He told them of the miles and miles of land without a single
+tree or hill, and only a sea of grass as far as the eye could reach,
+as level as Lake Michigan, and far vaster. And how the great railway
+was now approaching the desert, and how he had seen the bones of men
+and cattle and horses bleaching white, lying beside their broken-down
+wagons half buried in the drifting sand. He told them how the trail
+that such people had made with so much difficulty stretched far, far
+away into the desert along the very route, for the most part, that the
+railroad was taking, and answered their questions so interestingly
+that the boys were sorry when they reached home at last and they had
+to bid good-night to Peter Junior's fascinating cousin, Richard.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XI
+
+BETTY BALLARD'S AWAKENING
+
+
+Mary and Bertrand always went early to church, for Bertrand led the
+choir, and it was often necessary for him to gather the singers
+together and try over the anthem before the service. Sometimes the
+rector would change the hymns, and then the choir must have one little
+rehearsal of them. Martha and Mr. Thurbyfil accompanied them this
+morning, and Betty and the boys were to walk, for four grown-ups with
+little Janey sandwiched in between more than filled the carryall.
+
+In these days Betty no longer had to wash and dress her brothers, but
+there were numerous attentions required of her, such as only growing
+boys can originate, and "sister" was as kind and gay in helping them
+over their difficulties as of old. So, now, as she stepped out of her
+room all dressed for church in her white muslin with green rose sprigs
+over it, with her green parasol, and her prayer book in her hand,
+Bobby called her.
+
+"Oh, Sis! I've broken my shoe string and it's time to start."
+
+"I have a new one in my everyday shoes, Bobby, dear; run upstairs and
+take it out. They're just inside the closet door. Wait a minute,
+Jamie; that lock stands straight up on the back of your head. Can't
+you make it lie down? Bring me the brush. You look splendid in your
+new trousers. Now, you hurry on ahead and leave this at the Deans'.
+It's Clara's sash bow. I found it in the wagon after they left last
+night. Run, she may want to wear it to church.--Yes, Bobby, dear, I
+sent him on, but you can catch up. Have you a handkerchief? Yes, I'll
+follow in a minute."
+
+And the boys rushed off, looking very clean in their Sunday clothing,
+and very old and mannish in their long trousers and stiff hats. Betty
+looked after them with pride, then she bethought her that the cat had
+not had her saucer of milk, and ran down to the spring to get it,
+leaving the doors wide open behind her. The day was quite warm enough
+for her to wear the summer gown, and she was very winsome and pretty
+in her starched muslin, with the delicate green buds sprayed over it.
+She wore a green belt, too, and the parasol she was very proud of, for
+she had bought it with her own chicken money. It was her heart's
+delight. Betty's skirt reached nearly to the ground, for she was quite
+in long dresses, and two little ruffles rippled about her feet as she
+ran down the path to the spring. But, alas! As she turned away after
+carefully fastening the spring-house door, the cat darted under her
+feet; and Betty stumbled and the milk streamed down the front of her
+dress and spattered her shoes--and if there was anything Betty liked,
+it was to have her shoes very neat.
+
+"Oh, Kitty! I hate your running under my feet that way all the time."
+Betty was almost in tears. She set the saucer down and tried to wipe
+off the milk, while the cat crouched before the dish and began
+drinking eagerly and unthankfully, after the manner of cats.
+
+Some one stood silently watching her from the kitchen steps as she
+walked slowly up the path, gazing down on the ruin of the pretty
+starched ruffles.
+
+"Why, Richard!" was all she said, for something came up in her throat
+and choked her. She waited where she stood, and in his eyes, her
+aspect seemed that of despair. Was it all for the spilled milk?
+
+"Why, Betty dear!" He caught her and kissed her and laughed at her and
+comforted her all at once. "Not tears, dear? Tears to greet me? You
+didn't half greet me last evening, and I came only to see you. Now you
+will, where there's no one to see and no one to hear? Yes. Never mind
+the spilled milk, you know better than that." But Betty lay in his
+arms, a little crumpled wisp of sorrow, white and still.
+
+"Away off there in Cheyenne I got to thinking of you, and I went to
+headquarters and asked to be sent on this commission just to get the
+chance to run up here and tell you I have been waiting all these years
+for you to grow up. You have haunted me ever since I left Leauvite.
+You darling, your laughing face was always with me, on the march--in
+prison--and wherever I've been since. I've been trying to keep myself
+right--for you--so I might dare some day to take you in my arms like
+this and tell you--so I need not be ashamed before your--"
+
+"Oh, Richard, wait!" wailed Betty, but he would not wait.
+
+"I've waited long enough. I see you are grown up before I even dreamed
+you could be. Thank heaven I came now! You are so sweet some one would
+surely have won you away from me--but no one can now--no one."
+
+"Richard, why didn't you tell me this when you first came home from
+the war--before you went to Scotland? I would--"
+
+"Not then, sweetheart; I couldn't. I didn't even know then I would
+ever be worth the love of any woman; and--you were such a child
+then--I couldn't intrude my weariness--my worn-out self on you. I was
+sick at heart when I got out of that terrible prison; but now it is
+all changed. I am my own man now, dependent on no one, and able to
+marry you out of hand, Betty, dear. After you've told me something,
+I'll do whatever you say, wait as long as you say. No, no! Listen!
+Don't break away from me. You don't hate me as you do the cat. I
+haven't been running under your feet all the time, have I, dear?
+Listen. See here, my arms are strong now. They can hold you forever,
+just like this. I've been thinking of you and dreaming of you and
+loving you through these years. You have never been out of my mind nor
+out of my heart. I've kept the little housewife you made me and bound
+with your cherry-colored hair ribbon until it is in rags, but I love
+it still. I love it. They took everything I had about me at the
+prison; but this--they gave back to me. It was the only thing I begged
+them to leave me."
+
+Poor little Betty! She tried to speak and tried again, but she could
+not utter a word. Her mouth grew dry and her knees would not support
+her. Richard was so big and strong he did not feel her weight, and
+only delighted in the thought that she resigned herself to him.
+"Darling little Betty! Darling little Betty! You do understand, don't
+you? Won't you tell me you do?"
+
+But she only closed her eyes and lay quite still. She longed to lift
+her arms and put them about his neck, and the effort not to do so
+only crushed her spirit the more. Now she knew she was bad, and
+unworthy such a great love as this. She had let Peter Junior kiss her,
+and she had told him she loved him--and it was nothing to this. She
+was not good; she was unworthy, and all the angels in heaven could
+never bring her comfort any more. She was so still he put his cheek to
+hers, and it seemed as if she moaned, and that without a sound.
+
+"Have I hurt you, Betty, dear?"
+
+"Oh, no, Richard, no."
+
+"Do you love me, sweet?"
+
+"Yes, Richard, yes. I love you so I could die of loving you, and I
+can't help it. Oh, Richard, I can't help it."
+
+"It's asking too much that you should love me so, and yet that's what
+my selfish, hungry heart wants and came here for."
+
+"Take your face away, Richard; stop. I must talk if it kills me. I
+have been so bad and wicked. Oh, Richard, I can't tell you how wicked.
+Let me stand by myself now. I can." She fought back the tears and
+turned her face away from him, but when he let go of her, in her
+weakness she swayed, and he caught her to him again, with many
+repeated words of tenderness.
+
+"If you will take me to the steps, Richard, and bring me a glass of
+water, I think I can talk to you then. You remember where things are
+in this house?"
+
+Did he remember? Was there anything he had forgotten about this
+beloved place? He brought her the water and she made him sit beside
+her, but not near, only that she need not look in his eyes.
+
+"Richard, I thought something was love--that was not--I didn't know.
+It was only liking--and--and now I--I've been so wrong--and I want to
+die--Oh, I want to die! No, don't. Do you want to make me sin again?
+Oh, Richard, Richard! If you had only come before! Now it is too
+late." She began sobbing bitterly, and her small frame shook with her
+grief.
+
+He seized her wrists and his hand trembled. She tried to cover her
+face with her hands, but he took them down and held them.
+
+"Betty, what have you done? Tell me--tell me quick."
+
+Then she turned her face toward him, wet with tears. "Have pity on me,
+Richard. Have pity on me, Richard, for my heart is broken, and the
+thing that hurts me most is that it will hurt you."
+
+"But it wasn't yesterday when I came to you out there in the woods. I
+heard you laughing, and you ran to meet me as happy as ever--"
+
+"You did not hear me laugh once again after you came and looked in my
+eyes there in the grove. It was in that instant that my heart began to
+break, and now I know why. Go back to Cheyenne. Go far away and never
+think of me any more. I am not worthy of you, anyway. I have let you
+hold me in your arms and kiss me when I ought not. Oh, I have been so
+bad--so bad! Let me hide my face. I can't look in your eyes any
+more."
+
+But he was cruel. He made her look in his eyes and tell him all the
+sorrowful truth. Then at last he grew pitiful again and tried brokenly
+to comfort her, to make her feel that something would intervene to
+help them, but in his heart he knew that his cause was lost, and his
+hopes burned within him, a heap of smoldering coals dying in their own
+ashes.
+
+He had always loved Peter Junior too well to blame him especially as
+Peter could not have known what havoc he was making of his cousin's
+hopes. It had all been a terrible mischance, and now they must make
+the best of it and be brave. Yet a feeling of resentment would creep
+into his heart in spite of his manful resolve to be fair to his
+cousin, and let nothing interfere with their lifelong friendship. In
+vain he told himself that Peter had the same right as he to seek
+Betty's love. Why not? Why should he think himself the only one to be
+considered? But there was Betty! And when he thought of her, his soul
+seemed to go out of him. Too late! Too late! And so he rose and walked
+sorrowfully away.
+
+When Mary Ballard came home from church, she found her little daughter
+up in her room on her knees beside her bed, her arms stretched out
+over the white counterpane, asleep. She had suffered until nature had
+taken her into her own soothing arms and put her to sleep through
+sheer weakness. Her cheeks were still burning and her eyelids red from
+weeping. Mary thought her in a fever, and gently helped her to remove
+the pretty muslin dress and got her to bed.
+
+Betty drew a long sigh as her head sank back into the pillow. "My head
+aches; don't worry, mother, dear." She thought her heart was closed
+forever on her terrible secret.
+
+"Mother'll bring you something for it, dear. You must have eaten
+something at the picnic that didn't agree with you." She kissed
+Betty's cheek, and at the door paused to look back on her, and a
+strange misgiving smote her.
+
+"I can't think what ails her," she said to Martha. "She seems to be
+in a high fever. Did she sleep well last night?"
+
+"Perfectly, but we talked a good while before we went to sleep.
+Perhaps she got too tired yesterday. I thought she seemed excited,
+too. Mrs. Walters always makes her coffee so strong."
+
+Peter Junior came in to dinner, buoyant and happy. He was disappointed
+not to see Betty, and frankly avowed it. He followed Mary into the
+kitchen and begged to be allowed to go up and speak to Betty for only
+a minute, but Mary thought sleep would be the best remedy and he would
+better leave her alone. He had been to church with his father, and all
+through the morning service as he sat at his father's side he had
+meditated how he could persuade the Elder to look on his plans with
+some degree of favor--enough at least to warrant him in going on with
+them and trust to his father's coming around in time.
+
+Neither he nor Richard were at the Elder's at dinner, and the meal
+passed in silence, except for a word now and then in regard to the
+sermon. Hester thought continually of her son and his hopes, but as
+she glanced from time to time in her husband's face she realized that
+silence on her part was still best. Whenever the Elder cleared his
+throat and looked off out of the window, as was his wont when about to
+speak of any matter of importance, her heart leaped and her eyes gazed
+intently at her plate, to hide the emotion she could not restrain. Her
+hands grew cold and her lips tremulous, but still she waited.
+
+It was the Elder's custom to sleep after the Sunday's dinner, which
+was always a hearty one, lying down on the sofa in the large parlor,
+where the closed blinds made a pleasant somberness. Hester passed the
+door and looked in on him, as he lay apparently asleep, his long, bony
+frame stretched out and the muscles of his strong face relaxing to a
+softness they sometimes assumed when sleeping. Her heart went out to
+him. Oh, if he only knew! If she only dared! His boy ought to love
+him, and understand him. If they would only understand!
+
+Then she went up into Peter Junior's room and sat there where she
+had sat seven years before--where she had often sat since--gazing
+across at the red-coated old ancestor, her hands in her lap, her
+thoughts busy with her son's future even as then. If all the others
+had lived, would the quandary and the struggle between opposing
+wills have been as great for each one as for this sole survivor?
+Where were those little ones now? Playing in happy fields and
+waiting for her and the stern old man who also suffered, but knew not
+how to reveal his heart? Again and again the words repeated
+themselves in her heart mechanically: "Wait on the Lord--Wait on the
+Lord," and then, again, "Oh, Lord, how long?"
+
+Peter Junior returned early from the Ballards', since he could not see
+Betty, leaving the field open for Martha and her guest, much to the
+guest's satisfaction. He went straight to the room occupied by Richard
+whenever he was with them, but no Richard was there. His valise was
+all packed ready for his start on the morrow, but there was no line
+pinned to the frame of the mirror telling Peter Junior where to find
+him, as was Richard's way in the past. With a fleeting glance around
+to see if any bit of paper had been blown away, he went to his own
+room and there he found his mother, waiting. In an instant that long
+ago morning came to his mind, and as then he went swiftly to her,
+and, kneeling, clasped her in his arms.
+
+"Are you worried, mother mine? It's all right. I will be careful and
+restrained. Don't be troubled."
+
+Hester clasped her boy's head to her bosom and rested her face against
+his soft hair. For a while the silence was deep and the moments burned
+themselves into the young man's soul with a purifying fire never to be
+forgotten. Presently she began speaking to him in low, murmuring
+tones: "Your father is getting to be an old man, Peter, dear, and I--I
+am no longer young. Our boy is dear to us--the dearest. In our
+different ways we long only for what is best for you. If only it might
+be revealed to you and us alike! Many paths are good paths to walk in,
+and the way may be happy in any one of them, for happiness is of the
+spirit. It is in you--not made for you by circumstances. We have been
+so happy here, since you came home wounded, and to be wounded is not a
+happy thing, as you well know; but it seemed to bring you and me
+happiness, nevertheless. Did it not, dear?"
+
+"Indeed yes, mother. Yes. It gave me a chance to have you to myself a
+lot, and that ought to make any man happy, with a mother like you. And
+now--a new happiness came to me, the other day, that I meant to speak
+of yesterday and couldn't after getting so angry with father. It
+seemed like sacrilege to speak of it then, and, besides, there was
+another feeling that made me hesitate."
+
+"So you are in love with some one, Peter?"
+
+"Yes, mother. How did you guess it?"
+
+"Because only love is a feeling that would make you say you could not
+speak of it when your heart is full of anger. Is it Betty, dear?"
+
+"Yes, mother. You are uncanny to read me so."
+
+She laughed softly and held him closer. "I love Betty, too, Peter. You
+will always be gentle and kind? You will never be hard and stern with
+her?"
+
+"Mother! Have I ever been so? Can't you tell by the way I have always
+acted toward you that I would be tender and kind? She will be
+myself--my very own. How could I be otherwise?"
+
+Again Hester smiled her slow, wise smile. "You have always been
+tender, Peter, but you have always gone right along and done your own
+way, absolutely. The only reason there has not been more friction
+between you and your father has been that you have been tactful; also
+you have never seemed to desire unworthy things. You have been a good
+son, dear: I am not complaining. And the only reason why I have
+never--or seldom--felt hurt by your taking your own way has been that
+my likings have usually responded to yours, and the thing I most
+desired was that you should be allowed to take your own way. It is
+good for a man to be decided and to have a way of his own: I have
+liked it in you. But the matter still stands that it has always been
+your way and never any one's else that you have taken. I can see you
+being stern even with a wife you thought you wholly loved if her will
+once crossed yours."
+
+Peter Junior was silent and a little hurt. He rose and paced the room.
+"I can't think I could ever cross Betty, or be unkind. It seems
+preposterous," he said at last.
+
+"Perhaps it might never seem to you necessary. Peter, boy, listen. You
+say: 'She will be myself--my very own.' Now what does that mean? Does
+it mean that when you are married, her personality will be merged in
+yours, and so you two will be one? If so, you will not be completed
+and rounded out, and she will be lost in you. A man does not reach his
+full manhood to completion until he has loved greatly and truly, and
+has found the one who is to complete him. At best, by ourselves, we
+are never wholly man or wholly woman until this great soul completion
+has taken place in us. Then children come to us, and our very souls
+are knit in one, and still the mystery goes on and on; never are we
+completed by being lost--either one--in the will or nature of the
+other; but to make the whole and perfect creature, each must retain
+the individuality belonging to himself or herself, each to each the
+perfect and equal other half."
+
+Peter Junior paused in his walk and stood for a moment looking
+down on his mother, awed by what she revealed to him of her inner
+nature. "I believe you have done this, mother. You have kept your
+own individuality complete, and father doesn't know it."
+
+"Not yet, but my hand will always be in his, and some day he will
+know. You are very like him, and yet you understand me as he never
+has, so you see how our oneness is wrought out in you. That which you
+have in you of your father is good and strong: never lose it. The day
+may come when you will be glad to have had such a father. Out in the
+world men need such traits; but you must not forget that sometimes it
+takes more strength to yield than to hold your own way. Yes, it takes
+strength and courage sometimes to give up--and tremendous faith in
+God. There! I hear him walking about. Go down and have your talk with
+him. Remember what I say, dear, and don't get angry with your father.
+He loves you, too."
+
+"Have you said anything to him yet about--me--mother?"
+
+"No. I have decided that it will be better for you to deal with him
+yourself--courageously. You'll remember?"
+
+Peter Junior took her again in his arms as she rose and stood beside
+him, and kissed her tenderly. "Yes, mother. Dear, good, wise mother!
+I'll try to remember all. It would have been easier for you, maybe, if
+ever father's mother had said to him the things you have just said to
+me."
+
+"Life teaches us these things. If we keep an open mind, so God fills
+it."
+
+She stood still in the middle of the room, listening to his rapid
+steps in the direction of the parlor. Then Hester did a thing very
+unusual for her to do of a Sunday. She put on her shawl and bonnet and
+walked out to see Mary Ballard.
+
+No one ever knew what passed between Peter Junior and his father in
+that parlor. The Elder did not open his lips about it either at home
+or at the bank.
+
+That Sunday evening some one saw Peter Junior and his cousin walking
+together up the bluff where the old camp had stood, toward the sunset.
+The path had many windings, and the bluff was dark and brown, and the
+two figures stood out clear and strong against the sky of gold. That
+was the last seen of either of the young men in the village. The one
+who saw them told later that he knew they were "the twins" because one
+of them walked with a stick and limped a little, and that the other
+was talking as if he were very much in earnest about something, for he
+was moving his arm up and down and gesticulating.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XII
+
+MYSTERIOUS FINDINGS
+
+
+Monday morning Elder Craigmile walked to the bank with the stubborn
+straightening of the knees at each step that always betokened
+irritation with him. Neither of the young men had appeared at
+breakfast, a matter peculiarly annoying to him. Peter Junior he had
+not expected to see, as, owing to his long period of recovery, he had
+naturally been excused from rigorous rules, but his nephew surely
+might have done that much out of courtesy, where he had always been
+treated as a son, to promote the orderliness of the household. It was
+unpardonable in the young man to lie abed in the morning thus when a
+guest in that home. It was a mistake of his wife to allow Peter Junior
+a night key. It induced late hours. He would take it from him. And as
+for Richard--there was no telling what habits he had fallen into
+during these years of wandering. What if he had come home to them with
+a clear skin and laughing eye! Was not the "heart of man deceitful
+above all things and desperately wicked"? And was not Satan abroad in
+the world laying snares for the feet of wandering youths?
+
+It was still early enough for many of the workmen to be on their way
+to their day of labor with their tin dinner pails, and among them Mr.
+Walters passed him, swinging his pail with the rest, although he was
+master of his own foundry and employed fifty men. He had always gone
+early to work, and carried his tin pail when he was one of the
+workmen, and he still did it from choice. He, too, was a Scotchman of
+a slightly different class from the Elder, it is true, but he was a
+trustee of the church, and a man well respected in the community.
+
+He touched his hat to the Elder, and the Elder nodded in return, but
+neither spoke a word. Mr. Walters smiled after he was well past. "The
+man has a touch of the indigestion," he said.
+
+When the Elder entered his front door at noon, his first glance was at
+the rack in the corner of the hall, where, on the left-hand hook,
+Peter Junior's coat and hat had hung when he was at home, ever since
+he was a boy. They were not there. The Elder lifted his bushy brows
+one higher than the other, then drew them down to their usual straight
+line, and walked on into the dining room. His wife was not there, but
+in a moment she entered, looking white and perturbed.
+
+"Peter!" she said, going up to her husband instead of taking her place
+opposite him, "Peter!" She laid a trembling hand on his arm. "I
+haven't seen the boys this morning. Their beds have not been slept
+in."
+
+"Quiet yourself, lass, quiet yourself. Sit and eat in peace. 'Evil
+communications corrupt good manners,' but when doom strikes him, he'll
+maybe experience a change of heart." The Elder spoke in a tone not
+unkindly. He seated himself heavily.
+
+Then his wife silently took her place at the table and he bowed his
+head and repeated the grace to which she had listened three times a
+day for nearly thirty years, only that this time he added the request
+that the Lord would, in his "merciful kindness, strike terror to the
+hearts of all evildoers and turn them from their way."
+
+When the silent meal was ended, Hester followed her husband to the
+door and laid a detaining hand on his arm. He stood and looked down on
+that slender white hand as if it were something that too sudden a
+movement would joggle off, and she did not know that it was as if she
+had laid her hand on his very heart. "Peter, tell me what happened
+yesterday afternoon. You should tell me, Peter."
+
+Then the Elder did an unwonted thing. He placed his hand over hers and
+pressed it harder on his arm, and after an instant's pause he stooped
+and kissed her on the forehead.
+
+"I spoke the lad fair, Hester, and made him an offer, but he would
+none of it. He thinks he is his own master, but I have put him in the
+Lord's hands."
+
+"Has he gone, Peter?"
+
+"Maybe, but the offer I made him was a good one. Comfort your heart,
+lass. If he's gone, he will return. When the Devil holds the whip, he
+makes a hard bargain, and drives fast. When the boy is hard pressed,
+he will be glad to return to his father's house."
+
+"Richard's valise is gone. The maid says he came late yesterday after
+I was gone, and took it away with him."
+
+"They are likely gone together."
+
+"But Peter's things are all here. No, they would never go like that
+and not bid me good-by."
+
+The Elder threw out his hands with his characteristic downward gesture
+of impatience. "I have no way of knowing, more than you. It is no
+doubt that Richard has become a ne'er-do-weel. He felt shame to tell
+us he was going a journey on the Sabbath day."
+
+"Oh, Peter, I think not. Peter, be just. You know your son was never
+one to let the Devil drive; he is like yourself, Peter. And as for
+Richard, Peter Junior would never think so much of him if he were a
+ne'er-do-weel."
+
+"Women are foolish and fond. It is their nature, and perhaps that is
+how we love them most, but the men should rule, for their own good. A
+man should be master in his own house. When the lad returns, the door
+is open to him. That is enough."
+
+With a sorrowful heart he left her, and truth to tell, the sorrow was
+more for his wife's hurt than for his own. The one great tenderness of
+his life was his feeling for her, and this she felt rather than knew;
+but he believed himself absolutely right and that the hurt was
+inevitable, and for her was intensified by her weakness and fondness.
+
+As for Hester, she turned away from the door and went quietly about
+her well-ordered house, directing the maidservant and looking
+carefully over her husband's wardrobe. Then she did the same for Peter
+Junior's, and at last, taking her basket of mending, she sat in the
+large, lace-curtained window looking out toward the west--the
+direction from which Peter Junior would be likely to come. For how
+long she would sit there during the days to come--waiting--she little
+knew.
+
+She was comforted by the thought of the talk she had had with him the
+day before. She knew he was upright, and she felt that this
+quarrel--if it had been a quarrel--with his father would surely be
+healed; and then, there was Betty to call him back. The love of a girl
+was a good thing for a man. It would be stronger to draw him and hold
+him than love of home or of mother; it was the divine way for
+humanity, and it was a good way, and she must be patient and wait.
+
+She was glad she had gone without delay to Mary Ballard. The two women
+were fond of each other, and the visit had been most satisfactory.
+Betty she had not seen, for the maiden was still sleeping the long,
+heavy sleep which saves a normal healthy body from wreck after severe
+emotion. Betty was so young--it might be best that matters should wait
+awhile as they were.
+
+If Peter Junior went to Paris now, he would have to earn his own way,
+of course, and possibly he had gone west with Richard where he could
+earn faster than at home. Maybe that had been the grounds of the
+quarrel. Surely she would hear from him soon. Perhaps he had taken
+their talk on Sunday afternoon as a good-by to her; or he might yet
+come to her and tell her his plans. So she comforted herself in the
+most wholesome and natural way.
+
+Richard's action in taking his valise away during her absence and
+leaving no word of farewell for her was more of a surprise to her. But
+then--he might have resented the Elder's attitude and sided with his
+cousin. Or, he might have feared he would say things he would
+afterwards regret, if he appeared, and so have taken himself quietly
+away. Still, these reasons did not wholly appeal to her, and she was
+filled with misgivings for him even more than for her son.
+
+Peter Junior she trusted absolutely and Richard she loved as a son;
+but there was much of his father in him, and the Irish nature was
+erratic and wild, as the Elder said. Where was that father now? No
+one knew. It was one of the causes for anxiety she had for the boy
+that his father had been lost to them all ever since Richard's birth
+and his wife's death. He had gone out of their lives as completely as
+a candle in a gale of wind. She had mothered the boy, and the Elder
+had always been kind to him for his own dead sister's sake, but of the
+father they never spoke.
+
+It was while Hester Craigmile sat in her western window, thinking her
+thoughts, that two lads came hurrying down the bluff from the old camp
+ground, breathless and awed. One carried a straw hat, and the other a
+stout stick--a stick with an irregular knob at the end. It was Larry
+Kildene's old blackthorn that Peter Junior had been carrying. The
+Ballards' home was on the way between the bluff and the village, and
+Mary Ballard was standing at their gate watching for the children from
+school. She wished Jamie to go on an errand for her.
+
+Mary noticed the agitation of the boys. They were John Walters and
+Charlie Dean--two chums who were always first to be around when there
+was anything unusual going on, or to be found. It was they who
+discovered the fire in the foundry in time to have it put out. It was
+they who knew where the tramps were hiding who had been stealing from
+the village stores, and now Mary wondered what they had discovered.
+She left the gate swinging open and walked down to meet them.
+
+"What is it, boys?"
+
+"We--we--found these--and--there's something happened," panted the
+boys, both speaking at once.
+
+She took the hat of white straw from John's hand. "Why! This is Peter
+Junior's hat! Where did you find it?" She turned it about and saw
+dark red stains, as if it had been grasped by a bloody hand--finger
+marks of blood plainly imprinted on the rim.
+
+"And this, Mrs. Ballard," said Charlie, putting Peter Junior's stick
+in her hand, and pointing to the same red stains sunken into the knob.
+"We think there's been a fight and some one's been hit with this."
+
+She took it and looked at it in a dazed way. "Yes. He was carrying
+this in the place of his crutch," she said, as if to herself.
+
+"We think somebody's been pushed over the bluff into the river, Mrs.
+Ballard, for they's a hunk been tore out as big as a man, from the
+edge, and it's gone clean over, and down into the river. We can see
+where it is gone. And it's an awful swift place."
+
+She handed the articles back to the boys.
+
+"Sit down in the shade here, and I'll bring you some sweet apples, and
+if any one comes by, don't say anything about it until I have time to
+consult with Mr. Ballard."
+
+She hurried back and passed quickly around the house, and on to her
+husband, who was repairing the garden fence.
+
+"Bertrand, come with me quickly. Something serious has happened. I
+don't want Betty to hear of it until we know what it is."
+
+They hastened to the waiting boys, and together they slowly climbed
+the long path leading to the old camping place. Bertrand carried the
+stick and the hat carefully, for they were matters of great moment.
+
+"This looks grave," he said, when the boys had told him their story.
+
+"Perhaps we ought to have brought some one with us--if anything--"
+said Mary.
+
+"No, no; better wait and see, before making a stir."
+
+It was a good half hour's walk up the hill, and every moment of the
+time seemed heavily freighted with foreboding. They said no more until
+they reached the spot where the boys had found the edge of the bluff
+torn away. There, for a space of about two feet only, back from the
+brink, the sparse grass was trampled, and the earth showed marks of
+heels and in places the sod was freshly torn up.
+
+"There's been something happened here, you see," said Charlie Dean.
+
+"Here is where a foot has been braced to keep from being pushed over;
+see, Mary? And here again."
+
+"I see indeed." Mary looked, and stooping, picked something from the
+ground that glinted through the loosened earth. She held it on her
+open palm toward Bertrand, and the two boys looked intently at it. Her
+husband did not touch it, but glanced quickly into her eyes and then
+at the boys. Then her fingers closed over it, and taking her
+handkerchief she tied it in one corner securely.
+
+"Did you ever see anything like it, boys?" she asked.
+
+"No, ma'am. It's a watch charm, isn't it? Or what?"
+
+"I suppose it must be."
+
+"I guess the fellah that was being pushed over must 'a' grabbed for
+the other fellah's watch. Maybe he was trying to rob him."
+
+"Let's see whether we can find anything else," said John Walters,
+peering over the bluff.
+
+"Don't, John, don't. You may fall over. It might have been a fall, and
+one of them might have been trying to save the other, you know. He
+might have caught at him and pulled this off. There's no reason why we
+should surmise the worst."
+
+"They might ha' been playing--you know--wrestling--and it might 'a'
+happened so," said Charlie.
+
+"Naw! They'd been big fools to wrestle so near the edge of the bluff
+as this," said the practical John. "I see something white way down
+there, Mrs. Ballard. I can get it, I guess."
+
+"But take care, John. Go further round by the path."
+
+Both boys ran along the bluff until they came to a path that led down
+to the river. "Do be careful, boys!" called Mary.
+
+"Now, let me see that again, my dear," and Mary untied the handkerchief.
+"Yes, it is what I thought. That belonged to Larry Kildene. He got it
+in India, although he said it was Chinese. He was a year in the
+British service in India. I've often examined it. I should have known
+it anywhere. He must have left it with Hester for the boy."
+
+"Poor Larry! And it has come to this. I remember it on Richard's chain
+when he came out there to meet us in the grove. Bertrand, what shall
+we do? They must have been here--and have quarreled--and what has
+happened! I'm going back to ask Betty."
+
+"Ask Betty! My dear! What can Betty know about it?"
+
+"Something upset her terribly yesterday morning. She was ill and with
+no cause that I could see, and I believe she had had a nervous
+shock."
+
+"But she seemed all right this morning,--a little pale, but otherwise
+quite herself." Bertrand turned the little charm over in his hand.
+"He thought it was Chinese because it is jade, but this carving is
+Egyptian. I don't think it is jade, and I don't think it is Chinese."
+
+"But whatever it is, it was on Richard's chain Saturday," said Mary,
+sadly. "And now, what can we do? On second thought I'll say nothing to
+Betty. If a tragedy has come upon the Craigmiles, it will also fall on
+her now, and we must spare her all of it we can, until we know."
+
+A call came to them from below, and Bertrand hastily handed the charm
+back to his wife, and she tied it again in her handkerchief.
+
+"Oh, Bertrand, don't go near that terrible brink. It might give way.
+I'm sure this has been an accident."
+
+"But the stick, Mary, and the marks of blood on Peter Junior's hat.
+I'm afraid--afraid."
+
+"But they were always fond of each other. They have been like
+brothers."
+
+"And quarrels between brothers are often the bitterest."
+
+"But we have never heard of their quarreling, and they were so glad to
+see each other Saturday. And you know Peter Junior was always
+possessed to do whatever Richard planned. They were that way about
+enlisting, you remember, and everything else. What cause could Richard
+have against Peter Junior?"
+
+"We can't say it was Richard against Peter. You see the stick was
+bloody, and it was Peter's. We must offer no opinion, no matter what
+we think, for the world may turn against the wrong one, and only time
+will tell."
+
+They both were silent as the boys came panting up the bank. "Here's a
+handkerchief. It was what I saw. It was caught on a thorn bush, and
+here--here's Peter Junior's little notebook, with his name--"
+
+"This is Peter's handkerchief. P. C. J. Hester Craigmile embroidered
+those letters." Mary's eyes filled with tears. "Bertrand, we must go
+to her. She may hear in some terrible way."
+
+"And the book, where was that, John?"
+
+"It was lying on that flat rock. John had to crawl along the ledge on
+his belly to get it; and here, I found this lead pencil," cried
+Charlie, excited and important.
+
+"'Faber No. 2.' Yes, this was also Peter's." Bertrand shut it in the
+notebook. "Mary, this looks sinister. We'd better go down. There's
+nothing more to learn here."
+
+"Maybe we'll find the young men both safely at home."
+
+"Richard was to leave early this morning."
+
+"I remember."
+
+Sadly they returned, and the two boys walked with them, gravely and
+earnestly propounding one explanation after another.
+
+"You'd better go back to the house, Mary, and I'll go on to the
+village with the boys. We'll consult with your father, John; he's a
+thoughtful man, and--"
+
+"And he's a coroner, too--" said John.
+
+"Yes, but if there's nobody found, who's he goin' to sit on?"
+
+"They don't sit on the body, they sit on the jury," said John, with
+contempt.
+
+"Don't I know that? But they've got to find the body, haven't they,
+before they can sit on anything? Guess I know that much."
+
+"Now, boys," said Bertrand, "this may turn out to be a very grave
+matter, and you must keep silent about it. It won't do to get the town
+all stirred up about it and all manner of rumors afloat. It must be
+looked into quietly first, by responsible people, and you must keep
+all your opinions and surmises to yourselves until the truth can be
+learned."
+
+"Don't walk, Bertrand; take the carryall, and these can be put under
+the seat. Boys, if you'll go back there in the garden, you'll find
+some more apples, and I'll fetch you out some cookies to go with
+them." The boys briskly departed. "I don't want Betty to see them, and
+we'll be silent until we know what to tell her," Mary added, as they
+walked slowly up the front path.
+
+Bertrand turned off to the stable, carrying the sad trophies with him,
+and Mary entered the house. She looked first for Betty, but no Betty
+was to be found, and the children were at home clamoring for something
+to eat. They always came home from school ravenously hungry. Mary
+hastily packed them a basket of fruit and cookies and sent them to
+play picnic down by the brook. Still no Betty appeared.
+
+"Where is she?" asked Bertrand, as he entered the kitchen after
+bringing up the carryall.
+
+"I don't know. She may have gone over to Clara Dean's. She spoke of
+going there to-day. I'm glad--rather."
+
+"Yes, yes."
+
+A little later in the day, almost closing time at the bank, James
+Walters and Bertrand Ballard entered and asked to see the Elder. They
+were shown into the director's room, and found him seated alone at the
+great table in the center. He pushed his papers one side and rose,
+greeting them with his grave courtesy, as usual.
+
+Mr. Walters, a shy man of few words, looked silently at Mr. Ballard
+to speak, while the Elder urged them to be seated. "A warm day for the
+season, and very pleasant to have it so. We'll hope the winter may
+come late this year."
+
+"Yes, yes. We wish to inquire after your son, Elder Craigmile. Is he
+at home to-day?"
+
+"Ah, yes. He was not at home--not when I left this noon." The Elder
+cleared his throat and looked keenly at his friend. "Is it--ahem--a
+matter of business, Mr. Ballard?"
+
+"Unfortunately, no. We have come to inquire if he--when he was last at
+home--or if his cousin--has been with you?"
+
+"Not Richard, no. He came unexpectedly and has gone with as little
+ceremony, but my son was here on the Sabbath--ahem--He dined that day
+with you, Mr. Ballard?"
+
+"He did--but--Elder, will you come with us? A matter with regard to
+him and his cousin should be looked into."
+
+"It is not necessary for me to interfere in matters regarding my son
+any longer. He has taken the ordering of his life in his own hands
+hereafter. As for Richard, he has long been his own master."
+
+"Elder, I beg you to come with us. We fear foul play of some sort. It
+is not a question now of family differences of opinion."
+
+The Elder's face remained immovable, and Bertrand reluctantly added,
+"We fear either your son or his cousin, possibly both of them, have
+met with disaster--maybe murder."
+
+A pallor crept over the Elder's face, and without a word further he
+took his hat from a hook in the corner of the room, paused, and then
+carefully arranged the papers he had pushed aside at their entrance
+and placing them in his desk, turned the key, still without a word. At
+the door he waited a moment with his hand on the knob, and with the
+characteristic lift of his brows, asked: "Has anything been said to my
+wife?"
+
+"No, no. We thought best to do nothing until under your direction."
+
+"Thank you. That's well. Whatever comes, I would spare her all I
+can."
+
+The three then drove slowly back to the top of the bluff, and on the
+way Bertrand explained to the Elder all that had transpired. "It
+seemed best to Mary and me that you should look the ground over
+yourself, before any action be taken. We hoped appearances might be
+deceptive, and that you would have information that would set our
+fears at rest before news of a mystery should reach the town."
+
+"Where are the boys who found these things?"
+
+Mr. Walters spoke, "My son was one of them, and he is now at home.
+They are forbidden to speak to any one until we know more about it."
+
+Arrived at the top of the bluff the three men went carefully over the
+ground, even descending the steep path to the margin of the river.
+
+"There," said Bertrand, "the notebook was picked up on that flat rock
+which juts out from that narrow ledge. John Walters crawled along the
+ledge to get it. The handkerchief was caught on that thorn shrub,
+halfway up, see? And the pencil was picked up down here, somewhere."
+
+The Elder looked up to the top of the bluff and down at the rushing
+river beneath, and as he looked he seemed visibly to shrink and become
+in the instant an old man--older by twenty years. As they climbed back
+again, his shoulders drooped and his breath came hard. As they neared
+the top, Bertrand turned and gave him his aid to gain a firm footing
+above.
+
+"Don't forget that we can't always trust to appearances," he urged.
+
+"Some heavy body--heavier than a clod of earth, has gone down there,"
+said the Elder, and his voice sounded weak and thin.
+
+"Yes, yes. But even so, a stone may have been dislodged. You can't be
+sure."
+
+"Ay, the lads might have been wrestling in play--or the like--and sent
+a rock over; it's like lads, that," hazarded Mr. Walters.
+
+"Wrestling on the Sabbath evening! They are men, not lads."
+
+Mr. Walters looked down in embarrassment, and the old man continued.
+"Would a stone leave a handkerchief clinging to a thorn? Would it
+leave a notebook thrown down on yonder rock?" The Elder lifted his
+head and looked to the sky: holding one hand above his head he shook
+it toward heaven. "Would a stone leave a hat marked with a bloody
+hand--my son's hat? There has been foul play here. May the curse of
+God fall on him who has robbed me of my son, be he stranger or my own
+kin."
+
+His voice broke and he reeled backward and would have fallen over the
+brink but for Bertrand's quickness. Then, trembling and bowed, his two
+friends led him back to the carryall and no further word was spoken
+until they reached the village, when the Elder said:--
+
+"Will you kindly drive me to the bank, Mr. Ballard?"
+
+They did so. No one was there, and the Elder quietly unlocked the door
+and carried the articles found on the bluff into the room beyond and
+locked them away. Bertrand followed him, loath to leave him thus, and
+anxious to make a suggestion. The Elder opened the door of a cupboard
+recessed into the wall and laid the hat on a high shelf. Then he took
+the stick and looked at it with a sudden awakening in his eyes as if
+he saw it for the first time.
+
+"This stick--this blackthorn stick--accursed! How came it here? I
+thought it had been burned. It was left years ago in my front hall
+by--Richard's father. I condemned it to be burned."
+
+"Peter Junior was using that in place of his crutch, no doubt because
+of its strength. He had it at my house, and I recognize it now as one
+Larry brought over with him--"
+
+"Peter was using it! My God! My God! The blow was struck with this. It
+is my son who is the murderer, and I have called down the curse of God
+on him? It falls--it falls on me!" He sank in his chair--the same in
+which he had sat when he talked with Peter Junior--and bowed his head
+in his arms. "It is enough, Mr. Ballard. Will you leave me?"
+
+"I can't leave you, sir: there is more to be said. We must not be
+hasty in forming conclusions. If any one was thrown over the bluff, it
+must have been your son, for he was lame and could not have saved
+himself. If he struck any one, he could not have killed him; for
+evidently he got away, unless he also went over the brink. If he got
+away, he must be found. There is something for you to do, Elder
+Craigmile."
+
+The old man lifted his head and looked in Bertrand's face, pitifully
+seeking there for help. "You are a good man, Mr. Ballard. I need your
+counsel and help."
+
+"First, we will go below the rapids and search; the sooner the better,
+for in the strong current there is no telling how far--"
+
+"Yes, we will search." The Elder lifted himself to his full height,
+inspired by the thought of action. "We'll go now." He looked down on
+his shorter friend, and Bertrand looked up to him, his genial face
+saddened with sympathy, yet glowing with kindliness.
+
+"Wait a little, Elder; let us consider further. Mr. Walters--sit down,
+Elder Craigmile, for a moment--Mr. Walters is capable, and he can
+organize the search; for if you keep this from your wife, you must be
+discreet. Here is something I haven't shown you before. It is the
+charm from Richard's watch. It was almost covered with earth where
+they had been struggling, and Mary found it. You see there is a
+mystery--and let us hope whatever happened was an accident. The
+evidences are so--so--mingled, that no one may know whom to blame."
+
+The Elder looked down on the charm without touching it, as it lay on
+Bertrand's palm. "That belonged--" his lips twitched--"that belonged
+to the man who took from me my twin sister. The shadow--forever the
+shadow of Larry Kildene hangs over me." He was silent for some
+moments, then he said: "Mr. Ballard, if, after the search, my son is
+found to be murdered, I will put a detective on the trail of the man
+who did the deed, and be he whom he may, he shall hang."
+
+"Hush, Elder Craigmile; in Wisconsin men are not hanged."
+
+"I tell you--be he whom he may--he shall suffer what is worse than to
+be hanged, he shall enter the living grave of a life imprisonment."
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XIII
+
+CONFESSION
+
+
+By Monday evening there were only two people in all the small town of
+Leauvite who had not heard of the tragedy, and these were Hester
+Craigmile and Betty Ballard. Mary doubted if it was wise to keep
+Hester thus in ignorance, but it was the Elder's wish, and at his
+request she went to spend the evening and if necessary the night with
+his wife, to fend off any officious neighbor, while he personally
+directed the search.
+
+It was the Elder's firm belief that his son had been murdered, yet he
+thought if no traces should be found of Peter Junior, he might be able
+to spare Hester the agony of that belief. He preferred her to think
+her son had gone off in anger and would sometime return. He felt
+himself justified in this concealment, fearing that if she knew the
+truth, she might grieve herself into her grave, and his request to
+Mary to help him had been made so pitifully and humbly that her heart
+melted at the sight of the old man's sorrow, and she went to spend
+those weary hours with his wife.
+
+As the Elder sometimes had meetings of importance to take him away of
+an evening, Hester did not feel surprise at his absence, and she
+accepted Mary's visit as one of sweet friendliness and courtesy
+because of Peter's engagement to Betty. Nor did she wonder that the
+visit was made without Bertrand, as Mary said he and the Elder had
+business together, and she thought she would spend the time with her
+friend until their return.
+
+That was all quite as it should be and very pleasant, and Hester
+filled the moments with cheerful chat, showing Mary certain pieces of
+cloth from which she proposed to make dainty garments for Betty, to
+help Mary with the girl's wedding outfit. To Mary it all seemed like a
+dream as she locked the sad secret in her heart and listened. Her
+friend's sorrow over Peter Junior's disagreement with his father and
+his sudden departure from the home was tempered by the glad hope that
+after all the years of anxiety, she was some time to have a daughter
+to love, and that her boy and his wife would live near them, and her
+home might again know the sound of happy children's voices. The sweet
+thoughts brought her gladness and peace of mind, and Mary's visit made
+the dream more sure of ultimate fulfillment.
+
+Mary felt the Elder's wish lie upon her with the imperative force of a
+law, and she did not dare disregard his request that on no account was
+Hester to be told the truth. So she gathered all her fortitude and
+courage to carry her through this ordeal. She examined the fine linen
+that had been brought to Hester years ago from Scotland by Richard's
+mother, and while she praised it she listened for steps without; the
+heavy tread of men bringing a sorrowful and terrible burden. But the
+minutes wore on, and no such sounds came, and the hour grew late.
+
+"They may have gone out of town. Bertrand said something about it, and
+told me to stay until he called for me, if I stayed all night." Mary
+tried to laugh over it, and Hester seized the thought gayly.
+
+"We'll go to bed, anyway, and your husband may just go home without
+you when he comes."
+
+And after a little longer wait they went to bed, and Hester slept, but
+Mary lay wakeful and fearing, until in the early morning, while it was
+yet dark, she heard the Elder slowly climb the stairs and go to his
+room. Then she also slept, hoping against hope, that they had found
+nothing.
+
+Betty's pride and shame had caused her to keep her trouble to herself.
+She knew Richard had gone forever, and she dreaded Peter Junior's next
+visit. What should she do! Oh, what should she do! Should she tell
+Peter she did not love him, and that all had been a mistake? She must
+humble herself before him, and what excuse had she to make for all the
+hours she had given him, and the caresses she had accepted? Ah! If
+only she could make the last week as if it had never been! She was
+shamed before her mother, who had seen him kiss her. She was ashamed
+even in her own room in the darkness to think of all Peter Junior had
+said to her, and the love he had lavished on her. Ought she to break
+her word to him and beg him to forget? Ah! Neither he nor she could
+ever forget.
+
+Her brothers had been forbidden to tell her a word of the reports that
+were already abroad in the town, and now they were both in bed and
+asleep, and little Janey was cuddled in Betty's bed, also in
+dreamland. At last, when neither her father nor her mother returned
+and she could bear her own thoughts no longer, she brought drawing
+materials down from the studio and spread them out on the dining room
+table.
+
+She had decided she would never marry any one--never. How could she!
+But she would study in earnest and be an illustrator. If women could
+never become great artists, as Peter Junior said, at least they might
+illustrate books; and sometime--maybe--when her heart was not so sad,
+she might write books, and she could illustrate them herself. Ah, that
+would almost make up for what she must go without all her life.
+
+For a while she worked painstakingly, but all the time it seemed as
+though she could hear Richard's voice, and the words he had said to
+her Sunday morning kept repeating themselves over and over in her
+mind. Then the tears fell one by one and blurred her work, until at
+last she put her head down on her arms and wept. Then the door opened
+very softly and Richard entered. Swiftly he came to her and knelt at
+her side. He put his head on her knee, and his whole body shook with
+tearless sobs he could not restrain. He was faint and weak. She could
+not know the whole cause of his grief, and thought he suffered because
+of her. She must comfort him--but alas! What could she say? How could
+she comfort him?
+
+She put her trembling hand on his head and found the hair matted and
+stiff. Then she saw a wound above his temple, and knew he was hurt,
+and cried out: "You are hurt--you are hurt! Oh, Richard! Let me do
+something for you."
+
+He clasped her in his arms, but still did not look up at her, and
+Betty forgot all her shame, and her lessons in propriety. She lifted
+his head to her bosom and laid her cheek upon his and said all the
+comforting things that came into her heart. She begged him to let her
+wash his wound and to tell her how he came by it. She forgot
+everything, except that she loved him and told him over and over the
+sweet confession.
+
+At last he found strength to speak to her brokenly. "Never love me any
+more, Betty. I've committed a terrible crime--Oh, my God! And you will
+hear of it Give me a little milk. I've eaten nothing since yesterday
+morning, when I saw you. Then I'll try to tell you what you must
+know--what all the world will tell you soon."
+
+He rose and staggered to a chair and she brought him milk and bread
+and meat, but she would not let him talk to her until he had allowed
+her to wash the wound on his head and bind it up. As she worked the
+touch of her hands seemed to bring him sane thoughts in spite of the
+horror of himself that possessed him, and he was enabled to speak more
+coherently.
+
+"If I had not been crazed when I looked through the window and saw you
+crying, Betty, I would never have let you see me or touch me again.
+It's only adding one crime to another to come near you. I meant just
+to look in and see if I could catch one glimpse of you, and then was
+going to lose myself to all the world, or else give myself up to be
+hung." Then he was silent, and she began to question him.
+
+"Don't! Richard. Hung? What have you done? What do you mean? When was
+it?"
+
+"Sunday night."
+
+"But you had to start for Cheyenne early this morning. Where have you
+been all day? I thought you were gone forever, dear."
+
+"I hid myself down by the river. I lay there all day, and heard them
+talking, but I couldn't see them nor they me. It was a hiding place we
+knew of when our camp was there--Peter Junior and I. He's gone. I did
+it--I did it with murder in my heart--Oh, my God!"
+
+"Don't, Richard. You must tell me nothing except as I ask you. It is
+not as if we did not love each other. What you have done I must help
+you bear--as--as wives help their husbands--for I will never marry;
+but all my life my heart will be married to yours." He reached for her
+hands and covered them with kisses and moaned. "No, Richard, don't.
+Eat the bread and meat I have brought you. You've eaten nothing for
+two days, and everything may seem worse to you than it is."
+
+"No, no!"
+
+"Richard, I'll go away from you and leave you here alone if you don't
+eat."
+
+"Yes, I must eat--not only now--but all the rest of my life, I must
+eat to live and repent. He was my dearest friend. I taunted him and
+said bitter things. I goaded him. I was insane with rage and at last
+so was he. He struck me--and--and I--I was trying to push him over the
+bluff--"
+
+Slowly it dawned on Betty what Richard's talk really meant.
+
+"Not Peter? Oh, Richard--not Peter!" She shrank from him, wide-eyed in
+terror.
+
+"He would have killed me--for I know what was in his heart as well as
+I knew what was in my own--and we were both seeing red. I've felt it
+sometimes in battle, and the feeling makes a man drunken. A man will
+do anything then. We'd been always friends--and yet we were drunken
+with hate; and now--he--he is better off than I. I must live. Unless
+for the disgrace to my relatives, I would give myself up to be
+hanged. It would be better to take the punishment than to live in such
+torture as this."
+
+The tears coursed fast down Betty's cheeks. Slowly she drew nearer
+him, and bent down to him as he sat, until she could look into his
+eyes. "What were you quarreling about, Richard?"
+
+"Don't ask me, darling Betty."
+
+"What was it, Richard?"
+
+"All my life you will be the sweet help to me--the help that may keep
+me from death in life. To carry in my soul the remembrance of last
+night will need all the help God will let me have. If I had gone away
+quietly, you and Peter Junior would have been married and have been
+happy--but--"
+
+"No, no. Oh, Richard, no. I knew in a moment when you came--"
+
+"Yes, Betty, dear, Peter Junior was good and faithful; and he might
+have been able to undo all the harm I had done. He could have taught
+you to love him. I have done the devil's work--and then I killed
+him--Oh, my God! My God!"
+
+"How do you know you pushed him over? He may have fallen over. You
+don't know it. He may have--"
+
+"Hush, dearest. I did it. When I came to myself, it was in the night;
+and it must have been late, for the moon was set. I could only see
+faintly that something white lay near me. I felt of it, and it was
+Peter Junior's hat. Then I felt all about for him--and he was gone and
+I crawled to the edge of the bluff--but although I knew he was gone
+over there and washed by the terrible current far down the river by
+that time, I couldn't follow him, whether from cowardice or weakness.
+I tried to get on my feet and could not. Then I must have fainted
+again, for all the world faded away, and I thought maybe the blow had
+done for me and I might not have to leap over there, after all. I
+could feel myself slipping away.
+
+"When I awoke, the sun was shining and a bird was singing just as if
+nothing had happened, and I thought I had been dreaming an awful
+dream--but there was the wound on my head and I was alive. Then I went
+farther down the river and came back to the hiding place and crept in
+there to wait and think. Then, after a long while, the boys came, and
+I was terrified for fear they were searching for me. That is the
+shameful truth, Betty. I feared. I never knew what fear was before.
+Betty, fear is shameful. There I have been all day--waiting--for what,
+I do not know; but it seemed that if I could only have one little
+glimpse of you I could go bravely and give myself up. I will now--"
+
+"No, Richard; it would do no good for you to die such a death. It
+would undo nothing, and change nothing. Peter was angry, too, and he
+struck you, and if he could have his way he would not want you to die.
+I say maybe he is living now. He may not have gone over."
+
+"It's no use, Betty. He went down. I pushed him into that terrible
+river. I did it. I--I--I!" Richard only moaned the words in a whisper
+of despair, and the horror of it all began to deepen and crush down
+upon Betty. She retreated, step by step, until she backed against the
+door leading to her chamber, and there she stood gazing at him with
+her hand pressed over her lips to keep herself from crying out. Then
+she saw him rise and turn toward the door without looking at her
+again, his head bowed in grief, and the sight roused her. As the door
+closed between them she ran and threw it open and followed him out
+into the darkness.
+
+"I can't, Richard. I can't let you go like this!" She clung to him,
+sobbing her heart out on his bosom, and he clasped her and held her
+warm little body close.
+
+"I'm like a drowning man pulling you under with me. Your tears drown
+me. I would not have entered the house if I had not seen you crying.
+Never cry again for me, Betty, never."
+
+"I will cry. I tell you I will cry. I will. I don't believe you are a
+murderer."
+
+"You must believe it. I am."
+
+"I loved Peter Junior and you loved him. You did not mean to do it."
+
+"I did it."
+
+"If you did it, it is as if I did it, too. We both killed him--and I
+am a murderer, too. It was because of me you did it, and if you give
+yourself up to be hung, I will give myself up. Poor Peter--Oh,
+Richard--I don't believe he fell over." For a long moment she sobbed
+thus. "Where are you going, Richard?" she asked, lifting her head.
+
+"I don't know, Betty. I may be taken and can go nowhere."
+
+"Yes, you must go--quick--quick--now. Some one may come and find you
+here."
+
+"No one will find me. Cain was a wanderer over the face of the
+earth."
+
+"Will you let me know where you are, after you are gone?"
+
+"No, Betty. You must never think of me, nor let me darken your life."
+
+"Then must I live all the rest of the years without even knowing where
+you are?"
+
+"Yes, love. Put me out of your life from now on, and it will be enough
+for me that you loved me once."
+
+"I will help you atone, Richard. I will try to be brave--and help
+Peter's mother to bear it. I will love her for Peter and for you."
+
+"God's blessing on you forever, Betty." He was gone, striding away in
+the darkness, and Betty, with trembling steps, entered the house.
+
+Carefully she removed every sign of his having been there. The bowl of
+water, and the cloth from which she had torn strips to bind his head
+she carried away, and the glass from which he had taken his milk, she
+washed, and even the crumbs of bread which had fallen to the floor she
+picked up one by one, so that not a trace remained. Then she took her
+drawing materials back to the studio, and after kneeling long at her
+bedside, and only saying: "God, help Richard, help him," over and
+over, she crept in beside her little sister, and still weeping and
+praying chokingly clasped the sleeping child in her arms.
+
+From that time, it seemed to Bertrand and Mary that a strange and
+subtle change had taken place in their beloved little daughter; for
+which they tried to account as the result of the mysterious
+disappearance of Peter Junior. He was not found, and Richard also was
+gone, and the matter after being for a long time the wonder of the
+village, became a thing of the past. Only the Elder cherished the
+thought that his son had been murdered, and quietly set a detective
+at work to find the guilty man--whom he would bring back to
+vengeance.
+
+Her parents were forced to acquaint Betty with the suspicious nature
+of Peter's disappearance, knowing she might hear of it soon and be
+more shocked than if told by themselves. Mary wondered not a little at
+her dry-eyed and silent reception of it, but that was a part of the
+change in Betty.
+
+
+
+
+BOOK TWO
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XIV
+
+OUT OF THE DESERT
+
+
+"Good horse. Good horse. Good boy. Goldbug--go it! I know you're
+dying, but so am I. Keep it up a little while longer--Good boy."
+
+The young man encouraged his horse, while half asleep from utter
+weariness and faint with hunger and thirst. The poor beast scrambled
+over the rocks up a steep trail that seemed to have been long unused,
+or indeed it might be no trail at all, but only a channel worn by
+fierce, narrow torrents during the rainy season, now sun-baked and
+dry.
+
+The fall rains were late this year, and the yellow plains below
+furnished neither food nor drink for either man or beast. The herds of
+buffalo had long since wandered to fresher spaces nearer the river
+beds. The young man's flask was empty, and it was twenty-seven hours
+since either he or his horse had tasted anything. Now they had reached
+the mountains he hoped to find water and game if he could only hold
+out a little longer. Up and still up the lean horse scrambled with
+nose to earth and quivering flanks, and the young man, leaning forward
+and clinging to his seat as he reeled like one drunken, still murmured
+words of encouragement. "Good boy--Goldbug, go it. Good horse, keep it
+up."
+
+All at once the way opened out on a jutting crest and made a sharp
+turn to the right, and the horse paused on the verge so suddenly that
+his rider lost his hold and fell headlong over into a scrub oak that
+caught him and held him suspended in its tough and twisted branches
+above a chasm so deep that the buzzards sailed on widespread wings
+round and round in the blue air beneath him.
+
+He lay there still and white as death, mercifully unconscious,
+while an eagle with a wild scream circled about and perched on a
+lightning-blasted tree far above and looked down on him.
+
+For a moment the yellow horse swayed weakly on the brink, then feeling
+himself relieved of his burden, he stiffened himself to a last great
+effort and held on along the path which turned abruptly away from the
+edge of the cliff and broadened out among low bushes and stunted
+trees. Here again the horse paused and stretched his neck and bit off
+the tips of the dry twigs near him, then turned his head and whinnied
+to call his master, and pricked his ears to listen; but he only heard
+the scream of the eagle overhead, and again he walked on, guided by an
+instinct as mysterious and unerring as the call of conscience to a
+human soul.
+
+Good old beast! He had not much farther to go. Soon there was a sound
+of water in the air--a continuous roar, muffled and deep. The path
+wound upward, then descended gradually until it led him to an open,
+grassy space, bordered by green trees. Again he turned his head and
+gave his intelligent call. Why did not his master respond? Why did he
+linger behind when here was grass and water--surely water, for the
+smell of it was fresh and sweet. But it was well he called, for his
+friendly nicker fell on human ears.
+
+A man of stalwart frame, well built and spare, hairy and grizzled, but
+ruddy with health, sat in a cabin hidden among the trees not forty
+paces away, and prepared his meal of roasting quail suspended over the
+fire in his chimney and potatoes baking in the ashes.
+
+He lifted his head with a jerk, and swung the quail away from the
+heat, leaving it still suspended, and taking his rifle from its pegs
+stood for a moment in his door listening. For months he had not heard
+the sound of a human voice, nor the nicker of any horse other than his
+own. He called a word of greeting, "Hello, stranger!" but receiving no
+response he ventured farther from his door.
+
+Goldbug was eagerly grazing--too eagerly for his own good. The man
+recognized the signs of starvation and led him to a tree, where he
+brought him a little water in his own great tin dipper. Then he
+relieved him of saddle and bridle and left him tied while he hastily
+stowed a few hard-tack and a flask of whisky in his pocket, and taking
+a lasso over his arm, started up the trail on his own horse.
+
+"Some poor guy has lost his way and gone over the cliff," he
+muttered.
+
+The young man still lay as he had fallen, but now his eyes were open
+and staring at the sky. Had he not been too weak to move he would have
+gone down; as it was, he waited, not knowing if he were dead or in a
+dream, seeing only the blue above him, and hearing only the scream of
+the eagle.
+
+"Lie still. Don't ye move. Don't ye stir a hair. I'll get ye. Still
+now--still."
+
+The big man's voice came to him as out of a great chasm, scarcely
+heard for the roaring in his head, although he was quite near. His
+arms hung down and one leg swung free, but his body rested easily
+balanced in the branches. Presently he felt something fall lightly
+across his chest, slip down to his hand, and then crawl slowly up his
+arm to the shoulder, where it tightened and gripped. A vague hope
+awoke in him.
+
+"Now, wait. I'll get ye; don't move. I'll have a noose around ye'r leg
+next,--so." The voice had grown clearer, and seemed nearer, but the
+young man could make no response with his parched throat.
+
+"Now if I hurt ye a bit, try to stand it." The man carried the long
+loop of his lasso around the cliff and wound it securely around
+another scrub oak, and then began slowly and steadily to pull, until
+the young man moaned with pain,--to cry out was impossible.
+
+"I'll have ye in a minute--I'll have ye--there! Catch at my hand. Poor
+boy, poor boy, ye can't. Hold on--just a little more--there!" Strong
+arms reached for him. Strong hands gripped his clothing and lifted him
+from the terrible chasm's edge.
+
+"He's more dead than alive," said the big man, as he strove to pour a
+little whisky between the stranger's set teeth. "Well, I'll pack him
+home and do for him there."
+
+He lifted his weight easily, and placing him on his horse, led the
+animal to the cabin where he laid him in his own bunk. There, with
+cool water, and whisky carefully administered, the big man restored
+him enough to know that he was conscious.
+
+"There now, you'll come out of this all right. You've got a good body
+and a good head, young man,--lie by a little and I'll give ye some
+broth."
+
+The man took a small stone jar from a shelf and putting in a little
+water, took the half-cooked quail from the fire, and putting it in the
+jar set it on the coals among the ashes, and covered it. From time to
+time he lifted the cover and stirred it about, sprinkling in a little
+corn meal, and when the steam began to rise with savory odor, he did
+not wait for it to be wholly done, but taking a very little of the
+broth in a tin cup, he cooled it and fed it to his patient drop by
+drop until the young man's eyes looked gratefully into his.
+
+Then, while the young man dozed, he returned to his own uneaten meal,
+and dined on dried venison and roasted potatoes and salt. The big man
+was a good housekeeper. He washed his few utensils and swept the
+hearth with a broom worn almost to the handle. Then he removed the jar
+containing the quail and broth from the embers, and set it aside in
+reserve for his guest. Whenever the young man stirred he fed him again
+with the broth, until at last he seemed to sleep naturally.
+
+Seeing his patient quietly sleeping, the big man went out to the
+starving horse and gave him another taste of water, and allowed him to
+graze a few minutes, then tied him again, and returned to the cabin.
+He stood for a while looking down at the pallid face of the sleeping
+stranger, then he lighted his pipe and busied himself about the cabin,
+returning from time to time to study the young man's countenance. His
+pipe went out. He lighted it again and then sat down with his back to
+the stranger and smoked and gazed in the embers.
+
+The expression of his face was peculiarly gentle as he gazed. Perhaps
+the thought of having rescued a human being worked on his spirit
+kindly, or what not, but something brought him a vision of a pale
+face with soft, dark hair waving back from the temples, and large gray
+eyes looking up into his. It came and was gone, and came again, even
+as he summoned it, and he smoked on. One watching him might have
+thought that it was his custom to smoke and gaze and dream thus.
+
+At last he became aware that the stranger was trying to speak to him
+in husky whispers. He turned quickly.
+
+"Feeling more fit, are you? Well, take another sup of broth. Can't let
+you eat anything solid for a bit, but you can have all of the broth
+now if you want it."
+
+As he stooped over him the young man's fingers caught at his shirt
+sleeve and pulled him down to listen to his whispered words.
+
+"Pull me out of this--quickly--quickly--there's a--party--down
+the--mountain--dying of thirst. Is this Higgins' Camp? I--I--tried to
+get there for--for help." He panted and could say no more.
+
+The big man whistled softly. "Thought you'd get to Higgins' Camp?
+You're sixty miles out of the way--or more,--twice that, way you've
+come. You took the wrong trail and you've gone forty miles one way
+when you should have gone as far on the other. I did it myself once,
+and never undid it."
+
+The patient looked hungrily at the tin cup from which he had been
+taking the broth. "Can you give me a little more?"
+
+"Yes, drink it all. It won't hurt ye."
+
+"I've got to get up. They'll die." He struggled and succeeded in
+lifting himself to his elbow and with the effort he spoke more
+strongly. "May I have another taste of the whisky? I'm coming
+stronger now. I left them yesterday with all the food--only a
+bit--and a little water--not enough to keep them alive much longer.
+Yesterday--God help them--was it yesterday--or days ago?"
+
+The older man had a slow, meditative manner of speech as if he had
+long been in the way of speaking only to himself, unhurried, and at
+peace. "It's no use your trying to think that out, young man, and I
+can't tell you. Nor you won't be able to go for them in a while. No."
+
+"I must. I must if I die. I don't care if I die--but they--I must go."
+He tried again to raise himself, but fell back. Great drops stood out
+on his forehead and into his eyes crept a look of horror. "It's
+there!" he said, and pointed with his finger.
+
+"What's there, man?"
+
+"The eye. See! It's gone. Never mind, it's gone." He relaxed, and his
+face turned gray and his eyes closed for a moment, then he said again,
+"I must go to them."
+
+"You can't go. You're delirious, man."
+
+Then the stranger's lips twitched and he almost smiled. "Because I saw
+it? I saw it watching me. It often is, and it's not delirium. I can
+go. I am quite myself."
+
+That half smile on the young man's face was reassuring and appealing.
+The big man could not resist it.
+
+"See here, are you enough yourself to take care of yourself, if I
+leave you and go after them--whoever they are?"
+
+"Yes, oh, yes."
+
+"Will you be prudent--stay right here, eat very sparingly? Are they
+back on the plain? If so, there is a long ride ahead of me, but my
+horse is fresh. If they are not off the trail by which you came, I can
+reach them."
+
+"I did not once leave the trail after--there was no other way I could
+take."
+
+"Would they likely stay right where you left them?"
+
+"They couldn't move if they tried. Oh, my God--if I were only myself
+again!"
+
+"Never waste words wishing, young man. I'll get them. But you must
+give me your promise to wait here. Will you be prudent and wait?"
+
+"Yes, yes."
+
+"You'll be stronger before you know it, and then you'll want to leave,
+you know, and go for them yourself. Don't do that. I'll give your
+horse a bit more to eat and drink, and tie him again, then there'll be
+no need for you to leave this bunk until to-morrow. I'm to follow the
+trail you came up by, and not leave it until I come to--whoever it is?
+Right. Do you give me your word, no matter how long gone I may be, not
+to leave my place here until I return, or send?"
+
+"Oh, yes, yes."
+
+"Good. I'll trust you. There's a better reason than I care to give you
+for this promise, young man. It's not a bad one."
+
+The big man then made his preparations rapidly, pausing now and then
+to give the stranger instructions as to where to find provisions and
+how to manage there by himself, and inquiring carefully as to the
+party he was to find. He packed saddlebags with supplies, and water
+flasks, and, as he moved about, continued to question and admonish.
+
+"By the time I get back you'll be as well as ever you were. A
+couple of days--and you'll be fuming round instead of waiting in
+patience--that's what I tell you. I'll fetch them--do you hear?
+I'll do it. Now what's your name? Harry King? Harry King--very
+well, I have it. And the party? Father and mother and daughter. Family
+party. I see. Big fools, no doubt. No description needed, I guess.
+Bird? Name Bird? No. McBride,--very good. Any name with a Mac to it
+goes on this mountain--that means me. I'm the mountain. Any one I
+don't want here I pack off down the trail, and _vice versa_."
+
+Harry King lay still and heard the big man ride away. He heard his own
+horse stamping and nickering, and heaving a great sigh of relief his
+muscles relaxed, and he slept soundly on his hard bed. For hours he
+had fought off this terrible languor with a desperation born of terror
+for those he had left behind him, who looked to him as their only
+hope. Now he resigned their fate to the big man whose eyes had looked
+so kindly into his, with a childlike feeling of rest and content. He
+lay thus until the sun rose high in the heavens the next morning, when
+he was awakened by the insistent neighing of his horse which had risen
+almost to a cry of fear.
+
+"Poor beast. Poor beast," he muttered. His vocal chords seemed to have
+stiffened and dried, and his attempt to call out to reassure the
+animal resulted only in a hoarse croak. He devoured the meat of the
+little quail left in the jar and drank the few remaining drops of
+broth, then crawled out to look after the needs of his horse before
+making further search for food for himself. He gathered all his little
+strength to hold the frantic creature, maddened with hunger, and
+tethered him where he could graze for half an hour, then fetched him
+water as the big man had done, a little at a time in the great
+dipper.
+
+After these efforts he rested, sitting in the doorway in the sun, and
+then searched out a meal for himself. The big man's larder was well
+stocked, and although Harry King did not appear to be a western man,
+he was a good camper, and could bake a corn dodger or toss a flapjack
+with a fair amount of skill. As he worked, everything seemed like a
+dream to him. The murmuring of the trees far up the mountain side, the
+distant roar of falling water that made him feel as if a little way
+off he might find the sea, filled his senses with an impression of
+unseen forces at work all about him, and the peculiar clearness and
+lightness of the atmosphere made him feel as if he were swaying over
+the ground and barely touching his feet to the earth, instead of
+walking. He might indeed be in an enchanted land, were it not for his
+hunger and the reality of his still hungry horse.
+
+After eating, he again stretched himself on the earth and again slept
+until his horse awakened him. It was well. The sun was setting in the
+golden notch of the hills, and once more he set himself to the same
+task of laboriously giving his horse water and tethering him where the
+grass was lush and green, then preparing food for himself, then
+sitting in the doorway and letting the peace of the place sink into
+his soul.
+
+The horror of his situation when the big man found him had made no
+impression, for he had mercifully been unconscious and too stupefied
+with weariness to realize it. He had even no idea of how he had come
+to the cabin, or from which direction. Inertly he thought over it. A
+trail seemed to lead away to the southwest. He supposed he must have
+come by it, but he had not. It was only the path made by his rescuer
+in going to and fro between his garden patch and his cabin.
+
+In the loneliness and peace of the dusk he looked up and saw the dome
+above filled with stars, and all things were so vast and inexplicable
+that he was minded to pray. The longing and the necessity of prayer
+was upon him, and he stood with arms uplifted and eyes fixed on the
+stars,--then his head sank on his breast and he turned slowly into the
+cabin and lay down on the bunk with his hands pressed over his eyes,
+and moaned. Far into the night he lay thus, unsleeping, now and again
+uttering that low moan. Toward morning he again slept until far into
+the day, and thus passed the first two days of his stay.
+
+Strength came to him rapidly as the big man had said, and soon he was
+restlessly searching the short paths all about for a way by which he
+might find the plain below. He did not forget the promise which had
+been exacted from him to remain, no matter how long, until the big
+man's return, but he wished to discover whence he might arrive, and
+perhaps journey to meet him on the way.
+
+The first trail he followed led him to the fall that ever roared in
+his ears. He stood amazed at its height and volume, and its wonderful
+beauty. It lured him and drew him again and again to the spot from
+which he first viewed it. Midway of its height he stood where every
+now and then a little stronger breeze carried the fine mist of the
+fall in his face. Behind him lay the garden, ever watered thus by the
+wind-blown spray. Smoothly the water fell over a notch worn by its
+never ceasing motion in what seemed the very crest of the mountain far
+above him. Smoothly it fell into the rainbow mists that lost its base
+in a wonderful iridescence of shadows and quivering, never resting
+lights as far below him.
+
+He caught his breath, and remembered the big man's words. "You missed
+the trail to Higgins' Camp a long way back. It's easily done. I did it
+myself once, and never undid it." He could not choose but return over
+and over to that spot. A wonderful ending to a lost trail for a lost
+soul.
+
+The next path he followed took him to a living spring, where the big
+man was wont to lead his own horse to water, and from whence he led
+the water to his cabin in a small flume to always drip and trickle
+past his door. It was at the end of this flume that Harry King had
+filled the large dipper for his horse. Now he went back and washed
+that utensil carefully, and hung it beside the door.
+
+The next trail he followed led by a bare and more forbidding route to
+the place where the big man had rescued him, and he knew it must be
+the one by which he had come. A sense of what had happened came over
+him terrifyingly, and he shrank from the abyss, his body quivering and
+his head reeling. He would not look down into the blue depth, knowing
+that if he did so, by that way his sanity would leave him, but he
+crawled cautiously around the projecting cliff and wandered down the
+stony trail. Now and again he called, "Whoopee! Whoopee!" but only his
+own voice came back to him many times repeated.
+
+Again and again he called and listened, "Whoopee! Whoopee!" and was
+regretful at the thought that he did not even know the name of the man
+who had saved him. Could he also save the others? The wild trail drew
+him and fascinated him. Each day he followed a little farther, and
+morning and evening he called his lonely cry, "Whoopee! Whoopee!" and
+still was answered by the echo in diminuendo of his own voice. He
+tried to resist the lure of that narrow, sun-baked, and stony descent,
+which he felt led to the nethermost hell of hunger and burning thirst,
+but always it seemed to him as if a cry came up for help, and if it
+were not that he knew himself bound by a promise, he would have taken
+his horse and returned to the horror below.
+
+Each evening he reasoned with himself, and repeated the big man's
+words for reassurance: "I'll fetch them, do you hear? I'll fetch
+them," and again: "I'm the mountain. Any one I don't want here I pack
+off down the trail." Perhaps he had taken them off to Higgins' Camp
+instead of bringing them back with him--what then? Harry King bowed
+his head at the thought. Then he understood the lure of the trail.
+What then? Why, then--he would follow--follow--follow--until he found
+again the woman for whom he had dared the unknown and to whom he had
+given all but a few drops of water that were needed to keep him alive
+long enough to find more for her. He would follow her back into that
+hell below the heights. But how long should he wait? How long should
+he trust the man to whom he had given his promise?
+
+He decided to wait a reasonable time, long enough to allow for the big
+man's going, and slow returning--long enough indeed for them to use up
+all the provisions he had packed down to them, and then he would break
+his promise and go. In the meantime he tried to keep himself sane by
+doing what he found to do. He gathered the ripe corn in the big man's
+garden patch and husked it and stored it in the shed which was built
+against the cabin. Then he stored the fodder in a sort of stable built
+of logs, one side of which was formed by a huge bowlder, or
+projecting part of the mountain itself, not far from the spring, where
+evidently it had been stored in the past, and where he supposed the
+man kept his horse in winter. He judged the winters must be very
+severe for the care with which this shed was covered and the wind
+holes stopped. And all the time he worked each day seemed a month of
+days, instead of a day of hours.
+
+At last he felt he was justified in trying to learn the cause of the
+delay at least, and he baked many cakes of yellow corn meal and
+browned them well on the hearth, and roasted a side of bacon whole as
+it was, and packed strips of dried venison, and filled his water flask
+at the spring. After a long hunt he found empty bottles which he
+wrapped round with husks and filled also with water. These he purposed
+to hang at the sides of his saddle. He had carefully washed and mended
+his clothing, and searching among the big man's effects, he found a
+razor, dull and long unused. He sharpened and polished and stropped
+it, and removed a vigorous growth of beard from his face, before a
+little framed mirror. To-morrow he would take the trail down into the
+horror from which he had come.
+
+Now it only remained for him to look well to the good yellow horse and
+sleep one more night in the friendly big man's bunk, then up before
+the sun and go.
+
+The nights were cold, and he thought he would replenish the fire on
+his hearth, for he always had the feeling that at any moment they
+might come wearily climbing up the trail, famished and cold. Any night
+he might hear the "Halloo" of the big man's voice. In the shed where
+he had piled the husked corn lay wood cut in lengths for the
+fireplace, and taking a pine torch he stooped to collect a few
+sticks, when, by the glare of the light he held, he saw what he had
+never seen in the dim daylight of the windowless place. A heavy iron
+ring lay at his feet, and as he kicked at it he discovered that it was
+attached to something covered with earth beneath.
+
+Impelled by curiosity he thrust the torch between the logs and removed
+the earth, and found a huge bin of hewn logs carefully fitted and
+smoothed on the inside. The cover was not fastened, but only held in
+place by the weight of stones and earth piled above it. This bin was
+half filled with finely broken ore, and as he lifted it in his hands
+yellow dust sifted through his fingers.
+
+Quivering with a strange excitement he delved deeper, lifting the
+precious particles by handfuls, feeling of it, sifting it between his
+fingers, and holding the torch close to the mass to catch the dull
+glow of it. For a long time he knelt there, wondering at it, dreaming
+over it, and feeling of it. Then he covered it all as he had found it,
+and taking the wood for which he had come, he replenished the fire and
+laid himself down to sleep.
+
+What was gold to him? What were all the riches of the earth and of the
+caves of the earth? Only one thought absorbed him,--the woman whom he
+had left waiting for him on the burning plain, and a haunting memory
+that would never leave him--never be stilled.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XV
+
+THE BIG MAN'S RETURN
+
+
+The night was bitter cold after a day of fierce heat. Three people
+climbed the long winding trail from the plains beneath, slowly,
+carefully, and silently. A huge mountaineer walked ahead, leading a
+lean brown horse. Seated on the horse was a woman with long, pale
+face, and deeply sunken dark eyes that looked out from under arched,
+dark brows with a steady gaze that never wandered from some point just
+ahead of her, not as if they perceived anything beyond, but more as if
+they looked backward upon some terror.
+
+Behind them on a sorrel horse--a horse slenderer and evidently of
+better stock than the brown--rode another woman, also with dark eyes,
+now heavy lidded from weariness, and pale skin, but younger and
+stronger and more alert to the way they were taking. Her face was
+built on different lines: a smooth, delicately modeled oval, wide at
+the temples and level of brow, with heavy dark hair growing low over
+the sides of the forehead, leaving the center high, and the arch of
+the head perfect. Trailing along in the rear a small mule followed,
+bearing a pack.
+
+Sometimes the big man walking in front looked back and spoke a word of
+encouragement, to which the younger of the two women replied in low
+tones, as if the words were spoken under her breath.
+
+"We'll stop and rest awhile now," he said at last, and led the horse
+to one side, where a level space made it possible for them to dismount
+and stretch themselves on the ground to give their weary limbs the
+needed relaxation.
+
+The younger woman slipped to the ground and led her horse forward to
+where the elder sat rigidly stiff, declining to move.
+
+"It is better we rest, mother. The kind man asks us."
+
+"Non, Amalia, non. We go on. It is best that we not wait."
+
+Then the daughter spoke rapidly in their own tongue, and the mother
+bowed her head and allowed herself to be lifted from the saddle. Her
+daughter then unrolled her blanket and, speaking still in her own
+tongue, with difficulty persuaded her mother to lie down on the
+mountain side, as they were directed, and the girl lay beside her,
+covering her tenderly and pillowing her mother's head on her arm. The
+big man led the animals farther on and sat down with his back against
+a great rock, and waited.
+
+They lay thus until the mother slept the sleep of exhaustion; then
+Amalia rose cautiously, not to awaken her, and went over to him. Her
+teeth chattered with the cold, and she drew a little shawl closer
+across her chest.
+
+"This is a very hard way--so warm in the day and so cold in the night.
+It is not possible that I sleep. The cold drives me to move."
+
+"You ought to have put part of that blanket over yourself. It's going
+to be a long pull up the mountain, and you ought to sleep a little.
+Walk about a bit to warm yourself and then try again to sleep."
+
+"Yes. I try."
+
+She turned docilely and walked back and forth, then very quietly crept
+under the blanket beside her mother. He watched them a while, and when
+he deemed she also must be sleeping, he removed his coat and gently
+laid it over the girl. By that time darkness had settled heavily over
+the mountain. The horses ceased browsing among the chaparral and lay
+down, and the big man stretched himself for warmth close beside his
+sorrel horse, on the stony ground. Thus in the stillness they all
+slept; at last, over the mountain top the moon rose.
+
+Higher and higher it crept up in the sky, and the stars waned before
+its brilliant whiteness. The big man roused himself then, and looked
+at the blanket under which the two women slept, and with a muttered
+word of pity began gathering weeds and brush with which to build a
+fire. It should be a very small fire, hidden by chaparral from the
+plains below, and would be well stamped out and the charred place
+covered with stones and brush when they left it. Soon he had steeped a
+pot of coffee and fried some bacon, then he quickly put out his fire
+and woke the two women. The younger sprang up, and, finding his coat
+over her, took it to him and thanked him with rapid utterance.
+
+"Oh, you are too kind. I am sorry you have deprive yourself of your
+coat to put it over me. That is why I have been so warm."
+
+The mother rose and shook out her skirt and glanced furtively about
+her. "It is not the morning? It is the moon. That is well we go
+early." She drank the coffee hurriedly and scarcely tasted the bacon
+and hard biscuit. "It is no toilet we have here to make. So we go more
+quickly. So is good."
+
+"But you must eat the food, mother. You will be stronger for the long,
+hard ride. You have not here to hurry. No one follows us here."
+
+"Your father may be already by the camp, Amalia--to bring us
+help--yes. But of those men 'rouge'--if they follow and rob us--"
+
+The two women spoke English out of deference to the big man, and only
+dropped into their own language or into fluent French when necessity
+compelled them, or they thought themselves alone.
+
+"Ah, but those red men, mother, they do not come here, so the kind man
+told us, for now they are also kind. Sit here and eat the biscuit. I
+will ask him."
+
+She went over to where he stood by the animals, pouring a very little
+water from the cans carried by the pack mule for each one. "They'll
+have to hold out on this for the day, but they may only have half of
+it now," he said.
+
+"What shall I do?" Amalia looked with wide, distressed eyes in his
+face. "She believes it yet, that my father lives and has gone to the
+camp for help. She thinks we go to him,--to the camp. How can I tell
+her? I cannot--I dare not."
+
+"Let her think what satisfies her most. We can tell her as much as is
+best for her to know, a little at a time, and there will be plenty of
+time to do it in. We'll be snowed up on this mountain all winter." The
+young woman did not reply, but stood perfectly still, gazing off into
+the moonlit wilderness. "When people get locoed this way, the only
+thing is to humor them and give them a chance to rest satisfied in
+something--no matter what, much,--only so they are not hectored. No
+mind can get well when it is being hectored."
+
+"Hectored? That is to mean--tortured? Yes, I understand. It is that we
+not suffer the mind to be tortured?"
+
+"About that, yes."
+
+"Thank you. I try to comfort her. But it is to lie to her? It is not a
+sin, when it is for the healing?"
+
+"I'm not authority on that, Miss, but I know lying's a blessing
+sometimes."
+
+"If I could make her see the marvelous beauty of this way we go, but
+she will not look. Me, I can hardly breathe for the wonder--yet--I do
+not forget my father is dead."
+
+"I'm starting you off now, because it will not be so hard on either
+you or the horses to travel by night, as long as it is light enough to
+see the way. Then when the sun comes out hot, we can lie by a bit, as
+we did yesterday."
+
+"Then is no fear of the red men we met on the plains?"
+
+"They're not likely to follow us up here--not at this season, and now
+the railroad's going through, they're attracted by that."
+
+"Do they never come to you, at your home?"
+
+"Not often. They think I'm a sort of white 'medicine man'--kind of a
+hoodoo, and leave me alone."
+
+She looked at him with mystification in her eyes, but did not ask what
+he meant, and returned to her mother.
+
+"I have eaten. Now we go, is not?"
+
+"Yes, mother. The kind man says we go on, and the red men will not
+follow us."
+
+"Good. I have afraid of the men 'rouge.' Your father knows not fear;
+only I know it."
+
+Soon they were mounted and traveling up the trail as before, the
+little pack mule following in the rear. No breeze stirred to make the
+frosty air bite more keenly, and the women rode in comparative
+comfort, with their hands wrapped in their shawls to keep them warm.
+They did not try to converse, or only uttered a word now and then in
+their own tongue. Amalia's spirit was enrapt in the beauty around and
+above and below her, so that she could not have spoken more than the
+merest word for a reply had she tried.
+
+The moonlight brought all the immediate surroundings into sharp
+relief, and the distant hills in receding gradations seemed to be
+created out of molten silver touched with palest gold. Above, the
+vault of the heavens was almost black, and the stars were few, but
+clear. Even the stones that impeded the horses' feet seemed to be made
+of silver. The depths below them seemed as vast and black as the vault
+above, except for the silver bath of light that touched the tops of
+the gigantic trees at the bottom of the cañon around which they were
+climbing.
+
+The silence of this vastness was as fraught with mystery as the scene,
+and was broken only by the scrambling of the horses over the stones
+and their heavy breathing. Thus throughout the rest of the night they
+wended steadily upward, only pausing now and then to allow the animals
+to breathe, and then on. At last a thing occurred to break the
+stillness and strike terror to Amalia's heart. It had occurred once
+the day before when the silence was most profound. A piercing cry rent
+the air, that began in a scream of terror and ended in a long-drawn
+wail of despair.
+
+Amalia slipped from her horse and stumbled over the rough ground to
+her mother's side and poured forth a stream of words in her own
+tongue, and clasped her arms about the rigid form that did not bend
+toward her, but only sat staring into the white night as if her eye
+perceived a sight from which she could not turn away.
+
+"Look at me, mother. Oh, try to make her look at me!" The big man
+lifted her from the horse, and she relaxed into trembling. "There, it
+is gone now. Walk with me, mother;" and the two walked for a while,
+holding hands, and Amalia talked unceasingly in low, soothing tones.
+
+After a little time longer the moon paled and the stars disappeared,
+and soon the sky became overspread with the changing coloring and the
+splendor of dawn. Then the sun rose out of the glory, but still they
+kept on their way until the heat began to overcome them. Then they
+halted where some pines and high rocks made a shelter, but this time
+the big man did not build a fire. He gave them a little coffee which
+he had saved for them from what he had steeped during the night, and
+they ate and rested, and the mother fell quickly into the sleep of
+exhaustion, as before.
+
+Thus during the middle of the day they rested, Amalia and the big man
+sometimes sleeping and sometimes conversing quietly.
+
+"I don't know why mother does this. I never knew her to until
+yesterday. Father never used to let her look straight ahead of her as
+she does now. She has always been very brave and strong. She has done
+wonderful things--but I was not there. When troubles came on my
+father, I was put in a convent--I know now it was to keep me from
+harm. I did not know then why I was sent away from them, for my father
+was not of the religion of the good sisters at the convent,--but now
+I know--it was to save me."
+
+"Why did troubles come on your father?"
+
+"What he did I do not know, but I am very sure it was nothing wrong.
+In my country sometimes men have to break the law to do right; my
+mother has told me so. He was in prison a long time when I was living
+in the convent, sheltered and cared for,--and mother--mother was
+working all alone to get him out--all alone suffering."
+
+"How could they keep you there if she had to work so hard?"
+
+"My father had a friend. He was not of our country, and he was most
+kind and good. I think he was of Scotland--or maybe of Ireland; I was
+so little I do not know. He saved for my mother some of her money so
+the government did not get it. I think my mother gave it to him,
+once--before the trouble came. Maybe she knew it would come,--anyway,
+so it was. I do not know if he was Irish, or of Scotland--but he must
+have been a good man."
+
+"Been? Is he dead?"
+
+"Yes. It was of a fever he died. My mother told me. He gave us his
+name, and to my father his papers to leave our country, for he knew he
+would die, or my father never could have got out of the country. I
+never saw him but once. When I saw you, I thought of him. He was grand
+and good, as are you. My mother came for me at the convent in Paris,
+and in the night we went to my father, and in the morning we went to
+the great ship. We said McBride, and all was well. If we had said
+Manovska when we took the ship, we would have been sent back and my
+father would have been killed. In the prison we would have died. It
+was hard to get on the ship, but when we got to this country, nobody
+cared who got off."
+
+"How long ago was that?"
+
+"It was at the time of your great war we came. My mother wore the
+dress of our peasant women, and I did the same."
+
+"And were you quite safe in this country?"
+
+"For a long time we lived very quietly, and we thought we were. But
+after a time some one came, and father took him in, and then others
+came, and went away again, and came again--I don't know why--they did
+not tell me,--but this I know. Some one had a great enmity against my
+father, and at last mother took me in the night to a strange place
+where we knew no one, and then we went to another place--and to still
+another. It was very wearisome."
+
+"What was your father's business?"
+
+"My father had no business. He was what you call a nobleman. He had
+very much land, but he was generous and gave it nearly all away to his
+poor people. My father was very learned and studied much. He made much
+music--very beautiful--not for money--never for that. Only after we
+came to this country did he so, to live. Once he played in a great
+orchestra. It was then those men found him and came so often that he
+had again to go away and hide. I think they brought him papers--very
+important--to be sacredly guarded until a right time should come to
+reveal them."
+
+"And you have no knowledge why he was followed and persecuted?"
+
+"I was so little at the beginning I do not know. If it was that in
+his religion he was different,--or if he was trying to change in
+the government the laws,--for we are not of Russia,--I know that when
+he gave away his land, the other noblemen were very angry with him,
+and at the court--where my father was sent by his people for
+reasons--there was a prince,--I think it was about my mother he hated
+my father so,--but for what--that I never heard. But he had my
+father imprisoned, and there in the prison they--What was that
+word,--hectored? Yes. In the prison they hectored him greatly--so
+greatly that never more was he straight. It was very sad."
+
+"I don't think we would say hectored, for that. I think we would say
+tortured."
+
+"Oh, yes. I see. To hector is of the mind, but torture is of the body.
+It is that I mean--for they were very terrible to him. My mother was
+there, and they made her look at it to bring him the more quickly to
+tell for her sake what he would not for his own. I think when she
+looks long before her at nothing, she is seeing again the tortures of
+my father, and so she cries out in that terrible way. I think so."
+
+"What were they trying to get out of him?"
+
+Amalia looked up in his face with a puzzled expression for a moment.
+"Get--out--of--him?" she asked.
+
+"I mean, what did they want him to tell?"
+
+"Ah, that I know not. It was never told. If they could find him, I
+think they would try again to learn of him something which he only can
+tell. I think if they could find my mother, they would now try to
+learn from her what my father knew, but her lips are like the grave.
+At that time he had told her nothing, but since then--when we were far
+out in the wilderness--I do not know. I hope my mother will never be
+found. Is it a very secret place to which we go?"
+
+"I might call it that--yes. I've lived there for twenty years and no
+white man has found me yet, until the young man, Harry King, was
+pitched over the edge of eternity and only saved by a--well--a
+chance--likely."
+
+The young woman gazed at him wide-eyed, and drew in her breath. "You
+saved him."
+
+"If he obeyed me--I did."
+
+"And all the twenty years were you alone?"
+
+"I always had a horse."
+
+"But for a companion--had you never one?"
+
+"Never."
+
+"Are you, too, a good man who has done a deed against the law of your
+land?"
+
+The big man looked off a moment, then down at her with a little smile
+playing about his lips. "I never did a deed against the law of any
+land that I know of, but as for the good part--that's another thing. I
+may be fairly good as goodness goes."
+
+"Goodnessgoes!" She repeated after him as if it were one word from
+which she was trying to extract a meaning. "Was it then to flee from
+the wicked world that you lived all the twenty years thus alone?"
+
+"Hardly that, either. To tell the truth, it may be only a habit with
+me."
+
+"Will you forgive me that I asked? It was only that to me it has been
+terrible to live always in hiding and fear. I love people, and desire
+greatly to have kind people near me,--but of the world where my father
+and mother lived, and at the court--and of the nobles, of all these I
+am afraid."
+
+"Yes, yes. I fancy you were." A grim look settled about his mouth,
+although his eyes twinkled kindly. He marveled to think how trustingly
+they accompanied him into this wilderness--but then--poor babes! What
+else could they do? "You'll be safe from all the courts and nobles in
+the world where I'm taking you."
+
+"That is why my eyes do not weep for my father. He is now gone where
+none can find him but God. It is very terrible that a good man should
+always hide--hide and live in fear--always--even from his own kinsmen.
+I understand some of the sorrows of the world."
+
+"You'll forget it all up there."
+
+"I will try if my mother recovers." She drew in her breath with a
+little quivering catch.
+
+"We'll wake her now, and start on. It won't do to waste daylight any
+longer." Secretly he was afraid that they might be followed by
+Indians, and was sorry he had made the fire in the night, but he
+reasoned that he could never have brought them on without such
+refreshment. Women are different from men. He could eat raw bacon and
+hard-tack and go without coffee, when necessary, but to ask women to
+do so was quite another thing.
+
+For long hours now they traveled on, even after the moon had set, in
+the darkness. It was just before the dawn, where the trail wound and
+doubled on itself, that the sorrel horse was startled by a small
+rolling stone that had been loosened on the trail above them.
+Instantly the big man halted where they were.
+
+"Are you brave enough to wait here a bit by your mother's horse while
+I go on? That stone did not loosen itself. It may be nothing but some
+little beast,--if it were a bear, the horses would have made a fuss."
+
+He mounted the sorrel and went forward, leaving her standing on the
+trail, holding the leading strap of her mother's horse, which tossed
+its head and stepped about restlessly, trying to follow. She petted
+and soothed the animal and talked in low tones to her mother. Then
+with beating heart she listened. Two men's voices came down to
+her--one, the big man's--and the other--yes, she had heard it before.
+
+"It is 'Arry King, mother. Surely he has come down to meet us," she
+said joyfully. She would have hurried on, but bethought herself she
+would better wait as she had been directed. Soon the big man returned,
+looking displeased and grim.
+
+"Young chap couldn't wait. He gave me his promise, but he didn't keep
+it."
+
+"It was 'Arry King?" He made no reply, and they resumed their way as
+before. "It was long to wait, and nothing to do," she pleaded,
+divining his mood.
+
+"I had good reasons, Miss. No matter. I sent him back. No need of him
+here. We'll make it before morning now, and he will have the cabin
+warm and hot coffee for us, if you can stand to go on for a goodish
+long pull."
+
+A goodish long pull it surely was, in the darkness, but the women bore
+up with courage, and their guide led them safely. The horse Amalia
+rode, being his own horse, knew the way well.
+
+"Don't try to guide him; he'll take you quite safely," he called back
+to her. "Let the reins hang." And in the dusk of early morning they
+safely turned the curve where Harry King had fallen, never knowing the
+danger.
+
+Harry King, standing in the doorway of the cabin, with the firelight
+bright behind him, saw them winding down the trail and hurried
+forward. They were almost stupefied with fatigue. He lifted the mother
+in his arms without a word and carried her into the cabin and laid her
+in the bunk, which he had prepared to receive her. He greeted Amalia
+with a quiet word as the big man led her in, and went out to the
+horses, relieved them of their burdens, and led them away to the shed
+by the spring. Soon the big man joined him, and began rubbing down the
+animals.
+
+"I will do this. You must rest," said Harry.
+
+"I need none of your help," he said, not surlily, as the words might
+sound, but colorlessly.
+
+"I needed yours when I came here--or you saved me and brought me here,
+and now whatever you wish I'll do, but for to-night you must take my
+help. I'm not apologizing for what I did, because I thought it right,
+but--"
+
+"Peace, man, peace. I've lived a long time with no man to gainsay me.
+I'll take what comes now and thank the Lord it's no worse. We'll leave
+the cabin to the women, after I see that they have no fright about it,
+and we'll sleep in the fodder. There have been worse beds."
+
+"I have coffee on the hearth, hot, and corn dodgers--such as we used
+to make in the army. I've made them often before."
+
+"Turn the beasts free; there isn't room for them all in the shed, and
+I'll go get a bite and join you soon."
+
+So Harry King did not return to the cabin that night, much as he
+desired to see Amalia again, but lay down on the fodder and tried to
+sleep. His heart throbbed gladly at the thought of her safety. He had
+not dared to inquire after her father. Although he had seen so little
+of the big man he understood his mood, and having received such great
+kindness at his hands, he was truly sorry at the invasion of his
+peace. Undoubtedly he did not like to have a family, gathered from the
+Lord only knew where, suddenly quartered on him for none knew how
+long.
+
+The cabin was only meant for a hermit of a man, and little suited to
+women and their needs. A mixed household required more rooms. He tried
+to think the matter through and to plan, but the effort brought
+drowsiness, and before the big man returned he was asleep.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XVI
+
+A PECULIAR POSITION
+
+
+"Well, young man, we find ourselves in what I call a peculiar
+position."
+
+A smile that would have been sardonic, were it not for a few lines
+around the corners of his eyes which belied any sinister suspicion,
+spread grimly across the big man's face as he stood looking down on
+Harry King in the dusk of the unlighted shed. The younger man rose
+quickly from the fodder where he had slept heavily after the fatigues
+of the past day and night, and stood respectfully looking into the big
+man's face.
+
+"I--I--realize the situation. I thought about it after I turned in
+here--before you came down--or up--to this--ahem--bedroom. I can take
+myself off, sir. And if there were any way--of relieving you
+of--the--whole--embarrassment,--I--I--would do so."
+
+"Everything's quiet down at the cabin. I've been there and looked
+about a bit. They had need of sleep. You go back to your bunk, and
+I'll take mine, and we'll talk the thing over before we see them
+again. As for your taking yourself off, that remains to be seen. I'm
+not crabbed, that's not the secret of my life alone,--though you might
+think it. I--ahem--ahem." The big man cleared his throat and stretched
+his spare frame full length on the fodder where he had slept. With his
+elbow on the bed of corn stalks he lifted his head on his hand and
+gazed at Harry King, not dreamily as when he first saw him, but with
+covert keenness.
+
+"Lie down in your place--a bit--lie down. We'll talk until we've
+arrived at a conclusion, and it may be a long talk, so we may as well
+be comfortable."
+
+Harry King went back to his own bunk and lay prone, his forehead
+resting on his folded arms and his face hidden. "Very well, sir; I'll
+do my best. We have to accept each other for the best there is in us,
+I take it. You've saved my life and the life of those two women, and
+we all owe you our grat--"
+
+"Go to, go to. It's not of that I'm wishing to speak. Let's begin at
+the beginning, or, as near the beginning as we can. I've been standing
+here looking at you while you were sleeping,--and last night--I mean
+early this morning when I came up here, I--with a torch I studied your
+face well and long. A man betrays his true nature when he is sleeping.
+The lines of what he has been thinking and feeling show then when he
+cannot disguise them by smiles or words. I'm old enough to be your
+father--yes--so it might have been--and with your permission I'll talk
+to you straight."
+
+Harry King lifted his head and looked at the other, then resumed his
+former position. "Thank you," was all he said.
+
+"You've been well bred. You're in trouble. I ask you what is your true
+name and what you have done?"
+
+The young man did not speak. He lay still as if he had heard nothing,
+but the other saw his hands clinch into knotted fists and the muscles
+of his arms grow rigid. His heart beat heavily and the blood roared
+in his ears. At last he lifted his head and looked back at the big man
+and spoke monotonously.
+
+"I gave you my name--all the name I have." His face was white in the
+dim light and the lids drew close over his gray eyes.
+
+"You prefer to lie to me? I ask in good faith."
+
+"All the name I have is the one I gave you, Harry King."
+
+"And you will hold to the lie?" They looked steadily into each other's
+eyes. The young man nodded. "And there was more I asked of you."
+
+Then the young man turned away from the keen eyes that had held him
+and sat up in the fodder and clasped his knees with his hands and
+looked straight out before him, regarding nothing--nothing but his own
+thoughts. A strange expression crept over his face,--was it fear--or
+was it an inward terror? Suddenly he put out his hand with a frantic
+gesture toward the darkest corner of the place, "It's there," he cried
+in a voice scarcely above a whisper, then hid his eyes and moaned. At
+the sight, the big man's face softened.
+
+"Lad, lad, ye're in trouble. I saved your body as it hung over the
+cliff--and the Lord only knows how ye were saved. I took ye home and
+laid ye in my own bunk,--and looked on your face--and there my heart
+cried on the Lord for the first time in many years. I had forsworn the
+company of men, and of all women,--and the faith of my fathers had
+died in me,--but there, as I looked on your face--the lost years came
+back. And now--ye're only Harry King. Only Harry King."
+
+"That's all." The young man's lips set tightly and the cords of his
+neck stood out. Nothing was lost to the eyes that watched him so
+intently.
+
+"I had a son--once. I held him in my arms--for an hour--and then left
+him forever. You have a face that reminds me of one--one I hated--and
+it minds me of one I--I--loved,--of one I loved better than I loved
+life."
+
+Then Harry King turned and gazed in the big man's eyes, and as he
+gazed, the withdrawn, inward look left his own. He still sat clasping
+his knees. "I can more easily tell you what I have done than I can
+tell you my name. I have sworn never to utter it again." He was
+weeping, but he hid his tears for very shame of them.
+
+The older man shook his head. "I've known sorrow, boy, but the lesson
+of it, never. Men say there is a thing to be learned from sorrow, but
+to me it has brought only rebellion and bitterness. So I've missed
+the good of it because it came upon me through arrogance and
+injustice--not my own. So now I say to you--if it was at the
+expense of your soul I saved your life, it were better I had let
+you go down. Lad,--you've brought me a softness,--it's like what a
+man feels for a woman. I'm glad it's come back to me. It is good to
+feel. I'd make a son of you,--but--for the truth's sake tell me a bit
+more."
+
+"I had a friend and I killed him. I was angry and killed him. I have
+left my name in his grave." Harry King rose and walked away and stood
+shivering in the entrance of the shed. Then he came back and spoke
+humbly. "Do with me what you will, but call me Harry King. I have
+nothing on earth but the clothes on my body, and they are in rags. If
+you have work for me to do, let me do it, in mercy. If not, let me go
+back to the plains and die there."
+
+"How long ago was this?"
+
+"More--more than two years ago--yes, three--perhaps."
+
+"And where have you been?"
+
+"Knocking about--hiding. For a while I had work on the road they are
+building--"
+
+"Road? What road?"
+
+"The new railroad across the continent."
+
+"Where, young man, where?"
+
+"From Chicago on. They got it as far as Cheyenne, but that was the
+very place of all others where they would be apt to hunt for me. I got
+news of a detective hanging about the camp, and I was sure he had come
+there to track me. I had my wages and my clothes, and when I found
+they had traced me there, I spent all I had for my horse and took my
+pack and struck out over the plains." He paused and wiped the cold
+drops from his forehead, then lifted his head with gathered courage.
+"One day,--I found these people, nigh starving for both water and
+food, and without strength to go where they could be provided for.
+They, too, were refugees, I learned, and so I cast my lot with theirs,
+and served them as best I could."
+
+"And now they have fallen to the two of us to provide for. You say,
+give you work? I've lived here these twenty years and found work for
+no man but myself. I've found plenty of that--just to keep alive, part
+of the time. It's bad here in the winter--if the stores give out. Tell
+me what you know of these women."
+
+"Where is the man?"
+
+"Dead. I found him dead before I reached them. I left him lying where
+I found him, and pushed on--got there just in time. He wasn't three
+hours away from them as a man walks. I made them as comfortable as I
+could and saw that no Indians were about, nor had been, they said; so
+I ventured back and made a grave for him as best I could, and told the
+daughter only, for the old lady seemed out of her head. I don't know
+what we can do with her if she gets worse. I don't know." As the big
+man talked he noticed the younger one growing calmer and listening
+intently.
+
+"Before I buried him I searched him and found a few papers--just
+letters in a strange language, and from the feeling of his coat I
+judged others were hid--sewed in it, so I fetched it back to her--the
+young one. You thought I was long gone, and there was where you made
+the blunder. How did you suppose I came by the pack mule and the other
+horse?"
+
+"When I saw them, I knew you must have gone to Higgins' Camp and back,
+but how could I know it before? You might have been in need of me, and
+of food."
+
+"We'll say no more of it. Those men at the camp are beasts. I bought
+those animals and paid gold for them. They wanted to know where I got
+the gold. I told them where they'd never get it. They asked me ten
+prices for those beasts, and then tried to keep me there until they
+could clean me out and get hold of my knowledge. But I skipped away in
+the night when they were all drunk and asleep. Then I had to make a
+long detour to put them off the track if they should try to follow me,
+and all that took time."
+
+The big man paused to fill and light his pipe. "And what next?" asked
+Harry King.
+
+"Except for enough food and water to last us up the trail you came, I
+packed nothing back to the wagon, and so had room to bring a few of
+their things up here, and there may be some of your own among
+them--they said something about it. We hauled the wagon as far as a
+good place to hide it, in a wash, could be found, and we covered
+it--and our tracks. But there was nothing left in it but a few of
+their utensils, unless the box they did not open contained something.
+It was left in the wagon. That was the best I could do with only the
+help of the young woman, and she was too weak to do much. It may lie
+there untouched for ten years unless a rain scoops it out, and that's
+not likely.
+
+"I showed the young woman as we came along where her father lay, and
+as we came to a halt a bit farther on, she went back, while her mother
+slept, and knelt there praying for an hour. I doubt any good it did
+him, but it comforted her heart. It's a good religion for a woman,
+where she does not have to think things out for herself, but takes a
+priest's word for it all. And now they're here, and you're here, and
+my home is invaded, and my peace is gone, and may the Lord help me--I
+can't."
+
+Harry King looked at him a moment in silence. "Nor can I--help--but to
+take myself off."
+
+"Take yourself off! And leave me alone with two women? I who have
+foresworn them forever! How do you know but that they may each be
+possessed by seven devils? But there! It isn't so bad. As long as they
+stay you'll stay. It was through you they are here, and close on to
+winter,--and if it was summer, it would be as bad to send them away
+where they would have no place to stay and no way to live. Lad, the
+world's hard on women. I've seen much."
+
+Harry King went again and stood in the open entrance of the shed and
+waited. The big man saw that he had succeeded in taking the other's
+mind off himself, and had led him to think of others, and now he
+followed up the advantage toward confidence that he had thus gained.
+He also came to the entrance and laid his kindly hand on the younger
+man's shoulder, and there in the pale light of that cloudy fall
+morning, standing in the cool, invigorating air, with the sound of
+falling water in their ears, the two men made a compact, and the end
+was this.
+
+"Harry King, if you'll be my son, I'll be your father. My boy would be
+about your age--if he lives,--but if he does, he has been taught to
+look down on me--on the very thought of me." He cast a wistful glance
+at the young man's face as he spoke. "From the time I held him in my
+arms, a day-old baby, I've never seen him, and it may be he has never
+heard of me. He was in good hands and was given over for good reasons,
+to one who hated my name and my race--and me. For love of his mother I
+did this. It was all I could do for her; I would have gone down into
+the grave for her.
+
+"I, too, have been a wanderer over the face of the earth. At first I
+lived in India--in China--anywhere to be as far on the other side of
+the earth from her grave and my boy, as I vowed I would, but I've kept
+the memory of her sweet in my heart. You need not fear I'll ask again
+for your name. Until you choose to give it I will respect your
+wish,--and for the rest--speak of it when you must--but not before. I
+have no more to ask. You've been well bred, as I said, and that's
+enough for me. You're more than of age--I can see that--but it's my
+opinion you need a father. Will you take me?"
+
+The young man drew in his breath sharply through quivering lips, and
+made answer with averted head: "Cain! Cain and the curse of Cain! Can
+I allow another to share it?"
+
+"Another shares it and you have no choice."
+
+"I will be more than a son. Sons hurt their fathers and accept all
+from them and give little. You lifted me out of the abyss and brought
+me back to life. You took on yourself the burden laid on me, to save
+those who trusted me, knowing nothing of my crime,--and now you drag
+my very soul from hell. I will do more than be your son--I will give
+you the life you saved. Who are you?"
+
+Then the big man gave his name, making no reciprocal demand. What
+mattered a name? It was the man, by whatever name, he wanted.
+
+"I am an Irishman by birth, and my name is Larry Kildene. If you'll go
+to a little county not so far from Dublin, but to the north, you'll
+find my people."
+
+He was looking away toward the top of the mountain as he spoke, and
+was seeing his grandfather's house as he had seen it when a boy, and
+so he did not see the countenance of the young man at his side. Had he
+done so, he would not have missed knowing what the young man from that
+moment knew, and from that moment, out of the love now awakened in his
+heart for the big man, carefully concealed, giving thanks that he had
+not told his name.
+
+For a long minute they stood thus looking away from each other, while
+Harry King, by a mighty effort, gained control of his features, and
+his voice. Then although white to the lips, he spoke quietly: "Harry
+King--the murderer--be the son of Larry Kildene--Larry Kildene--I--to
+slink away in the hills--forever to hide--"
+
+"No more of that. I'll show you a new life. Give me your hand, Harry
+King." And the young man extended both hands in a silence through
+which no words could have been heard.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XVII
+
+ADOPTING A FAMILY
+
+
+As the two men walked down toward the cabin they saw Amalia standing
+beside the door in the sunlight which now streamed through a rift in
+the clouds, gazing up at the towering mountain and listening to the
+falling water. She spied them and came swiftly to them, extending both
+hands in a sweet, gracious impulsiveness, and began speaking rapidly
+even before she reached them.
+
+"Ah! So beautiful is your home! It is so much that I would say to you
+of gratitude in my heart--it is like a river flowing swiftly to tell
+you--Ah! I cannot say it all--and we come and intrude ourselves upon
+you thus that you have no place where to go for your own sleeping--Is
+not? Yes, I know it. So must we think quickly how we may unburden you
+of us--my mother and myself--only that she yet is sleeping that
+strange sleep that seems still not like sleep. Let me that I serve
+you, sir?"
+
+Larry Kildene looked on her glowing, upturned face, gathering his
+slower wits for some response to her swift speech, while she turned to
+the younger man, grasping his hands in the same manner and not ceasing
+the flow of her utterance.
+
+"And you, at such severe labor and great danger, have found this noble
+man, and have sent him to us--to you do we owe what never can we
+pay--it is thus while we live must we always thank you in our hearts.
+And to this place--so _won-n-der-ful_--Ah! Beautiful like heaven--Is
+not? Yes, and the sweet sound always in the air--like heaven and the
+sound of wings--to stop here even for this night is to make those
+sorrowful thoughts lie still and for a while speak nothing."
+
+As she turned from one to the other, addressing each in turn, warm
+lights flashed in her eyes through tears, like stars in a deep pool.
+Her dark hair rolled back from her smooth oval forehead in heavy
+coils, and over her head and knotted under her perfect chin, outlining
+its curve, was a silken peasant handkerchief with a crimson border of
+the richest hue, while about the neck of her colorless, closely fitted
+gown was a piece of exquisite hand-wrought lace. She stood before
+them, a vision from the old world, full of innate ladyhood, simple as
+a peasant, at once appealing and dominating, impulsive, yet shy. Her
+beautiful enunciation, her inverted and quaintly turned English, alive
+with poetry, was typical of her whole personality, a sweet and strange
+mixture of the high-bred aristocrat and the simple directness and
+strength of the peasant.
+
+The two men made stumbling and embarrassed replies. That tender and
+beautiful quality of chivalry toward women, belonging by nature to
+undefiled manhood, was awakened in them, and as one being, not two,
+they would have laid their all at her feet. This, indeed, they
+literally did. The small, one-room cabin, which had so long served for
+Larry Kildene's palace, was given over entirely to the two women, and
+the men made their own abode in the shed where they had slept.
+
+This they accomplished by creating a new room, by extending the
+roof-covered space Larry had used for his stable and the storing of
+fodder, far enough along under the great overhanging rock to allow of
+comfortable bunks, a place to walk about, and a fireplace also. The
+labor involved in the making of this room was a boon to Harry King.
+
+Upon the old stone boat which Larry had used for a similar purpose he
+hauled stones gathered from the rock ledge and built therewith a
+chimney, and with the few tools in the big man's store he made seats
+out of hewn logs, and a rude table. This work was left to him by the
+older man purposely, while he occupied himself with the gathering in
+of the garden stuff for themselves and for the animals. A matter that
+troubled his good heart not a little was that of providing for the
+coming winter enough food supply for his suddenly acquired family. Of
+grain and fodder he thought he had enough for animals kept in
+idleness, as he still had stores gathered in previous years for his
+own horse. But for these women, he must not allow them to suffer the
+least privation.
+
+It was not the question of food alone that disturbed him. At last he
+laid his troubles before Harry King.
+
+"You know, lad, it won't be so long before the snow will be down on
+us, and I'm thinking what shall we do with them when the long winter
+days set in." He nodded his head toward the cabin. "It's already
+getting too cold for them to sit out of doors as they do. I should
+have windows in my cabin--if I could get the glass up here. They can't
+live there in the darkness, with the snow banked around them, with
+nothing to use their fingers on as women like to do. Now, if they had
+cloth or thread--but what use had I for such things? They're not
+among my stores. I did not lay out to make it a home for women. The
+mother will get farther and farther astray with her dreams if she has
+nothing to do such as women like."
+
+"I think we should ask them--or ask Amalia, she is wise. Have you
+enough to keep them on--of food?"
+
+"Of food, yes. Such as it is. No flour, but plenty of good wheat and
+corn. I always pound it up and bake it, but it is coarse fare for
+women. There's plenty of game for the hunting, and easy got, but it's
+something to think about we'll need, else we'll all go loony."
+
+"You have lived long here alone and seem sound of mind,--except for--"
+Harry King smiled, "except for a certain unworldliness that would pass
+for lunacy in the world below these heights."
+
+"Let alone, son. I've usually had my own way for these years and have
+formed the habit, but I've had my times. At the best it's a sort of
+lunacy that takes a man away from his fellows, especially an Irishman.
+Maybe you'll discover for yourself before we part--but it's not to the
+point now. I'm asking you how we can keep the mother from brooding and
+the daughter happy? She's asking to be sent away to earn money for her
+mother. She thinks she can take her mother with her to the nearest
+place on that new railroad you tell me of, and so on to some town. I
+tell her, no. And if she goes, and leaves her mother here--bless
+you--what would we do with her? Why, the woman would go yonder and
+jump over the cliff."
+
+"Oh, it would never do to listen to her. It would never do for her to
+try living in a city earning her bread--not while--" Harry King paused
+and turned a white, drawn face toward the mountain. Larry watched
+him. "I can do nothing." He threw out his hands with a sudden downward
+movement. "I, a criminal in hiding! My manhood is of no avail! My
+God!"
+
+"Remember, lad, the women have need of you right here. I'm keeping you
+on this mountain at my valuation, not yours. I have need of you, and
+your past is not to intrude in this place, and when you go out in the
+world again, as you will, when the right time comes, you'll know how
+to meet--and face--your life--or death, as a man should.
+
+"Hold yourself with a firm hand, and do the work of the days as they
+come. It's all the Lord gives us to do at any time. If I only had
+books--now,--they would help us,--but where to get them--or how? We'll
+even go and ask the women, as you advise."
+
+They all ate together in the little cabin, as was their habit, a meal
+prepared by Amalia, and carefully set out with all the dishes the
+cabin afforded: so few that there were not enough to serve all at
+once, but eked out by wooden blocks, and small lace serviettes taken
+from Amalia's store of linen. At noon one day Larry Kildene spoke his
+anxieties for their welfare, and cleverly managed to make the theme a
+gay one.
+
+"Where's the use in adopting a family if you don't get society out of
+them? The question I ask is, when the winter shuts us in, what are we
+going to do for sport--work--what you will? It's indoor sport I'm
+meaning, for Harry and I have the hunting and providing in the
+daytime. No, never you ask me what I was doing before you came. I was
+my own master then--"
+
+"And now you are ours? That is good, Sir Kildene. You have to say
+what to do, and me, I accept to do what you advise. Is not?"
+
+Amalia turned to Larry and smiled, and whenever Amalia smiled, her
+mother would smile also, and nod her head as if to approve, although
+she usually sat in silence.
+
+"Yours to command," said Larry, bowing.
+
+"He's master of us all, but it's yours to direct, Lady Amalia."
+
+"Oh, me, Mr. 'Arry. It is better for me I make for you both sufficient
+to eat, so all goes well. I think I have heard men are always pleased
+of much that is excellent to eat and drink."
+
+"Now, listen. We have only a short time before the heavy snows will
+come down on us, and then there will be no chance whatever to get
+supplies of any sort before spring. How far is the road completed now,
+Harry?"
+
+"It should be well past Cheyenne by now. They must be working toward
+Laramie rapidly. If--if--you think best, I will go down and get
+supplies--whatever can be found there."
+
+"No. I have a plan. There's enough for one man to do here finishing
+the jobs I have laid out, but one of us can very well be spared, and
+as you have wakened me from my long sleep, and stirred my old bones to
+life, and as I know best how to travel in this region, I'll take the
+mule along, and go myself. I have a fancy for traveling by rail again.
+You ladies make out a list of all you need, and I'll fill the order,
+in so far as the stations have the articles. If I can't find the right
+things at one station, I may at another, even if I go back East for
+them."
+
+"Ah, but, Sir Kildene, it is that we have no money. If but we could
+get from the wagon the great box, there have we enough of things to
+give us labor for all the winter. It is the lovely lace I make. A
+little of the thread I have here, but not sufficient for long. So,
+too, there is my father's violin. It made me much heart pain to leave
+it--for me, I play a little,--and there is also of cloth such as men
+wear--not of great quantity--but enough that I can make for
+you--something--a little--maybe, Mr. 'Arry he like well some good
+shirt of wool--as we make for our peasant--Is not?" Harry looked down
+on his worn gray shirt sleeves, then into her eyes, and on the instant
+his own fell. She took it for simple embarrassment, and spoke on.
+
+"Yes. To go with us and help us so long and terrible a way, it has
+made very torn your apparel."
+
+"It makes that we improve him, could we obtain the box," said the
+mother, speaking for the first time that day. Her voice was so deep
+and full that it was almost masculine, but her modulations were
+refined and most agreeable.
+
+Amalia laughed for very gladness that her mother at last showed enough
+interest in what was being said to speak.
+
+"Ah, mamma, to improve--it is to make better the mind--the heart--but
+of this has Mr. 'Arry no need. Is not, Sir Kildene? I call you always
+Sir as title to nobleness of character. We have, in our country, to
+inherit title, but here to make it of such character. It is well, I
+think so."
+
+Poor Larry Kildene had his own moment of embarrassment, but with her
+swift appreciation of their moods she talked rapidly on, leaving the
+compliment to fall as it would, and turning their thoughts to the
+subject in hand. "But the box, mamma, it is heavy, and it is far down
+on the terrible plain. If that you should try to obtain it, Sir
+Kildene: Ah, I cannot!--Even to think of the peril is a hurt in my
+heart. It must even lie there."
+
+"And the men 'rouge'--"
+
+"Yes. Of the red men--those Indian--of them I have great fear."
+
+"The danger from them is past, now. If the road is beyond Cheyenne, it
+must have reached Laramie or nearly so, and they would hang around the
+stations, picking up what they can, but the government has them in
+hand as never before. They would not dare interfere with white men
+anywhere near the road. I've dreamed of a railroad to connect the two
+oceans, but never expected to see it in my lifetime. I've taken a
+notion to go and see it--just to look at it,--to try to be reconciled
+to it."
+
+"Reconciled? It is to like it, you mean--Sir Kildene? Is it not
+_won-n-derful_--the achievement?"
+
+"Oh, yes, the achievement, as you say. But other things will follow,
+and the plains will no longer keep men at bay. The money grabbers will
+pour in, and all the scum of creation will flock toward the setting
+sun. Then, too, I shall hate to see the wild animals that have their
+own rights killed in unsportsmanlike manner, and annihilated, as they
+are wherever men can easily reach them. Men are wasteful and bad. I've
+seen things in the wild places of the earth--and in the places where
+men flock together in hoards--and where they think they are most
+civilized, and the result has been what you see here,--a man living
+alone with a horse for companionship, and the voice of the winds and
+the falling water to fill his soul. Go to. Go to."
+
+Larry Kildene rose and stood a moment in the cabin door, then
+sauntered out in the sun, and off toward the fall. He had need to
+think a while alone. His companions knew this necessity was on him,
+and said nothing--only looked at each other, and took up the question
+of their needs for the winter.
+
+"Mr. 'Arry, is it possible to reach with safety a station? I mean is
+time yet to go and return before the snows? Here are no deadly wolves
+as in my own country--but is much else to make dangerous the way."
+
+"There must be time or he would not propose it. I don't know about the
+snows here."
+
+"I have seen that Sir Kildene drinks with most pleasure the coffee,
+but is little left--or not enough for all--to drink it. My mother and
+I we drink with more pleasure the tea, and of tea we ourselves have a
+little. It is possible also I make of things more palatable if I have
+the sugar, but is very little here. I have searched well, the foods
+placed here. Is it that Sir Kildene has other places where are such
+articles?"
+
+"All he has is in the bins against the wall yonder."
+
+"Here is the key he gave me, and I have look well, but is not enough
+to last but for one through all the months of winter. Ah, poor man! We
+have come and eat his food like the wolves of the wild country at
+home, is not? I have make each day of the coffee for him, yes, a good
+drink, and for you not so good--forgive,--but for me and my mother,
+only to pretend, that it might last for him. It is right so. We have
+gone without more than to have no coffee, and this is not privation.
+To have too much is bad for the soul."
+
+Amalia's mother seemed to have withdrawn herself from them and
+sat gazing into the smoking logs, apparently not hearing their
+conversation. Harry King for the second time that day looked in
+Amalia's eyes. It was a moment of forgetfulness. He had forbidden
+himself this privilege except when courtesy demanded.
+
+"You forgive--that I put--little coffee in your drink?"
+
+"Forgive? Forgive?"
+
+He murmured questioningly as if he hardly comprehended her meaning, as
+indeed he did not. His mind was going over the days since first he saw
+her, toiling to gather enough sagebrush to cook a drop of tea for her
+father, and striving to conceal from him that she, herself, was taking
+none, and barely tasting her hard biscuit that there might be enough
+to keep life in her parents. As she sat before him now, in her worn,
+mended, dark dress with the wonderful lace at the throat, and her thin
+hands lying on the crimson-bordered kerchief in her lap,--her fingers
+playing with the fringe, he still looked in her eyes and murmured,
+"Forgive?"
+
+"Ah, Mr. 'Arry, your mind is sleeping and has gone to dream. Listen to
+me. If one goes to the plain, quickly he must go. I make with haste
+this naming of things to eat. It is sad we must always eat--eat. In
+heaven maybe is not so." She wandered a moment about the cabin, then
+laughed for the second time. "Is no paper on which to write."
+
+"There is no need of paper; he'll remember. Just mention them over.
+Coffee,--is there any tea beside that you have?"
+
+"No, but no need. I name it not."
+
+"Tea is light and easily brought. What else?"
+
+"And paper. I ask for that but for me to write my little romance of
+all this--forgive--it is for occupation in the long winter. You also
+must write of your experiences--perhaps--of your history of--of--You
+like it not? Why, Mr. 'Arry! It is to make work for the mind. The mind
+must work--work--or die. The hands--well. I make lace with the
+hands--but for the mind is music--or the books--but here are no
+books--good--we make them. So, paper I ask, and of crayon--Alas! It is
+in the box! What to do?"
+
+"Listen. We'll have that box, and bring it here on the mountain. I'll
+get it."
+
+"Ah, no! No. Will you break my heart?" She seized his arm and looked
+in his eyes, her own brimming with tears. Then she flung up her arms
+in her dramatic way, and covered her eyes. "I can see it all so
+terrible. If you should go there and the Indian strike you dead--or
+the snow come too soon and kill you with the cold--in the great drift
+lying white--all the terrible hours never to see you again--Ah, no!"
+
+In that instant his heart leaped toward her and the blood roared in
+his ears. He would have clasped her to him, but he only stood rigidly
+still. "Hands off, murderer!" The words seemed shouted at him by his
+own conscience. "I would rather die--than that you should not have
+your box," was all he said, and left the cabin. He, too, had need to
+think things out alone.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XVIII
+
+LARRY KILDENE'S STORY
+
+
+"Man, but this is none so bad--none so bad."
+
+Larry Kildene sat on a bench before a roaring fire in the room added
+on to the fodder shed. The chimney which Harry King had built,
+although not quite completed to its full height, was being tried for
+the first time, as the night was too cold for comfort in the long, low
+shed without fire, and the men had come down early this evening to
+talk over their plans before Larry should start down the mountain in
+the morning. They had heaped logs on the women's fire and seen that
+all was right for them, and with cheerful good-nights had left them to
+themselves.
+
+Now, as they sat by their own fire, Harry could see Amalia by hers,
+seated on a low bench of stone, close to the blazing torch of pine, so
+placed that its smoke would be drawn up the large chimney. It was all
+the light they had for their work in the evenings, other than the
+firelight. He could see her fingers moving rapidly and mechanically at
+some pretty open-work pattern, and now and then grasping deftly at the
+ball of fine white thread that seemed to be ever taking little leaps,
+and trying to roll into the fire, or out over the cabin floor. She
+used a fine, slender needle and seemed to be performing some delicate
+magic with her fingers. Was she one of the three fates continually
+drawing out the thread of his life and weaving therewith a charmed
+web? And if so--when would she cease?
+
+"It's a good job and draws well."
+
+"The chimney? Yes, it seems to." Harry roused himself and tried to
+close his mind against the warm, glowing picture. "Yes--yes. It draws
+well. I'm inclined to be a bit proud, although I never could have done
+it if you had not given me the lessons."
+
+"It's art, my boy. To build a good fireplace is just that. Did you
+ever think that the whole world--and the welfare of it--centers just
+around that;--the fireplace and the hearth--or what stands for it in
+these days--maybe a little hole in the wall with a smudge of coal in
+it, as they have in the towns--but it's the hearth and the cradle
+beside it--and--the mother."
+
+Larry's voice died almost to a whisper, and his chin dropped on his
+breast, and his eyes gazed on the burning logs; and Harry, sitting
+beside him, gazed also at the same logs, but the pictures wrought in
+the alchemy of their souls were very different.
+
+To Harry it was a sweet, oval face--a flush from the heat of the fire
+more on the smooth cheek that was toward it than on the other, and
+warm flame flashes in the large eyes that looked up at him from time
+to time, while the slender figure bent a little forward to see the
+better, as the wonderful hands kept up the never ceasing motion. A
+white linen cloth spread over her lap cast a clearer, more rosy light
+under her chin and brought out the strength of it and the delicate
+curves of it, which Harry longed even to dare to look upon in the
+rarest stolen intervals, without the clamor and outcry in his heart.
+It was always the same--the cry of Cain in the wilderness. Would God
+it might some day cease! What to him might be the hearth fire and the
+cradle, and the mother, that the big man should dwell on them thus?
+What had they meant in Larry Kildene's life, he who had lived for
+twenty years the life of a hermit, and had forsworn women forever, as
+he said?
+
+"I tell ye, lad, there's a thing I would say to you--before I leave,
+but it's sore to touch upon." Harry made a deprecating gesture. "No,
+it's best I tell you. I--I'll come back--never fear--it's my plan to
+come back, but in this life you may count on nothing for a surety.
+I've learned that, and to prove it, look at me. I made sure, never
+would I open my heart again to think on my fellow beings, but as
+aliens to my life, and I've lived it out for twenty years, and thought
+to hold out to the end. I held the Indians at bay through their
+superstitions, and they would no more dare to cross my path with
+hostile intent than they would dare take their chances over that fall
+above there. Where did I put my pipe? I can't seem to find things as I
+did in the cabin."
+
+"Here it is, sir. I placed that stone further out at the end of the
+chimney on purpose for it, and in this side I've left a hole for your
+tobacco. I thought I was very clever doing that."
+
+"And we'd be fine and cozy here in the winter--if it wer'n't for the
+women--a--a--now I'm blundering. I'd never turn them out if they lived
+there the rest of their days. But to have a lad beside me as I might
+have had--if you'd said, 'Here it is, father,' but now, it would have
+have been music to me. You see, Harry, I forswore the women harder
+than I did the men, and it's the longing for the son I held in my
+arms an hour and then gave up, that has lived in me all these years.
+The mother--gone--The son I might have had."
+
+"I can't say that--to you. I have a curse on me, and it will stay
+until I have paid for my crime. But I'll be more to you than sons are
+to their fathers. I'll be faithful to you as a dog to his master, and
+love you more. I'll live for you even with the curse on me, and if
+need be, I'll die for you."
+
+"It's enough. I'll ask you no more. Have you no curiosity to hear what
+I have to tell you?"
+
+"I have, indeed I have. But it seems I can't ask it--unless I'm able
+to return your confidence. To talk of my sorrow only deepens it. It
+drives me wild."
+
+"You'll have it yet to learn, that nothing helps a sorrow that can't
+be helped like bearing it. I don't mean to lie down under it like a
+dumb beast--but just take it up and bear it. That's what you're doing
+now, and sometime you'll be able to carry it, and still laugh now and
+again, when it's right to laugh--and even jest, on occasion. It's been
+done and done well. It's good for a man to do it. The lass down there
+at the cabin is doing it--and the mother is not. She's living in the
+past. Maybe she can't help it."
+
+"When I first came on them out there in the desert, she seemed brave
+and strong. He was a poor, crippled man, with enormous vitality and a
+leonine head. The two women adored him and lived only for him, and he
+never knew it. He lived for an ideal and would have died for it. He
+did not speak English as well as they. I used to wish I could
+understand him, for he had a poet's soul, and eyes like his
+daughter's. He seemed to carry some secret with him, and no doubt was
+followed about the world as he thought he was. Fleeing myself, I could
+not know, but from things the mother has dropped, they must have seen
+terrible times together, she and her husband."
+
+"A wonderful deal of poetry and romance always clung to the names of
+Poland and Hungary for me. When I was young, our part of the world
+thrilled at the name of Kosciuszko and Kossuth. I'd give a good deal
+to know what this man's secret was. All those old tales of mystery,
+like 'The Man with the Iron Mask,' and stories of noblemen spirited
+away to Siberia, of men locked for many years in dungeons, like the
+'Prisoner of Chillon,' which fired the fancy and genius of Byron
+and sent him to fight for the oppressed, used to fill my dreams."
+Larry talked on as if to himself. It seemed as if it were a habit
+formed when he had only himself with whom to visit, and Harry was
+interested.
+
+"Now, to almost come upon a man of real ideals and a secret,--and just
+miss it. I ought to have been out in the world doing some work worth
+while--with my miserable, broken life--Boy! I knew that man McBride! I
+knew him for sure. We were in college together. He left Oxford to go
+to Russia, wild with the spirit of adventure and something more. He
+was a dreamer--with a practical turn, too. There, no doubt, he met
+these people. I judge this Manovska must have been in the diplomatic
+service of Poland, from what Amalia told us. Have you any idea whether
+that woman sitting there all day long rapt in her own thoughts knows
+her husband's secret? Is it a thing any one now living would care to
+know?"
+
+"Indeed, yes. They lived in terror of the prince who hounded him over
+the world. The mother trusted no one, but Amalia told me--enough--all
+she knows herself. I don't know if the mother has the secret or not,
+but at least she guesses it. The poor man was trying to live until he
+could impart his knowledge to the right ones to bring about an
+upheaval that would astonish the world. It meant revolution, whatever
+it was. Amalia imagines it was to place a Polish king on the throne of
+Russia, but she does not know. She told me of stolen records of a
+Polish descendant of Catherine II of Russia. She thinks they were
+brought to her father after he came to this country."
+
+"If he had such knowledge or even thought he had, it was enough to set
+them on his track all his life; the wonder is that he was let to live
+at all."
+
+"The mother never mentioned it, but Amalia told me. We talked more
+freely out in the desert. That remarkable woman walked at her
+husband's side over all the terrible miles to Siberia, and through her
+he escaped,--and of the horrors of those years she never would speak,
+even to her daughter. It's not to be wondered at that her mind is
+astray. It's only a wonder that she is for the most part so calm."
+
+"Well, the grave holds many a mystery, and what a fascination a
+mystery has for humanity, savage or civilized! I've kept the Indians
+at bay all this time by that means. They fear--they know not what, and
+the mystery holds them. Now, for ourselves, I leave you for a little
+while in charge of--the women--and of all my possessions." Larry,
+gazing into the blazing logs, smiled. "You may not think so much of
+them, but it's not so little now. Talk about lunacy--man, I
+understand it. I've been a lunatic--for--ever since I made a find here
+in this mountain."
+
+He paused and mused a while, and Harry's thoughts dwelt for the time
+on his own find in the wing of the cabin, where the firewood was
+stored. The ring and the chest--he had not forgotten them, but by no
+means would he mention them.
+
+"You may wonder why I should tell you this, but when I'm through,
+you'll know. It all came about because of a woman." Larry Kildene cast a
+sidelong glance at Harry, and the glance was keen and saw more than the
+younger man dreamed. "It's more often so than any other way--almost always
+because of a woman. Her name may be anything--Mary--Elizabeth,--but, a
+woman. This one's name was Katherine. Not like the Katherine of
+Shakespeare, but the sweetest--the tenderest mother-woman the Lord ever
+gave to man. I see her there in the fire. I've seen her there these many
+years. Well, she was twin sister to the man who hated me. He hated
+me--for why, I don't know--perhaps because he never could influence
+me. He would make all who cared for him bow before his will.
+
+"When I first saw her, she lived in his home. He was a banker of
+means,--not wholly of his own getting, but partly so. His father was a
+man of thrift and saving--anyway, he came to set too much store by
+money. Sometimes I think he might have been jealous of me because I
+had the Oxford training, and wished me to feel that wealth was a
+greater thing to have. Scotchmen think more of education than we of
+Ireland. It's a good thing, of course, but I'd never have looked down
+on him because he went lacking it. But for some indiscretion maybe I
+would have had money, too. It was spent too lavishly on me in my
+youth. But no. I had none--only the experience and the knowledge of
+what it might bring.
+
+"Well, it came about that I came to America to gain the money I
+lacked, and having learned a bit, in spite of Oxford and the schools,
+of a practical nature, I took a position in his bank. All was very
+well until I met her. Now there were the rosy cheeks and the dark hair
+for you! She looked more like an Irish lass than a Scotch one. But
+they're not so different, only that the Irish are for the most part
+comelier.
+
+"Now this banker had a very sweet wife, and she was kind to the Irish
+lad and welcomed him to her house. I'm thinking she liked me a bit--I
+liked her at all events. She welcomed me to her house until she was
+forbid. It was after they forbid me the house that I took to walking
+with Katherine, when all thought she was at Sunday School or visiting
+a neighbor, or even--at the last--when no other time could be
+stolen--when they thought her in bed. We walked there by the river
+that flows by the town of Leauvite."
+
+Again Larry Kildene paused and shot a swift glance at the young man
+at his side, and noted the drawn lids and blanched face, but he kept
+on. "In the moonlight we walked--lad--the ground there is holy now,
+because she walked upon it. We used to go to a high bluff that
+made a sheer fall to the river below--and there we used to stand and
+tell each other--things we dreamed--of the life we should live
+together--Ah, that life! She has spent it in heaven. I--I--have
+spent the most of it here." He did not look at Harry King again. His
+voice shook, but he continued. "After a time her brother got to
+know about it, and he turned me from the bank, and sent her to live
+with his father's sisters in Scotland.
+
+"Kind old ladies, but unmarried, and too old for such a lass. How
+could they know the heart of a girl who loved a man? It was I who knew
+that. What did her brother know--her own twin brother? Nothing,
+because he could see only his own thoughts, never hers, and thought
+his thoughts were enough for wife or girl. I tell you, lad, men err
+greatly in that, and right there many of the troubles of life step in.
+The old man, her father, had left all his money to his son, but with
+the injunction that she was to be provided for, all her days, of his
+bounty. It's a mean way to treat a woman--because--see? She has no
+right to her thoughts, and her heart is his to dispose of where he
+wills--not as she wills--and then comes the trouble.
+
+"I ask you, lad, if you loved a girl as fine as silk and as tender as
+a flower you could crush in your hand with a touch ungentle, and you
+saw one holding her with that sort of a touch,--even if it was meant
+in love,--I'll not be unjust, he loved her as few love their
+sisters--but he could not grasp her thus; I ask you what would you
+do?"
+
+"If I were a true man, and had a right to my manhood, I would take
+her. I'd follow her to the ends of the earth."
+
+"Right, my son--I did that. I took the little money I had from my
+labor at the bank--all I had saved, and I went bravely to those two
+old women--her aunts, and they turned me from their door. It was what
+they had been enjoined to do. They said I was after the money and
+without conscience or thrift. With the Scotch, often, the confusion is
+natural between thrift and conscience. Ah, don't I know! If a man is
+prosperous, he may hold out his hand to a maid and say 'Come,' and all
+her relatives will cry 'Go,' and the marriage bells will ring. If he
+is a happy Irishman with a shrunken purse, let his heart be loving and
+true and open as the day, they will spurn him forth. For food and
+raiment will they sell a soul, and for household gear will they clip
+the wings of the little god, and set him out in the cold.
+
+"But the arrow had entered Katherine's heart, and I knew and bided my
+time. They saw no more of me, but I knew all her goings and comings. I
+found her one day on the moor, with her collie, and her cheeks had
+lost their color, and her gray eyes looked in my face with their tears
+held back, like twin lakes under a cloud before a storm falls. I took
+her in my arms, and we kissed. The collie looked on and wagged his
+tail. It was all the approval we ever got from the family, but he was
+a knowing dog.
+
+"Well, then we walked hand in hand to a village, and it was near
+nightfall, and we went straight to a magistrate and were married. I
+had a little coin with me, and we stayed all night at an inn. There
+was a great hurrying and scurrying all night over the moors for her,
+but we knew naught of it, for we lay sleeping in each other's arms as
+care free and happy as birds. If she wept a little, I comforted her.
+In the morning we went to the great house where the aunts lived in the
+town, and there, with her hand in mine, I told them, and the storm
+broke. It was the disgrace of having been married clandestinely by a
+magistrate that cut them most to the heart; and yet, what did they
+think a man would do? And they cried upon her: 'We trusted you. We
+trusted you.' And all the reply she made was: 'You thought I'd never
+dare, but I love him.' Yes, love makes a woman's heart strong.
+
+"Well, then, nothing would do, but they must have in the minister and
+see us properly married. After that we stayed never a night in their
+house, but I took her to Ireland to my grandfather's home. It was a
+terrible year in Ireland, for the poverty was great, and while my
+grandfather was well-to-do, as far as that means in Ireland, it was
+very little they had that year for helping the poor." Larry Kildene
+glanced no more at Harry King, but looked only in the fire, where the
+logs had fallen in a glowing heap. His pipe was out, but he still held
+it in his hand.
+
+"It was little I could do. I had my education, and could repeat poems
+and read Latin, but that would not feed hungry peasant children. I
+went out on the land and labored with the men, and gave of my little
+patrimony to keep the old folks, but it was too small for them all, so
+at last I yielded to Katherine's importunities, and she wrote to her
+brother for help--not for her and me, mind you.
+
+"It was for the poor in Ireland she wrote, and she let me read it. It
+was a sweet letter, asking forgiveness for her willfulness, yet saying
+she must even do the same thing again if it were to do over again. She
+pleaded only for the starving in the name of Christ. She asked only if
+a little of that portion which should be hers might be sent her, and
+that because he was her only brother and twin, and like part of her
+very self--she turned it so lovingly--I never could tell you with what
+skill--but she had the way--yes. But what did it bring?
+
+"He was a canny, canny Scot, although brought up in America. Only for
+the times when his mother would take him back to Aberdeen with my
+Katherine for long visits, he never saw Scotland, but what's in the
+blood holds fast through life. He was a canny Scot. It takes a time
+for letters to go and come, and in those days longer than now, when in
+two weeks one may reach the other side. The reply came as speedily as
+those days would admit, and it was carefully considered. Ah, Peter was
+a clever man to bring about his own way. Never a word did he say about
+forgiveness. It was as if no breach had ever been, but one thing I
+noticed that she thought must be only an omission, because of the more
+important things that crowded it out. It was that never once did he
+mention me any more than if I had never existed. He said he would send
+her a certain sum of money--and it was a generous one, that is but
+just to admit--if when she received it she would take another sum,
+which he would also send, and return to them. He said his home was
+hers forever if she wished, and that he loved her, and had never had
+other feeling for her than love. Upon this letter came a long time of
+pleading with me--and I was ever soft--with her. She won her way.
+
+"'We will both go, Larry, dear,' she said. 'I know he forgot to say
+you might come, too. If he loves me as he says, he would not break my
+heart by leaving you out.'
+
+"'He sends only enough for one--for you,' I said.
+
+"'Yes, but he thinks you have enough to come by yourself. He thinks
+you would not accept it--and would not insult you by sending more.'
+
+"'He insults me by sending enough for you, dear. If I have it for me,
+I have it for you--most of all for you, or I'm no true man. If I have
+none for you--then we have none.'
+
+"'Larry, for love of me, let me go--for the gulf between my twin
+brother and me will never be passed until I go to him.' And this was
+true enough. 'I will make them love you. Hester loves you now. She
+will help me.' Hester was the sweet wife of her brother. So she clung
+to me, and her hands touched me and caressed me--lad, I feel them now.
+I put her on the boat, and the money he sent relieved the suffering
+around me, and I gave thanks with a sore heart. It was for them, our
+own peasantry, and for her, I parted with her then, but as soon as I
+could I sold my little holding near my grandfather's house to an
+Englishman who had long wanted it, and when it was parted with, I took
+the money and delayed not a day to follow her.
+
+"I wrote to her, telling her when and where to meet me in the little
+town of Leauvite, and it was on the bluff over the river. I went to a
+home I knew there--where they thought well of me--I think. In the
+evening I walked up the long path, and there under the oak trees at
+the top where we had been used to sit, I waited. She came to me,
+walking in the golden light. It was spring. The whip-poor-wills called
+and replied to each other from the woods. A mourning dove spoke to its
+mate among the thick trees, low and sad, but it is only their way. I
+was glad, and so were they.
+
+"I held her in my arms, and the river sang to us. She told me all over
+again the love in her heart for me, as she used to tell it. Lad! There
+is only one theme in the world that is worth telling. There is only
+one song in the universe that is worth singing, and when your heart
+has once sung it aright, you will never sing another. The air was soft
+and sweet around us, and we stayed until a town clock struck twelve;
+then I took her back, and, as she was not strong, part of the way I
+carried her in my arms. I left her at her brother's door, and she went
+into the shadows there, and I was left outside,--all but my heart. She
+had been home so short a time--her brother was not yet reconciled, but
+she said she knew he would be. For me, I vowed I would make money
+enough to give her a home that would shame him for the poverty of his
+own--his, which he thought the finest in the town."
+
+For a long time there was silence, and Larry Kildene sat with his head
+drooped on his breast. At last he took up the thread where he had left
+it. "Two days later I stood in the heavy parlor of that house,--I
+stood there with their old portraits looking down on me, and my heart
+was filled with ice--ice and fire. I took what they placed in my arms,
+and it was--my--little son, but it might have been a stone. It weighed
+like lead in my arms, that ached with its weight. Might I see her? No.
+Was she gone? Yes. I laid the weight on the pillow held out to me for
+it, and turned away. Then Hester came and laid her hand on my arm, but
+my flesh was numb. I could not feel her touch.
+
+"'Give him to me, Larry,' she was saying. 'I will love him like my
+own, and he will be a brother to my little son.' And I gave him into
+her arms, although I knew even then that he would be brought up to
+know nothing of his father, as if I had never lived. I gave him into
+her arms because he had no mother and his father's heart had gone out
+of him. I gave him into her arms, because I felt it was all I could
+do to let his mother have the comfort of knowing that he was not
+adrift with me--if they do know where she is. For her sake most of all
+and for the lad's sake I left him there.
+
+"Then I knocked about the world a while, and back in Ireland I could
+not stay, for the haunting thought of her. I could bide nowhere. Then
+the thought took me that I would get money and take my boy back. A
+longing for him grew in my heart, and it was all the thought I had,
+but until I had money I would not return. I went to find a mine of
+gold. Men were flying West to become rich through the finding of mines
+of gold, and I joined them. I tried to reach a spot that has since
+been named Higgins' Camp, for there it was rumored that gold was to be
+found in plenty, and missed it. I came here, and here I stayed."
+
+Now the big man rose to his feet, and looked down on the younger one.
+He looked kindly. Then, as if seized and shaken by a torrent of
+impulses which he was trying to hold in check, he spoke tremulously
+and in suppressed tones.
+
+"I longed for my son, but I tell you this, because there is a strange
+thing which grasps a man's soul when he finds gold--as I found it. I
+came to love it for its own sake. I lived here and stored it up--until
+I am rich--you may not find many men so rich. I could go back and buy
+that bank that was Peter Craigmile's pride--" His voice rose, but he
+again suppressed it. "I could buy that pitiful little bank a hundred
+times over. And she--is--gone. I tried to keep her and the remembrance
+of her in my mind above the gold, but it was like a lunacy upon me. At
+the last--until I found you there on the verge of death--the gold was
+always first in my mind, and the triumph of having it. I came to
+glory in it, and I worked day after day, and often in the night by
+torches, and all I gathered I hid, and when I was too weary to work, I
+sat and handled it and felt it fall through my fingers.
+
+"A woman in England--Miss Evans, by name, only she writes under the
+name of a man, George Eliot--has written a tale of a poor weaver who
+came to love his little horde of gold as if it were alive and human.
+It's a strong tale, that. A good one. Well, I came to understand what
+the poor little weaver felt. Summer and winter, day and night, week
+days and Sundays--and I was brought up to keep the Sunday like a
+Christian should--all were the same to me, just one long period for
+the getting together of gold. After a time I even forgot what I wanted
+the gold for in the first place, and thought only of getting it, more
+and more and more.
+
+"This is a confession, lad. I tremble to think what would have been on
+my soul had I done what I first thought of doing when that horse of
+yours called me. He was calling for you--no doubt, but the call came
+from heaven itself for me, and the temptation came. It was, to stay
+where I was and know nothing. I might have done that, too, if it were
+not for the selfish reasons that flashed through my mind, even as the
+temptation seized it. It was that there might be those below who were
+climbing to my home--to find me out and take from me my gold. I knew
+there were prospectors all over, seeking for what I had found, and how
+could I dare stay in my cabin and be traced by a stray horse wandering
+to my door? Three coldblooded, selfish murders would now be resting on
+my soul. It's no use for a man to shut his eyes and say 'I didn't
+know.' It's his business to know. When you speak of the 'Curse of
+Cain,' think what I might be bearing now, and remember, if a man
+repents of his act, there's mercy for him. So I was taught, and so I
+believe.
+
+"When I looked in your face, lying there in my bunk, then I knew that
+mercy had been shown me, and for this, here is the thing I mean to do.
+It is to show my gold and the mine from which it came to you--"
+
+"No, no! I can't bear it. I must not know." Harry King threw up his
+hands as if in fright and rose, trembling in every limb.
+
+"Man, what ails you?"
+
+"Don't. Don't put temptation in my way that I may not be strong enough
+to resist."
+
+"I say, what ails you? It's a good thing, rightly used. It may help
+you to a way out of your trouble. If I never return--I will, mind
+you,--but we never know--if not, my life will surely not have been
+spent for naught. You, now, are all I have on earth besides the gold.
+It was to have been my son's, and it is yours. It might as well have
+been left in the heart of the mountain, else."
+
+"Better. The longer I think on it, the more I see that there is no
+hope for me, no true repentance,--" Again that expression on Harry
+King's face filled Larry's heart with deep pity. An inward terror
+seemed to convulse his features and throw a pallor as of age and years
+of sorrow into his visage. Then he continued, after a moment of
+self-mastery: "No true repentance for me but to go back and take the
+punishment. For this winter I will live here in peace, and do for
+Madam Manovska and her daughter what I can, and anything I can do for
+you,--then I must return and give myself up. The gold only holds out
+a worldly hope to me, and makes what I must do seem harder. I am
+afraid of it."
+
+"I'll make you a promise that if I return I'll not let you have it,
+but that it shall be turned to some good work. If I do not return, it
+will rest on your conscience that before you make your confession, you
+shall see it well placed for a charity. You'll have to find the
+charity, I can't say what it should be offhand now, but come with me.
+I must tell some man living my secret, and you're the only one.
+Besides--I trust you. Surely I do."
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XIX
+
+THE MINE--AND THE DEPARTURE
+
+
+Larry Kildene went around behind the stall where he kept his own horse
+and returned with a hollow tube of burnt clay about a foot long. Into
+this he thrust a pine knot heavy with pitch, and, carrying a bunch of
+matches in his hand, he led the way back of the fodder.
+
+"I made these clay handles for my torches myself. They are my
+invention, and I am quite proud of them. You can hold this burning
+knot until it is quite consumed, and that's a convenience." He stooped
+and crept under the fodder, and then Harry King saw why he kept more
+there than his horse could eat, and never let the store run low. It
+was to conceal the opening of a long, low passage that might at first
+be taken for a natural cave under the projecting mass of rock above
+them, which formed one side and part of the roof of the shed.
+Quivering with excitement, although sad at heart, Harry King followed
+his guide, who went rapidly forward, talking and explaining as he
+went. Under his feet the way was rough and made frequent turns, and
+for the most part seemed to climb upward.
+
+"There you see it. I discovered a vein of ore back there at the place
+we entered, and assayed it and found it rich, and see how I worked
+it out! Here it seemed to end, and then I was still sane enough to
+think I had enough gold for my life; I left the digging for a
+while, and went to find my boy. I learned that he was living and had
+gone into the army with his cousin, and I knew we would be of little
+use to each other then, but reasoned that the time was to come when
+the war would be over, and then he would have to find a place for
+himself, and his father's gold would help. However it was--I saw I
+must wait. Sit here a bit on this ledge, I want to tell you, but not
+in self-justification, mind you, not that.
+
+"I had been in India, and had had my fill of wars and fighting. I
+had no mind to it. I went off and bought stores and seed, and
+thought I would make more of my garden and not show myself again in
+Leauvite until my boy was back. It was in my thought, if the lad
+survived the army, to send for him and give him gold to hold his
+head above--well--to start him in life, and let him know his
+father,--but when I returned, the great madness came on me.
+
+"I had built the shed and stabled my horse there, and purposely
+located my cabin below. The trail up here from the plain is a blind
+one, because of the wash from the hills at times, and I didn't fear
+much from white men,--still I concealed my tracks like this. Gold
+often turns men into devils."
+
+He was silent for a time, and Harry King wondered much why he had made
+no further effort to find his son before making to himself the offer
+he had, but he dared not question him, and preferred to let Larry take
+his own way of telling what he would. As if divining his thought Larry
+said quietly: "Something held me back from going down again to find my
+son. The way is long, and in the old way of traveling over the plains
+it would take a year or more to make the journey and return here, and
+somehow a superstition seized me that my boy would set out sometime to
+find me, and I would make the way easy for him to do it. And here on
+the mountain the years slip by like a long sleep."
+
+He began moving the torch about to show the walls of the cave in which
+they sat, and as he did so he threw the light strongly on the young
+man's face, and scrutinized it sharply. He saw again that terrible
+look of sadness as if his soul were dying within him. He saw great
+drops of sweat on his brow, and his eyes narrowed and fixed, and he
+hurried on with the narrative. He could not bear the sight.
+
+"Now here, look how this hole widens out? Here was where I prospected
+about to find the vein again, and there is where I took it up. All
+this overhead is full of gold. Think what it would mean if a man had
+the right apparatus for getting it out--I mean separating it! I only
+took what was free; that is, what could be easily freed from the
+quartz. Sometimes I found it in fine nuggets, and then I would go
+wild, and work until I was so weak I could hardly crawl back to the
+entrance. I often lay down here and slept with fatigue before I could
+get back and cook my supper."
+
+As they went on a strange roaring seemed gradually to fill the
+passage, and Harry spoke for the first time since they had entered. He
+feared the sound of his own voice, as though if he began to speak, he
+might scream out, or reveal something he was determined to hide. He
+thought the roaring sound might be in his own ears from the surging of
+blood in his veins and the tumultuous beating of his heart.
+
+"What is it I hear? Is my head right?"
+
+"The roaring? Yes, you're all right. I thought when I was working
+here and slowly burrowing farther and farther that it might be the
+lack of air, and tried to contrive some way of getting it from the
+outside. I thought all the time that I was working farther into the
+mountain, and that I would have to stop or die here like a rat in a
+hole. But you just wait. You'll be surprised in a minute."
+
+Then Harry laughed, and the laugh, unexpected to himself, woke him
+from the trancelike feeling that possessed him, and he walked more
+steadily. "I've been being more surprised each minute. Am I in
+Aladdin's cave--or whose is it?"
+
+"Only mine. Just one more turn here and then--! It was not in the
+night I came here, and it was not all at once, as you are coming--hold
+on! Let me go in front of you. The hole was made gradually, until, one
+morning about ten o'clock, a great mass of rock--gold bearing, I tell
+you--rich in nuggets--I was crazed to lose it--fell out into space,
+and there I stood on the very verge of eternity."
+
+They rounded the turn as he talked, and Larry Kildene stood forward
+under the stars and waved the torch over his head and held Harry back
+from the edge with his other hand. The air over their heads was sweet
+and pure and cold, and full of the roar of falling water. They could
+see it in a long, vast ribbon of luminous whiteness against the black
+abyss--moving--and waving--coming out from nothingness far above them,
+and reaching down to the nethermost depths--in that weird gloom of
+night--into nothingness again.
+
+Harry stepped back, and back, into the hole from which they had
+emerged, and watched his companion stand holding the torch, which lit
+his features with a deep red light until he looked as if he might be
+the very alchemist of gold--red gold--and turning all he looked upon
+into the metal which closes around men's hearts. The red light flashed
+on the white ribbon of water, and this way and that, as he waved it
+around, on the sides of the passage behind him, turning each point of
+projecting rock into red gold.
+
+"Do you know where we are? No. We're right under the fall--right
+behind it. No one can ever see this hole from the outside. It is as
+completely hidden as if the hand of the Almighty were stretched over
+it. The rush of this body of water always in front of it keeps the air
+in the passage always pure. It's wonderful--wonderful!"
+
+He turned to look at Harry, and saw a wild man crouched in the
+darkness of the passage, glaring, and preparing to leap. He seized and
+shook him. "What ails you, man? Hold on. Hold on. Keep your head, I
+say. There! I've got you. Turn about. Now! It's over now. That's
+enough. It won't come again."
+
+Harry moaned. "Oh, let me go. Let me get away from it."
+
+The big man still gripped him and held him with his face toward the
+darkness. "Tell me what you see," he commanded.
+
+Still Harry moaned, and sank upon his knees. "Lord, forgive,
+forgive!"
+
+"Tell me what you see," Larry still commanded. He would try to break
+up this vision seeing.
+
+"God! It is the eye. It follows me. It is gone." He heaved a great
+sigh of relief, but still remained upon his knees, quivering and weak.
+"Did you see it? You must have seen it."
+
+"I saw nothing, and you saw nothing. It's in your brain, and your
+brain is sick. You must heal it. You must stop it. Stand now, and
+conquer it."
+
+Harry stood, shivering. "I wanted to end it. It would have been so
+easy, and all over so soon," he murmured.
+
+"And you would die a coward, and so add one more crime to the first.
+You'd shirk a duty, and desert those who need you. You'd leave me in
+the lurch, and those women dependent on me--wake up--"
+
+"I'm awake. Let's go away." Harry put his hand to his forehead and
+wiped away the cold drops that stood out like glistening beads of
+blood in the red light of the torch.
+
+Larry grieved for him, in spite of the harshness of his words and
+tone, and taking him by the elbow, he led him kindly back into the
+passage.
+
+"Don't trouble about me now," Harry said at last. "You've given me a
+thought to clutch to--if you really do need me--if I could believe
+it."
+
+"Well, you may! Didn't you say you'd do for me more than sons do
+for their fathers? I ask you to do just that for me. Live for me. It's
+a hard thing to ask of you, for, as you say, the other would be
+easier, but it's a coward's way. Don't let it tempt you. Stand to
+your guns like a man, and if the time comes and you can't see things
+differently, go back and make your confession and die the death--as
+a brave man should. Meantime, live to some purpose and do it
+cheerfully." Larry paused. His words sank in, as he meant they should.
+He guided Harry slowly back to the place from which they had diverged,
+his arm across the younger man's shoulder.
+
+"Now I've more to show you. When I saw what I had done, I set myself
+to find another vein, and see this large room? I groveled all about
+here, this way and that. A year of this, see. It took patience, and in
+the meantime I went out into the world--as far as San Francisco, and
+wasted a year or more; then back I came.
+
+"I tell you there is a lure in the gold, and the mountains are powers
+of peace to a man. It seemed there was no other place where I could
+rest in peace of mind. The longing for my son was on me,--but the war
+still raged, and I had no mind for that,--yet I was glad my boy was
+taking his part in the world out of which I had dropped. For one thing
+it seemed as if he were more my own than if he lived in Leauvite on
+the banker's bounty. I would not go back there and meet the contempt
+of Peter Craigmile, for he never could forget that I had taken his
+sister out of hand, and she gone--man--it was all too sad. How did I
+know how my son had been taught to think on me? I could not go back
+when I would.
+
+"His name was Richard--my boy's. If he came alive from the army I do
+not know,--See? Here is where I found another vein, and I have
+followed it on there to the end of this other branch of the passage,
+and not exhausted it yet. Here's maybe another twenty years' work for
+some man. Now, wasn't it a great work for one man alone, to tunnel
+through that rock to the fall? No one man needs all that wealth. I've
+often thought of Ireland and the poverty we left there. If I had my
+boy to hearten me, I could do something for them now. We'll go back
+and sleep, for it's the trail for me to-morrow, and to go and come
+quickly, before the snow falls. Come!"
+
+They returned in silence to the shed. The torch had burned well down
+into the clay handle, and Larry Kildene extinguished the last sparks
+before they crept through the fodder to their room in the shed. The
+fire of logs was almost out, and the place growing cold.
+
+"You'll find the gold in a strong box made of hewn logs, buried in the
+ground underneath the wood in the addition to the cabin. There's no
+need to go to it yet, not until you need money. I'll show you how I
+prepare it for use, in the morning. I do it in the room I made there
+near the fall. It's the most secret place a man ever had for such
+work."
+
+Larry stretched himself in his bunk and was soon sleeping soundly. Not
+so the younger man. He could not compose himself after the excitement
+of the evening. He tossed and turned until morning found him weary and
+worn, but with his troubled mind more at rest than it had been for
+many months. He had fought out his battle, at least for the time
+being, and was at peace.
+
+Harry King rose and went out into the cold morning air and was
+refreshed. He brought in a large handful of pine cones and made a
+roaring fire in the chimney he had built, before Larry roused himself.
+Then he, too, went out and surveyed the sky with practiced eye.
+
+"Clear and cool--that argues well for me. If it were warm, now, I'd
+hardly like to start. Sometimes the snow holds off for weeks in this
+weather."
+
+They stood in the pallid light of the early morning an hour before the
+sun, and the wind lifted Larry's hair and flapped his shirt sleeves
+about his arms. It was a tingling, sharp breeze, and when they
+returned to the cave, where they went for Harry's lesson in smelting,
+the old man's cheeks were ruddy.
+
+The sun had barely risen when the lesson was over, and they descended
+for breakfast. Amalia had all ready for them, and greeted Larry from
+the doorway.
+
+"Good morning, Sir Kildene. You start soon. I have many good things to
+eat all prepare to put in your bag, and when you sit to your dinner on
+the long way, it is that you must think of Amalia and know that she
+says a prayer to the sweet Christ, that he send his good angels to
+watch over you all the way you go. A prayer to follow you all the way
+is good, is not?" Amalia's frank and untrammeled way of referring to
+Divinity always precipitated a shyness on Larry,--a shyness that
+showed itself in smiles and stammering.
+
+"Good--good--yes. Good, maybe so." Harry had turned back to bring down
+Larry's horse and pack mule. "Now, while we eat,--Harry will be down
+soon, we won't wait for him,--while we eat, let me go over the things
+I'm to find for you down below. I must learn the list well by heart,
+or you may send me back for the things I've missed bringing."
+
+As they talked Amalia took from her wrist a heavy bracelet of gold,
+and from a small leather bag hidden in her clothing, a brooch of
+emeralds, quaintly set and very precious. Her mother sat in one of her
+trancelike moods, apparently seeing nothing around her, and Amalia
+took Larry to one side and spoke in low tones.
+
+"Sir Kildene, I have thought much, and at last it seems to me right to
+part with these. It is little that we have--and no money, only these.
+What they are worth I have no knowledge. Mother may know, but to her I
+say nothing. They are a memory of the days when my father was noble
+and lived at the court. If you can sell them--it is that this brooch
+should bring much money--my father has told me. It was saved for my
+dowry, with a few other jewels of less worth. I have no need of dowry.
+It is that I never will marry. Until my mother is gone I can well care
+for her with the lace I make,--and then--"
+
+"Lass, I can't take these. I have no knowledge of their worth--or--"
+He knew he was saying what was not true, for he knew well the value of
+what she laid so trustingly in his palm, and his hand quivered under
+the shining jewels. He cleared his throat and began again. "I say, I
+can't take jewels so valuable over the trail and run the risk of
+losing them. Never! Put them by as before."
+
+"But how can I ask of you the things I wish? I have no money to return
+for them, and none for all you have done for my mother and me. Please,
+Sir Kildene, take of this, then, only enough to buy for our need. It
+is little to take. Do not be hard with me." She pleaded sweetly,
+placing one hand under his great one, and the other over the jewels,
+holding them pressed to his palm. "Will you go away and leave my heart
+heavy?"
+
+"Look here, now--" Again he cleared his throat. "You put them by until
+I come back, and then--"
+
+But she would not, and tying them in her handkerchief, she thrust them
+in the pocket of his flannel shirt.
+
+"There! It is not safe in such a place. Be sure you take care, Sir
+Kildene. I have many thoughts in my mind. It is not all the money of
+these you will need now, and of the rest I may take my mother to a
+large city, where are people who understand the fine lace. There I may
+sell enough to keep us well. But of money will I need first a little
+to get us there. It is well for me, you take these--see? Is not?"
+
+"No, it is not well." He spoke gruffly in his effort to overcome his
+emotion. "Where under heaven can I sell these?"
+
+"You go not to the great city?" she asked sadly. "How must we then so
+long intrude us upon you! It is very sad." She clasped her hands and
+looked in his eyes, her own brimming with tears; then he turned away.
+Tears in a woman's eyes! He could not stand it.
+
+"See here. I'll tell you what I'll do. If that railroad is through
+anywhere--so--so--I can reach San Francisco--" He thought he knew that
+to be an impossibility, and that she would be satisfied. "I say--if
+it's where I can reach San Francisco, I'll see what can be done." He
+cleared his throat a great many times, and stood awkwardly, hardly
+daring to move with the precious jewels in his pocket. "See here.
+They'll joggle out of here. Can't you--"
+
+She turned on him radiantly. "You may have my bag of leather. In that
+will they be safe."
+
+She removed the string from her neck and by it pulled the small
+embossed case from her bosom, shook out the few rings and unset stones
+left in it, and returned the larger jewels to it, and gave it into his
+hand, still warm from its soft resting place. At the same moment Harry
+arrived, leading the animals. He lifted his head courageously and his
+eyes shone as with an inspiration.
+
+"Will you let me accompany you a bit of the way, sir? I'd like to go."
+Larry accepted gladly. He knew then what he would do with Amalia's
+dowry. "Then I'll bring Goldbug. Thank you, Amalia, yes. I'll drink my
+coffee now, and eat as I ride." He ran back for his horse and soon
+returned, and then drank his coffee and snatched a bite, while Amalia
+and Larry slung the bags of food and the water on the mule and made
+all ready for the start. As he ate, he tried to arouse and encourage
+the mother, but she remained stolid until they were in the saddle,
+when she rose and followed them a few steps, and said in her deep
+voice: "Yes, I ask a thing. You will find Paul, my 'usband. Tell him
+to come to me--it is best--no more,--I cannot in English." Then
+turning to her daughter she spoke volubly in her own tongue, and waved
+her hand imperiously toward the men.
+
+"Yes, mamma. I tell all you say." Amalia took a step away from the
+door, and her mother returned to her seat by the fire.
+
+"It is so sad. My mother thinks my father is returned to our own
+country and that you go there. She thinks you are our friend Sir
+McBride in disguise, and that you go to help my father. She fears you
+will be taken and sent to Siberia, and says tell my father it is
+enough. He must no more try to save our fatherland: that our noblemen
+are full of ingratitude, and that he must return to her and live
+hereafter in peace."
+
+"Let be so. It's a saving hallucination. Tell her if I find your
+father, I will surely deliver the message." And the two men rode away
+up the trail, conversing earnestly.
+
+Larry Kildene explained to Harry about the jewels, and turned them
+over to his keeping. "I had to take them, you see. You hide them in
+that chamber I showed you, along with the gold bars. Hang it around
+your neck, man, until you get back. It has rested on her bosom, and
+if I were a young man like you, that fact alone would make it sacred
+to me. It's her dowry, she said. I'd sooner part with my right hand
+than take it from her."
+
+"So would I." Harry took the case tenderly, and hid it as directed,
+and went on to ask the favor he had accompanied Larry to ask. It was
+that he might go down and bring the box from the wagon.
+
+"Early this morning, before I woke you, I led the brown horse you
+brought the mother up the mountain on out toward the trail; we'll find
+him over the ridge, all packed ready, and when I ran back for my
+horse, I left a letter written in charcoal on the hearth there in the
+shed--Amalia will be sure to go there and find it, if I don't return
+now--telling her what I'm after and that I'll only be gone a few days.
+She's brave, and can get along without us." Larry did not reply at
+once, and Harry continued.
+
+"It will only take us a day and a half to reach it, and with your
+help, a sling can be made of the canvas top of the wagon, and the two
+animals can 'tote it' as the darkies down South say. I can walk back
+up the trail, or even ride one of the horses. We'll take the tongue
+and the reach from the wagon and make a sort of affair to hang to the
+beasts, I know how it can be done. There may not be much of value in
+the box, but then--there may be. I see Amalia wishes it of all things,
+and that's enough for--us."
+
+Thus it came that the two women were alone for five days. Madam
+Manovska did not seem to heed the absence of the two men at first, and
+waited in a contentment she had not shown before. It would seem that,
+as Larry had said, there was saving in her hallucination, but Amalia
+was troubled by it.
+
+"Mother is so sure they will bring my father back," she thought. She
+tried to forestall any such catastrophe as she feared by explaining
+that they might not find her father or he might not return, even if he
+got her message, not surely, for he had always done what he thought
+his duty before anything else, and he might think it his duty to stay
+where he could find something to do.
+
+When Harry King did not return that night, Amalia did as he had
+laughingly suggested to her, when he left, "You'll find a letter out
+in the shed," was all he said. So she went up to the shed, and there
+she lighted a torch, and kneeling on the stones of the wide hearth,
+she read what he had written for her.
+
+ "To the Lady Amalia Manovska:
+
+ "Mr. Kildene will help me get your box. It will not be hard, for
+ the two of us, and after it is drawn out and loaded I can get up
+ with it myself and he can go on. I will soon be with you again,
+ never fear. Do not be afraid of Indians. If there were any danger,
+ I would not leave you. There is no way by which they would be
+ likely to reach you except by the trail on which we go, and we
+ will know if they are about before they can possibly get up the
+ trail. I have seen you brave on the plains, and you will be as
+ brave on the mountain top. Good-by for a few days.
+
+ "Yours to serve you,
+ "Harry King."
+
+The tears ran fast down her cheeks as she read. "Oh, why did I speak
+of it--why? He may be killed. He may die of this attempt." She threw
+the torch from her into the fireplace, and clasping her hands began to
+pray, first in English her own words, then the prayers for those in
+peril which she had learned in the convent. Then, lying on her face,
+she prayed frantically in her own tongue for Harry's safety. At last,
+comforted a little, she took up the torch and, flushed and tearful,
+walked down in the darkness to the cabin and crept into bed.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XX
+
+ALONE ON THE MOUNTAIN
+
+
+For the first two days of Harry King's absence Madam Manovska relapsed
+into a more profound melancholy, and the care of her mother took up
+Amalia's time and thoughts so completely as to give her little for
+indulging her own anxiety for Harry's safety. Strangely, she felt no
+fear for themselves, although they were thus alone on the mountain
+top. She had a sense of security there which she had never felt in the
+years since she had been taken from the convent to share her parents'
+wanderings. She made an earnest effort to divert and arouse her mother
+and succeeded until Madam Manovska talked much and volubly in Polish,
+and revealed more of the thoughts that possessed her in the long hours
+of brooding than she had ever told Amalia before. It seemed that she
+confidently expected the return of the men with her husband, and that
+the message she had sent by Larry Kildene would surely bring him. The
+thought excited her greatly, and Amalia found it necessary to keep
+continual watch lest she wander off down the trail in the direction
+they had taken, and be lost.
+
+For a time Amalia tried to prevent Madam Manovska from dwelling on the
+past, until she became convinced that to do so was not well, since it
+only induced the fits of brooding. She then decided to encourage her
+mother to speak freely of her memories, rather than to keep them
+locked in her own mind. It was in one of these intervals of
+talkativeness that Amalia learned the cause of that strange cry that
+had so pierced her heart and startled her on the trail.
+
+They had gone out for a walk, as the only means of inducing her mother
+to sleep was to let her walk in the clear air until so weary as to
+bring her to the point of exhaustion. This time they went farther than
+Amalia really intended, and had left the paths immediately about the
+cabin, and climbed higher up the mountain. Here there was no trail and
+the way was rough indeed, but Madam Manovska was in one of her most
+wayward moods and insisted on going higher and farther.
+
+Her strength was remarkable, but it seemed to be strength of will
+rather than of body, for all at once she sank down, unable to go
+forward or to return. Amalia led her to the shade of a great gnarled
+tree, a species of fir, and made her lie down on a bed of stiff,
+coarse moss, and there she pillowed her mother's head on her lap.
+Whether it was something in the situation in which she found herself
+or not, her mother began to tell her of a time about which she had
+hitherto kept silent. It was of the long march through heat and cold,
+over the wildest ways of the earth to Siberia, at her husband's side.
+
+She told how she had persisted in going with him, even at the cost of
+dressing in the garb of the exiles from the prisons and pretending to
+be one of the condemned. Only one of the officers knew her secret, who
+for reasons of humanity--or for some other feeling--kept silence. She
+carried her child in her arms, a boy, five months old, and was allowed
+to walk at her husband's side instead of following on with the other
+women. She told how they carried a few things on their backs, and how
+one and another of the men would take the little one at intervals to
+help her, and how long the marches were when the summer was on the
+wane and they wished to make as much distance as possible before they
+were delayed by storms and snow.
+
+Then she told how the storms came at last, and how her baby fell ill,
+and cried and cried--all the time--and how they walked in deep snow,
+until one and another fell by the way and never walked farther. She
+told how some of the weaker ones were finally left behind, because
+they could get on faster without them, but that the place where they
+were left was a terrible one under a cruel man, and that her child
+would surely have died there before the winter was over, and that when
+she persisted in keeping on with her husband, they beat her, but at
+last consented on condition that she would leave her baby boy. Then
+how she appealed to the officer who knew well who she was and that she
+was not one of the condemned, but had followed her husband for love,
+and to intercede for him when he would have been ill-treated; and that
+the man had allowed her to have her way, but later had demanded as his
+reward for yielding to her, that she no longer belong to her husband,
+but to him.
+
+Looking off at the far ranges of mountains with steady gaze, she told
+of the mountains they had crossed, and the rushing, terrible rivers;
+and how, one day, the officer who had been kind only that he might be
+more cruel, had determined to force her to obedience, and how he grew
+very angry--so angry that when they had come to a trail that was
+well-nigh impassable, winding around the side of a mountain, where was
+a fearful rushing river far below them, and her baby cried in her
+arms for cold and hunger, how he had snatched the child from her and
+hurled it over the precipice into the swift water, and how she had
+shrieked and struck him and was crazed and remembered no more for
+days, except to call continually on God to send down curses on that
+officer's head. She told how after that they were held at a certain
+station for a long time, but that she was allowed to stay by her
+husband only because the officer feared the terrible curses she had
+asked of God to descend on that man, that he dared no more touch her.
+
+Then Amalia understood many things better than ever before, and grew
+if possible more tender of her mother. She thought how all during that
+awful time she had been safe and sheltered in the convent, and her
+life guarded; and moreover, she understood why her father had always
+treated her mother as if she were higher than the angels and with the
+courtesy and gentleness of a knight errant. He had bowed to her
+slightest wish, and no wonder her mother thought that when he received
+her request to return to her, and give up his hope, he would surely
+come to her.
+
+More than ever Amalia feared the days to come if she could in no way
+convince her mother that it was not expedient for her father to return
+yet. To say again that he was dead she dared not, even if she could
+persuade Madam Manovska to believe it; for it seemed to her in that
+event that her mother would give up all interest in life, and die of a
+broken heart. But from the first she had not accepted the thought of
+her husband's death, and held stubbornly to the belief that he had
+joined Harry King to find help. He had, indeed, wandered away from
+them a few hours after the young man's departure and had been unable
+to find his way back, and, until Larry Kildene came to them, they had
+comforted themselves that the two men were together.
+
+Much more Madam Manovska told her daughter that day, before she slept;
+and Amalia questioned her more closely than she had ever done
+concerning her father's faith. Thereafter she sat for a long time on
+the bank of coarse moss and pondered, with her mother's head pillowed
+on her lap. The sun reached the hour of noon, and still the mother
+slept and the daughter would not waken her.
+
+She took from the small velvet bag she always carried with her, a
+crisp cake of corn meal and ate to satisfy her sharp hunger, for the
+keen air and the long climb gave her the appetite belonging to the
+vigorous health which was hers. They had climbed that part of the
+mountain directly behind the cabin, and from the secluded spot where
+they sat she could look down on it and on the paths leading to it;
+thankful and happy that at last they were where all was so safe, no
+fear of intrusion entered her mind. Even her first anxiety about the
+Indians she had dismissed.
+
+Now, as her eyes wandered absently over the far distance and dropped
+to the nearer hills, and on down to the cabin and the patch of
+cultivated ground, what was her horror to see three figures stealing
+with swift, gliding tread toward the fodder shed from above, where was
+no trail, only such rough and wild hillside as that by which she and
+her mother had climbed. The men seemed to be carrying something slung
+between them on a pole. With long, gliding steps they walked in single
+file as she had seen the Indians walk on the plains.
+
+She drew in her breath sharply and clasped her hands in supplication.
+Had those men seen them? Devoutly she prayed that they might not look
+up toward the heights where she and her mother sat. As they continued
+to descend she lost sight of them among the pines and the undergrowth
+which was more vigorous near the fall, and then they appeared again
+and went into the cabin. She thought they must have been in the fodder
+shed when she lost sight of them, and now she waited breathlessly to
+see them emerge from the cabin. For an hour she sat thus, straining
+her eyes lest she miss seeing them when they came forth, and fearing
+lest her mother waken. Then she saw smoke issuing from the cabin
+chimney, and her heart stopped its beating. What! Were they preparing
+to stay there? How could her mother endure the cold of the mountain
+all night?
+
+Then she began to consider how she might protect her mother after the
+sun had gone from the cold that would envelop them. Reasoning that as
+long as the Indians stayed in the cabin they could not be seen by
+them, she looked about for some projecting ledge under which they
+might creep for the night. Gently she lifted her mother's head and
+placed it on her own folded shawl, and, with an eye ever on the cabin
+below, she crept further up the side of the mountain until she found a
+place where a huge rock, warmed by the sun, projected far out, and
+left a hollow beneath, into which they might creep. Frantically she
+tore off twigs of the scrubby pines around them, and made a fragrant
+bed of pine needles and moss on which to rest. Then she woke her
+mother.
+
+Sane and practical on all subjects but the one, Madam Manovska roused
+herself to meet this new difficulty with the old courage, and climbed
+with Amalia's help to their wild resting place without a word of
+complaint. There she sat looking out over the magnificent scene
+before her with her great brooding eyes, and ate the coarse corn cake
+Amalia put in her hands.
+
+She talked, always in Polish or in French, of the men "rouge," and
+said she did not wonder they came to so good a place to rest, and that
+she would give thanks to the great God that she and her daughter were
+on the mountain when they arrived. She reminded Amalia that if she had
+consented to return when her daughter wished, they would now have been
+in the cabin with those terrible men, and said that she had been
+inspired of God to stay long on the mountain. Contentedly, then, she
+munched her cake, and remarked that water would give comfort in the
+eating of it, but she smiled and made the best of the dry food. Then
+she prayed that her husband might be detained until the men were
+gone.
+
+Amalia gave her mother the water that was left in the bottle she had
+brought with her, and lamented that she had saved so little for her.
+"It was so bad, not to save more for my mamma," she cried, giving the
+bottle with its lowered contents into her mother's hand. "I go to
+watch, mamma mine. Soon will I return."
+
+Amalia went back to her point of vantage, where she could see all
+about the cabin and shed. Still the smoke poured from the chimney, and
+there was no sign of red men without. It was a mountain sheep they had
+carried, slung between them, and now they dressed and cooked a portion
+of it, and were gorging themselves comfortably before the fire, with
+many grunts of satisfaction at the finding of the formidable owner of
+the premises absent. They were on their way to Laramie to trade and
+sell game, and it was their intention to leave a portion of their
+mutton with Larry Kildene; for never did they dare venture near him
+without bringing a propitiatory offering.
+
+The sun had set and the cold mists were blowing across from the fall
+and closing around the cabin like a veil of amethystine dye, when
+Amalia saw them moving about the cabin door as if preparing to depart.
+Her heart rose, and she signaled her mother, but no. They went indoors
+again, and she saw them no more. In truth they had disputed long as to
+whether it was best to leave before the big man's return, or to remain
+in their comfortable quarters and start early, before day. It was the
+conference that drew them out, and they had made ready to start at a
+moment's notice if he should return in the night. But as the darkness
+crept on and Larry Kildene did not appear they stretched themselves
+before the fire and slept, and the two women on the mountain, hungry
+and cold, crept under the mother's cloak and lay long into the night,
+shivering and listening, couched on the pine twigs Amalia had spread
+under the ledge of rock. At last, clasped in each other's arms, they
+slept, in spite of fear and cold, for very weariness.
+
+Amalia woke next morning to the low murmuring of a voice. It was her
+mother, kneeling in the pine needles, praying at her side. She waited
+until the prayer was ended, then she rose and went out from the
+sheltered hollow where they lay. "I will look a little, mamma. Wait
+for me."
+
+She gazed down on the cabin, but all was still. The amethystine veil
+had not lifted, and no smoke came from the chimney. She crept back to
+her mother's side, and they sat close for warmth, and waited. When the
+sun rose and the clouds melted away, all the earth smiled up at them,
+and their fears seemed to melt away with the clouds. Still they did
+not venture out where they thought they might be spied from below, and
+time passed while they watched earnestly for the sight of moving
+figures, and still no smoke appeared from the cabin.
+
+Higher and higher the sun climbed in the sky, yet they could not bring
+themselves to return. Hunger pressed them, and Amalia begged her
+mother to let her go a little nearer to listen, but she would not. So
+they discussed together in their own tongue and neither would allow
+the other to venture below, and still no smoke issued from the
+chimney.
+
+At last Amalia started and pressed her hand to her heart. What did she
+see far along on the trail toward the desert? Surely, a man with two
+animals, climbing toward the turn. Her eyes danced for gladness as she
+turned a flushed face toward her mother.
+
+"Look, mamma! Far on,--no--there! It is--mamma mine--it is 'Arry
+King!" The mere sight of him made her break out in English. "It is
+that I must go to him and tell him of the Indian in the cabin before
+he arrive. If he come on them there, and they kill him! Oh, let me go
+quickly." At the thought of him, and the danger he might meet, all her
+fears of the men "rouge" returned upon her, and she was gone, passing
+with incredible swiftness over the rough way, to try to intercept him
+before he could reach the cabin.
+
+But she need not have feared, for the Indians were long gone. Before
+daybreak they had passed Harry where he rested in the deep dusk of the
+morning, without knowing he was near. With swift, silent steps they
+had passed down the trail, taking as much of Larry Kildene's corn as
+they could carry, and leaving the bloody pelt of the sheep and a very
+meager share of the mutton in exchange. Hungry and footsore, yet eager
+and glad to have come home successfully, Harry King walked forward,
+leading his good yellow horse, his eyes fixed on the cabin, and
+wondering not a little; for he, too, saw that no smoke was issuing
+from the chimney.
+
+He hastened, and all Amalia's swiftness could not bring her to him
+before he reached his goal. He saw first the bloody pelt hanging
+beside the door, and his heart stood still. Those two women never
+could have done that! Where were they? He dropped the leading strap,
+leaving the weary horses where they stood, and ran forward to enter
+the cabin and see the evidence of Indians all about. There were the
+clean-picked bones of their feast and the dirt from their feet on
+Amalia's carefully kept floor. The disorder smote him, and he ran out
+again in the sun. Looking this way and that, he called and listened
+and called again. Why did no answer reach him? Poor Amalia! In her
+haste she had turned her foot and now, fainting with pain, and with
+fear for him, she could not find her voice to reply.
+
+He thought he heard a low cry. Was it she? He ran again, and now he
+saw her, high above him, a dark heap on the ground. Quickly he was by
+her side, and, kneeling, he gathered her in his arms. He forgot all
+but that she was living and that he held her, and he kissed her white
+face and her lips, and said all the tender things in his heart. He did
+not know what he was saying. He only knew that he could feel her heart
+beat, and that she was opening her eyes, and that with quivering arms
+she clasped his neck, and that her tears wet his cheek, and that, over
+and over, her lips were repeating his name.
+
+"'Arry--'Arry King! You are come back. Ah, 'Arry King, my heart cry
+with the great gladness they have not killed you."
+
+All in the same instant he bethought himself that he must not caress
+her thus. Yet filled with a gladness he could not fathom he still
+clung to her and still murmured the words he meant never to speak to
+her. One thing he could do. One thing sweet and right to do. He could
+carry her to the cabin. How could she reach it else? His heart leaped
+that he had at least that right.
+
+"No, 'Arry King. You have walk the long, hard way, and are very
+weary." But still he carried her.
+
+"Put me down, 'Arry King." Then he obeyed her, and set her gently
+down. "I am too great a burden. See, thus? If you help me a little--it
+is that I may hop--It is better, is not?"
+
+She smiled in his face, but he only stooped and lifted her again in
+his arms. "You are not a burden, Amalia. Put your arms around my neck,
+and lean on me."
+
+She obeyed him, and he could say no more for the beating of his heart.
+Carefully and slowly he made his way, setting his feet cautiously
+among the stones that obstructed his path. Madam Manovska from her
+heights above saw how her daughter was being carried, and, guessing
+the trouble, snatched up the velvet bag Amalia had dropped in her
+haste, flung her cloak about her, and began to thread her way down,
+slowly and carefully; for, as she said to herself, "We must not both
+break the bones at one time."
+
+To Harry it seemed no sound was ever sweeter than Amalia's low voice
+as she coaxed him brokenly to set her down and allow her to walk.
+
+"This is great foolishness, 'Arry King, that you carry me. Put me down
+that you rest a little."
+
+"I can't, Amalia."
+
+"You have walk all the long trail--I saw you walk--and lead those
+horse, for only to bring our box. How my heart can thank you is not
+possible. 'Arry King, you are so weary--put me down."
+
+"I can't, Amalia," again was all he said. So he held her, comforting
+his heart that he had this right, until he drew near the cabin, and
+there Amalia saw the pelt of the sheep hung upon the wall of the
+cabin, pitifully dangling, bloody and ragged. Strangely, at the sight
+quite harmless, yet gruesome, all her fortitude gave way. With a cry
+of terror she hid her face and clung to him.
+
+"No, no. I cannot go there--not near it--no!"
+
+"Oh, you brave, sweet woman! It is only a skin. Don't look at it,
+then. You have been frightened. I see how you have suffered. Wait.
+There--no, don't put your foot to the ground. Sit on this hillock
+while I take it away."
+
+But she only clung to him the more, and sobbed convulsively. "I am
+afraid--'Arry King. Oh, if--if--they are there still! Those Indian! Do
+not go there."
+
+"But they are gone; I have been in and they are not there. I won't
+take you into that place until I have made it fit for you again. Sit
+here awhile. Amalia Manovska,--I can't see you weep." So tenderly he
+spoke her name, with quivering lips, reverently. With all his power he
+held himself and would dare no more. If only once more he might touch
+her lips with his--only once in his renunciation--but no. His
+conscience forbade him. Memory closed upon him like a deadening cloud
+and drenched his hurt soul with sorrow. He rose from stooping above
+her and looked back.
+
+"Your mother is coming. She will be here in a moment and then I will
+set that room in order for you, and--" his voice shook so that he was
+obliged to pause. He stooped again to her and spoke softly: "Amalia
+Manovska, stop weeping. Your tears fall on my heart."
+
+"Ah, what have happen, to you--to Amalia--? Those terrible men
+'rouge'!" cried Madam Manovska, hurrying forward.
+
+"Oh, Madam, I am glad you have come. The Indians are gone, never fear.
+Amalia has hurt her foot. It is very painful. You will know what to do
+for her, and I will leave her while I make things more comfortable in
+there."
+
+He left them and ran to the cabin, and hastily taking the hideous pelt
+from the wall, hid it, and then set himself to cleaning the room and
+burning the litter of bones and scraps left from the feast. It was
+horrible--yes, horrible, that they should have had such a fright, and
+alone there. Soon he went back, and again taking her in his arms,
+unresisted now, he laid her on the bunk, then knelt and removed her
+worn shoe.
+
+"Little worn shoe! It has walked many a mile, has it not? Did you
+think to ask Larry Kildene to bring you new ones?"
+
+"No, I forgot my feet." She laughed, and the spell of tears was
+broken. The long strain of anxiety and fear and then the sudden
+release had been too much. Moreover, she was faint with hunger.
+Without explanation Harry King understood. He looked to the mother for
+help and saw that a change had come over her. Roused from her apathy
+she was preparing food, and looking from her to Amalia, they exchanged
+a glance of mutual relief.
+
+"How it is beautiful to see her!" Amalia spoke low. "It is my hurt
+that is good for her mind. I am glad of the hurt."
+
+He sat with the shoe in his hand. "Will you let me bind your ankle,
+Amalia? It will grow worse unless something is done quickly." He spoke
+humbly, as one beseeching a favor.
+
+"Now it is already better, you have remove the shoe." How he loved her
+quaint, rapid speech! "Mamma will bind it, for you have to do for
+those horse and the mule. I know--I have seen--to take them to drink
+and eat, and take from them the load--the burden. It is the box--for
+that have you risk your life, and the gladness we feel to again have
+it is--is only one greater--and that is to have you again with us. Oh,
+what a sorrow and terror--if you had not come--I can never make you
+know. When I see those Indian come walking after each other so as they
+go--my heart cease to beat--and my body become like the ice--for the
+fear. When fearing for myself, it is bad, but when for another it is
+much--much--more terrible. So have I found it."
+
+Her mother came then to attend to her hurt, interrupting Amalia's flow
+of speech, and Harry went out to the animals, full of care and
+misgiving. What now could he do? How endure the days to come with
+their torture of repression? How shield her from himself and his
+love--when she so freely gave? What middle course was possible,
+without making her suffer?
+
+That afternoon all the events of his journey were told to them as they
+questioned him keenly, and he learned by little words and looks
+exchanged between them how great had been their anxiety for him, and
+of their night of terror on the mountain. But now that it was past and
+they were all unhurt except for Amalia's accident, they made light of
+it. He dragged in the box, and before he left them that night he
+prepared Larry's gun, and told Amalia to let nothing frighten her.
+
+"Don't leave the bunk, nor put your foot to the ground. Fire the gun
+at the slightest disturbance, and I will surely hear. I have another
+in the shed. Or I will roll myself in my blanket, and sleep outside
+your door. Yes, I will do that."
+
+Then the mother turned on him and spoke in her deep tones: "Go to your
+bed, 'Arry King, and sleep well. You have need. We asked of the good
+God your safety, and our fear is gone. Good night."
+
+"Good-night."
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXI
+
+THE VIOLIN
+
+
+While Amalia lay recovering from the sprained ankle, which proved to
+be a serious hurt, Madam Manovska continued to improve. She took up
+the duties which had before occupied Amalia only, and seemed to grow
+more cheerful. Still she remained convinced that Larry Kildene would
+return with her husband, and her daughter's anxiety as to what might
+be the outcome, when the big man should arrive alone, deepened.
+
+Harry King guardedly and tenderly watched over the two women. Every
+day he carried Amalia out in the sun to a sheltered place, where she
+might sit and work at the fascinating lace with which her fingers
+seemed to be only playing, yet which developed into webs of most
+intricate design, even while her eyes were not fixed upon it, but were
+glancing about at whatever interested her, or up in his face, as she
+talked to him impulsively in her fluent, inverted English.
+
+Amalia was not guarded; she was lavish with her interest in all he
+said, and in her quick, responsive, and poetic play of fancy--ardent
+and glowing--glad to give out from her soul its best to this man who
+had befriended her father in their utmost need and who had saved her
+own and her mother's life. She knew always when a cloud gathered over
+his spirit, and made it her duty to dispel such mists of some
+possible sad memory by turning his thoughts to whatever of beauty she
+found around them, or in the inspiration of her own rich nature.
+
+To avoid disquieting her by the studied guardedness of his manner,
+Harry employed himself as much of the time as possible away from the
+cabin, often in providing game for the winter. Larry Kildene had
+instructed him how to cure and dry the meat and to store it and also
+how to care for the skins, but because of the effect of that sight of
+the bloody sheep's pelt on Amalia, he never showed her a poor little
+dead creature, or the skin of one. He brought her mother whatever they
+required of food, carefully prepared, and that was all.
+
+He constructed a chair for her and threw over it furs from Larry
+Kildene's store, making it soft and comfortable thereby. He made also
+a footstool for the hurt ankle to rest upon, and found a beautiful
+lynx skin with which to cover her feet. The back of the chair he made
+high, and hinged it with leather to the seat, arranging it so that by
+means of pegs it might be raised or lowered. Without lumber, and with
+the most simple tools, he sawed and hewed the logs, and lacking nails
+he set it together with pegs, but what matter? It was comfortable, and
+in the making of it he eased his heart by expressing his love without
+sorrowful betrayal.
+
+Amalia laughed as she sat in it, one day, close to the open door,
+because the air was too pinching cold for her to be out. She laughed
+as she put her hands in the soft fur and drew her fingers through it,
+and looked up in Harry's face.
+
+"You are thinking me so foolish, yes, to have about me the skins of
+poor little killed beasts? Yet I weeped all those tears on your coat
+because to see the other--yes,--hanging beside the door. It is so we
+are--is not?"
+
+"I'm glad enough you're not consistent. It would be a blot on your
+character."
+
+"But for why, Mr. 'Arry?"
+
+"Oh, I couldn't stand it."
+
+Again she laughed. "How it is very peculiar--that reason you give. Not
+to stand it! Could you then to sit it?" But Harry only laughed and
+looked away from her. She laid her face against the soft fur. "Good
+little animals--to give me your life. But some time you would
+die--perhaps with sorrow of hunger and age, and the life be for
+nothing. This is better."
+
+"There you're right. Let me draw you back in the room and close the
+door. It will freeze to-night, I'm thinking."
+
+"Oh, not yet, please! I have yet to see the gloryful sky of the west.
+Last evening how it was beautiful! To-night it will be more lovely to
+look upon for the long line of little cloud there on which the red of
+the sun will burn like fire in the heaven over the mountain."
+
+"You must enjoy the beauty, Amalia, and then pray that there may be no
+snow. It looks like it, and we want the snow to hold off until Larry
+comes back."
+
+"We pray, always, my mamma and I. She that he come back quickly, and
+me--I pray that he come back safely--but to be soon--it is such terror
+to me."
+
+"Larry will find a way out of the difficulty. He will have an excuse
+all thought out for your mother. I am more anxious about the snow with
+a sunset sky like that, but I don't know anything about this region."
+
+"Mr. 'Arry, so very clever you are in making things, can you help me
+to one more thing? I like very much to have the sticks for lame
+walking,--what you call--the crutch? Yes. I have for so long time
+spoken only the Polish that I forget me greatly the English. You must
+talk to me much, and make me reproof of my mistakes. Do you know for
+why I like the crutch? It is that I would go each day--many times to
+see the water fall down. Ah, how that is beautiful! In the sun, or
+early in the morning, or in the night, always beautiful!"
+
+"You shall have the crutches, Amalia, and until I get them made, I
+will carry you to the fall each day. Come, I will take you there now.
+I will wrap these furs around you, and you shall see the fall in the
+evening light."
+
+"No, 'Arry King. To-morrow I will try to ride on the horse if you will
+lift me up on him. I will let you do this. But you may not carry me as
+you have done. I am now so strong. You may make me the crutch, yes."
+Of all things he wished her to let him carry her to the fall, but her
+refusal was final, and he set about making the crutches immediately.
+
+Through the evening he worked on them, and at nightfall the next day
+he brought them to her. As he came down from his shed, carrying the
+crutches proudly, he heard sweet, quavering tones in the air wafted
+intermittently. The wind was still, and through the evening hush the
+tones strengthened as he drew nearer the cabin, until they seemed to
+wrap him in a net of interwoven cadences and fine-spun threads of
+quivering melody--a net of sound, inclosing his spirit in its
+intricate mesh of sweetness.
+
+He paused and breathed deeply, and turned this way and that, as if he
+would escape but found no way; then he walked slowly on. At the door
+of the cabin he paused again. The firelight shone through from
+underneath, and a fine thread of golden light sifted through the latch
+of the door and fell on the hand that held Amalia's crutches. He
+looked down on the spot of light dancing over his hand as if he were
+dazed by it. Very gently he laid the crutches across the threshold,
+and for a long time stood without, listening, his head bowed as if he
+were praying.
+
+It was her father's violin, the one she had wept at leaving behind
+her. What was she playing? Strange, old-world melodies they seemed,
+tossed into the air, now laughing, now wailing like sorrowing women
+voices. Oh, the violin in her hands! Oh, the rapture of hearing it, as
+her soul vibrated through it and called to him--called to him!--But he
+would not hear the call. He turned sorrowfully and went down again to
+the shed and there he lay upon his face and clasped his hands above
+his head and whispered her name. It was as if his heart were beating
+itself against prison walls and the clasped hands were stained with
+blood.
+
+He rose next morning, haggard and pale. The snow was
+falling--falling--softly and silently. It fell like lead upon his
+heart, so full of anxiety was he for the good friend who might even
+then be climbing up the trail. Madam Manovska observed his drawn face,
+and thought he suffered only from anxiety and tried to comfort him.
+Amalia also attempted to cover her own anxiety by assurances that the
+good St. Christopher who watches over travelers would protect Larry
+Kildene, because he knew so well how many dangers there were, and that
+he, who had carried the Christ with all his burden of sorrows could
+surely keep "Sir Kildene" even through the snows of winter. In spite
+of an inherent and trained disbelief in all supposed legends,
+especially as tenets of faith, Harry felt himself comforted by her
+talk, yet he could not forbear questioning her as to her own faith in
+them.
+
+"Do you truly believe all that, Amalia?"
+
+"All--that--? Of what--Mr. 'Arry?" She seemed truly mystified.
+
+"I mean those childish legends of the saints you often quote?"
+
+Amalia laughed. "You think I have learn them of the good sisters in my
+convent, and is no truth in them?"
+
+"Why--I guess that's about it. Did your father believe them?"
+
+"Maybe no. But my father was 'devoué'--very--but he had a very wide
+thought of God and man--a thought reaching far out--to--I find it very
+hard to explain. If but you understood the French, I could tell
+you--but for me, I have my father's faith and it makes me glad to play
+in my heart with these legends--as you call them."
+
+He gave her a quick, appealing glance, then turned his gaze away. "Try
+to explain. Your English is beautiful."
+
+"If you eat your breakfast, then will I try."
+
+"Yes, yes, I will. You say he had faith reaching far out--to where--to
+what?"
+
+"He said there would never be rest in all the universe until we find
+everywhere God,--living--creating--moving forever in the--the--all."
+She held out her hands and extended her arms in an encompassing
+movement indescribably full of grace.
+
+"You mean he was a pantheist?"
+
+"Oh, no, no. That is to you a horror, I see, but it was not that."
+She laughed again, so merrily that Harry laughed, too. But still he
+persisted, "Amalia--never mind what your father thought; tell me your
+own faith."
+
+Then she grew grave, "My faith is--just--God. In the all.
+Seeing--feeling--knowing--with us--for us--never away--in the deep
+night of sorrow--understanding. In the far wilderness--hearing. In the
+terror and remorse of the heart--when we weep for sin--loving. It is
+only one thing in all the world to learn, and that is to learn all
+things, just to reach out the mind, and touch God--to find his love in
+the heart and so always live in the perfect music of God. That is the
+wonderful harmony--and melody--and growth--of each little soul--and of
+all peoples, all worlds,--Oh, it is the universe of love God gives to
+us."
+
+For a while they were silent, and Madam Manovska began to move about
+the cabin, setting the things in order. She did not seem to have taken
+any interest in their talk. Harry rose to go, but first he looked in
+Amalia's eyes.
+
+"The perfect Music of God?" He said the words slowly and questioningly.
+
+"You understand my meaning?"
+
+"I can't say. Do you?"
+
+She quickly snatched up her violin which lay within reach of her arm.
+"I can better show you." She drew a long chord, then from it wandered
+into a melody, sweet and delicate; then she drew other chords, and on
+into other melodies, all related; then she began to talk again. "It is
+only on two strings I am playing--for hear? the others are now souls
+out of the music of God--listen--" she drew her bow across the
+discordant strings. "How that is terrible! So God creates great and
+beautiful laws--" she went back into the harmony and perfect melody,
+and played on, now changing to the discordant strain, and back, as she
+talked--"and gives to all people power to understand, but not through
+weakness--but through longing and searching with big earnestness of
+purpose, and much desire. Who has no care and desire for the music of
+God, strikes always those wrong notes, and all suffer as our ears
+suffer with the bad sounds. So it is, through long desiring, and
+living, always a little and a little more perceiving, reaching out the
+hand to touch in love our brothers and sisters on the earth,--always
+with patience learning to find in our own souls the note that strikes
+in harmony with the great thought of God--and thus we understand and
+live in the music of God. Ah, it is hard for me to say it--but it is
+as if our souls are given wings--wings--that reach--from the gold of
+the sun--even to the earth at our feet, and we float upon that great
+harmony of love like upon a wonderful upbearing sea, and never can we
+sink, and ever all is well--for we live in the thought of God."
+
+"Amalia--Amalia--How about sin, and the one who--kills--and the ones
+who hate--and the little children brought into the world in sin--"
+Harry's voice trembled, and he bowed his head in his hands.
+
+"Never is anything lost. They are the ones who have not yet
+learned--they have not found the key to God's music. Those who find
+must quickly help and give and teach the little children--the little
+children find so easily the key--but to all the strings making
+horrible discord on the earth--we dare not shut our ears and hide--so
+do the sweet, good sisters in the convent. They do their little to
+teach the little children, but it is always to shut their ears. But
+the Christ went out in the world, not with hands over his ears, but
+outreached to his brothers and sisters on the earth. But my father--my
+father! He turned away from the church, because he saw they had not
+found the true key to God's music--or I mean they kept it always hid,
+and covered with much--how shall I say--with much drapery--and golden
+coverings, that the truth--that is the key--was lost to sight. It was
+for this my father quarreled with--all that he thought not the truth.
+He believed to set his people free both from the world's oppression
+and from their own ignorance, and give to them a truth uncovered. Oh,
+it set his old friends in great discord more than ever--for they could
+not make thus God's music. And so they rose up and threw him in
+prison, and all the terrible things came upon him--of the world. My
+mother must have been very able through love to drag him free from
+them, even if they did pursue. It was the conflict of discord he felt
+all his life, and now he is free."
+
+Suddenly the mother's deep tones sounded through the cabin with a
+finality that made them both start. "Yes. Now he is free--and yet will
+he bring them to--know. We wait for him here. No more must he go to
+Poland. It is not the will of God."
+
+Still Harry was not satisfied. "But if you think all these great
+thoughts--and you do--I can't see how you can quote those legends as
+if you thought them true."
+
+"I quote them, yes, because I love them, and their poetry. Through all
+beauty--all sweetness--all strength--God brings to us his thought.
+This I believe. I believe the saints lived and were holy and good,
+loving the great brotherhood. Why may not they be given the work of
+love still to do? It is all in the music of God, that they live, and
+make happy, and why should I believe that it is now taken from them to
+do good? Much that I think lies deep in my heart, and I cannot tell it
+in words."
+
+"Nor can I. But my thoughts--" For an instant Amalia, looking at him,
+saw in his face the same look of inward fear--or rather of despair
+that had appalled Larry, but it went as quickly as it appeared, and
+she wondered afterward if she had really seen it, or if it was a
+strange trick of the firelight in the windowless cabin.
+
+"And your thoughts, Mr. 'Arry?"
+
+"They are not to be told." Again he rose to go, and stood and looked
+down on her, smiling. "I see you have already tried the crutches."
+
+"Yes. I found them in the snow, before the door. How I got there? I
+did hop. It was as if the good angels had come in the night. I wake
+and something make me all glad--and I go to the door to look at the
+whiteness, and then I am sorry, because of Sir Kildene, then I see
+before me--while that I stand on one foot, and hop--hop--hop--so, I
+see the crutch lie in the snow. Oh, Mr. 'Arry, now so pale you are! It
+is that you have worked in the night to make them--Is not? That is
+sorrowful to me. But now will I do for you pleasant things, because I
+can move to do them on these, where before I must always sit
+still--still--Ah, how that is hard to do! One good thing comes to me
+of this hurt. It makes the old shoes to last longer. How is it never
+to wear out shoes? Never to walk in them."
+
+Harry laughed. "We'll have to make you some moccasins."
+
+"And what is moccasins? Ah, yes, the Indian shoe. I like them well, so
+soft they must be, and so pretty with the beads. I have seen once such
+shoes on one little Indian child. Her mother made them."
+
+Then Harry made her try the crutches to be sure they were quite right,
+and, seeing that they were a little too long, he measured them with
+care, and carried them back to the shed, and there he shortened them
+and polished them with sand and a piece of flint, until he succeeded
+in making a very workmanlike job of them.
+
+At noon he brought them back, and stood in the doorway a moment beside
+her, looking out through the whiteness upon the transformed world. In
+spite of what that snow might mean to Larry Kildene, and through him
+to them, of calamity, maybe death, a certain elation possessed Harry.
+His body was braced to unusual energy by the keen, pure air, and his
+spirit enthralled and lifted to unconscious adoration by the vast
+mystery of a beauty, subtle and ethereal in its hushed eloquence. From
+the zenith through whiteness to whiteness the flakes sifted from the
+sky like a filmy bride's veil thrown over the blue of the farthest and
+highest peaks, and swaying soft folds of lucent whiteness upon the
+earth--the trees--and upon the cabin, and as they stood there, closing
+them in together--the very center of mystery, their own souls. Again
+the passion swept through him, to gather her in his arms, and he held
+himself sternly and stiffly against it, and would have said something
+simple and common to break the spell, but he only faltered and looked
+down on his hands spread out before her, and what he said was: "Do you
+see blood on them?"
+
+"Ah, no. Did you hurt your hand to cause blood on them, and to make
+those crutch for me?" she cried in consternation.
+
+"No, no. It's nothing. I have not hurt my hand. See, there's no blood
+on the crutches." He glanced at them as she leaned her weight on them
+there at his side, with a feeling of relief. It seemed as if they must
+show a stain, yet why should it be blood? "Come in. It's too cold for
+you to stand in the door with no shawl. I mean to put enough wood in
+here to last you the rest of the day--and go--"
+
+"Mr. 'Arry! Not to leave us? No, it is no need you go--for why?"
+
+Her terror touched him. "No, I would not go again and leave you and
+your mother alone--not to save my soul. As you say, there is no
+need--as long as it is so still and the clouds are thin the snow will
+do little harm. It would be the driving, fine snow and the drifts that
+would delay him."
+
+"Yes, snow as we have it in the terrible Russia. I know such snow
+well," said Madam Manovska.
+
+They went in and closed the door, and sat down to eat. The meal was
+lighted only by the dancing flames from the hearth, and their faces
+glowed in the fitful light. Always the meals were conducted with a
+certain stately ceremony which made the lack of dishes, other than the
+shaped slabs of wood sawn from the ends of logs--odd make-shifts
+invented by Harry, seem merely an accident of the moment, while the
+bits of lace-edged linen that Amalia provided from their little store
+seemed quite in harmony with the air of grace and gentleness that
+surrounded the two women. It was as if they were using a service of
+silver and Sevres, and to have missed the graciousness of their
+ministrations, now that he had lived for a little while with them,
+would have been sorrow indeed.
+
+He even forgot that he was clothed in rags, and wore them as if they
+were the faultless garments of a prince. It was only when he was alone
+that he looked down on them and sighed. One day he had come to the
+cabin to ask if he might take for a little while a needle and thread,
+but when he got there, the conversation wandered to discussion of the
+writers and the tragedies of the various nations and of their poets,
+and the needle and thread were forgotten.
+
+To-day, as the snow fell, it reminded Amalia of his need, and she
+begged him to stay with them a little to see what the box he had
+rescued for them contained. He yielded, and, taking up the violin, he
+held it a moment to his chin as if he would play, then laid it down
+again without drawing the bow across it.
+
+"Ah, Mr. 'Arry, it is that you play," cried Amalia, in delight. "I
+know it. No man takes in his hand the violin thus, if he do not
+play."
+
+"I had a friend once who played. No, I can't." He turned away from it
+sadly, and she gently laid it back in its box, and caught up a piece
+of heavy material.
+
+"Look. It is a little of this left. It is for you. My mother has much
+skill to make garments. Let us sew for you the blouse."
+
+"Yes, I'll do that gladly. I have no other way to keep myself decent
+before you."
+
+"What would you have? All must serve or we die." Madam Manovska spoke,
+"It is well, Sir 'Arry King, you carry your head like one prince, for
+I will make of you one peasant in this blouse."
+
+The two women laughed and measured him, and conferred volubly together
+in their own tongue, and he went out from their presence feeling that
+no prince had ever been so honored. They took also from their store
+warm socks of wool and gave him. Sadly he needed them, as he realized
+when he stepped out from their door, and the soft snow closed around
+his feet, chilling them with the cold.
+
+As he looked up in the sky he saw the clouds were breaking, and the
+sun glowed through them like a great pale gold moon, even though the
+flakes continued to veil thinly the distance. His heart lightened and
+he went back to the cabin to tell them the good news, and to ask them
+to pray for clear skies to-morrow. Having been reared in a rigidly
+puritanic school of thought, the time was, when first he knew them,
+that the freedom with which Amalia spoke of the Deity, and of the
+Christ, and the saints, and her prayers, fell strangely upon his
+unaccustomed ears. He was reserved religiously, and seemed to think
+any mention of such topics should be made with bated breath, and the
+utmost solemnity. Often it had been in his mind to ask her concerning
+her beliefs, but his shyness on such themes had prevented.
+
+Now that he had asked her he still wondered. He was used to feel that
+no one could be really devout, and yet speak so freely. Why--he could
+not have told. But now he began to understand, yet it was but a
+beginning. Could it be that she belonged to no church? Was it some
+sect of which he had never heard to which they belonged? If so, it
+must be a true faith, or it never could have upheld them through all
+their wanderings and afflictions, and, as he pondered, he found
+himself filled with a measure of the same trustful peace. During
+their flight across the plains together he had come to rest in them,
+and when his heart was too heavy to dare address the Deity in his own
+words, it was balm to his hurt spirit to hear them at their devotions
+as if thus God were drawn nearer him.
+
+This time, whether he might lay it to their prayers or no, his hopes
+were fulfilled. The evening brought a clear sunset, and during the
+next day the snow melted and soon was gone, and a breeze sprang up and
+the clouds drifted away, and for several days thereafter the weather
+continued clear and dry.
+
+Now often he brought his horse to the door, and lifted Amalia to the
+saddle and walked at her side, fearing she might rest her foot too
+firmly in the stirrup and so lose control of the horse in her pain.
+Always their way took them to the falls. And always he listened while
+Amalia talked. He allowed himself only the most meager liberty of
+expression. Distant and cold his manner often seemed to her, but
+intuitively she respected his moods, if moods they might be called:
+she suspected not.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXII
+
+THE BEAST ON THE TRAIL
+
+
+A week after the first snowfall Larry Kildene returned. He had
+lingered long after he should have taken the trail and had gone
+farther than he had dreamed of going when he parted from his three
+companions on the mountain top. All day long the snow had been
+falling, and for the last few miles he had found it almost impossible
+to crawl upward. Fortunately there had been no wind, and the snow lay
+as it had fallen, covering the trail so completely that only Larry
+Kildene himself could have kept it--he and his horse--yet not impeding
+his progress with drifts to be tunneled through.
+
+Harry King had been growing more and more uneasy during the day, and
+had kept the trail from the cabin to the turn of the cliff clear of
+snow, but below that point he did not think it wise to go: he could
+not, indeed. There, however, he stationed himself to wait through the
+night, and just beyond the turn he built a fire, thinking it might
+send a light into the darkness to greet Larry, should he happen to be
+toiling through the snow.
+
+He did not arouse the fears of Amalia by telling her he meant to keep
+watch all night on the cliff, but he asked her for a brew of Larry
+Kildene's coffee--of which they had been most sparing--when he left
+them after the evening meal, and it was given him without a thought,
+as he had been all day working in the snow, and the request seemed
+natural. He asked that he might have it in the great kettle in which
+they prepared it, and carried it with him to the fodder shed.
+
+Darkness had settled over the mountain when, after an hour's rest, he
+returned to the top of the trail and mended his fire and placed his
+kettle near enough to keep the contents hot. Through half the night he
+waited thus, sometimes walking about and peering into the obscurity
+below, sometimes replenishing his fire, and sometimes just patiently
+sitting, his arms clasped about his knees, gazing into space and
+brooding.
+
+Many times had Harry King been lonely, but never had the awesomeness
+of life and its mysterious leadings so impressed him as during this
+night's vigil. Moses alone on the mountain top, carried there and left
+where he might see into the promised land--the land toward which he
+had been aided miraculously to lead his people, but which he might not
+enter because of one sin,--one only transgression,--Elijah sitting
+alone in the wilderness waiting for the revealing of God--waiting
+heartbroken and weary, vicariously bearing in his own spirit regrets
+and sorrows over the waywardness of his people Israel,--and John, the
+forerunner--a "Voice crying in the wilderness 'Repent ye!'"--these
+were not so lonely, for their God was with them and had led them by
+direct communication and miraculous power; they were not lonely as
+Cain was lonely, stained with a brother's blood, cast out from among
+his fellows, hunted and haunted by his own guilt.
+
+Silence profound and indescribable reigned, while the great, soft
+flakes continued to drift slowly down, silent--silent--as the grave,
+and above and beneath and on all sides the same absolute neutrality
+of tint, vague and soft; yet the reality of the rugged mountain even
+so obscured and covered, remained; its cliffs and crags below, deadly
+and ragged, and fearful to look down upon, and skirting its sides the
+long, weary trail, up which at that very moment a man might be
+toiling, suffering, even to the limit of death--might be giving his
+life for the two women and the man who had come to him so suddenly out
+of the unknown; strange, passing strange it all was.
+
+Again and again Harry rose and replenished the fire and stamped about,
+shaking from his shoulders the little heaps of snow that had collected
+there. The flames rose high in the still air and stained the snow
+around his bonfire a rosy red. The redness of the fire-stained snow
+was not more deep and vital than the red blood pulsing through his
+heart. With all a strong man's virility and power he loved as only the
+strong can love, and through all his brooding that undercurrent ran
+like a swift and mighty river,--love, stronger than hate,--love,
+triumphing over death,--love, deeper than hell,--love, lifting to the
+zenith of heaven;--only two things seemed to him verities at that
+moment, God above, and love within,--two overwhelming truths, terrible
+in their power, all-consuming in their sweetness, one in their vast,
+incomprehensible entity of force, beneficent, to be forever sought for
+and chosen out of all the universe of good.
+
+The true meaning of Amalia's faith, as she had brokenly tried to
+explain it to him, dawned on his understanding. God,--love, truth, and
+power,--annihilating evil as light eats up darkness, drawing all into
+the great "harmony of the music of God."
+
+Sitting there in the red light of the fire with the snow falling
+around him, he knew what he must do first to come into the harmony. He
+must take up his burden and declare the truth, and suffer the result,
+no matter what it might be. Keen were all the impressions and visions
+of his mind. Even while he could see Amalia sleeping in the cabin, and
+could feel her soft breath on his cheek, could feel her in his
+arms,--could hear her prayers for Larry Kildene's safety as at that
+moment he might be coming to them,--he knew that the mighty river of
+his love must be held back by a masterful will--must be dammed back
+until its floods deepened into an ocean of tranquillity while he rose
+above his loneliness and his fierce longing,--loving her, yet making
+no avowal,--holding her in his heart, yet never disturbing her peace
+of spirit by his own heart's tumult,--clinging to her night and day,
+yet relinquishing her.
+
+And out of this resolution, against which his nature cried and beat
+itself, he saw, serene, and more lonely than Moses or Elijah,--beautiful,
+and near to him as his love, the Christ taken to the high places, even
+the pinnacle of the temple--and the mountain peak, overlooking the
+worlds and the kingdoms thereof, and turning from them all to look down
+on him with a countenance of ineffable beauty--the love that dies not.
+
+He lifted his head. The visions were gone. Had he slept? The fire was
+burning low and a long line was streaked across the eastern sky; a
+line of gold, while still darkness rested below him and around him.
+Again he built up the fire, and set the kettle closer. He stood out on
+the height at the top of the trail and listened, his figure a black
+silhouette against the dancing flames. He called, he shouted with all
+his power, then listened. Did he hear a call? Surely it must be. He
+plunged downward and called again, and again came the faint response.
+In his hand he carried a long pole, and with it he prodded about in
+the snow for sure footing and continued to descend, calling from time
+to time, and rejoicing to hear the answering call. Yes, Larry Kildene
+was below him in the obscurity, and now his voice came up to Harry,
+long and clear. He had not far to go ere he saw the big man slowly
+toiling upward through the dusk of dawn. He had dismounted, and the
+weary animals were following behind.
+
+Thus Larry Kildene came back to his mountain. Exhausted, he still made
+light of his achievement--climbing through day and night to arrive
+before the snow should embank around him. He stood in the firelight
+swaying with weariness and tasted the hot coffee and shook his
+grizzled head and laughed. The animals came slowly on and stood close
+to him, almost resting their noses on his shoulder, while Harry King
+gazed on him with admiration.
+
+"Now if it weren't for the poor beasts, I'd lie down here by the fire
+and sleep rather than take a step farther to-night. To-night?
+Why--it's morning! Isn't it? I never thought we were so near the end.
+If I hadn't seen the fire a long way down, I would have risked another
+bivouac for the rest of the night. We might have lived through it--I
+don't know, but this is better." He rubbed the nose of his panting
+horse. "I shall drop to sleep if we don't move on."
+
+A thin blue smoke was rising from the chimney as they passed the
+cabin, but Amalia, kneeling before the hearth, did not know they were
+near. Harry wondered if Larry had forgotten the mother's hallucination
+about her husband, yet forbore to mention it, thinking it best to get
+him into his bunk first. But he had not forgotten. When Harry came
+into the shed after stabling the horses, he found Larry sitting before
+the chimney fire warming his knees and smoking.
+
+"Give me a little more of that coffee, Harry, and let's talk a bit
+before I turn in for the day. There's the mother, now; she still
+thinks as she did? I'll not see them until this evening--when I may
+feel able to meet the question, and, lad, tell them what you please,
+but--better not let the mother know I'm here until I can see her."
+
+"Then, if you'll go to bed now, I'll bring your food up. I'll tell
+Amalia, of course."
+
+"I'm not hungry--only weary. Don't bother the women about food. After
+a day and night of sleep I'll be quite fit again. Man! But it's good
+to be back into the peace of the hills! I've been down where the waves
+of civilization roar. Yes, yes; I'll go to my bunk after a bit. The
+great menace to our tranquillity here for the winter is the mother."
+
+"But she has improved."
+
+"Good, good. How?"
+
+"She thinks of things around her--and--takes care of the cabin since
+Amalia's hurt."
+
+"Hurt? How's that?"
+
+"She sprained her ankle--only, but enough to lay her up for a while."
+
+"I see. Shook her mother out of her dreams."
+
+"Not entirely. I think the improvement comes more from her firm
+conviction that you are to bring her husband with you, and Amalia
+agrees with me. If you have an excuse that will satisfy her--"
+
+"I see. She was satisfied in her mind that he was alive and would come
+to her--I see. Keep her quiet until I wake up and then we'll find a
+way out--if the truth is impossible. Now I'll sleep--for a day and a
+night and a day--as long as I've been on that forced march. It was to
+go back, or try to push through--or die--and I pushed through."
+
+"Don't sleep until I've brought you some hot broth. I'm sure they have
+it down there."
+
+"I'll be glad of it, yes."
+
+But he could not keep awake. Before Harry could throw another log on
+the fire he was asleep. Then Harry gently drew an army blanket over
+him and went out to the stable. There he saddled his own horse and led
+him toward the cabin. Before he reached it he saw Amalia coming to
+meet him, hobbling on her crutch. She was bareheaded and the light of
+morning was in her eyes.
+
+"Ah, 'Arry, 'Arry King! He has come. I see here marks of feet of
+horses in the snow--is not? Is well? Is safe? Larry Kildene so noble
+and kind! Yes. My mother? No, she prepares the food, and me, I shut
+the door when I run out to see is it sun to-day and the terrible snow
+no more falling. There I see the marks of horses, yes." She spoke
+excitedly, and looked up in Harry's face with smiles on her lips and
+anxious appeal in her eyes.
+
+"Throw down that crutch and lean on me. I'll lift you up--There! Now
+we'll go back to the cabin and lead Goldbug around a bit, so his
+tracks will cover the others and account for them. Then after
+breakfast I'll take you to the top of the trail and tell you."
+
+She leaned down to him from her seat on the horse and put her hand on
+his shoulder. "Is well? And you--you have not slept? No?"
+
+Looking up in her face so wonderful and beautiful, so filled with
+tender solicitude for him, and her glowing eyes fixed on his, he was
+covered with confusion even to scarcely comprehending what she said.
+He took the hand from his shoulder and kissed the tips of her fingers,
+then dropped it and walked on ahead, leading the horse.
+
+"I'm well, yes. Tired a bit, but, oh, yes! Larry Kildene? He's all
+right. We'll go out on the trail and consult--what is best to do about
+your mother--and say nothing until then."
+
+To Amalia a kiss on the finger tips meant no more than the usual
+morning greeting in her own country, and she rode on undisturbed by
+his demonstration, which he felt keenly and for which he would have
+knelt and begged her pardon. Ever since his first unguarded moment
+when he returned and found her fainting on the hillside, he had set
+such rigid watch over his actions that his adoration had been
+expressed only in service--for the most part silent and with averted
+eyes. This aloofness she felt, and with the fineness of her nature
+respected, letting her own play of imagination hover away from
+intimate intrusion, merely lightening the somber relationship that
+would otherwise have existed, like a breeze that stirs only the
+surface of a deep pool and sets dancing lights at play but leaves the
+depths undisturbed.
+
+Yet, with all her intuitiveness, she found him difficult and
+enigmatic. An impenetrable wall seemed to be ever between them,
+erected by his will, not hers; therefore she would not try by the
+least suggestion of manner, or even of thought, to know why, nor would
+she admit to her own spirit the hurt of it. The walled inclosure of
+his heart was his, and she must remain without. To have attempted by
+any art to get within the boundaries he had set she felt to be
+unmaidenly.
+
+In spite of his strength and vigor, Harry was very weary. But less
+from his long night's vigil than from the emotions that had torn him
+and left his heart heavy with the necessity of covering always this
+strong, elemental love that smoldered, waiting in abeyance until it
+might leap into consuming flame.
+
+During the breakfast Harry sat silent, while the two women talked a
+little with each other, speculating as to the weather, and rejoicing
+that the morning was again clear. Then while her mother was occupied,
+Amalia, unnoticed, gave him the broth to carry up to the shed, and
+there, as Larry still slept, he set it near the fire that it might be
+warm and ready for him should he wake during their absence. At the
+cabin he brought wood and laid it beside the hearth, and looked about
+to see if there were anything more he could do before he spoke.
+
+"Madam Manovska, Amalia and I are going up the trail a little way, and
+we may be gone some time, but--I'll take good care of her." He smiled
+reassuringly: "We mustn't waste the sunny days. When Mr. Kildene
+returns, you also must ride sometimes."
+
+"Ah, yes. When? When? It is long--very long."
+
+"But, maybe, not so long, mamma. Soon now must he come. I think it."
+
+They left her standing in the door as they went off up the trail, the
+glistening snow making the world so dazzling in the sunlight, so
+blinding to her eyes, used to the obscurity of the cabin, that the
+many tracks past the door were unnoticed by her. In silence they
+walked until they had almost reached the turn, when Amalia spoke.
+
+"Have you look, how I use but the one crutch, 'Arry King? Soon will I
+again walk on my foot, very well. I have so many times to thank you.
+Now of mamma we must speak. She thinks only, every day, every hour, of
+my father. If we shall speak the truth to her--I do not know. What she
+will do--we cannot tell. No. And it is well to keep her heart from too
+much sorrow. For Sir Kildene, he must not be afflicted by us--my mamma
+and I. We have take from him his house, and he is banish--all for us,
+to make pleasant, and what we can do is little, so little--and if my
+mamma sit always silent when we should be gay to each other and make
+happy the days, is not good, and all his peace will be gone. Now talk
+to me a little of your thoughts, 'Arry King."
+
+"My thoughts must be like yours, Amalia, if I would have them wise.
+It's best to leave her as undisturbed as possible until spring. The
+months will go by rapidly. He will not be troubled. Then we can take
+her to some place, where I will see to it that you are cared for--"
+
+The horse suddenly stopped and settled back on his haunches and lifted
+his head, looking wildly about. Harry sprang to the bridle, but he did
+not try to get away, and only stood quivering and breathing loudly as
+if in the direst fear, and leaned close to Harry for protection.
+
+"What ails you? Good horse." Harry petted and coaxed, but he refused
+to move on, and showed every sign of frantic fear. "I can't think what
+possesses him. He's afraid, but of what?"
+
+"There! There!" cried Amalia, pointing to the top of the trail at the
+cliff. "It's the beast. I have read of it--so terrible! Ah!"
+
+"Surely. That's a mountain lion; Goldbug scented him before he rounded
+the cliff. They're cowards; never fear." He shouted and flung his arm
+in the air, but did not dare let the bridle rein go for fear the horse
+would bolt with her. For a moment the beast stood regarding them, then
+turned and trotted off in a leisurely fashion.
+
+"'Arry, take my hand one minute. I am like the horse, afraid. If that
+animal had come when we were alone on the mountain in that night--it
+is my heart that will not stand still."
+
+"Don't be afraid now. He's gone. He was hunting there where I was last
+night, and no doubt he smells the horses that came up the mountain
+early this morning. It is the snow that has driven him out of the
+cañon to hunt for food." He let her cling to his hand and stood
+quietly, petting and soothing the horse.
+
+"All night? 'Arry King, you were there all night? Why?" she shivered,
+and, bending down, looked steadily in his eyes.
+
+"I had a fire. There was no danger. There is more danger for me in--"
+he cut his words short. "Shall we go on now? Or would you rather turn
+back?"
+
+She drew herself up and released his hand; still she trembled. "I will
+be brave like you are brave. If you so desire, we go on."
+
+"You are really braver than I. Then we'll go a few steps farther." But
+the horse would not go on. He snorted and quivered and pulled back.
+Harry looked up at Amalia. She sat calmly waiting, but was very pale.
+Then he yielded to the horse, and, turning, led him back toward the
+cabin. She drew a long sigh of relief then, and glanced at him, and
+they both laughed.
+
+"You see I am the coward, to only make believe I am not afraid. I am
+very afraid, and now more than always will I be afraid when that you
+go to hunt. 'Arry King, go no more alone." Her voice was low and
+pleading. "There is much to do. I will teach you to speak the French,
+like you have once said you wish to learn. Then is the book to write.
+Is much to do that is very pleasant. But of those wild lions on the
+hills, they are not for a man to fight alone." He restrained the
+horse, and walked slowly at her side, his hand on the pommel of the
+saddle, but did not speak. "You promise not? All night you stay in the
+cold, where is danger, and how may I know you will not again do such a
+thing? All is beautiful here, and great happiness may be if--if that
+you do no tragedy." So sweetly did she plead he could no longer remain
+silent.
+
+"There is only one happiness for me in life, Amalia, and that is
+forbidden me. I have expiation to make before I may ask happiness of
+heaven. You have been most patient with my silences--always--will you
+be patient still--and--understand?"
+
+She drew in her breath sharply and turned her face away from him, and
+for a moment was silent; then she spoke. Her voice was very low, and
+very sweet. "What is right, that must be. Always."
+
+Then they spoke again of Madam Manovska, and Amalia opened her heart
+to him as never before. It seemed as if she would turn his thoughts
+from whatever sorrow might be hanging over him, and impress him with
+the feeling that no matter what might be the cause of his reserve, or
+what wrong he might have done, her faith in him remained unshaken. It
+was a sweet return for his stammered confession.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXIII
+
+A DISCOURSE ON LYING
+
+
+All day Larry Kildene slept, hardly waking long enough toward
+nightfall to drink his broth, but the next day he was refreshed and
+merry.
+
+"Leave Madam Manovska alone," he admonished Harry. "Take Amalia off
+for another ride, and I'll go down to the cabin, and if there's a way
+to set her mind at rest about her husband, I'll find it. I'd not be
+willing to take an oath on what I may tell her, but it will be
+satisfying, never fear."
+
+The ride was a short one, for the air was chill, and there were more
+signs of snow, but when they returned to the cabin, they found Larry
+seated by the fire, drinking a brew of Madam's tea and conversing
+with her joyously about his trip and what he had seen of the new
+railroad. It was curious how he had succeeded in bringing her to take
+an interest in things quite alien to her. The very atmosphere of
+the cabin seemed to be cleared by his presence, big, genial, and
+all-embracing. Certainly nothing of the recluse appeared in his
+demeanor. Only when they were alone in their own quarters did he
+show occasionally a longing for the old condition of unmolested
+tranquillity. To go to his dinner at a set hour, no matter how well
+prepared it might be, annoyed him.
+
+"There's no reason in life why they should get a meal ready merely
+because a timepiece says twelve o'clock. Let them wait until a man's
+hungry," he would grumble. Then, arrived at the cabin, he would be all
+courtesy and geniality.
+
+When Harry rallied him on his inconsistency, he gravely replied: "An
+Irish gentleman is an Irish gentleman the world over, no matter where
+you find him, in court, camp, or wilderness; it's all one to him. Why
+do you think I brought that mirror you shave by all the way up the
+mountain? Why, to have a body to look at now and again, and to
+blarney, just that I might not forget the trick. What was the good of
+that, do you ask? Look at yourself, man. You're a dour Scotchman,
+that's what you are, and you keep your humor done up in a wet blanket,
+and when it glints out of the corner of your eye a bit, you draw down
+the corners of your mouth to belie it. What's the good of that, now?
+The world's a rough place to walk in for the most part, especially for
+women, and if a man carries a smile on his face and a bit of blarney
+on the tip of his tongue, he smooths the way for them. Now, there's
+Madam Manovska. What would you and Amalia have done to her? Driven her
+clean out of her head with your bungling. In a case like hers you must
+be very discreet, and lead her around, by the way she wants to go, to
+a place of safety."
+
+Harry smiled. Since his avowal to Amalia of his determination to make
+expiation for the crime that clouded his life, he had grown more
+cheerful and less restrained in manner. He would accept the present
+happiness, and so far as he could without wrong to her, he would fill
+his hours with the joy of her companionship, and his love should
+dominate him, and his heart should revel in the thought of her, and
+her nearness to him; then when the spring should come and melt the
+snowy barriers between him and the world below, he would go down and
+make his expiation, drinking the bitter cup to the dregs.
+
+This happy imprisonment on the mountain top with these two refined
+women and this kindly man with the friendly heart and splendid body
+and brain, he deemed worth a lifetime spent more sordidly. Here and
+now, he felt himself able to weigh true values, and learned that
+the usual ambitions of mortals--houses and gear and places of
+precedence--could become the end of existence only to those whose
+desires had become distorted by the world's estimates. Now he
+understood how a man might live for a woman's smile, or give his life
+for the touch of her hand, and how he might hunger for the pressing
+of children's lips to his own. The warm friendships of life grew to
+their true proportions in the vast scheme of things, as he looked in
+the big man's eyes and answered his kindly banter.
+
+"I see. It takes a genius to be a discreet and wise liar. Amalia's
+lacking there--for me, I might learn. Now pocket your blarney long
+enough to tell me why you called me a Scotchman."
+
+"How would I know the difference between a broncho and a mule? By the
+earmarks, boy. I've lived in the world long enough to know men. If
+there be only a drop of Scotch blood in a man, he shows it. Like the
+mule he brays at the wrong time, or he settles back and stands when he
+should go forward. Oh, there's many a sign to enlighten the wise."
+
+He rose and knocked the ashes from his pipe and thrust it in his
+pocket and began to look over his pack, which had not been opened. Two
+good-sized sacks hung on either side of the pack mule had held most
+of his purchases, all carefully tied in separate bundles. The good man
+had not been sparing of his gold. Since he had so long exiled himself,
+having no use for what he had accumulated, he had now reveled in
+spending.
+
+"We're to live like lords and ladies, now, Harry. I've two silver
+plates, and they're for the ladies. For us, we'll eat off the tin as
+before. And silver mugs for their drink. See? I would have got them
+china but it's too likely to break. Now, here's a luxury I've brought,
+and it was heavy to carry, too. Here's twenty-four panes of glass. I
+carried them, twelve on each side of my horse, like that, slung so,
+see? That's two windows of two sash each, and six panes to a sash. Oh,
+they're small, but see what a luxury for the women to do their pretty
+work by. And there's work for you, to be making the sash. I've done my
+share of that sort of thing in building the cabin for you, and
+then--young man--I'll set you to digging out the gold. That's work
+that'll put the worth of your body to the test, and the day will come
+when you'll need it."
+
+"I doubt my ever having much need of gold, but whatever you set me at
+I'll do to the best of my ability."
+
+"You may have your doubts, but I have none. Men are like bees; they
+must ever be laying by something, even if they have no use for it." As
+Larry talked he continued to sort over his purchases, and Harry looked
+on, astounded at their variety and number.
+
+While apparently oblivious of the younger man's interest, and absorbed
+in his occupation, whistling, and turning the bundles over in his
+hands as he tallied them off, he now and then shot a keen glance in
+his companion's face. He had noticed the change in Harry, and was
+alert to learn the cause. He found him more talkative, more eager and
+awake. He suspected Harry had passed through some mental crisis, but
+of what nature he was at a loss to determine. Certainly it had made
+him a more agreeable companion than the gloom of his former manner.
+
+"I'll dig for the gold, indeed I will, but I'd like to go on a hunt
+now and then. I'd like a shot at the beast we saw sniffing over the
+spot where I sat all night waiting for you to appear. It will no
+longer be safe for Amalia to wander about alone as she did before she
+hurt her ankle."
+
+"The creature was after sheep. He'll find his prey growing scarcer now
+that the railroad is so near. In ten years or less these mountain
+sheep will be extinct. That's the result of civilization, my boy."
+
+"I'd like to shoot this panther, though."
+
+"We'll have to set a bait for him--and that means a deer or a sheep
+must go. We'll do it soon, too."
+
+"You've reconciled Madam Manovska to your coming home without her
+husband! I didn't think it possible. Give me a lesson in diplomacy,
+will you?"
+
+"Wait till I light my pipe. Now. First, you must know there are several
+kinds of lying, and you must learn which kinds are permissible--and
+otherwise." With his pipe between his teeth, Larry stood, a mock
+gravity about his mouth, and a humorous twinkle in his eyes, while he
+looked down on Harry, and told off the lies on his fingers.
+
+"First, there's the fool's lie--you'll know it because there's no
+purpose in it, and there's the rogue's lie,--and as we're neither
+fools nor rogues we'll class them both as--otherwise; then there's
+the lie of pride, and, as that goes along with the fool's lie, we'll
+throw it out with the--otherwise--and the coward's lie also goes with
+the otherwise." Larry shook his fingers as if he tossed the four lies
+off from their tips, and began again. "Now. Here's the friend's lie--a
+man risks his soul to save a friend--good--or to help him out of
+trouble--very well. And then there's the lover's lie, it's what a lad
+tells his sweetheart--that goes along with what she tells him--and
+comes by way of nature--"
+
+"Or you might class it along with your own blarney."
+
+"Let be, lad. I'm teaching you the diplomacy, now. Then there's the
+lie of shame, and the lie of sorrow, wherein a man puts by, for his
+own loved one's sake, or his self-respect, what's better covered;
+that, too, comes by way of nature, even as a dog crawls away to die
+alone, and we'll accept it. Now comes the lie of the man who would
+tell a good tale for the amusement of his friends; very well, the
+nature of man loves it, so we'll count it in, and along with it comes
+a host of little lies like the sportsman's lie and the traveler's
+lie--they all help to make life merry, and the world can ill do
+without them. But now comes the lie of circumspection. You must learn
+to lie it without lying. See? It's the lie of wisdom, and it's a very
+subtle thing, and easily abused. If a man uses it for a selfish cause
+and merely to pervert the truth, it's a black lie, and one of the very
+worst. Or he may use it in a good cause, and it's fairly white. It
+must be used with discrimination. That's the lie I used for the poor
+Madam down there."
+
+"But what did you say?"
+
+"She says to me, 'And where is my 'usband?' I reply, 'Madam, your
+husband is in a very safe and secret place,'--and that is true
+enough--'where his enemies will never find him,'--and for all we know
+that is also true. 'But I cannot understand why he did not come to me.
+That is not like my 'usband.' 'No, Madam, it is not. But man must do
+what he must, and the way was too long and arduous for his strength;
+he could not take the long, weary climb.' And no more could he, true
+enough. 'No, Madam, you cannot go to him, nor he come to you, for the
+danger of the way and the wild beasts that are abroad looking for
+food.' And what more true than that, for did not her daughter see one
+hunting for food?
+
+"So she covers her face with her hand and rocks herself back and
+forth, and now, lad, here's where the blarney comes in. It's to tell
+her of the worth of her husband, and what a loss it would be to the
+world if he were to die on the trail, and what he would suffer if he
+thought she were unhappy, and then in the ardor of my speech comes the
+straight lie. I told her that he was writing the story of his life and
+that it was to be a great work which would bring about a tremendous
+revolution of justice and would bring confusion to his enemies, until
+at last she holds up her head proudly and speaks of his wonderful
+intellect and goodness. Then she says: 'He cannot come to me, very
+good. He is not strong enough--no. I go to him to-morrow.' Think of
+that, man! What I had to meet, and it was all to go over again. I
+would call it very circumspect lying and in a good cause, too, to
+comfort the poor soul. I told her of the snow, and how surely she
+would die by the way and make her husband very sad, he who was now
+happy in the writing of his book, and that to do so would break his
+heart and cause his own death,--while to wait until spring in peace
+would be wiser, because she might then descend the mountain in perfect
+safety. So now she sits sewing and making things no man understands
+the use of. She showed me the blouse she has made for you. Now, that
+is the best medicine for her sick brain. They're great women, these
+two. If we must have women about, we're in luck to have women of their
+quality."
+
+"We are, indeed."
+
+"I saw the women who follow the road as it creeps across the plains.
+They're pitiful to see. If these had been like them, we'd have been
+obliged to take them in just the same, but Lord be merciful to them,
+I'm glad they're not on my mountain." Larry shook his ponderous,
+grizzled head and turned again to his packages. "Since they love to
+sew, they may be making things for themselves next. Look you! Here is
+silk for gowns, for women love adornment, the best of them."
+
+Harry paused, his arms full of wood with which he was replenishing the
+fire, and stared in amazement, as Larry unrolled a mass of changeable
+satin wherein a deep cerise and green coloring shifted and shimmered
+in the firelight. He held the rich material up to his own waist and
+looked gravely down on the long folds that dropped to the floor and
+coiled about his feet. "I told you we're to live like lords and ladies
+now. Man! I'd like to see Amalia in a gown of this!"
+
+Harry dropped his wood on the fire and threw back his head and
+laughed. He even lay down on the floor to laugh, and rolled about
+until his head lay among the folds of satin. Then he sat up, and
+taking the material between his fingers felt of it, while the big man
+looked down on him, gravely discomfited.
+
+"And what did you bring for Madam Manovska?"
+
+"Black, man, black. I'm no fool, I tell you. I know what's discreet
+for an elderly lady." Then they gravely and laboriously folded
+together the yards of gorgeous satin. "And I'd have been glad of your
+measure to get you the suit of clothes you're needing. Lacking it, I
+got one for myself. But for me they're a bit too small. You'll maybe
+turn tailor and cut them still smaller for yourself. Take them, and if
+they're no fit, you'll laugh out of the other corner of your mouth."
+The two men stood a moment sheepishly eying each other, while Harry
+held the clothes awkwardly in his hands.
+
+"I--I--did need them." He choked a bit, and then laughed again.
+
+"So did I need them--yours and mine, too." Larry held up another suit,
+"See here. Mine are darker, to keep you from thinking them yours. And
+here are the buckskins for hunting. I used to make them for myself,
+but they had these for sale, and I was by way of spending money, so I
+bought them. Now, with the blouses the women have made for you, we're
+decent."
+
+All at once it dawned on Harry what a journey the big man had made,
+and he fairly shouted, "Larry Kildene, where have you been?"
+
+"I rode like the very devil for three days. When once I was started, I
+was crazed to go--and see--Then I reached the end of the road from the
+coast this way. Did you know they're building the road from both ways
+at once? I didn't, for I never went down to get news of the cities,
+and they might have put the whole thing through without my even
+knowing of it, if you hadn't tumbled in on me and told me of it.
+
+"It stirred me up a bit. I left my horse in charge of one I thought I
+might trust, and then took a train and rode over the new rails clean
+through to San Francisco, and there I groveled around a day or two,
+taking in the ways of men. They're doing big things. Now that the two
+oceans are to be united by iron rails, great changes will come like
+the wind,--the Lord knows when they will end! Now, the women will be
+wanting us to eat, I'm thinking, and I'm not ready--but eat we must
+when the hour comes, and we've done nothing this whole morning but
+stand here and talk."
+
+Thus Larry grumbled as they tramped down to the cabin through the
+snow, with the rolls of silk under his arm, and the silver plates in
+his hand, while Harry carried the sack of coffee and the paper for
+Amalia. As they neared the cabin the big man paused.
+
+"Take these things in for me, Harry. I--I--left something back in the
+shed. Drop that coffee and I'll fetch it as I come along."
+
+"Now, what kind of a lie would you call that, sir, since it's your
+courage you've left?"
+
+"Let be, let be. Can't you see I'm going back after it?"
+
+So Harry carried in the gifts and Larry went back for his "courage"
+and donned his new suit of clothes to help him carry it, and then came
+walking in with a jovial swagger, and accepted the mother's thanks and
+Amalia's embrace with a marvelous ease, especially the embrace, with
+which he seemed mightily pleased.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXIV
+
+AMALIA'S FÊTE
+
+
+The winter was a cold one, and the snows fell heavily, but a way was
+always kept open between the cabin and the fodder shed, and also by
+great labor a space was kept cleared around the cabin and a part of
+the distance toward the fall so that the women might not be walled in
+their quarters by the snow. With plenty to occupy them all, the weeks
+sped swiftly and pleasantly. Larry did a little trapping and hunting,
+but toward midwinter the sport became dangerous, because of the depth
+of the snow, and with the exception of stalking a deer now and then,
+for fresh food, he and Harry spent the most of their time burrowing in
+the mountain for gold.
+
+Amalia's crutches were gradually laid aside, until she ran about as
+lightly as before, but even had she not been prevented by the snow she
+would not have been allowed to go far away from the cabin alone. The
+men baited and lay in wait for the panther, and at last shot him, but
+Larry knew from long experience that when the snows were deep,
+panthers often haunted his place, and their tracks were frequently
+seen higher up the mountain where he was wont to hunt the mountain
+sheep.
+
+Sometimes Harry King rode with Amalia where the wind had swept the way
+bare, toward the bend in the trail, and would bring her back glowing
+and happy from the exercise. Sometimes when the storms were fierce
+without, and he suspected Larry longed for his old-time seclusion, he
+sat in the cabin. At these times Amalia redeemed her promise to teach
+him French. Few indeed were the books she had for help in giving these
+lessons. One little unbound book of old sonnets and songs and a small
+pamphlet of more modern poems that her father had loved, were all,
+except his Bible, which, although it was in Polish, contained copious
+annotations in her father's hand in French, and between the leaves of
+which lay loose pages filled with concise and plainly written
+meditations of his own.
+
+These Amalia loved and handled with reverence, and for Harry King they
+had such vital interest that he learned the more rapidly that he might
+know all they contained. He no longer wondered at her power and
+breadth of thought. As he progressed he found in them a complete
+system of ethics and religious faith. Their writer seemed to have
+drawn from all sources intrinsically vital truths, and separated them
+from their encumbering theologic verbiage and dogma, and had traced
+them simply through to the great "Sermon on the Mount." In a few pages
+this great man had comprised the deepest logic, and the sweetest and
+widest theology, enough for all the world to live by, and enough to
+guide nations in safety, if only all men might learn it.
+
+It was sufficient. He knew Amalia better, and more deeply he
+reverenced and loved her. He no longer quivered when he heard her
+mention the "Virgin" or when she spoke of the "Sweet Christ." It was
+not what his old dogmatic ancestry had fled from as "Popery." It was
+her simple, direct faith in the living Christ, which gave her eyes
+their clear, far-seeing vision, and her heart its quick, responsive
+intuition and understanding. She might speak of the convent where she
+had been protected and loved, and taught many things useful and good,
+other than legends and doctrines. She had learned how, through her
+father's understanding and study, to gather out the good, and leave
+the rest, in all things.
+
+And Harry learned his French. He was an apt scholar, and Larry fell in
+line, for he had not forgotten the scholastic Latin and French of his
+college days. He liked, indeed, to air his French occasionally,
+although his accent was decidedly English, but his grammar was good
+and a great help to Harry. Madam Manovska also enjoyed his efforts and
+suggested that when they were all together they should converse in the
+French alone, not only that they might help Harry, but also that they
+might have a common language. It was to her and Amalia like their
+native tongue, and their fluency for a time quite baffled Larry, but
+he was determined not to be beaten, and when Harry faltered and
+refused to go on, he pounded him on the back, and stirred him up to
+try again.
+
+Although Amalia's convent training had greatly restricted her
+knowledge of literature other than religious, her later years of
+intimate companionship with her father, and her mother's truly
+remarkable knowledge of the classics and fearless investigation of the
+modern thought of her day, had enlarged Amalia's horizon; while her
+own vivid imagination and her native geniality caused her to lighten
+always her mother's more somber thought with a delicate and gracious
+play of fancy that was at once fascinating and delightful. This, and
+Harry's determination to live to the utmost in these weeks of respite,
+made him at times almost gay.
+
+Most of all he reveled in Amalia's music. Certain melodies that she
+said her father had made he loved especially, and sometimes she would
+accompany them with a plaintive chant, half singing and half
+recitation, of the sonnet which had inspired them, and which had been
+woven through them. It was at these times that Larry listened with his
+elbows on his knees and his eyes fixed on the fire, and Harry with his
+eyes on Amalia's face, while the cabin became to him glorified with a
+light, no longer from the flames, but with a radiance like that which
+surrounded Dante's Beatrice in Paradise.
+
+Amalia loved to please Larry Kildene. For this reason, knowing the joy
+he would take in it, and also because she loved color and light and
+joy, and the giving of joy, she took the gorgeous silk he had brought
+her, and made it up in a fashion of her own. Down in the cities, she
+knew, women were wearing their gowns spread out over wide hoops, but
+she made the dress as she knew they were worn at the time Larry had
+lived among women and had seen them most.
+
+The bodice she fitted closely and shaped into a long point in front,
+and the skirt she gathered and allowed to fall in long folds to her
+feet. The sleeves she fitted only to her elbows, and gathered in them
+deep lace of her own making--lace to dream about, and the creation of
+which was one of those choice things she had learned of the good
+sisters at the convent. About her neck she put a bertha, kerchiefwise,
+and pinned it with a brooch of curiously wrought gold. Larry, "the
+discreet and circumspect liar," thought of the emerald brooch she had
+brought him to sell for her, and knowing how it would glow and blend
+among the changing tints of the silk, he fetched it to her, explaining
+that he could not sell it, and that the bracelet had covered all she
+had asked him to purchase for her, and some to spare.
+
+She thanked him, and fastened it in her bodice, and handed the other
+to her mother. "There, mamma, when we have make you the dress Sir
+Kildene have brought you, you must wear this, for it is beautiful with
+the black. Then we will have a fête. And for the fête, Sir Kildene,
+you must wear the very fine new clothes you have buy, and Mr. 'Arry
+will carry on him the fine new clothing, and so will we be all attire
+most splendid. I will make for you all the music you like the best,
+and mamma will speak then the great poems she have learned by head,
+and Sir Kildene will tell the story he can relate so well of strange
+happenings. Oh, it will be a fine, good concert we will make here--and
+you, Mr. 'Arry, what will you do?"
+
+"I'll do the refreshments. I'll roast corn and make coffee. I'll be
+audience and call for more."
+
+"Ah, yes! Encore! Encore! The artists must always be very much
+praised--very much--so have I heard, to make them content. It is Sir
+Kildene who will be the great artist, and you must cry 'Encore,' and
+honor him greatly with such calls. Then will we have the pleasure to
+hear many stories from him. Ah, I like to hear them."
+
+It was a strange life for Harry King, this odd mixture of finest
+culture and high-bred delicacy of manner, with what appeared to be a
+total absence of self-seeking and a simple enjoyment of everyday work.
+He found Amalia one morning on her knees scrubbing the cabin floor,
+and for the moment it shocked him. When they were out on the plains
+camping and living as best they could, he felt it to be the natural
+consequence of their necessities when he saw her washing their clothes
+and making the best of their difficulties by doing hard things with
+her own hands, but now that they were living in a civilized way, he
+could not bear to see her, or her mother, doing the rough work. Amalia
+only laughed at him. "See how fine we make all things. If I will not
+serve for making clean the house, why am I? Is not?"
+
+"It doesn't make any difference what you do, you are always
+beautiful."
+
+"Ah, Mr. 'Arry, you must say those compliments only in the French. It
+is no language, the English, for those fine eloquences."
+
+"No, I don't seem to be able to say anything I mean, in French. It's
+always a sort of make-believe talk with me. Our whole life here seems
+a sort of dream,--as if we were living in some wonderful bubble that
+will suddenly burst one day, and leave us floating alone in space,
+with nothing anywhere to rest on."
+
+"No, no, you are mistake. Here is this floor, very real, and dirt on
+it to be washed away,--from your boots, also very real, is not? Go
+away, Mr. 'Arry, but come to-night in your fine clothing, for we have
+our fête. Mamma has finish her beautiful new dress, and we will be
+gay. Is good to be sometimes joyful, is not? We have here no care,
+only to make happy together, and if we cannot do that, all is
+somber."
+
+And that evening indeed, Amalia had her "fête." Larry told his best
+stories, and Harry was persuaded to tell them a little of his life as
+a soldier, and to sing a camp song. More than this he would not do,
+but he brought out something he had been reserving with pride, a few
+little nuggets of gold. During the weeks he had worked he had found
+little, until the last few days, but happening to strike a vein of
+ore, richer than any Larry had ever found, the two men were greatly
+elated, and had determined to interest the women by melting some of it
+out of the quartz in which it was bedded, and turning out for each a
+golden bullet in Larry's mold.
+
+They heaped hard wood in the fireplace and the cabin was lighted most
+gloriously. While they waited for the red coals to melt the gold,
+Amalia took her violin and played and sang. It was nearly time for the
+rigor of the winter to abate, but still a high wind was blowing, and
+the fine snow was piling and drifting about the cabin, and even
+sifting through the chinks around the window and door, but the storm
+only made the brightness and warmth within more delightful.
+
+When Larry drew his crucible from the coals and poured the tiny
+glowing stream into his molds, Amalia cried out with joy. "How that is
+beautiful! How wonderful to dig such beauty from the dark ground down
+in the black earth! Ah, mamma, look!"
+
+Then Larry pounded each one flat like a coin, and drilled through a
+small hole, making thus, for each, a souvenir of the shining metal.
+"This is from Harry's first mining," he said, "and it represents good,
+hard labor. He's picked out a lot of worthless dirt and stone to find
+this."
+
+Amalia held the little disk in her hand and smiled upon it. "I love so
+this little precious thing. Now, Mr. 'Arry, what shall I play for you?
+It is yours to ask--for me, to play; it is all I have."
+
+"That sonnet you played me yesterday. The last line is, '"Quelle est
+donc cette femme?" et ne comprenda pas.'"
+
+"The music of that is not my father's best--but you ask it, yes." Then
+she began, first playing after her own heart little dancing airs, gay
+and fantastic, and at last slid into a plaintive strain, and recited
+the accompaniment of rhythmic words.
+
+ "Mon âme a son secret, ma vie a son mystère:
+ Un amour eternel en un moment concu.
+ Le mal est sans espoir, aussi j'ai du le taire
+ Et celle qui l'a fait n'en a jamais rien su."
+
+One minor note came and went and came again, through the melody, until
+the last tones fell on that note and were held suspended in a
+tremulous plaint.
+
+ "Elle dira, lisant ces vers tout remplis d'elle:
+ 'Quelle est donc cette femme?' et ne comprendra pas."
+
+Without pause she passed into a quick staccato and then descended
+to long-drawn tones, deep and full. "This is better, but I have never
+played it for you because that it is Polish, and to make it in
+English and so sing it is hard. You have heard of our great and good
+general Kosciuszko, yes? My father loved well to speak of him and
+also of one very high officer under him,--I speak his name for you,
+Julian Niemcewicz. This high officer, I do not know how to say in
+English his rank, but that is no matter. He was writer, and poet,
+and soldier--all. At last he was exiled and sorrowful, like my
+father,--sorrowful most of all because he might no more serve his
+country. It is to this poet's own words which he wrote for his grave
+that my father have put in music the cry of his sorrow. In Polish
+is it more beautiful, but I sing it for you in English for your
+comprehending."
+
+ "O, ye exiles, who so long wander over the world,
+ Where will ye find a resting place for your weary steps?
+ The wild dove has its nest, and the worm a clod of earth,
+ Each man a country, but the Pole a grave!"
+
+It was indeed a cry of sorrow, the wail of a dying nation, and as
+Amalia played and sang she became oblivious of all else a being
+inspired by lofty emotion, while the two men sat in silence, wondering
+and fascinated. The mother's eyes glowed upon her out of the obscurity
+of her corner, and her voice alone broke the silence.
+
+"I have heard my Paul in the night of the desert where he made that
+music, I have heard him so play and sing it, that it would seem the
+stars must fall down out of the heavens with sorrow for it."
+
+Amalia smiled and caught up her violin again. "We will have no more of
+this sad music this night. I will sing the wild song of the Ukraine,
+most beautiful of all our country, alas, ours no more--Like that
+other, the music is my father's, but the poem is written by a son of
+the Ukraine--Zaliski."
+
+A melody clear and sweet dominated, mounting to a note of triumph.
+Slender and tall she stood in the middle of the room. The firelight
+played on the folds of her gown, bringing out its color in brilliant
+flashes. She seemed to Harry, with her rich complexion and glowing
+eyes, absorbed thus in her music, a type of human splendor, vigorous,
+vivid, adorable. Mostly in Polish, but sometimes in English, she again
+half sang, half chanted, now playing with the voice, and again
+dropping to accompaniment only, while they listened, the mother in
+the shadows, Larry gazing in the fire, and Harry upon her.
+
+ "Me also has my mother, the Ukraine,
+ Me her son
+ Cradled on her bosom,
+ The enchantress."
+
+She ceased, and with a sigh dropped at her mother's feet and rested
+her head on her mother's knee.
+
+"Tell us now, mamma, a poem. It is time we finish now our fête with
+one good, long poem from you."
+
+"You will understand me?" Madam Manovska turned to Harry. "You do well
+understand what once you have heard--" She always spoke slowly and
+with difficulty when she undertook English, and now she continued
+speaking rapidly to Amalia in her own tongue, and her daughter
+explained.
+
+"Mamma says she will tell you a poem composed by a great poet, French,
+who is now, for patriotism to his country, in exile. His name is
+Victor Hugo. You have surely heard of him? Yes. She says she will
+repeat this which she have by head, and because that it is not
+familiar to you she asks will I tell it in English--if you so
+desire?"
+
+Again Madam Manovska addressed her daughter, and Amalia said: "She
+thinks this high mountain and the plain below, and that we are exile
+from our own land, makes her think of this; only that the conscience
+has never for her brought terror, like for Cain, but only to those who
+have so long persecuted my father with imprisonment, and drive him so
+far to terrible places. She thinks they must always, with never
+stopping, see the 'Eye' that regards forever. This also must Victor
+Hugo know well, since for his country he also is driven in exile--and
+can see the terrible 'Eye' go to punish his enemies."
+
+Then Madam Manovska began repeating in her strong, deep tones the
+lines:--
+
+ "Lorsque avec ses enfants vetus de peaux de bêtes,
+ Echevele, livide au milieu des tempètes,
+ Cain se fut enfui de devant Jehovah,
+
+ "Comme le soir tombait, l'homme sombre arriva
+ Au bas d'une montagne en une grande plaine;
+ Sa femme fatiguée et ses fils hors d'haleine;
+ Lui dire: 'Couchons-nous sur la terre et dormons.'"
+
+"Oh, mamma, that is so sad, that poem,--but continue--I will make it
+in English so well as I can, and for the mistakes--errors--of my
+telling you will forgive?
+
+"This is the story of the terrible man, Cain, how he go with his
+children all in the skins of animals dressed. His hairs so wild, his
+face pale,--he runs in the midst of the storms to hide himself from
+God,--and, at last, in the night to the foot of a mountain on a great
+plain he arrive, and his wife and sons, with no breath and very tired,
+say to him, let us here on the earth lie down and sleep." Thus, as
+Madam Manovska recited, Amalia told the story in her own words, and
+Harry King listened rapt and tense to the very end, while the fire
+burned low and the shadows closed around them.
+
+"But Cain did not sleep, lying there by the mountain, for he saw
+always in the far shadows the fearful Eye of the condemning power
+fixed with great sorrow upon him. Then he cried, 'I am too near!' and
+with trembling he awoke his children and his wife, and began to run
+furiously into space. So for thirty days and thirty nights he walked,
+always pale and silent, trembling, and never to see behind him,
+without rest or sleeping, until they came to the shore of a far
+country, named Assur.
+
+"'Now rest we here, for we are come to the end of the world and are
+safe,' but, as he seated himself and looked, there in the same place
+on the far horizon he saw, in the sorrowful heavens, the Eye. Then
+Cain called on the darkness to hide him, and Jabal, his son, parent of
+those who live in tents, extended about him on that side the cloth of
+his tent, and Tsilla, the little daughter of his son, asked him, 'You
+see now nothing?' and Cain replied, 'I see the Eye, encore!'
+
+"Then Jubal, his son, father of those who live in towns and blow upon
+clarions and strike upon tambours, cried, 'I will make one barrier, I
+will make one wall of bronze and put Cain behind it.' But even still,
+Cain said, 'The Eye regards me always!'
+
+"Then Henoch said: 'I will make a place of towers so terrible that no
+one dare approach to him. Build we a city of citadels. Build we a city
+and there fasten--shut--close.'
+
+"Then Tubal Cain, father of men who make of iron, constructed one
+city--enormous--superhuman; and while that he labored, his brothers in
+the plain drove far away the sons of Enos and the children of Seth,
+and put out the eyes of all who passed that way, and the night came
+when the walls of covering of tents were not, and in their place were
+walls of granite, every block immense, fastened with great nails of
+iron, and the city seemed a city of iron, and the shadow of its towers
+made night upon the plain, and about the city were walls more high
+than mountains, and when all was done, they graved upon the door,
+'Defense a Dieu d'entrer,' and they put the old father Cain in a tower
+of stone in the midst of this city, and he sat there somber and
+haggard.
+
+"'Oh, my father, the Eye has now disappeared?' asked the child,
+Tsilla, and Cain replied: 'No, it is always there! I will go and live
+under the earth, as in his sepulcher, a man alone. There nothing can
+see me more, and I no more can see anything.'
+
+"Then made they for him one--cavern. And Cain said, 'This is well,'
+and he descended alone under this somber vault and sat upon a seat in
+the shadows, and when they had shut down the door of the cave, the Eye
+was there in the tombs regarding him."
+
+Thus, seated at her mother's feet, Amalia rendered the poem as her
+mother recited, while the firelight played over her face and flashed
+in the silken folds of her dress. When she had finished, the fire was
+low and the cabin almost in darkness. No one spoke. Larry still gazed
+in the dying embers, and Harry still sat with his eyes fixed on
+Amalia's face.
+
+"Victor Hugo, he is a very great man, as my 'usband have say," said
+the mother at last.
+
+"Ah, mamma. For Cain,--maybe,--yes, the Eye never closed, but now have
+man hope or why was the Christ and the Holy Virgin? It is the
+forgiving of God they bring--for--for love of the poor human,--and who
+is sorrowful for his wrong--he is forgive with peace in his heart, is
+not?"
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXV
+
+HARRY KING LEAVES THE MOUNTAIN
+
+
+When the two men bade Amalia and her mother good night and took their
+way to the fodder shed, the snow was whirling and drifting around the
+cabin, and the pathway was obliterated.
+
+"This'll be the last storm of the year, I'm thinking," said Larry. But
+the younger man strode on without making a reply. He bent forward,
+leaning against the wind, and in silence trod a path for his friend
+through the drifted heaps. At the door of the shed he stood back to
+let Larry pass.
+
+"I'll not go in yet. I'll tramp about in the snow a bit until--Don't
+sit up for me--" He turned swiftly away into the night, but Larry
+caught him by the arm and brought him back.
+
+"Come in with me, lad; I'm lonely. We'll smoke together, then we'll
+sleep well enough."
+
+Then Harry went in and built up the fire, throwing on logs until the
+shed was flooded with light and the bare rock wall seemed to leap
+forward in the brilliance, but he did not smoke; he paced restlessly
+about and at last crept into his bunk and lay with his face to the
+wall. Larry sat long before the fire. "It's the music that's got in my
+blood," he said. "Katherine could sing and lilt the Scotch airs like a
+bird. She had a touch for the instrument, too."
+
+But Harry could not respond to his friend's attempted confidence in
+the rare mention of his wife's name. He lay staring at the rough stone
+wall close to his face, and it seemed to him that his future was
+bounded by a barrier as implacable and terrible as that. All through
+the night he heard the deep tones of Madam Manovska's voice, and the
+visions of the poem passed through his mind. He saw the strange old
+man, the murderer, Cain, seated in the tomb, bowed and remorseful, and
+in the darkness still the Eye. But side by side with this somber
+vision he saw the interior of the cabin, and Amalia, glowing and warm
+and splendid in her rich gown, with the red firelight playing over
+her, leaning toward him, her wonderful eyes fixed on his with a regard
+at once inscrutable and sympathetic. It was as if she were looking
+into his heart, but did not wish him to know that she saw so deeply.
+
+Towards morning the snow clouds were swept from the sky, and a late
+moon shone out clear and cold upon a world carved crisply out of
+molten silver. Unable longer to bear that waking torture, Harry King
+rose and went out into the night, leaving his friend quietly sleeping.
+He stood a moment listening to Larry's long, calm breathing; then
+buttoning his coat warmly across his chest, he closed the shed door
+softly behind him and floundered off into the drifts, without heeding
+the direction he was taking, until he found himself on the brink of
+the chasm where the river, sliding smoothly over the rocks high above
+his head, was forever tumbling.
+
+There he stood, trembling, but not with cold, nor with cowardice, nor
+with fatigue. Sanity had come upon him. He would do no untoward act to
+hurt the three people who would grieve for him. He would bear the hurt
+of forever loving in silence, and continue to wait for the open road
+that would lead him to prison and disgrace, or maybe a death of shame.
+He considered, as often before, all the arguments that continually
+fretted him and tore his spirit; and, as before, he knew the only
+course to follow was the hard one which took him back to Amalia, until
+spring and the melting of the snows released him--to live near her, to
+see her and hear her voice, even touch her hand, and feel his body
+grow tense and hard, suffering restraint. If only for one moment he
+might let himself go! If but once again he might touch her lips with
+his! Ah, God! If he might say one word of love--only once before
+leaving her forever!
+
+Standing there looking out upon the world beneath him and above him
+bathed in the immaculate whiteness of the snow, and the moonlight over
+all, he perceived how small an atom in the universe is one lone man,
+yet how overwhelmingly great in his power to love. It seemed to him
+that his love overtopped the hills and swept to the very throne of
+God. He was exalted by it, and in this exaltation it was that he
+trembled. Would it lift him up to triumph over remorse and death?
+
+He turned and plodded back the inevitable way. It was still
+night--cold and silver-white. He was filled with energy born of great
+renunciation and despair, and could only calm himself by work. If he
+could only work until he dropped, or fight with the elements, it would
+help him. He began clearing the snow from the ground around the cabin
+and cut the path through to the shed; then he quietly entered and
+found Larry still calmly sleeping as if but a moment had passed.
+Finally, he secured one of the torches and made his way through the
+tunnel to the place where Larry and he had found the quartz which they
+had smelted in the evening.
+
+There he fastened the torch securely in a crevice, and began to swing
+his pick and batter recklessly at the overhanging ledge. Never had he
+worked so furiously, and the earth and stone lay all about him and
+heaped at his feet. Deeper and deeper he fought and cut into the solid
+wall, until, grimed with sweat and dirt, he sank exhausted upon the
+pile of quartz he had loosened. Then he shoveled it to one side and
+began again dealing erratic blows with his spent strength, until the
+ledge hung dangerously over him. As it was, he reeled and swayed and
+struck again, and staggered back to gather strength for another blow,
+leaning on his pick, and this saved him from death; for, during the
+instant's pause, the whole mass fell crashing in front of him, and he
+went down with it, stunned and bleeding, but not crushed.
+
+Larry Kildene breakfasted and worked about the cabin and the shed half
+the day before he began to wonder at the young man's absence. He fell
+to grumbling that Harry had not fed and groomed his horse, and did the
+work himself. Noon came, and Amalia looked in his face anxiously as he
+entered and Harry not with him.
+
+"How is it that Mr. 'Arry have not arrive all this day?"
+
+"Oh, he's mooning somewhere. Off on a tramp I suppose."
+
+"Has he then his gun? No?"
+
+"No, but he's been about. He cleared away all the snow, and I saw he
+had been over to the fall." Amalia turned pale as the shrewd old man's
+eyes rested on her. "He came back early, though, for I saw footprints
+both ways."
+
+"I hope he comes soon, for we have the good soup to-day, of the kind
+Mr. 'Arry so well likes."
+
+But he did not come soon, and it was with much misgiving that Larry
+set out to search for him. Finding no trails leading anywhere except
+the twice trodden one to the fall, he naturally turned into the mine
+and followed along the path, torch in hand, hallooing jovially as he
+went, but his voice only returned to him, reverberating hollowly.
+Then, remembering the ledge where they had last worked, and how he had
+meant to put in props before cutting away any more, he ran forward,
+certain of calamity, and found his young friend lying where he had
+fallen, the blood still oozing from a cut above the temple, where it
+had clotted.
+
+For a moment Larry stood aghast, thinking him dead, but quickly seeing
+the fresh blood, he lifted the limp body and bound up the wound, and
+then Harry opened his eyes and smiled in Larry's face. The big man in
+his joy could do nothing but storm and scold.
+
+"Didn't I tell ye to do no more here until we'd the props in? I'm
+thinking you're a fool, and that's what you are. If I didn't tell ye
+we needed them here, you could have seen it for yourself--and here
+you've cut away all underneath. What did you do it for? I say!"
+Tenderly he gathered Harry in his arms and lifted him from the débris
+and loosened rock. "Now! Are you hurt anywhere else? Don't try to
+stand. Bear on me. I say, bear on me."
+
+"Oh, put me down and let me walk. I'm not hurt. Just a cut. How long
+have you been here?"
+
+"Walk! I say! Yes, walk! Put your arm here, across my shoulder, so.
+You can walk as well as a week-old baby. You've lost blood enough to
+kill a man." So Larry carried him in spite of himself, and laid him in
+his bunk. There he stood, panting, and looking down on him. "You're
+heavier by a few pounds than when I toted you down that trail last
+fall."
+
+"This is all foolishness. I could have made it myself--on foot," said
+Harry, ungratefully, but he smiled up in the older man's face a
+compensating smile.
+
+"Oh, yes. You can lie there and grin now. And you'll continue to lie
+there until I let you up. It's no more lessons with Amalia and no more
+violin and poetry for you, for one while, young man."
+
+"Thank God. It will help me over the time until the trail is open."
+Larry stood staring foolishly on the drawn face and quivering,
+sensitive lips.
+
+"You're hungry, that's what you are," he said conclusively.
+
+"Guess I am. I'm wretchedly sorry to make you all this trouble,
+but--she mustn't come in here--you'll bring me a bite to eat--yes, I'm
+hungry. That's what ails me." He drew a grimy hand across his eyes and
+felt the bandage. "Why--you've done me up! I must have had quite a
+cut."
+
+"I'll wash your face and get your coat off, and your boots, and make
+you fit to look at, and then--"
+
+"I don't want to see her--or her mother--either. I'm just--I'm a bit
+faint--I'll eat if--you'll fetch me a bite."
+
+Quickly Larry removed his outer clothing and mended the fire and then
+left him carefully wrapped in blankets and settled in his bunk. When
+he returned, he found him light-headed and moaning and talking
+incoherently. Only a few words could he understand, and these remained
+in his memory.
+
+"When I'm dead--when I'm dead, I say." And then, "Not yet. I can't
+tell him yet.--I can't tell him the truth. It's too cruel." And again
+the refrain: "When I'm dead--when I'm dead." But when Larry bent over
+him and spoke, Harry looked sanely in his eyes and smiled again.
+
+"Ah, that's good," he said, sipping the soup. "I'll be myself again
+to-morrow, and save you all this trouble. You know I must have
+accomplished a good deal, to break off that ledge, and the gold fairly
+leaped out on me as I worked."
+
+"Did you see it?"
+
+"No, but I knew it--I felt it. Shake my clothes and see if they aren't
+full of it."
+
+"Was that what put you in such a frenzy and made a fool of you?"
+
+"Yes--no--no. It--it--wasn't that."
+
+"You know you were a fool, don't you?"
+
+"If telling me of it makes me know it--yes."
+
+"Eat a little more. Here are beans and venison. You must eat to make
+up the loss. Why, man, I found you in a pool of blood."
+
+"Oh, I'll make it up. I'll make it up all too soon. I'm not to die so
+easily."
+
+"You'll not make it up as soon as you think, young man. You may lose a
+quart of blood in a minute, but it takes weeks to get it again," and
+Harry King found his friend was right.
+
+That was the last snow of winter, as Larry had predicted, and when
+Harry crawled out in the sun, the earth smelled of spring, and the
+waterfall thundered in its downward plunge, augmented by the melting
+snows of the still higher mountains. The noise of it was ever in their
+ears, and the sound seemed fraught with a buoyant impulse and
+inspiration--the whirl and rush of a tremendous force, giving a sense
+of superhuman power. Even after he was really able to walk about and
+help himself, Harry would not allow himself to see Amalia. He forbade
+Larry to tell them how much he was improved, and still taxed his
+friend to bring him up his meals, and sit by him, telling him the
+tales of his life.
+
+"I'll wait on you here no longer, boy," said Larry, at last. "What in
+life are you hiding in this shed for? The women think it strange of
+you--the mother does, anyway,--you may never quite know what her
+daughter thinks unless she wishes you to know, but I'm sure she thinks
+strange of you. She ought to."
+
+"I know. I'm perfectly well and strong. The trail's open now, and I'll
+go--I'll go back--where I came from. You've been good to me--I can't
+say any more--now."
+
+"Smoke a pipe, lad, smoke a pipe."
+
+Harry took a pipe and laughed. "You're better than any pipe, but I'll
+smoke it, and I'll go down, yes, I must, and bid them good-by."
+
+"And will you have nothing to tell me, lad, before you go?"
+
+"Not yet. After I've made my peace with the world--with the law--I'll
+have a letter sent you--telling all I know. You'll forgive me. You
+see, when I look back--I wish to see your face--as I see it
+now--not--not changed towards me."
+
+"My face is not one to change toward you--you who have repented
+whatever you've done that's wrong."
+
+That evening Harry King went down to the cabin and sat with his three
+friends and ate with them, and told them he was to depart on the
+morrow. They chatted and laughed and put restraint away from them, and
+all walked together to watch the sunset from a crag above the cabin.
+As they returned Madam Manovska walked at Harry's side, and as she
+bade him good night she said in her broken English:--
+
+"You think not to return--no? But I say to you--in my soul I know
+it--yet will you return--we no more to be here--perhaps--but you--yes.
+You will return."
+
+They stood a moment before the cabin, and the firelight streamed
+through the open door and fell on Amalia's face. Harry took the
+mother's hand as he parted from them, but he looked in Amalia's eyes.
+
+In the morning he appeared with his kit strapped on his back equipped
+for walking. The women protested that he should not go thus, but he
+said he could not take Goldbug and leave him below. "He is yours,
+Amalia. Don't beat him. He's a good horse--he saved my life--or tried
+to."
+
+"You know well it is my custom to beat animals. It is better you take
+him, or I beat him severely."
+
+"I know it. But you see, I can't take him. Ride him for me, and--don't
+let him forget me. Good-by!"
+
+He waved his hand and walked lightly away, and all stood in the
+doorway watching him. At the top of a slight rise he turned again and
+waved his hand, and was lost to their sight. Then Larry went back to
+the shed and sat by the fire and smoked a lonely pipe, and the mother
+began busily to weave at her lace in the cabin, closing the door, for
+the morning air was chilly, and Amalia--for a moment she stood at the
+cabin door, her hand pressed to her heart, her head bowed as if in
+despair. Then she entered the cabin, caught up her silken shawl, and
+went out.
+
+Throwing the shawl over her head she ran along the trail Harry had
+taken, until she was out of breath, then she paused, and looked back,
+hesitating, quivering. Should she go on? Should she return?
+
+"I will go but a little--little way. Maybe he stops a moment, if only
+to--to--think a little," and she went on, hurrying, then moving more
+slowly. She thought she might at least catch one more fleeting glimpse
+of him as he turned the bend in the trail, but she did not. "Ah, he is
+so quickly gone!" she sighed, but still walked on.
+
+Yes, so quickly gone, but he had stopped as she thought, to think a
+little, beyond the bend, there where he had waited the long night in
+the snow for Larry Kildene, there where he had sat like Elijah of old,
+despairing, under the juniper tree. He felt weary and old and worn. He
+thought his youth had gone from him forever, but what matter? What was
+youth without hope? Youth, love, life, all were to be relinquished. He
+closed his eyes to the wonder of the hills and the beauty before him,
+yet he knew they were there with their marvelous appeal, and he sat
+with bowed head.
+
+"'Arry! 'Arry King!" He raised his head, and there before him were all
+that he had relinquished--youth, love, life.
+
+He ran and caught her to him, as one who is drowning catches at life.
+
+"You have leave me so coldly, 'Arry King." He pressed her cheek to
+his. "You did not even speak to me a little." He kissed her lips. "You
+have break my heart." He held her closer to his own. "Why have you
+been so cold--like--like the ice--to leave me so hard--like--like--"
+
+"To save you from just this, Amalia. To save you from the touch of my
+hand--this is the crime I have fought against."
+
+"No. To love is not crime."
+
+"To dare to love--with the curse on my head that I feel as Cain felt
+it--is crime. In the Eye he saw it always--as I--I--see it. To touch
+you--it is like bringing the crime and curse on you, and through your
+beautiful love making you suffer for it. See, Amalia? It was all I
+could do to go out of your life and say nothing." His voice trembled
+and his hand quivered as it rested on her hair. "I sat here to fight
+it. My heart--my heart that I have not yet learned to conquer--was
+pulling me back to you. I was faint and old. I could walk no farther
+until the fight was won. Oh, Amalia--Amalia! Leave me alone, with the
+curse on my head! It is not yours."
+
+"No, and it is not yours. You have repent. I do not believe that poem
+my mother is thinking so great. It is the terror of the ancient ones,
+but to-day, no more. Take this. It is for you I bring it. I have wear
+it always on my bosom, wear it now on yours."
+
+She quickly unclasped from her neck a threadlike chain of gold, and
+drew from her bosom a small ivory crucifix, to which it was attached.
+Reaching up, she clasped it around his neck, and thrust the cross in
+his bosom. Then, thinking he meant to protest, she seized his hands
+and held them, and her words came with the impetuous rush of her
+thoughts.
+
+"No charm will help, Amalia. I killed my friend."
+
+"Ah, no, 'Arry King! Take this of me. It is not as you think for one
+charm I give it. No. It is for the love of Christ--that you remember
+and think of it. For that I wear it. For that I give it to you. If
+you have repent, and have the Christ in your heart, so are you
+high--lifted above the sin, and if they take you--if they put the iron
+on your hands--Ah, I know, it is there you go to give yourself
+up,--if they keep you forever in the prison, still forever are you
+free. If they put you to the death to be satisfied of the law, then
+quickly are you alive in Paradise with Christ. Listen, it is for
+the love that you give yourself up--for the sorrowfulness in your
+heart that you have killed your friend? Is not? Yes. So is good.
+See. Look to the hills, the high mountains, all far around us?
+They are beautiful. They are yours. God gives you. And the sky--so
+clear--and the bright sun and the spring life and the singing of the
+birds? All are yours--God gives. And the love in your heart--for me?
+God gives, yes, and for the one you have hurt? Yes. God gives it.
+And for the Christ who so loves you? Yes. So is the love the great
+life of God in you. It is yours. Listen. Go with the love in your
+heart--for me,--it will not hurt. It will be sweet to me. I carry
+no curse for you, as you say. It is gone. If I see you again in
+this world--as may be--is joy--great joy. If I see you no more
+here, yet in Paradise I will see you, and there also it will be joy,
+for it is the love that is all of life, and all of eternity, and
+lives--lives!"
+
+Again he held her to his heart in a long embrace, and, when at last he
+walked down the trail into the desert, he still felt her tears on his
+cheek, her kisses on his lips, and her heart against his own.
+
+
+
+
+BOOK THREE
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXVI
+
+THE LITTLE SCHOOL-TEACHER
+
+
+On a warm day in May, a day which opens the crab-apple blossoms and
+sets the bees humming, and the children longing for a chance to pull
+off shoes and stockings and go wading in the brook; on such a day the
+door of the little schoolhouse stood open and the sunlight lay in a
+long patch across the floor toward the "teacher's desk," and the
+breeze came in and tossed a stray curl about her forehead, and the
+children turned their heads often to look at the round clock on the
+wall, watching for the slowly moving hands to point to the hour of
+four.
+
+It was a mixed school. Children of all ages were there, from naughty
+little Johnnie Cole of five to Mary Burt and Hilton Le Moyne of
+seventeen and nineteen, who were in algebra and the sixth reader. It
+was well known by the rest of the children why Hilton Le Moyne
+lingered in the school this year all through May and June, instead of
+leaving in April, as usual, to help his uncle on the farm. It was
+"Teacher." He was in love with her, and always waited after school,
+hoping for a chance to walk home with her.
+
+Poor boy! Black haired, red cheeked, and big hearted, he knew his love
+was hopeless, for he was younger than she--not so much; but there was
+Tom Howard who was also in love with her, and he had a span of sorrel
+horses which he had raised and broken himself, and they were his own,
+and he could come at any time--when she would let him--and take her
+out riding.
+
+Ah, that was something to aspire to! Such a team as that, and
+"Teacher" to sit by his side and drive out with him, all in her pretty
+flat hat with a pink rose on it and green ribbons flying, and her
+green parasol over her head--sitting so easily--just leaning forward a
+bit and turning and laughing at what he was saying, and all the town
+seeing her with him, and his harness shining and new, making the team
+look as splendid as the best livery in town, and his buggy all painted
+so bright and new--well! The time would come when he too would have
+such an outfit. It would. And Teacher would see that Tom Howard was
+not the only one who could drive up after her in such style.
+
+Little Teacher was tired to-day. The children had been restless and
+noisy, and her heart had been heavy with a great disappointment. She
+had been carefully saving her small salary that she might go when
+school closed and take a course at the "Art Institute" in "Technique."
+For a long time she had clung to the idea that she would become an
+illustrator, and a great man had told her father that "with a little
+instruction in technique" his daughter had "a fortune at the tips of
+her fingers." Only technique! Yes, if she could get it!
+
+Father could help her, of course, only father was a painter in oils
+and not an illustrator--and then--he was so driven, always, and father
+and mother both thought it would be best for her to take the course of
+study recommended by the great man. So it was decided, for there was
+Martha married and settled in her home not far away from the
+Institute, and Teacher could live with her and study. Ah, the
+long-coveted chance almost within her reach! Then--one difficulty
+after another intervened, beginning with a great fire in the fall
+which swept away Martha's home and all they had accumulated, together
+with her husband's school, rendering it necessary for the young couple
+to go back to Leauvite for the winter.
+
+"Never mind, Betty, dear," Martha had encouraged her. "We'll return in
+the spring and start again, and you can take the course just the
+same."
+
+But now a general financial stringency prevailed all over the country.
+"It always seems, when there's a 'financial stringency,' that
+portraits and paintings are the things people economize on first of
+all," said Betty.
+
+"Naturally," said Mary Ballard. "When people need food and clothing--they
+want them, and not pictures. We'll just have to wait, dear."
+
+"Yes, we'll have to wait, Mary." Saucy Betty had a way of calling her
+mother "Mary." "Your dress is shabby, and you need a new bonnet; I
+noticed it in church,--you'd never speak of that, though. You'd wear
+your winter's bonnet all summer."
+
+Yes, Betty must see to it, even if it took every bit of the fund, that
+mother and Janey were suitably dressed. "Never mind, Mary, I'll catch
+up some day. You needn't look sorry. I'm all right about my own
+clothes, for Martha gave me a rose for my hat, and the new ribbons
+make it so pretty,--and my green parasol is as good as new for all
+I've had it three years, and--"
+
+Betty stopped abruptly. Three years!--was it so long since that
+parasol was new--and she was so happy--and Richard came home--? The
+family were seated on the piazza as they were wont to be in the
+evening, and Betty walked quietly into the house, and up to her room.
+
+Bertrand Ballard sighed, and his wife reached out and took his hand in
+hers. "She's never been the same since," he said.
+
+"Her character has deepened and she's fine and sweet--"
+
+"Yes, yes. I have three hundred dollars owing me for the Delong
+portrait. If I had it, she should have her course. I'll make another
+effort to collect it."
+
+"I would, Bertrand."
+
+Julien Thurbyfil and his wife walked down the flower-bordered path
+side by side to the gate and stood leaning over it in silence.
+Practical Martha was the first to break it.
+
+"There will be just as much need for preparatory schools now as there
+was before the fire, Julien."
+
+"Yes, dear, yes."
+
+"And, meanwhile, we are glad of this sweet haven to come to, aren't
+we? And it won't be long before things are so you can begin again."
+
+"Yes, dear, and then we'll make it up to Betty, won't we?"
+
+But Julien was distraught and somber, in spite of brave words. He had
+not inherited Mary Ballard's way of looking at things, nor his
+father-in-law's buoyancy.
+
+All that night Betty lay wakeful and thinking--thinking as she had
+many, many a time during the last three years, trying to make plans
+whereby she might adjust her thoughts to a life of loneliness, as
+she had decided in her romantic heart was all she would take. How
+could there be anything else for her since that terrible night
+when Richard had come to her and confessed his guilt--his love and
+his renunciation! Was she not sharing it all with him wherever he
+might be, and whatever he was doing? Oh, where was he? Did he ever
+think of her and know she was always thinking of him? Did he know
+she prayed for him, and was the thought a comfort to him? Surely
+Peter was the happier of the two, for he was not a sorrowing
+criminal, wandering the earth, hiding and repenting. So all her
+thoughts went out to Richard, and no wonder she was a weary little
+wight at the end of the school day.
+
+Four o'clock, and the children went hurrying away, all but Hilton Le
+Moyne, who lingered awhile at his desk, and then reluctantly departed,
+seeing Teacher did not look up from her papers except to give him a
+nod and a fugitive little smile of absent-minded courtesy. Left thus
+alone, Betty lifted the lid of her desk and put away the school
+register and the carefully marked papers to be given out the next day,
+and took from a small portfolio a packet of closely written sheets.
+These she untied and looked over, tossing them rapidly aside one after
+another until she found the one for which she searched.
+
+It was a short poem, hastily written with lead pencil, and much
+crumpled and worn, as if it had been carried about. Now she
+straightened the torn edges and smoothed it out and began scanning the
+lines, counting off on her fingers the rhythmic beats; she copied the
+verses carefully on a fresh white sheet of paper and laid them aside;
+then, shoving the whole heap of written papers from her, she selected
+another fresh sheet and began anew, writing and scanning and writing
+again.
+
+Steadily she worked while an hour slipped by. A great bumblebee flew
+in at one window and boomed past her head and out at the other window,
+and a bluebird perched for an instant on the window ledge and was off
+again. She saw the bee and the bird and paused awhile, gazing with
+dreamy eyes through the high, uncurtained window at drifting clouds
+already taking on the tint of the declining sun; then she stretched
+her arms across her wide desk, and putting her head down on them, was
+soon fast asleep. Tired little Teacher!
+
+The breeze freshened and tumbled her hair and fanned her flushed
+cheek, and it did more than that; for, as the drifting clouds
+betokened, the weather was changing, and now a gust of wind caught at
+her papers and took some of them out of the window, tossing and
+whirling them hither and thither. Some were carried along the wayside
+and lost utterly. One fluttered high over the tree tops and out across
+the meadow, and then suddenly ceased its flight and drifted slowly
+down like a dried leaf, past the face of a young man who sat on a
+stone, moodily gazing in the meadow brook. He reached out a long arm
+and caught it as it fluttered by, just in time to save it from
+annihilation in the water.
+
+For a moment he held the scrap of paper absently between his fingers,
+then glancing down at it he spied faintly written, half-obliterated
+verses and read them; then, with awakened interest, he read them
+again, smoothing the torn bit of paper out on his knee. The place
+where he sat was well screened from the road by a huge basswood tree,
+which spread great limbs quite across the stream, and swept both its
+banks with drooping branches and broad leaves. Now he held the scrap
+on his open palm and studied it closely and thoughtfully. It was the
+worn piece from which Betty had copied the verses.
+
+ "Oh, send me a thought on the winds that blow.
+ On the wing of a bird send a thought to me;
+ For the way is so long that I may not know,
+ And there are no paths on the troubled sea.
+
+ "Out of the darkness I saw you go,--
+ Into the shadows where sorrows be,--
+ Wounded and bleeding, and sad and slow,--
+ Into the darkness away from me.
+
+ "Out of my life and into the night,
+ But never out of my heart, my own.
+ Into the darkness out of the light,
+ Bleeding and wounded, and walking alone."
+
+Here the words were quite erased and scratched over, and the pathetic
+bit of paper looked as if it had been tear-stained. Carefully and
+smoothly he laid it in his long bill book. The book was large and
+plethoric with bank notes, and there beside them lay the little scrap
+of paper, worn and soiled, yet tear washed, and as the young man
+touched it tenderly he smiled and thought that in it was a wealth of
+something no bank note could buy. With a touch of sentiment
+unsuspected by himself, he felt it too sacred a thing to be touched by
+them, and he smoothed it again and laid it in a compartment by
+itself.
+
+Then he rose, and sauntered across the meadow to the country road, and
+down it past the schoolhouse standing on its own small rise of ground
+with the door still wide open, and its shadow, cast by the rays of the
+now setting sun stretched long across the playground. The young man
+passed it, paused, turned back, and entered. There at her desk Betty
+still slept, and as he stepped softly forward and looked down on her
+she stirred slightly and drew a long breath, but slept on.
+
+For a moment his heart ceased to beat, then it throbbed suffocatingly
+and his hand went to his breast and clutched the bill book where lay
+the tender little poem. There at her elbow lay the copy she had so
+carefully made. The air of the room was warm and drowsy, and the
+stillness was only broken by the low buzzing of two great bluebottle
+flies that struggled futilely against the high window panes. Dear
+little tired Betty! Dreaming,--of whom? The breath came through her
+parted lips, softly and evenly, and the last ray of the sun fell on
+her flushed cheek and brought out the touch of gold in her hair.
+
+The young man turned away and crossed the bare floor with light steps
+and drew the door softly shut after him as he went out. No one might
+look upon her as she slept, with less reverent eyes. Some distance
+away, where the road began to ascend toward the river bluff, he seated
+himself on a stone overlooking the little schoolhouse and the road
+beyond. There he took up his lonely watch, until he saw Betty come out
+and walk hurriedly toward the village, carrying a book and swinging
+her hat by the long ribbon ties; then he went on climbing the winding
+path to the top of the bluff overlooking the river.
+
+Moodily he paced up and down along the edge of the bluff, and finally
+followed a zigzag path to the great rocks below, that at this point
+seemed to have hurled themselves down there to do battle with the
+eager, dominating flood. For a while he stood gazing into the rushing
+water, not as though he were fascinated by it, but rather as if he
+were held to the spot by some inward vision. Presently he seemed to
+wake with a start and looked back along the narrow, steep path, and up
+to the overhanging edge of the bluff, scanning it closely.
+
+"Yes, yes. There is the notch where it lay, and this may be the very
+stone on which I am standing. What an easy thing to fall over there
+and meet death halfway!" He muttered the words under his breath and
+began slowly to climb the difficult ascent.
+
+The sun was gone, and down by the water a cold, damp current of air
+seemed to sweep around the curve of the bluff along with the rush of
+the river. As he climbed he came to a warmer wave of air, and the dusk
+closed softly around him, as if nature were casting a friendly curtain
+over the drowsing earth; and the roar of the river came up to him, no
+longer angrily, but in a ceaseless, subdued complaint.
+
+Again he paced the top of the bluff, and at last seated himself with
+his feet hanging over the edge, at the spot from which the stone had
+fallen. The trees on this wind-swept place were mostly gnarled oaks,
+old and strong and rugged, standing like a band of weather-beaten life
+guardsmen overlooking the miles of country around. Not twenty paces
+from where the young man sat, half reclining on his elbow, stood one
+of these oaks, and close to its great trunk on its shadowed side a man
+bent forward intently watching him. Whenever the young man shifted his
+position restlessly, the figure made a darting movement forward as if
+to snatch him from the dangerous brink, then recoiled and continued to
+watch.
+
+Soon the young man seemed to be aware of the presence and watchful
+eye, and looked behind him, peering into the dusk. Then the man left
+his place and came toward him, with slow, sauntering step.
+
+"Hullo!" he said, with an insinuating, rising inflection and in the
+soft voice of the Scandinavian.
+
+"Hallo!" replied the young man.
+
+"Seek?"
+
+"Sick? No." The young man laughed slightly. "What are you doing
+here?"
+
+"Oh, I yust make it leetle valk up here."
+
+"Same with me, and now I'll make it a little walk back to town." The
+young man rose and stretched himself and turned his steps slowly back
+along the winding path.
+
+"Vell, I tank I make it leetle valk down town, too," and the figure
+came sauntering along at the young man's side.
+
+"Oh, you're going my way, are you? All right."
+
+"Yas, I tank I going yust de sam your way."
+
+The young man set the pace more rapidly, and for a time they walked on
+in silence. At last, "Live here?" he asked.
+
+"Yas, I lif here."
+
+"Been here long?"
+
+"In America? Yes. I guess five--sax--year. Oh, I lak it goot."
+
+"I mean here, in this place."
+
+"Oh, here? Yas, two, t'ree year. I lak it goot too."
+
+"Know any one here?"
+
+"Oh, yas. I know people I vork by yet."
+
+"Who are they?"
+
+"Oh, I vork by many place--make garten--und vork wit' horses, und so.
+Meesus Craikmile, I vork by her on garten. She iss dere no more."
+
+The young man paused suddenly in his stride. "Gone? Where is she
+gone?"
+
+"Oh, she iss by ol' country gone. Her man iss gone mit." They walked
+on.
+
+"What! Is the Elder gone, too?"
+
+"Yas. You know heem, yas?"
+
+"Oh, yes. I know everybody here. I've been away for a good while."
+
+"So? Yas, yust lak me. I was gone too goot wile, bot I coom back too,
+yust lak you."
+
+Here they came to a turn in the road, and the village lights began to
+wink out through the darkness, and their ways parted.
+
+"I'm going this way," said the young man. "You turn off here? Well,
+good night."
+
+"Vell, goot night." The Swede sauntered away down a by-path, and the
+young man kept on the main road to the village and entered its one
+hotel where he had engaged a room a few hours before.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXVII
+
+THE SWEDE'S TELEGRAM
+
+
+As soon as the shadows hid the young man's retreating form from the
+Swede's watchful eye, that individual quickened his pace and presently
+broke into a run. Circling round a few blocks and regaining the main
+street a little below the hotel, he entered the telegraph office.
+There his haste seemed to leave him. He stood watching the clerk a few
+minutes, but the latter paid no attention to him.
+
+"Hullo!" he said at last.
+
+"Hallo, yourself!" said the boy, without looking up or taking his hand
+from the steadily clicking instrument.
+
+"Say, I lak it you send me somet'ing by telegraph."
+
+"All right. Hold on a minute," and the instrument clicked on.
+
+After a little the Swede grew impatient. He scratched his pale gold
+head and shuffled his feet.
+
+"Say, I lak it you send me a little somet'ing yet." He reached out and
+touched the boy on the shoulder.
+
+"Keep out of here. I'll send your message when I'm through with this,"
+and the instrument clicked on. Then the Swede resigned himself,
+watching sullenly.
+
+"Everybody has to take his turn," said the boy at last. "You can't cut
+in like that." The boy was newly promoted and felt his importance. He
+took the soiled scrap of paper held out to him. It was written over
+in a clear, bold hand. "This isn't signed. Who sends this?"
+
+"You make it yust lak it iss. I send dot."
+
+"Well, sign it." He pushed a pen toward him, and the Swede took it in
+clumsy fingers and wrote laboriously, "Nels Nelson."
+
+"You didn't write this message?"
+
+"No. I vork by de hotel, und I get a man write it."
+
+"It isn't dated. Been carrying it around in your pocket a good while I
+guess. Better date it."
+
+"Date it?"
+
+"Yes. Put down the time you send, you know."
+
+"Oh, dat's not'ing. He know putty goot when he get it."
+
+"Very well. 'To Mr. John Thomas,--State Street, Chicago. Job's ready.
+Come along.' Who's job is it? Yours?"
+
+"No. It's hees yob yet. You mak it go to-night, all right. Goot night.
+I pay it now, yas. Vell, goot night."
+
+He paid the boy and slipped out into the shadows of the street, and
+again making the detour so that he came to the hotel from the rear, he
+passed the stables, and before climbing to his cupboard of a room at
+the top of the building, he stepped round to the side and looked in at
+the dining room windows, and there he saw the young man seated at
+supper.
+
+"All right," he said softly.
+
+The omnibus sent regularly by the hotel management brought only one
+passenger from the early train next day. Times had been dull of late
+and travel had greatly fallen off, as the proprietor complained. There
+was nothing unusual about this passenger,--the ordinary traveling man,
+representing a well-known New York dry-goods house.
+
+Nels Nelson drove the omnibus. He had done so ever since Elder
+Craigmile went to Scotland with his wife. The young man he had found
+on the river bluff was pacing the hotel veranda as he drove up, and
+Nels Nelson glanced at him, and into the eyes of the traveling man, as
+he handed down the latter's heavy valise.
+
+Standing at the desk, the newcomer chatted with the clerk as he wrote
+his name under that of the last arrival the day before.
+
+"Harry King," he read. "Came yesterday. Many stopping here now? Times
+hard! I guess so! Nothing doing in my line. Nobody wants a thing.
+Guess I'll leave the road and 'go west, young man,' as old Greeley
+advises. What line is King in? Do' know? Is that him going into the
+dining room? Guess I'll follow and fill up. Anything good to eat
+here?"
+
+In the dining room he indicated to the waiter by a nod of his head the
+seat opposite Harry King, and immediately entered into a free and easy
+conversation, giving him a history of his disappointments in the way
+of trade, and reiterating his determination to "go west, young man."
+
+He hardly glanced at Harry, but ate rapidly, stowing away all within
+reach, until the meal was half through, then he looked up and asked
+abruptly, "What line are you in, may I ask?"
+
+"Certainly you may ask, but I can't tell you. I would be glad to do so
+if I knew myself."
+
+"Ever think of going west?"
+
+"I've just come from there--or almost there--whereever it is."
+
+"Stiles is my name--G. B. Stiles. Good name for a dry-goods salesman,
+don't you think so? I know the styles all right, for men, and women
+too. Like it out west?"
+
+"Yes. Very well."
+
+"Been there long?"
+
+"Oh, two or three years."
+
+"Had enough of it, likely?"
+
+"Well, I can scarcely say that."
+
+"Mean to stay east now?"
+
+"I may. I'm not settled yet."
+
+"Better take up my line. If I drop out, there'll be an opening with my
+firm--good firm, too. Ward, Williams & Co., New York. Been in New
+York, I suppose?"
+
+"No, never."
+
+"Well, better try it. I mean to 'go west, young man.' Know anybody
+here? Ever live here?"
+
+"Yes, when I was a boy."
+
+"Come back to the boyhood home. We all do that, you know. There's
+poetry in it--all do it. 'Old oaken bucket' and all that sort of
+thing. I mean to do it myself yet,--back to old York state." G. B.
+Stiles wiped his mouth vigorously and shoved back his chair. "Well,
+see you again, I hope," he said, and walked off, picking his teeth
+with a quill pick which he took from his vest pocket.
+
+He walked slowly and meditatively through the office and out on the
+sidewalk. Here he paused and glanced about, and seeing his companion
+of the breakfast table was not in sight, he took his way around to the
+stables. Nels Nelson was stooping in the stable yard, washing a
+horse's legs. G. B. Stiles came and stood near, looking down on him,
+and Nels straightened up and stood waiting, with the dripping rags in
+his hand.
+
+"Vell, I tol' you he coomin' back sometime. I vaiting long time all
+ready, but yust lak I tol' you, he coom."
+
+"I thought I told you not to sign that telegram. But it's no
+matter,--didn't do any harm, I guess."
+
+"Dot vas a fool, dot boy dere. He ask all tam, 'Vot for? Who write
+dis? You not? Eh? Who sen' dis?' He make me put my name dere; den I
+get out putty quvick or he ask yet vat iss it for a yob you got
+somebody, eh?"
+
+"Oh, well, we've got him now, and he don't seem to care to keep under
+cover, either." G. B. Stiles seemed to address himself. "Too smart to
+show a sign. See here, Nelson, are you ready to swear that he's the
+man? Are you ready to swear to all you told me?"
+
+"It is better you gif me a paper once, vit your name, dot you gif me
+half dot money."
+
+Nels Nelson stooped deliberately and went on washing the horse's legs.
+A look of irritation swept over the placid face of G. B. Stiles, and
+he slipped the toothpick back in his vest pocket and walked away.
+
+"I say," called the Swede after him. "You gif me dot paper. Eh?"
+
+"I can't stand talking to you here. You'll promise to swear to all you
+told me when I was here the first time. If you do that, you are sure
+of the money, and if you change it in the least, or show the least
+sign of backing down, we neither of us get it. Understand?"
+
+Again the Swede arose, and stood looking at him sullenly. "It iss ten
+t'ousand tallers, und I get it half, eh?"
+
+"Oh, you go to thunder!" The proprietor of the hotel came around the
+corner of the stable, and G. B. Stiles addressed himself to him. "I'd
+like the use of a horse to-day, and your man here, if I can get him.
+I've got to make a trip to Rigg's Corners to sell some dry goods. Got
+a good buggy?"
+
+"Yes, and a horse you can drive yourself, if you like. Be gone all
+day?"
+
+"No, don't want to fool with a horse--may want to stay and send the
+horse back--if I find a place where the grub is better than it is
+here. See?"
+
+"You'll be back after one meal at any place within a hundred miles of
+here." The proprietor laughed.
+
+"Might as well drive yourself. You won't want to send the horse back.
+I'm short of drivers just now. Times are bad and travel light, so I
+let one go."
+
+"I'll take the Swede there."
+
+"He's my station hand. Maybe Jake can drive you. Nels, where's Jake?"
+
+"He's dere in the stable. Shake!" he shouted, without glancing up, and
+Jake slouched out into the yard.
+
+"Jake, here's a gentleman wants you to drive him out into the
+country,--"
+
+"I'll take the Swede. Jake can drive your station wagon for once."
+
+G. B. Stiles laughed good-humoredly and returned to the piazza and sat
+tilted back with his feet on the rail not far from Harry King, who was
+intently reading the _New York Tribune_. For a while he eyed the young
+man covertly, then dropped his feet to the floor and turned upon him
+with a question on the political situation, and deliberately engaged
+him in conversation, which Harry King entered into courteously yet
+reluctantly. Evidently he was preoccupied with affairs of his own.
+
+In the stable yard a discussion was going on. "Dot horse no goot in
+buggy. Better you sell heem any vay. He yoomp by de cars all tam, und
+he no goot by buggy."
+
+"Well, you've got to take him by the buggy, if he is no good. I won't
+let Jake drive him around the trains, and he won't let Jake go with
+him out to Rigg's Corners, so you'll have to take the gray and the
+buggy and go." The Swede began a sullen protest, but the proprietor
+shouted back to him, "You'll do this or leave," and walked in.
+
+Nels went then into the stable, smiling quietly. He was well satisfied
+with the arrangement. "Shake, you put dot big horse by de buggy. No.
+Tak' d'oder bridle. I don't drive heem mit ol' bridle; he yoomp too
+quvick yet. All tam yoomping, dot horse."
+
+Presently Nels drove round to the front of the hotel with the gray
+horse and a high-top buggy. Harry King regarded him closely as he
+passed, but Nels looked straight ahead. A boy came out carrying
+Stiles' heavy valise.
+
+"Put that in behind here," said Stiles, as he climbed in and seated
+himself at Nels Nelson's side. The gray leaped forward on the instant
+with so sudden a jump that he caught at his hat and missed it. Harry
+King stepped down and picked it up.
+
+"What ails your horse?" he asked, as he restored it to its owner.
+
+"Oh, not'in'. He lak yoomp a little." And again the horse leaped
+forward, taking them off at a frantic pace, the high-topped buggy
+atilt as they turned the corner of the street into the country road.
+Harry King returned to his seat. Surely it was the Scandinavian who
+had walked down from the bluff with him the evening before. There was
+no mistaking that soft, drawling voice.
+
+"See here! You pull your beast down, I want to talk with you. Hi!
+There goes my hat again. Can't you control him better than that? Let
+me out." Nels pulled the animal down with a powerful arm, and he stood
+quietly enough while G. B. Stiles climbed down and walked back for his
+hat. "Look here! Can you manage the beast, or can't you?" he asked as
+he stood beside the vehicle and wiped the dust from his soft black
+felt with his sleeve. "If you can't, I'll walk."
+
+"Oh, yas, I feex heem. I leek heem goot ven ve coom to place nobody
+see me."
+
+"I guess that's what ails him now. You've done that before."
+
+"Yas, bot if you no lak I leek heem, ust you yoomp in und I lat heem
+run goot for two, t'ree mile. Dot feex heem all right."
+
+"I don't know about that. Sure you can hold him?"
+
+"Yas, I hol' heem so goot he break hee's yaw off, if he don't stop ven
+I tol' heem. Now, quvick. Whoa! Yoomp in."
+
+G. B. Stiles scrambled in with unusual agility for him, and again they
+were off, the gray taking them along with leaps and bounds, but the
+road was smooth, and the dust laid by frequent showers was like velvet
+under the horse's feet. Stiles drew himself up, clinging to the side
+of the buggy and to his hat.
+
+"How long will he keep this up?" he asked.
+
+"Oh, he stop putty quvick. He lak it leetle run. T'ree, four mile he
+run--das all." And the Swede was right. After a while the horse
+settled down to a long, swinging trot. "Look at heem now. I make heem
+go all tam lak dis. Ven I get my money I haf stable of my own und den
+I buy heem. I know heem. I all tam tol' Meester Decker dot horse no
+goot--I buy heem sheep. You go'n gif me dot money, eh?"
+
+"I see. You're sharp, but you're asking too much. If it were not for
+me, you wouldn't get a cent, or me either. See? I've spent a thousand
+hunting that man up, and you haven't spent a cent. All you've done is
+to stick here at the hotel and watch. I've been all over the country.
+Even went to Europe and down in Mexico--everywhere. You haven't really
+earned a cent of it."
+
+"Vat for you goin' all offer de vorld? Vat you got by dot? Spen'
+money--dot vot you got. Me, I stay here. I fin' heem; you not got heem
+all offer de vorld. I tol' you, of a man he keel somebody, he run vay,
+bot he goin' coom back where he done it. He not know it vot for he do
+it, bot he do it all right."
+
+"Look here, Nelson; it's outrageous! You can't lay claim to that
+money. I told you if he was found and you were willing to give in your
+evidence just as you gave it to me that day, I'd give you your fair
+share of the reward, as you asked for it, but I never gave you any
+reason to think you were to take half. I've spent all the money
+working up this matter, and if I were to go back now and do nothing,
+as I'm half a mind to do, you'd never get a cent of it. There's no
+proof that he's the man."
+
+"You no need spen' dot money."
+
+"Can't I get reason into your head? When I set out to get hold of a
+criminal, do you think I sit down in one place and wait? You didn't
+find him; he came here, and it's only by an accident you have him, and
+he may clear out yet, and neither of us be the better off because of
+your pig-headedness. Here, drive into that grove and tie your horse a
+minute and we'll come to an understanding. I can't write you out a
+paper while we're moving along like this."
+
+Then Nels turned into the grove and took the horse from the shafts and
+tied him some distance away, while G. B. Stiles took writing materials
+from his valise, and, sitting in the buggy, made a show of drawing up
+a legal paper.
+
+"I'm going to draw you up a paper as you asked me to. Now how do you
+know you have the man?"
+
+"It iss ten t'ousand tallers. You make me out dot paper you gif me
+half yet."
+
+"Damn it! You answer my question. I can't make this out unless I know
+you're going to come up to the scratch." He made a show of writing,
+and talked at the same time. "I, G. B. Stiles, detective, in the
+employ of Peter Craigmile, of the town of Leauvite, for the capture of
+the murderer of his son, Peter Craigmile, Jr., do hereby promise one
+Nels Nelson, Swede,--in the employ of Mr Decker, hotel proprietor, as
+stable man,--for services rendered in the identification of said
+criminal at such time as he should be found,----Now, what service have
+you rendered? How much money have you spent in the search?"
+
+"Not'ing. I got heem."
+
+"Nothing. That's just it."
+
+"I got heem."
+
+"No, you haven't got him, and you can't get him without me. Don't you
+think it. I am the one to get him. You have no warrant and no license.
+I'm the one to put in the claim and get the reward for you, and you'll
+have to take what I choose to give, and no more. By rights you would
+only have your fee as witness, and that's all. That's all the state
+gives. Whatever else you get is by my kindness in sharing with you.
+Hear?"
+
+A dangerous light gleamed in the Swede's eyes, and Stiles, by a slight
+disarrangement of his coat in the search for his handkerchief,
+displayed a revolver in his hip pocket. Nels' eyes shifted, and he
+looked away.
+
+"You'd better quit this damned nonsense and say what you'll take and
+what you'll swear to."
+
+"I'll take half dot money," said Nels, softly and stubbornly.
+
+"I'll take out all I've spent on this case before we divide it in any
+way, shape, or manner." Stiles figured a moment on the margin of his
+paper. "Now, what are you going to swear to? You needn't shift round.
+You'll tell me here just what you're prepared to give in as evidence
+before I put down a single figure to your name on this paper. See?"
+
+"I done tol' you all dot in Chicago dot time."
+
+"Very well. You'll give that in as evidence, every word of it, and
+swear to it?"
+
+"Yas."
+
+"I don't more than half believe this is the man. You know it's life
+imprisonment for him if it's proved on him, and you'd better be sure
+you have the right one. I'm in for justice, and you're in for the
+money, that's plain."
+
+"Yas, I tank you lak it money, too."
+
+"I'll not put him in irons to-night unless you give me some better
+reason for your assertion. Why is he the man?"
+
+"I seen heem dot tam, I know. He got it mark on hees head vere de blud
+run dot tam, yust de sam, all right. I know heem. He speek lak heem.
+He move hees arm lak heem. Yas, I know putty good."
+
+"You're sure you remember everything he said--all you told me?"
+
+"Oh, yas. I write it here," and he drew a small book from his pocket,
+very worn and soiled. "All iss here writed."
+
+"Let's see it." With a smile the Swede put it in Stiles' hand. He
+regarded it in a puzzled way.
+
+"What's this?" He handed the book back contemptuously. "You'll never
+be able to make that out,--all dirty and--"
+
+"Yas, I read heem, you not,--dot's Swedish."
+
+"Very well. Perhaps you know what you're about," and the discussion
+went on, until at last G. B. Stiles, partly by intimidation, partly by
+assumption of being able to get on without his services, persuaded
+Nels to modify his demands and accept three thousand for his evidence.
+Then the gray was put in the shafts again, and they drove to the town
+quietly, as if they had been to Rigg's Corners and back.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXVIII
+
+"A RESEMBLANCE SOMEWHERE"
+
+
+While G. B. Stiles and the big Swede were taking their drive and
+bargaining away Harry King's liberty, he had loitered about the town,
+and visited a few places familiar to him. First he went to the home of
+Elder Craigmile and found it locked, and the key in the care of one of
+the bank clerks who slept there during the owner's absence. After
+sitting a while on the front steps, with his elbows on his knees and
+his head in his hands, he rose and strolled out along the quiet
+country road on its grassy footpath, past the Ballards' home.
+
+Mary and Bertrand were out in the little orchard at the back of the
+house, gazing up at the apple blossoms that hung over their heads in
+great pale pink clouds. A sweet odor came from the lilacs that hung
+over the garden fence, and the sunlight streamed down on the peaceful
+home, and on the opening spring flowers--the borders of dwarf purple
+iris and big clusters of peonies, just beginning to bud,--and on the
+beehives scattered about with the bees flying out and in. Ah! It was
+still the same--tempting and inviting.
+
+He paused at the gate, looking wistfully at the open door, but did not
+enter. No, he must keep his own counsel and hold to his purpose,
+without stirring these dear old friends to sorrowful sympathy. So he
+passed on, unseen by them, feeling the old love for the place and all
+the tender memories connected with it revived and deepened. On he
+went, strolling toward the little schoolhouse where he had found dear
+Betty Ballard sleeping at the big school desk the evening before, and
+passed it by--only looking in curiously at the tousled heads bent over
+their lessons, and at Betty herself, where she sat at the desk, a
+class on the long recitation bench before her, and a great boy
+standing at the blackboard. He saw her rise and take the chalk from
+the boy's hand and make a few rapid strokes with it on the board.
+
+Little Betty a school-teacher! She had suffered much! How much did she
+care now? Was it over and her heart healed? Had other loves come to
+her? All intent now on her work, she stood with her back toward him,
+and as he passed the open door she turned half about, and he saw her
+profile sharply against the blackboard. Older? Yes, she looked older,
+but prettier for that, and slight and trim and neat, dressed in a soft
+shade of green. She had worn such a dress once at a picnic. Well he
+remembered it--could he ever forget? Swiftly she turned again to the
+board and drew the eraser across the work, and he heard her voice
+distinctly, with its singing quality--how well he remembered that
+also--"Now, how many of the class can work this problem?"
+
+Ah, little Betty! little Betty! Life is working problems for us all,
+and you are working yours to a sweet conclusion, helping the children,
+and taking up your own burdens and bearing them bravely. This was
+Harry King's thought as he strolled on and seated himself again under
+the basswood tree by the meadow brook, and took from his pocket the
+worn scrap of paper the wind had brought him and read it again.
+
+ "Out of my life, and into the night,
+ But never out of my heart, my own.
+ Into the darkness, out of the light,
+ Bleeding and wounded and walking alone."
+
+Such a tender, rhythmic bit of verse--Betty must have written it. It
+was like her.
+
+After a time he rose and strolled back again past the little
+schoolhouse, and it was recess. Long before he reached it he heard the
+voices of the children shouting, "Anty, anty over, anty, anty over."
+They were divided into two bands, one on either side of the small
+building, over which they tossed the ball and shouted as they tossed
+it, "Anty, anty over"; and the band on the other side, warned by the
+cry, caught the ball on the rebound if they could, and tore around the
+corner of the building, trying to hit with it any luckless wight on
+the other side, and so claim him for their own, and thus changing
+sides, the merry romp went on.
+
+Betty came to the door with the bell in her hand, and stood for a
+moment looking out in the sunshine. One of the smallest of the boys
+ran to her and threw his arms around her, and, looking up in her face,
+screamed in wildest excitement, "I caught it twice, Teacher, I did."
+
+With her hand on his head she looked in his eyes and smiled and
+tinkled her little bell, and the children, big and little, all came
+crowding through the door, hustling like a flock of chickens, and
+every boy snatched off his cap as he rushed by her.
+
+Ah, grave, dignified little Betty! Who was that passing slowly along
+the road? Like a wild rose by the wayside she seemed to him, with her
+pink cheeks and in her soft green gown, framed thus by the doorway of
+the old schoolhouse. Naturally she had no recognition for this bearded
+man, walking by with stiff, soldierly step, yet something caused her
+to look again, turning as she entered, and, when he looked back, their
+eyes met, and hers dropped before his, and she was lost to his sight
+as she closed the door after her. Of course she could not recognize
+him disguised thus with the beard on his face, and his dark, tanned
+skin. She did not recognize him, and he was glad, yet sore at heart.
+
+He had had all he could bear, and for the rest of the morning he wrote
+letters, sitting in his room at Decker's hotel. Only two letters, but
+one was a very long one--to Amalia Manovska. Out in the world he dared
+not use her own name, so he addressed the envelope to Miss McBride, in
+Larry Kildene's care, at the nearest station to which they had agreed
+letters should be sent. Before he finished the second letter the gong
+sounded for dinner. The noon meal was always dinner at the hotel. He
+thrust his papers and the unfinished letter in his valise and locked
+it--and went below.
+
+G. B. Stiles was already there, seated in the same place as on the day
+before, and Harry took his seat opposite him, and they began a
+conversation in the same facile way, but the manner of the dry-goods
+salesman towards him seemed to have undergone a change. It had lost
+its swagger, and was more that of a man who could be a gentleman if he
+chose, while to the surprise of Stiles the manner of the young man was
+as disarmingly quiet and unconcerned as before, and as abstracted. He
+could not believe that any man hovering on the brink of a terrible
+catastrophe, and one to avert which required concealment of identity,
+could be so unwary. He half believed the Swede was laboring under an
+hallucination, and decided to be deliberate, and await developments
+for the rest of the day.
+
+After dinner they wandered out to the piazza side by side, and there
+they sat and smoked, and talked over the political situation as
+they had the evening before, and Stiles was surprised at the young
+man's ignorance of general public matters. Was it ignorance, or
+indifference?
+
+"I thought all you army men would stand by Grant to the drop of the
+hat."
+
+"Yes, I suppose we would."
+
+"You suppose so! Don't you know? I carried a gun under Grant, and I'd
+swear to any policy he'd go in for, and what I say is, they haven't
+had quite enough down there. What the South needs is another licking.
+That's what it needs."
+
+"Oh, no, no, no. I was sick of fighting, long before they laid me up,
+and I guess a lot of us were."
+
+G. B. Stiles brought his feet to the floor with a stamp of surprise
+and turned to look full in the young man's face. For a moment he gazed
+on him thus, then grunted. "Ever feel one of their bullets?"
+
+"Oh, yes."
+
+"That the mark, there over your temple?"
+
+"No, it didn't do any harm to speak of. That's--where something--struck
+me."
+
+"Oh, you don't say!" Harry King rose. "Leaving?"
+
+"No. I have a few letters to write--and--"
+
+"Sorry to miss you. Staying in town for some time?"
+
+"I hardly know. I may."
+
+"Plans unsettled? Well, times are unsettled and no money stirring. My
+plans are all upset, too."
+
+The young man returned to his room and continued his writing. One
+short letter to Betty, inclosing the worn scrap of paper the wind had
+brought him; he kissed it before he placed it in the envelope. Then he
+wrote one to her father and mother jointly, and a long one to Hester
+Craigmile. Sometimes he would pause in his writing and tear up a page,
+and begin over again, but at last all were done and inclosed in a
+letter to the Elder and placed in a heavy envelope and sealed. Only
+the one to Amalia he did not inclose, but carried it out and mailed it
+himself.
+
+Passing the bank on the way to the post office, he dropped in and made
+quite a heavy deposit. It was just before closing time and the clerks
+were all intent on getting their books straight, preparatory to
+leaving. How well he remembered that moment of restless turning of
+ledgers and the slight accession of eagerness in the younger clerks,
+as they followed the long columns of figures down with the forefinger
+of the left hand--the pen poised in the right. The whole scene smote
+him poignantly as he stood at the teller's window waiting. And he
+might have been doing that, he thought! A whole lifetime spent in
+doing just that and more like it, year in and year out!
+
+How had his life been better? He had sinned--and failed. Ah! But he
+had lived and loved--lived terribly and loved greatly. God help him,
+how he loved! Even for life to end here--either in prison or in
+death--still he had felt the tremendous passions, and understood the
+meaning of their power in a human soul. This had life brought him, and
+a love beyond measure to crown all.
+
+The teller peered at him through the little window behind which he had
+stood so many years peering at people in this sleepy little bank, this
+sure, safe, little bank, always doing its conservative business in the
+same way, and heretofore always making good. He reached out a long,
+well-shaped hand,--a large-veined hand, slightly hairy at the wrist,
+to take the bank notes. How often had Harry King seen that hand
+stretched thus through the little window, drawing bank notes toward
+him! Almost with a shock he saw it now reach for his own--for the
+first time. In the old days he had had none to deposit. It was always
+for others it had been extended. Now it seemed as if he must seize the
+hand and shake it,--the only hand that had been reached out to him
+yet, in this town where his boyhood had been spent.
+
+A young man who had preceded Harry King at the teller's window paused
+near by at the cashier's desk and began asking questions which Harry
+himself would have been glad to ask, but could not.
+
+He was an alert, bright-eyed young chap with a smiling face. "Good
+afternoon, Mr. Copeland. Any news for me to-day?"
+
+Mr. Copeland was an elderly man of great dignity, and almost as much
+of a figure there as the Elder himself. It was an act of great
+temerity to approach him for items of news for the _Leauvite Mercury_.
+Of this fact the young reporter seemed to be blithely ignorant. All
+the clerks were covertly watching the outcome, and thus attention was
+turned from Harry King; even the teller glanced frequently at the
+cashier's desk as he counted the bank notes placed in his hand.
+
+"News? No. No news," said Mr. Copeland, without looking up.
+
+"Thank you. It's my business to ask for it, you know. We're making
+more of a feature of personal items than ever before. We're up to
+date, you see. 'Find out what people want and then give it to them.'
+That's our motto." The young man leaned forward over the high railing
+that corralled the cashier in his pen apart from the public, smilingly
+oblivious of that dignitary's objections to an interview. "Expecting
+the return of Elder Craigmile soon?"
+
+At that question, to the surprise of all, the cashier suddenly changed
+his manner to the suave affability with which he greeted people of
+consequence. "We are expecting Elder Craigmile shortly. Yes. Indeed he
+may arrive any day, if the voyage is favorable."
+
+"Thank you. Mrs. Craigmile accompanies him, I suppose?"
+
+"It is not likely, no. Her health demands--ahem--a little longer rest
+and change."
+
+"Ah! The Elder not called back by--for any particular reason? No.
+Business going well? Good. I'm told there's a great deal of
+depression."
+
+"Oh, in a way--there may be,--but we're all of the conservative sort
+here in Leauvite. We're not likely to feel it if there is. Good
+afternoon."
+
+No one paid any attention to Harry King as he walked out after the
+_Leauvite Mercury_ reporter, except Mr. Copeland, who glanced at him
+keenly as he passed his desk. Then, looking at his watch, he came out
+of his corral and turned the key in the bank door.
+
+"We'll have no more interruptions now," he said, as he paused at the
+teller's window. "You know the young man who just went out?"
+
+"Sam Carter of the _Mercury_. Old Billings no doubt sent him in to
+learn how we stand."
+
+"No, no, no. Sam Carter--I know him. Who's the young man who followed
+him out?"
+
+"I don't know. Here's his signature. He's just made a big deposit on
+long time--only one thousand on call. Unusual these days."
+
+Mr. Copeland's eyes glittered an instant. "Good. That's something. I
+decided to give the town people to understand that there is no need
+for their anxiety. It's the best policy, and when the Elder returns,
+he may be induced to withdraw his insane offer of reward. Ten thousand
+dollars! It's ridiculous, when the young men may both be dead, for all
+the world will ever know."
+
+"If we could do that--but I've known the Elder too long to hope for
+it. This deposit stands for a year, see? And the ten thousand the
+Elder has set one side for the reward gives us twenty thousand we
+could not count on yesterday."
+
+"In all the history of this bank we never were in so tight a place.
+It's extraordinary, and quite unnecessary. That's a bright boy--Sam
+Carter. I never thought of his putting such a construction on it when
+I admitted the fact that Mrs. Craigmile is to remain. Two big banks
+closed in Chicago this morning, and twenty small ones all over the
+country during the last three days. One goes and hauls another down.
+If we had only cabled across the Atlantic two weeks ago when I sent
+that letter--he must have the letter by now--and if he has, he's on
+the ocean."
+
+"This deposit tides us over a few days, and, as I said, if we could
+only get our hands on that reserve of the Elder's, we'd be safe
+whatever comes."
+
+"He'll have to bend his will for once. He must be made to see it, and
+we must get our hands on it. I think he will. He'd cut off his right
+hand before he'd see this bank go under."
+
+"It's his son's murder that's eating into his heart. He's been losing
+ground ever since."
+
+The clerks gradually disappeared, quietly slipping out into the
+sunshine one by one as their books were balanced, and now the two men
+stood alone. It was a time used by them for taking account of the
+bank's affairs generally, and they felt the stability of that
+institution to be quite personal to them.
+
+"I've seen that young man before," said Mr. Copeland. "Now, who is he?
+Harry King--Harry King,--the Kings moved away from here--twelve years
+ago--wasn't it? Their son would not be as old as this man."
+
+"Boys grow up fast. You never can tell."
+
+"The Kings were a short, thickset lot."
+
+"He may not be one of them. He said nothing about ever having been
+here before. I never talk with any one here at the window. It's quite
+against my rules for the clerks, and has to be so for myself, of
+course. I leave that sort of thing to you and the Elder."
+
+"I say--I've seen him before--the way he walks--the way he carries
+his head--there's a resemblance somewhere."
+
+The two men also departed, after looking to the safe, and the
+last duties devolving on them, seeing that all was locked and
+double-locked. It was a solemn duty, always attended to solemnly.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXIX
+
+THE ARREST
+
+
+Sam Carter loitered down the street after leaving the bank, and when
+Harry King approached, he turned with his ready smile and accosted
+him.
+
+"Pleasant day. I see you're a stranger here, and I thought I might get
+an item from you. Carter's my name, and I'm doing the reporting for
+the _Mercury_. Be glad to make your acquaintance. Show you round a
+little."
+
+Harry was nonplussed for a moment. Such things did not use to occur in
+this old-fashioned place as running about the streets picking up items
+from people and asking personal questions for the paper to exploit the
+replies. He looked twice at Sam Carter before responding.
+
+"Thank you, I--I've been here before. I know the place pretty well."
+
+"Very pretty place, don't you think so? Mean to stop for some time?"
+
+"I hardly know as yet." Harry King mused a little, then resolved to
+break his loneliness by accepting the casual acquaintance, and to
+avoid personalities about himself by asking questions about the town
+and those he used to know, but whom he preferred not to see. It was an
+opportunity. "Yes, it is a pretty place. Have you been here long?"
+
+"I've been here--let's see. About three years--maybe a little less.
+You must have been away from Leauvite longer than that, I judge. I've
+never left the place since I came and I never saw you before. No
+wonder I thought you a stranger."
+
+"I may call myself one--yes. A good many changes since you came?"
+
+"Oh, yes. See the new courthouse? It's a beauty,--all solid
+stone,--cost fifty thousand dollars. The _Mercury_ had a great deal to
+do with bringing it about,--working up enthusiasm and the like,--but
+there is a great deal of depression just now, and taxes running up.
+People think government is taking a good deal out of them for such
+public buildings, but, Lord help us! the government is needing money
+just now as much as the people. It's hard to be public spirited when
+taxes are being raised. You have people here?"
+
+"Not now--no. Who's mayor here now?"
+
+"Harding--Harding of the iron works. He makes a good one, too.
+There's the new courthouse. The jail is underneath at the back. See
+the barred windows? No breaking out of there. Three prisoners did
+break out of the old one during the year this building was under
+construction,--each in a different way, too,--shows how badly they
+needed a new one. Quite an ornament to the square, don't you think
+so?"
+
+"The jail?"
+
+"No, no,--The building as a whole. Better go over it while you're
+here."
+
+"I may--do so--yes."
+
+"Staying some time, I believe you said."
+
+"Did I? I may have said so."
+
+"Staying at the hotel, I believe?"
+
+"Yes, and here we are." Harry King stood an instant--undecided.
+Certain things he wished to know, but had not the courage to ask--not
+on the street--but maybe seated on the veranda he could ask this
+outsider, in a casual way. "Drop in with me and have a smoke."
+
+"I will, thank you. I often run in,--in the way of business,--but I
+haven't tried it as a stopping place. Meals pretty good?"
+
+"Very good." They took seats at the end of the piazza where Harry King
+led the way. The sun was now low, but the air was still warm enough
+for comfort, and no one was there but themselves, for it lacked an
+hour to the return of the omnibus and the arrival of the usual loafers
+who congregated at that time.
+
+"You've made a good many acquaintances since you came, no doubt?"
+
+"Well--a good many--yes."
+
+"Know the Craigmiles?"
+
+"The Craigmiles? There's no one there to know--now--but the Elder. Oh,
+his wife, of course, but she stays at home so close no one ever sees
+her. They're away now, if you want to see them."
+
+"And she never goes out--you say?"
+
+"Never since I've been in the town. You see, there was a tragedy in
+the family. Just before I came it happened, and I remember the town
+was all stirred up about it. Their son was murdered."
+
+Harry King gave a quick start, then gathered himself up in strong
+control and tilted his chair back against the wall.
+
+"Their son murdered?" he asked. "Tell me about it. All you know."
+
+"That's just it--nobody knows anything. They know he was murdered,
+because he disappeared completely. The young man was called Peter
+Junior, after his father, of course--and he was the one that was
+murdered. They found every evidence of it. It was there on the bluff,
+above the wildest part of the river, where the current is so strong no
+man could live a minute in it. He would be dashed to death in the
+flood, even if he were not killed in the fall from the brink, and that
+young man was pushed over right there."
+
+"How did they know he was pushed over?"
+
+"They knew he was. They found his hat there, and it was bloody, as if
+he had been struck first, and a club there, also bloody,--and it is
+believed he was killed first and then pushed over, for there is the
+place yet, after three years, where the earth gave way with the weight
+of something shoved over the edge. Well, would you believe it--that
+old man has kept the knowledge of it from his wife all this time. She
+thinks her son quarreled with his father and went off, and that he
+will surely return some day."
+
+"And no one in the village ever told her?"
+
+"All the town have helped the old Elder to keep it from her. You'd
+think such a thing impossible, wouldn't you? But it's the truth. The
+old man bribed the _Mercury_ to keep it out, and, by jiminy, it was
+done! Here, in a town of this size where every one knows all about
+every one else's affairs--it was done! It seems people took an
+especial interest in keeping it from her, yet every one was talking
+about it, and so I heard all there was to hear. Hallo! What are you
+doing here?"
+
+This last remark was addressed to Nels Nelson, who appeared just
+below them and stood peering up at them through the veranda railing.
+
+"I yust vaiting for Meestair Stiles. He tol' me vait for heem here."
+
+"Mr. Stiles? Who's he?"
+
+"Dere he coomin'."
+
+As he spoke G. B. Stiles came through the hotel door and walked
+gravely up to them. Something in his manner, and in the expectant,
+watchful eye of the Swede, caused them both to rise. At the same
+moment, Kellar, the sheriff, came up the front steps and approached
+them, and placing his hand on Harry King's shoulder, drew from his
+pocket a pair of handcuffs.
+
+"Young man, it is my duty to arrest you. Here is my badge--this is
+quite straight--for the murder of Peter Craigmile, Jr."
+
+The young man neither moved nor spoke for a moment, and as he stood
+thus the sheriff took him by the arm, and roused him. "Richard
+Kildene, you are under arrest for the murder of your cousin, Peter
+Craigmile, Jr."
+
+With a quick, frantic movement, Harry King sprang back and thrust both
+men violently from him. The red of anger mounted to his hair and
+throbbed in his temples, then swept back to his heart, and left him
+with a deathlike pallor.
+
+"Keep back. I'm not Richard Kildene. You have the wrong man. Peter
+Craigmile was never murdered."
+
+The big Swede leaped the piazza railing and stood close to him, while
+the sheriff held him pinioned, and Sam Carter drew out his notebook.
+
+"You know me, Mr. Kellar,--stand off, I say. I am Peter Craigmile.
+Look at me. Put away those handcuffs. It is I, alive, Peter Craigmile,
+Jr."
+
+"That's a very clever plea, but it's no go," said G. B. Stiles, and
+proceeded to fasten the irons on his wrists.
+
+"Yas, I know you dot man keel heem, all right. I hear you tol' some
+von you keel heem," said the Swede, slowly, in suppressed excitement.
+
+"You're a very good actor, young man,--mighty clever,--but it's no go.
+Now you'll walk along with us if you please," said Mr. Kellar.
+
+"But I tell you I don't please. It's a mistake. I am Peter Craigmile,
+Jr., himself, alive."
+
+"Well, if you are, you'll have a chance to prove it, but evidence is
+against you. If you are he, why do you come back under an assumed name
+during your father's absence? A little hitch there you did not take
+into consideration."
+
+"I had my reasons--good ones--I--came back to confess to
+the--un--un--witting--killing of my cousin, Richard." He turned from
+one to the other, panting as if he had been running a race, and threw
+out his words impetuously. "I tell you I came here for the very
+purpose of giving myself up--but you have the wrong man."
+
+By this time a crowd had collected, and the servants were running from
+their work all over the hotel, while the proprietor stood aloof with
+staring eyes.
+
+"Here, Mr. Decker, you remember me--Elder Craigmile's son? Some of you
+must remember me."
+
+But the proprietor only wagged his head. He would not be drawn into
+the thing. "I have no means of knowing who you are--no more than Adam.
+The name you wrote in my book was Harry King."
+
+"I tell you I had my reasons. I meant to wait here until the
+Elder's--my father's return and--"
+
+"And in the meantime we'll put you in a quiet little apartment, very
+private, where you can wait, while we look into things a bit."
+
+"You needn't take me through the streets with these things on; I've no
+intention of running away. Let me go to my room a minute."
+
+"Yes, and put a bullet through your head. I've no intention of running
+any risks now we have you," said the detective.
+
+"Now you have who? You have no idea whom you have. Take off these
+shackles until I pay my bill. You have no objection to that, have
+you?"
+
+They turned into the hotel, and the handcuffs were removed while the
+young man took out his pocketbook and paid his reckoning. Then he
+turned to them.
+
+"I must ask you to accompany me to my room while I gather my toilet
+necessities together." This they did, G. B. Stiles and the sheriff
+walking one on either side, while the Swede followed at their heels.
+"What are you doing here?" he demanded, turning suddenly upon the
+stable man.
+
+"Oh, I yust lookin' a leetle out."
+
+"Mr. Stiles, what does this mean, that you have that man dogging me?"
+
+"It's his affair, not mine. He thinks he has a certain interest in
+you."
+
+Then he turned in exasperation to the sheriff. "Can you give me a
+little information, Mr. Kellar? What has that Swede to do with me? Why
+am I arrested for the murder of my own self--preposterous! I, a man as
+alive as you are? You can see for yourself that I am Elder
+Craigmile's son. You know me?"
+
+"I know the Elder fairly well--every one in Leauvite knows him, but I
+can't say as I've ever taken particular notice of his boy, and,
+anyway, the boy was murdered three years ago--a little over--for it
+was in the fall of the year--well, that's most four years--and I must
+say it's a mighty clever dodge, as Mr. Stiles says, for you to play
+off this on us. It's a matter that will bear looking into. Now you sit
+down here and hold on to yourself, while I go through your things.
+You'll get them all, never fear."
+
+Then Harry King sat down and looked off through the open window, and
+paid no heed to what the men were doing. They might turn his large
+valise inside out and read every scrap of written paper. There was
+nothing to give the slightest clew to his identity. He had left the
+envelope addressed to the Elder, containing the letters he had
+written, at the bank, to be placed in the safety vault, and not to be
+delivered until ordered to do so by himself.
+
+As they finished their search and restored the articles to his valise,
+he asked again that the handcuffs be left off as he walked through the
+streets.
+
+"I have no desire to escape. It is my wish to go with you. I only wish
+I might have seen the--my father first. He could not have helped
+me--but he would have understood--it would have seemed less--"
+
+He could not go on, and the sheriff slipped the handcuffs in his
+pocket, and they proceeded in silence to the courthouse, where he
+listened to the reading of the warrant and his indictment in dazed
+stupefaction, and then walked again in silence between his captors to
+the jail in the rear.
+
+"No one has ever been in this cell," said Mr. Kellar. "I'm doing the
+best I can for you."
+
+"How long must I stay here? Who brings accusation?"
+
+"I don't know how long: as this is a murder charge you can't
+be bailed out, and the trial will take time. The Elder brings
+accusation--naturally."
+
+"When is he expected home?"
+
+"Can't say. You'll have some one to defend you, and then you can ask
+all the questions you wish." The sheriff closed the heavy door and the
+key was turned.
+
+Then began weary days of waiting. If it had been possible to get the
+trial over with, Harry would have been glad, but it made little
+difference to him now, since the step had been taken, and a trial in
+his case would only be a verdict, anyway--and confession was a simple
+thing, and the hearing also.
+
+The days passed, and he wondered that no one came to him--no friend of
+the old time. Where were Bertrand Ballard and Mary? Where was little
+Betty? Did they not know he was in jail? He did not know that others
+had been arrested on the same charge and released, more than once.
+True, no one had made the claim of being the Elder's own son and the
+murdered man himself. As such incidents were always disturbing to
+Betty, when Bertrand read the notice of the arrest in the _Mercury_,
+the paper was laid away in his desk and his little daughter was spared
+the sight of it this time.
+
+But he spoke of the matter to his wife. "Here is another case of
+arrest for poor Peter Junior's murder, Mary. The man claims to be
+Peter Junior himself, but as he registered at the hotel under an
+assumed name it is likely to be only another attempt to get the
+reward money by some detective. It was very unwise for the Elder to
+make it so large a sum."
+
+"It can't be. Peter Junior would never be so cruel as to stay away all
+this time, if he were alive, no matter how deeply he may have
+quarreled with his father. I believe they both went over the bluff and
+are both dead."
+
+"It stands to reason that one or the other body would have been found
+in that case. One might be lost, but hardly both. The search was very
+thorough, even down to the mill race ten miles below."
+
+"The current is so swift there, they might have been carried over the
+race, and on, before the search began. I think so, although no one
+else seems to."
+
+"I wish the Elder would remove that temptation of the reward. It is
+only an inducement to crime. Time alone will solve the mystery, and as
+long as he continues to brood over it, he will go on failing in
+health. It's coming to an obsession with him to live to see Richard
+Kildene hung, and some one will have to swing for it if he has his
+way. Now he will return and find this man in jail, and will bend every
+effort, and give all his thought toward getting him convicted."
+
+"But I thought you said they do not hang in this state."
+
+"True--true. But imprisonment for life is--worse. I'm thinking of what
+the Elder would like could he have his way."
+
+"Bertrand--I believe the Elder is sure the man will be found and that
+it will kill his wife, when she comes to know that Peter Junior was
+murdered, and that is why he took her to Scotland. She told me she was
+sure her son was there, or would go to see his great aunts there, and
+that is why she consented to go--but I'm sure the Elder wished to get
+her out of the way."
+
+"Strange--strange," said Bertrand. "After all, it is better to
+forgive. No one knows what transpired, and Richard is the real
+sufferer."
+
+"Do you suppose he'll leave Hester there, Bertrand?"
+
+"I hardly think she would be left, but it is impossible to tell. A
+son's loss is more than any other--to a mother."
+
+"Do you think so, Bertrand? It would be hardest of all to lose a
+husband, and the Elder has failed so much since Peter Junior's
+death."
+
+"Peter Junior seems to be the only one who has escaped suffering in
+this tragedy. Remorse in Richard's case, and stubborn anger in the
+Elder's--they are emotions that take large toll out of a man's
+vitality. If ever Richard is found, he will not be the young man we
+knew."
+
+"Unless he is innocent. All this may have been an accident."
+
+"Then why is he staying in hiding?"
+
+"He may have felt there was no way to prove his innocence."
+
+"Well, there is another reason why the Elder should withdraw his offer
+of a reward, and when he comes back, I mean to try what can be done
+once more. Everything would have to be circumstantial. He will have a
+hard time to prove his nephew's guilt."
+
+"I can't see why he should try to prove it. It must have been an
+accident--at the last. Of course it might have been begun in anger, in
+a moment of misunderstanding, but the nature of the boys would go to
+show that it never could have been done intentionally. It is
+impossible."
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXX
+
+THE ARGUMENT
+
+
+"Mr. Ballard, either my son was murdered, or he was a murderer. The
+crime falls upon us, and the disgrace of it, no matter how you look at
+it." The Elder sat in the back room at the bank, where his friend had
+been arguing with him to withdraw the offer of a reward for the
+arrest. "It's too late, now--too late. The man's found and he claims
+to be my son. You're a kindly man, Mr. Ballard, but a blind one."
+
+Bertrand drew his chair closer to the Elder's, as if by so doing he
+might establish a friendlier thought in the man's heart. "Blind?
+Blind, Elder Craigmile?"
+
+"I say blind. I see. I see it all." The Elder rose and paced the
+floor. "The boys fought, there on the bluff, and sought to kill each
+other, and for the same cause that has wrought most of the evil in the
+world. Over the love of a woman they fought. Peter carried a
+blackthorn stick that ought never to have been in my house--you know,
+for you brought it to me--and struck his cousin with it, and at the
+same instant was pushed over the brink, as Richard intended."
+
+"How do you know that Richard was not pushed over? How do you know
+that he did not fall over with his cousin? How can you dare work for a
+man's conviction on such slight evidence?"
+
+"How do I know? Although you would favor that--that--although--" The
+Elder paused and struggled for control, then sat weakly down and took
+up the argument again with trembling voice. "Mr. Ballard, I would
+spare you--much of this matter which has been brought to my
+knowledge--but I cannot--because it must come out at the trial. It was
+over your little daughter, Betty, that they fought. She has known all
+these years that Richard Kildene murdered her lover."
+
+"Elder--Elder! Your brooding has unbalanced your mind."
+
+"Wait, my friend. This falls on you with but half the burden that I
+have borne. My son was no murderer. Richard Kildene is not only a
+murderer, but a coward. He went to your daughter while we were
+dragging the river for my poor boy's body, and told her he had
+murdered her lover; that he pushed him over the bluff and that he
+intended to do so. Now he adds to his crime--by--coming here--and
+pretending--to be--my son. He shall hang. He shall hang. If he does
+not, there is no justice in heaven." The Elder looked up and shook his
+hand above his head as if he defied the whole heavenly host.
+
+Bertrand Ballard sat for a moment stunned. Such a preposterous turn
+was beyond his comprehension. Strangely enough his first thought was a
+mere contradiction, and he said: "Men are not hung in this state. You
+will not have your wish." He leaned forward, with his elbows on the
+great table and his head in his hands; then, without looking up, he
+said: "Go on. Go on. How did you come by this astounding information?
+Was it from Betty?"
+
+"Then may he be shut in the blackest dungeon for the rest of his life.
+No, it was not from Betty. Never. She has kept this terrible secret
+well. I have not seen your daughter--not--since--since this was told
+me. It has been known to the detective and to my attorney, Milton
+Hibbard, for two years, and to me for one year--just before I offered
+the increased reward to which you so object. I had reason."
+
+"Then it is as I thought. Your offer of ten thousand dollars reward
+has incited the crime of attempting to convict an innocent man. Again
+I ask you, how did you come by this astounding information?"
+
+"By the word of an eyewitness. Sit still, Mr. Ballard, until you hear
+the whole; then blame me if you can. A few years ago you had a Swede
+working for you in your garden. You boarded him. He slept in a little
+room over your summer kitchen; do you remember?"
+
+"Yes."
+
+"He saw Richard Kildene come to the house when we were all away--while
+you were with me--your wife with mine,--and your little daughter
+alone. This Swede heard all that was said, and saw all that was done.
+His testimony alone will--"
+
+"Convict a man? It is greed! What is your detective working for and
+why does this Swede come forward at this late day with his testimony?
+Greed! Elder Craigmile, how do you know that this testimony is not all
+made up between them? I will go home and ask Betty, and learn the
+truth."
+
+"And why does the young man come here under an assumed name, and when
+he is discovered, claim to be my son? The only claim he could make
+that could save him! If he knows anything, he knows that if he
+pretends he is my son--laboring under the belief that he has killed
+Richard Kildene--when he knows Richard's death can be disproved by
+your daughter's statement that she saw and talked with Richard--he
+knows that he may be released from the charge of murder and may
+establish himself here as the man whom he himself threw over the
+bluff, and who, therefore, can never return to give him the lie. I
+say--if this is proved on him, he shall suffer the extreme penalty of
+the law, or there is no justice in the land."
+
+Bertrand rose, sadly shaken. "This is a very terrible accusation, my
+friend. Let us hope it may not be proved true. I will go home and ask
+Betty. You will take her testimony before that of the Swede?"
+
+"If you are my friend, why are you willing my son should be proven a
+murderer? It is a deep-laid scheme, and Richard Kildene walks close in
+his father's steps. I have always seen his father in him. I tried to
+save him for my sister's sake. I brought him up in the nurture and
+admonition of the Lord, and did for him all that fathers do for their
+sons, and now I have the fool's reward--the reward of the man who
+warmed the viper in his bosom. He, to come here and sit in my son's
+place--to eat bread at my table--at my wife's right hand--with her
+smile in his eyes? Rather he shall--"
+
+"We will find out the truth, and, if possible, you shall be saved from
+yourself, Elder Craigmile, and your son will not be proven a murderer.
+Let me still be your friend." Bertrand's voice thrilled with
+suppressed emotion and the sympathy he could not utter, as he held out
+his hand, which the Elder took in both his own shaking ones. His
+voice trembled with suppressed emotion as he spoke.
+
+"Pray God Hester may stay where she is until this thing is over. And
+pray God you may not be blinded by love of your daughter, who was not
+true to my son. She was promised to become his wife, but through all
+these years she protects by her silence the murderer of her lover.
+Ponder on this thought, Bertrand Ballard, and pray God you may have
+the strength to be just."
+
+Bertrand walked homeward with bowed head. It was Saturday. The day's
+baking was in progress, and Mary Ballard was just removing a pan of
+temptingly browned tea cakes from the oven when he entered. She did
+not see his face as he asked, "Mary, where can I find Betty?"
+
+"Upstairs in the studio, drawing. Where would you expect to find her?"
+she said gayly. Something in her husband's voice touched her. She
+hastily lifted the cakes from the pan and ran after him.
+
+"What is it, dear?"
+
+He was halfway up the stairs and he turned and came back to her. "I've
+heard something that troubles me, and must see her alone, Mary. I'll
+talk with you about it later. Don't let us be disturbed until we come
+down."
+
+"I think Janey is with her now."
+
+"I'll send her down to you."
+
+"Bertrand, it is something terrible! You are trying to spare me--don't
+do it."
+
+"Ask no questions."
+
+"Tell Janey I want her to help in the kitchen."
+
+Mary went back to her work in silence. If Bertrand wished to be alone
+with Betty, he had a good reason; and presently Janey skipped in and
+was set to paring the potatoes for dinner.
+
+Bertrand found Betty bending closely over a drawing for which she had
+no model, but which was intended to illustrate a fairy story. She was
+using pen and ink, and trying to imitate the fine strokes of a steel
+engraving. He stood at her side, looking down at her work a moment,
+and his artist's sense for the instant crowded back other thoughts.
+
+"You ought to have a model, daughter, and you should work in chalk or
+charcoal for your designing."
+
+"I know, father, but you see I am trying to make some illustrations
+that will look like what are in the magazines. I'm making fairies,
+father, and you know I can't find any models, so I have to make them
+up."
+
+"Put that away. I have some questions to ask you."
+
+"What's the matter, daddy? You look as if the sky were falling." He
+had seated himself on the long lounge where she had once sat and
+chatted with Peter Junior. She recalled that day. It was when he
+kissed her for the first time. Her cheeks flushed hotly as they always
+did now when she thought of it, and her eyes were sad. She went over
+and established herself at her father's side.
+
+"What is it, daddy, dear?"
+
+"Betty,"--he spoke sternly, as she had never heard him before,--"have
+you been concealing something from your father and mother--and from
+the world--for the last three years and a half?"
+
+Her head drooped, the red left her cheeks, and she turned white to the
+lips. She drew away from her father and clasped her hands in her lap,
+tightly. She was praying for strength to tell the truth. Ah, could
+she do it? Could she do it! And perhaps cause Richard's condemnation?
+Had they found him?--that father should ask such a question now, after
+so long a time?
+
+"Why do you ask me such a question, father?"
+
+"Tell me the truth, child."
+
+"Father! I--I--can't," and her voice died away to a whisper.
+
+"You can and you must, Betty."
+
+She rose and stood trembling before him with clinched hands. "What has
+happened? Tell me. It is not fair to ask me such a question unless you
+tell me why." Then she dropped upon her knees and hid her face against
+his sleeve. "If you don't tell me what has happened, I will never
+speak again. I will be dumb, even if they kill me."
+
+He put his arm tenderly about the trembling little form, and the act
+brought the tears and he thought her softened. He knew, as Mary had
+often said, that "Betty could not be driven, but might be led."
+
+"Tell father all about it, little daughter." But she did not open her
+lips. He waited patiently, then asked again, kindly and persistently,
+"What have you been hiding, Betty?" but she only sobbed on. "Betty, if
+you do not tell me now and here, you will be taken into court and made
+to tell all you know before all the world! You will be proven to have
+been untrue to the man you were to marry and who loved you, and to
+have been shielding his murderer."
+
+"Then it is Richard. They have found him?" She shrank away from her
+father and her sobs ceased. "It has come at last. Father--if--if--I
+had--been married to Richard--then would they make me go in court and
+testify against him?"
+
+"No. A wife is not compelled to give testimony against her husband,
+nor may she testify for him, either."
+
+Betty rose and straightened herself defiantly; with flaming cheeks and
+flashing eyes she looked down upon him.
+
+"Then I will tell one great lie--father--and do it even if--if it
+should drag me down to--hell. I will say I am married to Richard--and
+will swear to it." Bertrand was silent, aghast. "Father! Where is
+Richard?"
+
+"He is there in Leauvite, in jail. You must do what is right in the
+eye of God, my child, and tell the truth."
+
+"If I tell the truth,--they will do what is right in their own eyes.
+They don't know what is right in the eye of God. If they drag me into
+court--there before all the world I will lie to them until I drop
+dead. Has--has--the Elder seen him?"
+
+"Not yet. He refused to see him until the trial."
+
+"He is a cruel, vindictive old man. Does he think it will bring Peter
+back to life again to hang Richard? Does he think it will save his
+wife from sorrow, or--or bring any one nearer heaven to do it?"
+
+"If Richard has done the thing he is accused of doing, he deserves the
+extremest rigor of the law."
+
+"Father! Don't let the Elder make you hard like himself. What is he
+accused of doing?"
+
+"He is making claim that he is Peter Junior, and that he has come back
+to Leauvite to give himself up for the murder of his cousin, Richard
+Kildene. He thinks, no doubt, that you will say that you know Richard
+is living, and that he has not killed him, and in that way he thinks
+to escape punishment, by proving that Peter also is living, and is
+himself. Do you see how it is? He has chosen to live here an impostor
+rather than to live in hiding as an outcast, and is trading on his
+likeness to his cousin to bear him out. I had hoped that it was all a
+detective's lie, got up for the purpose of getting hold of the reward
+money, but now I see it is true--the most astounding thing a man ever
+tried."
+
+"Did he send you to me?"
+
+"No, child. I have not seen him."
+
+"Father Bertrand Ballard! Have you taken some detective's word and not
+even tried to see him?"
+
+"Child, child! He is playing a desperate game, and taking an ignoble
+part. He is doing a dastardly thing, and the burden is laid on you to
+confess to the secret you have been hiding and tell the truth."
+
+Bertrand spoke very sadly, and Betty's heart smote her for his sorrow;
+yet she felt the thing was impossible for Richard to do, and that she
+must hold the secret a little longer--all the more because even her
+father seemed now to credit the terrible accusation. She threw her
+arms about his neck and implored him.
+
+"Oh, father, dear! Take me to the jail to see him, and after that I
+will try to do what is right. I can think clearer after I have seen
+him."
+
+"I don't know if that will be allowed--but--"
+
+"It will have to be allowed. How can I say if it is Richard until I
+see him. It may not be Richard. The Elder is too blinded to even go
+near him, and dear Mrs. Craigmile is not here. Some one ought to go in
+fairness to Richard--who loves--" She choked and could say no more.
+
+"I will talk to your mother first. There is another thing that should
+soften your heart to the Elder. All over the country there is
+financial trouble. Banks are going to pieces that never were in
+trouble before, and Elder Craigmile's bank is going, he fears. It will
+be a terrible crash, and we fear he may not outlive the blow. I tell
+you this, even though you may not understand it, to soften your heart
+toward him. He considers it in the nature of a disgrace."
+
+"Yes. I understand, better than you think." Betty's voice was sad, and
+she looked weary and spent. "If the bank breaks, it breaks the Elder's
+heart. All the rest he could stand, but not that. The bank, the bank!
+He tried to sacrifice Peter Junior to that bank. He would have broken
+Peter's heart for that bank, as he has his wife's; for if it had not
+been for Peter's quarrel with his father, first of all, over it, I
+don't believe all the rest would have happened. Peter told me a lot. I
+know."
+
+"Betty, did you never love Peter Junior? Tell father."
+
+"I thought I did. I thought I knew I did,--but when Richard came
+home--then--I--I--knew I had made a terrible mistake; but, father, I
+meant to stand by Peter--and never let anybody know until--Oh, father,
+need I tell any more?"
+
+"No, my dear. You would better talk with your mother."
+
+Bertrand Ballard left the studio more confused in his mind, and yet
+both sadder and wiser then he had ever been in his life. He had seen a
+little way into his small daughter's soul, and conceived of a power
+of spirit beyond him, although he considered her both unreasonable and
+wrong. He grieved for her that she had carried such a great burden so
+bravely and so long. How great must have been her love, or her
+infatuation! The pathetic knowledge hardened his heart toward the
+young man in the jail, and he no longer tried to defend him in his
+thoughts.
+
+He sent Mary up to talk with Betty, and that afternoon they all walked
+over to the jail; for Mary could get no nearer her little daughter's
+confidence, and no deeper into the heart of the matter than Betty had
+allowed her father to go.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXXI
+
+ROBERT KATER'S SUCCESS
+
+
+"Halloo! So it's here!" Robert Kater stood by a much-littered table
+and looked down on a few papers and envelopes which some one had laid
+there during his absence. All day long he had been wandering about the
+streets of Paris, waiting--passing the time as he could in his
+impatience--hoping for the communication contained in one of these
+very envelopes. Now that it had come he felt himself struck with a
+singular weakness, and did not seize it and tear it open. Instead, he
+stood before the table, his hands in his pockets, and whistled
+softly.
+
+He made the tour of the studio several times, pausing now and then to
+turn a canvas about, apparently as if he would criticize it, looking
+at it but not regarding it, only absently turning one and another as
+if it were a habit with him to do so; then returning to the table he
+stirred the envelopes apart with one finger and finally separated one
+from the rest, bearing an official seal, and with it a small package
+carefully secured and bearing the same seal, but he did not open
+either. "Yes, it's here, and that's the one," he said, but he spoke to
+himself, for there was no one else in the room.
+
+He moved wearily away, keeping the packet in his hand, but leaving the
+envelope on the table, and hung his hat upon a point of an easel and
+wiped his damp brow. As he did so, he lifted the dark brown hair from
+his temple, showing a jagged scar. Quickly, as if with an habitual
+touch, he rearranged the thick, soft lock so that the scar was
+covered, and mounting a dais, seated himself on a great thronelike
+chair covered with a royal tiger skin. The head of the tiger, mounted
+high, with glittering eyes and fangs showing, rested on the floor
+between his feet, and there, holding the small packet in his hand,
+with elbows resting on the arms of the throne, he sat with head
+dropped forward and shoulders lifted and eyes fixed on the tiger's
+head.
+
+For a long time he sat thus in the darkening room. At last it grew
+quite dark. Only the great skylight over his head showed a defined
+outline. The young man had had no dinner and no supper, for his
+pockets were empty and his last sou gone. If he had opened the
+envelopes, he would have found money, and more than money, for he
+would have learned that the doors of the Salon had opened to him and
+the highest medal awarded him, and that for which he had toiled and
+waited and hoped,--for which he had staked his last effort and
+sacrificed everything, was won. He was recognized, and all Paris would
+quickly know it, and not Paris only, but all the world. But when he
+would open the envelope, his hands fell slack, and there it still lay
+on the table concealed by the darkness.
+
+Down three flights of stairs in the court a strange and motley group
+were collecting, some bearing candles, all masked, some fantastically
+dressed and others only concealed by dominoes. The stairs went up on
+the outer wall of this inner court, past the windows of the basement
+occupied by the concierge and his wife and pretty daughter, and
+entered the building on the first floor above. By this arrangement the
+concierge could always see from his window who mounted them.
+
+"Look, mamma." The pretty daughter stood peering out, her face framed
+in the white muslin curtains. "Look. See the students. Ah, but they
+are droll!"
+
+"Come away, ma fille."
+
+"But the owl and the ape, there, they seem on very good terms. I
+wonder if they go to the room of Monsieur Kater! I think so; for
+one--the ghost in white, he is a little lame like the Englishman who
+goes always to the room of Monsieur.--Ah, bah! Imbecile! Away with
+you! Pig!"
+
+The ape had suddenly approached his ugly face close to the face framed
+in the white muslin curtains on the other side of the window, and made
+exaggerated motions of an embrace. The wife of the concierge snatched
+her daughter away and drew the curtains close.
+
+"Foolish child! Why do you stand and watch the rude fellows? This is
+what you get by it. I have told you to keep your eyes within."
+
+"But I love to see them, so droll they are."
+
+Stealthily the fantastic creatures began to climb the stairs, one,
+two, three flights, traversing a long hall at the end of each flight
+and turning to climb again. The expense of keeping a light on each
+floor for the corridors was not allowed in this building, and they
+moved along in the darkness, but for the flickering light of the few
+candles carried among them. As they neared the top they grew more
+stealthy and kept close together on the landing outside the studio
+door. One stooped and listened at the keyhole, then tried to look
+through it. "Not there?" whispered another.
+
+"No light," was the whispered reply. They spoke now in French, now in
+English.
+
+"He has heard us and hid himself. He is a strange man, this Scotchman.
+He did not attend the 'Vernissage,' nor the presentation of prizes,
+yet he wins the highest." The owl stretched out an arm, bare and
+muscular, from under his wing and tried the door very gently. It was
+not locked, and he thrust his head within, then reached back and took
+a candle from the ghost. "This will give light enough. Put out the
+rest of yours and make no noise."
+
+Thus in the darkness they crept into the studio and gathered around
+the table. There they saw the unopened envelopes.
+
+"He is not here. He does not know," said one and another.
+
+"Where then can he be?"
+
+"He has taken a panic and fled. I told you so," said the ghost.
+
+"Ah, here he is! Behold! The Hamlet of our ghost! Wake, Hamlet; your
+father's spirit has arrived," cried one in English with a very French
+accent.
+
+They now gathered before the dais, shouting and cheering in both
+English and French. One brought the envelopes on a palette and
+presented them. The young man gazed at them, stupidly at first, then
+with a feverish gleam in his eyes, but did not take them.
+
+"Yes, I found them when I came in--but they are--not for me."
+
+"They are addressed to you, Robert Kater, and the news is published
+and you leave them here unopened."
+
+"He does not know--I told you so."
+
+"You have the packet in your hand. Open it. Take it from him and
+decorate him. He is in a dream. It is the great medal. We will wake
+him."
+
+They began to cheer and cheer again, each after the manner of the
+character he had assumed. The ass brayed, the owl hooted, the ghost
+groaned. The ape leaped on the back of the throne whereon the young
+man still sat, and seized him by the hair, chattering idiotically
+after the manner of apes, and began to wag his head back and forth. In
+the midst of the uproar Demosthenes stepped forward and took the
+envelopes from the palette, and, tearing them open, began reading them
+aloud by the light of a candle held for him by Lady Macbeth, who now
+and then interrupted with the remark that "her little hand was stained
+with blood," stretching forth an enormous, hairy hand for their
+inspection. But as Demosthenes read on the uproar ceased, and all
+listened with courteous attention. The ape leaped down from the back
+of the throne, the owl ceased hooting, and all were silent until the
+second envelope had been opened and the contents made known--that his
+exhibit had been purchased by the Salon.
+
+"Robert Kater, you are at the top. We congratulate you. To be
+recognized by the 'Salon des Artistes Francaises' is to be recognized
+and honored by all the world."
+
+They all came forward with kindly and sincere words, and the young man
+stood to receive them, but reeling and swaying, weary with emotion,
+and faint with hunger.
+
+"Were you not going to the mask?"
+
+"I was weary; I had not thought."
+
+"Then wake up and go. We come for you."
+
+"I have no costume."
+
+"Ah, that is nothing. Make one; it is easy."
+
+"He sits there like his own Saul, enveloped in gloom. Come, I will be
+your David," cried one, and snatched a guitar and began strumming it
+wildly.
+
+While the company scattered and searched the studio for materials with
+which to create for him a costume for the mask, the ghost came limping
+up to the young man who had seated himself again wearily on the
+throne, and spoke to him quietly.
+
+"The tide's turned, Kater; wake up to it. You're clear of the
+breakers. The two pictures you were going to destroy are sold. I
+brought those Americans here while you were away and showed them. I
+told you they'd take something as soon as you were admitted. Here's
+the money."
+
+Robert Kater raised himself, looking in the eyes of his friend, and
+took the bank notes as if he were not aware what they really might
+be.
+
+"I say! You've enough to keep you for a year if you don't throw it
+away. Count it. I doubled your price and they took them at the price I
+made. Look at these."
+
+Then Robert Kater looked at them with glittering eyes, and his shaking
+hand shut upon them, crushing the bank notes in a tight grip. "We'll
+halve it, share and share alike," he whispered, staring at the ghost
+without counting it. "As for this," his finger touched the decoration
+on his breast--"it is given to a--You won't take half? Then I'll throw
+them away."
+
+"I'll take them all until you're sane enough to know what you're
+doing. Give them to me." He took them back and crept quietly,
+ghostlike, about the room until he found a receptacle in which he
+knew they would be safe; then, removing one hundred francs from the
+amount, he brought it back and thrust it in his friend's pocket.
+"There--that's enough for you to throw away on us to-night. Why are
+you taking off your decoration? Leave it where it is. It's yours."
+
+"Yes, I suppose it is." Robert Kater brushed his hand across his eyes
+and stepped down from the throne. Then lifting his head and shoulders
+as if he threw off a burden, he leaped from the dais, and with one
+long howl, began an Indian war dance. He was the center and life of
+the hilarious crowd from that moment. The selection of materials had
+been made. A curtain of royal purple hung behind the throne, and this
+they threw around him as a toga, then crowned him as Mark Antony. They
+found for him also a tunic of soft wool, and with a strip of gold
+braid they converted a pair of sheepskin bedroom slippers into
+sandals, bound on his feet over his short socks.
+
+"I say! Mark Antony never wore things like these," he shouted. "Give
+me a mask. I'll not wear these things without a mask." He snatched at
+the head of the owl, who ducked under his arm and escaped. "Go then.
+This is better. Mark, the illustrious, was an ass." He made a dive for
+the head of his braying friend and barely missed him.
+
+"Come. We waste time. Cleopatra awaits him at 'la Fourchette d'or';
+all our Cleopatras await us there."
+
+"Surely?"
+
+"Surely. Madame la Charne is there and the sisters Lucie and
+Bertha,--all are there,--and with them one very beautiful blonde whom
+you have never seen."
+
+"She is for you--you cold Scotchman! That stone within you, which you
+call heart, to-night it will melt."
+
+"You have everything planned then?"
+
+"Everything is made ready."
+
+"Look here! Wait, my friends! I haven't expressed myself yet." They
+were preparing to lift him above their heads. "I wish to say that you
+are all to share my good fortune and allow--"
+
+"Wait for the champagne. You can say it then with more force."
+
+"I say! Hold on! I ask you to--"
+
+"So we do. We hold on. Now, up--so." He was borne in triumph down the
+stairs and out on the street and away to the sign of the Golden Fork,
+and seated at the head of the table in a small banquet room opening
+off from the balcony at one side where the feast which had been
+ordered and prepared was awaiting them.
+
+A group of masked young women, gathered on the balcony, pelted them
+with flowers as they passed beneath it, and when the men were all
+seated, they trooped out, and each slid into her appointed place,
+still masked.
+
+Then came a confusion of tongues, badinage, repartee, wit undiluted by
+discretion--and rippling laughter as one mask after another was torn
+off.
+
+"Ah, how glad I am to be rid of it! I was suffocating," said a soft
+voice at Robert Kater's side.
+
+He looked down quickly into a pair of clear, red-brown eyes--eyes into
+which he had never looked before.
+
+"Then we are both content that it is off." He smiled as he spoke. She
+glanced up at him, then down and away. When she lifted her eyes an
+instant later again to his face, he was no longer regarding her. She
+was piqued, and quickly began conversing with the man on her left, the
+one who had removed her mask.
+
+"It is no use, your smile, mademoiselle. He is impervious, that man.
+He has no sense or he could not turn his eyes away."
+
+"I like best the impervious ones." With a light ripple of laughter she
+turned again to her right. "Monsieur has forgotten?"
+
+"Forgotten?" Robert was mystified until he realized in the instant
+that she was pretending to a former acquaintance. "Could I forget,
+mademoiselle? Permit me." He lifted his glass. "To your eyes--and to
+your--memory," he said, and drank it off.
+
+After that he became the gayest of them all, and the merriment never
+flagged. He ate heartily, for he was very hungry, but he drank
+sparingly. His brain seemed supplied with intellectual missiles which
+he hurled right and left, but when they struck, it was only to send
+out a rain of sparks like the balls of holiday fireworks that explode
+in a fountain of brilliance and hurt no one.
+
+"Monsieur is so gay!" said the soft voice of the blonde at his side.
+
+"Are we not here for that, to enjoy ourselves?"
+
+"Ah, if I could but believe that you remember me!"
+
+"Is it possible mademoiselle thinks herself one to be so easily
+forgotten?"
+
+"Monsieur, tell me the truth." She glanced up archly. "I have one very
+good reason for asking."
+
+"You are very beautiful."
+
+"But that is so banal--that remark."
+
+"You complain that I tell you the truth when you ask it? You have so
+often heard it that the telling becomes banal? Shall I continue?"
+
+"But it is of yourself that I would hear."
+
+"So? Then it is as I feared. It is you who have forgotten."
+
+They were interrupted at that moment, for he was called upon for a
+story, and he related one of his life as a soldier,--a little
+incident, but everything pleased. They called upon him for another and
+another. The hour grew late, and at last the banqueters rose and began
+to remask and assume their various characters.
+
+"What are you, monsieur, with that very strange dress that you wear, a
+Roman or a Greek?" asked his companion.
+
+"I really don't know--a sort of nondescript. I did not choose my
+costume; it was made up for me by my friends. They called me Mark
+Antony, but that was because they did not know what else to call me.
+But they promised me Cleopatra if I would come with them."
+
+"They would have done better to call you Petrarch, for I am Laura."
+
+"But I never could have taken that part. I could make a very decent
+sort of ass of myself, but not a poet."
+
+"What a very terrible voice your Lady Macbeth has!"
+
+"Yes; but she was a terror, you know. Shall we follow the rest?"
+
+They all trooped out of the café, and fiacres were called to take them
+to the house where the mask was held. The women were placed in their
+respective carriages, but the men walked. At the door of the house, as
+they entered the ballroom, they reunited, but again were soon
+scattered. Robert Kater wandered about, searching here and there for
+his very elusive Laura, so slim and elegant in her white and gold
+draperies, who seemed to be greatly in demand. He saw many whom he
+recognized; some by their carriage, some by their voices, but Laura
+baffled him. Had he ever seen her before? He could not remember. He
+would not have forgotten her--never. No, she was amusing herself with
+him.
+
+"Monsieur does not dance?" It was a Spanish gypsy with her lace
+mantilla and the inevitable red rose in her hair. He knew the voice.
+It was that of a little model he sometimes employed.
+
+"I dance, yes. But I will only take you out on the floor, my little
+Julie,--ha--ha--I know you, never fear--I will take you out on the
+floor, but on one condition."
+
+"It is granted before I know it."
+
+"Then tell me, who is she just passing?"
+
+"The one whose clothing is so--so--as if she would pose for the--"
+
+"Hush, Julie. The one in white and gold."
+
+"I asked if it were she. Yes, I know her very well, for I saw a
+gentleman unmask her on the balcony above there, to kiss her. It is
+she who dances so wonderfully at the Opéra Comique. You have seen her,
+Mademoiselle Fée. Ah, come. Let us dance. It is the most perfect
+waltz."
+
+At the close of the waltz the owl came and took the little gypsy away
+from Robert, and a moment later he heard the mellifluous voice of his
+companion of the banquet.
+
+"I am so weary, monsieur. Take me away where we may refresh
+ourselves."
+
+The red-brown eyes looked pleadingly into his, and the slender fingers
+rested on his arm, and together they wandered to a corner of palms
+where he seated her and brought her cool wine jelly and other
+confections. She thanked him sweetly, and, drooping, she rested her
+head upon her hand and her arm on the arm of her chair.
+
+"So dull they are, these fêtes, and the people--bah! They are dull to
+the point of despair."
+
+She was a dream of gold and white as she sat there--the red-gold hair
+and the red-brown eyes, and the soft gold and white draperies, too
+clinging, as the little gypsy had indicated, but beautiful as a gold
+and white lily. He sat beside her and gazed on her dreamily, but in a
+manner too detached. She was not pleased, and she sighed.
+
+"Take the refreshment, mademoiselle; you will feel better. I will
+bring you wine. What will you have?"
+
+"Oh, you men, who always think that to eat and drink something alone
+can refresh! Have you never a sadness?"
+
+"Very often, mademoiselle."
+
+"Then what do you do?"
+
+"I eat and drink, mademoiselle. Try it."
+
+"Oh, you strange man from the cold north! You make me shiver. Touch my
+hand. See? You have made me cold."
+
+"Cold? You are a flame from the crown of gold on your head to your
+shoes of gold."
+
+"Now that you are become a success, monsieur, what will you do? To you
+is given the heart's desire." She toyed with the quivering jelly,
+merely tasting it. It too was golden in hue, and golden lights danced
+in the heart of it.
+
+"A great success? I am dreaming. It is so new to me that I do not
+believe it."
+
+"You are very clever, monsieur. You never tell your thoughts. I asked
+if you remembered me and you answered in a riddle. I knew you did
+not, for you never saw me before."
+
+"Did I never see you dance?"
+
+"Ah, there you are again! To see me dance--in a great audience--one of
+many? That does not count. You but pretended."
+
+He leaned forward, looking steadily in her eyes. "Did I but pretend
+when I said I never could forget you? Ah, mademoiselle, you are too
+modest."
+
+She was maddened that she could not pique him to a more ardent manner,
+but gave no sign by so much as the quiver of an eyelid. She only
+turned her profile toward him indifferently. He noticed the piquant
+line of her lips and chin and throat, and the golden tones of her
+delicate skin.
+
+"Did I not also tell you the truth when you asked me? And you rewarded
+me by calling me banal."
+
+"And I was right. You, who are so clever, could think of something
+better to say." She gave him a quick glance, and placed a quivering
+morsel of jelly between her lips. "But you are so very strange to me.
+Tell me, were you never in love?"
+
+"That is a question I may not answer." He still smiled, but it was
+merely the continuation of the smile he had worn before she shot that
+last arrow. He still looked in her eyes, but she knew he was not
+seeing her. Then he rallied and laughed. "Come, question for question.
+Were you never in love--or out of love--let us say?"
+
+"Oh! Me!" She lifted her shoulders delicately. "Me! I am in love
+now--at this moment. You do not treat me well. You have not danced
+with me once."
+
+"No. You have been dancing always, and fully occupied. How could I?"
+
+"Ah, you have not learned. To dance with me--you must take me, not
+stand one side and wait."
+
+"Are you engaged for the next?"
+
+"But, yes. It is no matter. I will dance it with you. He will be
+consoled." She laughed, showing her beautiful, even teeth. "I make you
+a confession. I said to him, 'I will dance it with you unless the cold
+monsieur asks me--then I will dance with him, for it will do him
+good.'"
+
+Robert Kater rose and stood a moment looking through the palms. The
+silken folds of his toga fell gracefully around him, and he held his
+head high. Then he withdrew his eyes from the distance and turned them
+again on her,--the gold and white being at his feet,--and she seemed
+to him no longer human, but a phantom from which he must flee, if but
+he might do so courteously, for he knew her to be no phantom, and he
+could not be other than courteous.
+
+"Will you accept from me my laurel crown?" He took the chaplet from
+his head and laid it at her feet. Then, lifting her hand to his lips,
+he kissed the tips of her pink fingers, bowing low before her. "I go
+to send you wine. Console your partner. It is better so, for I too am
+in love." He smiled upon her as he had smiled at first, and was gone,
+walking out through the crowd--the weird, fantastic, bizarre company,
+as if he were no part of them. One and another greeted him as he
+passed, but he did not seem to hear them. He called a waiter and
+ordered wine to be taken to Mademoiselle Fée, and quickly was gone.
+They saw him no more.
+
+It was nearly morning. A drizzling rain was falling, and the air was
+chill after the heat of the crowded ballroom. He drew it into his
+lungs in deep draughts, glad to be out in the freshness, and to feel
+the cool rain on his forehead. He threw off his encumbering toga and
+walked in his tunic, with bare throat and bare knees, and carried the
+toga over one bare arm, and swung the other bare arm free. He walked
+with head held high, for he was seeing visions, and hearing a
+far-distant call. Now at last he might choose his path. He had not
+failed, but with that call from afar--what should he do? Should he
+answer it? Was it only a call from out his own heart--a passing,
+futile call, luring him back?
+
+Of one thing he was sure. There was the painting on which he had
+labored and staked his all now hanging in the Salon. He could see it,
+one of his visions realized,--David and Saul. The deep, rich
+shadows, the throne, the tiger skin, the sandaled feet of the
+remorseful king resting on the great fanged and leering head, the
+eyes of the king looking hungrily out from under his forbidding brows,
+the cruel lips pressed tightly together, and the lithe, thin hands
+grasping the carved arms of the throne in fierce restraint,--all
+this in the deep shadows between the majestic carved columns, their
+bases concealed by the rich carpet covering the dais and their tops
+lost in the brooding darkness above--the lowering darkness of purple
+gloom that only served to reveal the sinister outlines of the somber,
+sorrowful, suffering king, while he indulged the one pure passion
+left him--listening--gazing from the shadows out into the light,
+seeing nothing, only listening.
+
+And before him, standing in the one ray of light, clothed only in his
+tunic of white and his sandals, a human jewel of radiant color and
+slender strength, a godlike conception of youth and grace, his harp
+before him, the lilies crushed under his feet that he had torn from
+the strings which his fingers touched caressingly, with sunlight in
+his crown of golden, curling hair and the light of the stars in his
+eyes--David, the strong, the simple, the trusting, the God-fearing
+youth, as Robert Kater saw him, looking back through the ages.
+
+Ah, now he could live. Now he could create--work: he had been
+recognized, and rewarded--Dust and ashes! Dust and ashes! The hope of
+his life realized, the goblet raised to his lips, and the draft--bitter.
+The call falling upon his heart--imperative--beseeching--what did it
+mean?
+
+Slowly and heavily he mounted the stairs to his studio, and there
+fumbled about in the darkness and the confusion left by his admiring
+comrades until he found candles and made a light. He was cold, and his
+light clothing clung to him wet and chilling as grave clothes. He tore
+them off and got himself into things that were warm and dry, and
+wrapping himself in an old dressing gown of flannel, sat down to
+think.
+
+He took the money his friend had brought him and counted it over. Good
+old Ben Howard! Half of it must go to him, of course. And here were
+finished canvases quite as good as the ones that had sold. Ben might
+turn them to as good an account as the others,--yes,--here was enough
+to carry him through a year and leave him leisure to paint unhampered
+by the necessity of making pot boilers for a bare living.
+
+"Tell me, were you never in love?" That soft, insinuating voice
+haunted him against his will. In love? What did she know of love--the
+divine passion? Love! Fame! Neither were possible to him. He bowed his
+head upon the table, hiding his face, crushing the bank notes beneath
+his arms. Deep in his soul the eye of his own conscience regarded
+him,--an outcast hiding under an assumed name, covering the scar above
+his temple with a falling lock of hair seldom lifted, and deep in his
+soul a memory of a love. Oh, God! Dust and ashes! Dust and ashes!
+
+He rose, and, taking his candle with him, opened a door leading from
+the studio up a short flight of steps to a little cupboard of a
+sleeping room. Here he cast himself on the bed and closed his eyes. He
+must sleep: but no, he could not. After a time of restless tossing he
+got up and drew an old portmanteau from the closet and threw the
+contents out on the bed. From among them he picked up the thing he
+sought and sat on the edge of his bed with it in his hands, turning it
+over and regarding it, tieing and untieing the worn, frayed, but still
+bright ribbons, which had once been the cherry-colored hair ribbons of
+little Betty Ballard.
+
+Suddenly he rose and lifted his head high, in his old, rather
+imperious way, put out his candle, and looked through the small, dusty
+panes of his window. It was day--early dawn. He was jaded and weary,
+but he would try no longer to sleep. He must act, and shake off
+sentimentalism. Yes, he must act. He bathed and dressed with care, and
+then in haste, as if life depended on hurry, he packed the portmanteau
+and stepped briskly into the studio, looking all about, noting
+everything as if taking stock of it all, then sat down with pen and
+paper to write.
+
+The letter was a long one. It took time and thought. When he was
+nearly through with it, Ben Howard lagged wearily in.
+
+"Halloo! Why didn't you wait for me? What did you clear out for and
+leave me in the lurch? Fresh as a daisy, you are, old chap, and I'm
+done for, dead."
+
+"You're not scientific in your pleasures." Robert Kater lifted his
+eyes and looked at his friend. "Are you alive enough to hear me and
+remember what I say? Will you do something for me? Shall I tell you
+now or will you breakfast first?"
+
+"Breakfast? Faugh!" He looked disgustedly around him.
+
+"I'm sorry. You drink too much. Listen, Ben. I'll tell you what I mean
+to do and what I wish you to do for me--and--you remember all you can
+of it, will you? I must do it now, for you'll be asleep soon, and this
+will be the last I shall see of you--ever. I'm leaving in two
+hours--as soon as I've breakfasted."
+
+"What's that? Hold on!" Ben Howard sprang up, and darting behind a
+screen where they washed their brushes, he dashed cold water over his
+head and came back toweling himself. "I'm fit now. I did drink too
+much champagne, but I'll sleep it off. Now fire away,--what's up?"
+
+"In two hours I'll be en route for the coast, and to-morrow I'll take
+passage for home on the first boat." Robert closed and sealed the long
+letter he had been writing and tossed it on the table. "I want this
+mailed one week from to-day. Put it in your pocket so you won't lose
+it among the rubbish here. One week from to-day it must be mailed.
+It's to my great aunt, Jean Craigmile, who gave me the money to set
+up here the first year. I've paid that up--last week--with my last
+sou--and with interest. By rights she should have whatever there is
+here of any value, for, if it were not for her help, there would not
+have been a thing here anyway, and I've no one else to whom to leave
+it--so see that this letter is mailed without fail, will you?"
+
+The Englishman stood, now thoroughly awake, gazing at him, unable to
+make common sense out of Robert's remarks. "B--b--but--what's up? What
+are you leaving things to anybody for? You're not on your deathbed."
+
+"I'm going home, don't you see?"
+
+"But why don't you take the letter to her yourself--if you're going
+home?"
+
+"Not there, man; not to Scotland."
+
+"Your home's there."
+
+"I have allowed you to think so." Robert forced himself to talk
+calmly. "In truth, I have no home, but the place I call home by
+courtesy is where I was brought up--in America."
+
+"You--you--d--d--don't--"
+
+"Yes--it's time you knew this. I've been leading a double life, and
+I'm done with it. I committed a crime, and I'm living under an
+assumed name. There is no such man as Robert Kater that I know of on
+earth, nor ever was. My name is--no matter--. I'm going back to
+the place where I killed my best friend--to give myself up--to
+imprisonment--I do not know to what--maybe death--but it will end
+my torture of mind. Now you know why I could not go to the Vernissage,
+to be treated--well, I could not go, that's all. Nor could I accept
+the honors given me under a name not my own. All the time I've lived
+in Paris I've been hiding--and this thing has been following
+me--although my occupation seems to have been the best cover I could
+have had--yet my soul has known no peace. Always--always--night and
+day--my own conscience has been watching and accusing me, an eye of
+dread steadily gazing down into my soul and seeing my sin deep, deep
+in my heart. I could not hide from it. And I would have given up
+before only that I wished to make good in something before I stepped
+down and out. I've done it." He put his hand heavily on Ben Howard's
+shoulder. "I've had a revelation this night. The lesson of my life is
+learned at last. It is, that there is but one road to freedom and
+life for me--and that road leads to a prison. It leads to a
+prison,--maybe worse,--but it leads me to freedom--from the thing
+that haunts me, that watches me and drives me. I may write you from
+that place which I will call home--Were you ever in love?"
+
+The abruptness of the question set Ben Howard stammering again. He
+seized Robert's hand in both his own and held to it. "I--I--I--old
+chap--I--n--n--no--were you?"
+
+"Yes; I've heard the call of her voice in my heart--and I'm gone. Now,
+Ben, stop your--well, I'll not preach to you, you of all men,--but--do
+something worth while. I've need of part of the money you got for
+me--to get back on--and pay a bill or two--and the rest I leave to
+you--there where you put it you'll find it. Will you live here and
+take care of these things for me until my good aunt, Jean Craigmile,
+writes you? She'll tell you what to do with them--and more than likely
+she'll take you under her wing--anyway, work, man, work. The place is
+yours for the present--perhaps for a good while, and you'll have a
+chance to make good. If I could live on that money for a year, as you
+yourself said, you can live on half of it for half a year, and in that
+time you can get ahead. Work."
+
+He seized his portmanteau and was gone before Ben Howard could gather
+his scattered senses or make reply.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXXII
+
+THE PRISONER
+
+
+Harry King did not at once consult an attorney, for Milton Hibbard,
+the only one he knew or cared to call upon for his defense, was an old
+friend of the Elder's and had been retained by him to assist the
+district attorney at the trial. The other two lawyers in Leauvite, one
+of whom was the district attorney himself, were strangers to him.
+Twice he sent messages to the Elder after his return, begging him to
+come to him, never dreaming that they could be unheeded, but to the
+second only was any reply sent, and then it was but a cursory line.
+"Legal steps will be taken to secure justice for you, whoever you
+are."
+
+To his friends he sent no messages. Their sympathy could only mean
+sorrow for them if they believed in him, and hurt to his own soul if
+they distrusted him, and he suffered enough. So he lay there in the
+clean, bare cell, and was glad that it was clean and held no traces of
+former occupants. The walls smelled of lime in their freshly plastered
+surfaces, and the floor had the pleasant odor of new pine.
+
+His life passed in review before him from boyhood up. It had been a
+happy life until the tragedy brought into it by his own anger and
+violence, but since that time it had been one long nightmare of
+remorse, heightened by fear, until he had met Amalia, and after that
+it had been one unremitting strife between love and duty--delight in
+her mind, in her touch, in her every movement, and in his own soul
+despair unfathomable. Now at last it was to end in public exposure,
+imprisonment, disgrace. A peculiar apathy of peace seemed to envelop
+him. There was no longer hope to entice, no further struggle to be
+waged against the terror of fear, or the joy of love, or the horror of
+remorse; all seemed gone from him, even to the vague interest in
+things transpiring in the world.
+
+He had only a puzzled feeling concerning his arrest. Things had not
+proceeded as he had planned. If the Elder would but come to him, all
+would be right. He tried to analyze his feelings, and the thought that
+possessed him most was wonder at the strange vacuity of the condition
+of emotionlessness. Was it that he had so suffered that he was no
+longer capable of feeling? What was feeling? What was emotion: and
+life without either emotion, or feeling, or caring to feel,--what
+would it be?
+
+Valueless.--Empty space. Nothing left but bodily hunger, bodily
+thirst, bodily weariness. A lifetime, for his years were not yet half
+spent,--a lifetime at Waupun, and work for the body, but vacuity for
+the mind--maybe--sometimes--memories. Even thinking thus he seemed to
+have lost the power to feel sadness.
+
+Confusion reigned within him, and yet he found himself powerless to
+correlate his thoughts or suggest reasons for the strange happenings
+of the last few days. It seemed to him that he was in a dream wherein
+reason played no part. In the indictment he was arraigned for the
+murder of Peter Craigmile, Jr.,--as Richard Kildene,--and yet he had
+seen his cousin lying dead before him, during all the years that had
+passed since he had fled from that sight. In battle he had seen men
+clubbed with the butt end of a musket fall dead with wounded temples,
+even as he had seen his cousin--stark--inert--lifeless. He had felt
+the strange, insane rage to kill that he had seen in others and
+marveled at. And now, after he had felt and done it, he was arrested
+as the man he had slain.
+
+All the morning he paced his cell and tried to force his thoughts to
+work out the solution, but none presented itself. Was he the victim of
+some strange form of insanity that caused him to lose his identity and
+believe himself another man? Drunken men he had seen under the
+delusion that all the rest of the world were drunken and they alone
+sober. Oh, madness, madness! At least he was sane and knew himself,
+and this was a confusion brought about by those who had undertaken his
+arrest. He would wait for the Elder to come, and in the meantime live
+in his memories, thinking of Amalia, and so awaken in himself one
+living emotion, sacred and truly sane. In the sweetness of such
+thinking alone he seemed to live.
+
+He drew the little ivory crucifix from his bosom and looked at it.
+"The Christ who bore our sins and griefs"--and again Amalia's words
+came to him. "If they keep you forever in the prison, still forever
+are you free." In snatches her words repeated themselves over in his
+mind as he gazed. "If you have the Christ in your heart--so are you
+high--lifted above the sin." "If I see you no more here, in Paradise
+yet will I see you, and there it will be joy--great--joy; for it is
+the love that is all of life, and all of eternity, and lives--lives."
+
+Bertrand Ballard and his wife and daughter stood in the small room
+opening off from the corridor that led to the rear of the courthouse
+where was the jail, waiting for the jailer to bring his keys from his
+office, and, waiting thus, Betty turned her eyes beseechingly on her
+father, and for the first time since her talk with her mother in the
+studio, opened her lips to speak to him. She was very pale, but she
+did not tremble, and her voice had the quality of determination.
+Bertrand had yielded the point and had taken her to the jail against
+his own judgment, taking Mary with him to forestall the chance of
+Betty's seeing the young man alone. "Surely," he thought, "she will
+not ask to have her mother excluded from the interview."
+
+"I don't want any one--not even you--or--or--mother, to go in with
+me."
+
+"My child, be wise--and be guided."
+
+"Yes, father,--but I want to go in alone." She slipped her hand in her
+mother's, but still looked in her father's eyes. "I must go in alone,
+father. You don't understand--but mother does."
+
+"This young man may be an impostor. It is almost unmaidenly for you to
+wish to go in there alone. Mary--"
+
+But Mary hesitated and trusted to her daughter's intuition. "Betty,
+explain yourself," was all she said.
+
+"Suppose it was father--or you thought it might be father--and a
+terrible thing were hanging over him and you had not seen him for all
+this time--and he were in there, and I were you--wouldn't you ask to
+see him first alone? Would you stop for one moment to think about
+being proper? What do I care! If he is an impostor, I shall know it.
+In one moment I shall know it. I--I--just want to see him alone. It
+is because he has suffered so long--that is why he has come like
+this--if--they aren't accusing him wrongfully, and I--he will tell me
+the truth. If he is Richard, I would know it if I came in and stood
+beside him blindfolded. I will call you in a moment. Stand by the
+door, and let me see him alone."
+
+The jailer returned, alert and important, shaking the keys in his
+hand. "This way, please."
+
+In the moment's pause of unlocking, Betty again turned upon her
+father, her eyes glowing in the dim light of the corridor with wide,
+sorrowful gaze, large and irresistibly earnest. Bertrand glanced from
+her to his wife, who slightly nodded her head. Then he said to the
+surprised jailer: "We will wait here. My daughter may be able to
+recognize him. Call us quickly, dear, if you have reason to change
+your mind." The heavy door was closed behind her, and the key turned
+in the lock.
+
+Harry King loomed large and tall in the small room, standing with his
+back to the door and his face lifted to the small window, where he
+could see a patch of the blue sky and white, scudding clouds. For the
+moment his spirit was not in that cell. It was free and on top of a
+mountain, looking into the clear eyes of a woman who loved him. He was
+so rapt in his vision that he did not hear the grating of the key in
+the lock, and Betty stood abashed, with her back to the door, feeling
+that she was gazing on a stranger. Relieved against the square of
+light, his hair looked darker than she remembered Peter's ever to have
+been,--as dark as Richard's, but that rough, neglected beard,--also
+dark,--and the tanned skin, did not bring either young man to her
+mind.
+
+The pause was but for a moment, when he became aware that he was not
+alone and turned and saw her there.
+
+"Betty! oh, Betty! You have come to help me." He walked toward her
+slowly, hardly believing his eyes, and held out both hands.
+
+"If--I--can. Who are you?" She took his hands in hers and walked
+around him, turning his face to the light. Her breath came and went
+quickly, and a round red spot now burned on one of her cheeks, and her
+face seemed to be only two great, pathetic eyes.
+
+"Do I need to tell you, Betty? Once we thought we loved each other.
+Did we, Betty?"
+
+"I don't--don't--know--Peter! Oh, Peter! Oh, you are alive! Peter!
+Richard didn't kill you!" She did not cry out, but spoke the words
+with a low intensity that thrilled him, and then she threw her arms
+about his neck and burst into tears. "He didn't do it! You are alive!
+Peter, he didn't kill you! I knew he didn't do it. They all thought
+he did, and--and--your father--he has almost broken his bank
+just--just--hunting for Richard--to--to--have him hung--and oh!
+Peter, I have lived in horror,--for--fear he w--w--w--would, and--"
+
+"He never could, Betty. I have come home to atone. I have come home to
+give myself up. I killed Richard--my cousin--my best friend. I struck
+him in hate and saw him lying dead: all the time they were hunting him
+it was I they should have hunted. I can't understand it. Did they take
+his dead body for mine--or--how was it they did not know he was struck
+down and murdered? They must have taken his body for mine--or--he
+must have fallen over--but he didn't, for I saw him lying dead as I
+had struck him. All these years the eye of vengeance has been upon me,
+and my crime has haunted me. I have seen him lying so--dead. God!
+God!"
+
+Betty still clung to him and sobbed incoherently. "No, no, Peter, it
+was you who were drowned--they found all your things and saw where you
+had been pushed over, and--but you weren't drowned! They only thought
+it--they believed it--"
+
+He put his hand to his head as if to brush away the confusion which
+staggered him. "Yes, Richard lay dead--and they found him,--but why
+did they hunt for him? And I--I--living--why didn't they hunt me,--and
+he, dead and lying there--why did they hunt him? But my father would
+believe the worst of him rather than to see himself disgraced in his
+son. Don't cry, little Betty, don't cry. You've had too much to bear.
+Sit here beside me and I'll tell you all about it. That's why I came
+back."
+
+"B--b--ut if you weren't drowned, why--why didn't you come home and
+say so? Didn't you ever see the papers and how they were hunting
+Richard all over the world? I knew you were dead, because I knew you
+never would be so cruel as to leave every one in doubt and your father
+in sorrow--just because he had quarreled with you. It might have
+killed your mother--if the Elder had let her know."
+
+"I can't tell you all my reasons, Betty; mostly they were coward's
+reasons. I did my best to leave evidence that I had been pushed over
+the bluff, because it seemed the only way to hide myself. I did my
+best to make them think me dead, and never thought any one could be
+harmed by it, because I knew him to be dead; so I just thought we
+would both be dead so far as the world would know,--and as for you,
+dear,--I learned on that fatal night that you did not love me--and
+that was another coward's reason why I wished to be dead to you all."
+He began pacing the room, and Betty sat on the edge of the narrow jail
+bedstead and watched him with tearful eyes. "It was true, Betty? You
+did not really love me?"
+
+"Peter! Didn't you ever see the papers? Didn't you ever know all about
+the search for you and how he disappeared, too? Oh, Peter! And it was
+supposed he killed you and pushed you over the bluff and then ran
+away. Oh, Peter! But it was kept out of the home paper by the Elder so
+your mother should not know--and Peter--didn't you know Richard
+lived?"
+
+"Lived? lived?" He lifted his clasped hands above his head, and they
+trembled. "Lived? Betty, say it again!"
+
+"Yes, Peter. I saw him and I know--"
+
+"Oh, God, make me know it. Make me understand." He fell on his knees
+beside her and hid his face in the scant jail bedding, and his frame
+shook with dry sobs. "I was a coward. I told you that. I--I thought
+myself a murderer, and all this time my terrible thought has driven
+me--Lived? I never killed him? God! Betty, say it again."
+
+Betty sat still for a moment, shaken at first with a feeling of
+resentment that he had made them all suffer so, and Richard most of
+all. Then she was overwhelmed with pity for him, and with a glad
+tenderness. It was all over. The sorrow had been real, but it had all
+been needless. She placed her hand on his head, then knelt beside him
+and put her arm about his neck and drew his head to her bosom,
+motherwise, for the deep mother heart in her was awakened, and thus
+she told him all the story, and how Richard had come to her, broken
+and repentant, and what had been said between them. When they rose
+from their knees, it was as if they had been praying and at the same
+time giving thanks.
+
+"And you thought they would find him lying there dead and know you had
+killed him and hunt you down for a murderer?"
+
+"Yes."
+
+"Poor Peter! So you pushed that great stone out of the edge of the
+bluff into the river to make them think you had fallen over and
+drowned--and threw your things down, too, to make it seem as if you
+both were dead."
+
+"Yes."
+
+"Oh, Peter! What a terrible mistake! How you must have suffered!"
+
+"Yes, as cowards suffer."
+
+They stood for a moment with clasped hands, looking into each other's
+eyes. "Then it was true what Richard told me? You did not love me,
+Betty?" He had grown calmer, and he spoke very tenderly. "We must have
+all the truth now and conceal nothing."
+
+"Not quite--true. I--I--thought I did. You were so handsome! I was
+only a child then--and I thought I loved you--or that I ought to--for
+any girl would--I was so romantic in those days--and you had been
+wounded--and it was like a romance--"
+
+"And then?"
+
+"And then Richard came, and I knew in one instant that I had done
+wrong--and that I loved him--and oh, I felt myself so wicked."
+
+"No, Betty, dear. It was all--"
+
+"It was not fair to you. I would have been true to you, Peter; you
+would have never known--but after Richard came and told me he had
+killed you,--I felt as if I had killed you, too. I did like you,
+Peter. I did! I will do whatever is right."
+
+"Then it was not in vain--that we have all suffered. We have been
+saved from doing each other wrong. Everything will come right now. All
+that is needed is for father to hear what you have told me, and he
+will come and take me out of here--Where is Richard?"
+
+"No one knows."
+
+"Not even you, Betty?"
+
+"No; he has dropped out of the world as completely as you did."
+
+"Well, it will be all right, anyway. Father will withdraw his charge
+and--did you say his bank was going to pieces? He must have help. I
+can help him. You can help him, Betty."
+
+"How?"
+
+Then Peter told Betty how he had found Richard's father in his
+mountain retreat and that she must write to him. "If there is any
+danger of the bank's going, write for me to Larry Kildene. Father
+never would appeal to him if he lost everything in the world, so we
+must do it. As soon as I am out of here we can save him." Already he
+felt himself a new man, and spoke hopefully and cheerfully. He little
+knew the struggle still before him.
+
+"Peter, father and mother are out there in the corridor waiting. I
+was to call them. I made them let me come in alone."
+
+"Oh, call them, call them!"
+
+"I don't think they will know you as I did, with that great beard on
+your face. We'll see."
+
+When Bertrand and Mary entered, they stood for a moment aghast, seeing
+little likeness to either of the young men in the developed and
+bronzed specimen of manhood before them. But they greeted him warmly,
+eager to find him Peter, and in their manner he missed nothing of
+their old-time kindliness.
+
+"You are greatly changed, Peter Junior. You look more like Richard
+Kildene than you ever did before in your life," said Mary.
+
+"Yes, but when we see Richard, we may find that a change has taken
+place in him also, and they will stand in their own shoes hereafter."
+
+"Since the burden has been lifted from my soul and I know that he lives,
+I could sing and shout aloud here in this cell. Imprisonment--even
+death--means nothing to me now. All will come right before we know it."
+
+"That is just the way Richard would act and speak. No wonder you have
+been taken for him!" said Bertrand.
+
+"Yes, he was always more buoyant than I. Maybe we have both changed,
+but I hope he has not. I loved my friend."
+
+As they walked home together Mary Ballard said, "Now, Peter ought to
+be released right away."
+
+"Certainly he will be as soon as the Elder realizes the truth."
+
+"How he has changed, though! His face shows the mark of sorrow. Those
+drooping, sensitive lines about his mouth--they were never there
+before, and they are the lines of suffering. They touched my heart. I
+wish Hester were at home. She ought to be written to. I'll do it as
+soon as I get home."
+
+"Peter is handsomer than he was, in spite of the lines, and, as you
+say, he does look more like his cousin than he used to--because of
+them, I think. Richard always had a debonair way with him, but he had
+that little, sensitive droop to the lips--not so marked as Peter's is
+now--but you remember, Mary--like his mother's."
+
+"Oh, mother, don't you think Richard could be found?" Betty's voice
+trailed sorrowfully over the words. She was thinking how he had
+suffered all this time, and wishing her heart could reach out to him
+and call him back to her.
+
+"He must be, dear, if he lives."
+
+"Oh, yes. He'll be found. It can be published that Peter Junior has
+returned, and that will bring him after a while. Peter's physique
+seems to have changed as well as his face. Did you notice that
+backward swing of the shoulders, so like his cousin's, when he said,
+'I could sing and shout here in this cell'? And the way he lifted his
+head and smiled? That beard is a horrible disguise. I must send a
+barber to him. He must be himself again."
+
+"Oh, yes, do. He stands so straight and steps so easily. His lameness
+seems to have quite gone," said Mary, joyously,--but at that, Bertrand
+paused in his walk and looked at her, then glancing at Betty walking
+slowly on before, he laid his finger to his lips and took his wife's
+arm, and they said no more until they reached home and Betty was in
+her room.
+
+"I simply can't think it, Bertrand. I see Peter in him. It is Peter.
+Of course he's like Richard. They were always alike, and that makes
+him all the more Peter. No other man would have that likeness, and it
+goes to show that he is Peter."
+
+"My dear, unless the Elder sees him as we see him, the thing will have
+to be tried out in the courts."
+
+"Unless we can find Richard. Hester ought to be here. She could set
+them right in a moment. Trust a mother to know her own boy. I'll write
+her immediately. I'll--"
+
+"But you have no authority, Mary."
+
+"No authority? She is my friend. I have a right to do my duty by her,
+and I can so put it that it will not be such a shock to her as it
+inevitably will be if matters go wrong, or Peter should be kept in
+prison for lack of evidence--or for too much evidence. She'll have to
+know sooner or later."
+
+Bertrand said no more against this, for was not Mary often quite
+right? "I'll see to it that he has a barber, and try to persuade the
+Elder to see him. That may settle it without any trouble. If not, I
+must see that he has a good lawyer to help in his defense."
+
+"If that savage old man remains stubborn, Hester must be here."
+
+"If the thing goes to a trial, Betty will have to appear against
+him."
+
+"Well, it mustn't go to a trial, that's all."
+
+That night two letters went out from Leauvite, one to Hester Craigmile
+at Aberdeen, Scotland, and one to the other end of the earth, where
+Larry Kildene waited for news of Harry King, there on the mountain
+top. On the first of each month Larry rode down to the nearest point
+where letters could be sent, making a three days' trip on horseback.
+His first trip brought nothing, because Harry had not sent his first
+letter in time to reach the station before Larry was well on his way
+back up the mountain. He would not delay his return, for fear of
+leaving the two women too long alone.
+
+After Harry's departure, Madam Manovska had grown restless, and once
+had wandered so far away as to cause them great alarm and a long
+search, when she was found, sitting close to the fall, apparently too
+weak and too dazed to move. This had so awakened Amalia's fears that
+she never allowed her mother to leave the cabin alone, but always on
+one pretext or another accompanied her.
+
+The situation was a difficult one for them all. If Amalia took her
+mother away to some town, as she wished to do, she feared for Madam
+Manovska's sanity when she could not find her husband. And still, when
+she tried to tell her mother of her father's death, she could not
+convince her of its truth. For a while she would seem to understand
+and believe it, but after a night's rest she would go back to the old
+weary repetition of going to her husband and his need of her. Then it
+was all to go over again, day after day, until at last Amalia gave up,
+and allowed her mother the comfort of her belief: but all the more she
+had to invent pretexts for keeping her on the mountain. So she
+accepted Larry's kindly advice and his earnestly offered hospitality
+and his comforting companionship, and remained, as, perforce, there
+was nothing else for her to do.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXXIII
+
+HESTER CRAIGMILE RECEIVES HER LETTER
+
+
+The letters reached their opposite destinations at about the same
+time. The one to Amalia closely buttoned in Larry's pocket, and the
+short one to himself which he read and reread as his horse slowly
+climbed the trail, were halfway up the mountain when the postboy
+delivered Hester Craigmile's at the door of the sedate brick house
+belonging to the Craigmiles of Aberdeen.
+
+Peter Junior's mother and two elderly women--his grandaunts--were
+seated in the dignified parlor, taking afternoon tea, when the
+housemaid brought Hester her letter.
+
+"Is it from Peter, maybe?" asked the elder of the two aunts.
+
+"No, Aunt Ellen; I think it is from a friend."
+
+"It's strange now, that Peter's no written before this," said the
+younger, leaning forward eagerly. "Will ye read it, dear? We'll be
+wantin' to know if there's ae word about him intil't."
+
+"There may be, Aunt Jean." Hester set her cup of tea down untasted,
+and began to open her letter.
+
+"But tak' yer tea first, Hester. Jean's an impatient body. That's too
+bad of ye, Jean; her toast's gettin' cold."
+
+"Oh, that's no matter at all, Aunt Ellen. I'll take it as soon as I
+see if he's home all right. Yes, my friend says my husband has been
+home for three days and is well."
+
+"That's good. Noo ye're satisfied, lay it by and tak' yer tea." And
+Hester smilingly laid it by and took her tea, for Mary Ballard had
+said nothing on the first page to startle her friend's serenity.
+
+Jean Craigmile, however, still looked eagerly at the letter as it lay
+on a chair at Hester's side. She was a sweet-faced old lady, alert,
+and as young as Peter Junior's father, for all she was his aunt, and
+now she apologized for her eagerness by saying, as she often did: "Ye
+mind he's mair like my brither than my nephew, for we all used to play
+together--Peter, Katherine, and me. We were aye friends. She was like
+a sister, and he like a brither. Ah, weel, we're auld noo."
+
+Her sister looked at her fondly. "Ye're no so auld, Jean, but ye might
+be aulder. It's like I might have been the mither of her, for I mind
+the time when she was laid in my arms and my feyther tell't me I was
+to aye care for her like my ain, an' but for her I would na' be livin'
+noo."
+
+"And why for no?" asked Jean, quickly.
+
+"I had ye to care for, child. Do ye no' understand?"
+
+Jean laughed merrily. "She's been callin' me child for saxty-five
+years," she said.
+
+Both the old ladies wore lace caps, but that of Jean's was a little
+braver with ribbons than Ellen's. Small lavender bows were set in the
+frill all about her face, and the long ends of the ribbon were not
+tied, but fell down on the soft white mull handkerchief that crossed
+over her bosom.
+
+"I mind when Peter married ye, Hester," said Ellen. "I was fair wild
+to have him bring ye here on his weddin' journey, and he should have
+done so, for we'd not seen him since he was a lad, and all these years
+I've been waitin' to see ye."
+
+"Weel, 'twas good of him to leave ye bide with us a bit, an' go home
+without ye," said Jean.
+
+"It was good of him, but I ought not to have allowed it." Hester's
+eyes glistened and her face grew tender and soft. To the world,
+the Elder might seem harsh, stubborn, and vindictive, but Hester knew
+the tenderness in which none but she believed. Ever since the
+disappearance of their son, he had been gentle and most lovingly
+watchful of her, and his domination had risen from the old critical
+restraint on her thoughts and actions to a solicitous care for her
+comfort,--studying her slightest wishes with almost appealing
+thoughtfulness to gratify them.
+
+"And why for no allow it? There's naething so good for a man as
+lettin' him be kind to ye, even if he is an Elder in the kirk. I'm
+thinkin' Peter's ain o' them that such as that is good for--Hester!
+What ails ye! Are oot of ye're mind? Gi'e her a drap of whuskey, Jean.
+Hester!"
+
+While they were chatting and sipping their tea, Hester had quietly
+resumed the reading of her letter, and now she sat staring straight
+before her, the pages crushed in her hand, leaning forward, pale, with
+her eyes fixed on space as if they looked on some awful sight.
+
+"Hester! Hester! What is it? Is there a bit o' bad news for ye' in the
+letter? Here, tak' a sip o' this, dear. Tak' it, Hester; 'twill
+hairten ye up for whatever's intil't," cried Jean, holding to Hester's
+lips the ever ready Scotch remedy, which she had snatched from a wall
+cupboard behind her and poured out in a glass.
+
+Ellen, who was lame and could not rise from her chair without help,
+did not cease her directions and ejaculations, lapsing into the
+broader Scotch of her girlhood under excitement, as was the way with
+both the women. "Tell us what ails ye, dear; maybe it's no so bad. Gie
+me the letter, Jean, an' I'll see what's intil't. Ring the bell for
+Tillie an' we'll get her to the couch."
+
+But Hester caught Jean's gown and would not let her go to the bell
+cord which hung in the far corner of the room. "No, don't call her.
+I'll lie down a moment, and--and--we'll talk--this--over." She clung
+to the letter and would not let it out of her hand, but rose and
+walked wearily to the couch unassisted and lay down, closing her eyes.
+"After a minute, Aunt Ellen, I'll tell you. I must think, I must
+think." So she lay quietly, gathering all her force to consider and
+meet what she must, as her way was, while Jean sat beside, stroking
+her hand and saying sweet, comforting words in her broad Scotch.
+
+"There's neathin' so guid as a drap of whuskey, dear, for strengthnin'
+the hairt whan ye hae a bit shock. It's no yer mon, Peter? No? Weel,
+thank the Lord for that. Noo, tak ye anither bit sup, for ye ha'e na
+tasted it. Wull ye no gie Ellen the letter, love? 'Twill save ye
+tellin' her."
+
+Hester passively took the whisky as she was bid, and presently sat up
+and finished reading the letter. "Peter has been hiding--something
+from me for--three years--and now--"
+
+"Yes, an' noo. It's aye the way wi' them that hides--whan the day
+comes they maun reveal--it's only the mair to their shame," exclaimed
+Ellen.
+
+"Oh, but it's all mixed up--and my best friend doesn't know the
+truth. Yes, take the letter, Aunt Ellen, and read it yourself." She
+held out the pages with a shaking hand, and Jean took them over to her
+sister, who slowly read them in silence.
+
+"Ah, noo. As I tell't ye, it's no so bad," she said at last.
+
+"Wha's the trouble, Ellen? Don't keep us waitin'."
+
+"Bide ye in patience, child. Ye're always so easily excitet. I maun
+read the letter again to get the gist o't, but it's like this. The
+Elder's been of the opeenion noo these three years that his son was
+most foully murder't, an--"
+
+"He may ha'e been kill't, but he was no' murder't," cried Jean,
+excitedly. "I tell ye 'twas purely by accident--" she paused and
+suddenly clapped both hands over her mouth and rocked herself back and
+forth as if she had made some egregious blunder, then: "Gang on wi'
+yer tellin'. It's dour to bide waitin'. Gie me the letter an' lat me
+read it for mysel'."
+
+"Lat me tell't as I maun tell't. Ye maun no keep interruptin'. Jean
+has no order in her brain. She aye pits the last first an' the first
+last. This is a hopefu' letter an' a guid ain from yer friend, an' it
+tells ye yer son's leevin' an' no murder't--"
+
+"Thank the Lord! I ha'e aye said it," ejaculated Jean, fervently.
+
+"Ye ha'e aye said it? Child, what mean ye? Ye ha'e kenned naethin'
+aboot it."
+
+But Jean would not be set down. She leaned forward with glistening
+eyes. "I ha'e aye said it. I ha'e aye said it. Gie me the letter,
+Ellen."
+
+But Ellen only turned composedly and resumed her interpretation of
+the letter to Hester, who sat looking with dazed expression from one
+aunt to the other.
+
+"It all comes about from Peter's bein' a stubborn man, an' he'll no
+change the opeenion he's held for three years wi'oot a struggle. Here
+comes his boy back an' says, 'I'm Peter Junior, and yer son.' An' his
+feyther says till him, 'Ye're no my son, for my son was murder't--an'
+ye're Richard Kildene wha' murder't him.' And noo, it's for ye to go
+home, Hester, an' bring Peter to his senses, and show him the truth. A
+mither knows her ain boy, an' if it's Peter Junior, it's Peter Junior,
+and Richard Kildene's died."
+
+"I tell ye he's no dead!" cried Jean, springing to her feet.
+
+"Hush, child. He maun be dead, for ain of them's dead, and this is
+Peter Junior."
+
+"Read it again, Aunt Ellen," said Hester, wearily. "You'll see that
+the Elder brings a fearful charge against Richard. He thinks Richard
+is making a false claim that he is--Peter--my boy."
+
+Jean sat back in her chair crying silently and shrinking into herself
+as if she were afraid to say more, and Ellen went on. "Listen, now,
+what yer frien' says. 'The Elder is wrong, for Bertrand'--that's her
+husband, I'm thinkin'--?"
+
+"Yes."
+
+"'Bertrand and Betty,--' Who's Betty, noo?"
+
+"Betty is their daughter. She was to--have--married my son."
+
+"Good. So she would know her lover. 'Betty and I have seen him,' she
+says, 'and have talked with him, and we know he is Peter Junior,' she
+says. 'Richard Kildene has disappeared,' she says, 'and yet we know
+he is living somewhere and he must be found. We fear the Elder will
+not withdraw the charge until Richard is located'--An' that will be
+like Peter, too--'and meanwhile your son Peter will have to lie in
+jail, where he is now, unless you can clear matters up here by coming
+home and identifying him, and that you can surely do.'--An' that's all
+vera weel. There's neathin' to go distraught over in the like o' that.
+An' here she says, 'He's a noble, fine-looking man, and you'll be
+proud of him when you see him.' Oh, 'tis a fine letter, an' it's Peter
+wi' his stubbornness has been makin' a boggle o' things. If I were na
+lame, I'd go back wi' ye an' gie Peter a piece o' my mind."
+
+"An' I'll locate Richard for ye!" cried Jean, rising to her feet and
+wiping away the fast-falling tears, laughing and weeping all in the
+same moment. "Whish't, Ellen, it's ye'rsel' that kens neathin' aboot
+it, an' I'll tell ye the truth the noo--that I've kept to mysel' this
+lang time till my conscience has nigh whupped me intil my grave."
+
+"Tak' a drap o' whuskey, Jean, ye're flyin' oot o' yer heid. It's the
+hystiricks she's takin'."
+
+"Ah, no! What is it, Aunt Jean? What is it?" cried Hester, eagerly,
+drawing her to the seat by her side again.
+
+"It's no the hystiricks," cried Jean, rocking back and forth and
+patting her hands on her knees and speaking between laughing and
+crying. "It's the truth at last, that I've been lyin' aboot these
+three lang years, thank the Lord!"
+
+"Jean, is it thankin' the Lord ye are, for lyin'?"
+
+"Ellen, ye mind whan ye broke ye'r leg an' lay in the south chamber
+that lang sax months?"
+
+"Aye, weel do I mind it."
+
+"Lat be wi' ye're interruptin' while I tell't. He came here."
+
+"Who came here?"
+
+"Richard--the poor lad! He tell't me all aboot it. How he had a mad
+anger on him, an' kill't his cousin Peter Junior whan they'd been like
+brithers all their lives, an' hoo he pushed him over the brink o' a
+gre't precipice to his death, an' hoo he must forever flee fra' the
+law an' his uncle's wrath. Noo it's--"
+
+"Oh, Aunt Jean!" cried Hester, despairingly. "Don't you see that what
+you say only goes to prove my husband right? Yet how could he claim to
+be Peter--it--it's not like the boy. Richard never, never would--"
+
+"He may ha' been oot o' his heid thinkin' he pushed him over the
+brink. I ha'e na much opeenion o' the judgment o' a man ony way. They
+never know whan to be set, an' whan to gie in. Think shame to yersel',
+Jean, to be hidin' things fra me the like o' that an' then lyin' to
+me."
+
+"He was repentit, Ellen. Ye can na' tak the power o' the Lord in yer
+ain han's an' gie a man up to the law whan he's repentit. If ye'd seen
+him an' heard the words o' him and seen him greet, ye would ha' hid
+him in yer hairt an' covered wi' the mantle o' charity, as I did.
+Moreover, I saved ye from dour lyin' yersel'. Ye mind whan that man
+that Peter sent here to find Richard came, hoo ye said till him that
+Richard had never been here? Ye never knew why for that man wanted
+Richard, but I knew an' I never tell't ye. An' if ye had known what I
+knew, ye never could ha' tell't him what ye did so roundly an' sent
+him aboot his business wi' a straight face."
+
+"An' noo whaur is Richard?"
+
+"He's awa' in Paris pentin' pictures. He went there to learn to be a
+penter."
+
+"An' whaur gat he the money to go wi'? There's whaur the new black
+silk dress went ye should ha' bought yersel' that year. Ye lat me
+think it went to the doctor. Child! Child!"
+
+"Yes, sister; I lee'd to ye. It's been a heavy sin on my soul an' ye
+may well thank the Lord it's no been on yer ain. But hark ye noo. It's
+all come back to me. Here's the twenty pun' I gave him. It's come back
+wi' interest." Proudly Jean drew from her bosom an envelope containing
+forty pounds in bank notes. "Look ye, hoo he's doubl't it?" Again she
+laughed through her tears.
+
+"And you know where he is--and can find him?"
+
+"Yes, Hester, dear, I know. He took a new name. It was Robert Kater he
+called himsel'. So, there he's been pentin' pictures. Go, Hester, an'
+find yer son, an' I'll find Richard. Ellen, ye'll have to do wi'
+Tillie for a week an' a bit,--I'm going to Paris to find Richard."
+
+"Ye'll do nae sic' thing. Ye'll find him by post."
+
+"I'll trust to nae letter the noo, Ellen. Letters aften gang astray,
+but I'll no gang astray."
+
+"Oh, child, child! It's a sorrowful thing I'm lame an' can na' gang
+wi' ye. What are ye doin', Hester?"
+
+"I'm hunting for the newspaper. Don't they put the railroad
+time-tables in the paper over here, or must I go to the station to
+inquire about trains?"
+
+"Ye'd better ask at the station. I'll go wi' ye. Ye might boggle it by
+yersel'. Ring for Tillie, Jean. She can help me oot o' my chair an'
+get me dressed, while ye're lookin' after yer ain packin', Jean."
+
+So the masterful old lady immediately began to superintend the
+hasty departure of both Hester and Jean. The whole procedure was
+unprecedented and wholly out of the normal course of things, but if
+duty called, they must go, whether she liked the thought of their
+going or not. So she sent Tillie to call a cab, and contented
+herself with bewailing the stubbornness of Peter, her nephew.
+
+"It was aye so, whan he was a lad playin' wi' Jean an' Katherine,
+whiles whan his feyther lat his mither bring Katherine and him back to
+Scotland on a veesit. Jean and Katherine maun gie in til him if they
+liket it or no. I've watched them mony's the time, when he would haud
+them up in their play by the hour together, arguyin' which should be
+horse an' which should be driver, an' it was always Peter that won his
+way wi' them. Is the cab there, Tillie? Then gie me my crutch. Hester,
+are you ready? Jean, I'll find oot for ye all aboot the trains for
+Dover. Ye maun gang direc' an' no loiter by the way. Come, Hester. I
+doot she ought not to be goin' aboot alone. Paris is an' awfu' like
+place for a woman body to be goin' aboot alone. But it canna' be
+helpit. What's an old woman like me wi' only one sound leg and a pair
+o' crutches, to go on sic' like a journey?"
+
+"If I could, I'd take you home with me, Aunt Ellen; if I were only
+sure of the outcome of this trouble, I would anyway--but to take you
+there to a home of sorrow--"
+
+"There, Hester, dear. Don't ye greet. It's my opeenion ye're goin' to
+find yer son an' tak him in yer arms ance mair. Ye were never the
+right wife for Peter. I can see that. Ye're too saft an' gentle."
+
+"I'm thinking how Peter has borne this trouble alone, all these
+years, and suffered, trying to keep the sorrow from me."
+
+"Yes, dear, yes. Peter told us all aboot it whan he was here, an' he
+bade us not to lat ye ken a word aboot it, but to keep from ye all
+knowledge of it. Noo it's come to ye by way of this letter fra yer
+frien', an' I'm thinkin' it's the best way; for noo, at last ye ha'e
+it in ye're power to go an' maybe save an innocent man, for it's no
+like a son of our Katherine would be sic' like a base coward as to try
+to win oot from justice by lyin' himsel' intil his victim's own home.
+I'll no think it."
+
+"Nor I, Aunt Ellen. It's unbelievable! And of Richard--no. I loved
+Richard. He was like my own son to me--and Peter Junior loved him,
+too. They may have quarreled--and even he might--in a moment of anger,
+he might have killed my boy,--but surely he would never do a thing
+like this. They are making some horrible mistake, or Mary Ballard
+would never have written me."
+
+"Noo ye're talkin' sense. Keep up courage an' never tak an' affliction
+upo' yersel' until it's thrust upo' ye by Providence."
+
+Thus good Aunt Ellen in her neat black bonnet and shawl and black
+mits, seated at Hester's side in the cab holding to her crutches,
+comforted and admonished her niece all the way to the station and
+back, and the next day she bravely bade Jean and Hester both good-by
+and settled herself in her armchair to wait patiently for news from
+them.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXXIV
+
+JEAN CRAIGMILE'S RETURN
+
+
+When at last Jean Craigmile returned, a glance at her face was quite
+enough to convince Ellen that things had not gone well. She held her
+peace, however, until her sister had had time to remove her bonnet and
+her shawl and dress herself for the house, before she broke in upon
+Jean's grim silence. Then she said:--
+
+"Weel, Jean. I'm thinkin' ye'd better oot wi' it."
+
+"Is Tillie no goin' to bring in the tea? It's past the hour. I see she
+grows slack, wantin' me to look after her."
+
+"Ring for it then, Jean. I'm no for leavin' my chair to ring for it."
+So Jean pulled the cord and the tea was brought in due time, with hot
+scones and the unwonted addition of a bowl of roses to grace the
+tray.
+
+"The posies are a greetin' to ye, Jean; I ordered them mysel'. Weel?
+An' so ye ha'na' found him?"
+
+"Oh, sister, my hairt's heavy an' sair. I canna' thole to tell ye."
+
+"But ye maun do't, an' the sooner ye tell't the sooner ye'll ha'e it
+over."
+
+"He was na' there. Oh, Ellen, Ellen! He'd gone to America! I'm afraid
+the Elder is right an' Hester has gone home to get her death blow. Why
+were we so precipitate in lettin' her go?"
+
+"Jean, tell me all aboot it, an' I'll pit my mind to it and help ye
+think it oot. Don't ye leave oot a thing fra' the time ye left me till
+the noo."
+
+Slowly Jean poured her sister's tea and handed it to her. "Tak' yer
+scones while they're hot, Ellen. I went to the place whaur he'd been
+leevin'. I had the direction all right, but whan I called, I found
+anither man in possession. The man was an Englishman, so I got on vera
+weel for the speakin'. It's little I could do with they Frenchmen. He
+was a dirty like man, an' he was daubin' away at a picture whan I
+opened the door an' walked in. I said to him, 'Whaur's Richard'--no,
+no, no. I said to him, calling Richard by the name he's been goin' by,
+I said, 'Whaur's Robert Kater?' He jumped up an' began figitin' aboot
+the room, settin' me a chair an' the like, an' I asked again, 'Is this
+the pentin' room o' Robert Kater?' an' he said, 'It was his room,
+yes.' Then he asked me was I any kin to him, an' I told him, did he
+think I would come walkin' into his place the like o' that if I was no
+kin to him? An' then he began tellin' me a string o' talk an' I could
+na' mak' head nor tail o't, so I asked again, 'If ye're a friend o'
+his, wull ye tell me whaur he's gone?' an' then he said it straight
+oot, 'To Ameriky,' an' it fair broke my hairt."
+
+For a minute Jean sat and sipped her tea, and wiped the tears from her
+eyes; then she took up the thread of her story again.
+
+"Then he seemed all at once to bethink himsel' o' something, an' he
+ran to his coat that was hangin' behind the door on a nail, an' he
+drew oot a letter fra the pocket, an' here it is.
+
+"'Are ye Robert's Aunt Jean?' he asked, and I tell't him, an',
+'Surely,' he said, 'an' I did na' think ye old enough to be his Aunt
+Jean.' Then he began to excuse himsel' for forgettin' to mail that
+letter. 'I promised him I would,' he said, 'but ye see, I have na'
+been wearin' my best coat since he left, an' that's why. We gave him a
+banket,' he says, 'an' I wore my best coat to the banket, an' he gave
+me this an' told me to mail it after he was well away,' an' he says,
+'I knew I ought not to put it in this coat pocket, for I'd forget
+it,'--an' so he ran on; but it was no so good a coat, for the lining
+was a' torn an' it was gray wi' dust, for I took it an' brushed it an'
+mended it mysel' before I left Paris."
+
+Again Jean paused, and taking out her neatly folded handkerchief wiped
+away the falling tears, and sipped a moment at her tea in silence.
+
+"Tak' ye a bit o' the scones, Jean. Ye'll no help matters by goin'
+wi'oot eatin'. If the lad's done a shamefu' like thing, ye'll no help
+him by greetin'. He maun fall. Ye've done yer best I doot, although
+mistakenly to try to keep it fra me."
+
+"He was sae bonny, Ellen, and that like his mither 'twould melt the
+hairt oot o' ye to look on him."
+
+"Ha'e ye no mair to tell me? Surely it never took ye these ten days to
+find oot what ye ha'e tell't."
+
+"The man was a kind sort o' a body, an' he took me oot to eat wi' him
+at a cafy, an' he paid it himsel', but I'm thinkin' his purse was sair
+empty whan he got through wi' it. I could na' help it. Men are vera
+masterfu' bodies. I made it up to him though, for I bided a day or twa
+at the hotel, an' went to the room,--the pentin' room whaur I found
+him--there was whaur he stayed, for he was keepin' things as they
+were, he said, for the one who was to come into they things--Robert
+Kater had left there--ye'll find oot aboot them whan ye read the
+letter--an' I made it as clean as ye'r han' before I left him. He made
+a dour face whan he came in an' found me at it, but I'm thinkin' he
+came to like it after a', for I heard him whustlin' to himsel' as I
+went down the stair after tellin' him good-by.
+
+"Gin ye had seen the dirt I took oot o' that room, Ellen, ye would a'
+held up ye'r two han's in horror. There were crusts an' bones behind
+the pictures standin' against the wa' that the rats an' mice had been
+gnawin' there, an' there were bottles on a shelf, old an' empty an'
+covered wi' cobwebs an' dust, an' the floor was so thick wi' dirt it
+had to be scrapit, an' what wi' old papers an' rags I had a great
+basket full taken awa--let be a bundle o' shirts that needed mendin'.
+I took the shirts to the hotel, an' there I mended them until they
+were guid enough to wear, an' sent them back. So there was as guid as
+the price o' the denner he gave me, an' naethin said. Noo read the
+letter an' ye'll see why I'm greetin'. Richard's gone to Ameriky to
+perjure his soul. He says it was to gie himsel' up to the law, but
+from the letter to Hester it's likely his courage failed him. There's
+naethin' to mak' o't but that--an' he sae bonny an' sweet, like his
+mither."
+
+Jean Craigmile threw her apron over her head and rocked herself back
+and forth, while Ellen set down her cup and reluctantly opened the
+letter--many pages, in a long business envelope. She sighed as she
+took them out.
+
+"It's a waefu' thing how much trouble an' sorrow a man body brings
+intil the world wi' him. Noo there's Richard, trailin' sorrow after
+him whaurever he goes."
+
+"But ye mind it came from Katherine first, marryin' wi' Larry Kildene
+an' rinnin' awa' wi' him," replied Jean.
+
+"It was Larry huntit her oot whaur she had been brought for safety."
+
+They both sat in silence while Ellen read the letter to the very end.
+At last, with a long, indrawn sigh, she spoke.
+
+"It's no like a lad that could write sic a letter, to perjure his
+soul. No won'er ye greet, Jean. He's gi'en ye everything he possesses,
+wi' one o' the twa pictures in the Salon! Think o't! An' a' he got
+fra' the ones he sold, except enough to take him to America. Ye canna'
+tak' it."
+
+"No. I ha'e gi'en them to the Englishman wha' has his room. I could
+na' tak them." Jean continued to sway back and forth with her apron
+over her head.
+
+"Ye ha'e gi'en them awa'! All they pictures pented by yer ain niece's
+son! An' twa' acceptit by the Salon! Child, child! I'd no think it o'
+ye." Ellen leaned forward in her chair reprovingly, with the letter
+crushed in her lap.
+
+"I told him to keep them safe, as he was doin', an' if he got no word
+fra' me after sax months,--he was to bide in the room wi' them--they
+were his."
+
+"Weel, ye're wiser than I thought ye."
+
+For a long time they sat in silence, until at last Ellen took up the
+letter to read it again, and began with the date at the head.
+
+"Jean," she cried, holding it out to her sister and pointing to the
+date with shaking finger. "Wull ye look at that noo! Are we both daft?
+It's no possible for him to ha' gotten there before that letter was
+written to Hester. Look ye, Jean! Look ye! Here 'tis the third day o'
+June it was written by his own hand."
+
+"Count it oot, Ellen, count it oot! Here's the calendar almanac. Noo
+we'll ha'e it. It's twa weeks since Hester an' I left an' she got the
+letter the day before that, an' that's fifteen days--"
+
+"An' it takes twa weeks mair for a boat to cross the ocean, an' that
+gives fourteen days mair before that letter to Hester was written, an'
+three days fra' Liverpool here, pits it back to seventeen days,--an'
+fifteen days--mak's thirty-two days,--an' here' it's nearin' the last
+o' June--"
+
+"Jean! Whan Hester's frien' was writin' that letter to Hester, Richard
+was just sailin' fra France! Thank the Lord!"
+
+"Thank the Lord!" ejaculated her sister, fervently. "Ellen, it's you
+for havin' the head to think it oot, thank the Lord!" And now the dear
+soul wept again for very gladness.
+
+Ellen folded her hands in her lap complaisantly and nodded her head.
+"Ye've a good head, yersel', Jean, but ye aye let yersel' get excitet.
+Noo, it's only for us to bide in peace an' quiet an' know that the
+earth is the Lord's an' the fullness thereof until we hear fra'
+Hester."
+
+"An' may the Lord pit it in her hairt to write soon!"
+
+While the good Craigmiles of Aberdeen were composing themselves to the
+hopeful view that Ellen's discovery of the date had given them, Larry
+Kildene and Amalia were seated in a car, luxurious for that day,
+speeding eastward over the desert across which Amalia and her father
+and mother had fled in fear and privation so short a time before. She
+gazed through the plate-glass windows and watched the quivering heat
+waves rising from the burning sands. Well she knew those terrible
+plains! She saw the bleaching bones of animals that had fallen by the
+way, even as their own had fallen, and her eyes filled. She remembered
+how Harry King had come to them one day, riding on his yellow
+horse--riding out of the setting sun toward them, and how his
+companionship had comforted them and his courage and help had saved
+them more than once,--and how, had it not been for him, their bones,
+too, might be lying there now, whitening in the heat. Oh, Harry, Harry
+King! She who had once crossed those very plains behind a jaded team
+now felt that the rushing train was crawling like a snail.
+
+Larry Kildene, seated facing her and watching her, leaned forward and
+touched her hand. "We're going at an awful pace," he said. "To think
+of ever crossing these plains with the speed of the wind!"
+
+She smiled a wan smile. "Yes, that is so. But it still is very slowly
+we go when I measure with my thoughts the swiftness. In my thoughts we
+should fly--fly!"
+
+"It will be only three days to Chicago from here, and then one night
+at a hotel to rest and clean up, and the next day we are there--in
+Leauvite--think of it! We're an hour late by the schedule, so better
+think of something else. We'll reach an eating station soon. Get
+ready, for there will be a rush, and we'll not have a chance for a
+good meal again for no one knows how long. Maybe you're not hungry,
+but I could eat a mule. I like this, do you know, traveling in
+comfort! To think of me--going home to save Peter's bank!" He chuckled
+to himself a moment; then resumed: "And that's equivalent to saving
+the man's life. Well, it's a poor way for a man to go through life,
+able to see no way but his own way. It narrows his vision and shortens
+his reach--for, see, let him find his way closed to him, and whoop!
+he's at an end."
+
+Again Larry sat and watched her, as he silently chuckled over his
+present situation. Again he reached out and patted her hand, and again
+she smiled at him, but he knew where her thoughts were. Harry King had
+been gone but a short time when Madam Manovska, in spite of Amalia's
+watchfulness, wandered away for the last time. On this occasion she
+did not go toward the fall, but went along the trail toward the plains
+below. It was nearly evening when she eluded Amalia and left the
+cabin. Frantically they searched for her all night, riding through the
+darkness, carrying torches and calling in all directions, as far as
+they supposed her feet could have carried her, but did not find her
+until early morning, lying peacefully under a little scrub pine, far
+down the trail. By her side lay her husband's worn coat, with the
+lining torn away, and a small heap of ashes and charred papers. She
+had been destroying the documents he had guarded so long. She would
+not leave them to witness against him. Tenderly they took her up and
+carried her back to the cabin and laid her in her bunk, but she only
+babbled of "Paul," telling happily that she had seen him, and that he
+was coming up the trail after her, and that now they would live on the
+mountain in peace and go no more to Poland--and quickly after that she
+dropped to sleep again and never woke. She was with "Paul" at last.
+Then Amalia dressed her in the black silk Larry had brought her, and
+they carried her down the trail and laid her in a grave beside that of
+her husband, and there Larry read the prayers of the English church
+over the two lonely graves, while Amalia knelt at his side. When they
+went down the trail to take the train, after receiving Betty's letter,
+they marked the place with a cross which Larry had made.
+
+Truth to tell, as they sat in the car, facing each other, Larry
+himself was sad, although he tried to keep Amalia's thoughts cheerful.
+At last she woke to the thought that it was only for her he maintained
+that forced light-heartedness, and the realization came to her that he
+also had cause for sorrow on leaving the spot where he had so long
+lived in peace, to go to a friend in trouble. The thought helped her,
+and she began to converse with Larry instead of sitting silently,
+wrapped in her own griefs. Because her heart was with Harry
+King,--filled with anxiety for him,--she talked mostly of him, and
+that pleased Larry well; for he, too, had need to speak of Harry.
+
+"Now there is a character for you, as fine and sweet as a woman and
+strong, too! I've seen enough of men to know the best of them when I
+find them. I saw it in him the moment I got him up to my cabin and
+laid him in my bunk. He--he--minded me of one that's gone." His voice
+dropped to the undertone of reminiscence. "Of one that's long
+gone--long gone."
+
+"Could you tell me about it, a little--just a very little?" Amalia
+leaned toward him pleadingly. It was the first time she had ever asked
+of Larry Kildene or Harry King a question that might seem like seeking
+to know a thing purposely kept from her. But her intuitive nature told
+her the time had now come when Larry longed to speak of himself, and
+the loneliness of his soul pleaded for him.
+
+"It's little indeed I can tell you, for it's little he ever told
+me,--but it came to me--more than once--more than once--that he might
+be my own son."
+
+Amalia recoiled with a shock of surprise. She drew in her breath and
+looked in his eyes eloquently. "Oh! Oh! And you never asked him? No?"
+
+"Not in so many words, no. But I--I--came near enough to give him the
+chance to tell the truth, if he would, but he had reasons of his own,
+and he would not."
+
+"Then--where we go now--to him--you have been to that place before?
+Not?"
+
+"I have."
+
+"And he--he knows it? Not?"
+
+"He knows it well. I told him it was there I left my son--my little
+son--but he would say nothing. I was not even sure he knew the place
+until these letters came to me. He has as yet written me no word, only
+the message he sent me in his letter to you--that he will some time
+write me." Then Larry took Betty's letter from his pocket and turned
+it over and over, sadly. "This letter tells me more than all else, but
+it sets me strangely adrift in my thoughts. It's not at all like what
+I had thought it might be."
+
+Amalia leaned forward eagerly. "Oh, tell me more--a little, what you
+thought might be."
+
+"This letter has added more to the heartache than all else that could
+be. Either Harry King is my son--Richard Kildene--or he is the son of
+the man who hated me and brought me sorrow. There you see the reason
+he would tell me nothing. He could not."
+
+"But how is it that you do not know your own son? It is so strange."
+
+Larry's eyes filled as he looked off over the arid plains. "It's a
+long story--that. I told it to him once to try to stir his heart
+toward me, but it was of no use, and I'll not tell it now--but this.
+I'd never looked on my boy since I held him in my arms--a heartbroken
+man--until he came to me there--that is, if he were he. But if Harry
+King is my son, then he is all the more a liar and a coward--if the
+claim against him is true. I can't have it so."
+
+"It is not so. He is no liar and no coward." Amalia spoke with
+finality.
+
+"I tell you if he is not my son, then he is the son of the man who
+hated me--but even that man will not own him as his son. The little
+girl who wrote this letter to me--she pleads with me to come on and
+set them all right: but even she who loved him--who has loved him, can
+urge no proof beyond her own consciousness, as to his identity; it is
+beyond my understanding."
+
+"The little girl--she--she has loved your son--she has loved
+Harry--Harry King? Whom has she loved?" Amalia only breathed the
+question.
+
+"She has not said. I only read between the lines."
+
+"How is it so--you read between lines? What is it you read?"
+
+Larry saw he was making a mistake and resumed hurriedly: "I'll tell
+you what little I know later, and we will go there and find out the
+rest, but it may be more to my sorrow than my joy. Perhaps that's why
+I'm taking you there--to be a help to me--I don't know. I have a
+friend there who will take us both in, and who will understand as no
+one else."
+
+"I go to neither my joy nor my sorrow. They are of the world. I will
+be no more of the world--but I will live only in love--to the Christ.
+So may I find in my heart peace--as the sweet sisters who guarded me
+in my childhood away from danger when that my father and mother were
+in fear and sorrow living--they told me there only may one find peace
+from sorrow. I will go to them--perhaps--perhaps--they will take
+me--again--I do not know. But I will go first with you, Sir Kildene,
+wherever you wish me to go. For you are my friend--now, as no one
+else. But for you, I am on earth forever alone."
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXXV
+
+THE TRIAL
+
+
+After Mr. Ballard's visit to the jail, he took upon himself to do what
+he could for the young man, out of sympathy and friendship toward both
+parties, and in the cause of simple justice. He consulted the only
+available counsel left him in Leauvite, a young lawyer named Nathan
+Goodbody, whom he knew but slightly.
+
+He told him as much of the case as he thought proper, and then gave
+him a note to the prisoner, addressing him as Harry King. Armed with
+this letter the young lawyer was soon in close consultation with his
+new client. Despite Nathan Goodbody's youth Harry was favorably
+impressed. The young man was so interested, so alert, so confident
+that all would be well. He seemed to believe so completely the story
+Harry told him, and took careful notes of it, saying he would prepare
+a brief of the facts and the law, and that Harry might safely leave
+everything to him.
+
+"You were wounded in the hip, you say," Nathan Goodbody questioned
+him. "We must not neglect the smallest item that may help you, for
+your case needs strengthening. You say you were lamed by it--but you
+seem to have recovered from that. Is there no scar?"
+
+"That will not help me. My cousin was wounded also, but his was only a
+flesh wound from which he quickly recovered and of which he thought
+nothing. I doubt if any one here in Leauvite ever heard of it, but
+it's the irony of fate that he was more badly scarred by it than I. He
+was struck by a spent bullet that tore the flesh only, while the one
+that hit me went cleanly to the bone, and splintered it. Mine laid me
+up for a year before I could even walk with crutches, while he was
+back at his post in a week."
+
+"And both wounds were in the same place--on the same side, for
+instance?"
+
+"On the same side, yes; but his was lower down. Mine entered the hip
+here, while he was struck about here." Harry indicated the places with
+a touch of his finger. "I think it would be best to say nothing about
+the scars, unless forced to do so, for I walk as well now as I ever
+did, and that will be against me."
+
+"That's a pity, now, isn't it? Suppose you try to get back a little of
+the old limp."
+
+Harry laughed. "No, I'll walk straight. Besides they've seen me on the
+street, and even in my father's bank."
+
+"Too bad, too bad. Why did you do it?"
+
+"How could I guess there would be such an impossible development?
+Until I saw Miss Ballard here in this cell I thought my cousin dead.
+Why, my reason for coming here was to confess my crime, but they won't
+give me the chance. They arrest me first of all for killing myself.
+Now that I know my cousin lives I don't seem to care what happens to
+me, except for--others."
+
+"But man! You must put up a fight. Suppose your cousin is no longer
+living; you don't want to spend the rest of your life in the
+penitentiary because he can't be found."
+
+"I see. If he is living, this whole trial is a farce, and if he is
+not, it's a tragedy."
+
+"We'll never let it become a tragedy, I'll promise you that." The
+young man spoke with smiling confidence, but when he reached his
+office again and had closed the door behind him, his manner changed
+quickly to seriousness and doubt.
+
+"I don't know," he said to himself, "I don't know if this story can be
+made to satisfy a jury or not. A little shady. Too much coincidence to
+suit me." He sat drumming with his fingers on his desk for a while,
+and then rose and turned to his books. "I'll have a little law on this
+case,--some point upon which we can go to the Supreme Court," and for
+the rest of that day and long into the night Nathan Goodbody consulted
+with his library.
+
+In anticipation of the unusual public interest the District Attorney
+directed the summoning of twenty-five jurors in addition to the
+twenty-five of the regular panel. On the day set for the trial the
+court room was packed to the doors. Inside the bar were the lawyers
+and the officers of the court. Elder Craigmile sat by Milton Hibbard.
+In the front seats just outside the bar were the fifty jurors and back
+of them were the ladies who had come early, or who had been given the
+seats of their gentlemen friends who had come early, and whose
+gallantry had momentarily gotten the better of their judgment.
+
+The stillness of the court room, like that of a church, was suddenly
+broken by the entrance of the judge, a tall, spare man, with gray hair
+and a serious outlook upon life. As he walked toward his seat, the
+lawyers and officers of the court rose and stood until he was seated.
+The clerk of the court read from a large book the journal of the court
+of the previous day and then handed the book to the judge to be
+signed. When this ceremony was completed, the judge took up the court
+calender and said,--
+
+"The State _v._ Richard Kildene," and turning to the lawyers engaged
+in the case added, "Gentlemen, are you ready?"
+
+"We are ready," answered the District Attorney.
+
+"Bring in the prisoner."
+
+When Harry entered the court room in charge of the sheriff, he looked
+neither to the right nor to the left, and saw no one before him but
+his own counsel, who arose and extended a friendly hand, and led him
+to a seat beside himself within the bar.
+
+Nathan Goodbody then rose, and, addressing the court with an air of
+confident modesty, as if he were bringing forward a point so strong as
+to require nothing more than the simple statement to give it weight,
+said:--
+
+"If the court please, the defense is ready, but I have noticed, as no
+doubt the court has noticed, a distinguished member of this bar
+sitting with the District Attorney as though it were intended that he
+should take part in the trial of this case, and I am advised that he
+intends to do so. I am also advised that he is in the employ of the
+complaining witness who sits beside him, and that he has received, or
+expects to receive, compensation from him for his services. I desire
+at the outset of this case to raise a question as to whether counsel
+employed and paid by a private person has a right to assist in the
+prosecution of a criminal cause. I therefore object to the appearance
+of Mr. Hibbard as counsel in this case, and to his taking any part in
+this trial. If the facts I have stated are questioned, I will ask
+Elder Craigmile to be sworn."
+
+The court replied: "I shall assume the facts to be as stated by you
+unless the counsel on the other side dissent from such a statement.
+Considering the facts to be as stated, your objection raises a novel
+question. Have you any authorities?"
+
+"I do not know that the Supreme Court of this State has passed upon
+this question. I do not think it has, but my objection finds support
+in the well-established rule in this country, that a public prosecutor
+acts in a quasi-judicial capacity. His object, like that of the court,
+should be simple justice. The District Attorney represents the public
+interest which can never be promoted by the conviction of the
+innocent. As the District Attorney himself could not accept a fee or
+reward from private parties, so, I urge, counsel employed to assist
+him must be equally disinterested."
+
+"The court considers the question an interesting one, but the practice
+in the past has been against your contention. I will overrule your
+objection, and give you an exception. Mr. Clerk, call a jury!"[1]
+
+Then came the wearisome technicalities of the empaneling of a jury,
+with challenges for cause and peremptory challenges, until nearly the
+entire panel of fifty jurors was exhausted.
+
+In this way two days were spent, with a result that when counsel on
+both sides expressed themselves as satisfied with the jury, every one
+in the court room doubted it. As the sheriff confided to the clerk, it
+was an even bet that the first twelve men drawn were safer for both
+sides than the twelve men who finally stood with uplifted hands and
+were again sworn by the clerk. Harry King, who had never witnessed a
+trial in his life, began to grow interested in these details quite
+aside from his own part therein. He watched the clerk shaking the box,
+wondering why he did so, until he saw the slips of paper being drawn
+forth one by one from the small aperture on the top, and listened
+while the name written on each was called aloud. Some of the names
+were familiar to him, and it seemed as if he must turn about and speak
+to the men who responded to their roll call, saying "here" as each
+rose in his place behind him. But he resisted the impulse, never
+turning his head, and only glancing curiously at each man as he took
+his seat in the jury box at the order of the judge.
+
+During all these proceedings the Elder sat looking straight before
+him, glancing at the prisoner only when obliged to do so, and coldly
+as an outsider might do. The trial was taking more time than he had
+thought possible, and he saw no reason for such lengthy technicalities
+and the delay in calling the witnesses. His air was worn and weary.
+
+The prisoner, sitting beside his counsel, had taken less and less
+interest in the proceedings, and the crowds, who had at first filled
+the court room, had also lost interest and had drifted off about their
+own affairs until the real business of the taking of testimony should
+come on, till, at the close of the second day, the court room was
+almost empty of visitors. The prisoner was glad to see them go. So
+many familiar faces, faces from whom he might reasonably expect a
+smile, or a handshake, were it possible, or at the very least a nod of
+recognition, all with their eyes fixed on him, in a blank gaze of
+aloofness or speculation. He felt as if his soul must have been in
+some way separated from his body, and then returned to it to find all
+the world gazing at the place where his soul should be without seeing
+that it had returned and was craving their intelligent support. The
+whole situation seemed to him cruelly impossible,--a sort of insane
+delusion. Only one face never failed him, that of Bertrand Ballard,
+who sat where he might now and then meet his eye, and who never left
+the court room while the case was on.
+
+When the time arrived for the introduction of the witnesses, the court
+room again filled up; but he no longer looked for faces he knew. He
+held himself sternly aloof, as if he feared his reason might leave him
+if he continued to strive against those baffling eyes, who knew him
+and did not know that they knew him, but who looked at him as if
+trying to penetrate a mask when he wore no mask. Occasionally his
+counsel turned to him for brief consultation, in which his part
+consisted generally of a nod or a shake of the head as the case might
+be.
+
+While the District Attorney was addressing the jury, Milton Hibbard
+moved forward and took the District Attorney's seat.
+
+Then followed the testimony of the boys--now shy lads in their teens,
+who had found the evidences of a struggle and possible murder so long
+before on the river bluff. Under the adroit lead of counsel, they told
+each the same story, and were excused cross-examination. Both boys had
+identified the hat found on the bluff, and testified that the brown
+stain, which now appeared somewhat faintly, had been a bright red, and
+had looked like blood.
+
+Then Bertrand Ballard was called, and the questions put to him were
+more searching. Though the manner of the examiner was respectful and
+courteous, he still contrived to leave the impression on those in the
+court room that he hoped to draw out some fact that would lead to the
+discovery of matters more vital to the case than the mere details to
+which the witness testified. But Bertrand Ballard's prompt and
+straightforward answers, and his simple and courteous manner, were a
+full match for the able lawyer, and after two hours of effort he
+subsided.
+
+Then the testimony of the other witnesses was taken, even to that of
+the little housemaid who had been in the family at the time, and who
+had seen Peter Junior wear the hat. Did she know it for his? Yes. Why
+did she know it? Because of the little break in the straw, on the edge
+of the brim. But any man's hat might have such a break. What was there
+about this particular break to make it the hat of Peter Junior?
+Because she had made it herself. She had knocked it down one day when
+she was brushing up in the front hall, and when she hung it up again,
+she had seen the break, and knew she had done it.
+
+And thus, in the careful scrutiny of small things, relating to the
+habits, life, and manner of dressing of the two young men,--matters
+about which nobody raised any question, and in which no one except the
+examiner took any interest,--more days crept by, until, at last, the
+main witnesses for the State were reached.
+
+ [1] The question raised by the prisoner's counsel was ruled in favor
+ of his contention in Biemel v. State. 71 Wis. 444, decided in
+ 1888.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXXVI
+
+NELS NELSON'S TESTIMONY
+
+
+The day was very warm, and the jury sat without their coats. The
+audience, who had had time to debate and argue the question over and
+over, were all there ready to throng in at the opening of the doors,
+and sat listening, eager, anxious, and perspiring. Some were strongly
+for the young man and some were as determined for the Elder's views,
+and a tension of interest and friction of minds pervaded the very
+atmosphere of the court room. It had been the effort of Milton Hibbard
+to work up the sentiment of those who had been so eagerly following
+the trial, in favor of his client's cause, before bringing on the
+final coup of the testimony of the Swede, and, last of all, that of
+Betty Ballard.
+
+Poor little Betty, never for a moment doubting her perception in her
+recognition of Peter Junior, yet fearing those doubting ones in the
+court room, sat at home, quivering with the thought that the truth she
+must tell when at last her turn came might be the one straw added to
+the burden of evidence piled up to convict an innocent man. Wordlessly
+and continually in her heart she was praying that Richard might know
+and come to them, calling him, calling him, in her thoughts
+ceaselessly imploring help, patience, delay, anything that might hold
+events still until Richard could reach them, for deep in her heart of
+faith she knew he would come. Wherever in all the universe he might
+be, her cry must find him and bring him. He would feel it in his soul
+and fly to them.
+
+Bertrand brought Betty and her mother news of the proceedings, from
+day to day, and always as he sat in the court room watching the
+prisoner and the Elder, looking from one set face to the other, he
+tried to convince himself that Mary and Betty were right in their firm
+belief that it was none other than Peter Junior who sat there with
+that steadfast look and the unvarying statement that he was the
+Elder's son, and had returned to give himself up for the murder of his
+cousin Richard, in the firm belief that he had left him dead on the
+river bluff.
+
+G. B. Stiles sat at the Elder's side, and when Nels Nelson was brought
+in and sworn, he glanced across at Milton Hibbard with an expression
+of satisfaction and settled himself back to watch the triumph of his
+cause and the enjoyment of the assurance of the ten thousand dollars.
+He had coached the Swede and felt sure he would give his testimony
+with unwavering clearness.
+
+The Elder's face worked and his hands clutched hard on the arms of
+his chair. It was then that Bertrand Ballard, watching him with
+sorrowful glances, lost all doubt that the prisoner was in truth
+what he claimed to be, for, under the tension of strong feeling, the
+milder lines of the younger man's face assumed a set power of
+will,--immovable,--implacable,--until the force within him seemed to
+mold the whole contour of his face into a youthful image of that of
+the man who refused even to look at him.
+
+Every eye in the court room was fixed on the Swede as he took his
+place before the court and was bade to look on the prisoner.
+Throughout his whole testimony he never varied from his first
+statement. It was always the same.
+
+"Do you know the prisoner?"
+
+"Yas, I know heem. Dot is heem, I seen heem two, t'ree times."
+
+"When did you see him first?"
+
+"By Ballards' I seen heem first--he vas horse ridin' dot time. It vas
+nobody home by Ballards' dot time. Eferybody vas gone off by dot
+peek-neek."
+
+"At that time did the prisoner speak to you?"
+
+"Yas, he asket me where is Ballards' folks, und I tol' heem by
+peek-neek, und he asket me where is it for a peek-neek is dey gone,
+und I tol' heem by Carter's woods by der river, und he asket me is
+Mees Betty gone by dem yet or is she home, und I tol' heem yas she is
+gone mit, und he is off like der vind on hees horse already."
+
+"When did you see the prisoner next?"
+
+"By Ballards' yard dot time."
+
+"What time?"
+
+"It vas Sunday morning I seen heem, talkin' mit her."
+
+"With whom was he talking?"
+
+"Oh, he talk mit Ballards' girl--Mees Betty. Down by der spring house
+I seen heem go, und he kiss her plenty--I seen heem."
+
+"You are sure it was the prisoner you saw? You are sure it was not
+Peter Craigmile, Jr.?"
+
+"Sure it vas heem I saw. Craikmile's son, he vas lame, und valk by der
+crutch all time. No, it vas dot man dere I saw."
+
+"Where were you when you saw him?"
+
+"I vas by my room vere I sleep. It vas a wine growin' by der vindow
+up, so dey nefer see me, bot I seen dem all right. I seen heem kiss
+her und I seen her tell heem go vay, und push heem off, und she cry
+plenty."
+
+"Did you hear what he said to her?"
+
+Bertrand Ballard looked up at the examiner angrily, and counsel for
+the prisoner objected to the question, but the judge allowed it to
+pass unchallenged, on the ground that it was a question pertaining to
+the motive for the deed of which the prisoner was accused.
+
+"Yas, I hear it a little. Dey vas come up und stand dere by de vindow
+under, und I hear dem talkin'. She cry, und say she vas sorry he vas
+kiss her like dot, und he say he is goin' vay, und dot is vot for he
+done it, und he don't come back no more, und she cry some more."
+
+"Did he say anything against his cousin at that time?"
+
+"No, he don' say not'ing, only yust he say, 'dot's all right bouts
+heem,' he say, 'Peter Junior goot man all right, only he goin' vay all
+same.'"
+
+"Was that the last time you saw the prisoner?"
+
+"No, I seen heem dot day und it vas efening."
+
+"Where were you when you saw him next?"
+
+"I vas goin' 'long mit der calf to eat it grass dere by Ballards'
+yard, und he vas goin' 'long mit hees cousin, Craikmile's son, und he
+vas walkin' slow for hees cousin, he don' got hees crutch dot day, he
+valk mit dot stick dere, und he don' go putty quvick mit it." Nels
+pointed to the heavy blackthorn stick lying on the table before the
+jury.
+
+"Were the two young men talking together?"
+
+"No, dey don' speak much. I hear it he say, 'It iss better you valk by
+my arm a little yet, Peter,' und Craikmile's son, he say, 'You go vay
+mit your arm, I got no need by it,' like he vas little mad yet."
+
+"You say you saw him in the morning with Miss Ballard. Where were the
+family at that time?"
+
+"Oh, dey vas gone by der church already."
+
+"And in the evening where were they?"
+
+"Oh, dey vas by der house und eat supper den."
+
+"Did you see the prisoner again that day?"
+
+"No, I didn' see heem dot day no more, bot dot next day I seen
+heem--goot I seen heem."
+
+Harry King here asked his counsel to object to his allowing the
+witness to continually assert that the man he saw was the prisoner.
+
+"He does not know that it was I. He is mistaken as are you all." And
+Nathan Goodbody leaped to his feet.
+
+"I object on behalf of my client to the assumption throughout this
+whole examination, that the man whom the witness claims to have seen
+was the prisoner. No proof to that effect has yet been brought
+forward."
+
+The witness was then required to give his reasons for his assertion
+that the prisoner was the man he saw three years before.
+
+"By what marks do you know him? Why is he not the man he claims to be,
+the son of the plaintiff?"
+
+"Oh, I know heem all right. Meester Craikmile's son, he vos more white
+in de face. Hees hair vas more--more--I don' know how you call
+dot--crooked on hees head yet." Nels put his hand to his head and
+caught one of his straight, pale gold locks, and twisted it about. "It
+vas goin round so,--und it vas more lighter yet as dot man here, und
+hees face vas more lighter too, und he valked mit stick all time und
+he don' go long mit hees head up,--red in hees face like dis man here
+und dark in hees face too. Craikmile's son go all time limpin' so."
+Nels took a step to illustrate the limp of Peter Junior when he had
+seen him last.
+
+"Do you see any other points of difference? Were the young men the
+same height?"
+
+"Yas, dey vas yust so high like each other, but not so vide out yet.
+Dis man he iss vider yet as Meester Craikmile's son, he iss got more
+chest like von goot horse--Oh, I know by men yust de same like horses
+vat iss der difference yet."
+
+"Now you tell the court just what you saw the next day. At what time
+of the day was it?"
+
+"It vas by der night I seen heem."
+
+"On Monday night?"
+
+"Yas."
+
+"Late Monday night?"
+
+"No, not so late, bot it vas dark already."
+
+"Tell the court exactly where you saw him, when you saw him, and with
+whom you saw him, and what you heard said."
+
+"It vas by Ballards' I seen heem. I vas comin' home und it vas dark
+already yust like I tol' you, und I seen dot man come along by
+Ballards' house und stand by der door--long time I seen heem stan'
+dere, und I yust go by der little trees under, und vatching vat it is
+for doin' dere, dot man? Und I seen heem it iss der young man vat iss
+come dot day askin' vere iss Ballards' folks, und so I yust wait und
+look a little out, und I vatchin' heem. Und I seen heem stand und
+vaitin' minute by der door outside, und I get me low under dem little
+small flowers bushes Ballards is got by der door under dot vindow
+dere, und I seen heem, he goin' in, and yust dere is Mees Betty
+sittin', und he go quvick down on hees knees, und dere she yump lak
+she is scairt. Den she take heem hees head in her hands und she asket
+heem vat for is it dat blud he got it on hees head, und so he say it
+is by fightin' he is got it, und she say vy for is he fightin', und he
+say mit hees cousin he fight, und hees cousin he hit heem so, und she
+asket heem vy for is hees cousin hit heem, und vy for iss he fightin'
+mit hees cousin any vay, und den dey bot is cryin'. So I seen dot--und
+den she go by der kitchen und bring vater und vash heem hees head und
+tie clots round it so nice, und dere dey is talkin', und he tol' her
+he done it."
+
+"What did he tell her he had done?"
+
+"Oh, he say he keel heem hees cousin. Dot vat I tol' you he done it."
+
+"How did he say he killed him?"
+
+The silence in the court room was painful in its intensity. The Elder
+leaned forward and listened with contorted face, and the prisoner held
+his breath. A pallor overspread his face and his hands were clenched.
+
+"Oh, he say he push heem in der rifer ofer, und he do it all right for
+he liket to do it, but he say he goin' run vay for dot."
+
+"You mean to say that he said he intended to push him over? That he
+tried to do it?"
+
+"Oh, yas, he say he liket to push heem ofer, und he liket to do dot,
+but he sorry any vay he done it, und he runnin' vay for dot."
+
+"Tell the court what happened then."
+
+"Den she get him somedings to eat, und dey sit dere, und dey talk, und
+dey cry plenty, und she is feel putty bad, und he is feel putty bad,
+too. Und so--he go out und shut dot door, und he valkin' down der
+pat', und she yust come out der door, und run to heem und asket heem
+vere he is goin' und if he tell her somedings vere he go, und he say
+no, he tell her not'ing yet. Und den she say maybe he is not keel heem
+any vay, bot yust t'inkin' he keel him, und he tol' her yas, he keel
+heem all right, he push heem ofer und he is dead already, und so he
+kiss her some more, und she is cry some more, und I t'ink he is cry,
+too, bot dot is all. He done it all right. Und he is gone off den, und
+she is gone in her house, und I don't see more no."
+
+As the witness ceased speaking Mr. Hibbard turned to counsel for the
+prisoner and said: "Cross-examine."
+
+Rising in his place, and advancing a few steps toward the witness, the
+young lawyer began his cross-examination. His task did not call for
+the easy nonchalance of his more experienced adversary, who had the
+advantage of knowing in advance just what his witness would testify.
+It was for him to lead a stubborn and unwilling witness through the
+mazes of a well-prepared story, to unravel, if possible, some of its
+well-planned knots and convince the jury if he could that the witness
+was not reliable and his testimony untrustworthy.
+
+But this required a master in the art of cross-examination, and a
+master begins the study of his subject--the witness--before the trial.
+In subtle ways with which experience has made him familiar, he studies
+his man, his life, his character, his habits, his strength, his
+weakness, his foibles. He divines when he will hesitate, when he will
+stumble, and he is ready to pounce upon him and force his hesitation
+into an attempt at concealment, his stumble into a fall.
+
+It is no discredit to Nathan Goodbody that he lacked the skill and
+cunning of an astute cross-examiner. Unlike poets, they are made, not
+born, and he found the Swede to be a difficult witness to handle to
+his purpose. He succeeded in doing little more than to get him to
+reaffirm the damaging testimony he had already given.
+
+Being thus baffled, he determined to bring in here a point which he
+had been reserving to use later, should Milton Hibbard decide to take
+up the question of Peter Junior's lameness. As this did not seem to be
+imminent, and the testimony of Nels Nelson had been so convincing, he
+wished of all things to delay the calling of the next witness until he
+could gain time, and carry the jury with him. Should Betty Ballard be
+called to the stand that day he felt his cause would be lost.
+Therefore, in the moment's pause following the close of his
+cross-examination of the last witness, he turned and addressed the
+court.
+
+"May it please the Court. Knowing that there is but one more witness
+to be called, and that the testimony of that witness can bring forward
+no new light on this matter, I have excellent reason to desire at this
+time to move the Court to bring in the verdict of not guilty."
+
+At these words the eyes of every one in the court room were turned
+upon the speaker, and the silence was such that his next words, though
+uttered in a low voice, were distinctly heard by all present.
+
+"This motion is based upon the fact that the State has failed to prove
+the _corpus delicti_, upon the law, which is clear, that without such
+proof there can be no conviction of the crime of murder. If the
+testimony of the witness Nels Nelson can be accepted as the admission
+of the man Richard Kildene, until the State can prove the _corpus
+delicti_, no proof can be brought that it is the admission of the
+prisoner at the bar. I say that until such proof can be brought by the
+State, no further testimony can convict the prisoner at the bar. If it
+please the Court, the authorities are clear that the fact that a
+murder has been committed cannot be established by proof of the
+admissions, even of the prisoner himself that he has committed the
+crime. There must be direct proof of death as by finding and
+identification of the body of the one supposed to be murdered. I have
+some authorities here which I would like to read to your honor if you
+will hear them."
+
+The face of the judge during this statement of the prisoner's counsel
+was full of serious interest. He leaned forward with his elbow on the
+desk before him, and with his hand held behind his ear, intent to
+catch every word. As counsel closed the judge glanced at the clock
+hanging on the wall and said:--
+
+"It is about time to close. You may pass up your authorities, and I
+will take occasion to examine them before the court opens in the
+morning. If counsel on the other side have any authorities, I will be
+pleased to have them also."
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXXVII
+
+THE STRANGER'S ARRIVAL
+
+
+On taking his seat at the opening of court the next morning, the judge
+at once announced his decision.
+
+"I have given such thought as I have been able to the question raised
+by counsel last evening, and have examined authorities cited by him,
+and others, bearing upon the question, and have reached the conclusion
+that his motion must be overruled. It is true that a conviction for
+murder cannot rest alone upon the extra-judicial admission of the
+accused. And in the present case I must remind the court and the jury
+that thus far the identity of the prisoner has not yet been
+established, as it is not determined whether or not he is the man whom
+the witness, Nels Nelson, heard make the admission. It is true there
+must be distinct proof, sufficient to satisfy the jury, beyond a
+reasonable doubt, that homicide has been committed by some one, before
+the admission of the accused that he did the act can be considered.
+But I think that fact can be established by circumstantial evidence,
+as well as any other fact in the case, and I shall so charge the jury.
+I will give you an exception. Mr Nathan Goodbody, you may go on with
+your defense after the hearing of the next witness, which is now in
+order."[1]
+
+The decision of the court was both a great surprise and a disappointment
+to the defendant's young counsel. Considering the fact that the body of
+the man supposed to have been murdered had never been found, and that
+his death had been assumed from his sudden disappearance, and the
+finding of his personal articles scattered on the river bluff,
+together with the broken edge of the bluff and the traces of some
+object having been thrown down the precipice at that point, and the
+fact that the State was relying upon the testimony of the eavesdropping
+Swede to prove confession by the prisoner, he still had not been
+prepared for the testimony of this witness that he had heard the
+accused say that he had killed his cousin, and that it had been his
+intention to kill him. He was dismayed, but he had not entirely lost
+confidence in his legal defense, even now that the judge had ruled
+against him. There was still the Supreme Court.
+
+He quickly determined that he would shift his attack from the court,
+where he had been for the time repulsed, and endeavor to convince the
+jury that the fact that Peter Junior was really dead had not "been
+proven beyond a reasonable doubt."
+
+Applying to the court for a short recess to give him time to consult
+with his client, he used the time so given in going over with the
+prisoner the situation in which the failure of his legal defense had
+left them. He had hoped to arrest the trial on the point he had made
+so as to eliminate entirely the hearing of further testimony,--that of
+Betty Ballard,--and also to avoid the necessity of having his client
+sworn, which last was inevitable if Betty's testimony was taken.
+
+He had never been able to rid himself of the impression left upon his
+mind when first he heard the story from his client's lips, that there
+was in it an element of coincidence--too like dramatic fiction, or
+that if taken ideally, it was above the average juryman's head.
+
+He admonished the prisoner that when he should be called upon for his
+testimony, he must make as little as possible of the fact of their
+each being scarred on the hip, and scarred on the head, the two
+cousins dramatically marked alike, and that he must in no way allude
+to his having seen Betty Ballard in the prison alone.
+
+"That was a horrible mistake. You must cut it out of your testimony
+unless they force it. Avoid it. And you must make the jury see that
+your return was a matter of--of--well, conscience--and so forth."
+
+"I must tell the truth. That is all that I can do," said the prisoner,
+wearily. "The judge is looking this way,--shall we--"
+
+Nathan Goodbody rose quickly. "If the court please, we are ready to
+proceed."
+
+Then at last Betty Ballard was called to the witness stand. The hour
+had come for which all the village had waited, and the fame of the
+trial had spread beyond the village, and all who had known the boys in
+their childhood and in their young manhood, and those who had been
+their companions in arms--men from their own regiment--were there. The
+matter had been discussed among them more or less heatedly and now the
+court room could not hold the crowds that thronged its doors.
+
+At this time, unknown to any of the actors in the drama, three
+strangers, having made their way through the crowd outside the door,
+were allowed to enter, and stood together in the far corner of the
+court room unnoticed by the throng, intently watching and listening.
+They had arrived from the opposite sides of the earth, and had met at
+the village hotel. Larry had spied the younger man first, and,
+scarcely knowing what he was doing, or why, he walked up to him, and
+spoke, involuntarily holding out his hand to him.
+
+"Tell me who you are," he said, ere Richard could surmise what was
+happening.
+
+"My name is Kildene," said Richard, frankly. "Have you any reason for
+wishing to know me?"
+
+For the moment he thought his interlocutor might be a detective, or
+one who wished to verify a suspicion. Having but that moment arrived,
+and knowing nothing of the trial which was going on, he could think
+only of his reason for his return to Leauvite, and was glad to make an
+end of incognito and sorrowful durance, and wearisome suspense, and he
+did not hesitate, nor try any art of concealment. He looked directly
+into Larry's eyes, almost defiantly for an instant, then seeing in
+that rugged face a kindly glint of the eye and a quiver about the
+mouth, his heart lightened and he grasped eagerly the hand held out to
+him.
+
+"Perhaps you will tell me whom you are? I suppose I ought to know, but
+I've been away from here a long time."
+
+Then the older man's hand fell a-trembling in his, and did not release
+him, but rather clung to him as if he had had a shock.
+
+"Come over here and sit beside me a moment, young man--I--I've--I'm
+not feeling as strong as I look. I--I've a thing to tell you. Sit
+down--sit down. We are alone? Yes. Every one's gone to the trial. I'm
+on here from the West myself to attend it."
+
+"The trial! What trial?"
+
+"You've heard nothing of it? I was thinking maybe you were also--were
+drawn here--you've but just come?"
+
+"I've been here long enough to engage a room--which I shan't want
+long. No, I've come for no trial exactly--maybe it might come to
+that--? What have you to tell me?"
+
+But Larry Kildene sat silent for a time before replying. An eager joy
+had seized him, and a strange reticence held his tongue tied, a fear
+of making himself known to this son whom he had never seen since he
+had held him in his arms, a weak, wailing infant, thinking only of his
+own loss. This dignified, stalwart young man, so pleasant to look
+upon--no wonder the joy of his heart was a terrible joy, a hungering,
+longing joy akin to pain! How should he make himself known? In what
+words? A thousand thoughts crowded upon him. From Betty's letter he
+knew something of the contention now going on in the court room, and
+from the landlord last evening he had heard more, and he was impatient
+to get to the trial.
+
+Now this encounter with his own son,--the only one who could set all
+right,--and who yet did not know of the happenings which so
+imperatively required his presence in the court room, set Larry
+Kildene's thoughts stammering and tripping over each other in such a
+confusion of haste, and with it all the shyness before the great fact
+of his unconfessed fatherhood, so overwhelmed him, that for once his
+facile Irish nature did not help him. He was at a loss for words,
+strangely abashed before this gentle-voiced, frank-faced, altogether
+likable son of his. So he temporized and beat about the bush, and did
+not touch first on that which was nearest his heart.
+
+"Yes, yes. I've a thing to tell you. You came here to be at
+a--a--trial--did you say, or intimate it might be? If--if--you'll tell
+me a bit more, I maybe can help you--for I've seen a good bit of the
+world. It's a strange trial going on here now--I've come to hear."
+
+"Tell me something about it," said Richard, humoring the older man's
+deliberation in arriving at his point.
+
+"It's little I know yet. I've come to learn, for I'm interested in the
+young man they're trying to convict. He's a sort of a relative of
+mine. I wish to see fair play. Why are you here? Have you done
+anything--what have you done?"
+
+The young man moved restlessly. He was confused by the suddenness of
+the question, which Larry's manner deprived of any suggestion of
+rudeness.
+
+"Did I intimate I had done anything?" He laughed. "I'm come to make a
+statement to the proper ones--when I find them. I'll go over now and
+hear a bit of this trial, since you mention it."
+
+He spoke sadly and wearily, but he felt no resentment at the older
+man's inquisitiveness. Larry's face expressed too much kindliness to
+make resentment possible, but Richard was ill at ease to be talking
+thus intimately with a stranger who had but just chanced upon him. He
+rose to leave.
+
+"Don't go. Don't go yet. Wait a bit--God, man! Wait! I've a thing to
+tell you." Larry leaned forward, and his face worked and tears
+glistened in his eyes as he looked keenly up into his son's face.
+"You're a beautiful lad--a man--I'm--You're strong and fine--I'm
+ashamed to tell it you--ashamed I've never looked on you since
+then--until now. I should have given all up and found you. Forgive me.
+Boy!--I'm your father--your father!" He rose and stood looking levelly
+in his son's eyes, holding out both shaking hands. Richard took them
+in his and held them--but could not speak.
+
+The constraint of witnesses was not upon them, for they were quite
+alone on the piazza, but the emotion of each of them was beyond words.
+Richard swallowed, and waited, and then with no word they both sat
+down and drew their chairs closer together. The simple act helped
+them.
+
+"I've been nigh on to a lifetime longing for you, lad."
+
+"And I for you, father."
+
+"That's the name I've been hungering to hear--"
+
+"And I to speak--" Still they looked in each other's eyes. "And we
+have a great deal to tell each other! I'm almost sorry--that--that--that
+I've found you at last--for to do my duty will be harder now. I had no
+one to care--particularly before--unless--"
+
+"Unless a lass, maybe?"
+
+"One I've been loving and true to--but long ago given up--we won't
+speak of her. We'll have to talk a great deal, and there's so little
+time! I must--must give myself up, father, to the law."
+
+"Couldn't you put it off a bit, lad?"
+
+Larry could not have told why he kept silent so long in regard to the
+truth of the trial. It might have been a vague liking to watch the
+workings of his son's real self and a desire to test him to the full.
+From a hint dropped in Betty's letter he guessed shrewdly at the truth
+of the situation. He knew now that Richard and his young friend of the
+mountain top were actuated by the same motives, and he understood at
+last why Harry King would never accept his offer of help, nor would
+ever call him father. Because he could not take the place of the son,
+of whom, as he thought, he had robbed the man who so freely offered
+him friendship--and more than friendship. At last Larry understood why
+Peter Junior had never yielded to his advances. It was honor, and the
+test had been severe.
+
+"Put it off a little? I might--I'm tempted--just to get acquainted
+with my father--but I might be arrested, and I would prefer not to be.
+I know I've been wanted for three years and over--it has taken me that
+long to learn that only the truth can make a man free,--and now I
+would rather give myself up, than to be taken--"
+
+"I'm knowing maybe more of the matter than you think--so we'll drop
+it. We must have a long talk later--but tell me now in a few words
+what you can."
+
+Then, drawn by the older man's gentle, magnetic sympathy, Richard
+unlocked his heart and told all of his life that could be crowded in
+those few short minutes,--of his boyhood's longings for a father of
+his own--of his young manhood's love, of his flight, and a little of
+his later life. "We'd be great chums, now, father,--if--if it weren't
+for this--that hangs over me."
+
+Then Larry could stand it no longer. He sprang up and clapped Richard
+on the shoulder. "Come, lad, come! We'll go to this trial together. Do
+you know who's being tried? No. They'll have to get this off before
+they can take another on. I'm thinking you'll find your case none so
+bad as it seems to you now. First there's a thing I must do. My
+brother-in-law's in trouble--but it is his own fault--still I'm a mind
+to help him out. He's a fine hater, that brother-in-law of mine, but
+he's tried to do a father's part in the past by you--and done it well,
+while I've been soured. In the gladness of my heart I'll help him
+out--I'd made up my mind to do it before I left my mountain. Your
+father's a rich man, boy--with money in store for you--I say it in
+modesty, but he who reared you has been my enemy. Now I'm going to his
+bank, and there I'll make a deposit that will save it from ruin."
+
+He stood a moment chuckling, with both hands thrust deep in his
+pockets. "We'll go to that trial--it's over an affair of his, and he's
+fair in the wrong. We'll go and watch his discomfiture--and we'll see
+him writhe. We'll see him carry things his own way--the only way he
+can ever see--and then we'll watch him--man, we'll watch him--Oh, my
+boy, my boy! I doubt it's wrong for me to exult over his chagrin, but
+that's what I'm going for now. It was the other way before I met you,
+but the finding of you has given me a light heart, and I'll watch that
+brother-in-law's set-down with right good will."
+
+He told Richard about Amalia, and asked him to wait until he fetched
+her, as he wished her to accompany them, but still he said nothing to
+him about his cousin Peter. He found Amalia descending the long flight
+of stairs, dressed to go out, and knew she had been awaiting him for
+the last half hour. Now he led her into the little parlor, while
+Richard paced up and down the piazza, and there, where she could see
+him as he passed the window to and fro, Larry told her what had come
+to him, and even found time to moralize over it, in his gladness.
+
+"That's it. A man makes up his mind to do what's right regardless of
+all consequences or his prejudices, or what not,--and from that
+moment all begins to grow clear, and he sees right--and things come
+right. Now look at the man! He's a fine lad, no? They're both fine
+lads--but this one's mine. Look at him I say. Things are to come right
+for him, and all through his making up his mind to come back here and
+stand to his guns. The same way with Harry King. I've told you the
+contention--and at last you know who he is--but mind you, no word yet
+to my son. I'll tell him as we walk along. I'm to stop at the bank
+first, and if we tell him too soon, he'll be for going to the
+courthouse straight. The landlord tells me there's danger of a run on
+the bank to-morrow and the only reason it hasn't come to-day is that
+the bank's been closed all the morning for the trial. I'm thinking
+that was policy, for whoever heard of a bank's being closed in the
+morning for a trial--or anything short of a death or a holiday?"
+
+"But if it is now closed, why do we wait to go there? It is to do
+nothing we make delay," said Amalia, anxiously.
+
+"I told Decker to send word to the cashier to be there, as a deposit
+is to be made. If he can't be there for that, then it's his own fault
+if to-morrow finds him unprepared." Larry stepped out to meet Richard
+and introduced Amalia. He had already told Richard a little of her
+history, and now he gave her her own name, Manovska.
+
+After a few moments' conversation she asked Larry: "I may keep now my
+own name, it is quite safe, is not? They are gone now--those for whom
+I feared."
+
+"Wait a little," said Richard. "Wait until you have been down in the
+world long enough to be sure. It is a hard thing to live under
+suspicion, and until you have means of knowing, the other will be
+safer."
+
+"You think so? Then is better. Yes? Ah, Sir Kildene, how it is
+beautiful to see your son does so very much resemble our friend."
+
+They arrived at the bank, and Larry entered while Richard and Amalia
+strolled on together. "We had a friend, Harry King,"--she paused and
+would have corrected herself, but then continued--"he was very much
+like to you--but he is here in trouble, and it is for that for which
+we have come here. Sir Kildene is so long in that bank! I would go in
+haste to that place where is our friend. Shall we turn and walk again
+a little toward the bank? So will we the sooner encounter him on the
+way."
+
+They returned and met Larry coming out, stepping briskly. He too was
+eager to be at the courthouse. He took his son's arm and rapidly and
+earnestly told him the situation as he had just heard it from the
+cashier. He told him that which he had been keeping back, and
+impressed on him the truth that unless he had returned when he did,
+the talk in the town was that the trial was likely to go against the
+prisoner. Richard would have broken into a run, in his excitement, but
+Larry held him back.
+
+"Hold back a little, boy. Let us keep pace with you. There's really no
+hurry, only that impulse that sent you home--it was as if you were
+called, from all I can learn."
+
+"It is my reprieve. I am free. He has suffered, too. Does he know yet
+that I too live? Does he know?"
+
+"Perhaps not--yet, but listen to me. Don't be too hasty in showing
+yourself. If they did not know him, they won't know you--for you are
+enough different for them never to suspect you, now that they have, or
+think they have, the man for whom they have been searching. See here,
+man, hold back for my sake. That man--that brother-in-law of mine--has
+walked for years over my heart, and I've done nothing. He has despised
+me, and without reason--because I presumed to love your mother, lad,
+against his arrogant will. He--he--would--I will see him down in the
+dust of repentance. I will see him willfully convict his own son--he
+who has been hungering to see you--my son--sent to a prison for
+life--or hanged."
+
+Richard listened, lingering as Larry wished, appalled at this
+revelation, until they arrived at the edge of the crowd around the
+door, eagerly trying to wedge themselves in wherever the chance
+offered.
+
+"Oh! Sir Kildene--we are here--now what to do! How can we go in
+there?" said Amalia.
+
+Larry moved them aside slowly, pushing Amalia between Richard and
+himself, and intimating to those nearest him that they were required
+within, until a passage was gradually made for the three, and thus
+they reached the door and so gained admittance. And that was how they
+came to be there, crowded in a corner, all during the testimony of
+Betty Ballard, unheeded by those around them--mere units in the throng
+trying to hear the evidence and see the principals in the drama being
+enacted before them.
+
+ [1] The ruling of the court upon this point was afterwards justified
+ by the Supreme Court of Wisconsin in the case of Buel _v._
+ State, 104 Wis. 132, decided in 1899.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXXVIII
+
+BETTY BALLARD'S TESTIMONY
+
+
+Betty Ballard stood, her slight figure drawn up, poised, erect, her
+head thrown back, and her eyes fixed on the Elder's face. The silence
+of the great audience was so intense that the buzzing of flies
+circling around and around near the ceiling could be heard, while the
+people all leaned forward as with one emotion, their eyes on the
+principals before them, straining to hear, vivid, intent.
+
+Richard saw only Betty, heeding no one but her, feeling her presence.
+For a moment he stood pale as death, then the red blood mounted from
+his heart, staining his neck and his face with its deep tide and
+throbbing in his temples. The Elder felt her scrutiny and looked back
+at her, and his brows contracted into a frown of severity.
+
+"Miss Ballard," said the lawyer, "you are called upon to identify the
+prisoner in the box."
+
+She lifted her eyes to the judge's face, then turned them upon Milton
+Hibbard, then fixed them again upon the Elder, but did not open her
+lips. She did not seem to be aware that every eye in the court room
+was fastened upon her. Pale and grave and silent she stood thus, for
+to her the struggle was only between herself and the Elder.
+
+"Miss Ballard, you are called upon to identify the prisoner in the
+box. Can you do so?" asked the lawyer again, patiently.
+
+Again she turned her clear eyes on the judge's face, "Yes, I can."
+Then, looking into the Elder's eyes, she said: "He is your son, Elder
+Craigmile. He is Peter. You know him. Look at him. He is Peter
+Junior." Her voice rang clear and strong, and she pointed to the
+prisoner with steady hand. "Look at him, Elder Craigmile; he is your
+son."
+
+"You will address the jury and the court, Miss Ballard, and give your
+reasons for this assertion. How do you know he is Peter Craigmile,
+Jr.?"
+
+Then she turned toward the jury, and holding out both hands in sudden
+pleading action cried out earnestly: "I know him. He is Peter Junior.
+Can't you see he is Peter, the Elder's son?"
+
+"But how do you know him?"
+
+"Because it is he. I know him the way we always know people--by
+just--knowing them. He is Peter Junior."
+
+"Have you seen the prisoner before since his return to Leauvite?"
+
+"Yes, I went to the jail and I saw him, and I knew him."
+
+"But give a reason for your knowledge. How did you know him?"
+
+"By--by the look in his eyes--by his hands--Oh! I just knew him in a
+moment. I knew him."
+
+"Miss Ballard, we have positive proof that Peter Junior was murdered
+and from the lips of his murderer. The witness just dismissed says he
+heard Richard Kildene tell you he pushed his cousin Peter Junior over
+the bluff into the river. Can you deny this statement? On your sacred
+oath can you deny it?"
+
+"No, but I don't have to deny it, for you can see for yourselves that
+Peter Junior is alive. He is not dead. He is here."
+
+"Did Richard Kildene ever tell you he had pushed his cousin over the
+bluff into the river? A simple answer is required, yes, or no!"
+
+She stood for a moment, her lips white and trembling. "Yes!"
+
+"When did he tell you this?"
+
+"When he came to me, just after he thought he had done it--but he was
+mistaken--he did not--he only thought he had done it."
+
+"Did he tell you why he thought he had done it? Tell the court all
+about it."
+
+Then Betty lifted her head and spoke rapidly--eagerly. "Because he was
+very angry with Peter Junior, and he wanted to kill him, and he did
+try to push him over, but Peter struck him, and Richard didn't truly
+know whether he really pushed him over or not,--for he lay there a
+long time before he even knew where he was, and when he came to
+himself again, he could not find Peter there and only his hat and
+things--he thought he must have done it, because that was what he was
+trying to do, just as everyone else has thought it--because when Peter
+saw him lying there, he thought he had killed Richard, and so he
+pushed a great stone over to make every one think he had gone over the
+bluff and was dead, too, and he left his hat there and the other
+things, and now he has come back to give himself up, just as he has
+said, because he could not stand it to live any longer with the
+thought on his conscience that he had killed Richard when he struck
+him. But you would not let him give himself up. You have kept on
+insisting he is Richard. And it is all your fault, Elder Craigmile,
+because you won't look to see that he is your son." She paused,
+panting, flushed and indignant.
+
+"Miss Ballard, you are here as a witness," said the judge. "You must
+restrain yourself and answer the questions that are asked you and make
+no comments."
+
+Here the Elder leaned forward and touched his attorney, and pointed a
+shaking hand at the prisoner and said a few words, whereat the lawyer
+turned sharply upon the witness.
+
+"Miss Ballard, you have visited the prisoner since he has been in the
+jail?"
+
+"Yes, _I_ said so."
+
+"Your Honor," said the examiner, "we all know that the son of the
+plaintiff was lame, but this young man is sound on both his feet. You
+have been told that Richard Kildene was struck on the head and this
+young man bears the scar above his temple--"
+
+Richard started forward, putting his hand to his head and lifting his
+hair as he did so. He tried to call out, but in his excitement his
+voice died in his throat, and Larry seized him and held him back.
+
+"Watch him,--watch your uncle," he whispered in his ear. "He thinks he
+has you there in the box and he wants you to get the worst the law
+will give you. Watch him! The girl understands him. See her eyes upon
+him. Stand still, boy; give him a chance to have his will. He'll find
+it bitter when he learns the truth, and 'twill do him good. Wait, man!
+You'll have it all in your hands later, and they'll be none the worse
+for waiting a bit longer. Hold on for my sake, son. I'll tell you why
+later, and you'll not be sorry you gave heed to me."
+
+In these short ejaculated sentences, with his arm through Richard's,
+Larry managed to keep him by his side as the examiner talked on.
+
+"Your Honor, this young lady admits that she has visited the prisoner
+in the jail, and can give adequate reason for her assertion that he is
+the man he claims to be. She tells us what occurred in that fight on
+the bluff--things that she was not there to see, things she could only
+learn from the prisoner: is there not reason to believe that her
+evidence has been arranged between them?"
+
+"Yes, he told me,--Peter Junior told me, and he came here to give
+himself up, but you won't let him give himself up."
+
+"Miss Ballard," said the judge again, "you will remember that you are
+to speak only in reply to questions put to you. Mr. Hibbard, continue
+the examination."
+
+"Miss Ballard, you admit that you saw Richard Kildene after he fought
+with his cousin?"
+
+"Yes."
+
+"Was his head wounded?"
+
+"Yes."
+
+"What did you do?"
+
+"I washed his head and bound it up. It was all bleeding."
+
+"Very well. Then you can say on your sacred oath that Richard Kildene
+was living and not murdered?"
+
+"Yes."
+
+"Did you see Peter Junior after they fought?"
+
+"No. If I had seen him, I could have told everybody they were both
+alive and there would have been no--"
+
+"Look at the prisoner. Can you tell the jury where the cut on Richard
+Kildene's head was?"
+
+"Yes, I can. When I stood in front of him to bind it up, it was under
+my right hand."
+
+From this point the examiner began to touch upon things Betty would
+gladly have concealed in her own heart, concerning her engagement to
+Peter Junior, and her secret understanding with his cousin, and
+whether she loved the one or the other, and what characteristics in
+them caused her to prefer the one over the other, and why she had
+never confided her preferences to any of her relatives or friends.
+Still, with head erect, Betty flung back her answers.
+
+Bertrand listened and writhed. The prisoner sat with bowed head. To
+him she seemed a veritable saint. He knew how she suffered in this
+public revelation of herself--of her innocent struggle between love
+and loyalty, and maiden modesty, and that the desire to protect him
+and help him was giving her strength. He saw how valiantly she has
+been guarding her terrible secret from all the world while he had been
+fleeing and hiding. Ah, if he had only been courageous! If he had not
+fled, nor tried to cover his flight with proofs of his death! If he
+had but stood to his guns like a soldier! He covered his face in
+shame.
+
+As for Richard, he gloried in her. He felt his heart swell in triumph
+as he listened. He heard Amalia Manovska murmur: "Ah, how she is very
+beautiful! No wonder it is that they both loved her!"
+
+While he was filled with admiration for her, yet his heart ached for
+her, and with anger and reproach against himself. He saw no one but
+her, and he wanted to end it all and carry her away, but still yielded
+to his father's earnest plea that he should wait. He understood, and
+would restrain himself until Larry was satisfied, and the trial ended.
+Still the examination went on.
+
+"Miss Ballard, you admit that Peter Junior was lame when last you saw
+him, and you observe that the prisoner has no lameness, and you admit
+that you bound up a wound which had been inflicted on the head of
+Richard Kildene, and here you see the scar upon the prisoner; can you
+still on your sacred oath declare this man to be the son of the
+plaintiff?"
+
+"Yes!" She looked earnestly at the prisoner. "It is not the same head
+and it is not the same scar." Again she extended her hands toward the
+jury pleadingly and then toward the prisoner. "It is not by people's
+legs we know them,--nor by their scars--it is by themselves--by--by
+their souls. Oh! I know you, Peter! I know you!"
+
+With the first petulance Milton Hibbard had shown during the trial he
+now turned to the prisoner's counsel and said: "Take the witness."
+
+"No cross-examination?" asked Nathan Goodbody, with a smile.
+
+"No."
+
+Then Betty flung one look back at the Elder, and fled to her mother
+and hid her flushed face on Mary Ballard's bosom.
+
+Now for the first time Richard could take an interest in the trial
+merely for his own and Peter Junior's sake. He saw Nathan Goodbody
+lean over and say a few words hurriedly to the prisoner, then rise and
+slightly lift his hand as if to make a special request.
+
+"If the court please, the accused desires permission to tell his own
+story. May he be sworn on his own behalf?"
+
+Permission being given, the prisoner rose and walked to the witness
+chair, and having been sworn by the clerk to tell the truth, the whole
+truth, and nothing but the truth, began his statement.
+
+Standing there watching him, and listening, Richard felt his heart
+throb with the old friendship for this comrade of his childhood, his
+youth, and his young manhood, in school, in college, and, at last,
+tramping side by side on long marches, camping together, sleeping side
+by side through many a night when the morrow might bring for them
+death or wounds, victory or imprisonment,--sharing the same emotions
+even until the first great passion of their lives cut them asunder.
+
+Brought up without father or mother, this friendship had meant more to
+Richard than to most men. As he heard his cousin's plea he was only
+held from hurrying forward with extended arms by Larry's whispered
+words.
+
+"It's fine, son. Let him have his say out. Don't stop him. Watch how
+it works on the old man yonder," for Peter Junior was telling of his
+childhood among the people of Leauvite, speaking in a low, clear voice
+which carried to all parts of the room.
+
+"Your Honor, and Gentlemen of the Jury, Because I have no witness to
+attest to the truth of my claim, I am forced to make this plea, simply
+that you may believe me, that the accusation which my father through
+his lawyer brings against me could never be possible. You who knew my
+cousin, Richard Kildene, how honorable his life and his nature, know
+how impossible to him would be the crime of which I, in his name, am
+accused. I could not make this claim were I any other than I am--the
+son of the man who--does not recognize his son.
+
+"Gentlemen of the Jury, you all knew us as boys together--how we loved
+each other and shared our pleasures like brothers--or more than
+brothers, for we quarreled less than brothers often do. During all
+the deep friendship of our lives, only once were we angry with each
+other--only once--and then--blinded by a great passion and swept
+beyond all knowledge of our acts, like men drunken we fought--we
+struggled against each other. Our friendship was turned to hatred. We
+tried--I think my cousin was trying to throw me over the brink of the
+bluff--at least he was near doing it. I do not make the plea of
+self-defense--for I was not acting in self-defense. I was lame, as
+you have heard, and not so strong as he. I could not stand against
+his greater strength,--but in my arms and hands I had power,--and
+I struck him with my cane. With all my force I struck him, and
+he--he--fell--wounded--and I--I--saw the blood gush from the wound I
+had made in his temple--with the stick I carried that day--in the
+place of my crutch.
+
+"Your Honor and Gentlemen of the Jury, it was my--intent to kill him.
+I--I--saw him lying at my feet--and thought I had done so." Here Peter
+Junior bowed his head and covered his face with his hands, and a
+breathless silence reigned in the court room until he lifted his head
+and began again. "It is now three years and more--and during all the
+time that has passed--I have seen him lying so--white--dead--and red
+with his own blood--that I had shed. You asked me why I have at last
+returned, and I reply, because I will no longer bear that sight. It
+is the curse of Cain that hangs over a murderer's soul, and follows
+wherever he goes. I tell you the form of my dead friend went with me
+always--sleeping, he lay beside me; waking, he lay at my feet. When I
+looked into the shadows, he was there, and when I worked in the mine
+and swung my pick against the walls of rock, it seemed that I still
+struck at my friend.
+
+"Well may my father refuse to own me as his son--me--a murderer--but
+one thing can I yet do to expiate my deed,--I can free my cousin's
+name from all blame, and if I were to hang for my deed, gladly would I
+walk over coals to the gallows, rather than that such a crime should
+be laid at his door as that he tried to return here and creep into my
+place after throwing me over the bluff into those terrible waters.
+
+"Do with me what you will, Gentlemen of the Jury, but free his name. I
+understand that my cousin's body was never found lying there as I had
+left it when I fled in cowardice--when I tried to make all the world
+think me also dead, and left him lying there--when I pushed the great
+stone out of its place down where I had so nearly gone, and left my
+hat lying as it had fallen and threw the articles from my pocket over
+after the stone I had sent crashing down into the river. Since the
+testimony here given proves that I was mistaken in my belief that I
+had killed him, may God be thanked, I am free from the guilt of that
+deed. Until he returns or until he is found and is known to be living,
+do with me what you will. I came to you to surrender myself and make
+this confession before you, and as I stand here in your presence and
+before my Maker, I declare to you that what I have said is the
+truth."
+
+As he ceased speaking he looked steadily at the Elder's averted face,
+then sat down, regarding no one else. He felt he had failed, and he
+sat with head bowed in shame and sorrow. A low murmur rose and swept
+through the court room like a sound of wind before a storm, and the
+old Elder leaned toward his lawyer and spoke in low tones, lifting a
+shaking finger, then dropped his hand and shifted slightly in his
+chair.
+
+As he did so Milton Hibbard arose and began his cross-examination.
+
+The simplicity of Peter Junior's story, and the ingenuous manner in
+which it had been told, called for a different cross-examination from
+that which would have been adopted if this same counsel had been
+called upon to cross-examine the Swede. He made no effort to entangle
+the witness, but he led him instead to repeat that part of his
+testimony in which he had told of the motive which induced him to
+return and give himself up to justice. In doing so his questions, the
+tone of his voice, and his manner were marked with incredulity. It was
+as if he were saying to the jury: "Just listen to this impossible
+story while I take him over it again. Did you ever hear anything like
+it?" When he had gone in this direction as far as he thought discreet,
+he asked abruptly: "I understand that you admit that you intended to
+kill your cousin, and supposed you had killed him?"
+
+"Yes. I admit it."
+
+"And that you ran away to escape the consequences?"
+
+"Yes."
+
+"Is it your observation that acknowledged murderers are usually
+possessed of the lofty motives and high sense of justice which you
+claim have actuated you?"
+
+"I--"
+
+Without waiting for the witness to reply, the lawyer turned and looked
+at the jury and with a sneer, said: "That's all."
+
+"Your Honor, we have no other witness; the defense rests. I have
+proposed some requests for your charge to the jury which I will hand
+up."
+
+And the judge said: "Counsel may address the jury."
+
+During a slight pause which now ensued Larry Kildene tore a bit of
+blank paper from a letter and wrote upon it: "Richard Kildene is in
+this room and will come forward when called upon." This he folded and
+sent by a boy to Nathan Goodbody.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXXIX
+
+RECONCILIATION
+
+
+Milton Hibbard arose and began his argument to the jury. It was a
+clear and forcible presentation of the case from his standpoint as
+counsel for the State.
+
+After recapitulating all the testimony that had been brought out
+during the course of the trial, he closed with an earnest appeal for
+the State against the defendant, showing conclusively that he believed
+the prisoner guilty. The changing expressions on the faces of the jury
+and among his audience showed that he was carrying them largely with
+him. Before he began speaking, Richard again started forward, but
+still Larry held him back. "Let be, son. Stand by and watch the old
+man yonder. Hear what they have to say against Peter Junior. I want to
+know what they have in their hearts." The strong dramatic appeal which
+the situation held for Larry was communicated through him to Richard
+also, and again he waited, and Milton Hibbard continued his oratory.
+
+"After all, the evidence against the prisoner still stands
+uncontradicted. You may see that to be able to sway you as he has, to
+be able to stand here and make his most touching and dramatic plea
+directly in the face of conclusive evidence, to dare to speak thus,
+proves the man to be a most consummate actor. Your Honor and Gentlemen
+of the Jury, nothing has ever been said against the intellect or
+facile ability of the prisoner. The glimpses we have been shown of his
+boyhood, even, prove his skill in carrying a part and holding a power
+over his comrades, and here we have the talent developed in the man.
+
+"He is too wise to try to deny the statements made by the witnesses of
+the State, but from the moment Miss Ballard was allowed to see him
+alone in the jail, he has been able to carry the young lady with him.
+We do not bring any accusation against the young lady. No doubt she
+thinks him what he claims to be. No doubt he succeeded in persuading
+her he is her former fiancé, knowing well that he saw her and talked
+with her before he fled, believing that her innocent acceptance of his
+story as the true explanation of his reappearance here and now will
+place him securely in the home of the man he claims is his father.
+That she saw Richard Kildene and knows him to be living is his reason
+for reappearing here and trying this most daring plea.
+
+"Is the true Peter Craigmile, Jr., dead? Then he can never arise to
+take the place this young man is now daring to usurp. Can Richard
+Kildene be proved to be living? Then is he, posing as Peter Craigmile,
+Jr., free from the charge of murder even if he makes confession
+thereto. He returns and makes this plea because he would live the life
+of a free man and not that of an outcast. He has himself told you
+why.
+
+"Now, as for the proofs that he is Richard Kildene, you have heard
+them--and know them to be unanswered. He has not the marks of Elder
+Craigmile's son. You have seen how the man he claims is his father
+refuses to even look upon him. Could a father be so deceived as not
+to know his own son? When Peter Craigmile, Jr., disappeared he was
+lame and feeble. This man returns,--strong and walking as well as one
+who never received a wound. Why, gentlemen, he stepped up here like a
+soldier--erect as a man who is sound in every limb. In that his
+subtlety has failed him. He forgot to act the part. But this
+forgetfulness only goes to further prove the point in hand. He was so
+sure of success that he forgot to act the part of the man he pretends
+to be.
+
+"He has forgotten to tell the court how he came by that scar above his
+temple,--yet he makes the statement that he himself inflicted such a
+wound on the head of Richard Kildene--the omission is remarkable in so
+clever an actor. Miss Ballard also admits having bound up that wound
+on the head of Richard Kildene,--but still she claims that this man is
+her former fiancé, Peter Craigmile, Jr. Gentlemen of the Jury, is it
+possible that you can retire from this court room and not consider
+carefully this point? Is it not plainly to be seen that the prisoner
+thought to return and take the place of the man he has slain, and
+through the testimony of the young lady prove himself free from the
+thing of which he accuses himself in his confession, and so live
+hereafter the life of a free man without stain--and at last to marry
+the young girl he has loved, of whom he robbed his cousin, and for
+whom he killed him, and counting on the undeniable resemblance to that
+cousin, as proved in this court, to deceive not only the young lady
+herself--but also this whole community--thus making capital out of
+that resemblance to his own advantage and--"
+
+"Never! Never!" cried a voice from the far corner of the court room.
+Instantly there was a stir all over. The Elder jumped up and frowned
+toward the place from whence the interruption came, and Milton Hibbard
+lifted his voice and tried to drown the uproar that rose and filled
+the room, but not one word he uttered could be heard.
+
+Order was called, and the stillness which ensued seemed ominous. Some
+one was elbowing his way forward, and as he passed through the crowd
+the uproar began again. Every one was on his feet, and although the
+prisoner stood and gazed toward the source of commotion he could not
+see the man who spoke. He looked across to the place where Betty
+Ballard had been sitting between her father and mother, and there he
+saw her standing on a chair, forgetful of the throng around her and of
+all the eyes that had been fixed upon her during her testimony in cold
+criticism, a wonderful, transfiguring light in her great gray eyes,
+and her arms stretched out toward some one in the surging crowd who
+was drawing nearer to the prisoner's box. Her lips were moving. She
+was repeating a name over and over. He knew the name she was repeating
+soundlessly, with quivering lips, and his heart gave a great bound and
+then stopped beating, and he fell upon his knees and bowed his head on
+his hands as they clung to the railing in front of him.
+
+Amalia, watching them all, with throbbing pulses and luminous
+eyes, saw and understood, and her spirit was filled with a great
+thankfulness which she could not voice, but which lifted her, serene
+and still, above every one there. Now she looked only at Peter
+Junior. Then a tremor crept over her, and, turning, she clasped
+Larry's arm with shaking hands.
+
+"Let me that I lean a little upon you or I fall down. How this is
+beautiful!"
+
+Larry put his arm about her and held her to him, supporting her
+gently. "It's all coming right, you see."
+
+"Yes. But, how it is terrible for the old man! It is as if the
+lightning had fallen on him."
+
+Larry glanced at his brother-in-law and then looked away. After all
+his desire to see him humbled, he felt a sense of shame in watching
+the old man's abject humility and remorse. Thereafter he kept his eyes
+fixed on his son, as he struggled with the throng packed closely
+around him and shouting now his name. Suddenly, when he could no
+longer progress, Richard felt himself lifted off his feet, and there,
+borne on the shoulders of the men,--as he had so shortly before been
+borne in triumph through the streets of Paris,--he was carried
+forward, this time by men who had tramped in the same column of
+infantry with him. Gladly now they held him aloft and shouted his
+name, and the people roared it back to them as they made way, and he
+was set down, as he directed, in the box beside the prisoner.
+
+Had the Judge then tried to restore order it would have been futile.
+He did not try. He stood smiling, with his hand on the old Elder's
+shoulder. Then, while the people cheered and stamped and shouted the
+names of the two young men, and while women wept and turned to each
+other, clasping hands and laughing through tears, Milton Hibbard
+stooped and spoke in the Elder's ear.
+
+"I throw up the case, man, and rejoice with you and the whole town. Go
+down there and take back your son."
+
+"The Lord has visited me heavily for the wicked pride of my heart. I
+have no right to joy in my son's return. He should cast me off." The
+old man sat there, shriveled and weary--gazing straight before him,
+and seeing only his own foolish prejudice, like a Giant Despair,
+looming over him. But fortunately for him, no one saw him or noticed
+him but the two at his side, for all eyes were fixed on the young men,
+as they stood facing each other and gazed in each other's eyes.
+
+It was a moment of breathless suspense throughout the court room, as
+if the crowd by one impulse were waiting to hear the young man speak,
+and the Judge seized the opportunity to again call for order.
+
+When order had been secured, the prisoner's counsel rose and said: "If
+your Honor please, I ask leave to have the proofs opened, and to be
+permitted to call another witness."
+
+The Judge replied: "I have no doubt the District Attorney will consent
+to this request. You may call your witness."
+
+"Richard Kildene!" rang out the triumphant voice of Nathan Goodbody,
+and Richard stepped into the witness box and was sworn.
+
+The natural eloquence with which he had been endowed was increased
+tenfold by his intense earnestness as he stood, turning now to the
+Judge and now to the jury, and told his story. The great audience,
+watching him and listening breathlessly, perceived the differences
+between the two men, a strong individuality in each causing such
+diversity of character that the words of Betty Ballard, which had so
+irritated the counsel, and which seemed so childish, now appealed to
+them as the truest wisdom--the wisdom of the "Child" who "shall lead
+them."
+
+"It is not the same head and it is not the same scar. It is not by
+their legs or their scars we know people, it is by themselves--by
+their souls." Betty was vindicated.
+
+Poignantly, intently, the audience felt as he wished them to feel the
+truth of his words, as he described the eternal vigilance of a man's
+own soul when he has a crime to expiate, and when he concluded by
+saying: "It is the Eye of Dread that sees into the hidden recesses of
+the heart,--to the uttermost end of life,--that follows the sinner
+even into his grave, until he yields to the demands of righteousness
+and accepts the terms of absolute truth," he carried them all with
+him, and again the tumult broke loose, and they shouted and laughed
+and wept and congratulated each other. The Judge himself sat stiffly
+in his seat, his chin quivering with an emotion he was making a
+desperate effort to conceal. Finally he turned and nodded to the
+sheriff, who rapped loudly for order. In a moment the room was silent,
+every one eager to hear what was to be the next step in the legal
+drama.
+
+"Gentlemen of the Jury," said the Judge, "Notwithstanding what has
+occurred, it becomes our duty to proceed to an orderly determination
+of this case. If you believe the testimony of the last witness, then,
+of course, the crime charged has not been committed, the respondent is
+not guilty, and he is entitled to your verdict. You may, if you
+choose, consult together where you are, and if you agree upon a
+verdict, the court will receive it. If you prefer to retire to
+consider your verdict, you may do so."
+
+The foreman of the jury then wrote the words, "Not guilty" on a piece
+of paper, and writing his name under it, passed it to the others. Each
+juror quickly signed his name under that of the foreman, and when it
+was returned to him, he arose and said: "The jury finds the accused
+not guilty."
+
+Then for the first time every one looked at the Elder. He was seated
+bowed over his clasped hands, as if he were praying, as indeed he was,
+a fervent prayer for forgiveness.
+
+Very quietly the people left the court room, filled with a reverent
+awe by the sight of the old man's face. It was as if he had suddenly
+died to the world while still sitting there before them. But at the
+door they gathered and waited. Larry Kildene waited with them until he
+spied Mary Ballard and Bertrand, with Betty, leaving, when he followed
+them and gave Amalia into their charge. It was a swift and glad
+meeting between Larry and his old friends, and a hurried explanation.
+
+"I'm coming to tell you the whole, soon, but meantime I've brought
+this lovely young lady for you to care for. Go with them, Amalia, and
+tell them all about yourself, for they will be father and mother and
+sister to you. I've found my son--I've a world to tell you, but now I
+must hurry back and comfort my brother-in-law a bit." He took Mary's
+hand in his and held it a moment, then Bertrand's, and then he
+relieved the situation by taking Betty's and looking into her eyes,
+which looked tearfully back at him. Stooping, as if irresistibly drawn
+to her, he touched her fingers with his lips, and then lightly her
+hair. It was done with the grace of an old courtier, and he was gone,
+disappearing in the courthouse.
+
+For a good while the crowd waited around the doors, neighbor visiting
+with neighbor and recounting the events of the trial that had most
+impressed them, and telling one and another how they had all along
+felt that the young prisoner was no other than Peter Junior, and
+laying all the blame on the Elder's reckless offer of so large a
+reward. Nels Nelson crept sulkily back to the stable, and G. B. Stiles
+returned to the hotel and packed his great valise and was taken to the
+station in the omnibus by Nels Nelson. As they parted, G. B. Stiles
+asked for the paper he had given the Swede.
+
+"It's no good to you or any one now, you know. You're out nothing. I'm
+the only one that's out--all I've spent--"
+
+"Yas, bot I got heem. You not--all ofer de vorl. Dey vas bot' coom
+back, dot's all," and so they parted.
+
+Every one was glad and rejoiced over the return of the young men, with
+a sense of relief that resulted in hilarity, and no one would leave
+until he had had a chance to grasp the hands of the "boys." The men of
+the jury lingered with the rest, all eager to convince their friends
+that they would never have found the prisoner guilty of the charge
+against him, and at the same time chaffing each other about their
+discussions, and the way in which one and another had been caught by
+the evidence and Peter's changed appearance.
+
+At last the doors of the courthouse opened, and the Judge, and Milton
+Hibbard, Peter Junior, his father, and the lawyers, and Larry and
+Richard walked out in a group, when shouting and cheering began anew.
+Before descending the steps, the Elder, with bared head, stepped
+forward and stood regarding the people in silence, and the noise of
+shouting and cheering stopped as suddenly as it began. The devout old
+man stood erect, but his words came to them brokenly.
+
+"My friends and my neighbors, as you all know, I have this day been
+saved--from committing, in my blindness and my stubbornness, a great
+crime,--for which the Lord be thanked. Unworthy as I am, this day my
+son has been restored to me, fine and strong, for which the Lord be
+thanked. And here, the young man brought up as a brother to him, is
+again among you who have always loved him,"--he turned and took
+Richard by the hand, and waited a moment; then, getting control of
+himself, once more continued--"for which again, I say, the Lord be
+thanked.
+
+"And now let me present to you one whom many of you know already, who
+has returned to us after many years--one whom in the past I have
+greatly wronged. Let me here and now make confession before you all,
+and present him to you as a man--" He turned and placed his hand on
+Larry's shoulder. "Let me present him to you as a man who can forgive
+an enemy--even so far as to allow that man who was his enemy to claim
+him forevermore as--as--brother--and friend,--Larry Kildene!" Again
+cheers burst forth and again were held back as the Elder continued.
+"Neighbors--he has sent us back my son. He has saved me--more than
+me--from ruin and disaster, in these days when ruin is abroad in the
+land. How he has done it you will soon learn, for I ask you all to
+come round to my house this night and--partake of--of--a little
+collation to be prepared by Mr. Decker and sent in for this occasion."
+The old man's voice grew stronger as he proceeded, "Just to welcome
+home these boys of ours--our young men--and this man--generous and--"
+
+"You've not been the only one to blame." Larry stepped forward and
+seized the Elder's hand, "I take my share of the sorrow--but it is
+past. We're friends--all of us--and we'll go all around to Elder
+Craigmile's house this night, and help him give thanks by partaking of
+his bounty--and now--will ye lift your voices and give a cheer for
+Elder Craigmile, a man who has stood in this community for all that is
+excellent, for uprightness and advancement, for honor and purity, a
+man respected, admired, and true--who has stood for the good of his
+fellows in this town of Leauvite for fifty years." Larry Kildene
+lifted his hand above his head and smiled a smile that would have
+drawn cheers from the very paving stones.
+
+And the cheers came, heartily and strongly, as the four men, rugged
+and strong, the gray-haired and the brown-haired, passed through the
+crowd and across the town square and up the main street, and on to the
+Elder's home.
+
+Ere an hour had passed all was quiet, and the small town of Leauvite
+had taken up the even tenor of its way. After a little time, Larry
+Kildene and Richard left the Elder and his son by themselves and
+strolled away from the town on the familiar road toward the river.
+They talked quietly and happily of things nearest their hearts, as
+they had need to do, until they came to a certain fork of the road,
+when Larry paused, standing a moment with his arm across his son's
+shoulder.
+
+"I'll go on a piece by myself, Richard. I'm thinking you'll be wanting
+to make a little visit."
+
+Richard's eyes danced. "Come with me, father, come. There'll be others
+there for you to talk with--who'll be glad to have you there, and--"
+
+"Go to, go to! I know the ways of a man's heart as well as the next."
+
+"I'll warrant you do, father!" and Richard bounded away, taking the
+path he had so often trod in his boyhood. Larry stood and looked after
+him a moment. He was pleased to hear how readily the word, father,
+fell from the young man's lips. Yes, Richard was facile and ready. He
+was his own son.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XL
+
+THE SAME BOY
+
+
+Mary Ballard stepped down from the open porch where Amalia and the
+rest of the family sat behind a screen of vines, interestedly talking,
+and walked along the path between the rose bushes that led to the
+gate. She knew Richard must be coming when she saw Betty, who sat
+where she could glance now and then down the road, drop her sewing and
+hurry away through the house and off toward the spring. As Larry knew
+the heart of a man, so Mary Ballard knew the heart of a girl. She said
+nothing, but quietly strolled along and waited with her hand on the
+gate.
+
+"I wanted to be the first to open the gate to you, Richard," she said,
+as he approached her with extended arms. Silently he drew her to him
+and kissed her. She held him off a moment and gazed into his eyes.
+
+"Yes, I'm the same boy. I think that was what you said to me when I
+entered the army--that I should come back to you the same boy? I've
+always had it in mind. I'm the same boy."
+
+"I believe you, Richard. They are all out on the front porch, and
+Bertrand is with them--if you wish to see him--first--and if you wish
+to see Betty, take the path at the side, around the house to the
+spring below the garden."
+
+Betty stood with her back to the house under the great Bartlett pear
+tree. She was trembling. She would not look around--Oh, no! She would
+wait until he asked for her. He might not ask for her! If he did not,
+she would not go in--not yet. But she did look around, for she felt
+him near her--she was sure--sure--he was near--close--
+
+"Oh, Richard, Richard! Oh, Richard, did you know that I have been
+calling you in my heart--so hard, calling you, calling you?"
+
+She was in his arms and his lips were on hers. "The same little Betty!
+The same dear little Betty! Lovelier--sweeter--you wore a white dress
+with little green sprigs on it--is this the dress?"
+
+"Yes, no. I couldn't wear the same old one all this time." She spoke
+between laughing and crying.
+
+"Why is this just like it?"
+
+"Because."
+
+He held her away and gazed at her a moment. "What a lovely reason!
+What a lovely Betty!" He drew her to him again. "I heard it all--there
+in the court room. I was there and heard. What a load you have borne
+for me--my little Betty--all this time--what a load!"
+
+"It was horrible, Richard." She hid her flaming face on his breast.
+"There, before the whole town--to tell every one--everything.
+I--I--don't even know what I said."
+
+"I do. Every word--dear little Betty! While I have been hiding like a
+great coward, you have been bravely bearing my terrible burden,
+bearing it for me."
+
+"Oh, Richard! For weeks and weeks my heart has been calling you,
+calling you--night and day, calling you to come home. I told them he
+was Peter Junior, but they would not believe me--no one would believe
+me but mother. Father tried to, but only mother really did."
+
+"I heard you, Betty. I had a dingy little studio up three flights of
+stairs in Paris, and I sat there painting one day--and I heard you. I
+had sent a picture to the Salon, and was waiting in suspense to know
+the result, and I heard your call--"
+
+"Was--was--that what made you come home--or--or was it because you
+knew you ought to?" She lifted her head and looked straight into his
+eyes.
+
+Richard laughed. "It's the same little Betty! The same Betty with the
+same conscience bigger than her head--almost bigger than her heart. I
+can't tell you what it was. I heard it again and again, and the last
+time I just packed my things and wound up matters there--I had made a
+success, Betty, dear--let me say that. It makes me feel just a little
+bit more worth your while. I thought to make a success would be sweet,
+but it was all worthless--I'll tell you all about it later--but it was
+no help and I just followed the call and returned, hurrying as if I
+knew all about the thing that was going on, when really I knew
+nothing. Sometimes I thought it was you calling me, and sometimes I
+thought it was my own conscience, and sometimes I thought it was only
+that I could no longer bear my own thoughts--See here, Betty,
+darling--don't--don't ever kill any one, for the thought that you have
+committed a murder is an awful thing to carry about with you."
+
+She laughed and hid her face again on his breast. "Richard, how can
+we laugh--when it has all been so horrible?"
+
+"We can't, Betty--we're crying." She looked up at him again, and
+surely his eyes were filled with tears. She put up her hand and
+lightly touched his lips with her fingers.
+
+"I know. I know you've suffered, Richard. I see the lines of sorrow
+here about your mouth--even when you smile. I saw the same in Peter
+Junior's face, and it was so sad--I just hugged him, I was so glad it
+was he--I--I--hugged him and kissed him--"
+
+"Bless his heart! Somebody ought to."
+
+"Somebody will. She's beautiful--and so--fascinating! Let's go in so
+you can meet her."
+
+"I have met her, and father has told me a great deal about her. I've
+had a fine talk with my father. How wonderful that Peter should have
+been the means of finding my father for me--and such a splendid
+father! I often used to think out what kind of a father I would like
+if I could choose one, but I never thought out just such a combination
+of delightful qualities as I find in him."
+
+"It's like a story, isn't it? And we'll all live happily ever after.
+Shall we go in and see the rest, Richard? They'll be wanting to see
+you too."
+
+"Let's go over here and sit down. I don't want to see the rest quite
+yet, little one. Why, Betty, do you suppose I can let go of you yet?"
+
+"No," said Betty, meekly, and again Richard laughed. She lifted the
+hair from his temple and touched the old scar.
+
+"Yes, it's there, Betty. I'm glad he hit me that welt. I would have
+pushed him over but for that. I deserved it."
+
+"You're not so like him--not so like as you used to be. No one would
+mistake you now. You don't look so much like yourself as you used
+to--and you've a lot of white in your hair. Oh, Richard!"
+
+"Yes. It's been pretty tough, Betty, dear,--pretty tough. Let's talk
+of something else."
+
+"And all the time I couldn't help you--even the least bit."
+
+"But you were a help all the time--all the time."
+
+"How, Richard?"
+
+"I had a clean, sweet, perfect, innocent place always in my heart
+where you were that kept me from caring for a lot of foolishness that
+tempted other men. It was a good, sweet, wholesome place where you sat
+always. When I wanted to see you sitting there, I had only to take a
+funny little leather housewife, all worn, and tied with cherry-colored
+hair ribbons, in my hand and look at it and remember."
+
+Betty sighed a long sigh of contentment and settled herself closer in
+his arms. "Yes, I was there, and God heard me praying for you.
+Sometimes I felt myself there."
+
+"In the secret chamber of my heart, Betty, dear?"
+
+"Yes." They were silent for a while, one of the blessed silences which
+make life worth living. Then Betty lifted her head. "Tell me about
+Paris, Richard, and what you did there. It was Peter who was wild to
+go and paint in Paris and it was you who went. That was why no one
+found you. They never thought that of you--but I would have thought
+it. I knew you had it in you."
+
+"Oh, yes, after a fashion I had it in me."
+
+"But you said you met with success. Did that mean you were admitted to
+the Salon?"
+
+"Yes, dear."
+
+"Oh, Richard! How tremendous! I've read a lot about it. Oh, Richard!
+Did you like the 'Old Masters'?"
+
+"Did I! Betty, I learned a thing about your father, looking at the
+work of some of those great old fellows. I learned that he is a better
+painter and a greater man than people over here know."
+
+"Mother knew it--all the time."
+
+"Ah, yes, your mother! Would you like to go there, Betty? Then I'll
+take you. We'll be married right away, won't we, dear?"
+
+"You know, Richard, I believe I would be perfectly--absolutely--terribly
+happy--if--if I could only get over being mad at your uncle. He was so
+stubborn, he was just wicked. I hated him--I--I hated him so, and now
+it seems as if I had got used to hating him and couldn't stop."
+
+She had been so brave and had not once given way, but now at the
+thought of all the bitterness and the fight of her will against that
+of the old man, she sobbed in his arms. Her whole frame shook and he
+gathered her close and comforted her. "He--he--he was always
+saying--saying--"
+
+"Never mind now what he was saying, dear. Listen."
+
+"I--I--I--am afraid--I can never see him--or--or look at him
+again--I--I--hate him so!"
+
+"No, no. Don't hate him. Any one would have done the same in his place
+who believed as firmly as he did what he believed."
+
+"B--b--but he didn't need to believe it."
+
+"You see he had known through that Dane man--or whatever he is--from
+the detective--all I told you that night--how could he help it? I
+believed Peter was dead--we all did--you did. He had brooded over it
+and slept upon it--no wonder he refused even to look at Peter. If you
+had seen Uncle Elder there in the court room after the people had
+gone, if you had seen him then, Betty, you would never hate him
+again."
+
+"All the same, if--if--you hadn't come home when you did,--and the
+law of Wisconsin allowed of hanging--he would have had him,
+Peter Junior--he would have had his own son hanged,--and been
+glad--glad--because he would have thought he was hanging you. I do
+hate--"
+
+"No, no. And as he very tersely said--if all had been as it seemed,
+and it had been me--trying to take the place of Peter Junior--I would
+have deserved hanging--now wouldn't I, after all the years when Uncle
+Elder had been good to me for his sister's sake?"
+
+"That's it--for his sister's sake--n--n--not for yours, always himself
+and his came first. And then it wouldn't have been so. Even if it were
+so, it wouldn't have been so--I mean--I wouldn't have believed
+it--because it couldn't have been you and been so--"
+
+"Darling little Irish Betty! What a fine daughter you will be to my
+Irish Dad! Oh, my dear! my dear!"
+
+"But you know such a thing would have been impossible for you to do.
+They might have known it, too, if they'd had any sense. And that scar
+on Peter's head--that was a new one and yours is an old one. If they
+had had any sense, they could have seen that, too."
+
+"Never any man on earth had a sweeter job than I! It's worth all I've
+been through to come home here and comfort you. Let's keep it up all
+our lives, see? You always stay mad at Uncle Elder, and I'll always
+comfort you--just like this."
+
+Then Betty laughed through her tears, and they kissed again, and then
+proceeded to settle all their future to Richard's heart's content.
+Then, after a long while, they crept in where the family were all
+seated at supper, and instantly everything in the way of decorum at
+meals was demoralized. Every one jumped up, and Betty and Richard were
+surrounded and tumbled about and hugged and kissed by all--until a
+shrill, childish voice raised a shout of laughter as little Janey
+said: "What are we all kissing Betty for? She hasn't been away; she's
+been here all the time."
+
+It was Peter Junior who broke up the rout. He came in upon them,
+saying he had left his father asleep, exhausted after the day's
+emotion, and that he had come home to the Ballards to get a little
+supper. Then it was all to be done over again, and Peter was jumbled
+up among outstretched arms, and shaken and pounded and hugged, and
+happy he was to be taken once more thus vociferously into the home
+that had always meant so much to him. There they all were,--Martha and
+Julien--James and Bob, as the boys were called these days,--and little
+Janey--and Bertrand as joyous as a boy, and Mary--she who had always
+known--even as Betty said, smiling on him in the old way--and there,
+watching all with glowing eyes, Amalia at one side, waiting, until
+Peter had her, too, in his arms.
+
+Quickly Martha set a place for Peter between Amalia and herself. Yes,
+it was all as it should be--the circle now complete--only--"Where is
+your father, Richard?" asked Mary.
+
+"He went off for a walk. Isn't he a glorious father for a man to fall
+heir to? We're all to meet at Uncle Elder's to-night, and he'll be
+there."
+
+"Will he? I'm so glad."
+
+"Yes, Mrs. Ballard." Richard looked gravely into her eyes and from her
+to Bertrand. "You left after the verdict. You weren't at the
+courthouse at the last. It's all come right, and it's going to stay
+so."
+
+The meal progressed and ended amid laughter; and a little later the
+family all set out for the banker's home.
+
+"How I wish Hester were here!" said Mary. "I did not wish her here
+before--but now we want her." She looked at Peter.
+
+"Yes, now we want her. We're ready for her at last. Father leaves for
+New York to-morrow to fetch her. She's coming on the next steamship,
+and he'll meet her and bring her back to us all."
+
+"How that is beautiful!" murmured Amalia, as she walked at Peter's
+side. He looked down at her and noted a weariness in her manner she
+strove to conceal.
+
+"Come back with me a little--just a little while. I can go later to my
+father's, and he will excuse you, and I'll take you to him before he
+leaves to-morrow. Come, I think I know where we may find Larry
+Kildene." So Peter led her away into the dusk, and they walked
+slowly--slowly--along the road leading to the river bluff--but not to
+the top.
+
+After a long hour Larry came down from the height where he had been
+communing with himself and found them in the sweet starlight seated by
+the wayside, and passed them, although he knew they were Peter and
+Amalia. He walked lingeringly, feeling himself very much alone, until
+he was seized by either arm and held.
+
+"It is your blessing, Sir Kildene, we ask it."
+
+And Larry gave them the blessing they asked, and took Amalia in his
+arms and kissed her. "I thought from the first that you might be my
+son, Peter, and it means no diminution in my love for you that I find
+you are not. It's been a great day--a great day--a great day," he said
+as if to himself, and they walked on together.
+
+"Yes, yes! Sir Kildene, I am never to know again fear. I am to have
+the new name, so strong and fine. Well can I say it. Hear me.
+Peter-Craigmile-Junior. A strange, fine name--it is to be mine--given
+to me. How all is beautiful here! It is the joy of heaven in my
+heart--like--like heaven, is not, Peter?"
+
+"Now you are here--yes, Amalia."
+
+"So have I say to you before--to love is all of heaven--and all of
+life, is not?"
+
+Peter held in his hand the little crucifix he had worn on his bosom
+since their parting. In the darkness he felt rather than saw it. He
+placed it in her hand and drew her close as they walked. "Yes, Amalia,
+yes. You have taught me. Hatred destroys like a blast, but love--love
+is life itself."
+
+
+
+
+
+
+End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of The Eye of Dread, by Payne Erskine
+
+*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE EYE OF DREAD ***
+
+***** This file should be named 30031-8.txt or 30031-8.zip *****
+This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
+ https://www.gutenberg.org/3/0/0/3/30031/
+
+Produced by Roger Frank and the Online Distributed
+Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net
+
+
+Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
+will be renamed.
+
+Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
+one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
+(and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
+permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
+set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
+copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
+protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
+Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
+charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
+do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
+rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
+such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
+research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
+practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
+subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
+redistribution.
+
+
+
+*** START: FULL LICENSE ***
+
+THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
+PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
+
+To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
+distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
+(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
+Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
+Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at
+https://gutenberg.org/license).
+
+
+Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic works
+
+1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
+and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
+(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
+the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
+all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
+If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
+terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
+entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
+
+1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
+used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
+agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
+things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
+even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
+paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
+and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works. See paragraph 1.E below.
+
+1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation"
+or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
+collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
+individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
+located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
+copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
+works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
+are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
+Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
+freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
+this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
+the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
+keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
+Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
+
+1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
+what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
+a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
+the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
+before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
+creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
+Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
+the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
+States.
+
+1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
+
+1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
+access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
+whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
+phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project
+Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
+copied or distributed:
+
+This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
+almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
+re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
+with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
+
+1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
+from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
+posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
+and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
+or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
+with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the
+work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
+through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
+Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
+1.E.9.
+
+1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
+with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
+must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
+terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
+to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
+permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
+
+1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
+work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
+
+1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
+electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
+prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
+active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
+Gutenberg-tm License.
+
+1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
+compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
+word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
+distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
+"Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
+posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org),
+you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
+copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
+request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other
+form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
+
+1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
+performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
+unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
+
+1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
+access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
+that
+
+- You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
+ the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
+ you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
+ owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
+ has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
+ Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
+ must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
+ prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
+ returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
+ sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
+ address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to
+ the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
+
+- You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
+ you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
+ does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+ License. You must require such a user to return or
+ destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
+ and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
+ Project Gutenberg-tm works.
+
+- You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
+ money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
+ electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
+ of receipt of the work.
+
+- You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
+ distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
+
+1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
+forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
+both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
+Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
+Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
+
+1.F.
+
+1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
+effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
+public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
+collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
+"Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
+corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
+property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
+computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
+your equipment.
+
+1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
+of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
+Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
+Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
+liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
+fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
+LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
+PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH F3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
+TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
+LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
+INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
+DAMAGE.
+
+1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
+defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
+receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
+written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
+received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
+your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
+the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
+refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
+providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
+receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
+is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
+opportunities to fix the problem.
+
+1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
+in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS' WITH NO OTHER
+WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
+WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
+
+1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
+warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
+If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
+law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
+interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
+the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
+provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
+
+1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
+trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
+providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
+with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
+promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
+harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
+that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
+or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
+work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
+Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
+
+
+Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
+electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
+including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
+because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
+people in all walks of life.
+
+Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
+assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
+goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
+remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
+Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
+and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
+To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
+and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
+and the Foundation web page at https://www.pglaf.org.
+
+
+Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
+Foundation
+
+The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
+501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
+state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
+Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
+number is 64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at
+https://pglaf.org/fundraising. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
+Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
+permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
+
+The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
+Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
+throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at
+809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email
+business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact
+information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official
+page at https://pglaf.org
+
+For additional contact information:
+ Dr. Gregory B. Newby
+ Chief Executive and Director
+ gbnewby@pglaf.org
+
+
+Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
+Literary Archive Foundation
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
+spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
+increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
+freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
+array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
+($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
+status with the IRS.
+
+The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
+charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
+States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
+considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
+with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
+where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
+SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
+particular state visit https://pglaf.org
+
+While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
+have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
+against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
+approach us with offers to donate.
+
+International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
+any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
+outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
+
+Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
+methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
+ways including including checks, online payments and credit card
+donations. To donate, please visit: https://pglaf.org/donate
+
+
+Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works.
+
+Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
+concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
+with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project
+Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
+
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
+editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
+unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
+keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
+
+
+Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
+
+ https://www.gutenberg.org
+
+This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
+including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
+Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
+subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
diff --git a/old/30031-8.zip b/old/30031-8.zip
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..efa481a
--- /dev/null
+++ b/old/30031-8.zip
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/30031-h.zip b/old/30031-h.zip
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..b53dbc8
--- /dev/null
+++ b/old/30031-h.zip
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/30031-h/30031-h.htm b/old/30031-h/30031-h.htm
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..5724471
--- /dev/null
+++ b/old/30031-h/30031-h.htm
@@ -0,0 +1,16424 @@
+<!DOCTYPE html PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.0 Strict//EN"
+"http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml1/DTD/xhtml1-strict.dtd">
+<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml">
+<head>
+<meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html;charset=iso-8859-1" />
+<title>The Project Gutenberg eBook of The Eye of Dread, by Payne Erskine.</title>
+
+<style type="text/css">
+ @media screen {
+ hr.pb {margin:30px 0; width:100%; border:none;border-top:thin dashed silver;}
+ .pagenum {display: inline; font-size: x-small; text-align: right; text-indent: 0; position: absolute; right: 2%; padding: 1px 3px; font-style: normal; font-variant:normal; font-weight:normal; text-decoration: none; background-color: inherit; border:1px solid #eee;}
+ .pncolor {color: silver;}
+ }
+ @media print {
+ hr.pb {border:none;page-break-after: always;}
+ .pagenum { display:none; }
+ }
+ body {margin-left: 11%; margin-right: 10%;}
+ p {margin-top: 0.5em; text-align: justify; margin-bottom: 0.5em;}
+
+ blockquote {display: block; margin: .75em 5%; font-size: 90%;}
+ h1 {font-size:1.4em;}
+ h1,h2,h3 {text-align:center; font-weight:normal;}
+ h2 {font-size:1.2em;}
+ h3 {font-size:1.0em;}
+ hr.p10 {border:none; border-bottom:1px solid black; width: 10%;}
+ p.tp {font-size:1em; margin-top:0; margin-bottom:0; text-align:center;}
+
+ .caption {font-size: 90%; text-align:center;}
+ .chsp {margin: auto; text-align: center; padding-top: 2em; padding-bottom: 1em;}
+ .figcenter {margin: 2em auto 2em auto; text-align: center; width: auto;}
+ .figtag {height: 1px;}
+ .fnanchor {font-size: .8em; text-decoration: none;}
+ .footnote {margin-left: 10%; margin-right: 10%; font-size: 0.9em;}
+ .footnote .label {position: absolute; right: 84%; text-align: right;}
+ .smcap {font-variant: small-caps;}
+ a {text-decoration: none;}
+ hr.fn {width:3em; text-align:left; margin-left: 0; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:1em; height:1px; border: none; border-bottom: 1px solid black;}
+ hr.toprule {width: 65%; margin-top: 2em; margin-bottom: 2em; border:none; border-bottom:1px solid silver; clear:both;}
+ p.cg {margin-top: 0; margin-bottom: 0; text-align: left; width: 101%;}
+ p.ralign {text-align: right !important;}
+ span.indent10 {margin: 0; padding:0; text-indent:0; width: 4.0em; display: block; float: left;}
+ span.indent14 {margin: 0; padding:0; text-indent:0; width: 5.6em; display: block; float: left;}
+ span.indent16 {margin: 0; padding:0; text-indent:0; width: 6.4em; display: block; float: left;}
+ span.indent2 {margin: 0; padding:0; text-indent:0; width: 0.8em; display: block; float: left;}
+ span.indent4 {margin: 0; padding:0; text-indent:0; width: 1.6em; display: block; float: left;}
+ span.indent6 {margin: 0; padding:0; text-indent:0; width: 2.4em; display: block; float: left;}
+ span.rindent2 {margin: 0; padding:0; text-indent:0; width: 0.8em; display: block; float: right;}
+ span.rindent8 {margin: 0; padding:0; text-indent:0; width: 3.2em; display: block; float: right;}
+ table {margin-left: auto; margin-right: auto; clear: both;}
+ td.chalgn {text-align:right; margin-top:0; padding-right:1em;}
+</style>
+
+</head>
+<body>
+
+
+<pre>
+
+The Project Gutenberg EBook of The Eye of Dread, by Payne Erskine
+
+This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
+almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
+re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
+with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
+
+
+Title: The Eye of Dread
+
+Author: Payne Erskine
+
+Illustrator: George Gibbs
+
+Release Date: September 19, 2009 [EBook #30031]
+
+Language: English
+
+Character set encoding: ISO-8859-1
+
+*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE EYE OF DREAD ***
+
+
+
+
+Produced by Roger Frank and the Online Distributed
+Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net
+
+
+
+
+
+
+</pre>
+
+
+<div class='figtag'>
+<a name='linki_1' id='linki_1'></a>
+</div>
+<div class='figcenter'>
+<img src='images/illus-fpc.jpg' alt='' title='' width='388' height='572' /><br />
+<p class='caption'>
+&ldquo;Listen. Go with the love in your heart&ndash;&ndash;for me.&rdquo;<br />
+<span class='smcap'>Frontispiece.</span>&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;<i>See Page 329.</i><br />
+</p>
+</div>
+<hr class='pb' />
+<p class='tp' style='font-size:2.2em;margin-bottom:20px;'>The Eye of Dread</p>
+<p class='tp' style='font-size:1.4em;margin-bottom:20px;'>By PAYNE ERSKINE</p>
+<p class='tp'>Author of &ldquo;The Mountain Girl,&rdquo; &ldquo;Joyful Heatherby,&rdquo;<br />Etc.</p>
+<div style='margin:60px auto; text-align:center;'>
+<img alt='emblem' src='images/illus-emb.png' />
+</div>
+<p class='tp' style='font-size:larger;margin-bottom:30px;'>With Frontispiece by<br />GEORGE GIBBS</p>
+<p class='tp' style='font-size:1.2em;'>A. L. BURT COMPANY, PUBLISHERS</p>
+<p class='tp' >114-120 East Twenty-third Street&nbsp;&nbsp;-&nbsp;&nbsp;-&nbsp;&nbsp;New York</p>
+<p class='tp' style='font-variant:small-caps;font-size:smaller;'>Published by Arrangement With Little, Brown &amp; Company</p>
+<hr class='pb' />
+<p class='tp' ><i>Copyright, 1913,</i></p>
+<p class='tp' ><span class='smcap'>By Little, Brown, and Company</span>.</p>
+<hr class='p10' />
+<p class='tp' style='margin-bottom:20px;'><i>All rights reserved</i></p>
+<p class='tp' >Published, October, 1913</p>
+<p class='tp' >Reprinted, October, 1913</p>
+<hr class='pb' />
+<h3>CONTENTS</h3>
+<table border='0' cellpadding='2' cellspacing='0' summary='Contents' style='margin:1em auto;'>
+<tr>
+ <td valign='top' colspan='3'><p style='margin:1em auto 0.5em auto; font-size:110%; text-align:center;'>BOOK ONE</p></td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+ <td valign='top' class='chalgn'><p style='font-size:small;text-align:left'>CHAPTER</p></td>
+ <td />
+ <td valign='top' align='right'><p style='font-size:small;text-align:right'>PAGE</p></td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+ <td valign='top' class='chalgn'>I.</td>
+ <td valign='top' align='left' style='padding-right:4em;'><span class='smcap'>Betty</span></td>
+ <td valign='bottom' align='right'><a href='#CHAPTER_I_BETTY'>1</a></td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+ <td valign='top' class='chalgn'>II.</td>
+ <td valign='top' align='left' style='padding-right:4em;'><span class='smcap'>Watching the Bees</span></td>
+ <td valign='bottom' align='right'><a href='#CHAPTER_II_WATCHING_THE_BEES'>9</a></td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+ <td valign='top' class='chalgn'>III.</td>
+ <td valign='top' align='left' style='padding-right:4em;'><span class='smcap'>A Mother&rsquo;s Struggle</span></td>
+ <td valign='bottom' align='right'><a href='#CHAPTER_III_A_MOTHERS_STRUGGLE'>23</a></td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+ <td valign='top' class='chalgn'>IV.</td>
+ <td valign='top' align='left' style='padding-right:4em;'><span class='smcap'>Leave-Taking</span></td>
+ <td valign='bottom' align='right'><a href='#CHAPTER_IV_LEAVETAKING'>34</a></td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+ <td valign='top' class='chalgn'>V.</td>
+ <td valign='top' align='left' style='padding-right:4em;'><span class='smcap'>The Passing of Time</span></td>
+ <td valign='bottom' align='right'><a href='#CHAPTER_V_THE_PASSING_OF_TIME'>49</a></td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+ <td valign='top' class='chalgn'>VI.</td>
+ <td valign='top' align='left' style='padding-right:4em;'><span class='smcap'>The End of the War</span></td>
+ <td valign='bottom' align='right'><a href='#CHAPTER_VI_THE_END_OF_THE_WAR'>59</a></td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+ <td valign='top' class='chalgn'>VII.</td>
+ <td valign='top' align='left' style='padding-right:4em;'><span class='smcap'>A New Era Begins</span></td>
+ <td valign='bottom' align='right'><a href='#CHAPTER_VII_A_NEW_ERA_BEGINS'>69</a></td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+ <td valign='top' class='chalgn'>VIII.</td>
+ <td valign='top' align='left' style='padding-right:4em;'><span class='smcap'>Mary Ballard&rsquo;s Discovery</span></td>
+ <td valign='bottom' align='right'><a href='#CHAPTER_VIII_MARY_BALLARDS_DISCOVERY'>87</a></td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+ <td valign='top' class='chalgn'>IX.</td>
+ <td valign='top' align='left' style='padding-right:4em;'><span class='smcap'>The Banker&rsquo;s Point of View</span></td>
+ <td valign='bottom' align='right'><a href='#CHAPTER_IX_THE_BANKERS_POINT_OF_VIEW'>97</a></td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+ <td valign='top' class='chalgn'>X.</td>
+ <td valign='top' align='left' style='padding-right:4em;'><span class='smcap'>The Nutting Party</span></td>
+ <td valign='bottom' align='right'><a href='#CHAPTER_X_THE_NUTTING_PARTY'>110</a></td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+ <td valign='top' class='chalgn'>XI.</td>
+ <td valign='top' align='left' style='padding-right:4em;'><span class='smcap'>Betty Ballard&rsquo;s Awakening</span></td>
+ <td valign='bottom' align='right'><a href='#CHAPTER_XI_BETTY_BALLARDS_AWAKENING'>125</a></td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+ <td valign='top' class='chalgn'>XII.</td>
+ <td valign='top' align='left' style='padding-right:4em;'><span class='smcap'>Mysterious Findings</span></td>
+ <td valign='bottom' align='right'><a href='#CHAPTER_XII_MYSTERIOUS_FINDINGS'>139</a></td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+ <td valign='top' class='chalgn'>XIII.</td>
+ <td valign='top' align='left' style='padding-right:4em;'><span class='smcap'>Confession</span></td>
+ <td valign='bottom' align='right'><a href='#CHAPTER_XIII_CONFESSION'>157</a></td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+ <td valign='top' colspan='3'><p style='margin:1em auto 0.5em auto; font-size:110%; text-align:center;'>BOOK TWO</p></td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+ <td valign='top' class='chalgn'>XIV.</td>
+ <td valign='top' align='left' style='padding-right:4em;'><span class='smcap'>Out of the Desert</span></td>
+ <td valign='bottom' align='right'><a href='#CHAPTER_XIV_OUT_OF_THE_DESERT'>168</a></td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+ <td valign='top' class='chalgn'>XV.</td>
+ <td valign='top' align='left' style='padding-right:4em;'><span class='smcap'>The Big Man&rsquo;s Return</span></td>
+ <td valign='bottom' align='right'><a href='#CHAPTER_XV_THE_BIG_MANS_RETURN'>183</a></td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+ <td valign='top' class='chalgn'>XVI.</td>
+ <td valign='top' align='left' style='padding-right:4em;'><span class='smcap'>A Peculiar Position</span></td>
+ <td valign='bottom' align='right'><a href='#CHAPTER_XVI_A_PECULIAR_POSITION'>198</a></td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+ <td valign='top' class='chalgn'>XVII.</td>
+ <td valign='top' align='left' style='padding-right:4em;'><span class='smcap'>Adopting a Family</span></td>
+ <td valign='bottom' align='right'><a href='#CHAPTER_XVII_ADOPTING_A_FAMILY'>208</a></td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+ <td valign='top' class='chalgn'>XVIII.</td>
+ <td valign='top' align='left' style='padding-right:4em;'><span class='smcap'>Larry Kildene&rsquo;s Story</span></td>
+ <td valign='bottom' align='right'><a href='#CHAPTER_XVIII_LARRY_KILDENES_STORY'>219</a></td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+ <td valign='top' class='chalgn'>XIX.</td>
+ <td valign='top' align='left' style='padding-right:4em;'><span class='smcap'>The Mine&ndash;&ndash;And the Departure</span></td>
+ <td valign='bottom' align='right'><a href='#CHAPTER_XIX_THE_MINEAND_THE_DEPARTURE'>237</a></td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+ <td valign='top' class='chalgn'>XX.</td>
+ <td valign='top' align='left' style='padding-right:4em;'><span class='smcap'>Alone on the Mountain</span></td>
+ <td valign='bottom' align='right'><a href='#CHAPTER_XX_ALONE_ON_THE_MOUNTAIN'>252</a></td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+ <td valign='top' class='chalgn'>XXI.</td>
+ <td valign='top' align='left' style='padding-right:4em;'><span class='smcap'>The Violin</span></td>
+ <td valign='bottom' align='right'><a href='#CHAPTER_XXI_THE_VIOLIN'>267</a></td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+ <td valign='top' class='chalgn'>XXII.</td>
+ <td valign='top' align='left' style='padding-right:4em;'><span class='smcap'>The Beast on the Trail</span></td>
+ <td valign='bottom' align='right'><a href='#CHAPTER_XXII_THE_BEAST_ON_THE_TRAIL'>282</a></td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+ <td valign='top' class='chalgn'>XXIII.</td>
+ <td valign='top' align='left' style='padding-right:4em;'><span class='smcap'>A Discourse on Lying</span></td>
+ <td valign='bottom' align='right'><a href='#CHAPTER_XXIII_A_DISCOURSE_ON_LYING'>295</a></td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+ <td valign='top' class='chalgn'>XXIV.</td>
+ <td valign='top' align='left' style='padding-right:4em;'><span class='smcap'>Amalia&rsquo;s F&ecirc;te</span></td>
+ <td valign='bottom' align='right'><a href='#CHAPTER_XXIV_AMALIAS_FTE'>305</a></td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+ <td valign='top' class='chalgn'>XXV.</td>
+ <td valign='top' align='left' style='padding-right:4em;'><span class='smcap'>Harry King Leaves the Mountain</span></td>
+ <td valign='bottom' align='right'><a href='#CHAPTER_XXV_HARRY_KING_LEAVES_THE_MOUNTAIN'>318</a></td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+ <td valign='top' colspan='3'><p style='margin:1em auto 0.5em auto; font-size:110%; text-align:center;'>BOOK THREE</p></td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+ <td valign='top' class='chalgn'>XXVI.</td>
+ <td valign='top' align='left' style='padding-right:4em;'><span class='smcap'>The Little School-Teacher</span></td>
+ <td valign='bottom' align='right'><a href='#CHAPTER_XXVI_THE_LITTLE_SCHOOLTEACHER'>331</a></td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+ <td valign='top' class='chalgn'>XXVII.</td>
+ <td valign='top' align='left' style='padding-right:4em;'><span class='smcap'>The Swede&rsquo;s Telegram</span></td>
+ <td valign='bottom' align='right'><a href='#CHAPTER_XXVII_THE_SWEDES_TELEGRAM'>342</a></td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+ <td valign='top' class='chalgn'>XXVIII.</td>
+ <td valign='top' align='left' style='padding-right:4em;'><span class='smcap'>&ldquo;A Resemblance Somewhere&rdquo;</span></td>
+ <td valign='bottom' align='right'><a href='#CHAPTER_XXVIII_A_RESEMBLANCE_SOMEWHERE'>354</a></td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+ <td valign='top' class='chalgn'>XXIX.</td>
+ <td valign='top' align='left' style='padding-right:4em;'><span class='smcap'>The Arrest</span></td>
+ <td valign='bottom' align='right'><a href='#CHAPTER_XXIX_THE_ARREST'>365</a></td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+ <td valign='top' class='chalgn'>XXX.</td>
+ <td valign='top' align='left' style='padding-right:4em;'><span class='smcap'>The Argument</span></td>
+ <td valign='bottom' align='right'><a href='#CHAPTER_XXX_THE_ARGUMENT'>376</a></td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+ <td valign='top' class='chalgn'>XXXI.</td>
+ <td valign='top' align='left' style='padding-right:4em;'><span class='smcap'>Robert Kater&rsquo;s Success</span></td>
+ <td valign='bottom' align='right'><a href='#CHAPTER_XXXI_ROBERT_KATERS_SUCCESS'>387</a></td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+ <td valign='top' class='chalgn'>XXXII.</td>
+ <td valign='top' align='left' style='padding-right:4em;'><span class='smcap'>The Prisoner</span></td>
+ <td valign='bottom' align='right'><a href='#CHAPTER_XXXII_THE_PRISONER'>408</a></td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+ <td valign='top' class='chalgn'>XXXIII.</td>
+ <td valign='top' align='left' style='padding-right:4em;'><span class='smcap'>Hester Craigmile Receives Her Letter</span></td>
+ <td valign='bottom' align='right'><a href='#CHAPTER_XXXIII_HESTER_CRAIGMILE_RECEIVES_HER_LETTER'>422</a></td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+ <td valign='top' class='chalgn'>XXXIV.</td>
+ <td valign='top' align='left' style='padding-right:4em;'><span class='smcap'>Jean Craigmile&rsquo;s Return</span></td>
+ <td valign='bottom' align='right'><a href='#CHAPTER_XXXIV_JEAN_CRAIGMILES_RETURN'>433</a></td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+ <td valign='top' class='chalgn'>XXXV.</td>
+ <td valign='top' align='left' style='padding-right:4em;'><span class='smcap'>The Trial</span></td>
+ <td valign='bottom' align='right'><a href='#CHAPTER_XXXV_THE_TRIAL'>445</a></td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+ <td valign='top' class='chalgn'>XXXVI.</td>
+ <td valign='top' align='left' style='padding-right:4em;'><span class='smcap'>Nels Nelson&rsquo;s Testimony</span></td>
+ <td valign='bottom' align='right'><a href='#CHAPTER_XXXVI_NELS_NELSONS_TESTIMONY'>453</a></td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+ <td valign='top' class='chalgn'>XXXVII.</td>
+ <td valign='top' align='left' style='padding-right:4em;'><span class='smcap'>The Stranger&rsquo;s Arrival</span></td>
+ <td valign='bottom' align='right'><a href='#CHAPTER_XXXVII_THE_STRANGERS_ARRIVAL'>463</a></td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+ <td valign='top' class='chalgn'>XXXVIII.</td>
+ <td valign='top' align='left' style='padding-right:4em;'><span class='smcap'>Betty Ballard&rsquo;s Testimony</span></td>
+ <td valign='bottom' align='right'><a href='#CHAPTER_XXXVIII_BETTY_BALLARDS_TESTIMONY'>475</a></td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+ <td valign='top' class='chalgn'>XXXIX.</td>
+ <td valign='top' align='left' style='padding-right:4em;'><span class='smcap'>Reconciliation</span></td>
+ <td valign='bottom' align='right'><a href='#CHAPTER_XXXIX_RECONCILIATION'>487</a></td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+ <td valign='top' class='chalgn'>XL.</td>
+ <td valign='top' align='left' style='padding-right:4em;'><span class='smcap'>The Same Boy</span></td>
+ <td valign='bottom' align='right'><a href='#CHAPTER_XL_THE_SAME_BOY'>499</a></td>
+</tr>
+</table>
+<hr class='pb' />
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_1' name='page_1'></a>1</span></div>
+<h1>THE EYE OF DREAD</h1>
+<h2>BOOK ONE</h2>
+<hr class='toprule' />
+<div class='chsp'>
+<a name='CHAPTER_I_BETTY' id='CHAPTER_I_BETTY'></a>
+<h2>CHAPTER I</h2>
+<h3>BETTY</h3>
+</div>
+<p>Two whip-poor-wills were uttering their insistent note,
+hidden somewhere among the thick foliage of the maple
+and basswood trees that towered above the spring down
+behind the house where the Ballards lived. The sky in
+the west still glowed with amber light, and the crescent
+moon floated like a golden boat above the horizon&rsquo;s edge.
+The day had been unusually warm, and the family were
+all gathered on the front porch in the dusk. The lamps
+within were unlighted, and the evening wind blew the white
+muslin curtains out and in through the opened windows.
+The porch was low,&ndash;&ndash;only a step from the ground,&ndash;&ndash;and
+the grass of the dooryard felt soft and cool to the bare feet
+of the children.</p>
+<p>In front and all around lay the garden&ndash;&ndash;flowers and
+fruit quaintly intermingled. Down the long path to the
+gate, where three roads met, great bunches of peonies lifted
+white blossoms&ndash;&ndash;luminously white in the moonlight;
+and on either side rows of currant bushes cast low, dark
+shadows, and here and there dwarf crab-apple trees tossed
+pale, scented flowers above them. In the dusky evening
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_2' name='page_2'></a>2</span>
+light the iris flowers showed frail and iridescent against
+the dark shadows under the bushes.</p>
+<p>The children chattered quietly at their play, as if they
+felt a mystery around them, and small Betty was sure she
+saw fairies dancing on the iris flowers when the light breeze
+stirred them; but of this she said nothing, lest her practical
+older sister should drop a scornful word of unbelief, a thing
+Betty shrank from and instinctively avoided. Why should
+she be told there were no such things as fairies and goblins
+and pigwidgeons, when one might be at that very moment
+dancing at her elbow and hear it all?</p>
+<p>So Betty wagged her curly golden head, wise with the
+wisdom of childhood, and went her own ways and thought
+her own thoughts. As for the strange creatures of wondrous
+power that peopled the earth, and the sky, and the
+streams, she knew they were there. She could almost see
+them, could almost feel them and hear them, even though
+they were hidden from mortal sight.</p>
+<p>Did she not often go when the sun was setting and climb
+the fence behind the barn under the great locust and silver-leaf
+poplar trees, where none could see her, and watch the
+fiery griffins in the west? Could she not see them flame
+and flash, their wings spreading far out across the sky in
+fantastic flight, or drawn close and folded about them in
+hues of purple and crimson and gold? Could she not see
+the flying mist-women flinging their floating robes of
+softest pink and palest green around their slender limbs,
+and trailing them delicately across the deepening sky?</p>
+<p>Had she not heard the giants&ndash;&ndash;nay, seen them&ndash;&ndash;driving
+their terrible steeds over the tumbled clouds, and
+rolling them smooth with noise of thunder, under huge
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_3' name='page_3'></a>3</span>
+rolling machines a thousand times bigger than that Farmer
+Hopkins used to crush the clods in his wheat field in the
+spring? Had she not seen the flashes of fire dart through
+the heavens, struck by the hoofs of the giants&rsquo; huge beasts?
+Ah! She knew! If Martha would only listen to her,
+she could show her some of these true things and stop her
+scoffing.</p>
+<p>Lured by these mysteries, Betty made short excursions
+into the garden away from the others, peering among the
+shadows, and gazing wide-eyed into the clusters of iris
+flowers above which night moths fluttered softly and
+silently. Maybe there were fairies there. Three could
+ride at once on the back of a devil&rsquo;s riding horse, she knew,
+and in the daytime they rode the dragon flies, two at a time;
+they were so light it was nothing for the great green and
+gold, big-eyed dragon flies to carry two.</p>
+<p>Betty knew a place below the spring where the maidenhair
+fern grew thick and spread out wide, perfect fronds on
+slender brown stems, shading fairy bowers; and where
+taller ferns grew high and leaned over like a delicate fairy
+forest; and where the wild violets grew so thick you could
+not see the ground beneath them, and the grass was lush
+and long like fine green hair, and crept up the hillside and
+over the roots of the maple and basswood trees. Here
+lived the elves; she knew them well, and often lay with
+her head among the violets, listening for the thin sound of
+their elfin fiddles. Often she had drowsed the summer
+noon in the coolness, unheeding the dinner call, until busy
+Martha roused her with the sisterly scolding she knew she
+deserved and took in good part.</p>
+<p>Now as Betty crept cautiously about, peering and hoping
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_4' name='page_4'></a>4</span>
+with a half-fearing expectation, a sweet, threadlike wail
+trembled out toward her across the moonlit and shadowed
+space. Her father was tuning his violin. Her mother
+sat at his side, hushing Bobby in her arms. Betty could
+hear the sound of her rockers on the porch floor. Now the
+plaintive call of the violin came stronger, and she hastened
+back to curl up at her father&rsquo;s feet and listen. She closed
+her vision-seeing eyes and leaned against her father&rsquo;s knee.
+He felt the gentle pressure of his little daughter&rsquo;s head and
+liked it.</p>
+<p>All the long summer day Betty&rsquo;s small feet had carried
+her on numberless errands for young and old, and as the
+season advanced she would be busier still. This Betty
+well knew, for she was old enough to remember other
+summers, several of them, each bringing an advancing
+crescendo of work. But oh, the happy days! For Betty
+lived in a world all her own, wherein her play was as real
+as her work, and labor was turned by her imaginative little
+mind into new forms of play, and although night often
+found her weary&ndash;&ndash;too tired to lie quietly in her bed sometimes&ndash;&ndash;the
+line between the two was never in her thoughts
+distinctly drawn.</p>
+<p>To-night Betty&rsquo;s conscience was troubling her a little,
+for she had done two naughty things, and the pathetic
+quality of her father&rsquo;s music made her wish with all the
+intensity of her sensitive soul that she might confess to
+some one what she had done, but it was all too peaceful
+and sweet now to tell her mother of naughty things, and,
+anyway, she could not confess before the whole family,
+so she tried to repent very hard and tell God all about it.
+Somehow it was always easier to tell God about things;
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_5' name='page_5'></a>5</span>
+for she reasoned, if God was everywhere and knew everything,
+then he knew she had been bad, and had seen her
+all the time, and all she need do was to own up to it, without
+explaining everything in words, as she would have to
+do to her mother.</p>
+<p>Brother Bobby&rsquo;s bare feet swung close to her cheek as
+they dangled from her mother&rsquo;s knee, and she turned and
+kissed them, first one and then the other, with eager kisses.
+He stirred and kicked out at her fretfully.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Don&rsquo;t wake him, dear,&rdquo; said her mother.</p>
+<p>Then Betty drew up her knees and clasped them about
+with her arms, and hid her face on them while she repented
+very hard. Mother had said that very day that she never
+felt troubled about the baby when Betty had care of him,
+and that very day she had recklessly taken him up into the
+barn loft, climbing behind him and guiding his little feet
+from one rung of the perpendicular ladder to another,
+teaching him to cling with clenched hands to the rounds
+until she had landed him in the loft. There she had persuaded
+him he was a swallow in his nest, while she had taken
+her fill of the delight of leaping from the loft down into the
+bay, where she had first tossed enough hay to make a soft
+lighting place for the twelve-foot leap.</p>
+<p>Oh, the joy of it&ndash;&ndash;flying through the air! If she could
+only fly up instead of down! Every time she climbed
+back into the loft she would stop and cuddle the little
+brother and toss hay over him and tell him he was a baby
+bird, and she was the mother bird, and must fly away and
+bring him nice worms. She bade him look up to the rafters
+above and see the mother birds flying out and in, while
+the little birds just sat still in their nests and opened their
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_6' name='page_6'></a>6</span>
+mouths. So Bobby sat still, and when she returned, obediently
+opened his mouth; but alas! he wearied of his r&ocirc;le
+in the play, and at last crept to the very edge of the loft
+at a place where there was no hay spread beneath to break
+his fall; and when Betty looked up and saw his sweet
+baby face peering down at her over the edge, her heart
+stopped beating. How wildly she called for him to wait
+for her to come to him! She promised him all the dearest
+of her treasures if he would wait until &ldquo;sister&rdquo; got there.</p>
+<p>Now, as she sat clasping her knees, her little body grew
+all trembling and weak again as she lived over the terrible
+moment when she had reached him just in time to drag
+him back from the edge, and to cuddle and caress him,
+until he lifted up his voice and wept, not because he was in
+the least troubled or hurt, but because it seemed to be the
+right thing to do.</p>
+<p>Then she gave him the pretty round comb that held back
+her hair, and he promptly straightened it and broke it;
+and when she reluctantly brought him back to dinner&ndash;&ndash;how
+she had succeeded in getting him down from the loft
+would make a chapter of diplomacy&ndash;&ndash;her mother reproved
+her for allowing him to take it, and lapped the two pieces
+and wound them about with thread, and told her she
+must wear the broken comb after this. She was glad&ndash;&ndash;glad
+it was broken&ndash;&ndash;and she had treasured it so&ndash;&ndash;and
+glad that her mother had scolded her; she wished she
+had scolded harder instead of speaking words of praise
+that cut her to the heart. Oh, oh, oh! If he had fallen
+over, he would be dead now, and she would have killed
+him! Thus she tortured herself, and repented very hard.</p>
+<p>The other sin she had that day committed she felt to be
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_7' name='page_7'></a>7</span>
+a double sin, because she knew all the time it was wrong
+and did it deliberately. When she went out with the corn
+meal to feed the little chicks and fetch in the new-laid eggs,
+she carried, concealed under her skirt, a small, squat book
+of Robert Burns&rsquo; poems. These poems she loved; not
+that she understood them, but that the rhythm pleased
+her, and the odd words and half-comprehended phrases
+stirred her imagination.</p>
+<p>So, after feeding the chicks and gathering the eggs, she
+did not return to the house, but climbed instead up into the
+top of the silver-leaf poplar behind the barn, and sat there
+long, swaying with the swaying tree top and reading the
+lines that most fascinated her and stirred her soul, until
+she forgot she must help Martha with the breakfast dishes&ndash;&ndash;forgot
+she must carry milk to the neighbor&rsquo;s&ndash;&ndash;forgot
+she must mind the baby and peel the potatoes for dinner.
+It was so delightful to sway and swing and chant the
+rythmic lines over and over that almost she forgot she was
+being bad, and Martha had done the things she ought to
+have done, and the baby cried himself to sleep without her,
+and lay with the pathetic tear marks still on his cheeks,
+but her tired mother had only looked reproachfully at her
+and had not said one word. Oh, dear! If she could only
+be a good girl! If only she might pass one day being good
+all day long with nothing to regret!</p>
+<p>Now with the wailing of the violin her soul grew hungry
+and sad, and a strange, unchildish fear crept over her, a
+fear of the years to come&ndash;&ndash;so long and endless they would
+be, always coming, coming, one after another; and here
+she was, never to stop living, and every day doing something
+that she ought not and every evening repenting it&ndash;&ndash;and
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_8' name='page_8'></a>8</span>
+her father might stop loving her, and her sister might
+stop loving her, and her little brother might stop loving
+her, and Bobby might die&ndash;&ndash;and even her mother might
+die or stop loving her, and she might grow up and marry
+a man who forgot after a while to love her&ndash;&ndash;and she
+might be very poor&ndash;&ndash;even poorer than they were now, and
+have to wash dishes every day and no one to help her&ndash;&ndash;until
+at last she could bear the sadness no longer, and could
+not repent as hard as she ought, there where she could not
+go down on her knees and just cry and cry. So she slipped
+away and crept in the darkness to her own room, where her
+mother found her half an hour later on her knees beside
+the bed fast asleep. She lovingly undressed the limp,
+weary little girl, lifted her tenderly and laid her curly head
+on the pillow, and kissed her cheek with a repentant sigh
+of her own, regretting that she must lay so many tasks on
+so small a child.</p>
+<hr class='toprule' />
+<div class='chsp'>
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_9' name='page_9'></a>9</span>
+<a name='CHAPTER_II_WATCHING_THE_BEES' id='CHAPTER_II_WATCHING_THE_BEES'></a>
+<h2>CHAPTER II</h2>
+<h3>WATCHING THE BEES</h3>
+</div>
+<p>Father Ballard walked slowly up the path from the
+garden, wiping his brow, for the heat was oppressive.
+&ldquo;Mary, my dear, I see signs of swarming. The bees are
+hanging out on that hive under the Tolman Sweet. Where&rsquo;s
+Betty?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;She&rsquo;s down cellar churning, but she can leave. Bobby&rsquo;s
+getting fretful, anyway, and she can take him under the
+trees and watch the bees and amuse him. Betty!&rdquo; Mary
+Ballard went to the short flight of steps leading to the
+paved basement, dark and cool: &ldquo;Betty, father wants
+you to watch the bees, dear. Find Bobby. He&rsquo;s so still
+I&rsquo;m afraid he&rsquo;s out at the currant bushes again, and he&rsquo;ll
+make himself sick. Keep an eye on the hive under the
+Tolman Sweet particularly, dear.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Gladly Betty bounded up the steps and darted away to
+find the baby who was still called the baby by reason of his
+being the last arrival, although he was nearly three, and an
+active little tyrant at that. Watching the bees was Betty&rsquo;s
+delight. Minding the baby, lolling under the trees reading
+her books, gazing up into the great branches, and all the
+time keeping an eye on the hives scattered about in the
+garden,&ndash;&ndash;nothing could be pleasanter.</p>
+<p>Naturally Betty could not understand all she read in the
+books she carried out from the library, for purely children&rsquo;s
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_10' name='page_10'></a>10</span>
+books were very few in those days. The children of the
+present day would be dismayed were they asked to read
+what Betty pondered over with avidity and loved. Her
+father&rsquo;s library was his one extravagance, even though the
+purchase of books was always a serious matter, each volume
+being discussed and debated about, and only obtained after
+due preparation by sundry small economies.</p>
+<p>As for worldly possessions, the Ballards had started out
+with nothing at all but their own two hands, and, as assets,
+well-equipped brains, their love for each other, a fair amount
+of thrift, and a large share of what Mary Ballard&rsquo;s old
+Grannie Sherman used to designate as &ldquo;gumption.&rdquo;
+Exactly what she intended should be understood by the
+word it would be hard to say, unless it might be the faculty
+with which, when one thing proved to be no longer feasible
+as a shift toward progress and the making of a living for
+an increasing family, they were enabled to discover other
+means and work them out to a productive conclusion.</p>
+<p>Thus, when times grew hard under the stress of the Civil
+War, and the works of art representing many hours of
+Bertrand Ballard&rsquo;s keenest effort lay in his studio unpurchased,
+and even carefully created portraits, ordered and
+painstakingly painted, were left on his hands, unclaimed and
+unpaid for, he quietly turned his attention to his garden,
+saying, &ldquo;People can live without pictures, but they must
+eat.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>So he obtained a few of the choicest of the quickly produced
+small fruits and vegetables and flowers, and soon
+had rare and beautiful things to sell. His clever hands,
+which before had made his own stretchers for his canvases,
+and had fashioned and gilded with gold leaf the frames for
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_11' name='page_11'></a>11</span>
+his own paintings, now made trellises for his vines and
+boxes for his fruits, and when the price of sugar climbed
+to the very top of the gamut, he created beehives on new
+models, and bought a book on bee culture; ere long he had
+combs of delicious honey to tempt the lovers of sweets.</p>
+<p>But how came Bertrand Ballard away out in Wisconsin
+in a country home, painting pictures for people who knew
+little or nothing of art, and cared not to know more, raising
+fruits and keeping bees for the means to live? Ah,
+that is another story, and to tell it would make another
+book; suffice it to say that for love of a beautiful woman,
+strong and wise and sweet, he had followed her farmer
+father out into the newer west from old New York State.</p>
+<p>There, frail in health and delicate and choice in his tastes,
+but brave in spirit, he took up the battle of the weak with
+life, and fought it like a strong man, valiantly and well.
+And where got he his strength? How are the weak ever
+made strong? Through strength of love&ndash;&ndash;the inward
+fire that makes great the soul, while consuming the dross
+of false values and foolish estimates&ndash;&ndash;from the merry
+heart that could laugh through any failure, and most of all
+from the beautiful hand, supple and workful, and gentle and
+forceful, that lay in his.</p>
+<p>But this is not the story of Bertrand Ballard, except
+incidentally as he and his family play their part in the drama
+that centers in the lives of two lads, one of whom&ndash;&ndash;Peter
+Craigmile, Junior&ndash;&ndash;comes now swinging up the path from
+the front gate, where three roads meet, brave in his new
+uniform of blue, with lifted head, and eyes grave and shining
+with a kind of solemn elation.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Bertrand, here comes Peter Junior in a new uniform,&rdquo;
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_12' name='page_12'></a>12</span>
+Mary Ballard called to her husband, who was working at
+a box in which he meant to fit glass sides for an aquarium
+for the edification of the little ones. He came quickly out
+from his workroom, and Mary rose from her seat and
+pushed her mending basket one side, and together they
+walked down the path to meet the youth.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Peter Junior, have you done it? Oh, I&rsquo;m sorry!&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Why, Mary! why, Mary! I&rsquo;m astonished! Not
+sorry?&rdquo; Bertrand took the boy&rsquo;s hand in both his own and
+looked up in his eyes, for the lad was tall, much taller than
+his friend. &ldquo;I would go myself if I only had the strength
+and were not near-sighted.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Thank the Lord!&rdquo; said his wife, fervently.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Why, Mary&ndash;&ndash;Mary&ndash;&ndash;I&rsquo;m astonished!&rdquo; he said
+again. &ldquo;Our country&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes, &lsquo;Our Country&rsquo; is being bled to death,&rdquo; she said,
+taking the boy&rsquo;s hand in hers for a moment; and, turning,
+they walked back to the house with the young volunteer
+between them. &ldquo;No, I&rsquo;m not reconciled to having our
+young men go down there and die by the thousands from
+disease and bullets and in prisons. It&rsquo;s wrong! I say war
+is iniquitous, and the issues, North or South, are not worth
+it. Peter, I had hoped you were too young. Why did
+you?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I couldn&rsquo;t help it, Mrs. Ballard. The call for fifty
+thousand more came, and father gave his consent; and,
+anyway, they are taking a younger set now than at first.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes, and soon they&rsquo;ll take an older set, and then they&rsquo;ll
+take the small and frail and near-sighted ones, and then&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;
+She stopped suddenly, with a contrite glance at
+her husband&rsquo;s face. He hated to be small and frail and
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_13' name='page_13'></a>13</span>
+near-sighted. She stepped round to his side and put her
+hand in his. &ldquo;I&rsquo;m thankful you are, Bertrand,&rdquo; she said
+quietly. &ldquo;You&rsquo;ll stay to tea with us, won&rsquo;t you, Peter?
+We&rsquo;ll have it out of doors.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes, I&rsquo;ll stay&ndash;&ndash;thank you. It may be the last time,
+and mother&ndash;&ndash;I came to see if you&rsquo;d go up home and see
+mother, Mrs. Ballard. I kind of thought you&rsquo;d think as
+father and Mr. Ballard do about it, and I thought you
+might be able to help mother to see it that way, too. You
+see, mother&ndash;&ndash;she&ndash;&ndash;I always thought you were kind of
+strong and would see things sort of&ndash;&ndash;well&ndash;&ndash;big, you
+know, more&ndash;&ndash;as we men do.&rdquo; He held his head high and
+looked off as he spoke.</p>
+<p>She exchanged a half-smiling glance with her husband,
+and their hands clasped tighter. &ldquo;Maybe, though&ndash;&ndash;if
+you feel this way&ndash;&ndash;you can&rsquo;t help mother&ndash;&ndash;but what
+shall I do?&rdquo; The big boy looked wistfully down at her.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I may not be able to help her to see things you want,
+Peter Junior. Maybe she would be happier in seeing things
+her own way; but I can sympathize with her. Perhaps
+I can help her to hope for the best, and anyway&ndash;&ndash;we can&ndash;&ndash;just
+talk it over.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Thank you, Mrs. Ballard, thank you. I don&rsquo;t care
+how she sees it, if&ndash;&ndash;if&ndash;&ndash;she&rsquo;ll only be happier&ndash;&ndash;and&ndash;&ndash;give
+her consent. I can&rsquo;t bear to go away without that;
+but if she won&rsquo;t give it, I must go anyway,&ndash;&ndash;you know.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; she said, smiling, &ldquo;I suppose we women have
+to be forced sometimes, or we never would allow some things
+to be done. You enlisted first and then went to her for
+her consent? Yes, you are a man, Peter Junior. But I
+tell you, if you were my son, I would never give my
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_14' name='page_14'></a>14</span>
+consent&ndash;&ndash;nor have it forced from me&ndash;&ndash;still&ndash;&ndash;I would love
+you better for doing this.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;My love, your inconsistency is my joy,&rdquo; said her husband,
+as she passed into the house and left them together.</p>
+<p>The sun still shone hotly down, but the shadows were
+growing longer, and Betty left baby asleep under the
+Harvest apple tree where she had been staying patiently
+during the long, warm hours, and sat at her father&rsquo;s feet
+on the edge of the porch, where apparently she was wholly
+occupied in tracing patterns with her bare toes in the sand
+of the path. Now and then she ran out to the Harvest
+apple tree and back, her golden head darting among the
+green shrubbery like a sunbeam. She wished to do her
+full duty by the bees and the baby, and at the same time
+hear all the talk of the older ones, and watch the fascinating
+young soldier in his new uniform.</p>
+<p>As bright as the sunbeam, and as silent, she watched and
+listened. Her heart beat fast with excitement, as it often
+did these days, when she heard them talk of the war and
+the men who went away, perhaps never to return, or to
+return with great glory. Now here was Peter Junior going.
+He already had his beautiful new uniform, and he would
+march and drill and carry a gun, and halt and present arms,
+along with the older men she had seen in the great camp
+out on the high bluffs which overlooked the wide, sweeping,
+rushing, willful Wisconsin River.</p>
+<p>Oh, if she were only a man and as old as Peter Junior,
+she would go with him; but it was very grand to know
+him even. Why was she a girl? If God had only asked
+her which she would rather be when he had made her out
+of dust, she would have told him to make her a man, so
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_15' name='page_15'></a>15</span>
+she might be a soldier. It was not fair. There was Bobby;
+he would be a man some day, and he could ride on a large
+black horse like the knights of old, and go to wars, and
+rescue people, and do deeds of arms. What deeds of arms
+were, she little knew, but it was something very strong and
+wonderful that only knights and soldiers did.</p>
+<p>Betty heaved a deep sigh, and put out her hand and softly
+touched Peter Junior&rsquo;s trousers. He thought it was the
+kitten purring about. No, God had not treated her fairly.
+Now she must grow up and be only a woman, and wash
+dishes, and sweep and dust, and get very tired, and wear
+dresses&ndash;&ndash;and oh, dear! But then perhaps God had to do
+that way, for if he had given everybody a choice, everybody
+would choose to be men, and there would be no women to
+mind the home and take care of the little children, and it
+would be a very sad kind of world, as she had often heard
+her father say. Perhaps God had to do with them as
+Peter Junior had done with his mother when he enlisted
+first and asked her consent afterwards; just make them
+girls, and then try to convince them afterwards that it was a
+fine thing to be a girl. She wished she were Bobby instead
+of Betty&ndash;&ndash;but then&ndash;&ndash;Bobby might not have liked that.</p>
+<p>She glanced wistfully at the sleeping child and saw him
+toss his arms about, and knew she ought to be there to
+sway a green branch over him to keep the little gnats and
+flies from bothering him and waking him; and the bees
+might swarm and no one see them.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Father, is it three o&rsquo;clock yet?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes, deary, why?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Goody! The bees won&rsquo;t swarm now, will they? Will
+you bring Bobby in, father?&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_16' name='page_16'></a>16</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;He is very well there; we won&rsquo;t disturb him.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Peter Junior looked down on the little girl, so full of
+vitality and life and inspiration, so vibrant with enthusiasm,
+and saw her vaguely as a slightly disturbing element,
+but otherwise of little moment in the world&rsquo;s economy.
+His thoughts were on greater things.</p>
+<p>Betty accepted her father&rsquo;s decision without protest, as
+she accepted most things,&ndash;&ndash;a finality to be endured and
+made the best of,&ndash;&ndash;so she continued to run back and forth
+between the sleeping child and the porch, thereby losing
+much interesting dialogue,&ndash;&ndash;all about camps and fighting
+and scout duty,&ndash;&ndash;until at last her mother returned and
+with a glance at her small daughter&rsquo;s face said:&ndash;&ndash;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Father, will you bring baby in now and put him in his
+cradle? Betty has had him nearly all day.&rdquo; And father
+went. Oh, beautiful mother! How did she know!</p>
+<p>Then Betty settled herself at Peter Junior&rsquo;s feet and
+looked up in his eyes gravely. &ldquo;What will you be, now
+you are a soldier?&rdquo; she asked.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Why, a soldier.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;No, I mean, will you be a general&ndash;&ndash;or a flag carrier&ndash;&ndash;or
+will you drum? I&rsquo;d be a general if I were you&ndash;&ndash;or
+else a drummer. I think you would be very handsome for
+a general.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Peter Junior threw back his head and laughed. It
+was the first time he had laughed that day, and yet he
+was both proud and happy. &ldquo;Would you like to be a
+soldier?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;But you might be killed, or have your leg shot off&ndash;&ndash;or&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_17' name='page_17'></a>17</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;I know. So might you&ndash;&ndash;but you would go, anyway&ndash;&ndash;wouldn&rsquo;t
+you?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Certainly.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Well, then you understand how I feel. I&rsquo;d like to be a
+man, and go to war, and &lsquo;Have a part to tear a cat in,&rsquo; too.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;What&rsquo;s that? What&rsquo;s that? Mary, do you hear
+that?&rdquo; said her father, resuming his seat at Peter&rsquo;s side,
+and hearing her remark.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Why, father, wouldn&rsquo;t you? You know you&rsquo;d like
+to go to war. I heard what you said to mother, and, anyway&ndash;&ndash;I&rsquo;d
+just like to be a man and &lsquo;Have a part to tear
+a cat in,&rsquo; the way men have.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Bertrand Ballard looked down and patted his little
+daughter&rsquo;s head, then caught her up and placed her on his
+knee. He realized suddenly that his child was an entity
+unfathomed, separate from himself, working out her own
+individuality almost without guidance, except such as he
+and his Mary were unconsciously giving to her by their
+daily acts and words.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;What books are those you have there? Don&rsquo;t you
+know you mustn&rsquo;t take father&rsquo;s Shakespeare out and leave
+it on the grass?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Betty laughed. &ldquo;How did you know I had Shakespeare?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Didn&rsquo;t you say you &lsquo;Would like a part to tear a cat
+in&rsquo;?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, have you read &lsquo;Midsummer Night&rsquo;s Dream&rsquo;?&rdquo;
+She lifted her head from his bosom and eyed him gravely a
+moment, then snuggled comfortably down again. &ldquo;But
+then, I suppose you have read everything.&rdquo; Her father
+and Peter both laughed.</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_18' name='page_18'></a>18</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;Were you reading &lsquo;Midsummer Night&rsquo;s Dream&rsquo; out
+there?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;No, I&rsquo;ve read that lots of times&ndash;&ndash;long ago. I&rsquo;m reading
+&lsquo;The Merry Wives of Windsor&rsquo; now.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Mary, Mary, do you hear this? I think it&rsquo;s time our
+Betty had a little supervision in her reading.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Mary Ballard came to the door from the tea table where
+she had been arranging her little set of delicate china, her
+one rare treasure and inheritance. &ldquo;Yes, I knew she was
+reading&ndash;&ndash;whatever she fancied, but I thought I wouldn&rsquo;t
+interfere&ndash;&ndash;not yet. I have so little time, for one thing,
+and, anyway, I thought she might browse a bit. She&rsquo;s
+like a calf in rare pastures, and I don&rsquo;t think she understands
+enough to do her harm&ndash;&ndash;or much good, either.
+Those things slide off from her like water off a duck&rsquo;s back.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Betty looked anxiously up at her mother. What things
+was she missing? She must read them all over again.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;What else have you out there, Betty?&rdquo; asked her
+father.</p>
+<p>Betty dropped her head shamefacedly. She never knew
+when she was in the right and when wrong. Sometimes
+the very things which seemed most right to her were most
+wrong. &ldquo;That&rsquo;s &lsquo;Paradise Lost.&rsquo; It was an old book,
+father. There was a tear in the back when I took it down.
+I like to read about Satan. I like to read about the mighty
+hosts and the angels and the burning lake. Is that hell?
+I was pretending if the bees swarmed that they would be
+the mighty host of bad angels falling out of heaven.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Again Peter flung back his head and laughed. He looked
+at the child with new interest, but Betty did not smile
+back at him. She did not like being laughed at.</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_19' name='page_19'></a>19</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;It&rsquo;s true,&rdquo; she said; &ldquo;they did fall out of heaven in a
+swarm, and it was like over at High Knob on the river
+bank, only a million times higher, because they were so
+long falling. &lsquo;From morn till noon they fell, from noon
+till dewy eve.&rsquo;&rdquo; Betty looked off into space with half-closed
+eyes. She was seeing them fall. &ldquo;It was a long
+time to be in suspense, wasn&rsquo;t it, father?&rdquo; Then every one
+laughed. Even mother joined in. She was putting the
+last touches to the tea table.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Mary, my dear, I think we&rsquo;d better take a little supervision
+of the child&rsquo;s reading&ndash;&ndash;I do, really.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>The gate at the end of the long path to the house clicked,
+and another lad came swinging up the walk, slightly taller
+than Peter Junior, but otherwise enough like him in appearance
+to be his own brother. He was not as grave as
+Peter, but smiled as he hailed them, waving his cap above
+his head. He also wore the blue uniform, and it was new.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Hallo, Peter! You here?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Of course I&rsquo;m here. I thought you were never coming.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You did?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Betty sprang from her father&rsquo;s lap and ran to meet him.
+She slipped her hand in his and hopped along at his side.
+&ldquo;Oh, Rich! Are you going, too? I wish I were you.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>He lifted the child to a level with his face and kissed her,
+then set her on her feet again. &ldquo;Never wish that, Betty.
+It would spoil a nice little girl.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I&rsquo;m not such a nice little girl. I&ndash;&ndash;I&ndash;&ndash;love Satan&ndash;&ndash;and
+they&rsquo;re going to&ndash;&ndash;to&ndash;&ndash;supervise my reading.&rdquo; She
+clung to his hand and nodded her head with finality. He
+swung her along, making her take long leaps as they walked.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You love Satan? I thought you loved me!&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_20' name='page_20'></a>20</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;It&rsquo;s the same thing, Rich,&rdquo; said Peter Junior, with a
+grin.</p>
+<p>Bertrand had gone to the kitchen door. &ldquo;Mary, my
+love, here&rsquo;s Richard Kildene.&rdquo; She entered the living
+room, carrying a plate of light, hot biscuit, and hurried
+out to Richard, greeting him warmly&ndash;&ndash;even lovingly.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Bertrand, won&rsquo;t you and the boys carry the table out
+to the garden?&rdquo; she suggested. &ldquo;Open both doors and
+take it carefully. It will be pleasanter here in the shade.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>The young men sprang to do her bidding, and the small
+table was borne out under the trees, the lads enumerating
+with joy the articles of Mary Ballard&rsquo;s simple menu.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Hot biscuits and honey! My golly! Won&rsquo;t we wish
+for this in about two months from now?&rdquo; said Richard.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Cream and caraway cookies!&rdquo; shouted Peter Junior,
+turning back to the porch to help Bertrand carry the chairs.
+&ldquo;Of course we&rsquo;ll be wishing for this before long, but that&rsquo;s
+part of soldiering.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;We&rsquo;re not looking forward to a well-fed, easy time of it,
+so we&rsquo;ll just make the best of this to-night, and eat everything
+in sight,&rdquo; said Richard.</p>
+<p>Bertrand preferred to change the subject. &ldquo;This is
+some of our new white clover honey,&rdquo; he said. &ldquo;I took it
+from that hive over there last evening, and they&rsquo;ve been
+working all day as if they had had new life given them.
+All bees want is a lot of empty space for storing honey.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Richard followed Mrs. Ballard into the kitchen for the
+tea. &ldquo;Where are the other children?&rdquo; he asked.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Martha and Jamie are spending a week with my
+mother and father. They love to go there, and mother&ndash;&ndash;and
+father, also, seem never to have enough of them.
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_21' name='page_21'></a>21</span>
+Baby is still asleep, and I must waken him, too, or he won&rsquo;t
+sleep to-night. I hung a pail of milk over the spring to
+keep it cool, and the butter is there also&ndash;&ndash;and the Dutch
+cheese in a tin box. Can you&ndash;&ndash;wait, I&rsquo;d better go with
+you. We&rsquo;ll leave the tea to steep a minute.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>They passed through the house and down toward the
+spring house under the maple and basswood trees at the
+back, walking between rows of currant bushes where the
+fruit hung red.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I hate to leave all this&ndash;&ndash;maybe forever,&rdquo; said the boy.
+The corners of his mouth drooped a little, and he looked
+down at Mary Ballard with a tender glint in his deep blue
+eyes. His eyes were as blue as the lake on a summer&rsquo;s
+evening, and they were shaded by heavy dark brown lashes,
+almost black. His brows and hair were the same deep brown.
+Peter Junior&rsquo;s were a shade lighter, and his hair more curling.
+It was often a matter of discussion in the village as
+to which of the boys was the handsomer. That they
+were both fine-looking lads was always conceded.</p>
+<p>Mary Ballard turned toward him impulsively. &ldquo;Why
+did you do this, Richard? Why? I can&rsquo;t feel that this
+fever for war is right. It is terrible. We are losing the
+best blood in the land in a wicked war.&rdquo; She took his two
+hands in hers, and her eyes filled. &ldquo;When we first came
+here, your mother was my dearest friend. You never
+knew her, but I loved her&ndash;&ndash;and her loss was much to me.
+Richard, why didn&rsquo;t you consult us?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I hadn&rsquo;t any one but you and your husband to care.
+Oh, Aunt Hester loves me, of course, and is awfully good to
+me&ndash;&ndash;but the Elder&ndash;&ndash;I always feel somehow as if he expects
+me to go to the bad. He never had any use for my
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_22' name='page_22'></a>22</span>
+father, I guess. Was my father&ndash;&ndash;was&ndash;&ndash;he no good?
+Don&rsquo;t mind telling me the truth: I ought to know.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Your father was not so well known here, but he was, in
+Bertrand&rsquo;s estimation, a royal Irish gentleman. We both
+liked him; no one could help it. Never think hardly of
+him.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Why has he never cared for me? Why have I never
+known him?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;There was a quarrel&ndash;&ndash;or&ndash;&ndash;some unpleasantness between
+your uncle and him; it&rsquo;s an old thing.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Richard&rsquo;s lip quivered an instant, then he drew himself
+up and smiled on her, then he stooped and kissed her.
+&ldquo;Some of us must go; we can&rsquo;t let this nation be broken
+up. Some men must give their lives for it; and I&rsquo;m one
+of those who ought to go, for I have no one to mourn for
+me. Half the class has enlisted.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I venture to say you suggested it, too?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Well&ndash;&ndash;yes.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;And Peter Junior was the first to follow you?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Well, yes! I&rsquo;m sorry&ndash;&ndash;because of Aunt Hester&ndash;&ndash;but
+we always do pull together, you know. See here, let&rsquo;s
+not think of it in this way. There are other ways. Perhaps
+I&rsquo;ll come back with straps on my shoulders and marry
+Betty some day.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;God grant you may; that is, if you come back as you
+left us. You understand me? The same boy?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I do and I will,&rdquo; he said gravely.</p>
+<p>That was a happy hour they spent at the evening meal,
+and many an evening afterwards, when hardship and
+weariness had made the lads seem more rugged and years
+older, they spoke of it and lived it over.</p>
+<hr class='toprule' />
+<div class='chsp'>
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_23' name='page_23'></a>23</span>
+<a name='CHAPTER_III_A_MOTHERS_STRUGGLE' id='CHAPTER_III_A_MOTHERS_STRUGGLE'></a>
+<h2>CHAPTER III</h2>
+<h3>A MOTHER&rsquo;S STRUGGLE</h3>
+</div>
+<p>&ldquo;Come, Lady, come. You&rsquo;re slow this morning.&rdquo;
+Mary Ballard drove a steady, well-bred, chestnut mare
+with whom she was on most friendly terms. Usually her
+carryall was filled with children, for she kept no help, and
+when she went abroad, she must perforce take the children
+with her or spend an unquiet hour or two while leaving
+them behind. This morning she had left the children at
+home, and carried in their stead a basket of fruit and
+flowers on the seat beside her. &ldquo;Come, Lady, come; just
+hurry a little.&rdquo; She touched the mare with the whip, a
+delicate reminder to haste, which Lady assumed to be a fly
+and treated as such with a switch of her tail.</p>
+<p>The way seemed long to Mary Ballard this morning, and
+the sun beating down on the parched fields made the air
+quiver with heat. The unpaved road was heavy with dust,
+and the mare seemed to drag her feet through it unnecessarily
+as she jogged along. Mary was anxious and dreaded
+the visit she must make. She would be glad when it was
+over. What could she say to the stricken woman who
+spent her time behind closed blinds? Presently she left
+the dust behind and drove along under the maple trees that
+lined the village street, over cool roads that were kept well
+sprinkled.</p>
+<p>The Craigmiles lived on the main street of the town in
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_24' name='page_24'></a>24</span>
+the most dignified of the well-built homes of cream-colored
+brick, with a wide front stoop and white columns at the
+entrance. Mary was shown into the parlor by a neat
+serving maid, who stepped softly as if she were afraid of
+waking some one. The room was dark and cool, but the
+air seemed heavy with a lingering musky odor. The dark
+furniture was set stiffly back against the walls, the floor was
+covered with a velvet carpet of rich, dark colors, and oil
+portraits were hung about in heavy gold frames.</p>
+<p>Mary looked up at two of these portraits with pride, and
+rebelled that the light was so shut out that they must always
+be seen in the obscurity, for Bertrand had painted them,
+and she considered them her husband&rsquo;s best work. In
+the painting of them and the long sittings required the intimacy
+between the two families had begun. Really it
+had begun before that, for there were other paintings in
+that home&ndash;&ndash;portraits, old and fine, which Elder Craigmile&rsquo;s
+father had brought over from Scotland when he
+came to the new world to establish a new home. These
+paintings were the pride of Elder Craigmile&rsquo;s heart, and the
+delight of Bertrand Ballard&rsquo;s artist soul.</p>
+<p>To Bertrand they were a discovery&ndash;&ndash;an oasis in a desert.
+One day the banker had called him in to look at a canvas
+that was falling to pieces with age, in the hope that the artist
+might have the skill to restore it. From that day the intimacy
+began, and a warm friendship sprang up between the
+two families, founded on Bertrand&rsquo;s love for the old works
+of art, wherein the ancestors of Peter Craigmile, Senior,
+looked out from their frames with a dignity and warmth
+and grace rarely to be met with in this new western land.</p>
+<p>Bertrand&rsquo;s heart leaped with joy as he gazed on one of
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_25' name='page_25'></a>25</span>
+them, the one he had been called on to save if possible.
+&ldquo;This must be a genuine Reynolds. Ah! They could
+paint, those old fellows!&rdquo; he cried.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Genuine Reynolds? Why, man, it is! it is! You
+are a true artist. You knew it in a moment.&rdquo; Peter
+Senior&rsquo;s heart was immediately filled with admiration for
+the younger man. &ldquo;Yes, they were a good family&ndash;&ndash;the
+Craigmiles of Aberdeen. My father brought all the old
+portraits coming to him to this country to keep the family
+traditions alive. It&rsquo;s a good thing&ndash;&ndash;a good thing!&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;She was a beautiful woman, the original of that portrait.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;She was a great beauty, indeed. Her husband took
+her to London to have it done by the great painter. Ah,
+the Scotch lasses were fine! Look at that color! You
+don&rsquo;t see that here, no?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Our American women are too pale, for the most part;
+but then again, your men are too red.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Ah! Beef and red wine! Beef and red wine! With
+us in Scotland it was good oatcakes and home-brew&ndash;&ndash;and
+the air. The air of the Scotch hills and the sea. You
+don&rsquo;t have such air here, I&rsquo;ve often heard my father say.
+I&rsquo;ve spent the greater part of my life here, so it&rsquo;s mostly
+the traditions I have&ndash;&ndash;they and the portraits.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Thus it came about that owing to his desire to keep up
+the line of family portraits, Peter Craigmile engaged the
+artist to paint the picture of his gentle, sweet-faced wife.
+She was painted seated, a little son on either side of her;
+and now in the dimness she looked out from the heavy gold
+frame, a half smile playing about her lips, on her lap an
+open book, and about the low-cut crimson velvet bodice
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_26' name='page_26'></a>26</span>
+rare old lace pinned at the bosom with a large brooch of
+wrought gold, framing a delicately cut cameo.</p>
+<p>As Mary Ballard sat in the parlor waiting, she looked
+up in the dusky light at this picture. Ah, yes! Her
+Bertrand also was a great painter. If only he could be
+where he might become known and appreciated! She
+sighed for another reason, also, as she regarded it: because
+the two little sons clasped by the mother&rsquo;s arms were both
+gone. Sunny-haired Scotch laddies they were, with fair,
+wide brows, each in kilt and plaid, with bare knees and
+ruddy cheeks. What delight her husband had taken in
+painting it! And now the mother mourned unceasingly
+the loss of those little sons, and of one other whom Mary
+had never seen, and of whom they had no likeness. It
+was indeed hard that the one son left them,&ndash;&ndash;their firstborn,&ndash;&ndash;their
+hope and pride, should now be going away to
+leave them, going perhaps to his death.</p>
+<p>The door opened and a shadow swept slowly across the
+room. Always pale and in black&ndash;&ndash;wrapped in her mourning
+the shadow of sorrow never left this mother; and
+now it seemed to envelop even Mary Ballard, bright and
+warm of nature as she was.</p>
+<p>Hester Craigmile barely smiled as she held out her
+slender, blue-veined hand.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;It is very good of you to come to me, Mary Ballard, but
+you can&rsquo;t make me think I should be reconciled to this.
+No! It is hard enough to be reconciled to the blows God
+has dealt me, without accepting what my husband and son
+see fit to give me in this.&rdquo; Her hand was cold and passive,
+and her voice was restrained and low.</p>
+<p>Mary Ballard&rsquo;s hands were warm, and her tones were
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_27' name='page_27'></a>27</span>
+rich and full. She took the proffered hand in both her own
+and drew the shadow down to sit at her side.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;No, no. I&rsquo;m not going to try to make you reconciled,
+or anything. I&rsquo;ve just come to tell you that I understand,
+and that I think you are justified in withholding your consent
+to Peter Junior&rsquo;s going off in this way.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;If he were killed, I should feel as if I had consented to
+his death.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Of course you would. I should feel just the same.
+Naturally you can&rsquo;t forbid his going,&ndash;&ndash;now,&ndash;&ndash;for it&rsquo;s
+too late, and he would have to go with the feeling of disobedience
+in his heart, and that would be cruel to him,
+and worse for you.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I know. His father has consented; they think I am
+wrong. My son thinks I am wrong. But I can&rsquo;t! I
+can&rsquo;t!&rdquo; In her suppressed tones sounded the ancient wail
+of women&ndash;&ndash;mothers crying for their sons sacrificed in
+war. For a few moments neither of them spoke. It was
+hard for Mary to break the silence. Her friend sat at her
+side withdrawn and still; then she lifted her eyes to the
+picture of herself and the children and spoke again, only
+breathing the words: &ldquo;Peter Junior&ndash;&ndash;my beautiful oldest
+boy&ndash;&ndash;he is the last&ndash;&ndash;the others are all gone&ndash;&ndash;three of
+them.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Peter Junior is splendid. I thought so last evening as
+I saw him coming up the path. I took it home to myself&ndash;&ndash;what
+I should feel, and what I would think if he were
+my son. Somehow we women are so inconsistent and
+foolish. I knew if he were my son, I never could give my
+consent to his going, never in the world,&ndash;&ndash;but there!
+I would be so proud of him for doing just what your boy
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_28' name='page_28'></a>28</span>
+has done; I would look up to him in admiration, and be
+so glad that he was just that kind of a man!&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Hester Craigmile turned and looked steadily in her
+friend&rsquo;s eyes, but did not open her lips, and after a moment
+Mary continued:&ndash;&ndash;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;To have one&rsquo;s sons taken like these&ndash;&ndash;is&ndash;&ndash;is different.
+We know they are safe with the One who loved little children;
+we know they are safe and waiting for us. But to
+have a boy grow into a young man like Peter Junior&ndash;&ndash;so
+straight and fine and beautiful&ndash;&ndash;and then to have him
+come and say: &lsquo;I&rsquo;m going to help save our country and
+will die for it if I must!&rsquo; Why, my heart would grow big
+with thanksgiving that I had brought such an one into
+the world and reared him. I&ndash;&ndash;What would I do! I
+couldn&rsquo;t tell him he might go,&ndash;&ndash;no,&ndash;&ndash;but I&rsquo;d just take
+him in my arms and bless him and love him a thousand
+times more for it, so he could go away with that warm feeling
+all about his heart; and then&ndash;&ndash;I&rsquo;d just pray and
+hope the war might end soon and that he might come back
+to me rewarded, and&ndash;&ndash;and&ndash;&ndash;still good.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;That&rsquo;s it. If he would,&ndash;&ndash;I don&rsquo;t distrust my son,&ndash;&ndash;but
+there are always things to tempt, and if&ndash;&ndash;if he were
+changed in that way, or if he never came back,&ndash;&ndash;I would
+die.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I know. We can&rsquo;t help thinking about ourselves and
+how we are left&ndash;&ndash;or how we feel&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo; Mary hesitated
+and was loath to go on with that train of thought, but her
+friend caught her meaning and rose in silence and paced
+the room a moment, then returned.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;It is easy to talk in that way when one has not lost,&rdquo;
+she said.</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_29' name='page_29'></a>29</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;I know it seems so, but it is not easy, Hester Craigmile.
+It is hard&ndash;&ndash;so hard that I came near staying at home
+this morning. It seemed as if I could not&ndash;&ndash;could not&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes, what I said was bitter, and it wasn&rsquo;t honest. You
+were good to come to me&ndash;&ndash;and what you have said is true.
+It has helped me; I think it will help me.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Then good-by. I&rsquo;ll go now, but I&rsquo;ll come again soon.&rdquo;
+She left the shadow sitting there with the basket of fruit
+and flowers at her side unnoticed and forgotten, and stepped
+quietly out of the darkened room into the sunlight and
+fresh air.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I do wish I could induce her to go out a little&ndash;&ndash;or
+open up her house. I wish&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo; Mary Ballard said no more,
+but shut her lips tightly on her thoughts, untied the mare,
+and drove slowly away.</p>
+<p>Hester Craigmile stood for a moment gazing on the picture
+of her little sons, then for an hour or more wandered up and
+down over her spacious home, going from room to room,
+mechanically arranging and rearranging the chairs and
+small articles on the mantels and tables. Nothing was out
+of place. No dust or disorder anywhere, and there was
+the pity of it. If only a boy&rsquo;s cap could be found lying
+about, or books left carelessly where they ought not to be!
+One closed door she passed again and again. Once she
+laid her hand on the knob, but passed on, leaving it still
+unopened. At last she turned, and, walking swiftly down
+the long hall, entered the room.</p>
+<p>There the blinds were closed and the curtains drawn, and
+everything set in as perfect order as in the parlor below.
+She sat down in a chair placed back against the wall and
+folded her hands in her lap. No, it was not so hard for
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_30' name='page_30'></a>30</span>
+Mary Ballard. It would not be, even if she had a son old
+enough to go. Mary had work to do.</p>
+<p>On the wall above Hester&rsquo;s head was one of the portraits
+which helped to establish the family dignity of the Craigmiles.
+If the blinds had been open, one could have seen
+it in sharp contrast to the pale moth of a woman who sat
+beneath it. The painting, warm and rich in tone, was of a
+dame in a long-bodiced dress. She held a fan in her hand
+and wore feathers in her powdered hair. Her eyes gazed
+straight across the room into those of a red-coated soldier
+who wore a sword at his side and gold on his shoulders.
+Yes, there had been soldiers in the family before Peter
+Junior&rsquo;s time.</p>
+<p>This was Peter Junior&rsquo;s room, but the boy was there no
+longer. He had come home from college one day and had
+entered it a boy, and then he came out of it and down to his
+mother, dressed in his new uniform&ndash;&ndash;a man. Now he
+entered it no more, for he stayed at the camp over on the
+high bluff of the Wisconsin River. He was wholly taken up
+with his new duties there, and his room had been set in
+order and closed as if he were dead.</p>
+<p>Sitting there, Hester heard the church clock peal out
+the hour of twelve, and started. Soon she would hear the
+front door open and shut, and a heavy tread along the
+lower hall, and she would go down and sit silently at
+the table opposite her husband, they two alone. There
+would be silence, because there would be nothing to say.
+He loved her and was tender of her, but his word was law,
+and in all matters he was dictator, lawmaker, and judge,
+and from his decisions there was no appeal. It never occurred
+to him that there ever need be. So Hester Craigmile,
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_31' name='page_31'></a>31</span>
+reserved and intense, closed her lips on her own
+thoughts, which it seemed to her to be useless to utter, and
+let them eat her heart out in silence.</p>
+<p>At the moment expected she heard the step on the floor
+of the vestibule, and the door opened, but it was not her
+husband&rsquo;s step alone that she heard. Surely it was Peter
+Junior&rsquo;s and his cousin&rsquo;s. Were they coming to dinner?
+But no word had been sent. Hester stepped out of the room
+and stood at the head of the stairs waiting. She did not
+wish to go down and meet her son before the others, and if he
+did not find her below, he would know where to look for her.</p>
+<p>Peter Senior was an Elder in the Presbyterian Church,
+and he was always addressed as Elder, even by his wife and
+son. On the street he was always Elder Craigmile. She
+heard the men enter the dining room and the door close
+after them, but still she waited. The maid would have to
+be told to put two more places at the table, but Hester did
+not move. The Elder might attend to that. Presently
+she heard quick steps returning and knew her son was
+coming. She went to meet him and was clasped in his
+arms, close and hard.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You were waiting for me here? Come, mother, come.&rdquo;
+He stroked her smooth, dark hair, and put his cheek to hers.
+It was what she needed, what her heart was breaking for.
+She could even let him go easier after this. Sometimes her
+husband kissed her, but only when he went a journey
+or when he returned, a grave kiss of farewell or greeting;
+but in her son&rsquo;s clasp there was something of her own soul&rsquo;s
+pent-up longing.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You&rsquo;ll come down, mother? Rich came home with
+me.&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_32' name='page_32'></a>32</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes, I heard his voice. I am glad he came.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;See here, mother! I know what you are doing. This
+won&rsquo;t do. Every one who goes to war doesn&rsquo;t get killed
+or go to the bad. Look at that old redcoat up in my
+room. He wasn&rsquo;t killed, or where would I be now? I&rsquo;m
+coming back, just as he did. We are born to fight, we
+Craigmiles, and father feels it or he never would have given
+his consent.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Slowly they went down the long winding flight of stairs&ndash;&ndash;a
+flight with a smooth banister down which it had once
+been Peter Junior&rsquo;s delight to slide when there was no one
+nigh to reprove. Now he went down with his arm around
+his slender mother&rsquo;s waist, and now and then he kissed her
+cheek like a lover.</p>
+<p>The Elder looked up as they entered, with a slight wince
+of disapproval, the only demonstration of reproof he ever
+gave his wife, which changed instantly to as slight a smile,
+as he noticed the faint color in her cheek, and a brighter
+light in her eyes than there was at breakfast. He and
+Richard were both seated as they entered, but they rose
+instantly, and the Elder placed her chair with all the manner
+of his forefathers, a courtesy he never neglected.</p>
+<p>Hester Craigmile forced herself to converse, and tried to
+smile as if there were no impending gloom. It was here
+Mary Ballard&rsquo;s influence was felt by them all. She had
+helped her friend more than she knew.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I&rsquo;m glad to see you, Richard; I was afraid I might not.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, no, Aunt Hester. I&rsquo;d never leave without seeing
+you. I went into the bank and the Elder asked me to
+dinner and I jumped at the chance.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;This is your home always, you know.&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_33' name='page_33'></a>33</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;And it&rsquo;s good to think of, too, Aunt Hester.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>She looked at her son and then her nephew. &ldquo;You are
+so like in your uniforms I would not know you apart on
+the street in the dark,&rdquo; she said. Richard shot a merry
+glance in his uncle&rsquo;s eyes, then only smiled decorously with
+him and Peter Junior.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I wish you&rsquo;d visit the camp and see us drill. We go
+like clockwork, Peter and I. They call us the twins.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;There is a very good reason for that, for your mother
+and I were twins, and you resemble her, while Peter Junior
+resembles me,&rdquo; said the Elder.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; said Hester, &ldquo;Peter Junior looks like his father;&rdquo;
+but as she glanced at her son she knew his soul was hers.</p>
+<p>Thus the meal passed in quiet, decorous talk, touching on
+nothing vital, but holding a smoldering fire underneath.
+The young men said nothing about the fact that the regiment
+had been called to duty, and soon the camp on the
+bluff would be breaking up. They dared not touch on the
+past, and they as little dared touch on the future&ndash;&ndash;indeed
+there might be no future. So they talked of indifferent
+things, and Hester parted with her nephew as if they were
+to meet again soon, except that she called him back when
+he was halfway down the steps and kissed him again.
+As for her son, she took him up to his room and there they
+stayed for an hour, and then he came out and she was left
+in the house alone.</p>
+<hr class='toprule' />
+<div class='chsp'>
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_34' name='page_34'></a>34</span>
+<a name='CHAPTER_IV_LEAVETAKING' id='CHAPTER_IV_LEAVETAKING'></a>
+<h2>CHAPTER IV</h2>
+<h3>LEAVE-TAKING</h3>
+</div>
+<p>Early in the morning, while the earth was still a mass of
+gray shadow and mist, and the sky had only begun to show
+faint signs of the flush of dawn, Betty, awake and alert,
+crept softly out of bed, not to awaken Martha, who slept
+the sleep of utter weariness at her side. Martha had
+returned only the day before from her visit to her grandfather&rsquo;s,
+a long carriage ride away from Leauvite.</p>
+<p>Betty bathed hurriedly, giving a perfunctory brushing
+to the tangled mass of curls, and getting into her clothing
+swiftly and silently. She had been cautioned the night
+before by her mother not to awaken her sister by getting
+up at too early an hour, for she would be called in plenty
+of time to drive over with the rest to see the soldiers off.
+But what if her mother should forget! So she put on her
+new white dress and gathered a few small parcels which
+she had carefully tied up the night before, and her hat and
+little white linen cape, and taking her shoes in her hand,
+softly descended the stairs.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Betty, Betty,&rdquo; her mother spoke in a sleepy voice from
+her own room as the child crept past her door; &ldquo;why, my
+dear, it isn&rsquo;t time to get up yet. We shan&rsquo;t start for hours.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I heard Peter Junior say they were going to strike camp
+at daybreak, and I want to see them strike it. You don&rsquo;t
+need to get up. I can go over there alone.&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_35' name='page_35'></a>35</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;Why, no, child! Mother couldn&rsquo;t let you do that.
+They don&rsquo;t want little girls there. Go back to bed, dear.
+Did you wake Martha?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, mother. Can&rsquo;t I go downstairs? I don&rsquo;t want
+to go to bed again. I&rsquo;ll be very still.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Will you lie on the lounge and try to go to sleep
+again?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes, mother.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Mary Ballard turned with a sigh and presently fell
+asleep, and Betty softly continued her way and obediently
+lay down in the darkened room below; but sleep she could
+not. At last, having satisfied her conscience by lying
+quietly for a while, she stole to the open door, for in that
+peaceful spot the Ballards slept with doors and windows
+wide open all through the warm nights. Oh, but the world
+was cool and mysterious, and the air was sweet! Little
+rustling noises made her feel as if strange beings were stirring;
+above her head were soft chirpings, and somewhere
+a bird was calling an undulating, long-drawn note, low and
+sweet, like a tone drawn from her father&rsquo;s violin.</p>
+<p>Betty sat on the edge of the porch and put on her shoes,
+and then walked down the path to the gate. The white
+peonies and the iris flowers were long since gone, and on the
+Harvest apple trees and the Sweet Boughs the fruit hung
+ripening. All Betty&rsquo;s life long she never forgot this wonderful
+moment of the breaking of day. She listened for
+sounds to come to her from the camp far away on the river
+bluff, but none were heard, only the restless moving of her
+grandfather&rsquo;s team taking their early feed in the small
+pasture lot near by.</p>
+<p>How fresh everything smelled! And the sky! Surely
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_36' name='page_36'></a>36</span>
+it must be like this in heaven! It must be heaven showing
+through, while the world slept. She was glad she had
+awakened early so she might see it,&ndash;&ndash;she and God and the
+angels, and all the wild things of earth.</p>
+<p>Slowly everything around her grew plainer, and long rays
+of color, faintly pink, streamed up into the sky from the
+eastern horizon; then suddenly some pale gray, floating
+clouds above her head blossomed into a wonderful rose laid
+upon a sea of gold, then gradually turned shell-pink, then
+faded through changing shades to daytime clouds of white.
+She wondered if the soldiers saw it, too. They were breaking
+camp now, surely, for it was day. Still she swung on
+the gate and dreamed, until a voice roused her.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;So Betty sleeps all night on the gate like a chicken on
+the fence.&rdquo; A pair of long arms seized her and lifted her
+high in the air to a pair of strong shoulders. Then she was
+tossed about and her cheeks rubbed red against grandfather
+Clide&rsquo;s stubby beard, until she laughed aloud. &ldquo;What are
+you doing here on the gate?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I was watching the sky. I think God looked through
+and smiled, for all at once it blossomed. Now the colors are
+gone.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Grandfather Clide set her gently on her feet and stood
+looking gravely down on her for a moment. &ldquo;So?&rdquo; he
+said.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;The soldiers are striking camp over there, and then
+they are going to march to the square, and then every one
+is to see them form and salute&ndash;&ndash;and then they are to march
+to the station, and&ndash;&ndash;and&ndash;&ndash;then&ndash;&ndash;and then I don&rsquo;t
+know what will be&ndash;&ndash;I think glory.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Her grandfather shook his head, his thoughtful face half
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_37' name='page_37'></a>37</span>
+smiling and half grave. He took her hand. &ldquo;Come,
+we&rsquo;ll see what Jack and Jill are up to.&rdquo; He led her to the
+pasture lot and the horses came and thrust their heads
+over the fence and whinnied. &ldquo;See? They want their
+oats.&rdquo; Then Betty was lifted to old Jack&rsquo;s bare back and
+grandfather led him by the forelock to the barn, while Jill
+followed after.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Did Jack ever &lsquo;fall down and break his crown,&rsquo; grandfather?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;No, but he ran away once on a time.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, did Jill come running after?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;That she did.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>The sun had but just cast his first glance at High Knob,
+where the camp was, and Mary Ballard was hastily whipping
+up batter for pancakes, the simplest thing she could get
+for breakfast, as they were to go early enough to see the
+&ldquo;boys&rdquo; at the camp before they formed for their march
+to the town square. The children were to ride over in
+the great carriage with grandfather and grandmother Clide,
+while father and mother would take Bobby with them in
+the carryall. It was an arrangement liked equally by the
+three small children and the well-content grandparents.</p>
+<p>Betty came to the house, clinging to her grandfather&rsquo;s
+hand. He drew the large rocking-chair from the kitchen&ndash;&ndash;where
+winter and summer it occupied a place by the window,
+that Bertrand in his moments of rest and leisure might
+sit and read the war news aloud to his wife as she worked&ndash;&ndash;out
+to a cool grass plot by the door, so that he might still
+be near enough to chat with his daughter, while enjoying
+the morning air.</p>
+<p>Betty found tidy little Martha, fresh and clean as a rosebud,
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_38' name='page_38'></a>38</span>
+stepping busily about, setting the table with extra
+places and putting the chairs around. Filled with self-condemnation
+at the sight of her sister&rsquo;s helpfulness, she
+dashed upstairs to do her part in getting all neat for the day.
+First she coaxed naughty little Jamie, who, in his nightshirt,
+was out on the porch roof fishing, dangling his shoe
+over the edge by its strings tied to his father&rsquo;s cane, to return
+and be hustled into his trousers&ndash;&ndash;funny little garments
+that came almost to his shoe tops&ndash;&ndash;and to stand
+still while &ldquo;sister&rdquo; washed his face and brushed his curly
+red hair into a state of semi-orderliness.</p>
+<p>Then there was Bobby to be kissed and coaxed, and
+washed and dressed, and told marvelous tales to beguile
+him into listening submission. &ldquo;Mother, mayn&rsquo;t I put
+Bobby&rsquo;s Sunday dress on him?&rdquo; called Betty, from the
+head of the stairs.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes, dear, anything you like, but hurry. Breakfast
+is almost ready;&rdquo; then to Martha, &ldquo;Leave the sweeping,
+deary, and run down to the spring for the cream.&rdquo; To her
+father, Mary explained: &ldquo;The little girls are a great help.
+Betty manages to do for the boys without irritating them.
+Now we&rsquo;ll eat while the cakes are hot. Come, Bertrand.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>It was a grave mission and a sorrowful one, that early
+morning ride to say good-by to those youthful volunteers.
+The breakfast conversation turned on the subject with subdued
+intensity. Mary Ballard did not explain herself,&ndash;&ndash;she
+was too busy serving,&ndash;&ndash;but denounced the war in
+broad terms as &ldquo;unnecessary and iniquitous,&rdquo; thus eliciting
+from her husband his usual exclamation, when an aphorism
+of more than ordinary daring burst from her lips: &ldquo;Mary!
+why, Mary! I&rsquo;m astonished!&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_39' name='page_39'></a>39</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;Every one regards it from a different point of view,&rdquo;
+said his wife, &ldquo;and this is my point.&rdquo; It was conclusive.</p>
+<p>Grandfather Clide turned sideways, leaned one elbow
+on the table in a meditative way he had, and spoke slowly.
+Betty gazed up at him in wide-eyed attention, while Mary
+poured the coffee and Martha helped her mother by passing
+the cakes. Bobby sat close to his comfortable grandmother,
+who seemed to be giving him all her attention, but
+who heard everything, and was ready to drop a quiet word
+of significance when applicable.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;If we bring the question down to its primal cause,&rdquo;
+said grandfather, &ldquo;if we bring it down to its primal cause,
+Mary is right; for the cause being iniquitous, of course,
+the war is the same.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;What is &lsquo;primal cause,&rsquo; grandfather?&rdquo; asked Betty.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;The thing that began it all,&rdquo; said grandfather, regarding
+her quizzically.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t agree with your conclusion,&rdquo; said Bertrand, pausing
+to put sirup on Jamie&rsquo;s cakes, after repeated demands
+therefor. &ldquo;If the cause be evil, it follows that to annihilate
+the cause&ndash;&ndash;wipe it out of existence&ndash;&ndash;must be righteous.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;In God&rsquo;s good time,&rdquo; said grandmother Clide, quietly.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;God&rsquo;s good time, in my opinion, seems to be when we
+are forced to a thing.&rdquo; Grandfather lifted one shaggy eyebrow
+in her direction.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;At any rate, and whatever happens,&rdquo; said Bertrand,
+&ldquo;the Union must be preserved, a nation, whole and undivided.
+My father left England for love of its magnificent
+ideals of government by the people. Here is to be the
+vast open ground where all nations may come and realize
+their highest possibilities, and consequently this nation
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_40' name='page_40'></a>40</span>
+must be held together and developed as a whole in all its
+resources, and not cut up into small, ineffective, quarrelsome
+factions. To allow that would mean the ruin of a
+colossal scheme for universal progress.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Mary brought her husband&rsquo;s coffee and put it beside
+his plate, as he was too absorbed to take it, and as she did
+so placed her hand on his shoulder with gentle pressure and
+their eyes met for an instant. Then grandfather Clide
+took up the thread.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Speaking of your father makes me think of my father,
+your old grandfather Clide, Mary. He fought with his
+father in the Revolutionary War when he was a lad no
+more than Peter Junior&rsquo;s age&ndash;&ndash;or less. He lived through
+it and came to be a judge of the supreme court of New
+York, and helped to frame the constitution of that State,
+too. I used to hear him say, when I was a mere boy,&ndash;&ndash;and
+he would bring his fist down on the table with an emphasis
+that made the dishes rattle, for all he averred
+that he never used gesticulation to aid his oratory,&ndash;&ndash;he
+used to say,&ndash;&ndash;I remember his words, as if it were but yesterday,&ndash;&ndash;&lsquo;Slavery
+is a crime which we, the whole nation,
+are accountable for, and for which we will be held accountable.
+If we as a nation will not do away with it by legislation
+or mutual compact justly, then the Lord will take
+it into his own hands and wipe it out with blood. He may
+be patient for a long while, and give us a good chance, but
+if we wait too long,&ndash;&ndash;it may not be in my day&ndash;&ndash;it may not
+be in yours,&ndash;&ndash;he will wipe it out with blood!&rsquo; and here was
+where he used to make the dishes rattle.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Maybe, then, this is the Lord&rsquo;s good time,&rdquo; said grandmother.</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_41' name='page_41'></a>41</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;I believe in preserving the Union at any cost, slavery
+or no slavery,&rdquo; said Bertrand.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;The bigger and grander the nation, the more rottenness,
+if it&rsquo;s rotten at heart. I believe it better&ndash;&ndash;even at the
+cost of war&ndash;&ndash;to wipe out a national crime,&ndash;&ndash;or let those
+who want slavery take themselves out of it.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Betty began to quiver through all her little system of
+high-strung nerves and sympathies. The talk was growing
+heated, and she hated to listen to excited arguments;
+yet she gazed and listened with fascinated attention.</p>
+<p>Bertrand looked up at his father-in-law. &ldquo;Why, father!
+why, father! I&rsquo;m astonished! I fail to see how permitting
+one tremendous evil can possibly further any good purpose.
+To my mind the most tremendous evil that could be perpetrated
+on this globe&ndash;&ndash;the thing that would do more
+to set all progress back for hundreds of years, maybe&ndash;&ndash;would
+be to break up this Union. Here in this country
+now we are advancing at a pace that covers the centuries
+of the past in leaps of a hundred years in one. Now cut
+this land up into little, caviling factions, and where are we?
+Why, the very motto of the republic would be done away
+with&ndash;&ndash;&lsquo;In Union there is strength.&rsquo; I tell you slavery is
+a sort of Delilah, and the nation&ndash;&ndash;if it is divided&ndash;&ndash;will
+be like Sampson with his locks shorn.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Well, war is here,&rdquo; said Mary, &ldquo;and we must send off
+our young men to the shambles, and later on fill up our
+country with the refuse of Europe in their stead. It will
+be a terrible blood-letting for both North and South, and it
+will be the best blood on both sides. I&rsquo;m as sorry for the
+mothers down there as I am for ourselves. Did you get the
+apples, Bertrand? We&rsquo;d better start, to be there at eight.&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_42' name='page_42'></a>42</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;I put them in the carryall, my dear, Sweet Boughs and
+Harvest apples. The boys will have one more taste before
+they leave.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Father, we want to carry some. Put some in the
+carriage too,&rdquo; said Martha.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes, father. We want to eat some while we are on the
+way.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Why, Jamie, they are for the soldiers; they&rsquo;re not for
+us,&rdquo; cried Betty, in horror. To eat even one, it seemed to
+her, would be greed and robbery.</p>
+<p>In spite of the gravity of the hour to the older ones, the
+occasion took on an air of festivity to the children. In
+grandfather&rsquo;s dignified old family carriage Martha sat
+with demure elation on the back seat at her grandmother&rsquo;s
+side, wearing her white linen cape, and a wide-brimmed,
+low-crowned hat of Neapolitan straw, with a blue ribbon
+around the crown, and a narrow one attached to the front,
+the end of which she held in her hand to pull the brim down
+to shade her eyes as was the fashion for little girls of the
+day. She felt well pleased with the hat, and held the ribbon
+daintily in her shapely little hand.</p>
+<p>At her feet was the basket of apples, and with her other
+hand she guarded three small packages. Grandmother
+wore a gray, changeable silk. The round waist fitted her
+plump figure smoothly, and the skirt was full and flowing.
+Her bonnet was made of the same silk shirred on rattan,
+and was not perched on the top of her head, but covered
+it well and framed her sweet face with a full, white tulle
+ruching set close under the brim.</p>
+<p>Grandfather, up in front, drove Jack and Jill, who, he
+said, were &ldquo;feeling their oats.&rdquo; Betty did not wonder, for
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_43' name='page_43'></a>43</span>
+oats are sharp and must prick their stomachs. She sat
+with grandfather,&ndash;&ndash;he had promised she should the night
+before,&ndash;&ndash;and Jamie was tucked in between them. He
+ought to have been in behind with grandmother, but his
+scream of rebellion as he was lifted in brought instant
+yielding from Betty, when grandfather interfered and took
+them both. But when Jamie insisted on holding the reins,
+grandfather grew firm, and when screams again began, his
+young majesty was lifted down and placed in the road to
+remain until instant obedience was promised, after which
+he was restored to the coveted place and away they went.</p>
+<p>Betty&rsquo;s white linen cape blew out behind and her ribbons
+flew like blue butterflies all about her hat. She forgot to
+hold down the brim, as polite little girls did who knew how
+to wear their Sunday clothes. She, too, held three small
+packages in her lap. For days, ever since Peter Junior
+and Richard Kildene had taken tea with them in their
+new uniforms, the little girls had patiently sewed to make
+the articles which filled these packages.</p>
+<p>Mary Ballard had planned them. In each was a needle-book
+filled with needles large enough to be used by clumsy
+fingers, a pin ball, a good-sized iron thimble, and a case of
+thread and yarn for mending, buttons of various sizes, and
+a bit of beeswax, molded in Mary Ballard&rsquo;s thimble, to
+wax their linen thread. All were neatly packed in a case
+of bronzed leather bound about with firm braid, and tucked
+under the strap of the leather on the inside was a small
+pair of scissors. It was all very compact and tied about
+with the braid. Mother had done some of the hardest
+of the sewing, but for the most part the stitches had been
+painstakingly put in by the children&rsquo;s own fingers.</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_44' name='page_44'></a>44</span></div>
+<p>The morning was cool, and the dust had been laid by a
+heavy shower in the night. The horses held up their heads
+and went swiftly, in spite of their long journey the day
+before. Soon they heard in the distance the sound of the
+drum, and the merry note of a fife. Again a pang shot
+through Betty&rsquo;s heart that she had not been a boy of
+Peter Junior&rsquo;s age that she might go to war. She heaved a
+deep sigh and looked up in her grandfather&rsquo;s face. It
+was a grizzled face, with blue eyes that shot a kindly glance
+sideways at her as if he understood.</p>
+<p>When they drew near, the horses danced to the merry
+tune, as if they would like to go, too. All the camp seemed
+alive. How splendid the soldiers looked in their blue uniforms,
+their guns flashing in the sun! Betty watched how
+their legs with the stripes on them seemed to twinkle as
+they moved all together, marching in companies. Back
+and forth, back and forth, they went, and the orders
+came to the children short and abrupt, as the men went
+through their maneuvers. They saw the sentinel pacing
+up and down, and wondered why he did it instead
+of marching with the other men. All these questions
+were saved up to ask of grandfather when they got
+home. They were too interested to do anything but
+watch now.</p>
+<p>At last, very suddenly it seemed, the soldiers broke ranks
+and scattered over the greensward, running hither and
+thither like ants. Betty again drew a long breath. Now
+they were coming, the soldiers in whom they were particularly
+interested.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Can they do what they please now?&rdquo; she asked her
+grandfather.</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_45' name='page_45'></a>45</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes, for a while.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>All along the sentry line carriages were drawn up, for
+this hour from eight till nine was given to the &ldquo;boys&rdquo; to
+see their friends for the last time in many months, maybe
+years, maybe forever. As they had come from all over the
+State, some had no friends to meet them, but guests were
+there in crowds, and every man might receive a handshake
+whether he was known or not. All were friends to these
+young volunteers.</p>
+<p>Bertrand Ballard was known and loved by all the youths.
+Some from the village, and others from the country around,
+had been in the way of coming to the Ballard home simply
+because the place was made an enjoyable center for them.
+Some came to practice the violin and others to sing. Some
+came to try their hand at sketching and painting and some
+just to hear Bertrand talk. All was done for them quite
+gratuitously on his part, and no laugh was merrier than his.
+Even the chore boy came in for a share of the Ballards&rsquo;
+kindly help, sitting at Mary Ballard&rsquo;s side in the long winter
+evenings, and conning lessons to patch up an education
+snatched haphazard and hardly come by.</p>
+<p>Here comes one of them now, head up, smiling, and
+happy-go-lucky. &ldquo;Bertrand, here comes Johnnie. Give
+him the apples and let him distribute them. Poor boy!
+I&rsquo;m sorry he&rsquo;s going; he&rsquo;s too easily led,&rdquo; said Mary.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh! Johnnie, Johnnie Cooper! I&rsquo;ve got something for
+you. We made them. Mother helped us,&rdquo; cried Martha.
+Now the children were out of the carriage and running
+about among their friends.</p>
+<p>Johnnie Cooper snatched Jamie from the ground and
+threw him up over his head, then set him down again and
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_46' name='page_46'></a>46</span>
+took the parcel. Then he caught Martha up and set her
+on his shoulder while he peeped into the package.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Stop, Johnnie. Set me down. I&rsquo;m too big now for
+you to toss me up.&rdquo; Her arms were clasped tightly under
+his chin as he held her by the feet. Slowly he let her slide
+to the ground and thrust the little case in his pocket, and
+stooping, kissed the child.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I&rsquo;ll think of you and your mother when I use this,&rdquo; he
+said.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;And you&rsquo;ll write to us, won&rsquo;t you, Johnnie?&rdquo; said Mary.
+&ldquo;If you don&rsquo;t, I shall think something is gone wrong with
+you.&rdquo; He knew what she meant, and she knew he knew.
+&ldquo;There are worse things than bullets, Johnnie.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Never you worry for me, Mrs. Ballard. We&rsquo;re going
+down for business, and you won&rsquo;t see me again until we&rsquo;ve
+licked the &lsquo;rebs.&rsquo;&rdquo; He held her hand awkwardly for a
+minute, then relieved the tension by carrying off the two
+baskets of apples. &ldquo;I know the trees these came from,&rdquo; he
+said, and soon a hundred boys in blue were eating Bertrand&rsquo;s
+choicest apples.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Here come the twins!&rdquo; said some one, as Peter Junior
+and Richard Kildene came toward them across the sward.
+Betty ran to meet them and caught Richard by the hand.
+She loved to have him swing her in long leaps from the
+ground as he walked.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;See, Richard, I made this for you all myself&ndash;&ndash;almost.
+I put C in the corner so it wouldn&rsquo;t get mixed with the
+others, because this I made especially for you.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Did you? Why didn&rsquo;t you put R in the corner if you
+meant it for me? I think you meant this for Charley
+Crabbe.&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_47' name='page_47'></a>47</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;No, I didunt.&rdquo; Betty spoke most emphatically.
+&ldquo;Martha has one for him. I put C because&ndash;&ndash;you&rsquo;ll see
+when you open it. Everything&rsquo;s bound all round with
+my very best cherry-colored hair ribbon, to make it very
+special, and that is what C is for. All the rest are brown,
+and this is prettier, and it won&rsquo;t get mixed with Peter
+Junior&rsquo;s.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Ah, yes. C is for cherry&ndash;&ndash;Betty&rsquo;s hair ribbon; and
+the gold-brown leather is for Betty&rsquo;s hair. Is that it?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yep.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Haven&rsquo;t I one, too?&rdquo; asked Peter Junior.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yep. We made them just alike, and you can sew on
+buttons and everything.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Thus the children made the leave-taking less somber, to
+the relief of every one.</p>
+<p>Grandfather and grandmother Clide had friends of their
+own whom they had come all the forty miles to see,&ndash;&ndash;neighbor
+boys from many of the farms around their home,
+and their daughter-in-law&rsquo;s own brother, who was like a
+son to them. There he stood, lithe and strong and genial,
+and, alas! too easy-going to be safe among the temptations
+of the camp.</p>
+<p>Quickly the hour passed and the call came to form ranks
+for the march to the town square, where speeches were to
+be made and prayers were to be read before the march to
+the station.</p>
+<p>Our little party waited until the last company had left
+the camp ground and the excited children had seen them
+all and heard the sound of the fife and drum to their last
+note and beat as the &ldquo;boys in blue&rdquo; filed past them and
+off down the winding country road among the trees. Nothing
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_48' name='page_48'></a>48</span>
+was said by the older ones of what might be in the
+future for those gallant youths&ndash;&ndash;yes, and for the few men
+of greater years with them&ndash;&ndash;as they wound out of sight.
+It was better so. Bobby fell asleep in Mary Ballard&rsquo;s
+arms as they drove back, and a bright tear fell from her
+wide-open, far-seeing eyes down on his baby cheek.</p>
+<p>It was no lack of love for his son that kept Elder Craigmile
+away at the departure of the boys from their camp on
+the bluff. He had virtually said his say and parted from
+his son when he gave his consent to his going in the first
+place. To him war meant sacrifice, and the parting with
+sons, at no matter what cost. The dominant idea with
+him was ever the preservation of the Union. At nine
+o&rsquo;clock as usual that morning he had entered the bank, and
+a few minutes later, when the troops formed on the square,
+he came out and took his appointed place on the platform,
+as one of the speakers, and offered a closing prayer for the
+confounding of the enemy after the manner of David of
+old&ndash;&ndash;then he descended and took his son&rsquo;s hand, as he
+stood in the ranks, with his arm across the boy&rsquo;s shoulder,
+looked a moment in his eyes; then, without a word, he
+turned and re&euml;ntered the bank.</p>
+<hr class='toprule' />
+<div class='chsp'>
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_49' name='page_49'></a>49</span>
+<a name='CHAPTER_V_THE_PASSING_OF_TIME' id='CHAPTER_V_THE_PASSING_OF_TIME'></a>
+<h2>CHAPTER V</h2>
+<h3>THE PASSING OF TIME</h3>
+</div>
+<p>It was winter. The snow was blowing past the windows
+in blinding drifts, and the road in front of the Ballards&rsquo;
+home was fast filling to the tops of the fences. A bright
+wood-fire was burning in the great cookstove, which had
+been brought into the living room for warmth and to economize
+steps, as all the work of the household devolved on
+Mary and little Betty, since Martha spent the week days
+at the Deans in the village in order to attend the high school.</p>
+<p>Mary gazed anxiously now and then through the fast-frosting
+window panes on the opaque whiteness of the storm
+without, where the trees tossed their bare branches weirdly,
+like threatening gray phantoms, grotesque and dimly seen
+through the driving snow. It was Friday afternoon and
+still early, and brave, busy little Martha always came
+home on Fridays after school to help her mother on
+Saturdays.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, I hope Martha hasn&rsquo;t started,&rdquo; said Mary. &ldquo;Look
+out, Bertrand. This is the wildest storm we have had this
+year.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Mrs. Dean would never allow her to set out in this
+storm, I&rsquo;m sure,&rdquo; said Bertrand. &ldquo;I cautioned her yesterday
+when I was there never to start when the weather
+seemed like a blizzard.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Bertrand had painted in his studio above as long as the
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_50' name='page_50'></a>50</span>
+light remained, and now he was washing his brushes, carefully
+swishing the water out of them and drawing each one
+between his lips to shape it properly before laying it down.
+Mary laid the babe in her arms in its crib, and rocked it a
+moment while she and Bertrand chatted.</p>
+<p>A long winter and summer had passed since the troops
+marched away from Leauvite, and now another winter was
+passing. For a year and a bit more, little Janey, the babe
+now being hushed to sleep, had been a member of the family
+circle. Thus it was that Mary Ballard seldom went to the
+village, and Betty learned her lessons at home as best she
+could, and tended the baby and helped her mother. But
+Bertrand and his wife had plenty to talk about; for he
+went out and saw their friends in the village, led the choir
+on Sundays, taught the Bible class, heard all the news, and
+talked it over with Mary.</p>
+<p>Thus, in one way or another, all the new books found their
+way into the Ballards&rsquo; home, were read and commented on,
+even though books were not written so much for commercial
+purposes then as now, and their writers were looked up
+to with more respect than criticism. The <i>Atlantic Monthly</i>
+and <i>Littell&rsquo;s Living Age</i>, <i>Harper&rsquo;s Magazine</i>, and the <i>New
+York Tribune</i> also brought up a variety of subjects for
+discussion. Now and then a new poem by Whittier, or
+Bryant, or some other of the small galaxy of poets who
+justly were becoming the nation&rsquo;s pride, would appear and
+be read aloud to Mary as she prepared their meals, or
+washed the dishes or ironed small garments, while Betty
+listened with intent eyes and ears, as she helped her mother
+or tended the baby.</p>
+<p>That afternoon, while the storm soughed without, the
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_51' name='page_51'></a>51</span>
+cow and horse were comfortably quartered in their small
+stable, which was banked with straw to keep out the cold.
+Indoors, Jamie was whittling behind the warm cookstove
+over a newspaper spread to catch the chips, while Bobby
+played quietly in a corner with two gray kittens and a
+worsted ball. Janey was asleep in the crib which Betty
+jogged now and then while she knit on a sock for the soldiers,&ndash;&ndash;Mary
+and the two little girls were always knitting
+socks for the soldiers these days in their spare moments and
+during the long winter evenings,&ndash;&ndash;Mary was kneading
+white loaves of bread with floury hands, and Bertrand sat
+close beside the window to catch the last rays of daylight
+by which to read the war news.</p>
+<p>Bertrand always read the war news first,&ndash;&ndash;news of
+battles and lists of wounded and slain and imprisoned, and
+saddest of all, lists of the missing,&ndash;&ndash;following closely the
+movements of their own company of &ldquo;boys&rdquo; from Leauvite.
+Mary listened always with a thought of the shadow in the
+banker&rsquo;s home, and the mother there, watching and waiting
+for the return of her boy. Although their own home
+was safe, the sorrow of other homes, devastated and mourning,
+weighed heavily upon Mary Ballard, and she needed to
+listen to the stirring editorials of the <i>Tribune</i>, which Bertrand
+read with dramatic intensity, to bolster up her faith
+in the rightness of this war between men who ought to be
+brothers in their hopes and ambitions for the national life
+of their great country.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I suppose it is too great a thing to ask&ndash;&ndash;that such
+a tremendous and mixed nation as ours should be knit together
+for the good of all men in a spirit of brotherly love&ndash;&ndash;but
+what a thing to ask for! What a thing to try for!
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_52' name='page_52'></a>52</span>
+If I were a man, I would pray that I might gain influence
+over my fellows just for that&ndash;&ndash;just&ndash;&ndash;for that,&rdquo; said
+Mary.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Ah,&rdquo; replied her husband, with fond optimism, &ldquo;you
+need not say &lsquo;If I were a man,&rsquo; for that. It is the women
+who have the influence; don&rsquo;t you know that, Mary?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Mary looked down at her work, an incredulous smile
+playing about her lips.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Well, my dear?&rdquo; Bertrand loved a response.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Well, Bertrand? Men do like to talk about our
+&lsquo;sweet influence,&rsquo; don&rsquo;t they?&rdquo; Then she laughed outright.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;But, Mary&ndash;&ndash;but, Mary, it is true. Women do more
+with their influence than men can do with their guns,&rdquo; and
+Bertrand really meant what he said. Dusky shadows
+filled the room, but if the light had been stronger, he would
+have seen that little ironical smile still playing about his
+wife&rsquo;s lips.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Did you see Judge Logan again about those Waupaca
+lots?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Bertrand wondered what the lots had to do with the subject,
+but suffered the digression patiently, for the feminine
+mind was not supposed to be coherent. &ldquo;Yes, my love;
+I saw him yesterday.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;What did you do about them? I hope you refused.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;No, my dear. I thought best not. He showed me
+very conclusively that in time they will be worth more&ndash;&ndash;much
+more&ndash;&ndash;than the debt.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Then why did he offer them to you for the debt? The
+portrait you painted for him will be worth more, too, in
+time, than the debt. You remember when you asked me
+what I thought, I said we needed the money more now.&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_53' name='page_53'></a>53</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes, I remember; but this plan is a looking toward the
+future. I didn&rsquo;t think it wise to refuse.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Mary said nothing, but went out, returning presently
+with two lighted candles. Bertrand was replenishing the
+fire. Had he been looking at her face with the light of the
+candles on it as she carried them, he would have noticed
+that little smile about her lips.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I&rsquo;m very glad we brought the bees in yesterday,&rdquo; he
+said. &ldquo;This storm would have made it impossible to do it
+to-day, and we should have lost them.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;How about those lectures, dear? The &lsquo;boys&rsquo; are all
+gone now, and you won&rsquo;t have them to take up your time
+evenings, so you can easily prepare them. They will take
+you into the city now and then, and that will keep you in
+touch with the world outside this village.&rdquo; Bertrand had
+been requested to give a series of lectures on art in one of
+the colleges in the city. He had been well pleased and had
+accepted, but later had refused because of certain dictatorship
+exercised by the Board, which he felt infringed on his
+province of a suitable selection of subjects. He was silent
+for a moment. Again Mary had irrelevantly and abruptly
+changed the subject of conversation. Where was the connection
+between bees and lectures? &ldquo;I really wish you
+would, dear,&rdquo; urged Mary.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You still wish it after the affront the Board has given
+me?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I know, but what do they know about art? I would
+give the lectures if it was only to be able&ndash;&ndash;incidentally&ndash;&ndash;to
+teach them something. Be a little conciliatory, dear.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I will make no concessions. If I give the lectures, I
+must be allowed to select my courses. It is my province.&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_54' name='page_54'></a>54</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;Did you see Elder Craigmile about it?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I did.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;And what did he say?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;He seemed to think the Board was right.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I knew he would. You remember I asked you not to
+go to him about it, and that was why.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Why did you think so? He assumes to be my friend.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Because people who don&rsquo;t know anything about art
+always are satisfied with their own opinions. They don&rsquo;t
+know anything to upset them. He knows more than some
+of them, but how much is that? Enough to know that he
+owns some fine paintings; but you taught him their value,
+now, didn&rsquo;t you?&rdquo; Bertrand smiled, but said nothing, and
+his wife continued. &ldquo;Prepare the lectures, dear, for my
+sake. I love to know that you are doing such work.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I can&rsquo;t. The action of the Board is an insult to my
+intelligence. What are you smiling about?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;About you, dear.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Mary, why, Mary! I&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>But Mary only smiled the more. &ldquo;You love my irrelevance
+and inconsistency, you say,&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I love any weakness that is yours, Mary. What are
+you keeping back from me?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;The weakness that is mine, dear.&rdquo; Again Mary
+laughed outright. &ldquo;It would be useless to tell you&ndash;&ndash;or
+to try to explain. I love you, isn&rsquo;t that enough?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Bertrand thought it ought to be, but was not sure, and
+said so. Then Mary laughed again, and he kissed her, shaking
+his head dubiously, and took up his violin for solace.
+Thus an hour passed; then Betty set the table for supper,
+and the long evening followed like many another evening,
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_55' name='page_55'></a>55</span>
+filled with the companionship only comfortably married
+people know, while Bertrand read from the poets.</p>
+<p>Since, with a man&rsquo;s helplessness in such matters, he could
+not do the family mending, or knit for the soldiers, or remodel
+old garments into new, it behooved him to render
+such tasks pleasant for the busy hand and brain that must
+devise and create and make much out of little for economy&rsquo;s
+sake; and this Bertrand did to Mary&rsquo;s complete satisfaction.</p>
+<p>Evenings like these were Betty&rsquo;s school, and they seemed
+all the schooling she was likely to get, for the family funds
+were barely sufficient to cover the expenses of one child at
+a time. But, as Mary said, &ldquo;It&rsquo;s not so bad for Betty to
+be kept at home, for she will read and study, anyway, because
+she likes it, and it won&rsquo;t hurt her to learn to be practical as
+well;&rdquo; and no doubt Mary was right.</p>
+<p>Bertrand was himself a poet in his appreciation and fineness
+of choice, and he read for Mary with all the effectiveness
+and warmth of color that he would put into a recitation
+for a large audience, carried on solely by his one sympathetic
+listener and his love for what he read; while Betty, in
+her corner close to the lamp behind her father&rsquo;s chair,
+listened unnoticed, with eager soul, rapt and uplifted.</p>
+<p>As Bertrand read he commented. &ldquo;These men who are
+writing like this are doing for this country what the Lake
+Poets did for England. They are making true literature
+for the nation, and saving it from banality. They are going
+to live. They will be classed some day with Wordsworth
+and all the rest of the best. Hear this from James Russell
+Lowell. It&rsquo;s about a violin, and is called &lsquo;In the Twilight.&rsquo;
+It&rsquo;s worthy of Shelley.&rdquo; And Bertrand read the
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_56' name='page_56'></a>56</span>
+poem through, while Mary let her knitting fall in her lap
+and listened. He loved to see her listen in that way.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Read again the verse that begins: &lsquo;O my life.&rsquo; I
+seem to like it best.&rdquo; And he read it over:&ndash;&ndash;</p>
+<table summary=''><tr><td>
+<p class='cg'>&ldquo;O my life, have we not had seasons<br />
+<span class='indent4'>&nbsp;</span>That only said, Live and rejoice?<br />
+That asked not for causes and reasons,<br />
+<span class='indent4'>&nbsp;</span>But made us all feeling and voice?<br />
+When we went with the winds in their blowing,<br />
+<span class='indent4'>&nbsp;</span>When Nature and we were peers,<br />
+And we seemed to share in the flowing<br />
+<span class='indent4'>&nbsp;</span>Of the inexhaustible years?<br />
+<span class='indent4'>&nbsp;</span>Have we not from the earth drawn juices<br />
+<span class='indent4'>&nbsp;</span>Too fine for earth&rsquo;s sordid uses?<br />
+<span class='indent6'>&nbsp;</span>Have I heard, have I seen<br />
+<span class='indent10'>&nbsp;</span>All I feel, all I know?<br />
+<span class='indent6'>&nbsp;</span>Doth my heart overween?<br />
+<span class='indent6'>&nbsp;</span>Or could it have been<br />
+<span class='indent14'>&nbsp;</span>Long ago?&rdquo;</p>
+</td></tr></table>
+<p>&ldquo;And the next, Bertrand. I love to hear them over
+again.&rdquo; And he read:&ndash;&ndash;</p>
+<table summary=''><tr><td>
+<p class='cg'>&ldquo;Sometimes a breath floats by me,<br />
+<span class='indent6'>&nbsp;</span>An odor from Dreamland sent,<br />
+That makes the ghost seem nigh me<br />
+<span class='indent6'>&nbsp;</span>Of a splendor that came and went,<br />
+Of a life lived somewhere, I know not<br />
+<span class='indent6'>&nbsp;</span>In what diviner sphere,<br />
+Of memories that stay not and go not,<br />
+<span class='indent6'>&nbsp;</span>Like music heard once by an ear<br />
+<span class='indent10'>&nbsp;</span>That cannot forget or reclaim it,<br />
+A something so shy, it would shame it<br />
+<span class='indent6'>&nbsp;</span>To make it a show,<br />
+A something too vague, could I name it,
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_57' name='page_57'></a>57</span><br />
+<span class='indent6'>&nbsp;</span>For others to know,<br />
+As if I had lived it or dreamed it,<br />
+As if I had acted or schemed it,<br />
+<span class='indent16'>&nbsp;</span>Long ago!&ldquo;</p>
+</td></tr></table>
+<p>&ldquo;And the last verse, father. I like the last best,&rdquo; cried
+Betty, suddenly.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Why, my deary. I thought you were gone to bed.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;No, mother lets me sit up a little while longer when
+you&rsquo;re reading. I like to hear you.&rdquo; And he read for her
+the last verse:&ndash;&ndash;</p>
+<table summary=''><tr><td>
+<p class='cg'>&ldquo;And yet, could I live it over,<br />
+<span class='indent6'>&nbsp;</span>This life that stirs my brain,<br />
+Could I be both maiden and lover,<br />
+Moon and tide, bee and clover,<br />
+<span class='indent6'>&nbsp;</span>As I seem to have been, once again,<br />
+Could I but speak it and show it,<br />
+<span class='indent6'>&nbsp;</span>This pleasure more sharp than pain,<br />
+<span class='indent10'>&nbsp;</span>That baffles and lures me so,<br />
+The world should once more have a poet,<br />
+<span class='indent10'>&nbsp;</span>Such as it had<br />
+<span class='indent10'>&nbsp;</span>In the ages glad,<br />
+<span class='indent16'>&nbsp;</span>Long ago!&rdquo;</p>
+</td></tr></table>
+<p>Then, wishing to know more of the secret springs of his
+little daughter&rsquo;s life, he asked: &ldquo;Why do you love that
+stanza best, Betty, my dear?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Betty blushed crimson to the roots of her hair, for what
+she carried in her heart was too precious to tell, but she
+meant to be a poet. Even then, in the pocket of her calico
+dress lay a little book and a stubbed lead pencil, and in the
+book was already the beginning of her great epic. Her
+father had said the epic was a thing of the past, that in the
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_58' name='page_58'></a>58</span>
+future none would be written, for that it was a form of expressions
+that belonged to the world&rsquo;s youth, and that age
+brought philosophy and introspection, but not epics.</p>
+<p>She meant to surprise her father some day with this poem.
+The great world was so full of mystery&ndash;&ndash;of seductive
+beauty and terror and of strange, enticing charm! She
+saw and felt it always. Even now, in the driving, whirling
+storm without, in the darkness of her chamber, or when
+she looked through the frosted panes into the starry skies
+at midnight, always it was there all about her,&ndash;&ndash;a something
+unexpressed, unseen, but close&ndash;&ndash;close to her,&ndash;&ndash;the
+mystery which throbbed through all her small being, and
+which she was one day to find out and understand and put
+into her great epic.</p>
+<p>She thought over her father&rsquo;s question, hardly knowing
+why she liked that last stanza best. She slowly wound up
+her ball of yarn and thrust the needles through it, and
+dropped it into her mother&rsquo;s workbasket before she replied;
+then, taking up her candle, she looked shyly in her father&rsquo;s
+eyes.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Because I like where it says: &lsquo;This pleasure more
+sharp than pain, That baffles and lures me so.&rsquo;&rdquo; Then she
+was gone, hurrying away lest they should question her
+further and learn about the little book in her pocket.</p>
+<p>Thus time passed with the Ballards, many days swiftly
+flying, laden with a fair share of sweetness and pleasure,
+and much of harassment and toil, but in the main bringing
+happiness.</p>
+<hr class='toprule' />
+<div class='chsp'>
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_59' name='page_59'></a>59</span>
+<a name='CHAPTER_VI_THE_END_OF_THE_WAR' id='CHAPTER_VI_THE_END_OF_THE_WAR'></a>
+<h2>CHAPTER VI</h2>
+<h3>THE END OF THE WAR</h3>
+</div>
+<p>It was three years after the troops marched away from
+High Knob encampment before either Peter Junior or
+Richard Kildene were again in Leauvite, and then only
+Peter returned, because he was wounded, and not that he
+was unwilling to enlist again, as did Richard and many of
+the boys, when their first term of service was ended. He
+returned with the brevet of a captain, for gallant conduct
+in the encounter in which he received his wound, but only
+a shadow of the healthy, earnest boy who had stood in the
+ranks on the town square of Leauvite three years before;
+yet this very fact brought life and hope to his waiting mother,
+now that she had the blessed privilege of nursing him back
+to strength.</p>
+<p>It seemed as though her long period of mourning ended
+when Peter Junior, pallid in his blue uniform, his hair
+darkened and matted with the dampness caused by weakness
+and pain, was borne in between the white columns of
+his father&rsquo;s house. When the news reached him that his
+son was lying wounded in a southern hospital, the Elder
+had, for the first time in many, many years, followed an
+impulse without pausing to consider his act beforehand.
+He left the bank on the instant and started for the scene of
+battles, only hurrying home to break the news first to his
+wife. Yielding to a rare tenderness, he touched her hair
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_60' name='page_60'></a>60</span>
+as he kissed her, and enjoined on her to remember that
+their son was not slain, but by a merciful Providence
+was only wounded and might be spared to them. She
+must thank the Lord and be ready to nurse him back to
+life.</p>
+<p>Why Providence should be thus merciful to their son
+rather than to many another son, the good Elder did not
+pause to consider. Possibly he thought it no more than
+just that the prayers of the righteous should be answered
+by a supernatural intervention between their sons and the
+bullets of the enemy. His ideas on this point were no doubt
+vague at the best, but certain it is that he returned from
+his long and difficult journey to the seat of strife after his
+boy, with a clearer notion of what war really was, and a
+more human sympathy for those who go and suffer, and, as
+might be anticipated with those of his temperament, an
+added bitterness against those whom he felt were to blame
+for the conflict.</p>
+<p>When Peter Junior left his home, his father had enjoined
+on him to go, not in the spirit of bitterness and enmity, but
+as an act of duty, to teach a needed lesson; for surely the
+Lord was on the side of the right, and was using the men of
+the North to teach this needed lesson to those laboring in
+error. Ah! it is a very different point of view we take when
+we suffer, instead of merely moralizing on the suffering of
+others; especially we who feel that we know what is right,
+and lack in great part the imagination to comprehend the
+other man&rsquo;s viewpoint. To us of that cast of mind there
+is only one viewpoint and that is our own, and only a
+bodily departure to the other man&rsquo;s hilltop or valley, as
+the case may be, will open the eyes and enlarge the understanding
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_61' name='page_61'></a>61</span>
+to the extent of even allowing our fellows to see
+things in another light from our own.</p>
+<p>In this instance, while the Elder&rsquo;s understanding had
+been decidedly enlarged, it had been in but one direction,
+and the effect had not been to his spiritual benefit,
+for he had seen only the suffering of his own side, and,
+being deficient in power to imagine what might be, he had
+taken no charitable thought for the other side. Instead, a
+feeling of hatred had been stirred within him,&ndash;&ndash;a feeling
+he felt himself justified in and therefore indulged and
+named: &ldquo;Righteous Indignation.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>The Elder&rsquo;s face was stern and hard as he directed the
+men who bore his boy on the litter where to turn, and how
+to lift it above the banister in going up the stair so as not
+to jar the young man, who was too weak after the long
+journey to do more than turn his eyes on his mother&rsquo;s face.</p>
+<p>But that mother&rsquo;s face! It seemed to him he had never
+seen it so radiant and charming, for all that her hair had
+grown silvery white in the three years since he had last
+kissed her. He could not take his eyes from it, and besought
+her not to leave his side, even when the Elder bade
+her go and not excite him, but allow him to rest.</p>
+<p>No sooner was her son laid on his own bed in his old room
+than she began a series of gentle ministrations most sweet
+to the boy and to herself. But the Elder had been told
+that all he needed now was rest and absolute quiet, and the
+surgeon&rsquo;s orders must be carried out regardless of all else.
+Hester Craigmile yielded, as always, to the Elder&rsquo;s will,
+and remained without, seated close beside her son&rsquo;s door,
+her hands, that ached to serve, lying idle in her lap, while
+the Elder brought him his warm milk and held it to his
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_62' name='page_62'></a>62</span>
+lips, lifting his head to drink it, and then left him with the
+command to sleep.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Don&rsquo;t go in for an hour at least,&rdquo; he enjoined on his wife
+as he passed her and took his way to the bank, for it was
+too early for closing, and there would still be time for him
+to look into his affairs a bit. Thus for the banker the usual
+routine began.</p>
+<p>Not so for Hester Craigmile. Joy and life had begun
+for her. She had her boy again&ndash;&ndash;quite to herself when the
+Elder was away, and the tears for very happiness came to
+her eyes and dropped on her hands unchecked. Had the
+Elder been there he would have enjoined upon her to be
+controlled and she would have obeyed, but now there was
+no need, and she wept deliciously for joy while she still
+sat outside the door and listened. Intense&ndash;&ndash;eager&ndash;&ndash;it
+seemed almost as if she could hear him breathe.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Mother!&rdquo; Hark! Did he speak? &ldquo;Mother!&rdquo; It
+was merely a breath, but she heard and went swiftly to him.
+Kneeling, she clasped him, and her tears wet his cheek, but
+at the same time they soothed him, and he slept. It was
+thus the Elder found them when he returned from the bank,
+both sweetly sleeping. He did not take his wife away for
+fear of waking his son, nevertheless he was displeased with
+her, and when they met at table that evening, she knew it.</p>
+<p>The whole order of the house was changed because of
+Peter Junior&rsquo;s return. Blinds, windows, and doors were
+thrown open at the direction of the physician, that he
+might be given all the air and sunlight it was possible to
+admit; else he would never gain strength, for so long had
+he lived in the open air, in rain and sun, that he had need
+now of every help nature could give.</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_63' name='page_63'></a>63</span></div>
+<p>A bullet had struck him in the hip and glanced off at a
+peculiar angle, rendering his recovery precarious and long
+delayed, and causing the old doctor to shake his head with
+the fear that he must pass the rest of his life a cripple.
+Still, normal youth is buoyant and vigorous and mocks
+at physicians&rsquo; fears, and after a time, what with heart at
+rest, with loving and unceasing care on his mother&rsquo;s part,
+and rigorous supervision on his father&rsquo;s, Peter Junior did
+at length recover sufficiently to be taken out to drive, and
+began to get back the good red blood in his veins.</p>
+<p>During this long period of convalescence, Peter Junior&rsquo;s
+one anxiety was for his cousin Richard. Rumors had
+reached him that his comrade had been wounded and taken
+prisoner, yet nothing definite had been heard, until at last,
+after much writing, he learned Richard&rsquo;s whereabouts, and
+later that he had been exchanged. Then, too ill and
+prison-worn to go back to his regiment, he appeared one
+day, slowly walking up the village street toward the banker&rsquo;s
+house.</p>
+<p>There he was welcomed and made much of, and the two
+young men spent a while together happily, the best of
+friends and comrades, still filled with enthusiasm, but with
+a wider knowledge of life and the meaning of war. These
+weeks were few and short, and soon Richard was back in
+the army. Peter Junior, envying him, still lay convalescing
+and only able with much difficulty to crawl to the
+carriage for his daily drive.</p>
+<p>His mother always accompanied him on these drives,
+and the very first of them was to the home of the Ballards.
+It was early spring, the air was biting and cool, and Peter
+was unable to alight, but Mary and her husband came to
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_64' name='page_64'></a>64</span>
+them where they waited at the gate and stood long, talking
+happily. Jamie and Bobby followed at their heels and
+peered up curiously at the wounded soldier, but Betty was
+seized with a rare moment of shyness that held her back.</p>
+<p>Dear little Betty! She had grown taller since Peter
+Junior had taken that last tea at the Ballards. No longer
+care free, the oldest but one, she had taken many of her
+mother&rsquo;s burdens upon her young shoulders, albeit not
+knowing that they were burdens, since they were wholly
+acts of love and joyously done. She was fully conscious
+of her advancing years, and took them very seriously,
+regarding her acts with a grave and serene sense of their
+importance. She had put back the wild hair that used to
+fly about her face until her father called her &ldquo;An owl in
+an ivy bush&rdquo; and her mother admonished her that her
+&ldquo;head was like a mop.&rdquo; Now, being in her teens, she wore
+her dresses longer and never ran about barefooted, paddling
+in the brook below the spring, although she would like to
+do so; still she was child enough to run when she should
+walk, and to laugh when some would sigh.</p>
+<p>Her thoughts had been romantically active regarding
+Peter Junior, how he would look, and how splendid and
+great he was to have been a real soldier and come home
+wounded&ndash;&ndash;to have suffered and bled for his country.
+And Richard, too, was brave and splendid. He must have
+been in the very front of the battle to have been taken
+prisoner. She wondered a little if he remembered her, but
+not much, for how could men with great work to do, like
+fighting and dying for their country, stop to think of a little
+girl who was still in short dresses when they had seen her
+last?</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_65' name='page_65'></a>65</span></div>
+<p>Then, when the war was ended at last, there was Richard
+returned and stopping at his uncle&rsquo;s. In the few short
+visits he made at the Ballards&rsquo; he greeted Betty as of old,
+as he would greet a little sister of whom he was fond, and
+she accepted his frank, old-time brotherliness in the same
+spirit, gayly and happily, revealing but little of herself,
+and holding a slight reserve in her manner which seemed
+to him quite delightful and maidenly. Then, all too suddenly,
+he was gone again, but in his heart he carried a
+memory of her that made a continual undercurrent in his
+thoughts.</p>
+<p>And now Betty&rsquo;s father and mother were actually talking
+with Peter Junior at their very gate. Impulse would
+have sent her flying to meet him, but that new, self-conscious
+shyness stayed her feet, for he was one to be approached
+with reverence. He was afflicted with no romantic shyness
+with regard to her, however. He quite forgot her,
+indeed, although he did ask in a general way after the
+children and even mentioned Martha in particular, as,
+being the eldest, she was best remembered. So Betty did
+not see Peter Junior this time, but she stood where she could
+see the top of the carriage from her bedroom window,
+whither she had fled, and she could see the blue sleeve of
+his coat as he put out his arm to take her mother&rsquo;s hand
+at parting. That was something, and she listened with
+beating heart for the sound of his voice. Ah, little he
+dreamed what a tumult he had raised in the heart of that
+young being whose imagination had been so stirred by all
+that she had read and heard of war, and the part taken in
+it by their own young men of Leauvite. That Peter
+Junior had come home brevetted a captain for his bravery
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_66' name='page_66'></a>66</span>
+crowned him with glory. All that day Betty went about
+with dreams in her head, and coursing through them was
+the voice of the wounded young soldier.</p>
+<p>At last, with the slow march of time, came the proclamation
+of peace, and the nation so long held prostrate&ndash;&ndash;a
+giant struggling against fetters of its own forging, blinded
+and strangling in its own blood&ndash;&ndash;reared its head and
+cried out for the return of Hope, groping on all sides to
+gather the divine youth to its arms, when, as a last blow,
+dealt by a wanton hand, came the death of Lincoln.</p>
+<p>Then it was that the nation recoiled and bowed itself
+for a time, beaten and crushed&ndash;&ndash;both North and South&ndash;&ndash;and
+vultures gathered at the seat of conflict and tore at its
+vitals and wrangled over the spoils. Then it was that they
+who had sowed discord stooped to reap the Devil&rsquo;s own
+harvest,&ndash;&ndash;a woeful, bitter, desperate time, when more
+enmity and deep rancor was bred and treasured up for
+future sorrow than during all the years of the honest and
+active strife of the war.</p>
+<p>In the very beginning that first news of the firing on Fort
+Sumter flew through the North like a tragic cry, and men
+felt a sense of doom hanging over the nation. Bertrand
+Ballard heard it and walked sorrowfully home to his wife,
+and sat long with bowed head, brooding and silent. Neighbor
+Wilcox heard it, and, leaving his business, entered his
+home and called his household together with the servants
+and held family worship&ndash;&ndash;a service which it was his custom
+to hold only on the Sabbath&ndash;&ndash;and earnestly prayed
+for the salvation of the country, and that wisdom might
+be granted its rulers, after which he sent his oldest son to
+fight for the cause. Elder Craigmile heard it, and consented
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_67' name='page_67'></a>67</span>
+that his last and only son should enter the ranks
+and give his life, if need be, for the saving of the nation.
+Still, tempering all this sorrow and anxiety was the chance
+for action, and the hope of victory.</p>
+<p>But now, in this later time, when the strength of the
+nation had been wasted, when victory itself was dark with
+mourning for sons slain, the loss of the one wise leader to
+whom all turned with uplifted hearts seemed the signal for
+annihilation; and then, indeed, it appeared that the prophecy
+of Mary Ballard&rsquo;s old grandfather had been fulfilled
+and the curse of slavery had not only been wiped out with
+blood, but that the greater curse of anarchy and misrule had
+taken its place to still further scourge the nation.</p>
+<p>Mary Ballard&rsquo;s mother, while scarcely past her prime,
+was taken ill with fever and died, and immediately upon
+this blow to the dear old father who was not yet old enough
+by many years to be beyond his usefulness to those who
+loved and depended on him, came the tragic death of
+Lincoln, whom he revered and in whom all his hopes for
+the right adjustment of the nation&rsquo;s affairs rested. Under
+the weight of the double calamity he gave up hope, and
+left the world where all looked so dark to him, almost before
+the touch of his wife&rsquo;s hand had grown cold in his.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Father died of a broken heart,&rdquo; said Mary, and turned
+to her husband and children with even more intensity of
+devotion. &ldquo;For,&rdquo; she said, &ldquo;after all, the only thing in
+life of which we can be perfectly sure is our love for each
+other. A grave may open at our feet anywhere at any time,
+and only love oversteps it.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>With such an animating spirit as this, no family can be
+wholly sad, and though poverty pinched them at times, and
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_68' name='page_68'></a>68</span>
+sorrow had bitterly visited them, with years and thrift
+things changed. Bertrand painted more pictures and sold
+them; the children were gay and vigorous and brought
+life and good times to the home, and the girls grew up to
+be womanly, winsome lasses, light-hearted and good to
+look upon.</p>
+<p>Enough of the war and the evils thereof has been said
+and written and sung. Animosity is dead, and brotherhood
+and mutual service between the two opposing factions
+of one great family have taken the place of strife. Useless
+now to say what might have been, or how otherwise that
+terrible time of devastation and sorrow could have been
+avoided. Enough to know that at last as a nation, whole
+and undivided, we may pull together in the tremendous
+force of our united strength, and that now we may take up
+the &ldquo;White Man&rsquo;s Burden&rdquo; and bear it to its magnificent
+conclusion to the service of all mankind and the glory of
+God.</p>
+<hr class='toprule' />
+<div class='chsp'>
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_69' name='page_69'></a>69</span>
+<a name='CHAPTER_VII_A_NEW_ERA_BEGINS' id='CHAPTER_VII_A_NEW_ERA_BEGINS'></a>
+<h2>CHAPTER VII</h2>
+<h3>A NEW ERA BEGINS</h3>
+</div>
+<p>Bertrand Ballard&rsquo;s studio was at the top of his house,
+with a high north window and roughly plastered walls of
+uncolored sand, left as Bertrand himself had put the plaster
+on, with his trowel marks over the surface as they happened
+to come, and the angles and projections thereof draped with
+cobwebs.</p>
+<p>When Peter Junior was able to leave his home and get
+about a little on his crutches, he loved to come there and
+rest and spend his idle hours, and Bertrand found pleasure
+in his companionship. They read together, and sang together,
+and laughed together, and no sound was more
+pleasant to Mary Ballard&rsquo;s ears than this same happy
+laughter. Peter had sorely missed the companionship of
+his cousin, for, at the close of the war, no longer a boy and
+unwilling to be dependent and drifting, Richard had sought
+out a place for himself in the work of the world.</p>
+<p>First he had gone to Scotland to visit his mother&rsquo;s aunts.
+There he found the two dear old ladies, sweetly observant
+of him, willing to tell him much of his mother, who had
+been scarcely younger than the youngest of them, but
+discreetly reticent about his father. From this he gathered
+that for some reason his father was under a cloud. Yet
+he did not shrink from trying to learn from them all they
+knew about him, and for what reason they spoke as if to
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_70' name='page_70'></a>70</span>
+even mention his name was an indiscretion. It was really
+little they knew, only that he had gravely displeased their
+nephew, Peter Craigmile, who had brought Richard up,
+and who was his mother&rsquo;s twin brother.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;But why did Uncle Peter have to bring me up? You
+say he quarreled with my father?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Weel, ye see, ye&rsquo;r mither was dead.&rdquo; It was Aunt
+Ellen, the elder by twenty years, who told him most about
+it, she who spoke with the broadest Scotch.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Was my father a bad man, that Uncle &lsquo;Elder&rsquo; disliked
+him so?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Weel now, I&rsquo;d no say that; he was far from that to be
+right fair to them both&ndash;&ndash;for ye see&ndash;&ndash;ye&rsquo;r mither would
+never have loved him if he&rsquo;d been that&ndash;&ndash;but he&ndash;&ndash;he was
+an Irishman, and ye&rsquo;r Uncle Peter could never thole an
+Irishman, and he&ndash;&ndash;he&ndash;&ndash;fair stole ye&rsquo;r mither from us a&rsquo;&ndash;&ndash;an&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;
+she hesitated to continue, then blurted out the
+real horror. &ldquo;Your Uncle Peter kenned he had ance been
+in the theayter, a sort o&rsquo; an actor body an&rsquo; he couldna thole
+that.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>But little was to be gained with all his questioning, and
+what he could learn seemed no more than that his father
+had done what any man might be expected to do if some one
+stood between him and the girl he loved; so Richard felt
+that there must be something unknown to any one but his
+uncle that had turned them all against his father. Why had
+his father never appeared to claim his son? Why had he
+left his boy to be reared by a man who hated the boy&rsquo;s
+father? It was a strange thing to do, and it must be that
+his father was dead.</p>
+<p>At this time Richard was filled with ambitions,&ndash;&ndash;fired
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_71' name='page_71'></a>71</span>
+by his early companionship with Bertrand Ballard,&ndash;&ndash;and
+thought he would go to France and become an artist;&ndash;&ndash;to
+France, the Mecca of Bertrand&rsquo;s dreams&ndash;&ndash;he desired of
+all things to go there for study. But of all this he said
+nothing to any one, for where was the money? He would
+never ask his uncle for it, and now that he had learned that
+he had been all his young life really a dependent on the
+bounty of his Uncle Peter, he could no longer accept his
+help. He would hereafter make his own way, asking no
+favors.</p>
+<p>The old aunts guessed at his predicament, and offered
+to give him for his mother&rsquo;s sake enough to carry him
+through the first year, but he would not allow them to take
+from their income to pay his bills. No, he would take his
+way back to America, and find a place for himself in the new
+world; seek some active, stirring work, and save money,
+and sometime&ndash;&ndash;sometime he would do the things his heart
+loved. He often thought of Betty, the little Betty who used
+to run to meet him and say such quaint things; some day
+he would go to her and take her with him. He would work
+first and do something worthy of so choice a little mortal.</p>
+<p>Thus dreaming, after the manner of youth, he went to
+Ireland, to his father&rsquo;s boyhood home. He found only
+distant relatives there, and learned that his father had
+disposed of all he ever owned of Irish soil to an Englishman.
+A cousin much older than himself owned and still lived on
+the estate that had been his grandfather Kildene&rsquo;s, and
+Richard was welcomed and treated with openhearted
+hospitality. But there, also, little was known of his father,
+only that the peasants on the estate remembered him
+lovingly as a free-hearted gentleman.</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_72' name='page_72'></a>72</span></div>
+<p>Even that little was a relief to Richard&rsquo;s sore heart.
+Yes, his father must be dead. He was sorry. He was a
+lonely man, and to have a relative who was his very own,
+as near as a father, would be a great deal. His cousin,
+Peter Junior, was good as a friend, but from now on they
+must take paths that diverged, and that old intimacy must
+naturally change. His sweet Aunt Hester he loved, and
+she would fill the mother&rsquo;s place if she could, but it was not
+to be. It would mean help from his Uncle Peter, and that
+would mean taking a place in his uncle&rsquo;s bank, which had
+already been offered him, but which he did not want, which
+he would not accept if he did want it.</p>
+<p>So, after a long and happy visit at his cousin Kildene&rsquo;s,
+in Ireland, he at last left for America again, and plunged
+into a new, interesting, and vigorous life, one that suited
+well his energetic nature. He found work on the great
+railway that was being built across the plains to the Pacific
+Coast. He started as an engineer&rsquo;s assistant, but soon his
+talent for managing men caused his employers to put him
+in charge of gangs of workmen who were often difficult and
+lawless. He did not object; indeed he liked the new job
+better than that he began with. He was more interested
+in men than materials.</p>
+<p>The life was hard and rough, but he came to love it.
+He loved the wide, sweeping prairies, and, later on, the
+desert. He liked to lie out under the stars,&ndash;&ndash;often when
+the men slept under tents,&ndash;&ndash;his gun at his side and his
+thoughts back on the river bluffs at Leauvite. He did a
+lot of dreaming and thinking, and he never forgot Betty.
+He thought of her as still a child, although he was expecting
+her to grow up and be ready for him when he should return
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_73' name='page_73'></a>73</span>
+to her. He had a vague sort of feeling that all was understood
+between them, and that she was quietly becoming
+womanly, and waiting for him.</p>
+<p>Peter Junior might have found other friends in Leauvite
+had he sought them out, but he did not care for them.
+His nature called for what he found in Bertrand&rsquo;s studio,
+and he followed the desire of his heart regardless of anything
+else, spending all the time he could reasonably filch from
+his home. And what wonder! Richard would have done
+the same and was even then envying Peter the opportunity,
+as Peter well knew from his cousin&rsquo;s letters. There was no
+place in the village so fascinating and delightful as this
+little country home on its outskirts, no conversation more
+hopeful and helpful than Bertrand&rsquo;s, and no welcome
+sweeter or kinder than Mary Ballard&rsquo;s.</p>
+<p>One day, after Richard had gone out on the plains with
+the engineers of the projected road, Peter lay stretched on a
+long divan in the studio, his head supported by his hand
+as he half reclined on his elbow, and his one crutch&ndash;&ndash;he had
+long since discarded the other&ndash;&ndash;within reach of his arm.
+His violin also lay within reach, for he had been playing
+there by himself, as Bertrand had gone on one of his rare
+visits to the city a hundred miles away.</p>
+<p>Betty Ballard had heard the wail of his violin from the
+garden, where she had been gathering pears. That was
+how she knew where to find him when she quickly appeared
+before him, rosy and flushed from her run to the house and
+up the long flight of stairs.</p>
+<p>As Peter lay there, he was gazing at the half-finished
+copy he had been making of the head of an old man, for
+Peter had decided, since in all probability he would be good
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_74' name='page_74'></a>74</span>
+for no active work such as Richard had taken up, that he too
+would become an artist, like Bertrand Ballard. To have
+followed his cousin would have delighted his heart, for he
+had all the Scotchman&rsquo;s love of adventure, but, since that
+was impossible, nothing was more alluring than the thought
+of fame and success as an artist. He would not tie himself
+to Leauvite to get it. He would go to Paris, and there
+he would do the things Bertrand had been prevented from
+doing. Poor Bertrand! How he would have loved the
+chance Peter Junior was planning for himself as he lay there
+dreaming and studying the half-finished copy.</p>
+<p>Suddenly he beheld Betty, standing directly in front of
+the work, extending to him a folded bit of paper. &ldquo;Here&rsquo;s
+a note from your father,&rdquo; she cried.</p>
+<p>Looking upon her thus, with eyes that had been filled
+with the aged, rugged face on the canvas, Betty appealed
+to Peter as a lovely vision. He had never noticed before,
+in just this way, her curious charm, but these months of
+companionship and study with Bertrand had taught him
+to see beauty understandingly, and now, as she stood
+panting a little, with breath coming through parted lips
+and hair flying almost in the wild way of her childhood,
+Peter saw, as if it were a revelation, that she was lovely.
+He raised himself slowly and reached for the note without
+taking his eyes from her face.</p>
+<p>He did not open the letter, but continued to look in her
+eyes, at which she turned about half shyly. &ldquo;I heard your
+violin; that&rsquo;s how I knew you were up here. Oh! Have
+you been painting on it again?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;On my violin? No, I&rsquo;ve been playing on it.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;No! Painting on the picture of your old man. I think
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_75' name='page_75'></a>75</span>
+you have it too drawn out and thin. He&rsquo;s too hollow there
+under the cheek bone.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Is he, Miss Critic? Well, thank your stars you&rsquo;re
+not.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I know. I&rsquo;m too fat.&rdquo; She rubbed her cheek until it
+was redder than ever.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;What are you painting your cheeks for? There&rsquo;s color
+enough on them as they are.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>She made a little mouth at him. &ldquo;I could paint your old
+man as well as that, I know.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I know you could. You could paint him far better
+than that.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>She laughed, quickly repentant. &ldquo;I didn&rsquo;t say that to be
+horrid. I only said it for fun. I couldn&rsquo;t.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;And I know you could.&rdquo; He rose and stood without
+his crutch, looking down on her. &ldquo;And you&rsquo;re not &lsquo;too
+long drawn out,&rsquo; are you? See? You only come up to&ndash;&ndash;about&ndash;&ndash;here
+on me.&rdquo; He measured with his hand a
+little below his chin.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t care. You&rsquo;re not so awfully tall.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Very well, have it so. That only makes you the
+shorter.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I tell you I don&rsquo;t care. You&rsquo;d better stop staring at
+me, if I&rsquo;m so little, and read your letter. The man&rsquo;s waiting
+for it. That&rsquo;s why I ran all the way up here.&rdquo; By
+this it may be seen that Betty had lost all her awe of the
+young soldier. Maybe it left her when he doffed his uniform.
+&ldquo;Here&rsquo;s your crutch. Doesn&rsquo;t it hurt you to stand
+alone?&rdquo; She reached him the despised prop.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Hurt me to stand alone? No! I&rsquo;m not a baby. Do
+you think I&rsquo;m likely to grow up bow-legged?&rdquo; he thundered,
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_76' name='page_76'></a>76</span>
+taking it from her hand without a thank you, and glaring
+down on her humorously. &ldquo;You&rsquo;re a bit cruel to remind
+me of it. I&rsquo;m going to walk with a cane hereafter, and next
+thing you know you&rsquo;ll see me stalking around without
+either.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Why, Peter Junior! I&rsquo;d be so proud of that crutch I
+wouldn&rsquo;t leave it off for anything! I&rsquo;d always limp a little,
+even if I didn&rsquo;t use it. Cruel? I was complimenting
+you.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Complimenting me? How?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;By reminding you that you had been brave&ndash;&ndash;and had
+been a soldier&ndash;&ndash;and had been wounded for your country&ndash;&ndash;and
+had been promoted&ndash;&ndash;and&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>But Peter drowned her voice with uproarious laughter,
+and suddenly surprised himself as well as her by slipping his
+arm around her waist and stopping her lips with a kiss.</p>
+<p>Betty was surprised but not shocked. She knew of no
+reason why Peter should not kiss her even though it was not
+his custom to treat her thus. In Betty&rsquo;s home, demonstrative
+expressions of affection were as natural as sunlight,
+and why should not Peter like her? Therefore it was Peter
+who was shocked, and embarrassed her with his sudden
+apology.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t care if you did kiss me. You&rsquo;re just like my
+big brother&ndash;&ndash;the same as Richard is&ndash;&ndash;and he often used
+to kiss me.&rdquo; She was trying to set Peter at his ease.
+&ldquo;And, anyway, I like you. Why, I supposed of course you
+liked me&ndash;&ndash;only naturally not as much as I liked you.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, more! Much more!&rdquo; he stammered tremblingly.
+He knew in his heart that there was a subtle difference,
+and that what he felt was not what she meant when
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_77' name='page_77'></a>77</span>
+she said, &ldquo;I like you.&rdquo; &ldquo;I&rsquo;m sure it is I who like you the
+most.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, no, it isn&rsquo;t! Why, you never even used to see me.
+And I&ndash;&ndash;I used to gaze on you&ndash;&ndash;and be so romantic! It
+was Richard who always saw me and played with me. He
+used to toss me up, and I would run away down the road
+to meet him. I wonder when he&rsquo;s coming back! I wish
+he&rsquo;d come. Why don&rsquo;t you read your father&rsquo;s letter?
+The man&rsquo;s waiting, you know.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Ah, yes. And I suppose Dad&rsquo;s waiting, too. I wonder
+why he wrote me when he can see me every day!&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Well, read it. Don&rsquo;t stand there looking at it and
+staring at me. Do you know how you look? You look
+as if it were a message from the king, saying: &lsquo;You are
+remanded to the tower, and are to have your head struck
+off at sundown.&rsquo; That&rsquo;s the way they did things in the
+olden days.&rdquo; She turned to go.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Stay here until I see if you are right.&rdquo; He dropped
+on the divan and made room for her at his side.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;All right! That&rsquo;s what I wanted to do, but I thought
+it wouldn&rsquo;t be polite to be curious.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;But you wouldn&rsquo;t be polite anyway, you know, so you
+might as well stay. M-m-m. I&rsquo;m remanded to the tower,
+sure enough. Father wants me to meet him in the director&rsquo;s
+room as soon as banking hours are over. Fine old Dad!
+He wouldn&rsquo;t think of infringing on banking hours for any
+private reasons unless the sky were falling, and even then
+he would save the bank papers first. See here&ndash;&ndash;Betty&ndash;&ndash;er&ndash;&ndash;never
+mind. I&rsquo;ll tell you another time.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Please tell me now! What is it? Something dreadful,
+Peter Junior?&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_78' name='page_78'></a>78</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;I wasn&rsquo;t thinking about this; it&ndash;&ndash;it&rsquo;s something
+else&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;About what?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;About you.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, then it is no consequence. I want to hear what&rsquo;s
+in the letter. Why did you tell me to stay if you weren&rsquo;t
+going to tell me what&rsquo;s in it?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Nothing. We have had a little difference of opinion,
+my father and I, and he evidently wants to settle it out of
+hand his way, by summoning me in this official manner to
+appear before him at the bank.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I know. He thinks you are idling away your time here
+trying to paint pictures, and he wishes to make a respectable
+banker of you.&rdquo; She reached over and began picking
+the strings of his violin.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You musn&rsquo;t finger the strings of a violin that way.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Why not? I want to see if I can pick out &lsquo;The Star
+Spangled Banner&rsquo; on it. I can on the flute, father&rsquo;s old
+one; he lets me.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Because you&rsquo;ll get them oily.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>She spread out her two firm little hands. &ldquo;My fingers
+aren&rsquo;t greasy!&rdquo; she cried indignantly; &ldquo;that&rsquo;s pear juice on
+them.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Peter Junior&rsquo;s gravity turned to laughter. &ldquo;Well, I
+don&rsquo;t want pear juice on my strings. Wait, you rogue, I&rsquo;m
+going to kiss you again.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;No, you&rsquo;re not, you old hobble-de-hoy. You can&rsquo;t
+catch me.&rdquo; When she was halfway down the stairs, she
+called back, &ldquo;The man&rsquo;s waiting.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Coward! Coward!&rdquo; he called after her, &ldquo;to run away
+from a poor old cripple and then call him names.&rdquo; He
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_79' name='page_79'></a>79</span>
+thrust the letter into his pocket, and seizing his crutch
+began deliberately and carefully to descend the stairs, with
+grave, set face, not unlike his father&rsquo;s.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Catch, Peter Junior,&rdquo; called Betty from the top of the
+pear tree as he passed down the garden path, and tossed
+him a pear which he caught, then another and another.
+&ldquo;There! No, don&rsquo;t eat them now. Put them in your
+desk, and next month they&rsquo;ll be just as sweet!&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Will they? Just like you? I&rsquo;ll be even with you
+yet&ndash;&ndash;when I catch you.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You&rsquo;ll get pear juice on your strings. There are lots of
+nice girls in the village for you to kiss. They&rsquo;ll do just as
+well as me.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Good girl. Good grammar. Good-by.&rdquo; He waved
+his hand toward Betty, and turned to the waiting servant.
+&ldquo;You go on and tell the Elder I&rsquo;m coming right along,&rdquo;
+he said, and hopped off down the road. It was only lately
+he had begun to take long walks or hops like this, with but
+one crutch, but he was growing frantic to be fairly on his
+two feet again. The doctor had told him he never would
+be, but he set his square chin, and decided that the doctor
+was wrong. More than ever to-day, with the new touch of
+little pear-stained fingers on his heart, he wanted to walk
+off like other men.</p>
+<p>Now he tried to use his lame leg as much as possible.
+If only he might throw away the crutch and walk with a
+cane, it would be something gained. With one hand in his
+pocket he crushed his father&rsquo;s letter into a small wad, then
+tossed it in the air and caught it awhile, then put it back in
+his pocket and hobbled on.</p>
+<p>The atmosphere had the smoky appearance of the fall,
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_80' name='page_80'></a>80</span>
+and the sweet haze of Indian summer lay over the landscape,
+the horizon only faintly outlined through it. Peter
+Junior sniffed the air. He wondered if the forests in the
+north were afire. Golden maple leaves danced along on
+the path before him, whirled hither and thither by the light
+breeze, and the wild asters and goldenrod powdered his
+dark trousers with pollen as he brushed them in passing.
+All the world was lovely, and he appreciated it as he had
+never been able to do before. Bertrand&rsquo;s influence had
+permeated his thoughts and widened thus his reach of
+happiness.</p>
+<p>He entered the bank just at the closing hour, and the
+staid, faithful old clerks nodded to him as he passed through
+to the inner room, where he found his father awaiting him.
+He dropped wearily into a swivel chair before the great
+table and placed his crutch at his feet; wiping the perspiration
+from his forehead, he leaned forward, and rested his
+elbows on the table.</p>
+<p>The young man&rsquo;s wan look, for the walk had taxed his
+strength, reminded his father of the day he had brought
+the boy home wounded, and his face relaxed.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You are tired, my son.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, no. Not very. I have been more so.&rdquo; Peter
+Junior smiled a disarming smile as he looked in his father&rsquo;s
+face. &ldquo;I&rsquo;ve tramped many a mile on two sound feet
+when they were so numb from sheer weariness that I could
+not feel them or know what they were doing. What did
+you want to say to me, father?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Well, my son, we have different opinions, as you know,
+regarding your future.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I know, indeed.&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_81' name='page_81'></a>81</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;And a father&rsquo;s counsel is not to be lightly disposed of.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I have no intention of doing so, father.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;No, no. But wait. You have been loitering the day
+at Mr. Ballard&rsquo;s? Yes.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I have nothing else to do, father,&ndash;&ndash;and&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo; Peter
+Junior&rsquo;s smile again came to the rescue. &ldquo;It isn&rsquo;t as
+though I were in doubtful company&ndash;&ndash;I&ndash;&ndash;there are worse
+places here in the village where I might&ndash;&ndash;where idle men
+waste their time.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Ah, yes. But they are not for you&ndash;&ndash;not for you, my
+son.&rdquo; The Elder smiled in his turn, and lifted his brows,
+then drew them down and looked keenly at his son. The
+afternoon sunlight streamed through the high western window
+and fell on the older man&rsquo;s face, bringing it into
+strong relief against the dark oak paneling behind him, and
+as Peter Junior looked on his father he received his second
+revelation that day. He had not known before what a
+strong, fine old face his father&rsquo;s was, and for the second
+time he surprised himself, when he cried out:&ndash;&ndash;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I tell you, father, you have a magnificent head! I&rsquo;m
+going to make a portrait of you just as you are&ndash;&ndash;some
+day.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>The Elder rose with an indignant, despairing downward
+motion of the hands and began pacing the floor, while
+Peter Junior threw off restraint and laughed aloud. The
+laughter freed his soul, but it sadly irritated the Elder. He
+did not like unusual or unprecedented things, and Peter
+Junior was certainly not like himself, and was acting in an
+unprecedented manner.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You have now regained a fair amount of strength and
+have reached an age when you should think seriously of
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_82' name='page_82'></a>82</span>
+what you are to do in life. As you know, it has always been
+my intention that you should take a place here and fit yourself
+for the responsibilities that are now mine, but which
+will some day devolve on you.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Peter Junior raised his hand in protest, then dropped it.
+&ldquo;I mean to be an artist, father.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Faugh! An artist? Look at your friend, Bertrand
+Ballard. What has he to live on? What will he have laid
+by for his old age? How has he managed to live all these
+years&ndash;&ndash;he and his wife? Miserable hand-to-mouth existence!
+I&rsquo;ll see my son trying to emulate him! You&rsquo;ll
+be an artist? And how will you support a wife if you ever
+have one? You mean to marry some day?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I mean to marry Betty Ballard,&rdquo; said Peter Junior,
+with a rugged set of his jaw.</p>
+<p>Again the Elder made that despairing downward thrust
+with his open hands. &ldquo;Take a wife who has nothing, and
+a career which brings in nothing, and live on what your
+father has amassed for you, and leave your sons nothing&ndash;&ndash;a
+pretty way for you to carry on the work I have begun for
+you&ndash;&ndash;to&ndash;&ndash;establish an honorable family&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Father, father, I mean to do all I can to please you.
+I&rsquo;ll be always dutiful&ndash;&ndash;and honorable&ndash;&ndash;but you must
+leave me my manhood. You must allow me to choose my
+own path in life.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>The Elder paced the floor a few moments longer, then
+resumed his chair opposite his son, and, leaning back, looked
+across the table at his boy, meditatively, with half-closed
+eyes. At last he said, &ldquo;We&rsquo;ll take this matter to the Lord,
+and leave it in his hands.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Then Peter Junior cried out upon him: &ldquo;No, no, father;
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_83' name='page_83'></a>83</span>
+spare me that. It only means that you&rsquo;ll state to the
+Lord what is your own way, and pray to have it, and then
+be more than ever convinced that it is the Lord&rsquo;s way.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;My son, my son!&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;It&rsquo;s so, father. I&rsquo;m willing to ask for guidance of the
+Lord, but I&rsquo;m not willing to have you dictate to the Lord
+what&ndash;&ndash;what I must do, and so whip me in line with the
+scourge of prayer.&rdquo; Peter Junior paused, as he looked in
+his father&rsquo;s face and saw the shocked and sorrowful expression
+there instead of the passionate retort he expected.
+&ldquo;I am wrong to talk so, father; forgive me; but&ndash;&ndash;have
+patience a little. God gave to man the power of choice,
+didn&rsquo;t he?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Certainly. Through it all manner of evil came into the
+world.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;And all manner of good, too. I&ndash;&ndash;a man ought not
+to be merely an automaton, letting some one else always
+exercise that right for him. Surely the right of choice
+would never have been given us if it were not intended that
+each man should exercise it for himself. One who does
+not is good for nothing.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;There is the command you forget; that of obedience to
+parents.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;But how long&ndash;&ndash;how long, father? Am I not man
+enough to choose for myself? Let me choose.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Then the Elder leaned forward and faced his son as his
+son was facing him, both resting their elbows on the table
+and gazing straight into each other&rsquo;s eyes; and the old
+man spoke first.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;My father founded this bank before I was born. He
+came from Scotland when he was but a lad, with his parents,
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_84' name='page_84'></a>84</span>
+and went to school and profited by his opportunities. He
+was of good family, as you know. When he was still a
+very young man, he entered a bank in the city as clerk, and
+received only ten dollars a week for his services, but he
+was a steady, good lad, and ambitious, and soon he moved
+higher&ndash;&ndash;and higher. His father had taken up farming,
+and at his death, being an only son, he converted the
+farm, all but the homestead, which we still own, and
+which will be yours, into capital, and came to town and
+started this bank. When I was younger than you, my son,
+I went into the bank and stood at my father&rsquo;s right hand,
+as I wish you&ndash;&ndash;for your own sake&ndash;&ndash;to do by me. We
+are a set race&ndash;&ndash;a determined race, but we are not an insubordinate
+race, my son.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Peter Junior was silent for a while; he felt himself being
+beaten. Then he made one more plea. &ldquo;It is not that I
+am insubordinate father, but, as I see it, into each generation
+something enters, different from the preceding one.
+New elements are combined. In me there is that which
+my mother gave me.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Your mother has always been a sweet woman, yielding
+to the judgment of her husband, as is the duty of a good
+wife.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I know she was brought up and trained to think that
+her duty, but I doubt if you really know her heart. Did you
+ever try to know it? I don&rsquo;t believe you understood what
+I meant by the scourge of prayer. She would have known.
+She has lived all these years under that lash, even though it
+has been wielded by the hand of one she loves&ndash;&ndash;by one
+who loves her.&rdquo; He paused a second time, arrested by his
+father&rsquo;s expression. At first it was that of one who is
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_85' name='page_85'></a>85</span>
+stunned, then it slowly changed to one of rage. For once
+the boy had broken through that wall of self-control in
+which the Elder encased himself. Slowly the Elder rose
+and leaned towering over his son across the table.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I tell you that is a lie!&rdquo; he shouted. &ldquo;Your mother
+has never rebelled. She has been an obedient, docile
+woman. It is a lie!&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Peter Junior made no reply. He also rose, and taking
+up his crutch, turned toward the door. There he paused
+and looked back, with flashing eyes. His lip quivered, but
+he held himself quiet.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Come back!&rdquo; shouted his father.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I have told you the truth, father.&rdquo; He still stood with
+his hand on the door.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Has&ndash;&ndash;has&ndash;&ndash;your mother ever said anything to you
+to give you reason to insult me this way?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;No, never. We can&rsquo;t talk reasonably now. Let me
+go, and I&rsquo;ll try to explain some other time.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Explain now. There is no other time.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Mother is sacred to me, father. I ought not to have
+dragged her into this discussion.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>The Elder&rsquo;s lips trembled. He turned and walked to the
+window and stood a moment, silently looking out. At last
+he said in a low voice: &ldquo;She is sacred to me also, my son.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Peter Junior went back to his seat, and waited a while,
+with his head in his hands; then he lifted his eyes to his
+father&rsquo;s face. &ldquo;I can&rsquo;t help it. Now I&rsquo;ve begun, I might
+as well tell the truth. I meant what I said when I spoke of
+the different element in me, and that it is from my mother.
+You gave me that mother. I know you love her, and you
+know that your will is her law, as you feel that it ought to
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_86' name='page_86'></a>86</span>
+be. But when I am with her, I feel something of a nature
+in her that is not yours. And why not? Why not, father?
+There is that of her in me that makes me know this, and
+that of you in me that makes me understand you. Even
+now, though you are not willing to give me my own way,
+it makes me understand that you are insisting on your
+way because you think it is for my good. But nothing
+can alter the fact that I have inherited from my mother
+tastes that are not yours, and that entitle me to my manhood&rsquo;s
+right of choice.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Well, what is your choice, now that you know my
+wish?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I can&rsquo;t tell you yet, father. I must have more time.
+I only know what I think I would like to do.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You wish to talk it over with your mother?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;She will agree with me.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes, no doubt; but it&rsquo;s only fair to tell her and ask her
+advice, especially if I decide to leave home.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>The Elder caught his breath inwardly, but said no more.
+He recognized in the boy enough of himself to know that
+he had met in him a power of resistance equal to his own.
+He also knew what Peter Junior did not know, that his
+grandfather&rsquo;s removal to this country was an act of rebellion
+against the wishes of his father. It was a matter of
+family history he had thought best not to divulge.</p>
+<hr class='toprule' />
+<div class='chsp'>
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_87' name='page_87'></a>87</span>
+<a name='CHAPTER_VIII_MARY_BALLARDS_DISCOVERY' id='CHAPTER_VIII_MARY_BALLARDS_DISCOVERY'></a>
+<h2>CHAPTER VIII</h2>
+<h3>MARY BALLARD&rsquo;S DISCOVERY</h3>
+</div>
+<p>Peter Junior&rsquo;s mind was quite made up to go his own
+way and leave home to study abroad, but first he would
+try to convert his father to his way of thinking. Then
+there was another thing to be done. Not to marry, of
+course; that, under present conditions, would never do;
+but to make sure of Betty, lest some one come and steal
+into her heart before his return.</p>
+<p>After his talk with his father in the bank he lay long
+into the night, gazing at the shadowed tracery on his wall
+cast by the full harvest moon shining through the maple
+branches outside his window. The leaves had not all fallen,
+and in the light breeze they danced and quivered, and the
+branches swayed, and the shadows also swayed and danced
+delicately over the soft gray wall paper and the red-coated
+old soldier standing stiffly in his gold frame. Often in his
+waking dreams in after life he saw the moving shadows
+silently swaying and dancing over gray and red and gold,
+and often he tried to call them out from the past to banish
+things he would forget.</p>
+<p>Long this night he lay planning and thinking. Should
+he speak to Betty and tell her he loved her? Should he
+only teach her to think of him, not with the frank liking of
+her girlhood, so well expressed to him that very day, but
+with the warm feeling which would cause her cheeks to
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_88' name='page_88'></a>88</span>
+redden when he spoke? Could he be sure of himself&ndash;&ndash;to
+do this discreetly, or would he overstep the mark? He
+would wait and see what the next day would bring forth.</p>
+<p>In the morning he discarded his crutch, as he had threatened,
+and walked out to the studio, using only a stout old
+blackthorn stick he had found one day when rummaging
+among a collection of odds and ends in the attic. He
+thought the stick was his father&rsquo;s and wondered why so
+interesting a walking stick&ndash;&ndash;or staff; it could hardly be
+called a cane, he thought, because it was so large and oddly
+shaped&ndash;&ndash;should be hidden away there. Had his father
+seen it he would have recognized it instantly as one that
+had belonged to his brother-in-law, Larry Kildene, and it
+would have been cut up and used for lighting fires. But
+it had been many years since the Elder had laid eyes on that
+knobbed and sturdy stick, which Larry had treasured as
+a rare thing in the new world, and a fine antique specimen
+of a genuine blackthorn. It had belonged to his great-grandfather
+in Ireland, and no doubt had done its part in
+cracking crowns.</p>
+<p>Betty, kneading bread at a table before the kitchen window,
+spied Peter Junior limping wearily up the walk without
+his crutch, and ran to him, dusting the flour from her
+hands as she came.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Lean on me. I won&rsquo;t get flour on your coat. What
+did you go without your crutch for? It&rsquo;s very silly of you.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>He essayed a laugh, but it was a self-conscious one.
+&ldquo;I&rsquo;m not going to use a crutch all my lifetime; don&rsquo;t you
+think it. I&rsquo;m very well off without, and almost myself
+again. I don&rsquo;t need to lean on you&ndash;&ndash;but I will&ndash;&ndash;just for
+fun.&rdquo; He put his arm about her and drew her to him.</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_89' name='page_89'></a>89</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;Stop, Peter Junior. Don&rsquo;t you see you&rsquo;re getting flour
+all over your clothes?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I like flour on my clothes. It will do for stiffening.&rdquo;
+He raised her hand and kissed her wrist where there was no
+flour.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You&rsquo;re not leaning on me. You&rsquo;re just acting silly,
+and you can hardly walk, you&rsquo;re so tired! Coming all this
+way without your crutch. I think you&rsquo;re foolish.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;If you say anything more about that crutch, I&rsquo;ll throw
+away my cane too.&rdquo; He dropped down on the piazza and
+drew her to the step beside him.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I must finish kneading the bread; I can&rsquo;t sit here.
+You rest in the rocker awhile before you go up to the studio.
+Father&rsquo;s up there. He came home late last night after we
+were all in bed.&rdquo; She returned to her work, and after a
+moment called to him through the open window. &ldquo;There&rsquo;s
+going to be a nutting party to-morrow, and we want you
+to go. We&rsquo;re going out to Carter&rsquo;s grove; we&rsquo;ve got permission.
+Every one&rsquo;s going.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Peter Junior rubbed the moisture from his hair and shook
+his head. He must get nearer her, but it was always the
+same thing; just a happy game, with no touch of sentiment&ndash;&ndash;no
+more, he thought gloomily, than if she were his
+sister.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;What are you all going there for?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Why, nuts, goosey; didn&rsquo;t I say we were going
+nutting?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t happen to want nuts.&rdquo; No, he wanted her to
+urge and coax him to go for her sake, but what could he say?</p>
+<p>He left his seat, took the side path around to the kitchen
+door, and drew up a chair to the end of the table where she
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_90' name='page_90'></a>90</span>
+deftly manipulated the sweet-smelling dough, patting it,
+and pulling it, and turning it about until she was ready to
+put the shapely balls in the pans, holding them in her two
+firm little hands with a slight rolling motion as she slipped
+each loaf in its place. It had never occurred to Peter Junior
+that bread making was such an interesting process.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Why do you fuss with it so? Why don&rsquo;t you just dump
+it in the pan any old way? That&rsquo;s the way I&rsquo;d do.&rdquo; But
+he loved to watch her pink-tipped fingers carefully shaping
+the loaves, nevertheless.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh&ndash;&ndash;because.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Good reason.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Well&ndash;&ndash;the more you work it the better it is, just like
+everything else; and then&ndash;&ndash;if you don&rsquo;t make good-looking
+loaves, you&rsquo;ll never have a handsome husband. Mother
+says so.&rdquo; She tossed a stray lock from her eyes, and
+opening the oven door thrust in her arm. &ldquo;My, but
+it&rsquo;s hot! Why do you sit here in the heat? It&rsquo;s a lot
+nicer on the porch in the rocker. Mother&rsquo;s gone to town&ndash;&ndash;and&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I&rsquo;d rather sit here with you&ndash;&ndash;thank you.&rdquo; He spoke
+stiffly and waited. What could he say; what could he do
+next? She left him a moment and quickly returned with a
+cup of butter.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You know&ndash;&ndash;I&rsquo;d stop and go out in the cool with you,
+Peter, but I must work this dough I have left into raised
+biscuit; and then I have to make a cake for to-morrow&ndash;&ndash;and
+cookies&ndash;&ndash;there&rsquo;s something to do in this house, I
+tell you! How about to-morrow?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t believe I&rsquo;d better go. All the rest of the world
+will be there, and&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_91' name='page_91'></a>91</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;Only our little crowd. When I said everybody, you
+didn&rsquo;t think I meant everybody in the whole world, did you?
+You know us all.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Do you want me to go? There&rsquo;ll be enough others&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>She tossed her head and gave him a sidelong glance.
+&ldquo;I always ask people to go when I don&rsquo;t want them to.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>He rose at that and stood close to her side, and, stooping,
+looked in her eyes; and for the first time the color flamed
+up in her face because of him. &ldquo;I say&ndash;&ndash;do you want me
+to go?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;No, I don&rsquo;t.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>But the red he had brought into her cheeks intoxicated
+him with delight. Now he knew a thing to do. He seized
+her wrists and turned her away from the table and continued
+to look into her eyes. She twisted about, looking
+away from him, but the burning blush made even the little
+ear she turned toward him pink, and he loved it. His
+discretion was all gone. He loved her, and he would tell
+her now&ndash;&ndash;now! She must hear it, and slipping his arm
+around her, he drew her away and out to the seat under
+the old silver-leaf poplar tree.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You&rsquo;re acting silly, Peter Junior,&ndash;&ndash;and my bread will
+all spoil and get too light,&ndash;&ndash;and my hands are all covered
+with flour, and&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;And you&rsquo;ll sit right here while I talk to you a bit, if
+the bread spoils and gets too light and everything burns to
+a cinder.&rdquo; She started to run away from him, and his
+peremptory tone changed to pleading. &ldquo;Please, Betty,
+dear! just hear me this far. I&rsquo;m going away, Betty, and
+I love you. No, sit close and be my sweetheart. Dear,
+it isn&rsquo;t the old thing. It&rsquo;s love, and it&rsquo;s what I want you
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_92' name='page_92'></a>92</span>
+to feel for me. I woke up yesterday, and found I loved
+you.&rdquo; He held her closer and lifted her face to his. &ldquo;You
+must wake up, too, Betty; we can&rsquo;t play always. Say
+you&rsquo;ll love me and be my wife&ndash;&ndash;some day&ndash;&ndash;won&rsquo;t you,
+Betty?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>She drooped in his arms, hanging her head and looking
+down on her floury hands.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Say it, Betty dear, won&rsquo;t you?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Her lip quivered. &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t want to be anybody&rsquo;s wife&ndash;&ndash;and,
+anyway&ndash;&ndash;I liked you better the other way.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Why, Betty? Tell me why.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Because&ndash;&ndash;lots of reasons. I must help mother&ndash;&ndash;and
+I&rsquo;m only seventeen, and&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Most eighteen, I know, because&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Well, anyway, mother says no girl of hers shall marry
+before she&rsquo;s of age, and she says that means twenty-one,
+and&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;That&rsquo;s all right. I can wait. Kiss me, Betty.&rdquo; But
+she was silent, with face turned from him. Again he lifted
+her face to his. &ldquo;I say, kiss me, Betty. Just one? That
+was a stingy little kiss. You know I&rsquo;m going away, and
+that is why I spoke to you now. I didn&rsquo;t dare go without
+telling you this first. You&rsquo;re so sweet, Betty, some one
+might find you out and love you&ndash;&ndash;just as I have&ndash;&ndash;only
+not so deeply in love with you&ndash;&ndash;no one could&ndash;&ndash;but some
+one might come and win you away from me, and so I must
+make sure that you will marry me when you are of age and
+I come back for you. Promise me.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Where?&ndash;&ndash;why&ndash;&ndash;Peter Junior! Where are you going?&rdquo;
+Betty removed his arm from around her waist and slipped
+to her own end of the seat. There, with hands folded decorously
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_93' name='page_93'></a>93</span>
+in her lap, with heightened color and serious eyes,
+she looked shyly up at him. He had never seen her shy
+before. Always she had been merry and teasing, and his
+heart was proud that he had wrought such a miracle in her.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I am going to Paris. I mean to be an artist.&rdquo; He
+leaned toward her and would have taken her in his arms
+again, but she put his hands away.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Will your father let you do that?&rdquo; Her eyes widened
+with surprise, and the surprise nettled him.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know. He&rsquo;s thinking about it. Anyway, a
+man must decide for himself what his career will be, and if
+he won&rsquo;t let me, I&rsquo;ll earn the money and go without his
+letting me.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Wouldn&rsquo;t that be the best way, anyway?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;What do you mean? To go without his consent?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Of course not&ndash;&ndash;goosey.&rdquo; She laughed and was herself
+again, but he liked her better the other way. &ldquo;To earn
+the money and then go. It&ndash;&ndash;it&ndash;&ndash;would be more&ndash;&ndash;more
+as if you were in earnest.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;My soul! Do you think I&rsquo;m not in earnest? Do you
+think I&rsquo;m not in love with you?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Instantly she was serious and shy again. His heart
+leaped. He loved to feel his power over her thus. Still
+she tantalized him. &ldquo;I&rsquo;m not meaning about loving me.
+That&rsquo;s not the question. I mean it would look more as if
+you were in earnest about becoming an artist.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;No. The real question is, Do you love me? Will you
+marry me when I come back?&rdquo; She was silent and he
+came nearer. &ldquo;Say it. Say it. I must hear you say it
+before I leave.&rdquo; Her lips trembled as if she were trying to
+form the words, and their eyes met.</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_94' name='page_94'></a>94</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes&ndash;&ndash;if&ndash;&ndash;if&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Then he caught her to him, and stopped her mouth with
+kisses. He did not know himself. He was a man he had
+never met the like of, and he gloried in himself. It seemed
+as if he heard bells ringing out in joy. Then he looked up
+and saw Mary Ballard&rsquo;s eyes fixed on him.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Peter Junior&ndash;&ndash;what are you doing?&rdquo; Her voice
+shook.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I&ndash;&ndash;I&rsquo;m kissing Betty.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I see that.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;We are to be married some day&ndash;&ndash;and&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You are precipitate, Peter Junior.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Then Betty did what every woman does when her lover
+is blamed, no matter how earnestly she may have resisted
+him before. She went completely over to his side and took
+his part.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;He&rsquo;s going away, mother. He&rsquo;s going away to be gone&ndash;&ndash;perhaps
+for years; and I&rsquo;ve&ndash;&ndash;I&rsquo;ve told him yes, mother,&ndash;&ndash;so
+it isn&rsquo;t his fault.&rdquo; Then she turned and fled to her
+own room, and hid her flaming face in the pillow and wept.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Sit here with me awhile, Peter Junior, and we&rsquo;ll talk it
+all over,&rdquo; said Mary.</p>
+<p>He obeyed her, and looking squarely in her eyes, manfully
+told her his plans, and tried to make her feel as he felt,
+that no love like his had ever filled a man&rsquo;s heart before.
+At last she sent him up to the studio to tell her
+husband, and she went in and finished Betty&rsquo;s task, putting
+the bread&ndash;&ndash;alas! too light by this time&ndash;&ndash;in the
+oven, and shaping the raised biscuit which Betty had left
+half-finished.</p>
+<p>Then she paused a moment to look out of the window
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_95' name='page_95'></a>95</span>
+down the path where the boys and little Janey would soon
+come tumbling home from school, hot and hungry. A tear
+slowly coursed down her cheek, and, following the curves,
+trembled on the tip of her chin. She brushed it away impatiently.
+Of course it had to come&ndash;&ndash;that was what life
+must bring&ndash;&ndash;but ah! not so soon&ndash;&ndash;not so soon. Then
+she set about preparations for dinner without Betty&rsquo;s
+help. That, too, was what it would mean&ndash;&ndash;sometime&ndash;&ndash;to
+go on doing things without Betty. She gave a little sigh,
+and at the instant an arm was slipped about her waist, and
+she turned to look in Bertrand&rsquo;s eyes.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Is it all right, Mary?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Why&ndash;&ndash;yes&ndash;&ndash;that is&ndash;&ndash;if they&rsquo;ll always love each other
+as we have. I think it ought not to be too definite an engagement,
+though, until his plans are more settled. What
+do you think?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You are right, no doubt. I&rsquo;ll speak to him about that.&rdquo;
+Then he kissed her warm, flushed cheek. &ldquo;I declare, it
+makes me feel as Peter Junior feels again, to have this
+happen.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Ah, Bertrand! You never grew up&ndash;&ndash;thank the
+Lord!&rdquo; Then Mary laughed. After all, they had been
+happy, and why not Betty and Peter? Surely the young
+had their rights.</p>
+<p>Bertrand climbed back to the studio where Peter Junior
+was pacing restlessly back and forth, and again they talked
+it all over, until the call came for dinner, when Peter was
+urged to stay, but would not. No, he would not see Betty
+again until he could have her quite to himself. So he limped
+away, feeling as if he were walking on air in spite of his
+halting gait, and Betty from her window watched him pass
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_96' name='page_96'></a>96</span>
+down the path and off along the grassy roadside. Then she
+went down to dinner, flushed and grave, but with shining
+eyes. Her father kissed her, but nothing was said, and the
+children thought nothing of it, for it was quite natural in
+the family to kiss Betty.</p>
+<hr class='toprule' />
+<div class='chsp'>
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_97' name='page_97'></a>97</span>
+<a name='CHAPTER_IX_THE_BANKERS_POINT_OF_VIEW' id='CHAPTER_IX_THE_BANKERS_POINT_OF_VIEW'></a>
+<h2>CHAPTER IX</h2>
+<h3>THE BANKER&rsquo;S POINT OF VIEW</h3>
+</div>
+<p>There was no picnic and nutting party the next day,
+owing to a downpour of rain. Betty had time to think
+quietly over what had happened the day before and her
+mind misgave her. What was it that so filled her heart and
+mind? That so stirred her imagination? Was it romance
+or love? She wished she knew how other girls felt who had
+lovers. Was it easy or hard for them to say yes? Should
+a girl let her lover kiss her the way Peter Junior had done?
+Some of the questions which perplexed her she would have
+liked to ask her mother, but in spite of their charming intimacy
+she could not bring herself to speak of them. She
+wished she had a friend with a lover, and could talk it all
+over with her, but although she had girl friends, none of
+them had lovers, and to have one herself made her feel
+much older than any of them.</p>
+<p>So Betty thought matters out for herself. Of course she
+liked Peter Junior&ndash;&ndash;she had always liked him&ndash;&ndash;and he
+was masterful&ndash;&ndash;and she had always known she would
+marry a soldier&ndash;&ndash;and one who had been wounded and been
+brave&ndash;&ndash;that was the kind of a soldier to love. But she
+was more subdued than usual and sewed steadily on gingham
+aprons for Janey, making the buttonholes and binding
+them about the neck with contrasting stuff.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Anyway, I&rsquo;m glad there is no picnic to-day. The boys
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_98' name='page_98'></a>98</span>
+may eat up the cookies, and I didn&rsquo;t get the cake made after
+all,&rdquo; she said to her mother, as she lingered a moment in
+the kitchen and looked out of the window at the pouring
+rain. But she did not see the rain; she saw again a gray-clad
+youth limping down the path between the lilacs and
+away along the grassy roadside.</p>
+<p>Well, what if she had said yes? It was all as it should
+be, according to her dreams, only&ndash;&ndash;only&ndash;&ndash;he had not
+allowed her to say what she had meant to say. She wished
+her mother had not happened to come just then before she
+could explain to Peter Junior; that it was &ldquo;yes&rdquo; only if
+when he came back he still wanted her and still loved her,
+and was sure he had not made a mistake about it. It was
+often so in books. Men went away, and when they returned,
+they found they no longer loved their sweethearts.
+If such a terrible thing should happen to her! Oh, dear!
+Or maybe he would be too honorable to say he no longer
+loved her, and would marry her in spite of it; and she would
+find out afterward, when it was too late, that he loved some
+one else; that would be very terrible, and they would be
+miserable all their lives.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t think I would let the boys eat up the cookies,
+dear; it may clear off by sundown, and be fine to-morrow,
+and they&rsquo;ll be all as glad as to go to-day. You make your
+cake.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;But Martha&rsquo;s coming home to-morrow night, and I&rsquo;d
+rather wait now until Saturday; that will be only one day
+longer, and it will be more fun with her along.&rdquo; Betty
+spoke brightly and tried to make herself feel that no momentous
+thing had happened. She hated the constraint of it.
+&ldquo;By that time Peter Junior will think that he can go, too.
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_99' name='page_99'></a>99</span>
+He&rsquo;s so funny!&rdquo; She laughed self-consciously, and carried
+the gingham aprons back to her room.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Bless her dear little heart.&rdquo; Mary Ballard understood.</p>
+<p>Peter Junior also profited by the rainy morning. He had
+a long hour alone with his mother to tell her of his wish to
+go to Paris; and her way of receiving his news was a surprise
+to him. He had thought it would be a struggle and
+that he would have to argue with her, setting forth his hopes
+and plans, bringing her slowly to think with quiescence of
+their long separation: but no. She rose and began to pace
+the floor, and her eyes grew bright with eagerness.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, Peter, Peter!&rdquo; She came and placed her two hands
+on his shoulders and gazed into his eyes. &ldquo;Peter Junior,
+you are a boy after my own heart. You are going to be
+something worth while. I always knew you would. It is
+Bertrand Ballard who has waked you up, who has taught
+you to see that there is much outside of Leauvite for a man
+to do. I&rsquo;m not objecting to those who live here and have
+found their work here; it is only that you are different.
+Go! Go!&ndash;&ndash;It is&ndash;&ndash;has your father&ndash;&ndash;have you asked
+his consent?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, yes.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Has he given it?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I think he is considering it seriously.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Peter Junior, I hope you won&rsquo;t go without it&ndash;&ndash;as
+you went once, without mine.&rdquo; Never before had she
+mentioned it to him, or recalled to his mind that terrible
+parting.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Why not, mother? It would be as fair to him now as
+it was then to you. It would be fairer; for this is a question
+of progress, and then it was a matter of life and death.&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_100' name='page_100'></a>100</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;Ah, that was different, I admit. But I never could
+retaliate, or seem to, even in the smallest thing. I don&rsquo;t
+want him to suffer as I suffered.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>It was almost a cry for pity, and Peter Junior wondered
+in his heart at the depth of anguish she must have endured
+in those days, when he had thrust the thought of her opposition
+to one side as merely an obstacle overcome, and
+had felt the triumph of winning out in the contest, as one
+step toward independent manhood. Now, indeed, their
+viewpoints had changed. He felt almost a sense of pique
+that she had yielded so joyously and so suddenly, although
+confronted with the prospect of a long separation from him.
+Did she love him less than in the past? Had his former
+disregard of her wishes lessened even a trifle her mother
+love for him?</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I&rsquo;m glad you can take the thought of my going as you
+do, mother.&rdquo; He spoke coldly, as an only son may, but he
+was to be excused. He was less spoiled than most only sons.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;In what way, my son?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Why&ndash;&ndash;in being glad to have me go&ndash;&ndash;instead of feeling
+as you did then.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Glad? Glad to have you go? It isn&rsquo;t that, dear.
+Understand me. I&rsquo;m sorry I spoke of that old time. It
+was only to spare your father. You see we look at things
+differently. He loves to have us follow out his plans. It
+is almost&ndash;&ndash;death to him to have to give up; and with
+me&ndash;&ndash;it was not then as it is now. I don&rsquo;t like to think or
+speak of that time.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Don&rsquo;t, mother, don&rsquo;t!&rdquo; cried Peter, contritely.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;But I must to make you see this as you should. It was
+love for you then that made me cling to you, and want to
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_101' name='page_101'></a>101</span>
+hold you back from going; just the same it is love for you
+now that makes me want you to go out and find your right
+place in the world. I was letting you go then to be shot
+at&ndash;&ndash;to suffer fatigue, and cold, and imprisonment, who
+could know, perhaps to be cruelly killed&ndash;&ndash;and I did not
+believe in war. I suppose your father was the nobler in
+his way of thinking, but I could not see it his way. Angels
+from heaven couldn&rsquo;t have made me believe it right; but it&rsquo;s
+over. Now I know your life will be made broader by going,
+and you&rsquo;ll have scope, at least, to know what you really
+wish to do with yourself and what you are worth, as you
+would not have, to sit down in your father&rsquo;s bank, although
+you would be safer there, no doubt. But you went through
+all the temptations of the army safely, and I have no fear
+for you now, dear, no fear.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Peter Junior&rsquo;s heart melted. He took his mother in his
+arms and stroked her beautiful white hair. &ldquo;I love you,
+mother, dear,&rdquo; was all he could say. Should he tell her of
+Betty now? The question died in his heart. It was too
+much. He would be all hers for a little, nor intrude the
+new love that she might think divided his heart. He
+returned to the question of his father&rsquo;s consent. &ldquo;Mother,
+what shall I do if he will not give it?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Wait. Try to be patient and do what he wishes. It
+may help him to yield in the end.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Never! I know Dad better than that. He will only
+think all the more that he is in the right, and that I have
+come to my senses. He never takes any viewpoint but
+his own.&rdquo; His mother was silent. Never would she open
+her lips against her husband. &ldquo;I say, mother, naturally
+I would rather go with his consent, but if he won&rsquo;t give
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_102' name='page_102'></a>102</span>
+it&ndash;&ndash;How long must a man be obedient just for the sake of
+obedience? Does such bondage never end? Am I not of
+age?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I will speak to him. Wait and see. Talk it over with
+him again to-day after banking hours.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I&ndash;&ndash;I&ndash;&ndash;have something I must&ndash;&ndash;must do to-day.&rdquo;
+He was thinking he would go out to the Ballards&rsquo; in spite
+of the rain.</p>
+<p>The dinner hour passed without constraint. In these
+days Peter Junior would not allow the long silences to occur
+that used often to cast a gloom over the meals in his boyhood.
+He knew that in this way his mother would sadly
+miss him. It was the Elder&rsquo;s way to keep his thoughts for
+the most part to himself, and especially when there was an
+issue of importance before him. It was supposed that his
+wife could not take an interest in matters of business, or in
+things of interest to men, so silence was the rule when they
+were alone.</p>
+<p>This time Peter Junior mentioned the topic of the wonderful
+new railroad that was being pushed across the plains
+and through the unexplored desert to the Pacific.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;The mere thought of it is inspiring,&rdquo; said Hester.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;How so?&rdquo; queried the Elder, with a lift of his brows.
+He deprecated any thought connecting sentiment with
+achievement. Sentiment was of the heart and only hindered
+achievement, which was purely of the brain.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;It&rsquo;s just the wonder of it. Think of the two great
+oceans being brought so near together! Only two weeks
+apart! Don&rsquo;t they estimate that the time to cross will be
+only two weeks?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes, mother, and we have those splendid old pioneers
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_103' name='page_103'></a>103</span>
+who made the first trail across the desert to thank for its
+being possible. It isn&rsquo;t the capitalists who have done this.
+It&rsquo;s the ones who had faith in themselves and dared the
+dangers and the hardships. They are the ones I honor.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;They never went for love of humanity. It was mere
+love of wandering and migratory instinct,&rdquo; said his father,
+grimly.</p>
+<p>Peter Junior laughed merrily. &ldquo;What did old grandfather
+Craigmile pull up and come over to this country for?
+They had to cross in sailing vessels then and take weeks for
+the journey.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Progress, my son, progress. Your grandfather had the
+idea of establishing his family in honorable business over
+here, and he did it.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Well, I say these people who have been crossing the
+plains and crawling over the desert behind ox teams in
+&lsquo;prairie schooners&rsquo; for the last twenty or thirty years,
+braving all the dangers of the unknown, have really paved
+the way for progress and civilization. The railroad is
+being laid along the trail they made. Do you know
+Richard&rsquo;s out there at the end of the line&ndash;&ndash;nearly?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;He would be likely to be. Roving boy! What&rsquo;s
+he doing there?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Poor boy! He almost died in that terrible southern
+prison. He was the mere shadow of himself when he came
+home,&rdquo; said Hester.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;The young men of the present day have little use for
+beaten paths and safe ways. I offered him a position in
+the bank, but no&ndash;&ndash;he must go to Scotland first to make
+the acquaintance of our aunts. If he had been satisfied
+with that! But no, again, he must go to Ireland on a
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_104' name='page_104'></a>104</span>
+fool&rsquo;s errand to learn something of his father.&rdquo; The Elder
+paused and bit his lip, and a vein stood out on his forehead.
+&ldquo;He&rsquo;s never seen fit to write me of late.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Of course such a big scheme as this road across the plains
+would appeal to a man like Richard. He&rsquo;s doing very well,
+father. I wouldn&rsquo;t be disturbed about him.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Humph! I might as well be disturbed about the course
+of the Wisconsin River. I might as well worry over the
+rush of a cataract. The lad has no stability.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;He never fails to write to me, and I must say that he
+was considered the most dependable man in the regiment.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;What is he doing? I should like to see the boy again.&rdquo;
+Hester looked across at her son with a warm, loving light
+in her eyes.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know exactly, but it&rsquo;s something worth while,
+and calls for lots of energy. He says they are striking out
+into the dust and alkali now&ndash;&ndash;right into the desert.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;And doesn&rsquo;t he say a word about when he is coming
+back?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Not a word, mother. He really has no home, you know.
+He says Scotland has no opening for him, and he has no one
+to depend on but himself.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;He has relatives who are fairly well to do in Ireland.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>The Elder frowned. &ldquo;So I&rsquo;ve heard, and my aunts in
+Scotland talked of making him their heir, when I was last
+there.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;He knows that, father, but he says he&rsquo;s not one to
+stand round waiting for two old women to die. He says
+they&rsquo;re fine, decorous old ladies, too, who made a lot of him.
+I warrant they&rsquo;d hold up their hands in horror if they knew
+what a rough life he&rsquo;s leading now.&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_105' name='page_105'></a>105</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;How rough, my son? I wish he&rsquo;d make up his mind to
+come home.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;There! I told him this is his home; just as much as it
+is mine. I&rsquo;ll write him you said that, mother.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Indeed, yes. Bless the boy!&rdquo;</p>
+<p>The Elder looked at his wife and lifted his brows, a sign
+that it was time the meal should close, and she rose instantly.
+It was her habit never to rise until the Elder
+gave the sign. Peter Junior walked down the length of the
+hall at his father&rsquo;s side.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;What Richard really wished to do was what I mentioned
+to you yesterday for myself. He wanted to go to Paris
+and study, but after visiting his great-aunts he saw that it
+would be too much. He would not allow them to take
+from their small income to help him through, so he gave
+it up for the time being; but if he keeps on as he is, it is
+my opinion he may go yet. He&rsquo;s making good money.
+Then we could be there together.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>The Elder made no reply, but stooped and drew on his
+india-rubber overshoes,&ndash;&ndash;stamping into them,&ndash;&ndash;and then
+got himself into his raincoat with sundry liftings and
+hunchings of his shoulders. Peter Junior stood by waiting,
+if haply some sort of sign might be given that his remark
+had been heeded, but his father only carefully adjusted his
+hat and walked away in the rain, setting his feet down
+stubbornly at each step, and holding his umbrella as if it
+were a banner of righteousness. The younger man&rsquo;s face
+flushed, and he turned from the door angrily; then he
+looked to see his mother&rsquo;s eyes fixed on him sadly.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;At least he might treat me with common decency. He
+need not be rude, even if I am his son.&rdquo; He thought he
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_106' name='page_106'></a>106</span>
+detected accusation of himself in his mother&rsquo;s gaze and
+resented it.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Be patient, dear.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, mother! Patient, patient! What have you got
+by being patient all these years?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Peace of mind, my son.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Mother&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Try to take your father&rsquo;s view of this matter. Have
+you any idea how hard he has worked all his life, and always
+with the thought of you and your advancement, and welfare?
+Why, Peter Junior, he is bound up in you. He
+expected you would one day stand at his side, his mainstay
+and help and comfort in his business.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Then it wasn&rsquo;t for me; it was for himself that he has
+worked and built up the bank. It&rsquo;s his bank, and his wife,
+and his son, and his &lsquo;Tower of Babel that he has builded,&rsquo;
+and now he wants me to bury myself in it and worship at
+his idolatry.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Hush, Peter. I don&rsquo;t like to rebuke you, but I must.
+You can twist facts about and see them in a wrong light, but
+the truth remains that he has loved you tenderly&ndash;&ndash;always.
+I know his heart better than you&ndash;&ndash;better than he.
+It is only that he thinks the line he has taken a lifetime to
+lay out for you is the best. He is as sure of it as that the
+days follow each other. He sees only futility in the way
+you would go. I have no doubt his heart is sore over it
+at this moment, and that he is grieving in a way that would
+shock you, could you comprehend it.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Enough said, mother, enough said. I&rsquo;ll try to be fair.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>He went to his room and stood looking out at the rain-washed
+earth and the falling leaves. The sky was heavy
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_107' name='page_107'></a>107</span>
+and drab. He thought of Betty and her picnic and of how
+gay and sweet she was, and how altogether desirable, and
+the thought wrought a change in his spirit. He went downstairs
+and kissed his mother; then he, too, put on his rubber
+overshoes and shook himself into his raincoat and carefully
+adjusted his hat and his umbrella. Then with the
+assistance of the old blackthorn stick he walked away in the
+rain, limping, it is true, but nevertheless a younger, sturdier
+edition of the man who had passed out before him.</p>
+<p>He found Betty alone as he had hoped, for Mary Ballard
+had gone to drive her husband to the station. Bertrand
+was thinking of opening a studio in the city, at his wife&rsquo;s
+earnest solicitation, for she thought him buried there in
+their village. As for the children&ndash;&ndash;they were still in
+school.</p>
+<p>Thus it came about that Peter Junior spent the rest of
+that day with Betty in her father&rsquo;s studio. He told Betty
+all his plans. He made love to her and cajoled her, and
+was happy indeed. He had a winsome way, and he made
+her say she loved him&ndash;&ndash;more than once or twice&ndash;&ndash;and
+his heart was satisfied.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;We&rsquo;ll be married just as soon as I return from Paris,
+and you&rsquo;ll not miss me so much until then?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, no.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Ah&ndash;&ndash;but&ndash;&ndash;but I hope you will&ndash;&ndash;you know.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Of course I shall! What would you suppose?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;But you said no.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Naturally! Didn&rsquo;t you wish me to say that?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I wanted you to tell the truth.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Well, I did.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;There it is again! I&rsquo;m afraid you don&rsquo;t really love me.&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_108' name='page_108'></a>108</span></div>
+<p>She tilted her head on one side and looked at him a
+moment. &ldquo;Would you like me to say I don&rsquo;t want you to
+go to Paris?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Not that, exactly; but all the time I&rsquo;m gone I shall be
+longing for you.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I should hope so! It would be pretty bad if you
+didn&rsquo;t.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Now you see what I mean about you. I want you to
+be longing for me all the time, until I return.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;All right. I&rsquo;ll cry my eyes out, and I&rsquo;ll keep writing
+for you to come home.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, come now! Tell me what you will do all the time.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, lots of things. I&rsquo;ll paint pictures, too, and&ndash;&ndash;I&rsquo;ll
+write&ndash;&ndash;and help mother just as I do now; and I&rsquo;ll study
+art without going to Paris.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Will you, you rogue! I&rsquo;d marry you first and take you
+with me if it were possible, and you should study in Paris,
+too&ndash;&ndash;that is, if you wished to.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Wouldn&rsquo;t it be wonderful! But I don&rsquo;t know&ndash;&ndash;I
+believe I&rsquo;d rather write than paint.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I believe I&rsquo;d rather have you. They say there are no
+really great women artists. It isn&rsquo;t in the woman&rsquo;s nature.
+They haven&rsquo;t the strength. Oh, they have the delicacy and
+all that; it&rsquo;s something else they lack.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Humph! It&rsquo;s rather nice to have us lacking in one
+thing and another, isn&rsquo;t it? It gives you men something
+to do to discover and fill in the lacks.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I know one little lady who lacks in nothing but years.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Betty looked out of the window and down into the yard.
+&ldquo;There is mother driving in. Let&rsquo;s go down and have
+cookies and milk. I&rsquo;m sure you need cookies and milk.&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_109' name='page_109'></a>109</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;I&rsquo;ll need anything you say.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Very well, then, you&rsquo;ll need patience if ever you marry me.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I know that well enough. Stop a moment. Kiss me
+before we go down.&rdquo; He caught her in his arms, but she
+slipped away.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;No, I won&rsquo;t. You&rsquo;ve had enough kisses. I&rsquo;ll always
+give you one when you come, hereafter, and one when you go
+away, but no more.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Then I shall come very often.&rdquo; He laughed and
+leaned upon her instead of using his stick, as they slowly
+descended.</p>
+<p>Mary Ballard was chilled after her long drive in the rain,
+and Betty made her tea. Then, after a pleasant hour of
+chat and encouragement from the two sweet women, Peter
+Junior left them, promising to go to the picnic and nutting
+party on Saturday. It would surely be pleasant, for the
+sky was already clearing. Yes, truly a glad heart brings
+pleasant prognostications.</p>
+<hr class='toprule' />
+<div class='chsp'>
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_110' name='page_110'></a>110</span>
+<a name='CHAPTER_X_THE_NUTTING_PARTY' id='CHAPTER_X_THE_NUTTING_PARTY'></a>
+<h2>CHAPTER X</h2>
+<h3>THE NUTTING PARTY</h3>
+</div>
+<p>Peter Junior made no attempt the next day to speak
+further to his father about his plans. It seemed to him
+better that he should wait until his wise mother had talked
+the matter over with the Elder. Although he put in most
+of the day at the studio, painting, he saw very little of
+Betty and thought she was avoiding him out of girlish
+coquetry, but she was only very busy. Martha was coming
+home and everything must be as clean as wax. Martha was
+such a tidy housekeeper that she would see the least lack
+and set to work to remedy it, and that Betty could not abide.
+In these days Martha&rsquo;s coming marked a semimonthly
+event in the home, for since completing her course at the
+high school she had been teaching in the city. Bertrand
+would return with her, and then all would have to be talked
+over,&ndash;&ndash;just what he had decided to do, and why.</p>
+<p>In the evening a surprise awaited the whole household,
+for Martha came, accompanied not only by her father,
+but also by a young professor in the same school where she
+taught. Mary Ballard greeted him most kindly, but she
+felt things were happening too rapidly in her family.
+Jamie and Bobby watched the young man covertly yet
+eagerly, taking note of his every movement and intonation.
+Was he one to be emulated or avoided? Only little Janey
+was quite unabashed by him, and this lightened his embarrassment
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_111' name='page_111'></a>111</span>
+greatly and helped him to the ease of manner
+he strove to establish.</p>
+<p>She led him out to the sweet-apple tree, and introduced
+him to the calf and the bantams, and invited him to go
+with them nutting the next day. &ldquo;We&rsquo;re all going in
+a great, big picnic wagon. Everybody&rsquo;s going and we&rsquo;ll
+have just lots of fun.&rdquo; And he accepted, provided she would
+sit beside him all the way.</p>
+<p>Bobby decided at this point that he also would befriend
+the young man. &ldquo;If you&rsquo;re going to sit beside her all the
+way, you&rsquo;ll have to be lively. She never sits in one place
+more than two minutes. You&rsquo;ll have to sit on papa&rsquo;s
+other knee for a while, and then you&rsquo;ll have to sit on Peter
+Junior&rsquo;s.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;That will be interesting, anyway. Who&rsquo;s Peter Junior?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, he&rsquo;s a man. He comes to see us a lot.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;He&rsquo;s the son of Elder Craigmile,&rdquo; explained Martha.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Is he going, too, Betty?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes. The whole crowd are going. It will be fun.
+I&rsquo;m glad now it rained Thursday, for the Deans didn&rsquo;t
+want to postpone it till to-morrow, and then, when it
+rained, Mrs. Dean said it would be too wet to try to have
+it yesterday; and now we have you. I wanted all the time
+to wait until you came home.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>That night, when Martha went to their room, Betty
+followed her, and after closing the door tightly she threw
+her arms around her sister&rsquo;s neck.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, Martha, Martha, dear! Tell me all about him.
+Why didn&rsquo;t you let us know? I came near having on my
+old blue gingham. What if I had? He&rsquo;s awfully nice
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_112' name='page_112'></a>112</span>
+looking. Is he in love with you? Tell me all about it.
+Does he make love to you? Oh, Martha! It&rsquo;s so romantic
+for you to have a lover!&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Hush, Betty, some one will hear you. Of course he
+doesn&rsquo;t make love to me!&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Why?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I wouldn&rsquo;t let him.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Martha! Why not? Do you think it&rsquo;s bad to let a
+young man make love to you?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Betty! You mustn&rsquo;t talk so loud. Everything sounds
+so through this house. It would mortify me to death.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;What would mortify you to death: to have him make
+love to you or to have someone hear me?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Betty, dear!&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Well, tell me all about him&ndash;&ndash;please! Why did he
+come out with you?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You shouldn&rsquo;t always be thinking about love-making&ndash;&ndash;and&ndash;&ndash;such
+things, Betty, dear. He just came out in
+the most natural way, just because he&ndash;&ndash;he loves the
+country, and he was talking to me about it one day and
+said he&rsquo;d like to come out some Friday with me&ndash;&ndash;just
+about asked me to invite him. So when father called at
+the school yesterday for me, I introduced them, and he
+said the same thing to father, and of course father invited
+him over again, and&ndash;&ndash;and&ndash;&ndash;so he&rsquo;s here. That&rsquo;s all
+there is to it.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I bet it isn&rsquo;t. How long have you known him?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Why, ever since I&rsquo;ve been in the school, naturally.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;What does he teach?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;He has higher Latin and beginners&rsquo; Greek, and then he
+has charge of the main room when the principal goes out.&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_113' name='page_113'></a>113</span></div>
+<p>Betty pondered a little, sitting on the floor in front of
+her sister. &ldquo;You have such a lovely way of doing your
+hair. Is that the way to do hair nowadays&ndash;&ndash;with two
+long curls hanging down from one side of the coil? You
+wind one side around the back knot, and then you pin
+the other up and let the ends hang down in two long curls,
+don&rsquo;t you? I&rsquo;m going to try mine that way; may I?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Of course, darling! I&rsquo;ll help you.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;What&rsquo;s his name, Martha? I couldn&rsquo;t quite catch it,
+and I did not want to let him know I thought it queer, so
+wouldn&rsquo;t ask over.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;His name is Lucien Thurbyfil. It&rsquo;s not so queer,
+Betty.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, you pronounce it T&rsquo;urbyfil, just as if there were
+no &lsquo;h&rsquo; in it. You know I thought father said Mr. Tubfull&ndash;&ndash;or
+something like that, when he introduced him to mother,
+and that was why mother looked at him in such an odd
+way.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>The two girls laughed merrily. &ldquo;Betty, what if you
+hadn&rsquo;t been a dear, and had called him that! And he&rsquo;s
+so very correct!&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, is he? Then I&rsquo;ll try it to-morrow and we&rsquo;ll see
+what he&rsquo;ll do.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Don&rsquo;t you dare! I&rsquo;d be so ashamed I&rsquo;d sink right
+through the floor. He&rsquo;d think we&rsquo;d been making fun of
+him.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Then I&rsquo;ll wait until we are out in the woods, for I&rsquo;d
+hate to have you make a hole in the floor by sinking through
+it.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Betty! You&rsquo;ll be good to-morrow, won&rsquo;t you, dear?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Good? Am I not always good? Didn&rsquo;t I scrub and
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_114' name='page_114'></a>114</span>
+bake and put flowers all over the ugly what-not in the corner
+of the parlor, and get the grease spot out of the dining room
+rug that Jamie stepped butter into&ndash;&ndash;and all for you&ndash;&ndash;without
+any thought of any Mr. Tubfull or any one but
+you? All day long I&rsquo;ve been doing it.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Of course you did, and it was perfectly sweet; and the
+flowers and mother looked so dear&ndash;&ndash;and Janey&rsquo;s hands
+were clean&ndash;&ndash;I looked to see. You know usually they are
+so dirty. I knew you&rsquo;d been busy; but Betty, dear, you
+won&rsquo;t be mischievous to-morrow, will you? He&rsquo;s our
+guest, you know, and you never were bashful, not as much
+as you really ought to be, and we can&rsquo;t treat strangers just
+as we do&ndash;&ndash;well&ndash;&ndash;people we have always known, like
+Peter Junior. They wouldn&rsquo;t understand it.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>But the admonition seemed to be lost, for Betty&rsquo;s
+thoughts were wandering from the point. &ldquo;Hasn&rsquo;t he
+ever&ndash;&ndash;ever&ndash;&ndash;made love to you?&rdquo; Martha was washing
+her face and neck at the washstand in the corner, and now
+she turned a face very rosy, possibly with scrubbing, and
+threw water over her naughty little sister. &ldquo;Well, hasn&rsquo;t
+he ever put his arm around you or&ndash;&ndash;or anything?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I wouldn&rsquo;t let a man do that.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Not if you were engaged?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Of course not! That wouldn&rsquo;t be a nice way to do.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Shouldn&rsquo;t you let a man kiss you or&ndash;&ndash;or&ndash;&ndash;put his
+arm around you&ndash;&ndash;or anything&ndash;&ndash;even when he&rsquo;s trying
+to get engaged to you?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Of course not, Betty, dear. You&rsquo;re asking very silly
+questions. I&rsquo;m going to bed.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Well, but they do in books. He did in &lsquo;Jane Eyre,&rsquo;
+don&rsquo;t you remember? And she was proud of it&ndash;&ndash;and
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_115' name='page_115'></a>115</span>
+pretended not to be&ndash;&ndash;and very much touched, and treasured
+his every look in her heart. And in the books they
+always kiss their lovers. How can Mr. Thurbyfil ever be
+your lover, if you never let him even put his arm around
+you?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Betty, Betty, come to bed. He isn&rsquo;t my lover and he
+doesn&rsquo;t want to be and we aren&rsquo;t in books, and you are
+getting too old to be so silly.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Then Betty slowly disrobed and bathed her sweet limbs
+and at last crept in beside her sister. Surely she had not
+done right. She had let Peter Junior put his arm around
+her and kiss her, and that even before they were engaged;
+and all yesterday afternoon he had held her hand whenever
+she came near, and he had followed her about and had kissed
+her a great many times. Her cheeks burned with shame in
+the darkness, not that she had allowed this, but that she
+had not been as bashful as she ought. But how could she
+be bashful without pretending?</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Martha,&rdquo; she said at last, &ldquo;you are so sweet and pretty,
+if I were Mr. Thurbyfil, I&rsquo;d put my arm around you anyway,
+and make love to you.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Then Martha drew Betty close and gave her a sleepy
+kiss. &ldquo;No you wouldn&rsquo;t, dear,&rdquo; she murmured, and soon
+the two were peacefully sleeping, Betty&rsquo;s troubles quite
+forgotten. Still, when morning came, she did not confide
+to her sister anything about Peter Junior, and she even
+whispered to her mother not to mention a word of the affair
+to any one.</p>
+<p>At breakfast Jamie and Bobby were turbulent with delight.
+All outings were a joy to them, no matter how often
+they came. Martha was neat and rosy and gay. Lucien
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_116' name='page_116'></a>116</span>
+Thurbyfil wanted to help her by wiping the dishes, but she
+sent him out to the sweet-apple tree with a basket, enjoining
+him to bring only the mellow ones. &ldquo;Be sure to get enough.
+We&rsquo;re all going, father and mother and all.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;It&rsquo;s very nice of your people to make room for me on the
+wagon.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;And it&rsquo;s nice of you to go.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I see Peter Junior. He&rsquo;s coming,&rdquo; shouted Bobby, from
+the top of the sweet-apple tree.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Who does he go with?&rdquo; asked Martha.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;With us. He always does,&rdquo; said Betty. &ldquo;I wonder
+why his mother and the Elder never go out for any fun, the
+way you and father do!&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;The Elder always has to be at the bank, I suppose,&rdquo;
+said Mary Ballard, &ldquo;and she wouldn&rsquo;t go without him.
+Did you put in the salt and pepper for the eggs, dear?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes, mother. I&rsquo;m glad father isn&rsquo;t a banker.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;It takes a man of more ability than I to be a banker,&rdquo;
+said Bertrand, laughing, albeit with concealed pride.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;We don&rsquo;t care if it does, Dad,&rdquo; said Jamie, patronizingly.
+&ldquo;When I get through the high school, I&rsquo;m going to hire out
+to the bank.&rdquo; He seized the lunch basket and marched
+manfully out to the wagon.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I thought Peter Junior always went with Clara Dean.
+He did when I left,&rdquo; said Martha, in a low voice to Betty,
+as they filled bottles with raspberry shrub, and with cream
+for the coffee. &ldquo;Did you tie strings on the spoons, dear?
+They&rsquo;ll get mixed with the Walters&rsquo; if you don&rsquo;t. You
+remember theirs are just like ours.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, I forgot. Why, he likes Clara a lot, of course, but
+I guess they just naturally expected him to go with us.
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_117' name='page_117'></a>117</span>
+They and the Walters have a wagon together, anyway, and
+they wouldn&rsquo;t have room. We have one all to ourselves.
+Hello, Peter Junior! Mr. Thurbyfil, this is Mr. Junior.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Happy to meet you, Mr. Junior,&rdquo; said the correct Mr.
+Thurbyfil. The boys laughed uproariously, and the rest
+all smiled, except Betty, who was grave and really seemed
+somewhat embarrassed.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;What is it?&rdquo; she asked.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Mr. Thurbyfil, this is Mr. Craigmile,&rdquo; said Martha.
+&ldquo;You introduced him as Mr. Junior, Betty.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I didn&rsquo;t! Well, that&rsquo;s because I&rsquo;m bashful. Come on,
+everybody, mother&rsquo;s in.&rdquo; So they all climbed into the
+wagon and began to find their places.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, father, have you the matches? The bottles are
+on the kitchen table,&rdquo; exclaimed Martha.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Don&rsquo;t get down, Mr. Ballard,&rdquo; said Lucien. &ldquo;I&rsquo;ll get
+them. It would never do to forget the bottles. Now,
+where&rsquo;s the little girl who was to ride beside me?&rdquo; and
+Janey crawled across the hay and settled herself at her new
+friend&rsquo;s side. &ldquo;Now I think we are beautifully arranged,&rdquo;
+for Martha was on his other side.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Very well, we&rsquo;re off,&rdquo; and Bertrand gathered up the
+reins and they started.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;There they are. There&rsquo;s the other wagon,&rdquo; shouted
+Bobby. &ldquo;We ought to have a flag to wave.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Then Lucien, the correct, startled the party by putting
+his two fingers in his mouth and whistling shrilly.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;They have such a load I wish Clara could ride with us,&rdquo;
+said Betty. &ldquo;Peter Junior, won&rsquo;t you get out and fetch
+her?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>So they all stopped and there were greetings and introductions
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_118' name='page_118'></a>118</span>
+and much laughing and joking, and Peter Junior
+obediently helped Clara Dean down and into the Ballards&rsquo;
+wagon.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Clara, Mr. Thurbyfil can whistle as loud as a train,
+through his fingers, he can. Do it, Mr. Thurbyfil,&rdquo; said
+Bobby.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, I can do that,&rdquo; said Peter Junior, not to be outdone
+by the stranger, and they all tried it. Bertrand and his
+wife, settled comfortably on the high seat in front, had their
+own pleasure together and paid no heed to the noisy crew
+behind them.</p>
+<p>What a day! Autumn leaves and hazy distances, soft
+breezes and sunlight, and miles of level road skirting woods
+and open fields where the pumpkins lay yellow among the
+shocks of corn, and where the fence corners were filled with
+flaming sumac, with goldenrod and purple asters adding
+their softer coloring.</p>
+<p>It was a good eight miles to Carter&rsquo;s woods, but they bordered
+the river where the bluffs were not so high, and it
+would be possible to build a fire on the river bank with perfect
+safety. Bertrand had brought roasting ears from his
+patch of sweet corn, and as soon as they arrived at their
+chosen grove, he and Mary leisurely turned their attention
+to the preparing of the lunch with Mrs. Dean and Mrs.
+Walters, leaving to the young people the gathering of the
+nuts.</p>
+<p>Mrs. Dean, a slight, wiry woman, who acted and talked
+easily and unceasingly, spread out a fresh linen cloth and
+laid a stone on each corner to hold it down, and then
+looked into each lunch basket in turn, to acquaint herself
+with its contents.</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_119' name='page_119'></a>119</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;I see you brought cake and cookies and jam, Mrs.
+Ballard, besides all the corn and cream&ndash;&ndash;you always do
+too much, and all your own work to look after, too. Well,
+I brought a lot of ham sandwiches and that brown bread
+your husband likes so much. I always feel so proud when
+Mr. Ballard praises anything I do; he&rsquo;s so clever it makes
+me feel as if I were really able to do something. And
+you&rsquo;re so clever too. I don&rsquo;t know how it is some folks
+seem to have all the brains, and then there&rsquo;s others&ndash;&ndash;good
+enough&ndash;&ndash;but there! As I tell Mr. Dean, you can&rsquo;t tell
+why it is. Now where are the spoons? Every one brings
+their own, of course; yes, here are yours, Mrs. Walters.
+It&rsquo;s good of you to think of that sweet corn, Mr. Ballard.&ndash;&ndash;Oh,
+he&rsquo;s gone away; well, anyway, we&rsquo;re having a lot
+more than we can eat, and all so good and tempting. I
+hope Mr. Dean won&rsquo;t overeat himself; he&rsquo;s just a boy at a
+picnic, I always have to remind him&ndash;&ndash;How?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Did you bring the cups for the coffee?&rdquo; It was Mrs.
+Walters who interrupted the flow of Mrs. Dean&rsquo;s eloquence.
+She was portly and inclined to brevity, which made her a
+good companion for Mrs. Dean.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I had such a time with my jell this summer, and now
+this fall my grape jell&rsquo;s just as bad. This is all running
+over the glasses. There, I&rsquo;ll set it on this paper. I do
+hate to see a clean cloth all spotted with jell, even if it is a
+picnic when people think it doesn&rsquo;t make any difference.
+I see Martha has a friend. Well, that&rsquo;s nice. I wish Clara
+cared more for company; but, there, as I tell Mr. Dean&ndash;&ndash;Oh,
+yes! the cups. Clara, where are the cups? Oh, she&rsquo;s
+gone. Well, I&rsquo;m sure they&rsquo;re in that willow basket. I told
+Clara to pack towels around them good. I do hate to see
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_120' name='page_120'></a>120</span>
+cups all nicked up; yes, here they are. It&rsquo;s good of you to
+always tend the coffee, Mrs. Walters; you know just how
+to make it. I tell Mr. Dean nobody ever makes coffee like
+you can at a picnic. Now, if it&rsquo;s ready, I think everything
+else is; well, it soon will be with such a fire, and the corn&rsquo;s
+not done, anyway. Do you think the sun&rsquo;ll get round so as
+to shine on the table? I see it&rsquo;s creeping this way pretty
+fast, and they&rsquo;re all so scattered over the woods there&rsquo;s no
+telling when we will get every one here to eat. I see another
+tablecloth in your basket, Mrs. Ballard. If you&rsquo;ll be good
+enough to just hold that corner, we can cover everything up
+good, so, and then I&rsquo;ll walk about a bit and call them all
+together.&rdquo; And the kindly lady stepped briskly off through
+the woods, still talking, while Mrs. Ballard and Mrs. Walters
+sat themselves down in the shade and quietly watched the
+coffee and chatted.</p>
+<p>It was past the noon hour, and the air was drowsy and
+still. The voices and laughter of the nut gatherers came
+back to them from the deeper woods in the distance, and the
+crackling of the fire where Bertrand attended to the roasting
+of the corn near by, and the gentle sound of the lapping
+water on the river bank came to them out of the stillness.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I wonder if Mr. Walters tied the horses good!&rdquo; said his
+wife. &ldquo;Seems as if one&rsquo;s got loose. Don&rsquo;t you hear a
+horse galloping?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;They&rsquo;re all there eating,&rdquo; said Mary, rising and looking
+about. &ldquo;Some one&rsquo;s coming, away off there over the
+bluff; see?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I wonder, now! My, but he rides well. He must be
+coming here. I hope there&rsquo;s nothing the matter. It looks
+like&ndash;&ndash;it might be Peter Junior, only he&rsquo;s here already.&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_121' name='page_121'></a>121</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;It&rsquo;s&ndash;&ndash;it&rsquo;s&ndash;&ndash;no, it can&rsquo;t be&ndash;&ndash;it is! It&rsquo;s&ndash;&ndash;Bertrand,
+Bertrand! Why, it&rsquo;s Richard!&rdquo; cried Mary Ballard, as
+the horseman came toward them, loping smoothly along
+under the trees, now in the sunlight and now in the shadow.
+He leaped from the saddle, and, throwing the rein over a
+knotted limb, walked rapidly toward them, holding out a
+hand to each, as Bertrand and Mary hurried forward.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I couldn&rsquo;t let you good folks have one of these fine old
+times without me.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Why, when did you come? Oh, Richard! It&rsquo;s good
+to see you again,&rdquo; said Mary.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I came this morning. I went up to my uncle&rsquo;s and then
+to your house and found you all away, and learned that you
+were here and my twin with you, so here I am. How are
+the children? All grown up?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Almost. Come and sit down and give an account of
+yourself to Mary, while I try to get hold of the rest,&rdquo; said
+Bertrand.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Mrs. Dean has gone for them, father. Mrs. Walters,
+the coffee&rsquo;s all right; come and sit down here and let&rsquo;s
+visit until the others come. You remember Richard Kildene,
+Mrs. Walters?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Since he was a baby, but it&rsquo;s been so long since I&rsquo;ve seen
+you, Richard. I don&rsquo;t believe I&rsquo;d have known you unless
+for your likeness to Peter Junior. You look stronger than
+he now. Redder and browner.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I ought to. I&rsquo;ve been in the open air and sun for weeks.
+I&rsquo;m only here now by chance.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;A happy chance for us, Richard. Where have you been
+of late?&rdquo; asked Bertrand.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Out on the plains&ndash;&ndash;riding and keeping a gang of men
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_122' name='page_122'></a>122</span>
+under control, for the most part, and pushing the work as
+rapidly as possible.&rdquo; He tossed back his hair with the old
+movement Mary remembered so well. &ldquo;Tell me about the
+children, Martha and Betty; both grown up? Or still
+ready to play with a comrade?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;They&rsquo;re all here to-day. Martha&rsquo;s teaching in the city,
+but Betty&rsquo;s at home helping me, as always. The boys are
+getting such big fellows, and little Janey&rsquo;s as sweet as all the
+rest.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;There! That&rsquo;s Betty&rsquo;s laugh, I know. I&rsquo;d recognize
+it if I heard it out on the plains. I have, sometimes&ndash;&ndash;when
+a homesick fit gets hold of me out under the stars,
+when the noise of the camp has subsided. A good deal of
+that work is done by the very refuse of humanity, you
+know, a mighty tough lot.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;And you like that sort of thing, Richard?&rdquo; asked Mary.
+&ldquo;I thought when you went to your people in Scotland, you
+might be leading a very different kind of life by now.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I thought so, too, then; but I guess for some reasons
+this is best. Still, I couldn&rsquo;t resist stealing a couple of
+days to run up here and see you all. I got off a carload of
+supplies yesterday from Chicago, and then I wired back to
+the end of the line that I&rsquo;d be two days later myself. No
+wonder I followed you out here. I couldn&rsquo;t afford to waste
+the precious hours. I say! That&rsquo;s Betty again! I&rsquo;ll
+find them and say you&rsquo;re hungry, shall I?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, they&rsquo;re coming now. I see Martha&rsquo;s pink dress, and
+there&rsquo;s Betty in green over there.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>But Richard was gone, striding over the fallen leaves
+toward the spot of green which was Betty&rsquo;s gingham dress.
+And Betty, spying him, forgot she was grown up. She ran
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_123' name='page_123'></a>123</span>
+toward him with outstretched arms, as of old&ndash;&ndash;only&ndash;&ndash;just
+as he reached her, she drew back and a wave of red
+suffused her face. She gave him one hand instead of both,
+and called to Peter Junior to hurry.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Well, Betty Ballard! I can&rsquo;t jump you along now over
+stocks and stones as I used to. And here&rsquo;s everybody!
+Why, Jamie, what a great man you are! I&rsquo;ll have to take
+you back with me to help build the new road. And here&rsquo;s
+Bobby; and this little girl&ndash;&ndash;I wonder if she remembers
+me well enough to give me a kiss? I have nobody to kiss
+me now, when I come back. That&rsquo;s right. That&rsquo;s what
+Betty used to do. Why, hello! here&rsquo;s Clara Dean, and
+who&rsquo;s this? John Walters? So you&rsquo;re a man, too! Mr.
+Dean, how are you? And Mrs. Dean! You don&rsquo;t grow
+any older anyway, so I&rsquo;ll walk with you. Wait until I&rsquo;ve
+pounded this old chap a minute. Why didn&rsquo;t I write I was
+coming? Man, I didn&rsquo;t know it myself. I&rsquo;m under orders
+nowadays. To get here at all I had to steal time. So
+you&rsquo;re graduated from a crutch to a cane? Good!&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Every one exclaimed at once, while Richard talked right
+on, until they reached the riverside where the lunch was
+spread; and then the babble was complete.</p>
+<p>That night, as they all drove home in the moonlight,
+Richard tied his horse to the rear of the Ballards&rsquo; wagon and
+rode home seated on the hay with the rest. He placed
+himself where Betty sat on his right, and the two boys
+crowded as close to him as possible on his left. Little
+Janey, cuddled at Betty&rsquo;s side, was soon fast asleep with
+her head in her sister&rsquo;s lap, while Lucien Thurbyfil was well
+pleased to have Martha in the corner to himself. Peter
+Junior sat near Betty and listened with interest to his
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_124' name='page_124'></a>124</span>
+cousin, who entertained them all with tales of the plains
+and the Indians, and the game that supplied them with
+many a fine meal in camp.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Say, did you ever see a real herd of wild buffalo just
+tearing over the ground and kicking up a great dust and
+stampeding and everything?&rdquo; said Jamie.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, yes. And if you are out there all alone on your
+pony, you&rsquo;d better keep away from in front of them, too, or
+you&rsquo;d be trampled to death in a jiffy.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;What&rsquo;s stampeding?&rdquo; said Bobby.</p>
+<p>So Richard explained it, and much more that elicited
+long breaths of interest. He told them of the miles and
+miles of land without a single tree or hill, and only a sea of
+grass as far as the eye could reach, as level as Lake Michigan,
+and far vaster. And how the great railway was now approaching
+the desert, and how he had seen the bones of
+men and cattle and horses bleaching white, lying beside
+their broken-down wagons half buried in the drifting sand.
+He told them how the trail that such people had made with
+so much difficulty stretched far, far away into the desert
+along the very route, for the most part, that the railroad
+was taking, and answered their questions so interestingly
+that the boys were sorry when they reached home at last
+and they had to bid good-night to Peter Junior&rsquo;s fascinating
+cousin, Richard.</p>
+<hr class='toprule' />
+<div class='chsp'>
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_125' name='page_125'></a>125</span>
+<a name='CHAPTER_XI_BETTY_BALLARDS_AWAKENING' id='CHAPTER_XI_BETTY_BALLARDS_AWAKENING'></a>
+<h2>CHAPTER XI</h2>
+<h3>BETTY BALLARD&rsquo;S AWAKENING</h3>
+</div>
+<p>Mary and Bertrand always went early to church, for
+Bertrand led the choir, and it was often necessary for him
+to gather the singers together and try over the anthem before
+the service. Sometimes the rector would change the hymns,
+and then the choir must have one little rehearsal of them.
+Martha and Mr. Thurbyfil accompanied them this morning,
+and Betty and the boys were to walk, for four grown-ups
+with little Janey sandwiched in between more than filled
+the carryall.</p>
+<p>In these days Betty no longer had to wash and dress her
+brothers, but there were numerous attentions required of
+her, such as only growing boys can originate, and &ldquo;sister&rdquo;
+was as kind and gay in helping them over their difficulties
+as of old. So, now, as she stepped out of her room all
+dressed for church in her white muslin with green rose
+sprigs over it, with her green parasol, and her prayer book
+in her hand, Bobby called her.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, Sis! I&rsquo;ve broken my shoe string and it&rsquo;s time to
+start.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I have a new one in my everyday shoes, Bobby, dear;
+run upstairs and take it out. They&rsquo;re just inside the closet
+door. Wait a minute, Jamie; that lock stands straight
+up on the back of your head. Can&rsquo;t you make it lie down?
+Bring me the brush. You look splendid in your new
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_126' name='page_126'></a>126</span>
+trousers. Now, you hurry on ahead and leave this at the
+Deans&rsquo;. It&rsquo;s Clara&rsquo;s sash bow. I found it in the wagon
+after they left last night. Run, she may want to wear it
+to church.&ndash;&ndash;Yes, Bobby, dear, I sent him on, but you can
+catch up. Have you a handkerchief? Yes, I&rsquo;ll follow
+in a minute.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>And the boys rushed off, looking very clean in their
+Sunday clothing, and very old and mannish in their long
+trousers and stiff hats. Betty looked after them with
+pride, then she bethought her that the cat had not had her
+saucer of milk, and ran down to the spring to get it, leaving
+the doors wide open behind her. The day was quite warm
+enough for her to wear the summer gown, and she was very
+winsome and pretty in her starched muslin, with the delicate
+green buds sprayed over it. She wore a green belt,
+too, and the parasol she was very proud of, for she had
+bought it with her own chicken money. It was her heart&rsquo;s
+delight. Betty&rsquo;s skirt reached nearly to the ground, for
+she was quite in long dresses, and two little ruffles rippled
+about her feet as she ran down the path to the spring.
+But, alas! As she turned away after carefully fastening
+the spring-house door, the cat darted under her feet; and
+Betty stumbled and the milk streamed down the front of
+her dress and spattered her shoes&ndash;&ndash;and if there was anything
+Betty liked, it was to have her shoes very neat.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, Kitty! I hate your running under my feet that
+way all the time.&rdquo; Betty was almost in tears. She set
+the saucer down and tried to wipe off the milk, while the
+cat crouched before the dish and began drinking eagerly
+and unthankfully, after the manner of cats.</p>
+<p>Some one stood silently watching her from the kitchen
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_127' name='page_127'></a>127</span>
+steps as she walked slowly up the path, gazing down on the
+ruin of the pretty starched ruffles.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Why, Richard!&rdquo; was all she said, for something came up
+in her throat and choked her. She waited where she stood,
+and in his eyes, her aspect seemed that of despair. Was it
+all for the spilled milk?</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Why, Betty dear!&rdquo; He caught her and kissed her
+and laughed at her and comforted her all at once. &ldquo;Not
+tears, dear? Tears to greet me? You didn&rsquo;t half greet
+me last evening, and I came only to see you. Now you will,
+where there&rsquo;s no one to see and no one to hear? Yes.
+Never mind the spilled milk, you know better than that.&rdquo;
+But Betty lay in his arms, a little crumpled wisp of sorrow,
+white and still.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Away off there in Cheyenne I got to thinking of you,
+and I went to headquarters and asked to be sent on this
+commission just to get the chance to run up here and tell
+you I have been waiting all these years for you to grow up.
+You have haunted me ever since I left Leauvite. You
+darling, your laughing face was always with me, on the
+march&ndash;&ndash;in prison&ndash;&ndash;and wherever I&rsquo;ve been since. I&rsquo;ve
+been trying to keep myself right&ndash;&ndash;for you&ndash;&ndash;so I might
+dare some day to take you in my arms like this and tell
+you&ndash;&ndash;so I need not be ashamed before your&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, Richard, wait!&rdquo; wailed Betty, but he would not
+wait.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I&rsquo;ve waited long enough. I see you are grown up
+before I even dreamed you could be. Thank heaven I
+came now! You are so sweet some one would surely have
+won you away from me&ndash;&ndash;but no one can now&ndash;&ndash;no one.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Richard, why didn&rsquo;t you tell me this when you first
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_128' name='page_128'></a>128</span>
+came home from the war&ndash;&ndash;before you went to Scotland?
+I would&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Not then, sweetheart; I couldn&rsquo;t. I didn&rsquo;t even
+know then I would ever be worth the love of any woman;
+and&ndash;&ndash;you were such a child then&ndash;&ndash;I couldn&rsquo;t intrude
+my weariness&ndash;&ndash;my worn-out self on you. I was sick at
+heart when I got out of that terrible prison; but now it is
+all changed. I am my own man now, dependent on no one,
+and able to marry you out of hand, Betty, dear. After
+you&rsquo;ve told me something, I&rsquo;ll do whatever you say, wait
+as long as you say. No, no! Listen! Don&rsquo;t break away
+from me. You don&rsquo;t hate me as you do the cat. I haven&rsquo;t
+been running under your feet all the time, have I, dear?
+Listen. See here, my arms are strong now. They can
+hold you forever, just like this. I&rsquo;ve been thinking of you
+and dreaming of you and loving you through these years.
+You have never been out of my mind nor out of my heart.
+I&rsquo;ve kept the little housewife you made me and bound with
+your cherry-colored hair ribbon until it is in rags, but I
+love it still. I love it. They took everything I had about
+me at the prison; but this&ndash;&ndash;they gave back to me. It
+was the only thing I begged them to leave me.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Poor little Betty! She tried to speak and tried again,
+but she could not utter a word. Her mouth grew dry and
+her knees would not support her. Richard was so big and
+strong he did not feel her weight, and only delighted in the
+thought that she resigned herself to him. &ldquo;Darling little
+Betty! Darling little Betty! You do understand, don&rsquo;t
+you? Won&rsquo;t you tell me you do?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>But she only closed her eyes and lay quite still. She
+longed to lift her arms and put them about his neck, and
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_129' name='page_129'></a>129</span>
+the effort not to do so only crushed her spirit the more.
+Now she knew she was bad, and unworthy such a great love
+as this. She had let Peter Junior kiss her, and she had told
+him she loved him&ndash;&ndash;and it was nothing to this. She was
+not good; she was unworthy, and all the angels in heaven
+could never bring her comfort any more. She was so still
+he put his cheek to hers, and it seemed as if she moaned, and
+that without a sound.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Have I hurt you, Betty, dear?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, no, Richard, no.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Do you love me, sweet?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes, Richard, yes. I love you so I could die of loving
+you, and I can&rsquo;t help it. Oh, Richard, I can&rsquo;t help it.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;It&rsquo;s asking too much that you should love me so, and yet
+that&rsquo;s what my selfish, hungry heart wants and came here
+for.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Take your face away, Richard; stop. I must talk if
+it kills me. I have been so bad and wicked. Oh, Richard,
+I can&rsquo;t tell you how wicked. Let me stand by myself now.
+I can.&rdquo; She fought back the tears and turned her face
+away from him, but when he let go of her, in her weakness
+she swayed, and he caught her to him again, with many repeated
+words of tenderness.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;If you will take me to the steps, Richard, and bring me a
+glass of water, I think I can talk to you then. You remember
+where things are in this house?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Did he remember? Was there anything he had forgotten
+about this beloved place? He brought her the water and
+she made him sit beside her, but not near, only that she need
+not look in his eyes.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Richard, I thought something was love&ndash;&ndash;that was not&ndash;&ndash;I
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_130' name='page_130'></a>130</span>
+didn&rsquo;t know. It was only liking&ndash;&ndash;and&ndash;&ndash;and now I&ndash;&ndash;I&rsquo;ve
+been so wrong&ndash;&ndash;and I want to die&ndash;&ndash;Oh, I want to
+die! No, don&rsquo;t. Do you want to make me sin again?
+Oh, Richard, Richard! If you had only come before!
+Now it is too late.&rdquo; She began sobbing bitterly, and her
+small frame shook with her grief.</p>
+<p>He seized her wrists and his hand trembled. She tried
+to cover her face with her hands, but he took them down and
+held them.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Betty, what have you done? Tell me&ndash;&ndash;tell me quick.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Then she turned her face toward him, wet with tears.
+&ldquo;Have pity on me, Richard. Have pity on me, Richard,
+for my heart is broken, and the thing that hurts me most
+is that it will hurt you.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;But it wasn&rsquo;t yesterday when I came to you out there
+in the woods. I heard you laughing, and you ran to meet
+me as happy as ever&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You did not hear me laugh once again after you came
+and looked in my eyes there in the grove. It was in that
+instant that my heart began to break, and now I know why.
+Go back to Cheyenne. Go far away and never think of
+me any more. I am not worthy of you, anyway. I have
+let you hold me in your arms and kiss me when I ought not.
+Oh, I have been so bad&ndash;&ndash;so bad! Let me hide my face.
+I can&rsquo;t look in your eyes any more.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>But he was cruel. He made her look in his eyes and tell
+him all the sorrowful truth. Then at last he grew pitiful
+again and tried brokenly to comfort her, to make her feel that
+something would intervene to help them, but in his heart
+he knew that his cause was lost, and his hopes burned within
+him, a heap of smoldering coals dying in their own ashes.</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_131' name='page_131'></a>131</span></div>
+<p>He had always loved Peter Junior too well to blame him
+especially as Peter could not have known what havoc he
+was making of his cousin&rsquo;s hopes. It had all been a terrible
+mischance, and now they must make the best of it and be
+brave. Yet a feeling of resentment would creep into his
+heart in spite of his manful resolve to be fair to his cousin,
+and let nothing interfere with their lifelong friendship.
+In vain he told himself that Peter had the same right as he
+to seek Betty&rsquo;s love. Why not? Why should he think
+himself the only one to be considered? But there was
+Betty! And when he thought of her, his soul seemed to go
+out of him. Too late! Too late! And so he rose and
+walked sorrowfully away.</p>
+<p>When Mary Ballard came home from church, she found
+her little daughter up in her room on her knees beside her
+bed, her arms stretched out over the white counterpane,
+asleep. She had suffered until nature had taken her into
+her own soothing arms and put her to sleep through sheer
+weakness. Her cheeks were still burning and her eyelids
+red from weeping. Mary thought her in a fever, and gently
+helped her to remove the pretty muslin dress and got her to
+bed.</p>
+<p>Betty drew a long sigh as her head sank back into the
+pillow. &ldquo;My head aches; don&rsquo;t worry, mother, dear.&rdquo;
+She thought her heart was closed forever on her terrible
+secret.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Mother&rsquo;ll bring you something for it, dear. You must
+have eaten something at the picnic that didn&rsquo;t agree with
+you.&rdquo; She kissed Betty&rsquo;s cheek, and at the door paused to
+look back on her, and a strange misgiving smote her.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I can&rsquo;t think what ails her,&rdquo; she said to Martha. &ldquo;She
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_132' name='page_132'></a>132</span>
+seems to be in a high fever. Did she sleep well last
+night?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Perfectly, but we talked a good while before we went to
+sleep. Perhaps she got too tired yesterday. I thought she
+seemed excited, too. Mrs. Walters always makes her coffee
+so strong.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Peter Junior came in to dinner, buoyant and happy. He
+was disappointed not to see Betty, and frankly avowed it.
+He followed Mary into the kitchen and begged to be allowed
+to go up and speak to Betty for only a minute, but
+Mary thought sleep would be the best remedy and he would
+better leave her alone. He had been to church with his
+father, and all through the morning service as he sat at his
+father&rsquo;s side he had meditated how he could persuade the
+Elder to look on his plans with some degree of favor&ndash;&ndash;enough
+at least to warrant him in going on with them and
+trust to his father&rsquo;s coming around in time.</p>
+<p>Neither he nor Richard were at the Elder&rsquo;s at dinner,
+and the meal passed in silence, except for a word now and
+then in regard to the sermon. Hester thought continually
+of her son and his hopes, but as she glanced from time to
+time in her husband&rsquo;s face she realized that silence on her
+part was still best. Whenever the Elder cleared his throat
+and looked off out of the window, as was his wont when
+about to speak of any matter of importance, her heart
+leaped and her eyes gazed intently at her plate, to hide the
+emotion she could not restrain. Her hands grew cold and
+her lips tremulous, but still she waited.</p>
+<p>It was the Elder&rsquo;s custom to sleep after the Sunday&rsquo;s
+dinner, which was always a hearty one, lying down on the
+sofa in the large parlor, where the closed blinds made a
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_133' name='page_133'></a>133</span>
+pleasant somberness. Hester passed the door and looked
+in on him, as he lay apparently asleep, his long, bony frame
+stretched out and the muscles of his strong face relaxing to
+a softness they sometimes assumed when sleeping. Her
+heart went out to him. Oh, if he only knew! If she only
+dared! His boy ought to love him, and understand him.
+If they would only understand!</p>
+<p>Then she went up into Peter Junior&rsquo;s room and sat there
+where she had sat seven years before&ndash;&ndash;where she had often
+sat since&ndash;&ndash;gazing across at the red-coated old ancestor,
+her hands in her lap, her thoughts busy with her son&rsquo;s
+future even as then. If all the others had lived, would the
+quandary and the struggle between opposing wills have
+been as great for each one as for this sole survivor? Where
+were those little ones now? Playing in happy fields and
+waiting for her and the stern old man who also suffered, but
+knew not how to reveal his heart? Again and again the
+words repeated themselves in her heart mechanically:
+&ldquo;Wait on the Lord&ndash;&ndash;Wait on the Lord,&rdquo; and then, again,
+&ldquo;Oh, Lord, how long?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Peter Junior returned early from the Ballards&rsquo;, since he
+could not see Betty, leaving the field open for Martha and
+her guest, much to the guest&rsquo;s satisfaction. He went
+straight to the room occupied by Richard whenever he was
+with them, but no Richard was there. His valise was all
+packed ready for his start on the morrow, but there was no
+line pinned to the frame of the mirror telling Peter Junior
+where to find him, as was Richard&rsquo;s way in the past. With
+a fleeting glance around to see if any bit of paper had been
+blown away, he went to his own room and there he found his
+mother, waiting. In an instant that long ago morning
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_134' name='page_134'></a>134</span>
+came to his mind, and as then he went swiftly to her, and,
+kneeling, clasped her in his arms.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Are you worried, mother mine? It&rsquo;s all right. I will
+be careful and restrained. Don&rsquo;t be troubled.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Hester clasped her boy&rsquo;s head to her bosom and rested
+her face against his soft hair. For a while the silence was
+deep and the moments burned themselves into the young
+man&rsquo;s soul with a purifying fire never to be forgotten.
+Presently she began speaking to him in low, murmuring
+tones: &ldquo;Your father is getting to be an old man, Peter,
+dear, and I&ndash;&ndash;I am no longer young. Our boy is dear to
+us&ndash;&ndash;the dearest. In our different ways we long only for
+what is best for you. If only it might be revealed to you
+and us alike! Many paths are good paths to walk in, and
+the way may be happy in any one of them, for happiness
+is of the spirit. It is in you&ndash;&ndash;not made for you by circumstances.
+We have been so happy here, since you came
+home wounded, and to be wounded is not a happy thing,
+as you well know; but it seemed to bring you and me happiness,
+nevertheless. Did it not, dear?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Indeed yes, mother. Yes. It gave me a chance to
+have you to myself a lot, and that ought to make any man
+happy, with a mother like you. And now&ndash;&ndash;a new happiness
+came to me, the other day, that I meant to speak
+of yesterday and couldn&rsquo;t after getting so angry with
+father. It seemed like sacrilege to speak of it then,
+and, besides, there was another feeling that made me
+hesitate.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;So you are in love with some one, Peter?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes, mother. How did you guess it?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Because only love is a feeling that would make you say
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_135' name='page_135'></a>135</span>
+you could not speak of it when your heart is full of anger.
+Is it Betty, dear?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes, mother. You are uncanny to read me so.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>She laughed softly and held him closer. &ldquo;I love Betty,
+too, Peter. You will always be gentle and kind? You
+will never be hard and stern with her?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Mother! Have I ever been so? Can&rsquo;t you tell by
+the way I have always acted toward you that I would be
+tender and kind? She will be myself&ndash;&ndash;my very own.
+How could I be otherwise?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Again Hester smiled her slow, wise smile. &ldquo;You have
+always been tender, Peter, but you have always gone
+right along and done your own way, absolutely. The
+only reason there has not been more friction between
+you and your father has been that you have been tactful;
+also you have never seemed to desire unworthy things.
+You have been a good son, dear: I am not complaining.
+And the only reason why I have never&ndash;&ndash;or seldom&ndash;&ndash;felt
+hurt by your taking your own way has been that my likings
+have usually responded to yours, and the thing I most
+desired was that you should be allowed to take your own
+way. It is good for a man to be decided and to have a
+way of his own: I have liked it in you. But the matter
+still stands that it has always been your way and never
+any one&rsquo;s else that you have taken. I can see you being
+stern even with a wife you thought you wholly loved if her
+will once crossed yours.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Peter Junior was silent and a little hurt. He rose and
+paced the room. &ldquo;I can&rsquo;t think I could ever cross
+Betty, or be unkind. It seems preposterous,&rdquo; he said
+at last.</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_136' name='page_136'></a>136</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;Perhaps it might never seem to you necessary. Peter,
+boy, listen. You say: &lsquo;She will be myself&ndash;&ndash;my very
+own.&rsquo; Now what does that mean? Does it mean that
+when you are married, her personality will be merged in
+yours, and so you two will be one? If so, you will not be
+completed and rounded out, and she will be lost in you.
+A man does not reach his full manhood to completion until
+he has loved greatly and truly, and has found the one who
+is to complete him. At best, by ourselves, we are never
+wholly man or wholly woman until this great soul completion
+has taken place in us. Then children come to us, and
+our very souls are knit in one, and still the mystery goes on
+and on; never are we completed by being lost&ndash;&ndash;either
+one&ndash;&ndash;in the will or nature of the other; but to make the
+whole and perfect creature, each must retain the individuality
+belonging to himself or herself, each to each the perfect
+and equal other half.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Peter Junior paused in his walk and stood for a moment
+looking down on his mother, awed by what she revealed to
+him of her inner nature. &ldquo;I believe you have done this,
+mother. You have kept your own individuality complete,
+and father doesn&rsquo;t know it.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Not yet, but my hand will always be in his, and some
+day he will know. You are very like him, and yet you
+understand me as he never has, so you see how our oneness
+is wrought out in you. That which you have in you of
+your father is good and strong: never lose it. The day
+may come when you will be glad to have had such a father.
+Out in the world men need such traits; but you must not
+forget that sometimes it takes more strength to yield than
+to hold your own way. Yes, it takes strength and courage
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_137' name='page_137'></a>137</span>
+sometimes to give up&ndash;&ndash;and tremendous faith in God.
+There! I hear him walking about. Go down and have
+your talk with him. Remember what I say, dear, and
+don&rsquo;t get angry with your father. He loves you, too.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Have you said anything to him yet about&ndash;&ndash;me&ndash;&ndash;mother?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;No. I have decided that it will be better for you to
+deal with him yourself&ndash;&ndash;courageously. You&rsquo;ll remember?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Peter Junior took her again in his arms as she rose and
+stood beside him, and kissed her tenderly. &ldquo;Yes, mother.
+Dear, good, wise mother! I&rsquo;ll try to remember all. It
+would have been easier for you, maybe, if ever father&rsquo;s
+mother had said to him the things you have just said to
+me.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Life teaches us these things. If we keep an open mind,
+so God fills it.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>She stood still in the middle of the room, listening to his
+rapid steps in the direction of the parlor. Then Hester
+did a thing very unusual for her to do of a Sunday. She
+put on her shawl and bonnet and walked out to see Mary
+Ballard.</p>
+<p>No one ever knew what passed between Peter Junior and
+his father in that parlor. The Elder did not open his lips
+about it either at home or at the bank.</p>
+<p>That Sunday evening some one saw Peter Junior and his
+cousin walking together up the bluff where the old camp
+had stood, toward the sunset. The path had many windings,
+and the bluff was dark and brown, and the two figures
+stood out clear and strong against the sky of gold. That
+was the last seen of either of the young men in the village.
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_138' name='page_138'></a>138</span>
+The one who saw them told later that he knew they were
+&ldquo;the twins&rdquo; because one of them walked with a stick and
+limped a little, and that the other was talking as if he were
+very much in earnest about something, for he was moving
+his arm up and down and gesticulating.</p>
+<hr class='toprule' />
+<div class='chsp'>
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_139' name='page_139'></a>139</span>
+<a name='CHAPTER_XII_MYSTERIOUS_FINDINGS' id='CHAPTER_XII_MYSTERIOUS_FINDINGS'></a>
+<h2>CHAPTER XII</h2>
+<h3>MYSTERIOUS FINDINGS</h3>
+</div>
+<p>Monday morning Elder Craigmile walked to the bank
+with the stubborn straightening of the knees at each step
+that always betokened irritation with him. Neither of
+the young men had appeared at breakfast, a matter peculiarly
+annoying to him. Peter Junior he had not expected
+to see, as, owing to his long period of recovery, he had
+naturally been excused from rigorous rules, but his nephew
+surely might have done that much out of courtesy, where
+he had always been treated as a son, to promote the orderliness
+of the household. It was unpardonable in the young
+man to lie abed in the morning thus when a guest in that
+home. It was a mistake of his wife to allow Peter Junior
+a night key. It induced late hours. He would take it
+from him. And as for Richard&ndash;&ndash;there was no telling what
+habits he had fallen into during these years of wandering.
+What if he had come home to them with a clear skin and
+laughing eye! Was not the &ldquo;heart of man deceitful above
+all things and desperately wicked&rdquo;? And was not Satan
+abroad in the world laying snares for the feet of wandering
+youths?</p>
+<p>It was still early enough for many of the workmen to be
+on their way to their day of labor with their tin dinner pails,
+and among them Mr. Walters passed him, swinging his pail
+with the rest, although he was master of his own foundry
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_140' name='page_140'></a>140</span>
+and employed fifty men. He had always gone early to
+work, and carried his tin pail when he was one of the workmen,
+and he still did it from choice. He, too, was a Scotchman
+of a slightly different class from the Elder, it is true,
+but he was a trustee of the church, and a man well respected
+in the community.</p>
+<p>He touched his hat to the Elder, and the Elder nodded
+in return, but neither spoke a word. Mr. Walters smiled
+after he was well past. &ldquo;The man has a touch of the indigestion,&rdquo;
+he said.</p>
+<p>When the Elder entered his front door at noon, his first
+glance was at the rack in the corner of the hall, where, on
+the left-hand hook, Peter Junior&rsquo;s coat and hat had hung
+when he was at home, ever since he was a boy. They were
+not there. The Elder lifted his bushy brows one higher
+than the other, then drew them down to their usual straight
+line, and walked on into the dining room. His wife was
+not there, but in a moment she entered, looking white and
+perturbed.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Peter!&rdquo; she said, going up to her husband instead of
+taking her place opposite him, &ldquo;Peter!&rdquo; She laid a trembling
+hand on his arm. &ldquo;I haven&rsquo;t seen the boys this morning.
+Their beds have not been slept in.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Quiet yourself, lass, quiet yourself. Sit and eat in
+peace. &lsquo;Evil communications corrupt good manners,&rsquo;
+but when doom strikes him, he&rsquo;ll maybe experience a change
+of heart.&rdquo; The Elder spoke in a tone not unkindly. He
+seated himself heavily.</p>
+<p>Then his wife silently took her place at the table and he
+bowed his head and repeated the grace to which she had
+listened three times a day for nearly thirty years, only that
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_141' name='page_141'></a>141</span>
+this time he added the request that the Lord would, in his
+&ldquo;merciful kindness, strike terror to the hearts of all evildoers
+and turn them from their way.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>When the silent meal was ended, Hester followed her
+husband to the door and laid a detaining hand on his arm.
+He stood and looked down on that slender white hand as if
+it were something that too sudden a movement would
+joggle off, and she did not know that it was as if she had
+laid her hand on his very heart. &ldquo;Peter, tell me what
+happened yesterday afternoon. You should tell me,
+Peter.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Then the Elder did an unwonted thing. He placed his
+hand over hers and pressed it harder on his arm, and after
+an instant&rsquo;s pause he stooped and kissed her on the forehead.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I spoke the lad fair, Hester, and made him an offer, but
+he would none of it. He thinks he is his own master, but I
+have put him in the Lord&rsquo;s hands.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Has he gone, Peter?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Maybe, but the offer I made him was a good one.
+Comfort your heart, lass. If he&rsquo;s gone, he will return.
+When the Devil holds the whip, he makes a hard bargain,
+and drives fast. When the boy is hard pressed, he will be
+glad to return to his father&rsquo;s house.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Richard&rsquo;s valise is gone. The maid says he came late
+yesterday after I was gone, and took it away with him.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;They are likely gone together.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;But Peter&rsquo;s things are all here. No, they would never
+go like that and not bid me good-by.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>The Elder threw out his hands with his characteristic
+downward gesture of impatience. &ldquo;I have no way of
+knowing, more than you. It is no doubt that Richard has
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_142' name='page_142'></a>142</span>
+become a ne&rsquo;er-do-weel. He felt shame to tell us he was
+going a journey on the Sabbath day.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, Peter, I think not. Peter, be just. You know your
+son was never one to let the Devil drive; he is like yourself,
+Peter. And as for Richard, Peter Junior would never think
+so much of him if he were a ne&rsquo;er-do-weel.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Women are foolish and fond. It is their nature, and
+perhaps that is how we love them most, but the men should
+rule, for their own good. A man should be master in his
+own house. When the lad returns, the door is open to him.
+That is enough.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>With a sorrowful heart he left her, and truth to tell, the
+sorrow was more for his wife&rsquo;s hurt than for his own. The
+one great tenderness of his life was his feeling for her, and
+this she felt rather than knew; but he believed himself
+absolutely right and that the hurt was inevitable, and for
+her was intensified by her weakness and fondness.</p>
+<p>As for Hester, she turned away from the door and went
+quietly about her well-ordered house, directing the maidservant
+and looking carefully over her husband&rsquo;s wardrobe.
+Then she did the same for Peter Junior&rsquo;s, and at last, taking
+her basket of mending, she sat in the large, lace-curtained
+window looking out toward the west&ndash;&ndash;the direction from
+which Peter Junior would be likely to come. For how
+long she would sit there during the days to come&ndash;&ndash;waiting&ndash;&ndash;she
+little knew.</p>
+<p>She was comforted by the thought of the talk she had had
+with him the day before. She knew he was upright, and
+she felt that this quarrel&ndash;&ndash;if it had been a quarrel&ndash;&ndash;with
+his father would surely be healed; and then, there was
+Betty to call him back. The love of a girl was a good thing
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_143' name='page_143'></a>143</span>
+for a man. It would be stronger to draw him and hold
+him than love of home or of mother; it was the divine way
+for humanity, and it was a good way, and she must be patient
+and wait.</p>
+<p>She was glad she had gone without delay to Mary Ballard.
+The two women were fond of each other, and the visit had
+been most satisfactory. Betty she had not seen, for the
+maiden was still sleeping the long, heavy sleep which saves
+a normal healthy body from wreck after severe emotion.
+Betty was so young&ndash;&ndash;it might be best that matters should
+wait awhile as they were.</p>
+<p>If Peter Junior went to Paris now, he would have to earn
+his own way, of course, and possibly he had gone west with
+Richard where he could earn faster than at home. Maybe
+that had been the grounds of the quarrel. Surely she would
+hear from him soon. Perhaps he had taken their talk on
+Sunday afternoon as a good-by to her; or he might yet
+come to her and tell her his plans. So she comforted herself
+in the most wholesome and natural way.</p>
+<p>Richard&rsquo;s action in taking his valise away during her
+absence and leaving no word of farewell for her was more of
+a surprise to her. But then&ndash;&ndash;he might have resented the
+Elder&rsquo;s attitude and sided with his cousin. Or, he might
+have feared he would say things he would afterwards regret,
+if he appeared, and so have taken himself quietly away.
+Still, these reasons did not wholly appeal to her, and she
+was filled with misgivings for him even more than for her
+son.</p>
+<p>Peter Junior she trusted absolutely and Richard she loved
+as a son; but there was much of his father in him, and the
+Irish nature was erratic and wild, as the Elder said. Where
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_144' name='page_144'></a>144</span>
+was that father now? No one knew. It was one of the
+causes for anxiety she had for the boy that his father had
+been lost to them all ever since Richard&rsquo;s birth and his
+wife&rsquo;s death. He had gone out of their lives as completely
+as a candle in a gale of wind. She had mothered the boy,
+and the Elder had always been kind to him for his own dead
+sister&rsquo;s sake, but of the father they never spoke.</p>
+<p>It was while Hester Craigmile sat in her western window,
+thinking her thoughts, that two lads came hurrying down
+the bluff from the old camp ground, breathless and awed.
+One carried a straw hat, and the other a stout stick&ndash;&ndash;a
+stick with an irregular knob at the end. It was Larry
+Kildene&rsquo;s old blackthorn that Peter Junior had been carrying.
+The Ballards&rsquo; home was on the way between the bluff
+and the village, and Mary Ballard was standing at their
+gate watching for the children from school. She wished
+Jamie to go on an errand for her.</p>
+<p>Mary noticed the agitation of the boys. They were
+John Walters and Charlie Dean&ndash;&ndash;two chums who were
+always first to be around when there was anything unusual
+going on, or to be found. It was they who discovered the
+fire in the foundry in time to have it put out. It was they
+who knew where the tramps were hiding who had been
+stealing from the village stores, and now Mary wondered
+what they had discovered. She left the gate swinging open
+and walked down to meet them.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;What is it, boys?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;We&ndash;&ndash;we&ndash;&ndash;found these&ndash;&ndash;and&ndash;&ndash;there&rsquo;s something
+happened,&rdquo; panted the boys, both speaking at once.</p>
+<p>She took the hat of white straw from John&rsquo;s hand.
+&ldquo;Why! This is Peter Junior&rsquo;s hat! Where did you find
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_145' name='page_145'></a>145</span>
+it?&rdquo; She turned it about and saw dark red stains, as if
+it had been grasped by a bloody hand&ndash;&ndash;finger marks of
+blood plainly imprinted on the rim.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;And this, Mrs. Ballard,&rdquo; said Charlie, putting Peter
+Junior&rsquo;s stick in her hand, and pointing to the same red
+stains sunken into the knob. &ldquo;We think there&rsquo;s been a
+fight and some one&rsquo;s been hit with this.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>She took it and looked at it in a dazed way. &ldquo;Yes. He
+was carrying this in the place of his crutch,&rdquo; she said, as if
+to herself.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;We think somebody&rsquo;s been pushed over the bluff into
+the river, Mrs. Ballard, for they&rsquo;s a hunk been tore out as
+big as a man, from the edge, and it&rsquo;s gone clean over, and
+down into the river. We can see where it is gone. And
+it&rsquo;s an awful swift place.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>She handed the articles back to the boys.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Sit down in the shade here, and I&rsquo;ll bring you some sweet
+apples, and if any one comes by, don&rsquo;t say anything about it
+until I have time to consult with Mr. Ballard.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>She hurried back and passed quickly around the house,
+and on to her husband, who was repairing the garden
+fence.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Bertrand, come with me quickly. Something serious
+has happened. I don&rsquo;t want Betty to hear of it until we
+know what it is.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>They hastened to the waiting boys, and together they
+slowly climbed the long path leading to the old camping
+place. Bertrand carried the stick and the hat carefully,
+for they were matters of great moment.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;This looks grave,&rdquo; he said, when the boys had told him
+their story.</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_146' name='page_146'></a>146</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;Perhaps we ought to have brought some one with us&ndash;&ndash;if
+anything&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo; said Mary.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;No, no; better wait and see, before making a stir.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>It was a good half hour&rsquo;s walk up the hill, and every
+moment of the time seemed heavily freighted with foreboding.
+They said no more until they reached the spot
+where the boys had found the edge of the bluff torn away.
+There, for a space of about two feet only, back from the
+brink, the sparse grass was trampled, and the earth showed
+marks of heels and in places the sod was freshly torn up.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;There&rsquo;s been something happened here, you see,&rdquo; said
+Charlie Dean.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Here is where a foot has been braced to keep from being
+pushed over; see, Mary? And here again.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I see indeed.&rdquo; Mary looked, and stooping, picked something
+from the ground that glinted through the loosened
+earth. She held it on her open palm toward Bertrand, and
+the two boys looked intently at it. Her husband did not
+touch it, but glanced quickly into her eyes and then at the
+boys. Then her fingers closed over it, and taking her handkerchief
+she tied it in one corner securely.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Did you ever see anything like it, boys?&rdquo; she asked.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;No, ma&rsquo;am. It&rsquo;s a watch charm, isn&rsquo;t it? Or what?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I suppose it must be.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I guess the fellah that was being pushed over must &rsquo;a&rsquo;
+grabbed for the other fellah&rsquo;s watch. Maybe he was trying
+to rob him.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Let&rsquo;s see whether we can find anything else,&rdquo; said John
+Walters, peering over the bluff.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Don&rsquo;t, John, don&rsquo;t. You may fall over. It might have
+been a fall, and one of them might have been trying to save
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_147' name='page_147'></a>147</span>
+the other, you know. He might have caught at him and
+pulled this off. There&rsquo;s no reason why we should surmise
+the worst.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;They might ha&rsquo; been playing&ndash;&ndash;you know&ndash;&ndash;wrestling&ndash;&ndash;and
+it might &rsquo;a&rsquo; happened so,&rdquo; said Charlie.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Naw! They&rsquo;d been big fools to wrestle so near the
+edge of the bluff as this,&rdquo; said the practical John. &ldquo;I see
+something white way down there, Mrs. Ballard. I can get
+it, I guess.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;But take care, John. Go further round by the path.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Both boys ran along the bluff until they came to a path
+that led down to the river. &ldquo;Do be careful, boys!&rdquo; called
+Mary.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Now, let me see that again, my dear,&rdquo; and Mary untied
+the handkerchief. &ldquo;Yes, it is what I thought. That belonged
+to Larry Kildene. He got it in India, although he
+said it was Chinese. He was a year in the British service in
+India. I&rsquo;ve often examined it. I should have known it
+anywhere. He must have left it with Hester for the boy.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Poor Larry! And it has come to this. I remember
+it on Richard&rsquo;s chain when he came out there to meet us in
+the grove. Bertrand, what shall we do? They must have
+been here&ndash;&ndash;and have quarreled&ndash;&ndash;and what has happened!
+I&rsquo;m going back to ask Betty.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Ask Betty! My dear! What can Betty know about
+it?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Something upset her terribly yesterday morning. She
+was ill and with no cause that I could see, and I believe she
+had had a nervous shock.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;But she seemed all right this morning,&ndash;&ndash;a little pale,
+but otherwise quite herself.&rdquo; Bertrand turned the little
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_148' name='page_148'></a>148</span>
+charm over in his hand. &ldquo;He thought it was Chinese
+because it is jade, but this carving is Egyptian. I don&rsquo;t
+think it is jade, and I don&rsquo;t think it is Chinese.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;But whatever it is, it was on Richard&rsquo;s chain Saturday,&rdquo;
+said Mary, sadly. &ldquo;And now, what can we do? On
+second thought I&rsquo;ll say nothing to Betty. If a tragedy has
+come upon the Craigmiles, it will also fall on her now, and
+we must spare her all of it we can, until we know.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>A call came to them from below, and Bertrand hastily
+handed the charm back to his wife, and she tied it again in
+her handkerchief.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, Bertrand, don&rsquo;t go near that terrible brink.
+It might give way. I&rsquo;m sure this has been an accident.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;But the stick, Mary, and the marks of blood on Peter
+Junior&rsquo;s hat. I&rsquo;m afraid&ndash;&ndash;afraid.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;But they were always fond of each other. They have
+been like brothers.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;And quarrels between brothers are often the bitterest.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;But we have never heard of their quarreling, and they
+were so glad to see each other Saturday. And you know
+Peter Junior was always possessed to do whatever Richard
+planned. They were that way about enlisting, you remember,
+and everything else. What cause could Richard
+have against Peter Junior?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;We can&rsquo;t say it was Richard against Peter. You see
+the stick was bloody, and it was Peter&rsquo;s. We must offer
+no opinion, no matter what we think, for the world may turn
+against the wrong one, and only time will tell.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>They both were silent as the boys came panting up the
+bank. &ldquo;Here&rsquo;s a handkerchief. It was what I saw. It
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_149' name='page_149'></a>149</span>
+was caught on a thorn bush, and here&ndash;&ndash;here&rsquo;s Peter
+Junior&rsquo;s little notebook, with his name&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;This is Peter&rsquo;s handkerchief. P. C. J. Hester Craigmile
+embroidered those letters.&rdquo; Mary&rsquo;s eyes filled with tears.
+&ldquo;Bertrand, we must go to her. She may hear in some
+terrible way.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;And the book, where was that, John?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;It was lying on that flat rock. John had to crawl along
+the ledge on his belly to get it; and here, I found this lead
+pencil,&rdquo; cried Charlie, excited and important.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;&lsquo;Faber No. 2.&rsquo; Yes, this was also Peter&rsquo;s.&rdquo; Bertrand
+shut it in the notebook. &ldquo;Mary, this looks sinister. We&rsquo;d
+better go down. There&rsquo;s nothing more to learn here.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Maybe we&rsquo;ll find the young men both safely at home.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Richard was to leave early this morning.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I remember.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Sadly they returned, and the two boys walked with them,
+gravely and earnestly propounding one explanation after
+another.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You&rsquo;d better go back to the house, Mary, and I&rsquo;ll go
+on to the village with the boys. We&rsquo;ll consult with your
+father, John; he&rsquo;s a thoughtful man, and&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;And he&rsquo;s a coroner, too&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo; said John.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes, but if there&rsquo;s nobody found, who&rsquo;s he goin&rsquo; to sit
+on?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;They don&rsquo;t sit on the body, they sit on the jury,&rdquo; said
+John, with contempt.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Don&rsquo;t I know that? But they&rsquo;ve got to find the body,
+haven&rsquo;t they, before they can sit on anything? Guess I
+know that much.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Now, boys,&rdquo; said Bertrand, &ldquo;this may turn out to be a
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_150' name='page_150'></a>150</span>
+very grave matter, and you must keep silent about it. It
+won&rsquo;t do to get the town all stirred up about it and all manner
+of rumors afloat. It must be looked into quietly first,
+by responsible people, and you must keep all your opinions
+and surmises to yourselves until the truth can be learned.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Don&rsquo;t walk, Bertrand; take the carryall, and these can
+be put under the seat. Boys, if you&rsquo;ll go back there in the
+garden, you&rsquo;ll find some more apples, and I&rsquo;ll fetch you
+out some cookies to go with them.&rdquo; The boys briskly
+departed. &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t want Betty to see them, and we&rsquo;ll be
+silent until we know what to tell her,&rdquo; Mary added, as they
+walked slowly up the front path.</p>
+<p>Bertrand turned off to the stable, carrying the sad trophies
+with him, and Mary entered the house. She looked first for
+Betty, but no Betty was to be found, and the children were
+at home clamoring for something to eat. They always
+came home from school ravenously hungry. Mary hastily
+packed them a basket of fruit and cookies and sent them to
+play picnic down by the brook. Still no Betty appeared.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Where is she?&rdquo; asked Bertrand, as he entered the
+kitchen after bringing up the carryall.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know. She may have gone over to Clara Dean&rsquo;s.
+She spoke of going there to-day. I&rsquo;m glad&ndash;&ndash;rather.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes, yes.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>A little later in the day, almost closing time at the bank,
+James Walters and Bertrand Ballard entered and asked to
+see the Elder. They were shown into the director&rsquo;s room,
+and found him seated alone at the great table in the center.
+He pushed his papers one side and rose, greeting them with
+his grave courtesy, as usual.</p>
+<p>Mr. Walters, a shy man of few words, looked silently at
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_151' name='page_151'></a>151</span>
+Mr. Ballard to speak, while the Elder urged them to be
+seated. &ldquo;A warm day for the season, and very pleasant
+to have it so. We&rsquo;ll hope the winter may come late this
+year.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes, yes. We wish to inquire after your son, Elder
+Craigmile. Is he at home to-day?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Ah, yes. He was not at home&ndash;&ndash;not when I left this
+noon.&rdquo; The Elder cleared his throat and looked keenly
+at his friend. &ldquo;Is it&ndash;&ndash;ahem&ndash;&ndash;a matter of business, Mr.
+Ballard?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Unfortunately, no. We have come to inquire if he&ndash;&ndash;when
+he was last at home&ndash;&ndash;or if his cousin&ndash;&ndash;has been
+with you?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Not Richard, no. He came unexpectedly and has gone
+with as little ceremony, but my son was here on the Sabbath&ndash;&ndash;ahem&ndash;&ndash;He
+dined that day with you, Mr. Ballard?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;He did&ndash;&ndash;but&ndash;&ndash;Elder, will you come with us? A
+matter with regard to him and his cousin should be looked
+into.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;It is not necessary for me to interfere in matters regarding
+my son any longer. He has taken the ordering of
+his life in his own hands hereafter. As for Richard, he has
+long been his own master.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Elder, I beg you to come with us. We fear foul play
+of some sort. It is not a question now of family differences
+of opinion.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>The Elder&rsquo;s face remained immovable, and Bertrand reluctantly
+added, &ldquo;We fear either your son or his cousin,
+possibly both of them, have met with disaster&ndash;&ndash;maybe
+murder.&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_152' name='page_152'></a>152</span></div>
+<p>A pallor crept over the Elder&rsquo;s face, and without a word
+further he took his hat from a hook in the corner of the
+room, paused, and then carefully arranged the papers he had
+pushed aside at their entrance and placing them in his desk,
+turned the key, still without a word. At the door he
+waited a moment with his hand on the knob, and with the
+characteristic lift of his brows, asked: &ldquo;Has anything been
+said to my wife?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;No, no. We thought best to do nothing until under
+your direction.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Thank you. That&rsquo;s well. Whatever comes, I would
+spare her all I can.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>The three then drove slowly back to the top of the bluff,
+and on the way Bertrand explained to the Elder all that had
+transpired. &ldquo;It seemed best to Mary and me that you
+should look the ground over yourself, before any action be
+taken. We hoped appearances might be deceptive, and that
+you would have information that would set our fears at
+rest before news of a mystery should reach the town.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Where are the boys who found these things?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Mr. Walters spoke, &ldquo;My son was one of them, and he is
+now at home. They are forbidden to speak to any one until
+we know more about it.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Arrived at the top of the bluff the three men went carefully
+over the ground, even descending the steep path to the
+margin of the river.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;There,&rdquo; said Bertrand, &ldquo;the notebook was picked up on
+that flat rock which juts out from that narrow ledge. John
+Walters crawled along the ledge to get it. The handkerchief
+was caught on that thorn shrub, halfway up, see? And the
+pencil was picked up down here, somewhere.&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_153' name='page_153'></a>153</span></div>
+<p>The Elder looked up to the top of the bluff and down at
+the rushing river beneath, and as he looked he seemed visibly
+to shrink and become in the instant an old man&ndash;&ndash;older by
+twenty years. As they climbed back again, his shoulders
+drooped and his breath came hard. As they neared the top,
+Bertrand turned and gave him his aid to gain a firm footing
+above.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Don&rsquo;t forget that we can&rsquo;t always trust to appearances,&rdquo;
+he urged.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Some heavy body&ndash;&ndash;heavier than a clod of earth, has
+gone down there,&rdquo; said the Elder, and his voice sounded
+weak and thin.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes, yes. But even so, a stone may have been dislodged.
+You can&rsquo;t be sure.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Ay, the lads might have been wrestling in play&ndash;&ndash;or the
+like&ndash;&ndash;and sent a rock over; it&rsquo;s like lads, that,&rdquo; hazarded
+Mr. Walters.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Wrestling on the Sabbath evening! They are men, not
+lads.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Mr. Walters looked down in embarrassment, and the old
+man continued. &ldquo;Would a stone leave a handkerchief
+clinging to a thorn? Would it leave a notebook thrown
+down on yonder rock?&rdquo; The Elder lifted his head and
+looked to the sky: holding one hand above his head he shook
+it toward heaven. &ldquo;Would a stone leave a hat marked with
+a bloody hand&ndash;&ndash;my son&rsquo;s hat? There has been foul play
+here. May the curse of God fall on him who has robbed me
+of my son, be he stranger or my own kin.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>His voice broke and he reeled backward and would have
+fallen over the brink but for Bertrand&rsquo;s quickness. Then,
+trembling and bowed, his two friends led him back to the
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_154' name='page_154'></a>154</span>
+carryall and no further word was spoken until they reached
+the village, when the Elder said:&ndash;&ndash;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Will you kindly drive me to the bank, Mr. Ballard?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>They did so. No one was there, and the Elder quietly
+unlocked the door and carried the articles found on the bluff
+into the room beyond and locked them away. Bertrand
+followed him, loath to leave him thus, and anxious to make
+a suggestion. The Elder opened the door of a cupboard
+recessed into the wall and laid the hat on a high shelf. Then
+he took the stick and looked at it with a sudden awakening
+in his eyes as if he saw it for the first time.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;This stick&ndash;&ndash;this blackthorn stick&ndash;&ndash;accursed! How
+came it here? I thought it had been burned. It was left
+years ago in my front hall by&ndash;&ndash;Richard&rsquo;s father. I condemned
+it to be burned.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Peter Junior was using that in place of his crutch,
+no doubt because of its strength. He had it at my house,
+and I recognize it now as one Larry brought over with
+him&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Peter was using it! My God! My God! The blow
+was struck with this. It is my son who is the murderer,
+and I have called down the curse of God on him? It falls&ndash;&ndash;it
+falls on me!&rdquo; He sank in his chair&ndash;&ndash;the same in
+which he had sat when he talked with Peter Junior&ndash;&ndash;and
+bowed his head in his arms. &ldquo;It is enough, Mr. Ballard.
+Will you leave me?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I can&rsquo;t leave you, sir: there is more to be said. We
+must not be hasty in forming conclusions. If any one was
+thrown over the bluff, it must have been your son, for he
+was lame and could not have saved himself. If he struck
+any one, he could not have killed him; for evidently he
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_155' name='page_155'></a>155</span>
+got away, unless he also went over the brink. If he got
+away, he must be found. There is something for you to
+do, Elder Craigmile.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>The old man lifted his head and looked in Bertrand&rsquo;s
+face, pitifully seeking there for help. &ldquo;You are a good man,
+Mr. Ballard. I need your counsel and help.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;First, we will go below the rapids and search; the sooner
+the better, for in the strong current there is no telling how
+far&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes, we will search.&rdquo; The Elder lifted himself to his
+full height, inspired by the thought of action. &ldquo;We&rsquo;ll go
+now.&rdquo; He looked down on his shorter friend, and Bertrand
+looked up to him, his genial face saddened with sympathy,
+yet glowing with kindliness.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Wait a little, Elder; let us consider further. Mr. Walters&ndash;&ndash;sit
+down, Elder Craigmile, for a moment&ndash;&ndash;Mr. Walters
+is capable, and he can organize the search; for if you keep
+this from your wife, you must be discreet. Here is something
+I haven&rsquo;t shown you before. It is the charm from
+Richard&rsquo;s watch. It was almost covered with earth where
+they had been struggling, and Mary found it. You see there
+is a mystery&ndash;&ndash;and let us hope whatever happened was an
+accident. The evidences are so&ndash;&ndash;so&ndash;&ndash;mingled, that no
+one may know whom to blame.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>The Elder looked down on the charm without touching
+it, as it lay on Bertrand&rsquo;s palm. &ldquo;That belonged&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo; his
+lips twitched&ndash;&ndash;&ldquo;that belonged to the man who took from
+me my twin sister. The shadow&ndash;&ndash;forever the shadow of
+Larry Kildene hangs over me.&rdquo; He was silent for some
+moments, then he said: &ldquo;Mr. Ballard, if, after the search,
+my son is found to be murdered, I will put a detective on
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_156' name='page_156'></a>156</span>
+the trail of the man who did the deed, and be he whom he
+may, he shall hang.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Hush, Elder Craigmile; in Wisconsin men are not
+hanged.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I tell you&ndash;&ndash;be he whom he may&ndash;&ndash;he shall suffer what
+is worse than to be hanged, he shall enter the living grave of
+a life imprisonment.&rdquo;</p>
+<hr class='toprule' />
+<div class='chsp'>
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_157' name='page_157'></a>157</span>
+<a name='CHAPTER_XIII_CONFESSION' id='CHAPTER_XIII_CONFESSION'></a>
+<h2>CHAPTER XIII</h2>
+<h3>CONFESSION</h3>
+</div>
+<p>By Monday evening there were only two people in all the
+small town of Leauvite who had not heard of the tragedy,
+and these were Hester Craigmile and Betty Ballard. Mary
+doubted if it was wise to keep Hester thus in ignorance, but
+it was the Elder&rsquo;s wish, and at his request she went to spend
+the evening and if necessary the night with his wife, to fend
+off any officious neighbor, while he personally directed the
+search.</p>
+<p>It was the Elder&rsquo;s firm belief that his son had been murdered,
+yet he thought if no traces should be found of Peter
+Junior, he might be able to spare Hester the agony of that
+belief. He preferred her to think her son had gone off in
+anger and would sometime return. He felt himself justified
+in this concealment, fearing that if she knew the truth, she
+might grieve herself into her grave, and his request to Mary
+to help him had been made so pitifully and humbly that
+her heart melted at the sight of the old man&rsquo;s sorrow, and
+she went to spend those weary hours with his wife.</p>
+<p>As the Elder sometimes had meetings of importance to
+take him away of an evening, Hester did not feel surprise
+at his absence, and she accepted Mary&rsquo;s visit as one of
+sweet friendliness and courtesy because of Peter&rsquo;s engagement
+to Betty. Nor did she wonder that the visit was made
+without Bertrand, as Mary said he and the Elder had business
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_158' name='page_158'></a>158</span>
+together, and she thought she would spend the time
+with her friend until their return.</p>
+<p>That was all quite as it should be and very pleasant, and
+Hester filled the moments with cheerful chat, showing Mary
+certain pieces of cloth from which she proposed to make
+dainty garments for Betty, to help Mary with the girl&rsquo;s
+wedding outfit. To Mary it all seemed like a dream as she
+locked the sad secret in her heart and listened. Her friend&rsquo;s
+sorrow over Peter Junior&rsquo;s disagreement with his father
+and his sudden departure from the home was tempered by
+the glad hope that after all the years of anxiety, she was
+some time to have a daughter to love, and that her boy and
+his wife would live near them, and her home might again
+know the sound of happy children&rsquo;s voices. The sweet
+thoughts brought her gladness and peace of mind, and
+Mary&rsquo;s visit made the dream more sure of ultimate fulfillment.</p>
+<p>Mary felt the Elder&rsquo;s wish lie upon her with the imperative
+force of a law, and she did not dare disregard his request
+that on no account was Hester to be told the truth.
+So she gathered all her fortitude and courage to carry her
+through this ordeal. She examined the fine linen that had
+been brought to Hester years ago from Scotland by
+Richard&rsquo;s mother, and while she praised it she listened for
+steps without; the heavy tread of men bringing a sorrowful
+and terrible burden. But the minutes wore on, and no such
+sounds came, and the hour grew late.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;They may have gone out of town. Bertrand said
+something about it, and told me to stay until he called for
+me, if I stayed all night.&rdquo; Mary tried to laugh over it, and
+Hester seized the thought gayly.</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_159' name='page_159'></a>159</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;We&rsquo;ll go to bed, anyway, and your husband may just go
+home without you when he comes.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>And after a little longer wait they went to bed, and
+Hester slept, but Mary lay wakeful and fearing, until in
+the early morning, while it was yet dark, she heard the
+Elder slowly climb the stairs and go to his room. Then
+she also slept, hoping against hope, that they had found
+nothing.</p>
+<p>Betty&rsquo;s pride and shame had caused her to keep her
+trouble to herself. She knew Richard had gone forever, and
+she dreaded Peter Junior&rsquo;s next visit. What should she
+do! Oh, what should she do! Should she tell Peter she
+did not love him, and that all had been a mistake? She
+must humble herself before him, and what excuse had she
+to make for all the hours she had given him, and the caresses
+she had accepted? Ah! If only she could make the last
+week as if it had never been! She was shamed before her
+mother, who had seen him kiss her. She was ashamed even
+in her own room in the darkness to think of all Peter Junior
+had said to her, and the love he had lavished on her. Ought
+she to break her word to him and beg him to forget? Ah!
+Neither he nor she could ever forget.</p>
+<p>Her brothers had been forbidden to tell her a word of
+the reports that were already abroad in the town, and now
+they were both in bed and asleep, and little Janey was
+cuddled in Betty&rsquo;s bed, also in dreamland. At last, when
+neither her father nor her mother returned and she could
+bear her own thoughts no longer, she brought drawing
+materials down from the studio and spread them out on the
+dining room table.</p>
+<p>She had decided she would never marry any one&ndash;&ndash;never.
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_160' name='page_160'></a>160</span>
+How could she! But she would study in earnest and be an
+illustrator. If women could never become great artists, as
+Peter Junior said, at least they might illustrate books;
+and sometime&ndash;&ndash;maybe&ndash;&ndash;when her heart was not so sad,
+she might write books, and she could illustrate them herself.
+Ah, that would almost make up for what she must go without
+all her life.</p>
+<p>For a while she worked painstakingly, but all the time it
+seemed as though she could hear Richard&rsquo;s voice, and the
+words he had said to her Sunday morning kept repeating
+themselves over and over in her mind. Then the tears
+fell one by one and blurred her work, until at last she put
+her head down on her arms and wept. Then the door
+opened very softly and Richard entered. Swiftly he came
+to her and knelt at her side. He put his head on her knee,
+and his whole body shook with tearless sobs he could not
+restrain. He was faint and weak. She could not know
+the whole cause of his grief, and thought he suffered because
+of her. She must comfort him&ndash;&ndash;but alas! What could
+she say? How could she comfort him?</p>
+<p>She put her trembling hand on his head and found the
+hair matted and stiff. Then she saw a wound above his
+temple, and knew he was hurt, and cried out: &ldquo;You are
+hurt&ndash;&ndash;you are hurt! Oh, Richard! Let me do something
+for you.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>He clasped her in his arms, but still did not look up at
+her, and Betty forgot all her shame, and her lessons in propriety.
+She lifted his head to her bosom and laid her cheek
+upon his and said all the comforting things that came into
+her heart. She begged him to let her wash his wound and
+to tell her how he came by it. She forgot everything, except
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_161' name='page_161'></a>161</span>
+that she loved him and told him over and over the
+sweet confession.</p>
+<p>At last he found strength to speak to her brokenly.
+&ldquo;Never love me any more, Betty. I&rsquo;ve committed a
+terrible crime&ndash;&ndash;Oh, my God! And you will hear of it
+Give me a little milk. I&rsquo;ve eaten nothing since yesterday
+morning, when I saw you. Then I&rsquo;ll try to tell you what
+you must know&ndash;&ndash;what all the world will tell you soon.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>He rose and staggered to a chair and she brought him milk
+and bread and meat, but she would not let him talk to her
+until he had allowed her to wash the wound on his head and
+bind it up. As she worked the touch of her hands seemed to
+bring him sane thoughts in spite of the horror of himself
+that possessed him, and he was enabled to speak more
+coherently.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;If I had not been crazed when I looked through the
+window and saw you crying, Betty, I would never have let
+you see me or touch me again. It&rsquo;s only adding one crime
+to another to come near you. I meant just to look in and
+see if I could catch one glimpse of you, and then was going
+to lose myself to all the world, or else give myself up to be
+hung.&rdquo; Then he was silent, and she began to question him.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Don&rsquo;t! Richard. Hung? What have you done?
+What do you mean? When was it?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Sunday night.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;But you had to start for Cheyenne early this morning.
+Where have you been all day? I thought you were gone
+forever, dear.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I hid myself down by the river. I lay there all day, and
+heard them talking, but I couldn&rsquo;t see them nor they me.
+It was a hiding place we knew of when our camp was there&ndash;&ndash;Peter
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_162' name='page_162'></a>162</span>
+Junior and I. He&rsquo;s gone. I did it&ndash;&ndash;I did it with
+murder in my heart&ndash;&ndash;Oh, my God!&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Don&rsquo;t, Richard. You must tell me nothing except as
+I ask you. It is not as if we did not love each other. What
+you have done I must help you bear&ndash;&ndash;as&ndash;&ndash;as wives help
+their husbands&ndash;&ndash;for I will never marry; but all my life
+my heart will be married to yours.&rdquo; He reached for her
+hands and covered them with kisses and moaned. &ldquo;No,
+Richard, don&rsquo;t. Eat the bread and meat I have brought
+you. You&rsquo;ve eaten nothing for two days, and everything
+may seem worse to you than it is.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;No, no!&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Richard, I&rsquo;ll go away from you and leave you here alone
+if you don&rsquo;t eat.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes, I must eat&ndash;&ndash;not only now&ndash;&ndash;but all the rest of
+my life, I must eat to live and repent. He was my dearest
+friend. I taunted him and said bitter things. I goaded
+him. I was insane with rage and at last so was he. He
+struck me&ndash;&ndash;and&ndash;&ndash;and I&ndash;&ndash;I was trying to push him over
+the bluff&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Slowly it dawned on Betty what Richard&rsquo;s talk really
+meant.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Not Peter? Oh, Richard&ndash;&ndash;not Peter!&rdquo; She shrank
+from him, wide-eyed in terror.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;He would have killed me&ndash;&ndash;for I know what was in his
+heart as well as I knew what was in my own&ndash;&ndash;and we were
+both seeing red. I&rsquo;ve felt it sometimes in battle, and the
+feeling makes a man drunken. A man will do anything then.
+We&rsquo;d been always friends&ndash;&ndash;and yet we were drunken with
+hate; and now&ndash;&ndash;he&ndash;&ndash;he is better off than I. I must
+live. Unless for the disgrace to my relatives, I would give
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_163' name='page_163'></a>163</span>
+myself up to be hanged. It would be better to take the
+punishment than to live in such torture as this.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>The tears coursed fast down Betty&rsquo;s cheeks. Slowly she
+drew nearer him, and bent down to him as he sat, until she
+could look into his eyes. &ldquo;What were you quarreling about,
+Richard?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Don&rsquo;t ask me, darling Betty.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;What was it, Richard?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;All my life you will be the sweet help to me&ndash;&ndash;the help
+that may keep me from death in life. To carry in my soul
+the remembrance of last night will need all the help God
+will let me have. If I had gone away quietly, you and
+Peter Junior would have been married and have been
+happy&ndash;&ndash;but&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;No, no. Oh, Richard, no. I knew in a moment when
+you came&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes, Betty, dear, Peter Junior was good and faithful;
+and he might have been able to undo all the harm I had
+done. He could have taught you to love him. I have done
+the devil&rsquo;s work&ndash;&ndash;and then I killed him&ndash;&ndash;Oh, my
+God! My God!&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;How do you know you pushed him over? He may have
+fallen over. You don&rsquo;t know it. He may have&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Hush, dearest. I did it. When I came to myself, it
+was in the night; and it must have been late, for the moon
+was set. I could only see faintly that something white
+lay near me. I felt of it, and it was Peter Junior&rsquo;s hat.
+Then I felt all about for him&ndash;&ndash;and he was gone and I
+crawled to the edge of the bluff&ndash;&ndash;but although I knew he
+was gone over there and washed by the terrible current far
+down the river by that time, I couldn&rsquo;t follow him, whether
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_164' name='page_164'></a>164</span>
+from cowardice or weakness. I tried to get on my feet and
+could not. Then I must have fainted again, for all the
+world faded away, and I thought maybe the blow had done
+for me and I might not have to leap over there, after all. I
+could feel myself slipping away.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;When I awoke, the sun was shining and a bird was singing
+just as if nothing had happened, and I thought I had
+been dreaming an awful dream&ndash;&ndash;but there was the wound
+on my head and I was alive. Then I went farther down the
+river and came back to the hiding place and crept in there
+to wait and think. Then, after a long while, the boys came,
+and I was terrified for fear they were searching for me.
+That is the shameful truth, Betty. I feared. I never knew
+what fear was before. Betty, fear is shameful. There I
+have been all day&ndash;&ndash;waiting&ndash;&ndash;for what, I do not know;
+but it seemed that if I could only have one little glimpse of
+you I could go bravely and give myself up. I will now&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;No, Richard; it would do no good for you to die such a
+death. It would undo nothing, and change nothing. Peter
+was angry, too, and he struck you, and if he could have his
+way he would not want you to die. I say maybe he is
+living now. He may not have gone over.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;It&rsquo;s no use, Betty. He went down. I pushed him into
+that terrible river. I did it. I&ndash;&ndash;I&ndash;&ndash;I!&rdquo; Richard only
+moaned the words in a whisper of despair, and the horror
+of it all began to deepen and crush down upon Betty. She
+retreated, step by step, until she backed against the door
+leading to her chamber, and there she stood gazing at him
+with her hand pressed over her lips to keep herself from
+crying out. Then she saw him rise and turn toward the
+door without looking at her again, his head bowed in grief,
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_165' name='page_165'></a>165</span>
+and the sight roused her. As the door closed between them
+she ran and threw it open and followed him out into the
+darkness.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I can&rsquo;t, Richard. I can&rsquo;t let you go like this!&rdquo; She
+clung to him, sobbing her heart out on his bosom, and he
+clasped her and held her warm little body close.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I&rsquo;m like a drowning man pulling you under with me.
+Your tears drown me. I would not have entered the house
+if I had not seen you crying. Never cry again for me,
+Betty, never.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I will cry. I tell you I will cry. I will. I don&rsquo;t believe
+you are a murderer.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You must believe it. I am.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I loved Peter Junior and you loved him. You did not
+mean to do it.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I did it.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;If you did it, it is as if I did it, too. We both killed
+him&ndash;&ndash;and I am a murderer, too. It was because of me
+you did it, and if you give yourself up to be hung, I will give
+myself up. Poor Peter&ndash;&ndash;Oh, Richard&ndash;&ndash;I don&rsquo;t believe
+he fell over.&rdquo; For a long moment she sobbed thus.
+&ldquo;Where are you going, Richard?&rdquo; she asked, lifting her
+head.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know, Betty. I may be taken and can go nowhere.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes, you must go&ndash;&ndash;quick&ndash;&ndash;quick&ndash;&ndash;now. Some one
+may come and find you here.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;No one will find me. Cain was a wanderer over the
+face of the earth.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Will you let me know where you are, after you are
+gone?&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_166' name='page_166'></a>166</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;No, Betty. You must never think of me, nor let me
+darken your life.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Then must I live all the rest of the years without even
+knowing where you are?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes, love. Put me out of your life from now on, and it
+will be enough for me that you loved me once.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I will help you atone, Richard. I will try to be brave&ndash;&ndash;and
+help Peter&rsquo;s mother to bear it. I will love her for
+Peter and for you.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;God&rsquo;s blessing on you forever, Betty.&rdquo; He was gone,
+striding away in the darkness, and Betty, with trembling
+steps, entered the house.</p>
+<p>Carefully she removed every sign of his having been there.
+The bowl of water, and the cloth from which she had torn
+strips to bind his head she carried away, and the glass from
+which he had taken his milk, she washed, and even the
+crumbs of bread which had fallen to the floor she picked
+up one by one, so that not a trace remained. Then she took
+her drawing materials back to the studio, and after kneeling
+long at her bedside, and only saying: &ldquo;God, help Richard,
+help him,&rdquo; over and over, she crept in beside her little
+sister, and still weeping and praying chokingly clasped the
+sleeping child in her arms.</p>
+<p>From that time, it seemed to Bertrand and Mary that a
+strange and subtle change had taken place in their beloved
+little daughter; for which they tried to account as the
+result of the mysterious disappearance of Peter Junior. He
+was not found, and Richard also was gone, and the matter
+after being for a long time the wonder of the village, became
+a thing of the past. Only the Elder cherished the
+thought that his son had been murdered, and quietly set a
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_167' name='page_167'></a>167</span>
+detective at work to find the guilty man&ndash;&ndash;whom he would
+bring back to vengeance.</p>
+<p>Her parents were forced to acquaint Betty with the suspicious
+nature of Peter&rsquo;s disappearance, knowing she might
+hear of it soon and be more shocked than if told by themselves.
+Mary wondered not a little at her dry-eyed and
+silent reception of it, but that was a part of the change in
+Betty.</p>
+<hr class='pb' />
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_168' name='page_168'></a>168</span></div>
+<h2>BOOK TWO</h2>
+<hr class='toprule' />
+<div class='chsp'>
+<a name='CHAPTER_XIV_OUT_OF_THE_DESERT' id='CHAPTER_XIV_OUT_OF_THE_DESERT'></a>
+<h2>CHAPTER XIV</h2>
+<h3>OUT OF THE DESERT</h3>
+</div>
+<p>&ldquo;Good horse. Good horse. Good boy. Goldbug&ndash;&ndash;go
+it! I know you&rsquo;re dying, but so am I. Keep it up a
+little while longer&ndash;&ndash;Good boy.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>The young man encouraged his horse, while half asleep
+from utter weariness and faint with hunger and thirst.
+The poor beast scrambled over the rocks up a steep trail
+that seemed to have been long unused, or indeed it might be
+no trail at all, but only a channel worn by fierce, narrow
+torrents during the rainy season, now sun-baked and dry.</p>
+<p>The fall rains were late this year, and the yellow plains
+below furnished neither food nor drink for either man or
+beast. The herds of buffalo had long since wandered to
+fresher spaces nearer the river beds. The young man&rsquo;s
+flask was empty, and it was twenty-seven hours since either
+he or his horse had tasted anything. Now they had
+reached the mountains he hoped to find water and game if
+he could only hold out a little longer. Up and still up the
+lean horse scrambled with nose to earth and quivering flanks,
+and the young man, leaning forward and clinging to his seat
+as he reeled like one drunken, still murmured words of encouragement.
+&ldquo;Good boy&ndash;&ndash;Goldbug, go it. Good horse,
+keep it up.&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_169' name='page_169'></a>169</span></div>
+<p>All at once the way opened out on a jutting crest and
+made a sharp turn to the right, and the horse paused on the
+verge so suddenly that his rider lost his hold and fell headlong
+over into a scrub oak that caught him and held him
+suspended in its tough and twisted branches above a chasm
+so deep that the buzzards sailed on widespread wings round
+and round in the blue air beneath him.</p>
+<p>He lay there still and white as death, mercifully unconscious,
+while an eagle with a wild scream circled about and
+perched on a lightning-blasted tree far above and looked
+down on him.</p>
+<p>For a moment the yellow horse swayed weakly on the
+brink, then feeling himself relieved of his burden, he stiffened
+himself to a last great effort and held on along the
+path which turned abruptly away from the edge of the cliff
+and broadened out among low bushes and stunted trees.
+Here again the horse paused and stretched his neck and bit
+off the tips of the dry twigs near him, then turned his head
+and whinnied to call his master, and pricked his ears to
+listen; but he only heard the scream of the eagle overhead,
+and again he walked on, guided by an instinct as mysterious
+and unerring as the call of conscience to a human soul.</p>
+<p>Good old beast! He had not much farther to go. Soon
+there was a sound of water in the air&ndash;&ndash;a continuous roar,
+muffled and deep. The path wound upward, then descended
+gradually until it led him to an open, grassy space,
+bordered by green trees. Again he turned his head and
+gave his intelligent call. Why did not his master respond?
+Why did he linger behind when here was grass and water&ndash;&ndash;surely
+water, for the smell of it was fresh and sweet. But it
+was well he called, for his friendly nicker fell on human ears.</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_170' name='page_170'></a>170</span></div>
+<p>A man of stalwart frame, well built and spare, hairy and
+grizzled, but ruddy with health, sat in a cabin hidden among
+the trees not forty paces away, and prepared his meal of
+roasting quail suspended over the fire in his chimney and
+potatoes baking in the ashes.</p>
+<p>He lifted his head with a jerk, and swung the quail away
+from the heat, leaving it still suspended, and taking his rifle
+from its pegs stood for a moment in his door listening. For
+months he had not heard the sound of a human voice, nor
+the nicker of any horse other than his own. He called a
+word of greeting, &ldquo;Hello, stranger!&rdquo; but receiving no response
+he ventured farther from his door.</p>
+<p>Goldbug was eagerly grazing&ndash;&ndash;too eagerly for his own
+good. The man recognized the signs of starvation and led
+him to a tree, where he brought him a little water in his own
+great tin dipper. Then he relieved him of saddle and bridle
+and left him tied while he hastily stowed a few hard-tack
+and a flask of whisky in his pocket, and taking a lasso over
+his arm, started up the trail on his own horse.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Some poor guy has lost his way and gone over the cliff,&rdquo;
+he muttered.</p>
+<p>The young man still lay as he had fallen, but now his eyes
+were open and staring at the sky. Had he not been too
+weak to move he would have gone down; as it was, he
+waited, not knowing if he were dead or in a dream, seeing
+only the blue above him, and hearing only the scream of
+the eagle.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Lie still. Don&rsquo;t ye move. Don&rsquo;t ye stir a hair. I&rsquo;ll
+get ye. Still now&ndash;&ndash;still.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>The big man&rsquo;s voice came to him as out of a great chasm,
+scarcely heard for the roaring in his head, although he was
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_171' name='page_171'></a>171</span>
+quite near. His arms hung down and one leg swung free,
+but his body rested easily balanced in the branches. Presently
+he felt something fall lightly across his chest, slip
+down to his hand, and then crawl slowly up his arm to the
+shoulder, where it tightened and gripped. A vague hope
+awoke in him.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Now, wait. I&rsquo;ll get ye; don&rsquo;t move. I&rsquo;ll have a noose
+around ye&rsquo;r leg next,&ndash;&ndash;so.&rdquo; The voice had grown clearer,
+and seemed nearer, but the young man could make no response
+with his parched throat.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Now if I hurt ye a bit, try to stand it.&rdquo; The man carried
+the long loop of his lasso around the cliff and wound it
+securely around another scrub oak, and then began slowly
+and steadily to pull, until the young man moaned with
+pain,&ndash;&ndash;to cry out was impossible.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I&rsquo;ll have ye in a minute&ndash;&ndash;I&rsquo;ll have ye&ndash;&ndash;there! Catch
+at my hand. Poor boy, poor boy, ye can&rsquo;t. Hold on&ndash;&ndash;just
+a little more&ndash;&ndash;there!&rdquo; Strong arms reached for him.
+Strong hands gripped his clothing and lifted him from the
+terrible chasm&rsquo;s edge.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;He&rsquo;s more dead than alive,&rdquo; said the big man, as he
+strove to pour a little whisky between the stranger&rsquo;s set
+teeth. &ldquo;Well, I&rsquo;ll pack him home and do for him there.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>He lifted his weight easily, and placing him on his horse,
+led the animal to the cabin where he laid him in his own
+bunk. There, with cool water, and whisky carefully administered,
+the big man restored him enough to know that
+he was conscious.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;There now, you&rsquo;ll come out of this all right. You&rsquo;ve
+got a good body and a good head, young man,&ndash;&ndash;lie by a
+little and I&rsquo;ll give ye some broth.&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_172' name='page_172'></a>172</span></div>
+<p>The man took a small stone jar from a shelf and putting
+in a little water, took the half-cooked quail from the fire,
+and putting it in the jar set it on the coals among the ashes,
+and covered it. From time to time he lifted the cover and
+stirred it about, sprinkling in a little corn meal, and when the
+steam began to rise with savory odor, he did not wait for it
+to be wholly done, but taking a very little of the broth in a
+tin cup, he cooled it and fed it to his patient drop by drop
+until the young man&rsquo;s eyes looked gratefully into his.</p>
+<p>Then, while the young man dozed, he returned to his own
+uneaten meal, and dined on dried venison and roasted
+potatoes and salt. The big man was a good housekeeper.
+He washed his few utensils and swept the hearth with a
+broom worn almost to the handle. Then he removed the
+jar containing the quail and broth from the embers, and set
+it aside in reserve for his guest. Whenever the young man
+stirred he fed him again with the broth, until at last he
+seemed to sleep naturally.</p>
+<p>Seeing his patient quietly sleeping, the big man went out
+to the starving horse and gave him another taste of water,
+and allowed him to graze a few minutes, then tied him again,
+and returned to the cabin. He stood for a while looking
+down at the pallid face of the sleeping stranger, then he
+lighted his pipe and busied himself about the cabin, returning
+from time to time to study the young man&rsquo;s countenance.
+His pipe went out. He lighted it again and then sat
+down with his back to the stranger and smoked and gazed
+in the embers.</p>
+<p>The expression of his face was peculiarly gentle as he
+gazed. Perhaps the thought of having rescued a human
+being worked on his spirit kindly, or what not, but something
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_173' name='page_173'></a>173</span>
+brought him a vision of a pale face with soft, dark hair
+waving back from the temples, and large gray eyes looking
+up into his. It came and was gone, and came again, even
+as he summoned it, and he smoked on. One watching him
+might have thought that it was his custom to smoke and
+gaze and dream thus.</p>
+<p>At last he became aware that the stranger was trying to
+speak to him in husky whispers. He turned quickly.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Feeling more fit, are you? Well, take another sup of
+broth. Can&rsquo;t let you eat anything solid for a bit, but you
+can have all of the broth now if you want it.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>As he stooped over him the young man&rsquo;s fingers caught
+at his shirt sleeve and pulled him down to listen to his
+whispered words.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Pull me out of this&ndash;&ndash;quickly&ndash;&ndash;quickly&ndash;&ndash;there&rsquo;s
+a&ndash;&ndash;party&ndash;&ndash;down the&ndash;&ndash;mountain&ndash;&ndash;dying of thirst. Is this
+Higgins&rsquo; Camp? I&ndash;&ndash;I&ndash;&ndash;tried to get there for&ndash;&ndash;for
+help.&rdquo; He panted and could say no more.</p>
+<p>The big man whistled softly. &ldquo;Thought you&rsquo;d get to
+Higgins&rsquo; Camp? You&rsquo;re sixty miles out of the way&ndash;&ndash;or
+more,&ndash;&ndash;twice that, way you&rsquo;ve come. You took the wrong
+trail and you&rsquo;ve gone forty miles one way when you should
+have gone as far on the other. I did it myself once, and
+never undid it.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>The patient looked hungrily at the tin cup from which he
+had been taking the broth. &ldquo;Can you give me a little
+more?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes, drink it all. It won&rsquo;t hurt ye.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I&rsquo;ve got to get up. They&rsquo;ll die.&rdquo; He struggled and
+succeeded in lifting himself to his elbow and with the effort
+he spoke more strongly. &ldquo;May I have another taste of the
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_174' name='page_174'></a>174</span>
+whisky? I&rsquo;m coming stronger now. I left them yesterday
+with all the food&ndash;&ndash;only a bit&ndash;&ndash;and a little water&ndash;&ndash;not
+enough to keep them alive much longer. Yesterday&ndash;&ndash;God
+help them&ndash;&ndash;was it yesterday&ndash;&ndash;or days ago?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>The older man had a slow, meditative manner of speech
+as if he had long been in the way of speaking only to himself,
+unhurried, and at peace. &ldquo;It&rsquo;s no use your trying to
+think that out, young man, and I can&rsquo;t tell you. Nor you
+won&rsquo;t be able to go for them in a while. No.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I must. I must if I die. I don&rsquo;t care if I die&ndash;&ndash;but
+they&ndash;&ndash;I must go.&rdquo; He tried again to raise himself, but
+fell back. Great drops stood out on his forehead and into
+his eyes crept a look of horror. &ldquo;It&rsquo;s there!&rdquo; he said, and
+pointed with his finger.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;What&rsquo;s there, man?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;The eye. See! It&rsquo;s gone. Never mind, it&rsquo;s gone.&rdquo;
+He relaxed, and his face turned gray and his eyes closed for
+a moment, then he said again, &ldquo;I must go to them.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You can&rsquo;t go. You&rsquo;re delirious, man.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Then the stranger&rsquo;s lips twitched and he almost smiled.
+&ldquo;Because I saw it? I saw it watching me. It often is, and
+it&rsquo;s not delirium. I can go. I am quite myself.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>That half smile on the young man&rsquo;s face was reassuring
+and appealing. The big man could not resist it.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;See here, are you enough yourself to take care of yourself,
+if I leave you and go after them&ndash;&ndash;whoever they are?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes, oh, yes.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Will you be prudent&ndash;&ndash;stay right here, eat very sparingly?
+Are they back on the plain? If so, there is a long
+ride ahead of me, but my horse is fresh. If they are not
+off the trail by which you came, I can reach them.&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_175' name='page_175'></a>175</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;I did not once leave the trail after&ndash;&ndash;there was no other
+way I could take.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Would they likely stay right where you left them?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;They couldn&rsquo;t move if they tried. Oh, my God&ndash;&ndash;if
+I were only myself again!&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Never waste words wishing, young man. I&rsquo;ll get them.
+But you must give me your promise to wait here. Will you
+be prudent and wait?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes, yes.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You&rsquo;ll be stronger before you know it, and then you&rsquo;ll
+want to leave, you know, and go for them yourself. Don&rsquo;t do
+that. I&rsquo;ll give your horse a bit more to eat and drink, and
+tie him again, then there&rsquo;ll be no need for you to leave this
+bunk until to-morrow. I&rsquo;m to follow the trail you came up
+by, and not leave it until I come to&ndash;&ndash;whoever it is? Right.
+Do you give me your word, no matter how long gone I may
+be, not to leave my place here until I return, or send?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, yes, yes.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Good. I&rsquo;ll trust you. There&rsquo;s a better reason than I
+care to give you for this promise, young man. It&rsquo;s not a
+bad one.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>The big man then made his preparations rapidly, pausing
+now and then to give the stranger instructions as to where
+to find provisions and how to manage there by himself,
+and inquiring carefully as to the party he was to find. He
+packed saddlebags with supplies, and water flasks, and, as
+he moved about, continued to question and admonish.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;By the time I get back you&rsquo;ll be as well as ever you
+were. A couple of days&ndash;&ndash;and you&rsquo;ll be fuming round
+instead of waiting in patience&ndash;&ndash;that&rsquo;s what I tell you.
+I&rsquo;ll fetch them&ndash;&ndash;do you hear? I&rsquo;ll do it. Now what&rsquo;s
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_176' name='page_176'></a>176</span>
+your name? Harry King? Harry King&ndash;&ndash;very well, I have
+it. And the party? Father and mother and daughter.
+Family party. I see. Big fools, no doubt. No description
+needed, I guess. Bird? Name Bird? No. McBride,&ndash;&ndash;very
+good. Any name with a Mac to it goes on this mountain&ndash;&ndash;that
+means me. I&rsquo;m the mountain. Any one I
+don&rsquo;t want here I pack off down the trail, and <i>vice versa</i>.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Harry King lay still and heard the big man ride away.
+He heard his own horse stamping and nickering, and heaving
+a great sigh of relief his muscles relaxed, and he slept
+soundly on his hard bed. For hours he had fought off this
+terrible languor with a desperation born of terror for those
+he had left behind him, who looked to him as their only
+hope. Now he resigned their fate to the big man whose
+eyes had looked so kindly into his, with a childlike feeling
+of rest and content. He lay thus until the sun rose high
+in the heavens the next morning, when he was awakened
+by the insistent neighing of his horse which had risen almost
+to a cry of fear.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Poor beast. Poor beast,&rdquo; he muttered. His vocal
+chords seemed to have stiffened and dried, and his attempt
+to call out to reassure the animal resulted only in a hoarse
+croak. He devoured the meat of the little quail left in the
+jar and drank the few remaining drops of broth, then
+crawled out to look after the needs of his horse before making
+further search for food for himself. He gathered all his
+little strength to hold the frantic creature, maddened with
+hunger, and tethered him where he could graze for half an
+hour, then fetched him water as the big man had done, a
+little at a time in the great dipper.</p>
+<p>After these efforts he rested, sitting in the doorway in
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_177' name='page_177'></a>177</span>
+the sun, and then searched out a meal for himself. The
+big man&rsquo;s larder was well stocked, and although Harry
+King did not appear to be a western man, he was a good
+camper, and could bake a corn dodger or toss a flapjack
+with a fair amount of skill. As he worked, everything
+seemed like a dream to him. The murmuring of the trees
+far up the mountain side, the distant roar of falling water
+that made him feel as if a little way off he might find the
+sea, filled his senses with an impression of unseen forces at
+work all about him, and the peculiar clearness and lightness
+of the atmosphere made him feel as if he were swaying over
+the ground and barely touching his feet to the earth, instead
+of walking. He might indeed be in an enchanted land, were
+it not for his hunger and the reality of his still hungry horse.</p>
+<p>After eating, he again stretched himself on the earth and
+again slept until his horse awakened him. It was well.
+The sun was setting in the golden notch of the hills, and
+once more he set himself to the same task of laboriously
+giving his horse water and tethering him where the grass
+was lush and green, then preparing food for himself, then
+sitting in the doorway and letting the peace of the place
+sink into his soul.</p>
+<p>The horror of his situation when the big man found him
+had made no impression, for he had mercifully been unconscious
+and too stupefied with weariness to realize it.
+He had even no idea of how he had come to the cabin, or
+from which direction. Inertly he thought over it. A
+trail seemed to lead away to the southwest. He supposed
+he must have come by it, but he had not. It was only the
+path made by his rescuer in going to and fro between his
+garden patch and his cabin.</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_178' name='page_178'></a>178</span></div>
+<p>In the loneliness and peace of the dusk he looked up and
+saw the dome above filled with stars, and all things were
+so vast and inexplicable that he was minded to pray.
+The longing and the necessity of prayer was upon him, and
+he stood with arms uplifted and eyes fixed on the stars,&ndash;&ndash;then
+his head sank on his breast and he turned slowly into
+the cabin and lay down on the bunk with his hands pressed
+over his eyes, and moaned. Far into the night he lay
+thus, unsleeping, now and again uttering that low moan.
+Toward morning he again slept until far into the day, and
+thus passed the first two days of his stay.</p>
+<p>Strength came to him rapidly as the big man had said,
+and soon he was restlessly searching the short paths all
+about for a way by which he might find the plain below.
+He did not forget the promise which had been exacted from
+him to remain, no matter how long, until the big man&rsquo;s
+return, but he wished to discover whence he might arrive,
+and perhaps journey to meet him on the way.</p>
+<p>The first trail he followed led him to the fall that ever
+roared in his ears. He stood amazed at its height and
+volume, and its wonderful beauty. It lured him and drew
+him again and again to the spot from which he first viewed
+it. Midway of its height he stood where every now and
+then a little stronger breeze carried the fine mist of the fall
+in his face. Behind him lay the garden, ever watered thus
+by the wind-blown spray. Smoothly the water fell over a
+notch worn by its never ceasing motion in what seemed the
+very crest of the mountain far above him. Smoothly it
+fell into the rainbow mists that lost its base in a wonderful
+iridescence of shadows and quivering, never resting lights
+as far below him.</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_179' name='page_179'></a>179</span></div>
+<p>He caught his breath, and remembered the big man&rsquo;s
+words. &ldquo;You missed the trail to Higgins&rsquo; Camp a long
+way back. It&rsquo;s easily done. I did it myself once, and
+never undid it.&rdquo; He could not choose but return over and
+over to that spot. A wonderful ending to a lost trail for a
+lost soul.</p>
+<p>The next path he followed took him to a living spring,
+where the big man was wont to lead his own horse to water,
+and from whence he led the water to his cabin in a small
+flume to always drip and trickle past his door. It was at
+the end of this flume that Harry King had filled the large
+dipper for his horse. Now he went back and washed that
+utensil carefully, and hung it beside the door.</p>
+<p>The next trail he followed led by a bare and more forbidding
+route to the place where the big man had rescued
+him, and he knew it must be the one by which he had come.
+A sense of what had happened came over him terrifyingly,
+and he shrank from the abyss, his body quivering and his
+head reeling. He would not look down into the blue depth,
+knowing that if he did so, by that way his sanity would
+leave him, but he crawled cautiously around the projecting
+cliff and wandered down the stony trail. Now and again
+he called, &ldquo;Whoopee! Whoopee!&rdquo; but only his own
+voice came back to him many times repeated.</p>
+<p>Again and again he called and listened, &ldquo;Whoopee!
+Whoopee!&rdquo; and was regretful at the thought that he did
+not even know the name of the man who had saved him.
+Could he also save the others? The wild trail drew him
+and fascinated him. Each day he followed a little farther,
+and morning and evening he called his lonely cry, &ldquo;Whoopee!
+Whoopee!&rdquo; and still was answered by the echo in
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_180' name='page_180'></a>180</span>
+diminuendo of his own voice. He tried to resist the lure
+of that narrow, sun-baked, and stony descent, which he felt
+led to the nethermost hell of hunger and burning thirst, but
+always it seemed to him as if a cry came up for help, and
+if it were not that he knew himself bound by a promise, he
+would have taken his horse and returned to the horror
+below.</p>
+<p>Each evening he reasoned with himself, and repeated the
+big man&rsquo;s words for reassurance: &ldquo;I&rsquo;ll fetch them, do you
+hear? I&rsquo;ll fetch them,&rdquo; and again: &ldquo;I&rsquo;m the mountain.
+Any one I don&rsquo;t want here I pack off down the trail.&rdquo;
+Perhaps he had taken them off to Higgins&rsquo; Camp instead of
+bringing them back with him&ndash;&ndash;what then? Harry King
+bowed his head at the thought. Then he understood the
+lure of the trail. What then? Why, then&ndash;&ndash;he would
+follow&ndash;&ndash;follow&ndash;&ndash;follow&ndash;&ndash;until he found again the woman
+for whom he had dared the unknown and to whom he
+had given all but a few drops of water that were needed to
+keep him alive long enough to find more for her. He
+would follow her back into that hell below the heights.
+But how long should he wait? How long should he trust
+the man to whom he had given his promise?</p>
+<p>He decided to wait a reasonable time, long enough to
+allow for the big man&rsquo;s going, and slow returning&ndash;&ndash;long
+enough indeed for them to use up all the provisions he had
+packed down to them, and then he would break his promise
+and go. In the meantime he tried to keep himself sane
+by doing what he found to do. He gathered the ripe corn
+in the big man&rsquo;s garden patch and husked it and stored it
+in the shed which was built against the cabin. Then he
+stored the fodder in a sort of stable built of logs, one side of
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_181' name='page_181'></a>181</span>
+which was formed by a huge bowlder, or projecting part of
+the mountain itself, not far from the spring, where evidently
+it had been stored in the past, and where he supposed the
+man kept his horse in winter. He judged the winters must
+be very severe for the care with which this shed was covered
+and the wind holes stopped. And all the time he worked
+each day seemed a month of days, instead of a day of hours.</p>
+<p>At last he felt he was justified in trying to learn the cause
+of the delay at least, and he baked many cakes of yellow
+corn meal and browned them well on the hearth, and
+roasted a side of bacon whole as it was, and packed strips
+of dried venison, and filled his water flask at the spring.
+After a long hunt he found empty bottles which he wrapped
+round with husks and filled also with water. These he
+purposed to hang at the sides of his saddle. He had carefully
+washed and mended his clothing, and searching among
+the big man&rsquo;s effects, he found a razor, dull and long unused.
+He sharpened and polished and stropped it, and removed
+a vigorous growth of beard from his face, before a little
+framed mirror. To-morrow he would take the trail down
+into the horror from which he had come.</p>
+<p>Now it only remained for him to look well to the good
+yellow horse and sleep one more night in the friendly big
+man&rsquo;s bunk, then up before the sun and go.</p>
+<p>The nights were cold, and he thought he would replenish
+the fire on his hearth, for he always had the feeling that at
+any moment they might come wearily climbing up the
+trail, famished and cold. Any night he might hear the
+&ldquo;Halloo&rdquo; of the big man&rsquo;s voice. In the shed where he had
+piled the husked corn lay wood cut in lengths for the fireplace,
+and taking a pine torch he stooped to collect a few
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_182' name='page_182'></a>182</span>
+sticks, when, by the glare of the light he held, he saw what
+he had never seen in the dim daylight of the windowless
+place. A heavy iron ring lay at his feet, and as he kicked
+at it he discovered that it was attached to something
+covered with earth beneath.</p>
+<p>Impelled by curiosity he thrust the torch between the
+logs and removed the earth, and found a huge bin of hewn
+logs carefully fitted and smoothed on the inside. The cover
+was not fastened, but only held in place by the weight of
+stones and earth piled above it. This bin was half filled
+with finely broken ore, and as he lifted it in his hands yellow
+dust sifted through his fingers.</p>
+<p>Quivering with a strange excitement he delved deeper,
+lifting the precious particles by handfuls, feeling of it, sifting
+it between his fingers, and holding the torch close to the
+mass to catch the dull glow of it. For a long time he knelt
+there, wondering at it, dreaming over it, and feeling of it.
+Then he covered it all as he had found it, and taking the
+wood for which he had come, he replenished the fire and
+laid himself down to sleep.</p>
+<p>What was gold to him? What were all the riches of the
+earth and of the caves of the earth? Only one thought
+absorbed him,&ndash;&ndash;the woman whom he had left waiting for
+him on the burning plain, and a haunting memory that
+would never leave him&ndash;&ndash;never be stilled.</p>
+<hr class='toprule' />
+<div class='chsp'>
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_183' name='page_183'></a>183</span>
+<a name='CHAPTER_XV_THE_BIG_MANS_RETURN' id='CHAPTER_XV_THE_BIG_MANS_RETURN'></a>
+<h2>CHAPTER XV</h2>
+<h3>THE BIG MAN&rsquo;S RETURN</h3>
+</div>
+<p>The night was bitter cold after a day of fierce heat.
+Three people climbed the long winding trail from the plains
+beneath, slowly, carefully, and silently. A huge mountaineer
+walked ahead, leading a lean brown horse. Seated
+on the horse was a woman with long, pale face, and deeply
+sunken dark eyes that looked out from under arched, dark
+brows with a steady gaze that never wandered from some
+point just ahead of her, not as if they perceived anything
+beyond, but more as if they looked backward upon some
+terror.</p>
+<p>Behind them on a sorrel horse&ndash;&ndash;a horse slenderer and
+evidently of better stock than the brown&ndash;&ndash;rode another
+woman, also with dark eyes, now heavy lidded from weariness,
+and pale skin, but younger and stronger and more
+alert to the way they were taking. Her face was built on
+different lines: a smooth, delicately modeled oval, wide at
+the temples and level of brow, with heavy dark hair growing
+low over the sides of the forehead, leaving the center high,
+and the arch of the head perfect. Trailing along in the rear
+a small mule followed, bearing a pack.</p>
+<p>Sometimes the big man walking in front looked back and
+spoke a word of encouragement, to which the younger of
+the two women replied in low tones, as if the words were
+spoken under her breath.</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_184' name='page_184'></a>184</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;We&rsquo;ll stop and rest awhile now,&rdquo; he said at last, and led
+the horse to one side, where a level space made it possible
+for them to dismount and stretch themselves on the ground
+to give their weary limbs the needed relaxation.</p>
+<p>The younger woman slipped to the ground and led her
+horse forward to where the elder sat rigidly stiff, declining
+to move.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;It is better we rest, mother. The kind man asks us.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Non, Amalia, non. We go on. It is best that we not
+wait.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Then the daughter spoke rapidly in their own tongue,
+and the mother bowed her head and allowed herself to be
+lifted from the saddle. Her daughter then unrolled her
+blanket and, speaking still in her own tongue, with difficulty
+persuaded her mother to lie down on the mountain
+side, as they were directed, and the girl lay beside her,
+covering her tenderly and pillowing her mother&rsquo;s head on
+her arm. The big man led the animals farther on and sat
+down with his back against a great rock, and waited.</p>
+<p>They lay thus until the mother slept the sleep of exhaustion;
+then Amalia rose cautiously, not to awaken her,
+and went over to him. Her teeth chattered with the cold,
+and she drew a little shawl closer across her chest.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;This is a very hard way&ndash;&ndash;so warm in the day and so
+cold in the night. It is not possible that I sleep. The cold
+drives me to move.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You ought to have put part of that blanket over yourself.
+It&rsquo;s going to be a long pull up the mountain, and you
+ought to sleep a little. Walk about a bit to warm yourself
+and then try again to sleep.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes. I try.&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_185' name='page_185'></a>185</span></div>
+<p>She turned docilely and walked back and forth, then
+very quietly crept under the blanket beside her mother.
+He watched them a while, and when he deemed she also
+must be sleeping, he removed his coat and gently laid it
+over the girl. By that time darkness had settled heavily
+over the mountain. The horses ceased browsing among
+the chaparral and lay down, and the big man stretched himself
+for warmth close beside his sorrel horse, on the stony
+ground. Thus in the stillness they all slept; at last, over
+the mountain top the moon rose.</p>
+<p>Higher and higher it crept up in the sky, and the stars
+waned before its brilliant whiteness. The big man roused
+himself then, and looked at the blanket under which the
+two women slept, and with a muttered word of pity began
+gathering weeds and brush with which to build a fire. It
+should be a very small fire, hidden by chaparral from the
+plains below, and would be well stamped out and the charred
+place covered with stones and brush when they left it.
+Soon he had steeped a pot of coffee and fried some bacon,
+then he quickly put out his fire and woke the two women.
+The younger sprang up, and, finding his coat over her, took
+it to him and thanked him with rapid utterance.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, you are too kind. I am sorry you have deprive
+yourself of your coat to put it over me. That is why I
+have been so warm.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>The mother rose and shook out her skirt and glanced
+furtively about her. &ldquo;It is not the morning? It is the
+moon. That is well we go early.&rdquo; She drank the coffee
+hurriedly and scarcely tasted the bacon and hard biscuit.
+&ldquo;It is no toilet we have here to make. So we go more
+quickly. So is good.&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_186' name='page_186'></a>186</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;But you must eat the food, mother. You will be
+stronger for the long, hard ride. You have not here to
+hurry. No one follows us here.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Your father may be already by the camp, Amalia&ndash;&ndash;to
+bring us help&ndash;&ndash;yes. But of those men &lsquo;rouge&rsquo;&ndash;&ndash;if
+they follow and rob us&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>The two women spoke English out of deference to the big
+man, and only dropped into their own language or into
+fluent French when necessity compelled them, or they
+thought themselves alone.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Ah, but those red men, mother, they do not come here,
+so the kind man told us, for now they are also kind. Sit
+here and eat the biscuit. I will ask him.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>She went over to where he stood by the animals, pouring
+a very little water from the cans carried by the pack
+mule for each one. &ldquo;They&rsquo;ll have to hold out on this
+for the day, but they may only have half of it now,&rdquo; he
+said.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;What shall I do?&rdquo; Amalia looked with wide, distressed
+eyes in his face. &ldquo;She believes it yet, that my father lives
+and has gone to the camp for help. She thinks we go to
+him,&ndash;&ndash;to the camp. How can I tell her? I cannot&ndash;&ndash;I
+dare not.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Let her think what satisfies her most. We can tell her
+as much as is best for her to know, a little at a time, and
+there will be plenty of time to do it in. We&rsquo;ll be snowed up
+on this mountain all winter.&rdquo; The young woman did not
+reply, but stood perfectly still, gazing off into the moonlit
+wilderness. &ldquo;When people get locoed this way, the only
+thing is to humor them and give them a chance to rest
+satisfied in something&ndash;&ndash;no matter what, much,&ndash;&ndash;only so
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_187' name='page_187'></a>187</span>
+they are not hectored. No mind can get well when it is
+being hectored.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Hectored? That is to mean&ndash;&ndash;tortured? Yes, I
+understand. It is that we not suffer the mind to be tortured?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;About that, yes.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Thank you. I try to comfort her. But it is to lie to
+her? It is not a sin, when it is for the healing?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I&rsquo;m not authority on that, Miss, but I know lying&rsquo;s a
+blessing sometimes.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;If I could make her see the marvelous beauty of this way
+we go, but she will not look. Me, I can hardly breathe for
+the wonder&ndash;&ndash;yet&ndash;&ndash;I do not forget my father is dead.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I&rsquo;m starting you off now, because it will not be so hard
+on either you or the horses to travel by night, as long as
+it is light enough to see the way. Then when the sun comes
+out hot, we can lie by a bit, as we did yesterday.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Then is no fear of the red men we met on the plains?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;They&rsquo;re not likely to follow us up here&ndash;&ndash;not at this
+season, and now the railroad&rsquo;s going through, they&rsquo;re attracted
+by that.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Do they never come to you, at your home?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Not often. They think I&rsquo;m a sort of white &lsquo;medicine
+man&rsquo;&ndash;&ndash;kind of a hoodoo, and leave me alone.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>She looked at him with mystification in her eyes, but did
+not ask what he meant, and returned to her mother.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I have eaten. Now we go, is not?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes, mother. The kind man says we go on, and the
+red men will not follow us.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Good. I have afraid of the men &lsquo;rouge.&rsquo; Your father
+knows not fear; only I know it.&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_188' name='page_188'></a>188</span></div>
+<p>Soon they were mounted and traveling up the trail as
+before, the little pack mule following in the rear. No
+breeze stirred to make the frosty air bite more keenly, and
+the women rode in comparative comfort, with their hands
+wrapped in their shawls to keep them warm. They did
+not try to converse, or only uttered a word now and then in
+their own tongue. Amalia&rsquo;s spirit was enrapt in the beauty
+around and above and below her, so that she could not have
+spoken more than the merest word for a reply had she tried.</p>
+<p>The moonlight brought all the immediate surroundings
+into sharp relief, and the distant hills in receding gradations
+seemed to be created out of molten silver touched with
+palest gold. Above, the vault of the heavens was almost
+black, and the stars were few, but clear. Even the stones
+that impeded the horses&rsquo; feet seemed to be made of silver.
+The depths below them seemed as vast and black as the
+vault above, except for the silver bath of light that touched
+the tops of the gigantic trees at the bottom of the ca&ntilde;on
+around which they were climbing.</p>
+<p>The silence of this vastness was as fraught with mystery
+as the scene, and was broken only by the scrambling of the
+horses over the stones and their heavy breathing. Thus
+throughout the rest of the night they wended steadily upward,
+only pausing now and then to allow the animals to
+breathe, and then on. At last a thing occurred to break
+the stillness and strike terror to Amalia&rsquo;s heart. It had
+occurred once the day before when the silence was most
+profound. A piercing cry rent the air, that began in a
+scream of terror and ended in a long-drawn wail of despair.</p>
+<p>Amalia slipped from her horse and stumbled over the
+rough ground to her mother&rsquo;s side and poured forth a stream
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_189' name='page_189'></a>189</span>
+of words in her own tongue, and clasped her arms about the
+rigid form that did not bend toward her, but only sat staring
+into the white night as if her eye perceived a sight from
+which she could not turn away.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Look at me, mother. Oh, try to make her look at me!&rdquo;
+The big man lifted her from the horse, and she relaxed into
+trembling. &ldquo;There, it is gone now. Walk with me,
+mother;&rdquo; and the two walked for a while, holding hands,
+and Amalia talked unceasingly in low, soothing tones.</p>
+<p>After a little time longer the moon paled and the stars
+disappeared, and soon the sky became overspread with the
+changing coloring and the splendor of dawn. Then the
+sun rose out of the glory, but still they kept on their way
+until the heat began to overcome them. Then they halted
+where some pines and high rocks made a shelter, but this
+time the big man did not build a fire. He gave them a little
+coffee which he had saved for them from what he had
+steeped during the night, and they ate and rested, and
+the mother fell quickly into the sleep of exhaustion, as
+before.</p>
+<p>Thus during the middle of the day they rested, Amalia
+and the big man sometimes sleeping and sometimes conversing
+quietly.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know why mother does this. I never knew her
+to until yesterday. Father never used to let her look
+straight ahead of her as she does now. She has always been
+very brave and strong. She has done wonderful things&ndash;&ndash;but
+I was not there. When troubles came on my father,
+I was put in a convent&ndash;&ndash;I know now it was to keep me
+from harm. I did not know then why I was sent away
+from them, for my father was not of the religion of the good
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_190' name='page_190'></a>190</span>
+sisters at the convent,&ndash;&ndash;but now I know&ndash;&ndash;it was to save
+me.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Why did troubles come on your father?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;What he did I do not know, but I am very sure it was
+nothing wrong. In my country sometimes men have to
+break the law to do right; my mother has told me so. He
+was in prison a long time when I was living in the convent,
+sheltered and cared for,&ndash;&ndash;and mother&ndash;&ndash;mother was working
+all alone to get him out&ndash;&ndash;all alone suffering.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;How could they keep you there if she had to work so
+hard?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;My father had a friend. He was not of our country,
+and he was most kind and good. I think he was of Scotland&ndash;&ndash;or
+maybe of Ireland; I was so little I do not know.
+He saved for my mother some of her money so the government
+did not get it. I think my mother gave it to him,
+once&ndash;&ndash;before the trouble came. Maybe she knew it
+would come,&ndash;&ndash;anyway, so it was. I do not know if he was
+Irish, or of Scotland&ndash;&ndash;but he must have been a good man.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Been? Is he dead?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes. It was of a fever he died. My mother told me.
+He gave us his name, and to my father his papers to leave
+our country, for he knew he would die, or my father never
+could have got out of the country. I never saw him but
+once. When I saw you, I thought of him. He was grand
+and good, as are you. My mother came for me at the convent
+in Paris, and in the night we went to my father, and
+in the morning we went to the great ship. We said McBride,
+and all was well. If we had said Manovska when we
+took the ship, we would have been sent back and my father
+would have been killed. In the prison we would have
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_191' name='page_191'></a>191</span>
+died. It was hard to get on the ship, but when we got to
+this country, nobody cared who got off.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;How long ago was that?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;It was at the time of your great war we came. My
+mother wore the dress of our peasant women, and I did the
+same.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;And were you quite safe in this country?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;For a long time we lived very quietly, and we thought
+we were. But after a time some one came, and father took
+him in, and then others came, and went away again, and
+came again&ndash;&ndash;I don&rsquo;t know why&ndash;&ndash;they did not tell me,&ndash;&ndash;but
+this I know. Some one had a great enmity against my
+father, and at last mother took me in the night to a strange
+place where we knew no one, and then we went to another
+place&ndash;&ndash;and to still another. It was very wearisome.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;What was your father&rsquo;s business?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;My father had no business. He was what you call a
+nobleman. He had very much land, but he was generous
+and gave it nearly all away to his poor people. My father
+was very learned and studied much. He made much
+music&ndash;&ndash;very beautiful&ndash;&ndash;not for money&ndash;&ndash;never for that.
+Only after we came to this country did he so, to live. Once
+he played in a great orchestra. It was then those men found
+him and came so often that he had again to go away and
+hide. I think they brought him papers&ndash;&ndash;very important&ndash;&ndash;to
+be sacredly guarded until a right time should come
+to reveal them.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;And you have no knowledge why he was followed and
+persecuted?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I was so little at the beginning I do not know. If it
+was that in his religion he was different,&ndash;&ndash;or if he was trying
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_192' name='page_192'></a>192</span>
+to change in the government the laws,&ndash;&ndash;for we are not
+of Russia,&ndash;&ndash;I know that when he gave away his land, the
+other noblemen were very angry with him, and at the court&ndash;&ndash;where
+my father was sent by his people for reasons&ndash;&ndash;there
+was a prince,&ndash;&ndash;I think it was about my mother he
+hated my father so,&ndash;&ndash;but for what&ndash;&ndash;that I never heard.
+But he had my father imprisoned, and there in the prison
+they&ndash;&ndash;What was that word,&ndash;&ndash;hectored? Yes. In the
+prison they hectored him greatly&ndash;&ndash;so greatly that never
+more was he straight. It was very sad.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t think we would say hectored, for that. I think
+we would say tortured.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, yes. I see. To hector is of the mind, but torture
+is of the body. It is that I mean&ndash;&ndash;for they were very
+terrible to him. My mother was there, and they made her
+look at it to bring him the more quickly to tell for her sake
+what he would not for his own. I think when she looks
+long before her at nothing, she is seeing again the tortures
+of my father, and so she cries out in that terrible way. I
+think so.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;What were they trying to get out of him?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Amalia looked up in his face with a puzzled expression for
+a moment. &ldquo;Get&ndash;&ndash;out&ndash;&ndash;of&ndash;&ndash;him?&rdquo; she asked.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I mean, what did they want him to tell?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Ah, that I know not. It was never told. If they could
+find him, I think they would try again to learn of him something
+which he only can tell. I think if they could find my
+mother, they would now try to learn from her what my
+father knew, but her lips are like the grave. At that time
+he had told her nothing, but since then&ndash;&ndash;when we were far
+out in the wilderness&ndash;&ndash;I do not know. I hope my mother
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_193' name='page_193'></a>193</span>
+will never be found. Is it a very secret place to which we
+go?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I might call it that&ndash;&ndash;yes. I&rsquo;ve lived there for twenty
+years and no white man has found me yet, until the young
+man, Harry King, was pitched over the edge of eternity
+and only saved by a&ndash;&ndash;well&ndash;&ndash;a chance&ndash;&ndash;likely.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>The young woman gazed at him wide-eyed, and drew in
+her breath. &ldquo;You saved him.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;If he obeyed me&ndash;&ndash;I did.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;And all the twenty years were you alone?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I always had a horse.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;But for a companion&ndash;&ndash;had you never one?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Never.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Are you, too, a good man who has done a deed against
+the law of your land?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>The big man looked off a moment, then down at her with
+a little smile playing about his lips. &ldquo;I never did a deed
+against the law of any land that I know of, but as for the
+good part&ndash;&ndash;that&rsquo;s another thing. I may be fairly good as
+goodness goes.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Goodnessgoes!&rdquo; She repeated after him as if it were
+one word from which she was trying to extract a meaning.
+&ldquo;Was it then to flee from the wicked world that you lived
+all the twenty years thus alone?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Hardly that, either. To tell the truth, it may be only a
+habit with me.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Will you forgive me that I asked? It was only that to
+me it has been terrible to live always in hiding and fear. I
+love people, and desire greatly to have kind people near me,&ndash;&ndash;but
+of the world where my father and mother lived, and
+at the court&ndash;&ndash;and of the nobles, of all these I am afraid.&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_194' name='page_194'></a>194</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes, yes. I fancy you were.&rdquo; A grim look settled
+about his mouth, although his eyes twinkled kindly. He
+marveled to think how trustingly they accompanied him
+into this wilderness&ndash;&ndash;but then&ndash;&ndash;poor babes! What
+else could they do? &ldquo;You&rsquo;ll be safe from all the courts
+and nobles in the world where I&rsquo;m taking
+you.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;That is why my eyes do not weep for my father. He is
+now gone where none can find him but God. It is very
+terrible that a good man should always hide&ndash;&ndash;hide and
+live in fear&ndash;&ndash;always&ndash;&ndash;even from his own kinsmen. I understand
+some of the sorrows of the world.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You&rsquo;ll forget it all up there.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I will try if my mother recovers.&rdquo; She drew in her
+breath with a little quivering catch.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;We&rsquo;ll wake her now, and start on. It won&rsquo;t do to
+waste daylight any longer.&rdquo; Secretly he was afraid that
+they might be followed by Indians, and was sorry he had
+made the fire in the night, but he reasoned that he could
+never have brought them on without such refreshment.
+Women are different from men. He could eat raw bacon
+and hard-tack and go without coffee, when necessary, but to
+ask women to do so was quite another thing.</p>
+<p>For long hours now they traveled on, even after the moon
+had set, in the darkness. It was just before the dawn, where
+the trail wound and doubled on itself, that the sorrel horse
+was startled by a small rolling stone that had been loosened
+on the trail above them. Instantly the big man halted
+where they were.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Are you brave enough to wait here a bit by your
+mother&rsquo;s horse while I go on? That stone did not loosen
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_195' name='page_195'></a>195</span>
+itself. It may be nothing but some little beast,&ndash;&ndash;if it
+were a bear, the horses would have made a fuss.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>He mounted the sorrel and went forward, leaving her
+standing on the trail, holding the leading strap of her
+mother&rsquo;s horse, which tossed its head and stepped about
+restlessly, trying to follow. She petted and soothed the
+animal and talked in low tones to her mother. Then with
+beating heart she listened. Two men&rsquo;s voices came down
+to her&ndash;&ndash;one, the big man&rsquo;s&ndash;&ndash;and the other&ndash;&ndash;yes, she
+had heard it before.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;It is &rsquo;Arry King, mother. Surely he has come down to
+meet us,&rdquo; she said joyfully. She would have hurried on,
+but bethought herself she would better wait as she had been
+directed. Soon the big man returned, looking displeased
+and grim.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Young chap couldn&rsquo;t wait. He gave me his promise,
+but he didn&rsquo;t keep it.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;It was &rsquo;Arry King?&rdquo; He made no reply, and they
+resumed their way as before. &ldquo;It was long to wait, and
+nothing to do,&rdquo; she pleaded, divining his mood.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I had good reasons, Miss. No matter. I sent him
+back. No need of him here. We&rsquo;ll make it before
+morning now, and he will have the cabin warm and hot
+coffee for us, if you can stand to go on for a goodish long
+pull.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>A goodish long pull it surely was, in the darkness, but the
+women bore up with courage, and their guide led them
+safely. The horse Amalia rode, being his own horse, knew
+the way well.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Don&rsquo;t try to guide him; he&rsquo;ll take you quite safely,&rdquo;
+he called back to her. &ldquo;Let the reins hang.&rdquo; And in the
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_196' name='page_196'></a>196</span>
+dusk of early morning they safely turned the curve where
+Harry King had fallen, never knowing the danger.</p>
+<p>Harry King, standing in the doorway of the cabin, with
+the firelight bright behind him, saw them winding down the
+trail and hurried forward. They were almost stupefied
+with fatigue. He lifted the mother in his arms without a
+word and carried her into the cabin and laid her in the
+bunk, which he had prepared to receive her. He greeted
+Amalia with a quiet word as the big man led her in, and
+went out to the horses, relieved them of their burdens, and
+led them away to the shed by the spring. Soon the big
+man joined him, and began rubbing down the animals.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I will do this. You must rest,&rdquo; said Harry.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I need none of your help,&rdquo; he said, not surlily, as the
+words might sound, but colorlessly.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I needed yours when I came here&ndash;&ndash;or you saved me and
+brought me here, and now whatever you wish I&rsquo;ll do, but
+for to-night you must take my help. I&rsquo;m not apologizing
+for what I did, because I thought it right, but&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Peace, man, peace. I&rsquo;ve lived a long time with no man
+to gainsay me. I&rsquo;ll take what comes now and thank the
+Lord it&rsquo;s no worse. We&rsquo;ll leave the cabin to the women,
+after I see that they have no fright about it, and we&rsquo;ll sleep
+in the fodder. There have been worse beds.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I have coffee on the hearth, hot, and corn dodgers&ndash;&ndash;such
+as we used to make in the army. I&rsquo;ve made them
+often before.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Turn the beasts free; there isn&rsquo;t room for them all in
+the shed, and I&rsquo;ll go get a bite and join you soon.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>So Harry King did not return to the cabin that night,
+much as he desired to see Amalia again, but lay down on
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_197' name='page_197'></a>197</span>
+the fodder and tried to sleep. His heart throbbed gladly
+at the thought of her safety. He had not dared to inquire
+after her father. Although he had seen so little of the big
+man he understood his mood, and having received such great
+kindness at his hands, he was truly sorry at the invasion
+of his peace. Undoubtedly he did not like to have a family,
+gathered from the Lord only knew where, suddenly
+quartered on him for none knew how long.</p>
+<p>The cabin was only meant for a hermit of a man, and
+little suited to women and their needs. A mixed household
+required more rooms. He tried to think the matter
+through and to plan, but the effort brought drowsiness, and
+before the big man returned he was asleep.</p>
+<hr class='toprule' />
+<div class='chsp'>
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_198' name='page_198'></a>198</span>
+<a name='CHAPTER_XVI_A_PECULIAR_POSITION' id='CHAPTER_XVI_A_PECULIAR_POSITION'></a>
+<h2>CHAPTER XVI</h2>
+<h3>A PECULIAR POSITION</h3>
+</div>
+<p>&ldquo;Well, young man, we find ourselves in what I call a
+peculiar position.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>A smile that would have been sardonic, were it not for a
+few lines around the corners of his eyes which belied any
+sinister suspicion, spread grimly across the big man&rsquo;s face
+as he stood looking down on Harry King in the dusk of the
+unlighted shed. The younger man rose quickly from the
+fodder where he had slept heavily after the fatigues of
+the past day and night, and stood respectfully looking into
+the big man&rsquo;s face.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I&ndash;&ndash;I&ndash;&ndash;realize the situation. I thought about it
+after I turned in here&ndash;&ndash;before you came down&ndash;&ndash;or up&ndash;&ndash;to
+this&ndash;&ndash;ahem&ndash;&ndash;bedroom. I can take myself off,
+sir. And if there were any way&ndash;&ndash;of relieving you of&ndash;&ndash;the&ndash;&ndash;whole&ndash;&ndash;embarrassment,&ndash;&ndash;I&ndash;&ndash;I&ndash;&ndash;would
+do so.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Everything&rsquo;s quiet down at the cabin. I&rsquo;ve been there
+and looked about a bit. They had need of sleep. You go
+back to your bunk, and I&rsquo;ll take mine, and we&rsquo;ll talk the
+thing over before we see them again. As for your taking
+yourself off, that remains to be seen. I&rsquo;m not crabbed,
+that&rsquo;s not the secret of my life alone,&ndash;&ndash;though you might
+think it. I&ndash;&ndash;ahem&ndash;&ndash;ahem.&rdquo; The big man cleared his
+throat and stretched his spare frame full length on the
+fodder where he had slept. With his elbow on the bed of
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_199' name='page_199'></a>199</span>
+corn stalks he lifted his head on his hand and gazed at Harry
+King, not dreamily as when he first saw him, but with covert
+keenness.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Lie down in your place&ndash;&ndash;a bit&ndash;&ndash;lie down. We&rsquo;ll
+talk until we&rsquo;ve arrived at a conclusion, and it may be a
+long talk, so we may as well be comfortable.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Harry King went back to his own bunk and lay
+prone, his forehead resting on his folded arms and his face
+hidden. &ldquo;Very well, sir; I&rsquo;ll do my best. We have to
+accept each other for the best there is in us, I take it.
+You&rsquo;ve saved my life and the life of those two women, and
+we all owe you our grat&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Go to, go to. It&rsquo;s not of that I&rsquo;m wishing to speak.
+Let&rsquo;s begin at the beginning, or, as near the beginning as
+we can. I&rsquo;ve been standing here looking at you while
+you were sleeping,&ndash;&ndash;and last night&ndash;&ndash;I mean early this
+morning when I came up here, I&ndash;&ndash;with a torch I studied
+your face well and long. A man betrays his true nature
+when he is sleeping. The lines of what he has been
+thinking and feeling show then when he cannot disguise
+them by smiles or words. I&rsquo;m old enough to be your
+father&ndash;&ndash;yes&ndash;&ndash;so it might have been&ndash;&ndash;and with your
+permission I&rsquo;ll talk to you straight.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Harry King lifted his head and looked at the other, then
+resumed his former position. &ldquo;Thank you,&rdquo; was all he
+said.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You&rsquo;ve been well bred. You&rsquo;re in trouble. I ask you
+what is your true name and what you have done?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>The young man did not speak. He lay still as if he had
+heard nothing, but the other saw his hands clinch into
+knotted fists and the muscles of his arms grow rigid. His
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_200' name='page_200'></a>200</span>
+heart beat heavily and the blood roared in his ears. At
+last he lifted his head and looked back at the big man and
+spoke monotonously.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I gave you my name&ndash;&ndash;all the name I have.&rdquo; His
+face was white in the dim light and the lids drew close over
+his gray eyes.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You prefer to lie to me? I ask in good faith.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;All the name I have is the one I gave you, Harry King.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;And you will hold to the lie?&rdquo; They looked steadily
+into each other&rsquo;s eyes. The young man nodded. &ldquo;And
+there was more I asked of you.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Then the young man turned away from the keen eyes
+that had held him and sat up in the fodder and clasped his
+knees with his hands and looked straight out before him,
+regarding nothing&ndash;&ndash;nothing but his own thoughts. A
+strange expression crept over his face,&ndash;&ndash;was it fear&ndash;&ndash;or
+was it an inward terror? Suddenly he put out his hand
+with a frantic gesture toward the darkest corner of the
+place, &ldquo;It&rsquo;s there,&rdquo; he cried in a voice scarcely above a
+whisper, then hid his eyes and moaned. At the sight, the
+big man&rsquo;s face softened.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Lad, lad, ye&rsquo;re in trouble. I saved your body as it
+hung over the cliff&ndash;&ndash;and the Lord only knows how ye
+were saved. I took ye home and laid ye in my own bunk,&ndash;&ndash;and
+looked on your face&ndash;&ndash;and there my heart cried on
+the Lord for the first time in many years. I had forsworn
+the company of men, and of all women,&ndash;&ndash;and the faith of
+my fathers had died in me,&ndash;&ndash;but there, as I looked on your
+face&ndash;&ndash;the lost years came back. And now&ndash;&ndash;ye&rsquo;re only
+Harry King. Only Harry King.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;That&rsquo;s all.&rdquo; The young man&rsquo;s lips set tightly and the
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_201' name='page_201'></a>201</span>
+cords of his neck stood out. Nothing was lost to the eyes
+that watched him so intently.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I had a son&ndash;&ndash;once. I held him in my arms&ndash;&ndash;for an
+hour&ndash;&ndash;and then left him forever. You have a face that
+reminds me of one&ndash;&ndash;one I hated&ndash;&ndash;and it minds me of
+one I&ndash;&ndash;I&ndash;&ndash;loved,&ndash;&ndash;of one I loved better than I loved
+life.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Then Harry King turned and gazed in the big man&rsquo;s
+eyes, and as he gazed, the withdrawn, inward look left his
+own. He still sat clasping his knees. &ldquo;I can more easily
+tell you what I have done than I can tell you my name. I
+have sworn never to utter it again.&rdquo; He was weeping,
+but he hid his tears for very shame of them.</p>
+<p>The older man shook his head. &ldquo;I&rsquo;ve known sorrow,
+boy, but the lesson of it, never. Men say there is a thing
+to be learned from sorrow, but to me it has brought only
+rebellion and bitterness. So I&rsquo;ve missed the good of it
+because it came upon me through arrogance and injustice&ndash;&ndash;not
+my own. So now I say to you&ndash;&ndash;if it was at the
+expense of your soul I saved your life, it were better I had
+let you go down. Lad,&ndash;&ndash;you&rsquo;ve brought me a softness,&ndash;&ndash;it&rsquo;s
+like what a man feels for a woman. I&rsquo;m glad it&rsquo;s come
+back to me. It is good to feel. I&rsquo;d make a son of you,&ndash;&ndash;but&ndash;&ndash;for
+the truth&rsquo;s sake tell me a bit more.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I had a friend and I killed him. I was angry and killed
+him. I have left my name in his grave.&rdquo; Harry King
+rose and walked away and stood shivering in the entrance
+of the shed. Then he came back and spoke humbly. &ldquo;Do
+with me what you will, but call me Harry King. I have
+nothing on earth but the clothes on my body, and they are
+in rags. If you have work for me to do, let me do it,
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_202' name='page_202'></a>202</span>
+in mercy. If not, let me go back to the plains and die
+there.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;How long ago was this?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;More&ndash;&ndash;more than two years ago&ndash;&ndash;yes, three&ndash;&ndash;perhaps.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;And where have you been?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Knocking about&ndash;&ndash;hiding. For a while I had work on
+the road they are building&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Road? What road?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;The new railroad across the continent.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Where, young man, where?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;From Chicago on. They got it as far as Cheyenne, but
+that was the very place of all others where they would be
+apt to hunt for me. I got news of a detective hanging about
+the camp, and I was sure he had come there to track me.
+I had my wages and my clothes, and when I found they had
+traced me there, I spent all I had for my horse and took my
+pack and struck out over the plains.&rdquo; He paused and
+wiped the cold drops from his forehead, then lifted his head
+with gathered courage. &ldquo;One day,&ndash;&ndash;I found these people,
+nigh starving for both water and food, and without strength
+to go where they could be provided for. They, too, were
+refugees, I learned, and so I cast my lot with theirs, and
+served them as best I could.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;And now they have fallen to the two of us to provide
+for. You say, give you work? I&rsquo;ve lived here these twenty
+years and found work for no man but myself. I&rsquo;ve found
+plenty of that&ndash;&ndash;just to keep alive, part of the time. It&rsquo;s
+bad here in the winter&ndash;&ndash;if the stores give out. Tell me
+what you know of these women.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Where is the man?&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_203' name='page_203'></a>203</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;Dead. I found him dead before I reached them. I
+left him lying where I found him, and pushed on&ndash;&ndash;got
+there just in time. He wasn&rsquo;t three hours away from them
+as a man walks. I made them as comfortable as I could
+and saw that no Indians were about, nor had been, they said;
+so I ventured back and made a grave for him as best I
+could, and told the daughter only, for the old lady seemed
+out of her head. I don&rsquo;t know what we can do with her if
+she gets worse. I don&rsquo;t know.&rdquo; As the big man talked he
+noticed the younger one growing calmer and listening
+intently.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Before I buried him I searched him and found a few
+papers&ndash;&ndash;just letters in a strange language, and from the
+feeling of his coat I judged others were hid&ndash;&ndash;sewed in it,
+so I fetched it back to her&ndash;&ndash;the young one. You thought
+I was long gone, and there was where you made the blunder.
+How did you suppose I came by the pack mule and the
+other horse?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;When I saw them, I knew you must have gone to Higgins&rsquo;
+Camp and back, but how could I know it before?
+You might have been in need of me, and of food.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;We&rsquo;ll say no more of it. Those men at the camp are
+beasts. I bought those animals and paid gold for them.
+They wanted to know where I got the gold. I told them
+where they&rsquo;d never get it. They asked me ten prices for
+those beasts, and then tried to keep me there until they
+could clean me out and get hold of my knowledge. But I
+skipped away in the night when they were all drunk and
+asleep. Then I had to make a long detour to put them off
+the track if they should try to follow me, and all that took
+time.&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_204' name='page_204'></a>204</span></div>
+<p>The big man paused to fill and light his pipe. &ldquo;And
+what next?&rdquo; asked Harry King.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Except for enough food and water to last us up the trail
+you came, I packed nothing back to the wagon, and so had
+room to bring a few of their things up here, and there may
+be some of your own among them&ndash;&ndash;they said something
+about it. We hauled the wagon as far as a good place to
+hide it, in a wash, could be found, and we covered it&ndash;&ndash;and
+our tracks. But there was nothing
+left in it but a few of their utensils, unless the box they did
+not open contained something. It was left in the wagon.
+That was the best I could do with only the help of the young
+woman, and she was too weak to do much. It may lie
+there untouched for ten years unless a rain scoops it out,
+and that&rsquo;s not likely.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I showed the young woman as we came along where her
+father lay, and as we came to a halt a bit farther on, she
+went back, while her mother slept, and knelt there praying
+for an hour. I doubt any good it did him, but it comforted
+her heart. It&rsquo;s a good religion for a woman, where she does
+not have to think things out for herself, but takes a priest&rsquo;s
+word for it all. And now they&rsquo;re here, and you&rsquo;re here, and
+my home is invaded, and my peace is gone, and may the
+Lord help me&ndash;&ndash;I can&rsquo;t.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Harry King looked at him a moment in silence. &ldquo;Nor
+can I&ndash;&ndash;help&ndash;&ndash;but to take myself off.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Take yourself off! And leave me alone with two
+women? I who have foresworn them forever! How do
+you know but that they may each be possessed by seven
+devils? But there! It isn&rsquo;t so bad. As long as they
+stay you&rsquo;ll stay. It was through you they are here, and
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_205' name='page_205'></a>205</span>
+close on to winter,&ndash;&ndash;and if it was summer, it would be as
+bad to send them away where they would have no place
+to stay and no way to live. Lad, the world&rsquo;s hard on
+women. I&rsquo;ve seen much.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Harry King went again and stood in the open entrance of
+the shed and waited. The big man saw that he had succeeded
+in taking the other&rsquo;s mind off himself, and had led
+him to think of others, and now he followed up the advantage
+toward confidence that he had thus gained. He
+also came to the entrance and laid his kindly hand on the
+younger man&rsquo;s shoulder, and there in the pale light of that
+cloudy fall morning, standing in the cool, invigorating air,
+with the sound of falling water in their ears, the two men
+made a compact, and the end was this.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Harry King, if you&rsquo;ll be my son, I&rsquo;ll be your father.
+My boy would be about your age&ndash;&ndash;if he lives,&ndash;&ndash;but if he
+does, he has been taught to look down on me&ndash;&ndash;on the
+very thought of me.&rdquo; He cast a wistful glance at the
+young man&rsquo;s face as he spoke. &ldquo;From the time I held him
+in my arms, a day-old baby, I&rsquo;ve never seen him, and it
+may be he has never heard of me. He was in good hands
+and was given over for good reasons, to one who hated my
+name and my race&ndash;&ndash;and me. For love of his mother I
+did this. It was all I could do for her; I would have gone
+down into the grave for her.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I, too, have been a wanderer over the face of the earth.
+At first I lived in India&ndash;&ndash;in China&ndash;&ndash;anywhere to be as
+far on the other side of the earth from her grave and my
+boy, as I vowed I would, but I&rsquo;ve kept the memory of her
+sweet in my heart. You need not fear I&rsquo;ll ask again for
+your name. Until you choose to give it I will respect
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_206' name='page_206'></a>206</span>
+your wish,&ndash;&ndash;and for the rest&ndash;&ndash;speak of it when you
+must&ndash;&ndash;but not before. I have no more to ask. You&rsquo;ve
+been well bred, as I said, and that&rsquo;s enough for me. You&rsquo;re
+more than of age&ndash;&ndash;I can see that&ndash;&ndash;but it&rsquo;s my opinion
+you need a father. Will you take me?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>The young man drew in his breath sharply through
+quivering lips, and made answer with averted head:
+&ldquo;Cain! Cain and the curse of Cain! Can I allow another
+to share it?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Another shares it and you have no choice.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I will be more than a son. Sons hurt their fathers and
+accept all from them and give little. You lifted me out of
+the abyss and brought me back to life. You took on yourself
+the burden laid on me, to save those who trusted me,
+knowing nothing of my crime,&ndash;&ndash;and now you drag my
+very soul from hell. I will do more than be your son&ndash;&ndash;I
+will give you the life you saved. Who are you?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Then the big man gave his name, making no reciprocal
+demand. What mattered a name? It was the man, by
+whatever name, he wanted.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I am an Irishman by birth, and my name is Larry
+Kildene. If you&rsquo;ll go to a little county not so far from
+Dublin, but to the north, you&rsquo;ll find my people.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>He was looking away toward the top of the mountain
+as he spoke, and was seeing his grandfather&rsquo;s house as he had
+seen it when a boy, and so he did not see the countenance
+of the young man at his side. Had he done so, he would
+not have missed knowing what the young man from that
+moment knew, and from that moment, out of the love now
+awakened in his heart for the big man, carefully concealed,
+giving thanks that he had not told his name.</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_207' name='page_207'></a>207</span></div>
+<p>For a long minute they stood thus looking away from
+each other, while Harry King, by a mighty effort, gained
+control of his features, and his voice. Then although white
+to the lips, he spoke quietly: &ldquo;Harry King&ndash;&ndash;the murderer&ndash;&ndash;be
+the son of Larry Kildene&ndash;&ndash;Larry Kildene&ndash;&ndash;I&ndash;&ndash;to
+slink away in the hills&ndash;&ndash;forever to hide&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;No more of that. I&rsquo;ll show you a new life. Give me
+your hand, Harry King.&rdquo; And the young man extended
+both hands in a silence through which no words could have
+been heard.</p>
+<hr class='toprule' />
+<div class='chsp'>
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_208' name='page_208'></a>208</span>
+<a name='CHAPTER_XVII_ADOPTING_A_FAMILY' id='CHAPTER_XVII_ADOPTING_A_FAMILY'></a>
+<h2>CHAPTER XVII</h2>
+<h3>ADOPTING A FAMILY</h3>
+</div>
+<p>As the two men walked down toward the cabin they saw
+Amalia standing beside the door in the sunlight which now
+streamed through a rift in the clouds, gazing up at the
+towering mountain and listening to the falling water. She
+spied them and came swiftly to them, extending both hands
+in a sweet, gracious impulsiveness, and began speaking
+rapidly even before she reached them.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Ah! So beautiful is your home! It is so much that
+I would say to you of gratitude in my heart&ndash;&ndash;it is like a
+river flowing swiftly to tell you&ndash;&ndash;Ah! I cannot say it all&ndash;&ndash;and
+we come and intrude ourselves upon you thus that
+you have no place where to go for your own sleeping&ndash;&ndash;Is
+not? Yes, I know it. So must we think quickly how
+we may unburden you of us&ndash;&ndash;my mother and myself&ndash;&ndash;only
+that she yet is sleeping that strange sleep that seems
+still not like sleep. Let me that I serve you, sir?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Larry Kildene looked on her glowing, upturned face,
+gathering his slower wits for some response to her swift
+speech, while she turned to the younger man, grasping his
+hands in the same manner and not ceasing the flow of her
+utterance.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;And you, at such severe labor and great danger, have
+found this noble man, and have sent him to us&ndash;&ndash;to you do
+we owe what never can we pay&ndash;&ndash;it is thus while we live
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_209' name='page_209'></a>209</span>
+must we always thank you in our hearts. And to this
+place&ndash;&ndash;so <i>won-n-der-ful</i>&ndash;&ndash;Ah! Beautiful like heaven&ndash;&ndash;Is
+not? Yes, and the sweet sound always in the air&ndash;&ndash;like
+heaven and the sound of wings&ndash;&ndash;to stop here even for
+this night is to make those sorrowful thoughts lie still and
+for a while speak nothing.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>As she turned from one to the other, addressing each in
+turn, warm lights flashed in her eyes through tears, like
+stars in a deep pool. Her dark hair rolled back from her
+smooth oval forehead in heavy coils, and over her head and
+knotted under her perfect chin, outlining its curve, was a
+silken peasant handkerchief with a crimson border of the
+richest hue, while about the neck of her colorless, closely
+fitted gown was a piece of exquisite hand-wrought lace.
+She stood before them, a vision from the old world, full of
+innate ladyhood, simple as a peasant, at once appealing
+and dominating, impulsive, yet shy. Her beautiful enunciation,
+her inverted and quaintly turned English, alive
+with poetry, was typical of her whole personality, a sweet
+and strange mixture of the high-bred aristocrat and the
+simple directness and strength of the peasant.</p>
+<p>The two men made stumbling and embarrassed replies.
+That tender and beautiful quality of chivalry toward
+women, belonging by nature to undefiled manhood, was
+awakened in them, and as one being, not two, they would
+have laid their all at her feet. This, indeed, they literally
+did. The small, one-room cabin, which had so long served
+for Larry Kildene&rsquo;s palace, was given over entirely to the
+two women, and the men made their own abode in the shed
+where they had slept.</p>
+<p>This they accomplished by creating a new room, by
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_210' name='page_210'></a>210</span>
+extending the roof-covered space Larry had used for his
+stable and the storing of fodder, far enough along under the
+great overhanging rock to allow of comfortable bunks, a
+place to walk about, and a fireplace also. The labor involved
+in the making of this room was a boon to Harry
+King.</p>
+<p>Upon the old stone boat which Larry had used for a
+similar purpose he hauled stones gathered from the rock
+ledge and built therewith a chimney, and with the few tools
+in the big man&rsquo;s store he made seats out of hewn logs, and
+a rude table. This work was left to him by the older
+man purposely, while he occupied himself with the gathering
+in of the garden stuff for themselves and for the animals.
+A matter that troubled his good heart not a little was that
+of providing for the coming winter enough food supply for
+his suddenly acquired family. Of grain and fodder he
+thought he had enough for animals kept in idleness, as he
+still had stores gathered in previous years for his own horse.
+But for these women, he must not allow them to suffer the
+least privation.</p>
+<p>It was not the question of food alone that disturbed him.
+At last he laid his troubles before Harry King.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You know, lad, it won&rsquo;t be so long before the snow will
+be down on us, and I&rsquo;m thinking what shall we do with them
+when the long winter days set in.&rdquo; He nodded his head
+toward the cabin. &ldquo;It&rsquo;s already getting too cold for them
+to sit out of doors as they do. I should have windows in
+my cabin&ndash;&ndash;if I could get the glass up here. They can&rsquo;t
+live there in the darkness, with the snow banked around
+them, with nothing to use their fingers on as women like
+to do. Now, if they had cloth or thread&ndash;&ndash;but what use
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_211' name='page_211'></a>211</span>
+had I for such things? They&rsquo;re not among my stores. I
+did not lay out to make it a home for women. The mother
+will get farther and farther astray with her dreams if she
+has nothing to do such as women like.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I think we should ask them&ndash;&ndash;or ask Amalia, she is
+wise. Have you enough to keep them on&ndash;&ndash;of food?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Of food, yes. Such as it is. No flour, but plenty of
+good wheat and corn. I always pound it up and bake it,
+but it is coarse fare for women. There&rsquo;s plenty of game for
+the hunting, and easy got, but it&rsquo;s something to think about
+we&rsquo;ll need, else we&rsquo;ll all go loony.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You have lived long here alone and seem sound of mind,&ndash;&ndash;except
+for&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo; Harry King smiled, &ldquo;except for a certain
+unworldliness that would pass for lunacy in the world below
+these heights.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Let alone, son. I&rsquo;ve usually had my own way for these
+years and have formed the habit, but I&rsquo;ve had my times.
+At the best it&rsquo;s a sort of lunacy that takes a man away from
+his fellows, especially an Irishman. Maybe you&rsquo;ll discover
+for yourself before we part&ndash;&ndash;but it&rsquo;s not to the point now.
+I&rsquo;m asking you how we can keep the mother from brooding
+and the daughter happy? She&rsquo;s asking to be sent away to
+earn money for her mother. She thinks she can take her
+mother with her to the nearest place on that new railroad
+you tell me of, and so on to some town. I tell her, no. And
+if she goes, and leaves her mother here&ndash;&ndash;bless you&ndash;&ndash;what
+would we do with her? Why, the woman would go yonder
+and jump over the cliff.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, it would never do to listen to her. It would never
+do for her to try living in a city earning her bread&ndash;&ndash;not
+while&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo; Harry King paused and turned a white, drawn
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_212' name='page_212'></a>212</span>
+face toward the mountain. Larry watched him. &ldquo;I can
+do nothing.&rdquo; He threw out his hands with a sudden
+downward movement. &ldquo;I, a criminal in hiding! My
+manhood is of no avail! My God!&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Remember, lad, the women have need of you right here.
+I&rsquo;m keeping you on this mountain at my valuation, not
+yours. I have need of you, and your past is not to intrude
+in this place, and when you go out in the world again, as
+you will, when the right time comes, you&rsquo;ll know how to
+meet&ndash;&ndash;and face&ndash;&ndash;your life&ndash;&ndash;or death, as a man should.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Hold yourself with a firm hand, and do the work of the
+days as they come. It&rsquo;s all the Lord gives us to do at any
+time. If I only had books&ndash;&ndash;now,&ndash;&ndash;they would help us,&ndash;&ndash;but
+where to get them&ndash;&ndash;or how? We&rsquo;ll even go and
+ask the women, as you advise.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>They all ate together in the little cabin, as was their
+habit, a meal prepared by Amalia, and carefully set out
+with all the dishes the cabin afforded: so few that there
+were not enough to serve all at once, but eked out by
+wooden blocks, and small lace serviettes taken from Amalia&rsquo;s
+store of linen. At noon one day Larry Kildene spoke
+his anxieties for their welfare, and cleverly managed to
+make the theme a gay one.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Where&rsquo;s the use in adopting a family if you don&rsquo;t get
+society out of them? The question I ask is, when the
+winter shuts us in, what are we going to do for sport&ndash;&ndash;work&ndash;&ndash;what
+you will? It&rsquo;s indoor sport I&rsquo;m meaning, for
+Harry and I have the hunting and providing in the daytime.
+No, never you ask me what I was doing before you came.
+I was my own master then&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;And now you are ours? That is good, Sir Kildene.
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_213' name='page_213'></a>213</span>
+You have to say what to do, and me, I accept to do what
+you advise. Is not?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Amalia turned to Larry and smiled, and whenever
+Amalia smiled, her mother would smile also, and nod her
+head as if to approve, although she usually sat in silence.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yours to command,&rdquo; said Larry, bowing.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;He&rsquo;s master of us all, but it&rsquo;s yours to direct, Lady
+Amalia.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, me, Mr. &rsquo;Arry. It is better for me I make for you
+both sufficient to eat, so all goes well. I think I have heard
+men are always pleased of much that is excellent to eat and
+drink.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Now, listen. We have only a short time before the
+heavy snows will come down on us, and then there will be
+no chance whatever to get supplies of any sort before spring.
+How far is the road completed now, Harry?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;It should be well past Cheyenne by now. They must
+be working toward Laramie rapidly. If&ndash;&ndash;if&ndash;&ndash;you think
+best, I will go down and get supplies&ndash;&ndash;whatever can be
+found there.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;No. I have a plan. There&rsquo;s enough for one man to do
+here finishing the jobs I have laid out, but one of us can
+very well be spared, and as you have wakened me from my
+long sleep, and stirred my old bones to life, and as I know
+best how to travel in this region, I&rsquo;ll take the mule along,
+and go myself. I have a fancy for traveling by rail again.
+You ladies make out a list of all you need, and I&rsquo;ll fill the
+order, in so far as the stations have the articles. If I can&rsquo;t
+find the right things at one station, I may at another, even
+if I go back East for them.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Ah, but, Sir Kildene, it is that we have no money. If
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_214' name='page_214'></a>214</span>
+but we could get from the wagon the great box, there have
+we enough of things to give us labor for all the winter. It
+is the lovely lace I make. A little of the thread I have here,
+but not sufficient for long. So, too, there is my father&rsquo;s
+violin. It made me much heart pain to leave it&ndash;&ndash;for me,
+I play a little,&ndash;&ndash;and there is also of cloth such as men wear&ndash;&ndash;not
+of great quantity&ndash;&ndash;but enough that I can make for
+you&ndash;&ndash;something&ndash;&ndash;a little&ndash;&ndash;maybe, Mr. &rsquo;Arry he like
+well some good shirt of wool&ndash;&ndash;as we make for our peasant&ndash;&ndash;Is
+not?&rdquo; Harry looked down on his worn gray shirt
+sleeves, then into her eyes, and on the instant his own fell.
+She took it for simple embarrassment, and spoke on.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes. To go with us and help us so long and terrible a
+way, it has made very torn your apparel.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;It makes that we improve him, could we obtain the
+box,&rdquo; said the mother, speaking for the first time that day.
+Her voice was so deep and full that it was almost masculine,
+but her modulations were refined and most agreeable.</p>
+<p>Amalia laughed for very gladness that her mother at last
+showed enough interest in what was being said to speak.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Ah, mamma, to improve&ndash;&ndash;it is to make better the
+mind&ndash;&ndash;the heart&ndash;&ndash;but of this has Mr. &rsquo;Arry no need. Is
+not, Sir Kildene? I call you always Sir as title to nobleness
+of character. We have, in our country, to inherit title,
+but here to make it of such character. It is well, I think
+so.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Poor Larry Kildene had his own moment of embarrassment,
+but with her swift appreciation of their moods she
+talked rapidly on, leaving the compliment to fall as it would,
+and turning their thoughts to the subject in hand. &ldquo;But
+the box, mamma, it is heavy, and it is far down on the
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_215' name='page_215'></a>215</span>
+terrible plain. If that you should try to obtain it, Sir
+Kildene: Ah, I cannot!&ndash;&ndash;Even to think of the peril is
+a hurt in my heart. It must even lie there.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;And the men &lsquo;rouge&rsquo;&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes. Of the red men&ndash;&ndash;those Indian&ndash;&ndash;of them I have
+great fear.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;The danger from them is past, now. If the road is
+beyond Cheyenne, it must have reached Laramie or nearly
+so, and they would hang around the stations, picking up
+what they can, but the government has them in hand as
+never before. They would not dare interfere with white
+men anywhere near the road. I&rsquo;ve dreamed of a railroad
+to connect the two oceans, but never expected to see it in
+my lifetime. I&rsquo;ve taken a notion to go and see it&ndash;&ndash;just
+to look at it,&ndash;&ndash;to try to be reconciled to it.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Reconciled? It is to like it, you mean&ndash;&ndash;Sir Kildene?
+Is it not <i>won-n-derful</i>&ndash;&ndash;the achievement?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, yes, the achievement, as you say. But other things
+will follow, and the plains will no longer keep men at bay.
+The money grabbers will pour in, and all the scum of creation
+will flock toward the setting sun. Then, too, I
+shall hate to see the wild animals that have their own rights
+killed in unsportsmanlike manner, and annihilated, as they
+are wherever men can easily reach them. Men are wasteful
+and bad. I&rsquo;ve seen things in the wild places of the earth&ndash;&ndash;and
+in the places where men flock together in hoards&ndash;&ndash;and
+where they think they are most civilized, and the result
+has been what you see here,&ndash;&ndash;a man living alone with a
+horse for companionship, and the voice of the winds and the
+falling water to fill his soul. Go to. Go to.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Larry Kildene rose and stood a moment in the cabin door,
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_216' name='page_216'></a>216</span>
+then sauntered out in the sun, and off toward the fall. He
+had need to think a while alone. His companions knew
+this necessity was on him, and said nothing&ndash;&ndash;only looked
+at each other, and took up the question of their needs for the
+winter.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Mr. &rsquo;Arry, is it possible to reach with safety a station?
+I mean is time yet to go and return before the snows?
+Here are no deadly wolves as in my own country&ndash;&ndash;but is
+much else to make dangerous the way.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;There must be time or he would not propose it. I don&rsquo;t
+know about the snows here.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I have seen that Sir Kildene drinks with most pleasure
+the coffee, but is little left&ndash;&ndash;or not enough for all&ndash;&ndash;to
+drink it. My mother and I we drink with more pleasure
+the tea, and of tea we ourselves have a little. It is possible
+also I make of things more palatable if I have the sugar, but
+is very little here. I have searched well, the foods placed
+here. Is it that Sir Kildene has other places where are such
+articles?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;All he has is in the bins against the wall yonder.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Here is the key he gave me, and I have look well, but
+is not enough to last but for one through all the months of
+winter. Ah, poor man! We have come and eat his food
+like the wolves of the wild country at home, is not? I
+have make each day of the coffee for him, yes, a good drink,
+and for you not so good&ndash;&ndash;forgive,&ndash;&ndash;but for me and my
+mother, only to pretend, that it might last for him. It is
+right so. We have gone without more than to have no
+coffee, and this is not privation. To have too much is bad
+for the soul.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Amalia&rsquo;s mother seemed to have withdrawn herself from
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_217' name='page_217'></a>217</span>
+them and sat gazing into the smoking logs, apparently not
+hearing their conversation. Harry King for the second
+time that day looked in Amalia&rsquo;s eyes. It was a moment
+of forgetfulness. He had forbidden himself this privilege
+except when courtesy demanded.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You forgive&ndash;&ndash;that I put&ndash;&ndash;little coffee in your drink?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Forgive? Forgive?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>He murmured questioningly as if he hardly comprehended
+her meaning, as indeed he did not. His mind was going
+over the days since first he saw her, toiling to gather enough
+sagebrush to cook a drop of tea for her father, and striving
+to conceal from him that she, herself, was taking none, and
+barely tasting her hard biscuit that there might be enough
+to keep life in her parents. As she sat before him now, in
+her worn, mended, dark dress with the wonderful lace at
+the throat, and her thin hands lying on the crimson-bordered
+kerchief in her lap,&ndash;&ndash;her fingers playing with the
+fringe, he still looked in her eyes and murmured, &ldquo;Forgive?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Ah, Mr. &rsquo;Arry, your mind is sleeping and has gone to
+dream. Listen to me. If one goes to the plain, quickly
+he must go. I make with haste this naming of things to eat.
+It is sad we must always eat&ndash;&ndash;eat. In heaven maybe is
+not so.&rdquo; She wandered a moment about the cabin, then
+laughed for the second time. &ldquo;Is no paper on which to
+write.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;There is no need of paper; he&rsquo;ll remember. Just mention
+them over. Coffee,&ndash;&ndash;is there any tea beside that
+you have?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;No, but no need. I name it not.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Tea is light and easily brought. What else?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;And paper. I ask for that but for me to write my little
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_218' name='page_218'></a>218</span>
+romance of all this&ndash;&ndash;forgive&ndash;&ndash;it is for occupation in the
+long winter. You also must write of your experiences&ndash;&ndash;perhaps&ndash;&ndash;of
+your history of&ndash;&ndash;of&ndash;&ndash;You like it not?
+Why, Mr. &rsquo;Arry! It is to make work for the mind. The
+mind must work&ndash;&ndash;work&ndash;&ndash;or die. The hands&ndash;&ndash;well. I
+make lace with the hands&ndash;&ndash;but for the mind is music&ndash;&ndash;or
+the books&ndash;&ndash;but here are no books&ndash;&ndash;good&ndash;&ndash;we make
+them. So, paper I ask, and of crayon&ndash;&ndash;Alas! It is in
+the box! What to do?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Listen. We&rsquo;ll have that box, and bring it here on the
+mountain. I&rsquo;ll get it.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Ah, no! No. Will you break my heart?&rdquo; She seized
+his arm and looked in his eyes, her own brimming with tears.
+Then she flung up her arms in her dramatic way, and covered
+her eyes. &ldquo;I can see it all so terrible. If you should go
+there and the Indian strike you dead&ndash;&ndash;or the snow come too
+soon and kill you with the cold&ndash;&ndash;in the great drift lying
+white&ndash;&ndash;all the terrible hours never to see you again&ndash;&ndash;Ah,
+no!&rdquo;</p>
+<p>In that instant his heart leaped toward her and the blood
+roared in his ears. He would have clasped her to him, but
+he only stood rigidly still. &ldquo;Hands off, murderer!&rdquo; The
+words seemed shouted at him by his own conscience. &ldquo;I
+would rather die&ndash;&ndash;than that you should not have your
+box,&rdquo; was all he said, and left the cabin. He, too, had need
+to think things out alone.</p>
+<hr class='toprule' />
+<div class='chsp'>
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_219' name='page_219'></a>219</span>
+<a name='CHAPTER_XVIII_LARRY_KILDENES_STORY' id='CHAPTER_XVIII_LARRY_KILDENES_STORY'></a>
+<h2>CHAPTER XVIII</h2>
+<h3>LARRY KILDENE&rsquo;S STORY</h3>
+</div>
+<p>&ldquo;Man, but this is none so bad&ndash;&ndash;none so bad.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Larry Kildene sat on a bench before a roaring fire in the
+room added on to the fodder shed. The chimney which
+Harry King had built, although not quite completed to its
+full height, was being tried for the first time, as the night
+was too cold for comfort in the long, low shed without fire,
+and the men had come down early this evening to talk over
+their plans before Larry should start down the mountain
+in the morning. They had heaped logs on the women&rsquo;s
+fire and seen that all was right for them, and with cheerful
+good-nights had left them to themselves.</p>
+<p>Now, as they sat by their own fire, Harry could see
+Amalia by hers, seated on a low bench of stone, close to the
+blazing torch of pine, so placed that its smoke would be
+drawn up the large chimney. It was all the light they had
+for their work in the evenings, other than the firelight. He
+could see her fingers moving rapidly and mechanically at
+some pretty open-work pattern, and now and then grasping
+deftly at the ball of fine white thread that seemed to be
+ever taking little leaps, and trying to roll into the fire,
+or out over the cabin floor. She used a fine, slender
+needle and seemed to be performing some delicate magic
+with her fingers. Was she one of the three fates continually
+drawing out the thread of his life and weaving
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_220' name='page_220'></a>220</span>
+therewith a charmed web? And if so&ndash;&ndash;when would she
+cease?</p>
+<p>&ldquo;It&rsquo;s a good job and draws well.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;The chimney? Yes, it seems to.&rdquo; Harry roused himself
+and tried to close his mind against the warm, glowing
+picture. &ldquo;Yes&ndash;&ndash;yes. It draws well. I&rsquo;m inclined to be
+a bit proud, although I never could have done it if you had
+not given me the lessons.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;It&rsquo;s art, my boy. To build a good fireplace is just that.
+Did you ever think that the whole world&ndash;&ndash;and the welfare
+of it&ndash;&ndash;centers just around that;&ndash;&ndash;the fireplace and the
+hearth&ndash;&ndash;or what stands for it in these days&ndash;&ndash;maybe a
+little hole in the wall with a smudge of coal in it, as they
+have in the towns&ndash;&ndash;but it&rsquo;s the hearth and the cradle beside
+it&ndash;&ndash;and&ndash;&ndash;the mother.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Larry&rsquo;s voice died almost to a whisper, and his chin
+dropped on his breast, and his eyes gazed on the burning
+logs; and Harry, sitting beside him, gazed also at the same
+logs, but the pictures wrought in the alchemy of their souls
+were very different.</p>
+<p>To Harry it was a sweet, oval face&ndash;&ndash;a flush from the
+heat of the fire more on the smooth cheek that was toward
+it than on the other, and warm flame flashes in the large
+eyes that looked up at him from time to time, while the
+slender figure bent a little forward to see the better, as the
+wonderful hands kept up the never ceasing motion. A
+white linen cloth spread over her lap cast a clearer, more
+rosy light under her chin and brought out the strength of
+it and the delicate curves of it, which Harry longed even to
+dare to look upon in the rarest stolen intervals, without
+the clamor and outcry in his heart. It was always the
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_221' name='page_221'></a>221</span>
+same&ndash;&ndash;the cry of Cain in the wilderness. Would God it might
+some day cease! What to him might be the hearth fire
+and the cradle, and the mother, that the big man should
+dwell on them thus? What had they meant in Larry
+Kildene&rsquo;s life, he who had lived for twenty years the life
+of a hermit, and had forsworn women forever, as he said?</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I tell ye, lad, there&rsquo;s a thing I would say to you&ndash;&ndash;before
+I leave, but it&rsquo;s sore to touch upon.&rdquo; Harry made a
+deprecating gesture. &ldquo;No, it&rsquo;s best I tell you. I&ndash;&ndash;I&rsquo;ll
+come back&ndash;&ndash;never fear&ndash;&ndash;it&rsquo;s my plan to come back, but
+in this life you may count on nothing for a surety. I&rsquo;ve
+learned that, and to prove it, look at me. I made sure,
+never would I open my heart again to think on my fellow
+beings, but as aliens to my life, and I&rsquo;ve lived it out for
+twenty years, and thought to hold out to the end. I held
+the Indians at bay through their superstitions, and they
+would no more dare to cross my path with hostile intent
+than they would dare take their chances over that fall above
+there. Where did I put my pipe? I can&rsquo;t seem to find
+things as I did in the cabin.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Here it is, sir. I placed that stone further out at the
+end of the chimney on purpose for it, and in this side I&rsquo;ve
+left a hole for your tobacco. I thought I was very clever
+doing that.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;And we&rsquo;d be fine and cozy here in the winter&ndash;&ndash;if it
+wer&rsquo;n&rsquo;t for the women&ndash;&ndash;a&ndash;&ndash;a&ndash;&ndash;now I&rsquo;m blundering.
+I&rsquo;d never turn them out if they lived there the rest of their
+days. But to have a lad beside me as I might have had&ndash;&ndash;if
+you&rsquo;d said, &lsquo;Here it is, father,&rsquo; but now, it would have
+have been music to me. You see, Harry, I forswore the
+women harder than I did the men, and it&rsquo;s the longing for
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_222' name='page_222'></a>222</span>
+the son I held in my arms an hour and then gave up, that
+has lived in me all these years. The mother&ndash;&ndash;gone&ndash;&ndash;The
+son I might have had.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I can&rsquo;t say that&ndash;&ndash;to you. I have a curse on me, and
+it will stay until I have paid for my crime. But I&rsquo;ll be
+more to you than sons are to their fathers. I&rsquo;ll be faithful
+to you as a dog to his master, and love you more. I&rsquo;ll
+live for you even with the curse on me, and if need be, I&rsquo;ll
+die for you.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;It&rsquo;s enough. I&rsquo;ll ask you no more. Have you no curiosity
+to hear what I have to tell you?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I have, indeed I have. But it seems I can&rsquo;t ask it&ndash;&ndash;unless
+I&rsquo;m able to return your confidence. To talk of my
+sorrow only deepens it. It drives me wild.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You&rsquo;ll have it yet to learn, that nothing helps a sorrow
+that can&rsquo;t be helped like bearing it. I don&rsquo;t mean to lie
+down under it like a dumb beast&ndash;&ndash;but just take it up and
+bear it. That&rsquo;s what you&rsquo;re doing now, and sometime
+you&rsquo;ll be able to carry it, and still laugh now and again,
+when it&rsquo;s right to laugh&ndash;&ndash;and even jest, on occasion. It&rsquo;s
+been done and done well. It&rsquo;s good for a man to do it.
+The lass down there at the cabin is doing it&ndash;&ndash;and the
+mother is not. She&rsquo;s living in the past. Maybe she can&rsquo;t
+help it.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;When I first came on them out there in the desert, she
+seemed brave and strong. He was a poor, crippled man,
+with enormous vitality and a leonine head. The two women
+adored him and lived only for him, and he never knew it.
+He lived for an ideal and would have died for it. He did
+not speak English as well as they. I used to wish I could
+understand him, for he had a poet&rsquo;s soul, and eyes like his
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_223' name='page_223'></a>223</span>
+daughter&rsquo;s. He seemed to carry some secret with him, and
+no doubt was followed about the world as he thought he was.
+Fleeing myself, I could not know, but from things the
+mother has dropped, they must have seen terrible times
+together, she and her husband.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;A wonderful deal of poetry and romance always clung
+to the names of Poland and Hungary for me. When I was
+young, our part of the world thrilled at the name of Kosciuszko
+and Kossuth. I&rsquo;d give a good deal to know what
+this man&rsquo;s secret was. All those old tales of mystery, like
+&lsquo;The Man with the Iron Mask,&rsquo; and stories of noblemen
+spirited away to Siberia, of men locked for many years in
+dungeons, like the &lsquo;Prisoner of Chillon,&rsquo; which fired the
+fancy and genius of Byron and sent him to fight for the
+oppressed, used to fill my dreams.&rdquo; Larry talked on as if
+to himself. It seemed as if it were a habit formed when he
+had only himself with whom to visit, and Harry was interested.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Now, to almost come upon a man of real ideals and a
+secret,&ndash;&ndash;and just miss it. I ought to have been out in
+the world doing some work worth while&ndash;&ndash;with my miserable,
+broken life&ndash;&ndash;Boy! I knew that man McBride!
+I knew him for sure. We were in college together. He
+left Oxford to go to Russia, wild with the spirit of adventure
+and something more. He was a dreamer&ndash;&ndash;with a practical
+turn, too. There, no doubt, he met these people. I
+judge this Manovska must have been in the diplomatic
+service of Poland, from what Amalia told us. Have you
+any idea whether that woman sitting there all day long rapt
+in her own thoughts knows her husband&rsquo;s secret? Is it a
+thing any one now living would care to know?&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_224' name='page_224'></a>224</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;Indeed, yes. They lived in terror of the prince who
+hounded him over the world. The mother trusted no one,
+but Amalia told me&ndash;&ndash;enough&ndash;&ndash;all she knows herself.
+I don&rsquo;t know if the mother has the secret or not, but at
+least she guesses it. The poor man was trying to live until
+he could impart his knowledge to the right ones to bring
+about an upheaval that would astonish the world. It
+meant revolution, whatever it was. Amalia imagines it
+was to place a Polish king on the throne of Russia, but she
+does not know. She told me of stolen records of a Polish
+descendant of Catherine II of Russia. She thinks they
+were brought to her father after he came to this country.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;If he had such knowledge or even thought he had, it
+was enough to set them on his track all his life; the wonder
+is that he was let to live at all.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;The mother never mentioned it, but Amalia told me.
+We talked more freely out in the desert. That remarkable
+woman walked at her husband&rsquo;s side over all the terrible
+miles to Siberia, and through her he escaped,&ndash;&ndash;and of the
+horrors of those years she never would speak, even to her
+daughter. It&rsquo;s not to be wondered at that her mind is
+astray. It&rsquo;s only a wonder that she is for the most part so
+calm.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Well, the grave holds many a mystery, and what a
+fascination a mystery has for humanity, savage or civilized!
+I&rsquo;ve kept the Indians at bay all this time by that
+means. They fear&ndash;&ndash;they know not what, and the mystery
+holds them. Now, for ourselves, I leave you for a little
+while in charge of&ndash;&ndash;the women&ndash;&ndash;and of all my possessions.&rdquo;
+Larry, gazing into the blazing logs, smiled. &ldquo;You
+may not think so much of them, but it&rsquo;s not so little now.
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_225' name='page_225'></a>225</span>
+Talk about lunacy&ndash;&ndash;man, I understand it. I&rsquo;ve been
+a lunatic&ndash;&ndash;for&ndash;&ndash;ever since I made a find here in this
+mountain.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>He paused and mused a while, and Harry&rsquo;s thoughts
+dwelt for the time on his own find in the wing of the cabin,
+where the firewood was stored. The ring and the chest&ndash;&ndash;he
+had not forgotten them, but by no means would he
+mention them.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You may wonder why I should tell you this, but when
+I&rsquo;m through, you&rsquo;ll know. It all came about because of a
+woman.&rdquo; Larry Kildene cast a sidelong glance at Harry,
+and the glance was keen and saw more than the younger
+man dreamed. &ldquo;It&rsquo;s more often so than any other way&ndash;&ndash;almost
+always because of a woman. Her name may be anything&ndash;&ndash;Mary&ndash;&ndash;Elizabeth,&ndash;&ndash;but,
+a woman. This one&rsquo;s
+name was Katherine. Not like the Katherine of Shakespeare,
+but the sweetest&ndash;&ndash;the tenderest mother-woman the
+Lord ever gave to man. I see her there in the fire. I&rsquo;ve
+seen her there these many years. Well, she was twin
+sister to the man who hated me. He hated me&ndash;&ndash;for why,
+I don&rsquo;t know&ndash;&ndash;perhaps because he never could influence
+me. He would make all who cared for him bow before
+his will.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;When I first saw her, she lived in his home. He was a
+banker of means,&ndash;&ndash;not wholly of his own getting, but
+partly so. His father was a man of thrift and saving&ndash;&ndash;anyway,
+he came to set too much store by money. Sometimes
+I think he might have been jealous of me because I
+had the Oxford training, and wished me to feel that wealth
+was a greater thing to have. Scotchmen think more of
+education than we of Ireland. It&rsquo;s a good thing, of course,
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_226' name='page_226'></a>226</span>
+but I&rsquo;d never have looked down on him because he went
+lacking it. But for some indiscretion maybe I would have
+had money, too. It was spent too lavishly on me in my
+youth. But no. I had none&ndash;&ndash;only the experience and
+the knowledge of what it might bring.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Well, it came about that I came to America to gain the
+money I lacked, and having learned a bit, in spite of Oxford
+and the schools, of a practical nature, I took a position in
+his bank. All was very well until I met her. Now there
+were the rosy cheeks and the dark hair for you! She looked
+more like an Irish lass than a Scotch one. But they&rsquo;re not
+so different, only that the Irish are for the most part comelier.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Now this banker had a very sweet wife, and she was
+kind to the Irish lad and welcomed him to her house. I&rsquo;m
+thinking she liked me a bit&ndash;&ndash;I liked her at all events. She
+welcomed me to her house until she was forbid. It was
+after they forbid me the house that I took to walking with
+Katherine, when all thought she was at Sunday School or
+visiting a neighbor, or even&ndash;&ndash;at the last&ndash;&ndash;when no other
+time could be stolen&ndash;&ndash;when they thought her in bed. We
+walked there by the river that flows by the town of Leauvite.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Again Larry Kildene paused and shot a swift glance at
+the young man at his side, and noted the drawn lids and
+blanched face, but he kept on. &ldquo;In the moonlight we
+walked&ndash;&ndash;lad&ndash;&ndash;the ground there is holy now, because she
+walked upon it. We used to go to a high bluff that made a
+sheer fall to the river below&ndash;&ndash;and there we used to stand
+and tell each other&ndash;&ndash;things we dreamed&ndash;&ndash;of the life we
+should live together&ndash;&ndash;Ah, that life! She has spent it in
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_227' name='page_227'></a>227</span>
+heaven. I&ndash;&ndash;I&ndash;&ndash;have spent the most of it here.&rdquo; He
+did not look at Harry King again. His voice shook, but
+he continued. &ldquo;After a time her brother got to know
+about it, and he turned me from the bank, and sent her to
+live with his father&rsquo;s sisters in Scotland.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Kind old ladies, but unmarried, and too old for such a
+lass. How could they know the heart of a girl who loved a
+man? It was I who knew that. What did her brother
+know&ndash;&ndash;her own twin brother? Nothing, because he
+could see only his own thoughts, never hers, and thought
+his thoughts were enough for wife or girl. I tell you, lad,
+men err greatly in that, and right there many of the troubles
+of life step in. The old man, her father, had left all his
+money to his son, but with the injunction that she was to be
+provided for, all her days, of his bounty. It&rsquo;s a mean way
+to treat a woman&ndash;&ndash;because&ndash;&ndash;see? She has no right to
+her thoughts, and her heart is his to dispose of where he wills&ndash;&ndash;not
+as she wills&ndash;&ndash;and then comes the trouble.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I ask you, lad, if you loved a girl as fine as silk and as
+tender as a flower you could crush in your hand with a
+touch ungentle, and you saw one holding her with that sort
+of a touch,&ndash;&ndash;even if it was meant in love,&ndash;&ndash;I&rsquo;ll not be unjust,
+he loved her as few love their sisters&ndash;&ndash;but he could
+not grasp her thus; I ask you what would you do?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;If I were a true man, and had a right to my manhood,
+I would take her. I&rsquo;d follow her to the ends of the earth.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Right, my son&ndash;&ndash;I did that. I took the little money
+I had from my labor at the bank&ndash;&ndash;all I had saved, and I
+went bravely to those two old women&ndash;&ndash;her aunts, and
+they turned me from their door. It was what they had
+been enjoined to do. They said I was after the money and
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_228' name='page_228'></a>228</span>
+without conscience or thrift. With the Scotch, often, the
+confusion is natural between thrift and conscience. Ah,
+don&rsquo;t I know! If a man is prosperous, he may hold out his
+hand to a maid and say &lsquo;Come,&rsquo; and all her relatives will
+cry &lsquo;Go,&rsquo; and the marriage bells will ring. If he is a happy
+Irishman with a shrunken purse, let his heart be loving and
+true and open as the day, they will spurn him forth. For
+food and raiment will they sell a soul, and for household
+gear will they clip the wings of the little god, and set him
+out in the cold.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;But the arrow had entered Katherine&rsquo;s heart, and I
+knew and bided my time. They saw no more of me, but
+I knew all her goings and comings. I found her one day on
+the moor, with her collie, and her cheeks had lost their
+color, and her gray eyes looked in my face with their tears
+held back, like twin lakes under a cloud before a storm falls.
+I took her in my arms, and we kissed. The collie looked on
+and wagged his tail. It was all the approval we ever got
+from the family, but he was a knowing dog.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Well, then we walked hand in hand to a village, and it
+was near nightfall, and we went straight to a magistrate
+and were married. I had a little coin with me, and we
+stayed all night at an inn. There was a great hurrying
+and scurrying all night over the moors for her, but we knew
+naught of it, for we lay sleeping in each other&rsquo;s arms as
+care free and happy as birds. If she wept a little, I comforted
+her. In the morning we went to the great house
+where the aunts lived in the town, and there, with her hand
+in mine, I told them, and the storm broke. It was the disgrace
+of having been married clandestinely by a magistrate
+that cut them most to the heart; and yet, what did they
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_229' name='page_229'></a>229</span>
+think a man would do? And they cried upon her: &lsquo;We
+trusted you. We trusted you.&rsquo; And all the reply she
+made was: &lsquo;You thought I&rsquo;d never dare, but I love him.&rsquo;
+Yes, love makes a woman&rsquo;s heart strong.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Well, then, nothing would do, but they must have in the
+minister and see us properly married. After that we stayed
+never a night in their house, but I took her to Ireland to
+my grandfather&rsquo;s home. It was a terrible year in Ireland,
+for the poverty was great, and while my grandfather was
+well-to-do, as far as that means in Ireland, it was very little
+they had that year for helping the poor.&rdquo; Larry Kildene
+glanced no more at Harry King, but looked only in the fire,
+where the logs had fallen in a glowing heap. His pipe was
+out, but he still held it in his hand.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;It was little I could do. I had my education, and could
+repeat poems and read Latin, but that would not feed
+hungry peasant children. I went out on the land and
+labored with the men, and gave of my little patrimony to
+keep the old folks, but it was too small for them all, so at
+last I yielded to Katherine&rsquo;s importunities, and she wrote
+to her brother for help&ndash;&ndash;not for her and me, mind you.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;It was for the poor in Ireland she wrote, and she let
+me read it. It was a sweet letter, asking forgiveness for
+her willfulness, yet saying she must even do the same thing
+again if it were to do over again. She pleaded only for the
+starving in the name of Christ. She asked only if a little
+of that portion which should be hers might be sent her,
+and that because he was her only brother and twin, and
+like part of her very self&ndash;&ndash;she turned it so lovingly&ndash;&ndash;I
+never could tell you with what skill&ndash;&ndash;but she had the way&ndash;&ndash;yes.
+But what did it bring?</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_230' name='page_230'></a>230</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;He was a canny, canny Scot, although brought up in
+America. Only for the times when his mother would take
+him back to Aberdeen with my Katherine for long visits, he
+never saw Scotland, but what&rsquo;s in the blood holds fast
+through life. He was a canny Scot. It takes a time for
+letters to go and come, and in those days longer than now,
+when in two weeks one may reach the other side. The
+reply came as speedily as those days would admit, and it
+was carefully considered. Ah, Peter was a clever man to
+bring about his own way. Never a word did he say about
+forgiveness. It was as if no breach had ever been, but
+one thing I noticed that she thought must be only an omission,
+because of the more important things that crowded
+it out. It was that never once did he mention me any more
+than if I had never existed. He said he would send her a
+certain sum of money&ndash;&ndash;and it was a generous one, that
+is but just to admit&ndash;&ndash;if when she received it she would
+take another sum, which he would also send, and return to
+them. He said his home was hers forever if she wished,
+and that he loved her, and had never had other feeling for
+her than love. Upon this letter came a long time of pleading
+with me&ndash;&ndash;and I was ever soft&ndash;&ndash;with her. She won
+her way.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;&lsquo;We will both go, Larry, dear,&rsquo; she said. &lsquo;I know he forgot
+to say you might come, too. If he loves me as he says,
+he would not break my heart by leaving you out.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;&lsquo;He sends only enough for one&ndash;&ndash;for you,&rsquo; I said.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;&lsquo;Yes, but he thinks you have enough to come by yourself.
+He thinks you would not accept it&ndash;&ndash;and would not
+insult you by sending more.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;&lsquo;He insults me by sending enough for you, dear. If I
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_231' name='page_231'></a>231</span>
+have it for me, I have it for you&ndash;&ndash;most of all for you, or
+I&rsquo;m no true man. If I have none for you&ndash;&ndash;then we have
+none.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;&lsquo;Larry, for love of me, let me go&ndash;&ndash;for the gulf between
+my twin brother and me will never be passed until I go to
+him.&rsquo; And this was true enough. &lsquo;I will make them
+love you. Hester loves you now. She will help me.&rsquo;
+Hester was the sweet wife of her brother. So she clung to
+me, and her hands touched me and caressed me&ndash;&ndash;lad, I
+feel them now. I put her on the boat, and the money he
+sent relieved the suffering around me, and I gave thanks
+with a sore heart. It was for them, our own peasantry,
+and for her, I parted with her then, but as soon as I could I
+sold my little holding near my grandfather&rsquo;s house to an
+Englishman who had long wanted it, and when it was parted
+with, I took the money and delayed not a day to follow her.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I wrote to her, telling her when and where to meet me in
+the little town of Leauvite, and it was on the bluff over
+the river. I went to a home I knew there&ndash;&ndash;where they
+thought well of me&ndash;&ndash;I think. In the evening I walked
+up the long path, and there under the oak trees at the top
+where we had been used to sit, I waited. She came to me,
+walking in the golden light. It was spring. The whip-poor-wills
+called and replied to each other from the woods.
+A mourning dove spoke to its mate among the thick trees,
+low and sad, but it is only their way. I was glad, and so
+were they.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I held her in my arms, and the river sang to us. She
+told me all over again the love in her heart for me, as she
+used to tell it. Lad! There is only one theme in the world
+that is worth telling. There is only one song in the
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_232' name='page_232'></a>232</span>
+universe that is worth singing, and when your heart has once
+sung it aright, you will never sing another. The air was
+soft and sweet around us, and we stayed until a town clock
+struck twelve; then I took her back, and, as she was not
+strong, part of the way I carried her in my arms. I left
+her at her brother&rsquo;s door, and she went into the shadows
+there, and I was left outside,&ndash;&ndash;all but my heart. She had
+been home so short a time&ndash;&ndash;her brother was not yet reconciled,
+but she said she knew he would be. For me, I
+vowed I would make money enough to give her a home
+that would shame him for the poverty of his own&ndash;&ndash;his,
+which he thought the finest in the town.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>For a long time there was silence, and Larry Kildene sat
+with his head drooped on his breast. At last he took up
+the thread where he had left it. &ldquo;Two days later I stood in
+the heavy parlor of that house,&ndash;&ndash;I stood there with their
+old portraits looking down on me, and my heart was filled
+with ice&ndash;&ndash;ice and fire. I took what they placed in my
+arms, and it was&ndash;&ndash;my&ndash;&ndash;little son, but it might have been
+a stone. It weighed like lead in my arms, that ached with
+its weight. Might I see her? No. Was she gone? Yes.
+I laid the weight on the pillow held out to me for it, and
+turned away. Then Hester came and laid her hand on my
+arm, but my flesh was numb. I could not feel her touch.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;&lsquo;Give him to me, Larry,&rsquo; she was saying. &lsquo;I will love
+him like my own, and he will be a brother to my little son.&rsquo;
+And I gave him into her arms, although I knew even then
+that he would be brought up to know nothing of his father,
+as if I had never lived. I gave him into her arms because
+he had no mother and his father&rsquo;s heart had gone out of
+him. I gave him into her arms, because I felt it was all I
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_233' name='page_233'></a>233</span>
+could do to let his mother have the comfort of knowing
+that he was not adrift with me&ndash;&ndash;if they do know where
+she is. For her sake most of all and for the lad&rsquo;s sake I
+left him there.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Then I knocked about the world a while, and back in
+Ireland I could not stay, for the haunting thought of her.
+I could bide nowhere. Then the thought took me that I
+would get money and take my boy back. A longing for
+him grew in my heart, and it was all the thought I had, but
+until I had money I would not return. I went to find a
+mine of gold. Men were flying West to become rich through
+the finding of mines of gold, and I joined them. I tried to
+reach a spot that has since been named Higgins&rsquo; Camp, for
+there it was rumored that gold was to be found in plenty,
+and missed it. I came here, and here I stayed.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Now the big man rose to his feet, and looked down on the
+younger one. He looked kindly. Then, as if seized and
+shaken by a torrent of impulses which he was trying to hold
+in check, he spoke tremulously and in suppressed tones.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I longed for my son, but I tell you this, because there is
+a strange thing which grasps a man&rsquo;s soul when he finds
+gold&ndash;&ndash;as I found it. I came to love it for its own sake.
+I lived here and stored it up&ndash;&ndash;until I am rich&ndash;&ndash;you may
+not find many men so rich. I could go back and buy that
+bank that was Peter Craigmile&rsquo;s pride&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo; His voice rose,
+but he again suppressed it. &ldquo;I could buy that pitiful
+little bank a hundred times over. And she&ndash;&ndash;is&ndash;&ndash;gone.
+I tried to keep her and the remembrance of her in my mind
+above the gold, but it was like a lunacy upon me. At the
+last&ndash;&ndash;until I found you there on the verge of death&ndash;&ndash;the
+gold was always first in my mind, and the triumph of having
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_234' name='page_234'></a>234</span>
+it. I came to glory in it, and I worked day after day,
+and often in the night by torches, and all I gathered I hid,
+and when I was too weary to work, I sat and handled it and
+felt it fall through my fingers.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;A woman in England&ndash;&ndash;Miss Evans, by name, only she
+writes under the name of a man, George Eliot&ndash;&ndash;has written
+a tale of a poor weaver who came to love his little horde of
+gold as if it were alive and human. It&rsquo;s a strong tale, that.
+A good one. Well, I came to understand what the poor
+little weaver felt. Summer and winter, day and night,
+week days and Sundays&ndash;&ndash;and I was brought up to keep
+the Sunday like a Christian should&ndash;&ndash;all were the same to
+me, just one long period for the getting together of gold.
+After a time I even forgot what I wanted the gold for in the
+first place, and thought only of getting it, more and more
+and more.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;This is a confession, lad. I tremble to think what
+would have been on my soul had I done what I first thought
+of doing when that horse of yours called me. He was
+calling for you&ndash;&ndash;no doubt, but the call came from heaven
+itself for me, and the temptation came. It was, to stay
+where I was and know nothing. I might have done that,
+too, if it were not for the selfish reasons that flashed through
+my mind, even as the temptation seized it. It was that
+there might be those below who were climbing to my home&ndash;&ndash;to
+find me out and take from me my gold. I knew
+there were prospectors all over, seeking for what I had
+found, and how could I dare stay in my cabin and be traced
+by a stray horse wandering to my door? Three coldblooded,
+selfish murders would now be resting on my soul.
+It&rsquo;s no use for a man to shut his eyes and say &lsquo;I didn&rsquo;t
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_235' name='page_235'></a>235</span>
+know.&rsquo; It&rsquo;s his business to know. When you speak of the
+&lsquo;Curse of Cain,&rsquo; think what I might be bearing now, and remember,
+if a man repents of his act, there&rsquo;s mercy for him.
+So I was taught, and so I believe.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;When I looked in your face, lying there in my bunk,
+then I knew that mercy had been shown me, and for this,
+here is the thing I mean to do. It is to show my gold
+and the mine from which it came to you&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;No, no! I can&rsquo;t bear it. I must not know.&rdquo; Harry
+King threw up his hands as if in fright and rose, trembling
+in every limb.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Man, what ails you?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Don&rsquo;t. Don&rsquo;t put temptation in my way that I may
+not be strong enough to resist.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I say, what ails you? It&rsquo;s a good thing, rightly used.
+It may help you to a way out of your trouble. If I never
+return&ndash;&ndash;I will, mind you,&ndash;&ndash;but we never know&ndash;&ndash;if
+not, my life will surely not have been spent for naught.
+You, now, are all I have on earth besides the gold. It was
+to have been my son&rsquo;s, and it is yours. It might as well
+have been left in the heart of the mountain, else.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Better. The longer I think on it, the more I see that
+there is no hope for me, no true repentance,&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo; Again
+that expression on Harry King&rsquo;s face filled Larry&rsquo;s heart
+with deep pity. An inward terror seemed to convulse his
+features and throw a pallor as of age and years of sorrow
+into his visage. Then he continued, after a moment of
+self-mastery: &ldquo;No true repentance for me but to go back
+and take the punishment. For this winter I will live here
+in peace, and do for Madam Manovska and her daughter
+what I can, and anything I can do for you,&ndash;&ndash;then I must
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_236' name='page_236'></a>236</span>
+return and give myself up. The gold only holds out a
+worldly hope to me, and makes what I must do seem harder.
+I am afraid of it.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I&rsquo;ll make you a promise that if I return I&rsquo;ll not let you
+have it, but that it shall be turned to some good work. If
+I do not return, it will rest on your conscience that before
+you make your confession, you shall see it well placed for a
+charity. You&rsquo;ll have to find the charity, I can&rsquo;t say what it
+should be offhand now, but come with me. I must tell
+some man living my secret, and you&rsquo;re the only one. Besides&ndash;&ndash;I
+trust you. Surely I do.&rdquo;</p>
+<hr class='toprule' />
+<div class='chsp'>
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_237' name='page_237'></a>237</span>
+<a name='CHAPTER_XIX_THE_MINEAND_THE_DEPARTURE' id='CHAPTER_XIX_THE_MINEAND_THE_DEPARTURE'></a>
+<h2>CHAPTER XIX</h2>
+<h3>THE MINE&ndash;&ndash;AND THE DEPARTURE</h3>
+</div>
+<p>Larry Kildene went around behind the stall where he
+kept his own horse and returned with a hollow tube of burnt
+clay about a foot long. Into this he thrust a pine knot
+heavy with pitch, and, carrying a bunch of matches in his
+hand, he led the way back of the fodder.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I made these clay handles for my torches myself. They
+are my invention, and I am quite proud of them. You can
+hold this burning knot until it is quite consumed, and that&rsquo;s
+a convenience.&rdquo; He stooped and crept under the fodder,
+and then Harry King saw why he kept more there than his
+horse could eat, and never let the store run low. It was
+to conceal the opening of a long, low passage that might at
+first be taken for a natural cave under the projecting mass
+of rock above them, which formed one side and part of the
+roof of the shed. Quivering with excitement, although
+sad at heart, Harry King followed his guide, who went
+rapidly forward, talking and explaining as he went. Under
+his feet the way was rough and made frequent turns, and
+for the most part seemed to climb upward.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;There you see it. I discovered a vein of ore back there
+at the place we entered, and assayed it and found it rich,
+and see how I worked it out! Here it seemed to end, and
+then I was still sane enough to think I had enough gold for
+my life; I left the digging for a while, and went to find my
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_238' name='page_238'></a>238</span>
+boy. I learned that he was living and had gone into the
+army with his cousin, and I knew we would be of little use
+to each other then, but reasoned that the time was to
+come when the war would be over, and then he would have
+to find a place for himself, and his father&rsquo;s gold would help.
+However it was&ndash;&ndash;I saw I must wait. Sit here a bit on this
+ledge, I want to tell you, but not in self-justification, mind
+you, not that.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I had been in India, and had had my fill of wars and
+fighting. I had no mind to it. I went off and bought
+stores and seed, and thought I would make more of my
+garden and not show myself again in Leauvite until my boy
+was back. It was in my thought, if the lad survived the
+army, to send for him and give him gold to hold his head
+above&ndash;&ndash;well&ndash;&ndash;to start him in life, and let him know his
+father,&ndash;&ndash;but when I returned, the great madness came on
+me.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I had built the shed and stabled my horse there, and
+purposely located my cabin below. The trail up here from
+the plain is a blind one, because of the wash from the hills
+at times, and I didn&rsquo;t fear much from white men,&ndash;&ndash;still
+I concealed my tracks like this. Gold often turns men into
+devils.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>He was silent for a time, and Harry King wondered much
+why he had made no further effort to find his son before
+making to himself the offer he had, but he dared not question
+him, and preferred to let Larry take his own way of
+telling what he would. As if divining his thought Larry
+said quietly: &ldquo;Something held me back from going down
+again to find my son. The way is long, and in the old way
+of traveling over the plains it would take a year or more to
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_239' name='page_239'></a>239</span>
+make the journey and return here, and somehow a superstition
+seized me that my boy would set out sometime to
+find me, and I would make the way easy for him to do it.
+And here on the mountain the years slip by like a long
+sleep.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>He began moving the torch about to show the walls of the
+cave in which they sat, and as he did so he threw the light
+strongly on the young man&rsquo;s face, and scrutinized it sharply.
+He saw again that terrible look of sadness as if his soul
+were dying within him. He saw great drops of sweat on his
+brow, and his eyes narrowed and fixed, and he hurried on
+with the narrative. He could not bear the sight.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Now here, look how this hole widens out? Here was
+where I prospected about to find the vein again, and there
+is where I took it up. All this overhead is full of gold.
+Think what it would mean if a man had the right apparatus
+for getting it out&ndash;&ndash;I mean separating it! I only took what
+was free; that is, what could be easily freed from the quartz.
+Sometimes I found it in fine nuggets, and then I would go
+wild, and work until I was so weak I could hardly crawl
+back to the entrance. I often lay down here and slept
+with fatigue before I could get back and cook my supper.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>As they went on a strange roaring seemed gradually to
+fill the passage, and Harry spoke for the first time since
+they had entered. He feared the sound of his own voice,
+as though if he began to speak, he might scream out, or reveal
+something he was determined to hide. He thought the
+roaring sound might be in his own ears from the surging of
+blood in his veins and the tumultuous beating of his heart.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;What is it I hear? Is my head right?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;The roaring? Yes, you&rsquo;re all right. I thought when
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_240' name='page_240'></a>240</span>
+I was working here and slowly burrowing farther and
+farther that it might be the lack of air, and tried to contrive
+some way of getting it from the outside. I thought all
+the time that I was working farther into the mountain, and
+that I would have to stop or die here like a rat in a hole.
+But you just wait. You&rsquo;ll be surprised in a minute.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Then Harry laughed, and the laugh, unexpected to himself,
+woke him from the trancelike feeling that possessed
+him, and he walked more steadily. &ldquo;I&rsquo;ve been being more
+surprised each minute. Am I in Aladdin&rsquo;s cave&ndash;&ndash;or
+whose is it?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Only mine. Just one more turn here and then&ndash;&ndash;! It
+was not in the night I came here, and it was not all at once,
+as you are coming&ndash;&ndash;hold on! Let me go in front of you.
+The hole was made gradually, until, one morning about
+ten o&rsquo;clock, a great mass of rock&ndash;&ndash;gold bearing, I tell you&ndash;&ndash;rich
+in nuggets&ndash;&ndash;I was crazed to lose it&ndash;&ndash;fell out into
+space, and there I stood on the very verge of eternity.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>They rounded the turn as he talked, and Larry Kildene
+stood forward under the stars and waved the torch over his
+head and held Harry back from the edge with his other
+hand. The air over their heads was sweet and pure and
+cold, and full of the roar of falling water. They could see
+it in a long, vast ribbon of luminous whiteness against the
+black abyss&ndash;&ndash;moving&ndash;&ndash;and waving&ndash;&ndash;coming out from
+nothingness far above them, and reaching down to the
+nethermost depths&ndash;&ndash;in that weird gloom of night&ndash;&ndash;into
+nothingness again.</p>
+<p>Harry stepped back, and back, into the hole from which
+they had emerged, and watched his companion stand holding
+the torch, which lit his features with a deep red light
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_241' name='page_241'></a>241</span>
+until he looked as if he might be the very alchemist of gold&ndash;&ndash;red
+gold&ndash;&ndash;and turning all he looked upon into the metal
+which closes around men&rsquo;s hearts. The red light flashed on
+the white ribbon of water, and this way and that, as he
+waved it around, on the sides of the passage behind him,
+turning each point of projecting rock into red gold.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Do you know where we are? No. We&rsquo;re right under
+the fall&ndash;&ndash;right behind it. No one can ever see this hole
+from the outside. It is as completely hidden as if the
+hand of the Almighty were stretched over it. The rush of
+this body of water always in front of it keeps the air in the
+passage always pure. It&rsquo;s wonderful&ndash;&ndash;wonderful!&rdquo;</p>
+<p>He turned to look at Harry, and saw a wild man crouched
+in the darkness of the passage, glaring, and preparing to
+leap. He seized and shook him. &ldquo;What ails you, man?
+Hold on. Hold on. Keep your head, I say. There! I&rsquo;ve
+got you. Turn about. Now! It&rsquo;s over now. That&rsquo;s
+enough. It won&rsquo;t come again.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Harry moaned. &ldquo;Oh, let me go. Let me get away from
+it.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>The big man still gripped him and held him with his face
+toward the darkness. &ldquo;Tell me what you see,&rdquo; he commanded.</p>
+<p>Still Harry moaned, and sank upon his knees. &ldquo;Lord,
+forgive, forgive!&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Tell me what you see,&rdquo; Larry still commanded. He
+would try to break up this vision seeing.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;God! It is the eye. It follows me. It is gone.&rdquo; He
+heaved a great sigh of relief, but still remained upon his
+knees, quivering and weak. &ldquo;Did you see it? You must
+have seen it.&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_242' name='page_242'></a>242</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;I saw nothing, and you saw nothing. It&rsquo;s in your
+brain, and your brain is sick. You must heal it. You
+must stop it. Stand now, and conquer it.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Harry stood, shivering. &ldquo;I wanted to end it. It would
+have been so easy, and all over so soon,&rdquo; he murmured.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;And you would die a coward, and so add one more crime
+to the first. You&rsquo;d shirk a duty, and desert those who
+need you. You&rsquo;d leave me in the lurch, and those women
+dependent on me&ndash;&ndash;wake up&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I&rsquo;m awake. Let&rsquo;s go away.&rdquo; Harry put his hand to
+his forehead and wiped away the cold drops that stood out
+like glistening beads of blood in the red light of the torch.</p>
+<p>Larry grieved for him, in spite of the harshness of his
+words and tone, and taking him by the elbow, he led him
+kindly back into the passage.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Don&rsquo;t trouble about me now,&rdquo; Harry said at last.
+&ldquo;You&rsquo;ve given me a thought to clutch to&ndash;&ndash;if you really
+do need me&ndash;&ndash;if I could believe it.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Well, you may! Didn&rsquo;t you say you&rsquo;d do for me more
+than sons do for their fathers? I ask you to do just that
+for me. Live for me. It&rsquo;s a hard thing to ask of you, for,
+as you say, the other would be easier, but it&rsquo;s a coward&rsquo;s
+way. Don&rsquo;t let it tempt you. Stand to your guns like a
+man, and if the time comes and you can&rsquo;t see things differently,
+go back and make your confession and die the death&ndash;&ndash;as
+a brave man should. Meantime, live to some purpose
+and do it cheerfully.&rdquo; Larry paused. His words
+sank in, as he meant they should. He guided Harry slowly
+back to the place from which they had diverged, his arm
+across the younger man&rsquo;s shoulder.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Now I&rsquo;ve more to show you. When I saw what I had
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_243' name='page_243'></a>243</span>
+done, I set myself to find another vein, and see this large
+room? I groveled all about here, this way and that. A
+year of this, see. It took patience, and in the meantime
+I went out into the world&ndash;&ndash;as far as San Francisco, and
+wasted a year or more; then back I came.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I tell you there is a lure in the gold, and the mountains
+are powers of peace to a man. It seemed there was no
+other place where I could rest in peace of mind. The longing
+for my son was on me,&ndash;&ndash;but the war still raged, and I
+had no mind for that,&ndash;&ndash;yet I was glad my boy was taking
+his part in the world out of which I had dropped. For one
+thing it seemed as if he were more my own than if he lived
+in Leauvite on the banker&rsquo;s bounty. I would not go back
+there and meet the contempt of Peter Craigmile, for he
+never could forget that I had taken his sister out of hand,
+and she gone&ndash;&ndash;man&ndash;&ndash;it was all too sad. How did I
+know how my son had been taught to think on me? I could
+not go back when I would.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;His name was Richard&ndash;&ndash;my boy&rsquo;s. If he came alive
+from the army I do not know,&ndash;&ndash;See? Here is where I
+found another vein, and I have followed it on there to the
+end of this other branch of the passage, and not exhausted
+it yet. Here&rsquo;s maybe another twenty years&rsquo; work for some
+man. Now, wasn&rsquo;t it a great work for one man alone, to
+tunnel through that rock to the fall? No one man needs
+all that wealth. I&rsquo;ve often thought of Ireland and the
+poverty we left there. If I had my boy to hearten me, I
+could do something for them now. We&rsquo;ll go back and
+sleep, for it&rsquo;s the trail for me to-morrow, and to go and
+come quickly, before the snow falls. Come!&rdquo;</p>
+<p>They returned in silence to the shed. The torch had
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_244' name='page_244'></a>244</span>
+burned well down into the clay handle, and Larry Kildene
+extinguished the last sparks before they crept through the
+fodder to their room in the shed. The fire of logs was
+almost out, and the place growing cold.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You&rsquo;ll find the gold in a strong box made of hewn logs,
+buried in the ground underneath the wood in the addition
+to the cabin. There&rsquo;s no need to go to it yet, not until
+you need money. I&rsquo;ll show you how I prepare it for use, in
+the morning. I do it in the room I made there near the fall.
+It&rsquo;s the most secret place a man ever had for such work.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Larry stretched himself in his bunk and was soon sleeping
+soundly. Not so the younger man. He could not compose
+himself after the excitement of the evening. He
+tossed and turned until morning found him weary and worn,
+but with his troubled mind more at rest than it had been for
+many months. He had fought out his battle, at least for
+the time being, and was at peace.</p>
+<p>Harry King rose and went out into the cold morning air
+and was refreshed. He brought in a large handful of pine
+cones and made a roaring fire in the chimney he had built,
+before Larry roused himself. Then he, too, went out and
+surveyed the sky with practiced eye.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Clear and cool&ndash;&ndash;that argues well for me. If it were
+warm, now, I&rsquo;d hardly like to start. Sometimes the snow
+holds off for weeks in this weather.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>They stood in the pallid light of the early morning an
+hour before the sun, and the wind lifted Larry&rsquo;s hair and
+flapped his shirt sleeves about his arms. It was a tingling,
+sharp breeze, and when they returned to the cave, where
+they went for Harry&rsquo;s lesson in smelting, the old man&rsquo;s
+cheeks were ruddy.</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_245' name='page_245'></a>245</span></div>
+<p>The sun had barely risen when the lesson was over, and
+they descended for breakfast. Amalia had all ready for
+them, and greeted Larry from the doorway.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Good morning, Sir Kildene. You start soon. I have
+many good things to eat all prepare to put in your bag, and
+when you sit to your dinner on the long way, it is that you
+must think of Amalia and know that she says a prayer to
+the sweet Christ, that he send his good angels to watch over
+you all the way you go. A prayer to follow you all the way
+is good, is not?&rdquo; Amalia&rsquo;s frank and untrammeled way
+of referring to Divinity always precipitated a shyness on
+Larry,&ndash;&ndash;a shyness that showed itself in smiles and stammering.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Good&ndash;&ndash;good&ndash;&ndash;yes. Good, maybe so.&rdquo; Harry had
+turned back to bring down Larry&rsquo;s horse and pack mule.
+&ldquo;Now, while we eat,&ndash;&ndash;Harry will be down soon, we won&rsquo;t
+wait for him,&ndash;&ndash;while we eat, let me go over the things I&rsquo;m
+to find for you down below. I must learn the list well by
+heart, or you may send me back for the things I&rsquo;ve missed
+bringing.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>As they talked Amalia took from her wrist a heavy
+bracelet of gold, and from a small leather bag hidden in her
+clothing, a brooch of emeralds, quaintly set and very
+precious. Her mother sat in one of her trancelike moods,
+apparently seeing nothing around her, and Amalia took
+Larry to one side and spoke in low tones.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Sir Kildene, I have thought much, and at last it seems
+to me right to part with these. It is little that we have&ndash;&ndash;and
+no money, only these. What they are worth I have no
+knowledge. Mother may know, but to her I say nothing.
+They are a memory of the days when my father was noble
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_246' name='page_246'></a>246</span>
+and lived at the court. If you can sell them&ndash;&ndash;it is that
+this brooch should bring much money&ndash;&ndash;my father has
+told me. It was saved for my dowry, with a few other
+jewels of less worth. I have no need of dowry. It is that
+I never will marry. Until my mother is gone I can well
+care for her with the lace I make,&ndash;&ndash;and then&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Lass, I can&rsquo;t take these. I have no knowledge of their
+worth&ndash;&ndash;or&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo; He knew he was saying what was not
+true, for he knew well the value of what she laid so trustingly
+in his palm, and his hand quivered under the shining
+jewels. He cleared his throat and began again. &ldquo;I say,
+I can&rsquo;t take jewels so valuable over the trail and run the
+risk of losing them. Never! Put them by as before.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;But how can I ask of you the things I wish? I have no
+money to return for them, and none for all you have done
+for my mother and me. Please, Sir Kildene, take of this,
+then, only enough to buy for our need. It is little to take.
+Do not be hard with me.&rdquo; She pleaded sweetly, placing
+one hand under his great one, and the other over the jewels,
+holding them pressed to his palm. &ldquo;Will you go away and
+leave my heart heavy?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Look here, now&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo; Again he cleared his throat.
+&ldquo;You put them by until I come back, and then&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>But she would not, and tying them in her handkerchief,
+she thrust them in the pocket of his flannel shirt.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;There! It is not safe in such a place. Be sure you
+take care, Sir Kildene. I have many thoughts in my
+mind. It is not all the money of these you will need now,
+and of the rest I may take my mother to a large city, where
+are people who understand the fine lace. There I may sell
+enough to keep us well. But of money will I need first a
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_247' name='page_247'></a>247</span>
+little to get us there. It is well for me, you take these&ndash;&ndash;see?
+Is not?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;No, it is not well.&rdquo; He spoke gruffly in his effort to
+overcome his emotion. &ldquo;Where under heaven can I sell
+these?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You go not to the great city?&rdquo; she asked sadly. &ldquo;How
+must we then so long intrude us upon you! It is very sad.&rdquo;
+She clasped her hands and looked in his eyes, her own
+brimming with tears; then he turned away. Tears in a
+woman&rsquo;s eyes! He could not stand it.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;See here. I&rsquo;ll tell you what I&rsquo;ll do. If that railroad
+is through anywhere&ndash;&ndash;so&ndash;&ndash;so&ndash;&ndash;I can reach San Francisco&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;
+He thought he knew that to be an impossibility,
+and that she would be satisfied. &ldquo;I say&ndash;&ndash;if it&rsquo;s where I
+can reach San Francisco, I&rsquo;ll see what can be done.&rdquo; He
+cleared his throat a great many times, and stood awkwardly,
+hardly daring to move with the precious jewels in his pocket.
+&ldquo;See here. They&rsquo;ll joggle out of here. Can&rsquo;t you&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>She turned on him radiantly. &ldquo;You may have my bag
+of leather. In that will they be safe.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>She removed the string from her neck and by it pulled
+the small embossed case from her bosom, shook out the
+few rings and unset stones left in it, and returned the larger
+jewels to it, and gave it into his hand, still warm from its
+soft resting place. At the same moment Harry arrived,
+leading the animals. He lifted his head courageously and
+his eyes shone as with an inspiration.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Will you let me accompany you a bit of the way, sir?
+I&rsquo;d like to go.&rdquo; Larry accepted gladly. He knew then
+what he would do with Amalia&rsquo;s dowry. &ldquo;Then I&rsquo;ll bring
+Goldbug. Thank you, Amalia, yes. I&rsquo;ll drink my coffee
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_248' name='page_248'></a>248</span>
+now, and eat as I ride.&rdquo; He ran back for his horse and soon
+returned, and then drank his coffee and snatched a bite,
+while Amalia and Larry slung the bags of food and the water
+on the mule and made all ready for the start. As he ate, he
+tried to arouse and encourage the mother, but she remained
+stolid until they were in the saddle, when she rose and
+followed them a few steps, and said in her deep voice: &ldquo;Yes,
+I ask a thing. You will find Paul, my &rsquo;usband. Tell him
+to come to me&ndash;&ndash;it is best&ndash;&ndash;no more,&ndash;&ndash;I cannot in English.&rdquo;
+Then turning to her daughter she spoke volubly
+in her own tongue, and waved her hand imperiously toward
+the men.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes, mamma. I tell all you say.&rdquo; Amalia took a step
+away from the door, and her mother returned to her seat by
+the fire.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;It is so sad. My mother thinks my father is returned
+to our own country and that you go there. She thinks you
+are our friend Sir McBride in disguise, and that you go to
+help my father. She fears you will be taken and sent to
+Siberia, and says tell my father it is enough. He must no
+more try to save our fatherland: that our noblemen are
+full of ingratitude, and that he must return to her and live
+hereafter in peace.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Let be so. It&rsquo;s a saving hallucination. Tell her if
+I find your father, I will surely deliver the message.&rdquo;
+And the two men rode away up the trail, conversing
+earnestly.</p>
+<p>Larry Kildene explained to Harry about the jewels, and
+turned them over to his keeping. &ldquo;I had to take them, you
+see. You hide them in that chamber I showed you, along
+with the gold bars. Hang it around your neck, man, until
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_249' name='page_249'></a>249</span>
+you get back. It has rested on her bosom, and if I were a
+young man like you, that fact alone would make it sacred
+to me. It&rsquo;s her dowry, she said. I&rsquo;d sooner part with my
+right hand than take it from her.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;So would I.&rdquo; Harry took the case tenderly, and hid it
+as directed, and went on to ask the favor he had accompanied
+Larry to ask. It was that he might go down and
+bring the box from the wagon.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Early this morning, before I woke you, I led the brown
+horse you brought the mother up the mountain on out
+toward the trail; we&rsquo;ll find him over the ridge, all packed
+ready, and when I ran back for my horse, I left a letter
+written in charcoal on the hearth there in the shed&ndash;&ndash;Amalia
+will be sure to go there and find it, if I don&rsquo;t return
+now&ndash;&ndash;telling her what I&rsquo;m after and that I&rsquo;ll only be gone
+a few days. She&rsquo;s brave, and can get along without us.&rdquo;
+Larry did not reply at once, and Harry continued.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;It will only take us a day and a half to reach it, and
+with your help, a sling can be made of the canvas top of the
+wagon, and the two animals can &lsquo;tote it&rsquo; as the darkies
+down South say. I can walk back up the trail, or even
+ride one of the horses. We&rsquo;ll take the tongue and the
+reach from the wagon and make a sort of affair to hang to
+the beasts, I know how it can be done. There may not be
+much of value in the box, but then&ndash;&ndash;there may be. I
+see Amalia wishes it of all things, and that&rsquo;s enough for&ndash;&ndash;us.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Thus it came that the two women were alone for five
+days. Madam Manovska did not seem to heed the absence
+of the two men at first, and waited in a contentment she
+had not shown before. It would seem that, as Larry had
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_250' name='page_250'></a>250</span>
+said, there was saving in her hallucination, but Amalia
+was troubled by it.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Mother is so sure they will bring my father back,&rdquo; she
+thought. She tried to forestall any such catastrophe as
+she feared by explaining that they might not find her father
+or he might not return, even if he got her message, not
+surely, for he had always done what he thought his duty
+before anything else, and he might think it his duty to stay
+where he could find something to do.</p>
+<p>When Harry King did not return that night, Amalia
+did as he had laughingly suggested to her, when he left,
+&ldquo;You&rsquo;ll find a letter out in the shed,&rdquo; was all he said. So
+she went up to the shed, and there she lighted a torch, and
+kneeling on the stones of the wide hearth, she read what he
+had written for her.</p>
+<blockquote>
+<p>&ldquo;To the Lady Amalia Manovska:</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Mr. Kildene will help me get your box. It will not be hard, for
+the two of us, and after it is drawn out and loaded I can get up with
+it myself and he can go on. I will soon be with you again, never
+fear. Do not be afraid of Indians. If there were any danger, I would
+not leave you. There is no way by which they would be likely to
+reach you except by the trail on which we go, and we will know if they
+are about before they can possibly get up the trail. I have seen you
+brave on the plains, and you will be as brave on the mountain top.
+Good-by for a few days.</p>
+<p class='ralign'>&ldquo;Yours to serve you,<span class='rindent8'>&nbsp;</span><br />
+&ldquo;Harry King.&rdquo;<span class='rindent2'>&nbsp;</span></p>
+</blockquote>
+<p>The tears ran fast down her cheeks as she read. &ldquo;Oh,
+why did I speak of it&ndash;&ndash;why? He may be killed. He may
+die of this attempt.&rdquo; She threw the torch from her into the
+fireplace, and clasping her hands began to pray, first in
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_251' name='page_251'></a>251</span>
+English her own words, then the prayers for those in peril
+which she had learned in the convent. Then, lying on
+her face, she prayed frantically in her own tongue for
+Harry&rsquo;s safety. At last, comforted a little, she took up the
+torch and, flushed and tearful, walked down in the darkness
+to the cabin and crept into bed.</p>
+<hr class='toprule' />
+<div class='chsp'>
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_252' name='page_252'></a>252</span>
+<a name='CHAPTER_XX_ALONE_ON_THE_MOUNTAIN' id='CHAPTER_XX_ALONE_ON_THE_MOUNTAIN'></a>
+<h2>CHAPTER XX</h2>
+<h3>ALONE ON THE MOUNTAIN</h3>
+</div>
+<p>For the first two days of Harry King&rsquo;s absence Madam
+Manovska relapsed into a more profound melancholy, and
+the care of her mother took up Amalia&rsquo;s time and thoughts
+so completely as to give her little for indulging her own
+anxiety for Harry&rsquo;s safety. Strangely, she felt no fear
+for themselves, although they were thus alone on the mountain
+top. She had a sense of security there which she had
+never felt in the years since she had been taken from the
+convent to share her parents&rsquo; wanderings. She made an
+earnest effort to divert and arouse her mother and succeeded
+until Madam Manovska talked much and volubly in Polish,
+and revealed more of the thoughts that possessed her in
+the long hours of brooding than she had ever told Amalia
+before. It seemed that she confidently expected the return
+of the men with her husband, and that the message
+she had sent by Larry Kildene would surely bring him. The
+thought excited her greatly, and Amalia found it necessary
+to keep continual watch lest she wander off down the trail
+in the direction they had taken, and be lost.</p>
+<p>For a time Amalia tried to prevent Madam Manovska
+from dwelling on the past, until she became convinced that
+to do so was not well, since it only induced the fits of brooding.
+She then decided to encourage her mother to speak
+freely of her memories, rather than to keep them locked in
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_253' name='page_253'></a>253</span>
+her own mind. It was in one of these intervals of talkativeness
+that Amalia learned the cause of that strange cry that
+had so pierced her heart and startled her on the trail.</p>
+<p>They had gone out for a walk, as the only means of inducing
+her mother to sleep was to let her walk in the clear air
+until so weary as to bring her to the point of exhaustion.
+This time they went farther than Amalia really intended,
+and had left the paths immediately about the cabin, and
+climbed higher up the mountain. Here there was no trail
+and the way was rough indeed, but Madam Manovska
+was in one of her most wayward moods and insisted on
+going higher and farther.</p>
+<p>Her strength was remarkable, but it seemed to be strength
+of will rather than of body, for all at once she sank down,
+unable to go forward or to return. Amalia led her to the
+shade of a great gnarled tree, a species of fir, and made her
+lie down on a bed of stiff, coarse moss, and there she pillowed
+her mother&rsquo;s head on her lap. Whether it was something
+in the situation in which she found herself or not, her
+mother began to tell her of a time about which she had
+hitherto kept silent. It was of the long march through heat
+and cold, over the wildest ways of the earth to Siberia, at
+her husband&rsquo;s side.</p>
+<p>She told how she had persisted in going with him, even
+at the cost of dressing in the garb of the exiles from the
+prisons and pretending to be one of the condemned. Only
+one of the officers knew her secret, who for reasons of humanity&ndash;&ndash;or
+for some other feeling&ndash;&ndash;kept silence. She
+carried her child in her arms, a boy, five months old, and
+was allowed to walk at her husband&rsquo;s side instead of following
+on with the other women. She told how they carried a
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_254' name='page_254'></a>254</span>
+few things on their backs, and how one and another of
+the men would take the little one at intervals to help her,
+and how long the marches were when the summer was on
+the wane and they wished to make as much distance as
+possible before they were delayed by storms and snow.</p>
+<p>Then she told how the storms came at last, and how her
+baby fell ill, and cried and cried&ndash;&ndash;all the time&ndash;&ndash;and how
+they walked in deep snow, until one and another fell by the
+way and never walked farther. She told how some of the
+weaker ones were finally left behind, because they could
+get on faster without them, but that the place where they
+were left was a terrible one under a cruel man, and that
+her child would surely have died there before the winter
+was over, and that when she persisted in keeping on with
+her husband, they beat her, but at last consented on condition
+that she would leave her baby boy. Then how she
+appealed to the officer who knew well who she was and that
+she was not one of the condemned, but had followed her husband
+for love, and to intercede for him when he would have
+been ill-treated; and that the man had allowed her to have
+her way, but later had demanded as his reward for yielding
+to her, that she no longer belong to her husband, but to
+him.</p>
+<p>Looking off at the far ranges of mountains with steady
+gaze, she told of the mountains they had crossed, and the
+rushing, terrible rivers; and how, one day, the officer who
+had been kind only that he might be more cruel, had determined
+to force her to obedience, and how he grew very
+angry&ndash;&ndash;so angry that when they had come to a trail that
+was well-nigh impassable, winding around the side of a
+mountain, where was a fearful rushing river far below them,
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_255' name='page_255'></a>255</span>
+and her baby cried in her arms for cold and hunger, how he
+had snatched the child from her and hurled it over the
+precipice into the swift water, and how she had shrieked
+and struck him and was crazed and remembered no more
+for days, except to call continually on God to send down
+curses on that officer&rsquo;s head. She told how after that they
+were held at a certain station for a long time, but that she
+was allowed to stay by her husband only because the officer
+feared the terrible curses she had asked of God to descend
+on that man, that he dared no more touch her.</p>
+<p>Then Amalia understood many things better than ever
+before, and grew if possible more tender of her mother.
+She thought how all during that awful time she had been
+safe and sheltered in the convent, and her life guarded;
+and moreover, she understood why her father had always
+treated her mother as if she were higher than the angels
+and with the courtesy and gentleness of a knight errant.
+He had bowed to her slightest wish, and no wonder her
+mother thought that when he received her request to return
+to her, and give up his hope, he would surely come to her.</p>
+<p>More than ever Amalia feared the days to come if she
+could in no way convince her mother that it was not expedient
+for her father to return yet. To say again that he
+was dead she dared not, even if she could persuade Madam
+Manovska to believe it; for it seemed to her in that event
+that her mother would give up all interest in life, and die of
+a broken heart. But from the first she had not accepted the
+thought of her husband&rsquo;s death, and held stubbornly to the
+belief that he had joined Harry King to find help. He had,
+indeed, wandered away from them a few hours after the
+young man&rsquo;s departure and had been unable to find his
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_256' name='page_256'></a>256</span>
+way back, and, until Larry Kildene came to them, they had
+comforted themselves that the two men were together.</p>
+<p>Much more Madam Manovska told her daughter that
+day, before she slept; and Amalia questioned her more
+closely than she had ever done concerning her father&rsquo;s faith.
+Thereafter she sat for a long time on the bank of coarse moss
+and pondered, with her mother&rsquo;s head pillowed on her lap.
+The sun reached the hour of noon, and still the mother
+slept and the daughter would not waken her.</p>
+<p>She took from the small velvet bag she always carried with
+her, a crisp cake of corn meal and ate to satisfy her sharp
+hunger, for the keen air and the long climb gave her the
+appetite belonging to the vigorous health which was hers.
+They had climbed that part of the mountain directly behind
+the cabin, and from the secluded spot where they sat she
+could look down on it and on the paths leading to it;
+thankful and happy that at last they were where all was
+so safe, no fear of intrusion entered her mind. Even her
+first anxiety about the Indians she had dismissed.</p>
+<p>Now, as her eyes wandered absently over the far distance
+and dropped to the nearer hills, and on down to the cabin
+and the patch of cultivated ground, what was her horror
+to see three figures stealing with swift, gliding tread toward
+the fodder shed from above, where was no trail, only
+such rough and wild hillside as that by which she and her
+mother had climbed. The men seemed to be carrying something
+slung between them on a pole. With long, gliding
+steps they walked in single file as she had seen the Indians
+walk on the plains.</p>
+<p>She drew in her breath sharply and clasped her hands
+in supplication. Had those men seen them? Devoutly
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_257' name='page_257'></a>257</span>
+she prayed that they might not look up toward the heights
+where she and her mother sat. As they continued to descend
+she lost sight of them among the pines and the undergrowth
+which was more vigorous near the fall, and then
+they appeared again and went into the cabin. She thought
+they must have been in the fodder shed when she lost sight
+of them, and now she waited breathlessly to see them emerge
+from the cabin. For an hour she sat thus, straining her
+eyes lest she miss seeing them when they came forth, and
+fearing lest her mother waken. Then she saw smoke issuing
+from the cabin chimney, and her heart stopped its beating.
+What! Were they preparing to stay there? How
+could her mother endure the cold of the mountain all night?</p>
+<p>Then she began to consider how she might protect her
+mother after the sun had gone from the cold that would
+envelop them. Reasoning that as long as the Indians
+stayed in the cabin they could not be seen by them, she
+looked about for some projecting ledge under which they
+might creep for the night. Gently she lifted her mother&rsquo;s
+head and placed it on her own folded shawl, and, with an
+eye ever on the cabin below, she crept further up the side
+of the mountain until she found a place where a huge rock,
+warmed by the sun, projected far out, and left a hollow
+beneath, into which they might creep. Frantically she
+tore off twigs of the scrubby pines around them, and made
+a fragrant bed of pine needles and moss on which to rest.
+Then she woke her mother.</p>
+<p>Sane and practical on all subjects but the one, Madam
+Manovska roused herself to meet this new difficulty with
+the old courage, and climbed with Amalia&rsquo;s help to their
+wild resting place without a word of complaint. There she
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_258' name='page_258'></a>258</span>
+sat looking out over the magnificent scene before her with
+her great brooding eyes, and ate the coarse corn cake
+Amalia put in her hands.</p>
+<p>She talked, always in Polish or in French, of the men
+&ldquo;rouge,&rdquo; and said she did not wonder they came to so good
+a place to rest, and that she would give thanks to the great
+God that she and her daughter were on the mountain when
+they arrived. She reminded Amalia that if she had consented
+to return when her daughter wished, they would
+now have been in the cabin with those terrible men, and
+said that she had been inspired of God to stay long on the
+mountain. Contentedly, then, she munched her cake, and
+remarked that water would give comfort in the eating of it,
+but she smiled and made the best of the dry food. Then
+she prayed that her husband might be detained until the
+men were gone.</p>
+<p>Amalia gave her mother the water that was left in the
+bottle she had brought with her, and lamented that she had
+saved so little for her. &ldquo;It was so bad, not to save more for
+my mamma,&rdquo; she cried, giving the bottle with its lowered
+contents into her mother&rsquo;s hand. &ldquo;I go to watch, mamma
+mine. Soon will I return.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Amalia went back to her point of vantage, where she
+could see all about the cabin and shed. Still the smoke
+poured from the chimney, and there was no sign of red men
+without. It was a mountain sheep they had carried, slung
+between them, and now they dressed and cooked a portion
+of it, and were gorging themselves comfortably before the
+fire, with many grunts of satisfaction at the finding of the
+formidable owner of the premises absent. They were on
+their way to Laramie to trade and sell game, and it was
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_259' name='page_259'></a>259</span>
+their intention to leave a portion of their mutton with Larry
+Kildene; for never did they dare venture near him without
+bringing a propitiatory offering.</p>
+<p>The sun had set and the cold mists were blowing across
+from the fall and closing around the cabin like a veil of
+amethystine dye, when Amalia saw them moving about
+the cabin door as if preparing to depart. Her heart rose,
+and she signaled her mother, but no. They went indoors
+again, and she saw them no more. In truth they had disputed
+long as to whether it was best to leave before the big
+man&rsquo;s return, or to remain in their comfortable quarters
+and start early, before day. It was the conference that
+drew them out, and they had made ready to start at a
+moment&rsquo;s notice if he should return in the night. But as
+the darkness crept on and Larry Kildene did not appear
+they stretched themselves before the fire and slept, and the
+two women on the mountain, hungry and cold, crept under
+the mother&rsquo;s cloak and lay long into the night, shivering and
+listening, couched on the pine twigs Amalia had spread
+under the ledge of rock. At last, clasped in each other&rsquo;s
+arms, they slept, in spite of fear and cold, for very weariness.</p>
+<p>Amalia woke next morning to the low murmuring of a
+voice. It was her mother, kneeling in the pine needles,
+praying at her side. She waited until the prayer was ended,
+then she rose and went out from the sheltered hollow where
+they lay. &ldquo;I will look a little, mamma. Wait for me.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>She gazed down on the cabin, but all was still. The amethystine
+veil had not lifted, and no smoke came from the
+chimney. She crept back to her mother&rsquo;s side, and they
+sat close for warmth, and waited. When the sun rose and
+the clouds melted away, all the earth smiled up at them,
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_260' name='page_260'></a>260</span>
+and their fears seemed to melt away with the clouds. Still
+they did not venture out where they thought they might be
+spied from below, and time passed while they watched
+earnestly for the sight of moving figures, and still no smoke
+appeared from the cabin.</p>
+<p>Higher and higher the sun climbed in the sky, yet they
+could not bring themselves to return. Hunger pressed
+them, and Amalia begged her mother to let her go a little
+nearer to listen, but she would not. So they discussed together
+in their own tongue and neither would allow the other
+to venture below, and still no smoke issued from the chimney.</p>
+<p>At last Amalia started and pressed her hand to her heart.
+What did she see far along on the trail toward the desert?
+Surely, a man with two animals, climbing toward the turn.
+Her eyes danced for gladness as she turned a flushed face
+toward her mother.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Look, mamma! Far on,&ndash;&ndash;no&ndash;&ndash;there! It is&ndash;&ndash;mamma
+mine&ndash;&ndash;it is &rsquo;Arry King!&rdquo; The mere sight of him
+made her break out in English. &ldquo;It is that I must go to
+him and tell him of the Indian in the cabin before he arrive.
+If he come on them there, and they kill him! Oh, let me
+go quickly.&rdquo; At the thought of him, and the danger he
+might meet, all her fears of the men &ldquo;rouge&rdquo; returned upon
+her, and she was gone, passing with incredible swiftness
+over the rough way, to try to intercept him before he could
+reach the cabin.</p>
+<p>But she need not have feared, for the Indians were long
+gone. Before daybreak they had passed Harry where he
+rested in the deep dusk of the morning, without knowing
+he was near. With swift, silent steps they had passed down
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_261' name='page_261'></a>261</span>
+the trail, taking as much of Larry Kildene&rsquo;s corn as they
+could carry, and leaving the bloody pelt of the sheep and
+a very meager share of the mutton in exchange. Hungry
+and footsore, yet eager and glad to have come home successfully,
+Harry King walked forward, leading his good
+yellow horse, his eyes fixed on the cabin, and wondering
+not a little; for he, too, saw that no smoke was issuing from
+the chimney.</p>
+<p>He hastened, and all Amalia&rsquo;s swiftness could not bring
+her to him before he reached his goal. He saw first the
+bloody pelt hanging beside the door, and his heart stood
+still. Those two women never could have done that!
+Where were they? He dropped the leading strap, leaving
+the weary horses where they stood, and ran forward to
+enter the cabin and see the evidence of Indians all about.
+There were the clean-picked bones of their feast and the
+dirt from their feet on Amalia&rsquo;s carefully kept floor. The
+disorder smote him, and he ran out again in the sun. Looking
+this way and that, he called and listened and called
+again. Why did no answer reach him? Poor Amalia!
+In her haste she had turned her foot and now, fainting with
+pain, and with fear for him, she could not find her voice to
+reply.</p>
+<p>He thought he heard a low cry. Was it she? He ran
+again, and now he saw her, high above him, a dark heap on
+the ground. Quickly he was by her side, and, kneeling, he
+gathered her in his arms. He forgot all but that she was
+living and that he held her, and he kissed her white face
+and her lips, and said all the tender things in his heart.
+He did not know what he was saying. He only knew that
+he could feel her heart beat, and that she was opening her
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_262' name='page_262'></a>262</span>
+eyes, and that with quivering arms she clasped his neck,
+and that her tears wet his cheek, and that, over and over,
+her lips were repeating his name.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;&rsquo;Arry&ndash;&ndash;&rsquo;Arry King! You are come back. Ah, &rsquo;Arry
+King, my heart cry with the great gladness they have not
+killed you.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>All in the same instant he bethought himself that he
+must not caress her thus. Yet filled with a gladness he
+could not fathom he still clung to her and still murmured
+the words he meant never to speak to her. One thing he
+could do. One thing sweet and right to do. He could
+carry her to the cabin. How could she reach it else?
+His heart leaped that he had at least that right.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;No, &rsquo;Arry King. You have walk the long, hard way,
+and are very weary.&rdquo; But still he carried her.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Put me down, &rsquo;Arry King.&rdquo; Then he obeyed her, and
+set her gently down. &ldquo;I am too great a burden. See,
+thus? If you help me a little&ndash;&ndash;it is that I may hop&ndash;&ndash;It
+is better, is not?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>She smiled in his face, but he only stooped and lifted her
+again in his arms. &ldquo;You are not a burden, Amalia. Put
+your arms around my neck, and lean on me.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>She obeyed him, and he could say no more for the beating
+of his heart. Carefully and slowly he made his way, setting
+his feet cautiously among the stones that obstructed his
+path. Madam Manovska from her heights above saw how
+her daughter was being carried, and, guessing the trouble,
+snatched up the velvet bag Amalia had dropped in her
+haste, flung her cloak about her, and began to thread her
+way down, slowly and carefully; for, as she said to herself,
+&ldquo;We must not both break the bones at one time.&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_263' name='page_263'></a>263</span></div>
+<p>To Harry it seemed no sound was ever sweeter than
+Amalia&rsquo;s low voice as she coaxed him brokenly to set her
+down and allow her to walk.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;This is great foolishness, &rsquo;Arry King, that you carry me.
+Put me down that you rest a little.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I can&rsquo;t, Amalia.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You have walk all the long trail&ndash;&ndash;I saw you walk&ndash;&ndash;and
+lead those horse, for only to bring our box. How my
+heart can thank you is not possible. &rsquo;Arry King, you are
+so weary&ndash;&ndash;put me down.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I can&rsquo;t, Amalia,&rdquo; again was all he said. So he held her,
+comforting his heart that he had this right, until he drew
+near the cabin, and there Amalia saw the pelt of the sheep
+hung upon the wall of the cabin, pitifully dangling, bloody
+and ragged. Strangely, at the sight quite harmless, yet
+gruesome, all her fortitude gave way. With a cry of terror
+she hid her face and clung to him.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;No, no. I cannot go there&ndash;&ndash;not near it&ndash;&ndash;no!&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, you brave, sweet woman! It is only a skin.
+Don&rsquo;t look at it, then. You have been frightened. I see
+how you have suffered. Wait. There&ndash;&ndash;no, don&rsquo;t put
+your foot to the ground. Sit on this hillock while I take it
+away.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>But she only clung to him the more, and sobbed convulsively.
+&ldquo;I am afraid&ndash;&ndash;&rsquo;Arry King. Oh, if&ndash;&ndash;if&ndash;&ndash;they
+are there still! Those Indian! Do not go there.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;But they are gone; I have been in and they are not there.
+I won&rsquo;t take you into that place until I have made it fit
+for you again. Sit here awhile. Amalia Manovska,&ndash;&ndash;I
+can&rsquo;t see you weep.&rdquo; So tenderly he spoke her name, with
+quivering lips, reverently. With all his power he held himself
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_264' name='page_264'></a>264</span>
+and would dare no more. If only once more he might
+touch her lips with his&ndash;&ndash;only once in his renunciation&ndash;&ndash;but
+no. His conscience forbade him. Memory closed
+upon him like a deadening cloud and drenched his hurt
+soul with sorrow. He rose from stooping above her and
+looked back.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Your mother is coming. She will be here in a moment
+and then I will set that room in order for you, and&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;
+his voice shook so that he was obliged to pause. He stooped
+again to her and spoke softly: &ldquo;Amalia Manovska, stop
+weeping. Your tears fall on my heart.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Ah, what have happen, to you&ndash;&ndash;to Amalia&ndash;&ndash;? Those
+terrible men &lsquo;rouge&rsquo;!&rdquo; cried Madam Manovska, hurrying
+forward.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, Madam, I am glad you have come. The Indians
+are gone, never fear. Amalia has hurt her foot. It is
+very painful. You will know what to do for her, and I
+will leave her while I make things more comfortable in
+there.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>He left them and ran to the cabin, and hastily taking
+the hideous pelt from the wall, hid it, and then set himself
+to cleaning the room and burning the litter of bones and
+scraps left from the feast. It was horrible&ndash;&ndash;yes, horrible,
+that they should have had such a fright, and alone there.
+Soon he went back, and again taking her in his arms, unresisted
+now, he laid her on the bunk, then knelt and removed
+her worn shoe.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Little worn shoe! It has walked many a mile, has it
+not? Did you think to ask Larry Kildene to bring you
+new ones?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;No, I forgot my feet.&rdquo; She laughed, and the spell of
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_265' name='page_265'></a>265</span>
+tears was broken. The long strain of anxiety and fear and
+then the sudden release had been too much. Moreover,
+she was faint with hunger. Without explanation Harry
+King understood. He looked to the mother for help and
+saw that a change had come over her. Roused from her
+apathy she was preparing food, and looking from her to
+Amalia, they exchanged a glance of mutual relief.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;How it is beautiful to see her!&rdquo; Amalia spoke low.
+&ldquo;It is my hurt that is good for her mind. I am glad of the
+hurt.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>He sat with the shoe in his hand. &ldquo;Will you let me bind
+your ankle, Amalia? It will grow worse unless something
+is done quickly.&rdquo; He spoke humbly, as one beseeching a
+favor.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Now it is already better, you have remove the shoe.&rdquo;
+How he loved her quaint, rapid speech! &ldquo;Mamma will
+bind it, for you have to do for those horse and the mule.
+I know&ndash;&ndash;I have seen&ndash;&ndash;to take them to drink and eat,
+and take from them the load&ndash;&ndash;the burden. It is the box&ndash;&ndash;for
+that have you risk your life, and the gladness we
+feel to again have it is&ndash;&ndash;is only one greater&ndash;&ndash;and that is
+to have you again with us. Oh, what a sorrow and terror&ndash;&ndash;if
+you had not come&ndash;&ndash;I can never make you know.
+When I see those Indian come walking after each other so
+as they go&ndash;&ndash;my heart cease to beat&ndash;&ndash;and my body become
+like the ice&ndash;&ndash;for the fear. When fearing for myself,
+it is bad, but when for another it is much&ndash;&ndash;much&ndash;&ndash;more
+terrible. So have I found it.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Her mother came then to attend to her hurt, interrupting
+Amalia&rsquo;s flow of speech, and Harry went out to the animals,
+full of care and misgiving. What now could he do? How
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_266' name='page_266'></a>266</span>
+endure the days to come with their torture of repression?
+How shield her from himself and his love&ndash;&ndash;when she so
+freely gave? What middle course was possible, without
+making her suffer?</p>
+<p>That afternoon all the events of his journey were told
+to them as they questioned him keenly, and he learned by
+little words and looks exchanged between them how great
+had been their anxiety for him, and of their night of terror
+on the mountain. But now that it was past and they were
+all unhurt except for Amalia&rsquo;s accident, they made light of
+it. He dragged in the box, and before he left them that
+night he prepared Larry&rsquo;s gun, and told Amalia to let nothing
+frighten her.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Don&rsquo;t leave the bunk, nor put your foot to the ground.
+Fire the gun at the slightest disturbance, and I will surely
+hear. I have another in the shed. Or I will roll myself
+in my blanket, and sleep outside your door. Yes, I
+will do that.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Then the mother turned on him and spoke in her deep
+tones: &ldquo;Go to your bed, &rsquo;Arry King, and sleep well. You
+have need. We asked of the good God your safety, and
+our fear is gone. Good night.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Good-night.&rdquo;</p>
+<hr class='toprule' />
+<div class='chsp'>
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_267' name='page_267'></a>267</span>
+<a name='CHAPTER_XXI_THE_VIOLIN' id='CHAPTER_XXI_THE_VIOLIN'></a>
+<h2>CHAPTER XXI</h2>
+<h3>THE VIOLIN</h3>
+</div>
+<p>While Amalia lay recovering from the sprained ankle,
+which proved to be a serious hurt, Madam Manovska continued
+to improve. She took up the duties which had before
+occupied Amalia only, and seemed to grow more cheerful.
+Still she remained convinced that Larry Kildene
+would return with her husband, and her daughter&rsquo;s anxiety
+as to what might be the outcome, when the big man
+should arrive alone, deepened.</p>
+<p>Harry King guardedly and tenderly watched over the
+two women. Every day he carried Amalia out in the sun
+to a sheltered place, where she might sit and work at the
+fascinating lace with which her fingers seemed to be only
+playing, yet which developed into webs of most intricate
+design, even while her eyes were not fixed upon it, but were
+glancing about at whatever interested her, or up in his face,
+as she talked to him impulsively in her fluent, inverted
+English.</p>
+<p>Amalia was not guarded; she was lavish with her interest
+in all he said, and in her quick, responsive, and poetic play
+of fancy&ndash;&ndash;ardent and glowing&ndash;&ndash;glad to give out from
+her soul its best to this man who had befriended her father
+in their utmost need and who had saved her own and her
+mother&rsquo;s life. She knew always when a cloud gathered over
+his spirit, and made it her duty to dispel such mists of some
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_268' name='page_268'></a>268</span>
+possible sad memory by turning his thoughts to whatever
+of beauty she found around them, or in the inspiration of
+her own rich nature.</p>
+<p>To avoid disquieting her by the studied guardedness of
+his manner, Harry employed himself as much of the time
+as possible away from the cabin, often in providing game for
+the winter. Larry Kildene had instructed him how to
+cure and dry the meat and to store it and also how to care
+for the skins, but because of the effect of that sight of the
+bloody sheep&rsquo;s pelt on Amalia, he never showed her a poor
+little dead creature, or the skin of one. He brought her
+mother whatever they required of food, carefully prepared,
+and that was all.</p>
+<p>He constructed a chair for her and threw over it furs from
+Larry Kildene&rsquo;s store, making it soft and comfortable
+thereby. He made also a footstool for the hurt ankle to
+rest upon, and found a beautiful lynx skin with which to
+cover her feet. The back of the chair he made high, and
+hinged it with leather to the seat, arranging it so that by
+means of pegs it might be raised or lowered. Without
+lumber, and with the most simple tools, he sawed and hewed
+the logs, and lacking nails he set it together with pegs, but
+what matter? It was comfortable, and in the making of
+it he eased his heart by expressing his love without sorrowful
+betrayal.</p>
+<p>Amalia laughed as she sat in it, one day, close to the open
+door, because the air was too pinching cold for her to be out.
+She laughed as she put her hands in the soft fur and drew
+her fingers through it, and looked up in Harry&rsquo;s face.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You are thinking me so foolish, yes, to have about me
+the skins of poor little killed beasts? Yet I weeped all
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_269' name='page_269'></a>269</span>
+those tears on your coat because to see the other&ndash;&ndash;yes,&ndash;&ndash;hanging
+beside the door. It is so we are&ndash;&ndash;is not?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I&rsquo;m glad enough you&rsquo;re not consistent. It would be a
+blot on your character.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;But for why, Mr. &rsquo;Arry?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, I couldn&rsquo;t stand it.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Again she laughed. &ldquo;How it is very peculiar&ndash;&ndash;that
+reason you give. Not to stand it! Could you then to sit
+it?&rdquo; But Harry only laughed and looked away from her.
+She laid her face against the soft fur. &ldquo;Good little animals&ndash;&ndash;to
+give me your life. But some time you would die&ndash;&ndash;perhaps
+with sorrow of hunger and age, and the life be for
+nothing. This is better.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;There you&rsquo;re right. Let me draw you back in the room
+and close the door. It will freeze to-night, I&rsquo;m thinking.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, not yet, please! I have yet to see the gloryful
+sky of the west. Last evening how it was beautiful! To-night
+it will be more lovely to look upon for the long line
+of little cloud there on which the red of the sun will burn
+like fire in the heaven over the mountain.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You must enjoy the beauty, Amalia, and then pray
+that there may be no snow. It looks like it, and we want
+the snow to hold off until Larry comes back.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;We pray, always, my mamma and I. She that he come
+back quickly, and me&ndash;&ndash;I pray that he come back safely&ndash;&ndash;but
+to be soon&ndash;&ndash;it is such terror to me.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Larry will find a way out of the difficulty. He will
+have an excuse all thought out for your mother. I am more
+anxious about the snow with a sunset sky like that, but I
+don&rsquo;t know anything about this region.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Mr. &rsquo;Arry, so very clever you are in making things, can
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_270' name='page_270'></a>270</span>
+you help me to one more thing? I like very much to have
+the sticks for lame walking,&ndash;&ndash;what you call&ndash;&ndash;the crutch?
+Yes. I have for so long time spoken only the Polish that
+I forget me greatly the English. You must talk to me
+much, and make me reproof of my mistakes. Do you
+know for why I like the crutch? It is that I would go each
+day&ndash;&ndash;many times to see the water fall down. Ah, how
+that is beautiful! In the sun, or early in the morning, or in
+the night, always beautiful!&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You shall have the crutches, Amalia, and until I get
+them made, I will carry you to the fall each day. Come,
+I will take you there now. I will wrap these furs around
+you, and you shall see the fall in the evening light.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;No, &rsquo;Arry King. To-morrow I will try to ride on the
+horse if you will lift me up on him. I will let you do this.
+But you may not carry me as you have done. I am now so
+strong. You may make me the crutch, yes.&rdquo; Of all
+things he wished her to let him carry her to the fall, but
+her refusal was final, and he set about making the crutches
+immediately.</p>
+<p>Through the evening he worked on them, and at nightfall
+the next day he brought them to her. As he came down
+from his shed, carrying the crutches proudly, he heard sweet,
+quavering tones in the air wafted intermittently. The wind
+was still, and through the evening hush the tones strengthened
+as he drew nearer the cabin, until they seemed to wrap
+him in a net of interwoven cadences and fine-spun threads
+of quivering melody&ndash;&ndash;a net of sound, inclosing his spirit
+in its intricate mesh of sweetness.</p>
+<p>He paused and breathed deeply, and turned this way and
+that, as if he would escape but found no way; then he
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_271' name='page_271'></a>271</span>
+walked slowly on. At the door of the cabin he paused
+again. The firelight shone through from underneath, and
+a fine thread of golden light sifted through the latch of
+the door and fell on the hand that held Amalia&rsquo;s crutches.
+He looked down on the spot of light dancing over his hand
+as if he were dazed by it. Very gently he laid the crutches
+across the threshold, and for a long time stood without,
+listening, his head bowed as if he were praying.</p>
+<p>It was her father&rsquo;s violin, the one she had wept at leaving
+behind her. What was she playing? Strange, old-world
+melodies they seemed, tossed into the air, now laughing,
+now wailing like sorrowing women voices. Oh, the violin
+in her hands! Oh, the rapture of hearing it, as her soul
+vibrated through it and called to him&ndash;&ndash;called to him!&ndash;&ndash;But
+he would not hear the call. He turned sorrowfully
+and went down again to the shed and there he lay upon his
+face and clasped his hands above his head and whispered
+her name. It was as if his heart were beating itself against
+prison walls and the clasped hands were stained with blood.</p>
+<p>He rose next morning, haggard and pale. The snow was
+falling&ndash;&ndash;falling&ndash;&ndash;softly and silently. It fell like lead
+upon his heart, so full of anxiety was he for the good friend
+who might even then be climbing up the trail. Madam
+Manovska observed his drawn face, and thought he suffered
+only from anxiety and tried to comfort him. Amalia also
+attempted to cover her own anxiety by assurances that the
+good St. Christopher who watches over travelers would
+protect Larry Kildene, because he knew so well how many
+dangers there were, and that he, who had carried the Christ
+with all his burden of sorrows could surely keep &ldquo;Sir Kildene&rdquo;
+even through the snows of winter. In spite of an
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_272' name='page_272'></a>272</span>
+inherent and trained disbelief in all supposed legends, especially
+as tenets of faith, Harry felt himself comforted by
+her talk, yet he could not forbear questioning her as to her
+own faith in them.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Do you truly believe all that, Amalia?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;All&ndash;&ndash;that&ndash;&ndash;? Of what&ndash;&ndash;Mr. &rsquo;Arry?&rdquo; She seemed
+truly mystified.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I mean those childish legends of the saints you often
+quote?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Amalia laughed. &ldquo;You think I have learn them of the
+good sisters in my convent, and is no truth in them?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Why&ndash;&ndash;I guess that&rsquo;s about it. Did your father believe
+them?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Maybe no. But my father was &lsquo;devou&eacute;&rsquo;&ndash;&ndash;very&ndash;&ndash;but
+he had a very wide thought of God and man&ndash;&ndash;a thought
+reaching far out&ndash;&ndash;to&ndash;&ndash;I find it very hard to explain. If
+but you understood the French, I could tell you&ndash;&ndash;but for
+me, I have my father&rsquo;s faith and it makes me glad to play
+in my heart with these legends&ndash;&ndash;as you call them.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>He gave her a quick, appealing glance, then turned his
+gaze away. &ldquo;Try to explain. Your English is beautiful.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;If you eat your breakfast, then will I try.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes, yes, I will. You say he had faith reaching far out&ndash;&ndash;to
+where&ndash;&ndash;to what?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;He said there would never be rest in all the universe
+until we find everywhere God,&ndash;&ndash;living&ndash;&ndash;creating&ndash;&ndash;moving
+forever in the&ndash;&ndash;the&ndash;&ndash;all.&rdquo; She held out her
+hands and extended her arms in an encompassing movement
+indescribably full of grace.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You mean he was a pantheist?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, no, no. That is to you a horror, I see, but it
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_273' name='page_273'></a>273</span>
+was not that.&rdquo; She laughed again, so merrily that Harry
+laughed, too. But still he persisted, &ldquo;Amalia&ndash;&ndash;never
+mind what your father thought; tell me your own faith.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Then she grew grave, &ldquo;My faith is&ndash;&ndash;just&ndash;&ndash;God. In
+the all. Seeing&ndash;&ndash;feeling&ndash;&ndash;knowing&ndash;&ndash;with us&ndash;&ndash;for us&ndash;&ndash;never
+away&ndash;&ndash;in the deep night of sorrow&ndash;&ndash;understanding.
+In the far wilderness&ndash;&ndash;hearing. In the terror
+and remorse of the heart&ndash;&ndash;when we weep for sin&ndash;&ndash;loving.
+It is only one thing in all the world to learn, and that is to
+learn all things, just to reach out the mind, and touch
+God&ndash;&ndash;to find his love in the heart and so always live in
+the perfect music of God. That is the wonderful harmony&ndash;&ndash;and
+melody&ndash;&ndash;and growth&ndash;&ndash;of each little soul&ndash;&ndash;and
+of all peoples, all worlds,&ndash;&ndash;Oh, it is the universe of love
+God gives to us.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>For a while they were silent, and Madam Manovska began
+to move about the cabin, setting the things in order.
+She did not seem to have taken any interest in their talk.
+Harry rose to go, but first he looked in Amalia&rsquo;s eyes.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;The perfect Music of God?&rdquo; He said the words slowly
+and questioningly.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You understand my meaning?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I can&rsquo;t say. Do you?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>She quickly snatched up her violin which lay within
+reach of her arm. &ldquo;I can better show you.&rdquo; She drew a
+long chord, then from it wandered into a melody, sweet and
+delicate; then she drew other chords, and on into other
+melodies, all related; then she began to talk again. &ldquo;It is
+only on two strings I am playing&ndash;&ndash;for hear? the others
+are now souls out of the music of God&ndash;&ndash;listen&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo; she
+drew her bow across the discordant strings. &ldquo;How that is
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_274' name='page_274'></a>274</span>
+terrible! So God creates great and beautiful laws&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;
+she went back into the harmony and perfect melody, and
+played on, now changing to the discordant strain, and back,
+as she talked&ndash;&ndash;&ldquo;and gives to all people power to understand,
+but not through weakness&ndash;&ndash;but through longing and
+searching with big earnestness of purpose, and much desire.
+Who has no care and desire for the music of God, strikes
+always those wrong notes, and all suffer as our ears suffer
+with the bad sounds. So it is, through long desiring, and
+living, always a little and a little more perceiving, reaching
+out the hand to touch in love our brothers and sisters on the
+earth,&ndash;&ndash;always with patience learning to find in our own
+souls the note that strikes in harmony with the great thought
+of God&ndash;&ndash;and thus we understand and live in the music of
+God. Ah, it is hard for me to say it&ndash;&ndash;but it is as if our
+souls are given wings&ndash;&ndash;wings&ndash;&ndash;that reach&ndash;&ndash;from the
+gold of the sun&ndash;&ndash;even to the earth at our feet, and we
+float upon that great harmony of love like upon a wonderful
+upbearing sea, and never can we sink, and ever all is well&ndash;&ndash;for
+we live in the thought of God.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Amalia&ndash;&ndash;Amalia&ndash;&ndash;How about sin, and the one who&ndash;&ndash;kills&ndash;&ndash;and
+the ones who hate&ndash;&ndash;and the little children
+brought into the world in sin&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo; Harry&rsquo;s voice trembled,
+and he bowed his head in his hands.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Never is anything lost. They are the ones who have
+not yet learned&ndash;&ndash;they have not found the key to God&rsquo;s
+music. Those who find must quickly help and give and
+teach the little children&ndash;&ndash;the little children find so easily
+the key&ndash;&ndash;but to all the strings making horrible discord on
+the earth&ndash;&ndash;we dare not shut our ears and hide&ndash;&ndash;so do the
+sweet, good sisters in the convent. They do their little to
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_275' name='page_275'></a>275</span>
+teach the little children, but it is always to shut their ears.
+But the Christ went out in the world, not with hands over
+his ears, but outreached to his brothers and sisters on the
+earth. But my father&ndash;&ndash;my father! He turned away
+from the church, because he saw they had not found the true
+key to God&rsquo;s music&ndash;&ndash;or I mean they kept it always hid,
+and covered with much&ndash;&ndash;how shall I say&ndash;&ndash;with much
+drapery&ndash;&ndash;and golden coverings, that the truth&ndash;&ndash;that is
+the key&ndash;&ndash;was lost to sight. It was for this my father
+quarreled with&ndash;&ndash;all that he thought not the truth. He
+believed to set his people free both from the world&rsquo;s oppression
+and from their own ignorance, and give to them a truth
+uncovered. Oh, it set his old friends in great discord more
+than ever&ndash;&ndash;for they could not make thus God&rsquo;s music.
+And so they rose up and threw him in prison, and all the
+terrible things came upon him&ndash;&ndash;of the world. My mother
+must have been very able through love to drag him free
+from them, even if they did pursue. It was the conflict of
+discord he felt all his life, and now he is free.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Suddenly the mother&rsquo;s deep tones sounded through the
+cabin with a finality that made them both start. &ldquo;Yes.
+Now he is free&ndash;&ndash;and yet will he bring them to&ndash;&ndash;know.
+We wait for him here. No more must he go to Poland. It
+is not the will of God.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Still Harry was not satisfied. &ldquo;But if you think all these
+great thoughts&ndash;&ndash;and you do&ndash;&ndash;I can&rsquo;t see how you can
+quote those legends as if you thought them true.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I quote them, yes, because I love them, and their poetry.
+Through all beauty&ndash;&ndash;all sweetness&ndash;&ndash;all strength&ndash;&ndash;God
+brings to us his thought. This I believe. I believe the
+saints lived and were holy and good, loving the great
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_276' name='page_276'></a>276</span>
+brotherhood. Why may not they be given the work of
+love still to do? It is all in the music of God, that they
+live, and make happy, and why should I believe that it is
+now taken from them to do good? Much that I think lies
+deep in my heart, and I cannot tell it in words.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Nor can I. But my thoughts&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo; For an instant
+Amalia, looking at him, saw in his face the same look of
+inward fear&ndash;&ndash;or rather of despair that had appalled Larry,
+but it went as quickly as it appeared, and she wondered
+afterward if she had really seen it, or if it was a strange
+trick of the firelight in the windowless cabin.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;And your thoughts, Mr. &rsquo;Arry?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;They are not to be told.&rdquo; Again he rose to go, and stood
+and looked down on her, smiling. &ldquo;I see you have already
+tried the crutches.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes. I found them in the snow, before the door. How
+I got there? I did hop. It was as if the good angels
+had come in the night. I wake and something make me
+all glad&ndash;&ndash;and I go to the door to look at the whiteness, and
+then I am sorry, because of Sir Kildene, then I see before
+me&ndash;&ndash;while that I stand on one foot, and hop&ndash;&ndash;hop&ndash;&ndash;hop&ndash;&ndash;so,
+I see the crutch lie in the snow. Oh, Mr. &rsquo;Arry,
+now so pale you are! It is that you have worked in the
+night to make them&ndash;&ndash;Is not? That is sorrowful to me.
+But now will I do for you pleasant things, because I can
+move to do them on these, where before I must always sit still&ndash;&ndash;still&ndash;&ndash;Ah,
+how that is hard to do! One good thing comes
+to me of this hurt. It makes the old shoes to last longer.
+How is it never to wear out shoes? Never to walk in them.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Harry laughed. &ldquo;We&rsquo;ll have to make you some
+moccasins.&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_277' name='page_277'></a>277</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;And what is moccasins? Ah, yes, the Indian shoe. I
+like them well, so soft they must be, and so pretty with the
+beads. I have seen once such shoes on one little Indian
+child. Her mother made them.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Then Harry made her try the crutches to be sure they
+were quite right, and, seeing that they were a little too long,
+he measured them with care, and carried them back to the
+shed, and there he shortened them and polished them with
+sand and a piece of flint, until he succeeded in making a
+very workmanlike job of them.</p>
+<p>At noon he brought them back, and stood in the doorway
+a moment beside her, looking out through the whiteness
+upon the transformed world. In spite of what that snow
+might mean to Larry Kildene, and through him to them, of
+calamity, maybe death, a certain elation possessed Harry.
+His body was braced to unusual energy by the keen, pure
+air, and his spirit enthralled and lifted to unconscious adoration
+by the vast mystery of a beauty, subtle and ethereal
+in its hushed eloquence. From the zenith through whiteness
+to whiteness the flakes sifted from the sky like a
+filmy bride&rsquo;s veil thrown over the blue of the farthest and
+highest peaks, and swaying soft folds of lucent whiteness
+upon the earth&ndash;&ndash;the trees&ndash;&ndash;and upon the cabin, and as
+they stood there, closing them in together&ndash;&ndash;the very center
+of mystery, their own souls. Again the passion swept
+through him, to gather her in his arms, and he held himself
+sternly and stiffly against it, and would have said something
+simple and common to break the spell, but he only
+faltered and looked down on his hands spread out before
+her, and what he said was: &ldquo;Do you see blood on them?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Ah, no. Did you hurt your hand to cause blood on
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_278' name='page_278'></a>278</span>
+them, and to make those crutch for me?&rdquo; she cried in
+consternation.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;No, no. It&rsquo;s nothing. I have not hurt my hand. See,
+there&rsquo;s no blood on the crutches.&rdquo; He glanced at them as
+she leaned her weight on them there at his side, with a
+feeling of relief. It seemed as if they must show a stain,
+yet why should it be blood? &ldquo;Come in. It&rsquo;s too cold
+for you to stand in the door with no shawl. I mean to put
+enough wood in here to last you the rest of the day&ndash;&ndash;and
+go&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Mr. &rsquo;Arry! Not to leave us? No, it is no need you go&ndash;&ndash;for
+why?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Her terror touched him. &ldquo;No, I would not go again and
+leave you and your mother alone&ndash;&ndash;not to save my soul.
+As you say, there is no need&ndash;&ndash;as long as it is so still and the
+clouds are thin the snow will do little harm. It would be the
+driving, fine snow and the drifts that would delay him.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes, snow as we have it in the terrible Russia. I know
+such snow well,&rdquo; said Madam Manovska.</p>
+<p>They went in and closed the door, and sat down to eat.
+The meal was lighted only by the dancing flames from the
+hearth, and their faces glowed in the fitful light. Always
+the meals were conducted with a certain stately ceremony
+which made the lack of dishes, other than the shaped slabs
+of wood sawn from the ends of logs&ndash;&ndash;odd make-shifts
+invented by Harry, seem merely an accident of the moment,
+while the bits of lace-edged linen that Amalia provided from
+their little store seemed quite in harmony with the air of
+grace and gentleness that surrounded the two women. It
+was as if they were using a service of silver and Sevres, and
+to have missed the graciousness of their ministrations, now
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_279' name='page_279'></a>279</span>
+that he had lived for a little while with them, would have
+been sorrow indeed.</p>
+<p>He even forgot that he was clothed in rags, and wore them
+as if they were the faultless garments of a prince. It was
+only when he was alone that he looked down on them and
+sighed. One day he had come to the cabin to ask if he
+might take for a little while a needle and thread, but when he
+got there, the conversation wandered to discussion of the
+writers and the tragedies of the various nations and of their
+poets, and the needle and thread were forgotten.</p>
+<p>To-day, as the snow fell, it reminded Amalia of his need,
+and she begged him to stay with them a little to see what
+the box he had rescued for them contained. He yielded,
+and, taking up the violin, he held it a moment to his chin as
+if he would play, then laid it down again without drawing
+the bow across it.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Ah, Mr. &rsquo;Arry, it is that you play,&rdquo; cried Amalia, in
+delight. &ldquo;I know it. No man takes in his hand the violin
+thus, if he do not play.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I had a friend once who played. No, I can&rsquo;t.&rdquo; He
+turned away from it sadly, and she gently laid it back in its
+box, and caught up a piece of heavy material.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Look. It is a little of this left. It is for you. My
+mother has much skill to make garments. Let us sew for
+you the blouse.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes, I&rsquo;ll do that gladly. I have no other way to keep
+myself decent before you.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;What would you have? All must serve or we die.&rdquo;
+Madam Manovska spoke, &ldquo;It is well, Sir &rsquo;Arry King, you
+carry your head like one prince, for I will make of you one
+peasant in this blouse.&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_280' name='page_280'></a>280</span></div>
+<p>The two women laughed and measured him, and conferred
+volubly together in their own tongue, and he went out from
+their presence feeling that no prince had ever been so
+honored. They took also from their store warm socks of
+wool and gave him. Sadly he needed them, as he realized
+when he stepped out from their door, and the soft snow
+closed around his feet, chilling them with the cold.</p>
+<p>As he looked up in the sky he saw the clouds were breaking,
+and the sun glowed through them like a great pale gold
+moon, even though the flakes continued to veil thinly the
+distance. His heart lightened and he went back to the
+cabin to tell them the good news, and to ask them to pray
+for clear skies to-morrow. Having been reared in a rigidly
+puritanic school of thought, the time was, when first he knew
+them, that the freedom with which Amalia spoke of the
+Deity, and of the Christ, and the saints, and her prayers,
+fell strangely upon his unaccustomed ears. He was reserved
+religiously, and seemed to think any mention of such
+topics should be made with bated breath, and the utmost
+solemnity. Often it had been in his mind to ask her concerning
+her beliefs, but his shyness on such themes had prevented.</p>
+<p>Now that he had asked her he still wondered. He was
+used to feel that no one could be really devout, and yet
+speak so freely. Why&ndash;&ndash;he could not have told. But now
+he began to understand, yet it was but a beginning. Could
+it be that she belonged to no church? Was it some sect of
+which he had never heard to which they belonged? If so,
+it must be a true faith, or it never could have upheld them
+through all their wanderings and afflictions, and, as he
+pondered, he found himself filled with a measure of the
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_281' name='page_281'></a>281</span>
+same trustful peace. During their flight across the plains
+together he had come to rest in them, and when his heart
+was too heavy to dare address the Deity in his own words,
+it was balm to his hurt spirit to hear them at their devotions
+as if thus God were drawn nearer him.</p>
+<p>This time, whether he might lay it to their prayers or no,
+his hopes were fulfilled. The evening brought a clear sunset,
+and during the next day the snow melted and soon was
+gone, and a breeze sprang up and the clouds drifted away,
+and for several days thereafter the weather continued clear
+and dry.</p>
+<p>Now often he brought his horse to the door, and lifted
+Amalia to the saddle and walked at her side, fearing
+she might rest her foot too firmly in the stirrup and so lose
+control of the horse in her pain. Always their way took
+them to the falls. And always he listened while Amalia
+talked. He allowed himself only the most meager liberty of
+expression. Distant and cold his manner often seemed to
+her, but intuitively she respected his moods, if moods they
+might be called: she suspected not.</p>
+<hr class='toprule' />
+<div class='chsp'>
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_282' name='page_282'></a>282</span>
+<a name='CHAPTER_XXII_THE_BEAST_ON_THE_TRAIL' id='CHAPTER_XXII_THE_BEAST_ON_THE_TRAIL'></a>
+<h2>CHAPTER XXII</h2>
+<h3>THE BEAST ON THE TRAIL</h3>
+</div>
+<p>A week after the first snowfall Larry Kildene returned.
+He had lingered long after he should have taken the trail
+and had gone farther than he had dreamed of going when he
+parted from his three companions on the mountain top.
+All day long the snow had been falling, and for the last
+few miles he had found it almost impossible to crawl upward.
+Fortunately there had been no wind, and the snow
+lay as it had fallen, covering the trail so completely that
+only Larry Kildene himself could have kept it&ndash;&ndash;he and
+his horse&ndash;&ndash;yet not impeding his progress with drifts to be
+tunneled through.</p>
+<p>Harry King had been growing more and more uneasy
+during the day, and had kept the trail from the cabin to
+the turn of the cliff clear of snow, but below that point he
+did not think it wise to go: he could not, indeed. There,
+however, he stationed himself to wait through the night,
+and just beyond the turn he built a fire, thinking it might
+send a light into the darkness to greet Larry, should he
+happen to be toiling through the snow.</p>
+<p>He did not arouse the fears of Amalia by telling her he
+meant to keep watch all night on the cliff, but he asked her
+for a brew of Larry Kildene&rsquo;s coffee&ndash;&ndash;of which they had
+been most sparing&ndash;&ndash;when he left them after the evening
+meal, and it was given him without a thought, as he had
+been all day working in the snow, and the request seemed
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_283' name='page_283'></a>283</span>
+natural. He asked that he might have it in the great kettle
+in which they prepared it, and carried it with him to the
+fodder shed.</p>
+<p>Darkness had settled over the mountain when, after an
+hour&rsquo;s rest, he returned to the top of the trail and mended
+his fire and placed his kettle near enough to keep the contents
+hot. Through half the night he waited thus, sometimes
+walking about and peering into the obscurity below,
+sometimes replenishing his fire, and sometimes just patiently
+sitting, his arms clasped about his knees, gazing
+into space and brooding.</p>
+<p>Many times had Harry King been lonely, but never had
+the awesomeness of life and its mysterious leadings so impressed
+him as during this night&rsquo;s vigil. Moses alone
+on the mountain top, carried there and left where he might
+see into the promised land&ndash;&ndash;the land toward which he had
+been aided miraculously to lead his people, but which he
+might not enter because of one sin,&ndash;&ndash;one only transgression,&ndash;&ndash;Elijah
+sitting alone in the wilderness waiting for
+the revealing of God&ndash;&ndash;waiting heartbroken and weary,
+vicariously bearing in his own spirit regrets and sorrows
+over the waywardness of his people Israel,&ndash;&ndash;and John, the
+forerunner&ndash;&ndash;a &ldquo;Voice crying in the wilderness &lsquo;Repent
+ye!&rsquo;&rdquo;&ndash;&ndash;these were not so lonely, for their God was
+with them and had led them by direct communication and
+miraculous power; they were not lonely as Cain was lonely,
+stained with a brother&rsquo;s blood, cast out from among his
+fellows, hunted and haunted by his own guilt.</p>
+<p>Silence profound and indescribable reigned, while the
+great, soft flakes continued to drift slowly down, silent&ndash;&ndash;silent&ndash;&ndash;as
+the grave, and above and beneath and on all
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_284' name='page_284'></a>284</span>
+sides the same absolute neutrality of tint, vague and soft;
+yet the reality of the rugged mountain even so obscured
+and covered, remained; its cliffs and crags below, deadly
+and ragged, and fearful to look down upon, and skirting
+its sides the long, weary trail, up which at that very moment
+a man might be toiling, suffering, even to the limit of
+death&ndash;&ndash;might be giving his life for the two women and the
+man who had come to him so suddenly out of the unknown;
+strange, passing strange it all was.</p>
+<p>Again and again Harry rose and replenished the fire and
+stamped about, shaking from his shoulders the little heaps
+of snow that had collected there. The flames rose high in
+the still air and stained the snow around his bonfire a rosy
+red. The redness of the fire-stained snow was not more
+deep and vital than the red blood pulsing through his heart.
+With all a strong man&rsquo;s virility and power he loved as only
+the strong can love, and through all his brooding that undercurrent
+ran like a swift and mighty river,&ndash;&ndash;love, stronger
+than hate,&ndash;&ndash;love, triumphing over death,&ndash;&ndash;love, deeper
+than hell,&ndash;&ndash;love, lifting to the zenith of heaven;&ndash;&ndash;only
+two things seemed to him verities at that moment, God
+above, and love within,&ndash;&ndash;two overwhelming truths,
+terrible in their power, all-consuming in their sweetness,
+one in their vast, incomprehensible entity of force, beneficent,
+to be forever sought for and chosen out of all the
+universe of good.</p>
+<p>The true meaning of Amalia&rsquo;s faith, as she had brokenly
+tried to explain it to him, dawned on his understanding.
+God,&ndash;&ndash;love, truth, and power,&ndash;&ndash;annihilating evil as light
+eats up darkness, drawing all into the great &ldquo;harmony of
+the music of God.&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_285' name='page_285'></a>285</span></div>
+<p>Sitting there in the red light of the fire with the snow
+falling around him, he knew what he must do first to come
+into the harmony. He must take up his burden and declare
+the truth, and suffer the result, no matter what it
+might be. Keen were all the impressions and visions of his
+mind. Even while he could see Amalia sleeping in the
+cabin, and could feel her soft breath on his cheek, could feel
+her in his arms,&ndash;&ndash;could hear her prayers for Larry Kildene&rsquo;s
+safety as at that moment he might be coming to
+them,&ndash;&ndash;he knew that the mighty river of his love must be
+held back by a masterful will&ndash;&ndash;must be dammed back
+until its floods deepened into an ocean of tranquillity while
+he rose above his loneliness and his fierce longing,&ndash;&ndash;loving
+her, yet making no avowal,&ndash;&ndash;holding her in his heart, yet
+never disturbing her peace of spirit by his own heart&rsquo;s
+tumult,&ndash;&ndash;clinging to her night and day, yet relinquishing
+her.</p>
+<p>And out of this resolution, against which his nature cried
+and beat itself, he saw, serene, and more lonely than Moses
+or Elijah,&ndash;&ndash;beautiful, and near to him as his love, the
+Christ taken to the high places, even the pinnacle of the
+temple&ndash;&ndash;and the mountain peak, overlooking the worlds
+and the kingdoms thereof, and turning from them all to
+look down on him with a countenance of ineffable beauty&ndash;&ndash;the
+love that dies not.</p>
+<p>He lifted his head. The visions were gone. Had he
+slept? The fire was burning low and a long line was
+streaked across the eastern sky; a line of gold, while still
+darkness rested below him and around him. Again he
+built up the fire, and set the kettle closer. He stood out
+on the height at the top of the trail and listened, his figure
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_286' name='page_286'></a>286</span>
+a black silhouette against the dancing flames. He called,
+he shouted with all his power, then listened. Did he hear
+a call? Surely it must be. He plunged downward and
+called again, and again came the faint response. In his
+hand he carried a long pole, and with it he prodded about
+in the snow for sure footing and continued to descend,
+calling from time to time, and rejoicing to hear the answering
+call. Yes, Larry Kildene was below him in the
+obscurity, and now his voice came up to Harry, long and
+clear. He had not far to go ere he saw the big man slowly
+toiling upward through the dusk of dawn. He had dismounted,
+and the weary animals were following behind.</p>
+<p>Thus Larry Kildene came back to his mountain. Exhausted,
+he still made light of his achievement&ndash;&ndash;climbing
+through day and night to arrive before the snow should
+embank around him. He stood in the firelight swaying
+with weariness and tasted the hot coffee and shook his
+grizzled head and laughed. The animals came slowly on
+and stood close to him, almost resting their noses on his
+shoulder, while Harry King gazed on him with admiration.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Now if it weren&rsquo;t for the poor beasts, I&rsquo;d lie down here
+by the fire and sleep rather than take a step farther to-night.
+To-night? Why&ndash;&ndash;it&rsquo;s morning! Isn&rsquo;t it? I never
+thought we were so near the end. If I hadn&rsquo;t seen the fire
+a long way down, I would have risked another bivouac for
+the rest of the night. We might have lived through it&ndash;&ndash;I
+don&rsquo;t know, but this is better.&rdquo; He rubbed the nose of
+his panting horse. &ldquo;I shall drop to sleep if we don&rsquo;t move
+on.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>A thin blue smoke was rising from the chimney as they
+passed the cabin, but Amalia, kneeling before the hearth,
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_287' name='page_287'></a>287</span>
+did not know they were near. Harry wondered if Larry
+had forgotten the mother&rsquo;s hallucination about her husband,
+yet forbore to mention it, thinking it best to get him into his
+bunk first. But he had not forgotten. When Harry came
+into the shed after stabling the horses, he found Larry
+sitting before the chimney fire warming his knees and
+smoking.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Give me a little more of that coffee, Harry, and let&rsquo;s
+talk a bit before I turn in for the day. There&rsquo;s the mother,
+now; she still thinks as she did? I&rsquo;ll not see them until
+this evening&ndash;&ndash;when I may feel able to meet the question,
+and, lad, tell them what you please, but&ndash;&ndash;better not let
+the mother know I&rsquo;m here until I can see her.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Then, if you&rsquo;ll go to bed now, I&rsquo;ll bring your food up.
+I&rsquo;ll tell Amalia, of course.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I&rsquo;m not hungry&ndash;&ndash;only weary. Don&rsquo;t bother the
+women about food. After a day and night of sleep I&rsquo;ll be
+quite fit again. Man! But it&rsquo;s good to be back into the
+peace of the hills! I&rsquo;ve been down where the waves of
+civilization roar. Yes, yes; I&rsquo;ll go to my bunk after a bit.
+The great menace to our tranquillity here for the winter is
+the mother.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;But she has improved.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Good, good. How?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;She thinks of things around her&ndash;&ndash;and&ndash;&ndash;takes care
+of the cabin since Amalia&rsquo;s hurt.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Hurt? How&rsquo;s that?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;She sprained her ankle&ndash;&ndash;only, but enough to lay her up
+for a while.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I see. Shook her mother out of her dreams.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Not entirely. I think the improvement comes more
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_288' name='page_288'></a>288</span>
+from her firm conviction that you are to bring her husband
+with you, and Amalia agrees with me. If you have an
+excuse that will satisfy her&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I see. She was satisfied in her mind that he was alive
+and would come to her&ndash;&ndash;I see. Keep her quiet until I
+wake up and then we&rsquo;ll find a way out&ndash;&ndash;if the truth is
+impossible. Now I&rsquo;ll sleep&ndash;&ndash;for a day and a night and a
+day&ndash;&ndash;as long as I&rsquo;ve been on that forced march. It was
+to go back, or try to push through&ndash;&ndash;or die&ndash;&ndash;and I pushed
+through.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Don&rsquo;t sleep until I&rsquo;ve brought you some hot broth.
+I&rsquo;m sure they have it down there.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I&rsquo;ll be glad of it, yes.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>But he could not keep awake. Before Harry could
+throw another log on the fire he was asleep. Then Harry
+gently drew an army blanket over him and went out to the
+stable. There he saddled his own horse and led him toward
+the cabin. Before he reached it he saw Amalia coming
+to meet him, hobbling on her crutch. She was bareheaded
+and the light of morning was in her eyes.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Ah, &rsquo;Arry, &rsquo;Arry King! He has come. I see here
+marks of feet of horses in the snow&ndash;&ndash;is not? Is well? Is
+safe? Larry Kildene so noble and kind! Yes. My
+mother? No, she prepares the food, and me, I shut
+the door when I run out to see is it sun to-day and the
+terrible snow no more falling. There I see the marks
+of horses, yes.&rdquo; She spoke excitedly, and looked up in
+Harry&rsquo;s face with smiles on her lips and anxious appeal in
+her eyes.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Throw down that crutch and lean on me. I&rsquo;ll lift you
+up&ndash;&ndash;There! Now we&rsquo;ll go back to the cabin and lead
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_289' name='page_289'></a>289</span>
+Goldbug around a bit, so his tracks will cover the others
+and account for them. Then after breakfast I&rsquo;ll take you
+to the top of the trail and tell you.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>She leaned down to him from her seat on the horse and
+put her hand on his shoulder. &ldquo;Is well? And you&ndash;&ndash;you
+have not slept? No?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Looking up in her face so wonderful and beautiful, so
+filled with tender solicitude for him, and her glowing eyes
+fixed on his, he was covered with confusion even to scarcely
+comprehending what she said. He took the hand from his
+shoulder and kissed the tips of her fingers, then dropped it
+and walked on ahead, leading the horse.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I&rsquo;m well, yes. Tired a bit, but, oh, yes! Larry Kildene?
+He&rsquo;s all right. We&rsquo;ll go out on the trail and consult&ndash;&ndash;what
+is best to do about your mother&ndash;&ndash;and say
+nothing until then.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>To Amalia a kiss on the finger tips meant no more than
+the usual morning greeting in her own country, and she
+rode on undisturbed by his demonstration, which he felt
+keenly and for which he would have knelt and begged her
+pardon. Ever since his first unguarded moment when he
+returned and found her fainting on the hillside, he had set
+such rigid watch over his actions that his adoration had been
+expressed only in service&ndash;&ndash;for the most part silent and
+with averted eyes. This aloofness she felt, and with the
+fineness of her nature respected, letting her own play of
+imagination hover away from intimate intrusion, merely
+lightening the somber relationship that would otherwise
+have existed, like a breeze that stirs only the surface of
+a deep pool and sets dancing lights at play but leaves the
+depths undisturbed.</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_290' name='page_290'></a>290</span></div>
+<p>Yet, with all her intuitiveness, she found him difficult and
+enigmatic. An impenetrable wall seemed to be ever between
+them, erected by his will, not hers; therefore she
+would not try by the least suggestion of manner, or even of
+thought, to know why, nor would she admit to her own spirit
+the hurt of it. The walled inclosure of his heart was his,
+and she must remain without. To have attempted by any
+art to get within the boundaries he had set she felt to be
+unmaidenly.</p>
+<p>In spite of his strength and vigor, Harry was very weary.
+But less from his long night&rsquo;s vigil than from the emotions
+that had torn him and left his heart heavy with the necessity
+of covering always this strong, elemental love that
+smoldered, waiting in abeyance until it might leap into consuming
+flame.</p>
+<p>During the breakfast Harry sat silent, while the two
+women talked a little with each other, speculating as to the
+weather, and rejoicing that the morning was again clear.
+Then while her mother was occupied, Amalia, unnoticed,
+gave him the broth to carry up to the shed, and there, as
+Larry still slept, he set it near the fire that it might be warm
+and ready for him should he wake during their absence.
+At the cabin he brought wood and laid it beside the hearth,
+and looked about to see if there were anything more he
+could do before he spoke.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Madam Manovska, Amalia and I are going up the trail
+a little way, and we may be gone some time, but&ndash;&ndash;I&rsquo;ll
+take good care of her.&rdquo; He smiled reassuringly: &ldquo;We
+mustn&rsquo;t waste the sunny days. When Mr. Kildene returns,
+you also must ride sometimes.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Ah, yes. When? When? It is long&ndash;&ndash;very long.&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_291' name='page_291'></a>291</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;But, maybe, not so long, mamma. Soon now must he
+come. I think it.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>They left her standing in the door as they went off
+up the trail, the glistening snow making the world so
+dazzling in the sunlight, so blinding to her eyes, used to
+the obscurity of the cabin, that the many tracks past the
+door were unnoticed by her. In silence they walked
+until they had almost reached the turn, when Amalia
+spoke.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Have you look, how I use but the one crutch, &rsquo;Arry King?
+Soon will I again walk on my foot, very well. I have so
+many times to thank you. Now of mamma we must speak.
+She thinks only, every day, every hour, of my father. If
+we shall speak the truth to her&ndash;&ndash;I do not know. What
+she will do&ndash;&ndash;we cannot tell. No. And it is well to keep
+her heart from too much sorrow. For Sir Kildene, he must
+not be afflicted by us&ndash;&ndash;my mamma and I. We have
+take from him his house, and he is banish&ndash;&ndash;all for us, to
+make pleasant, and what we can do is little, so little&ndash;&ndash;and
+if my mamma sit always silent when we should be gay to
+each other and make happy the days, is not good, and all his
+peace will be gone. Now talk to me a little of your thoughts,
+&rsquo;Arry King.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;My thoughts must be like yours, Amalia, if I would have
+them wise. It&rsquo;s best to leave her as undisturbed as possible
+until spring. The months will go by rapidly. He will not
+be troubled. Then we can take her to some place, where
+I will see to it that you are cared for&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>The horse suddenly stopped and settled back on his
+haunches and lifted his head, looking wildly about. Harry
+sprang to the bridle, but he did not try to get away, and only
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_292' name='page_292'></a>292</span>
+stood quivering and breathing loudly as if in the direst fear,
+and leaned close to Harry for protection.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;What ails you? Good horse.&rdquo; Harry petted and
+coaxed, but he refused to move on, and showed every sign
+of frantic fear. &ldquo;I can&rsquo;t think what possesses him. He&rsquo;s
+afraid, but of what?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;There! There!&rdquo; cried Amalia, pointing to the top of
+the trail at the cliff. &ldquo;It&rsquo;s the beast. I have read of it&ndash;&ndash;so
+terrible! Ah!&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Surely. That&rsquo;s a mountain lion; Goldbug scented
+him before he rounded the cliff. They&rsquo;re cowards; never
+fear.&rdquo; He shouted and flung his arm in the air, but did
+not dare let the bridle rein go for fear the horse would bolt
+with her. For a moment the beast stood regarding them,
+then turned and trotted off in a leisurely fashion.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;&rsquo;Arry, take my hand one minute. I am like the horse,
+afraid. If that animal had come when we were alone on
+the mountain in that night&ndash;&ndash;it is my heart that will not
+stand still.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Don&rsquo;t be afraid now. He&rsquo;s gone. He was hunting
+there where I was last night, and no doubt he smells the
+horses that came up the mountain early this morning. It
+is the snow that has driven him out of the ca&ntilde;on to hunt
+for food.&rdquo; He let her cling to his hand and stood quietly,
+petting and soothing the horse.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;All night? &rsquo;Arry King, you were there all night?
+Why?&rdquo; she shivered, and, bending down, looked steadily in
+his eyes.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I had a fire. There was no danger. There is more
+danger for me in&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo; he cut his words short. &ldquo;Shall we go
+on now? Or would you rather turn back?&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_293' name='page_293'></a>293</span></div>
+<p>She drew herself up and released his hand; still she trembled.
+&ldquo;I will be brave like you are brave. If you so desire,
+we go on.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You are really braver than I. Then we&rsquo;ll go a few
+steps farther.&rdquo; But the horse would not go on. He snorted
+and quivered and pulled back. Harry looked up at Amalia.
+She sat calmly waiting, but was very pale. Then he
+yielded to the horse, and, turning, led him back toward the
+cabin. She drew a long sigh of relief then, and glanced at
+him, and they both laughed.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You see I am the coward, to only make believe I am
+not afraid. I am very afraid, and now more than always
+will I be afraid when that you go to hunt. &rsquo;Arry King, go
+no more alone.&rdquo; Her voice was low and pleading. &ldquo;There
+is much to do. I will teach you to speak the French, like
+you have once said you wish to learn. Then is the book to
+write. Is much to do that is very pleasant. But of those
+wild lions on the hills, they are not for a man to fight alone.&rdquo;
+He restrained the horse, and walked slowly at her side, his
+hand on the pommel of the saddle, but did not speak.
+&ldquo;You promise not? All night you stay in the cold, where is
+danger, and how may I know you will not again do such a
+thing? All is beautiful here, and great happiness may be
+if&ndash;&ndash;if that you do no tragedy.&rdquo; So sweetly did she plead
+he could no longer remain silent.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;There is only one happiness for me in life, Amalia, and
+that is forbidden me. I have expiation to make before I
+may ask happiness of heaven. You have been most patient
+with my silences&ndash;&ndash;always&ndash;&ndash;will you be patient still&ndash;&ndash;and&ndash;&ndash;understand?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>She drew in her breath sharply and turned her face away
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_294' name='page_294'></a>294</span>
+from him, and for a moment was silent; then she spoke.
+Her voice was very low, and very sweet. &ldquo;What is right,
+that must be. Always.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Then they spoke again of Madam Manovska, and Amalia
+opened her heart to him as never before. It seemed as if
+she would turn his thoughts from whatever sorrow might
+be hanging over him, and impress him with the feeling that
+no matter what might be the cause of his reserve, or what
+wrong he might have done, her faith in him remained unshaken.
+It was a sweet return for his stammered confession.</p>
+<hr class='toprule' />
+<div class='chsp'>
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_295' name='page_295'></a>295</span>
+<a name='CHAPTER_XXIII_A_DISCOURSE_ON_LYING' id='CHAPTER_XXIII_A_DISCOURSE_ON_LYING'></a>
+<h2>CHAPTER XXIII</h2>
+<h3>A DISCOURSE ON LYING</h3>
+</div>
+<p>All day Larry Kildene slept, hardly waking long enough
+toward nightfall to drink his broth, but the next day he
+was refreshed and merry.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Leave Madam Manovska alone,&rdquo; he admonished Harry.
+&ldquo;Take Amalia off for another ride, and I&rsquo;ll go down to the
+cabin, and if there&rsquo;s a way to set her mind at rest about
+her husband, I&rsquo;ll find it. I&rsquo;d not be willing to take an oath
+on what I may tell her, but it will be satisfying, never fear.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>The ride was a short one, for the air was chill, and there
+were more signs of snow, but when they returned to the
+cabin, they found Larry seated by the fire, drinking a brew
+of Madam&rsquo;s tea and conversing with her joyously about his
+trip and what he had seen of the new railroad. It was
+curious how he had succeeded in bringing her to take an
+interest in things quite alien to her. The very atmosphere
+of the cabin seemed to be cleared by his presence, big,
+genial, and all-embracing. Certainly nothing of the recluse
+appeared in his demeanor. Only when they were alone
+in their own quarters did he show occasionally a longing for
+the old condition of unmolested tranquillity. To go to his
+dinner at a set hour, no matter how well prepared it might
+be, annoyed him.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;There&rsquo;s no reason in life why they should get a meal
+ready merely because a timepiece says twelve o&rsquo;clock.
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_296' name='page_296'></a>296</span>
+Let them wait until a man&rsquo;s hungry,&rdquo; he would grumble.
+Then, arrived at the cabin, he would be all courtesy and
+geniality.</p>
+<p>When Harry rallied him on his inconsistency, he gravely
+replied: &ldquo;An Irish gentleman is an Irish gentleman the
+world over, no matter where you find him, in court, camp,
+or wilderness; it&rsquo;s all one to him. Why do you think I
+brought that mirror you shave by all the way up the mountain?
+Why, to have a body to look at now and again, and
+to blarney, just that I might not forget the trick. What
+was the good of that, do you ask? Look at yourself, man.
+You&rsquo;re a dour Scotchman, that&rsquo;s what you are, and you
+keep your humor done up in a wet blanket, and when it
+glints out of the corner of your eye a bit, you draw down
+the corners of your mouth to belie it. What&rsquo;s the good of
+that, now? The world&rsquo;s a rough place to walk in for the
+most part, especially for women, and if a man carries a
+smile on his face and a bit of blarney on the tip of his tongue,
+he smooths the way for them. Now, there&rsquo;s Madam Manovska.
+What would you and Amalia have done to her?
+Driven her clean out of her head with your bungling. In a
+case like hers you must be very discreet, and lead her around,
+by the way she wants to go, to a place of safety.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Harry smiled. Since his avowal to Amalia of his determination
+to make expiation for the crime that clouded his
+life, he had grown more cheerful and less restrained in
+manner. He would accept the present happiness, and so
+far as he could without wrong to her, he would fill his hours
+with the joy of her companionship, and his love should
+dominate him, and his heart should revel in the thought
+of her, and her nearness to him; then when the spring should
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_297' name='page_297'></a>297</span>
+come and melt the snowy barriers between him and the
+world below, he would go down and make his expiation,
+drinking the bitter cup to the dregs.</p>
+<p>This happy imprisonment on the mountain top with these
+two refined women and this kindly man with the friendly
+heart and splendid body and brain, he deemed worth a
+lifetime spent more sordidly. Here and now, he felt himself
+able to weigh true values, and learned that the usual
+ambitions of mortals&ndash;&ndash;houses and gear and places of precedence&ndash;&ndash;could
+become the end of existence only to those
+whose desires had become distorted by the world&rsquo;s estimates.
+Now he understood how a man might live for a woman&rsquo;s
+smile, or give his life for the touch of her hand, and how
+he might hunger for the pressing of children&rsquo;s lips to his
+own. The warm friendships of life grew to their true
+proportions in the vast scheme of things, as he looked
+in the big man&rsquo;s eyes and answered his kindly banter.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I see. It takes a genius to be a discreet and wise liar.
+Amalia&rsquo;s lacking there&ndash;&ndash;for me, I might learn. Now
+pocket your blarney long enough to tell me why you called
+me a Scotchman.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;How would I know the difference between a broncho
+and a mule? By the earmarks, boy. I&rsquo;ve lived in the
+world long enough to know men. If there be only a drop
+of Scotch blood in a man, he shows it. Like the mule he
+brays at the wrong time, or he settles back and stands when
+he should go forward. Oh, there&rsquo;s many a sign to enlighten
+the wise.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>He rose and knocked the ashes from his pipe and thrust it
+in his pocket and began to look over his pack, which had not
+been opened. Two good-sized sacks hung on either side
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_298' name='page_298'></a>298</span>
+of the pack mule had held most of his purchases, all carefully
+tied in separate bundles. The good man had not been
+sparing of his gold. Since he had so long exiled himself,
+having no use for what he had accumulated, he had now
+reveled in spending.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;We&rsquo;re to live like lords and ladies, now, Harry. I&rsquo;ve
+two silver plates, and they&rsquo;re for the ladies. For us, we&rsquo;ll
+eat off the tin as before. And silver mugs for their drink.
+See? I would have got them china but it&rsquo;s too likely to
+break. Now, here&rsquo;s a luxury I&rsquo;ve brought, and it was
+heavy to carry, too. Here&rsquo;s twenty-four panes of glass.
+I carried them, twelve on each side of my horse, like that,
+slung so, see? That&rsquo;s two windows of two sash each,
+and six panes to a sash. Oh, they&rsquo;re small, but see what a
+luxury for the women to do their pretty work by. And
+there&rsquo;s work for you, to be making the sash. I&rsquo;ve done
+my share of that sort of thing in building the cabin for
+you, and then&ndash;&ndash;young man&ndash;&ndash;I&rsquo;ll set you to digging
+out the gold. That&rsquo;s work that&rsquo;ll put the worth of your
+body to the test, and the day will come when you&rsquo;ll need
+it.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I doubt my ever having much need of gold, but whatever
+you set me at I&rsquo;ll do to the best of my ability.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You may have your doubts, but I have none. Men are
+like bees; they must ever be laying by something, even if
+they have no use for it.&rdquo; As Larry talked he continued
+to sort over his purchases, and Harry looked on, astounded
+at their variety and number.</p>
+<p>While apparently oblivious of the younger man&rsquo;s interest,
+and absorbed in his occupation, whistling, and turning the
+bundles over in his hands as he tallied them off, he now
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_299' name='page_299'></a>299</span>
+and then shot a keen glance in his companion&rsquo;s face. He
+had noticed the change in Harry, and was alert to learn
+the cause. He found him more talkative, more eager and
+awake. He suspected Harry had passed through some
+mental crisis, but of what nature he was at a loss to determine.
+Certainly it had made him a more agreeable companion
+than the gloom of his former manner.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I&rsquo;ll dig for the gold, indeed I will, but I&rsquo;d like to go on a
+hunt now and then. I&rsquo;d like a shot at the beast we saw
+sniffing over the spot where I sat all night waiting for you
+to appear. It will no longer be safe for Amalia to wander
+about alone as she did before she hurt her ankle.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;The creature was after sheep. He&rsquo;ll find his prey growing
+scarcer now that the railroad is so near. In ten years
+or less these mountain sheep will be extinct. That&rsquo;s the result
+of civilization, my boy.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I&rsquo;d like to shoot this panther, though.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;We&rsquo;ll have to set a bait for him&ndash;&ndash;and that means a
+deer or a sheep must go. We&rsquo;ll do it soon, too.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You&rsquo;ve reconciled Madam Manovska to your coming
+home without her husband! I didn&rsquo;t think it possible.
+Give me a lesson in diplomacy, will you?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Wait till I light my pipe. Now. First, you must know
+there are several kinds of lying, and you must learn which
+kinds are permissible&ndash;&ndash;and otherwise.&rdquo; With his pipe
+between his teeth, Larry stood, a mock gravity about his
+mouth, and a humorous twinkle in his eyes, while he looked
+down on Harry, and told off the lies on his fingers.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;First, there&rsquo;s the fool&rsquo;s lie&ndash;&ndash;you&rsquo;ll know it because
+there&rsquo;s no purpose in it, and there&rsquo;s the rogue&rsquo;s lie,&ndash;&ndash;and
+as we&rsquo;re neither fools nor rogues we&rsquo;ll class them both
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_300' name='page_300'></a>300</span>
+as&ndash;&ndash;otherwise; then there&rsquo;s the lie of pride, and, as that goes
+along with the fool&rsquo;s lie, we&rsquo;ll throw it out with the&ndash;&ndash;otherwise&ndash;&ndash;and
+the coward&rsquo;s lie also goes with the otherwise.&rdquo;
+Larry shook his fingers as if he tossed the four lies
+off from their tips, and began again. &ldquo;Now. Here&rsquo;s
+the friend&rsquo;s lie&ndash;&ndash;a man risks his soul to save a friend&ndash;&ndash;good&ndash;&ndash;or
+to help him out of trouble&ndash;&ndash;very well. And
+then there&rsquo;s the lover&rsquo;s lie, it&rsquo;s what a lad tells his sweetheart&ndash;&ndash;that
+goes along with what she tells him&ndash;&ndash;and
+comes by way of nature&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Or you might class it along with your own blarney.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Let be, lad. I&rsquo;m teaching you the diplomacy, now.
+Then there&rsquo;s the lie of shame, and the lie of sorrow, wherein
+a man puts by, for his own loved one&rsquo;s sake, or his self-respect,
+what&rsquo;s better covered; that, too, comes by way of
+nature, even as a dog crawls away to die alone, and we&rsquo;ll
+accept it. Now comes the lie of the man who would tell
+a good tale for the amusement of his friends; very well,
+the nature of man loves it, so we&rsquo;ll count it in, and along
+with it comes a host of little lies like the sportsman&rsquo;s lie
+and the traveler&rsquo;s lie&ndash;&ndash;they all help to make life merry,
+and the world can ill do without them. But now comes the
+lie of circumspection. You must learn to lie it without
+lying. See? It&rsquo;s the lie of wisdom, and it&rsquo;s a very subtle
+thing, and easily abused. If a man uses it for a selfish
+cause and merely to pervert the truth, it&rsquo;s a black lie, and
+one of the very worst. Or he may use it in a good cause,
+and it&rsquo;s fairly white. It must be used with discrimination.
+That&rsquo;s the lie I used for the poor Madam down there.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;But what did you say?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;She says to me, &lsquo;And where is my &rsquo;usband?&rsquo; I reply,
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_301' name='page_301'></a>301</span>
+&lsquo;Madam, your husband is in a very safe and secret place,&rsquo;&ndash;&ndash;and
+that is true enough&ndash;&ndash;&lsquo;where his enemies will never
+find him,&rsquo;&ndash;&ndash;and for all we know that is also true. &lsquo;But
+I cannot understand why he did not come to me. That is
+not like my &rsquo;usband.&rsquo; &lsquo;No, Madam, it is not. But man
+must do what he must, and the way was too long and arduous
+for his strength; he could not take the long, weary
+climb.&rsquo; And no more could he, true enough. &lsquo;No, Madam,
+you cannot go to him, nor he come to you, for the danger
+of the way and the wild beasts that are abroad looking for
+food.&rsquo; And what more true than that, for did not her
+daughter see one hunting for food?</p>
+<p>&ldquo;So she covers her face with her hand and rocks herself
+back and forth, and now, lad, here&rsquo;s where the blarney
+comes in. It&rsquo;s to tell her of the worth of her husband, and
+what a loss it would be to the world if he were to die on the
+trail, and what he would suffer if he thought she were unhappy,
+and then in the ardor of my speech comes the straight
+lie. I told her that he was writing the story of his life and
+that it was to be a great work which would bring about a
+tremendous revolution of justice and would bring confusion
+to his enemies, until at last she holds up her head
+proudly and speaks of his wonderful intellect and goodness.
+Then she says: &lsquo;He cannot come to me, very good. He is
+not strong enough&ndash;&ndash;no. I go to him to-morrow.&rsquo; Think
+of that, man! What I had to meet, and it was all to go
+over again. I would call it very circumspect lying and in
+a good cause, too, to comfort the poor soul. I told her of
+the snow, and how surely she would die by the way and make
+her husband very sad, he who was now happy in the writing
+of his book, and that to do so would break his heart and
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_302' name='page_302'></a>302</span>
+cause his own death,&ndash;&ndash;while to wait until spring in peace
+would be wiser, because she might then descend the mountain
+in perfect safety. So now she sits sewing and making
+things no man understands the use of. She showed me the
+blouse she has made for you. Now, that is the best
+medicine for her sick brain. They&rsquo;re great women, these
+two. If we must have women about, we&rsquo;re in luck to have
+women of their quality.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;We are, indeed.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I saw the women who follow the road as it creeps across
+the plains. They&rsquo;re pitiful to see. If these had been like
+them, we&rsquo;d have been obliged to take them in just the same,
+but Lord be merciful to them, I&rsquo;m glad they&rsquo;re not on my
+mountain.&rdquo; Larry shook his ponderous, grizzled head and
+turned again to his packages. &ldquo;Since they love to sew,
+they may be making things for themselves next. Look
+you! Here is silk for gowns, for women love adornment, the
+best of them.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Harry paused, his arms full of wood with which he was
+replenishing the fire, and stared in amazement, as Larry
+unrolled a mass of changeable satin wherein a deep cerise
+and green coloring shifted and shimmered in the firelight.
+He held the rich material up to his own waist and looked
+gravely down on the long folds that dropped to the floor
+and coiled about his feet. &ldquo;I told you we&rsquo;re to live like
+lords and ladies now. Man! I&rsquo;d like to see Amalia in a
+gown of this!&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Harry dropped his wood on the fire and threw back his
+head and laughed. He even lay down on the floor to laugh,
+and rolled about until his head lay among the folds of satin.
+Then he sat up, and taking the material between his fingers
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_303' name='page_303'></a>303</span>
+felt of it, while the big man looked down on him, gravely
+discomfited.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;And what did you bring for Madam Manovska?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Black, man, black. I&rsquo;m no fool, I tell you. I know
+what&rsquo;s discreet for an elderly lady.&rdquo; Then they gravely
+and laboriously folded together the yards of gorgeous satin.
+&ldquo;And I&rsquo;d have been glad of your measure to get you the
+suit of clothes you&rsquo;re needing. Lacking it, I got one for
+myself. But for me they&rsquo;re a bit too small. You&rsquo;ll maybe
+turn tailor and cut them still smaller for yourself. Take
+them, and if they&rsquo;re no fit, you&rsquo;ll laugh out of the other
+corner of your mouth.&rdquo; The two men stood a moment
+sheepishly eying each other, while Harry held the clothes
+awkwardly in his hands.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I&ndash;&ndash;I&ndash;&ndash;did need them.&rdquo; He choked a bit, and then
+laughed again.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;So did I need them&ndash;&ndash;yours and mine, too.&rdquo; Larry
+held up another suit, &ldquo;See here. Mine are darker, to keep
+you from thinking them yours. And here are the buckskins
+for hunting. I used to make them for myself, but
+they had these for sale, and I was by way of spending
+money, so I bought them. Now, with the blouses the
+women have made for you, we&rsquo;re decent.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>All at once it dawned on Harry what a journey the big
+man had made, and he fairly shouted, &ldquo;Larry Kildene,
+where have you been?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I rode like the very devil for three days. When once
+I was started, I was crazed to go&ndash;&ndash;and see&ndash;&ndash;Then I
+reached the end of the road from the coast this way. Did
+you know they&rsquo;re building the road from both ways at
+once? I didn&rsquo;t, for I never went down to get news of the
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_304' name='page_304'></a>304</span>
+cities, and they might have put the whole thing through
+without my even knowing of it, if you hadn&rsquo;t tumbled in
+on me and told me of it.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;It stirred me up a bit. I left my horse in charge of one
+I thought I might trust, and then took a train and rode over
+the new rails clean through to San Francisco, and there I
+groveled around a day or two, taking in the ways of men.
+They&rsquo;re doing big things. Now that the two oceans are
+to be united by iron rails, great changes will come like the
+wind,&ndash;&ndash;the Lord knows when they will end! Now, the
+women will be wanting us to eat, I&rsquo;m thinking, and I&rsquo;m
+not ready&ndash;&ndash;but eat we must when the hour comes, and
+we&rsquo;ve done nothing this whole morning but stand here and
+talk.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Thus Larry grumbled as they tramped down to the cabin
+through the snow, with the rolls of silk under his arm, and
+the silver plates in his hand, while Harry carried the sack
+of coffee and the paper for Amalia. As they neared the
+cabin the big man paused.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Take these things in for me, Harry. I&ndash;&ndash;I&ndash;&ndash;left
+something back in the shed. Drop that coffee and I&rsquo;ll
+fetch it as I come along.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Now, what kind of a lie would you call that, sir, since
+it&rsquo;s your courage you&rsquo;ve left?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Let be, let be. Can&rsquo;t you see I&rsquo;m going back after it?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>So Harry carried in the gifts and Larry went back for his
+&ldquo;courage&rdquo; and donned his new suit of clothes to help him
+carry it, and then came walking in with a jovial swagger,
+and accepted the mother&rsquo;s thanks and Amalia&rsquo;s embrace
+with a marvelous ease, especially the embrace, with which
+he seemed mightily pleased.</p>
+<hr class='toprule' />
+<div class='chsp'>
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_305' name='page_305'></a>305</span>
+<a name='CHAPTER_XXIV_AMALIAS_FTE' id='CHAPTER_XXIV_AMALIAS_FTE'></a>
+<h2>CHAPTER XXIV</h2>
+<h3>AMALIA&rsquo;S F&Ecirc;TE</h3>
+</div>
+<p>The winter was a cold one, and the snows fell heavily,
+but a way was always kept open between the cabin and the
+fodder shed, and also by great labor a space was kept
+cleared around the cabin and a part of the distance toward
+the fall so that the women might not be walled in their
+quarters by the snow. With plenty to occupy them all,
+the weeks sped swiftly and pleasantly. Larry did a little
+trapping and hunting, but toward midwinter the sport became
+dangerous, because of the depth of the snow, and with
+the exception of stalking a deer now and then, for fresh food,
+he and Harry spent the most of their time burrowing in the
+mountain for gold.</p>
+<p>Amalia&rsquo;s crutches were gradually laid aside, until she
+ran about as lightly as before, but even had she not been
+prevented by the snow she would not have been allowed to
+go far away from the cabin alone. The men baited and lay
+in wait for the panther, and at last shot him, but Larry
+knew from long experience that when the snows were deep,
+panthers often haunted his place, and their tracks were
+frequently seen higher up the mountain where he was wont
+to hunt the mountain sheep.</p>
+<p>Sometimes Harry King rode with Amalia where the wind
+had swept the way bare, toward the bend in the trail, and
+would bring her back glowing and happy from the exercise.
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_306' name='page_306'></a>306</span>
+Sometimes when the storms were fierce without, and he
+suspected Larry longed for his old-time seclusion, he sat
+in the cabin. At these times Amalia redeemed her promise
+to teach him French. Few indeed were the books she had
+for help in giving these lessons. One little unbound book
+of old sonnets and songs and a small pamphlet of more
+modern poems that her father had loved, were all, except
+his Bible, which, although it was in Polish, contained
+copious annotations in her father&rsquo;s hand in French, and
+between the leaves of which lay loose pages filled with concise
+and plainly written meditations of his own.</p>
+<p>These Amalia loved and handled with reverence, and for
+Harry King they had such vital interest that he learned
+the more rapidly that he might know all they contained.
+He no longer wondered at her power and breadth of thought.
+As he progressed he found in them a complete system of
+ethics and religious faith. Their writer seemed to have
+drawn from all sources intrinsically vital truths, and separated
+them from their encumbering theologic verbiage and
+dogma, and had traced them simply through to the great
+&ldquo;Sermon on the Mount.&rdquo; In a few pages this great man
+had comprised the deepest logic, and the sweetest and widest
+theology, enough for all the world to live by, and enough to
+guide nations in safety, if only all men might learn it.</p>
+<p>It was sufficient. He knew Amalia better, and more
+deeply he reverenced and loved her. He no longer quivered
+when he heard her mention the &ldquo;Virgin&rdquo; or when she spoke
+of the &ldquo;Sweet Christ.&rdquo; It was not what his old dogmatic
+ancestry had fled from as &ldquo;Popery.&rdquo; It was her simple,
+direct faith in the living Christ, which gave her eyes their
+clear, far-seeing vision, and her heart its quick, responsive
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_307' name='page_307'></a>307</span>
+intuition and understanding. She might speak of the convent
+where she had been protected and loved, and taught
+many things useful and good, other than legends and doctrines.
+She had learned how, through her father&rsquo;s understanding
+and study, to gather out the good, and leave the
+rest, in all things.</p>
+<p>And Harry learned his French. He was an apt scholar,
+and Larry fell in line, for he had not forgotten the scholastic
+Latin and French of his college days. He liked, indeed,
+to air his French occasionally, although his accent was
+decidedly English, but his grammar was good and a great
+help to Harry. Madam Manovska also enjoyed his efforts
+and suggested that when they were all together they should
+converse in the French alone, not only that they might help
+Harry, but also that they might have a common language.
+It was to her and Amalia like their native tongue, and their
+fluency for a time quite baffled Larry, but he was determined
+not to be beaten, and when Harry faltered and refused
+to go on, he pounded him on the back, and stirred him
+up to try again.</p>
+<p>Although Amalia&rsquo;s convent training had greatly restricted
+her knowledge of literature other than religious, her later
+years of intimate companionship with her father, and her
+mother&rsquo;s truly remarkable knowledge of the classics and
+fearless investigation of the modern thought of her day, had
+enlarged Amalia&rsquo;s horizon; while her own vivid imagination
+and her native geniality caused her to lighten always
+her mother&rsquo;s more somber thought with a delicate and
+gracious play of fancy that was at once fascinating and delightful.
+This, and Harry&rsquo;s determination to live to the utmost
+in these weeks of respite, made him at times almost gay.</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_308' name='page_308'></a>308</span></div>
+<p>Most of all he reveled in Amalia&rsquo;s music. Certain
+melodies that she said her father had made he loved especially,
+and sometimes she would accompany them with a
+plaintive chant, half singing and half recitation, of the sonnet
+which had inspired them, and which had been woven
+through them. It was at these times that Larry listened
+with his elbows on his knees and his eyes fixed on the fire,
+and Harry with his eyes on Amalia&rsquo;s face, while the cabin
+became to him glorified with a light, no longer from the
+flames, but with a radiance like that which surrounded
+Dante&rsquo;s Beatrice in Paradise.</p>
+<p>Amalia loved to please Larry Kildene. For this reason,
+knowing the joy he would take in it, and also because she
+loved color and light and joy, and the giving of joy, she
+took the gorgeous silk he had brought her, and made it up
+in a fashion of her own. Down in the cities, she knew,
+women were wearing their gowns spread out over wide
+hoops, but she made the dress as she knew they were worn
+at the time Larry had lived among women and had seen
+them most.</p>
+<p>The bodice she fitted closely and shaped into a long
+point in front, and the skirt she gathered and allowed to
+fall in long folds to her feet. The sleeves she fitted only
+to her elbows, and gathered in them deep lace of her own
+making&ndash;&ndash;lace to dream about, and the creation of which
+was one of those choice things she had learned of the good
+sisters at the convent. About her neck she put a bertha,
+kerchiefwise, and pinned it with a brooch of curiously
+wrought gold. Larry, &ldquo;the discreet and circumspect
+liar,&rdquo; thought of the emerald brooch she had brought him
+to sell for her, and knowing how it would glow and blend
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_309' name='page_309'></a>309</span>
+among the changing tints of the silk, he fetched it to her,
+explaining that he could not sell it, and that the bracelet
+had covered all she had asked him to purchase for her, and
+some to spare.</p>
+<p>She thanked him, and fastened it in her bodice, and
+handed the other to her mother. &ldquo;There, mamma, when
+we have make you the dress Sir Kildene have brought you,
+you must wear this, for it is beautiful with the black.
+Then we will have a f&ecirc;te. And for the f&ecirc;te, Sir Kildene, you
+must wear the very fine new clothes you have buy, and Mr.
+&rsquo;Arry will carry on him the fine new clothing, and so will
+we be all attire most splendid. I will make for you all the
+music you like the best, and mamma will speak then the
+great poems she have learned by head, and Sir Kildene will
+tell the story he can relate so well of strange happenings.
+Oh, it will be a fine, good concert we will make here&ndash;&ndash;and
+you, Mr. &rsquo;Arry, what will you do?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I&rsquo;ll do the refreshments. I&rsquo;ll roast corn and make
+coffee. I&rsquo;ll be audience and call for more.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Ah, yes! Encore! Encore! The artists must always
+be very much praised&ndash;&ndash;very much&ndash;&ndash;so have I heard, to
+make them content. It is Sir Kildene who will be the great
+artist, and you must cry &lsquo;Encore,&rsquo; and honor him greatly
+with such calls. Then will we have the pleasure to hear
+many stories from him. Ah, I like to hear them.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>It was a strange life for Harry King, this odd mixture of
+finest culture and high-bred delicacy of manner, with what
+appeared to be a total absence of self-seeking and a simple
+enjoyment of everyday work. He found Amalia one morning
+on her knees scrubbing the cabin floor, and for the
+moment it shocked him. When they were out on the plains
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_310' name='page_310'></a>310</span>
+camping and living as best they could, he felt it to be the
+natural consequence of their necessities when he saw her
+washing their clothes and making the best of their difficulties
+by doing hard things with her own hands, but now that they
+were living in a civilized way, he could not bear to see her,
+or her mother, doing the rough work. Amalia only laughed
+at him. &ldquo;See how fine we make all things. If I will not
+serve for making clean the house, why am I? Is not?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;It doesn&rsquo;t make any difference what you do, you are
+always beautiful.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Ah, Mr. &rsquo;Arry, you must say those compliments only
+in the French. It is no language, the English, for those fine
+eloquences.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;No, I don&rsquo;t seem to be able to say anything I mean, in
+French. It&rsquo;s always a sort of make-believe talk with me.
+Our whole life here seems a sort of dream,&ndash;&ndash;as if we were
+living in some wonderful bubble that will suddenly burst
+one day, and leave us floating alone in space, with nothing
+anywhere to rest on.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;No, no, you are mistake. Here is this floor, very real,
+and dirt on it to be washed away,&ndash;&ndash;from your boots, also
+very real, is not? Go away, Mr. &rsquo;Arry, but come to-night
+in your fine clothing, for we have our f&ecirc;te. Mamma has
+finish her beautiful new dress, and we will be gay. Is good
+to be sometimes joyful, is not? We have here no care,
+only to make happy together, and if we cannot do that, all
+is somber.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>And that evening indeed, Amalia had her &ldquo;f&ecirc;te.&rdquo; Larry
+told his best stories, and Harry was persuaded to tell them
+a little of his life as a soldier, and to sing a camp song.
+More than this he would not do, but he brought out something
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_311' name='page_311'></a>311</span>
+he had been reserving with pride, a few little nuggets
+of gold. During the weeks he had worked he had found
+little, until the last few days, but happening to strike a
+vein of ore, richer than any Larry had ever found, the two
+men were greatly elated, and had determined to interest the
+women by melting some of it out of the quartz in which it
+was bedded, and turning out for each a golden bullet in
+Larry&rsquo;s mold.</p>
+<p>They heaped hard wood in the fireplace and the cabin was
+lighted most gloriously. While they waited for the red
+coals to melt the gold, Amalia took her violin and played
+and sang. It was nearly time for the rigor of the winter to
+abate, but still a high wind was blowing, and the fine snow
+was piling and drifting about the cabin, and even sifting
+through the chinks around the window and door, but the
+storm only made the brightness and warmth within more
+delightful.</p>
+<p>When Larry drew his crucible from the coals and poured
+the tiny glowing stream into his molds, Amalia cried out
+with joy. &ldquo;How that is beautiful! How wonderful to dig
+such beauty from the dark ground down in the black earth!
+Ah, mamma, look!&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Then Larry pounded each one flat like a coin, and drilled
+through a small hole, making thus, for each, a souvenir of
+the shining metal. &ldquo;This is from Harry&rsquo;s first mining,&rdquo;
+he said, &ldquo;and it represents good, hard labor. He&rsquo;s picked
+out a lot of worthless dirt and stone to find this.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Amalia held the little disk in her hand and smiled upon
+it. &ldquo;I love so this little precious thing. Now, Mr. &rsquo;Arry,
+what shall I play for you? It is yours to ask&ndash;&ndash;for me, to
+play; it is all I have.&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_312' name='page_312'></a>312</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;That sonnet you played me yesterday. The last line
+is, &lsquo;&ldquo;Quelle est donc cette femme?&rdquo; et ne comprenda pas.&rsquo;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;The music of that is not my father&rsquo;s best&ndash;&ndash;but you ask
+it, yes.&rdquo; Then she began, first playing after her own heart
+little dancing airs, gay and fantastic, and at last slid into a
+plaintive strain, and recited the accompaniment of rhythmic
+words.</p>
+<table summary=''><tr><td>
+<p class='cg'>&ldquo;Mon &acirc;me a son secret, ma vie a son myst&egrave;re:<br />
+Un amour eternel en un moment concu.<br />
+Le mal est sans espoir, aussi j&rsquo;ai du le taire<br />
+Et celle qui l&rsquo;a fait n&rsquo;en a jamais rien su.&rdquo;</p>
+</td></tr></table>
+<p>One minor note came and went and came again, through
+the melody, until the last tones fell on that note and were
+held suspended in a tremulous plaint.</p>
+<table summary=''><tr><td>
+<p class='cg'>&ldquo;Elle dira, lisant ces vers tout remplis d&rsquo;elle:<br />
+&lsquo;Quelle est donc cette femme?&rsquo; et ne comprendra pas.&rdquo;</p>
+</td></tr></table>
+<p>Without pause she passed into a quick staccato and then
+descended to long-drawn tones, deep and full. &ldquo;This is
+better, but I have never played it for you because that it is
+Polish, and to make it in English and so sing it is hard.
+You have heard of our great and good general Kosciuszko,
+yes? My father loved well to speak of him and also of one
+very high officer under him,&ndash;&ndash;I speak his name for you,
+Julian Niemcewicz. This high officer, I do not know how
+to say in English his rank, but that is no matter. He was
+writer, and poet, and soldier&ndash;&ndash;all. At last he was exiled
+and sorrowful, like my father,&ndash;&ndash;sorrowful most of all because
+he might no more serve his country. It is to this
+poet&rsquo;s own words which he wrote for his grave that my
+father have put in music the cry of his sorrow. In Polish
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_313' name='page_313'></a>313</span>
+is it more beautiful, but I sing it for you in English for your
+comprehending.&rdquo;</p>
+<table summary=''><tr><td>
+<p class='cg'>&ldquo;O, ye exiles, who so long wander over the world,<br />
+Where will ye find a resting place for your weary steps?<br />
+The wild dove has its nest, and the worm a clod of earth,<br />
+Each man a country, but the Pole a grave!&rdquo;</p>
+</td></tr></table>
+<p>It was indeed a cry of sorrow, the wail of a dying nation,
+and as Amalia played and sang she became oblivious of all
+else a being inspired by lofty emotion, while the two men
+sat in silence, wondering and fascinated. The mother&rsquo;s
+eyes glowed upon her out of the obscurity of her corner, and
+her voice alone broke the silence.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I have heard my Paul in the night of the desert where he
+made that music, I have heard him so play and sing it, that
+it would seem the stars must fall down out of the heavens
+with sorrow for it.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Amalia smiled and caught up her violin again. &ldquo;We will
+have no more of this sad music this night. I will sing the
+wild song of the Ukraine, most beautiful of all our country,
+alas, ours no more&ndash;&ndash;Like that other, the music is my
+father&rsquo;s, but the poem is written by a son of the Ukraine&ndash;&ndash;Zaliski.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>A melody clear and sweet dominated, mounting to a note
+of triumph. Slender and tall she stood in the middle of the
+room. The firelight played on the folds of her gown, bringing
+out its color in brilliant flashes. She seemed to Harry,
+with her rich complexion and glowing eyes, absorbed thus
+in her music, a type of human splendor, vigorous, vivid,
+adorable. Mostly in Polish, but sometimes in English, she
+again half sang, half chanted, now playing with the voice,
+and again dropping to accompaniment only, while they
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_314' name='page_314'></a>314</span>
+listened, the mother in the shadows, Larry gazing in the fire,
+and Harry upon her.</p>
+<table summary=''><tr><td>
+<p class='cg'>&ldquo;Me also has my mother, the Ukraine,<br />
+Me her son<br />
+Cradled on her bosom,<br />
+The enchantress.&rdquo;</p>
+</td></tr></table>
+<p>She ceased, and with a sigh dropped at her mother&rsquo;s
+feet and rested her head on her mother&rsquo;s knee.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Tell us now, mamma, a poem. It is time we finish now
+our f&ecirc;te with one good, long poem from you.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You will understand me?&rdquo; Madam Manovska turned
+to Harry. &ldquo;You do well understand what once you have
+heard&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo; She always spoke slowly and with difficulty
+when she undertook English, and now she continued speaking
+rapidly to Amalia in her own tongue, and her daughter
+explained.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Mamma says she will tell you a poem composed by a
+great poet, French, who is now, for patriotism to his
+country, in exile. His name is Victor Hugo. You have
+surely heard of him? Yes. She says she will repeat this
+which she have by head, and because that it is not familiar
+to you she asks will I tell it in English&ndash;&ndash;if you so desire?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Again Madam Manovska addressed her daughter, and
+Amalia said: &ldquo;She thinks this high mountain and the plain
+below, and that we are exile from our own land, makes her
+think of this; only that the conscience has never for her
+brought terror, like for Cain, but only to those who have
+so long persecuted my father with imprisonment, and drive
+him so far to terrible places. She thinks they must always,
+with never stopping, see the &lsquo;Eye&rsquo; that regards forever.
+This also must Victor Hugo know well, since for his country
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_315' name='page_315'></a>315</span>
+he also is driven in exile&ndash;&ndash;and can see the terrible &lsquo;Eye&rsquo;
+go to punish his enemies.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Then Madam Manovska began repeating in her strong,
+deep tones the lines:&ndash;&ndash;</p>
+<table summary=''><tr><td>
+<p class='cg'>&ldquo;Lorsque avec ses enfants vetus de peaux de b&ecirc;tes,<br />
+Echevele, livide au milieu des temp&egrave;tes,<br />
+Cain se fut enfui de devant Jehovah,<br />
+<br />
+&ldquo;Comme le soir tombait, l&rsquo;homme sombre arriva<br />
+Au bas d&rsquo;une montagne en une grande plaine;<br />
+Sa femme fatigu&eacute;e et ses fils hors d&rsquo;haleine;<br />
+Lui dire: &lsquo;Couchons-nous sur la terre et dormons.&rsquo;&rdquo;</p>
+</td></tr></table>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, mamma, that is so sad, that poem,&ndash;&ndash;but continue&ndash;&ndash;I
+will make it in English so well as I can, and for the
+mistakes&ndash;&ndash;errors&ndash;&ndash;of my telling you will forgive?</p>
+<p>&ldquo;This is the story of the terrible man, Cain, how he go
+with his children all in the skins of animals dressed. His
+hairs so wild, his face pale,&ndash;&ndash;he runs in the midst of the
+storms to hide himself from God,&ndash;&ndash;and, at last, in the
+night to the foot of a mountain on a great plain he arrive,
+and his wife and sons, with no breath and very tired, say to
+him, let us here on the earth lie down and sleep.&rdquo; Thus, as
+Madam Manovska recited, Amalia told the story in her own
+words, and Harry King listened rapt and tense to the very
+end, while the fire burned low and the shadows closed around
+them.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;But Cain did not sleep, lying there by the mountain,
+for he saw always in the far shadows the fearful Eye of the
+condemning power fixed with great sorrow upon him. Then
+he cried, &lsquo;I am too near!&rsquo; and with trembling he awoke his
+children and his wife, and began to run furiously into space.
+So for thirty days and thirty nights he walked, always pale
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_316' name='page_316'></a>316</span>
+and silent, trembling, and never to see behind him, without
+rest or sleeping, until they came to the shore of a far country,
+named Assur.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;&lsquo;Now rest we here, for we are come to the end of the
+world and are safe,&rsquo; but, as he seated himself and looked,
+there in the same place on the far horizon he saw, in the
+sorrowful heavens, the Eye. Then Cain called on the darkness
+to hide him, and Jabal, his son, parent of those who
+live in tents, extended about him on that side the cloth of
+his tent, and Tsilla, the little daughter of his son, asked
+him, &lsquo;You see now nothing?&rsquo; and Cain replied, &lsquo;I see the
+Eye, encore!&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Then Jubal, his son, father of those who live in towns
+and blow upon clarions and strike upon tambours, cried,
+&lsquo;I will make one barrier, I will make one wall of bronze
+and put Cain behind it.&rsquo; But even still, Cain said, &lsquo;The
+Eye regards me always!&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Then Henoch said: &lsquo;I will make a place of towers so
+terrible that no one dare approach to him. Build we a city
+of citadels. Build we a city and there fasten&ndash;&ndash;shut&ndash;&ndash;close.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Then Tubal Cain, father of men who make of iron, constructed
+one city&ndash;&ndash;enormous&ndash;&ndash;superhuman; and while
+that he labored, his brothers in the plain drove far away
+the sons of Enos and the children of Seth, and put out the
+eyes of all who passed that way, and the night came when
+the walls of covering of tents were not, and in their place
+were walls of granite, every block immense, fastened with
+great nails of iron, and the city seemed a city of iron, and
+the shadow of its towers made night upon the plain, and
+about the city were walls more high than mountains, and
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_317' name='page_317'></a>317</span>
+when all was done, they graved upon the door, &lsquo;Defense a
+Dieu d&rsquo;entrer,&rsquo; and they put the old father Cain in a tower
+of stone in the midst of this city, and he sat there somber and
+haggard.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;&lsquo;Oh, my father, the Eye has now disappeared?&rsquo; asked
+the child, Tsilla, and Cain replied: &lsquo;No, it is always there!
+I will go and live under the earth, as in his sepulcher, a man
+alone. There nothing can see me more, and I no more can
+see anything.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Then made they for him one&ndash;&ndash;cavern. And Cain
+said, &lsquo;This is well,&rsquo; and he descended alone under this
+somber vault and sat upon a seat in the shadows, and when
+they had shut down the door of the cave, the Eye was there
+in the tombs regarding him.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Thus, seated at her mother&rsquo;s feet, Amalia rendered the
+poem as her mother recited, while the firelight played over
+her face and flashed in the silken folds of her dress. When
+she had finished, the fire was low and the cabin almost in
+darkness. No one spoke. Larry still gazed in the dying
+embers, and Harry still sat with his eyes fixed on Amalia&rsquo;s
+face.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Victor Hugo, he is a very great man, as my &rsquo;usband have
+say,&rdquo; said the mother at last.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Ah, mamma. For Cain,&ndash;&ndash;maybe,&ndash;&ndash;yes, the Eye
+never closed, but now have man hope or why was the
+Christ and the Holy Virgin? It is the forgiving of God they
+bring&ndash;&ndash;for&ndash;&ndash;for love of the poor human,&ndash;&ndash;and who is
+sorrowful for his wrong&ndash;&ndash;he is forgive with peace in his
+heart, is not?&rdquo;</p>
+<hr class='toprule' />
+<div class='chsp'>
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_318' name='page_318'></a>318</span>
+<a name='CHAPTER_XXV_HARRY_KING_LEAVES_THE_MOUNTAIN' id='CHAPTER_XXV_HARRY_KING_LEAVES_THE_MOUNTAIN'></a>
+<h2>CHAPTER XXV</h2>
+<h3>HARRY KING LEAVES THE MOUNTAIN</h3>
+</div>
+<p>When the two men bade Amalia and her mother good
+night and took their way to the fodder shed, the snow was
+whirling and drifting around the cabin, and the pathway
+was obliterated.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;This&rsquo;ll be the last storm of the year, I&rsquo;m thinking,&rdquo;
+said Larry. But the younger man strode on without making
+a reply. He bent forward, leaning against the wind, and in
+silence trod a path for his friend through the drifted heaps.
+At the door of the shed he stood back to let Larry pass.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I&rsquo;ll not go in yet. I&rsquo;ll tramp about in the snow a bit
+until&ndash;&ndash;Don&rsquo;t sit up for me&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo; He turned swiftly away
+into the night, but Larry caught him by the arm and
+brought him back.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Come in with me, lad; I&rsquo;m lonely. We&rsquo;ll smoke together,
+then we&rsquo;ll sleep well enough.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Then Harry went in and built up the fire, throwing on
+logs until the shed was flooded with light and the bare
+rock wall seemed to leap forward in the brilliance, but he
+did not smoke; he paced restlessly about and at last crept
+into his bunk and lay with his face to the wall. Larry sat
+long before the fire. &ldquo;It&rsquo;s the music that&rsquo;s got in my
+blood,&rdquo; he said. &ldquo;Katherine could sing and lilt the Scotch
+airs like a bird. She had a touch for the instrument, too.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>But Harry could not respond to his friend&rsquo;s attempted
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_319' name='page_319'></a>319</span>
+confidence in the rare mention of his wife&rsquo;s name. He lay
+staring at the rough stone wall close to his face, and it
+seemed to him that his future was bounded by a barrier
+as implacable and terrible as that. All through the night
+he heard the deep tones of Madam Manovska&rsquo;s voice, and
+the visions of the poem passed through his mind. He saw
+the strange old man, the murderer, Cain, seated in the
+tomb, bowed and remorseful, and in the darkness still the
+Eye. But side by side with this somber vision he saw the
+interior of the cabin, and Amalia, glowing and warm and
+splendid in her rich gown, with the red firelight playing
+over her, leaning toward him, her wonderful eyes fixed on
+his with a regard at once inscrutable and sympathetic.
+It was as if she were looking into his heart, but did not wish
+him to know that she saw so deeply.</p>
+<p>Towards morning the snow clouds were swept from the
+sky, and a late moon shone out clear and cold upon a world
+carved crisply out of molten silver. Unable longer to bear
+that waking torture, Harry King rose and went out into the
+night, leaving his friend quietly sleeping. He stood a
+moment listening to Larry&rsquo;s long, calm breathing; then
+buttoning his coat warmly across his chest, he closed the
+shed door softly behind him and floundered off into the
+drifts, without heeding the direction he was taking, until he
+found himself on the brink of the chasm where the river,
+sliding smoothly over the rocks high above his head, was
+forever tumbling.</p>
+<p>There he stood, trembling, but not with cold, nor with
+cowardice, nor with fatigue. Sanity had come upon him.
+He would do no untoward act to hurt the three people who
+would grieve for him. He would bear the hurt of forever
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_320' name='page_320'></a>320</span>
+loving in silence, and continue to wait for the open road
+that would lead him to prison and disgrace, or maybe a
+death of shame. He considered, as often before, all the
+arguments that continually fretted him and tore his spirit;
+and, as before, he knew the only course to follow was the
+hard one which took him back to Amalia, until spring and
+the melting of the snows released him&ndash;&ndash;to live near her, to
+see her and hear her voice, even touch her hand, and feel
+his body grow tense and hard, suffering restraint. If only
+for one moment he might let himself go! If but once
+again he might touch her lips with his! Ah, God! If he
+might say one word of love&ndash;&ndash;only once before leaving her
+forever!</p>
+<p>Standing there looking out upon the world beneath him
+and above him bathed in the immaculate whiteness of the
+snow, and the moonlight over all, he perceived how small
+an atom in the universe is one lone man, yet how overwhelmingly
+great in his power to love. It seemed to him
+that his love overtopped the hills and swept to the very
+throne of God. He was exalted by it, and in this exaltation
+it was that he trembled. Would it lift him up to
+triumph over remorse and death?</p>
+<p>He turned and plodded back the inevitable way. It
+was still night&ndash;&ndash;cold and silver-white. He was filled with
+energy born of great renunciation and despair, and could
+only calm himself by work. If he could only work until
+he dropped, or fight with the elements, it would help him.
+He began clearing the snow from the ground around the
+cabin and cut the path through to the shed; then he quietly
+entered and found Larry still calmly sleeping as if but a
+moment had passed. Finally, he secured one of the torches
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_321' name='page_321'></a>321</span>
+and made his way through the tunnel to the place where
+Larry and he had found the quartz which they had smelted
+in the evening.</p>
+<p>There he fastened the torch securely in a crevice, and
+began to swing his pick and batter recklessly at the overhanging
+ledge. Never had he worked so furiously, and the
+earth and stone lay all about him and heaped at his feet.
+Deeper and deeper he fought and cut into the solid wall,
+until, grimed with sweat and dirt, he sank exhausted upon
+the pile of quartz he had loosened. Then he shoveled it
+to one side and began again dealing erratic blows with his
+spent strength, until the ledge hung dangerously over him.
+As it was, he reeled and swayed and struck again, and
+staggered back to gather strength for another blow, leaning
+on his pick, and this saved him from death; for, during
+the instant&rsquo;s pause, the whole mass fell crashing in front of
+him, and he went down with it, stunned and bleeding, but
+not crushed.</p>
+<p>Larry Kildene breakfasted and worked about the cabin
+and the shed half the day before he began to wonder at the
+young man&rsquo;s absence. He fell to grumbling that Harry
+had not fed and groomed his horse, and did the work himself.
+Noon came, and Amalia looked in his face anxiously
+as he entered and Harry not with him.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;How is it that Mr. &rsquo;Arry have not arrive all this day?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, he&rsquo;s mooning somewhere. Off on a tramp I suppose.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Has he then his gun? No?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;No, but he&rsquo;s been about. He cleared away all the
+snow, and I saw he had been over to the fall.&rdquo; Amalia
+turned pale as the shrewd old man&rsquo;s eyes rested on her.
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_322' name='page_322'></a>322</span>
+&ldquo;He came back early, though, for I saw footprints both
+ways.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I hope he comes soon, for we have the good soup to-day,
+of the kind Mr. &rsquo;Arry so well likes.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>But he did not come soon, and it was with much misgiving
+that Larry set out to search for him. Finding no
+trails leading anywhere except the twice trodden one to
+the fall, he naturally turned into the mine and followed
+along the path, torch in hand, hallooing jovially as he
+went, but his voice only returned to him, reverberating
+hollowly. Then, remembering the ledge where they had
+last worked, and how he had meant to put in props before
+cutting away any more, he ran forward, certain of calamity,
+and found his young friend lying where he had fallen, the
+blood still oozing from a cut above the temple, where it had
+clotted.</p>
+<p>For a moment Larry stood aghast, thinking him dead, but
+quickly seeing the fresh blood, he lifted the limp body and
+bound up the wound, and then Harry opened his eyes and
+smiled in Larry&rsquo;s face. The big man in his joy could do
+nothing but storm and scold.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Didn&rsquo;t I tell ye to do no more here until we&rsquo;d the props
+in? I&rsquo;m thinking you&rsquo;re a fool, and that&rsquo;s what you are.
+If I didn&rsquo;t tell ye we needed them here, you could have seen
+it for yourself&ndash;&ndash;and here you&rsquo;ve cut away all underneath.
+What did you do it for? I say!&rdquo; Tenderly he gathered
+Harry in his arms and lifted him from the d&eacute;bris and
+loosened rock. &ldquo;Now! Are you hurt anywhere else?
+Don&rsquo;t try to stand. Bear on me. I say, bear on me.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, put me down and let me walk. I&rsquo;m not hurt.
+Just a cut. How long have you been here?&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_323' name='page_323'></a>323</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;Walk! I say! Yes, walk! Put your arm here,
+across my shoulder, so. You can walk as well as a week-old
+baby. You&rsquo;ve lost blood enough to kill a man.&rdquo; So
+Larry carried him in spite of himself, and laid him in his
+bunk. There he stood, panting, and looking down on him.
+&ldquo;You&rsquo;re heavier by a few pounds than when I toted you
+down that trail last fall.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;This is all foolishness. I could have made it myself&ndash;&ndash;on
+foot,&rdquo; said Harry, ungratefully, but he smiled up in the
+older man&rsquo;s face a compensating smile.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, yes. You can lie there and grin now. And you&rsquo;ll
+continue to lie there until I let you up. It&rsquo;s no more
+lessons with Amalia and no more violin and poetry for you,
+for one while, young man.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Thank God. It will help me over the time until the
+trail is open.&rdquo; Larry stood staring foolishly on the drawn
+face and quivering, sensitive lips.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You&rsquo;re hungry, that&rsquo;s what you are,&rdquo; he said conclusively.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Guess I am. I&rsquo;m wretchedly sorry to make you all this
+trouble, but&ndash;&ndash;she mustn&rsquo;t come in here&ndash;&ndash;you&rsquo;ll bring me
+a bite to eat&ndash;&ndash;yes, I&rsquo;m hungry. That&rsquo;s what ails me.&rdquo;
+He drew a grimy hand across his eyes and felt the bandage.
+&ldquo;Why&ndash;&ndash;you&rsquo;ve done me up! I must have had quite a
+cut.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I&rsquo;ll wash your face and get your coat off, and your boots,
+and make you fit to look at, and then&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t want to see her&ndash;&ndash;or her mother&ndash;&ndash;either. I&rsquo;m
+just&ndash;&ndash;I&rsquo;m a bit faint&ndash;&ndash;I&rsquo;ll eat if&ndash;&ndash;you&rsquo;ll fetch me a bite.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Quickly Larry removed his outer clothing and mended
+the fire and then left him carefully wrapped in blankets
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_324' name='page_324'></a>324</span>
+and settled in his bunk. When he returned, he found him
+light-headed and moaning and talking incoherently. Only
+a few words could he understand, and these remained in his
+memory.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;When I&rsquo;m dead&ndash;&ndash;when I&rsquo;m dead, I say.&rdquo; And then,
+&ldquo;Not yet. I can&rsquo;t tell him yet.&ndash;&ndash;I can&rsquo;t tell him the truth.
+It&rsquo;s too cruel.&rdquo; And again the refrain: &ldquo;When I&rsquo;m dead&ndash;&ndash;when
+I&rsquo;m dead.&rdquo; But when Larry bent over him and
+spoke, Harry looked sanely in his eyes and smiled again.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Ah, that&rsquo;s good,&rdquo; he said, sipping the soup. &ldquo;I&rsquo;ll be
+myself again to-morrow, and save you all this trouble.
+You know I must have accomplished a good deal, to break
+off that ledge, and the gold fairly leaped out on me as I
+worked.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Did you see it?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;No, but I knew it&ndash;&ndash;I felt it. Shake my clothes and
+see if they aren&rsquo;t full of it.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Was that what put you in such a frenzy and made a
+fool of you?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes&ndash;&ndash;no&ndash;&ndash;no. It&ndash;&ndash;it&ndash;&ndash;wasn&rsquo;t that.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You know you were a fool, don&rsquo;t you?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;If telling me of it makes me know it&ndash;&ndash;yes.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Eat a little more. Here are beans and venison. You
+must eat to make up the loss. Why, man, I found you in
+a pool of blood.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, I&rsquo;ll make it up. I&rsquo;ll make it up all too soon. I&rsquo;m
+not to die so easily.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You&rsquo;ll not make it up as soon as you think, young man.
+You may lose a quart of blood in a minute, but it takes
+weeks to get it again,&rdquo; and Harry King found his friend was
+right.</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_325' name='page_325'></a>325</span></div>
+<p>That was the last snow of winter, as Larry had predicted,
+and when Harry crawled out in the sun, the earth smelled of
+spring, and the waterfall thundered in its downward plunge,
+augmented by the melting snows of the still higher mountains.
+The noise of it was ever in their ears, and the sound
+seemed fraught with a buoyant impulse and inspiration&ndash;&ndash;the
+whirl and rush of a tremendous force, giving a sense of
+superhuman power. Even after he was really able to walk
+about and help himself, Harry would not allow himself to
+see Amalia. He forbade Larry to tell them how much
+he was improved, and still taxed his friend to bring him
+up his meals, and sit by him, telling him the tales of his
+life.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I&rsquo;ll wait on you here no longer, boy,&rdquo; said Larry, at
+last. &ldquo;What in life are you hiding in this shed for? The
+women think it strange of you&ndash;&ndash;the mother does, anyway,&ndash;&ndash;you
+may never quite know what her daughter thinks
+unless she wishes you to know, but I&rsquo;m sure she thinks
+strange of you. She ought to.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I know. I&rsquo;m perfectly well and strong. The trail&rsquo;s
+open now, and I&rsquo;ll go&ndash;&ndash;I&rsquo;ll go back&ndash;&ndash;where I came from.
+You&rsquo;ve been good to me&ndash;&ndash;I can&rsquo;t say any more&ndash;&ndash;now.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Smoke a pipe, lad, smoke a pipe.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Harry took a pipe and laughed. &ldquo;You&rsquo;re better than
+any pipe, but I&rsquo;ll smoke it, and I&rsquo;ll go down, yes, I must,
+and bid them good-by.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;And will you have nothing to tell me, lad, before you
+go?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Not yet. After I&rsquo;ve made my peace with the world&ndash;&ndash;with
+the law&ndash;&ndash;I&rsquo;ll have a letter sent you&ndash;&ndash;telling all I
+know. You&rsquo;ll forgive me. You see, when I look back&ndash;&ndash;I
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_326' name='page_326'></a>326</span>
+wish to see your face&ndash;&ndash;as I see it now&ndash;&ndash;not&ndash;&ndash;not
+changed towards me.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;My face is not one to change toward you&ndash;&ndash;you who
+have repented whatever you&rsquo;ve done that&rsquo;s wrong.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>That evening Harry King went down to the cabin and
+sat with his three friends and ate with them, and told
+them he was to depart on the morrow. They chatted and
+laughed and put restraint away from them, and all walked
+together to watch the sunset from a crag above the cabin.
+As they returned Madam Manovska walked at Harry&rsquo;s
+side, and as she bade him good night she said in her broken
+English:&ndash;&ndash;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You think not to return&ndash;&ndash;no? But I say to you&ndash;&ndash;in
+my soul I know it&ndash;&ndash;yet will you return&ndash;&ndash;we no more
+to be here&ndash;&ndash;perhaps&ndash;&ndash;but you&ndash;&ndash;yes. You will return.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>They stood a moment before the cabin, and the firelight
+streamed through the open door and fell on Amalia&rsquo;s face.
+Harry took the mother&rsquo;s hand as he parted from them, but
+he looked in Amalia&rsquo;s eyes.</p>
+<p>In the morning he appeared with his kit strapped on his
+back equipped for walking. The women protested that
+he should not go thus, but he said he could not take Goldbug
+and leave him below. &ldquo;He is yours, Amalia. Don&rsquo;t
+beat him. He&rsquo;s a good horse&ndash;&ndash;he saved my life&ndash;&ndash;or
+tried to.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You know well it is my custom to beat animals. It is
+better you take him, or I beat him severely.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I know it. But you see, I can&rsquo;t take him. Ride him
+for me, and&ndash;&ndash;don&rsquo;t let him forget me. Good-by!&rdquo;</p>
+<p>He waved his hand and walked lightly away, and all
+stood in the doorway watching him. At the top of a slight
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_327' name='page_327'></a>327</span>
+rise he turned again and waved his hand, and was lost to
+their sight. Then Larry went back to the shed and sat
+by the fire and smoked a lonely pipe, and the mother began
+busily to weave at her lace in the cabin, closing the door, for
+the morning air was chilly, and Amalia&ndash;&ndash;for a moment
+she stood at the cabin door, her hand pressed to her heart,
+her head bowed as if in despair. Then she entered the cabin,
+caught up her silken shawl, and went out.</p>
+<p>Throwing the shawl over her head she ran along the trail
+Harry had taken, until she was out of breath, then she
+paused, and looked back, hesitating, quivering. Should
+she go on? Should she return?</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I will go but a little&ndash;&ndash;little way. Maybe he stops a
+moment, if only to&ndash;&ndash;to&ndash;&ndash;think a little,&rdquo; and she went
+on, hurrying, then moving more slowly. She thought she
+might at least catch one more fleeting glimpse of him as he
+turned the bend in the trail, but she did not. &ldquo;Ah, he is
+so quickly gone!&rdquo; she sighed, but still walked on.</p>
+<p>Yes, so quickly gone, but he had stopped as she thought,
+to think a little, beyond the bend, there where he had waited
+the long night in the snow for Larry Kildene, there where
+he had sat like Elijah of old, despairing, under the juniper
+tree. He felt weary and old and worn. He thought his
+youth had gone from him forever, but what matter?
+What was youth without hope? Youth, love, life, all
+were to be relinquished. He closed his eyes to the wonder
+of the hills and the beauty before him, yet he knew they
+were there with their marvelous appeal, and he sat with
+bowed head.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;&rsquo;Arry! &rsquo;Arry King!&rdquo; He raised his head, and there before
+him were all that he had relinquished&ndash;&ndash;youth, love, life.</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_328' name='page_328'></a>328</span></div>
+<p>He ran and caught her to him, as one who is drowning
+catches at life.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You have leave me so coldly, &rsquo;Arry King.&rdquo; He pressed
+her cheek to his. &ldquo;You did not even speak to me a little.&rdquo;
+He kissed her lips. &ldquo;You have break my heart.&rdquo; He held
+her closer to his own. &ldquo;Why have you been so cold&ndash;&ndash;like&ndash;&ndash;like
+the ice&ndash;&ndash;to leave me so hard&ndash;&ndash;like&ndash;&ndash;like&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;To save you from just this, Amalia. To save you from
+the touch of my hand&ndash;&ndash;this is the crime I have fought
+against.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;No. To love is not crime.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;To dare to love&ndash;&ndash;with the curse on my head that I feel
+as Cain felt it&ndash;&ndash;is crime. In the Eye he saw it always&ndash;&ndash;as
+I&ndash;&ndash;I&ndash;&ndash;see it. To touch you&ndash;&ndash;it is like bringing the
+crime and curse on you, and through your beautiful love
+making you suffer for it. See, Amalia? It was all I could
+do to go out of your life and say nothing.&rdquo; His voice trembled
+and his hand quivered as it rested on her hair. &ldquo;I sat
+here to fight it. My heart&ndash;&ndash;my heart that I have not yet
+learned to conquer&ndash;&ndash;was pulling me back to you. I was
+faint and old. I could walk no farther until the fight was
+won. Oh, Amalia&ndash;&ndash;Amalia! Leave me alone, with the
+curse on my head! It is not yours.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;No, and it is not yours. You have repent. I do not
+believe that poem my mother is thinking so great. It is
+the terror of the ancient ones, but to-day, no more. Take
+this. It is for you I bring it. I have wear it always on my
+bosom, wear it now on yours.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>She quickly unclasped from her neck a threadlike chain
+of gold, and drew from her bosom a small ivory crucifix,
+to which it was attached. Reaching up, she clasped it
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_329' name='page_329'></a>329</span>
+around his neck, and thrust the cross in his bosom. Then,
+thinking he meant to protest, she seized his hands and held
+them, and her words came with the impetuous rush of her
+thoughts.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;No charm will help, Amalia. I killed my friend.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Ah, no, &rsquo;Arry King! Take this of me. It is not as you
+think for one charm I give it. No. It is for the love of
+Christ&ndash;&ndash;that you remember and think of it. For that I
+wear it. For that I give it to you. If you have repent, and
+have the Christ in your heart, so are you high&ndash;&ndash;lifted above
+the sin, and if they take you&ndash;&ndash;if they put the iron on your
+hands&ndash;&ndash;Ah, I know, it is there you go to give yourself up,&ndash;&ndash;if
+they keep you forever in the prison, still forever are
+you free. If they put you to the death to be satisfied of the
+law, then quickly are you alive in Paradise with Christ.
+Listen, it is for the love that you give yourself up&ndash;&ndash;for
+the sorrowfulness in your heart that you have killed your
+friend? Is not? Yes. So is good. See. Look to the
+hills, the high mountains, all far around us? They are
+beautiful. They are yours. God gives you. And the
+sky&ndash;&ndash;so clear&ndash;&ndash;and the bright sun and the spring life
+and the singing of the birds? All are yours&ndash;&ndash;God gives.
+And the love in your heart&ndash;&ndash;for me? God gives, yes, and
+for the one you have hurt? Yes. God gives it. And for
+the Christ who so loves you? Yes. So is the love the
+great life of God in you. It is yours. Listen. Go with
+the love in your heart&ndash;&ndash;for me,&ndash;&ndash;it will not hurt. It will
+be sweet to me. I carry no curse for you, as you say. It
+is gone. If I see you again in this world&ndash;&ndash;as may be&ndash;&ndash;is
+joy&ndash;&ndash;great joy. If I see you no more here, yet in
+Paradise I will see you, and there also it will be joy,
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_330' name='page_330'></a>330</span>
+for it is the love that is all of life, and all of eternity, and
+lives&ndash;&ndash;lives!&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Again he held her to his heart in a long embrace, and, when
+at last he walked down the trail into the desert, he still felt
+her tears on his cheek, her kisses on his lips, and her heart
+against his own.</p>
+<hr class='pb' />
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_331' name='page_331'></a>331</span></div>
+<h2>BOOK THREE</h2>
+<hr class='toprule' />
+<div class='chsp'>
+<a name='CHAPTER_XXVI_THE_LITTLE_SCHOOLTEACHER' id='CHAPTER_XXVI_THE_LITTLE_SCHOOLTEACHER'></a>
+<h2>CHAPTER XXVI</h2>
+<h3>THE LITTLE SCHOOL-TEACHER</h3>
+</div>
+<p>On a warm day in May, a day which opens the crab-apple
+blossoms and sets the bees humming, and the children
+longing for a chance to pull off shoes and stockings
+and go wading in the brook; on such a day the door of
+the little schoolhouse stood open and the sunlight lay in a
+long patch across the floor toward the &ldquo;teacher&rsquo;s desk,&rdquo;
+and the breeze came in and tossed a stray curl about her
+forehead, and the children turned their heads often to look
+at the round clock on the wall, watching for the slowly
+moving hands to point to the hour of four.</p>
+<p>It was a mixed school. Children of all ages were there,
+from naughty little Johnnie Cole of five to Mary Burt and
+Hilton Le Moyne of seventeen and nineteen, who were in
+algebra and the sixth reader. It was well known by the
+rest of the children why Hilton Le Moyne lingered in the
+school this year all through May and June, instead of leaving
+in April, as usual, to help his uncle on the farm. It was
+&ldquo;Teacher.&rdquo; He was in love with her, and always waited
+after school, hoping for a chance to walk home with her.</p>
+<p>Poor boy! Black haired, red cheeked, and big hearted,
+he knew his love was hopeless, for he was younger than
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_332' name='page_332'></a>332</span>
+she&ndash;&ndash;not so much; but there was Tom Howard who was
+also in love with her, and he had a span of sorrel horses
+which he had raised and broken himself, and they were
+his own, and he could come at any time&ndash;&ndash;when she would
+let him&ndash;&ndash;and take her out riding.</p>
+<p>Ah, that was something to aspire to! Such a team as
+that, and &ldquo;Teacher&rdquo; to sit by his side and drive out with
+him, all in her pretty flat hat with a pink rose on it and
+green ribbons flying, and her green parasol over her head&ndash;&ndash;sitting
+so easily&ndash;&ndash;just leaning forward a bit and turning
+and laughing at what he was saying, and all the town
+seeing her with him, and his harness shining and new,
+making the team look as splendid as the best livery in town,
+and his buggy all painted so bright and new&ndash;&ndash;well! The
+time would come when he too would have such an outfit.
+It would. And Teacher would see that Tom Howard was
+not the only one who could drive up after her in such style.</p>
+<p>Little Teacher was tired to-day. The children had been
+restless and noisy, and her heart had been heavy with a
+great disappointment. She had been carefully saving her
+small salary that she might go when school closed and take
+a course at the &ldquo;Art Institute&rdquo; in &ldquo;Technique.&rdquo; For a
+long time she had clung to the idea that she would become
+an illustrator, and a great man had told her father that
+&ldquo;with a little instruction in technique&rdquo; his daughter had
+&ldquo;a fortune at the tips of her fingers.&rdquo; Only technique!
+Yes, if she could get it!</p>
+<p>Father could help her, of course, only father was a
+painter in oils and not an illustrator&ndash;&ndash;and then&ndash;&ndash;he
+was so driven, always, and father and mother both thought
+it would be best for her to take the course of study recommended
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_333' name='page_333'></a>333</span>
+by the great man. So it was decided, for there
+was Martha married and settled in her home not far away
+from the Institute, and Teacher could live with her and
+study. Ah, the long-coveted chance almost within her
+reach! Then&ndash;&ndash;one difficulty after another intervened,
+beginning with a great fire in the fall which swept away
+Martha&rsquo;s home and all they had accumulated, together
+with her husband&rsquo;s school, rendering it necessary for the
+young couple to go back to Leauvite for the winter.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Never mind, Betty, dear,&rdquo; Martha had encouraged her.
+&ldquo;We&rsquo;ll return in the spring and start again, and you can
+take the course just the same.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>But now a general financial stringency prevailed all over
+the country. &ldquo;It always seems, when there&rsquo;s a &lsquo;financial
+stringency,&rsquo; that portraits and paintings are the things
+people economize on first of all,&rdquo; said Betty.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Naturally,&rdquo; said Mary Ballard. &ldquo;When people need
+food and clothing&ndash;&ndash;they want them, and not pictures.
+We&rsquo;ll just have to wait, dear.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes, we&rsquo;ll have to wait, Mary.&rdquo; Saucy Betty had a
+way of calling her mother &ldquo;Mary.&rdquo; &ldquo;Your dress is shabby,
+and you need a new bonnet; I noticed it in church,&ndash;&ndash;you&rsquo;d
+never speak of that, though. You&rsquo;d wear your
+winter&rsquo;s bonnet all summer.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Yes, Betty must see to it, even if it took every bit of the
+fund, that mother and Janey were suitably dressed.
+&ldquo;Never mind, Mary, I&rsquo;ll catch up some day. You needn&rsquo;t
+look sorry. I&rsquo;m all right about my own clothes, for Martha
+gave me a rose for my hat, and the new ribbons make it so
+pretty,&ndash;&ndash;and my green parasol is as good as new for all
+I&rsquo;ve had it three years, and&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_334' name='page_334'></a>334</span></div>
+<p>Betty stopped abruptly. Three years!&ndash;&ndash;was it so
+long since that parasol was new&ndash;&ndash;and she was so happy&ndash;&ndash;and
+Richard came home&ndash;&ndash;? The family were seated
+on the piazza as they were wont to be in the evening, and
+Betty walked quietly into the house, and up to her room.</p>
+<p>Bertrand Ballard sighed, and his wife reached out and
+took his hand in hers. &ldquo;She&rsquo;s never been the same since,&rdquo;
+he said.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Her character has deepened and she&rsquo;s fine and sweet&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes, yes. I have three hundred dollars owing me for
+the Delong portrait. If I had it, she should have her
+course. I&rsquo;ll make another effort to collect it.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I would, Bertrand.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Julien Thurbyfil and his wife walked down the flower-bordered
+path side by side to the gate and stood leaning
+over it in silence. Practical Martha was the first to
+break it.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;There will be just as much need for preparatory schools
+now as there was before the fire, Julien.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes, dear, yes.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;And, meanwhile, we are glad of this sweet haven to come
+to, aren&rsquo;t we? And it won&rsquo;t be long before things are so
+you can begin again.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes, dear, and then we&rsquo;ll make it up to Betty, won&rsquo;t
+we?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>But Julien was distraught and somber, in spite of brave
+words. He had not inherited Mary Ballard&rsquo;s way of looking
+at things, nor his father-in-law&rsquo;s buoyancy.</p>
+<p>All that night Betty lay wakeful and thinking&ndash;&ndash;thinking
+as she had many, many a time during the last three
+years, trying to make plans whereby she might adjust her
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_335' name='page_335'></a>335</span>
+thoughts to a life of loneliness, as she had decided in her
+romantic heart was all she would take. How could there
+be anything else for her since that terrible night when
+Richard had come to her and confessed his guilt&ndash;&ndash;his love
+and his renunciation! Was she not sharing it all with
+him wherever he might be, and whatever he was doing?
+Oh, where was he? Did he ever think of her and know she
+was always thinking of him? Did he know she prayed for
+him, and was the thought a comfort to him? Surely Peter
+was the happier of the two, for he was not a sorrowing
+criminal, wandering the earth, hiding and repenting. So
+all her thoughts went out to Richard, and no wonder she
+was a weary little wight at the end of the school day.</p>
+<p>Four o&rsquo;clock, and the children went hurrying away, all
+but Hilton Le Moyne, who lingered awhile at his desk, and
+then reluctantly departed, seeing Teacher did not look up
+from her papers except to give him a nod and a fugitive
+little smile of absent-minded courtesy. Left thus alone,
+Betty lifted the lid of her desk and put away the school
+register and the carefully marked papers to be given out
+the next day, and took from a small portfolio a packet of
+closely written sheets. These she untied and looked over,
+tossing them rapidly aside one after another until she found
+the one for which she searched.</p>
+<p>It was a short poem, hastily written with lead pencil, and
+much crumpled and worn, as if it had been carried about.
+Now she straightened the torn edges and smoothed it out
+and began scanning the lines, counting off on her fingers
+the rhythmic beats; she copied the verses carefully on a
+fresh white sheet of paper and laid them aside; then, shoving
+the whole heap of written papers from her, she selected
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_336' name='page_336'></a>336</span>
+another fresh sheet and began anew, writing and scanning
+and writing again.</p>
+<p>Steadily she worked while an hour slipped by. A great
+bumblebee flew in at one window and boomed past her
+head and out at the other window, and a bluebird perched
+for an instant on the window ledge and was off again. She
+saw the bee and the bird and paused awhile, gazing with
+dreamy eyes through the high, uncurtained window at
+drifting clouds already taking on the tint of the declining
+sun; then she stretched her arms across her wide desk, and
+putting her head down on them, was soon fast asleep.
+Tired little Teacher!</p>
+<p>The breeze freshened and tumbled her hair and fanned
+her flushed cheek, and it did more than that; for, as the
+drifting clouds betokened, the weather was changing, and
+now a gust of wind caught at her papers and took some of
+them out of the window, tossing and whirling them hither
+and thither. Some were carried along the wayside and
+lost utterly. One fluttered high over the tree tops and out
+across the meadow, and then suddenly ceased its flight and
+drifted slowly down like a dried leaf, past the face of a young
+man who sat on a stone, moodily gazing in the meadow
+brook. He reached out a long arm and caught it as it
+fluttered by, just in time to save it from annihilation in the
+water.</p>
+<p>For a moment he held the scrap of paper absently between
+his fingers, then glancing down at it he spied faintly
+written, half-obliterated verses and read them; then, with
+awakened interest, he read them again, smoothing the torn
+bit of paper out on his knee. The place where he sat was
+well screened from the road by a huge basswood tree, which
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_337' name='page_337'></a>337</span>
+spread great limbs quite across the stream, and swept both
+its banks with drooping branches and broad leaves. Now
+he held the scrap on his open palm and studied it closely
+and thoughtfully. It was the worn piece from which Betty
+had copied the verses.</p>
+<table summary=''><tr><td>
+<p class='cg'>&ldquo;Oh, send me a thought on the winds that blow.<br />
+<span class='indent2'>&nbsp;</span>On the wing of a bird send a thought to me;<br />
+For the way is so long that I may not know,<br />
+<span class='indent2'>&nbsp;</span>And there are no paths on the troubled sea.<br />
+<br />
+&ldquo;Out of the darkness I saw you go,&ndash;&ndash;<br />
+<span class='indent2'>&nbsp;</span>Into the shadows where sorrows be,&ndash;&ndash;<br />
+Wounded and bleeding, and sad and slow,&ndash;&ndash;<br />
+<span class='indent2'>&nbsp;</span>Into the darkness away from me.<br />
+<br />
+&ldquo;Out of my life and into the night,<br />
+<span class='indent2'>&nbsp;</span>But never out of my heart, my own.<br />
+Into the darkness out of the light,<br />
+<span class='indent2'>&nbsp;</span>Bleeding and wounded, and walking alone.&rdquo;</p>
+</td></tr></table>
+<p>Here the words were quite erased and scratched over, and
+the pathetic bit of paper looked as if it had been tear-stained.
+Carefully and smoothly he laid it in his long bill
+book. The book was large and plethoric with bank notes,
+and there beside them lay the little scrap of paper, worn
+and soiled, yet tear washed, and as the young man touched
+it tenderly he smiled and thought that in it was a wealth
+of something no bank note could buy. With a touch
+of sentiment unsuspected by himself, he felt it too sacred
+a thing to be touched by them, and he smoothed it again
+and laid it in a compartment by itself.</p>
+<p>Then he rose, and sauntered across the meadow to the
+country road, and down it past the schoolhouse standing
+on its own small rise of ground with the door still wide open,
+and its shadow, cast by the rays of the now setting sun
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_338' name='page_338'></a>338</span>
+stretched long across the playground. The young man
+passed it, paused, turned back, and entered. There at
+her desk Betty still slept, and as he stepped softly forward
+and looked down on her she stirred slightly and drew a long
+breath, but slept on.</p>
+<p>For a moment his heart ceased to beat, then it throbbed
+suffocatingly and his hand went to his breast and clutched
+the bill book where lay the tender little poem. There at
+her elbow lay the copy she had so carefully made. The
+air of the room was warm and drowsy, and the stillness
+was only broken by the low buzzing of two great bluebottle
+flies that struggled futilely against the high window panes.
+Dear little tired Betty! Dreaming,&ndash;&ndash;of whom? The
+breath came through her parted lips, softly and evenly, and
+the last ray of the sun fell on her flushed cheek and
+brought out the touch of gold in her hair.</p>
+<p>The young man turned away and crossed the bare floor
+with light steps and drew the door softly shut after him as
+he went out. No one might look upon her as she slept,
+with less reverent eyes. Some distance away, where the
+road began to ascend toward the river bluff, he seated himself
+on a stone overlooking the little schoolhouse and the
+road beyond. There he took up his lonely watch, until he
+saw Betty come out and walk hurriedly toward the village,
+carrying a book and swinging her hat by the long ribbon
+ties; then he went on climbing the winding path to the top
+of the bluff overlooking the river.</p>
+<p>Moodily he paced up and down along the edge of the
+bluff, and finally followed a zigzag path to the great rocks
+below, that at this point seemed to have hurled themselves
+down there to do battle with the eager, dominating flood.
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_339' name='page_339'></a>339</span>
+For a while he stood gazing into the rushing water, not as
+though he were fascinated by it, but rather as if he were
+held to the spot by some inward vision. Presently he
+seemed to wake with a start and looked back along the
+narrow, steep path, and up to the overhanging edge of the
+bluff, scanning it closely.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes, yes. There is the notch where it lay, and this
+may be the very stone on which I am standing. What an
+easy thing to fall over there and meet death halfway!&rdquo;
+He muttered the words under his breath and began slowly
+to climb the difficult ascent.</p>
+<p>The sun was gone, and down by the water a cold, damp
+current of air seemed to sweep around the curve of the bluff
+along with the rush of the river. As he climbed he came
+to a warmer wave of air, and the dusk closed softly around
+him, as if nature were casting a friendly curtain over the
+drowsing earth; and the roar of the river came up to him,
+no longer angrily, but in a ceaseless, subdued complaint.</p>
+<p>Again he paced the top of the bluff, and at last seated
+himself with his feet hanging over the edge, at the spot from
+which the stone had fallen. The trees on this wind-swept
+place were mostly gnarled oaks, old and strong and rugged,
+standing like a band of weather-beaten life guardsmen
+overlooking the miles of country around. Not twenty
+paces from where the young man sat, half reclining on his
+elbow, stood one of these oaks, and close to its great trunk
+on its shadowed side a man bent forward intently watching
+him. Whenever the young man shifted his position
+restlessly, the figure made a darting movement forward as
+if to snatch him from the dangerous brink, then recoiled
+and continued to watch.</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_340' name='page_340'></a>340</span></div>
+<p>Soon the young man seemed to be aware of the presence
+and watchful eye, and looked behind him, peering into the
+dusk. Then the man left his place and came toward him,
+with slow, sauntering step.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Hullo!&rdquo; he said, with an insinuating, rising inflection
+and in the soft voice of the Scandinavian.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Hallo!&rdquo; replied the young man.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Seek?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Sick? No.&rdquo; The young man laughed slightly.
+&ldquo;What are you doing here?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, I yust make it leetle valk up here.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Same with me, and now I&rsquo;ll make it a little walk back
+to town.&rdquo; The young man rose and stretched himself
+and turned his steps slowly back along the winding path.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Vell, I tank I make it leetle valk down town, too,&rdquo; and
+the figure came sauntering along at the young man&rsquo;s side.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, you&rsquo;re going my way, are you? All right.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yas, I tank I going yust de sam your way.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>The young man set the pace more rapidly, and for a
+time they walked on in silence. At last, &ldquo;Live here?&rdquo; he
+asked.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yas, I lif here.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Been here long?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;In America? Yes. I guess five&ndash;&ndash;sax&ndash;&ndash;year. Oh, I
+lak it goot.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I mean here, in this place.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, here? Yas, two, t&rsquo;ree year. I lak it goot too.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Know any one here?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, yas. I know people I vork by yet.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Who are they?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, I vork by many place&ndash;&ndash;make garten&ndash;&ndash;und vork
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_341' name='page_341'></a>341</span>
+wit&rsquo; horses, und so. Meesus Craikmile, I vork by her on
+garten. She iss dere no more.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>The young man paused suddenly in his stride. &ldquo;Gone?
+Where is she gone?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, she iss by ol&rsquo; country gone. Her man iss gone mit.&rdquo;
+They walked on.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;What! Is the Elder gone, too?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yas. You know heem, yas?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, yes. I know everybody here. I&rsquo;ve been away for
+a good while.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;So? Yas, yust lak me. I was gone too goot wile, bot
+I coom back too, yust lak you.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Here they came to a turn in the road, and the village
+lights began to wink out through the darkness, and their
+ways parted.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I&rsquo;m going this way,&rdquo; said the young man. &ldquo;You turn
+off here? Well, good night.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Vell, goot night.&rdquo; The Swede sauntered away down
+a by-path, and the young man kept on the main road to the
+village and entered its one hotel where he had engaged a
+room a few hours before.</p>
+<hr class='toprule' />
+<div class='chsp'>
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_342' name='page_342'></a>342</span>
+<a name='CHAPTER_XXVII_THE_SWEDES_TELEGRAM' id='CHAPTER_XXVII_THE_SWEDES_TELEGRAM'></a>
+<h2>CHAPTER XXVII</h2>
+<h3>THE SWEDE&rsquo;S TELEGRAM</h3>
+</div>
+<p>As soon as the shadows hid the young man&rsquo;s retreating
+form from the Swede&rsquo;s watchful eye, that individual quickened
+his pace and presently broke into a run. Circling
+round a few blocks and regaining the main street a little
+below the hotel, he entered the telegraph office. There
+his haste seemed to leave him. He stood watching the
+clerk a few minutes, but the latter paid no attention to him.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Hullo!&rdquo; he said at last.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Hallo, yourself!&rdquo; said the boy, without looking up or
+taking his hand from the steadily clicking instrument.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Say, I lak it you send me somet&rsquo;ing by telegraph.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;All right. Hold on a minute,&rdquo; and the instrument
+clicked on.</p>
+<p>After a little the Swede grew impatient. He scratched
+his pale gold head and shuffled his feet.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Say, I lak it you send me a little somet&rsquo;ing yet.&rdquo; He
+reached out and touched the boy on the shoulder.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Keep out of here. I&rsquo;ll send your message when I&rsquo;m
+through with this,&rdquo; and the instrument clicked on. Then
+the Swede resigned himself, watching sullenly.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Everybody has to take his turn,&rdquo; said the boy at last.
+&ldquo;You can&rsquo;t cut in like that.&rdquo; The boy was newly promoted
+and felt his importance. He took the soiled scrap of paper
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_343' name='page_343'></a>343</span>
+held out to him. It was written over in a clear, bold hand.
+&ldquo;This isn&rsquo;t signed. Who sends this?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You make it yust lak it iss. I send dot.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Well, sign it.&rdquo; He pushed a pen toward him, and the
+Swede took it in clumsy fingers and wrote laboriously,
+&ldquo;Nels Nelson.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You didn&rsquo;t write this message?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;No. I vork by de hotel, und I get a man write it.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;It isn&rsquo;t dated. Been carrying it around in your pocket
+a good while I guess. Better date it.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Date it?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes. Put down the time you send, you know.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, dat&rsquo;s not&rsquo;ing. He know putty goot when he get it.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Very well. &lsquo;To Mr. John Thomas,&ndash;&ndash;State Street,
+Chicago. Job&rsquo;s ready. Come along.&rsquo; Who&rsquo;s job is it?
+Yours?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;No. It&rsquo;s hees yob yet. You mak it go to-night, all
+right. Goot night. I pay it now, yas. Vell, goot night.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>He paid the boy and slipped out into the shadows of the
+street, and again making the detour so that he came to the
+hotel from the rear, he passed the stables, and before climbing
+to his cupboard of a room at the top of the building, he
+stepped round to the side and looked in at the dining room
+windows, and there he saw the young man seated at supper.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;All right,&rdquo; he said softly.</p>
+<p>The omnibus sent regularly by the hotel management
+brought only one passenger from the early train next day.
+Times had been dull of late and travel had greatly fallen off,
+as the proprietor complained. There was nothing unusual
+about this passenger,&ndash;&ndash;the ordinary traveling man, representing
+a well-known New York dry-goods house.</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_344' name='page_344'></a>344</span></div>
+<p>Nels Nelson drove the omnibus. He had done so ever
+since Elder Craigmile went to Scotland with his wife. The
+young man he had found on the river bluff was pacing the
+hotel veranda as he drove up, and Nels Nelson glanced at
+him, and into the eyes of the traveling man, as he handed
+down the latter&rsquo;s heavy valise.</p>
+<p>Standing at the desk, the newcomer chatted with the
+clerk as he wrote his name under that of the last arrival the
+day before.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Harry King,&rdquo; he read. &ldquo;Came yesterday. Many
+stopping here now? Times hard! I guess so! Nothing
+doing in my line. Nobody wants a thing. Guess I&rsquo;ll
+leave the road and &lsquo;go west, young man,&rsquo; as old Greeley
+advises. What line is King in? Do&rsquo; know? Is that him
+going into the dining room? Guess I&rsquo;ll follow and fill up.
+Anything good to eat here?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>In the dining room he indicated to the waiter by a nod
+of his head the seat opposite Harry King, and immediately
+entered into a free and easy conversation, giving him a history
+of his disappointments in the way of trade, and reiterating
+his determination to &ldquo;go west, young man.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>He hardly glanced at Harry, but ate rapidly, stowing
+away all within reach, until the meal was half through,
+then he looked up and asked abruptly, &ldquo;What line are you
+in, may I ask?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Certainly you may ask, but I can&rsquo;t tell you. I would be
+glad to do so if I knew myself.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Ever think of going west?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I&rsquo;ve just come from there&ndash;&ndash;or almost there&ndash;&ndash;whereever
+it is.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Stiles is my name&ndash;&ndash;G. B. Stiles. Good name for a
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_345' name='page_345'></a>345</span>
+dry-goods salesman, don&rsquo;t you think so? I know the styles
+all right, for men, and women too. Like it out west?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes. Very well.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Been there long?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, two or three years.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Had enough of it, likely?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Well, I can scarcely say that.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Mean to stay east now?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I may. I&rsquo;m not settled yet.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Better take up my line. If I drop out, there&rsquo;ll be an
+opening with my firm&ndash;&ndash;good firm, too. Ward, Williams
+&amp; Co., New York. Been in New York, I suppose?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;No, never.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Well, better try it. I mean to &lsquo;go west, young man.&rsquo;
+Know anybody here? Ever live here?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes, when I was a boy.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Come back to the boyhood home. We all do that,
+you know. There&rsquo;s poetry in it&ndash;&ndash;all do it. &lsquo;Old oaken
+bucket&rsquo; and all that sort of thing. I mean to do it myself
+yet,&ndash;&ndash;back to old York state.&rdquo; G. B. Stiles wiped his
+mouth vigorously and shoved back his chair. &ldquo;Well, see
+you again, I hope,&rdquo; he said, and walked off, picking his
+teeth with a quill pick which he took from his vest pocket.</p>
+<p>He walked slowly and meditatively through the office
+and out on the sidewalk. Here he paused and glanced
+about, and seeing his companion of the breakfast table was
+not in sight, he took his way around to the stables. Nels
+Nelson was stooping in the stable yard, washing a horse&rsquo;s
+legs. G. B. Stiles came and stood near, looking down on
+him, and Nels straightened up and stood waiting, with the
+dripping rags in his hand.</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_346' name='page_346'></a>346</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;Vell, I tol&rsquo; you he coomin&rsquo; back sometime. I vaiting
+long time all ready, but yust lak I tol&rsquo; you, he coom.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I thought I told you not to sign that telegram. But
+it&rsquo;s no matter,&ndash;&ndash;didn&rsquo;t do any harm, I guess.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Dot vas a fool, dot boy dere. He ask all tam, &rsquo;Vot for?
+Who write dis? You not? Eh? Who sen&rsquo; dis?&rsquo; He
+make me put my name dere; den I get out putty quvick or
+he ask yet vat iss it for a yob you got somebody, eh?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, well, we&rsquo;ve got him now, and he don&rsquo;t seem to care
+to keep under cover, either.&rdquo; G. B. Stiles seemed to address
+himself. &ldquo;Too smart to show a sign. See here, Nelson,
+are you ready to swear that he&rsquo;s the man? Are you ready
+to swear to all you told me?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;It is better you gif me a paper once, vit your name, dot
+you gif me half dot money.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Nels Nelson stooped deliberately and went on washing
+the horse&rsquo;s legs. A look of irritation swept over the placid
+face of G. B. Stiles, and he slipped the toothpick back in
+his vest pocket and walked away.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I say,&rdquo; called the Swede after him. &ldquo;You gif me dot
+paper. Eh?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I can&rsquo;t stand talking to you here. You&rsquo;ll promise to
+swear to all you told me when I was here the first time. If
+you do that, you are sure of the money, and if you change
+it in the least, or show the least sign of backing down, we
+neither of us get it. Understand?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Again the Swede arose, and stood looking at him sullenly.
+&ldquo;It iss ten t&rsquo;ousand tallers, und I get it half, eh?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, you go to thunder!&rdquo; The proprietor of the hotel
+came around the corner of the stable, and G. B. Stiles addressed
+himself to him. &ldquo;I&rsquo;d like the use of a horse to-day,
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_347' name='page_347'></a>347</span>
+and your man here, if I can get him. I&rsquo;ve got to make a
+trip to Rigg&rsquo;s Corners to sell some dry goods. Got a good
+buggy?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes, and a horse you can drive yourself, if you like.
+Be gone all day?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;No, don&rsquo;t want to fool with a horse&ndash;&ndash;may want to
+stay and send the horse back&ndash;&ndash;if I find a place where the
+grub is better than it is here. See?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You&rsquo;ll be back after one meal at any place within a
+hundred miles of here.&rdquo; The proprietor laughed.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Might as well drive yourself. You won&rsquo;t want to send
+the horse back. I&rsquo;m short of drivers just now. Times are
+bad and travel light, so I let one go.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I&rsquo;ll take the Swede there.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;He&rsquo;s my station hand. Maybe Jake can drive you.
+Nels, where&rsquo;s Jake?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;He&rsquo;s dere in the stable. Shake!&rdquo; he shouted, without
+glancing up, and Jake slouched out into the yard.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Jake, here&rsquo;s a gentleman wants you to drive him out
+into the country,&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I&rsquo;ll take the Swede. Jake can drive your station wagon
+for once.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>G. B. Stiles laughed good-humoredly and returned to the
+piazza and sat tilted back with his feet on the rail not far
+from Harry King, who was intently reading the <i>New York
+Tribune</i>. For a while he eyed the young man covertly,
+then dropped his feet to the floor and turned upon him
+with a question on the political situation, and deliberately
+engaged him in conversation, which Harry King entered into
+courteously yet reluctantly. Evidently he was preoccupied
+with affairs of his own.</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_348' name='page_348'></a>348</span></div>
+<p>In the stable yard a discussion was going on. &ldquo;Dot
+horse no goot in buggy. Better you sell heem any
+vay. He yoomp by de cars all tam, und he no goot by
+buggy.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Well, you&rsquo;ve got to take him by the buggy, if he is no
+good. I won&rsquo;t let Jake drive him around the trains, and
+he won&rsquo;t let Jake go with him out to Rigg&rsquo;s Corners, so
+you&rsquo;ll have to take the gray and the buggy and go.&rdquo; The
+Swede began a sullen protest, but the proprietor shouted
+back to him, &ldquo;You&rsquo;ll do this or leave,&rdquo; and walked in.</p>
+<p>Nels went then into the stable, smiling quietly. He was
+well satisfied with the arrangement. &ldquo;Shake, you put dot
+big horse by de buggy. No. Tak&rsquo; d&rsquo;oder bridle. I don&rsquo;t
+drive heem mit ol&rsquo; bridle; he yoomp too quvick yet. All
+tam yoomping, dot horse.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Presently Nels drove round to the front of the hotel with
+the gray horse and a high-top buggy. Harry King regarded
+him closely as he passed, but Nels looked straight ahead.
+A boy came out carrying Stiles&rsquo; heavy valise.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Put that in behind here,&rdquo; said Stiles, as he climbed in
+and seated himself at Nels Nelson&rsquo;s side. The gray leaped
+forward on the instant with so sudden a jump that he
+caught at his hat and missed it. Harry King stepped
+down and picked it up.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;What ails your horse?&rdquo; he asked, as he restored it to
+its owner.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, not&rsquo;in&rsquo;. He lak yoomp a little.&rdquo; And again the
+horse leaped forward, taking them off at a frantic pace,
+the high-topped buggy atilt as they turned the corner of
+the street into the country road. Harry King returned to
+his seat. Surely it was the Scandinavian who had walked
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_349' name='page_349'></a>349</span>
+down from the bluff with him the evening before. There
+was no mistaking that soft, drawling voice.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;See here! You pull your beast down, I want to talk
+with you. Hi! There goes my hat again. Can&rsquo;t you
+control him better than that? Let me out.&rdquo; Nels pulled
+the animal down with a powerful arm, and he stood quietly
+enough while G. B. Stiles climbed down and walked back
+for his hat. &ldquo;Look here! Can you manage the beast, or
+can&rsquo;t you?&rdquo; he asked as he stood beside the vehicle and
+wiped the dust from his soft black felt with his sleeve.
+&ldquo;If you can&rsquo;t, I&rsquo;ll walk.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, yas, I feex heem. I leek heem goot ven ve coom
+to place nobody see me.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I guess that&rsquo;s what ails him now. You&rsquo;ve done that
+before.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yas, bot if you no lak I leek heem, ust you yoomp in
+und I lat heem run goot for two, t&rsquo;ree mile. Dot feex heem
+all right.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know about that. Sure you can hold him?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yas, I hol&rsquo; heem so goot he break hee&rsquo;s yaw off, if
+he don&rsquo;t stop ven I tol&rsquo; heem. Now, quvick. Whoa!
+Yoomp in.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>G. B. Stiles scrambled in with unusual agility for him,
+and again they were off, the gray taking them along with
+leaps and bounds, but the road was smooth, and the dust
+laid by frequent showers was like velvet under the horse&rsquo;s
+feet. Stiles drew himself up, clinging to the side of the
+buggy and to his hat.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;How long will he keep this up?&rdquo; he asked.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, he stop putty quvick. He lak it leetle run. T&rsquo;ree,
+four mile he run&ndash;&ndash;das all.&rdquo; And the Swede was right.
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_350' name='page_350'></a>350</span>
+After a while the horse settled down to a long, swinging trot.
+&ldquo;Look at heem now. I make heem go all tam lak dis.
+Ven I get my money I haf stable of my own und den I buy
+heem. I know heem. I all tam tol&rsquo; Meester Decker dot
+horse no goot&ndash;&ndash;I buy heem sheep. You go&rsquo;n gif me dot
+money, eh?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I see. You&rsquo;re sharp, but you&rsquo;re asking too much. If
+it were not for me, you wouldn&rsquo;t get a cent, or me either.
+See? I&rsquo;ve spent a thousand hunting that man up, and you
+haven&rsquo;t spent a cent. All you&rsquo;ve done is to stick here at
+the hotel and watch. I&rsquo;ve been all over the country. Even
+went to Europe and down in Mexico&ndash;&ndash;everywhere.
+You haven&rsquo;t really earned a cent of it.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Vat for you goin&rsquo; all offer de vorld? Vat you got by
+dot? Spen&rsquo; money&ndash;&ndash;dot vot you got. Me, I stay here.
+I fin&rsquo; heem; you not got heem all offer de vorld. I tol&rsquo;
+you, of a man he keel somebody, he run vay, bot he goin&rsquo;
+coom back where he done it. He not know it vot for he do
+it, bot he do it all right.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Look here, Nelson; it&rsquo;s outrageous! You can&rsquo;t lay
+claim to that money. I told you if he was found and you
+were willing to give in your evidence just as you gave it to
+me that day, I&rsquo;d give you your fair share of the reward, as
+you asked for it, but I never gave you any reason to think
+you were to take half. I&rsquo;ve spent all the money working
+up this matter, and if I were to go back now and do nothing,
+as I&rsquo;m half a mind to do, you&rsquo;d never get a cent of it.
+There&rsquo;s no proof that he&rsquo;s the man.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You no need spen&rsquo; dot money.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Can&rsquo;t I get reason into your head? When I set out to
+get hold of a criminal, do you think I sit down in one place
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_351' name='page_351'></a>351</span>
+and wait? You didn&rsquo;t find him; he came here, and it&rsquo;s
+only by an accident you have him, and he may clear out yet,
+and neither of us be the better off because of your pig-headedness.
+Here, drive into that grove and tie your
+horse a minute and we&rsquo;ll come to an understanding. I
+can&rsquo;t write you out a paper while we&rsquo;re moving along like
+this.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Then Nels turned into the grove and took the horse
+from the shafts and tied him some distance away, while
+G. B. Stiles took writing materials from his valise, and, sitting
+in the buggy, made a show of drawing up a legal paper.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I&rsquo;m going to draw you up a paper as you asked me to.
+Now how do you know you have the man?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;It iss ten t&rsquo;ousand tallers. You make me out dot
+paper you gif me half yet.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Damn it! You answer my question. I can&rsquo;t make
+this out unless I know you&rsquo;re going to come up to the
+scratch.&rdquo; He made a show of writing, and talked at the
+same time. &ldquo;I, G. B. Stiles, detective, in the employ of
+Peter Craigmile, of the town of Leauvite, for the capture of
+the murderer of his son, Peter Craigmile, Jr., do hereby
+promise one Nels Nelson, Swede,&ndash;&ndash;in the employ of Mr
+Decker, hotel proprietor, as stable man,&ndash;&ndash;for services
+rendered in the identification of said criminal at such time
+as he should be found,&ndash;&ndash;&ndash;Now, what service have you
+rendered? How much money have you spent in the
+search?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Not&rsquo;ing. I got heem.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Nothing. That&rsquo;s just it.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I got heem.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;No, you haven&rsquo;t got him, and you can&rsquo;t get him without
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_352' name='page_352'></a>352</span>
+me. Don&rsquo;t you think it. I am the one to get him.
+You have no warrant and no license. I&rsquo;m the one to put
+in the claim and get the reward for you, and you&rsquo;ll have to
+take what I choose to give, and no more. By rights you
+would only have your fee as witness, and that&rsquo;s all. That&rsquo;s
+all the state gives. Whatever else you get is by my kindness
+in sharing with you. Hear?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>A dangerous light gleamed in the Swede&rsquo;s eyes, and
+Stiles, by a slight disarrangement of his coat in the search
+for his handkerchief, displayed a revolver in his hip pocket.
+Nels&rsquo; eyes shifted, and he looked away.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You&rsquo;d better quit this damned nonsense and say what
+you&rsquo;ll take and what you&rsquo;ll swear to.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I&rsquo;ll take half dot money,&rdquo; said Nels, softly and stubbornly.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I&rsquo;ll take out all I&rsquo;ve spent on this case before we divide
+it in any way, shape, or manner.&rdquo; Stiles figured a moment
+on the margin of his paper. &ldquo;Now, what are you going to
+swear to? You needn&rsquo;t shift round. You&rsquo;ll tell me here
+just what you&rsquo;re prepared to give in as evidence before I
+put down a single figure to your name on this paper. See?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I done tol&rsquo; you all dot in Chicago dot time.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Very well. You&rsquo;ll give that in as evidence, every word
+of it, and swear to it?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yas.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t more than half believe this is the man. You
+know it&rsquo;s life imprisonment for him if it&rsquo;s proved on him,
+and you&rsquo;d better be sure you have the right one. I&rsquo;m in
+for justice, and you&rsquo;re in for the money, that&rsquo;s plain.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yas, I tank you lak it money, too.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I&rsquo;ll not put him in irons to-night unless you give me
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_353' name='page_353'></a>353</span>
+some better reason for your assertion. Why is he the
+man?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I seen heem dot tam, I know. He got it mark on hees
+head vere de blud run dot tam, yust de sam, all right. I
+know heem. He speek lak heem. He move hees arm lak
+heem. Yas, I know putty good.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You&rsquo;re sure you remember everything he said&ndash;&ndash;all you
+told me?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, yas. I write it here,&rdquo; and he drew a small book
+from his pocket, very worn and soiled. &ldquo;All iss here
+writed.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Let&rsquo;s see it.&rdquo; With a smile the Swede put it in Stiles&rsquo;
+hand. He regarded it in a puzzled way.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;What&rsquo;s this?&rdquo; He handed the book back contemptuously.
+&ldquo;You&rsquo;ll never be able to make that out,&ndash;&ndash;all
+dirty and&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yas, I read heem, you not,&ndash;&ndash;dot&rsquo;s Swedish.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Very well. Perhaps you know what you&rsquo;re about,&rdquo;
+and the discussion went on, until at last G. B. Stiles, partly
+by intimidation, partly by assumption of being able to get
+on without his services, persuaded Nels to modify his demands
+and accept three thousand for his evidence. Then
+the gray was put in the shafts again, and they drove to the
+town quietly, as if they had been to Rigg&rsquo;s Corners and
+back.</p>
+<hr class='toprule' />
+<div class='chsp'>
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_354' name='page_354'></a>354</span>
+<a name='CHAPTER_XXVIII_A_RESEMBLANCE_SOMEWHERE' id='CHAPTER_XXVIII_A_RESEMBLANCE_SOMEWHERE'></a>
+<h2>CHAPTER XXVIII</h2>
+<h3>&ldquo;A RESEMBLANCE SOMEWHERE&rdquo;</h3>
+</div>
+<p>While G. B. Stiles and the big Swede were taking their
+drive and bargaining away Harry King&rsquo;s liberty, he had
+loitered about the town, and visited a few places familiar
+to him. First he went to the home of Elder Craigmile
+and found it locked, and the key in the care of one of the
+bank clerks who slept there during the owner&rsquo;s absence.
+After sitting a while on the front steps, with his elbows on
+his knees and his head in his hands, he rose and strolled
+out along the quiet country road on its grassy footpath, past
+the Ballards&rsquo; home.</p>
+<p>Mary and Bertrand were out in the little orchard at the
+back of the house, gazing up at the apple blossoms that
+hung over their heads in great pale pink clouds. A sweet
+odor came from the lilacs that hung over the garden fence,
+and the sunlight streamed down on the peaceful home, and
+on the opening spring flowers&ndash;&ndash;the borders of dwarf purple
+iris and big clusters of peonies, just beginning to bud,&ndash;&ndash;and
+on the beehives scattered about with the bees flying
+out and in. Ah! It was still the same&ndash;&ndash;tempting and
+inviting.</p>
+<p>He paused at the gate, looking wistfully at the open door,
+but did not enter. No, he must keep his own counsel and
+hold to his purpose, without stirring these dear old friends
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_355' name='page_355'></a>355</span>
+to sorrowful sympathy. So he passed on, unseen by them,
+feeling the old love for the place and all the tender memories
+connected with it revived and deepened. On he went,
+strolling toward the little schoolhouse where he had found
+dear Betty Ballard sleeping at the big school desk the evening
+before, and passed it by&ndash;&ndash;only looking in curiously
+at the tousled heads bent over their lessons, and at Betty
+herself, where she sat at the desk, a class on the long recitation
+bench before her, and a great boy standing at the blackboard.
+He saw her rise and take the chalk from the
+boy&rsquo;s hand and make a few rapid strokes with it on the
+board.</p>
+<p>Little Betty a school-teacher! She had suffered much!
+How much did she care now? Was it over and her heart
+healed? Had other loves come to her? All intent now
+on her work, she stood with her back toward him, and as
+he passed the open door she turned half about, and he saw
+her profile sharply against the blackboard. Older? Yes,
+she looked older, but prettier for that, and slight and trim
+and neat, dressed in a soft shade of green. She had worn
+such a dress once at a picnic. Well he remembered it&ndash;&ndash;could
+he ever forget? Swiftly she turned again to the board
+and drew the eraser across the work, and he heard her
+voice distinctly, with its singing quality&ndash;&ndash;how well he
+remembered that also&ndash;&ndash;&ldquo;Now, how many of the class can
+work this problem?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Ah, little Betty! little Betty! Life is working problems
+for us all, and you are working yours to a sweet conclusion,
+helping the children, and taking up your own burdens and
+bearing them bravely. This was Harry King&rsquo;s thought as
+he strolled on and seated himself again under the basswood
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_356' name='page_356'></a>356</span>
+tree by the meadow brook, and took from his pocket the
+worn scrap of paper the wind had brought him and read it
+again.</p>
+<table summary=''><tr><td>
+<p class='cg'>&ldquo;Out of my life, and into the night,<br />
+<span class='indent4'>&nbsp;</span>But never out of my heart, my own.<br />
+Into the darkness, out of the light,<br />
+<span class='indent4'>&nbsp;</span>Bleeding and wounded and walking alone.&rdquo;</p>
+</td></tr></table>
+<p>Such a tender, rhythmic bit of verse&ndash;&ndash;Betty must have
+written it. It was like her.</p>
+<p>After a time he rose and strolled back again past the
+little schoolhouse, and it was recess. Long before he
+reached it he heard the voices of the children shouting,
+&ldquo;Anty, anty over, anty, anty over.&rdquo; They were divided
+into two bands, one on either side of the small building,
+over which they tossed the ball and shouted as they tossed
+it, &ldquo;Anty, anty over&rdquo;; and the band on the other side,
+warned by the cry, caught the ball on the rebound if they
+could, and tore around the corner of the building, trying to
+hit with it any luckless wight on the other side, and so claim
+him for their own, and thus changing sides, the merry romp
+went on.</p>
+<p>Betty came to the door with the bell in her hand, and
+stood for a moment looking out in the sunshine. One of
+the smallest of the boys ran to her and threw his arms
+around her, and, looking up in her face, screamed in wildest
+excitement, &ldquo;I caught it twice, Teacher, I did.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>With her hand on his head she looked in his eyes and
+smiled and tinkled her little bell, and the children, big and
+little, all came crowding through the door, hustling like a
+flock of chickens, and every boy snatched off his cap as he
+rushed by her.</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_357' name='page_357'></a>357</span></div>
+<p>Ah, grave, dignified little Betty! Who was that passing
+slowly along the road? Like a wild rose by the wayside
+she seemed to him, with her pink cheeks and in her soft
+green gown, framed thus by the doorway of the old schoolhouse.
+Naturally she had no recognition for this bearded
+man, walking by with stiff, soldierly step, yet something
+caused her to look again, turning as she entered, and, when
+he looked back, their eyes met, and hers dropped before his,
+and she was lost to his sight as she closed the door after her.
+Of course she could not recognize him disguised thus with
+the beard on his face, and his dark, tanned skin. She did
+not recognize him, and he was glad, yet sore at heart.</p>
+<p>He had had all he could bear, and for the rest of the morning
+he wrote letters, sitting in his room at Decker&rsquo;s hotel.
+Only two letters, but one was a very long one&ndash;&ndash;to Amalia
+Manovska. Out in the world he dared not use her own
+name, so he addressed the envelope to Miss McBride, in
+Larry Kildene&rsquo;s care, at the nearest station to which they
+had agreed letters should be sent. Before he finished the
+second letter the gong sounded for dinner. The noon meal
+was always dinner at the hotel. He thrust his papers and
+the unfinished letter in his valise and locked it&ndash;&ndash;and went
+below.</p>
+<p>G. B. Stiles was already there, seated in the same place
+as on the day before, and Harry took his seat opposite him,
+and they began a conversation in the same facile way, but
+the manner of the dry-goods salesman towards him seemed
+to have undergone a change. It had lost its swagger, and
+was more that of a man who could be a gentleman if he
+chose, while to the surprise of Stiles the manner of the young
+man was as disarmingly quiet and unconcerned as before,
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_358' name='page_358'></a>358</span>
+and as abstracted. He could not believe that any man
+hovering on the brink of a terrible catastrophe, and one to
+avert which required concealment of identity, could be so
+unwary. He half believed the Swede was laboring under an
+hallucination, and decided to be deliberate, and await
+developments for the rest of the day.</p>
+<p>After dinner they wandered out to the piazza side by
+side, and there they sat and smoked, and talked over the
+political situation as they had the evening before, and
+Stiles was surprised at the young man&rsquo;s ignorance of general
+public matters. Was it ignorance, or indifference?</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I thought all you army men would stand by Grant to the
+drop of the hat.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes, I suppose we would.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You suppose so! Don&rsquo;t you know? I carried a gun
+under Grant, and I&rsquo;d swear to any policy he&rsquo;d go in for,
+and what I say is, they haven&rsquo;t had quite enough down
+there. What the South needs is another licking. That&rsquo;s
+what it needs.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, no, no, no. I was sick of fighting, long before
+they laid me up, and I guess a lot of us were.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>G. B. Stiles brought his feet to the floor with a stamp of
+surprise and turned to look full in the young man&rsquo;s face.
+For a moment he gazed on him thus, then grunted. &ldquo;Ever
+feel one of their bullets?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, yes.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;That the mark, there over your temple?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;No, it didn&rsquo;t do any harm to speak of. That&rsquo;s&ndash;&ndash;where
+something&ndash;&ndash;struck me.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, you don&rsquo;t say!&rdquo; Harry King rose. &ldquo;Leaving?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;No. I have a few letters to write&ndash;&ndash;and&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_359' name='page_359'></a>359</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;Sorry to miss you. Staying in town for some time?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I hardly know. I may.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Plans unsettled? Well, times are unsettled and no
+money stirring. My plans are all upset, too.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>The young man returned to his room and continued his
+writing. One short letter to Betty, inclosing the worn
+scrap of paper the wind had brought him; he kissed it
+before he placed it in the envelope. Then he wrote one to
+her father and mother jointly, and a long one to Hester
+Craigmile. Sometimes he would pause in his writing and
+tear up a page, and begin over again, but at last all were
+done and inclosed in a letter to the Elder and placed in a
+heavy envelope and sealed. Only the one to Amalia he
+did not inclose, but carried it out and mailed it himself.</p>
+<p>Passing the bank on the way to the post office, he dropped
+in and made quite a heavy deposit. It was just before
+closing time and the clerks were all intent on getting their
+books straight, preparatory to leaving. How well he remembered
+that moment of restless turning of ledgers and
+the slight accession of eagerness in the younger clerks, as
+they followed the long columns of figures down with the
+forefinger of the left hand&ndash;&ndash;the pen poised in the right.
+The whole scene smote him poignantly as he stood at the
+teller&rsquo;s window waiting. And he might have been doing
+that, he thought! A whole lifetime spent in doing just
+that and more like it, year in and year out!</p>
+<p>How had his life been better? He had sinned&ndash;&ndash;and
+failed. Ah! But he had lived and loved&ndash;&ndash;lived terribly
+and loved greatly. God help him, how he loved! Even
+for life to end here&ndash;&ndash;either in prison or in death&ndash;&ndash;still
+he had felt the tremendous passions, and understood the
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_360' name='page_360'></a>360</span>
+meaning of their power in a human soul. This had life
+brought him, and a love beyond measure to crown all.</p>
+<p>The teller peered at him through the little window behind
+which he had stood so many years peering at people in this
+sleepy little bank, this sure, safe, little bank, always doing
+its conservative business in the same way, and heretofore
+always making good. He reached out a long, well-shaped
+hand,&ndash;&ndash;a large-veined hand, slightly hairy at the wrist,
+to take the bank notes. How often had Harry King seen
+that hand stretched thus through the little window, drawing
+bank notes toward him! Almost with a shock he saw
+it now reach for his own&ndash;&ndash;for the first time. In the old
+days he had had none to deposit. It was always for others
+it had been extended. Now it seemed as if he must seize
+the hand and shake it,&ndash;&ndash;the only hand that had been
+reached out to him yet, in this town where his boyhood had
+been spent.</p>
+<p>A young man who had preceded Harry King at the
+teller&rsquo;s window paused near by at the cashier&rsquo;s desk and
+began asking questions which Harry himself would have
+been glad to ask, but could not.</p>
+<p>He was an alert, bright-eyed young chap with a smiling
+face. &ldquo;Good afternoon, Mr. Copeland. Any news for me
+to-day?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Mr. Copeland was an elderly man of great dignity, and
+almost as much of a figure there as the Elder himself. It
+was an act of great temerity to approach him for items of
+news for the <i>Leauvite Mercury</i>. Of this fact the young
+reporter seemed to be blithely ignorant. All the clerks
+were covertly watching the outcome, and thus attention
+was turned from Harry King; even the teller glanced frequently
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_361' name='page_361'></a>361</span>
+at the cashier&rsquo;s desk as he counted the bank notes
+placed in his hand.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;News? No. No news,&rdquo; said Mr. Copeland, without
+looking up.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Thank you. It&rsquo;s my business to ask for it, you know.
+We&rsquo;re making more of a feature of personal items than ever
+before. We&rsquo;re up to date, you see. &lsquo;Find out what people
+want and then give it to them.&rsquo; That&rsquo;s our motto.&rdquo; The
+young man leaned forward over the high railing that
+corralled the cashier in his pen apart from the public,
+smilingly oblivious of that dignitary&rsquo;s objections to
+an interview. &ldquo;Expecting the return of Elder Craigmile
+soon?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>At that question, to the surprise of all, the cashier suddenly
+changed his manner to the suave affability with which
+he greeted people of consequence. &ldquo;We are expecting
+Elder Craigmile shortly. Yes. Indeed he may arrive
+any day, if the voyage is favorable.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Thank you. Mrs. Craigmile accompanies him, I
+suppose?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;It is not likely, no. Her health demands&ndash;&ndash;ahem&ndash;&ndash;a
+little longer rest and change.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Ah! The Elder not called back by&ndash;&ndash;for any particular
+reason? No. Business going well? Good. I&rsquo;m told
+there&rsquo;s a great deal of depression.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, in a way&ndash;&ndash;there may be,&ndash;&ndash;but we&rsquo;re all of the
+conservative sort here in Leauvite. We&rsquo;re not likely to
+feel it if there is. Good afternoon.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>No one paid any attention to Harry King as he walked
+out after the <i>Leauvite Mercury</i> reporter, except Mr. Copeland,
+who glanced at him keenly as he passed his desk.
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_362' name='page_362'></a>362</span>
+Then, looking at his watch, he came out of his corral and
+turned the key in the bank door.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;We&rsquo;ll have no more interruptions now,&rdquo; he said, as he
+paused at the teller&rsquo;s window. &ldquo;You know the young man
+who just went out?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Sam Carter of the <i>Mercury</i>. Old Billings no doubt
+sent him in to learn how we stand.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;No, no, no. Sam Carter&ndash;&ndash;I know him. Who&rsquo;s the
+young man who followed him out?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know. Here&rsquo;s his signature. He&rsquo;s just made
+a big deposit on long time&ndash;&ndash;only one thousand on call.
+Unusual these days.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Mr. Copeland&rsquo;s eyes glittered an instant. &ldquo;Good.
+That&rsquo;s something. I decided to give the town people to
+understand that there is no need for their anxiety. It&rsquo;s
+the best policy, and when the Elder returns, he may be
+induced to withdraw his insane offer of reward. Ten thousand
+dollars! It&rsquo;s ridiculous, when the young men may
+both be dead, for all the world will ever know.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;If we could do that&ndash;&ndash;but I&rsquo;ve known the Elder too
+long to hope for it. This deposit stands for a year, see?
+And the ten thousand the Elder has set one side for the
+reward gives us twenty thousand we could not count on
+yesterday.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;In all the history of this bank we never were in so tight
+a place. It&rsquo;s extraordinary, and quite unnecessary. That&rsquo;s
+a bright boy&ndash;&ndash;Sam Carter. I never thought of his putting
+such a construction on it when I admitted the
+fact that Mrs. Craigmile is to remain. Two big banks
+closed in Chicago this morning, and twenty small ones all
+over the country during the last three days. One goes
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_363' name='page_363'></a>363</span>
+and hauls another down. If we had only cabled across
+the Atlantic two weeks ago when I sent that letter&ndash;&ndash;he
+must have the letter by now&ndash;&ndash;and if he has, he&rsquo;s on the
+ocean.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;This deposit tides us over a few days, and, as I said, if
+we could only get our hands on that reserve of the Elder&rsquo;s,
+we&rsquo;d be safe whatever comes.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;He&rsquo;ll have to bend his will for once. He must be made
+to see it, and we must get our hands on it. I think he will.
+He&rsquo;d cut off his right hand before he&rsquo;d see this bank go
+under.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;It&rsquo;s his son&rsquo;s murder that&rsquo;s eating into his heart. He&rsquo;s
+been losing ground ever since.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>The clerks gradually disappeared, quietly slipping out
+into the sunshine one by one as their books were balanced,
+and now the two men stood alone. It was a time used by
+them for taking account of the bank&rsquo;s affairs generally,
+and they felt the stability of that institution to be quite
+personal to them.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I&rsquo;ve seen that young man before,&rdquo; said Mr. Copeland.
+&ldquo;Now, who is he? Harry King&ndash;&ndash;Harry King,&ndash;&ndash;the
+Kings moved away from here&ndash;&ndash;twelve years ago&ndash;&ndash;wasn&rsquo;t
+it? Their son would not be as old as this man.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Boys grow up fast. You never can tell.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;The Kings were a short, thickset lot.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;He may not be one of them. He said nothing about
+ever having been here before. I never talk with any one
+here at the window. It&rsquo;s quite against my rules for the
+clerks, and has to be so for myself, of course. I leave that
+sort of thing to you and the Elder.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I say&ndash;&ndash;I&rsquo;ve seen him before&ndash;&ndash;the way he walks&ndash;&ndash;the
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_364' name='page_364'></a>364</span>
+way he carries his head&ndash;&ndash;there&rsquo;s a resemblance somewhere.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>The two men also departed, after looking to the safe, and
+the last duties devolving on them, seeing that all was
+locked and double-locked. It was a solemn duty, always
+attended to solemnly.</p>
+<hr class='toprule' />
+<div class='chsp'>
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_365' name='page_365'></a>365</span>
+<a name='CHAPTER_XXIX_THE_ARREST' id='CHAPTER_XXIX_THE_ARREST'></a>
+<h2>CHAPTER XXIX</h2>
+<h3>THE ARREST</h3>
+</div>
+<p>Sam Carter loitered down the street after leaving the
+bank, and when Harry King approached, he turned with his
+ready smile and accosted him.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Pleasant day. I see you&rsquo;re a stranger here, and I
+thought I might get an item from you. Carter&rsquo;s my name,
+and I&rsquo;m doing the reporting for the <i>Mercury</i>. Be glad to
+make your acquaintance. Show you round a little.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Harry was nonplussed for a moment. Such things did
+not use to occur in this old-fashioned place as running about
+the streets picking up items from people and asking personal
+questions for the paper to exploit the replies. He
+looked twice at Sam Carter before responding.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Thank you, I&ndash;&ndash;I&rsquo;ve been here before. I know the
+place pretty well.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Very pretty place, don&rsquo;t you think so? Mean to stop
+for some time?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I hardly know as yet.&rdquo; Harry King mused a little,
+then resolved to break his loneliness by accepting the casual
+acquaintance, and to avoid personalities about himself by
+asking questions about the town and those he used to know,
+but whom he preferred not to see. It was an opportunity.
+&ldquo;Yes, it is a pretty place. Have you been here long?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I&rsquo;ve been here&ndash;&ndash;let&rsquo;s see. About three years&ndash;&ndash;maybe
+a little less. You must have been away from Leauvite
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_366' name='page_366'></a>366</span>
+longer than that, I judge. I&rsquo;ve never left the place since
+I came and I never saw you before. No wonder I thought
+you a stranger.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I may call myself one&ndash;&ndash;yes. A good many changes
+since you came?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, yes. See the new courthouse? It&rsquo;s a beauty,&ndash;&ndash;all
+solid stone,&ndash;&ndash;cost fifty thousand dollars. The <i>Mercury</i>
+had a great deal to do with bringing it about,&ndash;&ndash;working
+up enthusiasm and the like,&ndash;&ndash;but there is a great deal of
+depression just now, and taxes running up. People think
+government is taking a good deal out of them for such public
+buildings, but, Lord help us! the government is needing
+money just now as much as the people. It&rsquo;s hard to be
+public spirited when taxes are being raised. You have
+people here?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Not now&ndash;&ndash;no. Who&rsquo;s mayor here now?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Harding&ndash;&ndash;Harding of the iron works. He makes a
+good one, too. There&rsquo;s the new courthouse. The jail is
+underneath at the back. See the barred windows? No
+breaking out of there. Three prisoners did break out of
+the old one during the year this building was under construction,&ndash;&ndash;each
+in a different way, too,&ndash;&ndash;shows how
+badly they needed a new one. Quite an ornament to the
+square, don&rsquo;t you think so?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;The jail?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;No, no,&ndash;&ndash;The building as a whole. Better go over it
+while you&rsquo;re here.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I may&ndash;&ndash;do so&ndash;&ndash;yes.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Staying some time, I believe you said.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Did I? I may have said so.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Staying at the hotel, I believe?&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_367' name='page_367'></a>367</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes, and here we are.&rdquo; Harry King stood an instant&ndash;&ndash;undecided.
+Certain things he wished to know, but had
+not the courage to ask&ndash;&ndash;not on the street&ndash;&ndash;but maybe
+seated on the veranda he could ask this outsider, in a
+casual way. &ldquo;Drop in with me and have a smoke.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I will, thank you. I often run in,&ndash;&ndash;in the way of
+business,&ndash;&ndash;but I haven&rsquo;t tried it as a stopping place.
+Meals pretty good?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Very good.&rdquo; They took seats at the end of the piazza
+where Harry King led the way. The sun was now low, but
+the air was still warm enough for comfort, and no one was
+there but themselves, for it lacked an hour to the return of
+the omnibus and the arrival of the usual loafers who congregated
+at that time.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You&rsquo;ve made a good many acquaintances since you
+came, no doubt?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Well&ndash;&ndash;a good many&ndash;&ndash;yes.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Know the Craigmiles?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;The Craigmiles? There&rsquo;s no one there to know&ndash;&ndash;now&ndash;&ndash;but
+the Elder. Oh, his wife, of course, but she
+stays at home so close no one ever sees her. They&rsquo;re away
+now, if you want to see them.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;And she never goes out&ndash;&ndash;you say?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Never since I&rsquo;ve been in the town. You see, there was
+a tragedy in the family. Just before I came it happened,
+and I remember the town was all stirred up about it. Their
+son was murdered.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Harry King gave a quick start, then gathered himself up
+in strong control and tilted his chair back against the wall.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Their son murdered?&rdquo; he asked. &ldquo;Tell me about it.
+All you know.&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_368' name='page_368'></a>368</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;That&rsquo;s just it&ndash;&ndash;nobody knows anything. They know
+he was murdered, because he disappeared completely. The
+young man was called Peter Junior, after his father, of
+course&ndash;&ndash;and he was the one that was murdered. They
+found every evidence of it. It was there on the bluff, above
+the wildest part of the river, where the current is so strong
+no man could live a minute in it. He would be dashed to
+death in the flood, even if he were not killed in the fall from
+the brink, and that young man was pushed over right there.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;How did they know he was pushed over?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;They knew he was. They found his hat there, and it
+was bloody, as if he had been struck first, and a club there,
+also bloody,&ndash;&ndash;and it is believed he was killed first and
+then pushed over, for there is the place yet, after three
+years, where the earth gave way with the weight of something
+shoved over the edge. Well, would you believe it&ndash;&ndash;that
+old man has kept the knowledge of it from his
+wife all this time. She thinks her son quarreled with his
+father and went off, and that he will surely return some
+day.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;And no one in the village ever told her?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;All the town have helped the old Elder to keep it from
+her. You&rsquo;d think such a thing impossible, wouldn&rsquo;t you?
+But it&rsquo;s the truth. The old man bribed the <i>Mercury</i> to
+keep it out, and, by jiminy, it was done! Here, in a town of
+this size where every one knows all about every one else&rsquo;s
+affairs&ndash;&ndash;it was done! It seems people took an especial
+interest in keeping it from her, yet every one was talking
+about it, and so I heard all there was to hear. Hallo!
+What are you doing here?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>This last remark was addressed to Nels Nelson, who
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_369' name='page_369'></a>369</span>
+appeared just below them and stood peering up at them
+through the veranda railing.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I yust vaiting for Meestair Stiles. He tol&rsquo; me vait for
+heem here.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Mr. Stiles? Who&rsquo;s he?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Dere he coomin&rsquo;.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>As he spoke G. B. Stiles came through the hotel door and
+walked gravely up to them. Something in his manner, and
+in the expectant, watchful eye of the Swede, caused them
+both to rise. At the same moment, Kellar, the sheriff,
+came up the front steps and approached them, and placing
+his hand on Harry King&rsquo;s shoulder, drew from his pocket a
+pair of handcuffs.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Young man, it is my duty to arrest you. Here is my
+badge&ndash;&ndash;this is quite straight&ndash;&ndash;for the murder of Peter
+Craigmile, Jr.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>The young man neither moved nor spoke for a moment,
+and as he stood thus the sheriff took him by the arm, and
+roused him. &ldquo;Richard Kildene, you are under arrest for
+the murder of your cousin, Peter Craigmile, Jr.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>With a quick, frantic movement, Harry King sprang
+back and thrust both men violently from him. The red of
+anger mounted to his hair and throbbed in his temples,
+then swept back to his heart, and left him with a deathlike
+pallor.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Keep back. I&rsquo;m not Richard Kildene. You have the
+wrong man. Peter Craigmile was never murdered.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>The big Swede leaped the piazza railing and stood close
+to him, while the sheriff held him pinioned, and Sam Carter
+drew out his notebook.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You know me, Mr. Kellar,&ndash;&ndash;stand off, I say. I am
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_370' name='page_370'></a>370</span>
+Peter Craigmile. Look at me. Put away those handcuffs.
+It is I, alive, Peter Craigmile, Jr.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;That&rsquo;s a very clever plea, but it&rsquo;s no go,&rdquo; said G. B.
+Stiles, and proceeded to fasten the irons on his wrists.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yas, I know you dot man keel heem, all right. I hear
+you tol&rsquo; some von you keel heem,&rdquo; said the Swede, slowly,
+in suppressed excitement.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You&rsquo;re a very good actor, young man,&ndash;&ndash;mighty clever,&ndash;&ndash;but
+it&rsquo;s no go. Now you&rsquo;ll walk along with us if you
+please,&rdquo; said Mr. Kellar.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;But I tell you I don&rsquo;t please. It&rsquo;s a mistake. I am
+Peter Craigmile, Jr., himself, alive.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Well, if you are, you&rsquo;ll have a chance to prove it, but
+evidence is against you. If you are he, why do you come
+back under an assumed name during your father&rsquo;s absence?
+A little hitch there you did not take into consideration.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I had my reasons&ndash;&ndash;good ones&ndash;&ndash;I&ndash;&ndash;came back to confess
+to the&ndash;&ndash;un&ndash;&ndash;un&ndash;&ndash;witting&ndash;&ndash;killing of my cousin,
+Richard.&rdquo; He turned from one to the other, panting as if
+he had been running a race, and threw out his words impetuously.
+&ldquo;I tell you I came here for the very purpose of
+giving myself up&ndash;&ndash;but you have the wrong man.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>By this time a crowd had collected, and the servants were
+running from their work all over the hotel, while the proprietor
+stood aloof with staring eyes.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Here, Mr. Decker, you remember me&ndash;&ndash;Elder Craigmile&rsquo;s
+son? Some of you must remember me.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>But the proprietor only wagged his head. He would not
+be drawn into the thing. &ldquo;I have no means of knowing who
+you are&ndash;&ndash;no more than Adam. The name you wrote in
+my book was Harry King.&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_371' name='page_371'></a>371</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;I tell you I had my reasons. I meant to wait here
+until the Elder&rsquo;s&ndash;&ndash;my father&rsquo;s return and&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;And in the meantime we&rsquo;ll put you in a quiet little
+apartment, very private, where you can wait, while we
+look into things a bit.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You needn&rsquo;t take me through the streets with these
+things on; I&rsquo;ve no intention of running away. Let me go to
+my room a minute.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes, and put a bullet through your head. I&rsquo;ve no
+intention of running any risks now we have you,&rdquo; said the
+detective.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Now you have who? You have no idea whom you
+have. Take off these shackles until I pay my bill. You
+have no objection to that, have you?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>They turned into the hotel, and the handcuffs were removed
+while the young man took out his pocketbook and
+paid his reckoning. Then he turned to them.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I must ask you to accompany me to my room while I
+gather my toilet necessities together.&rdquo; This they did,
+G. B. Stiles and the sheriff walking one on either side, while
+the Swede followed at their heels. &ldquo;What are you doing
+here?&rdquo; he demanded, turning suddenly upon the stable man.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, I yust lookin&rsquo; a leetle out.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Mr. Stiles, what does this mean, that you have that man
+dogging me?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;It&rsquo;s his affair, not mine. He thinks he has a certain
+interest in you.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Then he turned in exasperation to the sheriff. &ldquo;Can you
+give me a little information, Mr. Kellar? What has that
+Swede to do with me? Why am I arrested for the murder
+of my own self&ndash;&ndash;preposterous! I, a man as alive as you
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_372' name='page_372'></a>372</span>
+are? You can see for yourself that I am Elder Craigmile&rsquo;s
+son. You know me?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I know the Elder fairly well&ndash;&ndash;every one in Leauvite
+knows him, but I can&rsquo;t say as I&rsquo;ve ever taken particular
+notice of his boy, and, anyway, the boy was murdered three
+years ago&ndash;&ndash;a little over&ndash;&ndash;for it was in the fall of the
+year&ndash;&ndash;well, that&rsquo;s most four years&ndash;&ndash;and I must say it&rsquo;s a
+mighty clever dodge, as Mr. Stiles says, for you to play
+off this on us. It&rsquo;s a matter that will bear looking into.
+Now you sit down here and hold on to yourself, while I
+go through your things. You&rsquo;ll get them all, never fear.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Then Harry King sat down and looked off through the
+open window, and paid no heed to what the men were
+doing. They might turn his large valise inside out and
+read every scrap of written paper. There was nothing to
+give the slightest clew to his identity. He had left the
+envelope addressed to the Elder, containing the letters he
+had written, at the bank, to be placed in the safety vault,
+and not to be delivered until ordered to do so by himself.</p>
+<p>As they finished their search and restored the articles
+to his valise, he asked again that the handcuffs be left off
+as he walked through the streets.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I have no desire to escape. It is my wish to go with you.
+I only wish I might have seen the&ndash;&ndash;my father first. He
+could not have helped me&ndash;&ndash;but he would have understood&ndash;&ndash;it
+would have seemed less&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>He could not go on, and the sheriff slipped the handcuffs
+in his pocket, and they proceeded in silence to the courthouse,
+where he listened to the reading of the warrant and
+his indictment in dazed stupefaction, and then walked
+again in silence between his captors to the jail in the rear.</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_373' name='page_373'></a>373</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;No one has ever been in this cell,&rdquo; said Mr. Kellar.
+&ldquo;I&rsquo;m doing the best I can for you.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;How long must I stay here? Who brings accusation?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know how long: as this is a murder charge
+you can&rsquo;t be bailed out, and the trial will take time. The
+Elder brings accusation&ndash;&ndash;naturally.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;When is he expected home?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Can&rsquo;t say. You&rsquo;ll have some one to defend you, and
+then you can ask all the questions you wish.&rdquo; The sheriff
+closed the heavy door and the key was turned.</p>
+<p>Then began weary days of waiting. If it had been possible
+to get the trial over with, Harry would have been glad,
+but it made little difference to him now, since the step had
+been taken, and a trial in his case would only be a verdict,
+anyway&ndash;&ndash;and confession was a simple thing, and the hearing
+also.</p>
+<p>The days passed, and he wondered that no one came to
+him&ndash;&ndash;no friend of the old time. Where were Bertrand
+Ballard and Mary? Where was little Betty? Did they
+not know he was in jail? He did not know that others
+had been arrested on the same charge and released, more
+than once. True, no one had made the claim of being the
+Elder&rsquo;s own son and the murdered man himself. As such
+incidents were always disturbing to Betty, when Bertrand
+read the notice of the arrest in the <i>Mercury</i>, the paper was
+laid away in his desk and his little daughter was spared
+the sight of it this time.</p>
+<p>But he spoke of the matter to his wife. &ldquo;Here is another
+case of arrest for poor Peter Junior&rsquo;s murder, Mary. The
+man claims to be Peter Junior himself, but as he registered
+at the hotel under an assumed name it is likely to be only
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_374' name='page_374'></a>374</span>
+another attempt to get the reward money by some
+detective. It was very unwise for the Elder to make it
+so large a sum.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;It can&rsquo;t be. Peter Junior would never be so cruel as
+to stay away all this time, if he were alive, no matter how
+deeply he may have quarreled with his father. I believe
+they both went over the bluff and are both dead.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;It stands to reason that one or the other body would
+have been found in that case. One might be lost, but
+hardly both. The search was very thorough, even down
+to the mill race ten miles below.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;The current is so swift there, they might have been
+carried over the race, and on, before the search began. I
+think so, although no one else seems to.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I wish the Elder would remove that temptation of the
+reward. It is only an inducement to crime. Time alone
+will solve the mystery, and as long as he continues to brood
+over it, he will go on failing in health. It&rsquo;s coming to an
+obsession with him to live to see Richard Kildene hung,
+and some one will have to swing for it if he has his way.
+Now he will return and find this man in jail, and will bend
+every effort, and give all his thought toward getting him
+convicted.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;But I thought you said they do not hang in this state.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;True&ndash;&ndash;true. But imprisonment for life is&ndash;&ndash;worse.
+I&rsquo;m thinking of what the Elder would like could he have his
+way.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Bertrand&ndash;&ndash;I believe the Elder is sure the man will be
+found and that it will kill his wife, when she comes to know
+that Peter Junior was murdered, and that is why he took
+her to Scotland. She told me she was sure her son was
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_375' name='page_375'></a>375</span>
+there, or would go to see his great aunts there, and that is
+why she consented to go&ndash;&ndash;but I&rsquo;m sure the Elder wished
+to get her out of the way.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Strange&ndash;&ndash;strange,&rdquo; said Bertrand. &ldquo;After all, it is
+better to forgive. No one knows what transpired, and
+Richard is the real sufferer.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Do you suppose he&rsquo;ll leave Hester there, Bertrand?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I hardly think she would be left, but it is impossible to
+tell. A son&rsquo;s loss is more than any other&ndash;&ndash;to a mother.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Do you think so, Bertrand? It would be hardest of
+all to lose a husband, and the Elder has failed so much since
+Peter Junior&rsquo;s death.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Peter Junior seems to be the only one who has escaped
+suffering in this tragedy. Remorse in Richard&rsquo;s case, and
+stubborn anger in the Elder&rsquo;s&ndash;&ndash;they are emotions that
+take large toll out of a man&rsquo;s vitality. If ever Richard is
+found, he will not be the young man we knew.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Unless he is innocent. All this may have been an
+accident.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Then why is he staying in hiding?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;He may have felt there was no way to prove his innocence.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Well, there is another reason why the Elder should
+withdraw his offer of a reward, and when he comes back,
+I mean to try what can be done once more. Everything
+would have to be circumstantial. He will have a hard
+time to prove his nephew&rsquo;s guilt.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I can&rsquo;t see why he should try to prove it. It must have
+been an accident&ndash;&ndash;at the last. Of course it might have
+been begun in anger, in a moment of misunderstanding, but
+the nature of the boys would go to show that it never could
+have been done intentionally. It is impossible.&rdquo;</p>
+<hr class='toprule' />
+<div class='chsp'>
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_376' name='page_376'></a>376</span>
+<a name='CHAPTER_XXX_THE_ARGUMENT' id='CHAPTER_XXX_THE_ARGUMENT'></a>
+<h2>CHAPTER XXX</h2>
+<h3>THE ARGUMENT</h3>
+</div>
+<p>&ldquo;Mr. Ballard, either my son was murdered, or he was a
+murderer. The crime falls upon us, and the disgrace of it,
+no matter how you look at it.&rdquo; The Elder sat in the back
+room at the bank, where his friend had been arguing with
+him to withdraw the offer of a reward for the arrest. &ldquo;It&rsquo;s
+too late, now&ndash;&ndash;too late. The man&rsquo;s found and he claims
+to be my son. You&rsquo;re a kindly man, Mr. Ballard, but a
+blind one.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Bertrand drew his chair closer to the Elder&rsquo;s, as if by so
+doing he might establish a friendlier thought in the man&rsquo;s
+heart. &ldquo;Blind? Blind, Elder Craigmile?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I say blind. I see. I see it all.&rdquo; The Elder rose and
+paced the floor. &ldquo;The boys fought, there on the bluff, and
+sought to kill each other, and for the same cause that has
+wrought most of the evil in the world. Over the love of
+a woman they fought. Peter carried a blackthorn stick
+that ought never to have been in my house&ndash;&ndash;you know, for
+you brought it to me&ndash;&ndash;and struck his cousin with it, and
+at the same instant was pushed over the brink, as Richard
+intended.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;How do you know that Richard was not pushed over?
+How do you know that he did not fall over with his cousin?
+How can you dare work for a man&rsquo;s conviction on such
+slight evidence?&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_377' name='page_377'></a>377</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;How do I know? Although you would favor that&ndash;&ndash;that&ndash;&ndash;although&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;
+The Elder paused and struggled
+for control, then sat weakly down and took up the argument
+again with trembling voice. &ldquo;Mr. Ballard, I would
+spare you&ndash;&ndash;much of this matter which has been brought
+to my knowledge&ndash;&ndash;but I cannot&ndash;&ndash;because it must come
+out at the trial. It was over your little daughter, Betty,
+that they fought. She has known all these years that
+Richard Kildene murdered her lover.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Elder&ndash;&ndash;Elder! Your brooding has unbalanced your
+mind.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Wait, my friend. This falls on you with but half the
+burden that I have borne. My son was no murderer.
+Richard Kildene is not only a murderer, but a coward.
+He went to your daughter while we were dragging the river
+for my poor boy&rsquo;s body, and told her he had murdered her
+lover; that he pushed him over the bluff and that he intended
+to do so. Now he adds to his crime&ndash;&ndash;by&ndash;&ndash;coming
+here&ndash;&ndash;and pretending&ndash;&ndash;to be&ndash;&ndash;my son. He shall hang.
+He shall hang. If he does not, there is no justice in
+heaven.&rdquo; The Elder looked up and shook his hand above
+his head as if he defied the whole heavenly host.</p>
+<p>Bertrand Ballard sat for a moment stunned. Such a
+preposterous turn was beyond his comprehension.
+Strangely enough his first thought was a mere contradiction,
+and he said: &ldquo;Men are not hung in this state. You will
+not have your wish.&rdquo; He leaned forward, with his elbows
+on the great table and his head in his hands; then, without
+looking up, he said: &ldquo;Go on. Go on. How did
+you come by this astounding information? Was it from
+Betty?&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_378' name='page_378'></a>378</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;Then may he be shut in the blackest dungeon for
+the rest of his life. No, it was not from Betty. Never.
+She has kept this terrible secret well. I have not seen your
+daughter&ndash;&ndash;not&ndash;&ndash;since&ndash;&ndash;since this was told me. It has
+been known to the detective and to my attorney, Milton
+Hibbard, for two years, and to me for one year&ndash;&ndash;just
+before I offered the increased reward to which you so object.
+I had reason.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Then it is as I thought. Your offer of ten thousand
+dollars reward has incited the crime of attempting to convict
+an innocent man. Again I ask you, how did you come
+by this astounding information?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;By the word of an eyewitness. Sit still, Mr. Ballard,
+until you hear the whole; then blame me if you can. A few
+years ago you had a Swede working for you in your garden.
+You boarded him. He slept in a little room over your
+summer kitchen; do you remember?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;He saw Richard Kildene come to the house when we
+were all away&ndash;&ndash;while you were with me&ndash;&ndash;your wife with
+mine,&ndash;&ndash;and your little daughter alone. This Swede heard
+all that was said, and saw all that was done. His testimony
+alone will&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Convict a man? It is greed! What is your detective
+working for and why does this Swede come forward at this
+late day with his testimony? Greed! Elder Craigmile,
+how do you know that this testimony is not all made up
+between them? I will go home and ask Betty, and learn
+the truth.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;And why does the young man come here under an assumed
+name, and when he is discovered, claim to be my
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_379' name='page_379'></a>379</span>
+son? The only claim he could make that could save him!
+If he knows anything, he knows that if he pretends he is
+my son&ndash;&ndash;laboring under the belief that he has killed
+Richard Kildene&ndash;&ndash;when he knows Richard&rsquo;s death can
+be disproved by your daughter&rsquo;s statement that she saw
+and talked with Richard&ndash;&ndash;he knows that he may be released
+from the charge of murder and may establish himself
+here as the man whom he himself threw over the bluff, and
+who, therefore, can never return to give him the lie. I say&ndash;&ndash;if
+this is proved on him, he shall suffer the extreme
+penalty of the law, or there is no justice in the land.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Bertrand rose, sadly shaken. &ldquo;This is a very terrible
+accusation, my friend. Let us hope it may not be proved
+true. I will go home and ask Betty. You will take her
+testimony before that of the Swede?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;If you are my friend, why are you willing my son should
+be proven a murderer? It is a deep-laid scheme, and
+Richard Kildene walks close in his father&rsquo;s steps. I have
+always seen his father in him. I tried to save him for my
+sister&rsquo;s sake. I brought him up in the nurture and admonition
+of the Lord, and did for him all that fathers do for
+their sons, and now I have the fool&rsquo;s reward&ndash;&ndash;the reward
+of the man who warmed the viper in his bosom. He, to
+come here and sit in my son&rsquo;s place&ndash;&ndash;to eat bread at my
+table&ndash;&ndash;at my wife&rsquo;s right hand&ndash;&ndash;with her smile in his
+eyes? Rather he shall&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;We will find out the truth, and, if possible, you shall be
+saved from yourself, Elder Craigmile, and your son will
+not be proven a murderer. Let me still be your friend.&rdquo;
+Bertrand&rsquo;s voice thrilled with suppressed emotion and the
+sympathy he could not utter, as he held out his hand, which
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_380' name='page_380'></a>380</span>
+the Elder took in both his own shaking ones. His voice
+trembled with suppressed emotion as he spoke.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Pray God Hester may stay where she is until this thing
+is over. And pray God you may not be blinded by love
+of your daughter, who was not true to my son. She was
+promised to become his wife, but through all these years
+she protects by her silence the murderer of her lover.
+Ponder on this thought, Bertrand Ballard, and pray God
+you may have the strength to be just.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Bertrand walked homeward with bowed head. It was
+Saturday. The day&rsquo;s baking was in progress, and Mary
+Ballard was just removing a pan of temptingly browned
+tea cakes from the oven when he entered. She did not
+see his face as he asked, &ldquo;Mary, where can I find Betty?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Upstairs in the studio, drawing. Where would you
+expect to find her?&rdquo; she said gayly. Something in her
+husband&rsquo;s voice touched her. She hastily lifted the cakes
+from the pan and ran after him.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;What is it, dear?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>He was halfway up the stairs and he turned and came
+back to her. &ldquo;I&rsquo;ve heard something that troubles me, and
+must see her alone, Mary. I&rsquo;ll talk with you about it
+later. Don&rsquo;t let us be disturbed until we come down.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I think Janey is with her now.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I&rsquo;ll send her down to you.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Bertrand, it is something terrible! You are trying to
+spare me&ndash;&ndash;don&rsquo;t do it.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Ask no questions.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Tell Janey I want her to help in the kitchen.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Mary went back to her work in silence. If Bertrand
+wished to be alone with Betty, he had a good reason; and
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_381' name='page_381'></a>381</span>
+presently Janey skipped in and was set to paring the potatoes
+for dinner.</p>
+<p>Bertrand found Betty bending closely over a drawing
+for which she had no model, but which was intended to
+illustrate a fairy story. She was using pen and ink, and
+trying to imitate the fine strokes of a steel engraving. He
+stood at her side, looking down at her work a moment, and
+his artist&rsquo;s sense for the instant crowded back other
+thoughts.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You ought to have a model, daughter, and you should
+work in chalk or charcoal for your designing.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I know, father, but you see I am trying to make some
+illustrations that will look like what are in the magazines.
+I&rsquo;m making fairies, father, and you know I can&rsquo;t find any
+models, so I have to make them up.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Put that away. I have some questions to ask you.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;What&rsquo;s the matter, daddy? You look as if the sky
+were falling.&rdquo; He had seated himself on the long lounge
+where she had once sat and chatted with Peter Junior. She
+recalled that day. It was when he kissed her for the first
+time. Her cheeks flushed hotly as they always did now
+when she thought of it, and her eyes were sad. She went
+over and established herself at her father&rsquo;s side.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;What is it, daddy, dear?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Betty,&rdquo;&ndash;&ndash;he spoke sternly, as she had never heard
+him before,&ndash;&ndash;&ldquo;have you been concealing something from
+your father and mother&ndash;&ndash;and from the world&ndash;&ndash;for the
+last three years and a half?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Her head drooped, the red left her cheeks, and she turned
+white to the lips. She drew away from her father and
+clasped her hands in her lap, tightly. She was praying
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_382' name='page_382'></a>382</span>
+for strength to tell the truth. Ah, could she do it? Could
+she do it! And perhaps cause Richard&rsquo;s condemnation?
+Had they found him?&ndash;&ndash;that father should ask such a
+question now, after so long a time?</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Why do you ask me such a question, father?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Tell me the truth, child.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Father! I&ndash;&ndash;I&ndash;&ndash;can&rsquo;t,&rdquo; and her voice died away to a
+whisper.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You can and you must, Betty.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>She rose and stood trembling before him with clinched
+hands. &ldquo;What has happened? Tell me. It is not fair
+to ask me such a question unless you tell me why.&rdquo; Then
+she dropped upon her knees and hid her face against his
+sleeve. &ldquo;If you don&rsquo;t tell me what has happened, I will
+never speak again. I will be dumb, even if they kill me.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>He put his arm tenderly about the trembling little form,
+and the act brought the tears and he thought her softened.
+He knew, as Mary had often said, that &ldquo;Betty could not be
+driven, but might be led.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Tell father all about it, little daughter.&rdquo; But she did
+not open her lips. He waited patiently, then asked again,
+kindly and persistently, &ldquo;What have you been hiding,
+Betty?&rdquo; but she only sobbed on. &ldquo;Betty, if you do not
+tell me now and here, you will be taken into court and made
+to tell all you know before all the world! You will be
+proven to have been untrue to the man you were to marry
+and who loved you, and to have been shielding his murderer.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Then it is Richard. They have found him?&rdquo; She
+shrank away from her father and her sobs ceased. &ldquo;It
+has come at last. Father&ndash;&ndash;if&ndash;&ndash;if&ndash;&ndash;I had&ndash;&ndash;been married
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_383' name='page_383'></a>383</span>
+to Richard&ndash;&ndash;then would they make me go in court
+and testify against him?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;No. A wife is not compelled to give testimony against
+her husband, nor may she testify for him, either.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Betty rose and straightened herself defiantly; with
+flaming cheeks and flashing eyes she looked down upon
+him.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Then I will tell one great lie&ndash;&ndash;father&ndash;&ndash;and do it
+even if&ndash;&ndash;if it should drag me down to&ndash;&ndash;hell. I will say
+I am married to Richard&ndash;&ndash;and will swear to it.&rdquo; Bertrand
+was silent, aghast. &ldquo;Father! Where is Richard?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;He is there in Leauvite, in jail. You must do what is
+right in the eye of God, my child, and tell the truth.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;If I tell the truth,&ndash;&ndash;they will do what is right in their
+own eyes. They don&rsquo;t know what is right in the eye of
+God. If they drag me into court&ndash;&ndash;there before all the
+world I will lie to them until I drop dead. Has&ndash;&ndash;has&ndash;&ndash;the
+Elder seen him?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Not yet. He refused to see him until the trial.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;He is a cruel, vindictive old man. Does he think it
+will bring Peter back to life again to hang Richard? Does
+he think it will save his wife from sorrow, or&ndash;&ndash;or bring
+any one nearer heaven to do it?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;If Richard has done the thing he is accused of doing, he
+deserves the extremest rigor of the law.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Father! Don&rsquo;t let the Elder make you hard like himself.
+What is he accused of doing?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;He is making claim that he is Peter Junior, and that
+he has come back to Leauvite to give himself up for the
+murder of his cousin, Richard Kildene. He thinks, no
+doubt, that you will say that you know Richard is living,
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_384' name='page_384'></a>384</span>
+and that he has not killed him, and in that way he thinks
+to escape punishment, by proving that Peter also is living,
+and is himself. Do you see how it is? He has chosen to
+live here an impostor rather than to live in hiding as an outcast,
+and is trading on his likeness to his cousin to bear him
+out. I had hoped that it was all a detective&rsquo;s lie, got up
+for the purpose of getting hold of the reward money, but
+now I see it is true&ndash;&ndash;the most astounding thing a man
+ever tried.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Did he send you to me?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;No, child. I have not seen him.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Father Bertrand Ballard! Have you taken some detective&rsquo;s
+word and not even tried to see him?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Child, child! He is playing a desperate game, and
+taking an ignoble part. He is doing a dastardly thing, and
+the burden is laid on you to confess to the secret you have
+been hiding and tell the truth.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Bertrand spoke very sadly, and Betty&rsquo;s heart smote her
+for his sorrow; yet she felt the thing was impossible for
+Richard to do, and that she must hold the secret a little
+longer&ndash;&ndash;all the more because even her father seemed
+now to credit the terrible accusation. She threw her arms
+about his neck and implored him.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, father, dear! Take me to the jail to see him, and
+after that I will try to do what is right. I can think clearer
+after I have seen him.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know if that will be allowed&ndash;&ndash;but&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;It will have to be allowed. How can I say if it is
+Richard until I see him. It may not be Richard. The
+Elder is too blinded to even go near him, and dear Mrs.
+Craigmile is not here. Some one ought to go in fairness
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_385' name='page_385'></a>385</span>
+to Richard&ndash;&ndash;who loves&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo; She choked and could say no
+more.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I will talk to your mother first. There is another thing
+that should soften your heart to the Elder. All over the
+country there is financial trouble. Banks are going to
+pieces that never were in trouble before, and Elder Craigmile&rsquo;s
+bank is going, he fears. It will be a terrible crash,
+and we fear he may not outlive the blow. I tell you this,
+even though you may not understand it, to soften your
+heart toward him. He considers it in the nature of a disgrace.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes. I understand, better than you think.&rdquo; Betty&rsquo;s
+voice was sad, and she looked weary and spent. &ldquo;If the
+bank breaks, it breaks the Elder&rsquo;s heart. All the rest he
+could stand, but not that. The bank, the bank! He tried
+to sacrifice Peter Junior to that bank. He would have
+broken Peter&rsquo;s heart for that bank, as he has his wife&rsquo;s;
+for if it had not been for Peter&rsquo;s quarrel with his father, first
+of all, over it, I don&rsquo;t believe all the rest would have happened.
+Peter told me a lot. I know.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Betty, did you never love Peter Junior? Tell father.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I thought I did. I thought I knew I did,&ndash;&ndash;but when
+Richard came home&ndash;&ndash;then&ndash;&ndash;I&ndash;&ndash;I&ndash;&ndash;knew I had made
+a terrible mistake; but, father, I meant to stand by Peter&ndash;&ndash;and
+never let anybody know until&ndash;&ndash;Oh, father, need
+I tell any more?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;No, my dear. You would better talk with your
+mother.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Bertrand Ballard left the studio more confused in his
+mind, and yet both sadder and wiser then he had ever been
+in his life. He had seen a little way into his small daughter&rsquo;s
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_386' name='page_386'></a>386</span>
+soul, and conceived of a power of spirit beyond him, although
+he considered her both unreasonable and wrong.
+He grieved for her that she had carried such a great burden
+so bravely and so long. How great must have been her
+love, or her infatuation! The pathetic knowledge hardened
+his heart toward the young man in the jail, and he no
+longer tried to defend him in his thoughts.</p>
+<p>He sent Mary up to talk with Betty, and that afternoon
+they all walked over to the jail; for Mary could get no
+nearer her little daughter&rsquo;s confidence, and no deeper into
+the heart of the matter than Betty had allowed her father
+to go.</p>
+<hr class='toprule' />
+<div class='chsp'>
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_387' name='page_387'></a>387</span>
+<a name='CHAPTER_XXXI_ROBERT_KATERS_SUCCESS' id='CHAPTER_XXXI_ROBERT_KATERS_SUCCESS'></a>
+<h2>CHAPTER XXXI</h2>
+<h3>ROBERT KATER&rsquo;S SUCCESS</h3>
+</div>
+<p>&ldquo;Halloo! So it&rsquo;s here!&rdquo; Robert Kater stood by a
+much-littered table and looked down on a few papers and
+envelopes which some one had laid there during his absence.
+All day long he had been wandering about the streets of
+Paris, waiting&ndash;&ndash;passing the time as he could in his impatience&ndash;&ndash;hoping
+for the communication contained in
+one of these very envelopes. Now that it had come he
+felt himself struck with a singular weakness, and did not
+seize it and tear it open. Instead, he stood before the table,
+his hands in his pockets, and whistled softly.</p>
+<p>He made the tour of the studio several times, pausing
+now and then to turn a canvas about, apparently as if he
+would criticize it, looking at it but not regarding it, only
+absently turning one and another as if it were a habit with
+him to do so; then returning to the table he stirred the envelopes
+apart with one finger and finally separated one from
+the rest, bearing an official seal, and with it a small package
+carefully secured and bearing the same seal, but he did not
+open either. &ldquo;Yes, it&rsquo;s here, and that&rsquo;s the one,&rdquo; he said, but
+he spoke to himself, for there was no one else in the room.</p>
+<p>He moved wearily away, keeping the packet in his hand,
+but leaving the envelope on the table, and hung his hat upon
+a point of an easel and wiped his damp brow. As he did so,
+he lifted the dark brown hair from his temple, showing a
+jagged scar. Quickly, as if with an habitual touch, he
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_388' name='page_388'></a>388</span>
+rearranged the thick, soft lock so that the scar was covered,
+and mounting a dais, seated himself on a great thronelike
+chair covered with a royal tiger skin. The head of the
+tiger, mounted high, with glittering eyes and fangs showing,
+rested on the floor between his feet, and there, holding the
+small packet in his hand, with elbows resting on the arms of
+the throne, he sat with head dropped forward and shoulders
+lifted and eyes fixed on the tiger&rsquo;s head.</p>
+<p>For a long time he sat thus in the darkening room. At
+last it grew quite dark. Only the great skylight over his
+head showed a defined outline. The young man had had
+no dinner and no supper, for his pockets were empty and
+his last sou gone. If he had opened the envelopes, he would
+have found money, and more than money, for he would
+have learned that the doors of the Salon had opened to him
+and the highest medal awarded him, and that for which he
+had toiled and waited and hoped,&ndash;&ndash;for which he had
+staked his last effort and sacrificed everything, was won.
+He was recognized, and all Paris would quickly know it, and
+not Paris only, but all the world. But when he would open
+the envelope, his hands fell slack, and there it still lay on the
+table concealed by the darkness.</p>
+<p>Down three flights of stairs in the court a strange and
+motley group were collecting, some bearing candles, all
+masked, some fantastically dressed and others only concealed
+by dominoes. The stairs went up on the outer
+wall of this inner court, past the windows of the basement
+occupied by the concierge and his wife and pretty daughter,
+and entered the building on the first floor above. By this
+arrangement the concierge could always see from his window
+who mounted them.</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_389' name='page_389'></a>389</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;Look, mamma.&rdquo; The pretty daughter stood peering
+out, her face framed in the white muslin curtains. &ldquo;Look.
+See the students. Ah, but they are droll!&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Come away, ma fille.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;But the owl and the ape, there, they seem on very good
+terms. I wonder if they go to the room of Monsieur
+Kater! I think so; for one&ndash;&ndash;the ghost in white, he is a
+little lame like the Englishman who goes always to the
+room of Monsieur.&ndash;&ndash;Ah, bah! Imbecile! Away with
+you! Pig!&rdquo;</p>
+<p>The ape had suddenly approached his ugly face close to
+the face framed in the white muslin curtains on the other
+side of the window, and made exaggerated motions of an
+embrace. The wife of the concierge snatched her daughter
+away and drew the curtains close.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Foolish child! Why do you stand and watch the rude
+fellows? This is what you get by it. I have told you to
+keep your eyes within.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;But I love to see them, so droll they are.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Stealthily the fantastic creatures began to climb the stairs,
+one, two, three flights, traversing a long hall at the end of
+each flight and turning to climb again. The expense of
+keeping a light on each floor for the corridors was not
+allowed in this building, and they moved along in the darkness,
+but for the flickering light of the few candles carried
+among them. As they neared the top they grew more
+stealthy and kept close together on the landing outside the
+studio door. One stooped and listened at the keyhole, then
+tried to look through it. &ldquo;Not there?&rdquo; whispered another.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;No light,&rdquo; was the whispered reply. They spoke now in
+French, now in English.</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_390' name='page_390'></a>390</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;He has heard us and hid himself. He is a strange man,
+this Scotchman. He did not attend the &lsquo;Vernissage,&rsquo; nor
+the presentation of prizes, yet he wins the highest.&rdquo; The
+owl stretched out an arm, bare and muscular, from under
+his wing and tried the door very gently. It was not
+locked, and he thrust his head within, then reached back
+and took a candle from the ghost. &ldquo;This will give
+light enough. Put out the rest of yours and make no
+noise.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Thus in the darkness they crept into the studio and
+gathered around the table. There they saw the unopened
+envelopes.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;He is not here. He does not know,&rdquo; said one and
+another.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Where then can he be?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;He has taken a panic and fled. I told you so,&rdquo; said the
+ghost.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Ah, here he is! Behold! The Hamlet of our ghost!
+Wake, Hamlet; your father&rsquo;s spirit has arrived,&rdquo; cried one
+in English with a very French accent.</p>
+<p>They now gathered before the dais, shouting and cheering
+in both English and French. One brought the envelopes
+on a palette and presented them. The young man gazed
+at them, stupidly at first, then with a feverish gleam in his
+eyes, but did not take them.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes, I found them when I came in&ndash;&ndash;but they are&ndash;&ndash;not
+for me.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;They are addressed to you, Robert Kater, and the news
+is published and you leave them here unopened.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;He does not know&ndash;&ndash;I told you so.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You have the packet in your hand. Open it. Take it
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_391' name='page_391'></a>391</span>
+from him and decorate him. He is in a dream. It is the
+great medal. We will wake him.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>They began to cheer and cheer again, each after the
+manner of the character he had assumed. The ass brayed,
+the owl hooted, the ghost groaned. The ape leaped on the
+back of the throne whereon the young man still sat, and
+seized him by the hair, chattering idiotically after the manner
+of apes, and began to wag his head back and forth. In
+the midst of the uproar Demosthenes stepped forward and
+took the envelopes from the palette, and, tearing them open,
+began reading them aloud by the light of a candle held for
+him by Lady Macbeth, who now and then interrupted with
+the remark that &ldquo;her little hand was stained with blood,&rdquo;
+stretching forth an enormous, hairy hand for their inspection.
+But as Demosthenes read on the uproar ceased,
+and all listened with courteous attention. The ape leaped
+down from the back of the throne, the owl ceased hooting,
+and all were silent until the second envelope had been
+opened and the contents made known&ndash;&ndash;that his exhibit
+had been purchased by the Salon.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Robert Kater, you are at the top. We congratulate
+you. To be recognized by the &lsquo;Salon des Artistes Francaises&rsquo;
+is to be recognized and honored by all the world.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>They all came forward with kindly and sincere words,
+and the young man stood to receive them, but reeling and
+swaying, weary with emotion, and faint with hunger.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Were you not going to the mask?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I was weary; I had not thought.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Then wake up and go. We come for you.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I have no costume.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Ah, that is nothing. Make one; it is easy.&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_392' name='page_392'></a>392</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;He sits there like his own Saul, enveloped in gloom.
+Come, I will be your David,&rdquo; cried one, and snatched a
+guitar and began strumming it wildly.</p>
+<p>While the company scattered and searched the studio for
+materials with which to create for him a costume for the
+mask, the ghost came limping up to the young man who had
+seated himself again wearily on the throne, and spoke to
+him quietly.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;The tide&rsquo;s turned, Kater; wake up to it. You&rsquo;re clear
+of the breakers. The two pictures you were going to destroy
+are sold. I brought those Americans here while you were
+away and showed them. I told you they&rsquo;d take something
+as soon as you were admitted. Here&rsquo;s the money.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Robert Kater raised himself, looking in the eyes of his
+friend, and took the bank notes as if he were not aware
+what they really might be.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I say! You&rsquo;ve enough to keep you for a year if you
+don&rsquo;t throw it away. Count it. I doubled your price and
+they took them at the price I made. Look at these.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Then Robert Kater looked at them with glittering eyes,
+and his shaking hand shut upon them, crushing the bank
+notes in a tight grip. &ldquo;We&rsquo;ll halve it, share and share
+alike,&rdquo; he whispered, staring at the ghost without counting
+it. &ldquo;As for this,&rdquo; his finger touched the decoration on his
+breast&ndash;&ndash;&ldquo;it is given to a&ndash;&ndash;You won&rsquo;t take half? Then
+I&rsquo;ll throw them away.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I&rsquo;ll take them all until you&rsquo;re sane enough to know what
+you&rsquo;re doing. Give them to me.&rdquo; He took them back
+and crept quietly, ghostlike, about the room until he found
+a receptacle in which he knew they would be safe; then,
+removing one hundred francs from the amount, he brought
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_393' name='page_393'></a>393</span>
+it back and thrust it in his friend&rsquo;s pocket. &ldquo;There&ndash;&ndash;that&rsquo;s
+enough for you to throw away on us to-night. Why
+are you taking off your decoration? Leave it where it is.
+It&rsquo;s yours.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes, I suppose it is.&rdquo; Robert Kater brushed his hand
+across his eyes and stepped down from the throne. Then
+lifting his head and shoulders as if he threw off a burden, he
+leaped from the dais, and with one long howl, began an
+Indian war dance. He was the center and life of the hilarious
+crowd from that moment. The selection of materials
+had been made. A curtain of royal purple hung behind
+the throne, and this they threw around him as a toga, then
+crowned him as Mark Antony. They found for him also
+a tunic of soft wool, and with a strip of gold braid they converted
+a pair of sheepskin bedroom slippers into sandals,
+bound on his feet over his short socks.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I say! Mark Antony never wore things like these,&rdquo;
+he shouted. &ldquo;Give me a mask. I&rsquo;ll not wear these things
+without a mask.&rdquo; He snatched at the head of the owl,
+who ducked under his arm and escaped. &ldquo;Go then. This
+is better. Mark, the illustrious, was an ass.&rdquo; He made a
+dive for the head of his braying friend and barely missed him.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Come. We waste time. Cleopatra awaits him at
+&lsquo;la Fourchette d&rsquo;or&rsquo;; all our Cleopatras await us there.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Surely?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Surely. Madame la Charne is there and the sisters
+Lucie and Bertha,&ndash;&ndash;all are there,&ndash;&ndash;and with them one
+very beautiful blonde whom you have never seen.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;She is for you&ndash;&ndash;you cold Scotchman! That stone
+within you, which you call heart, to-night it will melt.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You have everything planned then?&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_394' name='page_394'></a>394</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;Everything is made ready.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Look here! Wait, my friends! I haven&rsquo;t expressed
+myself yet.&rdquo; They were preparing to lift him above their
+heads. &ldquo;I wish to say that you are all to share my good
+fortune and allow&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Wait for the champagne. You can say it then with
+more force.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I say! Hold on! I ask you to&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;So we do. We hold on. Now, up&ndash;&ndash;so.&rdquo; He was
+borne in triumph down the stairs and out on the street
+and away to the sign of the Golden Fork, and seated at
+the head of the table in a small banquet room opening off
+from the balcony at one side where the feast which had been
+ordered and prepared was awaiting them.</p>
+<p>A group of masked young women, gathered on the balcony,
+pelted them with flowers as they passed beneath it,
+and when the men were all seated, they trooped out, and
+each slid into her appointed place, still masked.</p>
+<p>Then came a confusion of tongues, badinage, repartee,
+wit undiluted by discretion&ndash;&ndash;and rippling laughter as one
+mask after another was torn off.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Ah, how glad I am to be rid of it! I was suffocating,&rdquo;
+said a soft voice at Robert Kater&rsquo;s side.</p>
+<p>He looked down quickly into a pair of clear, red-brown
+eyes&ndash;&ndash;eyes into which he had never looked before.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Then we are both content that it is off.&rdquo; He smiled
+as he spoke. She glanced up at him, then down and away.
+When she lifted her eyes an instant later again to his face,
+he was no longer regarding her. She was piqued, and
+quickly began conversing with the man on her left, the one
+who had removed her mask.</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_395' name='page_395'></a>395</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;It is no use, your smile, mademoiselle. He is impervious,
+that man. He has no sense or he could not turn his
+eyes away.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I like best the impervious ones.&rdquo; With a light
+ripple of laughter she turned again to her right. &ldquo;Monsieur
+has forgotten?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Forgotten?&rdquo; Robert was mystified until he realized
+in the instant that she was pretending to a former acquaintance.
+&ldquo;Could I forget, mademoiselle? Permit me.&rdquo; He
+lifted his glass. &ldquo;To your eyes&ndash;&ndash;and to your&ndash;&ndash;memory,&rdquo;
+he said, and drank it off.</p>
+<p>After that he became the gayest of them all, and the
+merriment never flagged. He ate heartily, for he was very
+hungry, but he drank sparingly. His brain seemed supplied
+with intellectual missiles which he hurled right and left,
+but when they struck, it was only to send out a rain of
+sparks like the balls of holiday fireworks that explode in
+a fountain of brilliance and hurt no one.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Monsieur is so gay!&rdquo; said the soft voice of the blonde
+at his side.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Are we not here for that, to enjoy ourselves?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Ah, if I could but believe that you remember me!&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Is it possible mademoiselle thinks herself one to be so
+easily forgotten?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Monsieur, tell me the truth.&rdquo; She glanced up archly.
+&ldquo;I have one very good reason for asking.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You are very beautiful.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;But that is so banal&ndash;&ndash;that remark.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You complain that I tell you the truth when you ask
+it? You have so often heard it that the telling becomes
+banal? Shall I continue?&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_396' name='page_396'></a>396</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;But it is of yourself that I would hear.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;So? Then it is as I feared. It is you who have forgotten.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>They were interrupted at that moment, for he was called
+upon for a story, and he related one of his life as a soldier,&ndash;&ndash;a
+little incident, but everything pleased. They called
+upon him for another and another. The hour grew late,
+and at last the banqueters rose and began to remask and
+assume their various characters.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;What are you, monsieur, with that very strange dress
+that you wear, a Roman or a Greek?&rdquo; asked his companion.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I really don&rsquo;t know&ndash;&ndash;a sort of nondescript. I did not
+choose my costume; it was made up for me by my friends.
+They called me Mark Antony, but that was because
+they did not know what else to call me. But they promised
+me Cleopatra if I would come with them.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;They would have done better to call you Petrarch, for
+I am Laura.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;But I never could have taken that part. I could make
+a very decent sort of ass of myself, but not a poet.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;What a very terrible voice your Lady Macbeth has!&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes; but she was a terror, you know. Shall we follow
+the rest?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>They all trooped out of the caf&eacute;, and fiacres were called
+to take them to the house where the mask was held. The
+women were placed in their respective carriages, but the
+men walked. At the door of the house, as they entered the
+ballroom, they reunited, but again were soon scattered.
+Robert Kater wandered about, searching here and there for
+his very elusive Laura, so slim and elegant in her white
+and gold draperies, who seemed to be greatly in demand.
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_397' name='page_397'></a>397</span>
+He saw many whom he recognized; some by their carriage,
+some by their voices, but Laura baffled him. Had he ever
+seen her before? He could not remember. He would
+not have forgotten her&ndash;&ndash;never. No, she was amusing
+herself with him.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Monsieur does not dance?&rdquo; It was a Spanish gypsy
+with her lace mantilla and the inevitable red rose in her
+hair. He knew the voice. It was that of a little model he
+sometimes employed.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I dance, yes. But I will only take you out on the floor,
+my little Julie,&ndash;&ndash;ha&ndash;&ndash;ha&ndash;&ndash;I know you, never fear&ndash;&ndash;I
+will take you out on the floor, but on one condition.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;It is granted before I know it.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Then tell me, who is she just passing?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;The one whose clothing is so&ndash;&ndash;so&ndash;&ndash;as if she would
+pose for the&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Hush, Julie. The one in white and gold.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I asked if it were she. Yes, I know her very well, for I
+saw a gentleman unmask her on the balcony above there, to
+kiss her. It is she who dances so wonderfully at the Op&eacute;ra
+Comique. You have seen her, Mademoiselle F&eacute;e. Ah,
+come. Let us dance. It is the most perfect waltz.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>At the close of the waltz the owl came and took the little
+gypsy away from Robert, and a moment later he heard the
+mellifluous voice of his companion of the banquet.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I am so weary, monsieur. Take me away where we may
+refresh ourselves.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>The red-brown eyes looked pleadingly into his, and the
+slender fingers rested on his arm, and together they wandered
+to a corner of palms where he seated her and brought her
+cool wine jelly and other confections. She thanked him
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_398' name='page_398'></a>398</span>
+sweetly, and, drooping, she rested her head upon her hand
+and her arm on the arm of her chair.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;So dull they are, these f&ecirc;tes, and the people&ndash;&ndash;bah!
+They are dull to the point of despair.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>She was a dream of gold and white as she sat there&ndash;&ndash;the
+red-gold hair and the red-brown eyes, and the soft gold and
+white draperies, too clinging, as the little gypsy had
+indicated, but beautiful as a gold and white lily. He sat
+beside her and gazed on her dreamily, but in a manner too
+detached. She was not pleased, and she sighed.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Take the refreshment, mademoiselle; you will feel
+better. I will bring you wine. What will you have?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, you men, who always think that to eat and drink
+something alone can refresh! Have you never a sadness?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Very often, mademoiselle.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Then what do you do?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I eat and drink, mademoiselle. Try it.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, you strange man from the cold north! You make
+me shiver. Touch my hand. See? You have made me
+cold.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Cold? You are a flame from the crown of gold on your
+head to your shoes of gold.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Now that you are become a success, monsieur, what
+will you do? To you is given the heart&rsquo;s desire.&rdquo; She
+toyed with the quivering jelly, merely tasting it. It too
+was golden in hue, and golden lights danced in the heart
+of it.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;A great success? I am dreaming. It is so new to me
+that I do not believe it.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You are very clever, monsieur. You never tell your
+thoughts. I asked if you remembered me and you answered
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_399' name='page_399'></a>399</span>
+in a riddle. I knew you did not, for you never saw
+me before.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Did I never see you dance?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Ah, there you are again! To see me dance&ndash;&ndash;in a
+great audience&ndash;&ndash;one of many? That does not count.
+You but pretended.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>He leaned forward, looking steadily in her eyes. &ldquo;Did I
+but pretend when I said I never could forget you? Ah,
+mademoiselle, you are too modest.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>She was maddened that she could not pique him to a
+more ardent manner, but gave no sign by so much as the
+quiver of an eyelid. She only turned her profile toward
+him indifferently. He noticed the piquant line of her lips
+and chin and throat, and the golden tones of her delicate
+skin.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Did I not also tell you the truth when you asked me?
+And you rewarded me by calling me banal.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;And I was right. You, who are so clever, could think
+of something better to say.&rdquo; She gave him a quick glance,
+and placed a quivering morsel of jelly between her lips.
+&ldquo;But you are so very strange to me. Tell me, were you
+never in love?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;That is a question I may not answer.&rdquo; He still smiled,
+but it was merely the continuation of the smile he had worn
+before she shot that last arrow. He still looked in her eyes,
+but she knew he was not seeing her. Then he rallied and
+laughed. &ldquo;Come, question for question. Were you never
+in love&ndash;&ndash;or out of love&ndash;&ndash;let us say?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh! Me!&rdquo; She lifted her shoulders delicately.
+&ldquo;Me! I am in love now&ndash;&ndash;at this moment. You do not
+treat me well. You have not danced with me once.&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_400' name='page_400'></a>400</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;No. You have been dancing always, and fully occupied.
+How could I?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Ah, you have not learned. To dance with me&ndash;&ndash;you
+must take me, not stand one side and wait.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Are you engaged for the next?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;But, yes. It is no matter. I will dance it with you.
+He will be consoled.&rdquo; She laughed, showing her beautiful,
+even teeth. &ldquo;I make you a confession. I said to him,
+&lsquo;I will dance it with you unless the cold monsieur asks me&ndash;&ndash;then
+I will dance with him, for it will do him good.&rsquo;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Robert Kater rose and stood a moment looking through
+the palms. The silken folds of his toga fell gracefully
+around him, and he held his head high. Then he withdrew
+his eyes from the distance and turned them again on her,&ndash;&ndash;the
+gold and white being at his feet,&ndash;&ndash;and she seemed
+to him no longer human, but a phantom from which he
+must flee, if but he might do so courteously, for he knew
+her to be no phantom, and he could not be other than
+courteous.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Will you accept from me my laurel crown?&rdquo; He took
+the chaplet from his head and laid it at her feet. Then, lifting
+her hand to his lips, he kissed the tips of her pink fingers,
+bowing low before her. &ldquo;I go to send you wine. Console
+your partner. It is better so, for I too am in love.&rdquo; He
+smiled upon her as he had smiled at first, and was gone,
+walking out through the crowd&ndash;&ndash;the weird, fantastic,
+bizarre company, as if he were no part of them. One and
+another greeted him as he passed, but he did not seem to
+hear them. He called a waiter and ordered wine to be
+taken to Mademoiselle F&eacute;e, and quickly was gone. They
+saw him no more.</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_401' name='page_401'></a>401</span></div>
+<p>It was nearly morning. A drizzling rain was falling, and
+the air was chill after the heat of the crowded ballroom.
+He drew it into his lungs in deep draughts, glad to be out
+in the freshness, and to feel the cool rain on his forehead.
+He threw off his encumbering toga and walked in his tunic,
+with bare throat and bare knees, and carried the toga over
+one bare arm, and swung the other bare arm free. He
+walked with head held high, for he was seeing visions, and
+hearing a far-distant call. Now at last he might choose his
+path. He had not failed, but with that call from afar&ndash;&ndash;what
+should he do? Should he answer it? Was it only
+a call from out his own heart&ndash;&ndash;a passing, futile call, luring
+him back?</p>
+<p>Of one thing he was sure. There was the painting on
+which he had labored and staked his all now hanging in the
+Salon. He could see it, one of his visions realized,&ndash;&ndash;David
+and Saul. The deep, rich shadows, the throne, the tiger
+skin, the sandaled feet of the remorseful king resting on
+the great fanged and leering head, the eyes of the king looking
+hungrily out from under his forbidding brows, the cruel
+lips pressed tightly together, and the lithe, thin hands grasping
+the carved arms of the throne in fierce restraint,&ndash;&ndash;all
+this in the deep shadows between the majestic carved columns,
+their bases concealed by the rich carpet covering the
+dais and their tops lost in the brooding darkness above&ndash;&ndash;the
+lowering darkness of purple gloom that only served to
+reveal the sinister outlines of the somber, sorrowful, suffering
+king, while he indulged the one pure passion left him&ndash;&ndash;listening&ndash;&ndash;gazing
+from the shadows out into the light,
+seeing nothing, only listening.</p>
+<p>And before him, standing in the one ray of light, clothed
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_402' name='page_402'></a>402</span>
+only in his tunic of white and his sandals, a human jewel
+of radiant color and slender strength, a godlike conception
+of youth and grace, his harp before him, the lilies
+crushed under his feet that he had torn from the strings
+which his fingers touched caressingly, with sunlight in his
+crown of golden, curling hair and the light of the stars in
+his eyes&ndash;&ndash;David, the strong, the simple, the trusting, the
+God-fearing youth, as Robert Kater saw him, looking back
+through the ages.</p>
+<p>Ah, now he could live. Now he could create&ndash;&ndash;work:
+he had been recognized, and rewarded&ndash;&ndash;Dust and ashes!
+Dust and ashes! The hope of his life realized, the goblet
+raised to his lips, and the draft&ndash;&ndash;bitter. The call
+falling upon his heart&ndash;&ndash;imperative&ndash;&ndash;beseeching&ndash;&ndash;what
+did it mean?</p>
+<p>Slowly and heavily he mounted the stairs to his studio,
+and there fumbled about in the darkness and the confusion
+left by his admiring comrades until he found candles and
+made a light. He was cold, and his light clothing clung to
+him wet and chilling as grave clothes. He tore them off
+and got himself into things that were warm and dry, and
+wrapping himself in an old dressing gown of flannel, sat
+down to think.</p>
+<p>He took the money his friend had brought him and
+counted it over. Good old Ben Howard! Half of it must
+go to him, of course. And here were finished canvases
+quite as good as the ones that had sold. Ben might turn
+them to as good an account as the others,&ndash;&ndash;yes,&ndash;&ndash;here
+was enough to carry him through a year and leave him
+leisure to paint unhampered by the necessity of making
+pot boilers for a bare living.</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_403' name='page_403'></a>403</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;Tell me, were you never in love?&rdquo; That soft, insinuating
+voice haunted him against his will. In love? What did
+she know of love&ndash;&ndash;the divine passion? Love! Fame!
+Neither were possible to him. He bowed his head upon the
+table, hiding his face, crushing the bank notes beneath his
+arms. Deep in his soul the eye of his own conscience regarded
+him,&ndash;&ndash;an outcast hiding under an assumed name,
+covering the scar above his temple with a falling lock
+of hair seldom lifted, and deep in his soul a memory of a
+love. Oh, God! Dust and ashes! Dust and ashes!</p>
+<p>He rose, and, taking his candle with him, opened a door
+leading from the studio up a short flight of steps to a little
+cupboard of a sleeping room. Here he cast himself on the
+bed and closed his eyes. He must sleep: but no, he could
+not. After a time of restless tossing he got up and drew an
+old portmanteau from the closet and threw the contents
+out on the bed. From among them he picked up the thing
+he sought and sat on the edge of his bed with it in his hands,
+turning it over and regarding it, tieing and untieing the
+worn, frayed, but still bright ribbons, which had once been
+the cherry-colored hair ribbons of little Betty Ballard.</p>
+<p>Suddenly he rose and lifted his head high, in his old,
+rather imperious way, put out his candle, and looked
+through the small, dusty panes of his window. It was day&ndash;&ndash;early
+dawn. He was jaded and weary, but he would try
+no longer to sleep. He must act, and shake off sentimentalism.
+Yes, he must act. He bathed and dressed with care,
+and then in haste, as if life depended on hurry, he packed
+the portmanteau and stepped briskly into the studio,
+looking all about, noting everything as if taking stock of
+it all, then sat down with pen and paper to write.</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_404' name='page_404'></a>404</span></div>
+<p>The letter was a long one. It took time and thought.
+When he was nearly through with it, Ben Howard lagged
+wearily in.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Halloo! Why didn&rsquo;t you wait for me? What did
+you clear out for and leave me in the lurch? Fresh as a
+daisy, you are, old chap, and I&rsquo;m done for, dead.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You&rsquo;re not scientific in your pleasures.&rdquo; Robert Kater
+lifted his eyes and looked at his friend. &ldquo;Are you alive
+enough to hear me and remember what I say? Will you
+do something for me? Shall I tell you now or will you
+breakfast first?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Breakfast? Faugh!&rdquo; He looked disgustedly around
+him.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I&rsquo;m sorry. You drink too much. Listen, Ben. I&rsquo;ll
+tell you what I mean to do and what I wish you to do for
+me&ndash;&ndash;and&ndash;&ndash;you remember all you can of it, will you?
+I must do it now, for you&rsquo;ll be asleep soon, and this will be
+the last I shall see of you&ndash;&ndash;ever. I&rsquo;m leaving in two hours&ndash;&ndash;as
+soon as I&rsquo;ve breakfasted.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;What&rsquo;s that? Hold on!&rdquo; Ben Howard sprang up, and
+darting behind a screen where they washed their brushes,
+he dashed cold water over his head and came back toweling
+himself. &ldquo;I&rsquo;m fit now. I did drink too much champagne,
+but I&rsquo;ll sleep it off. Now fire away,&ndash;&ndash;what&rsquo;s up?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;In two hours I&rsquo;ll be en route for the coast, and to-morrow
+I&rsquo;ll take passage for home on the first boat.&rdquo; Robert
+closed and sealed the long letter he had been writing and
+tossed it on the table. &ldquo;I want this mailed one week from
+to-day. Put it in your pocket so you won&rsquo;t lose it among
+the rubbish here. One week from to-day it must be mailed.
+It&rsquo;s to my great aunt, Jean Craigmile, who gave me the
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_405' name='page_405'></a>405</span>
+money to set up here the first year. I&rsquo;ve paid that up&ndash;&ndash;last
+week&ndash;&ndash;with my last sou&ndash;&ndash;and with interest. By
+rights she should have whatever there is here of any value,
+for, if it were not for her help, there would not have been a
+thing here anyway, and I&rsquo;ve no one else to whom to leave
+it&ndash;&ndash;so see that this letter is mailed without fail, will you?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>The Englishman stood, now thoroughly awake, gazing
+at him, unable to make common sense out of Robert&rsquo;s
+remarks. &ldquo;B&ndash;&ndash;b&ndash;&ndash;but&ndash;&ndash;what&rsquo;s up? What are you
+leaving things to anybody for? You&rsquo;re not on your deathbed.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I&rsquo;m going home, don&rsquo;t you see?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;But why don&rsquo;t you take the letter to her yourself&ndash;&ndash;if
+you&rsquo;re going home?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Not there, man; not to Scotland.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Your home&rsquo;s there.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I have allowed you to think so.&rdquo; Robert forced himself
+to talk calmly. &ldquo;In truth, I have no home, but the
+place I call home by courtesy is where I was brought up&ndash;&ndash;in
+America.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You&ndash;&ndash;you&ndash;&ndash;d&ndash;&ndash;d&ndash;&ndash;don&rsquo;t&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes&ndash;&ndash;it&rsquo;s time you knew this. I&rsquo;ve been leading a
+double life, and I&rsquo;m done with it. I committed a crime,
+and I&rsquo;m living under an assumed name. There is no such
+man as Robert Kater that I know of on earth, nor ever was.
+My name is&ndash;&ndash;no matter&ndash;&ndash;. I&rsquo;m going back to the place
+where I killed my best friend&ndash;&ndash;to give myself up&ndash;&ndash;to
+imprisonment&ndash;&ndash;I do not know to what&ndash;&ndash;maybe death&ndash;&ndash;but
+it will end my torture of mind. Now you know why
+I could not go to the Vernissage, to be treated&ndash;&ndash;well, I
+could not go, that&rsquo;s all. Nor could I accept the honors
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_406' name='page_406'></a>406</span>
+given me under a name not my own. All the time I&rsquo;ve
+lived in Paris I&rsquo;ve been hiding&ndash;&ndash;and this thing has been
+following me&ndash;&ndash;although my occupation seems to have
+been the best cover I could have had&ndash;&ndash;yet my soul has
+known no peace. Always&ndash;&ndash;always&ndash;&ndash;night and day&ndash;&ndash;my
+own conscience has been watching and accusing me, an eye
+of dread steadily gazing down into my soul and seeing my sin
+deep, deep in my heart. I could not hide from it. And I
+would have given up before only that I wished to make
+good in something before I stepped down and out. I&rsquo;ve
+done it.&rdquo; He put his hand heavily on Ben Howard&rsquo;s
+shoulder. &ldquo;I&rsquo;ve had a revelation this night. The lesson of
+my life is learned at last. It is, that there is but one road
+to freedom and life for me&ndash;&ndash;and that road leads to a prison.
+It leads to a prison,&ndash;&ndash;maybe worse,&ndash;&ndash;but it leads me to
+freedom&ndash;&ndash;from the thing that haunts me, that watches
+me and drives me. I may write you from that place which
+I will call home&ndash;&ndash;Were you ever in love?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>The abruptness of the question set Ben Howard stammering
+again. He seized Robert&rsquo;s hand in both his own
+and held to it. &ldquo;I&ndash;&ndash;I&ndash;&ndash;I&ndash;&ndash;old chap&ndash;&ndash;I&ndash;&ndash;n&ndash;&ndash;n&ndash;&ndash;no&ndash;&ndash;were
+you?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes; I&rsquo;ve heard the call of her voice in my heart&ndash;&ndash;and
+I&rsquo;m gone. Now, Ben, stop your&ndash;&ndash;well, I&rsquo;ll not preach to
+you, you of all men,&ndash;&ndash;but&ndash;&ndash;do something worth while.
+I&rsquo;ve need of part of the money you got for me&ndash;&ndash;to get back
+on&ndash;&ndash;and pay a bill or two&ndash;&ndash;and the rest I leave to you&ndash;&ndash;there
+where you put it you&rsquo;ll find it. Will you live here
+and take care of these things for me until my good aunt,
+Jean Craigmile, writes you? She&rsquo;ll tell you what to do
+with them&ndash;&ndash;and more than likely she&rsquo;ll take you under
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_407' name='page_407'></a>407</span>
+her wing&ndash;&ndash;anyway, work, man, work. The place is yours
+for the present&ndash;&ndash;perhaps for a good while, and you&rsquo;ll
+have a chance to make good. If I could live on that money
+for a year, as you yourself said, you can live on half of it
+for half a year, and in that time you can get ahead. Work.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>He seized his portmanteau and was gone before Ben
+Howard could gather his scattered senses or make reply.</p>
+<hr class='toprule' />
+<div class='chsp'>
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_408' name='page_408'></a>408</span>
+<a name='CHAPTER_XXXII_THE_PRISONER' id='CHAPTER_XXXII_THE_PRISONER'></a>
+<h2>CHAPTER XXXII</h2>
+<h3>THE PRISONER</h3>
+</div>
+<p>Harry King did not at once consult an attorney, for
+Milton Hibbard, the only one he knew or cared to call upon
+for his defense, was an old friend of the Elder&rsquo;s and had
+been retained by him to assist the district attorney at the
+trial. The other two lawyers in Leauvite, one of whom
+was the district attorney himself, were strangers to him.
+Twice he sent messages to the Elder after his return, begging
+him to come to him, never dreaming that they could
+be unheeded, but to the second only was any reply sent,
+and then it was but a cursory line. &ldquo;Legal steps will be
+taken to secure justice for you, whoever you are.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>To his friends he sent no messages. Their sympathy
+could only mean sorrow for them if they believed in him,
+and hurt to his own soul if they distrusted him, and he
+suffered enough. So he lay there in the clean, bare cell,
+and was glad that it was clean and held no traces of former
+occupants. The walls smelled of lime in their freshly
+plastered surfaces, and the floor had the pleasant odor of
+new pine.</p>
+<p>His life passed in review before him from boyhood up.
+It had been a happy life until the tragedy brought into it
+by his own anger and violence, but since that time it had
+been one long nightmare of remorse, heightened by fear,
+until he had met Amalia, and after that it had been one
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_409' name='page_409'></a>409</span>
+unremitting strife between love and duty&ndash;&ndash;delight in her
+mind, in her touch, in her every movement, and in his
+own soul despair unfathomable. Now at last it was to
+end in public exposure, imprisonment, disgrace. A peculiar
+apathy of peace seemed to envelop him. There was
+no longer hope to entice, no further struggle to be waged
+against the terror of fear, or the joy of love, or the horror of
+remorse; all seemed gone from him, even to the vague
+interest in things transpiring in the world.</p>
+<p>He had only a puzzled feeling concerning his arrest.
+Things had not proceeded as he had planned. If the Elder
+would but come to him, all would be right. He tried to
+analyze his feelings, and the thought that possessed him
+most was wonder at the strange vacuity of the condition
+of emotionlessness. Was it that he had so suffered that
+he was no longer capable of feeling? What was feeling?
+What was emotion: and life without either emotion, or
+feeling, or caring to feel,&ndash;&ndash;what would it be?</p>
+<p>Valueless.&ndash;&ndash;Empty space. Nothing left but bodily
+hunger, bodily thirst, bodily weariness. A lifetime,
+for his years were not yet half spent,&ndash;&ndash;a lifetime at Waupun,
+and work for the body, but vacuity for the mind&ndash;&ndash;maybe&ndash;&ndash;sometimes&ndash;&ndash;memories.
+Even thinking thus
+he seemed to have lost the power to feel sadness.</p>
+<p>Confusion reigned within him, and yet he found himself
+powerless to correlate his thoughts or suggest reasons for
+the strange happenings of the last few days. It seemed
+to him that he was in a dream wherein reason played no
+part. In the indictment he was arraigned for the murder
+of Peter Craigmile, Jr.,&ndash;&ndash;as Richard Kildene,&ndash;&ndash;and
+yet he had seen his cousin lying dead before him, during
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_410' name='page_410'></a>410</span>
+all the years that had passed since he had fled from that
+sight. In battle he had seen men clubbed with the butt
+end of a musket fall dead with wounded temples, even as
+he had seen his cousin&ndash;&ndash;stark&ndash;&ndash;inert&ndash;&ndash;lifeless. He had
+felt the strange, insane rage to kill that he had seen in
+others and marveled at. And now, after he had felt and
+done it, he was arrested as the man he had slain.</p>
+<p>All the morning he paced his cell and tried to force
+his thoughts to work out the solution, but none presented
+itself. Was he the victim of some strange form of insanity
+that caused him to lose his identity and believe
+himself another man? Drunken men he had seen under
+the delusion that all the rest of the world were drunken and
+they alone sober. Oh, madness, madness! At least he
+was sane and knew himself, and this was a confusion
+brought about by those who had undertaken his arrest.
+He would wait for the Elder to come, and in the meantime
+live in his memories, thinking of Amalia, and so awaken
+in himself one living emotion, sacred and truly sane.
+In the sweetness of such thinking alone he seemed to
+live.</p>
+<p>He drew the little ivory crucifix from his bosom and
+looked at it. &ldquo;The Christ who bore our sins and griefs&rdquo;&ndash;&ndash;and
+again Amalia&rsquo;s words came to him. &ldquo;If they keep
+you forever in the prison, still forever are you free.&rdquo; In
+snatches her words repeated themselves over in his mind
+as he gazed. &ldquo;If you have the Christ in your heart&ndash;&ndash;so
+are you high&ndash;&ndash;lifted above the sin.&rdquo; &ldquo;If I see you no
+more here, in Paradise yet will I see you, and there it will
+be joy&ndash;&ndash;great&ndash;&ndash;joy; for it is the love that is all of life,
+and all of eternity, and lives&ndash;&ndash;lives.&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_411' name='page_411'></a>411</span></div>
+<p>Bertrand Ballard and his wife and daughter stood in
+the small room opening off from the corridor that led to the
+rear of the courthouse where was the jail, waiting for the
+jailer to bring his keys from his office, and, waiting thus,
+Betty turned her eyes beseechingly on her father, and for
+the first time since her talk with her mother in the studio,
+opened her lips to speak to him. She was very pale, but
+she did not tremble, and her voice had the quality of determination.
+Bertrand had yielded the point and had
+taken her to the jail against his own judgment, taking Mary
+with him to forestall the chance of Betty&rsquo;s seeing the young
+man alone. &ldquo;Surely,&rdquo; he thought, &ldquo;she will not ask to
+have her mother excluded from the interview.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t want any one&ndash;&ndash;not even you&ndash;&ndash;or&ndash;&ndash;or&ndash;&ndash;mother,
+to go in with me.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;My child, be wise&ndash;&ndash;and be guided.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes, father,&ndash;&ndash;but I want to go in alone.&rdquo; She slipped
+her hand in her mother&rsquo;s, but still looked in her father&rsquo;s
+eyes. &ldquo;I must go in alone, father. You don&rsquo;t understand&ndash;&ndash;but
+mother does.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;This young man may be an impostor. It is almost
+unmaidenly for you to wish to go in there alone. Mary&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>But Mary hesitated and trusted to her daughter&rsquo;s intuition.
+&ldquo;Betty, explain yourself,&rdquo; was all she said.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Suppose it was father&ndash;&ndash;or you thought it might be
+father&ndash;&ndash;and a terrible thing were hanging over him and
+you had not seen him for all this time&ndash;&ndash;and he were in
+there, and I were you&ndash;&ndash;wouldn&rsquo;t you ask to see him first
+alone? Would you stop for one moment to think about
+being proper? What do I care! If he is an impostor,
+I shall know it. In one moment I shall know it.
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_412' name='page_412'></a>412</span>
+I&ndash;&ndash;I&ndash;&ndash;just want to see him alone. It is because he has suffered
+so long&ndash;&ndash;that is why he has come like this&ndash;&ndash;if&ndash;&ndash;they
+aren&rsquo;t accusing him wrongfully, and I&ndash;&ndash;he will tell me the
+truth. If he is Richard, I would know it if I came in and
+stood beside him blindfolded. I will call you in a moment.
+Stand by the door, and let me see him alone.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>The jailer returned, alert and important, shaking the keys
+in his hand. &ldquo;This way, please.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>In the moment&rsquo;s pause of unlocking, Betty again turned
+upon her father, her eyes glowing in the dim light of the
+corridor with wide, sorrowful gaze, large and irresistibly
+earnest. Bertrand glanced from her to his wife, who
+slightly nodded her head. Then he said to the surprised
+jailer: &ldquo;We will wait here. My daughter may be able to
+recognize him. Call us quickly, dear, if you have reason
+to change your mind.&rdquo; The heavy door was closed behind
+her, and the key turned in the lock.</p>
+<p>Harry King loomed large and tall in the small room,
+standing with his back to the door and his face lifted to
+the small window, where he could see a patch of the blue
+sky and white, scudding clouds. For the moment his spirit
+was not in that cell. It was free and on top of a mountain,
+looking into the clear eyes of a woman who loved him. He
+was so rapt in his vision that he did not hear the grating of
+the key in the lock, and Betty stood abashed, with her back
+to the door, feeling that she was gazing on a stranger. Relieved
+against the square of light, his hair looked darker
+than she remembered Peter&rsquo;s ever to have been,&ndash;&ndash;as dark
+as Richard&rsquo;s, but that rough, neglected beard,&ndash;&ndash;also dark,&ndash;&ndash;and
+the tanned skin, did not bring either young man to
+her mind.</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_413' name='page_413'></a>413</span></div>
+<p>The pause was but for a moment, when he became aware
+that he was not alone and turned and saw her there.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Betty! oh, Betty! You have come to help me.&rdquo; He
+walked toward her slowly, hardly believing his eyes, and
+held out both hands.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;If&ndash;&ndash;I&ndash;&ndash;can. Who are you?&rdquo; She took his hands
+in hers and walked around him, turning his face to the
+light. Her breath came and went quickly, and a round red
+spot now burned on one of her cheeks, and her face seemed
+to be only two great, pathetic eyes.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Do I need to tell you, Betty? Once we thought we
+loved each other. Did we, Betty?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t&ndash;&ndash;don&rsquo;t&ndash;&ndash;know&ndash;&ndash;Peter! Oh, Peter! Oh,
+you are alive! Peter! Richard didn&rsquo;t kill you!&rdquo; She
+did not cry out, but spoke the words with a low intensity
+that thrilled him, and then she threw her arms about his
+neck and burst into tears. &ldquo;He didn&rsquo;t do it! You are
+alive! Peter, he didn&rsquo;t kill you! I knew he didn&rsquo;t do it.
+They all thought he did, and&ndash;&ndash;and&ndash;&ndash;your father&ndash;&ndash;he
+has almost broken his bank just&ndash;&ndash;just&ndash;&ndash;hunting for
+Richard&ndash;&ndash;to&ndash;&ndash;to&ndash;&ndash;have him hung&ndash;&ndash;and oh! Peter,
+I have lived in horror,&ndash;&ndash;for&ndash;&ndash;fear he w&ndash;&ndash;w&ndash;&ndash;w&ndash;&ndash;would,
+and&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;He never could, Betty. I have come home to atone.
+I have come home to give myself up. I killed Richard&ndash;&ndash;my
+cousin&ndash;&ndash;my best friend. I struck him in hate and
+saw him lying dead: all the time they were hunting him
+it was I they should have hunted. I can&rsquo;t understand it.
+Did they take his dead body for mine&ndash;&ndash;or&ndash;&ndash;how was it
+they did not know he was struck down and murdered?
+They must have taken his body for mine&ndash;&ndash;or&ndash;&ndash;he must
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_414' name='page_414'></a>414</span>
+have fallen over&ndash;&ndash;but he didn&rsquo;t, for I saw him lying dead
+as I had struck him. All these years the eye of vengeance
+has been upon me, and my crime has haunted me. I have
+seen him lying so&ndash;&ndash;dead. God! God!&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Betty still clung to him and sobbed incoherently. &ldquo;No,
+no, Peter, it was you who were drowned&ndash;&ndash;they found all
+your things and saw where you had been pushed over, and&ndash;&ndash;but
+you weren&rsquo;t drowned! They only thought it&ndash;&ndash;they
+believed it&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>He put his hand to his head as if to brush away the confusion
+which staggered him. &ldquo;Yes, Richard lay dead&ndash;&ndash;and
+they found him,&ndash;&ndash;but why did they hunt for him?
+And I&ndash;&ndash;I&ndash;&ndash;living&ndash;&ndash;why didn&rsquo;t they hunt me,&ndash;&ndash;and
+he, dead and lying there&ndash;&ndash;why did they hunt him? But
+my father would believe the worst of him rather than to see
+himself disgraced in his son. Don&rsquo;t cry, little Betty, don&rsquo;t
+cry. You&rsquo;ve had too much to bear. Sit here beside me
+and I&rsquo;ll tell you all about it. That&rsquo;s why I came back.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;B&ndash;&ndash;b&ndash;&ndash;ut if you weren&rsquo;t drowned, why&ndash;&ndash;why didn&rsquo;t
+you come home and say so? Didn&rsquo;t you ever see the papers
+and how they were hunting Richard all over the world?
+I knew you were dead, because I knew you never would be
+so cruel as to leave every one in doubt and your father in
+sorrow&ndash;&ndash;just because he had quarreled with you. It
+might have killed your mother&ndash;&ndash;if the Elder had let her
+know.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I can&rsquo;t tell you all my reasons, Betty; mostly they were
+coward&rsquo;s reasons. I did my best to leave evidence that
+I had been pushed over the bluff, because it seemed the
+only way to hide myself. I did my best to make them think
+me dead, and never thought any one could be harmed by
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_415' name='page_415'></a>415</span>
+it, because I knew him to be dead; so I just thought we
+would both be dead so far as the world would know,&ndash;&ndash;and
+as for you, dear,&ndash;&ndash;I learned on that fatal night that
+you did not love me&ndash;&ndash;and that was another coward&rsquo;s
+reason why I wished to be dead to you all.&rdquo; He began
+pacing the room, and Betty sat on the edge of the narrow
+jail bedstead and watched him with tearful eyes. &ldquo;It was
+true, Betty? You did not really love me?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Peter! Didn&rsquo;t you ever see the papers? Didn&rsquo;t
+you ever know all about the search for you and how he disappeared,
+too? Oh, Peter! And it was supposed he killed
+you and pushed you over the bluff and then ran away. Oh,
+Peter! But it was kept out of the home paper by the
+Elder so your mother should not know&ndash;&ndash;and Peter&ndash;&ndash;didn&rsquo;t
+you know Richard lived?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Lived? lived?&rdquo; He lifted his clasped hands above his
+head, and they trembled. &ldquo;Lived? Betty, say it again!&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes, Peter. I saw him and I know&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, God, make me know it. Make me understand.&rdquo;
+He fell on his knees beside her and hid his face in the scant
+jail bedding, and his frame shook with dry sobs. &ldquo;I was
+a coward. I told you that. I&ndash;&ndash;I thought myself a
+murderer, and all this time my terrible thought has driven
+me&ndash;&ndash;Lived? I never killed him? God! Betty, say it
+again.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Betty sat still for a moment, shaken at first with a feeling
+of resentment that he had made them all suffer so, and
+Richard most of all. Then she was overwhelmed with
+pity for him, and with a glad tenderness. It was all over.
+The sorrow had been real, but it had all been needless. She
+placed her hand on his head, then knelt beside him and put
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_416' name='page_416'></a>416</span>
+her arm about his neck and drew his head to her bosom,
+motherwise, for the deep mother heart in her was awakened,
+and thus she told him all the story, and how Richard had
+come to her, broken and repentant, and what had been said
+between them. When they rose from their knees, it was
+as if they had been praying and at the same time giving
+thanks.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;And you thought they would find him lying there dead
+and know you had killed him and hunt you down for a
+murderer?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Poor Peter! So you pushed that great stone out of
+the edge of the bluff into the river to make them think you
+had fallen over and drowned&ndash;&ndash;and threw your things down,
+too, to make it seem as if you both were dead.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, Peter! What a terrible mistake! How you must
+have suffered!&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes, as cowards suffer.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>They stood for a moment with clasped hands, looking
+into each other&rsquo;s eyes. &ldquo;Then it was true what Richard
+told me? You did not love me, Betty?&rdquo; He had grown
+calmer, and he spoke very tenderly. &ldquo;We must have all
+the truth now and conceal nothing.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Not quite&ndash;&ndash;true. I&ndash;&ndash;I&ndash;&ndash;thought I did. You were
+so handsome! I was only a child then&ndash;&ndash;and I thought I
+loved you&ndash;&ndash;or that I ought to&ndash;&ndash;for any girl would&ndash;&ndash;I
+was so romantic in those days&ndash;&ndash;and you had been wounded&ndash;&ndash;and
+it was like a romance&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;And then?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;And then Richard came, and I knew in one instant that
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_417' name='page_417'></a>417</span>
+I had done wrong&ndash;&ndash;and that I loved him&ndash;&ndash;and oh, I
+felt myself so wicked.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;No, Betty, dear. It was all&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;It was not fair to you. I would have been true to you,
+Peter; you would have never known&ndash;&ndash;but after Richard
+came and told me he had killed you,&ndash;&ndash;I felt as if I had
+killed you, too. I did like you, Peter. I did! I will do
+whatever is right.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Then it was not in vain&ndash;&ndash;that we have all suffered.
+We have been saved from doing each other wrong. Everything
+will come right now. All that is needed is for father
+to hear what you have told me, and he will come and take
+me out of here&ndash;&ndash;Where is Richard?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;No one knows.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Not even you, Betty?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;No; he has dropped out of the world as completely as
+you did.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Well, it will be all right, anyway. Father will withdraw
+his charge and&ndash;&ndash;did you say his bank was going to
+pieces? He must have help. I can help him. You can
+help him, Betty.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;How?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Then Peter told Betty how he had found Richard&rsquo;s
+father in his mountain retreat and that she must write to him.
+&ldquo;If there is any danger of the bank&rsquo;s going, write for me to
+Larry Kildene. Father never would appeal to him if he
+lost everything in the world, so we must do it. As soon as
+I am out of here we can save him.&rdquo; Already he felt himself
+a new man, and spoke hopefully and cheerfully. He little
+knew the struggle still before him.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Peter, father and mother are out there in the corridor
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_418' name='page_418'></a>418</span>
+waiting. I was to call them. I made them let me come in
+alone.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, call them, call them!&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t think they will know you as I did, with that
+great beard on your face. We&rsquo;ll see.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>When Bertrand and Mary entered, they stood for a
+moment aghast, seeing little likeness to either of the young
+men in the developed and bronzed specimen of manhood
+before them. But they greeted him warmly, eager to find
+him Peter, and in their manner he missed nothing of their
+old-time kindliness.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You are greatly changed, Peter Junior. You look more
+like Richard Kildene than you ever did before in your life,&rdquo;
+said Mary.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes, but when we see Richard, we may find that a
+change has taken place in him also, and they will stand in
+their own shoes hereafter.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Since the burden has been lifted from my soul and I
+know that he lives, I could sing and shout aloud here in this
+cell. Imprisonment&ndash;&ndash;even death&ndash;&ndash;means nothing to me
+now. All will come right before we know it.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;That is just the way Richard would act and speak.
+No wonder you have been taken for him!&rdquo; said Bertrand.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes, he was always more buoyant than I. Maybe
+we have both changed, but I hope he has not. I loved my
+friend.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>As they walked home together Mary Ballard said,
+&ldquo;Now, Peter ought to be released right away.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Certainly he will be as soon as the Elder realizes the
+truth.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;How he has changed, though! His face shows the mark
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_419' name='page_419'></a>419</span>
+of sorrow. Those drooping, sensitive lines about his mouth&ndash;&ndash;they
+were never there before, and they are the lines of
+suffering. They touched my heart. I wish Hester were
+at home. She ought to be written to. I&rsquo;ll do it as soon as
+I get home.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Peter is handsomer than he was, in spite of the lines,
+and, as you say, he does look more like his cousin than he
+used to&ndash;&ndash;because of them, I think. Richard always had
+a debonair way with him, but he had that little, sensitive
+droop to the lips&ndash;&ndash;not so marked as Peter&rsquo;s is now&ndash;&ndash;but
+you remember, Mary&ndash;&ndash;like his mother&rsquo;s.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, mother, don&rsquo;t you think Richard could be found?&rdquo;
+Betty&rsquo;s voice trailed sorrowfully over the words. She was
+thinking how he had suffered all this time, and wishing her
+heart could reach out to him and call him back to her.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;He must be, dear, if he lives.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, yes. He&rsquo;ll be found. It can be published that
+Peter Junior has returned, and that will bring him after a
+while. Peter&rsquo;s physique seems to have changed as well as
+his face. Did you notice that backward swing of the
+shoulders, so like his cousin&rsquo;s, when he said, &lsquo;I could sing
+and shout here in this cell&rsquo;? And the way he lifted his
+head and smiled? That beard is a horrible disguise. I
+must send a barber to him. He must be himself again.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, yes, do. He stands so straight and steps so easily.
+His lameness seems to have quite gone,&rdquo; said Mary, joyously,&ndash;&ndash;but
+at that, Bertrand paused in his walk and looked
+at her, then glancing at Betty walking slowly on before, he
+laid his finger to his lips and took his wife&rsquo;s arm, and they
+said no more until they reached home and Betty was in her
+room.</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_420' name='page_420'></a>420</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;I simply can&rsquo;t think it, Bertrand. I see Peter in him.
+It is Peter. Of course he&rsquo;s like Richard. They were always
+alike, and that makes him all the more Peter. No other
+man would have that likeness, and it goes to show that he is
+Peter.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;My dear, unless the Elder sees him as we see him, the
+thing will have to be tried out in the courts.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Unless we can find Richard. Hester ought to be here.
+She could set them right in a moment. Trust a mother to
+know her own boy. I&rsquo;ll write her immediately. I&rsquo;ll&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;But you have no authority, Mary.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;No authority? She is my friend. I have a right to do
+my duty by her, and I can so put it that it will not be such
+a shock to her as it inevitably will be if matters go wrong,
+or Peter should be kept in prison for lack of evidence&ndash;&ndash;or
+for too much evidence. She&rsquo;ll have to know sooner or
+later.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Bertrand said no more against this, for was not Mary
+often quite right? &ldquo;I&rsquo;ll see to it that he has a barber, and
+try to persuade the Elder to see him. That may settle it
+without any trouble. If not, I must see that he has a good
+lawyer to help in his defense.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;If that savage old man remains stubborn, Hester must
+be here.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;If the thing goes to a trial, Betty will have to appear
+against him.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Well, it mustn&rsquo;t go to a trial, that&rsquo;s all.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>That night two letters went out from Leauvite, one to
+Hester Craigmile at Aberdeen, Scotland, and one to the
+other end of the earth, where Larry Kildene waited for
+news of Harry King, there on the mountain top. On the
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_421' name='page_421'></a>421</span>
+first of each month Larry rode down to the nearest point
+where letters could be sent, making a three days&rsquo; trip on
+horseback. His first trip brought nothing, because Harry
+had not sent his first letter in time to reach the station
+before Larry was well on his way back up the mountain.
+He would not delay his return, for fear of leaving the two
+women too long alone.</p>
+<p>After Harry&rsquo;s departure, Madam Manovska had grown
+restless, and once had wandered so far away as to cause
+them great alarm and a long search, when she was found,
+sitting close to the fall, apparently too weak and too dazed
+to move. This had so awakened Amalia&rsquo;s fears that she
+never allowed her mother to leave the cabin alone, but
+always on one pretext or another accompanied her.</p>
+<p>The situation was a difficult one for them all. If Amalia
+took her mother away to some town, as she wished to do,
+she feared for Madam Manovska&rsquo;s sanity when she could
+not find her husband. And still, when she tried to tell
+her mother of her father&rsquo;s death, she could not convince her
+of its truth. For a while she would seem to understand
+and believe it, but after a night&rsquo;s rest she would go back to
+the old weary repetition of going to her husband and his
+need of her. Then it was all to go over again, day after
+day, until at last Amalia gave up, and allowed her mother
+the comfort of her belief: but all the more she had to
+invent pretexts for keeping her on the mountain. So she
+accepted Larry&rsquo;s kindly advice and his earnestly offered
+hospitality and his comforting companionship, and remained,
+as, perforce, there was nothing else for her to do.</p>
+<hr class='toprule' />
+<div class='chsp'>
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_422' name='page_422'></a>422</span>
+<a name='CHAPTER_XXXIII_HESTER_CRAIGMILE_RECEIVES_HER_LETTER' id='CHAPTER_XXXIII_HESTER_CRAIGMILE_RECEIVES_HER_LETTER'></a>
+<h2>CHAPTER XXXIII</h2>
+<h3>HESTER CRAIGMILE RECEIVES HER LETTER</h3>
+</div>
+<p>The letters reached their opposite destinations at about
+the same time. The one to Amalia closely buttoned in
+Larry&rsquo;s pocket, and the short one to himself which he read
+and reread as his horse slowly climbed the trail, were halfway
+up the mountain when the postboy delivered Hester
+Craigmile&rsquo;s at the door of the sedate brick house belonging
+to the Craigmiles of Aberdeen.</p>
+<p>Peter Junior&rsquo;s mother and two elderly women&ndash;&ndash;his
+grandaunts&ndash;&ndash;were seated in the dignified parlor, taking
+afternoon tea, when the housemaid brought Hester her
+letter.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Is it from Peter, maybe?&rdquo; asked the elder of the two
+aunts.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;No, Aunt Ellen; I think it is from a friend.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;It&rsquo;s strange now, that Peter&rsquo;s no written before this,&rdquo;
+said the younger, leaning forward eagerly. &ldquo;Will ye read
+it, dear? We&rsquo;ll be wantin&rsquo; to know if there&rsquo;s ae word about
+him intil&rsquo;t.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;There may be, Aunt Jean.&rdquo; Hester set her cup of
+tea down untasted, and began to open her letter.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;But tak&rsquo; yer tea first, Hester. Jean&rsquo;s an impatient
+body. That&rsquo;s too bad of ye, Jean; her toast&rsquo;s gettin&rsquo; cold.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, that&rsquo;s no matter at all, Aunt Ellen. I&rsquo;ll take it as
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_423' name='page_423'></a>423</span>
+soon as I see if he&rsquo;s home all right. Yes, my friend says
+my husband has been home for three days and is well.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;That&rsquo;s good. Noo ye&rsquo;re satisfied, lay it by and tak&rsquo;
+yer tea.&rdquo; And Hester smilingly laid it by and took her
+tea, for Mary Ballard had said nothing on the first page
+to startle her friend&rsquo;s serenity.</p>
+<p>Jean Craigmile, however, still looked eagerly at the letter
+as it lay on a chair at Hester&rsquo;s side. She was a sweet-faced
+old lady, alert, and as young as Peter Junior&rsquo;s father, for
+all she was his aunt, and now she apologized for her eagerness
+by saying, as she often did: &ldquo;Ye mind he&rsquo;s mair like
+my brither than my nephew, for we all used to play together&ndash;&ndash;Peter,
+Katherine, and me. We were aye friends.
+She was like a sister, and he like a brither. Ah, weel, we&rsquo;re
+auld noo.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Her sister looked at her fondly. &ldquo;Ye&rsquo;re no so auld, Jean,
+but ye might be aulder. It&rsquo;s like I might have been the
+mither of her, for I mind the time when she was laid in my
+arms and my feyther tell&rsquo;t me I was to aye care for her like
+my ain, an&rsquo; but for her I would na&rsquo; be livin&rsquo; noo.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;And why for no?&rdquo; asked Jean, quickly.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I had ye to care for, child. Do ye no&rsquo; understand?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Jean laughed merrily. &ldquo;She&rsquo;s been callin&rsquo; me child for
+saxty-five years,&rdquo; she said.</p>
+<p>Both the old ladies wore lace caps, but that of Jean&rsquo;s
+was a little braver with ribbons than Ellen&rsquo;s. Small lavender
+bows were set in the frill all about her face, and the
+long ends of the ribbon were not tied, but fell down on the
+soft white mull handkerchief that crossed over her bosom.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I mind when Peter married ye, Hester,&rdquo; said Ellen.
+&ldquo;I was fair wild to have him bring ye here on his weddin&rsquo;
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_424' name='page_424'></a>424</span>
+journey, and he should have done so, for we&rsquo;d not seen him
+since he was a lad, and all these years I&rsquo;ve been waitin&rsquo; to
+see ye.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Weel, &rsquo;twas good of him to leave ye bide with us a bit,
+an&rsquo; go home without ye,&rdquo; said Jean.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;It was good of him, but I ought not to have allowed it.&rdquo;
+Hester&rsquo;s eyes glistened and her face grew tender and soft.
+To the world, the Elder might seem harsh, stubborn, and
+vindictive, but Hester knew the tenderness in which none
+but she believed. Ever since the disappearance of their
+son, he had been gentle and most lovingly watchful of her,
+and his domination had risen from the old critical restraint
+on her thoughts and actions to a solicitous care for her comfort,&ndash;&ndash;studying
+her slightest wishes with almost appealing
+thoughtfulness to gratify them.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;And why for no allow it? There&rsquo;s naething so good
+for a man as lettin&rsquo; him be kind to ye, even if he is an Elder
+in the kirk. I&rsquo;m thinkin&rsquo; Peter&rsquo;s ain o&rsquo; them that such as
+that is good for&ndash;&ndash;Hester! What ails ye! Are oot of
+ye&rsquo;re mind? Gi&rsquo;e her a drap of whuskey, Jean. Hester!&rdquo;</p>
+<p>While they were chatting and sipping their tea, Hester
+had quietly resumed the reading of her letter, and now she
+sat staring straight before her, the pages crushed in her
+hand, leaning forward, pale, with her eyes fixed on space
+as if they looked on some awful sight.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Hester! Hester! What is it? Is there a bit o&rsquo; bad
+news for ye&rsquo; in the letter? Here, tak&rsquo; a sip o&rsquo; this, dear.
+Tak&rsquo; it, Hester; &rsquo;twill hairten ye up for whatever&rsquo;s intil&rsquo;t,&rdquo;
+cried Jean, holding to Hester&rsquo;s lips the ever ready
+Scotch remedy, which she had snatched from a wall cupboard
+behind her and poured out in a glass.</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_425' name='page_425'></a>425</span></div>
+<p>Ellen, who was lame and could not rise from her chair
+without help, did not cease her directions and ejaculations,
+lapsing into the broader Scotch of her girlhood under excitement,
+as was the way with both the women. &ldquo;Tell
+us what ails ye, dear; maybe it&rsquo;s no so bad. Gie me the
+letter, Jean, an&rsquo; I&rsquo;ll see what&rsquo;s intil&rsquo;t. Ring the bell for
+Tillie an&rsquo; we&rsquo;ll get her to the couch.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>But Hester caught Jean&rsquo;s gown and would not let her
+go to the bell cord which hung in the far corner of the room.
+&ldquo;No, don&rsquo;t call her. I&rsquo;ll lie down a moment, and&ndash;&ndash;and&ndash;&ndash;we&rsquo;ll
+talk&ndash;&ndash;this&ndash;&ndash;over.&rdquo; She clung to the letter and
+would not let it out of her hand, but rose and walked wearily
+to the couch unassisted and lay down, closing her eyes.
+&ldquo;After a minute, Aunt Ellen, I&rsquo;ll tell you. I must think,
+I must think.&rdquo; So she lay quietly, gathering all her force
+to consider and meet what she must, as her way was, while
+Jean sat beside, stroking her hand and saying sweet, comforting
+words in her broad Scotch.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;There&rsquo;s neathin&rsquo; so guid as a drap of whuskey, dear, for
+strengthnin&rsquo; the hairt whan ye hae a bit shock. It&rsquo;s no
+yer mon, Peter? No? Weel, thank the Lord for that.
+Noo, tak ye anither bit sup, for ye ha&rsquo;e na tasted it. Wull
+ye no gie Ellen the letter, love? &rsquo;Twill save ye tellin&rsquo; her.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Hester passively took the whisky as she was bid, and
+presently sat up and finished reading the letter. &ldquo;Peter
+has been hiding&ndash;&ndash;something from me for&ndash;&ndash;three years&ndash;&ndash;and
+now&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes, an&rsquo; noo. It&rsquo;s aye the way wi&rsquo; them that hides&ndash;&ndash;whan
+the day comes they maun reveal&ndash;&ndash;it&rsquo;s only the mair
+to their shame,&rdquo; exclaimed Ellen.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, but it&rsquo;s all mixed up&ndash;&ndash;and my best friend doesn&rsquo;t
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_426' name='page_426'></a>426</span>
+know the truth. Yes, take the letter, Aunt Ellen, and read
+it yourself.&rdquo; She held out the pages with a shaking hand,
+and Jean took them over to her sister, who slowly read them
+in silence.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Ah, noo. As I tell&rsquo;t ye, it&rsquo;s no so bad,&rdquo; she said at last.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Wha&rsquo;s the trouble, Ellen? Don&rsquo;t keep us waitin&rsquo;.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Bide ye in patience, child. Ye&rsquo;re always so easily
+excitet. I maun read the letter again to get the gist o&rsquo;t,
+but it&rsquo;s like this. The Elder&rsquo;s been of the opeenion noo
+these three years that his son was most foully murder&rsquo;t,
+an&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;He may ha&rsquo;e been kill&rsquo;t, but he was no&rsquo; murder&rsquo;t,&rdquo;
+cried Jean, excitedly. &ldquo;I tell ye &rsquo;twas purely by accident&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;
+she paused and suddenly clapped both hands over her
+mouth and rocked herself back and forth as if she had made
+some egregious blunder, then: &ldquo;Gang on wi&rsquo; yer tellin&rsquo;.
+It&rsquo;s dour to bide waitin&rsquo;. Gie me the letter an&rsquo; lat me read
+it for mysel&rsquo;.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Lat me tell&rsquo;t as I maun tell&rsquo;t. Ye maun no keep interruptin&rsquo;.
+Jean has no order in her brain. She aye pits
+the last first an&rsquo; the first last. This is a hopefu&rsquo; letter
+an&rsquo; a guid ain from yer friend, an&rsquo; it tells ye yer son&rsquo;s
+leevin&rsquo; an&rsquo; no murder&rsquo;t&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Thank the Lord! I ha&rsquo;e aye said it,&rdquo; ejaculated Jean,
+fervently.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Ye ha&rsquo;e aye said it? Child, what mean ye? Ye ha&rsquo;e
+kenned naethin&rsquo; aboot it.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>But Jean would not be set down. She leaned forward
+with glistening eyes. &ldquo;I ha&rsquo;e aye said it. I ha&rsquo;e aye said
+it. Gie me the letter, Ellen.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>But Ellen only turned composedly and resumed her interpretation
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_427' name='page_427'></a>427</span>
+of the letter to Hester, who sat looking with
+dazed expression from one aunt to the other.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;It all comes about from Peter&rsquo;s bein&rsquo; a stubborn man,
+an&rsquo; he&rsquo;ll no change the opeenion he&rsquo;s held for three years
+wi&rsquo;oot a struggle. Here comes his boy back an&rsquo; says, &lsquo;I&rsquo;m
+Peter Junior, and yer son.&rsquo; An&rsquo; his feyther says till him,
+&lsquo;Ye&rsquo;re no my son, for my son was murder&rsquo;t&ndash;&ndash;an&rsquo; ye&rsquo;re
+Richard Kildene wha&rsquo; murder&rsquo;t him.&rsquo; And noo, it&rsquo;s for
+ye to go home, Hester, an&rsquo; bring Peter to his senses, and
+show him the truth. A mither knows her ain boy, an&rsquo; if
+it&rsquo;s Peter Junior, it&rsquo;s Peter Junior, and Richard Kildene&rsquo;s
+died.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I tell ye he&rsquo;s no dead!&rdquo; cried Jean, springing to her feet.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Hush, child. He maun be dead, for ain of them&rsquo;s dead,
+and this is Peter Junior.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Read it again, Aunt Ellen,&rdquo; said Hester, wearily.
+&ldquo;You&rsquo;ll see that the Elder brings a fearful charge against
+Richard. He thinks Richard is making a false claim that
+he is&ndash;&ndash;Peter&ndash;&ndash;my boy.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Jean sat back in her chair crying silently and shrinking
+into herself as if she were afraid to say more, and Ellen went
+on. &ldquo;Listen, now, what yer frien&rsquo; says. &lsquo;The Elder is
+wrong, for Bertrand&rsquo;&ndash;&ndash;that&rsquo;s her husband, I&rsquo;m thinkin&rsquo;&ndash;&ndash;?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;&lsquo;Bertrand and Betty,&ndash;&ndash;&rsquo; Who&rsquo;s Betty, noo?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Betty is their daughter. She was to&ndash;&ndash;have&ndash;&ndash;married
+my son.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Good. So she would know her lover. &lsquo;Betty and I
+have seen him,&rsquo; she says, &lsquo;and have talked with him, and
+we know he is Peter Junior,&rsquo; she says. &lsquo;Richard Kildene
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_428' name='page_428'></a>428</span>
+has disappeared,&rsquo; she says, &lsquo;and yet we know he is living
+somewhere and he must be found. We fear the Elder will
+not withdraw the charge until Richard is located&rsquo;&ndash;&ndash;An&rsquo;
+that will be like Peter, too&ndash;&ndash;&lsquo;and meanwhile your son
+Peter will have to lie in jail, where he is now, unless you can
+clear matters up here by coming home and identifying
+him, and that you can surely do.&rsquo;&ndash;&ndash;An&rsquo; that&rsquo;s all vera weel.
+There&rsquo;s neathin&rsquo; to go distraught over in the like o&rsquo; that.
+An&rsquo; here she says, &lsquo;He&rsquo;s a noble, fine-looking man, and
+you&rsquo;ll be proud of him when you see him.&rsquo; Oh, &rsquo;tis a fine
+letter, an&rsquo; it&rsquo;s Peter wi&rsquo; his stubbornness has been makin&rsquo;
+a boggle o&rsquo; things. If I were na lame, I&rsquo;d go back wi&rsquo; ye
+an&rsquo; gie Peter a piece o&rsquo; my mind.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;An&rsquo; I&rsquo;ll locate Richard for ye!&rdquo; cried Jean, rising to her
+feet and wiping away the fast-falling tears, laughing and
+weeping all in the same moment. &ldquo;Whish&rsquo;t, Ellen, it&rsquo;s
+ye&rsquo;rsel&rsquo; that kens neathin&rsquo; aboot it, an&rsquo; I&rsquo;ll tell ye the truth
+the noo&ndash;&ndash;that I&rsquo;ve kept to mysel&rsquo; this lang time till my
+conscience has nigh whupped me intil my grave.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Tak&rsquo; a drap o&rsquo; whuskey, Jean, ye&rsquo;re flyin&rsquo; oot o&rsquo; yer
+heid. It&rsquo;s the hystiricks she&rsquo;s takin&rsquo;.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Ah, no! What is it, Aunt Jean? What is it?&rdquo; cried
+Hester, eagerly, drawing her to the seat by her side again.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;It&rsquo;s no the hystiricks,&rdquo; cried Jean, rocking back and
+forth and patting her hands on her knees and speaking between
+laughing and crying. &ldquo;It&rsquo;s the truth at last, that I&rsquo;ve
+been lyin&rsquo; aboot these three lang years, thank the Lord!&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Jean, is it thankin&rsquo; the Lord ye are, for lyin&rsquo;?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Ellen, ye mind whan ye broke ye&rsquo;r leg an&rsquo; lay in the
+south chamber that lang sax months?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Aye, weel do I mind it.&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_429' name='page_429'></a>429</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;Lat be wi&rsquo; ye&rsquo;re interruptin&rsquo; while I tell&rsquo;t. He came
+here.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Who came here?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Richard&ndash;&ndash;the poor lad! He tell&rsquo;t me all aboot it.
+How he had a mad anger on him, an&rsquo; kill&rsquo;t his cousin Peter
+Junior whan they&rsquo;d been like brithers all their lives, an&rsquo;
+hoo he pushed him over the brink o&rsquo; a gre&rsquo;t precipice to his
+death, an&rsquo; hoo he must forever flee fra&rsquo; the law an&rsquo; his
+uncle&rsquo;s wrath. Noo it&rsquo;s&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, Aunt Jean!&rdquo; cried Hester, despairingly. &ldquo;Don&rsquo;t
+you see that what you say only goes to prove my husband
+right? Yet how could he claim to be Peter&ndash;&ndash;it&ndash;&ndash;it&rsquo;s
+not like the boy. Richard never, never would&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;He may ha&rsquo; been oot o&rsquo; his heid thinkin&rsquo; he pushed him
+over the brink. I ha&rsquo;e na much opeenion o&rsquo; the judgment
+o&rsquo; a man ony way. They never know whan to be set, an&rsquo;
+whan to gie in. Think shame to yersel&rsquo;, Jean, to be
+hidin&rsquo; things fra me the like o&rsquo; that an&rsquo; then lyin&rsquo; to me.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;He was repentit, Ellen. Ye can na&rsquo; tak the power o&rsquo;
+the Lord in yer ain han&rsquo;s an&rsquo; gie a man up to the law whan
+he&rsquo;s repentit. If ye&rsquo;d seen him an&rsquo; heard the words o&rsquo; him
+and seen him greet, ye would ha&rsquo; hid him in yer hairt an&rsquo;
+covered wi&rsquo; the mantle o&rsquo; charity, as I did. Moreover, I
+saved ye from dour lyin&rsquo; yersel&rsquo;. Ye mind whan that man
+that Peter sent here to find Richard came, hoo ye said till
+him that Richard had never been here? Ye never knew
+why for that man wanted Richard, but I knew an&rsquo; I never
+tell&rsquo;t ye. An&rsquo; if ye had known what I knew, ye never could
+ha&rsquo; tell&rsquo;t him what ye did so roundly an&rsquo; sent him aboot his
+business wi&rsquo; a straight face.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;An&rsquo; noo whaur is Richard?&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_430' name='page_430'></a>430</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;He&rsquo;s awa&rsquo; in Paris pentin&rsquo; pictures. He went there to
+learn to be a penter.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;An&rsquo; whaur gat he the money to go wi&rsquo;? There&rsquo;s whaur
+the new black silk dress went ye should ha&rsquo; bought yersel&rsquo;
+that year. Ye lat me think it went to the doctor. Child!
+Child!&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes, sister; I lee&rsquo;d to ye. It&rsquo;s been a heavy sin on my
+soul an&rsquo; ye may well thank the Lord it&rsquo;s no been on yer
+ain. But hark ye noo. It&rsquo;s all come back to me. Here&rsquo;s
+the twenty pun&rsquo; I gave him. It&rsquo;s come back wi&rsquo; interest.&rdquo;
+Proudly Jean drew from her bosom an envelope containing
+forty pounds in bank notes. &ldquo;Look ye, hoo he&rsquo;s doubl&rsquo;t
+it?&rdquo; Again she laughed through her tears.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;And you know where he is&ndash;&ndash;and can find him?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes, Hester, dear, I know. He took a new name. It
+was Robert Kater he called himsel&rsquo;. So, there he&rsquo;s been
+pentin&rsquo; pictures. Go, Hester, an&rsquo; find yer son, an&rsquo; I&rsquo;ll
+find Richard. Ellen, ye&rsquo;ll have to do wi&rsquo; Tillie for a week
+an&rsquo; a bit,&ndash;&ndash;I&rsquo;m going to Paris to find Richard.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Ye&rsquo;ll do nae sic&rsquo; thing. Ye&rsquo;ll find him by post.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I&rsquo;ll trust to nae letter the noo, Ellen. Letters aften
+gang astray, but I&rsquo;ll no gang astray.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, child, child! It&rsquo;s a sorrowful thing I&rsquo;m lame an&rsquo;
+can na&rsquo; gang wi&rsquo; ye. What are ye doin&rsquo;, Hester?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I&rsquo;m hunting for the newspaper. Don&rsquo;t they put the
+railroad time-tables in the paper over here, or must I go
+to the station to inquire about trains?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Ye&rsquo;d better ask at the station. I&rsquo;ll go wi&rsquo; ye. Ye
+might boggle it by yersel&rsquo;. Ring for Tillie, Jean. She
+can help me oot o&rsquo; my chair an&rsquo; get me dressed, while ye&rsquo;re
+lookin&rsquo; after yer ain packin&rsquo;, Jean.&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_431' name='page_431'></a>431</span></div>
+<p>So the masterful old lady immediately began to superintend
+the hasty departure of both Hester and Jean. The
+whole procedure was unprecedented and wholly out of the
+normal course of things, but if duty called, they must go,
+whether she liked the thought of their going or not. So she
+sent Tillie to call a cab, and contented herself with bewailing
+the stubbornness of Peter, her nephew.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;It was aye so, whan he was a lad playin&rsquo; wi&rsquo; Jean an&rsquo;
+Katherine, whiles whan his feyther lat his mither bring
+Katherine and him back to Scotland on a veesit. Jean
+and Katherine maun gie in til him if they liket it or no.
+I&rsquo;ve watched them mony&rsquo;s the time, when he would haud
+them up in their play by the hour together, arguyin&rsquo; which
+should be horse an&rsquo; which should be driver, an&rsquo; it was
+always Peter that won his way wi&rsquo; them. Is the cab there,
+Tillie? Then gie me my crutch. Hester, are you ready?
+Jean, I&rsquo;ll find oot for ye all aboot the trains for Dover. Ye
+maun gang direc&rsquo; an&rsquo; no loiter by the way. Come, Hester.
+I doot she ought not to be goin&rsquo; aboot alone. Paris is an&rsquo;
+awfu&rsquo; like place for a woman body to be goin&rsquo; aboot alone.
+But it canna&rsquo; be helpit. What&rsquo;s an old woman like me wi&rsquo;
+only one sound leg and a pair o&rsquo; crutches, to go on sic&rsquo; like
+a journey?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;If I could, I&rsquo;d take you home with me, Aunt Ellen; if I
+were only sure of the outcome of this trouble, I would anyway&ndash;&ndash;but
+to take you there to a home of sorrow&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;There, Hester, dear. Don&rsquo;t ye greet. It&rsquo;s my opeenion
+ye&rsquo;re goin&rsquo; to find yer son an&rsquo; tak him in yer arms
+ance mair. Ye were never the right wife for Peter. I can
+see that. Ye&rsquo;re too saft an&rsquo; gentle.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I&rsquo;m thinking how Peter has borne this trouble alone,
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_432' name='page_432'></a>432</span>
+all these years, and suffered, trying to keep the sorrow from
+me.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes, dear, yes. Peter told us all aboot it whan he was
+here, an&rsquo; he bade us not to lat ye ken a word aboot it, but to
+keep from ye all knowledge of it. Noo it&rsquo;s come to ye by
+way of this letter fra yer frien&rsquo;, an&rsquo; I&rsquo;m thinkin&rsquo; it&rsquo;s the
+best way; for noo, at last ye ha&rsquo;e it in ye&rsquo;re power to go an&rsquo;
+maybe save an innocent man, for it&rsquo;s no like a son of our
+Katherine would be sic&rsquo; like a base coward as to try to win
+oot from justice by lyin&rsquo; himsel&rsquo; intil his victim&rsquo;s own
+home. I&rsquo;ll no think it.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Nor I, Aunt Ellen. It&rsquo;s unbelievable! And of Richard&ndash;&ndash;no.
+I loved Richard. He was like my own son to me&ndash;&ndash;and
+Peter Junior loved him, too. They may have
+quarreled&ndash;&ndash;and even he might&ndash;&ndash;in a moment of anger,
+he might have killed my boy,&ndash;&ndash;but surely he would never
+do a thing like this. They are making some horrible mistake,
+or Mary Ballard would never have written me.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Noo ye&rsquo;re talkin&rsquo; sense. Keep up courage an&rsquo; never
+tak an&rsquo; affliction upo&rsquo; yersel&rsquo; until it&rsquo;s thrust upo&rsquo; ye by
+Providence.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Thus good Aunt Ellen in her neat black bonnet and shawl
+and black mits, seated at Hester&rsquo;s side in the cab holding
+to her crutches, comforted and admonished her niece all
+the way to the station and back, and the next day she
+bravely bade Jean and Hester both good-by and settled
+herself in her armchair to wait patiently for news from
+them.</p>
+<hr class='toprule' />
+<div class='chsp'>
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_433' name='page_433'></a>433</span>
+<a name='CHAPTER_XXXIV_JEAN_CRAIGMILES_RETURN' id='CHAPTER_XXXIV_JEAN_CRAIGMILES_RETURN'></a>
+<h2>CHAPTER XXXIV</h2>
+<h3>JEAN CRAIGMILE&rsquo;S RETURN</h3>
+</div>
+<p>When at last Jean Craigmile returned, a glance at her
+face was quite enough to convince Ellen that things had not
+gone well. She held her peace, however, until her sister
+had had time to remove her bonnet and her shawl and dress
+herself for the house, before she broke in upon Jean&rsquo;s grim
+silence. Then she said:&ndash;&ndash;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Weel, Jean. I&rsquo;m thinkin&rsquo; ye&rsquo;d better oot wi&rsquo; it.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Is Tillie no goin&rsquo; to bring in the tea? It&rsquo;s past the
+hour. I see she grows slack, wantin&rsquo; me to look after her.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Ring for it then, Jean. I&rsquo;m no for leavin&rsquo; my chair to
+ring for it.&rdquo; So Jean pulled the cord and the tea was
+brought in due time, with hot scones and the unwonted
+addition of a bowl of roses to grace the tray.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;The posies are a greetin&rsquo; to ye, Jean; I ordered them
+mysel&rsquo;. Weel? An&rsquo; so ye ha&rsquo;na&rsquo; found him?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, sister, my hairt&rsquo;s heavy an&rsquo; sair. I canna&rsquo; thole to
+tell ye.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;But ye maun do&rsquo;t, an&rsquo; the sooner ye tell&rsquo;t the sooner
+ye&rsquo;ll ha&rsquo;e it over.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;He was na&rsquo; there. Oh, Ellen, Ellen! He&rsquo;d gone to
+America! I&rsquo;m afraid the Elder is right an&rsquo; Hester has gone
+home to get her death blow. Why were we so precipitate
+in lettin&rsquo; her go?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Jean, tell me all aboot it, an&rsquo; I&rsquo;ll pit my mind to it and
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_434' name='page_434'></a>434</span>
+help ye think it oot. Don&rsquo;t ye leave oot a thing fra&rsquo; the
+time ye left me till the noo.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Slowly Jean poured her sister&rsquo;s tea and handed it to her.
+&ldquo;Tak&rsquo; yer scones while they&rsquo;re hot, Ellen. I went to the
+place whaur he&rsquo;d been leevin&rsquo;. I had the direction all right,
+but whan I called, I found anither man in possession.
+The man was an Englishman, so I got on vera weel for the
+speakin&rsquo;. It&rsquo;s little I could do with they Frenchmen. He
+was a dirty like man, an&rsquo; he was daubin&rsquo; away at a picture
+whan I opened the door an&rsquo; walked in. I said to him,
+&lsquo;Whaur&rsquo;s Richard&rsquo;&ndash;&ndash;no, no, no. I said to him, calling
+Richard by the name he&rsquo;s been goin&rsquo; by, I said, &lsquo;Whaur&rsquo;s
+Robert Kater?&rsquo; He jumped up an&rsquo; began figitin&rsquo; aboot
+the room, settin&rsquo; me a chair an&rsquo; the like, an&rsquo; I asked again,
+&lsquo;Is this the pentin&rsquo; room o&rsquo; Robert Kater?&rsquo; an&rsquo; he said,
+&lsquo;It was his room, yes.&rsquo; Then he asked me was I any kin
+to him, an&rsquo; I told him, did he think I would come walkin&rsquo;
+into his place the like o&rsquo; that if I was no kin to him? An&rsquo;
+then he began tellin&rsquo; me a string o&rsquo; talk an&rsquo; I could na&rsquo;
+mak&rsquo; head nor tail o&rsquo;t, so I asked again, &lsquo;If ye&rsquo;re a friend
+o&rsquo; his, wull ye tell me whaur he&rsquo;s gone?&rsquo; an&rsquo; then he said it
+straight oot, &lsquo;To Ameriky,&rsquo; an&rsquo; it fair broke my hairt.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>For a minute Jean sat and sipped her tea, and wiped the
+tears from her eyes; then she took up the thread of her
+story again.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Then he seemed all at once to bethink himsel&rsquo; o&rsquo; something,
+an&rsquo; he ran to his coat that was hangin&rsquo; behind the
+door on a nail, an&rsquo; he drew oot a letter fra the pocket, an&rsquo;
+here it is.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;&lsquo;Are ye Robert&rsquo;s Aunt Jean?&rsquo; he asked, and I tell&rsquo;t him,
+an&rsquo;, &lsquo;Surely,&rsquo; he said, &lsquo;an&rsquo; I did na&rsquo; think ye old enough to
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_435' name='page_435'></a>435</span>
+be his Aunt Jean.&rsquo; Then he began to excuse himsel&rsquo; for
+forgettin&rsquo; to mail that letter. &lsquo;I promised him I would,&rsquo; he
+said, &lsquo;but ye see, I have na&rsquo; been wearin&rsquo; my best coat
+since he left, an&rsquo; that&rsquo;s why. We gave him a banket,&rsquo; he
+says, &lsquo;an&rsquo; I wore my best coat to the banket, an&rsquo; he gave me
+this an&rsquo; told me to mail it after he was well away,&rsquo; an&rsquo; he
+says, &lsquo;I knew I ought not to put it in this coat pocket, for
+I&rsquo;d forget it,&rsquo;&ndash;&ndash;an&rsquo; so he ran on; but it was no so good a
+coat, for the lining was a&rsquo; torn an&rsquo; it was gray wi&rsquo; dust, for
+I took it an&rsquo; brushed it an&rsquo; mended it mysel&rsquo; before I left
+Paris.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Again Jean paused, and taking out her neatly folded handkerchief
+wiped away the falling tears, and sipped a moment
+at her tea in silence.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Tak&rsquo; ye a bit o&rsquo; the scones, Jean. Ye&rsquo;ll no help matters
+by goin&rsquo; wi&rsquo;oot eatin&rsquo;. If the lad&rsquo;s done a shamefu&rsquo; like
+thing, ye&rsquo;ll no help him by greetin&rsquo;. He maun fall. Ye&rsquo;ve
+done yer best I doot, although mistakenly to try to keep
+it fra me.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;He was sae bonny, Ellen, and that like his mither
+&rsquo;twould melt the hairt oot o&rsquo; ye to look on him.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Ha&rsquo;e ye no mair to tell me? Surely it never took ye
+these ten days to find oot what ye ha&rsquo;e tell&rsquo;t.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;The man was a kind sort o&rsquo; a body, an&rsquo; he took me oot
+to eat wi&rsquo; him at a cafy, an&rsquo; he paid it himsel&rsquo;, but I&rsquo;m
+thinkin&rsquo; his purse was sair empty whan he got through wi&rsquo;
+it. I could na&rsquo; help it. Men are vera masterfu&rsquo; bodies.
+I made it up to him though, for I bided a day or twa at
+the hotel, an&rsquo; went to the room,&ndash;&ndash;the pentin&rsquo; room whaur
+I found him&ndash;&ndash;there was whaur he stayed, for he was keepin&rsquo;
+things as they were, he said, for the one who was to come
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_436' name='page_436'></a>436</span>
+into they things&ndash;&ndash;Robert Kater had left there&ndash;&ndash;ye&rsquo;ll find
+oot aboot them whan ye read the letter&ndash;&ndash;an&rsquo; I made it
+as clean as ye&rsquo;r han&rsquo; before I left him. He made a dour
+face whan he came in an&rsquo; found me at it, but I&rsquo;m thinkin&rsquo;
+he came to like it after a&rsquo;, for I heard him whustlin&rsquo; to
+himsel&rsquo; as I went down the stair after tellin&rsquo; him
+good-by.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Gin ye had seen the dirt I took oot o&rsquo; that room, Ellen,
+ye would a&rsquo; held up ye&rsquo;r two han&rsquo;s in horror. There were
+crusts an&rsquo; bones behind the pictures standin&rsquo; against the
+wa&rsquo; that the rats an&rsquo; mice had been gnawin&rsquo; there, an&rsquo;
+there were bottles on a shelf, old an&rsquo; empty an&rsquo; covered
+wi&rsquo; cobwebs an&rsquo; dust, an&rsquo; the floor was so thick wi&rsquo; dirt it
+had to be scrapit, an&rsquo; what wi&rsquo; old papers an&rsquo; rags I had a
+great basket full taken awa&ndash;&ndash;let be a bundle o&rsquo; shirts that
+needed mendin&rsquo;. I took the shirts to the hotel, an&rsquo; there I
+mended them until they were guid enough to wear, an&rsquo; sent
+them back. So there was as guid as the price o&rsquo; the denner
+he gave me, an&rsquo; naethin said. Noo read the letter an&rsquo;
+ye&rsquo;ll see why I&rsquo;m greetin&rsquo;. Richard&rsquo;s gone to Ameriky
+to perjure his soul. He says it was to gie himsel&rsquo; up to the
+law, but from the letter to Hester it&rsquo;s likely his courage
+failed him. There&rsquo;s naethin&rsquo; to mak&rsquo; o&rsquo;t but that&ndash;&ndash;an&rsquo;
+he sae bonny an&rsquo; sweet, like his mither.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Jean Craigmile threw her apron over her head and rocked
+herself back and forth, while Ellen set down her cup and
+reluctantly opened the letter&ndash;&ndash;many pages, in a long business
+envelope. She sighed as she took them out.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;It&rsquo;s a waefu&rsquo; thing how much trouble an&rsquo; sorrow a man
+body brings intil the world wi&rsquo; him. Noo there&rsquo;s Richard,
+trailin&rsquo; sorrow after him whaurever he goes.&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_437' name='page_437'></a>437</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;But ye mind it came from Katherine first, marryin&rsquo; wi&rsquo;
+Larry Kildene an&rsquo; rinnin&rsquo; awa&rsquo; wi&rsquo; him,&rdquo; replied Jean.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;It was Larry huntit her oot whaur she had been brought
+for safety.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>They both sat in silence while Ellen read the letter to
+the very end. At last, with a long, indrawn sigh, she
+spoke.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;It&rsquo;s no like a lad that could write sic a letter, to perjure
+his soul. No won&rsquo;er ye greet, Jean. He&rsquo;s gi&rsquo;en ye everything
+he possesses, wi&rsquo; one o&rsquo; the twa pictures in the Salon!
+Think o&rsquo;t! An&rsquo; a&rsquo; he got fra&rsquo; the ones he sold, except
+enough to take him to America. Ye canna&rsquo; tak&rsquo; it.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;No. I ha&rsquo;e gi&rsquo;en them to the Englishman wha&rsquo; has
+his room. I could na&rsquo; tak them.&rdquo; Jean continued to sway
+back and forth with her apron over her head.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Ye ha&rsquo;e gi&rsquo;en them awa&rsquo;! All they pictures pented by
+yer ain niece&rsquo;s son! An&rsquo; twa&rsquo; acceptit by the Salon!
+Child, child! I&rsquo;d no think it o&rsquo; ye.&rdquo; Ellen leaned forward
+in her chair reprovingly, with the letter crushed in her
+lap.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I told him to keep them safe, as he was doin&rsquo;, an&rsquo; if he
+got no word fra&rsquo; me after sax months,&ndash;&ndash;he was to bide in
+the room wi&rsquo; them&ndash;&ndash;they were his.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Weel, ye&rsquo;re wiser than I thought ye.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>For a long time they sat in silence, until at last Ellen
+took up the letter to read it again, and began with the date
+at the head.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Jean,&rdquo; she cried, holding it out to her sister and pointing
+to the date with shaking finger. &ldquo;Wull ye look at that
+noo! Are we both daft? It&rsquo;s no possible for him to ha&rsquo;
+gotten there before that letter was written to Hester. Look
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_438' name='page_438'></a>438</span>
+ye, Jean! Look ye! Here &rsquo;tis the third day o&rsquo; June it
+was written by his own hand.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Count it oot, Ellen, count it oot! Here&rsquo;s the calendar
+almanac. Noo we&rsquo;ll ha&rsquo;e it. It&rsquo;s twa weeks since Hester
+an&rsquo; I left an&rsquo; she got the letter the day before that, an&rsquo;
+that&rsquo;s fifteen days&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;An&rsquo; it takes twa weeks mair for a boat to cross the ocean,
+an&rsquo; that gives fourteen days mair before that letter to Hester
+was written, an&rsquo; three days fra&rsquo; Liverpool here, pits it back
+to seventeen days,&ndash;&ndash;an&rsquo; fifteen days&ndash;&ndash;mak&rsquo;s thirty-two
+days,&ndash;&ndash;an&rsquo; here&rsquo; it&rsquo;s nearin&rsquo; the last o&rsquo; June&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Jean! Whan Hester&rsquo;s frien&rsquo; was writin&rsquo; that letter to
+Hester, Richard was just sailin&rsquo; fra France! Thank the
+Lord!&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Thank the Lord!&rdquo; ejaculated her sister, fervently.
+&ldquo;Ellen, it&rsquo;s you for havin&rsquo; the head to think it oot, thank
+the Lord!&rdquo; And now the dear soul wept again for very
+gladness.</p>
+<p>Ellen folded her hands in her lap complaisantly and
+nodded her head. &ldquo;Ye&rsquo;ve a good head, yersel&rsquo;, Jean, but
+ye aye let yersel&rsquo; get excitet. Noo, it&rsquo;s only for us to bide
+in peace an&rsquo; quiet an&rsquo; know that the earth is the Lord&rsquo;s an&rsquo;
+the fullness thereof until we hear fra&rsquo; Hester.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;An&rsquo; may the Lord pit it in her hairt to write soon!&rdquo;</p>
+<p>While the good Craigmiles of Aberdeen were composing
+themselves to the hopeful view that Ellen&rsquo;s discovery of the
+date had given them, Larry Kildene and Amalia were seated
+in a car, luxurious for that day, speeding eastward over
+the desert across which Amalia and her father and mother
+had fled in fear and privation so short a time before. She
+gazed through the plate-glass windows and watched the
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_439' name='page_439'></a>439</span>
+quivering heat waves rising from the burning sands. Well
+she knew those terrible plains! She saw the bleaching
+bones of animals that had fallen by the way, even as their
+own had fallen, and her eyes filled. She remembered how
+Harry King had come to them one day, riding on his yellow
+horse&ndash;&ndash;riding out of the setting sun toward them, and how
+his companionship had comforted them and his courage and
+help had saved them more than once,&ndash;&ndash;and how, had it
+not been for him, their bones, too, might be lying there now,
+whitening in the heat. Oh, Harry, Harry King! She who
+had once crossed those very plains behind a jaded team
+now felt that the rushing train was crawling like a snail.</p>
+<p>Larry Kildene, seated facing her and watching her, leaned
+forward and touched her hand. &ldquo;We&rsquo;re going at an awful
+pace,&rdquo; he said. &ldquo;To think of ever crossing these plains
+with the speed of the wind!&rdquo;</p>
+<p>She smiled a wan smile. &ldquo;Yes, that is so. But it still
+is very slowly we go when I measure with my thoughts the
+swiftness. In my thoughts we should fly&ndash;&ndash;fly!&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;It will be only three days to Chicago from here, and then
+one night at a hotel to rest and clean up, and the next day
+we are there&ndash;&ndash;in Leauvite&ndash;&ndash;think of it! We&rsquo;re an hour
+late by the schedule, so better think of something else.
+We&rsquo;ll reach an eating station soon. Get ready, for there
+will be a rush, and we&rsquo;ll not have a chance for a good meal
+again for no one knows how long. Maybe you&rsquo;re not
+hungry, but I could eat a mule. I like this, do you know,
+traveling in comfort! To think of me&ndash;&ndash;going home to
+save Peter&rsquo;s bank!&rdquo; He chuckled to himself a moment;
+then resumed: &ldquo;And that&rsquo;s equivalent to saving the man&rsquo;s
+life. Well, it&rsquo;s a poor way for a man to go through life,
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_440' name='page_440'></a>440</span>
+able to see no way but his own way. It narrows his vision
+and shortens his reach&ndash;&ndash;for, see, let him find his way closed
+to him, and whoop! he&rsquo;s at an end.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Again Larry sat and watched her, as he silently chuckled
+over his present situation. Again he reached out and
+patted her hand, and again she smiled at him, but he knew
+where her thoughts were. Harry King had been gone but
+a short time when Madam Manovska, in spite of Amalia&rsquo;s
+watchfulness, wandered away for the last time. On this
+occasion she did not go toward the fall, but went along the
+trail toward the plains below. It was nearly evening when
+she eluded Amalia and left the cabin. Frantically they
+searched for her all night, riding through the darkness,
+carrying torches and calling in all directions, as far as they
+supposed her feet could have carried her, but did not find
+her until early morning, lying peacefully under a little
+scrub pine, far down the trail. By her side lay her husband&rsquo;s
+worn coat, with the lining torn away, and a small
+heap of ashes and charred papers. She had been destroying
+the documents he had guarded so long. She would not
+leave them to witness against him. Tenderly they took
+her up and carried her back to the cabin and laid her in her
+bunk, but she only babbled of &ldquo;Paul,&rdquo; telling happily that
+she had seen him, and that he was coming up the trail after
+her, and that now they would live on the mountain in
+peace and go no more to Poland&ndash;&ndash;and quickly after that
+she dropped to sleep again and never woke. She was with
+&ldquo;Paul&rdquo; at last. Then Amalia dressed her in the black
+silk Larry had brought her, and they carried her down the
+trail and laid her in a grave beside that of her husband, and
+there Larry read the prayers of the English church over the
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_441' name='page_441'></a>441</span>
+two lonely graves, while Amalia knelt at his side. When
+they went down the trail to take the train, after receiving
+Betty&rsquo;s letter, they marked the place with a cross which
+Larry had made.</p>
+<p>Truth to tell, as they sat in the car, facing each other,
+Larry himself was sad, although he tried to keep Amalia&rsquo;s
+thoughts cheerful. At last she woke to the thought that it
+was only for her he maintained that forced light-heartedness,
+and the realization came to her that he also had cause
+for sorrow on leaving the spot where he had so long lived in
+peace, to go to a friend in trouble. The thought helped her,
+and she began to converse with Larry instead of sitting
+silently, wrapped in her own griefs. Because her heart
+was with Harry King,&ndash;&ndash;filled with anxiety for him,&ndash;&ndash;she
+talked mostly of him, and that pleased Larry well; for he,
+too, had need to speak of Harry.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Now there is a character for you, as fine and sweet as
+a woman and strong, too! I&rsquo;ve seen enough of men to
+know the best of them when I find them. I saw it in him
+the moment I got him up to my cabin and laid him in my
+bunk. He&ndash;&ndash;he&ndash;&ndash;minded me of one that&rsquo;s gone.&rdquo; His
+voice dropped to the undertone of reminiscence. &ldquo;Of one
+that&rsquo;s long gone&ndash;&ndash;long gone.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Could you tell me about it, a little&ndash;&ndash;just a very little?&rdquo;
+Amalia leaned toward him pleadingly. It was the first
+time she had ever asked of Larry Kildene or Harry King a
+question that might seem like seeking to know a thing purposely
+kept from her. But her intuitive nature told her the
+time had now come when Larry longed to speak of himself,
+and the loneliness of his soul pleaded for him.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;It&rsquo;s little indeed I can tell you, for it&rsquo;s little he ever told
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_442' name='page_442'></a>442</span>
+me,&ndash;&ndash;but it came to me&ndash;&ndash;more than once&ndash;&ndash;more than
+once&ndash;&ndash;that he might be my own son.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Amalia recoiled with a shock of surprise. She drew in
+her breath and looked in his eyes eloquently. &ldquo;Oh! Oh!
+And you never asked him? No?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Not in so many words, no. But I&ndash;&ndash;I&ndash;&ndash;came near
+enough to give him the chance to tell the truth, if he
+would, but he had reasons of his own, and he would not.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Then&ndash;&ndash;where we go now&ndash;&ndash;to him&ndash;&ndash;you have been
+to that place before? Not?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I have.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;And he&ndash;&ndash;he knows it? Not?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;He knows it well. I told him it was there I left my son&ndash;&ndash;my
+little son&ndash;&ndash;but he would say nothing. I was not
+even sure he knew the place until these letters came to me.
+He has as yet written me no word, only the message he
+sent me in his letter to you&ndash;&ndash;that he will some time write
+me.&rdquo; Then Larry took Betty&rsquo;s letter from his pocket and
+turned it over and over, sadly. &ldquo;This letter tells me more
+than all else, but it sets me strangely adrift in my thoughts.
+It&rsquo;s not at all like what I had thought it might be.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Amalia leaned forward eagerly. &ldquo;Oh, tell me more&ndash;&ndash;a
+little, what you thought might be.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;This letter has added more to the heartache than all else
+that could be. Either Harry King is my son&ndash;&ndash;Richard
+Kildene&ndash;&ndash;or he is the son of the man who hated me and
+brought me sorrow. There you see the reason he would
+tell me nothing. He could not.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;But how is it that you do not know your own son?
+It is so strange.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Larry&rsquo;s eyes filled as he looked off over the arid plains.
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_443' name='page_443'></a>443</span>
+&ldquo;It&rsquo;s a long story&ndash;&ndash;that. I told it to him once to try to
+stir his heart toward me, but it was of no use, and I&rsquo;ll not
+tell it now&ndash;&ndash;but this. I&rsquo;d never looked on my boy since
+I held him in my arms&ndash;&ndash;a heartbroken man&ndash;&ndash;until he
+came to me there&ndash;&ndash;that is, if he were he. But if Harry
+King is my son, then he is all the more a liar and a coward&ndash;&ndash;if
+the claim against him is true. I can&rsquo;t have it so.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;It is not so. He is no liar and no coward.&rdquo; Amalia
+spoke with finality.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I tell you if he is not my son, then he is the son of the
+man who hated me&ndash;&ndash;but even that man will not own him
+as his son. The little girl who wrote this letter to me&ndash;&ndash;she
+pleads with me to come on and set them all right:
+but even she who loved him&ndash;&ndash;who has loved him, can
+urge no proof beyond her own consciousness, as to his
+identity; it is beyond my understanding.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;The little girl&ndash;&ndash;she&ndash;&ndash;she has loved your son&ndash;&ndash;she
+has loved Harry&ndash;&ndash;Harry King? Whom has she loved?&rdquo;
+Amalia only breathed the question.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;She has not said. I only read between the lines.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;How is it so&ndash;&ndash;you read between lines? What is it
+you read?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Larry saw he was making a mistake and resumed hurriedly:
+&ldquo;I&rsquo;ll tell you what little I know later, and we will go
+there and find out the rest, but it may be more to my sorrow
+than my joy. Perhaps that&rsquo;s why I&rsquo;m taking you there&ndash;&ndash;to
+be a help to me&ndash;&ndash;I don&rsquo;t know. I have a friend there
+who will take us both in, and who will understand as no one
+else.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I go to neither my joy nor my sorrow. They are of the
+world. I will be no more of the world&ndash;&ndash;but I will live
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_444' name='page_444'></a>444</span>
+only in love&ndash;&ndash;to the Christ. So may I find in my heart
+peace&ndash;&ndash;as the sweet sisters who guarded me in my childhood
+away from danger when that my father and mother
+were in fear and sorrow living&ndash;&ndash;they told me there only
+may one find peace from sorrow. I will go to them&ndash;&ndash;perhaps&ndash;&ndash;perhaps&ndash;&ndash;they
+will take me&ndash;&ndash;again&ndash;&ndash;I do not
+know. But I will go first with you, Sir Kildene, wherever
+you wish me to go. For you are my friend&ndash;&ndash;now, as no
+one else. But for you, I am on earth forever alone.&rdquo;</p>
+<hr class='toprule' />
+<div class='chsp'>
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_445' name='page_445'></a>445</span>
+<a name='CHAPTER_XXXV_THE_TRIAL' id='CHAPTER_XXXV_THE_TRIAL'></a>
+<h2>CHAPTER XXXV</h2>
+<h3>THE TRIAL</h3>
+</div>
+<p>After Mr. Ballard&rsquo;s visit to the jail, he took upon himself
+to do what he could for the young man, out of sympathy
+and friendship toward both parties, and in the cause of
+simple justice. He consulted the only available counsel
+left him in Leauvite, a young lawyer named Nathan Goodbody,
+whom he knew but slightly.</p>
+<p>He told him as much of the case as he thought proper,
+and then gave him a note to the prisoner, addressing him
+as Harry King. Armed with this letter the young lawyer
+was soon in close consultation with his new client. Despite
+Nathan Goodbody&rsquo;s youth Harry was favorably impressed.
+The young man was so interested, so alert, so confident
+that all would be well. He seemed to believe so completely
+the story Harry told him, and took careful notes of it, saying
+he would prepare a brief of the facts and the law, and
+that Harry might safely leave everything to him.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You were wounded in the hip, you say,&rdquo; Nathan Goodbody
+questioned him. &ldquo;We must not neglect the smallest
+item that may help you, for your case needs strengthening.
+You say you were lamed by it&ndash;&ndash;but you seem to have recovered
+from that. Is there no scar?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;That will not help me. My cousin was wounded also,
+but his was only a flesh wound from which he quickly recovered
+and of which he thought nothing. I doubt if any
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_446' name='page_446'></a>446</span>
+one here in Leauvite ever heard of it, but it&rsquo;s the irony of
+fate that he was more badly scarred by it than I. He was
+struck by a spent bullet that tore the flesh only, while the
+one that hit me went cleanly to the bone, and splintered it.
+Mine laid me up for a year before I could even walk with
+crutches, while he was back at his post in a week.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;And both wounds were in the same place&ndash;&ndash;on the same
+side, for instance?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;On the same side, yes; but his was lower down. Mine
+entered the hip here, while he was struck about here.&rdquo;
+Harry indicated the places with a touch of his finger. &ldquo;I
+think it would be best to say nothing about the scars, unless
+forced to do so, for I walk as well now as I ever did, and that
+will be against me.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;That&rsquo;s a pity, now, isn&rsquo;t it? Suppose you try to get
+back a little of the old limp.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Harry laughed. &ldquo;No, I&rsquo;ll walk straight. Besides they&rsquo;ve
+seen me on the street, and even in my father&rsquo;s bank.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Too bad, too bad. Why did you do it?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;How could I guess there would be such an impossible
+development? Until I saw Miss Ballard here in this cell
+I thought my cousin dead. Why, my reason for coming
+here was to confess my crime, but they won&rsquo;t give me the
+chance. They arrest me first of all for killing myself. Now
+that I know my cousin lives I don&rsquo;t seem to care what
+happens to me, except for&ndash;&ndash;others.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;But man! You must put up a fight. Suppose your
+cousin is no longer living; you don&rsquo;t want to spend the rest
+of your life in the penitentiary because he can&rsquo;t be found.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I see. If he is living, this whole trial is a farce, and if
+he is not, it&rsquo;s a tragedy.&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_447' name='page_447'></a>447</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;We&rsquo;ll never let it become a tragedy, I&rsquo;ll promise you
+that.&rdquo; The young man spoke with smiling confidence, but
+when he reached his office again and had closed the door
+behind him, his manner changed quickly to seriousness and
+doubt.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know,&rdquo; he said to himself, &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know if this
+story can be made to satisfy a jury or not. A little shady.
+Too much coincidence to suit me.&rdquo; He sat drumming
+with his fingers on his desk for a while, and then rose and
+turned to his books. &ldquo;I&rsquo;ll have a little law on this case,&ndash;&ndash;some
+point upon which we can go to the Supreme Court,&rdquo;
+and for the rest of that day and long into the night Nathan
+Goodbody consulted with his library.</p>
+<p>In anticipation of the unusual public interest the District
+Attorney directed the summoning of twenty-five jurors in
+addition to the twenty-five of the regular panel. On the
+day set for the trial the court room was packed to the doors.
+Inside the bar were the lawyers and the officers of the court.
+Elder Craigmile sat by Milton Hibbard. In the front
+seats just outside the bar were the fifty jurors and back of
+them were the ladies who had come early, or who had been
+given the seats of their gentlemen friends who had come
+early, and whose gallantry had momentarily gotten the
+better of their judgment.</p>
+<p>The stillness of the court room, like that of a church,
+was suddenly broken by the entrance of the judge, a tall,
+spare man, with gray hair and a serious outlook upon life.
+As he walked toward his seat, the lawyers and officers of
+the court rose and stood until he was seated. The clerk of
+the court read from a large book the journal of the court of
+the previous day and then handed the book to the judge to
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_448' name='page_448'></a>448</span>
+be signed. When this ceremony was completed, the judge
+took up the court calender and said,&ndash;&ndash;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;The State <i>v.</i> Richard Kildene,&rdquo; and turning to the lawyers
+engaged in the case added, &ldquo;Gentlemen, are you
+ready?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;We are ready,&rdquo; answered the District Attorney.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Bring in the prisoner.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>When Harry entered the court room in charge of the
+sheriff, he looked neither to the right nor to the left, and
+saw no one before him but his own counsel, who arose and
+extended a friendly hand, and led him to a seat beside himself
+within the bar.</p>
+<p>Nathan Goodbody then rose, and, addressing the court
+with an air of confident modesty, as if he were bringing
+forward a point so strong as to require nothing more than
+the simple statement to give it weight, said:&ndash;&ndash;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;If the court please, the defense is ready, but I have
+noticed, as no doubt the court has noticed, a distinguished
+member of this bar sitting with the District Attorney as
+though it were intended that he should take part in the trial
+of this case, and I am advised that he intends to do so. I
+am also advised that he is in the employ of the complaining
+witness who sits beside him, and that he has received, or
+expects to receive, compensation from him for his services.
+I desire at the outset of this case to raise a question as to
+whether counsel employed and paid by a private person
+has a right to assist in the prosecution of a criminal cause.
+I therefore object to the appearance of Mr. Hibbard as
+counsel in this case, and to his taking any part in this trial.
+If the facts I have stated are questioned, I will ask Elder
+Craigmile to be sworn.&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_449' name='page_449'></a>449</span></div>
+<p>The court replied: &ldquo;I shall assume the facts to be as
+stated by you unless the counsel on the other side dissent
+from such a statement. Considering the facts to be as
+stated, your objection raises a novel question. Have you
+any authorities?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I do not know that the Supreme Court of this State
+has passed upon this question. I do not think it has, but
+my objection finds support in the well-established rule in
+this country, that a public prosecutor acts in a quasi-judicial
+capacity. His object, like that of the court, should be
+simple justice. The District Attorney represents the public
+interest which can never be promoted by the conviction of
+the innocent. As the District Attorney himself could not
+accept a fee or reward from private parties, so, I urge, counsel
+employed to assist him must be equally disinterested.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;The court considers the question an interesting one, but
+the practice in the past has been against your contention.
+I will overrule your objection, and give you an exception.
+Mr. Clerk, call a jury!&rdquo;<a name='FNanchor_0001' id='FNanchor_0001'></a><a href='#Footnote_0001' class='fnanchor'>[1]</a></p>
+<p>Then came the wearisome technicalities of the empaneling
+of a jury, with challenges for cause and peremptory
+challenges, until nearly the entire panel of fifty jurors
+was exhausted.</p>
+<p>In this way two days were spent, with a result that when
+counsel on both sides expressed themselves as satisfied
+with the jury, every one in the court room doubted it. As
+the sheriff confided to the clerk, it was an even bet that the
+first twelve men drawn were safer for both sides than the
+twelve men who finally stood with uplifted hands and were
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_450' name='page_450'></a>450</span>
+again sworn by the clerk. Harry King, who had never
+witnessed a trial in his life, began to grow interested in
+these details quite aside from his own part therein. He
+watched the clerk shaking the box, wondering why he did
+so, until he saw the slips of paper being drawn forth one by
+one from the small aperture on the top, and listened while
+the name written on each was called aloud. Some of the
+names were familiar to him, and it seemed as if he must
+turn about and speak to the men who responded to their
+roll call, saying &ldquo;here&rdquo; as each rose in his place behind him.
+But he resisted the impulse, never turning his head, and only
+glancing curiously at each man as he took his seat in the
+jury box at the order of the judge.</p>
+<p>During all these proceedings the Elder sat looking
+straight before him, glancing at the prisoner only when
+obliged to do so, and coldly as an outsider might do. The
+trial was taking more time than he had thought possible,
+and he saw no reason for such lengthy technicalities and
+the delay in calling the witnesses. His air was worn and
+weary.</p>
+<p>The prisoner, sitting beside his counsel, had taken less
+and less interest in the proceedings, and the crowds, who
+had at first filled the court room, had also lost interest and
+had drifted off about their own affairs until the real business
+of the taking of testimony should come on, till, at the close
+of the second day, the court room was almost empty of
+visitors. The prisoner was glad to see them go. So many
+familiar faces, faces from whom he might reasonably expect
+a smile, or a handshake, were it possible, or at the
+very least a nod of recognition, all with their eyes fixed on
+him, in a blank gaze of aloofness or speculation. He felt
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_451' name='page_451'></a>451</span>
+as if his soul must have been in some way separated from
+his body, and then returned to it to find all the world gazing
+at the place where his soul should be without seeing that it
+had returned and was craving their intelligent support.
+The whole situation seemed to him cruelly impossible,&ndash;&ndash;a
+sort of insane delusion. Only one face never failed him,
+that of Bertrand Ballard, who sat where he might now and
+then meet his eye, and who never left the court room while
+the case was on.</p>
+<p>When the time arrived for the introduction of the witnesses,
+the court room again filled up; but he no longer
+looked for faces he knew. He held himself sternly aloof,
+as if he feared his reason might leave him if he continued
+to strive against those baffling eyes, who knew him and
+did not know that they knew him, but who looked at
+him as if trying to penetrate a mask when he wore no
+mask. Occasionally his counsel turned to him for brief
+consultation, in which his part consisted generally of a nod
+or a shake of the head as the case might be.</p>
+<p>While the District Attorney was addressing the jury,
+Milton Hibbard moved forward and took the District
+Attorney&rsquo;s seat.</p>
+<p>Then followed the testimony of the boys&ndash;&ndash;now shy lads
+in their teens, who had found the evidences of a struggle
+and possible murder so long before on the river bluff.
+Under the adroit lead of counsel, they told each the same
+story, and were excused cross-examination. Both boys had
+identified the hat found on the bluff, and testified that
+the brown stain, which now appeared somewhat faintly,
+had been a bright red, and had looked like blood.</p>
+<p>Then Bertrand Ballard was called, and the questions put
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_452' name='page_452'></a>452</span>
+to him were more searching. Though the manner of the
+examiner was respectful and courteous, he still contrived
+to leave the impression on those in the court room that he
+hoped to draw out some fact that would lead to the discovery
+of matters more vital to the case than the mere details to
+which the witness testified. But Bertrand Ballard&rsquo;s prompt
+and straightforward answers, and his simple and courteous
+manner, were a full match for the able lawyer, and after two
+hours of effort he subsided.</p>
+<p>Then the testimony of the other witnesses was taken,
+even to that of the little housemaid who had been in the
+family at the time, and who had seen Peter Junior wear the
+hat. Did she know it for his? Yes. Why did she know
+it? Because of the little break in the straw, on the edge
+of the brim. But any man&rsquo;s hat might have such a break.
+What was there about this particular break to make it the
+hat of Peter Junior? Because she had made it herself.
+She had knocked it down one day when she was brushing
+up in the front hall, and when she hung it up again, she had
+seen the break, and knew she had done it.</p>
+<p>And thus, in the careful scrutiny of small things, relating
+to the habits, life, and manner of dressing of the two young
+men,&ndash;&ndash;matters about which nobody raised any question,
+and in which no one except the examiner took any interest,&ndash;&ndash;more
+days crept by, until, at last, the main witnesses for
+the State were reached.</p>
+<div class='footnote'><a name='Footnote_0001' id='Footnote_0001'></a><a href='#FNanchor_0001'><span class='label'>[1]</span></a>
+<p>The question raised by the prisoner&rsquo;s counsel was ruled in favor of
+his contention in Biemel v. State. 71 Wis. 444, decided in 1888.</p>
+</div>
+<hr class='toprule' />
+<div class='chsp'>
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_453' name='page_453'></a>453</span>
+<a name='CHAPTER_XXXVI_NELS_NELSONS_TESTIMONY' id='CHAPTER_XXXVI_NELS_NELSONS_TESTIMONY'></a>
+<h2>CHAPTER XXXVI</h2>
+<h3>NELS NELSON&rsquo;S TESTIMONY</h3>
+</div>
+<p>The day was very warm, and the jury sat without their
+coats. The audience, who had had time to debate and argue
+the question over and over, were all there ready to throng
+in at the opening of the doors, and sat listening, eager, anxious,
+and perspiring. Some were strongly for the young
+man and some were as determined for the Elder&rsquo;s views,
+and a tension of interest and friction of minds pervaded
+the very atmosphere of the court room. It had been the
+effort of Milton Hibbard to work up the sentiment of those
+who had been so eagerly following the trial, in favor of his
+client&rsquo;s cause, before bringing on the final coup of the testimony
+of the Swede, and, last of all, that of Betty Ballard.</p>
+<p>Poor little Betty, never for a moment doubting her perception
+in her recognition of Peter Junior, yet fearing those
+doubting ones in the court room, sat at home, quivering
+with the thought that the truth she must tell when at last
+her turn came might be the one straw added to the burden
+of evidence piled up to convict an innocent man. Wordlessly
+and continually in her heart she was praying that
+Richard might know and come to them, calling him, calling
+him, in her thoughts ceaselessly imploring help, patience,
+delay, anything that might hold events still until Richard
+could reach them, for deep in her heart of faith she knew he
+would come. Wherever in all the universe he might be,
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_454' name='page_454'></a>454</span>
+her cry must find him and bring him. He would feel it in
+his soul and fly to them.</p>
+<p>Bertrand brought Betty and her mother news of the
+proceedings, from day to day, and always as he sat in the
+court room watching the prisoner and the Elder, looking
+from one set face to the other, he tried to convince himself
+that Mary and Betty were right in their firm belief that it
+was none other than Peter Junior who sat there with that
+steadfast look and the unvarying statement that he was the
+Elder&rsquo;s son, and had returned to give himself up for the
+murder of his cousin Richard, in the firm belief that he had
+left him dead on the river bluff.</p>
+<p>G. B. Stiles sat at the Elder&rsquo;s side, and when Nels Nelson
+was brought in and sworn, he glanced across at Milton
+Hibbard with an expression of satisfaction and settled
+himself back to watch the triumph of his cause and the
+enjoyment of the assurance of the ten thousand dollars.
+He had coached the Swede and felt sure he would give his
+testimony with unwavering clearness.</p>
+<p>The Elder&rsquo;s face worked and his hands clutched hard on
+the arms of his chair. It was then that Bertrand Ballard,
+watching him with sorrowful glances, lost all doubt that the
+prisoner was in truth what he claimed to be, for, under the
+tension of strong feeling, the milder lines of the younger
+man&rsquo;s face assumed a set power of will,&ndash;&ndash;immovable,&ndash;&ndash;implacable,&ndash;&ndash;until
+the force within him seemed to mold the
+whole contour of his face into a youthful image of that of
+the man who refused even to look at him.</p>
+<p>Every eye in the court room was fixed on the Swede
+as he took his place before the court and was bade to
+look on the prisoner. Throughout his whole testimony he
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_455' name='page_455'></a>455</span>
+never varied from his first statement. It was always the
+same.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Do you know the prisoner?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yas, I know heem. Dot is heem, I seen heem two,
+t&rsquo;ree times.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;When did you see him first?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;By Ballards&rsquo; I seen heem first&ndash;&ndash;he vas horse ridin&rsquo; dot
+time. It vas nobody home by Ballards&rsquo; dot time. Eferybody
+vas gone off by dot peek-neek.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;At that time did the prisoner speak to you?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yas, he asket me where is Ballards&rsquo; folks, und I tol&rsquo;
+heem by peek-neek, und he asket me where is it for a peek-neek
+is dey gone, und I tol&rsquo; heem by Carter&rsquo;s woods by der
+river, und he asket me is Mees Betty gone by dem yet or
+is she home, und I tol&rsquo; heem yas she is gone mit, und he is
+off like der vind on hees horse already.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;When did you see the prisoner next?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;By Ballards&rsquo; yard dot time.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;What time?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;It vas Sunday morning I seen heem, talkin&rsquo; mit her.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;With whom was he talking?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, he talk mit Ballards&rsquo; girl&ndash;&ndash;Mees Betty. Down by
+der spring house I seen heem go, und he kiss her plenty&ndash;&ndash;I
+seen heem.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You are sure it was the prisoner you saw? You are
+sure it was not Peter Craigmile, Jr.?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Sure it vas heem I saw. Craikmile&rsquo;s son, he vas lame,
+und valk by der crutch all time. No, it vas dot man dere
+I saw.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Where were you when you saw him?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I vas by my room vere I sleep. It vas a wine growin&rsquo;
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_456' name='page_456'></a>456</span>
+by der vindow up, so dey nefer see me, bot I seen dem all
+right. I seen heem kiss her und I seen her tell heem go vay,
+und push heem off, und she cry plenty.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Did you hear what he said to her?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Bertrand Ballard looked up at the examiner angrily, and
+counsel for the prisoner objected to the question, but the
+judge allowed it to pass unchallenged, on the ground that it
+was a question pertaining to the motive for the deed of
+which the prisoner was accused.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yas, I hear it a little. Dey vas come up und stand dere
+by de vindow under, und I hear dem talkin&rsquo;. She cry, und
+say she vas sorry he vas kiss her like dot, und he say he is
+goin&rsquo; vay, und dot is vot for he done it, und he don&rsquo;t come
+back no more, und she cry some more.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Did he say anything against his cousin at that time?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;No, he don&rsquo; say not&rsquo;ing, only yust he say, &lsquo;dot&rsquo;s all
+right bouts heem,&rsquo; he say, &lsquo;Peter Junior goot man all right,
+only he goin&rsquo; vay all same.&rsquo;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Was that the last time you saw the prisoner?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;No, I seen heem dot day und it vas efening.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Where were you when you saw him next?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I vas goin&rsquo; &rsquo;long mit der calf to eat it grass dere by
+Ballards&rsquo; yard, und he vas goin&rsquo; &rsquo;long mit hees cousin,
+Craikmile&rsquo;s son, und he vas walkin&rsquo; slow for hees cousin,
+he don&rsquo; got hees crutch dot day, he valk mit dot stick dere,
+und he don&rsquo; go putty quvick mit it.&rdquo; Nels pointed to
+the heavy blackthorn stick lying on the table before
+the jury.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Were the two young men talking together?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;No, dey don&rsquo; speak much. I hear it he say, &lsquo;It iss
+better you valk by my arm a little yet, Peter,&rsquo; und Craikmile&rsquo;s
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_457' name='page_457'></a>457</span>
+son, he say, &lsquo;You go vay mit your arm, I got no need
+by it,&rsquo; like he vas little mad yet.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You say you saw him in the morning with Miss Ballard.
+Where were the family at that time?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, dey vas gone by der church already.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;And in the evening where were they?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, dey vas by der house und eat supper den.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Did you see the prisoner again that day?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;No, I didn&rsquo; see heem dot day no more, bot dot next day
+I seen heem&ndash;&ndash;goot I seen heem.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Harry King here asked his counsel to object to his allowing
+the witness to continually assert that the man he saw
+was the prisoner.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;He does not know that it was I. He is mistaken as are
+you all.&rdquo; And Nathan Goodbody leaped to his feet.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I object on behalf of my client to the assumption
+throughout this whole examination, that the man whom
+the witness claims to have seen was the prisoner. No proof
+to that effect has yet been brought forward.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>The witness was then required to give his reasons for his
+assertion that the prisoner was the man he saw three years
+before.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;By what marks do you know him? Why is he not the
+man he claims to be, the son of the plaintiff?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, I know heem all right. Meester Craikmile&rsquo;s son,
+he vos more white in de face. Hees hair vas more&ndash;&ndash;more&ndash;&ndash;I
+don&rsquo; know how you call dot&ndash;&ndash;crooked on hees head
+yet.&rdquo; Nels put his hand to his head and caught one of his
+straight, pale gold locks, and twisted it about. &ldquo;It vas
+goin round so,&ndash;&ndash;und it vas more lighter yet as dot man
+here, und hees face vas more lighter too, und he valked mit
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_458' name='page_458'></a>458</span>
+stick all time und he don&rsquo; go long mit hees head up,&ndash;&ndash;red
+in hees face like dis man here und dark in hees face too.
+Craikmile&rsquo;s son go all time limpin&rsquo; so.&rdquo; Nels took a step
+to illustrate the limp of Peter Junior when he had seen him
+last.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Do you see any other points of difference? Were the
+young men the same height?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yas, dey vas yust so high like each other, but not so vide
+out yet. Dis man he iss vider yet as Meester Craikmile&rsquo;s
+son, he iss got more chest like von goot horse&ndash;&ndash;Oh, I
+know by men yust de same like horses vat iss der difference
+yet.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Now you tell the court just what you saw the next day.
+At what time of the day was it?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;It vas by der night I seen heem.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;On Monday night?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yas.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Late Monday night?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;No, not so late, bot it vas dark already.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Tell the court exactly where you saw him, when you
+saw him, and with whom you saw him, and what you heard
+said.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;It vas by Ballards&rsquo; I seen heem. I vas comin&rsquo; home
+und it vas dark already yust like I tol&rsquo; you, und I seen dot
+man come along by Ballards&rsquo; house und stand by der door&ndash;&ndash;long
+time I seen heem stan&rsquo; dere, und I yust go by der
+little trees under, und vatching vat it is for doin&rsquo; dere, dot
+man? Und I seen heem it iss der young man vat iss come
+dot day askin&rsquo; vere iss Ballards&rsquo; folks, und so I yust wait
+und look a little out, und I vatchin&rsquo; heem. Und I seen
+heem stand und vaitin&rsquo; minute by der door outside, und I
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_459' name='page_459'></a>459</span>
+get me low under dem little small flowers bushes Ballards
+is got by der door under dot vindow dere, und I seen heem,
+he goin&rsquo; in, and yust dere is Mees Betty sittin&rsquo;, und he go
+quvick down on hees knees, und dere she yump lak she is
+scairt. Den she take heem hees head in her hands und she
+asket heem vat for is it dat blud he got it on hees head, und
+so he say it is by fightin&rsquo; he is got it, und she say vy for is he
+fightin&rsquo;, und he say mit hees cousin he fight, und hees cousin
+he hit heem so, und she asket heem vy for is hees cousin
+hit heem, und vy for iss he fightin&rsquo; mit hees cousin any vay,
+und den dey bot is cryin&rsquo;. So I seen dot&ndash;&ndash;und den she go
+by der kitchen und bring vater und vash heem hees head
+und tie clots round it so nice, und dere dey is talkin&rsquo;, und he
+tol&rsquo; her he done it.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;What did he tell her he had done?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, he say he keel heem hees cousin. Dot vat I tol&rsquo;
+you he done it.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;How did he say he killed him?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>The silence in the court room was painful in its intensity.
+The Elder leaned forward and listened with contorted face,
+and the prisoner held his breath. A pallor overspread his
+face and his hands were clenched.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, he say he push heem in der rifer ofer, und he do it
+all right for he liket to do it, but he say he goin&rsquo; run vay for
+dot.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You mean to say that he said he intended to push him
+over? That he tried to do it?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, yas, he say he liket to push heem ofer, und he liket
+to do dot, but he sorry any vay he done it, und he runnin&rsquo;
+vay for dot.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Tell the court what happened then.&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_460' name='page_460'></a>460</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;Den she get him somedings to eat, und dey sit dere,
+und dey talk, und dey cry plenty, und she is feel putty bad,
+und he is feel putty bad, too. Und so&ndash;&ndash;he go out und shut
+dot door, und he valkin&rsquo; down der pat&rsquo;, und she yust come
+out der door, und run to heem und asket heem vere he is
+goin&rsquo; und if he tell her somedings vere he go, und he say no,
+he tell her not&rsquo;ing yet. Und den she say maybe he is not
+keel heem any vay, bot yust t&rsquo;inkin&rsquo; he keel him, und he tol&rsquo;
+her yas, he keel heem all right, he push heem ofer und he is
+dead already, und so he kiss her some more, und she is cry
+some more, und I t&rsquo;ink he is cry, too, bot dot is all. He
+done it all right. Und he is gone off den, und she is gone in
+her house, und I don&rsquo;t see more no.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>As the witness ceased speaking Mr. Hibbard turned to
+counsel for the prisoner and said: &ldquo;Cross-examine.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Rising in his place, and advancing a few steps toward the
+witness, the young lawyer began his cross-examination.
+His task did not call for the easy nonchalance of his more
+experienced adversary, who had the advantage of knowing
+in advance just what his witness would testify. It was for
+him to lead a stubborn and unwilling witness through the
+mazes of a well-prepared story, to unravel, if possible, some
+of its well-planned knots and convince the jury if he could
+that the witness was not reliable and his testimony untrustworthy.</p>
+<p>But this required a master in the art of cross-examination,
+and a master begins the study of his subject&ndash;&ndash;the witness&ndash;&ndash;before
+the trial. In subtle ways with which experience
+has made him familiar, he studies his man, his life, his
+character, his habits, his strength, his weakness, his foibles.
+He divines when he will hesitate, when he will stumble, and
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_461' name='page_461'></a>461</span>
+he is ready to pounce upon him and force his hesitation
+into an attempt at concealment, his stumble into a fall.</p>
+<p>It is no discredit to Nathan Goodbody that he lacked the
+skill and cunning of an astute cross-examiner. Unlike
+poets, they are made, not born, and he found the Swede to
+be a difficult witness to handle to his purpose. He succeeded
+in doing little more than to get him to reaffirm the
+damaging testimony he had already given.</p>
+<p>Being thus baffled, he determined to bring in here a point
+which he had been reserving to use later, should Milton Hibbard
+decide to take up the question of Peter Junior&rsquo;s lameness.
+As this did not seem to be imminent, and the testimony
+of Nels Nelson had been so convincing, he wished of
+all things to delay the calling of the next witness until he
+could gain time, and carry the jury with him. Should Betty
+Ballard be called to the stand that day he felt his cause
+would be lost. Therefore, in the moment&rsquo;s pause following
+the close of his cross-examination of the last witness, he
+turned and addressed the court.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;May it please the Court. Knowing that there is but
+one more witness to be called, and that the testimony of
+that witness can bring forward no new light on this matter,
+I have excellent reason to desire at this time to move the
+Court to bring in the verdict of not guilty.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>At these words the eyes of every one in the court room
+were turned upon the speaker, and the silence was such that
+his next words, though uttered in a low voice, were distinctly
+heard by all present.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;This motion is based upon the fact that the State has
+failed to prove the <i>corpus delicti</i>, upon the law, which is
+clear, that without such proof there can be no conviction
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_462' name='page_462'></a>462</span>
+of the crime of murder. If the testimony of the witness
+Nels Nelson can be accepted as the admission of the man
+Richard Kildene, until the State can prove the <i>corpus
+delicti</i>, no proof can be brought that it is the admission of
+the prisoner at the bar. I say that until such proof can be
+brought by the State, no further testimony can convict the
+prisoner at the bar. If it please the Court, the authorities
+are clear that the fact that a murder has been committed
+cannot be established by proof of the admissions, even of
+the prisoner himself that he has committed the crime.
+There must be direct proof of death as by finding and identification
+of the body of the one supposed to be murdered.
+I have some authorities here which I would like to read to
+your honor if you will hear them.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>The face of the judge during this statement of the
+prisoner&rsquo;s counsel was full of serious interest. He leaned
+forward with his elbow on the desk before him, and with
+his hand held behind his ear, intent to catch every word.
+As counsel closed the judge glanced at the clock hanging on
+the wall and said:&ndash;&ndash;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;It is about time to close. You may pass up your
+authorities, and I will take occasion to examine them before
+the court opens in the morning. If counsel on the other
+side have any authorities, I will be pleased to have
+them also.&rdquo;</p>
+<hr class='toprule' />
+<div class='chsp'>
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_463' name='page_463'></a>463</span>
+<a name='CHAPTER_XXXVII_THE_STRANGERS_ARRIVAL' id='CHAPTER_XXXVII_THE_STRANGERS_ARRIVAL'></a>
+<h2>CHAPTER XXXVII</h2>
+<h3>THE STRANGER&rsquo;S ARRIVAL</h3>
+</div>
+<p>On taking his seat at the opening of court the next morning,
+the judge at once announced his decision.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I have given such thought as I have been able to the
+question raised by counsel last evening, and have examined
+authorities cited by him, and others, bearing upon the
+question, and have reached the conclusion that his motion
+must be overruled. It is true that a conviction for murder
+cannot rest alone upon the extra-judicial admission of the
+accused. And in the present case I must remind the court
+and the jury that thus far the identity of the prisoner has
+not yet been established, as it is not determined whether
+or not he is the man whom the witness, Nels Nelson, heard
+make the admission. It is true there must be distinct proof,
+sufficient to satisfy the jury, beyond a reasonable doubt,
+that homicide has been committed by some one, before the
+admission of the accused that he did the act can be considered.
+But I think that fact can be established by circumstantial
+evidence, as well as any other fact in the case,
+and I shall so charge the jury. I will give you an exception.
+Mr Nathan Goodbody, you may go on with your
+defense after the hearing of the next witness, which is now in
+order.&rdquo;<a name='FNanchor_0002' id='FNanchor_0002'></a><a href='#Footnote_0002' class='fnanchor'>[1]</a></p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_464' name='page_464'></a>464</span></div>
+<p>The decision of the court was both a great surprise and
+a disappointment to the defendant&rsquo;s young counsel. Considering
+the fact that the body of the man supposed to have
+been murdered had never been found, and that his death
+had been assumed from his sudden disappearance, and the
+finding of his personal articles scattered on the river bluff,
+together with the broken edge of the bluff and the traces
+of some object having been thrown down the precipice at
+that point, and the fact that the State was relying upon the
+testimony of the eavesdropping Swede to prove confession
+by the prisoner, he still had not been prepared for the testimony
+of this witness that he had heard the accused say that
+he had killed his cousin, and that it had been his intention
+to kill him. He was dismayed, but he had not entirely
+lost confidence in his legal defense, even now that the judge
+had ruled against him. There was still the Supreme Court.</p>
+<p>He quickly determined that he would shift his attack
+from the court, where he had been for the time repulsed,
+and endeavor to convince the jury that the fact that Peter
+Junior was really dead had not &ldquo;been proven beyond a
+reasonable doubt.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Applying to the court for a short recess to give him time
+to consult with his client, he used the time so given in
+going over with the prisoner the situation in which the
+failure of his legal defense had left them. He had hoped
+to arrest the trial on the point he had made so as to eliminate
+entirely the hearing of further testimony,&ndash;&ndash;that of Betty
+Ballard,&ndash;&ndash;and also to avoid the necessity of having his
+client sworn, which last was inevitable if Betty&rsquo;s testimony
+was taken.</p>
+<p>He had never been able to rid himself of the impression
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_465' name='page_465'></a>465</span>
+left upon his mind when first he heard the story from his
+client&rsquo;s lips, that there was in it an element of coincidence&ndash;&ndash;too
+like dramatic fiction, or that if taken ideally, it was
+above the average juryman&rsquo;s head.</p>
+<p>He admonished the prisoner that when he should be called
+upon for his testimony, he must make as little as possible of
+the fact of their each being scarred on the hip, and scarred
+on the head, the two cousins dramatically marked alike,
+and that he must in no way allude to his having seen Betty
+Ballard in the prison alone.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;That was a horrible mistake. You must cut it out of
+your testimony unless they force it. Avoid it. And you
+must make the jury see that your return was a matter of&ndash;&ndash;of&ndash;&ndash;well,
+conscience&ndash;&ndash;and so forth.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I must tell the truth. That is all that I can do,&rdquo; said
+the prisoner, wearily. &ldquo;The judge is looking this way,&ndash;&ndash;shall
+we&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Nathan Goodbody rose quickly. &ldquo;If the court please,
+we are ready to proceed.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Then at last Betty Ballard was called to the witness
+stand. The hour had come for which all the village had
+waited, and the fame of the trial had spread beyond the
+village, and all who had known the boys in their childhood
+and in their young manhood, and those who had been their
+companions in arms&ndash;&ndash;men from their own regiment&ndash;&ndash;were
+there. The matter had been discussed among them more
+or less heatedly and now the court room could not hold the
+crowds that thronged its doors.</p>
+<p>At this time, unknown to any of the actors in the drama,
+three strangers, having made their way through the crowd
+outside the door, were allowed to enter, and stood together
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_466' name='page_466'></a>466</span>
+in the far corner of the court room unnoticed by the throng,
+intently watching and listening. They had arrived from the
+opposite sides of the earth, and had met at the village hotel.
+Larry had spied the younger man first, and, scarcely knowing
+what he was doing, or why, he walked up to him, and
+spoke, involuntarily holding out his hand to him.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Tell me who you are,&rdquo; he said, ere Richard could surmise
+what was happening.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;My name is Kildene,&rdquo; said Richard, frankly. &ldquo;Have
+you any reason for wishing to know me?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>For the moment he thought his interlocutor might be a
+detective, or one who wished to verify a suspicion. Having
+but that moment arrived, and knowing nothing of the trial
+which was going on, he could think only of his reason for his
+return to Leauvite, and was glad to make an end of incognito
+and sorrowful durance, and wearisome suspense, and he did
+not hesitate, nor try any art of concealment. He looked
+directly into Larry&rsquo;s eyes, almost defiantly for an instant,
+then seeing in that rugged face a kindly glint of the eye and
+a quiver about the mouth, his heart lightened and he
+grasped eagerly the hand held out to him.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Perhaps you will tell me whom you are? I suppose I
+ought to know, but I&rsquo;ve been away from here a long time.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Then the older man&rsquo;s hand fell a-trembling in his, and
+did not release him, but rather clung to him as if he had had
+a shock.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Come over here and sit beside me a moment, young
+man&ndash;&ndash;I&ndash;&ndash;I&rsquo;ve&ndash;&ndash;I&rsquo;m not feeling as strong as I look. I&ndash;&ndash;I&rsquo;ve
+a thing to tell you. Sit down&ndash;&ndash;sit down. We are
+alone? Yes. Every one&rsquo;s gone to the trial. I&rsquo;m on here
+from the West myself to attend it.&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_467' name='page_467'></a>467</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;The trial! What trial?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You&rsquo;ve heard nothing of it? I was thinking maybe
+you were also&ndash;&ndash;were drawn here&ndash;&ndash;you&rsquo;ve but just come?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I&rsquo;ve been here long enough to engage a room&ndash;&ndash;which
+I shan&rsquo;t want long. No, I&rsquo;ve come for no trial exactly&ndash;&ndash;maybe
+it might come to that&ndash;&ndash;? What have you to tell me?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>But Larry Kildene sat silent for a time before replying.
+An eager joy had seized him, and a strange reticence held
+his tongue tied, a fear of making himself known to this son
+whom he had never seen since he had held him in his arms,
+a weak, wailing infant, thinking only of his own loss. This
+dignified, stalwart young man, so pleasant to look upon&ndash;&ndash;no
+wonder the joy of his heart was a terrible joy, a hungering,
+longing joy akin to pain! How should he make
+himself known? In what words? A thousand thoughts
+crowded upon him. From Betty&rsquo;s letter he knew something
+of the contention now going on in the court room, and from
+the landlord last evening he had heard more, and he was
+impatient to get to the trial.</p>
+<p>Now this encounter with his own son,&ndash;&ndash;the only one
+who could set all right,&ndash;&ndash;and who yet did not know of
+the happenings which so imperatively required his presence
+in the court room, set Larry Kildene&rsquo;s thoughts stammering
+and tripping over each other in such a confusion of
+haste, and with it all the shyness before the great fact of
+his unconfessed fatherhood, so overwhelmed him, that for
+once his facile Irish nature did not help him. He was at
+a loss for words, strangely abashed before this gentle-voiced,
+frank-faced, altogether likable son of his. So he temporized
+and beat about the bush, and did not touch first on that
+which was nearest his heart.</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_468' name='page_468'></a>468</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes, yes. I&rsquo;ve a thing to tell you. You came here to
+be at a&ndash;&ndash;a&ndash;&ndash;trial&ndash;&ndash;did you say, or intimate it might
+be? If&ndash;&ndash;if&ndash;&ndash;you&rsquo;ll tell me a bit more, I maybe can help
+you&ndash;&ndash;for I&rsquo;ve seen a good bit of the world. It&rsquo;s a strange
+trial going on here now&ndash;&ndash;I&rsquo;ve come to hear.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Tell me something about it,&rdquo; said Richard, humoring
+the older man&rsquo;s deliberation in arriving at his point.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;It&rsquo;s little I know yet. I&rsquo;ve come to learn, for I&rsquo;m interested
+in the young man they&rsquo;re trying to convict. He&rsquo;s a
+sort of a relative of mine. I wish to see fair play. Why are
+you here? Have you done anything&ndash;&ndash;what have you
+done?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>The young man moved restlessly. He was confused by
+the suddenness of the question, which Larry&rsquo;s manner deprived
+of any suggestion of rudeness.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Did I intimate I had done anything?&rdquo; He laughed.
+&ldquo;I&rsquo;m come to make a statement to the proper ones&ndash;&ndash;when
+I find them. I&rsquo;ll go over now and hear a bit of this trial,
+since you mention it.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>He spoke sadly and wearily, but he felt no resentment
+at the older man&rsquo;s inquisitiveness. Larry&rsquo;s face expressed
+too much kindliness to make resentment possible, but
+Richard was ill at ease to be talking thus intimately with a
+stranger who had but just chanced upon him. He rose to
+leave.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Don&rsquo;t go. Don&rsquo;t go yet. Wait a bit&ndash;&ndash;God, man!
+Wait! I&rsquo;ve a thing to tell you.&rdquo; Larry leaned forward,
+and his face worked and tears glistened in his eyes as he
+looked keenly up into his son&rsquo;s face. &ldquo;You&rsquo;re a beautiful
+lad&ndash;&ndash;a man&ndash;&ndash;I&rsquo;m&ndash;&ndash;You&rsquo;re strong and fine&ndash;&ndash;I&rsquo;m
+ashamed to tell it you&ndash;&ndash;ashamed I&rsquo;ve never looked on
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_469' name='page_469'></a>469</span>
+you since then&ndash;&ndash;until now. I should have given all up
+and found you. Forgive me. Boy!&ndash;&ndash;I&rsquo;m your father&ndash;&ndash;your
+father!&rdquo; He rose and stood looking levelly in his
+son&rsquo;s eyes, holding out both shaking hands. Richard took
+them in his and held them&ndash;&ndash;but could not speak.</p>
+<p>The constraint of witnesses was not upon them, for they
+were quite alone on the piazza, but the emotion of each of
+them was beyond words. Richard swallowed, and waited,
+and then with no word they both sat down and drew their
+chairs closer together. The simple act helped them.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I&rsquo;ve been nigh on to a lifetime longing for you, lad.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;And I for you, father.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;That&rsquo;s the name I&rsquo;ve been hungering to hear&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;And I to speak&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo; Still they looked in each other&rsquo;s
+eyes. &ldquo;And we have a great deal to tell each other! I&rsquo;m
+almost sorry&ndash;&ndash;that&ndash;&ndash;that&ndash;&ndash;that I&rsquo;ve found you at
+last&ndash;&ndash;for to do my duty will be harder now. I had no one
+to care&ndash;&ndash;particularly before&ndash;&ndash;unless&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Unless a lass, maybe?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;One I&rsquo;ve been loving and true to&ndash;&ndash;but long ago given
+up&ndash;&ndash;we won&rsquo;t speak of her. We&rsquo;ll have to talk a great
+deal, and there&rsquo;s so little time! I must&ndash;&ndash;must give myself
+up, father, to the law.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Couldn&rsquo;t you put it off a bit, lad?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Larry could not have told why he kept silent so long in
+regard to the truth of the trial. It might have been a vague
+liking to watch the workings of his son&rsquo;s real self and a
+desire to test him to the full. From a hint dropped in
+Betty&rsquo;s letter he guessed shrewdly at the truth of the situation.
+He knew now that Richard and his young friend of
+the mountain top were actuated by the same motives, and
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_470' name='page_470'></a>470</span>
+he understood at last why Harry King would never accept
+his offer of help, nor would ever call him father. Because
+he could not take the place of the son, of whom, as he
+thought, he had robbed the man who so freely offered him
+friendship&ndash;&ndash;and more than friendship. At last Larry
+understood why Peter Junior had never yielded to his
+advances. It was honor, and the test had been severe.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Put it off a little? I might&ndash;&ndash;I&rsquo;m tempted&ndash;&ndash;just to
+get acquainted with my father&ndash;&ndash;but I might be arrested,
+and I would prefer not to be. I know I&rsquo;ve been wanted for
+three years and over&ndash;&ndash;it has taken me that long to learn
+that only the truth can make a man free,&ndash;&ndash;and now I
+would rather give myself up, than to be taken&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I&rsquo;m knowing maybe more of the matter than you think&ndash;&ndash;so
+we&rsquo;ll drop it. We must have a long talk later&ndash;&ndash;but
+tell me now in a few words what you can.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Then, drawn by the older man&rsquo;s gentle, magnetic sympathy,
+Richard unlocked his heart and told all of his life
+that could be crowded in those few short minutes,&ndash;&ndash;of
+his boyhood&rsquo;s longings for a father of his own&ndash;&ndash;of his
+young manhood&rsquo;s love, of his flight, and a little of his later
+life. &ldquo;We&rsquo;d be great chums, now, father,&ndash;&ndash;if&ndash;&ndash;if it
+weren&rsquo;t for this&ndash;&ndash;that hangs over me.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Then Larry could stand it no longer. He sprang up and
+clapped Richard on the shoulder. &ldquo;Come, lad, come!
+We&rsquo;ll go to this trial together. Do you know who&rsquo;s being
+tried? No. They&rsquo;ll have to get this off before they can
+take another on. I&rsquo;m thinking you&rsquo;ll find your case none
+so bad as it seems to you now. First there&rsquo;s a thing I
+must do. My brother-in-law&rsquo;s in trouble&ndash;&ndash;but it is his
+own fault&ndash;&ndash;still I&rsquo;m a mind to help him out. He&rsquo;s a fine
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_471' name='page_471'></a>471</span>
+hater, that brother-in-law of mine, but he&rsquo;s tried to do a
+father&rsquo;s part in the past by you&ndash;&ndash;and done it well, while
+I&rsquo;ve been soured. In the gladness of my heart I&rsquo;ll help
+him out&ndash;&ndash;I&rsquo;d made up my mind to do it before I left my
+mountain. Your father&rsquo;s a rich man, boy&ndash;&ndash;with money
+in store for you&ndash;&ndash;I say it in modesty, but he who reared
+you has been my enemy. Now I&rsquo;m going to his bank, and
+there I&rsquo;ll make a deposit that will save it from ruin.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>He stood a moment chuckling, with both hands thrust
+deep in his pockets. &ldquo;We&rsquo;ll go to that trial&ndash;&ndash;it&rsquo;s over an
+affair of his, and he&rsquo;s fair in the wrong. We&rsquo;ll go and
+watch his discomfiture&ndash;&ndash;and we&rsquo;ll see him writhe. We&rsquo;ll
+see him carry things his own way&ndash;&ndash;the only way he can
+ever see&ndash;&ndash;and then we&rsquo;ll watch him&ndash;&ndash;man, we&rsquo;ll watch
+him&ndash;&ndash;Oh, my boy, my boy! I doubt it&rsquo;s wrong for me to
+exult over his chagrin, but that&rsquo;s what I&rsquo;m going for now.
+It was the other way before I met you, but the finding of
+you has given me a light heart, and I&rsquo;ll watch that brother-in-law&rsquo;s
+set-down with right good will.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>He told Richard about Amalia, and asked him to wait
+until he fetched her, as he wished her to accompany them,
+but still he said nothing to him about his cousin Peter. He
+found Amalia descending the long flight of stairs, dressed
+to go out, and knew she had been awaiting him for the last
+half hour. Now he led her into the little parlor, while
+Richard paced up and down the piazza, and there, where
+she could see him as he passed the window to and fro,
+Larry told her what had come to him, and even found time
+to moralize over it, in his gladness.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;That&rsquo;s it. A man makes up his mind to do what&rsquo;s right
+regardless of all consequences or his prejudices, or what
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_472' name='page_472'></a>472</span>
+not,&ndash;&ndash;and from that moment all begins to grow clear, and
+he sees right&ndash;&ndash;and things come right. Now look at the
+man! He&rsquo;s a fine lad, no? They&rsquo;re both fine lads&ndash;&ndash;but
+this one&rsquo;s mine. Look at him I say. Things are to
+come right for him, and all through his making up his mind
+to come back here and stand to his guns. The same way
+with Harry King. I&rsquo;ve told you the contention&ndash;&ndash;and at
+last you know who he is&ndash;&ndash;but mind you, no word yet to
+my son. I&rsquo;ll tell him as we walk along. I&rsquo;m to stop at
+the bank first, and if we tell him too soon, he&rsquo;ll be for going
+to the courthouse straight. The landlord tells me there&rsquo;s
+danger of a run on the bank to-morrow and the only reason
+it hasn&rsquo;t come to-day is that the bank&rsquo;s been closed all the
+morning for the trial. I&rsquo;m thinking that was policy, for
+whoever heard of a bank&rsquo;s being closed in the morning for
+a trial&ndash;&ndash;or anything short of a death or a holiday?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;But if it is now closed, why do we wait to go there? It
+is to do nothing we make delay,&rdquo; said Amalia, anxiously.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I told Decker to send word to the cashier to be there,
+as a deposit is to be made. If he can&rsquo;t be there for that,
+then it&rsquo;s his own fault if to-morrow finds him unprepared.&rdquo;
+Larry stepped out to meet Richard and introduced Amalia.
+He had already told Richard a little of her history, and now
+he gave her her own name, Manovska.</p>
+<p>After a few moments&rsquo; conversation she asked Larry: &ldquo;I
+may keep now my own name, it is quite safe, is not? They
+are gone now&ndash;&ndash;those for whom I feared.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Wait a little,&rdquo; said Richard. &ldquo;Wait until you have
+been down in the world long enough to be sure. It is a
+hard thing to live under suspicion, and until you have means
+of knowing, the other will be safer.&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_473' name='page_473'></a>473</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;You think so? Then is better. Yes? Ah, Sir
+Kildene, how it is beautiful to see your son does so very
+much resemble our friend.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>They arrived at the bank, and Larry entered while
+Richard and Amalia strolled on together. &ldquo;We had a
+friend, Harry King,&rdquo;&ndash;&ndash;she paused and would have corrected
+herself, but then continued&ndash;&ndash;&ldquo;he was very much
+like to you&ndash;&ndash;but he is here in trouble, and it is for that for
+which we have come here. Sir Kildene is so long in that
+bank! I would go in haste to that place where is our
+friend. Shall we turn and walk again a little toward the
+bank? So will we the sooner encounter him on the way.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>They returned and met Larry coming out, stepping
+briskly. He too was eager to be at the courthouse. He
+took his son&rsquo;s arm and rapidly and earnestly told him the
+situation as he had just heard it from the cashier. He told
+him that which he had been keeping back, and impressed
+on him the truth that unless he had returned when he did,
+the talk in the town was that the trial was likely to go
+against the prisoner. Richard would have broken into a
+run, in his excitement, but Larry held him back.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Hold back a little, boy. Let us keep pace with you.
+There&rsquo;s really no hurry, only that impulse that sent you
+home&ndash;&ndash;it was as if you were called, from all I can
+learn.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;It is my reprieve. I am free. He has suffered, too.
+Does he know yet that I too live? Does he know?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Perhaps not&ndash;&ndash;yet, but listen to me. Don&rsquo;t be too
+hasty in showing yourself. If they did not know him, they
+won&rsquo;t know you&ndash;&ndash;for you are enough different for them
+never to suspect you, now that they have, or think they
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_474' name='page_474'></a>474</span>
+have, the man for whom they have been searching. See
+here, man, hold back for my sake. That man&ndash;&ndash;that
+brother-in-law of mine&ndash;&ndash;has walked for years over my
+heart, and I&rsquo;ve done nothing. He has despised me, and
+without reason&ndash;&ndash;because I presumed to love your mother,
+lad, against his arrogant will. He&ndash;&ndash;he&ndash;&ndash;would&ndash;&ndash;I will
+see him down in the dust of repentance. I will see him
+willfully convict his own son&ndash;&ndash;he who has been hungering
+to see you&ndash;&ndash;my son&ndash;&ndash;sent to a prison for life&ndash;&ndash;or
+hanged.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Richard listened, lingering as Larry wished, appalled
+at this revelation, until they arrived at the edge of the
+crowd around the door, eagerly trying to wedge themselves
+in wherever the chance offered.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh! Sir Kildene&ndash;&ndash;we are here&ndash;&ndash;now what to do!
+How can we go in there?&rdquo; said Amalia.</p>
+<p>Larry moved them aside slowly, pushing Amalia between
+Richard and himself, and intimating to those nearest him
+that they were required within, until a passage was gradually
+made for the three, and thus they reached the door
+and so gained admittance. And that was how they came
+to be there, crowded in a corner, all during the testimony
+of Betty Ballard, unheeded by those around them&ndash;&ndash;mere
+units in the throng trying to hear the evidence and see the
+principals in the drama being enacted before them.</p>
+<div class='footnote'><a name='Footnote_0002' id='Footnote_0002'></a><a href='#FNanchor_0002'><span class='label'>[1]</span></a>
+<p>The ruling of the court upon this point was afterwards justified
+by the Supreme Court of Wisconsin in the case of Buel <i>v.</i> State, 104
+Wis. 132, decided in 1899.</p>
+</div>
+<hr class='toprule' />
+<div class='chsp'>
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_475' name='page_475'></a>475</span>
+<a name='CHAPTER_XXXVIII_BETTY_BALLARDS_TESTIMONY' id='CHAPTER_XXXVIII_BETTY_BALLARDS_TESTIMONY'></a>
+<h2>CHAPTER XXXVIII</h2>
+<h3>BETTY BALLARD&rsquo;S TESTIMONY</h3>
+</div>
+<p>Betty Ballard stood, her slight figure drawn up, poised,
+erect, her head thrown back, and her eyes fixed on the
+Elder&rsquo;s face. The silence of the great audience was so intense
+that the buzzing of flies circling around and around
+near the ceiling could be heard, while the people all leaned
+forward as with one emotion, their eyes on the principals
+before them, straining to hear, vivid, intent.</p>
+<p>Richard saw only Betty, heeding no one but her, feeling
+her presence. For a moment he stood pale as death, then
+the red blood mounted from his heart, staining his neck
+and his face with its deep tide and throbbing in his temples.
+The Elder felt her scrutiny and looked back at her, and his
+brows contracted into a frown of severity.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Miss Ballard,&rdquo; said the lawyer, &ldquo;you are called upon
+to identify the prisoner in the box.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>She lifted her eyes to the judge&rsquo;s face, then turned them
+upon Milton Hibbard, then fixed them again upon the
+Elder, but did not open her lips. She did not seem to be
+aware that every eye in the court room was fastened upon
+her. Pale and grave and silent she stood thus, for to her
+the struggle was only between herself and the Elder.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Miss Ballard, you are called upon to identify the prisoner
+in the box. Can you do so?&rdquo; asked the lawyer again, patiently.</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_476' name='page_476'></a>476</span></div>
+<p>Again she turned her clear eyes on the judge&rsquo;s face, &ldquo;Yes,
+I can.&rdquo; Then, looking into the Elder&rsquo;s eyes, she said:
+&ldquo;He is your son, Elder Craigmile. He is Peter. You
+know him. Look at him. He is Peter Junior.&rdquo; Her voice
+rang clear and strong, and she pointed to the prisoner with
+steady hand. &ldquo;Look at him, Elder Craigmile; he is your
+son.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You will address the jury and the court, Miss Ballard,
+and give your reasons for this assertion. How do you
+know he is Peter Craigmile, Jr.?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Then she turned toward the jury, and holding out both
+hands in sudden pleading action cried out earnestly: &ldquo;I
+know him. He is Peter Junior. Can&rsquo;t you see he is Peter,
+the Elder&rsquo;s son?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;But how do you know him?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Because it is he. I know him the way we always know
+people&ndash;&ndash;by just&ndash;&ndash;knowing them. He is Peter Junior.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Have you seen the prisoner before since his return to
+Leauvite?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes, I went to the jail and I saw him, and I knew him.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;But give a reason for your knowledge. How did you
+know him?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;By&ndash;&ndash;by the look in his eyes&ndash;&ndash;by his hands&ndash;&ndash;Oh!
+I just knew him in a moment. I knew him.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Miss Ballard, we have positive proof that Peter Junior
+was murdered and from the lips of his murderer. The
+witness just dismissed says he heard Richard Kildene tell
+you he pushed his cousin Peter Junior over the bluff into
+the river. Can you deny this statement? On your sacred
+oath can you deny it?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;No, but I don&rsquo;t have to deny it, for you can see for
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_477' name='page_477'></a>477</span>
+yourselves that Peter Junior is alive. He is not dead. He
+is here.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Did Richard Kildene ever tell you he had pushed his
+cousin over the bluff into the river? A simple answer is
+required, yes, or no!&rdquo;</p>
+<p>She stood for a moment, her lips white and trembling.
+&ldquo;Yes!&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;When did he tell you this?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;When he came to me, just after he thought he had done
+it&ndash;&ndash;but he was mistaken&ndash;&ndash;he did not&ndash;&ndash;he only thought
+he had done it.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Did he tell you why he thought he had done it? Tell
+the court all about it.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Then Betty lifted her head and spoke rapidly&ndash;&ndash;eagerly.
+&ldquo;Because he was very angry with Peter Junior, and he
+wanted to kill him, and he did try to push him over, but
+Peter struck him, and Richard didn&rsquo;t truly know whether
+he really pushed him over or not,&ndash;&ndash;for he lay there a long
+time before he even knew where he was, and when he came
+to himself again, he could not find Peter there and only his
+hat and things&ndash;&ndash;he thought he must have done it, because
+that was what he was trying to do, just as everyone
+else has thought it&ndash;&ndash;because when Peter saw him lying
+there, he thought he had killed Richard, and so he pushed
+a great stone over to make every one think he had gone over
+the bluff and was dead, too, and he left his hat there and
+the other things, and now he has come back to give himself
+up, just as he has said, because he could not stand it to
+live any longer with the thought on his conscience that he
+had killed Richard when he struck him. But you would not
+let him give himself up. You have kept on insisting he
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_478' name='page_478'></a>478</span>
+is Richard. And it is all your fault, Elder Craigmile,
+because you won&rsquo;t look to see that he is your son.&rdquo;
+She paused, panting, flushed and indignant.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Miss Ballard, you are here as a witness,&rdquo; said the judge.
+&ldquo;You must restrain yourself and answer the questions that
+are asked you and make no comments.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Here the Elder leaned forward and touched his attorney,
+and pointed a shaking hand at the prisoner and said a few
+words, whereat the lawyer turned sharply upon the witness.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Miss Ballard, you have visited the prisoner since he has
+been in the jail?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes, <i>I</i> said so.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Your Honor,&rdquo; said the examiner, &ldquo;we all know that the
+son of the plaintiff was lame, but this young man is sound
+on both his feet. You have been told that Richard Kildene
+was struck on the head and this young man bears the scar
+above his temple&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Richard started forward, putting his hand to his head and
+lifting his hair as he did so. He tried to call out, but in
+his excitement his voice died in his throat, and Larry seized
+him and held him back.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Watch him,&ndash;&ndash;watch your uncle,&rdquo; he whispered in his
+ear. &ldquo;He thinks he has you there in the box and he wants
+you to get the worst the law will give you. Watch him!
+The girl understands him. See her eyes upon him. Stand
+still, boy; give him a chance to have his will. He&rsquo;ll find it
+bitter when he learns the truth, and &rsquo;twill do him good.
+Wait, man! You&rsquo;ll have it all in your hands later, and
+they&rsquo;ll be none the worse for waiting a bit longer. Hold on
+for my sake, son. I&rsquo;ll tell you why later, and you&rsquo;ll not be
+sorry you gave heed to me.&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_479' name='page_479'></a>479</span></div>
+<p>In these short ejaculated sentences, with his arm through
+Richard&rsquo;s, Larry managed to keep him by his side as the
+examiner talked on.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Your Honor, this young lady admits that she has visited
+the prisoner in the jail, and can give adequate reason for
+her assertion that he is the man he claims to be. She tells
+us what occurred in that fight on the bluff&ndash;&ndash;things that
+she was not there to see, things she could only learn from
+the prisoner: is there not reason to believe that her evidence
+has been arranged between them?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes, he told me,&ndash;&ndash;Peter Junior told me, and he came
+here to give himself up, but you won&rsquo;t let him give himself
+up.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Miss Ballard,&rdquo; said the judge again, &ldquo;you will remember
+that you are to speak only in reply to questions put
+to you. Mr. Hibbard, continue the examination.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Miss Ballard, you admit that you saw Richard Kildene
+after he fought with his cousin?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Was his head wounded?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;What did you do?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I washed his head and bound it up. It was all
+bleeding.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Very well. Then you can say on your sacred oath
+that Richard Kildene was living and not murdered?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Did you see Peter Junior after they fought?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;No. If I had seen him, I could have told everybody
+they were both alive and there would have been
+no&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_480' name='page_480'></a>480</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;Look at the prisoner. Can you tell the jury where the
+cut on Richard Kildene&rsquo;s head was?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes, I can. When I stood in front of him to bind it
+up, it was under my right hand.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>From this point the examiner began to touch upon things
+Betty would gladly have concealed in her own heart, concerning
+her engagement to Peter Junior, and her secret
+understanding with his cousin, and whether she loved the
+one or the other, and what characteristics in them caused
+her to prefer the one over the other, and why she had never
+confided her preferences to any of her relatives or friends.
+Still, with head erect, Betty flung back her answers.</p>
+<p>Bertrand listened and writhed. The prisoner sat with
+bowed head. To him she seemed a veritable saint. He
+knew how she suffered in this public revelation of herself&ndash;&ndash;of
+her innocent struggle between love and loyalty, and
+maiden modesty, and that the desire to protect him and
+help him was giving her strength. He saw how valiantly
+she has been guarding her terrible secret from all the world
+while he had been fleeing and hiding. Ah, if he had only
+been courageous! If he had not fled, nor tried to cover his
+flight with proofs of his death! If he had but stood to his
+guns like a soldier! He covered his face in shame.</p>
+<p>As for Richard, he gloried in her. He felt his heart swell
+in triumph as he listened. He heard Amalia Manovska
+murmur: &ldquo;Ah, how she is very beautiful! No wonder it
+is that they both loved her!&rdquo;</p>
+<p>While he was filled with admiration for her, yet his heart
+ached for her, and with anger and reproach against himself.
+He saw no one but her, and he wanted to end it all and carry
+her away, but still yielded to his father&rsquo;s earnest plea that
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_481' name='page_481'></a>481</span>
+he should wait. He understood, and would restrain himself
+until Larry was satisfied, and the trial ended. Still the
+examination went on.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Miss Ballard, you admit that Peter Junior was lame
+when last you saw him, and you observe that the prisoner
+has no lameness, and you admit that you bound up a wound
+which had been inflicted on the head of Richard Kildene,
+and here you see the scar upon the prisoner; can you still
+on your sacred oath declare this man to be the son of the
+plaintiff?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes!&rdquo; She looked earnestly at the prisoner. &ldquo;It
+is not the same head and it is not the same scar.&rdquo; Again
+she extended her hands toward the jury pleadingly and then
+toward the prisoner. &ldquo;It is not by people&rsquo;s legs we know
+them,&ndash;&ndash;nor by their scars&ndash;&ndash;it is by themselves&ndash;&ndash;by&ndash;&ndash;by
+their souls. Oh! I know you, Peter! I know you!&rdquo;</p>
+<p>With the first petulance Milton Hibbard had shown
+during the trial he now turned to the prisoner&rsquo;s counsel and
+said: &ldquo;Take the witness.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;No cross-examination?&rdquo; asked Nathan Goodbody,
+with a smile.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;No.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Then Betty flung one look back at the Elder, and fled
+to her mother and hid her flushed face on Mary Ballard&rsquo;s
+bosom.</p>
+<p>Now for the first time Richard could take an interest in
+the trial merely for his own and Peter Junior&rsquo;s sake. He
+saw Nathan Goodbody lean over and say a few words
+hurriedly to the prisoner, then rise and slightly lift his hand
+as if to make a special request.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;If the court please, the accused desires permission to
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_482' name='page_482'></a>482</span>
+tell his own story. May he be sworn on his own behalf?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Permission being given, the prisoner rose and walked to
+the witness chair, and having been sworn by the clerk to
+tell the truth, the whole truth, and nothing but the truth,
+began his statement.</p>
+<p>Standing there watching him, and listening, Richard felt
+his heart throb with the old friendship for this comrade of
+his childhood, his youth, and his young manhood, in school,
+in college, and, at last, tramping side by side on long marches,
+camping together, sleeping side by side through many
+a night when the morrow might bring for them death
+or wounds, victory or imprisonment,&ndash;&ndash;sharing the same
+emotions even until the first great passion of their lives
+cut them asunder.</p>
+<p>Brought up without father or mother, this friendship
+had meant more to Richard than to most men. As he
+heard his cousin&rsquo;s plea he was only held from hurrying
+forward with extended arms by Larry&rsquo;s whispered words.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;It&rsquo;s fine, son. Let him have his say out. Don&rsquo;t stop
+him. Watch how it works on the old man yonder,&rdquo; for
+Peter Junior was telling of his childhood among the people
+of Leauvite, speaking in a low, clear voice which carried to
+all parts of the room.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Your Honor, and Gentlemen of the Jury, Because I
+have no witness to attest to the truth of my claim, I am
+forced to make this plea, simply that you may believe me,
+that the accusation which my father through his lawyer
+brings against me could never be possible. You who
+knew my cousin, Richard Kildene, how honorable his life
+and his nature, know how impossible to him would be the
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_483' name='page_483'></a>483</span>
+crime of which I, in his name, am accused. I could not
+make this claim were I any other than I am&ndash;&ndash;the son of
+the man who&ndash;&ndash;does not recognize his son.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Gentlemen of the Jury, you all knew us as boys together&ndash;&ndash;how
+we loved each other and shared our pleasures
+like brothers&ndash;&ndash;or more than brothers, for we quarreled
+less than brothers often do. During all the deep friendship
+of our lives, only once were we angry with each other&ndash;&ndash;only
+once&ndash;&ndash;and then&ndash;&ndash;blinded by a great passion and
+swept beyond all knowledge of our acts, like men drunken
+we fought&ndash;&ndash;we struggled against each other. Our friendship
+was turned to hatred. We tried&ndash;&ndash;I think my cousin
+was trying to throw me over the brink of the bluff&ndash;&ndash;at
+least he was near doing it. I do not make the plea of
+self-defense&ndash;&ndash;for I was not acting in self-defense. I was
+lame, as you have heard, and not so strong as he. I could
+not stand against his greater strength,&ndash;&ndash;but in my arms
+and hands I had power,&ndash;&ndash;and I struck him with my cane.
+With all my force I struck him, and he&ndash;&ndash;he&ndash;&ndash;fell&ndash;&ndash;wounded&ndash;&ndash;and
+I&ndash;&ndash;I&ndash;&ndash;saw the blood gush from the
+wound I had made in his temple&ndash;&ndash;with the stick I carried
+that day&ndash;&ndash;in the place of my crutch.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Your Honor and Gentlemen of the Jury, it was my&ndash;&ndash;intent
+to kill him. I&ndash;&ndash;I&ndash;&ndash;saw him lying at my feet&ndash;&ndash;and
+thought I had done so.&rdquo; Here Peter Junior bowed
+his head and covered his face with his hands, and a breathless
+silence reigned in the court room until he lifted his
+head and began again. &ldquo;It is now three years and more&ndash;&ndash;and
+during all the time that has passed&ndash;&ndash;I have seen him
+lying so&ndash;&ndash;white&ndash;&ndash;dead&ndash;&ndash;and red with his own blood&ndash;&ndash;that
+I had shed. You asked me why I have at last returned,
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_484' name='page_484'></a>484</span>
+and I reply, because I will no longer bear that sight. It
+is the curse of Cain that hangs over a murderer&rsquo;s soul,
+and follows wherever he goes. I tell you the form of my
+dead friend went with me always&ndash;&ndash;sleeping, he lay beside
+me; waking, he lay at my feet. When I looked into the
+shadows, he was there, and when I worked in the mine and
+swung my pick against the walls of rock, it seemed that
+I still struck at my friend.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Well may my father refuse to own me as his son&ndash;&ndash;me&ndash;&ndash;a
+murderer&ndash;&ndash;but one thing can I yet do to expiate my
+deed,&ndash;&ndash;I can free my cousin&rsquo;s name from all blame, and
+if I were to hang for my deed, gladly would I walk over coals
+to the gallows, rather than that such a crime should be laid
+at his door as that he tried to return here and creep into my
+place after throwing me over the bluff into those terrible
+waters.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Do with me what you will, Gentlemen of the Jury, but
+free his name. I understand that my cousin&rsquo;s body was
+never found lying there as I had left it when I fled in cowardice&ndash;&ndash;when
+I tried to make all the world think me also
+dead, and left him lying there&ndash;&ndash;when I pushed the great
+stone out of its place down where I had so nearly gone, and
+left my hat lying as it had fallen and threw the articles
+from my pocket over after the stone I had sent crashing
+down into the river. Since the testimony here given
+proves that I was mistaken in my belief that I had killed
+him, may God be thanked, I am free from the guilt of that
+deed. Until he returns or until he is found and is known to
+be living, do with me what you will. I came to you to
+surrender myself and make this confession before you,
+and as I stand here in your presence and before my
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_485' name='page_485'></a>485</span>
+Maker, I declare to you that what I have said is the
+truth.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>As he ceased speaking he looked steadily at the Elder&rsquo;s
+averted face, then sat down, regarding no one else. He felt
+he had failed, and he sat with head bowed in shame and
+sorrow. A low murmur rose and swept through the court
+room like a sound of wind before a storm, and the old Elder
+leaned toward his lawyer and spoke in low tones, lifting a
+shaking finger, then dropped his hand and shifted slightly
+in his chair.</p>
+<p>As he did so Milton Hibbard arose and began his cross-examination.</p>
+<p>The simplicity of Peter Junior&rsquo;s story, and the ingenuous
+manner in which it had been told, called for a different cross-examination
+from that which would have been adopted if
+this same counsel had been called upon to cross-examine
+the Swede. He made no effort to entangle the witness,
+but he led him instead to repeat that part of his testimony
+in which he had told of the motive which induced him to
+return and give himself up to justice. In doing so his
+questions, the tone of his voice, and his manner were
+marked with incredulity. It was as if he were saying to
+the jury: &ldquo;Just listen to this impossible story while I take
+him over it again. Did you ever hear anything like it?&rdquo;
+When he had gone in this direction as far as he thought discreet,
+he asked abruptly: &ldquo;I understand that you admit
+that you intended to kill your cousin, and supposed you had
+killed him?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes. I admit it.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;And that you ran away to escape the consequences?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes.&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_486' name='page_486'></a>486</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;Is it your observation that acknowledged murderers
+are usually possessed of the lofty motives and high sense of
+justice which you claim have actuated you?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Without waiting for the witness to reply, the lawyer
+turned and looked at the jury and with a sneer, said:
+&ldquo;That&rsquo;s all.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Your Honor, we have no other witness; the defense
+rests. I have proposed some requests for your charge to
+the jury which I will hand up.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>And the judge said: &ldquo;Counsel may address the jury.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>During a slight pause which now ensued Larry Kildene
+tore a bit of blank paper from a letter and wrote upon it:
+&ldquo;Richard Kildene is in this room and will come forward
+when called upon.&rdquo; This he folded and sent by a boy to
+Nathan Goodbody.</p>
+<hr class='toprule' />
+<div class='chsp'>
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_487' name='page_487'></a>487</span>
+<a name='CHAPTER_XXXIX_RECONCILIATION' id='CHAPTER_XXXIX_RECONCILIATION'></a>
+<h2>CHAPTER XXXIX</h2>
+<h3>RECONCILIATION</h3>
+</div>
+<p>Milton Hibbard arose and began his argument to the
+jury. It was a clear and forcible presentation of the case
+from his standpoint as counsel for the State.</p>
+<p>After recapitulating all the testimony that had been
+brought out during the course of the trial, he closed with
+an earnest appeal for the State against the defendant,
+showing conclusively that he believed the prisoner guilty.
+The changing expressions on the faces of the jury and
+among his audience showed that he was carrying them
+largely with him. Before he began speaking, Richard again
+started forward, but still Larry held him back. &ldquo;Let
+be, son. Stand by and watch the old man yonder. Hear
+what they have to say against Peter Junior. I want to
+know what they have in their hearts.&rdquo; The strong dramatic
+appeal which the situation held for Larry was communicated
+through him to Richard also, and again he waited,
+and Milton Hibbard continued his oratory.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;After all, the evidence against the prisoner still stands
+uncontradicted. You may see that to be able to sway you
+as he has, to be able to stand here and make his most
+touching and dramatic plea directly in the face of conclusive
+evidence, to dare to speak thus, proves the man
+to be a most consummate actor. Your Honor and Gentlemen
+of the Jury, nothing has ever been said against the
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_488' name='page_488'></a>488</span>
+intellect or facile ability of the prisoner. The glimpses
+we have been shown of his boyhood, even, prove his skill
+in carrying a part and holding a power over his comrades,
+and here we have the talent developed in the man.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;He is too wise to try to deny the statements made by
+the witnesses of the State, but from the moment Miss
+Ballard was allowed to see him alone in the jail, he has been
+able to carry the young lady with him. We do not bring
+any accusation against the young lady. No doubt she
+thinks him what he claims to be. No doubt he succeeded
+in persuading her he is her former fianc&eacute;, knowing well
+that he saw her and talked with her before he fled, believing
+that her innocent acceptance of his story as the
+true explanation of his reappearance here and now will
+place him securely in the home of the man he claims is his
+father. That she saw Richard Kildene and knows him to
+be living is his reason for reappearing here and trying this
+most daring plea.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Is the true Peter Craigmile, Jr., dead? Then he can
+never arise to take the place this young man is now daring
+to usurp. Can Richard Kildene be proved to be living?
+Then is he, posing as Peter Craigmile, Jr., free from the
+charge of murder even if he makes confession thereto. He
+returns and makes this plea because he would live the life
+of a free man and not that of an outcast. He has himself
+told you why.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Now, as for the proofs that he is Richard Kildene, you
+have heard them&ndash;&ndash;and know them to be unanswered.
+He has not the marks of Elder Craigmile&rsquo;s son. You have
+seen how the man he claims is his father refuses to even
+look upon him. Could a father be so deceived as not to
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_489' name='page_489'></a>489</span>
+know his own son? When Peter Craigmile, Jr., disappeared
+he was lame and feeble. This man returns,&ndash;&ndash;strong
+and walking as well as one who never received a
+wound. Why, gentlemen, he stepped up here like a soldier&ndash;&ndash;erect
+as a man who is sound in every limb. In that his
+subtlety has failed him. He forgot to act the part. But
+this forgetfulness only goes to further prove the point in
+hand. He was so sure of success that he forgot to act the
+part of the man he pretends to be.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;He has forgotten to tell the court how he came by that
+scar above his temple,&ndash;&ndash;yet he makes the statement that
+he himself inflicted such a wound on the head of Richard
+Kildene&ndash;&ndash;the omission is remarkable in so clever an actor.
+Miss Ballard also admits having bound up that wound on
+the head of Richard Kildene,&ndash;&ndash;but still she claims that
+this man is her former fianc&eacute;, Peter Craigmile, Jr.
+Gentlemen of the Jury, is it possible that you can retire
+from this court room and not consider carefully this point?
+Is it not plainly to be seen that the prisoner thought to
+return and take the place of the man he has slain, and
+through the testimony of the young lady prove himself
+free from the thing of which he accuses himself in his confession,
+and so live hereafter the life of a free man without
+stain&ndash;&ndash;and at last to marry the young girl he has loved, of
+whom he robbed his cousin, and for whom he killed him,
+and counting on the undeniable resemblance to that cousin,
+as proved in this court, to deceive not only the young lady
+herself&ndash;&ndash;but also this whole community&ndash;&ndash;thus making
+capital out of that resemblance to his own advantage
+and&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Never! Never!&rdquo; cried a voice from the far corner of
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_490' name='page_490'></a>490</span>
+the court room. Instantly there was a stir all over. The
+Elder jumped up and frowned toward the place from whence
+the interruption came, and Milton Hibbard lifted his voice
+and tried to drown the uproar that rose and filled the room,
+but not one word he uttered could be heard.</p>
+<p>Order was called, and the stillness which ensued seemed
+ominous. Some one was elbowing his way forward, and as
+he passed through the crowd the uproar began again.
+Every one was on his feet, and although the prisoner stood
+and gazed toward the source of commotion he could not
+see the man who spoke. He looked across to the place
+where Betty Ballard had been sitting between her father
+and mother, and there he saw her standing on a chair,
+forgetful of the throng around her and of all the eyes that
+had been fixed upon her during her testimony in cold
+criticism, a wonderful, transfiguring light in her great gray
+eyes, and her arms stretched out toward some one in the
+surging crowd who was drawing nearer to the prisoner&rsquo;s
+box. Her lips were moving. She was repeating a name
+over and over. He knew the name she was repeating
+soundlessly, with quivering lips, and his heart gave a great
+bound and then stopped beating, and he fell upon his knees
+and bowed his head on his hands as they clung to the railing
+in front of him.</p>
+<p>Amalia, watching them all, with throbbing pulses and
+luminous eyes, saw and understood, and her spirit was filled
+with a great thankfulness which she could not voice, but
+which lifted her, serene and still, above every one there.
+Now she looked only at Peter Junior. Then a tremor
+crept over her, and, turning, she clasped Larry&rsquo;s arm with
+shaking hands.</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_491' name='page_491'></a>491</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;Let me that I lean a little upon you or I fall down. How
+this is beautiful!&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Larry put his arm about her and held her to him, supporting
+her gently. &ldquo;It&rsquo;s all coming right, you see.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes. But, how it is terrible for the old man! It is as
+if the lightning had fallen on him.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Larry glanced at his brother-in-law and then looked
+away. After all his desire to see him humbled, he felt a
+sense of shame in watching the old man&rsquo;s abject humility
+and remorse. Thereafter he kept his eyes fixed on his son,
+as he struggled with the throng packed closely around
+him and shouting now his name. Suddenly, when he could
+no longer progress, Richard felt himself lifted off his feet,
+and there, borne on the shoulders of the men,&ndash;&ndash;as he had
+so shortly before been borne in triumph through the streets
+of Paris,&ndash;&ndash;he was carried forward, this time by men who
+had tramped in the same column of infantry with him.
+Gladly now they held him aloft and shouted his name, and
+the people roared it back to them as they made way, and
+he was set down, as he directed, in the box beside the prisoner.</p>
+<p>Had the Judge then tried to restore order it would have
+been futile. He did not try. He stood smiling, with his
+hand on the old Elder&rsquo;s shoulder. Then, while the people
+cheered and stamped and shouted the names of the two
+young men, and while women wept and turned to each
+other, clasping hands and laughing through tears, Milton
+Hibbard stooped and spoke in the Elder&rsquo;s ear.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I throw up the case, man, and rejoice with you and the
+whole town. Go down there and take back your son.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;The Lord has visited me heavily for the wicked pride
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_492' name='page_492'></a>492</span>
+of my heart. I have no right to joy in my son&rsquo;s return.
+He should cast me off.&rdquo; The old man sat there, shriveled
+and weary&ndash;&ndash;gazing straight before him, and seeing only
+his own foolish prejudice, like a Giant Despair, looming
+over him. But fortunately for him, no one saw him or
+noticed him but the two at his side, for all eyes were fixed
+on the young men, as they stood facing each other and
+gazed in each other&rsquo;s eyes.</p>
+<p>It was a moment of breathless suspense throughout the
+court room, as if the crowd by one impulse were waiting
+to hear the young man speak, and the Judge seized the
+opportunity to again call for order.</p>
+<p>When order had been secured, the prisoner&rsquo;s counsel rose
+and said: &ldquo;If your Honor please, I ask leave to have the
+proofs opened, and to be permitted to call another witness.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>The Judge replied: &ldquo;I have no doubt the District Attorney
+will consent to this request. You may call your witness.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Richard Kildene!&rdquo; rang out the triumphant voice of
+Nathan Goodbody, and Richard stepped into the witness
+box and was sworn.</p>
+<p>The natural eloquence with which he had been endowed
+was increased tenfold by his intense earnestness as he stood,
+turning now to the Judge and now to the jury, and told his
+story. The great audience, watching him and listening
+breathlessly, perceived the differences between the two men,
+a strong individuality in each causing such diversity of
+character that the words of Betty Ballard, which had so
+irritated the counsel, and which seemed so childish, now
+appealed to them as the truest wisdom&ndash;&ndash;the wisdom of the
+&ldquo;Child&rdquo; who &ldquo;shall lead them.&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_493' name='page_493'></a>493</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;It is not the same head and it is not the same scar. It
+is not by their legs or their scars we know people, it is by
+themselves&ndash;&ndash;by their souls.&rdquo; Betty was vindicated.</p>
+<p>Poignantly, intently, the audience felt as he wished them
+to feel the truth of his words, as he described the eternal
+vigilance of a man&rsquo;s own soul when he has a crime to expiate,
+and when he concluded by saying: &ldquo;It is the Eye of Dread
+that sees into the hidden recesses of the heart,&ndash;&ndash;to the
+uttermost end of life,&ndash;&ndash;that follows the sinner even into
+his grave, until he yields to the demands of righteousness
+and accepts the terms of absolute truth,&rdquo; he carried
+them all with him, and again the tumult broke loose, and
+they shouted and laughed and wept and congratulated each
+other. The Judge himself sat stiffly in his seat, his chin
+quivering with an emotion he was making a desperate effort
+to conceal. Finally he turned and nodded to the sheriff,
+who rapped loudly for order. In a moment the room was
+silent, every one eager to hear what was to be the next step
+in the legal drama.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Gentlemen of the Jury,&rdquo; said the Judge, &ldquo;Notwithstanding
+what has occurred, it becomes our duty to proceed
+to an orderly determination of this case. If you believe
+the testimony of the last witness, then, of course, the crime
+charged has not been committed, the respondent is not
+guilty, and he is entitled to your verdict. You may, if you
+choose, consult together where you are, and if you agree
+upon a verdict, the court will receive it. If you prefer to
+retire to consider your verdict, you may do so.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>The foreman of the jury then wrote the words, &ldquo;Not
+guilty&rdquo; on a piece of paper, and writing his name under it,
+passed it to the others. Each juror quickly signed his
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_494' name='page_494'></a>494</span>
+name under that of the foreman, and when it was returned
+to him, he arose and said: &ldquo;The jury finds the accused not
+guilty.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Then for the first time every one looked at the Elder.
+He was seated bowed over his clasped hands, as if he were
+praying, as indeed he was, a fervent prayer for forgiveness.</p>
+<p>Very quietly the people left the court room, filled with
+a reverent awe by the sight of the old man&rsquo;s face. It was
+as if he had suddenly died to the world while still sitting
+there before them. But at the door they gathered and
+waited. Larry Kildene waited with them until he spied
+Mary Ballard and Bertrand, with Betty, leaving, when he
+followed them and gave Amalia into their charge. It was
+a swift and glad meeting between Larry and his old friends,
+and a hurried explanation.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I&rsquo;m coming to tell you the whole, soon, but meantime
+I&rsquo;ve brought this lovely young lady for you to care for.
+Go with them, Amalia, and tell them all about yourself,
+for they will be father and mother and sister to you. I&rsquo;ve
+found my son&ndash;&ndash;I&rsquo;ve a world to tell you, but now I must
+hurry back and comfort my brother-in-law a bit.&rdquo; He
+took Mary&rsquo;s hand in his and held it a moment, then Bertrand&rsquo;s,
+and then he relieved the situation by taking Betty&rsquo;s
+and looking into her eyes, which looked tearfully back at
+him. Stooping, as if irresistibly drawn to her, he touched
+her fingers with his lips, and then lightly her hair. It was
+done with the grace of an old courtier, and he was gone,
+disappearing in the courthouse.</p>
+<p>For a good while the crowd waited around the doors,
+neighbor visiting with neighbor and recounting the events
+of the trial that had most impressed them, and telling one
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_495' name='page_495'></a>495</span>
+and another how they had all along felt that the young
+prisoner was no other than Peter Junior, and laying all the
+blame on the Elder&rsquo;s reckless offer of so large a reward.
+Nels Nelson crept sulkily back to the stable, and G. B.
+Stiles returned to the hotel and packed his great valise
+and was taken to the station in the omnibus by Nels Nelson.
+As they parted, G. B. Stiles asked for the paper he had
+given the Swede.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;It&rsquo;s no good to you or any one now, you know. You&rsquo;re
+out nothing. I&rsquo;m the only one that&rsquo;s out&ndash;&ndash;all I&rsquo;ve spent&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yas, bot I got heem. You not&ndash;&ndash;all ofer de vorl.
+Dey vas bot&rsquo; coom back, dot&rsquo;s all,&rdquo; and so they parted.</p>
+<p>Every one was glad and rejoiced over the return of the
+young men, with a sense of relief that resulted in hilarity,
+and no one would leave until he had had a chance to grasp
+the hands of the &ldquo;boys.&rdquo; The men of the jury lingered
+with the rest, all eager to convince their friends that they
+would never have found the prisoner guilty of the charge
+against him, and at the same time chaffing each other
+about their discussions, and the way in which one and
+another had been caught by the evidence and Peter&rsquo;s
+changed appearance.</p>
+<p>At last the doors of the courthouse opened, and the Judge,
+and Milton Hibbard, Peter Junior, his father, and the lawyers,
+and Larry and Richard walked out in a group, when
+shouting and cheering began anew. Before descending
+the steps, the Elder, with bared head, stepped forward and
+stood regarding the people in silence, and the noise of shouting
+and cheering stopped as suddenly as it began. The
+devout old man stood erect, but his words came to them
+brokenly.</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_496' name='page_496'></a>496</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;My friends and my neighbors, as you all know, I have
+this day been saved&ndash;&ndash;from committing, in my blindness
+and my stubbornness, a great crime,&ndash;&ndash;for which the Lord
+be thanked. Unworthy as I am, this day my son has been
+restored to me, fine and strong, for which the Lord be
+thanked. And here, the young man brought up as a
+brother to him, is again among you who have always loved
+him,&rdquo;&ndash;&ndash;he turned and took Richard by the hand, and
+waited a moment; then, getting control of himself, once
+more continued&ndash;&ndash;&ldquo;for which again, I say, the Lord be
+thanked.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;And now let me present to you one whom many of you
+know already, who has returned to us after many years&ndash;&ndash;one
+whom in the past I have greatly wronged. Let me
+here and now make confession before you all, and present
+him to you as a man&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo; He turned and placed his hand
+on Larry&rsquo;s shoulder. &ldquo;Let me present him to you as a man
+who can forgive an enemy&ndash;&ndash;even so far as to allow that
+man who was his enemy to claim him forevermore as&ndash;&ndash;as&ndash;&ndash;brother&ndash;&ndash;and
+friend,&ndash;&ndash;Larry Kildene!&rdquo; Again cheers
+burst forth and again were held back as the Elder continued.
+&ldquo;Neighbors&ndash;&ndash;he has sent us back my son. He has
+saved me&ndash;&ndash;more than me&ndash;&ndash;from ruin and disaster, in
+these days when ruin is abroad in the land. How he has
+done it you will soon learn, for I ask you all to come
+round to my house this night and&ndash;&ndash;partake of&ndash;&ndash;of&ndash;&ndash;a
+little collation to be prepared by Mr. Decker and sent in
+for this occasion.&rdquo; The old man&rsquo;s voice grew stronger as
+he proceeded, &ldquo;Just to welcome home these boys of ours&ndash;&ndash;our
+young men&ndash;&ndash;and this man&ndash;&ndash;generous and&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You&rsquo;ve not been the only one to blame.&rdquo; Larry stepped
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_497' name='page_497'></a>497</span>
+forward and seized the Elder&rsquo;s hand, &ldquo;I take my share of
+the sorrow&ndash;&ndash;but it is past. We&rsquo;re friends&ndash;&ndash;all of us&ndash;&ndash;and
+we&rsquo;ll go all around to Elder Craigmile&rsquo;s house this
+night, and help him give thanks by partaking of his bounty&ndash;&ndash;and
+now&ndash;&ndash;will ye lift your voices and give a cheer for
+Elder Craigmile, a man who has stood in this community
+for all that is excellent, for uprightness and advancement,
+for honor and purity, a man respected, admired, and true&ndash;&ndash;who
+has stood for the good of his fellows in this town of
+Leauvite for fifty years.&rdquo; Larry Kildene lifted his hand
+above his head and smiled a smile that would have drawn
+cheers from the very paving stones.</p>
+<p>And the cheers came, heartily and strongly, as the
+four men, rugged and strong, the gray-haired and the
+brown-haired, passed through the crowd and across the
+town square and up the main street, and on to the Elder&rsquo;s
+home.</p>
+<p>Ere an hour had passed all was quiet, and the small town
+of Leauvite had taken up the even tenor of its way. After
+a little time, Larry Kildene and Richard left the Elder and
+his son by themselves and strolled away from the town on
+the familiar road toward the river. They talked quietly
+and happily of things nearest their hearts, as they had need
+to do, until they came to a certain fork of the road, when
+Larry paused, standing a moment with his arm across his
+son&rsquo;s shoulder.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I&rsquo;ll go on a piece by myself, Richard. I&rsquo;m thinking
+you&rsquo;ll be wanting to make a little visit.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Richard&rsquo;s eyes danced. &ldquo;Come with me, father, come.
+There&rsquo;ll be others there for you to talk with&ndash;&ndash;who&rsquo;ll be
+glad to have you there, and&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_498' name='page_498'></a>498</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;Go to, go to! I know the ways of a man&rsquo;s heart as well
+as the next.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I&rsquo;ll warrant you do, father!&rdquo; and Richard bounded
+away, taking the path he had so often trod in his boyhood.
+Larry stood and looked after him a moment. He was
+pleased to hear how readily the word, father, fell from the
+young man&rsquo;s lips. Yes, Richard was facile and ready. He
+was his own son.</p>
+<hr class='toprule' />
+<div class='chsp'>
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_499' name='page_499'></a>499</span>
+<a name='CHAPTER_XL_THE_SAME_BOY' id='CHAPTER_XL_THE_SAME_BOY'></a>
+<h2>CHAPTER XL</h2>
+<h3>THE SAME BOY</h3>
+</div>
+<p>Mary Ballard stepped down from the open porch where
+Amalia and the rest of the family sat behind a screen of
+vines, interestedly talking, and walked along the path
+between the rose bushes that led to the gate. She knew
+Richard must be coming when she saw Betty, who sat
+where she could glance now and then down the road, drop
+her sewing and hurry away through the house and off toward
+the spring. As Larry knew the heart of a man, so
+Mary Ballard knew the heart of a girl. She said nothing,
+but quietly strolled along and waited with her hand on the
+gate.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I wanted to be the first to open the gate to you,
+Richard,&rdquo; she said, as he approached her with extended
+arms. Silently he drew her to him and kissed her. She
+held him off a moment and gazed into his eyes.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes, I&rsquo;m the same boy. I think that was what you
+said to me when I entered the army&ndash;&ndash;that I should come
+back to you the same boy? I&rsquo;ve always had it in mind.
+I&rsquo;m the same boy.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I believe you, Richard. They are all out on the front
+porch, and Bertrand is with them&ndash;&ndash;if you wish to see him&ndash;&ndash;first&ndash;&ndash;and
+if you wish to see Betty, take the path at
+the side, around the house to the spring below the garden.&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_500' name='page_500'></a>500</span></div>
+<p>Betty stood with her back to the house under the great
+Bartlett pear tree. She was trembling. She would not
+look around&ndash;&ndash;Oh, no! She would wait until he asked for
+her. He might not ask for her! If he did not, she would
+not go in&ndash;&ndash;not yet. But she did look around, for she felt
+him near her&ndash;&ndash;she was sure&ndash;&ndash;sure&ndash;&ndash;he was near&ndash;&ndash;close&ndash;&ndash;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, Richard, Richard! Oh, Richard, did you know
+that I have been calling you in my heart&ndash;&ndash;so hard, calling
+you, calling you?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>She was in his arms and his lips were on hers. &ldquo;The
+same little Betty! The same dear little Betty! Lovelier&ndash;&ndash;sweeter&ndash;&ndash;you
+wore a white dress with little green sprigs
+on it&ndash;&ndash;is this the dress?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes, no. I couldn&rsquo;t wear the same old one all this
+time.&rdquo; She spoke between laughing and crying.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Why is this just like it?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Because.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>He held her away and gazed at her a moment. &ldquo;What
+a lovely reason! What a lovely Betty!&rdquo; He drew her to
+him again. &ldquo;I heard it all&ndash;&ndash;there in the court room. I
+was there and heard. What a load you have borne for me&ndash;&ndash;my
+little Betty&ndash;&ndash;all this time&ndash;&ndash;what a load!&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;It was horrible, Richard.&rdquo; She hid her flaming face
+on his breast. &ldquo;There, before the whole town&ndash;&ndash;to tell
+every one&ndash;&ndash;everything. I&ndash;&ndash;I&ndash;&ndash;don&rsquo;t even know what
+I said.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I do. Every word&ndash;&ndash;dear little Betty! While I have
+been hiding like a great coward, you have been bravely
+bearing my terrible burden, bearing it for me.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, Richard! For weeks and weeks my heart has been
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_501' name='page_501'></a>501</span>
+calling you, calling you&ndash;&ndash;night and day, calling you
+to come home. I told them he was Peter Junior, but
+they would not believe me&ndash;&ndash;no one would believe
+me but mother. Father tried to, but only mother
+really did.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I heard you, Betty. I had a dingy little studio up
+three flights of stairs in Paris, and I sat there painting one
+day&ndash;&ndash;and I heard you. I had sent a picture to the Salon,
+and was waiting in suspense to know the result, and I heard
+your call&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Was&ndash;&ndash;was&ndash;&ndash;that what made you come home&ndash;&ndash;or&ndash;&ndash;or
+was it because you knew you ought to?&rdquo; She lifted
+her head and looked straight into his eyes.</p>
+<p>Richard laughed. &ldquo;It&rsquo;s the same little Betty! The
+same Betty with the same conscience bigger than her head&ndash;&ndash;almost
+bigger than her heart. I can&rsquo;t tell you what it
+was. I heard it again and again, and the last time I just
+packed my things and wound up matters there&ndash;&ndash;I had
+made a success, Betty, dear&ndash;&ndash;let me say that. It makes
+me feel just a little bit more worth your while. I thought to
+make a success would be sweet, but it was all worthless&ndash;&ndash;I&rsquo;ll
+tell you all about it later&ndash;&ndash;but it was no help and I
+just followed the call and returned, hurrying as if I knew
+all about the thing that was going on, when really I knew
+nothing. Sometimes I thought it was you calling me, and
+sometimes I thought it was my own conscience, and sometimes
+I thought it was only that I could no longer bear my
+own thoughts&ndash;&ndash;See here, Betty, darling&ndash;&ndash;don&rsquo;t&ndash;&ndash;don&rsquo;t
+ever kill any one, for the thought that you have committed
+a murder is an awful thing to carry about with you.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>She laughed and hid her face again on his breast.
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_502' name='page_502'></a>502</span>
+&ldquo;Richard, how can we laugh&ndash;&ndash;when it has all been so
+horrible?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;We can&rsquo;t, Betty&ndash;&ndash;we&rsquo;re crying.&rdquo; She looked up at
+him again, and surely his eyes were filled with tears. She
+put up her hand and lightly touched his lips with her fingers.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I know. I know you&rsquo;ve suffered, Richard. I see the
+lines of sorrow here about your mouth&ndash;&ndash;even when you
+smile. I saw the same in Peter Junior&rsquo;s face, and it was
+so sad&ndash;&ndash;I just hugged him, I was so glad it was he&ndash;&ndash;I&ndash;&ndash;I&ndash;&ndash;hugged
+him and kissed him&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Bless his heart! Somebody ought to.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Somebody will. She&rsquo;s beautiful&ndash;&ndash;and so&ndash;&ndash;fascinating!
+Let&rsquo;s go in so you can meet her.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I have met her, and father has told me a great deal about
+her. I&rsquo;ve had a fine talk with my father. How wonderful
+that Peter should have been the means of finding my father
+for me&ndash;&ndash;and such a splendid father! I often used to
+think out what kind of a father I would like if I could choose
+one, but I never thought out just such a combination of
+delightful qualities as I find in him.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;It&rsquo;s like a story, isn&rsquo;t it? And we&rsquo;ll all live happily
+ever after. Shall we go in and see the rest, Richard?
+They&rsquo;ll be wanting to see you too.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Let&rsquo;s go over here and sit down. I don&rsquo;t want to see
+the rest quite yet, little one. Why, Betty, do you suppose
+I can let go of you yet?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;No,&rdquo; said Betty, meekly, and again Richard laughed.
+She lifted the hair from his temple and touched the old
+scar.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes, it&rsquo;s there, Betty. I&rsquo;m glad he hit me that welt.
+I would have pushed him over but for that. I deserved it.&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_503' name='page_503'></a>503</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;You&rsquo;re not so like him&ndash;&ndash;not so like as you used to be.
+No one would mistake you now. You don&rsquo;t look so much
+like yourself as you used to&ndash;&ndash;and you&rsquo;ve a lot of white in
+your hair. Oh, Richard!&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes. It&rsquo;s been pretty tough, Betty, dear,&ndash;&ndash;pretty
+tough. Let&rsquo;s talk of something else.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;And all the time I couldn&rsquo;t help you&ndash;&ndash;even the least bit.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;But you were a help all the time&ndash;&ndash;all the time.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;How, Richard?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I had a clean, sweet, perfect, innocent place always in
+my heart where you were that kept me from caring for a
+lot of foolishness that tempted other men. It was a good,
+sweet, wholesome place where you sat always. When I
+wanted to see you sitting there, I had only to take a funny
+little leather housewife, all worn, and tied with cherry-colored
+hair ribbons, in my hand and look at it and
+remember.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Betty sighed a long sigh of contentment and settled herself
+closer in his arms. &ldquo;Yes, I was there, and God heard
+me praying for you. Sometimes I felt myself there.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;In the secret chamber of my heart, Betty, dear?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes.&rdquo; They were silent for a while, one of the blessed
+silences which make life worth living. Then Betty lifted
+her head. &ldquo;Tell me about Paris, Richard, and what you
+did there. It was Peter who was wild to go and paint in
+Paris and it was you who went. That was why no one
+found you. They never thought that of you&ndash;&ndash;but I
+would have thought it. I knew you had it in you.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, yes, after a fashion I had it in me.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;But you said you met with success. Did that mean
+you were admitted to the Salon?&rdquo;</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_504' name='page_504'></a>504</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes, dear.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Oh, Richard! How tremendous! I&rsquo;ve read a lot
+about it. Oh, Richard! Did you like the &lsquo;Old Masters&rsquo;?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Did I! Betty, I learned a thing about your father,
+looking at the work of some of those great old fellows. I
+learned that he is a better painter and a greater man than
+people over here know.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Mother knew it&ndash;&ndash;all the time.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Ah, yes, your mother! Would you like to go there,
+Betty? Then I&rsquo;ll take you. We&rsquo;ll be married right away,
+won&rsquo;t we, dear?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You know, Richard, I believe I would be perfectly&ndash;&ndash;absolutely&ndash;&ndash;terribly
+happy&ndash;&ndash;if&ndash;&ndash;if I could only get
+over being mad at your uncle. He was so stubborn, he
+was just wicked. I hated him&ndash;&ndash;I&ndash;&ndash;I hated him so, and
+now it seems as if I had got used to hating him and couldn&rsquo;t
+stop.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>She had been so brave and had not once given way, but
+now at the thought of all the bitterness and the fight of her
+will against that of the old man, she sobbed in his arms.
+Her whole frame shook and he gathered her close and comforted
+her. &ldquo;He&ndash;&ndash;he&ndash;&ndash;he was always saying&ndash;&ndash;saying&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Never mind now what he was saying, dear. Listen.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;I&ndash;&ndash;I&ndash;&ndash;I&ndash;&ndash;am afraid&ndash;&ndash;I can never see him&ndash;&ndash;or&ndash;&ndash;or
+look at him again&ndash;&ndash;I&ndash;&ndash;I&ndash;&ndash;hate him so!&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;No, no. Don&rsquo;t hate him. Any one would have done
+the same in his place who believed as firmly as he did what
+he believed.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;B&ndash;&ndash;b&ndash;&ndash;but he didn&rsquo;t need to believe it.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;You see he had known through that Dane man&ndash;&ndash;or
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_505' name='page_505'></a>505</span>
+whatever he is&ndash;&ndash;from the detective&ndash;&ndash;all I told you that
+night&ndash;&ndash;how could he help it? I believed Peter was dead&ndash;&ndash;we
+all did&ndash;&ndash;you did. He had brooded over it and
+slept upon it&ndash;&ndash;no wonder he refused even to look at Peter.
+If you had seen Uncle Elder there in the court room after
+the people had gone, if you had seen him then, Betty, you
+would never hate him again.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;All the same, if&ndash;&ndash;if&ndash;&ndash;you hadn&rsquo;t come home when
+you did,&ndash;&ndash;and the law of Wisconsin allowed of hanging&ndash;&ndash;he
+would have had him, Peter Junior&ndash;&ndash;he would have had
+his own son hanged,&ndash;&ndash;and been glad&ndash;&ndash;glad&ndash;&ndash;because
+he would have thought he was hanging you. I do hate&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;No, no. And as he very tersely said&ndash;&ndash;if all had been
+as it seemed, and it had been me&ndash;&ndash;trying to take the place
+of Peter Junior&ndash;&ndash;I would have deserved hanging&ndash;&ndash;now
+wouldn&rsquo;t I, after all the years when Uncle Elder had been
+good to me for his sister&rsquo;s sake?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;That&rsquo;s it&ndash;&ndash;for his sister&rsquo;s sake&ndash;&ndash;n&ndash;&ndash;n&ndash;&ndash;not for
+yours, always himself and his came first. And then it
+wouldn&rsquo;t have been so. Even if it were so, it wouldn&rsquo;t
+have been so&ndash;&ndash;I mean&ndash;&ndash;I wouldn&rsquo;t have believed it&ndash;&ndash;because
+it couldn&rsquo;t have been you and been so&ndash;&ndash;&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Darling little Irish Betty! What a fine daughter you
+will be to my Irish Dad! Oh, my dear! my dear!&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;But you know such a thing would have been impossible
+for you to do. They might have known it, too, if they&rsquo;d
+had any sense. And that scar on Peter&rsquo;s head&ndash;&ndash;that was
+a new one and yours is an old one. If they had had any
+sense, they could have seen that, too.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Never any man on earth had a sweeter job than I!
+It&rsquo;s worth all I&rsquo;ve been through to come home here and
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_506' name='page_506'></a>506</span>
+comfort you. Let&rsquo;s keep it up all our lives, see? You
+always stay mad at Uncle Elder, and I&rsquo;ll always comfort
+you&ndash;&ndash;just like this.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Then Betty laughed through her tears, and they kissed
+again, and then proceeded to settle all their future to
+Richard&rsquo;s heart&rsquo;s content. Then, after a long while, they
+crept in where the family were all seated at supper, and
+instantly everything in the way of decorum at meals was
+demoralized. Every one jumped up, and Betty and Richard
+were surrounded and tumbled about and hugged and kissed
+by all&ndash;&ndash;until a shrill, childish voice raised a shout of
+laughter as little Janey said: &ldquo;What are we all kissing Betty
+for? She hasn&rsquo;t been away; she&rsquo;s been here all the time.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>It was Peter Junior who broke up the rout. He came in
+upon them, saying he had left his father asleep, exhausted
+after the day&rsquo;s emotion, and that he had come home to the
+Ballards to get a little supper. Then it was all to be done
+over again, and Peter was jumbled up among outstretched
+arms, and shaken and pounded and hugged, and happy he
+was to be taken once more thus vociferously into the home
+that had always meant so much to him. There they all
+were,&ndash;&ndash;Martha and Julien&ndash;&ndash;James and Bob, as the boys
+were called these days,&ndash;&ndash;and little Janey&ndash;&ndash;and Bertrand
+as joyous as a boy, and Mary&ndash;&ndash;she who had always
+known&ndash;&ndash;even as Betty said, smiling on him in the old
+way&ndash;&ndash;and there, watching all with glowing eyes, Amalia
+at one side, waiting, until Peter had her, too, in his arms.</p>
+<p>Quickly Martha set a place for Peter between Amalia
+and herself. Yes, it was all as it should be&ndash;&ndash;the circle
+now complete&ndash;&ndash;only&ndash;&ndash;&ldquo;Where is your father, Richard?&rdquo;
+asked Mary.</p>
+<div><span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_507' name='page_507'></a>507</span></div>
+<p>&ldquo;He went off for a walk. Isn&rsquo;t he a glorious father for
+a man to fall heir to? We&rsquo;re all to meet at Uncle Elder&rsquo;s
+to-night, and he&rsquo;ll be there.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Will he? I&rsquo;m so glad.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes, Mrs. Ballard.&rdquo; Richard looked gravely into her
+eyes and from her to Bertrand. &ldquo;You left after the verdict.
+You weren&rsquo;t at the courthouse at the last. It&rsquo;s all come
+right, and it&rsquo;s going to stay so.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>The meal progressed and ended amid laughter; and a
+little later the family all set out for the banker&rsquo;s home.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;How I wish Hester were here!&rdquo; said Mary. &ldquo;I did
+not wish her here before&ndash;&ndash;but now we want her.&rdquo; She
+looked at Peter.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes, now we want her. We&rsquo;re ready for her at last.
+Father leaves for New York to-morrow to fetch her. She&rsquo;s
+coming on the next steamship, and he&rsquo;ll meet her and bring
+her back to us all.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;How that is beautiful!&rdquo; murmured Amalia, as she
+walked at Peter&rsquo;s side. He looked down at her and noted
+a weariness in her manner she strove to conceal.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Come back with me a little&ndash;&ndash;just a little while. I can
+go later to my father&rsquo;s, and he will excuse you, and I&rsquo;ll
+take you to him before he leaves to-morrow. Come, I
+think I know where we may find Larry Kildene.&rdquo; So Peter
+led her away into the dusk, and they walked slowly&ndash;&ndash;slowly&ndash;&ndash;along
+the road leading to the river bluff&ndash;&ndash;but
+not to the top.</p>
+<p>After a long hour Larry came down from the height where
+he had been communing with himself and found them in
+the sweet starlight seated by the wayside, and passed them,
+although he knew they were Peter and Amalia. He
+<span class='pagenum pncolor'><a id='page_508' name='page_508'></a>508</span>
+walked lingeringly, feeling himself very much alone, until
+he was seized by either arm and held.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;It is your blessing, Sir Kildene, we ask it.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>And Larry gave them the blessing they asked, and took
+Amalia in his arms and kissed her. &ldquo;I thought from the
+first that you might be my son, Peter, and it means no
+diminution in my love for you that I find you are not.
+It&rsquo;s been a great day&ndash;&ndash;a great day&ndash;&ndash;a great day,&rdquo; he
+said as if to himself, and they walked on together.</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Yes, yes! Sir Kildene, I am never to know again fear.
+I am to have the new name, so strong and fine. Well can
+I say it. Hear me. Peter-Craigmile-Junior. A strange,
+fine name&ndash;&ndash;it is to be mine&ndash;&ndash;given to me. How all is
+beautiful here! It is the joy of heaven in my heart&ndash;&ndash;like&ndash;&ndash;like
+heaven, is not, Peter?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;Now you are here&ndash;&ndash;yes, Amalia.&rdquo;</p>
+<p>&ldquo;So have I say to you before&ndash;&ndash;to love is all of heaven&ndash;&ndash;and
+all of life, is not?&rdquo;</p>
+<p>Peter held in his hand the little crucifix he had worn on
+his bosom since their parting. In the darkness he felt
+rather than saw it. He placed it in her hand and drew her
+close as they walked. &ldquo;Yes, Amalia, yes. You have
+taught me. Hatred destroys like a blast, but love&ndash;&ndash;love
+is life itself.&rdquo;</p>
+
+<!-- generated by ppg.rb version: 3.14 -->
+<!-- timestamp: Sat Sep 19 11:00:59 -0600 2009 -->
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+<pre>
+
+
+
+
+
+End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of The Eye of Dread, by Payne Erskine
+
+*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE EYE OF DREAD ***
+
+***** This file should be named 30031-h.htm or 30031-h.zip *****
+This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
+ https://www.gutenberg.org/3/0/0/3/30031/
+
+Produced by Roger Frank and the Online Distributed
+Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net
+
+
+Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
+will be renamed.
+
+Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
+one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
+(and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
+permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
+set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
+copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
+protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
+Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
+charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
+do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
+rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
+such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
+research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
+practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
+subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
+redistribution.
+
+
+
+*** START: FULL LICENSE ***
+
+THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
+PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
+
+To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
+distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
+(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
+Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
+Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at
+https://gutenberg.org/license).
+
+
+Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic works
+
+1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
+and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
+(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
+the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
+all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
+If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
+terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
+entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
+
+1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
+used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
+agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
+things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
+even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
+paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
+and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works. See paragraph 1.E below.
+
+1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation"
+or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
+collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
+individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
+located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
+copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
+works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
+are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
+Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
+freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
+this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
+the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
+keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
+Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
+
+1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
+what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
+a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
+the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
+before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
+creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
+Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
+the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
+States.
+
+1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
+
+1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
+access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
+whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
+phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project
+Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
+copied or distributed:
+
+This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
+almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
+re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
+with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
+
+1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
+from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
+posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
+and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
+or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
+with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the
+work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
+through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
+Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
+1.E.9.
+
+1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
+with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
+must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
+terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
+to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
+permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
+
+1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
+work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
+
+1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
+electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
+prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
+active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
+Gutenberg-tm License.
+
+1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
+compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
+word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
+distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
+"Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
+posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org),
+you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
+copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
+request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other
+form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
+
+1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
+performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
+unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
+
+1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
+access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
+that
+
+- You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
+ the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
+ you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
+ owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
+ has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
+ Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
+ must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
+ prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
+ returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
+ sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
+ address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to
+ the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
+
+- You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
+ you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
+ does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+ License. You must require such a user to return or
+ destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
+ and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
+ Project Gutenberg-tm works.
+
+- You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
+ money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
+ electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
+ of receipt of the work.
+
+- You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
+ distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
+
+1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
+forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
+both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
+Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
+Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
+
+1.F.
+
+1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
+effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
+public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
+collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
+"Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
+corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
+property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
+computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
+your equipment.
+
+1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
+of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
+Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
+Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
+liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
+fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
+LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
+PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH F3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
+TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
+LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
+INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
+DAMAGE.
+
+1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
+defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
+receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
+written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
+received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
+your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
+the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
+refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
+providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
+receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
+is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
+opportunities to fix the problem.
+
+1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
+in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS' WITH NO OTHER
+WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
+WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
+
+1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
+warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
+If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
+law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
+interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
+the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
+provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
+
+1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
+trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
+providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
+with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
+promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
+harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
+that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
+or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
+work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
+Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
+
+
+Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
+electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
+including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
+because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
+people in all walks of life.
+
+Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
+assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
+goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
+remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
+Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
+and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
+To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
+and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
+and the Foundation web page at https://www.pglaf.org.
+
+
+Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
+Foundation
+
+The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
+501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
+state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
+Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
+number is 64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at
+https://pglaf.org/fundraising. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
+Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
+permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
+
+The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
+Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
+throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at
+809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email
+business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact
+information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official
+page at https://pglaf.org
+
+For additional contact information:
+ Dr. Gregory B. Newby
+ Chief Executive and Director
+ gbnewby@pglaf.org
+
+
+Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
+Literary Archive Foundation
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
+spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
+increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
+freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
+array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
+($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
+status with the IRS.
+
+The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
+charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
+States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
+considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
+with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
+where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
+SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
+particular state visit https://pglaf.org
+
+While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
+have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
+against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
+approach us with offers to donate.
+
+International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
+any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
+outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
+
+Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
+methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
+ways including including checks, online payments and credit card
+donations. To donate, please visit: https://pglaf.org/donate
+
+
+Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works.
+
+Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
+concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
+with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project
+Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
+
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
+editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
+unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
+keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
+
+
+Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
+
+ https://www.gutenberg.org
+
+This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
+including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
+Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
+subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
+
+
+</pre>
+
+</body>
+</html>
diff --git a/old/30031-h/images/illus-emb.png b/old/30031-h/images/illus-emb.png
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..e6351c5
--- /dev/null
+++ b/old/30031-h/images/illus-emb.png
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/30031-h/images/illus-fpc.jpg b/old/30031-h/images/illus-fpc.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..1b978b9
--- /dev/null
+++ b/old/30031-h/images/illus-fpc.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/30031.txt b/old/30031.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..480a839
--- /dev/null
+++ b/old/30031.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,16266 @@
+The Project Gutenberg EBook of The Eye of Dread, by Payne Erskine
+
+This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
+almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
+re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
+with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
+
+
+Title: The Eye of Dread
+
+Author: Payne Erskine
+
+Illustrator: George Gibbs
+
+Release Date: September 19, 2009 [EBook #30031]
+
+Language: English
+
+Character set encoding: ASCII
+
+*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE EYE OF DREAD ***
+
+
+
+
+Produced by Roger Frank and the Online Distributed
+Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+[Illustration: "Listen. Go with the love in your heart--for me."
+FRONTISPIECE. _See Page 329._]
+
+
+
+
+THE EYE OF DREAD
+
+By PAYNE ERSKINE
+
+Author of "The Mountain Girl," "Joyful Heatherby," Etc.
+
+With Frontispiece by
+
+GEORGE GIBBS
+
+A. L. BURT COMPANY, PUBLISHERS
+
+114-120 East Twenty-third Street--New York
+
+Published by Arrangement With Little, Brown & Company
+
+
+
+
+Copyright, 1913,
+
+By Little, Brown, and Company.
+
+All rights reserved
+
+Published, October, 1913
+
+Reprinted, October, 1913
+
+
+
+
+CONTENTS
+
+BOOK ONE
+
+ I. BETTY 1
+ II. WATCHING THE BEES 9
+ III. A MOTHER'S STRUGGLE 23
+ IV. LEAVE-TAKING 34
+ V. THE PASSING OF TIME 49
+ VI. THE END OF THE WAR 59
+ VII. A NEW ERA BEGINS 69
+ VIII. MARY BALLARD'S DISCOVERY 87
+ IX. THE BANKER'S POINT OF VIEW 97
+ X. THE NUTTING PARTY 110
+ XI. BETTY BALLARD'S AWAKENING 125
+ XII. MYSTERIOUS FINDINGS 139
+ XIII. CONFESSION 157
+
+BOOK TWO
+
+ XIV. OUT OF THE DESERT 168
+ XV. THE BIG MAN'S RETURN 183
+ XVI. A PECULIAR POSITION 198
+ XVII. ADOPTING A FAMILY 208
+ XVIII. LARRY KILDENE'S STORY 219
+ XIX. THE MINE--AND THE DEPARTURE 237
+ XX. ALONE ON THE MOUNTAIN 252
+ XXI. THE VIOLIN 267
+ XXII. THE BEAST ON THE TRAIL 282
+ XXIII. A DISCOURSE ON LYING 295
+ XXIV. AMALIA'S FETE 305
+ XXV. HARRY KING LEAVES THE MOUNTAIN 318
+
+BOOK THREE
+
+ XXVI. THE LITTLE SCHOOL-TEACHER 331
+ XXVII. THE SWEDE'S TELEGRAM 342
+ XXVIII. "A RESEMBLANCE SOMEWHERE" 354
+ XXIX. THE ARREST 365
+ XXX. THE ARGUMENT 376
+ XXXI. ROBERT KATER'S SUCCESS 387
+ XXXII. THE PRISONER 408
+ XXXIII. HESTER CRAIGMILE RECEIVES HER LETTER 422
+ XXXIV. JEAN CRAIGMILE'S RETURN 433
+ XXXV. THE TRIAL 445
+ XXXVI. NELS NELSON'S TESTIMONY 453
+ XXXVII. THE STRANGER'S ARRIVAL 463
+ XXXVIII. BETTY BALLARD'S TESTIMONY 475
+ XXXIX. RECONCILIATION 487
+ XL. THE SAME BOY 499
+
+
+
+
+THE EYE OF DREAD
+
+
+BOOK ONE
+
+CHAPTER I
+
+BETTY
+
+
+Two whip-poor-wills were uttering their insistent note, hidden
+somewhere among the thick foliage of the maple and basswood trees that
+towered above the spring down behind the house where the Ballards
+lived. The sky in the west still glowed with amber light, and the
+crescent moon floated like a golden boat above the horizon's edge. The
+day had been unusually warm, and the family were all gathered on the
+front porch in the dusk. The lamps within were unlighted, and the
+evening wind blew the white muslin curtains out and in through the
+opened windows. The porch was low,--only a step from the ground,--and
+the grass of the dooryard felt soft and cool to the bare feet of the
+children.
+
+In front and all around lay the garden--flowers and fruit quaintly
+intermingled. Down the long path to the gate, where three roads met,
+great bunches of peonies lifted white blossoms--luminously white in
+the moonlight; and on either side rows of currant bushes cast low,
+dark shadows, and here and there dwarf crab-apple trees tossed pale,
+scented flowers above them. In the dusky evening light the iris
+flowers showed frail and iridescent against the dark shadows under the
+bushes.
+
+The children chattered quietly at their play, as if they felt a
+mystery around them, and small Betty was sure she saw fairies dancing
+on the iris flowers when the light breeze stirred them; but of this
+she said nothing, lest her practical older sister should drop a
+scornful word of unbelief, a thing Betty shrank from and instinctively
+avoided. Why should she be told there were no such things as fairies
+and goblins and pigwidgeons, when one might be at that very moment
+dancing at her elbow and hear it all?
+
+So Betty wagged her curly golden head, wise with the wisdom of
+childhood, and went her own ways and thought her own thoughts. As for
+the strange creatures of wondrous power that peopled the earth, and
+the sky, and the streams, she knew they were there. She could almost
+see them, could almost feel them and hear them, even though they were
+hidden from mortal sight.
+
+Did she not often go when the sun was setting and climb the fence
+behind the barn under the great locust and silver-leaf poplar trees,
+where none could see her, and watch the fiery griffins in the west?
+Could she not see them flame and flash, their wings spreading far out
+across the sky in fantastic flight, or drawn close and folded about
+them in hues of purple and crimson and gold? Could she not see the
+flying mist-women flinging their floating robes of softest pink and
+palest green around their slender limbs, and trailing them delicately
+across the deepening sky?
+
+Had she not heard the giants--nay, seen them--driving their terrible
+steeds over the tumbled clouds, and rolling them smooth with noise of
+thunder, under huge rolling machines a thousand times bigger than
+that Farmer Hopkins used to crush the clods in his wheat field in the
+spring? Had she not seen the flashes of fire dart through the heavens,
+struck by the hoofs of the giants' huge beasts? Ah! She knew! If
+Martha would only listen to her, she could show her some of these true
+things and stop her scoffing.
+
+Lured by these mysteries, Betty made short excursions into the garden
+away from the others, peering among the shadows, and gazing wide-eyed
+into the clusters of iris flowers above which night moths fluttered
+softly and silently. Maybe there were fairies there. Three could ride
+at once on the back of a devil's riding horse, she knew, and in the
+daytime they rode the dragon flies, two at a time; they were so light
+it was nothing for the great green and gold, big-eyed dragon flies to
+carry two.
+
+Betty knew a place below the spring where the maidenhair fern grew
+thick and spread out wide, perfect fronds on slender brown stems,
+shading fairy bowers; and where taller ferns grew high and leaned over
+like a delicate fairy forest; and where the wild violets grew so thick
+you could not see the ground beneath them, and the grass was lush and
+long like fine green hair, and crept up the hillside and over the
+roots of the maple and basswood trees. Here lived the elves; she knew
+them well, and often lay with her head among the violets, listening
+for the thin sound of their elfin fiddles. Often she had drowsed the
+summer noon in the coolness, unheeding the dinner call, until busy
+Martha roused her with the sisterly scolding she knew she deserved and
+took in good part.
+
+Now as Betty crept cautiously about, peering and hoping with a
+half-fearing expectation, a sweet, threadlike wail trembled out toward
+her across the moonlit and shadowed space. Her father was tuning his
+violin. Her mother sat at his side, hushing Bobby in her arms. Betty
+could hear the sound of her rockers on the porch floor. Now the
+plaintive call of the violin came stronger, and she hastened back to
+curl up at her father's feet and listen. She closed her vision-seeing
+eyes and leaned against her father's knee. He felt the gentle pressure
+of his little daughter's head and liked it.
+
+All the long summer day Betty's small feet had carried her on
+numberless errands for young and old, and as the season advanced she
+would be busier still. This Betty well knew, for she was old enough to
+remember other summers, several of them, each bringing an advancing
+crescendo of work. But oh, the happy days! For Betty lived in a world
+all her own, wherein her play was as real as her work, and labor was
+turned by her imaginative little mind into new forms of play, and
+although night often found her weary--too tired to lie quietly in her
+bed sometimes--the line between the two was never in her thoughts
+distinctly drawn.
+
+To-night Betty's conscience was troubling her a little, for she had
+done two naughty things, and the pathetic quality of her father's
+music made her wish with all the intensity of her sensitive soul that
+she might confess to some one what she had done, but it was all too
+peaceful and sweet now to tell her mother of naughty things, and,
+anyway, she could not confess before the whole family, so she tried to
+repent very hard and tell God all about it. Somehow it was always
+easier to tell God about things; for she reasoned, if God was
+everywhere and knew everything, then he knew she had been bad, and had
+seen her all the time, and all she need do was to own up to it,
+without explaining everything in words, as she would have to do to her
+mother.
+
+Brother Bobby's bare feet swung close to her cheek as they dangled
+from her mother's knee, and she turned and kissed them, first one and
+then the other, with eager kisses. He stirred and kicked out at her
+fretfully.
+
+"Don't wake him, dear," said her mother.
+
+Then Betty drew up her knees and clasped them about with her arms, and
+hid her face on them while she repented very hard. Mother had said
+that very day that she never felt troubled about the baby when Betty
+had care of him, and that very day she had recklessly taken him up
+into the barn loft, climbing behind him and guiding his little feet
+from one rung of the perpendicular ladder to another, teaching him to
+cling with clenched hands to the rounds until she had landed him in
+the loft. There she had persuaded him he was a swallow in his nest,
+while she had taken her fill of the delight of leaping from the loft
+down into the bay, where she had first tossed enough hay to make a
+soft lighting place for the twelve-foot leap.
+
+Oh, the joy of it--flying through the air! If she could only fly up
+instead of down! Every time she climbed back into the loft she would
+stop and cuddle the little brother and toss hay over him and tell him
+he was a baby bird, and she was the mother bird, and must fly away and
+bring him nice worms. She bade him look up to the rafters above and
+see the mother birds flying out and in, while the little birds just
+sat still in their nests and opened their mouths. So Bobby sat still,
+and when she returned, obediently opened his mouth; but alas! he
+wearied of his role in the play, and at last crept to the very edge of
+the loft at a place where there was no hay spread beneath to break his
+fall; and when Betty looked up and saw his sweet baby face peering
+down at her over the edge, her heart stopped beating. How wildly she
+called for him to wait for her to come to him! She promised him all
+the dearest of her treasures if he would wait until "sister" got
+there.
+
+Now, as she sat clasping her knees, her little body grew all trembling
+and weak again as she lived over the terrible moment when she had
+reached him just in time to drag him back from the edge, and to cuddle
+and caress him, until he lifted up his voice and wept, not because he
+was in the least troubled or hurt, but because it seemed to be the
+right thing to do.
+
+Then she gave him the pretty round comb that held back her hair, and
+he promptly straightened it and broke it; and when she reluctantly
+brought him back to dinner--how she had succeeded in getting him down
+from the loft would make a chapter of diplomacy--her mother reproved
+her for allowing him to take it, and lapped the two pieces and wound
+them about with thread, and told her she must wear the broken comb
+after this. She was glad--glad it was broken--and she had treasured it
+so--and glad that her mother had scolded her; she wished she had
+scolded harder instead of speaking words of praise that cut her to the
+heart. Oh, oh, oh! If he had fallen over, he would be dead now, and
+she would have killed him! Thus she tortured herself, and repented
+very hard.
+
+The other sin she had that day committed she felt to be a double sin,
+because she knew all the time it was wrong and did it deliberately.
+When she went out with the corn meal to feed the little chicks and
+fetch in the new-laid eggs, she carried, concealed under her skirt, a
+small, squat book of Robert Burns' poems. These poems she loved; not
+that she understood them, but that the rhythm pleased her, and the odd
+words and half-comprehended phrases stirred her imagination.
+
+So, after feeding the chicks and gathering the eggs, she did not
+return to the house, but climbed instead up into the top of the
+silver-leaf poplar behind the barn, and sat there long, swaying with
+the swaying tree top and reading the lines that most fascinated her
+and stirred her soul, until she forgot she must help Martha with the
+breakfast dishes--forgot she must carry milk to the neighbor's--forgot
+she must mind the baby and peel the potatoes for dinner. It was so
+delightful to sway and swing and chant the rythmic lines over and over
+that almost she forgot she was being bad, and Martha had done the
+things she ought to have done, and the baby cried himself to sleep
+without her, and lay with the pathetic tear marks still on his cheeks,
+but her tired mother had only looked reproachfully at her and had not
+said one word. Oh, dear! If she could only be a good girl! If only she
+might pass one day being good all day long with nothing to regret!
+
+Now with the wailing of the violin her soul grew hungry and sad, and a
+strange, unchildish fear crept over her, a fear of the years to
+come--so long and endless they would be, always coming, coming, one
+after another; and here she was, never to stop living, and every day
+doing something that she ought not and every evening repenting
+it--and her father might stop loving her, and her sister might stop
+loving her, and her little brother might stop loving her, and Bobby
+might die--and even her mother might die or stop loving her, and she
+might grow up and marry a man who forgot after a while to love
+her--and she might be very poor--even poorer than they were now, and
+have to wash dishes every day and no one to help her--until at last
+she could bear the sadness no longer, and could not repent as hard as
+she ought, there where she could not go down on her knees and just cry
+and cry. So she slipped away and crept in the darkness to her own
+room, where her mother found her half an hour later on her knees
+beside the bed fast asleep. She lovingly undressed the limp, weary
+little girl, lifted her tenderly and laid her curly head on the
+pillow, and kissed her cheek with a repentant sigh of her own,
+regretting that she must lay so many tasks on so small a child.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER II
+
+WATCHING THE BEES
+
+
+Father Ballard walked slowly up the path from the garden, wiping his
+brow, for the heat was oppressive. "Mary, my dear, I see signs of
+swarming. The bees are hanging out on that hive under the Tolman
+Sweet. Where's Betty?"
+
+"She's down cellar churning, but she can leave. Bobby's getting
+fretful, anyway, and she can take him under the trees and watch the
+bees and amuse him. Betty!" Mary Ballard went to the short flight of
+steps leading to the paved basement, dark and cool: "Betty, father
+wants you to watch the bees, dear. Find Bobby. He's so still I'm
+afraid he's out at the currant bushes again, and he'll make himself
+sick. Keep an eye on the hive under the Tolman Sweet particularly,
+dear."
+
+Gladly Betty bounded up the steps and darted away to find the baby who
+was still called the baby by reason of his being the last arrival,
+although he was nearly three, and an active little tyrant at that.
+Watching the bees was Betty's delight. Minding the baby, lolling under
+the trees reading her books, gazing up into the great branches, and
+all the time keeping an eye on the hives scattered about in the
+garden,--nothing could be pleasanter.
+
+Naturally Betty could not understand all she read in the books she
+carried out from the library, for purely children's books were very
+few in those days. The children of the present day would be dismayed
+were they asked to read what Betty pondered over with avidity and
+loved. Her father's library was his one extravagance, even though the
+purchase of books was always a serious matter, each volume being
+discussed and debated about, and only obtained after due preparation
+by sundry small economies.
+
+As for worldly possessions, the Ballards had started out with nothing
+at all but their own two hands, and, as assets, well-equipped brains,
+their love for each other, a fair amount of thrift, and a large share
+of what Mary Ballard's old Grannie Sherman used to designate as
+"gumption." Exactly what she intended should be understood by the word
+it would be hard to say, unless it might be the faculty with which,
+when one thing proved to be no longer feasible as a shift toward
+progress and the making of a living for an increasing family, they
+were enabled to discover other means and work them out to a productive
+conclusion.
+
+Thus, when times grew hard under the stress of the Civil War, and the
+works of art representing many hours of Bertrand Ballard's keenest
+effort lay in his studio unpurchased, and even carefully created
+portraits, ordered and painstakingly painted, were left on his hands,
+unclaimed and unpaid for, he quietly turned his attention to his
+garden, saying, "People can live without pictures, but they must
+eat."
+
+So he obtained a few of the choicest of the quickly produced small
+fruits and vegetables and flowers, and soon had rare and beautiful
+things to sell. His clever hands, which before had made his own
+stretchers for his canvases, and had fashioned and gilded with gold
+leaf the frames for his own paintings, now made trellises for his
+vines and boxes for his fruits, and when the price of sugar climbed to
+the very top of the gamut, he created beehives on new models, and
+bought a book on bee culture; ere long he had combs of delicious honey
+to tempt the lovers of sweets.
+
+But how came Bertrand Ballard away out in Wisconsin in a country home,
+painting pictures for people who knew little or nothing of art, and
+cared not to know more, raising fruits and keeping bees for the means
+to live? Ah, that is another story, and to tell it would make another
+book; suffice it to say that for love of a beautiful woman, strong and
+wise and sweet, he had followed her farmer father out into the newer
+west from old New York State.
+
+There, frail in health and delicate and choice in his tastes, but
+brave in spirit, he took up the battle of the weak with life, and
+fought it like a strong man, valiantly and well. And where got he his
+strength? How are the weak ever made strong? Through strength of
+love--the inward fire that makes great the soul, while consuming the
+dross of false values and foolish estimates--from the merry heart that
+could laugh through any failure, and most of all from the beautiful
+hand, supple and workful, and gentle and forceful, that lay in his.
+
+But this is not the story of Bertrand Ballard, except incidentally as
+he and his family play their part in the drama that centers in the
+lives of two lads, one of whom--Peter Craigmile, Junior--comes now
+swinging up the path from the front gate, where three roads meet,
+brave in his new uniform of blue, with lifted head, and eyes grave and
+shining with a kind of solemn elation.
+
+"Bertrand, here comes Peter Junior in a new uniform," Mary Ballard
+called to her husband, who was working at a box in which he meant to
+fit glass sides for an aquarium for the edification of the little
+ones. He came quickly out from his workroom, and Mary rose from her
+seat and pushed her mending basket one side, and together they walked
+down the path to meet the youth.
+
+"Peter Junior, have you done it? Oh, I'm sorry!"
+
+"Why, Mary! why, Mary! I'm astonished! Not sorry?" Bertrand took the
+boy's hand in both his own and looked up in his eyes, for the lad was
+tall, much taller than his friend. "I would go myself if I only had
+the strength and were not near-sighted."
+
+"Thank the Lord!" said his wife, fervently.
+
+"Why, Mary--Mary--I'm astonished!" he said again. "Our country--"
+
+"Yes, 'Our Country' is being bled to death," she said, taking the
+boy's hand in hers for a moment; and, turning, they walked back to the
+house with the young volunteer between them. "No, I'm not reconciled
+to having our young men go down there and die by the thousands from
+disease and bullets and in prisons. It's wrong! I say war is
+iniquitous, and the issues, North or South, are not worth it. Peter, I
+had hoped you were too young. Why did you?"
+
+"I couldn't help it, Mrs. Ballard. The call for fifty thousand more
+came, and father gave his consent; and, anyway, they are taking a
+younger set now than at first."
+
+"Yes, and soon they'll take an older set, and then they'll take the
+small and frail and near-sighted ones, and then--" She stopped
+suddenly, with a contrite glance at her husband's face. He hated to be
+small and frail and near-sighted. She stepped round to his side and
+put her hand in his. "I'm thankful you are, Bertrand," she said
+quietly. "You'll stay to tea with us, won't you, Peter? We'll have it
+out of doors."
+
+"Yes, I'll stay--thank you. It may be the last time, and mother--I
+came to see if you'd go up home and see mother, Mrs. Ballard. I kind
+of thought you'd think as father and Mr. Ballard do about it, and I
+thought you might be able to help mother to see it that way, too. You
+see, mother--she--I always thought you were kind of strong and would
+see things sort of--well--big, you know, more--as we men do." He held
+his head high and looked off as he spoke.
+
+She exchanged a half-smiling glance with her husband, and their hands
+clasped tighter. "Maybe, though--if you feel this way--you can't help
+mother--but what shall I do?" The big boy looked wistfully down at
+her.
+
+"I may not be able to help her to see things you want, Peter Junior.
+Maybe she would be happier in seeing things her own way; but I can
+sympathize with her. Perhaps I can help her to hope for the best, and
+anyway--we can--just talk it over."
+
+"Thank you, Mrs. Ballard, thank you. I don't care how she sees it,
+if--if--she'll only be happier--and--give her consent. I can't bear to
+go away without that; but if she won't give it, I must go anyway,--you
+know."
+
+"Yes," she said, smiling, "I suppose we women have to be forced
+sometimes, or we never would allow some things to be done. You
+enlisted first and then went to her for her consent? Yes, you are a
+man, Peter Junior. But I tell you, if you were my son, I would never
+give my consent--nor have it forced from me--still--I would love you
+better for doing this."
+
+"My love, your inconsistency is my joy," said her husband, as she
+passed into the house and left them together.
+
+The sun still shone hotly down, but the shadows were growing longer,
+and Betty left baby asleep under the Harvest apple tree where she had
+been staying patiently during the long, warm hours, and sat at her
+father's feet on the edge of the porch, where apparently she was
+wholly occupied in tracing patterns with her bare toes in the sand of
+the path. Now and then she ran out to the Harvest apple tree and back,
+her golden head darting among the green shrubbery like a sunbeam. She
+wished to do her full duty by the bees and the baby, and at the same
+time hear all the talk of the older ones, and watch the fascinating
+young soldier in his new uniform.
+
+As bright as the sunbeam, and as silent, she watched and listened. Her
+heart beat fast with excitement, as it often did these days, when she
+heard them talk of the war and the men who went away, perhaps never to
+return, or to return with great glory. Now here was Peter Junior
+going. He already had his beautiful new uniform, and he would march
+and drill and carry a gun, and halt and present arms, along with the
+older men she had seen in the great camp out on the high bluffs which
+overlooked the wide, sweeping, rushing, willful Wisconsin River.
+
+Oh, if she were only a man and as old as Peter Junior, she would go
+with him; but it was very grand to know him even. Why was she a girl?
+If God had only asked her which she would rather be when he had made
+her out of dust, she would have told him to make her a man, so she
+might be a soldier. It was not fair. There was Bobby; he would be a
+man some day, and he could ride on a large black horse like the
+knights of old, and go to wars, and rescue people, and do deeds of
+arms. What deeds of arms were, she little knew, but it was something
+very strong and wonderful that only knights and soldiers did.
+
+Betty heaved a deep sigh, and put out her hand and softly touched
+Peter Junior's trousers. He thought it was the kitten purring about.
+No, God had not treated her fairly. Now she must grow up and be only a
+woman, and wash dishes, and sweep and dust, and get very tired, and
+wear dresses--and oh, dear! But then perhaps God had to do that way,
+for if he had given everybody a choice, everybody would choose to be
+men, and there would be no women to mind the home and take care of the
+little children, and it would be a very sad kind of world, as she had
+often heard her father say. Perhaps God had to do with them as Peter
+Junior had done with his mother when he enlisted first and asked her
+consent afterwards; just make them girls, and then try to convince
+them afterwards that it was a fine thing to be a girl. She wished she
+were Bobby instead of Betty--but then--Bobby might not have liked
+that.
+
+She glanced wistfully at the sleeping child and saw him toss his arms
+about, and knew she ought to be there to sway a green branch over him
+to keep the little gnats and flies from bothering him and waking him;
+and the bees might swarm and no one see them.
+
+"Father, is it three o'clock yet?"
+
+"Yes, deary, why?"
+
+"Goody! The bees won't swarm now, will they? Will you bring Bobby in,
+father?"
+
+"He is very well there; we won't disturb him."
+
+Peter Junior looked down on the little girl, so full of vitality and
+life and inspiration, so vibrant with enthusiasm, and saw her vaguely
+as a slightly disturbing element, but otherwise of little moment in
+the world's economy. His thoughts were on greater things.
+
+Betty accepted her father's decision without protest, as she accepted
+most things,--a finality to be endured and made the best of,--so she
+continued to run back and forth between the sleeping child and the
+porch, thereby losing much interesting dialogue,--all about camps and
+fighting and scout duty,--until at last her mother returned and with a
+glance at her small daughter's face said:--
+
+"Father, will you bring baby in now and put him in his cradle? Betty
+has had him nearly all day." And father went. Oh, beautiful mother!
+How did she know!
+
+Then Betty settled herself at Peter Junior's feet and looked up in his
+eyes gravely. "What will you be, now you are a soldier?" she asked.
+
+"Why, a soldier."
+
+"No, I mean, will you be a general--or a flag carrier--or will you
+drum? I'd be a general if I were you--or else a drummer. I think you
+would be very handsome for a general."
+
+Peter Junior threw back his head and laughed. It was the first time he
+had laughed that day, and yet he was both proud and happy. "Would you
+like to be a soldier?"
+
+"Yes."
+
+"But you might be killed, or have your leg shot off--or--"
+
+"I know. So might you--but you would go, anyway--wouldn't you?"
+
+"Certainly."
+
+"Well, then you understand how I feel. I'd like to be a man, and go to
+war, and 'Have a part to tear a cat in,' too."
+
+"What's that? What's that? Mary, do you hear that?" said her father,
+resuming his seat at Peter's side, and hearing her remark.
+
+"Why, father, wouldn't you? You know you'd like to go to war. I heard
+what you said to mother, and, anyway--I'd just like to be a man and
+'Have a part to tear a cat in,' the way men have."
+
+Bertrand Ballard looked down and patted his little daughter's head,
+then caught her up and placed her on his knee. He realized suddenly
+that his child was an entity unfathomed, separate from himself,
+working out her own individuality almost without guidance, except such
+as he and his Mary were unconsciously giving to her by their daily
+acts and words.
+
+"What books are those you have there? Don't you know you mustn't take
+father's Shakespeare out and leave it on the grass?"
+
+Betty laughed. "How did you know I had Shakespeare?"
+
+"Didn't you say you 'Would like a part to tear a cat in'?"
+
+"Oh, have you read 'Midsummer Night's Dream'?" She lifted her head
+from his bosom and eyed him gravely a moment, then snuggled
+comfortably down again. "But then, I suppose you have read everything."
+Her father and Peter both laughed.
+
+"Were you reading 'Midsummer Night's Dream' out there?"
+
+"No, I've read that lots of times--long ago. I'm reading 'The Merry
+Wives of Windsor' now."
+
+"Mary, Mary, do you hear this? I think it's time our Betty had a
+little supervision in her reading."
+
+Mary Ballard came to the door from the tea table where she had been
+arranging her little set of delicate china, her one rare treasure and
+inheritance. "Yes, I knew she was reading--whatever she fancied, but I
+thought I wouldn't interfere--not yet. I have so little time, for one
+thing, and, anyway, I thought she might browse a bit. She's like a
+calf in rare pastures, and I don't think she understands enough to do
+her harm--or much good, either. Those things slide off from her like
+water off a duck's back."
+
+Betty looked anxiously up at her mother. What things was she missing?
+She must read them all over again.
+
+"What else have you out there, Betty?" asked her father.
+
+Betty dropped her head shamefacedly. She never knew when she was in
+the right and when wrong. Sometimes the very things which seemed most
+right to her were most wrong. "That's 'Paradise Lost.' It was an old
+book, father. There was a tear in the back when I took it down. I like
+to read about Satan. I like to read about the mighty hosts and the
+angels and the burning lake. Is that hell? I was pretending if the
+bees swarmed that they would be the mighty host of bad angels falling
+out of heaven."
+
+Again Peter flung back his head and laughed. He looked at the child
+with new interest, but Betty did not smile back at him. She did not
+like being laughed at.
+
+"It's true," she said; "they did fall out of heaven in a swarm, and it
+was like over at High Knob on the river bank, only a million times
+higher, because they were so long falling. 'From morn till noon they
+fell, from noon till dewy eve.'" Betty looked off into space with
+half-closed eyes. She was seeing them fall. "It was a long time to be
+in suspense, wasn't it, father?" Then every one laughed. Even mother
+joined in. She was putting the last touches to the tea table.
+
+"Mary, my dear, I think we'd better take a little supervision of the
+child's reading--I do, really."
+
+The gate at the end of the long path to the house clicked, and another
+lad came swinging up the walk, slightly taller than Peter Junior, but
+otherwise enough like him in appearance to be his own brother. He was
+not as grave as Peter, but smiled as he hailed them, waving his cap
+above his head. He also wore the blue uniform, and it was new.
+
+"Hallo, Peter! You here?"
+
+"Of course I'm here. I thought you were never coming."
+
+"You did?"
+
+Betty sprang from her father's lap and ran to meet him. She slipped
+her hand in his and hopped along at his side. "Oh, Rich! Are you
+going, too? I wish I were you."
+
+He lifted the child to a level with his face and kissed her, then set
+her on her feet again. "Never wish that, Betty. It would spoil a nice
+little girl."
+
+"I'm not such a nice little girl. I--I--love Satan--and they're going
+to--to--supervise my reading." She clung to his hand and nodded her
+head with finality. He swung her along, making her take long leaps as
+they walked.
+
+"You love Satan? I thought you loved me!"
+
+"It's the same thing, Rich," said Peter Junior, with a grin.
+
+Bertrand had gone to the kitchen door. "Mary, my love, here's Richard
+Kildene." She entered the living room, carrying a plate of light, hot
+biscuit, and hurried out to Richard, greeting him warmly--even
+lovingly.
+
+"Bertrand, won't you and the boys carry the table out to the garden?"
+she suggested. "Open both doors and take it carefully. It will be
+pleasanter here in the shade."
+
+The young men sprang to do her bidding, and the small table was borne
+out under the trees, the lads enumerating with joy the articles of
+Mary Ballard's simple menu.
+
+"Hot biscuits and honey! My golly! Won't we wish for this in about two
+months from now?" said Richard.
+
+"Cream and caraway cookies!" shouted Peter Junior, turning back to the
+porch to help Bertrand carry the chairs. "Of course we'll be wishing
+for this before long, but that's part of soldiering."
+
+"We're not looking forward to a well-fed, easy time of it, so we'll
+just make the best of this to-night, and eat everything in sight,"
+said Richard.
+
+Bertrand preferred to change the subject. "This is some of our new
+white clover honey," he said. "I took it from that hive over there
+last evening, and they've been working all day as if they had had new
+life given them. All bees want is a lot of empty space for storing
+honey."
+
+Richard followed Mrs. Ballard into the kitchen for the tea. "Where are
+the other children?" he asked.
+
+"Martha and Jamie are spending a week with my mother and father. They
+love to go there, and mother--and father, also, seem never to have
+enough of them. Baby is still asleep, and I must waken him, too, or
+he won't sleep to-night. I hung a pail of milk over the spring to keep
+it cool, and the butter is there also--and the Dutch cheese in a tin
+box. Can you--wait, I'd better go with you. We'll leave the tea to
+steep a minute."
+
+They passed through the house and down toward the spring house under
+the maple and basswood trees at the back, walking between rows of
+currant bushes where the fruit hung red.
+
+"I hate to leave all this--maybe forever," said the boy. The corners
+of his mouth drooped a little, and he looked down at Mary Ballard with
+a tender glint in his deep blue eyes. His eyes were as blue as the
+lake on a summer's evening, and they were shaded by heavy dark brown
+lashes, almost black. His brows and hair were the same deep brown.
+Peter Junior's were a shade lighter, and his hair more curling. It was
+often a matter of discussion in the village as to which of the boys
+was the handsomer. That they were both fine-looking lads was always
+conceded.
+
+Mary Ballard turned toward him impulsively. "Why did you do this,
+Richard? Why? I can't feel that this fever for war is right. It is
+terrible. We are losing the best blood in the land in a wicked war."
+She took his two hands in hers, and her eyes filled. "When we first
+came here, your mother was my dearest friend. You never knew her, but
+I loved her--and her loss was much to me. Richard, why didn't you
+consult us?"
+
+"I hadn't any one but you and your husband to care. Oh, Aunt Hester
+loves me, of course, and is awfully good to me--but the Elder--I
+always feel somehow as if he expects me to go to the bad. He never had
+any use for my father, I guess. Was my father--was--he no good? Don't
+mind telling me the truth: I ought to know."
+
+"Your father was not so well known here, but he was, in Bertrand's
+estimation, a royal Irish gentleman. We both liked him; no one could
+help it. Never think hardly of him."
+
+"Why has he never cared for me? Why have I never known him?"
+
+"There was a quarrel--or--some unpleasantness between your uncle and
+him; it's an old thing."
+
+Richard's lip quivered an instant, then he drew himself up and smiled
+on her, then he stooped and kissed her. "Some of us must go; we can't
+let this nation be broken up. Some men must give their lives for it;
+and I'm one of those who ought to go, for I have no one to mourn for
+me. Half the class has enlisted."
+
+"I venture to say you suggested it, too?"
+
+"Well--yes."
+
+"And Peter Junior was the first to follow you?"
+
+"Well, yes! I'm sorry--because of Aunt Hester--but we always do pull
+together, you know. See here, let's not think of it in this way. There
+are other ways. Perhaps I'll come back with straps on my shoulders and
+marry Betty some day."
+
+"God grant you may; that is, if you come back as you left us. You
+understand me? The same boy?"
+
+"I do and I will," he said gravely.
+
+That was a happy hour they spent at the evening meal, and many an
+evening afterwards, when hardship and weariness had made the lads seem
+more rugged and years older, they spoke of it and lived it over.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER III
+
+A MOTHER'S STRUGGLE
+
+
+"Come, Lady, come. You're slow this morning." Mary Ballard drove a
+steady, well-bred, chestnut mare with whom she was on most friendly
+terms. Usually her carryall was filled with children, for she kept no
+help, and when she went abroad, she must perforce take the children
+with her or spend an unquiet hour or two while leaving them behind.
+This morning she had left the children at home, and carried in their
+stead a basket of fruit and flowers on the seat beside her. "Come,
+Lady, come; just hurry a little." She touched the mare with the whip,
+a delicate reminder to haste, which Lady assumed to be a fly and
+treated as such with a switch of her tail.
+
+The way seemed long to Mary Ballard this morning, and the sun beating
+down on the parched fields made the air quiver with heat. The unpaved
+road was heavy with dust, and the mare seemed to drag her feet through
+it unnecessarily as she jogged along. Mary was anxious and dreaded the
+visit she must make. She would be glad when it was over. What could
+she say to the stricken woman who spent her time behind closed blinds?
+Presently she left the dust behind and drove along under the maple
+trees that lined the village street, over cool roads that were kept
+well sprinkled.
+
+The Craigmiles lived on the main street of the town in the most
+dignified of the well-built homes of cream-colored brick, with a wide
+front stoop and white columns at the entrance. Mary was shown into the
+parlor by a neat serving maid, who stepped softly as if she were
+afraid of waking some one. The room was dark and cool, but the air
+seemed heavy with a lingering musky odor. The dark furniture was set
+stiffly back against the walls, the floor was covered with a velvet
+carpet of rich, dark colors, and oil portraits were hung about in
+heavy gold frames.
+
+Mary looked up at two of these portraits with pride, and rebelled that
+the light was so shut out that they must always be seen in the
+obscurity, for Bertrand had painted them, and she considered them her
+husband's best work. In the painting of them and the long sittings
+required the intimacy between the two families had begun. Really it
+had begun before that, for there were other paintings in that
+home--portraits, old and fine, which Elder Craigmile's father had
+brought over from Scotland when he came to the new world to establish
+a new home. These paintings were the pride of Elder Craigmile's heart,
+and the delight of Bertrand Ballard's artist soul.
+
+To Bertrand they were a discovery--an oasis in a desert. One day the
+banker had called him in to look at a canvas that was falling to
+pieces with age, in the hope that the artist might have the skill to
+restore it. From that day the intimacy began, and a warm friendship
+sprang up between the two families, founded on Bertrand's love for the
+old works of art, wherein the ancestors of Peter Craigmile, Senior,
+looked out from their frames with a dignity and warmth and grace
+rarely to be met with in this new western land.
+
+Bertrand's heart leaped with joy as he gazed on one of them, the one
+he had been called on to save if possible. "This must be a genuine
+Reynolds. Ah! They could paint, those old fellows!" he cried.
+
+"Genuine Reynolds? Why, man, it is! it is! You are a true artist. You
+knew it in a moment." Peter Senior's heart was immediately filled with
+admiration for the younger man. "Yes, they were a good family--the
+Craigmiles of Aberdeen. My father brought all the old portraits coming
+to him to this country to keep the family traditions alive. It's a
+good thing--a good thing!"
+
+"She was a beautiful woman, the original of that portrait."
+
+"She was a great beauty, indeed. Her husband took her to London to
+have it done by the great painter. Ah, the Scotch lasses were fine!
+Look at that color! You don't see that here, no?"
+
+"Our American women are too pale, for the most part; but then again,
+your men are too red."
+
+"Ah! Beef and red wine! Beef and red wine! With us in Scotland it was
+good oatcakes and home-brew--and the air. The air of the Scotch hills
+and the sea. You don't have such air here, I've often heard my father
+say. I've spent the greater part of my life here, so it's mostly the
+traditions I have--they and the portraits."
+
+Thus it came about that owing to his desire to keep up the line of
+family portraits, Peter Craigmile engaged the artist to paint the
+picture of his gentle, sweet-faced wife. She was painted seated, a
+little son on either side of her; and now in the dimness she looked
+out from the heavy gold frame, a half smile playing about her lips, on
+her lap an open book, and about the low-cut crimson velvet bodice
+rare old lace pinned at the bosom with a large brooch of wrought gold,
+framing a delicately cut cameo.
+
+As Mary Ballard sat in the parlor waiting, she looked up in the dusky
+light at this picture. Ah, yes! Her Bertrand also was a great painter.
+If only he could be where he might become known and appreciated! She
+sighed for another reason, also, as she regarded it: because the two
+little sons clasped by the mother's arms were both gone. Sunny-haired
+Scotch laddies they were, with fair, wide brows, each in kilt and
+plaid, with bare knees and ruddy cheeks. What delight her husband had
+taken in painting it! And now the mother mourned unceasingly the loss
+of those little sons, and of one other whom Mary had never seen, and
+of whom they had no likeness. It was indeed hard that the one son left
+them,--their firstborn,--their hope and pride, should now be going
+away to leave them, going perhaps to his death.
+
+The door opened and a shadow swept slowly across the room. Always pale
+and in black--wrapped in her mourning the shadow of sorrow never left
+this mother; and now it seemed to envelop even Mary Ballard, bright
+and warm of nature as she was.
+
+Hester Craigmile barely smiled as she held out her slender,
+blue-veined hand.
+
+"It is very good of you to come to me, Mary Ballard, but you can't
+make me think I should be reconciled to this. No! It is hard enough to
+be reconciled to the blows God has dealt me, without accepting what my
+husband and son see fit to give me in this." Her hand was cold and
+passive, and her voice was restrained and low.
+
+Mary Ballard's hands were warm, and her tones were rich and full. She
+took the proffered hand in both her own and drew the shadow down to
+sit at her side.
+
+"No, no. I'm not going to try to make you reconciled, or anything.
+I've just come to tell you that I understand, and that I think you are
+justified in withholding your consent to Peter Junior's going off in
+this way."
+
+"If he were killed, I should feel as if I had consented to his
+death."
+
+"Of course you would. I should feel just the same. Naturally you can't
+forbid his going,--now,--for it's too late, and he would have to go
+with the feeling of disobedience in his heart, and that would be cruel
+to him, and worse for you."
+
+"I know. His father has consented; they think I am wrong. My son
+thinks I am wrong. But I can't! I can't!" In her suppressed tones
+sounded the ancient wail of women--mothers crying for their sons
+sacrificed in war. For a few moments neither of them spoke. It was
+hard for Mary to break the silence. Her friend sat at her side
+withdrawn and still; then she lifted her eyes to the picture of
+herself and the children and spoke again, only breathing the words:
+"Peter Junior--my beautiful oldest boy--he is the last--the others are
+all gone--three of them."
+
+"Peter Junior is splendid. I thought so last evening as I saw him
+coming up the path. I took it home to myself--what I should feel, and
+what I would think if he were my son. Somehow we women are so
+inconsistent and foolish. I knew if he were my son, I never could give
+my consent to his going, never in the world,--but there! I would be so
+proud of him for doing just what your boy has done; I would look up
+to him in admiration, and be so glad that he was just that kind of a
+man!"
+
+Hester Craigmile turned and looked steadily in her friend's eyes, but
+did not open her lips, and after a moment Mary continued:--
+
+"To have one's sons taken like these--is--is different. We know they
+are safe with the One who loved little children; we know they are safe
+and waiting for us. But to have a boy grow into a young man like Peter
+Junior--so straight and fine and beautiful--and then to have him come
+and say: 'I'm going to help save our country and will die for it if I
+must!' Why, my heart would grow big with thanksgiving that I had
+brought such an one into the world and reared him. I--What would I do!
+I couldn't tell him he might go,--no,--but I'd just take him in my
+arms and bless him and love him a thousand times more for it, so he
+could go away with that warm feeling all about his heart; and
+then--I'd just pray and hope the war might end soon and that he might
+come back to me rewarded, and--and--still good."
+
+"That's it. If he would,--I don't distrust my son,--but there are
+always things to tempt, and if--if he were changed in that way, or if
+he never came back,--I would die."
+
+"I know. We can't help thinking about ourselves and how we are
+left--or how we feel--" Mary hesitated and was loath to go on with
+that train of thought, but her friend caught her meaning and rose in
+silence and paced the room a moment, then returned.
+
+"It is easy to talk in that way when one has not lost," she said.
+
+"I know it seems so, but it is not easy, Hester Craigmile. It is
+hard--so hard that I came near staying at home this morning. It seemed
+as if I could not--could not--"
+
+"Yes, what I said was bitter, and it wasn't honest. You were good to
+come to me--and what you have said is true. It has helped me; I think
+it will help me."
+
+"Then good-by. I'll go now, but I'll come again soon." She left the
+shadow sitting there with the basket of fruit and flowers at her side
+unnoticed and forgotten, and stepped quietly out of the darkened room
+into the sunlight and fresh air.
+
+"I do wish I could induce her to go out a little--or open up her
+house. I wish--" Mary Ballard said no more, but shut her lips tightly
+on her thoughts, untied the mare, and drove slowly away.
+
+Hester Craigmile stood for a moment gazing on the picture of her
+little sons, then for an hour or more wandered up and down over her
+spacious home, going from room to room, mechanically arranging and
+rearranging the chairs and small articles on the mantels and tables.
+Nothing was out of place. No dust or disorder anywhere, and there was
+the pity of it. If only a boy's cap could be found lying about, or
+books left carelessly where they ought not to be! One closed door she
+passed again and again. Once she laid her hand on the knob, but passed
+on, leaving it still unopened. At last she turned, and, walking
+swiftly down the long hall, entered the room.
+
+There the blinds were closed and the curtains drawn, and everything
+set in as perfect order as in the parlor below. She sat down in a
+chair placed back against the wall and folded her hands in her lap.
+No, it was not so hard for Mary Ballard. It would not be, even if she
+had a son old enough to go. Mary had work to do.
+
+On the wall above Hester's head was one of the portraits which helped
+to establish the family dignity of the Craigmiles. If the blinds had
+been open, one could have seen it in sharp contrast to the pale moth
+of a woman who sat beneath it. The painting, warm and rich in tone,
+was of a dame in a long-bodiced dress. She held a fan in her hand and
+wore feathers in her powdered hair. Her eyes gazed straight across the
+room into those of a red-coated soldier who wore a sword at his side
+and gold on his shoulders. Yes, there had been soldiers in the family
+before Peter Junior's time.
+
+This was Peter Junior's room, but the boy was there no longer. He had
+come home from college one day and had entered it a boy, and then he
+came out of it and down to his mother, dressed in his new uniform--a
+man. Now he entered it no more, for he stayed at the camp over on the
+high bluff of the Wisconsin River. He was wholly taken up with his new
+duties there, and his room had been set in order and closed as if he
+were dead.
+
+Sitting there, Hester heard the church clock peal out the hour of
+twelve, and started. Soon she would hear the front door open and shut,
+and a heavy tread along the lower hall, and she would go down and sit
+silently at the table opposite her husband, they two alone. There
+would be silence, because there would be nothing to say. He loved her
+and was tender of her, but his word was law, and in all matters he was
+dictator, lawmaker, and judge, and from his decisions there was no
+appeal. It never occurred to him that there ever need be. So Hester
+Craigmile, reserved and intense, closed her lips on her own thoughts,
+which it seemed to her to be useless to utter, and let them eat her
+heart out in silence.
+
+At the moment expected she heard the step on the floor of the
+vestibule, and the door opened, but it was not her husband's step
+alone that she heard. Surely it was Peter Junior's and his cousin's.
+Were they coming to dinner? But no word had been sent. Hester stepped
+out of the room and stood at the head of the stairs waiting. She did
+not wish to go down and meet her son before the others, and if he did
+not find her below, he would know where to look for her.
+
+Peter Senior was an Elder in the Presbyterian Church, and he was
+always addressed as Elder, even by his wife and son. On the street he
+was always Elder Craigmile. She heard the men enter the dining room
+and the door close after them, but still she waited. The maid would
+have to be told to put two more places at the table, but Hester did
+not move. The Elder might attend to that. Presently she heard quick
+steps returning and knew her son was coming. She went to meet him and
+was clasped in his arms, close and hard.
+
+"You were waiting for me here? Come, mother, come." He stroked her
+smooth, dark hair, and put his cheek to hers. It was what she needed,
+what her heart was breaking for. She could even let him go easier
+after this. Sometimes her husband kissed her, but only when he went a
+journey or when he returned, a grave kiss of farewell or greeting; but
+in her son's clasp there was something of her own soul's pent-up
+longing.
+
+"You'll come down, mother? Rich came home with me."
+
+"Yes, I heard his voice. I am glad he came."
+
+"See here, mother! I know what you are doing. This won't do. Every one
+who goes to war doesn't get killed or go to the bad. Look at that old
+redcoat up in my room. He wasn't killed, or where would I be now? I'm
+coming back, just as he did. We are born to fight, we Craigmiles, and
+father feels it or he never would have given his consent."
+
+Slowly they went down the long winding flight of stairs--a flight with
+a smooth banister down which it had once been Peter Junior's delight
+to slide when there was no one nigh to reprove. Now he went down with
+his arm around his slender mother's waist, and now and then he kissed
+her cheek like a lover.
+
+The Elder looked up as they entered, with a slight wince of
+disapproval, the only demonstration of reproof he ever gave his wife,
+which changed instantly to as slight a smile, as he noticed the faint
+color in her cheek, and a brighter light in her eyes than there was at
+breakfast. He and Richard were both seated as they entered, but they
+rose instantly, and the Elder placed her chair with all the manner of
+his forefathers, a courtesy he never neglected.
+
+Hester Craigmile forced herself to converse, and tried to smile as if
+there were no impending gloom. It was here Mary Ballard's influence
+was felt by them all. She had helped her friend more than she knew.
+
+"I'm glad to see you, Richard; I was afraid I might not."
+
+"Oh, no, Aunt Hester. I'd never leave without seeing you. I went into
+the bank and the Elder asked me to dinner and I jumped at the
+chance."
+
+"This is your home always, you know."
+
+"And it's good to think of, too, Aunt Hester."
+
+She looked at her son and then her nephew. "You are so like in your
+uniforms I would not know you apart on the street in the dark," she
+said. Richard shot a merry glance in his uncle's eyes, then only
+smiled decorously with him and Peter Junior.
+
+"I wish you'd visit the camp and see us drill. We go like clockwork,
+Peter and I. They call us the twins."
+
+"There is a very good reason for that, for your mother and I were
+twins, and you resemble her, while Peter Junior resembles me," said
+the Elder.
+
+"Yes," said Hester, "Peter Junior looks like his father;" but as she
+glanced at her son she knew his soul was hers.
+
+Thus the meal passed in quiet, decorous talk, touching on nothing
+vital, but holding a smoldering fire underneath. The young men said
+nothing about the fact that the regiment had been called to duty, and
+soon the camp on the bluff would be breaking up. They dared not touch
+on the past, and they as little dared touch on the future--indeed
+there might be no future. So they talked of indifferent things, and
+Hester parted with her nephew as if they were to meet again soon,
+except that she called him back when he was halfway down the steps and
+kissed him again. As for her son, she took him up to his room and
+there they stayed for an hour, and then he came out and she was left
+in the house alone.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER IV
+
+LEAVE-TAKING
+
+
+Early in the morning, while the earth was still a mass of gray shadow
+and mist, and the sky had only begun to show faint signs of the flush
+of dawn, Betty, awake and alert, crept softly out of bed, not to
+awaken Martha, who slept the sleep of utter weariness at her side.
+Martha had returned only the day before from her visit to her
+grandfather's, a long carriage ride away from Leauvite.
+
+Betty bathed hurriedly, giving a perfunctory brushing to the tangled
+mass of curls, and getting into her clothing swiftly and silently. She
+had been cautioned the night before by her mother not to awaken her
+sister by getting up at too early an hour, for she would be called in
+plenty of time to drive over with the rest to see the soldiers off.
+But what if her mother should forget! So she put on her new white
+dress and gathered a few small parcels which she had carefully tied up
+the night before, and her hat and little white linen cape, and taking
+her shoes in her hand, softly descended the stairs.
+
+"Betty, Betty," her mother spoke in a sleepy voice from her own room
+as the child crept past her door; "why, my dear, it isn't time to get
+up yet. We shan't start for hours."
+
+"I heard Peter Junior say they were going to strike camp at daybreak,
+and I want to see them strike it. You don't need to get up. I can go
+over there alone."
+
+"Why, no, child! Mother couldn't let you do that. They don't want
+little girls there. Go back to bed, dear. Did you wake Martha?"
+
+"Oh, mother. Can't I go downstairs? I don't want to go to bed again.
+I'll be very still."
+
+"Will you lie on the lounge and try to go to sleep again?"
+
+"Yes, mother."
+
+Mary Ballard turned with a sigh and presently fell asleep, and Betty
+softly continued her way and obediently lay down in the darkened room
+below; but sleep she could not. At last, having satisfied her
+conscience by lying quietly for a while, she stole to the open door,
+for in that peaceful spot the Ballards slept with doors and windows
+wide open all through the warm nights. Oh, but the world was cool and
+mysterious, and the air was sweet! Little rustling noises made her
+feel as if strange beings were stirring; above her head were soft
+chirpings, and somewhere a bird was calling an undulating, long-drawn
+note, low and sweet, like a tone drawn from her father's violin.
+
+Betty sat on the edge of the porch and put on her shoes, and then
+walked down the path to the gate. The white peonies and the iris
+flowers were long since gone, and on the Harvest apple trees and the
+Sweet Boughs the fruit hung ripening. All Betty's life long she never
+forgot this wonderful moment of the breaking of day. She listened for
+sounds to come to her from the camp far away on the river bluff, but
+none were heard, only the restless moving of her grandfather's team
+taking their early feed in the small pasture lot near by.
+
+How fresh everything smelled! And the sky! Surely it must be like
+this in heaven! It must be heaven showing through, while the world
+slept. She was glad she had awakened early so she might see it,--she
+and God and the angels, and all the wild things of earth.
+
+Slowly everything around her grew plainer, and long rays of color,
+faintly pink, streamed up into the sky from the eastern horizon; then
+suddenly some pale gray, floating clouds above her head blossomed into
+a wonderful rose laid upon a sea of gold, then gradually turned
+shell-pink, then faded through changing shades to daytime clouds of
+white. She wondered if the soldiers saw it, too. They were breaking
+camp now, surely, for it was day. Still she swung on the gate and
+dreamed, until a voice roused her.
+
+"So Betty sleeps all night on the gate like a chicken on the fence." A
+pair of long arms seized her and lifted her high in the air to a pair
+of strong shoulders. Then she was tossed about and her cheeks rubbed
+red against grandfather Clide's stubby beard, until she laughed aloud.
+"What are you doing here on the gate?"
+
+"I was watching the sky. I think God looked through and smiled, for
+all at once it blossomed. Now the colors are gone."
+
+Grandfather Clide set her gently on her feet and stood looking gravely
+down on her for a moment. "So?" he said.
+
+"The soldiers are striking camp over there, and then they are going to
+march to the square, and then every one is to see them form and
+salute--and then they are to march to the station, and--and--then--and
+then I don't know what will be--I think glory."
+
+Her grandfather shook his head, his thoughtful face half smiling and
+half grave. He took her hand. "Come, we'll see what Jack and Jill are
+up to." He led her to the pasture lot and the horses came and thrust
+their heads over the fence and whinnied. "See? They want their oats."
+Then Betty was lifted to old Jack's bare back and grandfather led him
+by the forelock to the barn, while Jill followed after.
+
+"Did Jack ever 'fall down and break his crown,' grandfather?"
+
+"No, but he ran away once on a time."
+
+"Oh, did Jill come running after?"
+
+"That she did."
+
+The sun had but just cast his first glance at High Knob, where the
+camp was, and Mary Ballard was hastily whipping up batter for
+pancakes, the simplest thing she could get for breakfast, as they were
+to go early enough to see the "boys" at the camp before they formed
+for their march to the town square. The children were to ride over in
+the great carriage with grandfather and grandmother Clide, while
+father and mother would take Bobby with them in the carryall. It was
+an arrangement liked equally by the three small children and the
+well-content grandparents.
+
+Betty came to the house, clinging to her grandfather's hand. He drew
+the large rocking-chair from the kitchen--where winter and summer it
+occupied a place by the window, that Bertrand in his moments of rest
+and leisure might sit and read the war news aloud to his wife as she
+worked--out to a cool grass plot by the door, so that he might still
+be near enough to chat with his daughter, while enjoying the morning
+air.
+
+Betty found tidy little Martha, fresh and clean as a rosebud,
+stepping busily about, setting the table with extra places and putting
+the chairs around. Filled with self-condemnation at the sight of her
+sister's helpfulness, she dashed upstairs to do her part in getting
+all neat for the day. First she coaxed naughty little Jamie, who, in
+his nightshirt, was out on the porch roof fishing, dangling his shoe
+over the edge by its strings tied to his father's cane, to return and
+be hustled into his trousers--funny little garments that came almost
+to his shoe tops--and to stand still while "sister" washed his face
+and brushed his curly red hair into a state of semi-orderliness.
+
+Then there was Bobby to be kissed and coaxed, and washed and dressed,
+and told marvelous tales to beguile him into listening submission.
+"Mother, mayn't I put Bobby's Sunday dress on him?" called Betty, from
+the head of the stairs.
+
+"Yes, dear, anything you like, but hurry. Breakfast is almost ready;"
+then to Martha, "Leave the sweeping, deary, and run down to the spring
+for the cream." To her father, Mary explained: "The little girls are a
+great help. Betty manages to do for the boys without irritating them.
+Now we'll eat while the cakes are hot. Come, Bertrand."
+
+It was a grave mission and a sorrowful one, that early morning ride to
+say good-by to those youthful volunteers. The breakfast conversation
+turned on the subject with subdued intensity. Mary Ballard did not
+explain herself,--she was too busy serving,--but denounced the war in
+broad terms as "unnecessary and iniquitous," thus eliciting from her
+husband his usual exclamation, when an aphorism of more than ordinary
+daring burst from her lips: "Mary! why, Mary! I'm astonished!"
+
+"Every one regards it from a different point of view," said his wife,
+"and this is my point." It was conclusive.
+
+Grandfather Clide turned sideways, leaned one elbow on the table in a
+meditative way he had, and spoke slowly. Betty gazed up at him in
+wide-eyed attention, while Mary poured the coffee and Martha helped
+her mother by passing the cakes. Bobby sat close to his comfortable
+grandmother, who seemed to be giving him all her attention, but who
+heard everything, and was ready to drop a quiet word of significance
+when applicable.
+
+"If we bring the question down to its primal cause," said grandfather,
+"if we bring it down to its primal cause, Mary is right; for the cause
+being iniquitous, of course, the war is the same."
+
+"What is 'primal cause,' grandfather?" asked Betty.
+
+"The thing that began it all," said grandfather, regarding her
+quizzically.
+
+"I don't agree with your conclusion," said Bertrand, pausing to put
+sirup on Jamie's cakes, after repeated demands therefor. "If the cause
+be evil, it follows that to annihilate the cause--wipe it out of
+existence--must be righteous."
+
+"In God's good time," said grandmother Clide, quietly.
+
+"God's good time, in my opinion, seems to be when we are forced to a
+thing." Grandfather lifted one shaggy eyebrow in her direction.
+
+"At any rate, and whatever happens," said Bertrand, "the Union must be
+preserved, a nation, whole and undivided. My father left England for
+love of its magnificent ideals of government by the people. Here is to
+be the vast open ground where all nations may come and realize their
+highest possibilities, and consequently this nation must be held
+together and developed as a whole in all its resources, and not cut up
+into small, ineffective, quarrelsome factions. To allow that would
+mean the ruin of a colossal scheme for universal progress."
+
+Mary brought her husband's coffee and put it beside his plate, as he
+was too absorbed to take it, and as she did so placed her hand on his
+shoulder with gentle pressure and their eyes met for an instant. Then
+grandfather Clide took up the thread.
+
+"Speaking of your father makes me think of my father, your old
+grandfather Clide, Mary. He fought with his father in the Revolutionary
+War when he was a lad no more than Peter Junior's age--or less. He lived
+through it and came to be a judge of the supreme court of New York, and
+helped to frame the constitution of that State, too. I used to hear
+him say, when I was a mere boy,--and he would bring his fist down on
+the table with an emphasis that made the dishes rattle, for all he
+averred that he never used gesticulation to aid his oratory,--he used to
+say,--I remember his words, as if it were but yesterday,--'Slavery is a
+crime which we, the whole nation, are accountable for, and for which we
+will be held accountable. If we as a nation will not do away with it by
+legislation or mutual compact justly, then the Lord will take it into
+his own hands and wipe it out with blood. He may be patient for a long
+while, and give us a good chance, but if we wait too long,--it may
+not be in my day--it may not be in yours,--he will wipe it out with
+blood!' and here was where he used to make the dishes rattle."
+
+"Maybe, then, this is the Lord's good time," said grandmother.
+
+"I believe in preserving the Union at any cost, slavery or no
+slavery," said Bertrand.
+
+"The bigger and grander the nation, the more rottenness, if it's
+rotten at heart. I believe it better--even at the cost of war--to wipe
+out a national crime,--or let those who want slavery take themselves
+out of it."
+
+Betty began to quiver through all her little system of high-strung
+nerves and sympathies. The talk was growing heated, and she hated to
+listen to excited arguments; yet she gazed and listened with
+fascinated attention.
+
+Bertrand looked up at his father-in-law. "Why, father! why, father!
+I'm astonished! I fail to see how permitting one tremendous evil can
+possibly further any good purpose. To my mind the most tremendous evil
+that could be perpetrated on this globe--the thing that would do more
+to set all progress back for hundreds of years, maybe--would be to
+break up this Union. Here in this country now we are advancing at a
+pace that covers the centuries of the past in leaps of a hundred years
+in one. Now cut this land up into little, caviling factions, and where
+are we? Why, the very motto of the republic would be done away
+with--'In Union there is strength.' I tell you slavery is a sort of
+Delilah, and the nation--if it is divided--will be like Sampson with
+his locks shorn."
+
+"Well, war is here," said Mary, "and we must send off our young men to
+the shambles, and later on fill up our country with the refuse of
+Europe in their stead. It will be a terrible blood-letting for both
+North and South, and it will be the best blood on both sides. I'm as
+sorry for the mothers down there as I am for ourselves. Did you get
+the apples, Bertrand? We'd better start, to be there at eight."
+
+"I put them in the carryall, my dear, Sweet Boughs and Harvest apples.
+The boys will have one more taste before they leave."
+
+"Father, we want to carry some. Put some in the carriage too," said
+Martha.
+
+"Yes, father. We want to eat some while we are on the way."
+
+"Why, Jamie, they are for the soldiers; they're not for us," cried
+Betty, in horror. To eat even one, it seemed to her, would be greed
+and robbery.
+
+In spite of the gravity of the hour to the older ones, the occasion
+took on an air of festivity to the children. In grandfather's
+dignified old family carriage Martha sat with demure elation on the
+back seat at her grandmother's side, wearing her white linen cape, and
+a wide-brimmed, low-crowned hat of Neapolitan straw, with a blue
+ribbon around the crown, and a narrow one attached to the front, the
+end of which she held in her hand to pull the brim down to shade her
+eyes as was the fashion for little girls of the day. She felt well
+pleased with the hat, and held the ribbon daintily in her shapely
+little hand.
+
+At her feet was the basket of apples, and with her other hand she
+guarded three small packages. Grandmother wore a gray, changeable
+silk. The round waist fitted her plump figure smoothly, and the skirt
+was full and flowing. Her bonnet was made of the same silk shirred on
+rattan, and was not perched on the top of her head, but covered it
+well and framed her sweet face with a full, white tulle ruching set
+close under the brim.
+
+Grandfather, up in front, drove Jack and Jill, who, he said, were
+"feeling their oats." Betty did not wonder, for oats are sharp and
+must prick their stomachs. She sat with grandfather,--he had promised
+she should the night before,--and Jamie was tucked in between them. He
+ought to have been in behind with grandmother, but his scream of
+rebellion as he was lifted in brought instant yielding from Betty,
+when grandfather interfered and took them both. But when Jamie
+insisted on holding the reins, grandfather grew firm, and when screams
+again began, his young majesty was lifted down and placed in the road
+to remain until instant obedience was promised, after which he was
+restored to the coveted place and away they went.
+
+Betty's white linen cape blew out behind and her ribbons flew like
+blue butterflies all about her hat. She forgot to hold down the brim,
+as polite little girls did who knew how to wear their Sunday clothes.
+She, too, held three small packages in her lap. For days, ever since
+Peter Junior and Richard Kildene had taken tea with them in their new
+uniforms, the little girls had patiently sewed to make the articles
+which filled these packages.
+
+Mary Ballard had planned them. In each was a needle-book filled with
+needles large enough to be used by clumsy fingers, a pin ball, a
+good-sized iron thimble, and a case of thread and yarn for mending,
+buttons of various sizes, and a bit of beeswax, molded in Mary
+Ballard's thimble, to wax their linen thread. All were neatly packed
+in a case of bronzed leather bound about with firm braid, and tucked
+under the strap of the leather on the inside was a small pair of
+scissors. It was all very compact and tied about with the braid.
+Mother had done some of the hardest of the sewing, but for the most
+part the stitches had been painstakingly put in by the children's own
+fingers.
+
+The morning was cool, and the dust had been laid by a heavy shower in
+the night. The horses held up their heads and went swiftly, in spite
+of their long journey the day before. Soon they heard in the distance
+the sound of the drum, and the merry note of a fife. Again a pang shot
+through Betty's heart that she had not been a boy of Peter Junior's
+age that she might go to war. She heaved a deep sigh and looked up in
+her grandfather's face. It was a grizzled face, with blue eyes that
+shot a kindly glance sideways at her as if he understood.
+
+When they drew near, the horses danced to the merry tune, as if they
+would like to go, too. All the camp seemed alive. How splendid the
+soldiers looked in their blue uniforms, their guns flashing in the
+sun! Betty watched how their legs with the stripes on them seemed to
+twinkle as they moved all together, marching in companies. Back and
+forth, back and forth, they went, and the orders came to the children
+short and abrupt, as the men went through their maneuvers. They saw
+the sentinel pacing up and down, and wondered why he did it instead of
+marching with the other men. All these questions were saved up to ask
+of grandfather when they got home. They were too interested to do
+anything but watch now.
+
+At last, very suddenly it seemed, the soldiers broke ranks and
+scattered over the greensward, running hither and thither like ants.
+Betty again drew a long breath. Now they were coming, the soldiers in
+whom they were particularly interested.
+
+"Can they do what they please now?" she asked her grandfather.
+
+"Yes, for a while."
+
+All along the sentry line carriages were drawn up, for this hour from
+eight till nine was given to the "boys" to see their friends for the
+last time in many months, maybe years, maybe forever. As they had come
+from all over the State, some had no friends to meet them, but guests
+were there in crowds, and every man might receive a handshake whether
+he was known or not. All were friends to these young volunteers.
+
+Bertrand Ballard was known and loved by all the youths. Some from the
+village, and others from the country around, had been in the way of
+coming to the Ballard home simply because the place was made an
+enjoyable center for them. Some came to practice the violin and others
+to sing. Some came to try their hand at sketching and painting and
+some just to hear Bertrand talk. All was done for them quite
+gratuitously on his part, and no laugh was merrier than his. Even the
+chore boy came in for a share of the Ballards' kindly help, sitting at
+Mary Ballard's side in the long winter evenings, and conning lessons
+to patch up an education snatched haphazard and hardly come by.
+
+Here comes one of them now, head up, smiling, and happy-go-lucky.
+"Bertrand, here comes Johnnie. Give him the apples and let him
+distribute them. Poor boy! I'm sorry he's going; he's too easily led,"
+said Mary.
+
+"Oh! Johnnie, Johnnie Cooper! I've got something for you. We made
+them. Mother helped us," cried Martha. Now the children were out of
+the carriage and running about among their friends.
+
+Johnnie Cooper snatched Jamie from the ground and threw him up over
+his head, then set him down again and took the parcel. Then he caught
+Martha up and set her on his shoulder while he peeped into the
+package.
+
+"Stop, Johnnie. Set me down. I'm too big now for you to toss me up."
+Her arms were clasped tightly under his chin as he held her by the
+feet. Slowly he let her slide to the ground and thrust the little case
+in his pocket, and stooping, kissed the child.
+
+"I'll think of you and your mother when I use this," he said.
+
+"And you'll write to us, won't you, Johnnie?" said Mary. "If you
+don't, I shall think something is gone wrong with you." He knew what
+she meant, and she knew he knew. "There are worse things than bullets,
+Johnnie."
+
+"Never you worry for me, Mrs. Ballard. We're going down for business,
+and you won't see me again until we've licked the 'rebs.'" He held her
+hand awkwardly for a minute, then relieved the tension by carrying off
+the two baskets of apples. "I know the trees these came from," he
+said, and soon a hundred boys in blue were eating Bertrand's choicest
+apples.
+
+"Here come the twins!" said some one, as Peter Junior and Richard
+Kildene came toward them across the sward. Betty ran to meet them and
+caught Richard by the hand. She loved to have him swing her in long
+leaps from the ground as he walked.
+
+"See, Richard, I made this for you all myself--almost. I put C in the
+corner so it wouldn't get mixed with the others, because this I made
+especially for you."
+
+"Did you? Why didn't you put R in the corner if you meant it for me? I
+think you meant this for Charley Crabbe."
+
+"No, I didunt." Betty spoke most emphatically. "Martha has one for
+him. I put C because--you'll see when you open it. Everything's bound
+all round with my very best cherry-colored hair ribbon, to make it
+very special, and that is what C is for. All the rest are brown, and
+this is prettier, and it won't get mixed with Peter Junior's."
+
+"Ah, yes. C is for cherry--Betty's hair ribbon; and the gold-brown
+leather is for Betty's hair. Is that it?"
+
+"Yep."
+
+"Haven't I one, too?" asked Peter Junior.
+
+"Yep. We made them just alike, and you can sew on buttons and
+everything."
+
+Thus the children made the leave-taking less somber, to the relief of
+every one.
+
+Grandfather and grandmother Clide had friends of their own whom they
+had come all the forty miles to see,--neighbor boys from many of the
+farms around their home, and their daughter-in-law's own brother, who
+was like a son to them. There he stood, lithe and strong and genial,
+and, alas! too easy-going to be safe among the temptations of the
+camp.
+
+Quickly the hour passed and the call came to form ranks for the march
+to the town square, where speeches were to be made and prayers were to
+be read before the march to the station.
+
+Our little party waited until the last company had left the camp
+ground and the excited children had seen them all and heard the sound
+of the fife and drum to their last note and beat as the "boys in blue"
+filed past them and off down the winding country road among the trees.
+Nothing was said by the older ones of what might be in the future for
+those gallant youths--yes, and for the few men of greater years with
+them--as they wound out of sight. It was better so. Bobby fell asleep
+in Mary Ballard's arms as they drove back, and a bright tear fell from
+her wide-open, far-seeing eyes down on his baby cheek.
+
+It was no lack of love for his son that kept Elder Craigmile away at
+the departure of the boys from their camp on the bluff. He had
+virtually said his say and parted from his son when he gave his
+consent to his going in the first place. To him war meant sacrifice,
+and the parting with sons, at no matter what cost. The dominant idea
+with him was ever the preservation of the Union. At nine o'clock as
+usual that morning he had entered the bank, and a few minutes later,
+when the troops formed on the square, he came out and took his
+appointed place on the platform, as one of the speakers, and offered a
+closing prayer for the confounding of the enemy after the manner of
+David of old--then he descended and took his son's hand, as he stood
+in the ranks, with his arm across the boy's shoulder, looked a moment
+in his eyes; then, without a word, he turned and reentered the bank.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER V
+
+THE PASSING OF TIME
+
+
+It was winter. The snow was blowing past the windows in blinding
+drifts, and the road in front of the Ballards' home was fast filling
+to the tops of the fences. A bright wood-fire was burning in the great
+cookstove, which had been brought into the living room for warmth and
+to economize steps, as all the work of the household devolved on Mary
+and little Betty, since Martha spent the week days at the Deans in the
+village in order to attend the high school.
+
+Mary gazed anxiously now and then through the fast-frosting window
+panes on the opaque whiteness of the storm without, where the trees
+tossed their bare branches weirdly, like threatening gray phantoms,
+grotesque and dimly seen through the driving snow. It was Friday
+afternoon and still early, and brave, busy little Martha always came
+home on Fridays after school to help her mother on Saturdays.
+
+"Oh, I hope Martha hasn't started," said Mary. "Look out, Bertrand.
+This is the wildest storm we have had this year."
+
+"Mrs. Dean would never allow her to set out in this storm, I'm sure,"
+said Bertrand. "I cautioned her yesterday when I was there never to
+start when the weather seemed like a blizzard."
+
+Bertrand had painted in his studio above as long as the light
+remained, and now he was washing his brushes, carefully swishing the
+water out of them and drawing each one between his lips to shape it
+properly before laying it down. Mary laid the babe in her arms in its
+crib, and rocked it a moment while she and Bertrand chatted.
+
+A long winter and summer had passed since the troops marched away from
+Leauvite, and now another winter was passing. For a year and a bit
+more, little Janey, the babe now being hushed to sleep, had been a
+member of the family circle. Thus it was that Mary Ballard seldom went
+to the village, and Betty learned her lessons at home as best she
+could, and tended the baby and helped her mother. But Bertrand and his
+wife had plenty to talk about; for he went out and saw their friends
+in the village, led the choir on Sundays, taught the Bible class,
+heard all the news, and talked it over with Mary.
+
+Thus, in one way or another, all the new books found their way into
+the Ballards' home, were read and commented on, even though books were
+not written so much for commercial purposes then as now, and their
+writers were looked up to with more respect than criticism. The
+_Atlantic Monthly_ and _Littell's Living Age_, _Harper's Magazine_,
+and the _New York Tribune_ also brought up a variety of subjects for
+discussion. Now and then a new poem by Whittier, or Bryant, or some
+other of the small galaxy of poets who justly were becoming the
+nation's pride, would appear and be read aloud to Mary as she prepared
+their meals, or washed the dishes or ironed small garments, while
+Betty listened with intent eyes and ears, as she helped her mother or
+tended the baby.
+
+That afternoon, while the storm soughed without, the cow and horse
+were comfortably quartered in their small stable, which was banked
+with straw to keep out the cold. Indoors, Jamie was whittling behind
+the warm cookstove over a newspaper spread to catch the chips, while
+Bobby played quietly in a corner with two gray kittens and a worsted
+ball. Janey was asleep in the crib which Betty jogged now and then
+while she knit on a sock for the soldiers,--Mary and the two little
+girls were always knitting socks for the soldiers these days in their
+spare moments and during the long winter evenings,--Mary was kneading
+white loaves of bread with floury hands, and Bertrand sat close beside
+the window to catch the last rays of daylight by which to read the war
+news.
+
+Bertrand always read the war news first,--news of battles and lists of
+wounded and slain and imprisoned, and saddest of all, lists of the
+missing,--following closely the movements of their own company of
+"boys" from Leauvite. Mary listened always with a thought of the
+shadow in the banker's home, and the mother there, watching and
+waiting for the return of her boy. Although their own home was safe,
+the sorrow of other homes, devastated and mourning, weighed heavily
+upon Mary Ballard, and she needed to listen to the stirring editorials
+of the _Tribune_, which Bertrand read with dramatic intensity, to
+bolster up her faith in the rightness of this war between men who
+ought to be brothers in their hopes and ambitions for the national
+life of their great country.
+
+"I suppose it is too great a thing to ask--that such a tremendous and
+mixed nation as ours should be knit together for the good of all men
+in a spirit of brotherly love--but what a thing to ask for! What a
+thing to try for! If I were a man, I would pray that I might gain
+influence over my fellows just for that--just--for that," said Mary.
+
+"Ah," replied her husband, with fond optimism, "you need not say 'If I
+were a man,' for that. It is the women who have the influence; don't
+you know that, Mary?"
+
+Mary looked down at her work, an incredulous smile playing about her
+lips.
+
+"Well, my dear?" Bertrand loved a response.
+
+"Well, Bertrand? Men do like to talk about our 'sweet influence,'
+don't they?" Then she laughed outright.
+
+"But, Mary--but, Mary, it is true. Women do more with their influence
+than men can do with their guns," and Bertrand really meant what he
+said. Dusky shadows filled the room, but if the light had been
+stronger, he would have seen that little ironical smile still playing
+about his wife's lips.
+
+"Did you see Judge Logan again about those Waupaca lots?"
+
+Bertrand wondered what the lots had to do with the subject, but
+suffered the digression patiently, for the feminine mind was not
+supposed to be coherent. "Yes, my love; I saw him yesterday."
+
+"What did you do about them? I hope you refused."
+
+"No, my dear. I thought best not. He showed me very conclusively that
+in time they will be worth more--much more--than the debt."
+
+"Then why did he offer them to you for the debt? The portrait you
+painted for him will be worth more, too, in time, than the debt. You
+remember when you asked me what I thought, I said we needed the money
+more now."
+
+"Yes, I remember; but this plan is a looking toward the future. I
+didn't think it wise to refuse."
+
+Mary said nothing, but went out, returning presently with two lighted
+candles. Bertrand was replenishing the fire. Had he been looking at
+her face with the light of the candles on it as she carried them, he
+would have noticed that little smile about her lips.
+
+"I'm very glad we brought the bees in yesterday," he said. "This storm
+would have made it impossible to do it to-day, and we should have lost
+them."
+
+"How about those lectures, dear? The 'boys' are all gone now, and you
+won't have them to take up your time evenings, so you can easily
+prepare them. They will take you into the city now and then, and that
+will keep you in touch with the world outside this village." Bertrand
+had been requested to give a series of lectures on art in one of the
+colleges in the city. He had been well pleased and had accepted, but
+later had refused because of certain dictatorship exercised by the
+Board, which he felt infringed on his province of a suitable selection
+of subjects. He was silent for a moment. Again Mary had irrelevantly
+and abruptly changed the subject of conversation. Where was the
+connection between bees and lectures? "I really wish you would, dear,"
+urged Mary.
+
+"You still wish it after the affront the Board has given me?"
+
+"I know, but what do they know about art? I would give the lectures if
+it was only to be able--incidentally--to teach them something. Be a
+little conciliatory, dear."
+
+"I will make no concessions. If I give the lectures, I must be allowed
+to select my courses. It is my province."
+
+"Did you see Elder Craigmile about it?"
+
+"I did."
+
+"And what did he say?"
+
+"He seemed to think the Board was right."
+
+"I knew he would. You remember I asked you not to go to him about it,
+and that was why."
+
+"Why did you think so? He assumes to be my friend."
+
+"Because people who don't know anything about art always are satisfied
+with their own opinions. They don't know anything to upset them. He
+knows more than some of them, but how much is that? Enough to know
+that he owns some fine paintings; but you taught him their value, now,
+didn't you?" Bertrand smiled, but said nothing, and his wife
+continued. "Prepare the lectures, dear, for my sake. I love to know
+that you are doing such work."
+
+"I can't. The action of the Board is an insult to my intelligence.
+What are you smiling about?"
+
+"About you, dear."
+
+"Mary, why, Mary! I--"
+
+But Mary only smiled the more. "You love my irrelevance and
+inconsistency, you say,--"
+
+"I love any weakness that is yours, Mary. What are you keeping back
+from me?"
+
+"The weakness that is mine, dear." Again Mary laughed outright. "It
+would be useless to tell you--or to try to explain. I love you, isn't
+that enough?"
+
+Bertrand thought it ought to be, but was not sure, and said so. Then
+Mary laughed again, and he kissed her, shaking his head dubiously, and
+took up his violin for solace. Thus an hour passed; then Betty set the
+table for supper, and the long evening followed like many another
+evening, filled with the companionship only comfortably married
+people know, while Bertrand read from the poets.
+
+Since, with a man's helplessness in such matters, he could not do
+the family mending, or knit for the soldiers, or remodel old garments
+into new, it behooved him to render such tasks pleasant for the busy
+hand and brain that must devise and create and make much out of little
+for economy's sake; and this Bertrand did to Mary's complete
+satisfaction.
+
+Evenings like these were Betty's school, and they seemed all the
+schooling she was likely to get, for the family funds were barely
+sufficient to cover the expenses of one child at a time. But, as Mary
+said, "It's not so bad for Betty to be kept at home, for she will read
+and study, anyway, because she likes it, and it won't hurt her to
+learn to be practical as well;" and no doubt Mary was right.
+
+Bertrand was himself a poet in his appreciation and fineness of
+choice, and he read for Mary with all the effectiveness and warmth of
+color that he would put into a recitation for a large audience,
+carried on solely by his one sympathetic listener and his love for
+what he read; while Betty, in her corner close to the lamp behind her
+father's chair, listened unnoticed, with eager soul, rapt and
+uplifted.
+
+As Bertrand read he commented. "These men who are writing like this
+are doing for this country what the Lake Poets did for England. They
+are making true literature for the nation, and saving it from
+banality. They are going to live. They will be classed some day with
+Wordsworth and all the rest of the best. Hear this from James Russell
+Lowell. It's about a violin, and is called 'In the Twilight.' It's
+worthy of Shelley." And Bertrand read the poem through, while Mary
+let her knitting fall in her lap and listened. He loved to see her
+listen in that way.
+
+"Read again the verse that begins: 'O my life.' I seem to like it
+best." And he read it over:--
+
+ "O my life, have we not had seasons
+ That only said, Live and rejoice?
+ That asked not for causes and reasons,
+ But made us all feeling and voice?
+ When we went with the winds in their blowing,
+ When Nature and we were peers,
+ And we seemed to share in the flowing
+ Of the inexhaustible years?
+ Have we not from the earth drawn juices
+ Too fine for earth's sordid uses?
+ Have I heard, have I seen
+ All I feel, all I know?
+ Doth my heart overween?
+ Or could it have been
+ Long ago?"
+
+"And the next, Bertrand. I love to hear them over again." And he
+read:--
+
+ "Sometimes a breath floats by me,
+ An odor from Dreamland sent,
+ That makes the ghost seem nigh me
+ Of a splendor that came and went,
+ Of a life lived somewhere, I know not
+ In what diviner sphere,
+ Of memories that stay not and go not,
+ Like music heard once by an ear
+ That cannot forget or reclaim it,
+ A something so shy, it would shame it
+ To make it a show,
+ A something too vague, could I name it,
+ For others to know,
+ As if I had lived it or dreamed it,
+ As if I had acted or schemed it,
+ Long ago!"
+
+"And the last verse, father. I like the last best," cried Betty,
+suddenly.
+
+"Why, my deary. I thought you were gone to bed."
+
+"No, mother lets me sit up a little while longer when you're reading.
+I like to hear you." And he read for her the last verse:--
+
+ "And yet, could I live it over,
+ This life that stirs my brain,
+ Could I be both maiden and lover,
+ Moon and tide, bee and clover,
+ As I seem to have been, once again,
+ Could I but speak it and show it,
+ This pleasure more sharp than pain,
+ That baffles and lures me so,
+ The world should once more have a poet,
+ Such as it had
+ In the ages glad,
+ Long ago!"
+
+Then, wishing to know more of the secret springs of his little
+daughter's life, he asked: "Why do you love that stanza best, Betty,
+my dear?"
+
+Betty blushed crimson to the roots of her hair, for what she carried
+in her heart was too precious to tell, but she meant to be a poet.
+Even then, in the pocket of her calico dress lay a little book and a
+stubbed lead pencil, and in the book was already the beginning of her
+great epic. Her father had said the epic was a thing of the past, that
+in the future none would be written, for that it was a form of
+expressions that belonged to the world's youth, and that age brought
+philosophy and introspection, but not epics.
+
+She meant to surprise her father some day with this poem. The great
+world was so full of mystery--of seductive beauty and terror and of
+strange, enticing charm! She saw and felt it always. Even now, in the
+driving, whirling storm without, in the darkness of her chamber, or
+when she looked through the frosted panes into the starry skies at
+midnight, always it was there all about her,--a something unexpressed,
+unseen, but close--close to her,--the mystery which throbbed through
+all her small being, and which she was one day to find out and
+understand and put into her great epic.
+
+She thought over her father's question, hardly knowing why she liked
+that last stanza best. She slowly wound up her ball of yarn and thrust
+the needles through it, and dropped it into her mother's workbasket
+before she replied; then, taking up her candle, she looked shyly in
+her father's eyes.
+
+"Because I like where it says: 'This pleasure more sharp than pain,
+That baffles and lures me so.'" Then she was gone, hurrying away lest
+they should question her further and learn about the little book in
+her pocket.
+
+Thus time passed with the Ballards, many days swiftly flying, laden
+with a fair share of sweetness and pleasure, and much of harassment
+and toil, but in the main bringing happiness.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER VI
+
+THE END OF THE WAR
+
+
+It was three years after the troops marched away from High Knob
+encampment before either Peter Junior or Richard Kildene were again in
+Leauvite, and then only Peter returned, because he was wounded, and
+not that he was unwilling to enlist again, as did Richard and many of
+the boys, when their first term of service was ended. He returned with
+the brevet of a captain, for gallant conduct in the encounter in which
+he received his wound, but only a shadow of the healthy, earnest boy
+who had stood in the ranks on the town square of Leauvite three years
+before; yet this very fact brought life and hope to his waiting
+mother, now that she had the blessed privilege of nursing him back to
+strength.
+
+It seemed as though her long period of mourning ended when Peter
+Junior, pallid in his blue uniform, his hair darkened and matted with
+the dampness caused by weakness and pain, was borne in between the
+white columns of his father's house. When the news reached him that
+his son was lying wounded in a southern hospital, the Elder had, for
+the first time in many, many years, followed an impulse without
+pausing to consider his act beforehand. He left the bank on the
+instant and started for the scene of battles, only hurrying home to
+break the news first to his wife. Yielding to a rare tenderness, he
+touched her hair as he kissed her, and enjoined on her to remember
+that their son was not slain, but by a merciful Providence was only
+wounded and might be spared to them. She must thank the Lord and be
+ready to nurse him back to life.
+
+Why Providence should be thus merciful to their son rather than to
+many another son, the good Elder did not pause to consider. Possibly
+he thought it no more than just that the prayers of the righteous
+should be answered by a supernatural intervention between their sons
+and the bullets of the enemy. His ideas on this point were no doubt
+vague at the best, but certain it is that he returned from his long
+and difficult journey to the seat of strife after his boy, with a
+clearer notion of what war really was, and a more human sympathy for
+those who go and suffer, and, as might be anticipated with those of
+his temperament, an added bitterness against those whom he felt were
+to blame for the conflict.
+
+When Peter Junior left his home, his father had enjoined on him to go,
+not in the spirit of bitterness and enmity, but as an act of duty, to
+teach a needed lesson; for surely the Lord was on the side of the
+right, and was using the men of the North to teach this needed lesson
+to those laboring in error. Ah! it is a very different point of view
+we take when we suffer, instead of merely moralizing on the suffering
+of others; especially we who feel that we know what is right, and lack
+in great part the imagination to comprehend the other man's viewpoint.
+To us of that cast of mind there is only one viewpoint and that is our
+own, and only a bodily departure to the other man's hilltop or valley,
+as the case may be, will open the eyes and enlarge the understanding
+to the extent of even allowing our fellows to see things in another
+light from our own.
+
+In this instance, while the Elder's understanding had been decidedly
+enlarged, it had been in but one direction, and the effect had not
+been to his spiritual benefit, for he had seen only the suffering of
+his own side, and, being deficient in power to imagine what might be,
+he had taken no charitable thought for the other side. Instead, a
+feeling of hatred had been stirred within him,--a feeling he felt
+himself justified in and therefore indulged and named: "Righteous
+Indignation."
+
+The Elder's face was stern and hard as he directed the men who bore
+his boy on the litter where to turn, and how to lift it above the
+banister in going up the stair so as not to jar the young man, who was
+too weak after the long journey to do more than turn his eyes on his
+mother's face.
+
+But that mother's face! It seemed to him he had never seen it so
+radiant and charming, for all that her hair had grown silvery white in
+the three years since he had last kissed her. He could not take his
+eyes from it, and besought her not to leave his side, even when the
+Elder bade her go and not excite him, but allow him to rest.
+
+No sooner was her son laid on his own bed in his old room than she
+began a series of gentle ministrations most sweet to the boy and to
+herself. But the Elder had been told that all he needed now was rest
+and absolute quiet, and the surgeon's orders must be carried out
+regardless of all else. Hester Craigmile yielded, as always, to the
+Elder's will, and remained without, seated close beside her son's
+door, her hands, that ached to serve, lying idle in her lap, while the
+Elder brought him his warm milk and held it to his lips, lifting his
+head to drink it, and then left him with the command to sleep.
+
+"Don't go in for an hour at least," he enjoined on his wife as he
+passed her and took his way to the bank, for it was too early for
+closing, and there would still be time for him to look into his
+affairs a bit. Thus for the banker the usual routine began.
+
+Not so for Hester Craigmile. Joy and life had begun for her. She had
+her boy again--quite to herself when the Elder was away, and the tears
+for very happiness came to her eyes and dropped on her hands
+unchecked. Had the Elder been there he would have enjoined upon her to
+be controlled and she would have obeyed, but now there was no need,
+and she wept deliciously for joy while she still sat outside the door
+and listened. Intense--eager--it seemed almost as if she could hear
+him breathe.
+
+"Mother!" Hark! Did he speak? "Mother!" It was merely a breath, but
+she heard and went swiftly to him. Kneeling, she clasped him, and her
+tears wet his cheek, but at the same time they soothed him, and he
+slept. It was thus the Elder found them when he returned from the
+bank, both sweetly sleeping. He did not take his wife away for fear of
+waking his son, nevertheless he was displeased with her, and when they
+met at table that evening, she knew it.
+
+The whole order of the house was changed because of Peter Junior's
+return. Blinds, windows, and doors were thrown open at the direction
+of the physician, that he might be given all the air and sunlight it
+was possible to admit; else he would never gain strength, for so long
+had he lived in the open air, in rain and sun, that he had need now of
+every help nature could give.
+
+A bullet had struck him in the hip and glanced off at a peculiar
+angle, rendering his recovery precarious and long delayed, and causing
+the old doctor to shake his head with the fear that he must pass the
+rest of his life a cripple. Still, normal youth is buoyant and
+vigorous and mocks at physicians' fears, and after a time, what with
+heart at rest, with loving and unceasing care on his mother's part,
+and rigorous supervision on his father's, Peter Junior did at length
+recover sufficiently to be taken out to drive, and began to get back
+the good red blood in his veins.
+
+During this long period of convalescence, Peter Junior's one anxiety
+was for his cousin Richard. Rumors had reached him that his comrade
+had been wounded and taken prisoner, yet nothing definite had been
+heard, until at last, after much writing, he learned Richard's
+whereabouts, and later that he had been exchanged. Then, too ill and
+prison-worn to go back to his regiment, he appeared one day, slowly
+walking up the village street toward the banker's house.
+
+There he was welcomed and made much of, and the two young men spent a
+while together happily, the best of friends and comrades, still filled
+with enthusiasm, but with a wider knowledge of life and the meaning of
+war. These weeks were few and short, and soon Richard was back in the
+army. Peter Junior, envying him, still lay convalescing and only able
+with much difficulty to crawl to the carriage for his daily drive.
+
+His mother always accompanied him on these drives, and the very first
+of them was to the home of the Ballards. It was early spring, the air
+was biting and cool, and Peter was unable to alight, but Mary and her
+husband came to them where they waited at the gate and stood long,
+talking happily. Jamie and Bobby followed at their heels and peered up
+curiously at the wounded soldier, but Betty was seized with a rare
+moment of shyness that held her back.
+
+Dear little Betty! She had grown taller since Peter Junior had taken
+that last tea at the Ballards. No longer care free, the oldest but
+one, she had taken many of her mother's burdens upon her young
+shoulders, albeit not knowing that they were burdens, since they were
+wholly acts of love and joyously done. She was fully conscious of her
+advancing years, and took them very seriously, regarding her acts with
+a grave and serene sense of their importance. She had put back the
+wild hair that used to fly about her face until her father called her
+"An owl in an ivy bush" and her mother admonished her that her "head
+was like a mop." Now, being in her teens, she wore her dresses longer
+and never ran about barefooted, paddling in the brook below the
+spring, although she would like to do so; still she was child enough
+to run when she should walk, and to laugh when some would sigh.
+
+Her thoughts had been romantically active regarding Peter Junior, how
+he would look, and how splendid and great he was to have been a real
+soldier and come home wounded--to have suffered and bled for his
+country. And Richard, too, was brave and splendid. He must have been
+in the very front of the battle to have been taken prisoner. She
+wondered a little if he remembered her, but not much, for how could
+men with great work to do, like fighting and dying for their country,
+stop to think of a little girl who was still in short dresses when
+they had seen her last?
+
+Then, when the war was ended at last, there was Richard returned and
+stopping at his uncle's. In the few short visits he made at the
+Ballards' he greeted Betty as of old, as he would greet a little
+sister of whom he was fond, and she accepted his frank, old-time
+brotherliness in the same spirit, gayly and happily, revealing but
+little of herself, and holding a slight reserve in her manner which
+seemed to him quite delightful and maidenly. Then, all too suddenly,
+he was gone again, but in his heart he carried a memory of her that
+made a continual undercurrent in his thoughts.
+
+And now Betty's father and mother were actually talking with Peter
+Junior at their very gate. Impulse would have sent her flying to meet
+him, but that new, self-conscious shyness stayed her feet, for he was
+one to be approached with reverence. He was afflicted with no romantic
+shyness with regard to her, however. He quite forgot her, indeed,
+although he did ask in a general way after the children and even
+mentioned Martha in particular, as, being the eldest, she was best
+remembered. So Betty did not see Peter Junior this time, but she stood
+where she could see the top of the carriage from her bedroom window,
+whither she had fled, and she could see the blue sleeve of his coat as
+he put out his arm to take her mother's hand at parting. That was
+something, and she listened with beating heart for the sound of his
+voice. Ah, little he dreamed what a tumult he had raised in the heart
+of that young being whose imagination had been so stirred by all that
+she had read and heard of war, and the part taken in it by their own
+young men of Leauvite. That Peter Junior had come home brevetted a
+captain for his bravery crowned him with glory. All that day Betty
+went about with dreams in her head, and coursing through them was the
+voice of the wounded young soldier.
+
+At last, with the slow march of time, came the proclamation of peace,
+and the nation so long held prostrate--a giant struggling against
+fetters of its own forging, blinded and strangling in its own
+blood--reared its head and cried out for the return of Hope, groping
+on all sides to gather the divine youth to its arms, when, as a last
+blow, dealt by a wanton hand, came the death of Lincoln.
+
+Then it was that the nation recoiled and bowed itself for a time,
+beaten and crushed--both North and South--and vultures gathered at the
+seat of conflict and tore at its vitals and wrangled over the spoils.
+Then it was that they who had sowed discord stooped to reap the
+Devil's own harvest,--a woeful, bitter, desperate time, when more
+enmity and deep rancor was bred and treasured up for future sorrow
+than during all the years of the honest and active strife of the war.
+
+In the very beginning that first news of the firing on Fort Sumter
+flew through the North like a tragic cry, and men felt a sense of doom
+hanging over the nation. Bertrand Ballard heard it and walked
+sorrowfully home to his wife, and sat long with bowed head, brooding
+and silent. Neighbor Wilcox heard it, and, leaving his business,
+entered his home and called his household together with the servants
+and held family worship--a service which it was his custom to hold
+only on the Sabbath--and earnestly prayed for the salvation of the
+country, and that wisdom might be granted its rulers, after which he
+sent his oldest son to fight for the cause. Elder Craigmile heard it,
+and consented that his last and only son should enter the ranks and
+give his life, if need be, for the saving of the nation. Still,
+tempering all this sorrow and anxiety was the chance for action, and
+the hope of victory.
+
+But now, in this later time, when the strength of the nation had been
+wasted, when victory itself was dark with mourning for sons slain, the
+loss of the one wise leader to whom all turned with uplifted hearts
+seemed the signal for annihilation; and then, indeed, it appeared that
+the prophecy of Mary Ballard's old grandfather had been fulfilled and
+the curse of slavery had not only been wiped out with blood, but that
+the greater curse of anarchy and misrule had taken its place to still
+further scourge the nation.
+
+Mary Ballard's mother, while scarcely past her prime, was taken ill
+with fever and died, and immediately upon this blow to the dear old
+father who was not yet old enough by many years to be beyond his
+usefulness to those who loved and depended on him, came the tragic
+death of Lincoln, whom he revered and in whom all his hopes for the
+right adjustment of the nation's affairs rested. Under the weight of
+the double calamity he gave up hope, and left the world where all
+looked so dark to him, almost before the touch of his wife's hand had
+grown cold in his.
+
+"Father died of a broken heart," said Mary, and turned to her husband
+and children with even more intensity of devotion. "For," she said,
+"after all, the only thing in life of which we can be perfectly sure
+is our love for each other. A grave may open at our feet anywhere at
+any time, and only love oversteps it."
+
+With such an animating spirit as this, no family can be wholly sad,
+and though poverty pinched them at times, and sorrow had bitterly
+visited them, with years and thrift things changed. Bertrand painted
+more pictures and sold them; the children were gay and vigorous and
+brought life and good times to the home, and the girls grew up to be
+womanly, winsome lasses, light-hearted and good to look upon.
+
+Enough of the war and the evils thereof has been said and written and
+sung. Animosity is dead, and brotherhood and mutual service between
+the two opposing factions of one great family have taken the place of
+strife. Useless now to say what might have been, or how otherwise that
+terrible time of devastation and sorrow could have been avoided.
+Enough to know that at last as a nation, whole and undivided, we may
+pull together in the tremendous force of our united strength, and that
+now we may take up the "White Man's Burden" and bear it to its
+magnificent conclusion to the service of all mankind and the glory of
+God.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER VII
+
+A NEW ERA BEGINS
+
+
+Bertrand Ballard's studio was at the top of his house, with a high
+north window and roughly plastered walls of uncolored sand, left as
+Bertrand himself had put the plaster on, with his trowel marks over
+the surface as they happened to come, and the angles and projections
+thereof draped with cobwebs.
+
+When Peter Junior was able to leave his home and get about a little on
+his crutches, he loved to come there and rest and spend his idle
+hours, and Bertrand found pleasure in his companionship. They read
+together, and sang together, and laughed together, and no sound was
+more pleasant to Mary Ballard's ears than this same happy laughter.
+Peter had sorely missed the companionship of his cousin, for, at the
+close of the war, no longer a boy and unwilling to be dependent and
+drifting, Richard had sought out a place for himself in the work of
+the world.
+
+First he had gone to Scotland to visit his mother's aunts. There he
+found the two dear old ladies, sweetly observant of him, willing to
+tell him much of his mother, who had been scarcely younger than the
+youngest of them, but discreetly reticent about his father. From this
+he gathered that for some reason his father was under a cloud. Yet he
+did not shrink from trying to learn from them all they knew about him,
+and for what reason they spoke as if to even mention his name was an
+indiscretion. It was really little they knew, only that he had gravely
+displeased their nephew, Peter Craigmile, who had brought Richard up,
+and who was his mother's twin brother.
+
+"But why did Uncle Peter have to bring me up? You say he quarreled
+with my father?"
+
+"Weel, ye see, ye'r mither was dead." It was Aunt Ellen, the elder by
+twenty years, who told him most about it, she who spoke with the
+broadest Scotch.
+
+"Was my father a bad man, that Uncle 'Elder' disliked him so?"
+
+"Weel now, I'd no say that; he was far from that to be right fair to
+them both--for ye see--ye'r mither would never have loved him if he'd
+been that--but he--he was an Irishman, and ye'r Uncle Peter could
+never thole an Irishman, and he--he--fair stole ye'r mither from us
+a'--an--" she hesitated to continue, then blurted out the real horror.
+"Your Uncle Peter kenned he had ance been in the theayter, a sort o'
+an actor body an' he couldna thole that."
+
+But little was to be gained with all his questioning, and what he
+could learn seemed no more than that his father had done what any man
+might be expected to do if some one stood between him and the girl he
+loved; so Richard felt that there must be something unknown to any one
+but his uncle that had turned them all against his father. Why had his
+father never appeared to claim his son? Why had he left his boy to be
+reared by a man who hated the boy's father? It was a strange thing to
+do, and it must be that his father was dead.
+
+At this time Richard was filled with ambitions,--fired by his early
+companionship with Bertrand Ballard,--and thought he would go to
+France and become an artist;--to France, the Mecca of Bertrand's
+dreams--he desired of all things to go there for study. But of all
+this he said nothing to any one, for where was the money? He would
+never ask his uncle for it, and now that he had learned that he had
+been all his young life really a dependent on the bounty of his Uncle
+Peter, he could no longer accept his help. He would hereafter make his
+own way, asking no favors.
+
+The old aunts guessed at his predicament, and offered to give him for
+his mother's sake enough to carry him through the first year, but he
+would not allow them to take from their income to pay his bills. No,
+he would take his way back to America, and find a place for himself in
+the new world; seek some active, stirring work, and save money, and
+sometime--sometime he would do the things his heart loved. He often
+thought of Betty, the little Betty who used to run to meet him and say
+such quaint things; some day he would go to her and take her with him.
+He would work first and do something worthy of so choice a little
+mortal.
+
+Thus dreaming, after the manner of youth, he went to Ireland, to his
+father's boyhood home. He found only distant relatives there, and
+learned that his father had disposed of all he ever owned of Irish
+soil to an Englishman. A cousin much older than himself owned and
+still lived on the estate that had been his grandfather Kildene's, and
+Richard was welcomed and treated with openhearted hospitality. But
+there, also, little was known of his father, only that the peasants on
+the estate remembered him lovingly as a free-hearted gentleman.
+
+Even that little was a relief to Richard's sore heart. Yes, his father
+must be dead. He was sorry. He was a lonely man, and to have a
+relative who was his very own, as near as a father, would be a great
+deal. His cousin, Peter Junior, was good as a friend, but from now on
+they must take paths that diverged, and that old intimacy must
+naturally change. His sweet Aunt Hester he loved, and she would fill
+the mother's place if she could, but it was not to be. It would mean
+help from his Uncle Peter, and that would mean taking a place in his
+uncle's bank, which had already been offered him, but which he did not
+want, which he would not accept if he did want it.
+
+So, after a long and happy visit at his cousin Kildene's, in
+Ireland, he at last left for America again, and plunged into a new,
+interesting, and vigorous life, one that suited well his energetic
+nature. He found work on the great railway that was being built across
+the plains to the Pacific Coast. He started as an engineer's
+assistant, but soon his talent for managing men caused his employers
+to put him in charge of gangs of workmen who were often difficult and
+lawless. He did not object; indeed he liked the new job better than
+that he began with. He was more interested in men than materials.
+
+The life was hard and rough, but he came to love it. He loved the
+wide, sweeping prairies, and, later on, the desert. He liked to lie
+out under the stars,--often when the men slept under tents,--his gun
+at his side and his thoughts back on the river bluffs at Leauvite. He
+did a lot of dreaming and thinking, and he never forgot Betty. He
+thought of her as still a child, although he was expecting her to grow
+up and be ready for him when he should return to her. He had a vague
+sort of feeling that all was understood between them, and that she was
+quietly becoming womanly, and waiting for him.
+
+Peter Junior might have found other friends in Leauvite had he sought
+them out, but he did not care for them. His nature called for what he
+found in Bertrand's studio, and he followed the desire of his heart
+regardless of anything else, spending all the time he could reasonably
+filch from his home. And what wonder! Richard would have done the same
+and was even then envying Peter the opportunity, as Peter well knew
+from his cousin's letters. There was no place in the village so
+fascinating and delightful as this little country home on its
+outskirts, no conversation more hopeful and helpful than Bertrand's,
+and no welcome sweeter or kinder than Mary Ballard's.
+
+One day, after Richard had gone out on the plains with the engineers
+of the projected road, Peter lay stretched on a long divan in the
+studio, his head supported by his hand as he half reclined on his
+elbow, and his one crutch--he had long since discarded the other--within
+reach of his arm. His violin also lay within reach, for he had been
+playing there by himself, as Bertrand had gone on one of his rare
+visits to the city a hundred miles away.
+
+Betty Ballard had heard the wail of his violin from the garden, where
+she had been gathering pears. That was how she knew where to find him
+when she quickly appeared before him, rosy and flushed from her run to
+the house and up the long flight of stairs.
+
+As Peter lay there, he was gazing at the half-finished copy he had
+been making of the head of an old man, for Peter had decided, since in
+all probability he would be good for no active work such as Richard
+had taken up, that he too would become an artist, like Bertrand
+Ballard. To have followed his cousin would have delighted his heart,
+for he had all the Scotchman's love of adventure, but, since that was
+impossible, nothing was more alluring than the thought of fame and
+success as an artist. He would not tie himself to Leauvite to get it.
+He would go to Paris, and there he would do the things Bertrand had
+been prevented from doing. Poor Bertrand! How he would have loved the
+chance Peter Junior was planning for himself as he lay there dreaming
+and studying the half-finished copy.
+
+Suddenly he beheld Betty, standing directly in front of the work,
+extending to him a folded bit of paper. "Here's a note from your
+father," she cried.
+
+Looking upon her thus, with eyes that had been filled with the aged,
+rugged face on the canvas, Betty appealed to Peter as a lovely vision.
+He had never noticed before, in just this way, her curious charm, but
+these months of companionship and study with Bertrand had taught him
+to see beauty understandingly, and now, as she stood panting a little,
+with breath coming through parted lips and hair flying almost in the
+wild way of her childhood, Peter saw, as if it were a revelation, that
+she was lovely. He raised himself slowly and reached for the note
+without taking his eyes from her face.
+
+He did not open the letter, but continued to look in her eyes, at
+which she turned about half shyly. "I heard your violin; that's how I
+knew you were up here. Oh! Have you been painting on it again?"
+
+"On my violin? No, I've been playing on it."
+
+"No! Painting on the picture of your old man. I think you have it too
+drawn out and thin. He's too hollow there under the cheek bone."
+
+"Is he, Miss Critic? Well, thank your stars you're not."
+
+"I know. I'm too fat." She rubbed her cheek until it was redder than
+ever.
+
+"What are you painting your cheeks for? There's color enough on them
+as they are."
+
+She made a little mouth at him. "I could paint your old man as well as
+that, I know."
+
+"I know you could. You could paint him far better than that."
+
+She laughed, quickly repentant. "I didn't say that to be horrid. I
+only said it for fun. I couldn't."
+
+"And I know you could." He rose and stood without his crutch, looking
+down on her. "And you're not 'too long drawn out,' are you? See? You
+only come up to--about--here on me." He measured with his hand a
+little below his chin.
+
+"I don't care. You're not so awfully tall."
+
+"Very well, have it so. That only makes you the shorter."
+
+"I tell you I don't care. You'd better stop staring at me, if I'm so
+little, and read your letter. The man's waiting for it. That's why I
+ran all the way up here." By this it may be seen that Betty had lost
+all her awe of the young soldier. Maybe it left her when he doffed his
+uniform. "Here's your crutch. Doesn't it hurt you to stand alone?" She
+reached him the despised prop.
+
+"Hurt me to stand alone? No! I'm not a baby. Do you think I'm likely
+to grow up bow-legged?" he thundered, taking it from her hand without
+a thank you, and glaring down on her humorously. "You're a bit cruel
+to remind me of it. I'm going to walk with a cane hereafter, and next
+thing you know you'll see me stalking around without either."
+
+"Why, Peter Junior! I'd be so proud of that crutch I wouldn't leave it
+off for anything! I'd always limp a little, even if I didn't use it.
+Cruel? I was complimenting you."
+
+"Complimenting me? How?"
+
+"By reminding you that you had been brave--and had been a soldier--and
+had been wounded for your country--and had been promoted--and--"
+
+But Peter drowned her voice with uproarious laughter, and suddenly
+surprised himself as well as her by slipping his arm around her waist
+and stopping her lips with a kiss.
+
+Betty was surprised but not shocked. She knew of no reason why Peter
+should not kiss her even though it was not his custom to treat her
+thus. In Betty's home, demonstrative expressions of affection were as
+natural as sunlight, and why should not Peter like her? Therefore it
+was Peter who was shocked, and embarrassed her with his sudden
+apology.
+
+"I don't care if you did kiss me. You're just like my big brother--the
+same as Richard is--and he often used to kiss me." She was trying to
+set Peter at his ease. "And, anyway, I like you. Why, I supposed of
+course you liked me--only naturally not as much as I liked you."
+
+"Oh, more! Much more!" he stammered tremblingly. He knew in his heart
+that there was a subtle difference, and that what he felt was not what
+she meant when she said, "I like you." "I'm sure it is I who like you
+the most."
+
+"Oh, no, it isn't! Why, you never even used to see me. And I--I used
+to gaze on you--and be so romantic! It was Richard who always saw me
+and played with me. He used to toss me up, and I would run away down
+the road to meet him. I wonder when he's coming back! I wish he'd
+come. Why don't you read your father's letter? The man's waiting, you
+know."
+
+"Ah, yes. And I suppose Dad's waiting, too. I wonder why he wrote me
+when he can see me every day!"
+
+"Well, read it. Don't stand there looking at it and staring at me. Do
+you know how you look? You look as if it were a message from the king,
+saying: 'You are remanded to the tower, and are to have your head
+struck off at sundown.' That's the way they did things in the olden
+days." She turned to go.
+
+"Stay here until I see if you are right." He dropped on the divan and
+made room for her at his side.
+
+"All right! That's what I wanted to do, but I thought it wouldn't be
+polite to be curious."
+
+"But you wouldn't be polite anyway, you know, so you might as well
+stay. M-m-m. I'm remanded to the tower, sure enough. Father wants me
+to meet him in the director's room as soon as banking hours are over.
+Fine old Dad! He wouldn't think of infringing on banking hours for any
+private reasons unless the sky were falling, and even then he would
+save the bank papers first. See here--Betty--er--never mind. I'll tell
+you another time."
+
+"Please tell me now! What is it? Something dreadful, Peter Junior?"
+
+"I wasn't thinking about this; it--it's something else--"
+
+"About what?"
+
+"About you."
+
+"Oh, then it is no consequence. I want to hear what's in the letter.
+Why did you tell me to stay if you weren't going to tell me what's in
+it?"
+
+"Nothing. We have had a little difference of opinion, my father and I,
+and he evidently wants to settle it out of hand his way, by summoning
+me in this official manner to appear before him at the bank."
+
+"I know. He thinks you are idling away your time here trying to paint
+pictures, and he wishes to make a respectable banker of you." She
+reached over and began picking the strings of his violin.
+
+"You musn't finger the strings of a violin that way."
+
+"Why not? I want to see if I can pick out 'The Star Spangled Banner'
+on it. I can on the flute, father's old one; he lets me."
+
+"Because you'll get them oily."
+
+She spread out her two firm little hands. "My fingers aren't greasy!"
+she cried indignantly; "that's pear juice on them."
+
+Peter Junior's gravity turned to laughter. "Well, I don't want pear
+juice on my strings. Wait, you rogue, I'm going to kiss you again."
+
+"No, you're not, you old hobble-de-hoy. You can't catch me." When she
+was halfway down the stairs, she called back, "The man's waiting."
+
+"Coward! Coward!" he called after her, "to run away from a poor old
+cripple and then call him names." He thrust the letter into his
+pocket, and seizing his crutch began deliberately and carefully to
+descend the stairs, with grave, set face, not unlike his father's.
+
+"Catch, Peter Junior," called Betty from the top of the pear tree as
+he passed down the garden path, and tossed him a pear which he caught,
+then another and another. "There! No, don't eat them now. Put them in
+your desk, and next month they'll be just as sweet!"
+
+"Will they? Just like you? I'll be even with you yet--when I catch
+you."
+
+"You'll get pear juice on your strings. There are lots of nice girls
+in the village for you to kiss. They'll do just as well as me."
+
+"Good girl. Good grammar. Good-by." He waved his hand toward Betty,
+and turned to the waiting servant. "You go on and tell the Elder I'm
+coming right along," he said, and hopped off down the road. It was
+only lately he had begun to take long walks or hops like this, with
+but one crutch, but he was growing frantic to be fairly on his two
+feet again. The doctor had told him he never would be, but he set his
+square chin, and decided that the doctor was wrong. More than ever
+to-day, with the new touch of little pear-stained fingers on his
+heart, he wanted to walk off like other men.
+
+Now he tried to use his lame leg as much as possible. If only he might
+throw away the crutch and walk with a cane, it would be something
+gained. With one hand in his pocket he crushed his father's letter
+into a small wad, then tossed it in the air and caught it awhile, then
+put it back in his pocket and hobbled on.
+
+The atmosphere had the smoky appearance of the fall, and the sweet
+haze of Indian summer lay over the landscape, the horizon only faintly
+outlined through it. Peter Junior sniffed the air. He wondered if the
+forests in the north were afire. Golden maple leaves danced along on
+the path before him, whirled hither and thither by the light breeze,
+and the wild asters and goldenrod powdered his dark trousers with
+pollen as he brushed them in passing. All the world was lovely, and he
+appreciated it as he had never been able to do before. Bertrand's
+influence had permeated his thoughts and widened thus his reach of
+happiness.
+
+He entered the bank just at the closing hour, and the staid, faithful
+old clerks nodded to him as he passed through to the inner room, where
+he found his father awaiting him. He dropped wearily into a swivel
+chair before the great table and placed his crutch at his feet; wiping
+the perspiration from his forehead, he leaned forward, and rested his
+elbows on the table.
+
+The young man's wan look, for the walk had taxed his strength,
+reminded his father of the day he had brought the boy home wounded,
+and his face relaxed.
+
+"You are tired, my son."
+
+"Oh, no. Not very. I have been more so." Peter Junior smiled a
+disarming smile as he looked in his father's face. "I've tramped many
+a mile on two sound feet when they were so numb from sheer weariness
+that I could not feel them or know what they were doing. What did you
+want to say to me, father?"
+
+"Well, my son, we have different opinions, as you know, regarding your
+future."
+
+"I know, indeed."
+
+"And a father's counsel is not to be lightly disposed of."
+
+"I have no intention of doing so, father."
+
+"No, no. But wait. You have been loitering the day at Mr. Ballard's?
+Yes."
+
+"I have nothing else to do, father,--and--" Peter Junior's smile
+again came to the rescue. "It isn't as though I were in doubtful
+company--I--there are worse places here in the village where I
+might--where idle men waste their time."
+
+"Ah, yes. But they are not for you--not for you, my son." The Elder
+smiled in his turn, and lifted his brows, then drew them down and
+looked keenly at his son. The afternoon sunlight streamed through the
+high western window and fell on the older man's face, bringing it into
+strong relief against the dark oak paneling behind him, and as Peter
+Junior looked on his father he received his second revelation that
+day. He had not known before what a strong, fine old face his father's
+was, and for the second time he surprised himself, when he cried
+out:--
+
+"I tell you, father, you have a magnificent head! I'm going to make a
+portrait of you just as you are--some day."
+
+The Elder rose with an indignant, despairing downward motion of the
+hands and began pacing the floor, while Peter Junior threw off
+restraint and laughed aloud. The laughter freed his soul, but it sadly
+irritated the Elder. He did not like unusual or unprecedented things,
+and Peter Junior was certainly not like himself, and was acting in an
+unprecedented manner.
+
+"You have now regained a fair amount of strength and have reached an
+age when you should think seriously of what you are to do in life. As
+you know, it has always been my intention that you should take a place
+here and fit yourself for the responsibilities that are now mine, but
+which will some day devolve on you."
+
+Peter Junior raised his hand in protest, then dropped it. "I mean to
+be an artist, father."
+
+"Faugh! An artist? Look at your friend, Bertrand Ballard. What has he
+to live on? What will he have laid by for his old age? How has he
+managed to live all these years--he and his wife? Miserable
+hand-to-mouth existence! I'll see my son trying to emulate him! You'll
+be an artist? And how will you support a wife if you ever have one?
+You mean to marry some day?"
+
+"I mean to marry Betty Ballard," said Peter Junior, with a rugged set
+of his jaw.
+
+Again the Elder made that despairing downward thrust with his open
+hands. "Take a wife who has nothing, and a career which brings in
+nothing, and live on what your father has amassed for you, and leave
+your sons nothing--a pretty way for you to carry on the work I have
+begun for you--to--establish an honorable family--"
+
+"Father, father, I mean to do all I can to please you. I'll be always
+dutiful--and honorable--but you must leave me my manhood. You must
+allow me to choose my own path in life."
+
+The Elder paced the floor a few moments longer, then resumed his chair
+opposite his son, and, leaning back, looked across the table at his
+boy, meditatively, with half-closed eyes. At last he said, "We'll take
+this matter to the Lord, and leave it in his hands."
+
+Then Peter Junior cried out upon him: "No, no, father; spare me that.
+It only means that you'll state to the Lord what is your own way, and
+pray to have it, and then be more than ever convinced that it is the
+Lord's way."
+
+"My son, my son!"
+
+"It's so, father. I'm willing to ask for guidance of the Lord, but I'm
+not willing to have you dictate to the Lord what--what I must do, and
+so whip me in line with the scourge of prayer." Peter Junior paused,
+as he looked in his father's face and saw the shocked and sorrowful
+expression there instead of the passionate retort he expected. "I am
+wrong to talk so, father; forgive me; but--have patience a little. God
+gave to man the power of choice, didn't he?"
+
+"Certainly. Through it all manner of evil came into the world."
+
+"And all manner of good, too. I--a man ought not to be merely an
+automaton, letting some one else always exercise that right for him.
+Surely the right of choice would never have been given us if it were
+not intended that each man should exercise it for himself. One who
+does not is good for nothing."
+
+"There is the command you forget; that of obedience to parents."
+
+"But how long--how long, father? Am I not man enough to choose for
+myself? Let me choose."
+
+Then the Elder leaned forward and faced his son as his son was facing
+him, both resting their elbows on the table and gazing straight into
+each other's eyes; and the old man spoke first.
+
+"My father founded this bank before I was born. He came from Scotland
+when he was but a lad, with his parents, and went to school and
+profited by his opportunities. He was of good family, as you know.
+When he was still a very young man, he entered a bank in the city as
+clerk, and received only ten dollars a week for his services, but he
+was a steady, good lad, and ambitious, and soon he moved higher--and
+higher. His father had taken up farming, and at his death, being an
+only son, he converted the farm, all but the homestead, which we still
+own, and which will be yours, into capital, and came to town and
+started this bank. When I was younger than you, my son, I went into
+the bank and stood at my father's right hand, as I wish you--for your
+own sake--to do by me. We are a set race--a determined race, but we
+are not an insubordinate race, my son."
+
+Peter Junior was silent for a while; he felt himself being beaten.
+Then he made one more plea. "It is not that I am insubordinate father,
+but, as I see it, into each generation something enters, different
+from the preceding one. New elements are combined. In me there is that
+which my mother gave me."
+
+"Your mother has always been a sweet woman, yielding to the judgment
+of her husband, as is the duty of a good wife."
+
+"I know she was brought up and trained to think that her duty, but I
+doubt if you really know her heart. Did you ever try to know it? I
+don't believe you understood what I meant by the scourge of prayer.
+She would have known. She has lived all these years under that lash,
+even though it has been wielded by the hand of one she loves--by one
+who loves her." He paused a second time, arrested by his father's
+expression. At first it was that of one who is stunned, then it
+slowly changed to one of rage. For once the boy had broken through
+that wall of self-control in which the Elder encased himself. Slowly
+the Elder rose and leaned towering over his son across the table.
+
+"I tell you that is a lie!" he shouted. "Your mother has never
+rebelled. She has been an obedient, docile woman. It is a lie!"
+
+Peter Junior made no reply. He also rose, and taking up his crutch,
+turned toward the door. There he paused and looked back, with flashing
+eyes. His lip quivered, but he held himself quiet.
+
+"Come back!" shouted his father.
+
+"I have told you the truth, father." He still stood with his hand on
+the door.
+
+"Has--has--your mother ever said anything to you to give you reason to
+insult me this way?"
+
+"No, never. We can't talk reasonably now. Let me go, and I'll try to
+explain some other time."
+
+"Explain now. There is no other time."
+
+"Mother is sacred to me, father. I ought not to have dragged her into
+this discussion."
+
+The Elder's lips trembled. He turned and walked to the window and
+stood a moment, silently looking out. At last he said in a low voice:
+"She is sacred to me also, my son."
+
+Peter Junior went back to his seat, and waited a while, with his head
+in his hands; then he lifted his eyes to his father's face. "I can't
+help it. Now I've begun, I might as well tell the truth. I meant what
+I said when I spoke of the different element in me, and that it is
+from my mother. You gave me that mother. I know you love her, and you
+know that your will is her law, as you feel that it ought to be. But
+when I am with her, I feel something of a nature in her that is not
+yours. And why not? Why not, father? There is that of her in me that
+makes me know this, and that of you in me that makes me understand
+you. Even now, though you are not willing to give me my own way, it
+makes me understand that you are insisting on your way because you
+think it is for my good. But nothing can alter the fact that I have
+inherited from my mother tastes that are not yours, and that entitle
+me to my manhood's right of choice."
+
+"Well, what is your choice, now that you know my wish?"
+
+"I can't tell you yet, father. I must have more time. I only know what
+I think I would like to do."
+
+"You wish to talk it over with your mother?"
+
+"Yes."
+
+"She will agree with me."
+
+"Yes, no doubt; but it's only fair to tell her and ask her advice,
+especially if I decide to leave home."
+
+The Elder caught his breath inwardly, but said no more. He recognized
+in the boy enough of himself to know that he had met in him a power of
+resistance equal to his own. He also knew what Peter Junior did not
+know, that his grandfather's removal to this country was an act of
+rebellion against the wishes of his father. It was a matter of family
+history he had thought best not to divulge.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER VIII
+
+MARY BALLARD'S DISCOVERY
+
+
+Peter Junior's mind was quite made up to go his own way and leave home
+to study abroad, but first he would try to convert his father to his
+way of thinking. Then there was another thing to be done. Not to
+marry, of course; that, under present conditions, would never do; but
+to make sure of Betty, lest some one come and steal into her heart
+before his return.
+
+After his talk with his father in the bank he lay long into the night,
+gazing at the shadowed tracery on his wall cast by the full harvest
+moon shining through the maple branches outside his window. The leaves
+had not all fallen, and in the light breeze they danced and quivered,
+and the branches swayed, and the shadows also swayed and danced
+delicately over the soft gray wall paper and the red-coated old
+soldier standing stiffly in his gold frame. Often in his waking dreams
+in after life he saw the moving shadows silently swaying and dancing
+over gray and red and gold, and often he tried to call them out from
+the past to banish things he would forget.
+
+Long this night he lay planning and thinking. Should he speak to Betty
+and tell her he loved her? Should he only teach her to think of him,
+not with the frank liking of her girlhood, so well expressed to him
+that very day, but with the warm feeling which would cause her cheeks
+to redden when he spoke? Could he be sure of himself--to do this
+discreetly, or would he overstep the mark? He would wait and see what
+the next day would bring forth.
+
+In the morning he discarded his crutch, as he had threatened, and
+walked out to the studio, using only a stout old blackthorn stick he
+had found one day when rummaging among a collection of odds and ends
+in the attic. He thought the stick was his father's and wondered why
+so interesting a walking stick--or staff; it could hardly be called a
+cane, he thought, because it was so large and oddly shaped--should be
+hidden away there. Had his father seen it he would have recognized it
+instantly as one that had belonged to his brother-in-law, Larry
+Kildene, and it would have been cut up and used for lighting fires.
+But it had been many years since the Elder had laid eyes on that
+knobbed and sturdy stick, which Larry had treasured as a rare thing in
+the new world, and a fine antique specimen of a genuine blackthorn. It
+had belonged to his great-grandfather in Ireland, and no doubt had
+done its part in cracking crowns.
+
+Betty, kneading bread at a table before the kitchen window, spied
+Peter Junior limping wearily up the walk without his crutch, and ran
+to him, dusting the flour from her hands as she came.
+
+"Lean on me. I won't get flour on your coat. What did you go without
+your crutch for? It's very silly of you."
+
+He essayed a laugh, but it was a self-conscious one. "I'm not going to
+use a crutch all my lifetime; don't you think it. I'm very well off
+without, and almost myself again. I don't need to lean on you--but I
+will--just for fun." He put his arm about her and drew her to him.
+
+"Stop, Peter Junior. Don't you see you're getting flour all over your
+clothes?"
+
+"I like flour on my clothes. It will do for stiffening." He raised her
+hand and kissed her wrist where there was no flour.
+
+"You're not leaning on me. You're just acting silly, and you can
+hardly walk, you're so tired! Coming all this way without your crutch.
+I think you're foolish."
+
+"If you say anything more about that crutch, I'll throw away my cane
+too." He dropped down on the piazza and drew her to the step beside
+him.
+
+"I must finish kneading the bread; I can't sit here. You rest in the
+rocker awhile before you go up to the studio. Father's up there. He
+came home late last night after we were all in bed." She returned to
+her work, and after a moment called to him through the open window.
+"There's going to be a nutting party to-morrow, and we want you to go.
+We're going out to Carter's grove; we've got permission. Every one's
+going."
+
+Peter Junior rubbed the moisture from his hair and shook his head. He
+must get nearer her, but it was always the same thing; just a happy
+game, with no touch of sentiment--no more, he thought gloomily, than
+if she were his sister.
+
+"What are you all going there for?"
+
+"Why, nuts, goosey; didn't I say we were going nutting?"
+
+"I don't happen to want nuts." No, he wanted her to urge and coax him
+to go for her sake, but what could he say?
+
+He left his seat, took the side path around to the kitchen door, and
+drew up a chair to the end of the table where she deftly manipulated
+the sweet-smelling dough, patting it, and pulling it, and turning it
+about until she was ready to put the shapely balls in the pans,
+holding them in her two firm little hands with a slight rolling motion
+as she slipped each loaf in its place. It had never occurred to Peter
+Junior that bread making was such an interesting process.
+
+"Why do you fuss with it so? Why don't you just dump it in the pan any
+old way? That's the way I'd do." But he loved to watch her pink-tipped
+fingers carefully shaping the loaves, nevertheless.
+
+"Oh--because."
+
+"Good reason."
+
+"Well--the more you work it the better it is, just like everything
+else; and then--if you don't make good-looking loaves, you'll never
+have a handsome husband. Mother says so." She tossed a stray lock from
+her eyes, and opening the oven door thrust in her arm. "My, but it's
+hot! Why do you sit here in the heat? It's a lot nicer on the porch in
+the rocker. Mother's gone to town--and--"
+
+"I'd rather sit here with you--thank you." He spoke stiffly and
+waited. What could he say; what could he do next? She left him a
+moment and quickly returned with a cup of butter.
+
+"You know--I'd stop and go out in the cool with you, Peter, but I must
+work this dough I have left into raised biscuit; and then I have to
+make a cake for to-morrow--and cookies--there's something to do in
+this house, I tell you! How about to-morrow?"
+
+"I don't believe I'd better go. All the rest of the world will be
+there, and--"
+
+"Only our little crowd. When I said everybody, you didn't think I
+meant everybody in the whole world, did you? You know us all."
+
+"Do you want me to go? There'll be enough others--"
+
+She tossed her head and gave him a sidelong glance. "I always ask
+people to go when I don't want them to."
+
+He rose at that and stood close to her side, and, stooping, looked in
+her eyes; and for the first time the color flamed up in her face
+because of him. "I say--do you want me to go?"
+
+"No, I don't."
+
+But the red he had brought into her cheeks intoxicated him with
+delight. Now he knew a thing to do. He seized her wrists and turned
+her away from the table and continued to look into her eyes. She
+twisted about, looking away from him, but the burning blush made even
+the little ear she turned toward him pink, and he loved it. His
+discretion was all gone. He loved her, and he would tell her now--now!
+She must hear it, and slipping his arm around her, he drew her away
+and out to the seat under the old silver-leaf poplar tree.
+
+"You're acting silly, Peter Junior,--and my bread will all spoil and
+get too light,--and my hands are all covered with flour, and--"
+
+"And you'll sit right here while I talk to you a bit, if the bread
+spoils and gets too light and everything burns to a cinder." She
+started to run away from him, and his peremptory tone changed to
+pleading. "Please, Betty, dear! just hear me this far. I'm going away,
+Betty, and I love you. No, sit close and be my sweetheart. Dear, it
+isn't the old thing. It's love, and it's what I want you to feel for
+me. I woke up yesterday, and found I loved you." He held her closer
+and lifted her face to his. "You must wake up, too, Betty; we can't
+play always. Say you'll love me and be my wife--some day--won't you,
+Betty?"
+
+She drooped in his arms, hanging her head and looking down on her
+floury hands.
+
+"Say it, Betty dear, won't you?"
+
+Her lip quivered. "I don't want to be anybody's wife--and, anyway--I
+liked you better the other way."
+
+"Why, Betty? Tell me why."
+
+"Because--lots of reasons. I must help mother--and I'm only seventeen,
+and--"
+
+"Most eighteen, I know, because--"
+
+"Well, anyway, mother says no girl of hers shall marry before she's of
+age, and she says that means twenty-one, and--"
+
+"That's all right. I can wait. Kiss me, Betty." But she was silent,
+with face turned from him. Again he lifted her face to his. "I say,
+kiss me, Betty. Just one? That was a stingy little kiss. You know I'm
+going away, and that is why I spoke to you now. I didn't dare go
+without telling you this first. You're so sweet, Betty, some one might
+find you out and love you--just as I have--only not so deeply in love
+with you--no one could--but some one might come and win you away from
+me, and so I must make sure that you will marry me when you are of age
+and I come back for you. Promise me."
+
+"Where?--why--Peter Junior! Where are you going?" Betty removed his
+arm from around her waist and slipped to her own end of the seat.
+There, with hands folded decorously in her lap, with heightened color
+and serious eyes, she looked shyly up at him. He had never seen her
+shy before. Always she had been merry and teasing, and his heart was
+proud that he had wrought such a miracle in her.
+
+"I am going to Paris. I mean to be an artist." He leaned toward her
+and would have taken her in his arms again, but she put his hands
+away.
+
+"Will your father let you do that?" Her eyes widened with surprise,
+and the surprise nettled him.
+
+"I don't know. He's thinking about it. Anyway, a man must decide for
+himself what his career will be, and if he won't let me, I'll earn the
+money and go without his letting me."
+
+"Wouldn't that be the best way, anyway?"
+
+"What do you mean? To go without his consent?"
+
+"Of course not--goosey." She laughed and was herself again, but he
+liked her better the other way. "To earn the money and then go.
+It--it--would be more--more as if you were in earnest."
+
+"My soul! Do you think I'm not in earnest? Do you think I'm not in
+love with you?"
+
+Instantly she was serious and shy again. His heart leaped. He loved to
+feel his power over her thus. Still she tantalized him. "I'm not
+meaning about loving me. That's not the question. I mean it would look
+more as if you were in earnest about becoming an artist."
+
+"No. The real question is, Do you love me? Will you marry me when I
+come back?" She was silent and he came nearer. "Say it. Say it. I must
+hear you say it before I leave." Her lips trembled as if she were
+trying to form the words, and their eyes met.
+
+"Yes--if--if--"
+
+Then he caught her to him, and stopped her mouth with kisses. He did
+not know himself. He was a man he had never met the like of, and he
+gloried in himself. It seemed as if he heard bells ringing out in joy.
+Then he looked up and saw Mary Ballard's eyes fixed on him.
+
+"Peter Junior--what are you doing?" Her voice shook.
+
+"I--I'm kissing Betty."
+
+"I see that."
+
+"We are to be married some day--and--"
+
+"You are precipitate, Peter Junior."
+
+Then Betty did what every woman does when her lover is blamed, no
+matter how earnestly she may have resisted him before. She went
+completely over to his side and took his part.
+
+"He's going away, mother. He's going away to be gone--perhaps for
+years; and I've--I've told him yes, mother,--so it isn't his fault."
+Then she turned and fled to her own room, and hid her flaming face in
+the pillow and wept.
+
+"Sit here with me awhile, Peter Junior, and we'll talk it all over,"
+said Mary.
+
+He obeyed her, and looking squarely in her eyes, manfully told her his
+plans, and tried to make her feel as he felt, that no love like his
+had ever filled a man's heart before. At last she sent him up to the
+studio to tell her husband, and she went in and finished Betty's task,
+putting the bread--alas! too light by this time--in the oven, and
+shaping the raised biscuit which Betty had left half-finished.
+
+Then she paused a moment to look out of the window down the path
+where the boys and little Janey would soon come tumbling home from
+school, hot and hungry. A tear slowly coursed down her cheek, and,
+following the curves, trembled on the tip of her chin. She brushed it
+away impatiently. Of course it had to come--that was what life must
+bring--but ah! not so soon--not so soon. Then she set about
+preparations for dinner without Betty's help. That, too, was what it
+would mean--sometime--to go on doing things without Betty. She gave a
+little sigh, and at the instant an arm was slipped about her waist,
+and she turned to look in Bertrand's eyes.
+
+"Is it all right, Mary?"
+
+"Why--yes--that is--if they'll always love each other as we have. I
+think it ought not to be too definite an engagement, though, until his
+plans are more settled. What do you think?"
+
+"You are right, no doubt. I'll speak to him about that." Then he
+kissed her warm, flushed cheek. "I declare, it makes me feel as Peter
+Junior feels again, to have this happen."
+
+"Ah, Bertrand! You never grew up--thank the Lord!" Then Mary laughed.
+After all, they had been happy, and why not Betty and Peter? Surely
+the young had their rights.
+
+Bertrand climbed back to the studio where Peter Junior was pacing
+restlessly back and forth, and again they talked it all over, until
+the call came for dinner, when Peter was urged to stay, but would not.
+No, he would not see Betty again until he could have her quite to
+himself. So he limped away, feeling as if he were walking on air in
+spite of his halting gait, and Betty from her window watched him pass
+down the path and off along the grassy roadside. Then she went down to
+dinner, flushed and grave, but with shining eyes. Her father kissed
+her, but nothing was said, and the children thought nothing of it, for
+it was quite natural in the family to kiss Betty.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER IX
+
+THE BANKER'S POINT OF VIEW
+
+
+There was no picnic and nutting party the next day, owing to a
+downpour of rain. Betty had time to think quietly over what had
+happened the day before and her mind misgave her. What was it that so
+filled her heart and mind? That so stirred her imagination? Was it
+romance or love? She wished she knew how other girls felt who had
+lovers. Was it easy or hard for them to say yes? Should a girl let her
+lover kiss her the way Peter Junior had done? Some of the questions
+which perplexed her she would have liked to ask her mother, but in
+spite of their charming intimacy she could not bring herself to speak
+of them. She wished she had a friend with a lover, and could talk it
+all over with her, but although she had girl friends, none of them had
+lovers, and to have one herself made her feel much older than any of
+them.
+
+So Betty thought matters out for herself. Of course she liked Peter
+Junior--she had always liked him--and he was masterful--and she had
+always known she would marry a soldier--and one who had been wounded
+and been brave--that was the kind of a soldier to love. But she was
+more subdued than usual and sewed steadily on gingham aprons for
+Janey, making the buttonholes and binding them about the neck with
+contrasting stuff.
+
+"Anyway, I'm glad there is no picnic to-day. The boys may eat up the
+cookies, and I didn't get the cake made after all," she said to her
+mother, as she lingered a moment in the kitchen and looked out of the
+window at the pouring rain. But she did not see the rain; she saw
+again a gray-clad youth limping down the path between the lilacs and
+away along the grassy roadside.
+
+Well, what if she had said yes? It was all as it should be, according
+to her dreams, only--only--he had not allowed her to say what she had
+meant to say. She wished her mother had not happened to come just then
+before she could explain to Peter Junior; that it was "yes" only if
+when he came back he still wanted her and still loved her, and was
+sure he had not made a mistake about it. It was often so in books. Men
+went away, and when they returned, they found they no longer loved
+their sweethearts. If such a terrible thing should happen to her! Oh,
+dear! Or maybe he would be too honorable to say he no longer loved
+her, and would marry her in spite of it; and she would find out
+afterward, when it was too late, that he loved some one else; that
+would be very terrible, and they would be miserable all their lives.
+
+"I don't think I would let the boys eat up the cookies, dear; it may
+clear off by sundown, and be fine to-morrow, and they'll be all as
+glad as to go to-day. You make your cake."
+
+"But Martha's coming home to-morrow night, and I'd rather wait now
+until Saturday; that will be only one day longer, and it will be more
+fun with her along." Betty spoke brightly and tried to make herself
+feel that no momentous thing had happened. She hated the constraint of
+it. "By that time Peter Junior will think that he can go, too. He's
+so funny!" She laughed self-consciously, and carried the gingham
+aprons back to her room.
+
+"Bless her dear little heart." Mary Ballard understood.
+
+Peter Junior also profited by the rainy morning. He had a long hour
+alone with his mother to tell her of his wish to go to Paris; and her
+way of receiving his news was a surprise to him. He had thought it
+would be a struggle and that he would have to argue with her, setting
+forth his hopes and plans, bringing her slowly to think with
+quiescence of their long separation: but no. She rose and began to
+pace the floor, and her eyes grew bright with eagerness.
+
+"Oh, Peter, Peter!" She came and placed her two hands on his shoulders
+and gazed into his eyes. "Peter Junior, you are a boy after my own
+heart. You are going to be something worth while. I always knew you
+would. It is Bertrand Ballard who has waked you up, who has taught you
+to see that there is much outside of Leauvite for a man to do. I'm not
+objecting to those who live here and have found their work here; it is
+only that you are different. Go! Go!--It is--has your father--have you
+asked his consent?"
+
+"Oh, yes."
+
+"Has he given it?"
+
+"I think he is considering it seriously."
+
+"Peter Junior, I hope you won't go without it--as you went once,
+without mine." Never before had she mentioned it to him, or recalled
+to his mind that terrible parting.
+
+"Why not, mother? It would be as fair to him now as it was then to
+you. It would be fairer; for this is a question of progress, and then
+it was a matter of life and death."
+
+"Ah, that was different, I admit. But I never could retaliate, or seem
+to, even in the smallest thing. I don't want him to suffer as I
+suffered."
+
+It was almost a cry for pity, and Peter Junior wondered in his heart
+at the depth of anguish she must have endured in those days, when he
+had thrust the thought of her opposition to one side as merely an
+obstacle overcome, and had felt the triumph of winning out in the
+contest, as one step toward independent manhood. Now, indeed, their
+viewpoints had changed. He felt almost a sense of pique that she had
+yielded so joyously and so suddenly, although confronted with the
+prospect of a long separation from him. Did she love him less than in
+the past? Had his former disregard of her wishes lessened even a
+trifle her mother love for him?
+
+"I'm glad you can take the thought of my going as you do, mother." He
+spoke coldly, as an only son may, but he was to be excused. He was
+less spoiled than most only sons.
+
+"In what way, my son?"
+
+"Why--in being glad to have me go--instead of feeling as you did
+then."
+
+"Glad? Glad to have you go? It isn't that, dear. Understand me. I'm
+sorry I spoke of that old time. It was only to spare your father. You
+see we look at things differently. He loves to have us follow out his
+plans. It is almost--death to him to have to give up; and with me--it
+was not then as it is now. I don't like to think or speak of that
+time."
+
+"Don't, mother, don't!" cried Peter, contritely.
+
+"But I must to make you see this as you should. It was love for you
+then that made me cling to you, and want to hold you back from going;
+just the same it is love for you now that makes me want you to go out
+and find your right place in the world. I was letting you go then to
+be shot at--to suffer fatigue, and cold, and imprisonment, who could
+know, perhaps to be cruelly killed--and I did not believe in war. I
+suppose your father was the nobler in his way of thinking, but I could
+not see it his way. Angels from heaven couldn't have made me believe
+it right; but it's over. Now I know your life will be made broader by
+going, and you'll have scope, at least, to know what you really wish
+to do with yourself and what you are worth, as you would not have, to
+sit down in your father's bank, although you would be safer there, no
+doubt. But you went through all the temptations of the army safely,
+and I have no fear for you now, dear, no fear."
+
+Peter Junior's heart melted. He took his mother in his arms and
+stroked her beautiful white hair. "I love you, mother, dear," was all
+he could say. Should he tell her of Betty now? The question died in
+his heart. It was too much. He would be all hers for a little, nor
+intrude the new love that she might think divided his heart. He
+returned to the question of his father's consent. "Mother, what shall
+I do if he will not give it?"
+
+"Wait. Try to be patient and do what he wishes. It may help him to
+yield in the end."
+
+"Never! I know Dad better than that. He will only think all the more
+that he is in the right, and that I have come to my senses. He never
+takes any viewpoint but his own." His mother was silent. Never would
+she open her lips against her husband. "I say, mother, naturally I
+would rather go with his consent, but if he won't give it--How long
+must a man be obedient just for the sake of obedience? Does such
+bondage never end? Am I not of age?"
+
+"I will speak to him. Wait and see. Talk it over with him again to-day
+after banking hours."
+
+"I--I--have something I must--must do to-day." He was thinking he
+would go out to the Ballards' in spite of the rain.
+
+The dinner hour passed without constraint. In these days Peter Junior
+would not allow the long silences to occur that used often to cast a
+gloom over the meals in his boyhood. He knew that in this way his
+mother would sadly miss him. It was the Elder's way to keep his
+thoughts for the most part to himself, and especially when there was
+an issue of importance before him. It was supposed that his wife could
+not take an interest in matters of business, or in things of interest
+to men, so silence was the rule when they were alone.
+
+This time Peter Junior mentioned the topic of the wonderful new
+railroad that was being pushed across the plains and through the
+unexplored desert to the Pacific.
+
+"The mere thought of it is inspiring," said Hester.
+
+"How so?" queried the Elder, with a lift of his brows. He deprecated
+any thought connecting sentiment with achievement. Sentiment was of
+the heart and only hindered achievement, which was purely of the
+brain.
+
+"It's just the wonder of it. Think of the two great oceans being
+brought so near together! Only two weeks apart! Don't they estimate
+that the time to cross will be only two weeks?"
+
+"Yes, mother, and we have those splendid old pioneers who made the
+first trail across the desert to thank for its being possible. It
+isn't the capitalists who have done this. It's the ones who had faith
+in themselves and dared the dangers and the hardships. They are the
+ones I honor."
+
+"They never went for love of humanity. It was mere love of wandering
+and migratory instinct," said his father, grimly.
+
+Peter Junior laughed merrily. "What did old grandfather Craigmile pull
+up and come over to this country for? They had to cross in sailing
+vessels then and take weeks for the journey."
+
+"Progress, my son, progress. Your grandfather had the idea of
+establishing his family in honorable business over here, and he did
+it."
+
+"Well, I say these people who have been crossing the plains and
+crawling over the desert behind ox teams in 'prairie schooners' for
+the last twenty or thirty years, braving all the dangers of the
+unknown, have really paved the way for progress and civilization. The
+railroad is being laid along the trail they made. Do you know
+Richard's out there at the end of the line--nearly?"
+
+"He would be likely to be. Roving boy! What's he doing there?"
+
+"Poor boy! He almost died in that terrible southern prison. He was the
+mere shadow of himself when he came home," said Hester.
+
+"The young men of the present day have little use for beaten paths and
+safe ways. I offered him a position in the bank, but no--he must go to
+Scotland first to make the acquaintance of our aunts. If he had been
+satisfied with that! But no, again, he must go to Ireland on a fool's
+errand to learn something of his father." The Elder paused and bit his
+lip, and a vein stood out on his forehead. "He's never seen fit to
+write me of late."
+
+"Of course such a big scheme as this road across the plains would
+appeal to a man like Richard. He's doing very well, father. I wouldn't
+be disturbed about him."
+
+"Humph! I might as well be disturbed about the course of the Wisconsin
+River. I might as well worry over the rush of a cataract. The lad has
+no stability."
+
+"He never fails to write to me, and I must say that he was considered
+the most dependable man in the regiment."
+
+"What is he doing? I should like to see the boy again." Hester looked
+across at her son with a warm, loving light in her eyes.
+
+"I don't know exactly, but it's something worth while, and calls for
+lots of energy. He says they are striking out into the dust and alkali
+now--right into the desert."
+
+"And doesn't he say a word about when he is coming back?"
+
+"Not a word, mother. He really has no home, you know. He says Scotland
+has no opening for him, and he has no one to depend on but himself."
+
+"He has relatives who are fairly well to do in Ireland."
+
+The Elder frowned. "So I've heard, and my aunts in Scotland talked of
+making him their heir, when I was last there."
+
+"He knows that, father, but he says he's not one to stand round
+waiting for two old women to die. He says they're fine, decorous old
+ladies, too, who made a lot of him. I warrant they'd hold up their
+hands in horror if they knew what a rough life he's leading now."
+
+"How rough, my son? I wish he'd make up his mind to come home."
+
+"There! I told him this is his home; just as much as it is mine. I'll
+write him you said that, mother."
+
+"Indeed, yes. Bless the boy!"
+
+The Elder looked at his wife and lifted his brows, a sign that it was
+time the meal should close, and she rose instantly. It was her habit
+never to rise until the Elder gave the sign. Peter Junior walked down
+the length of the hall at his father's side.
+
+"What Richard really wished to do was what I mentioned to you
+yesterday for myself. He wanted to go to Paris and study, but after
+visiting his great-aunts he saw that it would be too much. He would
+not allow them to take from their small income to help him through, so
+he gave it up for the time being; but if he keeps on as he is, it is
+my opinion he may go yet. He's making good money. Then we could be
+there together."
+
+The Elder made no reply, but stooped and drew on his india-rubber
+overshoes,--stamping into them,--and then got himself into his
+raincoat with sundry liftings and hunchings of his shoulders. Peter
+Junior stood by waiting, if haply some sort of sign might be given
+that his remark had been heeded, but his father only carefully
+adjusted his hat and walked away in the rain, setting his feet down
+stubbornly at each step, and holding his umbrella as if it were a
+banner of righteousness. The younger man's face flushed, and he turned
+from the door angrily; then he looked to see his mother's eyes fixed
+on him sadly.
+
+"At least he might treat me with common decency. He need not be rude,
+even if I am his son." He thought he detected accusation of himself
+in his mother's gaze and resented it.
+
+"Be patient, dear."
+
+"Oh, mother! Patient, patient! What have you got by being patient all
+these years?"
+
+"Peace of mind, my son."
+
+"Mother--"
+
+"Try to take your father's view of this matter. Have you any idea how
+hard he has worked all his life, and always with the thought of you
+and your advancement, and welfare? Why, Peter Junior, he is bound up
+in you. He expected you would one day stand at his side, his mainstay
+and help and comfort in his business."
+
+"Then it wasn't for me; it was for himself that he has worked and
+built up the bank. It's his bank, and his wife, and his son, and his
+'Tower of Babel that he has builded,' and now he wants me to bury
+myself in it and worship at his idolatry."
+
+"Hush, Peter. I don't like to rebuke you, but I must. You can twist
+facts about and see them in a wrong light, but the truth remains that
+he has loved you tenderly--always. I know his heart better than
+you--better than he. It is only that he thinks the line he has taken a
+lifetime to lay out for you is the best. He is as sure of it as that
+the days follow each other. He sees only futility in the way you would
+go. I have no doubt his heart is sore over it at this moment, and that
+he is grieving in a way that would shock you, could you comprehend
+it."
+
+"Enough said, mother, enough said. I'll try to be fair."
+
+He went to his room and stood looking out at the rain-washed earth and
+the falling leaves. The sky was heavy and drab. He thought of Betty
+and her picnic and of how gay and sweet she was, and how altogether
+desirable, and the thought wrought a change in his spirit. He went
+downstairs and kissed his mother; then he, too, put on his rubber
+overshoes and shook himself into his raincoat and carefully adjusted
+his hat and his umbrella. Then with the assistance of the old
+blackthorn stick he walked away in the rain, limping, it is true, but
+nevertheless a younger, sturdier edition of the man who had passed out
+before him.
+
+He found Betty alone as he had hoped, for Mary Ballard had gone to
+drive her husband to the station. Bertrand was thinking of opening a
+studio in the city, at his wife's earnest solicitation, for she
+thought him buried there in their village. As for the children--they
+were still in school.
+
+Thus it came about that Peter Junior spent the rest of that day with
+Betty in her father's studio. He told Betty all his plans. He made
+love to her and cajoled her, and was happy indeed. He had a winsome
+way, and he made her say she loved him--more than once or twice--and
+his heart was satisfied.
+
+"We'll be married just as soon as I return from Paris, and you'll not
+miss me so much until then?"
+
+"Oh, no."
+
+"Ah--but--but I hope you will--you know."
+
+"Of course I shall! What would you suppose?"
+
+"But you said no."
+
+"Naturally! Didn't you wish me to say that?"
+
+"I wanted you to tell the truth."
+
+"Well, I did."
+
+"There it is again! I'm afraid you don't really love me."
+
+She tilted her head on one side and looked at him a moment. "Would you
+like me to say I don't want you to go to Paris?"
+
+"Not that, exactly; but all the time I'm gone I shall be longing for
+you."
+
+"I should hope so! It would be pretty bad if you didn't."
+
+"Now you see what I mean about you. I want you to be longing for me
+all the time, until I return."
+
+"All right. I'll cry my eyes out, and I'll keep writing for you to
+come home."
+
+"Oh, come now! Tell me what you will do all the time."
+
+"Oh, lots of things. I'll paint pictures, too, and--I'll write--and
+help mother just as I do now; and I'll study art without going to
+Paris."
+
+"Will you, you rogue! I'd marry you first and take you with me if it
+were possible, and you should study in Paris, too--that is, if you
+wished to."
+
+"Wouldn't it be wonderful! But I don't know--I believe I'd rather
+write than paint."
+
+"I believe I'd rather have you. They say there are no really great
+women artists. It isn't in the woman's nature. They haven't the
+strength. Oh, they have the delicacy and all that; it's something else
+they lack."
+
+"Humph! It's rather nice to have us lacking in one thing and another,
+isn't it? It gives you men something to do to discover and fill in the
+lacks."
+
+"I know one little lady who lacks in nothing but years."
+
+Betty looked out of the window and down into the yard. "There is
+mother driving in. Let's go down and have cookies and milk. I'm sure
+you need cookies and milk."
+
+"I'll need anything you say."
+
+"Very well, then, you'll need patience if ever you marry me."
+
+"I know that well enough. Stop a moment. Kiss me before we go down."
+He caught her in his arms, but she slipped away.
+
+"No, I won't. You've had enough kisses. I'll always give you one when
+you come, hereafter, and one when you go away, but no more."
+
+"Then I shall come very often." He laughed and leaned upon her instead
+of using his stick, as they slowly descended.
+
+Mary Ballard was chilled after her long drive in the rain, and Betty
+made her tea. Then, after a pleasant hour of chat and encouragement
+from the two sweet women, Peter Junior left them, promising to go to
+the picnic and nutting party on Saturday. It would surely be pleasant,
+for the sky was already clearing. Yes, truly a glad heart brings
+pleasant prognostications.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER X
+
+THE NUTTING PARTY
+
+
+Peter Junior made no attempt the next day to speak further to his
+father about his plans. It seemed to him better that he should wait
+until his wise mother had talked the matter over with the Elder.
+Although he put in most of the day at the studio, painting, he saw
+very little of Betty and thought she was avoiding him out of girlish
+coquetry, but she was only very busy. Martha was coming home and
+everything must be as clean as wax. Martha was such a tidy housekeeper
+that she would see the least lack and set to work to remedy it, and
+that Betty could not abide. In these days Martha's coming marked a
+semimonthly event in the home, for since completing her course at the
+high school she had been teaching in the city. Bertrand would return
+with her, and then all would have to be talked over,--just what he had
+decided to do, and why.
+
+In the evening a surprise awaited the whole household, for Martha
+came, accompanied not only by her father, but also by a young
+professor in the same school where she taught. Mary Ballard greeted
+him most kindly, but she felt things were happening too rapidly in her
+family. Jamie and Bobby watched the young man covertly yet eagerly,
+taking note of his every movement and intonation. Was he one to be
+emulated or avoided? Only little Janey was quite unabashed by him, and
+this lightened his embarrassment greatly and helped him to the ease
+of manner he strove to establish.
+
+She led him out to the sweet-apple tree, and introduced him to the
+calf and the bantams, and invited him to go with them nutting the next
+day. "We're all going in a great, big picnic wagon. Everybody's going
+and we'll have just lots of fun." And he accepted, provided she would
+sit beside him all the way.
+
+Bobby decided at this point that he also would befriend the young man.
+"If you're going to sit beside her all the way, you'll have to be
+lively. She never sits in one place more than two minutes. You'll have
+to sit on papa's other knee for a while, and then you'll have to sit
+on Peter Junior's."
+
+"That will be interesting, anyway. Who's Peter Junior?"
+
+"Oh, he's a man. He comes to see us a lot."
+
+"He's the son of Elder Craigmile," explained Martha.
+
+"Is he going, too, Betty?"
+
+"Yes. The whole crowd are going. It will be fun. I'm glad now it
+rained Thursday, for the Deans didn't want to postpone it till
+to-morrow, and then, when it rained, Mrs. Dean said it would be too
+wet to try to have it yesterday; and now we have you. I wanted all the
+time to wait until you came home."
+
+That night, when Martha went to their room, Betty followed her, and
+after closing the door tightly she threw her arms around her sister's
+neck.
+
+"Oh, Martha, Martha, dear! Tell me all about him. Why didn't you let
+us know? I came near having on my old blue gingham. What if I had?
+He's awfully nice looking. Is he in love with you? Tell me all about
+it. Does he make love to you? Oh, Martha! It's so romantic for you to
+have a lover!"
+
+"Hush, Betty, some one will hear you. Of course he doesn't make love
+to me!"
+
+"Why?"
+
+"I wouldn't let him."
+
+"Martha! Why not? Do you think it's bad to let a young man make love
+to you?"
+
+"Betty! You mustn't talk so loud. Everything sounds so through this
+house. It would mortify me to death."
+
+"What would mortify you to death: to have him make love to you or to
+have someone hear me?"
+
+"Betty, dear!"
+
+"Well, tell me all about him--please! Why did he come out with you?"
+
+"You shouldn't always be thinking about love-making--and--such things,
+Betty, dear. He just came out in the most natural way, just because
+he--he loves the country, and he was talking to me about it one day
+and said he'd like to come out some Friday with me--just about asked
+me to invite him. So when father called at the school yesterday for
+me, I introduced them, and he said the same thing to father, and of
+course father invited him over again, and--and--so he's here. That's
+all there is to it."
+
+"I bet it isn't. How long have you known him?"
+
+"Why, ever since I've been in the school, naturally."
+
+"What does he teach?"
+
+"He has higher Latin and beginners' Greek, and then he has charge of
+the main room when the principal goes out."
+
+Betty pondered a little, sitting on the floor in front of her sister.
+"You have such a lovely way of doing your hair. Is that the way to do
+hair nowadays--with two long curls hanging down from one side of the
+coil? You wind one side around the back knot, and then you pin the
+other up and let the ends hang down in two long curls, don't you? I'm
+going to try mine that way; may I?"
+
+"Of course, darling! I'll help you."
+
+"What's his name, Martha? I couldn't quite catch it, and I did not
+want to let him know I thought it queer, so wouldn't ask over."
+
+"His name is Lucien Thurbyfil. It's not so queer, Betty."
+
+"Oh, you pronounce it T'urbyfil, just as if there were no 'h' in it.
+You know I thought father said Mr. Tubfull--or something like that,
+when he introduced him to mother, and that was why mother looked at
+him in such an odd way."
+
+The two girls laughed merrily. "Betty, what if you hadn't been a dear,
+and had called him that! And he's so very correct!"
+
+"Oh, is he? Then I'll try it to-morrow and we'll see what he'll do."
+
+"Don't you dare! I'd be so ashamed I'd sink right through the floor.
+He'd think we'd been making fun of him."
+
+"Then I'll wait until we are out in the woods, for I'd hate to have
+you make a hole in the floor by sinking through it."
+
+"Betty! You'll be good to-morrow, won't you, dear?"
+
+"Good? Am I not always good? Didn't I scrub and bake and put flowers
+all over the ugly what-not in the corner of the parlor, and get the
+grease spot out of the dining room rug that Jamie stepped butter
+into--and all for you--without any thought of any Mr. Tubfull or any
+one but you? All day long I've been doing it."
+
+"Of course you did, and it was perfectly sweet; and the flowers and
+mother looked so dear--and Janey's hands were clean--I looked to see.
+You know usually they are so dirty. I knew you'd been busy; but Betty,
+dear, you won't be mischievous to-morrow, will you? He's our guest,
+you know, and you never were bashful, not as much as you really ought
+to be, and we can't treat strangers just as we do--well--people we
+have always known, like Peter Junior. They wouldn't understand it."
+
+But the admonition seemed to be lost, for Betty's thoughts were
+wandering from the point. "Hasn't he ever--ever--made love to you?"
+Martha was washing her face and neck at the washstand in the corner,
+and now she turned a face very rosy, possibly with scrubbing, and
+threw water over her naughty little sister. "Well, hasn't he ever put
+his arm around you or--or anything?"
+
+"I wouldn't let a man do that."
+
+"Not if you were engaged?"
+
+"Of course not! That wouldn't be a nice way to do."
+
+"Shouldn't you let a man kiss you or--or--put his arm around you--or
+anything--even when he's trying to get engaged to you?"
+
+"Of course not, Betty, dear. You're asking very silly questions. I'm
+going to bed."
+
+"Well, but they do in books. He did in 'Jane Eyre,' don't you
+remember? And she was proud of it--and pretended not to be--and very
+much touched, and treasured his every look in her heart. And in the
+books they always kiss their lovers. How can Mr. Thurbyfil ever be
+your lover, if you never let him even put his arm around you?"
+
+"Betty, Betty, come to bed. He isn't my lover and he doesn't want to
+be and we aren't in books, and you are getting too old to be so
+silly."
+
+Then Betty slowly disrobed and bathed her sweet limbs and at last
+crept in beside her sister. Surely she had not done right. She had let
+Peter Junior put his arm around her and kiss her, and that even before
+they were engaged; and all yesterday afternoon he had held her hand
+whenever she came near, and he had followed her about and had kissed
+her a great many times. Her cheeks burned with shame in the darkness,
+not that she had allowed this, but that she had not been as bashful as
+she ought. But how could she be bashful without pretending?
+
+"Martha," she said at last, "you are so sweet and pretty, if I were
+Mr. Thurbyfil, I'd put my arm around you anyway, and make love to
+you."
+
+Then Martha drew Betty close and gave her a sleepy kiss. "No you
+wouldn't, dear," she murmured, and soon the two were peacefully
+sleeping, Betty's troubles quite forgotten. Still, when morning came,
+she did not confide to her sister anything about Peter Junior, and she
+even whispered to her mother not to mention a word of the affair to
+any one.
+
+At breakfast Jamie and Bobby were turbulent with delight. All outings
+were a joy to them, no matter how often they came. Martha was neat and
+rosy and gay. Lucien Thurbyfil wanted to help her by wiping the
+dishes, but she sent him out to the sweet-apple tree with a basket,
+enjoining him to bring only the mellow ones. "Be sure to get enough.
+We're all going, father and mother and all."
+
+"It's very nice of your people to make room for me on the wagon."
+
+"And it's nice of you to go."
+
+"I see Peter Junior. He's coming," shouted Bobby, from the top of the
+sweet-apple tree.
+
+"Who does he go with?" asked Martha.
+
+"With us. He always does," said Betty. "I wonder why his mother and
+the Elder never go out for any fun, the way you and father do!"
+
+"The Elder always has to be at the bank, I suppose," said Mary
+Ballard, "and she wouldn't go without him. Did you put in the salt and
+pepper for the eggs, dear?"
+
+"Yes, mother. I'm glad father isn't a banker."
+
+"It takes a man of more ability than I to be a banker," said Bertrand,
+laughing, albeit with concealed pride.
+
+"We don't care if it does, Dad," said Jamie, patronizingly. "When I
+get through the high school, I'm going to hire out to the bank." He
+seized the lunch basket and marched manfully out to the wagon.
+
+"I thought Peter Junior always went with Clara Dean. He did when I
+left," said Martha, in a low voice to Betty, as they filled bottles
+with raspberry shrub, and with cream for the coffee. "Did you tie
+strings on the spoons, dear? They'll get mixed with the Walters' if
+you don't. You remember theirs are just like ours."
+
+"Oh, I forgot. Why, he likes Clara a lot, of course, but I guess they
+just naturally expected him to go with us. They and the Walters have
+a wagon together, anyway, and they wouldn't have room. We have one all
+to ourselves. Hello, Peter Junior! Mr. Thurbyfil, this is Mr.
+Junior."
+
+"Happy to meet you, Mr. Junior," said the correct Mr. Thurbyfil. The
+boys laughed uproariously, and the rest all smiled, except Betty, who
+was grave and really seemed somewhat embarrassed.
+
+"What is it?" she asked.
+
+"Mr. Thurbyfil, this is Mr. Craigmile," said Martha. "You introduced
+him as Mr. Junior, Betty."
+
+"I didn't! Well, that's because I'm bashful. Come on, everybody,
+mother's in." So they all climbed into the wagon and began to find
+their places.
+
+"Oh, father, have you the matches? The bottles are on the kitchen
+table," exclaimed Martha.
+
+"Don't get down, Mr. Ballard," said Lucien. "I'll get them. It would
+never do to forget the bottles. Now, where's the little girl who was
+to ride beside me?" and Janey crawled across the hay and settled
+herself at her new friend's side. "Now I think we are beautifully
+arranged," for Martha was on his other side.
+
+"Very well, we're off," and Bertrand gathered up the reins and they
+started.
+
+"There they are. There's the other wagon," shouted Bobby. "We ought to
+have a flag to wave."
+
+Then Lucien, the correct, startled the party by putting his two
+fingers in his mouth and whistling shrilly.
+
+"They have such a load I wish Clara could ride with us," said Betty.
+"Peter Junior, won't you get out and fetch her?"
+
+So they all stopped and there were greetings and introductions and
+much laughing and joking, and Peter Junior obediently helped Clara
+Dean down and into the Ballards' wagon.
+
+"Clara, Mr. Thurbyfil can whistle as loud as a train, through his
+fingers, he can. Do it, Mr. Thurbyfil," said Bobby.
+
+"Oh, I can do that," said Peter Junior, not to be outdone by the
+stranger, and they all tried it. Bertrand and his wife, settled
+comfortably on the high seat in front, had their own pleasure together
+and paid no heed to the noisy crew behind them.
+
+What a day! Autumn leaves and hazy distances, soft breezes and
+sunlight, and miles of level road skirting woods and open fields where
+the pumpkins lay yellow among the shocks of corn, and where the fence
+corners were filled with flaming sumac, with goldenrod and purple
+asters adding their softer coloring.
+
+It was a good eight miles to Carter's woods, but they bordered the
+river where the bluffs were not so high, and it would be possible to
+build a fire on the river bank with perfect safety. Bertrand had
+brought roasting ears from his patch of sweet corn, and as soon as
+they arrived at their chosen grove, he and Mary leisurely turned their
+attention to the preparing of the lunch with Mrs. Dean and Mrs.
+Walters, leaving to the young people the gathering of the nuts.
+
+Mrs. Dean, a slight, wiry woman, who acted and talked easily and
+unceasingly, spread out a fresh linen cloth and laid a stone on each
+corner to hold it down, and then looked into each lunch basket in
+turn, to acquaint herself with its contents.
+
+"I see you brought cake and cookies and jam, Mrs. Ballard, besides all
+the corn and cream--you always do too much, and all your own work to
+look after, too. Well, I brought a lot of ham sandwiches and that
+brown bread your husband likes so much. I always feel so proud when
+Mr. Ballard praises anything I do; he's so clever it makes me feel as
+if I were really able to do something. And you're so clever too. I
+don't know how it is some folks seem to have all the brains, and then
+there's others--good enough--but there! As I tell Mr. Dean, you can't
+tell why it is. Now where are the spoons? Every one brings their own,
+of course; yes, here are yours, Mrs. Walters. It's good of you to
+think of that sweet corn, Mr. Ballard.--Oh, he's gone away; well,
+anyway, we're having a lot more than we can eat, and all so good and
+tempting. I hope Mr. Dean won't overeat himself; he's just a boy at a
+picnic, I always have to remind him--How?"
+
+"Did you bring the cups for the coffee?" It was Mrs. Walters who
+interrupted the flow of Mrs. Dean's eloquence. She was portly and
+inclined to brevity, which made her a good companion for Mrs. Dean.
+
+"I had such a time with my jell this summer, and now this fall my
+grape jell's just as bad. This is all running over the glasses. There,
+I'll set it on this paper. I do hate to see a clean cloth all spotted
+with jell, even if it is a picnic when people think it doesn't make
+any difference. I see Martha has a friend. Well, that's nice. I wish
+Clara cared more for company; but, there, as I tell Mr. Dean--Oh, yes!
+the cups. Clara, where are the cups? Oh, she's gone. Well, I'm sure
+they're in that willow basket. I told Clara to pack towels around them
+good. I do hate to see cups all nicked up; yes, here they are. It's
+good of you to always tend the coffee, Mrs. Walters; you know just how
+to make it. I tell Mr. Dean nobody ever makes coffee like you can at a
+picnic. Now, if it's ready, I think everything else is; well, it soon
+will be with such a fire, and the corn's not done, anyway. Do you
+think the sun'll get round so as to shine on the table? I see it's
+creeping this way pretty fast, and they're all so scattered over the
+woods there's no telling when we will get every one here to eat. I see
+another tablecloth in your basket, Mrs. Ballard. If you'll be good
+enough to just hold that corner, we can cover everything up good, so,
+and then I'll walk about a bit and call them all together." And the
+kindly lady stepped briskly off through the woods, still talking,
+while Mrs. Ballard and Mrs. Walters sat themselves down in the shade
+and quietly watched the coffee and chatted.
+
+It was past the noon hour, and the air was drowsy and still. The
+voices and laughter of the nut gatherers came back to them from the
+deeper woods in the distance, and the crackling of the fire where
+Bertrand attended to the roasting of the corn near by, and the gentle
+sound of the lapping water on the river bank came to them out of the
+stillness.
+
+"I wonder if Mr. Walters tied the horses good!" said his wife. "Seems
+as if one's got loose. Don't you hear a horse galloping?"
+
+"They're all there eating," said Mary, rising and looking about. "Some
+one's coming, away off there over the bluff; see?"
+
+"I wonder, now! My, but he rides well. He must be coming here. I hope
+there's nothing the matter. It looks like--it might be Peter Junior,
+only he's here already."
+
+"It's--it's--no, it can't be--it is! It's--Bertrand, Bertrand! Why,
+it's Richard!" cried Mary Ballard, as the horseman came toward them,
+loping smoothly along under the trees, now in the sunlight and now in
+the shadow. He leaped from the saddle, and, throwing the rein over a
+knotted limb, walked rapidly toward them, holding out a hand to each,
+as Bertrand and Mary hurried forward.
+
+"I couldn't let you good folks have one of these fine old times
+without me."
+
+"Why, when did you come? Oh, Richard! It's good to see you again,"
+said Mary.
+
+"I came this morning. I went up to my uncle's and then to your house
+and found you all away, and learned that you were here and my twin
+with you, so here I am. How are the children? All grown up?"
+
+"Almost. Come and sit down and give an account of yourself to Mary,
+while I try to get hold of the rest," said Bertrand.
+
+"Mrs. Dean has gone for them, father. Mrs. Walters, the coffee's all
+right; come and sit down here and let's visit until the others come.
+You remember Richard Kildene, Mrs. Walters?"
+
+"Since he was a baby, but it's been so long since I've seen you,
+Richard. I don't believe I'd have known you unless for your likeness
+to Peter Junior. You look stronger than he now. Redder and browner."
+
+"I ought to. I've been in the open air and sun for weeks. I'm only
+here now by chance."
+
+"A happy chance for us, Richard. Where have you been of late?" asked
+Bertrand.
+
+"Out on the plains--riding and keeping a gang of men under control,
+for the most part, and pushing the work as rapidly as possible." He
+tossed back his hair with the old movement Mary remembered so well.
+"Tell me about the children, Martha and Betty; both grown up? Or still
+ready to play with a comrade?"
+
+"They're all here to-day. Martha's teaching in the city, but Betty's
+at home helping me, as always. The boys are getting such big fellows,
+and little Janey's as sweet as all the rest."
+
+"There! That's Betty's laugh, I know. I'd recognize it if I heard it
+out on the plains. I have, sometimes--when a homesick fit gets hold of
+me out under the stars, when the noise of the camp has subsided. A
+good deal of that work is done by the very refuse of humanity, you
+know, a mighty tough lot."
+
+"And you like that sort of thing, Richard?" asked Mary. "I thought
+when you went to your people in Scotland, you might be leading a very
+different kind of life by now."
+
+"I thought so, too, then; but I guess for some reasons this is best.
+Still, I couldn't resist stealing a couple of days to run up here and
+see you all. I got off a carload of supplies yesterday from Chicago,
+and then I wired back to the end of the line that I'd be two days
+later myself. No wonder I followed you out here. I couldn't afford to
+waste the precious hours. I say! That's Betty again! I'll find them
+and say you're hungry, shall I?"
+
+"Oh, they're coming now. I see Martha's pink dress, and there's Betty
+in green over there."
+
+But Richard was gone, striding over the fallen leaves toward the spot
+of green which was Betty's gingham dress. And Betty, spying him,
+forgot she was grown up. She ran toward him with outstretched arms,
+as of old--only--just as he reached her, she drew back and a wave of
+red suffused her face. She gave him one hand instead of both, and
+called to Peter Junior to hurry.
+
+"Well, Betty Ballard! I can't jump you along now over stocks and
+stones as I used to. And here's everybody! Why, Jamie, what a great
+man you are! I'll have to take you back with me to help build the new
+road. And here's Bobby; and this little girl--I wonder if she
+remembers me well enough to give me a kiss? I have nobody to kiss me
+now, when I come back. That's right. That's what Betty used to do.
+Why, hello! here's Clara Dean, and who's this? John Walters? So you're
+a man, too! Mr. Dean, how are you? And Mrs. Dean! You don't grow any
+older anyway, so I'll walk with you. Wait until I've pounded this old
+chap a minute. Why didn't I write I was coming? Man, I didn't know it
+myself. I'm under orders nowadays. To get here at all I had to steal
+time. So you're graduated from a crutch to a cane? Good!"
+
+Every one exclaimed at once, while Richard talked right on, until they
+reached the riverside where the lunch was spread; and then the babble
+was complete.
+
+That night, as they all drove home in the moonlight, Richard tied his
+horse to the rear of the Ballards' wagon and rode home seated on the
+hay with the rest. He placed himself where Betty sat on his right, and
+the two boys crowded as close to him as possible on his left. Little
+Janey, cuddled at Betty's side, was soon fast asleep with her head in
+her sister's lap, while Lucien Thurbyfil was well pleased to have
+Martha in the corner to himself. Peter Junior sat near Betty and
+listened with interest to his cousin, who entertained them all with
+tales of the plains and the Indians, and the game that supplied them
+with many a fine meal in camp.
+
+"Say, did you ever see a real herd of wild buffalo just tearing over
+the ground and kicking up a great dust and stampeding and everything?"
+said Jamie.
+
+"Oh, yes. And if you are out there all alone on your pony, you'd
+better keep away from in front of them, too, or you'd be trampled to
+death in a jiffy."
+
+"What's stampeding?" said Bobby.
+
+So Richard explained it, and much more that elicited long breaths of
+interest. He told them of the miles and miles of land without a single
+tree or hill, and only a sea of grass as far as the eye could reach,
+as level as Lake Michigan, and far vaster. And how the great railway
+was now approaching the desert, and how he had seen the bones of men
+and cattle and horses bleaching white, lying beside their broken-down
+wagons half buried in the drifting sand. He told them how the trail
+that such people had made with so much difficulty stretched far, far
+away into the desert along the very route, for the most part, that the
+railroad was taking, and answered their questions so interestingly
+that the boys were sorry when they reached home at last and they had
+to bid good-night to Peter Junior's fascinating cousin, Richard.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XI
+
+BETTY BALLARD'S AWAKENING
+
+
+Mary and Bertrand always went early to church, for Bertrand led the
+choir, and it was often necessary for him to gather the singers
+together and try over the anthem before the service. Sometimes the
+rector would change the hymns, and then the choir must have one little
+rehearsal of them. Martha and Mr. Thurbyfil accompanied them this
+morning, and Betty and the boys were to walk, for four grown-ups with
+little Janey sandwiched in between more than filled the carryall.
+
+In these days Betty no longer had to wash and dress her brothers, but
+there were numerous attentions required of her, such as only growing
+boys can originate, and "sister" was as kind and gay in helping them
+over their difficulties as of old. So, now, as she stepped out of her
+room all dressed for church in her white muslin with green rose sprigs
+over it, with her green parasol, and her prayer book in her hand,
+Bobby called her.
+
+"Oh, Sis! I've broken my shoe string and it's time to start."
+
+"I have a new one in my everyday shoes, Bobby, dear; run upstairs and
+take it out. They're just inside the closet door. Wait a minute,
+Jamie; that lock stands straight up on the back of your head. Can't
+you make it lie down? Bring me the brush. You look splendid in your
+new trousers. Now, you hurry on ahead and leave this at the Deans'.
+It's Clara's sash bow. I found it in the wagon after they left last
+night. Run, she may want to wear it to church.--Yes, Bobby, dear, I
+sent him on, but you can catch up. Have you a handkerchief? Yes, I'll
+follow in a minute."
+
+And the boys rushed off, looking very clean in their Sunday clothing,
+and very old and mannish in their long trousers and stiff hats. Betty
+looked after them with pride, then she bethought her that the cat had
+not had her saucer of milk, and ran down to the spring to get it,
+leaving the doors wide open behind her. The day was quite warm enough
+for her to wear the summer gown, and she was very winsome and pretty
+in her starched muslin, with the delicate green buds sprayed over it.
+She wore a green belt, too, and the parasol she was very proud of, for
+she had bought it with her own chicken money. It was her heart's
+delight. Betty's skirt reached nearly to the ground, for she was quite
+in long dresses, and two little ruffles rippled about her feet as she
+ran down the path to the spring. But, alas! As she turned away after
+carefully fastening the spring-house door, the cat darted under her
+feet; and Betty stumbled and the milk streamed down the front of her
+dress and spattered her shoes--and if there was anything Betty liked,
+it was to have her shoes very neat.
+
+"Oh, Kitty! I hate your running under my feet that way all the time."
+Betty was almost in tears. She set the saucer down and tried to wipe
+off the milk, while the cat crouched before the dish and began
+drinking eagerly and unthankfully, after the manner of cats.
+
+Some one stood silently watching her from the kitchen steps as she
+walked slowly up the path, gazing down on the ruin of the pretty
+starched ruffles.
+
+"Why, Richard!" was all she said, for something came up in her throat
+and choked her. She waited where she stood, and in his eyes, her
+aspect seemed that of despair. Was it all for the spilled milk?
+
+"Why, Betty dear!" He caught her and kissed her and laughed at her and
+comforted her all at once. "Not tears, dear? Tears to greet me? You
+didn't half greet me last evening, and I came only to see you. Now you
+will, where there's no one to see and no one to hear? Yes. Never mind
+the spilled milk, you know better than that." But Betty lay in his
+arms, a little crumpled wisp of sorrow, white and still.
+
+"Away off there in Cheyenne I got to thinking of you, and I went to
+headquarters and asked to be sent on this commission just to get the
+chance to run up here and tell you I have been waiting all these years
+for you to grow up. You have haunted me ever since I left Leauvite.
+You darling, your laughing face was always with me, on the march--in
+prison--and wherever I've been since. I've been trying to keep myself
+right--for you--so I might dare some day to take you in my arms like
+this and tell you--so I need not be ashamed before your--"
+
+"Oh, Richard, wait!" wailed Betty, but he would not wait.
+
+"I've waited long enough. I see you are grown up before I even dreamed
+you could be. Thank heaven I came now! You are so sweet some one would
+surely have won you away from me--but no one can now--no one."
+
+"Richard, why didn't you tell me this when you first came home from
+the war--before you went to Scotland? I would--"
+
+"Not then, sweetheart; I couldn't. I didn't even know then I would
+ever be worth the love of any woman; and--you were such a child
+then--I couldn't intrude my weariness--my worn-out self on you. I was
+sick at heart when I got out of that terrible prison; but now it is
+all changed. I am my own man now, dependent on no one, and able to
+marry you out of hand, Betty, dear. After you've told me something,
+I'll do whatever you say, wait as long as you say. No, no! Listen!
+Don't break away from me. You don't hate me as you do the cat. I
+haven't been running under your feet all the time, have I, dear?
+Listen. See here, my arms are strong now. They can hold you forever,
+just like this. I've been thinking of you and dreaming of you and
+loving you through these years. You have never been out of my mind nor
+out of my heart. I've kept the little housewife you made me and bound
+with your cherry-colored hair ribbon until it is in rags, but I love
+it still. I love it. They took everything I had about me at the
+prison; but this--they gave back to me. It was the only thing I begged
+them to leave me."
+
+Poor little Betty! She tried to speak and tried again, but she could
+not utter a word. Her mouth grew dry and her knees would not support
+her. Richard was so big and strong he did not feel her weight, and
+only delighted in the thought that she resigned herself to him.
+"Darling little Betty! Darling little Betty! You do understand, don't
+you? Won't you tell me you do?"
+
+But she only closed her eyes and lay quite still. She longed to lift
+her arms and put them about his neck, and the effort not to do so
+only crushed her spirit the more. Now she knew she was bad, and
+unworthy such a great love as this. She had let Peter Junior kiss her,
+and she had told him she loved him--and it was nothing to this. She
+was not good; she was unworthy, and all the angels in heaven could
+never bring her comfort any more. She was so still he put his cheek to
+hers, and it seemed as if she moaned, and that without a sound.
+
+"Have I hurt you, Betty, dear?"
+
+"Oh, no, Richard, no."
+
+"Do you love me, sweet?"
+
+"Yes, Richard, yes. I love you so I could die of loving you, and I
+can't help it. Oh, Richard, I can't help it."
+
+"It's asking too much that you should love me so, and yet that's what
+my selfish, hungry heart wants and came here for."
+
+"Take your face away, Richard; stop. I must talk if it kills me. I
+have been so bad and wicked. Oh, Richard, I can't tell you how wicked.
+Let me stand by myself now. I can." She fought back the tears and
+turned her face away from him, but when he let go of her, in her
+weakness she swayed, and he caught her to him again, with many
+repeated words of tenderness.
+
+"If you will take me to the steps, Richard, and bring me a glass of
+water, I think I can talk to you then. You remember where things are
+in this house?"
+
+Did he remember? Was there anything he had forgotten about this
+beloved place? He brought her the water and she made him sit beside
+her, but not near, only that she need not look in his eyes.
+
+"Richard, I thought something was love--that was not--I didn't know.
+It was only liking--and--and now I--I've been so wrong--and I want to
+die--Oh, I want to die! No, don't. Do you want to make me sin again?
+Oh, Richard, Richard! If you had only come before! Now it is too
+late." She began sobbing bitterly, and her small frame shook with her
+grief.
+
+He seized her wrists and his hand trembled. She tried to cover her
+face with her hands, but he took them down and held them.
+
+"Betty, what have you done? Tell me--tell me quick."
+
+Then she turned her face toward him, wet with tears. "Have pity on me,
+Richard. Have pity on me, Richard, for my heart is broken, and the
+thing that hurts me most is that it will hurt you."
+
+"But it wasn't yesterday when I came to you out there in the woods. I
+heard you laughing, and you ran to meet me as happy as ever--"
+
+"You did not hear me laugh once again after you came and looked in my
+eyes there in the grove. It was in that instant that my heart began to
+break, and now I know why. Go back to Cheyenne. Go far away and never
+think of me any more. I am not worthy of you, anyway. I have let you
+hold me in your arms and kiss me when I ought not. Oh, I have been so
+bad--so bad! Let me hide my face. I can't look in your eyes any
+more."
+
+But he was cruel. He made her look in his eyes and tell him all the
+sorrowful truth. Then at last he grew pitiful again and tried brokenly
+to comfort her, to make her feel that something would intervene to
+help them, but in his heart he knew that his cause was lost, and his
+hopes burned within him, a heap of smoldering coals dying in their own
+ashes.
+
+He had always loved Peter Junior too well to blame him especially as
+Peter could not have known what havoc he was making of his cousin's
+hopes. It had all been a terrible mischance, and now they must make
+the best of it and be brave. Yet a feeling of resentment would creep
+into his heart in spite of his manful resolve to be fair to his
+cousin, and let nothing interfere with their lifelong friendship. In
+vain he told himself that Peter had the same right as he to seek
+Betty's love. Why not? Why should he think himself the only one to be
+considered? But there was Betty! And when he thought of her, his soul
+seemed to go out of him. Too late! Too late! And so he rose and walked
+sorrowfully away.
+
+When Mary Ballard came home from church, she found her little daughter
+up in her room on her knees beside her bed, her arms stretched out
+over the white counterpane, asleep. She had suffered until nature had
+taken her into her own soothing arms and put her to sleep through
+sheer weakness. Her cheeks were still burning and her eyelids red from
+weeping. Mary thought her in a fever, and gently helped her to remove
+the pretty muslin dress and got her to bed.
+
+Betty drew a long sigh as her head sank back into the pillow. "My head
+aches; don't worry, mother, dear." She thought her heart was closed
+forever on her terrible secret.
+
+"Mother'll bring you something for it, dear. You must have eaten
+something at the picnic that didn't agree with you." She kissed
+Betty's cheek, and at the door paused to look back on her, and a
+strange misgiving smote her.
+
+"I can't think what ails her," she said to Martha. "She seems to be
+in a high fever. Did she sleep well last night?"
+
+"Perfectly, but we talked a good while before we went to sleep.
+Perhaps she got too tired yesterday. I thought she seemed excited,
+too. Mrs. Walters always makes her coffee so strong."
+
+Peter Junior came in to dinner, buoyant and happy. He was disappointed
+not to see Betty, and frankly avowed it. He followed Mary into the
+kitchen and begged to be allowed to go up and speak to Betty for only
+a minute, but Mary thought sleep would be the best remedy and he would
+better leave her alone. He had been to church with his father, and all
+through the morning service as he sat at his father's side he had
+meditated how he could persuade the Elder to look on his plans with
+some degree of favor--enough at least to warrant him in going on with
+them and trust to his father's coming around in time.
+
+Neither he nor Richard were at the Elder's at dinner, and the meal
+passed in silence, except for a word now and then in regard to the
+sermon. Hester thought continually of her son and his hopes, but as
+she glanced from time to time in her husband's face she realized that
+silence on her part was still best. Whenever the Elder cleared his
+throat and looked off out of the window, as was his wont when about to
+speak of any matter of importance, her heart leaped and her eyes gazed
+intently at her plate, to hide the emotion she could not restrain. Her
+hands grew cold and her lips tremulous, but still she waited.
+
+It was the Elder's custom to sleep after the Sunday's dinner, which
+was always a hearty one, lying down on the sofa in the large parlor,
+where the closed blinds made a pleasant somberness. Hester passed the
+door and looked in on him, as he lay apparently asleep, his long, bony
+frame stretched out and the muscles of his strong face relaxing to a
+softness they sometimes assumed when sleeping. Her heart went out to
+him. Oh, if he only knew! If she only dared! His boy ought to love
+him, and understand him. If they would only understand!
+
+Then she went up into Peter Junior's room and sat there where she
+had sat seven years before--where she had often sat since--gazing
+across at the red-coated old ancestor, her hands in her lap, her
+thoughts busy with her son's future even as then. If all the others
+had lived, would the quandary and the struggle between opposing
+wills have been as great for each one as for this sole survivor?
+Where were those little ones now? Playing in happy fields and
+waiting for her and the stern old man who also suffered, but knew not
+how to reveal his heart? Again and again the words repeated
+themselves in her heart mechanically: "Wait on the Lord--Wait on the
+Lord," and then, again, "Oh, Lord, how long?"
+
+Peter Junior returned early from the Ballards', since he could not see
+Betty, leaving the field open for Martha and her guest, much to the
+guest's satisfaction. He went straight to the room occupied by Richard
+whenever he was with them, but no Richard was there. His valise was
+all packed ready for his start on the morrow, but there was no line
+pinned to the frame of the mirror telling Peter Junior where to find
+him, as was Richard's way in the past. With a fleeting glance around
+to see if any bit of paper had been blown away, he went to his own
+room and there he found his mother, waiting. In an instant that long
+ago morning came to his mind, and as then he went swiftly to her,
+and, kneeling, clasped her in his arms.
+
+"Are you worried, mother mine? It's all right. I will be careful and
+restrained. Don't be troubled."
+
+Hester clasped her boy's head to her bosom and rested her face against
+his soft hair. For a while the silence was deep and the moments burned
+themselves into the young man's soul with a purifying fire never to be
+forgotten. Presently she began speaking to him in low, murmuring
+tones: "Your father is getting to be an old man, Peter, dear, and I--I
+am no longer young. Our boy is dear to us--the dearest. In our
+different ways we long only for what is best for you. If only it might
+be revealed to you and us alike! Many paths are good paths to walk in,
+and the way may be happy in any one of them, for happiness is of the
+spirit. It is in you--not made for you by circumstances. We have been
+so happy here, since you came home wounded, and to be wounded is not a
+happy thing, as you well know; but it seemed to bring you and me
+happiness, nevertheless. Did it not, dear?"
+
+"Indeed yes, mother. Yes. It gave me a chance to have you to myself a
+lot, and that ought to make any man happy, with a mother like you. And
+now--a new happiness came to me, the other day, that I meant to speak
+of yesterday and couldn't after getting so angry with father. It
+seemed like sacrilege to speak of it then, and, besides, there was
+another feeling that made me hesitate."
+
+"So you are in love with some one, Peter?"
+
+"Yes, mother. How did you guess it?"
+
+"Because only love is a feeling that would make you say you could not
+speak of it when your heart is full of anger. Is it Betty, dear?"
+
+"Yes, mother. You are uncanny to read me so."
+
+She laughed softly and held him closer. "I love Betty, too, Peter. You
+will always be gentle and kind? You will never be hard and stern with
+her?"
+
+"Mother! Have I ever been so? Can't you tell by the way I have always
+acted toward you that I would be tender and kind? She will be
+myself--my very own. How could I be otherwise?"
+
+Again Hester smiled her slow, wise smile. "You have always been
+tender, Peter, but you have always gone right along and done your own
+way, absolutely. The only reason there has not been more friction
+between you and your father has been that you have been tactful; also
+you have never seemed to desire unworthy things. You have been a good
+son, dear: I am not complaining. And the only reason why I have
+never--or seldom--felt hurt by your taking your own way has been that
+my likings have usually responded to yours, and the thing I most
+desired was that you should be allowed to take your own way. It is
+good for a man to be decided and to have a way of his own: I have
+liked it in you. But the matter still stands that it has always been
+your way and never any one's else that you have taken. I can see you
+being stern even with a wife you thought you wholly loved if her will
+once crossed yours."
+
+Peter Junior was silent and a little hurt. He rose and paced the room.
+"I can't think I could ever cross Betty, or be unkind. It seems
+preposterous," he said at last.
+
+"Perhaps it might never seem to you necessary. Peter, boy, listen. You
+say: 'She will be myself--my very own.' Now what does that mean? Does
+it mean that when you are married, her personality will be merged in
+yours, and so you two will be one? If so, you will not be completed
+and rounded out, and she will be lost in you. A man does not reach his
+full manhood to completion until he has loved greatly and truly, and
+has found the one who is to complete him. At best, by ourselves, we
+are never wholly man or wholly woman until this great soul completion
+has taken place in us. Then children come to us, and our very souls
+are knit in one, and still the mystery goes on and on; never are we
+completed by being lost--either one--in the will or nature of the
+other; but to make the whole and perfect creature, each must retain
+the individuality belonging to himself or herself, each to each the
+perfect and equal other half."
+
+Peter Junior paused in his walk and stood for a moment looking
+down on his mother, awed by what she revealed to him of her inner
+nature. "I believe you have done this, mother. You have kept your
+own individuality complete, and father doesn't know it."
+
+"Not yet, but my hand will always be in his, and some day he will
+know. You are very like him, and yet you understand me as he never
+has, so you see how our oneness is wrought out in you. That which you
+have in you of your father is good and strong: never lose it. The day
+may come when you will be glad to have had such a father. Out in the
+world men need such traits; but you must not forget that sometimes it
+takes more strength to yield than to hold your own way. Yes, it takes
+strength and courage sometimes to give up--and tremendous faith in
+God. There! I hear him walking about. Go down and have your talk with
+him. Remember what I say, dear, and don't get angry with your father.
+He loves you, too."
+
+"Have you said anything to him yet about--me--mother?"
+
+"No. I have decided that it will be better for you to deal with him
+yourself--courageously. You'll remember?"
+
+Peter Junior took her again in his arms as she rose and stood beside
+him, and kissed her tenderly. "Yes, mother. Dear, good, wise mother!
+I'll try to remember all. It would have been easier for you, maybe, if
+ever father's mother had said to him the things you have just said to
+me."
+
+"Life teaches us these things. If we keep an open mind, so God fills
+it."
+
+She stood still in the middle of the room, listening to his rapid
+steps in the direction of the parlor. Then Hester did a thing very
+unusual for her to do of a Sunday. She put on her shawl and bonnet and
+walked out to see Mary Ballard.
+
+No one ever knew what passed between Peter Junior and his father in
+that parlor. The Elder did not open his lips about it either at home
+or at the bank.
+
+That Sunday evening some one saw Peter Junior and his cousin walking
+together up the bluff where the old camp had stood, toward the sunset.
+The path had many windings, and the bluff was dark and brown, and the
+two figures stood out clear and strong against the sky of gold. That
+was the last seen of either of the young men in the village. The one
+who saw them told later that he knew they were "the twins" because one
+of them walked with a stick and limped a little, and that the other
+was talking as if he were very much in earnest about something, for he
+was moving his arm up and down and gesticulating.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XII
+
+MYSTERIOUS FINDINGS
+
+
+Monday morning Elder Craigmile walked to the bank with the stubborn
+straightening of the knees at each step that always betokened
+irritation with him. Neither of the young men had appeared at
+breakfast, a matter peculiarly annoying to him. Peter Junior he had
+not expected to see, as, owing to his long period of recovery, he had
+naturally been excused from rigorous rules, but his nephew surely
+might have done that much out of courtesy, where he had always been
+treated as a son, to promote the orderliness of the household. It was
+unpardonable in the young man to lie abed in the morning thus when a
+guest in that home. It was a mistake of his wife to allow Peter Junior
+a night key. It induced late hours. He would take it from him. And as
+for Richard--there was no telling what habits he had fallen into
+during these years of wandering. What if he had come home to them with
+a clear skin and laughing eye! Was not the "heart of man deceitful
+above all things and desperately wicked"? And was not Satan abroad in
+the world laying snares for the feet of wandering youths?
+
+It was still early enough for many of the workmen to be on their way
+to their day of labor with their tin dinner pails, and among them Mr.
+Walters passed him, swinging his pail with the rest, although he was
+master of his own foundry and employed fifty men. He had always gone
+early to work, and carried his tin pail when he was one of the
+workmen, and he still did it from choice. He, too, was a Scotchman of
+a slightly different class from the Elder, it is true, but he was a
+trustee of the church, and a man well respected in the community.
+
+He touched his hat to the Elder, and the Elder nodded in return, but
+neither spoke a word. Mr. Walters smiled after he was well past. "The
+man has a touch of the indigestion," he said.
+
+When the Elder entered his front door at noon, his first glance was at
+the rack in the corner of the hall, where, on the left-hand hook,
+Peter Junior's coat and hat had hung when he was at home, ever since
+he was a boy. They were not there. The Elder lifted his bushy brows
+one higher than the other, then drew them down to their usual straight
+line, and walked on into the dining room. His wife was not there, but
+in a moment she entered, looking white and perturbed.
+
+"Peter!" she said, going up to her husband instead of taking her place
+opposite him, "Peter!" She laid a trembling hand on his arm. "I
+haven't seen the boys this morning. Their beds have not been slept
+in."
+
+"Quiet yourself, lass, quiet yourself. Sit and eat in peace. 'Evil
+communications corrupt good manners,' but when doom strikes him, he'll
+maybe experience a change of heart." The Elder spoke in a tone not
+unkindly. He seated himself heavily.
+
+Then his wife silently took her place at the table and he bowed his
+head and repeated the grace to which she had listened three times a
+day for nearly thirty years, only that this time he added the request
+that the Lord would, in his "merciful kindness, strike terror to the
+hearts of all evildoers and turn them from their way."
+
+When the silent meal was ended, Hester followed her husband to the
+door and laid a detaining hand on his arm. He stood and looked down on
+that slender white hand as if it were something that too sudden a
+movement would joggle off, and she did not know that it was as if she
+had laid her hand on his very heart. "Peter, tell me what happened
+yesterday afternoon. You should tell me, Peter."
+
+Then the Elder did an unwonted thing. He placed his hand over hers and
+pressed it harder on his arm, and after an instant's pause he stooped
+and kissed her on the forehead.
+
+"I spoke the lad fair, Hester, and made him an offer, but he would
+none of it. He thinks he is his own master, but I have put him in the
+Lord's hands."
+
+"Has he gone, Peter?"
+
+"Maybe, but the offer I made him was a good one. Comfort your heart,
+lass. If he's gone, he will return. When the Devil holds the whip, he
+makes a hard bargain, and drives fast. When the boy is hard pressed,
+he will be glad to return to his father's house."
+
+"Richard's valise is gone. The maid says he came late yesterday after
+I was gone, and took it away with him."
+
+"They are likely gone together."
+
+"But Peter's things are all here. No, they would never go like that
+and not bid me good-by."
+
+The Elder threw out his hands with his characteristic downward gesture
+of impatience. "I have no way of knowing, more than you. It is no
+doubt that Richard has become a ne'er-do-weel. He felt shame to tell
+us he was going a journey on the Sabbath day."
+
+"Oh, Peter, I think not. Peter, be just. You know your son was never
+one to let the Devil drive; he is like yourself, Peter. And as for
+Richard, Peter Junior would never think so much of him if he were a
+ne'er-do-weel."
+
+"Women are foolish and fond. It is their nature, and perhaps that is
+how we love them most, but the men should rule, for their own good. A
+man should be master in his own house. When the lad returns, the door
+is open to him. That is enough."
+
+With a sorrowful heart he left her, and truth to tell, the sorrow was
+more for his wife's hurt than for his own. The one great tenderness of
+his life was his feeling for her, and this she felt rather than knew;
+but he believed himself absolutely right and that the hurt was
+inevitable, and for her was intensified by her weakness and fondness.
+
+As for Hester, she turned away from the door and went quietly about
+her well-ordered house, directing the maidservant and looking
+carefully over her husband's wardrobe. Then she did the same for Peter
+Junior's, and at last, taking her basket of mending, she sat in the
+large, lace-curtained window looking out toward the west--the
+direction from which Peter Junior would be likely to come. For how
+long she would sit there during the days to come--waiting--she little
+knew.
+
+She was comforted by the thought of the talk she had had with him the
+day before. She knew he was upright, and she felt that this
+quarrel--if it had been a quarrel--with his father would surely be
+healed; and then, there was Betty to call him back. The love of a girl
+was a good thing for a man. It would be stronger to draw him and hold
+him than love of home or of mother; it was the divine way for
+humanity, and it was a good way, and she must be patient and wait.
+
+She was glad she had gone without delay to Mary Ballard. The two women
+were fond of each other, and the visit had been most satisfactory.
+Betty she had not seen, for the maiden was still sleeping the long,
+heavy sleep which saves a normal healthy body from wreck after severe
+emotion. Betty was so young--it might be best that matters should wait
+awhile as they were.
+
+If Peter Junior went to Paris now, he would have to earn his own way,
+of course, and possibly he had gone west with Richard where he could
+earn faster than at home. Maybe that had been the grounds of the
+quarrel. Surely she would hear from him soon. Perhaps he had taken
+their talk on Sunday afternoon as a good-by to her; or he might yet
+come to her and tell her his plans. So she comforted herself in the
+most wholesome and natural way.
+
+Richard's action in taking his valise away during her absence and
+leaving no word of farewell for her was more of a surprise to her. But
+then--he might have resented the Elder's attitude and sided with his
+cousin. Or, he might have feared he would say things he would
+afterwards regret, if he appeared, and so have taken himself quietly
+away. Still, these reasons did not wholly appeal to her, and she was
+filled with misgivings for him even more than for her son.
+
+Peter Junior she trusted absolutely and Richard she loved as a son;
+but there was much of his father in him, and the Irish nature was
+erratic and wild, as the Elder said. Where was that father now? No
+one knew. It was one of the causes for anxiety she had for the boy
+that his father had been lost to them all ever since Richard's birth
+and his wife's death. He had gone out of their lives as completely as
+a candle in a gale of wind. She had mothered the boy, and the Elder
+had always been kind to him for his own dead sister's sake, but of the
+father they never spoke.
+
+It was while Hester Craigmile sat in her western window, thinking her
+thoughts, that two lads came hurrying down the bluff from the old camp
+ground, breathless and awed. One carried a straw hat, and the other a
+stout stick--a stick with an irregular knob at the end. It was Larry
+Kildene's old blackthorn that Peter Junior had been carrying. The
+Ballards' home was on the way between the bluff and the village, and
+Mary Ballard was standing at their gate watching for the children from
+school. She wished Jamie to go on an errand for her.
+
+Mary noticed the agitation of the boys. They were John Walters and
+Charlie Dean--two chums who were always first to be around when there
+was anything unusual going on, or to be found. It was they who
+discovered the fire in the foundry in time to have it put out. It was
+they who knew where the tramps were hiding who had been stealing from
+the village stores, and now Mary wondered what they had discovered.
+She left the gate swinging open and walked down to meet them.
+
+"What is it, boys?"
+
+"We--we--found these--and--there's something happened," panted the
+boys, both speaking at once.
+
+She took the hat of white straw from John's hand. "Why! This is Peter
+Junior's hat! Where did you find it?" She turned it about and saw
+dark red stains, as if it had been grasped by a bloody hand--finger
+marks of blood plainly imprinted on the rim.
+
+"And this, Mrs. Ballard," said Charlie, putting Peter Junior's stick
+in her hand, and pointing to the same red stains sunken into the knob.
+"We think there's been a fight and some one's been hit with this."
+
+She took it and looked at it in a dazed way. "Yes. He was carrying
+this in the place of his crutch," she said, as if to herself.
+
+"We think somebody's been pushed over the bluff into the river, Mrs.
+Ballard, for they's a hunk been tore out as big as a man, from the
+edge, and it's gone clean over, and down into the river. We can see
+where it is gone. And it's an awful swift place."
+
+She handed the articles back to the boys.
+
+"Sit down in the shade here, and I'll bring you some sweet apples, and
+if any one comes by, don't say anything about it until I have time to
+consult with Mr. Ballard."
+
+She hurried back and passed quickly around the house, and on to her
+husband, who was repairing the garden fence.
+
+"Bertrand, come with me quickly. Something serious has happened. I
+don't want Betty to hear of it until we know what it is."
+
+They hastened to the waiting boys, and together they slowly climbed
+the long path leading to the old camping place. Bertrand carried the
+stick and the hat carefully, for they were matters of great moment.
+
+"This looks grave," he said, when the boys had told him their story.
+
+"Perhaps we ought to have brought some one with us--if anything--"
+said Mary.
+
+"No, no; better wait and see, before making a stir."
+
+It was a good half hour's walk up the hill, and every moment of the
+time seemed heavily freighted with foreboding. They said no more until
+they reached the spot where the boys had found the edge of the bluff
+torn away. There, for a space of about two feet only, back from the
+brink, the sparse grass was trampled, and the earth showed marks of
+heels and in places the sod was freshly torn up.
+
+"There's been something happened here, you see," said Charlie Dean.
+
+"Here is where a foot has been braced to keep from being pushed over;
+see, Mary? And here again."
+
+"I see indeed." Mary looked, and stooping, picked something from the
+ground that glinted through the loosened earth. She held it on her
+open palm toward Bertrand, and the two boys looked intently at it. Her
+husband did not touch it, but glanced quickly into her eyes and then
+at the boys. Then her fingers closed over it, and taking her
+handkerchief she tied it in one corner securely.
+
+"Did you ever see anything like it, boys?" she asked.
+
+"No, ma'am. It's a watch charm, isn't it? Or what?"
+
+"I suppose it must be."
+
+"I guess the fellah that was being pushed over must 'a' grabbed for
+the other fellah's watch. Maybe he was trying to rob him."
+
+"Let's see whether we can find anything else," said John Walters,
+peering over the bluff.
+
+"Don't, John, don't. You may fall over. It might have been a fall, and
+one of them might have been trying to save the other, you know. He
+might have caught at him and pulled this off. There's no reason why we
+should surmise the worst."
+
+"They might ha' been playing--you know--wrestling--and it might 'a'
+happened so," said Charlie.
+
+"Naw! They'd been big fools to wrestle so near the edge of the bluff
+as this," said the practical John. "I see something white way down
+there, Mrs. Ballard. I can get it, I guess."
+
+"But take care, John. Go further round by the path."
+
+Both boys ran along the bluff until they came to a path that led down
+to the river. "Do be careful, boys!" called Mary.
+
+"Now, let me see that again, my dear," and Mary untied the handkerchief.
+"Yes, it is what I thought. That belonged to Larry Kildene. He got it
+in India, although he said it was Chinese. He was a year in the
+British service in India. I've often examined it. I should have known
+it anywhere. He must have left it with Hester for the boy."
+
+"Poor Larry! And it has come to this. I remember it on Richard's chain
+when he came out there to meet us in the grove. Bertrand, what shall
+we do? They must have been here--and have quarreled--and what has
+happened! I'm going back to ask Betty."
+
+"Ask Betty! My dear! What can Betty know about it?"
+
+"Something upset her terribly yesterday morning. She was ill and with
+no cause that I could see, and I believe she had had a nervous
+shock."
+
+"But she seemed all right this morning,--a little pale, but otherwise
+quite herself." Bertrand turned the little charm over in his hand.
+"He thought it was Chinese because it is jade, but this carving is
+Egyptian. I don't think it is jade, and I don't think it is Chinese."
+
+"But whatever it is, it was on Richard's chain Saturday," said Mary,
+sadly. "And now, what can we do? On second thought I'll say nothing to
+Betty. If a tragedy has come upon the Craigmiles, it will also fall on
+her now, and we must spare her all of it we can, until we know."
+
+A call came to them from below, and Bertrand hastily handed the charm
+back to his wife, and she tied it again in her handkerchief.
+
+"Oh, Bertrand, don't go near that terrible brink. It might give way.
+I'm sure this has been an accident."
+
+"But the stick, Mary, and the marks of blood on Peter Junior's hat.
+I'm afraid--afraid."
+
+"But they were always fond of each other. They have been like
+brothers."
+
+"And quarrels between brothers are often the bitterest."
+
+"But we have never heard of their quarreling, and they were so glad to
+see each other Saturday. And you know Peter Junior was always
+possessed to do whatever Richard planned. They were that way about
+enlisting, you remember, and everything else. What cause could Richard
+have against Peter Junior?"
+
+"We can't say it was Richard against Peter. You see the stick was
+bloody, and it was Peter's. We must offer no opinion, no matter what
+we think, for the world may turn against the wrong one, and only time
+will tell."
+
+They both were silent as the boys came panting up the bank. "Here's a
+handkerchief. It was what I saw. It was caught on a thorn bush, and
+here--here's Peter Junior's little notebook, with his name--"
+
+"This is Peter's handkerchief. P. C. J. Hester Craigmile embroidered
+those letters." Mary's eyes filled with tears. "Bertrand, we must go
+to her. She may hear in some terrible way."
+
+"And the book, where was that, John?"
+
+"It was lying on that flat rock. John had to crawl along the ledge on
+his belly to get it; and here, I found this lead pencil," cried
+Charlie, excited and important.
+
+"'Faber No. 2.' Yes, this was also Peter's." Bertrand shut it in the
+notebook. "Mary, this looks sinister. We'd better go down. There's
+nothing more to learn here."
+
+"Maybe we'll find the young men both safely at home."
+
+"Richard was to leave early this morning."
+
+"I remember."
+
+Sadly they returned, and the two boys walked with them, gravely and
+earnestly propounding one explanation after another.
+
+"You'd better go back to the house, Mary, and I'll go on to the
+village with the boys. We'll consult with your father, John; he's a
+thoughtful man, and--"
+
+"And he's a coroner, too--" said John.
+
+"Yes, but if there's nobody found, who's he goin' to sit on?"
+
+"They don't sit on the body, they sit on the jury," said John, with
+contempt.
+
+"Don't I know that? But they've got to find the body, haven't they,
+before they can sit on anything? Guess I know that much."
+
+"Now, boys," said Bertrand, "this may turn out to be a very grave
+matter, and you must keep silent about it. It won't do to get the town
+all stirred up about it and all manner of rumors afloat. It must be
+looked into quietly first, by responsible people, and you must keep
+all your opinions and surmises to yourselves until the truth can be
+learned."
+
+"Don't walk, Bertrand; take the carryall, and these can be put under
+the seat. Boys, if you'll go back there in the garden, you'll find
+some more apples, and I'll fetch you out some cookies to go with
+them." The boys briskly departed. "I don't want Betty to see them, and
+we'll be silent until we know what to tell her," Mary added, as they
+walked slowly up the front path.
+
+Bertrand turned off to the stable, carrying the sad trophies with him,
+and Mary entered the house. She looked first for Betty, but no Betty
+was to be found, and the children were at home clamoring for something
+to eat. They always came home from school ravenously hungry. Mary
+hastily packed them a basket of fruit and cookies and sent them to
+play picnic down by the brook. Still no Betty appeared.
+
+"Where is she?" asked Bertrand, as he entered the kitchen after
+bringing up the carryall.
+
+"I don't know. She may have gone over to Clara Dean's. She spoke of
+going there to-day. I'm glad--rather."
+
+"Yes, yes."
+
+A little later in the day, almost closing time at the bank, James
+Walters and Bertrand Ballard entered and asked to see the Elder. They
+were shown into the director's room, and found him seated alone at the
+great table in the center. He pushed his papers one side and rose,
+greeting them with his grave courtesy, as usual.
+
+Mr. Walters, a shy man of few words, looked silently at Mr. Ballard
+to speak, while the Elder urged them to be seated. "A warm day for the
+season, and very pleasant to have it so. We'll hope the winter may
+come late this year."
+
+"Yes, yes. We wish to inquire after your son, Elder Craigmile. Is he
+at home to-day?"
+
+"Ah, yes. He was not at home--not when I left this noon." The Elder
+cleared his throat and looked keenly at his friend. "Is it--ahem--a
+matter of business, Mr. Ballard?"
+
+"Unfortunately, no. We have come to inquire if he--when he was last at
+home--or if his cousin--has been with you?"
+
+"Not Richard, no. He came unexpectedly and has gone with as little
+ceremony, but my son was here on the Sabbath--ahem--He dined that day
+with you, Mr. Ballard?"
+
+"He did--but--Elder, will you come with us? A matter with regard to
+him and his cousin should be looked into."
+
+"It is not necessary for me to interfere in matters regarding my son
+any longer. He has taken the ordering of his life in his own hands
+hereafter. As for Richard, he has long been his own master."
+
+"Elder, I beg you to come with us. We fear foul play of some sort. It
+is not a question now of family differences of opinion."
+
+The Elder's face remained immovable, and Bertrand reluctantly added,
+"We fear either your son or his cousin, possibly both of them, have
+met with disaster--maybe murder."
+
+A pallor crept over the Elder's face, and without a word further he
+took his hat from a hook in the corner of the room, paused, and then
+carefully arranged the papers he had pushed aside at their entrance
+and placing them in his desk, turned the key, still without a word. At
+the door he waited a moment with his hand on the knob, and with the
+characteristic lift of his brows, asked: "Has anything been said to my
+wife?"
+
+"No, no. We thought best to do nothing until under your direction."
+
+"Thank you. That's well. Whatever comes, I would spare her all I
+can."
+
+The three then drove slowly back to the top of the bluff, and on the
+way Bertrand explained to the Elder all that had transpired. "It
+seemed best to Mary and me that you should look the ground over
+yourself, before any action be taken. We hoped appearances might be
+deceptive, and that you would have information that would set our
+fears at rest before news of a mystery should reach the town."
+
+"Where are the boys who found these things?"
+
+Mr. Walters spoke, "My son was one of them, and he is now at home.
+They are forbidden to speak to any one until we know more about it."
+
+Arrived at the top of the bluff the three men went carefully over the
+ground, even descending the steep path to the margin of the river.
+
+"There," said Bertrand, "the notebook was picked up on that flat rock
+which juts out from that narrow ledge. John Walters crawled along the
+ledge to get it. The handkerchief was caught on that thorn shrub,
+halfway up, see? And the pencil was picked up down here, somewhere."
+
+The Elder looked up to the top of the bluff and down at the rushing
+river beneath, and as he looked he seemed visibly to shrink and become
+in the instant an old man--older by twenty years. As they climbed back
+again, his shoulders drooped and his breath came hard. As they neared
+the top, Bertrand turned and gave him his aid to gain a firm footing
+above.
+
+"Don't forget that we can't always trust to appearances," he urged.
+
+"Some heavy body--heavier than a clod of earth, has gone down there,"
+said the Elder, and his voice sounded weak and thin.
+
+"Yes, yes. But even so, a stone may have been dislodged. You can't be
+sure."
+
+"Ay, the lads might have been wrestling in play--or the like--and sent
+a rock over; it's like lads, that," hazarded Mr. Walters.
+
+"Wrestling on the Sabbath evening! They are men, not lads."
+
+Mr. Walters looked down in embarrassment, and the old man continued.
+"Would a stone leave a handkerchief clinging to a thorn? Would it
+leave a notebook thrown down on yonder rock?" The Elder lifted his
+head and looked to the sky: holding one hand above his head he shook
+it toward heaven. "Would a stone leave a hat marked with a bloody
+hand--my son's hat? There has been foul play here. May the curse of
+God fall on him who has robbed me of my son, be he stranger or my own
+kin."
+
+His voice broke and he reeled backward and would have fallen over the
+brink but for Bertrand's quickness. Then, trembling and bowed, his two
+friends led him back to the carryall and no further word was spoken
+until they reached the village, when the Elder said:--
+
+"Will you kindly drive me to the bank, Mr. Ballard?"
+
+They did so. No one was there, and the Elder quietly unlocked the door
+and carried the articles found on the bluff into the room beyond and
+locked them away. Bertrand followed him, loath to leave him thus, and
+anxious to make a suggestion. The Elder opened the door of a cupboard
+recessed into the wall and laid the hat on a high shelf. Then he took
+the stick and looked at it with a sudden awakening in his eyes as if
+he saw it for the first time.
+
+"This stick--this blackthorn stick--accursed! How came it here? I
+thought it had been burned. It was left years ago in my front hall
+by--Richard's father. I condemned it to be burned."
+
+"Peter Junior was using that in place of his crutch, no doubt because
+of its strength. He had it at my house, and I recognize it now as one
+Larry brought over with him--"
+
+"Peter was using it! My God! My God! The blow was struck with this. It
+is my son who is the murderer, and I have called down the curse of God
+on him? It falls--it falls on me!" He sank in his chair--the same in
+which he had sat when he talked with Peter Junior--and bowed his head
+in his arms. "It is enough, Mr. Ballard. Will you leave me?"
+
+"I can't leave you, sir: there is more to be said. We must not be
+hasty in forming conclusions. If any one was thrown over the bluff, it
+must have been your son, for he was lame and could not have saved
+himself. If he struck any one, he could not have killed him; for
+evidently he got away, unless he also went over the brink. If he got
+away, he must be found. There is something for you to do, Elder
+Craigmile."
+
+The old man lifted his head and looked in Bertrand's face, pitifully
+seeking there for help. "You are a good man, Mr. Ballard. I need your
+counsel and help."
+
+"First, we will go below the rapids and search; the sooner the better,
+for in the strong current there is no telling how far--"
+
+"Yes, we will search." The Elder lifted himself to his full height,
+inspired by the thought of action. "We'll go now." He looked down on
+his shorter friend, and Bertrand looked up to him, his genial face
+saddened with sympathy, yet glowing with kindliness.
+
+"Wait a little, Elder; let us consider further. Mr. Walters--sit down,
+Elder Craigmile, for a moment--Mr. Walters is capable, and he can
+organize the search; for if you keep this from your wife, you must be
+discreet. Here is something I haven't shown you before. It is the
+charm from Richard's watch. It was almost covered with earth where
+they had been struggling, and Mary found it. You see there is a
+mystery--and let us hope whatever happened was an accident. The
+evidences are so--so--mingled, that no one may know whom to blame."
+
+The Elder looked down on the charm without touching it, as it lay on
+Bertrand's palm. "That belonged--" his lips twitched--"that belonged
+to the man who took from me my twin sister. The shadow--forever the
+shadow of Larry Kildene hangs over me." He was silent for some
+moments, then he said: "Mr. Ballard, if, after the search, my son is
+found to be murdered, I will put a detective on the trail of the man
+who did the deed, and be he whom he may, he shall hang."
+
+"Hush, Elder Craigmile; in Wisconsin men are not hanged."
+
+"I tell you--be he whom he may--he shall suffer what is worse than to
+be hanged, he shall enter the living grave of a life imprisonment."
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XIII
+
+CONFESSION
+
+
+By Monday evening there were only two people in all the small town of
+Leauvite who had not heard of the tragedy, and these were Hester
+Craigmile and Betty Ballard. Mary doubted if it was wise to keep
+Hester thus in ignorance, but it was the Elder's wish, and at his
+request she went to spend the evening and if necessary the night with
+his wife, to fend off any officious neighbor, while he personally
+directed the search.
+
+It was the Elder's firm belief that his son had been murdered, yet he
+thought if no traces should be found of Peter Junior, he might be able
+to spare Hester the agony of that belief. He preferred her to think
+her son had gone off in anger and would sometime return. He felt
+himself justified in this concealment, fearing that if she knew the
+truth, she might grieve herself into her grave, and his request to
+Mary to help him had been made so pitifully and humbly that her heart
+melted at the sight of the old man's sorrow, and she went to spend
+those weary hours with his wife.
+
+As the Elder sometimes had meetings of importance to take him away of
+an evening, Hester did not feel surprise at his absence, and she
+accepted Mary's visit as one of sweet friendliness and courtesy
+because of Peter's engagement to Betty. Nor did she wonder that the
+visit was made without Bertrand, as Mary said he and the Elder had
+business together, and she thought she would spend the time with her
+friend until their return.
+
+That was all quite as it should be and very pleasant, and Hester
+filled the moments with cheerful chat, showing Mary certain pieces of
+cloth from which she proposed to make dainty garments for Betty, to
+help Mary with the girl's wedding outfit. To Mary it all seemed like a
+dream as she locked the sad secret in her heart and listened. Her
+friend's sorrow over Peter Junior's disagreement with his father and
+his sudden departure from the home was tempered by the glad hope that
+after all the years of anxiety, she was some time to have a daughter
+to love, and that her boy and his wife would live near them, and her
+home might again know the sound of happy children's voices. The sweet
+thoughts brought her gladness and peace of mind, and Mary's visit made
+the dream more sure of ultimate fulfillment.
+
+Mary felt the Elder's wish lie upon her with the imperative force of a
+law, and she did not dare disregard his request that on no account was
+Hester to be told the truth. So she gathered all her fortitude and
+courage to carry her through this ordeal. She examined the fine linen
+that had been brought to Hester years ago from Scotland by Richard's
+mother, and while she praised it she listened for steps without; the
+heavy tread of men bringing a sorrowful and terrible burden. But the
+minutes wore on, and no such sounds came, and the hour grew late.
+
+"They may have gone out of town. Bertrand said something about it, and
+told me to stay until he called for me, if I stayed all night." Mary
+tried to laugh over it, and Hester seized the thought gayly.
+
+"We'll go to bed, anyway, and your husband may just go home without
+you when he comes."
+
+And after a little longer wait they went to bed, and Hester slept, but
+Mary lay wakeful and fearing, until in the early morning, while it was
+yet dark, she heard the Elder slowly climb the stairs and go to his
+room. Then she also slept, hoping against hope, that they had found
+nothing.
+
+Betty's pride and shame had caused her to keep her trouble to herself.
+She knew Richard had gone forever, and she dreaded Peter Junior's next
+visit. What should she do! Oh, what should she do! Should she tell
+Peter she did not love him, and that all had been a mistake? She must
+humble herself before him, and what excuse had she to make for all the
+hours she had given him, and the caresses she had accepted? Ah! If
+only she could make the last week as if it had never been! She was
+shamed before her mother, who had seen him kiss her. She was ashamed
+even in her own room in the darkness to think of all Peter Junior had
+said to her, and the love he had lavished on her. Ought she to break
+her word to him and beg him to forget? Ah! Neither he nor she could
+ever forget.
+
+Her brothers had been forbidden to tell her a word of the reports that
+were already abroad in the town, and now they were both in bed and
+asleep, and little Janey was cuddled in Betty's bed, also in
+dreamland. At last, when neither her father nor her mother returned
+and she could bear her own thoughts no longer, she brought drawing
+materials down from the studio and spread them out on the dining room
+table.
+
+She had decided she would never marry any one--never. How could she!
+But she would study in earnest and be an illustrator. If women could
+never become great artists, as Peter Junior said, at least they might
+illustrate books; and sometime--maybe--when her heart was not so sad,
+she might write books, and she could illustrate them herself. Ah, that
+would almost make up for what she must go without all her life.
+
+For a while she worked painstakingly, but all the time it seemed as
+though she could hear Richard's voice, and the words he had said to
+her Sunday morning kept repeating themselves over and over in her
+mind. Then the tears fell one by one and blurred her work, until at
+last she put her head down on her arms and wept. Then the door opened
+very softly and Richard entered. Swiftly he came to her and knelt at
+her side. He put his head on her knee, and his whole body shook with
+tearless sobs he could not restrain. He was faint and weak. She could
+not know the whole cause of his grief, and thought he suffered because
+of her. She must comfort him--but alas! What could she say? How could
+she comfort him?
+
+She put her trembling hand on his head and found the hair matted and
+stiff. Then she saw a wound above his temple, and knew he was hurt,
+and cried out: "You are hurt--you are hurt! Oh, Richard! Let me do
+something for you."
+
+He clasped her in his arms, but still did not look up at her, and
+Betty forgot all her shame, and her lessons in propriety. She lifted
+his head to her bosom and laid her cheek upon his and said all the
+comforting things that came into her heart. She begged him to let her
+wash his wound and to tell her how he came by it. She forgot
+everything, except that she loved him and told him over and over the
+sweet confession.
+
+At last he found strength to speak to her brokenly. "Never love me any
+more, Betty. I've committed a terrible crime--Oh, my God! And you will
+hear of it Give me a little milk. I've eaten nothing since yesterday
+morning, when I saw you. Then I'll try to tell you what you must
+know--what all the world will tell you soon."
+
+He rose and staggered to a chair and she brought him milk and bread
+and meat, but she would not let him talk to her until he had allowed
+her to wash the wound on his head and bind it up. As she worked the
+touch of her hands seemed to bring him sane thoughts in spite of the
+horror of himself that possessed him, and he was enabled to speak more
+coherently.
+
+"If I had not been crazed when I looked through the window and saw you
+crying, Betty, I would never have let you see me or touch me again.
+It's only adding one crime to another to come near you. I meant just
+to look in and see if I could catch one glimpse of you, and then was
+going to lose myself to all the world, or else give myself up to be
+hung." Then he was silent, and she began to question him.
+
+"Don't! Richard. Hung? What have you done? What do you mean? When was
+it?"
+
+"Sunday night."
+
+"But you had to start for Cheyenne early this morning. Where have you
+been all day? I thought you were gone forever, dear."
+
+"I hid myself down by the river. I lay there all day, and heard them
+talking, but I couldn't see them nor they me. It was a hiding place we
+knew of when our camp was there--Peter Junior and I. He's gone. I did
+it--I did it with murder in my heart--Oh, my God!"
+
+"Don't, Richard. You must tell me nothing except as I ask you. It is
+not as if we did not love each other. What you have done I must help
+you bear--as--as wives help their husbands--for I will never marry;
+but all my life my heart will be married to yours." He reached for her
+hands and covered them with kisses and moaned. "No, Richard, don't.
+Eat the bread and meat I have brought you. You've eaten nothing for
+two days, and everything may seem worse to you than it is."
+
+"No, no!"
+
+"Richard, I'll go away from you and leave you here alone if you don't
+eat."
+
+"Yes, I must eat--not only now--but all the rest of my life, I must
+eat to live and repent. He was my dearest friend. I taunted him and
+said bitter things. I goaded him. I was insane with rage and at last
+so was he. He struck me--and--and I--I was trying to push him over the
+bluff--"
+
+Slowly it dawned on Betty what Richard's talk really meant.
+
+"Not Peter? Oh, Richard--not Peter!" She shrank from him, wide-eyed in
+terror.
+
+"He would have killed me--for I know what was in his heart as well as
+I knew what was in my own--and we were both seeing red. I've felt it
+sometimes in battle, and the feeling makes a man drunken. A man will
+do anything then. We'd been always friends--and yet we were drunken
+with hate; and now--he--he is better off than I. I must live. Unless
+for the disgrace to my relatives, I would give myself up to be
+hanged. It would be better to take the punishment than to live in such
+torture as this."
+
+The tears coursed fast down Betty's cheeks. Slowly she drew nearer
+him, and bent down to him as he sat, until she could look into his
+eyes. "What were you quarreling about, Richard?"
+
+"Don't ask me, darling Betty."
+
+"What was it, Richard?"
+
+"All my life you will be the sweet help to me--the help that may keep
+me from death in life. To carry in my soul the remembrance of last
+night will need all the help God will let me have. If I had gone away
+quietly, you and Peter Junior would have been married and have been
+happy--but--"
+
+"No, no. Oh, Richard, no. I knew in a moment when you came--"
+
+"Yes, Betty, dear, Peter Junior was good and faithful; and he might
+have been able to undo all the harm I had done. He could have taught
+you to love him. I have done the devil's work--and then I killed
+him--Oh, my God! My God!"
+
+"How do you know you pushed him over? He may have fallen over. You
+don't know it. He may have--"
+
+"Hush, dearest. I did it. When I came to myself, it was in the night;
+and it must have been late, for the moon was set. I could only see
+faintly that something white lay near me. I felt of it, and it was
+Peter Junior's hat. Then I felt all about for him--and he was gone and
+I crawled to the edge of the bluff--but although I knew he was gone
+over there and washed by the terrible current far down the river by
+that time, I couldn't follow him, whether from cowardice or weakness.
+I tried to get on my feet and could not. Then I must have fainted
+again, for all the world faded away, and I thought maybe the blow had
+done for me and I might not have to leap over there, after all. I
+could feel myself slipping away.
+
+"When I awoke, the sun was shining and a bird was singing just as if
+nothing had happened, and I thought I had been dreaming an awful
+dream--but there was the wound on my head and I was alive. Then I went
+farther down the river and came back to the hiding place and crept in
+there to wait and think. Then, after a long while, the boys came, and
+I was terrified for fear they were searching for me. That is the
+shameful truth, Betty. I feared. I never knew what fear was before.
+Betty, fear is shameful. There I have been all day--waiting--for what,
+I do not know; but it seemed that if I could only have one little
+glimpse of you I could go bravely and give myself up. I will now--"
+
+"No, Richard; it would do no good for you to die such a death. It
+would undo nothing, and change nothing. Peter was angry, too, and he
+struck you, and if he could have his way he would not want you to die.
+I say maybe he is living now. He may not have gone over."
+
+"It's no use, Betty. He went down. I pushed him into that terrible
+river. I did it. I--I--I!" Richard only moaned the words in a whisper
+of despair, and the horror of it all began to deepen and crush down
+upon Betty. She retreated, step by step, until she backed against the
+door leading to her chamber, and there she stood gazing at him with
+her hand pressed over her lips to keep herself from crying out. Then
+she saw him rise and turn toward the door without looking at her
+again, his head bowed in grief, and the sight roused her. As the door
+closed between them she ran and threw it open and followed him out
+into the darkness.
+
+"I can't, Richard. I can't let you go like this!" She clung to him,
+sobbing her heart out on his bosom, and he clasped her and held her
+warm little body close.
+
+"I'm like a drowning man pulling you under with me. Your tears drown
+me. I would not have entered the house if I had not seen you crying.
+Never cry again for me, Betty, never."
+
+"I will cry. I tell you I will cry. I will. I don't believe you are a
+murderer."
+
+"You must believe it. I am."
+
+"I loved Peter Junior and you loved him. You did not mean to do it."
+
+"I did it."
+
+"If you did it, it is as if I did it, too. We both killed him--and I
+am a murderer, too. It was because of me you did it, and if you give
+yourself up to be hung, I will give myself up. Poor Peter--Oh,
+Richard--I don't believe he fell over." For a long moment she sobbed
+thus. "Where are you going, Richard?" she asked, lifting her head.
+
+"I don't know, Betty. I may be taken and can go nowhere."
+
+"Yes, you must go--quick--quick--now. Some one may come and find you
+here."
+
+"No one will find me. Cain was a wanderer over the face of the
+earth."
+
+"Will you let me know where you are, after you are gone?"
+
+"No, Betty. You must never think of me, nor let me darken your life."
+
+"Then must I live all the rest of the years without even knowing where
+you are?"
+
+"Yes, love. Put me out of your life from now on, and it will be enough
+for me that you loved me once."
+
+"I will help you atone, Richard. I will try to be brave--and help
+Peter's mother to bear it. I will love her for Peter and for you."
+
+"God's blessing on you forever, Betty." He was gone, striding away in
+the darkness, and Betty, with trembling steps, entered the house.
+
+Carefully she removed every sign of his having been there. The bowl of
+water, and the cloth from which she had torn strips to bind his head
+she carried away, and the glass from which he had taken his milk, she
+washed, and even the crumbs of bread which had fallen to the floor she
+picked up one by one, so that not a trace remained. Then she took her
+drawing materials back to the studio, and after kneeling long at her
+bedside, and only saying: "God, help Richard, help him," over and
+over, she crept in beside her little sister, and still weeping and
+praying chokingly clasped the sleeping child in her arms.
+
+From that time, it seemed to Bertrand and Mary that a strange and
+subtle change had taken place in their beloved little daughter; for
+which they tried to account as the result of the mysterious
+disappearance of Peter Junior. He was not found, and Richard also was
+gone, and the matter after being for a long time the wonder of the
+village, became a thing of the past. Only the Elder cherished the
+thought that his son had been murdered, and quietly set a detective
+at work to find the guilty man--whom he would bring back to
+vengeance.
+
+Her parents were forced to acquaint Betty with the suspicious nature
+of Peter's disappearance, knowing she might hear of it soon and be
+more shocked than if told by themselves. Mary wondered not a little at
+her dry-eyed and silent reception of it, but that was a part of the
+change in Betty.
+
+
+
+
+BOOK TWO
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XIV
+
+OUT OF THE DESERT
+
+
+"Good horse. Good horse. Good boy. Goldbug--go it! I know you're
+dying, but so am I. Keep it up a little while longer--Good boy."
+
+The young man encouraged his horse, while half asleep from utter
+weariness and faint with hunger and thirst. The poor beast scrambled
+over the rocks up a steep trail that seemed to have been long unused,
+or indeed it might be no trail at all, but only a channel worn by
+fierce, narrow torrents during the rainy season, now sun-baked and
+dry.
+
+The fall rains were late this year, and the yellow plains below
+furnished neither food nor drink for either man or beast. The herds of
+buffalo had long since wandered to fresher spaces nearer the river
+beds. The young man's flask was empty, and it was twenty-seven hours
+since either he or his horse had tasted anything. Now they had reached
+the mountains he hoped to find water and game if he could only hold
+out a little longer. Up and still up the lean horse scrambled with
+nose to earth and quivering flanks, and the young man, leaning forward
+and clinging to his seat as he reeled like one drunken, still murmured
+words of encouragement. "Good boy--Goldbug, go it. Good horse, keep it
+up."
+
+All at once the way opened out on a jutting crest and made a sharp
+turn to the right, and the horse paused on the verge so suddenly that
+his rider lost his hold and fell headlong over into a scrub oak that
+caught him and held him suspended in its tough and twisted branches
+above a chasm so deep that the buzzards sailed on widespread wings
+round and round in the blue air beneath him.
+
+He lay there still and white as death, mercifully unconscious,
+while an eagle with a wild scream circled about and perched on a
+lightning-blasted tree far above and looked down on him.
+
+For a moment the yellow horse swayed weakly on the brink, then feeling
+himself relieved of his burden, he stiffened himself to a last great
+effort and held on along the path which turned abruptly away from the
+edge of the cliff and broadened out among low bushes and stunted
+trees. Here again the horse paused and stretched his neck and bit off
+the tips of the dry twigs near him, then turned his head and whinnied
+to call his master, and pricked his ears to listen; but he only heard
+the scream of the eagle overhead, and again he walked on, guided by an
+instinct as mysterious and unerring as the call of conscience to a
+human soul.
+
+Good old beast! He had not much farther to go. Soon there was a sound
+of water in the air--a continuous roar, muffled and deep. The path
+wound upward, then descended gradually until it led him to an open,
+grassy space, bordered by green trees. Again he turned his head and
+gave his intelligent call. Why did not his master respond? Why did he
+linger behind when here was grass and water--surely water, for the
+smell of it was fresh and sweet. But it was well he called, for his
+friendly nicker fell on human ears.
+
+A man of stalwart frame, well built and spare, hairy and grizzled, but
+ruddy with health, sat in a cabin hidden among the trees not forty
+paces away, and prepared his meal of roasting quail suspended over the
+fire in his chimney and potatoes baking in the ashes.
+
+He lifted his head with a jerk, and swung the quail away from the
+heat, leaving it still suspended, and taking his rifle from its pegs
+stood for a moment in his door listening. For months he had not heard
+the sound of a human voice, nor the nicker of any horse other than his
+own. He called a word of greeting, "Hello, stranger!" but receiving no
+response he ventured farther from his door.
+
+Goldbug was eagerly grazing--too eagerly for his own good. The man
+recognized the signs of starvation and led him to a tree, where he
+brought him a little water in his own great tin dipper. Then he
+relieved him of saddle and bridle and left him tied while he hastily
+stowed a few hard-tack and a flask of whisky in his pocket, and taking
+a lasso over his arm, started up the trail on his own horse.
+
+"Some poor guy has lost his way and gone over the cliff," he
+muttered.
+
+The young man still lay as he had fallen, but now his eyes were open
+and staring at the sky. Had he not been too weak to move he would have
+gone down; as it was, he waited, not knowing if he were dead or in a
+dream, seeing only the blue above him, and hearing only the scream of
+the eagle.
+
+"Lie still. Don't ye move. Don't ye stir a hair. I'll get ye. Still
+now--still."
+
+The big man's voice came to him as out of a great chasm, scarcely
+heard for the roaring in his head, although he was quite near. His
+arms hung down and one leg swung free, but his body rested easily
+balanced in the branches. Presently he felt something fall lightly
+across his chest, slip down to his hand, and then crawl slowly up his
+arm to the shoulder, where it tightened and gripped. A vague hope
+awoke in him.
+
+"Now, wait. I'll get ye; don't move. I'll have a noose around ye'r leg
+next,--so." The voice had grown clearer, and seemed nearer, but the
+young man could make no response with his parched throat.
+
+"Now if I hurt ye a bit, try to stand it." The man carried the long
+loop of his lasso around the cliff and wound it securely around
+another scrub oak, and then began slowly and steadily to pull, until
+the young man moaned with pain,--to cry out was impossible.
+
+"I'll have ye in a minute--I'll have ye--there! Catch at my hand. Poor
+boy, poor boy, ye can't. Hold on--just a little more--there!" Strong
+arms reached for him. Strong hands gripped his clothing and lifted him
+from the terrible chasm's edge.
+
+"He's more dead than alive," said the big man, as he strove to pour a
+little whisky between the stranger's set teeth. "Well, I'll pack him
+home and do for him there."
+
+He lifted his weight easily, and placing him on his horse, led the
+animal to the cabin where he laid him in his own bunk. There, with
+cool water, and whisky carefully administered, the big man restored
+him enough to know that he was conscious.
+
+"There now, you'll come out of this all right. You've got a good body
+and a good head, young man,--lie by a little and I'll give ye some
+broth."
+
+The man took a small stone jar from a shelf and putting in a little
+water, took the half-cooked quail from the fire, and putting it in the
+jar set it on the coals among the ashes, and covered it. From time to
+time he lifted the cover and stirred it about, sprinkling in a little
+corn meal, and when the steam began to rise with savory odor, he did
+not wait for it to be wholly done, but taking a very little of the
+broth in a tin cup, he cooled it and fed it to his patient drop by
+drop until the young man's eyes looked gratefully into his.
+
+Then, while the young man dozed, he returned to his own uneaten meal,
+and dined on dried venison and roasted potatoes and salt. The big man
+was a good housekeeper. He washed his few utensils and swept the
+hearth with a broom worn almost to the handle. Then he removed the jar
+containing the quail and broth from the embers, and set it aside in
+reserve for his guest. Whenever the young man stirred he fed him again
+with the broth, until at last he seemed to sleep naturally.
+
+Seeing his patient quietly sleeping, the big man went out to the
+starving horse and gave him another taste of water, and allowed him to
+graze a few minutes, then tied him again, and returned to the cabin.
+He stood for a while looking down at the pallid face of the sleeping
+stranger, then he lighted his pipe and busied himself about the cabin,
+returning from time to time to study the young man's countenance. His
+pipe went out. He lighted it again and then sat down with his back to
+the stranger and smoked and gazed in the embers.
+
+The expression of his face was peculiarly gentle as he gazed. Perhaps
+the thought of having rescued a human being worked on his spirit
+kindly, or what not, but something brought him a vision of a pale
+face with soft, dark hair waving back from the temples, and large gray
+eyes looking up into his. It came and was gone, and came again, even
+as he summoned it, and he smoked on. One watching him might have
+thought that it was his custom to smoke and gaze and dream thus.
+
+At last he became aware that the stranger was trying to speak to him
+in husky whispers. He turned quickly.
+
+"Feeling more fit, are you? Well, take another sup of broth. Can't let
+you eat anything solid for a bit, but you can have all of the broth
+now if you want it."
+
+As he stooped over him the young man's fingers caught at his shirt
+sleeve and pulled him down to listen to his whispered words.
+
+"Pull me out of this--quickly--quickly--there's a--party--down
+the--mountain--dying of thirst. Is this Higgins' Camp? I--I--tried to
+get there for--for help." He panted and could say no more.
+
+The big man whistled softly. "Thought you'd get to Higgins' Camp?
+You're sixty miles out of the way--or more,--twice that, way you've
+come. You took the wrong trail and you've gone forty miles one way
+when you should have gone as far on the other. I did it myself once,
+and never undid it."
+
+The patient looked hungrily at the tin cup from which he had been
+taking the broth. "Can you give me a little more?"
+
+"Yes, drink it all. It won't hurt ye."
+
+"I've got to get up. They'll die." He struggled and succeeded in
+lifting himself to his elbow and with the effort he spoke more
+strongly. "May I have another taste of the whisky? I'm coming
+stronger now. I left them yesterday with all the food--only a
+bit--and a little water--not enough to keep them alive much longer.
+Yesterday--God help them--was it yesterday--or days ago?"
+
+The older man had a slow, meditative manner of speech as if he had
+long been in the way of speaking only to himself, unhurried, and at
+peace. "It's no use your trying to think that out, young man, and I
+can't tell you. Nor you won't be able to go for them in a while. No."
+
+"I must. I must if I die. I don't care if I die--but they--I must go."
+He tried again to raise himself, but fell back. Great drops stood out
+on his forehead and into his eyes crept a look of horror. "It's
+there!" he said, and pointed with his finger.
+
+"What's there, man?"
+
+"The eye. See! It's gone. Never mind, it's gone." He relaxed, and his
+face turned gray and his eyes closed for a moment, then he said again,
+"I must go to them."
+
+"You can't go. You're delirious, man."
+
+Then the stranger's lips twitched and he almost smiled. "Because I saw
+it? I saw it watching me. It often is, and it's not delirium. I can
+go. I am quite myself."
+
+That half smile on the young man's face was reassuring and appealing.
+The big man could not resist it.
+
+"See here, are you enough yourself to take care of yourself, if I
+leave you and go after them--whoever they are?"
+
+"Yes, oh, yes."
+
+"Will you be prudent--stay right here, eat very sparingly? Are they
+back on the plain? If so, there is a long ride ahead of me, but my
+horse is fresh. If they are not off the trail by which you came, I can
+reach them."
+
+"I did not once leave the trail after--there was no other way I could
+take."
+
+"Would they likely stay right where you left them?"
+
+"They couldn't move if they tried. Oh, my God--if I were only myself
+again!"
+
+"Never waste words wishing, young man. I'll get them. But you must
+give me your promise to wait here. Will you be prudent and wait?"
+
+"Yes, yes."
+
+"You'll be stronger before you know it, and then you'll want to leave,
+you know, and go for them yourself. Don't do that. I'll give your
+horse a bit more to eat and drink, and tie him again, then there'll be
+no need for you to leave this bunk until to-morrow. I'm to follow the
+trail you came up by, and not leave it until I come to--whoever it is?
+Right. Do you give me your word, no matter how long gone I may be, not
+to leave my place here until I return, or send?"
+
+"Oh, yes, yes."
+
+"Good. I'll trust you. There's a better reason than I care to give you
+for this promise, young man. It's not a bad one."
+
+The big man then made his preparations rapidly, pausing now and then
+to give the stranger instructions as to where to find provisions and
+how to manage there by himself, and inquiring carefully as to the
+party he was to find. He packed saddlebags with supplies, and water
+flasks, and, as he moved about, continued to question and admonish.
+
+"By the time I get back you'll be as well as ever you were. A
+couple of days--and you'll be fuming round instead of waiting in
+patience--that's what I tell you. I'll fetch them--do you hear?
+I'll do it. Now what's your name? Harry King? Harry King--very
+well, I have it. And the party? Father and mother and daughter. Family
+party. I see. Big fools, no doubt. No description needed, I guess.
+Bird? Name Bird? No. McBride,--very good. Any name with a Mac to it
+goes on this mountain--that means me. I'm the mountain. Any one I
+don't want here I pack off down the trail, and _vice versa_."
+
+Harry King lay still and heard the big man ride away. He heard his own
+horse stamping and nickering, and heaving a great sigh of relief his
+muscles relaxed, and he slept soundly on his hard bed. For hours he
+had fought off this terrible languor with a desperation born of terror
+for those he had left behind him, who looked to him as their only
+hope. Now he resigned their fate to the big man whose eyes had looked
+so kindly into his, with a childlike feeling of rest and content. He
+lay thus until the sun rose high in the heavens the next morning, when
+he was awakened by the insistent neighing of his horse which had risen
+almost to a cry of fear.
+
+"Poor beast. Poor beast," he muttered. His vocal chords seemed to have
+stiffened and dried, and his attempt to call out to reassure the
+animal resulted only in a hoarse croak. He devoured the meat of the
+little quail left in the jar and drank the few remaining drops of
+broth, then crawled out to look after the needs of his horse before
+making further search for food for himself. He gathered all his little
+strength to hold the frantic creature, maddened with hunger, and
+tethered him where he could graze for half an hour, then fetched him
+water as the big man had done, a little at a time in the great
+dipper.
+
+After these efforts he rested, sitting in the doorway in the sun, and
+then searched out a meal for himself. The big man's larder was well
+stocked, and although Harry King did not appear to be a western man,
+he was a good camper, and could bake a corn dodger or toss a flapjack
+with a fair amount of skill. As he worked, everything seemed like a
+dream to him. The murmuring of the trees far up the mountain side, the
+distant roar of falling water that made him feel as if a little way
+off he might find the sea, filled his senses with an impression of
+unseen forces at work all about him, and the peculiar clearness and
+lightness of the atmosphere made him feel as if he were swaying over
+the ground and barely touching his feet to the earth, instead of
+walking. He might indeed be in an enchanted land, were it not for his
+hunger and the reality of his still hungry horse.
+
+After eating, he again stretched himself on the earth and again slept
+until his horse awakened him. It was well. The sun was setting in the
+golden notch of the hills, and once more he set himself to the same
+task of laboriously giving his horse water and tethering him where the
+grass was lush and green, then preparing food for himself, then
+sitting in the doorway and letting the peace of the place sink into
+his soul.
+
+The horror of his situation when the big man found him had made no
+impression, for he had mercifully been unconscious and too stupefied
+with weariness to realize it. He had even no idea of how he had come
+to the cabin, or from which direction. Inertly he thought over it. A
+trail seemed to lead away to the southwest. He supposed he must have
+come by it, but he had not. It was only the path made by his rescuer
+in going to and fro between his garden patch and his cabin.
+
+In the loneliness and peace of the dusk he looked up and saw the dome
+above filled with stars, and all things were so vast and inexplicable
+that he was minded to pray. The longing and the necessity of prayer
+was upon him, and he stood with arms uplifted and eyes fixed on the
+stars,--then his head sank on his breast and he turned slowly into the
+cabin and lay down on the bunk with his hands pressed over his eyes,
+and moaned. Far into the night he lay thus, unsleeping, now and again
+uttering that low moan. Toward morning he again slept until far into
+the day, and thus passed the first two days of his stay.
+
+Strength came to him rapidly as the big man had said, and soon he was
+restlessly searching the short paths all about for a way by which he
+might find the plain below. He did not forget the promise which had
+been exacted from him to remain, no matter how long, until the big
+man's return, but he wished to discover whence he might arrive, and
+perhaps journey to meet him on the way.
+
+The first trail he followed led him to the fall that ever roared in
+his ears. He stood amazed at its height and volume, and its wonderful
+beauty. It lured him and drew him again and again to the spot from
+which he first viewed it. Midway of its height he stood where every
+now and then a little stronger breeze carried the fine mist of the
+fall in his face. Behind him lay the garden, ever watered thus by the
+wind-blown spray. Smoothly the water fell over a notch worn by its
+never ceasing motion in what seemed the very crest of the mountain far
+above him. Smoothly it fell into the rainbow mists that lost its base
+in a wonderful iridescence of shadows and quivering, never resting
+lights as far below him.
+
+He caught his breath, and remembered the big man's words. "You missed
+the trail to Higgins' Camp a long way back. It's easily done. I did it
+myself once, and never undid it." He could not choose but return over
+and over to that spot. A wonderful ending to a lost trail for a lost
+soul.
+
+The next path he followed took him to a living spring, where the big
+man was wont to lead his own horse to water, and from whence he led
+the water to his cabin in a small flume to always drip and trickle
+past his door. It was at the end of this flume that Harry King had
+filled the large dipper for his horse. Now he went back and washed
+that utensil carefully, and hung it beside the door.
+
+The next trail he followed led by a bare and more forbidding route to
+the place where the big man had rescued him, and he knew it must be
+the one by which he had come. A sense of what had happened came over
+him terrifyingly, and he shrank from the abyss, his body quivering and
+his head reeling. He would not look down into the blue depth, knowing
+that if he did so, by that way his sanity would leave him, but he
+crawled cautiously around the projecting cliff and wandered down the
+stony trail. Now and again he called, "Whoopee! Whoopee!" but only his
+own voice came back to him many times repeated.
+
+Again and again he called and listened, "Whoopee! Whoopee!" and was
+regretful at the thought that he did not even know the name of the man
+who had saved him. Could he also save the others? The wild trail drew
+him and fascinated him. Each day he followed a little farther, and
+morning and evening he called his lonely cry, "Whoopee! Whoopee!" and
+still was answered by the echo in diminuendo of his own voice. He
+tried to resist the lure of that narrow, sun-baked, and stony descent,
+which he felt led to the nethermost hell of hunger and burning thirst,
+but always it seemed to him as if a cry came up for help, and if it
+were not that he knew himself bound by a promise, he would have taken
+his horse and returned to the horror below.
+
+Each evening he reasoned with himself, and repeated the big man's
+words for reassurance: "I'll fetch them, do you hear? I'll fetch
+them," and again: "I'm the mountain. Any one I don't want here I pack
+off down the trail." Perhaps he had taken them off to Higgins' Camp
+instead of bringing them back with him--what then? Harry King bowed
+his head at the thought. Then he understood the lure of the trail.
+What then? Why, then--he would follow--follow--follow--until he found
+again the woman for whom he had dared the unknown and to whom he had
+given all but a few drops of water that were needed to keep him alive
+long enough to find more for her. He would follow her back into that
+hell below the heights. But how long should he wait? How long should
+he trust the man to whom he had given his promise?
+
+He decided to wait a reasonable time, long enough to allow for the big
+man's going, and slow returning--long enough indeed for them to use up
+all the provisions he had packed down to them, and then he would break
+his promise and go. In the meantime he tried to keep himself sane by
+doing what he found to do. He gathered the ripe corn in the big man's
+garden patch and husked it and stored it in the shed which was built
+against the cabin. Then he stored the fodder in a sort of stable built
+of logs, one side of which was formed by a huge bowlder, or
+projecting part of the mountain itself, not far from the spring, where
+evidently it had been stored in the past, and where he supposed the
+man kept his horse in winter. He judged the winters must be very
+severe for the care with which this shed was covered and the wind
+holes stopped. And all the time he worked each day seemed a month of
+days, instead of a day of hours.
+
+At last he felt he was justified in trying to learn the cause of the
+delay at least, and he baked many cakes of yellow corn meal and
+browned them well on the hearth, and roasted a side of bacon whole as
+it was, and packed strips of dried venison, and filled his water flask
+at the spring. After a long hunt he found empty bottles which he
+wrapped round with husks and filled also with water. These he purposed
+to hang at the sides of his saddle. He had carefully washed and mended
+his clothing, and searching among the big man's effects, he found a
+razor, dull and long unused. He sharpened and polished and stropped
+it, and removed a vigorous growth of beard from his face, before a
+little framed mirror. To-morrow he would take the trail down into the
+horror from which he had come.
+
+Now it only remained for him to look well to the good yellow horse and
+sleep one more night in the friendly big man's bunk, then up before
+the sun and go.
+
+The nights were cold, and he thought he would replenish the fire on
+his hearth, for he always had the feeling that at any moment they
+might come wearily climbing up the trail, famished and cold. Any night
+he might hear the "Halloo" of the big man's voice. In the shed where
+he had piled the husked corn lay wood cut in lengths for the
+fireplace, and taking a pine torch he stooped to collect a few
+sticks, when, by the glare of the light he held, he saw what he had
+never seen in the dim daylight of the windowless place. A heavy iron
+ring lay at his feet, and as he kicked at it he discovered that it was
+attached to something covered with earth beneath.
+
+Impelled by curiosity he thrust the torch between the logs and removed
+the earth, and found a huge bin of hewn logs carefully fitted and
+smoothed on the inside. The cover was not fastened, but only held in
+place by the weight of stones and earth piled above it. This bin was
+half filled with finely broken ore, and as he lifted it in his hands
+yellow dust sifted through his fingers.
+
+Quivering with a strange excitement he delved deeper, lifting the
+precious particles by handfuls, feeling of it, sifting it between his
+fingers, and holding the torch close to the mass to catch the dull
+glow of it. For a long time he knelt there, wondering at it, dreaming
+over it, and feeling of it. Then he covered it all as he had found it,
+and taking the wood for which he had come, he replenished the fire and
+laid himself down to sleep.
+
+What was gold to him? What were all the riches of the earth and of the
+caves of the earth? Only one thought absorbed him,--the woman whom he
+had left waiting for him on the burning plain, and a haunting memory
+that would never leave him--never be stilled.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XV
+
+THE BIG MAN'S RETURN
+
+
+The night was bitter cold after a day of fierce heat. Three people
+climbed the long winding trail from the plains beneath, slowly,
+carefully, and silently. A huge mountaineer walked ahead, leading a
+lean brown horse. Seated on the horse was a woman with long, pale
+face, and deeply sunken dark eyes that looked out from under arched,
+dark brows with a steady gaze that never wandered from some point just
+ahead of her, not as if they perceived anything beyond, but more as if
+they looked backward upon some terror.
+
+Behind them on a sorrel horse--a horse slenderer and evidently of
+better stock than the brown--rode another woman, also with dark eyes,
+now heavy lidded from weariness, and pale skin, but younger and
+stronger and more alert to the way they were taking. Her face was
+built on different lines: a smooth, delicately modeled oval, wide at
+the temples and level of brow, with heavy dark hair growing low over
+the sides of the forehead, leaving the center high, and the arch of
+the head perfect. Trailing along in the rear a small mule followed,
+bearing a pack.
+
+Sometimes the big man walking in front looked back and spoke a word of
+encouragement, to which the younger of the two women replied in low
+tones, as if the words were spoken under her breath.
+
+"We'll stop and rest awhile now," he said at last, and led the horse
+to one side, where a level space made it possible for them to dismount
+and stretch themselves on the ground to give their weary limbs the
+needed relaxation.
+
+The younger woman slipped to the ground and led her horse forward to
+where the elder sat rigidly stiff, declining to move.
+
+"It is better we rest, mother. The kind man asks us."
+
+"Non, Amalia, non. We go on. It is best that we not wait."
+
+Then the daughter spoke rapidly in their own tongue, and the mother
+bowed her head and allowed herself to be lifted from the saddle. Her
+daughter then unrolled her blanket and, speaking still in her own
+tongue, with difficulty persuaded her mother to lie down on the
+mountain side, as they were directed, and the girl lay beside her,
+covering her tenderly and pillowing her mother's head on her arm. The
+big man led the animals farther on and sat down with his back against
+a great rock, and waited.
+
+They lay thus until the mother slept the sleep of exhaustion; then
+Amalia rose cautiously, not to awaken her, and went over to him. Her
+teeth chattered with the cold, and she drew a little shawl closer
+across her chest.
+
+"This is a very hard way--so warm in the day and so cold in the night.
+It is not possible that I sleep. The cold drives me to move."
+
+"You ought to have put part of that blanket over yourself. It's going
+to be a long pull up the mountain, and you ought to sleep a little.
+Walk about a bit to warm yourself and then try again to sleep."
+
+"Yes. I try."
+
+She turned docilely and walked back and forth, then very quietly crept
+under the blanket beside her mother. He watched them a while, and when
+he deemed she also must be sleeping, he removed his coat and gently
+laid it over the girl. By that time darkness had settled heavily over
+the mountain. The horses ceased browsing among the chaparral and lay
+down, and the big man stretched himself for warmth close beside his
+sorrel horse, on the stony ground. Thus in the stillness they all
+slept; at last, over the mountain top the moon rose.
+
+Higher and higher it crept up in the sky, and the stars waned before
+its brilliant whiteness. The big man roused himself then, and looked
+at the blanket under which the two women slept, and with a muttered
+word of pity began gathering weeds and brush with which to build a
+fire. It should be a very small fire, hidden by chaparral from the
+plains below, and would be well stamped out and the charred place
+covered with stones and brush when they left it. Soon he had steeped a
+pot of coffee and fried some bacon, then he quickly put out his fire
+and woke the two women. The younger sprang up, and, finding his coat
+over her, took it to him and thanked him with rapid utterance.
+
+"Oh, you are too kind. I am sorry you have deprive yourself of your
+coat to put it over me. That is why I have been so warm."
+
+The mother rose and shook out her skirt and glanced furtively about
+her. "It is not the morning? It is the moon. That is well we go
+early." She drank the coffee hurriedly and scarcely tasted the bacon
+and hard biscuit. "It is no toilet we have here to make. So we go more
+quickly. So is good."
+
+"But you must eat the food, mother. You will be stronger for the long,
+hard ride. You have not here to hurry. No one follows us here."
+
+"Your father may be already by the camp, Amalia--to bring us
+help--yes. But of those men 'rouge'--if they follow and rob us--"
+
+The two women spoke English out of deference to the big man, and only
+dropped into their own language or into fluent French when necessity
+compelled them, or they thought themselves alone.
+
+"Ah, but those red men, mother, they do not come here, so the kind man
+told us, for now they are also kind. Sit here and eat the biscuit. I
+will ask him."
+
+She went over to where he stood by the animals, pouring a very little
+water from the cans carried by the pack mule for each one. "They'll
+have to hold out on this for the day, but they may only have half of
+it now," he said.
+
+"What shall I do?" Amalia looked with wide, distressed eyes in his
+face. "She believes it yet, that my father lives and has gone to the
+camp for help. She thinks we go to him,--to the camp. How can I tell
+her? I cannot--I dare not."
+
+"Let her think what satisfies her most. We can tell her as much as is
+best for her to know, a little at a time, and there will be plenty of
+time to do it in. We'll be snowed up on this mountain all winter." The
+young woman did not reply, but stood perfectly still, gazing off into
+the moonlit wilderness. "When people get locoed this way, the only
+thing is to humor them and give them a chance to rest satisfied in
+something--no matter what, much,--only so they are not hectored. No
+mind can get well when it is being hectored."
+
+"Hectored? That is to mean--tortured? Yes, I understand. It is that we
+not suffer the mind to be tortured?"
+
+"About that, yes."
+
+"Thank you. I try to comfort her. But it is to lie to her? It is not a
+sin, when it is for the healing?"
+
+"I'm not authority on that, Miss, but I know lying's a blessing
+sometimes."
+
+"If I could make her see the marvelous beauty of this way we go, but
+she will not look. Me, I can hardly breathe for the wonder--yet--I do
+not forget my father is dead."
+
+"I'm starting you off now, because it will not be so hard on either
+you or the horses to travel by night, as long as it is light enough to
+see the way. Then when the sun comes out hot, we can lie by a bit, as
+we did yesterday."
+
+"Then is no fear of the red men we met on the plains?"
+
+"They're not likely to follow us up here--not at this season, and now
+the railroad's going through, they're attracted by that."
+
+"Do they never come to you, at your home?"
+
+"Not often. They think I'm a sort of white 'medicine man'--kind of a
+hoodoo, and leave me alone."
+
+She looked at him with mystification in her eyes, but did not ask what
+he meant, and returned to her mother.
+
+"I have eaten. Now we go, is not?"
+
+"Yes, mother. The kind man says we go on, and the red men will not
+follow us."
+
+"Good. I have afraid of the men 'rouge.' Your father knows not fear;
+only I know it."
+
+Soon they were mounted and traveling up the trail as before, the
+little pack mule following in the rear. No breeze stirred to make the
+frosty air bite more keenly, and the women rode in comparative
+comfort, with their hands wrapped in their shawls to keep them warm.
+They did not try to converse, or only uttered a word now and then in
+their own tongue. Amalia's spirit was enrapt in the beauty around and
+above and below her, so that she could not have spoken more than the
+merest word for a reply had she tried.
+
+The moonlight brought all the immediate surroundings into sharp
+relief, and the distant hills in receding gradations seemed to be
+created out of molten silver touched with palest gold. Above, the
+vault of the heavens was almost black, and the stars were few, but
+clear. Even the stones that impeded the horses' feet seemed to be made
+of silver. The depths below them seemed as vast and black as the vault
+above, except for the silver bath of light that touched the tops of
+the gigantic trees at the bottom of the canyon around which they were
+climbing.
+
+The silence of this vastness was as fraught with mystery as the scene,
+and was broken only by the scrambling of the horses over the stones
+and their heavy breathing. Thus throughout the rest of the night they
+wended steadily upward, only pausing now and then to allow the animals
+to breathe, and then on. At last a thing occurred to break the
+stillness and strike terror to Amalia's heart. It had occurred once
+the day before when the silence was most profound. A piercing cry rent
+the air, that began in a scream of terror and ended in a long-drawn
+wail of despair.
+
+Amalia slipped from her horse and stumbled over the rough ground to
+her mother's side and poured forth a stream of words in her own
+tongue, and clasped her arms about the rigid form that did not bend
+toward her, but only sat staring into the white night as if her eye
+perceived a sight from which she could not turn away.
+
+"Look at me, mother. Oh, try to make her look at me!" The big man
+lifted her from the horse, and she relaxed into trembling. "There, it
+is gone now. Walk with me, mother;" and the two walked for a while,
+holding hands, and Amalia talked unceasingly in low, soothing tones.
+
+After a little time longer the moon paled and the stars disappeared,
+and soon the sky became overspread with the changing coloring and the
+splendor of dawn. Then the sun rose out of the glory, but still they
+kept on their way until the heat began to overcome them. Then they
+halted where some pines and high rocks made a shelter, but this time
+the big man did not build a fire. He gave them a little coffee which
+he had saved for them from what he had steeped during the night, and
+they ate and rested, and the mother fell quickly into the sleep of
+exhaustion, as before.
+
+Thus during the middle of the day they rested, Amalia and the big man
+sometimes sleeping and sometimes conversing quietly.
+
+"I don't know why mother does this. I never knew her to until
+yesterday. Father never used to let her look straight ahead of her as
+she does now. She has always been very brave and strong. She has done
+wonderful things--but I was not there. When troubles came on my
+father, I was put in a convent--I know now it was to keep me from
+harm. I did not know then why I was sent away from them, for my father
+was not of the religion of the good sisters at the convent,--but now
+I know--it was to save me."
+
+"Why did troubles come on your father?"
+
+"What he did I do not know, but I am very sure it was nothing wrong.
+In my country sometimes men have to break the law to do right; my
+mother has told me so. He was in prison a long time when I was living
+in the convent, sheltered and cared for,--and mother--mother was
+working all alone to get him out--all alone suffering."
+
+"How could they keep you there if she had to work so hard?"
+
+"My father had a friend. He was not of our country, and he was most
+kind and good. I think he was of Scotland--or maybe of Ireland; I was
+so little I do not know. He saved for my mother some of her money so
+the government did not get it. I think my mother gave it to him,
+once--before the trouble came. Maybe she knew it would come,--anyway,
+so it was. I do not know if he was Irish, or of Scotland--but he must
+have been a good man."
+
+"Been? Is he dead?"
+
+"Yes. It was of a fever he died. My mother told me. He gave us his
+name, and to my father his papers to leave our country, for he knew he
+would die, or my father never could have got out of the country. I
+never saw him but once. When I saw you, I thought of him. He was grand
+and good, as are you. My mother came for me at the convent in Paris,
+and in the night we went to my father, and in the morning we went to
+the great ship. We said McBride, and all was well. If we had said
+Manovska when we took the ship, we would have been sent back and my
+father would have been killed. In the prison we would have died. It
+was hard to get on the ship, but when we got to this country, nobody
+cared who got off."
+
+"How long ago was that?"
+
+"It was at the time of your great war we came. My mother wore the
+dress of our peasant women, and I did the same."
+
+"And were you quite safe in this country?"
+
+"For a long time we lived very quietly, and we thought we were. But
+after a time some one came, and father took him in, and then others
+came, and went away again, and came again--I don't know why--they did
+not tell me,--but this I know. Some one had a great enmity against my
+father, and at last mother took me in the night to a strange place
+where we knew no one, and then we went to another place--and to still
+another. It was very wearisome."
+
+"What was your father's business?"
+
+"My father had no business. He was what you call a nobleman. He had
+very much land, but he was generous and gave it nearly all away to his
+poor people. My father was very learned and studied much. He made much
+music--very beautiful--not for money--never for that. Only after we
+came to this country did he so, to live. Once he played in a great
+orchestra. It was then those men found him and came so often that he
+had again to go away and hide. I think they brought him papers--very
+important--to be sacredly guarded until a right time should come to
+reveal them."
+
+"And you have no knowledge why he was followed and persecuted?"
+
+"I was so little at the beginning I do not know. If it was that in
+his religion he was different,--or if he was trying to change in
+the government the laws,--for we are not of Russia,--I know that when
+he gave away his land, the other noblemen were very angry with him,
+and at the court--where my father was sent by his people for
+reasons--there was a prince,--I think it was about my mother he hated
+my father so,--but for what--that I never heard. But he had my
+father imprisoned, and there in the prison they--What was that
+word,--hectored? Yes. In the prison they hectored him greatly--so
+greatly that never more was he straight. It was very sad."
+
+"I don't think we would say hectored, for that. I think we would say
+tortured."
+
+"Oh, yes. I see. To hector is of the mind, but torture is of the body.
+It is that I mean--for they were very terrible to him. My mother was
+there, and they made her look at it to bring him the more quickly to
+tell for her sake what he would not for his own. I think when she
+looks long before her at nothing, she is seeing again the tortures of
+my father, and so she cries out in that terrible way. I think so."
+
+"What were they trying to get out of him?"
+
+Amalia looked up in his face with a puzzled expression for a moment.
+"Get--out--of--him?" she asked.
+
+"I mean, what did they want him to tell?"
+
+"Ah, that I know not. It was never told. If they could find him, I
+think they would try again to learn of him something which he only can
+tell. I think if they could find my mother, they would now try to
+learn from her what my father knew, but her lips are like the grave.
+At that time he had told her nothing, but since then--when we were far
+out in the wilderness--I do not know. I hope my mother will never be
+found. Is it a very secret place to which we go?"
+
+"I might call it that--yes. I've lived there for twenty years and no
+white man has found me yet, until the young man, Harry King, was
+pitched over the edge of eternity and only saved by a--well--a
+chance--likely."
+
+The young woman gazed at him wide-eyed, and drew in her breath. "You
+saved him."
+
+"If he obeyed me--I did."
+
+"And all the twenty years were you alone?"
+
+"I always had a horse."
+
+"But for a companion--had you never one?"
+
+"Never."
+
+"Are you, too, a good man who has done a deed against the law of your
+land?"
+
+The big man looked off a moment, then down at her with a little smile
+playing about his lips. "I never did a deed against the law of any
+land that I know of, but as for the good part--that's another thing. I
+may be fairly good as goodness goes."
+
+"Goodnessgoes!" She repeated after him as if it were one word from
+which she was trying to extract a meaning. "Was it then to flee from
+the wicked world that you lived all the twenty years thus alone?"
+
+"Hardly that, either. To tell the truth, it may be only a habit with
+me."
+
+"Will you forgive me that I asked? It was only that to me it has been
+terrible to live always in hiding and fear. I love people, and desire
+greatly to have kind people near me,--but of the world where my father
+and mother lived, and at the court--and of the nobles, of all these I
+am afraid."
+
+"Yes, yes. I fancy you were." A grim look settled about his mouth,
+although his eyes twinkled kindly. He marveled to think how trustingly
+they accompanied him into this wilderness--but then--poor babes! What
+else could they do? "You'll be safe from all the courts and nobles in
+the world where I'm taking you."
+
+"That is why my eyes do not weep for my father. He is now gone where
+none can find him but God. It is very terrible that a good man should
+always hide--hide and live in fear--always--even from his own kinsmen.
+I understand some of the sorrows of the world."
+
+"You'll forget it all up there."
+
+"I will try if my mother recovers." She drew in her breath with a
+little quivering catch.
+
+"We'll wake her now, and start on. It won't do to waste daylight any
+longer." Secretly he was afraid that they might be followed by
+Indians, and was sorry he had made the fire in the night, but he
+reasoned that he could never have brought them on without such
+refreshment. Women are different from men. He could eat raw bacon and
+hard-tack and go without coffee, when necessary, but to ask women to
+do so was quite another thing.
+
+For long hours now they traveled on, even after the moon had set, in
+the darkness. It was just before the dawn, where the trail wound and
+doubled on itself, that the sorrel horse was startled by a small
+rolling stone that had been loosened on the trail above them.
+Instantly the big man halted where they were.
+
+"Are you brave enough to wait here a bit by your mother's horse while
+I go on? That stone did not loosen itself. It may be nothing but some
+little beast,--if it were a bear, the horses would have made a fuss."
+
+He mounted the sorrel and went forward, leaving her standing on the
+trail, holding the leading strap of her mother's horse, which tossed
+its head and stepped about restlessly, trying to follow. She petted
+and soothed the animal and talked in low tones to her mother. Then
+with beating heart she listened. Two men's voices came down to
+her--one, the big man's--and the other--yes, she had heard it before.
+
+"It is 'Arry King, mother. Surely he has come down to meet us," she
+said joyfully. She would have hurried on, but bethought herself she
+would better wait as she had been directed. Soon the big man returned,
+looking displeased and grim.
+
+"Young chap couldn't wait. He gave me his promise, but he didn't keep
+it."
+
+"It was 'Arry King?" He made no reply, and they resumed their way as
+before. "It was long to wait, and nothing to do," she pleaded,
+divining his mood.
+
+"I had good reasons, Miss. No matter. I sent him back. No need of him
+here. We'll make it before morning now, and he will have the cabin
+warm and hot coffee for us, if you can stand to go on for a goodish
+long pull."
+
+A goodish long pull it surely was, in the darkness, but the women bore
+up with courage, and their guide led them safely. The horse Amalia
+rode, being his own horse, knew the way well.
+
+"Don't try to guide him; he'll take you quite safely," he called back
+to her. "Let the reins hang." And in the dusk of early morning they
+safely turned the curve where Harry King had fallen, never knowing the
+danger.
+
+Harry King, standing in the doorway of the cabin, with the firelight
+bright behind him, saw them winding down the trail and hurried
+forward. They were almost stupefied with fatigue. He lifted the mother
+in his arms without a word and carried her into the cabin and laid her
+in the bunk, which he had prepared to receive her. He greeted Amalia
+with a quiet word as the big man led her in, and went out to the
+horses, relieved them of their burdens, and led them away to the shed
+by the spring. Soon the big man joined him, and began rubbing down the
+animals.
+
+"I will do this. You must rest," said Harry.
+
+"I need none of your help," he said, not surlily, as the words might
+sound, but colorlessly.
+
+"I needed yours when I came here--or you saved me and brought me here,
+and now whatever you wish I'll do, but for to-night you must take my
+help. I'm not apologizing for what I did, because I thought it right,
+but--"
+
+"Peace, man, peace. I've lived a long time with no man to gainsay me.
+I'll take what comes now and thank the Lord it's no worse. We'll leave
+the cabin to the women, after I see that they have no fright about it,
+and we'll sleep in the fodder. There have been worse beds."
+
+"I have coffee on the hearth, hot, and corn dodgers--such as we used
+to make in the army. I've made them often before."
+
+"Turn the beasts free; there isn't room for them all in the shed, and
+I'll go get a bite and join you soon."
+
+So Harry King did not return to the cabin that night, much as he
+desired to see Amalia again, but lay down on the fodder and tried to
+sleep. His heart throbbed gladly at the thought of her safety. He had
+not dared to inquire after her father. Although he had seen so little
+of the big man he understood his mood, and having received such great
+kindness at his hands, he was truly sorry at the invasion of his
+peace. Undoubtedly he did not like to have a family, gathered from the
+Lord only knew where, suddenly quartered on him for none knew how
+long.
+
+The cabin was only meant for a hermit of a man, and little suited to
+women and their needs. A mixed household required more rooms. He tried
+to think the matter through and to plan, but the effort brought
+drowsiness, and before the big man returned he was asleep.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XVI
+
+A PECULIAR POSITION
+
+
+"Well, young man, we find ourselves in what I call a peculiar
+position."
+
+A smile that would have been sardonic, were it not for a few lines
+around the corners of his eyes which belied any sinister suspicion,
+spread grimly across the big man's face as he stood looking down on
+Harry King in the dusk of the unlighted shed. The younger man rose
+quickly from the fodder where he had slept heavily after the fatigues
+of the past day and night, and stood respectfully looking into the big
+man's face.
+
+"I--I--realize the situation. I thought about it after I turned in
+here--before you came down--or up--to this--ahem--bedroom. I can take
+myself off, sir. And if there were any way--of relieving you
+of--the--whole--embarrassment,--I--I--would do so."
+
+"Everything's quiet down at the cabin. I've been there and looked
+about a bit. They had need of sleep. You go back to your bunk, and
+I'll take mine, and we'll talk the thing over before we see them
+again. As for your taking yourself off, that remains to be seen. I'm
+not crabbed, that's not the secret of my life alone,--though you might
+think it. I--ahem--ahem." The big man cleared his throat and stretched
+his spare frame full length on the fodder where he had slept. With his
+elbow on the bed of corn stalks he lifted his head on his hand and
+gazed at Harry King, not dreamily as when he first saw him, but with
+covert keenness.
+
+"Lie down in your place--a bit--lie down. We'll talk until we've
+arrived at a conclusion, and it may be a long talk, so we may as well
+be comfortable."
+
+Harry King went back to his own bunk and lay prone, his forehead
+resting on his folded arms and his face hidden. "Very well, sir; I'll
+do my best. We have to accept each other for the best there is in us,
+I take it. You've saved my life and the life of those two women, and
+we all owe you our grat--"
+
+"Go to, go to. It's not of that I'm wishing to speak. Let's begin at
+the beginning, or, as near the beginning as we can. I've been standing
+here looking at you while you were sleeping,--and last night--I mean
+early this morning when I came up here, I--with a torch I studied your
+face well and long. A man betrays his true nature when he is sleeping.
+The lines of what he has been thinking and feeling show then when he
+cannot disguise them by smiles or words. I'm old enough to be your
+father--yes--so it might have been--and with your permission I'll talk
+to you straight."
+
+Harry King lifted his head and looked at the other, then resumed his
+former position. "Thank you," was all he said.
+
+"You've been well bred. You're in trouble. I ask you what is your true
+name and what you have done?"
+
+The young man did not speak. He lay still as if he had heard nothing,
+but the other saw his hands clinch into knotted fists and the muscles
+of his arms grow rigid. His heart beat heavily and the blood roared
+in his ears. At last he lifted his head and looked back at the big man
+and spoke monotonously.
+
+"I gave you my name--all the name I have." His face was white in the
+dim light and the lids drew close over his gray eyes.
+
+"You prefer to lie to me? I ask in good faith."
+
+"All the name I have is the one I gave you, Harry King."
+
+"And you will hold to the lie?" They looked steadily into each other's
+eyes. The young man nodded. "And there was more I asked of you."
+
+Then the young man turned away from the keen eyes that had held him
+and sat up in the fodder and clasped his knees with his hands and
+looked straight out before him, regarding nothing--nothing but his own
+thoughts. A strange expression crept over his face,--was it fear--or
+was it an inward terror? Suddenly he put out his hand with a frantic
+gesture toward the darkest corner of the place, "It's there," he cried
+in a voice scarcely above a whisper, then hid his eyes and moaned. At
+the sight, the big man's face softened.
+
+"Lad, lad, ye're in trouble. I saved your body as it hung over the
+cliff--and the Lord only knows how ye were saved. I took ye home and
+laid ye in my own bunk,--and looked on your face--and there my heart
+cried on the Lord for the first time in many years. I had forsworn the
+company of men, and of all women,--and the faith of my fathers had
+died in me,--but there, as I looked on your face--the lost years came
+back. And now--ye're only Harry King. Only Harry King."
+
+"That's all." The young man's lips set tightly and the cords of his
+neck stood out. Nothing was lost to the eyes that watched him so
+intently.
+
+"I had a son--once. I held him in my arms--for an hour--and then left
+him forever. You have a face that reminds me of one--one I hated--and
+it minds me of one I--I--loved,--of one I loved better than I loved
+life."
+
+Then Harry King turned and gazed in the big man's eyes, and as he
+gazed, the withdrawn, inward look left his own. He still sat clasping
+his knees. "I can more easily tell you what I have done than I can
+tell you my name. I have sworn never to utter it again." He was
+weeping, but he hid his tears for very shame of them.
+
+The older man shook his head. "I've known sorrow, boy, but the lesson
+of it, never. Men say there is a thing to be learned from sorrow, but
+to me it has brought only rebellion and bitterness. So I've missed
+the good of it because it came upon me through arrogance and
+injustice--not my own. So now I say to you--if it was at the
+expense of your soul I saved your life, it were better I had let
+you go down. Lad,--you've brought me a softness,--it's like what a
+man feels for a woman. I'm glad it's come back to me. It is good to
+feel. I'd make a son of you,--but--for the truth's sake tell me a bit
+more."
+
+"I had a friend and I killed him. I was angry and killed him. I have
+left my name in his grave." Harry King rose and walked away and stood
+shivering in the entrance of the shed. Then he came back and spoke
+humbly. "Do with me what you will, but call me Harry King. I have
+nothing on earth but the clothes on my body, and they are in rags. If
+you have work for me to do, let me do it, in mercy. If not, let me go
+back to the plains and die there."
+
+"How long ago was this?"
+
+"More--more than two years ago--yes, three--perhaps."
+
+"And where have you been?"
+
+"Knocking about--hiding. For a while I had work on the road they are
+building--"
+
+"Road? What road?"
+
+"The new railroad across the continent."
+
+"Where, young man, where?"
+
+"From Chicago on. They got it as far as Cheyenne, but that was the
+very place of all others where they would be apt to hunt for me. I got
+news of a detective hanging about the camp, and I was sure he had come
+there to track me. I had my wages and my clothes, and when I found
+they had traced me there, I spent all I had for my horse and took my
+pack and struck out over the plains." He paused and wiped the cold
+drops from his forehead, then lifted his head with gathered courage.
+"One day,--I found these people, nigh starving for both water and
+food, and without strength to go where they could be provided for.
+They, too, were refugees, I learned, and so I cast my lot with theirs,
+and served them as best I could."
+
+"And now they have fallen to the two of us to provide for. You say,
+give you work? I've lived here these twenty years and found work for
+no man but myself. I've found plenty of that--just to keep alive, part
+of the time. It's bad here in the winter--if the stores give out. Tell
+me what you know of these women."
+
+"Where is the man?"
+
+"Dead. I found him dead before I reached them. I left him lying where
+I found him, and pushed on--got there just in time. He wasn't three
+hours away from them as a man walks. I made them as comfortable as I
+could and saw that no Indians were about, nor had been, they said; so
+I ventured back and made a grave for him as best I could, and told the
+daughter only, for the old lady seemed out of her head. I don't know
+what we can do with her if she gets worse. I don't know." As the big
+man talked he noticed the younger one growing calmer and listening
+intently.
+
+"Before I buried him I searched him and found a few papers--just
+letters in a strange language, and from the feeling of his coat I
+judged others were hid--sewed in it, so I fetched it back to her--the
+young one. You thought I was long gone, and there was where you made
+the blunder. How did you suppose I came by the pack mule and the other
+horse?"
+
+"When I saw them, I knew you must have gone to Higgins' Camp and back,
+but how could I know it before? You might have been in need of me, and
+of food."
+
+"We'll say no more of it. Those men at the camp are beasts. I bought
+those animals and paid gold for them. They wanted to know where I got
+the gold. I told them where they'd never get it. They asked me ten
+prices for those beasts, and then tried to keep me there until they
+could clean me out and get hold of my knowledge. But I skipped away in
+the night when they were all drunk and asleep. Then I had to make a
+long detour to put them off the track if they should try to follow me,
+and all that took time."
+
+The big man paused to fill and light his pipe. "And what next?" asked
+Harry King.
+
+"Except for enough food and water to last us up the trail you came, I
+packed nothing back to the wagon, and so had room to bring a few of
+their things up here, and there may be some of your own among
+them--they said something about it. We hauled the wagon as far as a
+good place to hide it, in a wash, could be found, and we covered
+it--and our tracks. But there was nothing left in it but a few of
+their utensils, unless the box they did not open contained something.
+It was left in the wagon. That was the best I could do with only the
+help of the young woman, and she was too weak to do much. It may lie
+there untouched for ten years unless a rain scoops it out, and that's
+not likely.
+
+"I showed the young woman as we came along where her father lay, and
+as we came to a halt a bit farther on, she went back, while her mother
+slept, and knelt there praying for an hour. I doubt any good it did
+him, but it comforted her heart. It's a good religion for a woman,
+where she does not have to think things out for herself, but takes a
+priest's word for it all. And now they're here, and you're here, and
+my home is invaded, and my peace is gone, and may the Lord help me--I
+can't."
+
+Harry King looked at him a moment in silence. "Nor can I--help--but to
+take myself off."
+
+"Take yourself off! And leave me alone with two women? I who have
+foresworn them forever! How do you know but that they may each be
+possessed by seven devils? But there! It isn't so bad. As long as they
+stay you'll stay. It was through you they are here, and close on to
+winter,--and if it was summer, it would be as bad to send them away
+where they would have no place to stay and no way to live. Lad, the
+world's hard on women. I've seen much."
+
+Harry King went again and stood in the open entrance of the shed and
+waited. The big man saw that he had succeeded in taking the other's
+mind off himself, and had led him to think of others, and now he
+followed up the advantage toward confidence that he had thus gained.
+He also came to the entrance and laid his kindly hand on the younger
+man's shoulder, and there in the pale light of that cloudy fall
+morning, standing in the cool, invigorating air, with the sound of
+falling water in their ears, the two men made a compact, and the end
+was this.
+
+"Harry King, if you'll be my son, I'll be your father. My boy would be
+about your age--if he lives,--but if he does, he has been taught to
+look down on me--on the very thought of me." He cast a wistful glance
+at the young man's face as he spoke. "From the time I held him in my
+arms, a day-old baby, I've never seen him, and it may be he has never
+heard of me. He was in good hands and was given over for good reasons,
+to one who hated my name and my race--and me. For love of his mother I
+did this. It was all I could do for her; I would have gone down into
+the grave for her.
+
+"I, too, have been a wanderer over the face of the earth. At first I
+lived in India--in China--anywhere to be as far on the other side of
+the earth from her grave and my boy, as I vowed I would, but I've kept
+the memory of her sweet in my heart. You need not fear I'll ask again
+for your name. Until you choose to give it I will respect your
+wish,--and for the rest--speak of it when you must--but not before. I
+have no more to ask. You've been well bred, as I said, and that's
+enough for me. You're more than of age--I can see that--but it's my
+opinion you need a father. Will you take me?"
+
+The young man drew in his breath sharply through quivering lips, and
+made answer with averted head: "Cain! Cain and the curse of Cain! Can
+I allow another to share it?"
+
+"Another shares it and you have no choice."
+
+"I will be more than a son. Sons hurt their fathers and accept all
+from them and give little. You lifted me out of the abyss and brought
+me back to life. You took on yourself the burden laid on me, to save
+those who trusted me, knowing nothing of my crime,--and now you drag
+my very soul from hell. I will do more than be your son--I will give
+you the life you saved. Who are you?"
+
+Then the big man gave his name, making no reciprocal demand. What
+mattered a name? It was the man, by whatever name, he wanted.
+
+"I am an Irishman by birth, and my name is Larry Kildene. If you'll go
+to a little county not so far from Dublin, but to the north, you'll
+find my people."
+
+He was looking away toward the top of the mountain as he spoke, and
+was seeing his grandfather's house as he had seen it when a boy, and
+so he did not see the countenance of the young man at his side. Had he
+done so, he would not have missed knowing what the young man from that
+moment knew, and from that moment, out of the love now awakened in his
+heart for the big man, carefully concealed, giving thanks that he had
+not told his name.
+
+For a long minute they stood thus looking away from each other, while
+Harry King, by a mighty effort, gained control of his features, and
+his voice. Then although white to the lips, he spoke quietly: "Harry
+King--the murderer--be the son of Larry Kildene--Larry Kildene--I--to
+slink away in the hills--forever to hide--"
+
+"No more of that. I'll show you a new life. Give me your hand, Harry
+King." And the young man extended both hands in a silence through
+which no words could have been heard.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XVII
+
+ADOPTING A FAMILY
+
+
+As the two men walked down toward the cabin they saw Amalia standing
+beside the door in the sunlight which now streamed through a rift in
+the clouds, gazing up at the towering mountain and listening to the
+falling water. She spied them and came swiftly to them, extending both
+hands in a sweet, gracious impulsiveness, and began speaking rapidly
+even before she reached them.
+
+"Ah! So beautiful is your home! It is so much that I would say to you
+of gratitude in my heart--it is like a river flowing swiftly to tell
+you--Ah! I cannot say it all--and we come and intrude ourselves upon
+you thus that you have no place where to go for your own sleeping--Is
+not? Yes, I know it. So must we think quickly how we may unburden you
+of us--my mother and myself--only that she yet is sleeping that
+strange sleep that seems still not like sleep. Let me that I serve
+you, sir?"
+
+Larry Kildene looked on her glowing, upturned face, gathering his
+slower wits for some response to her swift speech, while she turned to
+the younger man, grasping his hands in the same manner and not ceasing
+the flow of her utterance.
+
+"And you, at such severe labor and great danger, have found this noble
+man, and have sent him to us--to you do we owe what never can we
+pay--it is thus while we live must we always thank you in our hearts.
+And to this place--so _won-n-der-ful_--Ah! Beautiful like heaven--Is
+not? Yes, and the sweet sound always in the air--like heaven and the
+sound of wings--to stop here even for this night is to make those
+sorrowful thoughts lie still and for a while speak nothing."
+
+As she turned from one to the other, addressing each in turn, warm
+lights flashed in her eyes through tears, like stars in a deep pool.
+Her dark hair rolled back from her smooth oval forehead in heavy
+coils, and over her head and knotted under her perfect chin, outlining
+its curve, was a silken peasant handkerchief with a crimson border of
+the richest hue, while about the neck of her colorless, closely fitted
+gown was a piece of exquisite hand-wrought lace. She stood before
+them, a vision from the old world, full of innate ladyhood, simple as
+a peasant, at once appealing and dominating, impulsive, yet shy. Her
+beautiful enunciation, her inverted and quaintly turned English, alive
+with poetry, was typical of her whole personality, a sweet and strange
+mixture of the high-bred aristocrat and the simple directness and
+strength of the peasant.
+
+The two men made stumbling and embarrassed replies. That tender and
+beautiful quality of chivalry toward women, belonging by nature to
+undefiled manhood, was awakened in them, and as one being, not two,
+they would have laid their all at her feet. This, indeed, they
+literally did. The small, one-room cabin, which had so long served for
+Larry Kildene's palace, was given over entirely to the two women, and
+the men made their own abode in the shed where they had slept.
+
+This they accomplished by creating a new room, by extending the
+roof-covered space Larry had used for his stable and the storing of
+fodder, far enough along under the great overhanging rock to allow of
+comfortable bunks, a place to walk about, and a fireplace also. The
+labor involved in the making of this room was a boon to Harry King.
+
+Upon the old stone boat which Larry had used for a similar purpose he
+hauled stones gathered from the rock ledge and built therewith a
+chimney, and with the few tools in the big man's store he made seats
+out of hewn logs, and a rude table. This work was left to him by the
+older man purposely, while he occupied himself with the gathering in
+of the garden stuff for themselves and for the animals. A matter that
+troubled his good heart not a little was that of providing for the
+coming winter enough food supply for his suddenly acquired family. Of
+grain and fodder he thought he had enough for animals kept in
+idleness, as he still had stores gathered in previous years for his
+own horse. But for these women, he must not allow them to suffer the
+least privation.
+
+It was not the question of food alone that disturbed him. At last he
+laid his troubles before Harry King.
+
+"You know, lad, it won't be so long before the snow will be down on
+us, and I'm thinking what shall we do with them when the long winter
+days set in." He nodded his head toward the cabin. "It's already
+getting too cold for them to sit out of doors as they do. I should
+have windows in my cabin--if I could get the glass up here. They can't
+live there in the darkness, with the snow banked around them, with
+nothing to use their fingers on as women like to do. Now, if they had
+cloth or thread--but what use had I for such things? They're not
+among my stores. I did not lay out to make it a home for women. The
+mother will get farther and farther astray with her dreams if she has
+nothing to do such as women like."
+
+"I think we should ask them--or ask Amalia, she is wise. Have you
+enough to keep them on--of food?"
+
+"Of food, yes. Such as it is. No flour, but plenty of good wheat and
+corn. I always pound it up and bake it, but it is coarse fare for
+women. There's plenty of game for the hunting, and easy got, but it's
+something to think about we'll need, else we'll all go loony."
+
+"You have lived long here alone and seem sound of mind,--except for--"
+Harry King smiled, "except for a certain unworldliness that would pass
+for lunacy in the world below these heights."
+
+"Let alone, son. I've usually had my own way for these years and have
+formed the habit, but I've had my times. At the best it's a sort of
+lunacy that takes a man away from his fellows, especially an Irishman.
+Maybe you'll discover for yourself before we part--but it's not to the
+point now. I'm asking you how we can keep the mother from brooding and
+the daughter happy? She's asking to be sent away to earn money for her
+mother. She thinks she can take her mother with her to the nearest
+place on that new railroad you tell me of, and so on to some town. I
+tell her, no. And if she goes, and leaves her mother here--bless
+you--what would we do with her? Why, the woman would go yonder and
+jump over the cliff."
+
+"Oh, it would never do to listen to her. It would never do for her to
+try living in a city earning her bread--not while--" Harry King paused
+and turned a white, drawn face toward the mountain. Larry watched
+him. "I can do nothing." He threw out his hands with a sudden downward
+movement. "I, a criminal in hiding! My manhood is of no avail! My
+God!"
+
+"Remember, lad, the women have need of you right here. I'm keeping you
+on this mountain at my valuation, not yours. I have need of you, and
+your past is not to intrude in this place, and when you go out in the
+world again, as you will, when the right time comes, you'll know how
+to meet--and face--your life--or death, as a man should.
+
+"Hold yourself with a firm hand, and do the work of the days as they
+come. It's all the Lord gives us to do at any time. If I only had
+books--now,--they would help us,--but where to get them--or how? We'll
+even go and ask the women, as you advise."
+
+They all ate together in the little cabin, as was their habit, a meal
+prepared by Amalia, and carefully set out with all the dishes the
+cabin afforded: so few that there were not enough to serve all at
+once, but eked out by wooden blocks, and small lace serviettes taken
+from Amalia's store of linen. At noon one day Larry Kildene spoke his
+anxieties for their welfare, and cleverly managed to make the theme a
+gay one.
+
+"Where's the use in adopting a family if you don't get society out of
+them? The question I ask is, when the winter shuts us in, what are we
+going to do for sport--work--what you will? It's indoor sport I'm
+meaning, for Harry and I have the hunting and providing in the
+daytime. No, never you ask me what I was doing before you came. I was
+my own master then--"
+
+"And now you are ours? That is good, Sir Kildene. You have to say
+what to do, and me, I accept to do what you advise. Is not?"
+
+Amalia turned to Larry and smiled, and whenever Amalia smiled, her
+mother would smile also, and nod her head as if to approve, although
+she usually sat in silence.
+
+"Yours to command," said Larry, bowing.
+
+"He's master of us all, but it's yours to direct, Lady Amalia."
+
+"Oh, me, Mr. 'Arry. It is better for me I make for you both sufficient
+to eat, so all goes well. I think I have heard men are always pleased
+of much that is excellent to eat and drink."
+
+"Now, listen. We have only a short time before the heavy snows will
+come down on us, and then there will be no chance whatever to get
+supplies of any sort before spring. How far is the road completed now,
+Harry?"
+
+"It should be well past Cheyenne by now. They must be working toward
+Laramie rapidly. If--if--you think best, I will go down and get
+supplies--whatever can be found there."
+
+"No. I have a plan. There's enough for one man to do here finishing
+the jobs I have laid out, but one of us can very well be spared, and
+as you have wakened me from my long sleep, and stirred my old bones to
+life, and as I know best how to travel in this region, I'll take the
+mule along, and go myself. I have a fancy for traveling by rail again.
+You ladies make out a list of all you need, and I'll fill the order,
+in so far as the stations have the articles. If I can't find the right
+things at one station, I may at another, even if I go back East for
+them."
+
+"Ah, but, Sir Kildene, it is that we have no money. If but we could
+get from the wagon the great box, there have we enough of things to
+give us labor for all the winter. It is the lovely lace I make. A
+little of the thread I have here, but not sufficient for long. So,
+too, there is my father's violin. It made me much heart pain to leave
+it--for me, I play a little,--and there is also of cloth such as men
+wear--not of great quantity--but enough that I can make for
+you--something--a little--maybe, Mr. 'Arry he like well some good
+shirt of wool--as we make for our peasant--Is not?" Harry looked down
+on his worn gray shirt sleeves, then into her eyes, and on the instant
+his own fell. She took it for simple embarrassment, and spoke on.
+
+"Yes. To go with us and help us so long and terrible a way, it has
+made very torn your apparel."
+
+"It makes that we improve him, could we obtain the box," said the
+mother, speaking for the first time that day. Her voice was so deep
+and full that it was almost masculine, but her modulations were
+refined and most agreeable.
+
+Amalia laughed for very gladness that her mother at last showed enough
+interest in what was being said to speak.
+
+"Ah, mamma, to improve--it is to make better the mind--the heart--but
+of this has Mr. 'Arry no need. Is not, Sir Kildene? I call you always
+Sir as title to nobleness of character. We have, in our country, to
+inherit title, but here to make it of such character. It is well, I
+think so."
+
+Poor Larry Kildene had his own moment of embarrassment, but with her
+swift appreciation of their moods she talked rapidly on, leaving the
+compliment to fall as it would, and turning their thoughts to the
+subject in hand. "But the box, mamma, it is heavy, and it is far down
+on the terrible plain. If that you should try to obtain it, Sir
+Kildene: Ah, I cannot!--Even to think of the peril is a hurt in my
+heart. It must even lie there."
+
+"And the men 'rouge'--"
+
+"Yes. Of the red men--those Indian--of them I have great fear."
+
+"The danger from them is past, now. If the road is beyond Cheyenne, it
+must have reached Laramie or nearly so, and they would hang around the
+stations, picking up what they can, but the government has them in
+hand as never before. They would not dare interfere with white men
+anywhere near the road. I've dreamed of a railroad to connect the two
+oceans, but never expected to see it in my lifetime. I've taken a
+notion to go and see it--just to look at it,--to try to be reconciled
+to it."
+
+"Reconciled? It is to like it, you mean--Sir Kildene? Is it not
+_won-n-derful_--the achievement?"
+
+"Oh, yes, the achievement, as you say. But other things will follow,
+and the plains will no longer keep men at bay. The money grabbers will
+pour in, and all the scum of creation will flock toward the setting
+sun. Then, too, I shall hate to see the wild animals that have their
+own rights killed in unsportsmanlike manner, and annihilated, as they
+are wherever men can easily reach them. Men are wasteful and bad. I've
+seen things in the wild places of the earth--and in the places where
+men flock together in hoards--and where they think they are most
+civilized, and the result has been what you see here,--a man living
+alone with a horse for companionship, and the voice of the winds and
+the falling water to fill his soul. Go to. Go to."
+
+Larry Kildene rose and stood a moment in the cabin door, then
+sauntered out in the sun, and off toward the fall. He had need to
+think a while alone. His companions knew this necessity was on him,
+and said nothing--only looked at each other, and took up the question
+of their needs for the winter.
+
+"Mr. 'Arry, is it possible to reach with safety a station? I mean is
+time yet to go and return before the snows? Here are no deadly wolves
+as in my own country--but is much else to make dangerous the way."
+
+"There must be time or he would not propose it. I don't know about the
+snows here."
+
+"I have seen that Sir Kildene drinks with most pleasure the coffee,
+but is little left--or not enough for all--to drink it. My mother and
+I we drink with more pleasure the tea, and of tea we ourselves have a
+little. It is possible also I make of things more palatable if I have
+the sugar, but is very little here. I have searched well, the foods
+placed here. Is it that Sir Kildene has other places where are such
+articles?"
+
+"All he has is in the bins against the wall yonder."
+
+"Here is the key he gave me, and I have look well, but is not enough
+to last but for one through all the months of winter. Ah, poor man! We
+have come and eat his food like the wolves of the wild country at
+home, is not? I have make each day of the coffee for him, yes, a good
+drink, and for you not so good--forgive,--but for me and my mother,
+only to pretend, that it might last for him. It is right so. We have
+gone without more than to have no coffee, and this is not privation.
+To have too much is bad for the soul."
+
+Amalia's mother seemed to have withdrawn herself from them and
+sat gazing into the smoking logs, apparently not hearing their
+conversation. Harry King for the second time that day looked in
+Amalia's eyes. It was a moment of forgetfulness. He had forbidden
+himself this privilege except when courtesy demanded.
+
+"You forgive--that I put--little coffee in your drink?"
+
+"Forgive? Forgive?"
+
+He murmured questioningly as if he hardly comprehended her meaning, as
+indeed he did not. His mind was going over the days since first he saw
+her, toiling to gather enough sagebrush to cook a drop of tea for her
+father, and striving to conceal from him that she, herself, was taking
+none, and barely tasting her hard biscuit that there might be enough
+to keep life in her parents. As she sat before him now, in her worn,
+mended, dark dress with the wonderful lace at the throat, and her thin
+hands lying on the crimson-bordered kerchief in her lap,--her fingers
+playing with the fringe, he still looked in her eyes and murmured,
+"Forgive?"
+
+"Ah, Mr. 'Arry, your mind is sleeping and has gone to dream. Listen to
+me. If one goes to the plain, quickly he must go. I make with haste
+this naming of things to eat. It is sad we must always eat--eat. In
+heaven maybe is not so." She wandered a moment about the cabin, then
+laughed for the second time. "Is no paper on which to write."
+
+"There is no need of paper; he'll remember. Just mention them over.
+Coffee,--is there any tea beside that you have?"
+
+"No, but no need. I name it not."
+
+"Tea is light and easily brought. What else?"
+
+"And paper. I ask for that but for me to write my little romance of
+all this--forgive--it is for occupation in the long winter. You also
+must write of your experiences--perhaps--of your history of--of--You
+like it not? Why, Mr. 'Arry! It is to make work for the mind. The mind
+must work--work--or die. The hands--well. I make lace with the
+hands--but for the mind is music--or the books--but here are no
+books--good--we make them. So, paper I ask, and of crayon--Alas! It is
+in the box! What to do?"
+
+"Listen. We'll have that box, and bring it here on the mountain. I'll
+get it."
+
+"Ah, no! No. Will you break my heart?" She seized his arm and looked
+in his eyes, her own brimming with tears. Then she flung up her arms
+in her dramatic way, and covered her eyes. "I can see it all so
+terrible. If you should go there and the Indian strike you dead--or
+the snow come too soon and kill you with the cold--in the great drift
+lying white--all the terrible hours never to see you again--Ah, no!"
+
+In that instant his heart leaped toward her and the blood roared in
+his ears. He would have clasped her to him, but he only stood rigidly
+still. "Hands off, murderer!" The words seemed shouted at him by his
+own conscience. "I would rather die--than that you should not have
+your box," was all he said, and left the cabin. He, too, had need to
+think things out alone.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XVIII
+
+LARRY KILDENE'S STORY
+
+
+"Man, but this is none so bad--none so bad."
+
+Larry Kildene sat on a bench before a roaring fire in the room added
+on to the fodder shed. The chimney which Harry King had built,
+although not quite completed to its full height, was being tried for
+the first time, as the night was too cold for comfort in the long, low
+shed without fire, and the men had come down early this evening to
+talk over their plans before Larry should start down the mountain in
+the morning. They had heaped logs on the women's fire and seen that
+all was right for them, and with cheerful good-nights had left them to
+themselves.
+
+Now, as they sat by their own fire, Harry could see Amalia by hers,
+seated on a low bench of stone, close to the blazing torch of pine, so
+placed that its smoke would be drawn up the large chimney. It was all
+the light they had for their work in the evenings, other than the
+firelight. He could see her fingers moving rapidly and mechanically at
+some pretty open-work pattern, and now and then grasping deftly at the
+ball of fine white thread that seemed to be ever taking little leaps,
+and trying to roll into the fire, or out over the cabin floor. She
+used a fine, slender needle and seemed to be performing some delicate
+magic with her fingers. Was she one of the three fates continually
+drawing out the thread of his life and weaving therewith a charmed
+web? And if so--when would she cease?
+
+"It's a good job and draws well."
+
+"The chimney? Yes, it seems to." Harry roused himself and tried to
+close his mind against the warm, glowing picture. "Yes--yes. It draws
+well. I'm inclined to be a bit proud, although I never could have done
+it if you had not given me the lessons."
+
+"It's art, my boy. To build a good fireplace is just that. Did you
+ever think that the whole world--and the welfare of it--centers just
+around that;--the fireplace and the hearth--or what stands for it in
+these days--maybe a little hole in the wall with a smudge of coal in
+it, as they have in the towns--but it's the hearth and the cradle
+beside it--and--the mother."
+
+Larry's voice died almost to a whisper, and his chin dropped on his
+breast, and his eyes gazed on the burning logs; and Harry, sitting
+beside him, gazed also at the same logs, but the pictures wrought in
+the alchemy of their souls were very different.
+
+To Harry it was a sweet, oval face--a flush from the heat of the fire
+more on the smooth cheek that was toward it than on the other, and
+warm flame flashes in the large eyes that looked up at him from time
+to time, while the slender figure bent a little forward to see the
+better, as the wonderful hands kept up the never ceasing motion. A
+white linen cloth spread over her lap cast a clearer, more rosy light
+under her chin and brought out the strength of it and the delicate
+curves of it, which Harry longed even to dare to look upon in the
+rarest stolen intervals, without the clamor and outcry in his heart.
+It was always the same--the cry of Cain in the wilderness. Would God
+it might some day cease! What to him might be the hearth fire and the
+cradle, and the mother, that the big man should dwell on them thus?
+What had they meant in Larry Kildene's life, he who had lived for
+twenty years the life of a hermit, and had forsworn women forever, as
+he said?
+
+"I tell ye, lad, there's a thing I would say to you--before I leave,
+but it's sore to touch upon." Harry made a deprecating gesture. "No,
+it's best I tell you. I--I'll come back--never fear--it's my plan to
+come back, but in this life you may count on nothing for a surety.
+I've learned that, and to prove it, look at me. I made sure, never
+would I open my heart again to think on my fellow beings, but as
+aliens to my life, and I've lived it out for twenty years, and thought
+to hold out to the end. I held the Indians at bay through their
+superstitions, and they would no more dare to cross my path with
+hostile intent than they would dare take their chances over that fall
+above there. Where did I put my pipe? I can't seem to find things as I
+did in the cabin."
+
+"Here it is, sir. I placed that stone further out at the end of the
+chimney on purpose for it, and in this side I've left a hole for your
+tobacco. I thought I was very clever doing that."
+
+"And we'd be fine and cozy here in the winter--if it wer'n't for the
+women--a--a--now I'm blundering. I'd never turn them out if they lived
+there the rest of their days. But to have a lad beside me as I might
+have had--if you'd said, 'Here it is, father,' but now, it would have
+have been music to me. You see, Harry, I forswore the women harder
+than I did the men, and it's the longing for the son I held in my
+arms an hour and then gave up, that has lived in me all these years.
+The mother--gone--The son I might have had."
+
+"I can't say that--to you. I have a curse on me, and it will stay
+until I have paid for my crime. But I'll be more to you than sons are
+to their fathers. I'll be faithful to you as a dog to his master, and
+love you more. I'll live for you even with the curse on me, and if
+need be, I'll die for you."
+
+"It's enough. I'll ask you no more. Have you no curiosity to hear what
+I have to tell you?"
+
+"I have, indeed I have. But it seems I can't ask it--unless I'm able
+to return your confidence. To talk of my sorrow only deepens it. It
+drives me wild."
+
+"You'll have it yet to learn, that nothing helps a sorrow that can't
+be helped like bearing it. I don't mean to lie down under it like a
+dumb beast--but just take it up and bear it. That's what you're doing
+now, and sometime you'll be able to carry it, and still laugh now and
+again, when it's right to laugh--and even jest, on occasion. It's been
+done and done well. It's good for a man to do it. The lass down there
+at the cabin is doing it--and the mother is not. She's living in the
+past. Maybe she can't help it."
+
+"When I first came on them out there in the desert, she seemed brave
+and strong. He was a poor, crippled man, with enormous vitality and a
+leonine head. The two women adored him and lived only for him, and he
+never knew it. He lived for an ideal and would have died for it. He
+did not speak English as well as they. I used to wish I could
+understand him, for he had a poet's soul, and eyes like his
+daughter's. He seemed to carry some secret with him, and no doubt was
+followed about the world as he thought he was. Fleeing myself, I could
+not know, but from things the mother has dropped, they must have seen
+terrible times together, she and her husband."
+
+"A wonderful deal of poetry and romance always clung to the names of
+Poland and Hungary for me. When I was young, our part of the world
+thrilled at the name of Kosciuszko and Kossuth. I'd give a good deal
+to know what this man's secret was. All those old tales of mystery,
+like 'The Man with the Iron Mask,' and stories of noblemen spirited
+away to Siberia, of men locked for many years in dungeons, like the
+'Prisoner of Chillon,' which fired the fancy and genius of Byron
+and sent him to fight for the oppressed, used to fill my dreams."
+Larry talked on as if to himself. It seemed as if it were a habit
+formed when he had only himself with whom to visit, and Harry was
+interested.
+
+"Now, to almost come upon a man of real ideals and a secret,--and just
+miss it. I ought to have been out in the world doing some work worth
+while--with my miserable, broken life--Boy! I knew that man McBride! I
+knew him for sure. We were in college together. He left Oxford to go
+to Russia, wild with the spirit of adventure and something more. He
+was a dreamer--with a practical turn, too. There, no doubt, he met
+these people. I judge this Manovska must have been in the diplomatic
+service of Poland, from what Amalia told us. Have you any idea whether
+that woman sitting there all day long rapt in her own thoughts knows
+her husband's secret? Is it a thing any one now living would care to
+know?"
+
+"Indeed, yes. They lived in terror of the prince who hounded him over
+the world. The mother trusted no one, but Amalia told me--enough--all
+she knows herself. I don't know if the mother has the secret or not,
+but at least she guesses it. The poor man was trying to live until he
+could impart his knowledge to the right ones to bring about an
+upheaval that would astonish the world. It meant revolution, whatever
+it was. Amalia imagines it was to place a Polish king on the throne of
+Russia, but she does not know. She told me of stolen records of a
+Polish descendant of Catherine II of Russia. She thinks they were
+brought to her father after he came to this country."
+
+"If he had such knowledge or even thought he had, it was enough to set
+them on his track all his life; the wonder is that he was let to live
+at all."
+
+"The mother never mentioned it, but Amalia told me. We talked more
+freely out in the desert. That remarkable woman walked at her
+husband's side over all the terrible miles to Siberia, and through her
+he escaped,--and of the horrors of those years she never would speak,
+even to her daughter. It's not to be wondered at that her mind is
+astray. It's only a wonder that she is for the most part so calm."
+
+"Well, the grave holds many a mystery, and what a fascination a
+mystery has for humanity, savage or civilized! I've kept the Indians
+at bay all this time by that means. They fear--they know not what, and
+the mystery holds them. Now, for ourselves, I leave you for a little
+while in charge of--the women--and of all my possessions." Larry,
+gazing into the blazing logs, smiled. "You may not think so much of
+them, but it's not so little now. Talk about lunacy--man, I
+understand it. I've been a lunatic--for--ever since I made a find here
+in this mountain."
+
+He paused and mused a while, and Harry's thoughts dwelt for the time
+on his own find in the wing of the cabin, where the firewood was
+stored. The ring and the chest--he had not forgotten them, but by no
+means would he mention them.
+
+"You may wonder why I should tell you this, but when I'm through,
+you'll know. It all came about because of a woman." Larry Kildene cast a
+sidelong glance at Harry, and the glance was keen and saw more than the
+younger man dreamed. "It's more often so than any other way--almost always
+because of a woman. Her name may be anything--Mary--Elizabeth,--but, a
+woman. This one's name was Katherine. Not like the Katherine of
+Shakespeare, but the sweetest--the tenderest mother-woman the Lord ever
+gave to man. I see her there in the fire. I've seen her there these many
+years. Well, she was twin sister to the man who hated me. He hated
+me--for why, I don't know--perhaps because he never could influence
+me. He would make all who cared for him bow before his will.
+
+"When I first saw her, she lived in his home. He was a banker of
+means,--not wholly of his own getting, but partly so. His father was a
+man of thrift and saving--anyway, he came to set too much store by
+money. Sometimes I think he might have been jealous of me because I
+had the Oxford training, and wished me to feel that wealth was a
+greater thing to have. Scotchmen think more of education than we of
+Ireland. It's a good thing, of course, but I'd never have looked down
+on him because he went lacking it. But for some indiscretion maybe I
+would have had money, too. It was spent too lavishly on me in my
+youth. But no. I had none--only the experience and the knowledge of
+what it might bring.
+
+"Well, it came about that I came to America to gain the money I
+lacked, and having learned a bit, in spite of Oxford and the schools,
+of a practical nature, I took a position in his bank. All was very
+well until I met her. Now there were the rosy cheeks and the dark hair
+for you! She looked more like an Irish lass than a Scotch one. But
+they're not so different, only that the Irish are for the most part
+comelier.
+
+"Now this banker had a very sweet wife, and she was kind to the Irish
+lad and welcomed him to her house. I'm thinking she liked me a bit--I
+liked her at all events. She welcomed me to her house until she was
+forbid. It was after they forbid me the house that I took to walking
+with Katherine, when all thought she was at Sunday School or visiting
+a neighbor, or even--at the last--when no other time could be
+stolen--when they thought her in bed. We walked there by the river
+that flows by the town of Leauvite."
+
+Again Larry Kildene paused and shot a swift glance at the young man
+at his side, and noted the drawn lids and blanched face, but he kept
+on. "In the moonlight we walked--lad--the ground there is holy now,
+because she walked upon it. We used to go to a high bluff that
+made a sheer fall to the river below--and there we used to stand and
+tell each other--things we dreamed--of the life we should live
+together--Ah, that life! She has spent it in heaven. I--I--have
+spent the most of it here." He did not look at Harry King again. His
+voice shook, but he continued. "After a time her brother got to
+know about it, and he turned me from the bank, and sent her to live
+with his father's sisters in Scotland.
+
+"Kind old ladies, but unmarried, and too old for such a lass. How
+could they know the heart of a girl who loved a man? It was I who knew
+that. What did her brother know--her own twin brother? Nothing,
+because he could see only his own thoughts, never hers, and thought
+his thoughts were enough for wife or girl. I tell you, lad, men err
+greatly in that, and right there many of the troubles of life step in.
+The old man, her father, had left all his money to his son, but with
+the injunction that she was to be provided for, all her days, of his
+bounty. It's a mean way to treat a woman--because--see? She has no
+right to her thoughts, and her heart is his to dispose of where he
+wills--not as she wills--and then comes the trouble.
+
+"I ask you, lad, if you loved a girl as fine as silk and as tender as
+a flower you could crush in your hand with a touch ungentle, and you
+saw one holding her with that sort of a touch,--even if it was meant
+in love,--I'll not be unjust, he loved her as few love their
+sisters--but he could not grasp her thus; I ask you what would you
+do?"
+
+"If I were a true man, and had a right to my manhood, I would take
+her. I'd follow her to the ends of the earth."
+
+"Right, my son--I did that. I took the little money I had from my
+labor at the bank--all I had saved, and I went bravely to those two
+old women--her aunts, and they turned me from their door. It was what
+they had been enjoined to do. They said I was after the money and
+without conscience or thrift. With the Scotch, often, the confusion is
+natural between thrift and conscience. Ah, don't I know! If a man is
+prosperous, he may hold out his hand to a maid and say 'Come,' and all
+her relatives will cry 'Go,' and the marriage bells will ring. If he
+is a happy Irishman with a shrunken purse, let his heart be loving and
+true and open as the day, they will spurn him forth. For food and
+raiment will they sell a soul, and for household gear will they clip
+the wings of the little god, and set him out in the cold.
+
+"But the arrow had entered Katherine's heart, and I knew and bided my
+time. They saw no more of me, but I knew all her goings and comings. I
+found her one day on the moor, with her collie, and her cheeks had
+lost their color, and her gray eyes looked in my face with their tears
+held back, like twin lakes under a cloud before a storm falls. I took
+her in my arms, and we kissed. The collie looked on and wagged his
+tail. It was all the approval we ever got from the family, but he was
+a knowing dog.
+
+"Well, then we walked hand in hand to a village, and it was near
+nightfall, and we went straight to a magistrate and were married. I
+had a little coin with me, and we stayed all night at an inn. There
+was a great hurrying and scurrying all night over the moors for her,
+but we knew naught of it, for we lay sleeping in each other's arms as
+care free and happy as birds. If she wept a little, I comforted her.
+In the morning we went to the great house where the aunts lived in the
+town, and there, with her hand in mine, I told them, and the storm
+broke. It was the disgrace of having been married clandestinely by a
+magistrate that cut them most to the heart; and yet, what did they
+think a man would do? And they cried upon her: 'We trusted you. We
+trusted you.' And all the reply she made was: 'You thought I'd never
+dare, but I love him.' Yes, love makes a woman's heart strong.
+
+"Well, then, nothing would do, but they must have in the minister and
+see us properly married. After that we stayed never a night in their
+house, but I took her to Ireland to my grandfather's home. It was a
+terrible year in Ireland, for the poverty was great, and while my
+grandfather was well-to-do, as far as that means in Ireland, it was
+very little they had that year for helping the poor." Larry Kildene
+glanced no more at Harry King, but looked only in the fire, where the
+logs had fallen in a glowing heap. His pipe was out, but he still held
+it in his hand.
+
+"It was little I could do. I had my education, and could repeat poems
+and read Latin, but that would not feed hungry peasant children. I
+went out on the land and labored with the men, and gave of my little
+patrimony to keep the old folks, but it was too small for them all, so
+at last I yielded to Katherine's importunities, and she wrote to her
+brother for help--not for her and me, mind you.
+
+"It was for the poor in Ireland she wrote, and she let me read it. It
+was a sweet letter, asking forgiveness for her willfulness, yet saying
+she must even do the same thing again if it were to do over again. She
+pleaded only for the starving in the name of Christ. She asked only if
+a little of that portion which should be hers might be sent her, and
+that because he was her only brother and twin, and like part of her
+very self--she turned it so lovingly--I never could tell you with what
+skill--but she had the way--yes. But what did it bring?
+
+"He was a canny, canny Scot, although brought up in America. Only for
+the times when his mother would take him back to Aberdeen with my
+Katherine for long visits, he never saw Scotland, but what's in the
+blood holds fast through life. He was a canny Scot. It takes a time
+for letters to go and come, and in those days longer than now, when in
+two weeks one may reach the other side. The reply came as speedily as
+those days would admit, and it was carefully considered. Ah, Peter was
+a clever man to bring about his own way. Never a word did he say about
+forgiveness. It was as if no breach had ever been, but one thing I
+noticed that she thought must be only an omission, because of the more
+important things that crowded it out. It was that never once did he
+mention me any more than if I had never existed. He said he would send
+her a certain sum of money--and it was a generous one, that is but
+just to admit--if when she received it she would take another sum,
+which he would also send, and return to them. He said his home was
+hers forever if she wished, and that he loved her, and had never had
+other feeling for her than love. Upon this letter came a long time of
+pleading with me--and I was ever soft--with her. She won her way.
+
+"'We will both go, Larry, dear,' she said. 'I know he forgot to say
+you might come, too. If he loves me as he says, he would not break my
+heart by leaving you out.'
+
+"'He sends only enough for one--for you,' I said.
+
+"'Yes, but he thinks you have enough to come by yourself. He thinks
+you would not accept it--and would not insult you by sending more.'
+
+"'He insults me by sending enough for you, dear. If I have it for me,
+I have it for you--most of all for you, or I'm no true man. If I have
+none for you--then we have none.'
+
+"'Larry, for love of me, let me go--for the gulf between my twin
+brother and me will never be passed until I go to him.' And this was
+true enough. 'I will make them love you. Hester loves you now. She
+will help me.' Hester was the sweet wife of her brother. So she clung
+to me, and her hands touched me and caressed me--lad, I feel them now.
+I put her on the boat, and the money he sent relieved the suffering
+around me, and I gave thanks with a sore heart. It was for them, our
+own peasantry, and for her, I parted with her then, but as soon as I
+could I sold my little holding near my grandfather's house to an
+Englishman who had long wanted it, and when it was parted with, I took
+the money and delayed not a day to follow her.
+
+"I wrote to her, telling her when and where to meet me in the little
+town of Leauvite, and it was on the bluff over the river. I went to a
+home I knew there--where they thought well of me--I think. In the
+evening I walked up the long path, and there under the oak trees at
+the top where we had been used to sit, I waited. She came to me,
+walking in the golden light. It was spring. The whip-poor-wills called
+and replied to each other from the woods. A mourning dove spoke to its
+mate among the thick trees, low and sad, but it is only their way. I
+was glad, and so were they.
+
+"I held her in my arms, and the river sang to us. She told me all over
+again the love in her heart for me, as she used to tell it. Lad! There
+is only one theme in the world that is worth telling. There is only
+one song in the universe that is worth singing, and when your heart
+has once sung it aright, you will never sing another. The air was soft
+and sweet around us, and we stayed until a town clock struck twelve;
+then I took her back, and, as she was not strong, part of the way I
+carried her in my arms. I left her at her brother's door, and she went
+into the shadows there, and I was left outside,--all but my heart. She
+had been home so short a time--her brother was not yet reconciled, but
+she said she knew he would be. For me, I vowed I would make money
+enough to give her a home that would shame him for the poverty of his
+own--his, which he thought the finest in the town."
+
+For a long time there was silence, and Larry Kildene sat with his head
+drooped on his breast. At last he took up the thread where he had left
+it. "Two days later I stood in the heavy parlor of that house,--I
+stood there with their old portraits looking down on me, and my heart
+was filled with ice--ice and fire. I took what they placed in my arms,
+and it was--my--little son, but it might have been a stone. It weighed
+like lead in my arms, that ached with its weight. Might I see her? No.
+Was she gone? Yes. I laid the weight on the pillow held out to me for
+it, and turned away. Then Hester came and laid her hand on my arm, but
+my flesh was numb. I could not feel her touch.
+
+"'Give him to me, Larry,' she was saying. 'I will love him like my
+own, and he will be a brother to my little son.' And I gave him into
+her arms, although I knew even then that he would be brought up to
+know nothing of his father, as if I had never lived. I gave him into
+her arms because he had no mother and his father's heart had gone out
+of him. I gave him into her arms, because I felt it was all I could
+do to let his mother have the comfort of knowing that he was not
+adrift with me--if they do know where she is. For her sake most of all
+and for the lad's sake I left him there.
+
+"Then I knocked about the world a while, and back in Ireland I could
+not stay, for the haunting thought of her. I could bide nowhere. Then
+the thought took me that I would get money and take my boy back. A
+longing for him grew in my heart, and it was all the thought I had,
+but until I had money I would not return. I went to find a mine of
+gold. Men were flying West to become rich through the finding of mines
+of gold, and I joined them. I tried to reach a spot that has since
+been named Higgins' Camp, for there it was rumored that gold was to be
+found in plenty, and missed it. I came here, and here I stayed."
+
+Now the big man rose to his feet, and looked down on the younger one.
+He looked kindly. Then, as if seized and shaken by a torrent of
+impulses which he was trying to hold in check, he spoke tremulously
+and in suppressed tones.
+
+"I longed for my son, but I tell you this, because there is a strange
+thing which grasps a man's soul when he finds gold--as I found it. I
+came to love it for its own sake. I lived here and stored it up--until
+I am rich--you may not find many men so rich. I could go back and buy
+that bank that was Peter Craigmile's pride--" His voice rose, but he
+again suppressed it. "I could buy that pitiful little bank a hundred
+times over. And she--is--gone. I tried to keep her and the remembrance
+of her in my mind above the gold, but it was like a lunacy upon me. At
+the last--until I found you there on the verge of death--the gold was
+always first in my mind, and the triumph of having it. I came to
+glory in it, and I worked day after day, and often in the night by
+torches, and all I gathered I hid, and when I was too weary to work, I
+sat and handled it and felt it fall through my fingers.
+
+"A woman in England--Miss Evans, by name, only she writes under the
+name of a man, George Eliot--has written a tale of a poor weaver who
+came to love his little horde of gold as if it were alive and human.
+It's a strong tale, that. A good one. Well, I came to understand what
+the poor little weaver felt. Summer and winter, day and night, week
+days and Sundays--and I was brought up to keep the Sunday like a
+Christian should--all were the same to me, just one long period for
+the getting together of gold. After a time I even forgot what I wanted
+the gold for in the first place, and thought only of getting it, more
+and more and more.
+
+"This is a confession, lad. I tremble to think what would have been on
+my soul had I done what I first thought of doing when that horse of
+yours called me. He was calling for you--no doubt, but the call came
+from heaven itself for me, and the temptation came. It was, to stay
+where I was and know nothing. I might have done that, too, if it were
+not for the selfish reasons that flashed through my mind, even as the
+temptation seized it. It was that there might be those below who were
+climbing to my home--to find me out and take from me my gold. I knew
+there were prospectors all over, seeking for what I had found, and how
+could I dare stay in my cabin and be traced by a stray horse wandering
+to my door? Three coldblooded, selfish murders would now be resting on
+my soul. It's no use for a man to shut his eyes and say 'I didn't
+know.' It's his business to know. When you speak of the 'Curse of
+Cain,' think what I might be bearing now, and remember, if a man
+repents of his act, there's mercy for him. So I was taught, and so I
+believe.
+
+"When I looked in your face, lying there in my bunk, then I knew that
+mercy had been shown me, and for this, here is the thing I mean to do.
+It is to show my gold and the mine from which it came to you--"
+
+"No, no! I can't bear it. I must not know." Harry King threw up his
+hands as if in fright and rose, trembling in every limb.
+
+"Man, what ails you?"
+
+"Don't. Don't put temptation in my way that I may not be strong enough
+to resist."
+
+"I say, what ails you? It's a good thing, rightly used. It may help
+you to a way out of your trouble. If I never return--I will, mind
+you,--but we never know--if not, my life will surely not have been
+spent for naught. You, now, are all I have on earth besides the gold.
+It was to have been my son's, and it is yours. It might as well have
+been left in the heart of the mountain, else."
+
+"Better. The longer I think on it, the more I see that there is no
+hope for me, no true repentance,--" Again that expression on Harry
+King's face filled Larry's heart with deep pity. An inward terror
+seemed to convulse his features and throw a pallor as of age and years
+of sorrow into his visage. Then he continued, after a moment of
+self-mastery: "No true repentance for me but to go back and take the
+punishment. For this winter I will live here in peace, and do for
+Madam Manovska and her daughter what I can, and anything I can do for
+you,--then I must return and give myself up. The gold only holds out
+a worldly hope to me, and makes what I must do seem harder. I am
+afraid of it."
+
+"I'll make you a promise that if I return I'll not let you have it,
+but that it shall be turned to some good work. If I do not return, it
+will rest on your conscience that before you make your confession, you
+shall see it well placed for a charity. You'll have to find the
+charity, I can't say what it should be offhand now, but come with me.
+I must tell some man living my secret, and you're the only one.
+Besides--I trust you. Surely I do."
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XIX
+
+THE MINE--AND THE DEPARTURE
+
+
+Larry Kildene went around behind the stall where he kept his own horse
+and returned with a hollow tube of burnt clay about a foot long. Into
+this he thrust a pine knot heavy with pitch, and, carrying a bunch of
+matches in his hand, he led the way back of the fodder.
+
+"I made these clay handles for my torches myself. They are my
+invention, and I am quite proud of them. You can hold this burning
+knot until it is quite consumed, and that's a convenience." He stooped
+and crept under the fodder, and then Harry King saw why he kept more
+there than his horse could eat, and never let the store run low. It
+was to conceal the opening of a long, low passage that might at first
+be taken for a natural cave under the projecting mass of rock above
+them, which formed one side and part of the roof of the shed.
+Quivering with excitement, although sad at heart, Harry King followed
+his guide, who went rapidly forward, talking and explaining as he
+went. Under his feet the way was rough and made frequent turns, and
+for the most part seemed to climb upward.
+
+"There you see it. I discovered a vein of ore back there at the place
+we entered, and assayed it and found it rich, and see how I worked
+it out! Here it seemed to end, and then I was still sane enough to
+think I had enough gold for my life; I left the digging for a
+while, and went to find my boy. I learned that he was living and had
+gone into the army with his cousin, and I knew we would be of little
+use to each other then, but reasoned that the time was to come when
+the war would be over, and then he would have to find a place for
+himself, and his father's gold would help. However it was--I saw I
+must wait. Sit here a bit on this ledge, I want to tell you, but not
+in self-justification, mind you, not that.
+
+"I had been in India, and had had my fill of wars and fighting. I
+had no mind to it. I went off and bought stores and seed, and
+thought I would make more of my garden and not show myself again in
+Leauvite until my boy was back. It was in my thought, if the lad
+survived the army, to send for him and give him gold to hold his
+head above--well--to start him in life, and let him know his
+father,--but when I returned, the great madness came on me.
+
+"I had built the shed and stabled my horse there, and purposely
+located my cabin below. The trail up here from the plain is a blind
+one, because of the wash from the hills at times, and I didn't fear
+much from white men,--still I concealed my tracks like this. Gold
+often turns men into devils."
+
+He was silent for a time, and Harry King wondered much why he had made
+no further effort to find his son before making to himself the offer
+he had, but he dared not question him, and preferred to let Larry take
+his own way of telling what he would. As if divining his thought Larry
+said quietly: "Something held me back from going down again to find my
+son. The way is long, and in the old way of traveling over the plains
+it would take a year or more to make the journey and return here, and
+somehow a superstition seized me that my boy would set out sometime to
+find me, and I would make the way easy for him to do it. And here on
+the mountain the years slip by like a long sleep."
+
+He began moving the torch about to show the walls of the cave in which
+they sat, and as he did so he threw the light strongly on the young
+man's face, and scrutinized it sharply. He saw again that terrible
+look of sadness as if his soul were dying within him. He saw great
+drops of sweat on his brow, and his eyes narrowed and fixed, and he
+hurried on with the narrative. He could not bear the sight.
+
+"Now here, look how this hole widens out? Here was where I prospected
+about to find the vein again, and there is where I took it up. All
+this overhead is full of gold. Think what it would mean if a man had
+the right apparatus for getting it out--I mean separating it! I only
+took what was free; that is, what could be easily freed from the
+quartz. Sometimes I found it in fine nuggets, and then I would go
+wild, and work until I was so weak I could hardly crawl back to the
+entrance. I often lay down here and slept with fatigue before I could
+get back and cook my supper."
+
+As they went on a strange roaring seemed gradually to fill the
+passage, and Harry spoke for the first time since they had entered. He
+feared the sound of his own voice, as though if he began to speak, he
+might scream out, or reveal something he was determined to hide. He
+thought the roaring sound might be in his own ears from the surging of
+blood in his veins and the tumultuous beating of his heart.
+
+"What is it I hear? Is my head right?"
+
+"The roaring? Yes, you're all right. I thought when I was working
+here and slowly burrowing farther and farther that it might be the
+lack of air, and tried to contrive some way of getting it from the
+outside. I thought all the time that I was working farther into the
+mountain, and that I would have to stop or die here like a rat in a
+hole. But you just wait. You'll be surprised in a minute."
+
+Then Harry laughed, and the laugh, unexpected to himself, woke him
+from the trancelike feeling that possessed him, and he walked more
+steadily. "I've been being more surprised each minute. Am I in
+Aladdin's cave--or whose is it?"
+
+"Only mine. Just one more turn here and then--! It was not in the
+night I came here, and it was not all at once, as you are coming--hold
+on! Let me go in front of you. The hole was made gradually, until, one
+morning about ten o'clock, a great mass of rock--gold bearing, I tell
+you--rich in nuggets--I was crazed to lose it--fell out into space,
+and there I stood on the very verge of eternity."
+
+They rounded the turn as he talked, and Larry Kildene stood forward
+under the stars and waved the torch over his head and held Harry back
+from the edge with his other hand. The air over their heads was sweet
+and pure and cold, and full of the roar of falling water. They could
+see it in a long, vast ribbon of luminous whiteness against the black
+abyss--moving--and waving--coming out from nothingness far above them,
+and reaching down to the nethermost depths--in that weird gloom of
+night--into nothingness again.
+
+Harry stepped back, and back, into the hole from which they had
+emerged, and watched his companion stand holding the torch, which lit
+his features with a deep red light until he looked as if he might be
+the very alchemist of gold--red gold--and turning all he looked upon
+into the metal which closes around men's hearts. The red light flashed
+on the white ribbon of water, and this way and that, as he waved it
+around, on the sides of the passage behind him, turning each point of
+projecting rock into red gold.
+
+"Do you know where we are? No. We're right under the fall--right
+behind it. No one can ever see this hole from the outside. It is as
+completely hidden as if the hand of the Almighty were stretched over
+it. The rush of this body of water always in front of it keeps the air
+in the passage always pure. It's wonderful--wonderful!"
+
+He turned to look at Harry, and saw a wild man crouched in the
+darkness of the passage, glaring, and preparing to leap. He seized and
+shook him. "What ails you, man? Hold on. Hold on. Keep your head, I
+say. There! I've got you. Turn about. Now! It's over now. That's
+enough. It won't come again."
+
+Harry moaned. "Oh, let me go. Let me get away from it."
+
+The big man still gripped him and held him with his face toward the
+darkness. "Tell me what you see," he commanded.
+
+Still Harry moaned, and sank upon his knees. "Lord, forgive,
+forgive!"
+
+"Tell me what you see," Larry still commanded. He would try to break
+up this vision seeing.
+
+"God! It is the eye. It follows me. It is gone." He heaved a great
+sigh of relief, but still remained upon his knees, quivering and weak.
+"Did you see it? You must have seen it."
+
+"I saw nothing, and you saw nothing. It's in your brain, and your
+brain is sick. You must heal it. You must stop it. Stand now, and
+conquer it."
+
+Harry stood, shivering. "I wanted to end it. It would have been so
+easy, and all over so soon," he murmured.
+
+"And you would die a coward, and so add one more crime to the first.
+You'd shirk a duty, and desert those who need you. You'd leave me in
+the lurch, and those women dependent on me--wake up--"
+
+"I'm awake. Let's go away." Harry put his hand to his forehead and
+wiped away the cold drops that stood out like glistening beads of
+blood in the red light of the torch.
+
+Larry grieved for him, in spite of the harshness of his words and
+tone, and taking him by the elbow, he led him kindly back into the
+passage.
+
+"Don't trouble about me now," Harry said at last. "You've given me a
+thought to clutch to--if you really do need me--if I could believe
+it."
+
+"Well, you may! Didn't you say you'd do for me more than sons do
+for their fathers? I ask you to do just that for me. Live for me. It's
+a hard thing to ask of you, for, as you say, the other would be
+easier, but it's a coward's way. Don't let it tempt you. Stand to
+your guns like a man, and if the time comes and you can't see things
+differently, go back and make your confession and die the death--as
+a brave man should. Meantime, live to some purpose and do it
+cheerfully." Larry paused. His words sank in, as he meant they should.
+He guided Harry slowly back to the place from which they had diverged,
+his arm across the younger man's shoulder.
+
+"Now I've more to show you. When I saw what I had done, I set myself
+to find another vein, and see this large room? I groveled all about
+here, this way and that. A year of this, see. It took patience, and in
+the meantime I went out into the world--as far as San Francisco, and
+wasted a year or more; then back I came.
+
+"I tell you there is a lure in the gold, and the mountains are powers
+of peace to a man. It seemed there was no other place where I could
+rest in peace of mind. The longing for my son was on me,--but the war
+still raged, and I had no mind for that,--yet I was glad my boy was
+taking his part in the world out of which I had dropped. For one thing
+it seemed as if he were more my own than if he lived in Leauvite on
+the banker's bounty. I would not go back there and meet the contempt
+of Peter Craigmile, for he never could forget that I had taken his
+sister out of hand, and she gone--man--it was all too sad. How did I
+know how my son had been taught to think on me? I could not go back
+when I would.
+
+"His name was Richard--my boy's. If he came alive from the army I do
+not know,--See? Here is where I found another vein, and I have
+followed it on there to the end of this other branch of the passage,
+and not exhausted it yet. Here's maybe another twenty years' work for
+some man. Now, wasn't it a great work for one man alone, to tunnel
+through that rock to the fall? No one man needs all that wealth. I've
+often thought of Ireland and the poverty we left there. If I had my
+boy to hearten me, I could do something for them now. We'll go back
+and sleep, for it's the trail for me to-morrow, and to go and come
+quickly, before the snow falls. Come!"
+
+They returned in silence to the shed. The torch had burned well down
+into the clay handle, and Larry Kildene extinguished the last sparks
+before they crept through the fodder to their room in the shed. The
+fire of logs was almost out, and the place growing cold.
+
+"You'll find the gold in a strong box made of hewn logs, buried in the
+ground underneath the wood in the addition to the cabin. There's no
+need to go to it yet, not until you need money. I'll show you how I
+prepare it for use, in the morning. I do it in the room I made there
+near the fall. It's the most secret place a man ever had for such
+work."
+
+Larry stretched himself in his bunk and was soon sleeping soundly. Not
+so the younger man. He could not compose himself after the excitement
+of the evening. He tossed and turned until morning found him weary and
+worn, but with his troubled mind more at rest than it had been for
+many months. He had fought out his battle, at least for the time
+being, and was at peace.
+
+Harry King rose and went out into the cold morning air and was
+refreshed. He brought in a large handful of pine cones and made a
+roaring fire in the chimney he had built, before Larry roused himself.
+Then he, too, went out and surveyed the sky with practiced eye.
+
+"Clear and cool--that argues well for me. If it were warm, now, I'd
+hardly like to start. Sometimes the snow holds off for weeks in this
+weather."
+
+They stood in the pallid light of the early morning an hour before the
+sun, and the wind lifted Larry's hair and flapped his shirt sleeves
+about his arms. It was a tingling, sharp breeze, and when they
+returned to the cave, where they went for Harry's lesson in smelting,
+the old man's cheeks were ruddy.
+
+The sun had barely risen when the lesson was over, and they descended
+for breakfast. Amalia had all ready for them, and greeted Larry from
+the doorway.
+
+"Good morning, Sir Kildene. You start soon. I have many good things to
+eat all prepare to put in your bag, and when you sit to your dinner on
+the long way, it is that you must think of Amalia and know that she
+says a prayer to the sweet Christ, that he send his good angels to
+watch over you all the way you go. A prayer to follow you all the way
+is good, is not?" Amalia's frank and untrammeled way of referring to
+Divinity always precipitated a shyness on Larry,--a shyness that
+showed itself in smiles and stammering.
+
+"Good--good--yes. Good, maybe so." Harry had turned back to bring down
+Larry's horse and pack mule. "Now, while we eat,--Harry will be down
+soon, we won't wait for him,--while we eat, let me go over the things
+I'm to find for you down below. I must learn the list well by heart,
+or you may send me back for the things I've missed bringing."
+
+As they talked Amalia took from her wrist a heavy bracelet of gold,
+and from a small leather bag hidden in her clothing, a brooch of
+emeralds, quaintly set and very precious. Her mother sat in one of her
+trancelike moods, apparently seeing nothing around her, and Amalia
+took Larry to one side and spoke in low tones.
+
+"Sir Kildene, I have thought much, and at last it seems to me right to
+part with these. It is little that we have--and no money, only these.
+What they are worth I have no knowledge. Mother may know, but to her I
+say nothing. They are a memory of the days when my father was noble
+and lived at the court. If you can sell them--it is that this brooch
+should bring much money--my father has told me. It was saved for my
+dowry, with a few other jewels of less worth. I have no need of dowry.
+It is that I never will marry. Until my mother is gone I can well care
+for her with the lace I make,--and then--"
+
+"Lass, I can't take these. I have no knowledge of their worth--or--"
+He knew he was saying what was not true, for he knew well the value of
+what she laid so trustingly in his palm, and his hand quivered under
+the shining jewels. He cleared his throat and began again. "I say, I
+can't take jewels so valuable over the trail and run the risk of
+losing them. Never! Put them by as before."
+
+"But how can I ask of you the things I wish? I have no money to return
+for them, and none for all you have done for my mother and me. Please,
+Sir Kildene, take of this, then, only enough to buy for our need. It
+is little to take. Do not be hard with me." She pleaded sweetly,
+placing one hand under his great one, and the other over the jewels,
+holding them pressed to his palm. "Will you go away and leave my heart
+heavy?"
+
+"Look here, now--" Again he cleared his throat. "You put them by until
+I come back, and then--"
+
+But she would not, and tying them in her handkerchief, she thrust them
+in the pocket of his flannel shirt.
+
+"There! It is not safe in such a place. Be sure you take care, Sir
+Kildene. I have many thoughts in my mind. It is not all the money of
+these you will need now, and of the rest I may take my mother to a
+large city, where are people who understand the fine lace. There I may
+sell enough to keep us well. But of money will I need first a little
+to get us there. It is well for me, you take these--see? Is not?"
+
+"No, it is not well." He spoke gruffly in his effort to overcome his
+emotion. "Where under heaven can I sell these?"
+
+"You go not to the great city?" she asked sadly. "How must we then so
+long intrude us upon you! It is very sad." She clasped her hands and
+looked in his eyes, her own brimming with tears; then he turned away.
+Tears in a woman's eyes! He could not stand it.
+
+"See here. I'll tell you what I'll do. If that railroad is through
+anywhere--so--so--I can reach San Francisco--" He thought he knew that
+to be an impossibility, and that she would be satisfied. "I say--if
+it's where I can reach San Francisco, I'll see what can be done." He
+cleared his throat a great many times, and stood awkwardly, hardly
+daring to move with the precious jewels in his pocket. "See here.
+They'll joggle out of here. Can't you--"
+
+She turned on him radiantly. "You may have my bag of leather. In that
+will they be safe."
+
+She removed the string from her neck and by it pulled the small
+embossed case from her bosom, shook out the few rings and unset stones
+left in it, and returned the larger jewels to it, and gave it into his
+hand, still warm from its soft resting place. At the same moment Harry
+arrived, leading the animals. He lifted his head courageously and his
+eyes shone as with an inspiration.
+
+"Will you let me accompany you a bit of the way, sir? I'd like to go."
+Larry accepted gladly. He knew then what he would do with Amalia's
+dowry. "Then I'll bring Goldbug. Thank you, Amalia, yes. I'll drink my
+coffee now, and eat as I ride." He ran back for his horse and soon
+returned, and then drank his coffee and snatched a bite, while Amalia
+and Larry slung the bags of food and the water on the mule and made
+all ready for the start. As he ate, he tried to arouse and encourage
+the mother, but she remained stolid until they were in the saddle,
+when she rose and followed them a few steps, and said in her deep
+voice: "Yes, I ask a thing. You will find Paul, my 'usband. Tell him
+to come to me--it is best--no more,--I cannot in English." Then
+turning to her daughter she spoke volubly in her own tongue, and waved
+her hand imperiously toward the men.
+
+"Yes, mamma. I tell all you say." Amalia took a step away from the
+door, and her mother returned to her seat by the fire.
+
+"It is so sad. My mother thinks my father is returned to our own
+country and that you go there. She thinks you are our friend Sir
+McBride in disguise, and that you go to help my father. She fears you
+will be taken and sent to Siberia, and says tell my father it is
+enough. He must no more try to save our fatherland: that our noblemen
+are full of ingratitude, and that he must return to her and live
+hereafter in peace."
+
+"Let be so. It's a saving hallucination. Tell her if I find your
+father, I will surely deliver the message." And the two men rode away
+up the trail, conversing earnestly.
+
+Larry Kildene explained to Harry about the jewels, and turned them
+over to his keeping. "I had to take them, you see. You hide them in
+that chamber I showed you, along with the gold bars. Hang it around
+your neck, man, until you get back. It has rested on her bosom, and
+if I were a young man like you, that fact alone would make it sacred
+to me. It's her dowry, she said. I'd sooner part with my right hand
+than take it from her."
+
+"So would I." Harry took the case tenderly, and hid it as directed,
+and went on to ask the favor he had accompanied Larry to ask. It was
+that he might go down and bring the box from the wagon.
+
+"Early this morning, before I woke you, I led the brown horse you
+brought the mother up the mountain on out toward the trail; we'll find
+him over the ridge, all packed ready, and when I ran back for my
+horse, I left a letter written in charcoal on the hearth there in the
+shed--Amalia will be sure to go there and find it, if I don't return
+now--telling her what I'm after and that I'll only be gone a few days.
+She's brave, and can get along without us." Larry did not reply at
+once, and Harry continued.
+
+"It will only take us a day and a half to reach it, and with your
+help, a sling can be made of the canvas top of the wagon, and the two
+animals can 'tote it' as the darkies down South say. I can walk back
+up the trail, or even ride one of the horses. We'll take the tongue
+and the reach from the wagon and make a sort of affair to hang to the
+beasts, I know how it can be done. There may not be much of value in
+the box, but then--there may be. I see Amalia wishes it of all things,
+and that's enough for--us."
+
+Thus it came that the two women were alone for five days. Madam
+Manovska did not seem to heed the absence of the two men at first, and
+waited in a contentment she had not shown before. It would seem that,
+as Larry had said, there was saving in her hallucination, but Amalia
+was troubled by it.
+
+"Mother is so sure they will bring my father back," she thought. She
+tried to forestall any such catastrophe as she feared by explaining
+that they might not find her father or he might not return, even if he
+got her message, not surely, for he had always done what he thought
+his duty before anything else, and he might think it his duty to stay
+where he could find something to do.
+
+When Harry King did not return that night, Amalia did as he had
+laughingly suggested to her, when he left, "You'll find a letter out
+in the shed," was all he said. So she went up to the shed, and there
+she lighted a torch, and kneeling on the stones of the wide hearth,
+she read what he had written for her.
+
+ "To the Lady Amalia Manovska:
+
+ "Mr. Kildene will help me get your box. It will not be hard, for
+ the two of us, and after it is drawn out and loaded I can get up
+ with it myself and he can go on. I will soon be with you again,
+ never fear. Do not be afraid of Indians. If there were any danger,
+ I would not leave you. There is no way by which they would be
+ likely to reach you except by the trail on which we go, and we
+ will know if they are about before they can possibly get up the
+ trail. I have seen you brave on the plains, and you will be as
+ brave on the mountain top. Good-by for a few days.
+
+ "Yours to serve you,
+ "Harry King."
+
+The tears ran fast down her cheeks as she read. "Oh, why did I speak
+of it--why? He may be killed. He may die of this attempt." She threw
+the torch from her into the fireplace, and clasping her hands began to
+pray, first in English her own words, then the prayers for those in
+peril which she had learned in the convent. Then, lying on her face,
+she prayed frantically in her own tongue for Harry's safety. At last,
+comforted a little, she took up the torch and, flushed and tearful,
+walked down in the darkness to the cabin and crept into bed.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XX
+
+ALONE ON THE MOUNTAIN
+
+
+For the first two days of Harry King's absence Madam Manovska relapsed
+into a more profound melancholy, and the care of her mother took up
+Amalia's time and thoughts so completely as to give her little for
+indulging her own anxiety for Harry's safety. Strangely, she felt no
+fear for themselves, although they were thus alone on the mountain
+top. She had a sense of security there which she had never felt in the
+years since she had been taken from the convent to share her parents'
+wanderings. She made an earnest effort to divert and arouse her mother
+and succeeded until Madam Manovska talked much and volubly in Polish,
+and revealed more of the thoughts that possessed her in the long hours
+of brooding than she had ever told Amalia before. It seemed that she
+confidently expected the return of the men with her husband, and that
+the message she had sent by Larry Kildene would surely bring him. The
+thought excited her greatly, and Amalia found it necessary to keep
+continual watch lest she wander off down the trail in the direction
+they had taken, and be lost.
+
+For a time Amalia tried to prevent Madam Manovska from dwelling on the
+past, until she became convinced that to do so was not well, since it
+only induced the fits of brooding. She then decided to encourage her
+mother to speak freely of her memories, rather than to keep them
+locked in her own mind. It was in one of these intervals of
+talkativeness that Amalia learned the cause of that strange cry that
+had so pierced her heart and startled her on the trail.
+
+They had gone out for a walk, as the only means of inducing her mother
+to sleep was to let her walk in the clear air until so weary as to
+bring her to the point of exhaustion. This time they went farther than
+Amalia really intended, and had left the paths immediately about the
+cabin, and climbed higher up the mountain. Here there was no trail and
+the way was rough indeed, but Madam Manovska was in one of her most
+wayward moods and insisted on going higher and farther.
+
+Her strength was remarkable, but it seemed to be strength of will
+rather than of body, for all at once she sank down, unable to go
+forward or to return. Amalia led her to the shade of a great gnarled
+tree, a species of fir, and made her lie down on a bed of stiff,
+coarse moss, and there she pillowed her mother's head on her lap.
+Whether it was something in the situation in which she found herself
+or not, her mother began to tell her of a time about which she had
+hitherto kept silent. It was of the long march through heat and cold,
+over the wildest ways of the earth to Siberia, at her husband's side.
+
+She told how she had persisted in going with him, even at the cost of
+dressing in the garb of the exiles from the prisons and pretending to
+be one of the condemned. Only one of the officers knew her secret, who
+for reasons of humanity--or for some other feeling--kept silence. She
+carried her child in her arms, a boy, five months old, and was allowed
+to walk at her husband's side instead of following on with the other
+women. She told how they carried a few things on their backs, and how
+one and another of the men would take the little one at intervals to
+help her, and how long the marches were when the summer was on the
+wane and they wished to make as much distance as possible before they
+were delayed by storms and snow.
+
+Then she told how the storms came at last, and how her baby fell ill,
+and cried and cried--all the time--and how they walked in deep snow,
+until one and another fell by the way and never walked farther. She
+told how some of the weaker ones were finally left behind, because
+they could get on faster without them, but that the place where they
+were left was a terrible one under a cruel man, and that her child
+would surely have died there before the winter was over, and that when
+she persisted in keeping on with her husband, they beat her, but at
+last consented on condition that she would leave her baby boy. Then
+how she appealed to the officer who knew well who she was and that she
+was not one of the condemned, but had followed her husband for love,
+and to intercede for him when he would have been ill-treated; and that
+the man had allowed her to have her way, but later had demanded as his
+reward for yielding to her, that she no longer belong to her husband,
+but to him.
+
+Looking off at the far ranges of mountains with steady gaze, she told
+of the mountains they had crossed, and the rushing, terrible rivers;
+and how, one day, the officer who had been kind only that he might be
+more cruel, had determined to force her to obedience, and how he grew
+very angry--so angry that when they had come to a trail that was
+well-nigh impassable, winding around the side of a mountain, where was
+a fearful rushing river far below them, and her baby cried in her
+arms for cold and hunger, how he had snatched the child from her and
+hurled it over the precipice into the swift water, and how she had
+shrieked and struck him and was crazed and remembered no more for
+days, except to call continually on God to send down curses on that
+officer's head. She told how after that they were held at a certain
+station for a long time, but that she was allowed to stay by her
+husband only because the officer feared the terrible curses she had
+asked of God to descend on that man, that he dared no more touch her.
+
+Then Amalia understood many things better than ever before, and grew
+if possible more tender of her mother. She thought how all during that
+awful time she had been safe and sheltered in the convent, and her
+life guarded; and moreover, she understood why her father had always
+treated her mother as if she were higher than the angels and with the
+courtesy and gentleness of a knight errant. He had bowed to her
+slightest wish, and no wonder her mother thought that when he received
+her request to return to her, and give up his hope, he would surely
+come to her.
+
+More than ever Amalia feared the days to come if she could in no way
+convince her mother that it was not expedient for her father to return
+yet. To say again that he was dead she dared not, even if she could
+persuade Madam Manovska to believe it; for it seemed to her in that
+event that her mother would give up all interest in life, and die of a
+broken heart. But from the first she had not accepted the thought of
+her husband's death, and held stubbornly to the belief that he had
+joined Harry King to find help. He had, indeed, wandered away from
+them a few hours after the young man's departure and had been unable
+to find his way back, and, until Larry Kildene came to them, they had
+comforted themselves that the two men were together.
+
+Much more Madam Manovska told her daughter that day, before she slept;
+and Amalia questioned her more closely than she had ever done
+concerning her father's faith. Thereafter she sat for a long time on
+the bank of coarse moss and pondered, with her mother's head pillowed
+on her lap. The sun reached the hour of noon, and still the mother
+slept and the daughter would not waken her.
+
+She took from the small velvet bag she always carried with her, a
+crisp cake of corn meal and ate to satisfy her sharp hunger, for the
+keen air and the long climb gave her the appetite belonging to the
+vigorous health which was hers. They had climbed that part of the
+mountain directly behind the cabin, and from the secluded spot where
+they sat she could look down on it and on the paths leading to it;
+thankful and happy that at last they were where all was so safe, no
+fear of intrusion entered her mind. Even her first anxiety about the
+Indians she had dismissed.
+
+Now, as her eyes wandered absently over the far distance and dropped
+to the nearer hills, and on down to the cabin and the patch of
+cultivated ground, what was her horror to see three figures stealing
+with swift, gliding tread toward the fodder shed from above, where was
+no trail, only such rough and wild hillside as that by which she and
+her mother had climbed. The men seemed to be carrying something slung
+between them on a pole. With long, gliding steps they walked in single
+file as she had seen the Indians walk on the plains.
+
+She drew in her breath sharply and clasped her hands in supplication.
+Had those men seen them? Devoutly she prayed that they might not look
+up toward the heights where she and her mother sat. As they continued
+to descend she lost sight of them among the pines and the undergrowth
+which was more vigorous near the fall, and then they appeared again
+and went into the cabin. She thought they must have been in the fodder
+shed when she lost sight of them, and now she waited breathlessly to
+see them emerge from the cabin. For an hour she sat thus, straining
+her eyes lest she miss seeing them when they came forth, and fearing
+lest her mother waken. Then she saw smoke issuing from the cabin
+chimney, and her heart stopped its beating. What! Were they preparing
+to stay there? How could her mother endure the cold of the mountain
+all night?
+
+Then she began to consider how she might protect her mother after the
+sun had gone from the cold that would envelop them. Reasoning that as
+long as the Indians stayed in the cabin they could not be seen by
+them, she looked about for some projecting ledge under which they
+might creep for the night. Gently she lifted her mother's head and
+placed it on her own folded shawl, and, with an eye ever on the cabin
+below, she crept further up the side of the mountain until she found a
+place where a huge rock, warmed by the sun, projected far out, and
+left a hollow beneath, into which they might creep. Frantically she
+tore off twigs of the scrubby pines around them, and made a fragrant
+bed of pine needles and moss on which to rest. Then she woke her
+mother.
+
+Sane and practical on all subjects but the one, Madam Manovska roused
+herself to meet this new difficulty with the old courage, and climbed
+with Amalia's help to their wild resting place without a word of
+complaint. There she sat looking out over the magnificent scene
+before her with her great brooding eyes, and ate the coarse corn cake
+Amalia put in her hands.
+
+She talked, always in Polish or in French, of the men "rouge," and
+said she did not wonder they came to so good a place to rest, and that
+she would give thanks to the great God that she and her daughter were
+on the mountain when they arrived. She reminded Amalia that if she had
+consented to return when her daughter wished, they would now have been
+in the cabin with those terrible men, and said that she had been
+inspired of God to stay long on the mountain. Contentedly, then, she
+munched her cake, and remarked that water would give comfort in the
+eating of it, but she smiled and made the best of the dry food. Then
+she prayed that her husband might be detained until the men were
+gone.
+
+Amalia gave her mother the water that was left in the bottle she had
+brought with her, and lamented that she had saved so little for her.
+"It was so bad, not to save more for my mamma," she cried, giving the
+bottle with its lowered contents into her mother's hand. "I go to
+watch, mamma mine. Soon will I return."
+
+Amalia went back to her point of vantage, where she could see all
+about the cabin and shed. Still the smoke poured from the chimney, and
+there was no sign of red men without. It was a mountain sheep they had
+carried, slung between them, and now they dressed and cooked a portion
+of it, and were gorging themselves comfortably before the fire, with
+many grunts of satisfaction at the finding of the formidable owner of
+the premises absent. They were on their way to Laramie to trade and
+sell game, and it was their intention to leave a portion of their
+mutton with Larry Kildene; for never did they dare venture near him
+without bringing a propitiatory offering.
+
+The sun had set and the cold mists were blowing across from the fall
+and closing around the cabin like a veil of amethystine dye, when
+Amalia saw them moving about the cabin door as if preparing to depart.
+Her heart rose, and she signaled her mother, but no. They went indoors
+again, and she saw them no more. In truth they had disputed long as to
+whether it was best to leave before the big man's return, or to remain
+in their comfortable quarters and start early, before day. It was the
+conference that drew them out, and they had made ready to start at a
+moment's notice if he should return in the night. But as the darkness
+crept on and Larry Kildene did not appear they stretched themselves
+before the fire and slept, and the two women on the mountain, hungry
+and cold, crept under the mother's cloak and lay long into the night,
+shivering and listening, couched on the pine twigs Amalia had spread
+under the ledge of rock. At last, clasped in each other's arms, they
+slept, in spite of fear and cold, for very weariness.
+
+Amalia woke next morning to the low murmuring of a voice. It was her
+mother, kneeling in the pine needles, praying at her side. She waited
+until the prayer was ended, then she rose and went out from the
+sheltered hollow where they lay. "I will look a little, mamma. Wait
+for me."
+
+She gazed down on the cabin, but all was still. The amethystine veil
+had not lifted, and no smoke came from the chimney. She crept back to
+her mother's side, and they sat close for warmth, and waited. When the
+sun rose and the clouds melted away, all the earth smiled up at them,
+and their fears seemed to melt away with the clouds. Still they did
+not venture out where they thought they might be spied from below, and
+time passed while they watched earnestly for the sight of moving
+figures, and still no smoke appeared from the cabin.
+
+Higher and higher the sun climbed in the sky, yet they could not bring
+themselves to return. Hunger pressed them, and Amalia begged her
+mother to let her go a little nearer to listen, but she would not. So
+they discussed together in their own tongue and neither would allow
+the other to venture below, and still no smoke issued from the
+chimney.
+
+At last Amalia started and pressed her hand to her heart. What did she
+see far along on the trail toward the desert? Surely, a man with two
+animals, climbing toward the turn. Her eyes danced for gladness as she
+turned a flushed face toward her mother.
+
+"Look, mamma! Far on,--no--there! It is--mamma mine--it is 'Arry
+King!" The mere sight of him made her break out in English. "It is
+that I must go to him and tell him of the Indian in the cabin before
+he arrive. If he come on them there, and they kill him! Oh, let me go
+quickly." At the thought of him, and the danger he might meet, all her
+fears of the men "rouge" returned upon her, and she was gone, passing
+with incredible swiftness over the rough way, to try to intercept him
+before he could reach the cabin.
+
+But she need not have feared, for the Indians were long gone. Before
+daybreak they had passed Harry where he rested in the deep dusk of the
+morning, without knowing he was near. With swift, silent steps they
+had passed down the trail, taking as much of Larry Kildene's corn as
+they could carry, and leaving the bloody pelt of the sheep and a very
+meager share of the mutton in exchange. Hungry and footsore, yet eager
+and glad to have come home successfully, Harry King walked forward,
+leading his good yellow horse, his eyes fixed on the cabin, and
+wondering not a little; for he, too, saw that no smoke was issuing
+from the chimney.
+
+He hastened, and all Amalia's swiftness could not bring her to him
+before he reached his goal. He saw first the bloody pelt hanging
+beside the door, and his heart stood still. Those two women never
+could have done that! Where were they? He dropped the leading strap,
+leaving the weary horses where they stood, and ran forward to enter
+the cabin and see the evidence of Indians all about. There were the
+clean-picked bones of their feast and the dirt from their feet on
+Amalia's carefully kept floor. The disorder smote him, and he ran out
+again in the sun. Looking this way and that, he called and listened
+and called again. Why did no answer reach him? Poor Amalia! In her
+haste she had turned her foot and now, fainting with pain, and with
+fear for him, she could not find her voice to reply.
+
+He thought he heard a low cry. Was it she? He ran again, and now he
+saw her, high above him, a dark heap on the ground. Quickly he was by
+her side, and, kneeling, he gathered her in his arms. He forgot all
+but that she was living and that he held her, and he kissed her white
+face and her lips, and said all the tender things in his heart. He did
+not know what he was saying. He only knew that he could feel her heart
+beat, and that she was opening her eyes, and that with quivering arms
+she clasped his neck, and that her tears wet his cheek, and that, over
+and over, her lips were repeating his name.
+
+"'Arry--'Arry King! You are come back. Ah, 'Arry King, my heart cry
+with the great gladness they have not killed you."
+
+All in the same instant he bethought himself that he must not caress
+her thus. Yet filled with a gladness he could not fathom he still
+clung to her and still murmured the words he meant never to speak to
+her. One thing he could do. One thing sweet and right to do. He could
+carry her to the cabin. How could she reach it else? His heart leaped
+that he had at least that right.
+
+"No, 'Arry King. You have walk the long, hard way, and are very
+weary." But still he carried her.
+
+"Put me down, 'Arry King." Then he obeyed her, and set her gently
+down. "I am too great a burden. See, thus? If you help me a little--it
+is that I may hop--It is better, is not?"
+
+She smiled in his face, but he only stooped and lifted her again in
+his arms. "You are not a burden, Amalia. Put your arms around my neck,
+and lean on me."
+
+She obeyed him, and he could say no more for the beating of his heart.
+Carefully and slowly he made his way, setting his feet cautiously
+among the stones that obstructed his path. Madam Manovska from her
+heights above saw how her daughter was being carried, and, guessing
+the trouble, snatched up the velvet bag Amalia had dropped in her
+haste, flung her cloak about her, and began to thread her way down,
+slowly and carefully; for, as she said to herself, "We must not both
+break the bones at one time."
+
+To Harry it seemed no sound was ever sweeter than Amalia's low voice
+as she coaxed him brokenly to set her down and allow her to walk.
+
+"This is great foolishness, 'Arry King, that you carry me. Put me down
+that you rest a little."
+
+"I can't, Amalia."
+
+"You have walk all the long trail--I saw you walk--and lead those
+horse, for only to bring our box. How my heart can thank you is not
+possible. 'Arry King, you are so weary--put me down."
+
+"I can't, Amalia," again was all he said. So he held her, comforting
+his heart that he had this right, until he drew near the cabin, and
+there Amalia saw the pelt of the sheep hung upon the wall of the
+cabin, pitifully dangling, bloody and ragged. Strangely, at the sight
+quite harmless, yet gruesome, all her fortitude gave way. With a cry
+of terror she hid her face and clung to him.
+
+"No, no. I cannot go there--not near it--no!"
+
+"Oh, you brave, sweet woman! It is only a skin. Don't look at it,
+then. You have been frightened. I see how you have suffered. Wait.
+There--no, don't put your foot to the ground. Sit on this hillock
+while I take it away."
+
+But she only clung to him the more, and sobbed convulsively. "I am
+afraid--'Arry King. Oh, if--if--they are there still! Those Indian! Do
+not go there."
+
+"But they are gone; I have been in and they are not there. I won't
+take you into that place until I have made it fit for you again. Sit
+here awhile. Amalia Manovska,--I can't see you weep." So tenderly he
+spoke her name, with quivering lips, reverently. With all his power he
+held himself and would dare no more. If only once more he might touch
+her lips with his--only once in his renunciation--but no. His
+conscience forbade him. Memory closed upon him like a deadening cloud
+and drenched his hurt soul with sorrow. He rose from stooping above
+her and looked back.
+
+"Your mother is coming. She will be here in a moment and then I will
+set that room in order for you, and--" his voice shook so that he was
+obliged to pause. He stooped again to her and spoke softly: "Amalia
+Manovska, stop weeping. Your tears fall on my heart."
+
+"Ah, what have happen, to you--to Amalia--? Those terrible men
+'rouge'!" cried Madam Manovska, hurrying forward.
+
+"Oh, Madam, I am glad you have come. The Indians are gone, never fear.
+Amalia has hurt her foot. It is very painful. You will know what to do
+for her, and I will leave her while I make things more comfortable in
+there."
+
+He left them and ran to the cabin, and hastily taking the hideous pelt
+from the wall, hid it, and then set himself to cleaning the room and
+burning the litter of bones and scraps left from the feast. It was
+horrible--yes, horrible, that they should have had such a fright, and
+alone there. Soon he went back, and again taking her in his arms,
+unresisted now, he laid her on the bunk, then knelt and removed her
+worn shoe.
+
+"Little worn shoe! It has walked many a mile, has it not? Did you
+think to ask Larry Kildene to bring you new ones?"
+
+"No, I forgot my feet." She laughed, and the spell of tears was
+broken. The long strain of anxiety and fear and then the sudden
+release had been too much. Moreover, she was faint with hunger.
+Without explanation Harry King understood. He looked to the mother for
+help and saw that a change had come over her. Roused from her apathy
+she was preparing food, and looking from her to Amalia, they exchanged
+a glance of mutual relief.
+
+"How it is beautiful to see her!" Amalia spoke low. "It is my hurt
+that is good for her mind. I am glad of the hurt."
+
+He sat with the shoe in his hand. "Will you let me bind your ankle,
+Amalia? It will grow worse unless something is done quickly." He spoke
+humbly, as one beseeching a favor.
+
+"Now it is already better, you have remove the shoe." How he loved her
+quaint, rapid speech! "Mamma will bind it, for you have to do for
+those horse and the mule. I know--I have seen--to take them to drink
+and eat, and take from them the load--the burden. It is the box--for
+that have you risk your life, and the gladness we feel to again have
+it is--is only one greater--and that is to have you again with us. Oh,
+what a sorrow and terror--if you had not come--I can never make you
+know. When I see those Indian come walking after each other so as they
+go--my heart cease to beat--and my body become like the ice--for the
+fear. When fearing for myself, it is bad, but when for another it is
+much--much--more terrible. So have I found it."
+
+Her mother came then to attend to her hurt, interrupting Amalia's flow
+of speech, and Harry went out to the animals, full of care and
+misgiving. What now could he do? How endure the days to come with
+their torture of repression? How shield her from himself and his
+love--when she so freely gave? What middle course was possible,
+without making her suffer?
+
+That afternoon all the events of his journey were told to them as they
+questioned him keenly, and he learned by little words and looks
+exchanged between them how great had been their anxiety for him, and
+of their night of terror on the mountain. But now that it was past and
+they were all unhurt except for Amalia's accident, they made light of
+it. He dragged in the box, and before he left them that night he
+prepared Larry's gun, and told Amalia to let nothing frighten her.
+
+"Don't leave the bunk, nor put your foot to the ground. Fire the gun
+at the slightest disturbance, and I will surely hear. I have another
+in the shed. Or I will roll myself in my blanket, and sleep outside
+your door. Yes, I will do that."
+
+Then the mother turned on him and spoke in her deep tones: "Go to your
+bed, 'Arry King, and sleep well. You have need. We asked of the good
+God your safety, and our fear is gone. Good night."
+
+"Good-night."
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXI
+
+THE VIOLIN
+
+
+While Amalia lay recovering from the sprained ankle, which proved to
+be a serious hurt, Madam Manovska continued to improve. She took up
+the duties which had before occupied Amalia only, and seemed to grow
+more cheerful. Still she remained convinced that Larry Kildene would
+return with her husband, and her daughter's anxiety as to what might
+be the outcome, when the big man should arrive alone, deepened.
+
+Harry King guardedly and tenderly watched over the two women. Every
+day he carried Amalia out in the sun to a sheltered place, where she
+might sit and work at the fascinating lace with which her fingers
+seemed to be only playing, yet which developed into webs of most
+intricate design, even while her eyes were not fixed upon it, but were
+glancing about at whatever interested her, or up in his face, as she
+talked to him impulsively in her fluent, inverted English.
+
+Amalia was not guarded; she was lavish with her interest in all he
+said, and in her quick, responsive, and poetic play of fancy--ardent
+and glowing--glad to give out from her soul its best to this man who
+had befriended her father in their utmost need and who had saved her
+own and her mother's life. She knew always when a cloud gathered over
+his spirit, and made it her duty to dispel such mists of some
+possible sad memory by turning his thoughts to whatever of beauty she
+found around them, or in the inspiration of her own rich nature.
+
+To avoid disquieting her by the studied guardedness of his manner,
+Harry employed himself as much of the time as possible away from the
+cabin, often in providing game for the winter. Larry Kildene had
+instructed him how to cure and dry the meat and to store it and also
+how to care for the skins, but because of the effect of that sight of
+the bloody sheep's pelt on Amalia, he never showed her a poor little
+dead creature, or the skin of one. He brought her mother whatever they
+required of food, carefully prepared, and that was all.
+
+He constructed a chair for her and threw over it furs from Larry
+Kildene's store, making it soft and comfortable thereby. He made also
+a footstool for the hurt ankle to rest upon, and found a beautiful
+lynx skin with which to cover her feet. The back of the chair he made
+high, and hinged it with leather to the seat, arranging it so that by
+means of pegs it might be raised or lowered. Without lumber, and with
+the most simple tools, he sawed and hewed the logs, and lacking nails
+he set it together with pegs, but what matter? It was comfortable, and
+in the making of it he eased his heart by expressing his love without
+sorrowful betrayal.
+
+Amalia laughed as she sat in it, one day, close to the open door,
+because the air was too pinching cold for her to be out. She laughed
+as she put her hands in the soft fur and drew her fingers through it,
+and looked up in Harry's face.
+
+"You are thinking me so foolish, yes, to have about me the skins of
+poor little killed beasts? Yet I weeped all those tears on your coat
+because to see the other--yes,--hanging beside the door. It is so we
+are--is not?"
+
+"I'm glad enough you're not consistent. It would be a blot on your
+character."
+
+"But for why, Mr. 'Arry?"
+
+"Oh, I couldn't stand it."
+
+Again she laughed. "How it is very peculiar--that reason you give. Not
+to stand it! Could you then to sit it?" But Harry only laughed and
+looked away from her. She laid her face against the soft fur. "Good
+little animals--to give me your life. But some time you would
+die--perhaps with sorrow of hunger and age, and the life be for
+nothing. This is better."
+
+"There you're right. Let me draw you back in the room and close the
+door. It will freeze to-night, I'm thinking."
+
+"Oh, not yet, please! I have yet to see the gloryful sky of the west.
+Last evening how it was beautiful! To-night it will be more lovely to
+look upon for the long line of little cloud there on which the red of
+the sun will burn like fire in the heaven over the mountain."
+
+"You must enjoy the beauty, Amalia, and then pray that there may be no
+snow. It looks like it, and we want the snow to hold off until Larry
+comes back."
+
+"We pray, always, my mamma and I. She that he come back quickly, and
+me--I pray that he come back safely--but to be soon--it is such terror
+to me."
+
+"Larry will find a way out of the difficulty. He will have an excuse
+all thought out for your mother. I am more anxious about the snow with
+a sunset sky like that, but I don't know anything about this region."
+
+"Mr. 'Arry, so very clever you are in making things, can you help me
+to one more thing? I like very much to have the sticks for lame
+walking,--what you call--the crutch? Yes. I have for so long time
+spoken only the Polish that I forget me greatly the English. You must
+talk to me much, and make me reproof of my mistakes. Do you know for
+why I like the crutch? It is that I would go each day--many times to
+see the water fall down. Ah, how that is beautiful! In the sun, or
+early in the morning, or in the night, always beautiful!"
+
+"You shall have the crutches, Amalia, and until I get them made, I
+will carry you to the fall each day. Come, I will take you there now.
+I will wrap these furs around you, and you shall see the fall in the
+evening light."
+
+"No, 'Arry King. To-morrow I will try to ride on the horse if you will
+lift me up on him. I will let you do this. But you may not carry me as
+you have done. I am now so strong. You may make me the crutch, yes."
+Of all things he wished her to let him carry her to the fall, but her
+refusal was final, and he set about making the crutches immediately.
+
+Through the evening he worked on them, and at nightfall the next day
+he brought them to her. As he came down from his shed, carrying the
+crutches proudly, he heard sweet, quavering tones in the air wafted
+intermittently. The wind was still, and through the evening hush the
+tones strengthened as he drew nearer the cabin, until they seemed to
+wrap him in a net of interwoven cadences and fine-spun threads of
+quivering melody--a net of sound, inclosing his spirit in its
+intricate mesh of sweetness.
+
+He paused and breathed deeply, and turned this way and that, as if he
+would escape but found no way; then he walked slowly on. At the door
+of the cabin he paused again. The firelight shone through from
+underneath, and a fine thread of golden light sifted through the latch
+of the door and fell on the hand that held Amalia's crutches. He
+looked down on the spot of light dancing over his hand as if he were
+dazed by it. Very gently he laid the crutches across the threshold,
+and for a long time stood without, listening, his head bowed as if he
+were praying.
+
+It was her father's violin, the one she had wept at leaving behind
+her. What was she playing? Strange, old-world melodies they seemed,
+tossed into the air, now laughing, now wailing like sorrowing women
+voices. Oh, the violin in her hands! Oh, the rapture of hearing it, as
+her soul vibrated through it and called to him--called to him!--But he
+would not hear the call. He turned sorrowfully and went down again to
+the shed and there he lay upon his face and clasped his hands above
+his head and whispered her name. It was as if his heart were beating
+itself against prison walls and the clasped hands were stained with
+blood.
+
+He rose next morning, haggard and pale. The snow was
+falling--falling--softly and silently. It fell like lead upon his
+heart, so full of anxiety was he for the good friend who might even
+then be climbing up the trail. Madam Manovska observed his drawn face,
+and thought he suffered only from anxiety and tried to comfort him.
+Amalia also attempted to cover her own anxiety by assurances that the
+good St. Christopher who watches over travelers would protect Larry
+Kildene, because he knew so well how many dangers there were, and that
+he, who had carried the Christ with all his burden of sorrows could
+surely keep "Sir Kildene" even through the snows of winter. In spite
+of an inherent and trained disbelief in all supposed legends,
+especially as tenets of faith, Harry felt himself comforted by her
+talk, yet he could not forbear questioning her as to her own faith in
+them.
+
+"Do you truly believe all that, Amalia?"
+
+"All--that--? Of what--Mr. 'Arry?" She seemed truly mystified.
+
+"I mean those childish legends of the saints you often quote?"
+
+Amalia laughed. "You think I have learn them of the good sisters in my
+convent, and is no truth in them?"
+
+"Why--I guess that's about it. Did your father believe them?"
+
+"Maybe no. But my father was 'devoue'--very--but he had a very wide
+thought of God and man--a thought reaching far out--to--I find it very
+hard to explain. If but you understood the French, I could tell
+you--but for me, I have my father's faith and it makes me glad to play
+in my heart with these legends--as you call them."
+
+He gave her a quick, appealing glance, then turned his gaze away. "Try
+to explain. Your English is beautiful."
+
+"If you eat your breakfast, then will I try."
+
+"Yes, yes, I will. You say he had faith reaching far out--to where--to
+what?"
+
+"He said there would never be rest in all the universe until we find
+everywhere God,--living--creating--moving forever in the--the--all."
+She held out her hands and extended her arms in an encompassing
+movement indescribably full of grace.
+
+"You mean he was a pantheist?"
+
+"Oh, no, no. That is to you a horror, I see, but it was not that."
+She laughed again, so merrily that Harry laughed, too. But still he
+persisted, "Amalia--never mind what your father thought; tell me your
+own faith."
+
+Then she grew grave, "My faith is--just--God. In the all.
+Seeing--feeling--knowing--with us--for us--never away--in the deep
+night of sorrow--understanding. In the far wilderness--hearing. In the
+terror and remorse of the heart--when we weep for sin--loving. It is
+only one thing in all the world to learn, and that is to learn all
+things, just to reach out the mind, and touch God--to find his love in
+the heart and so always live in the perfect music of God. That is the
+wonderful harmony--and melody--and growth--of each little soul--and of
+all peoples, all worlds,--Oh, it is the universe of love God gives to
+us."
+
+For a while they were silent, and Madam Manovska began to move about
+the cabin, setting the things in order. She did not seem to have taken
+any interest in their talk. Harry rose to go, but first he looked in
+Amalia's eyes.
+
+"The perfect Music of God?" He said the words slowly and questioningly.
+
+"You understand my meaning?"
+
+"I can't say. Do you?"
+
+She quickly snatched up her violin which lay within reach of her arm.
+"I can better show you." She drew a long chord, then from it wandered
+into a melody, sweet and delicate; then she drew other chords, and on
+into other melodies, all related; then she began to talk again. "It is
+only on two strings I am playing--for hear? the others are now souls
+out of the music of God--listen--" she drew her bow across the
+discordant strings. "How that is terrible! So God creates great and
+beautiful laws--" she went back into the harmony and perfect melody,
+and played on, now changing to the discordant strain, and back, as she
+talked--"and gives to all people power to understand, but not through
+weakness--but through longing and searching with big earnestness of
+purpose, and much desire. Who has no care and desire for the music of
+God, strikes always those wrong notes, and all suffer as our ears
+suffer with the bad sounds. So it is, through long desiring, and
+living, always a little and a little more perceiving, reaching out the
+hand to touch in love our brothers and sisters on the earth,--always
+with patience learning to find in our own souls the note that strikes
+in harmony with the great thought of God--and thus we understand and
+live in the music of God. Ah, it is hard for me to say it--but it is
+as if our souls are given wings--wings--that reach--from the gold of
+the sun--even to the earth at our feet, and we float upon that great
+harmony of love like upon a wonderful upbearing sea, and never can we
+sink, and ever all is well--for we live in the thought of God."
+
+"Amalia--Amalia--How about sin, and the one who--kills--and the ones
+who hate--and the little children brought into the world in sin--"
+Harry's voice trembled, and he bowed his head in his hands.
+
+"Never is anything lost. They are the ones who have not yet
+learned--they have not found the key to God's music. Those who find
+must quickly help and give and teach the little children--the little
+children find so easily the key--but to all the strings making
+horrible discord on the earth--we dare not shut our ears and hide--so
+do the sweet, good sisters in the convent. They do their little to
+teach the little children, but it is always to shut their ears. But
+the Christ went out in the world, not with hands over his ears, but
+outreached to his brothers and sisters on the earth. But my father--my
+father! He turned away from the church, because he saw they had not
+found the true key to God's music--or I mean they kept it always hid,
+and covered with much--how shall I say--with much drapery--and golden
+coverings, that the truth--that is the key--was lost to sight. It was
+for this my father quarreled with--all that he thought not the truth.
+He believed to set his people free both from the world's oppression
+and from their own ignorance, and give to them a truth uncovered. Oh,
+it set his old friends in great discord more than ever--for they could
+not make thus God's music. And so they rose up and threw him in
+prison, and all the terrible things came upon him--of the world. My
+mother must have been very able through love to drag him free from
+them, even if they did pursue. It was the conflict of discord he felt
+all his life, and now he is free."
+
+Suddenly the mother's deep tones sounded through the cabin with a
+finality that made them both start. "Yes. Now he is free--and yet will
+he bring them to--know. We wait for him here. No more must he go to
+Poland. It is not the will of God."
+
+Still Harry was not satisfied. "But if you think all these great
+thoughts--and you do--I can't see how you can quote those legends as
+if you thought them true."
+
+"I quote them, yes, because I love them, and their poetry. Through all
+beauty--all sweetness--all strength--God brings to us his thought.
+This I believe. I believe the saints lived and were holy and good,
+loving the great brotherhood. Why may not they be given the work of
+love still to do? It is all in the music of God, that they live, and
+make happy, and why should I believe that it is now taken from them to
+do good? Much that I think lies deep in my heart, and I cannot tell it
+in words."
+
+"Nor can I. But my thoughts--" For an instant Amalia, looking at him,
+saw in his face the same look of inward fear--or rather of despair
+that had appalled Larry, but it went as quickly as it appeared, and
+she wondered afterward if she had really seen it, or if it was a
+strange trick of the firelight in the windowless cabin.
+
+"And your thoughts, Mr. 'Arry?"
+
+"They are not to be told." Again he rose to go, and stood and looked
+down on her, smiling. "I see you have already tried the crutches."
+
+"Yes. I found them in the snow, before the door. How I got there? I
+did hop. It was as if the good angels had come in the night. I wake
+and something make me all glad--and I go to the door to look at the
+whiteness, and then I am sorry, because of Sir Kildene, then I see
+before me--while that I stand on one foot, and hop--hop--hop--so, I
+see the crutch lie in the snow. Oh, Mr. 'Arry, now so pale you are! It
+is that you have worked in the night to make them--Is not? That is
+sorrowful to me. But now will I do for you pleasant things, because I
+can move to do them on these, where before I must always sit
+still--still--Ah, how that is hard to do! One good thing comes to me
+of this hurt. It makes the old shoes to last longer. How is it never
+to wear out shoes? Never to walk in them."
+
+Harry laughed. "We'll have to make you some moccasins."
+
+"And what is moccasins? Ah, yes, the Indian shoe. I like them well, so
+soft they must be, and so pretty with the beads. I have seen once such
+shoes on one little Indian child. Her mother made them."
+
+Then Harry made her try the crutches to be sure they were quite right,
+and, seeing that they were a little too long, he measured them with
+care, and carried them back to the shed, and there he shortened them
+and polished them with sand and a piece of flint, until he succeeded
+in making a very workmanlike job of them.
+
+At noon he brought them back, and stood in the doorway a moment beside
+her, looking out through the whiteness upon the transformed world. In
+spite of what that snow might mean to Larry Kildene, and through him
+to them, of calamity, maybe death, a certain elation possessed Harry.
+His body was braced to unusual energy by the keen, pure air, and his
+spirit enthralled and lifted to unconscious adoration by the vast
+mystery of a beauty, subtle and ethereal in its hushed eloquence. From
+the zenith through whiteness to whiteness the flakes sifted from the
+sky like a filmy bride's veil thrown over the blue of the farthest and
+highest peaks, and swaying soft folds of lucent whiteness upon the
+earth--the trees--and upon the cabin, and as they stood there, closing
+them in together--the very center of mystery, their own souls. Again
+the passion swept through him, to gather her in his arms, and he held
+himself sternly and stiffly against it, and would have said something
+simple and common to break the spell, but he only faltered and looked
+down on his hands spread out before her, and what he said was: "Do you
+see blood on them?"
+
+"Ah, no. Did you hurt your hand to cause blood on them, and to make
+those crutch for me?" she cried in consternation.
+
+"No, no. It's nothing. I have not hurt my hand. See, there's no blood
+on the crutches." He glanced at them as she leaned her weight on them
+there at his side, with a feeling of relief. It seemed as if they must
+show a stain, yet why should it be blood? "Come in. It's too cold for
+you to stand in the door with no shawl. I mean to put enough wood in
+here to last you the rest of the day--and go--"
+
+"Mr. 'Arry! Not to leave us? No, it is no need you go--for why?"
+
+Her terror touched him. "No, I would not go again and leave you and
+your mother alone--not to save my soul. As you say, there is no
+need--as long as it is so still and the clouds are thin the snow will
+do little harm. It would be the driving, fine snow and the drifts that
+would delay him."
+
+"Yes, snow as we have it in the terrible Russia. I know such snow
+well," said Madam Manovska.
+
+They went in and closed the door, and sat down to eat. The meal was
+lighted only by the dancing flames from the hearth, and their faces
+glowed in the fitful light. Always the meals were conducted with a
+certain stately ceremony which made the lack of dishes, other than the
+shaped slabs of wood sawn from the ends of logs--odd make-shifts
+invented by Harry, seem merely an accident of the moment, while the
+bits of lace-edged linen that Amalia provided from their little store
+seemed quite in harmony with the air of grace and gentleness that
+surrounded the two women. It was as if they were using a service of
+silver and Sevres, and to have missed the graciousness of their
+ministrations, now that he had lived for a little while with them,
+would have been sorrow indeed.
+
+He even forgot that he was clothed in rags, and wore them as if they
+were the faultless garments of a prince. It was only when he was alone
+that he looked down on them and sighed. One day he had come to the
+cabin to ask if he might take for a little while a needle and thread,
+but when he got there, the conversation wandered to discussion of the
+writers and the tragedies of the various nations and of their poets,
+and the needle and thread were forgotten.
+
+To-day, as the snow fell, it reminded Amalia of his need, and she
+begged him to stay with them a little to see what the box he had
+rescued for them contained. He yielded, and, taking up the violin, he
+held it a moment to his chin as if he would play, then laid it down
+again without drawing the bow across it.
+
+"Ah, Mr. 'Arry, it is that you play," cried Amalia, in delight. "I
+know it. No man takes in his hand the violin thus, if he do not
+play."
+
+"I had a friend once who played. No, I can't." He turned away from it
+sadly, and she gently laid it back in its box, and caught up a piece
+of heavy material.
+
+"Look. It is a little of this left. It is for you. My mother has much
+skill to make garments. Let us sew for you the blouse."
+
+"Yes, I'll do that gladly. I have no other way to keep myself decent
+before you."
+
+"What would you have? All must serve or we die." Madam Manovska spoke,
+"It is well, Sir 'Arry King, you carry your head like one prince, for
+I will make of you one peasant in this blouse."
+
+The two women laughed and measured him, and conferred volubly together
+in their own tongue, and he went out from their presence feeling that
+no prince had ever been so honored. They took also from their store
+warm socks of wool and gave him. Sadly he needed them, as he realized
+when he stepped out from their door, and the soft snow closed around
+his feet, chilling them with the cold.
+
+As he looked up in the sky he saw the clouds were breaking, and the
+sun glowed through them like a great pale gold moon, even though the
+flakes continued to veil thinly the distance. His heart lightened and
+he went back to the cabin to tell them the good news, and to ask them
+to pray for clear skies to-morrow. Having been reared in a rigidly
+puritanic school of thought, the time was, when first he knew them,
+that the freedom with which Amalia spoke of the Deity, and of the
+Christ, and the saints, and her prayers, fell strangely upon his
+unaccustomed ears. He was reserved religiously, and seemed to think
+any mention of such topics should be made with bated breath, and the
+utmost solemnity. Often it had been in his mind to ask her concerning
+her beliefs, but his shyness on such themes had prevented.
+
+Now that he had asked her he still wondered. He was used to feel that
+no one could be really devout, and yet speak so freely. Why--he could
+not have told. But now he began to understand, yet it was but a
+beginning. Could it be that she belonged to no church? Was it some
+sect of which he had never heard to which they belonged? If so, it
+must be a true faith, or it never could have upheld them through all
+their wanderings and afflictions, and, as he pondered, he found
+himself filled with a measure of the same trustful peace. During
+their flight across the plains together he had come to rest in them,
+and when his heart was too heavy to dare address the Deity in his own
+words, it was balm to his hurt spirit to hear them at their devotions
+as if thus God were drawn nearer him.
+
+This time, whether he might lay it to their prayers or no, his hopes
+were fulfilled. The evening brought a clear sunset, and during the
+next day the snow melted and soon was gone, and a breeze sprang up and
+the clouds drifted away, and for several days thereafter the weather
+continued clear and dry.
+
+Now often he brought his horse to the door, and lifted Amalia to the
+saddle and walked at her side, fearing she might rest her foot too
+firmly in the stirrup and so lose control of the horse in her pain.
+Always their way took them to the falls. And always he listened while
+Amalia talked. He allowed himself only the most meager liberty of
+expression. Distant and cold his manner often seemed to her, but
+intuitively she respected his moods, if moods they might be called:
+she suspected not.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXII
+
+THE BEAST ON THE TRAIL
+
+
+A week after the first snowfall Larry Kildene returned. He had
+lingered long after he should have taken the trail and had gone
+farther than he had dreamed of going when he parted from his three
+companions on the mountain top. All day long the snow had been
+falling, and for the last few miles he had found it almost impossible
+to crawl upward. Fortunately there had been no wind, and the snow lay
+as it had fallen, covering the trail so completely that only Larry
+Kildene himself could have kept it--he and his horse--yet not impeding
+his progress with drifts to be tunneled through.
+
+Harry King had been growing more and more uneasy during the day, and
+had kept the trail from the cabin to the turn of the cliff clear of
+snow, but below that point he did not think it wise to go: he could
+not, indeed. There, however, he stationed himself to wait through the
+night, and just beyond the turn he built a fire, thinking it might
+send a light into the darkness to greet Larry, should he happen to be
+toiling through the snow.
+
+He did not arouse the fears of Amalia by telling her he meant to keep
+watch all night on the cliff, but he asked her for a brew of Larry
+Kildene's coffee--of which they had been most sparing--when he left
+them after the evening meal, and it was given him without a thought,
+as he had been all day working in the snow, and the request seemed
+natural. He asked that he might have it in the great kettle in which
+they prepared it, and carried it with him to the fodder shed.
+
+Darkness had settled over the mountain when, after an hour's rest, he
+returned to the top of the trail and mended his fire and placed his
+kettle near enough to keep the contents hot. Through half the night he
+waited thus, sometimes walking about and peering into the obscurity
+below, sometimes replenishing his fire, and sometimes just patiently
+sitting, his arms clasped about his knees, gazing into space and
+brooding.
+
+Many times had Harry King been lonely, but never had the awesomeness
+of life and its mysterious leadings so impressed him as during this
+night's vigil. Moses alone on the mountain top, carried there and left
+where he might see into the promised land--the land toward which he
+had been aided miraculously to lead his people, but which he might not
+enter because of one sin,--one only transgression,--Elijah sitting
+alone in the wilderness waiting for the revealing of God--waiting
+heartbroken and weary, vicariously bearing in his own spirit regrets
+and sorrows over the waywardness of his people Israel,--and John, the
+forerunner--a "Voice crying in the wilderness 'Repent ye!'"--these
+were not so lonely, for their God was with them and had led them by
+direct communication and miraculous power; they were not lonely as
+Cain was lonely, stained with a brother's blood, cast out from among
+his fellows, hunted and haunted by his own guilt.
+
+Silence profound and indescribable reigned, while the great, soft
+flakes continued to drift slowly down, silent--silent--as the grave,
+and above and beneath and on all sides the same absolute neutrality
+of tint, vague and soft; yet the reality of the rugged mountain even
+so obscured and covered, remained; its cliffs and crags below, deadly
+and ragged, and fearful to look down upon, and skirting its sides the
+long, weary trail, up which at that very moment a man might be
+toiling, suffering, even to the limit of death--might be giving his
+life for the two women and the man who had come to him so suddenly out
+of the unknown; strange, passing strange it all was.
+
+Again and again Harry rose and replenished the fire and stamped about,
+shaking from his shoulders the little heaps of snow that had collected
+there. The flames rose high in the still air and stained the snow
+around his bonfire a rosy red. The redness of the fire-stained snow
+was not more deep and vital than the red blood pulsing through his
+heart. With all a strong man's virility and power he loved as only the
+strong can love, and through all his brooding that undercurrent ran
+like a swift and mighty river,--love, stronger than hate,--love,
+triumphing over death,--love, deeper than hell,--love, lifting to the
+zenith of heaven;--only two things seemed to him verities at that
+moment, God above, and love within,--two overwhelming truths, terrible
+in their power, all-consuming in their sweetness, one in their vast,
+incomprehensible entity of force, beneficent, to be forever sought for
+and chosen out of all the universe of good.
+
+The true meaning of Amalia's faith, as she had brokenly tried to
+explain it to him, dawned on his understanding. God,--love, truth, and
+power,--annihilating evil as light eats up darkness, drawing all into
+the great "harmony of the music of God."
+
+Sitting there in the red light of the fire with the snow falling
+around him, he knew what he must do first to come into the harmony. He
+must take up his burden and declare the truth, and suffer the result,
+no matter what it might be. Keen were all the impressions and visions
+of his mind. Even while he could see Amalia sleeping in the cabin, and
+could feel her soft breath on his cheek, could feel her in his
+arms,--could hear her prayers for Larry Kildene's safety as at that
+moment he might be coming to them,--he knew that the mighty river of
+his love must be held back by a masterful will--must be dammed back
+until its floods deepened into an ocean of tranquillity while he rose
+above his loneliness and his fierce longing,--loving her, yet making
+no avowal,--holding her in his heart, yet never disturbing her peace
+of spirit by his own heart's tumult,--clinging to her night and day,
+yet relinquishing her.
+
+And out of this resolution, against which his nature cried and beat
+itself, he saw, serene, and more lonely than Moses or Elijah,--beautiful,
+and near to him as his love, the Christ taken to the high places, even
+the pinnacle of the temple--and the mountain peak, overlooking the
+worlds and the kingdoms thereof, and turning from them all to look down
+on him with a countenance of ineffable beauty--the love that dies not.
+
+He lifted his head. The visions were gone. Had he slept? The fire was
+burning low and a long line was streaked across the eastern sky; a
+line of gold, while still darkness rested below him and around him.
+Again he built up the fire, and set the kettle closer. He stood out on
+the height at the top of the trail and listened, his figure a black
+silhouette against the dancing flames. He called, he shouted with all
+his power, then listened. Did he hear a call? Surely it must be. He
+plunged downward and called again, and again came the faint response.
+In his hand he carried a long pole, and with it he prodded about in
+the snow for sure footing and continued to descend, calling from time
+to time, and rejoicing to hear the answering call. Yes, Larry Kildene
+was below him in the obscurity, and now his voice came up to Harry,
+long and clear. He had not far to go ere he saw the big man slowly
+toiling upward through the dusk of dawn. He had dismounted, and the
+weary animals were following behind.
+
+Thus Larry Kildene came back to his mountain. Exhausted, he still made
+light of his achievement--climbing through day and night to arrive
+before the snow should embank around him. He stood in the firelight
+swaying with weariness and tasted the hot coffee and shook his
+grizzled head and laughed. The animals came slowly on and stood close
+to him, almost resting their noses on his shoulder, while Harry King
+gazed on him with admiration.
+
+"Now if it weren't for the poor beasts, I'd lie down here by the fire
+and sleep rather than take a step farther to-night. To-night?
+Why--it's morning! Isn't it? I never thought we were so near the end.
+If I hadn't seen the fire a long way down, I would have risked another
+bivouac for the rest of the night. We might have lived through it--I
+don't know, but this is better." He rubbed the nose of his panting
+horse. "I shall drop to sleep if we don't move on."
+
+A thin blue smoke was rising from the chimney as they passed the
+cabin, but Amalia, kneeling before the hearth, did not know they were
+near. Harry wondered if Larry had forgotten the mother's hallucination
+about her husband, yet forbore to mention it, thinking it best to get
+him into his bunk first. But he had not forgotten. When Harry came
+into the shed after stabling the horses, he found Larry sitting before
+the chimney fire warming his knees and smoking.
+
+"Give me a little more of that coffee, Harry, and let's talk a bit
+before I turn in for the day. There's the mother, now; she still
+thinks as she did? I'll not see them until this evening--when I may
+feel able to meet the question, and, lad, tell them what you please,
+but--better not let the mother know I'm here until I can see her."
+
+"Then, if you'll go to bed now, I'll bring your food up. I'll tell
+Amalia, of course."
+
+"I'm not hungry--only weary. Don't bother the women about food. After
+a day and night of sleep I'll be quite fit again. Man! But it's good
+to be back into the peace of the hills! I've been down where the waves
+of civilization roar. Yes, yes; I'll go to my bunk after a bit. The
+great menace to our tranquillity here for the winter is the mother."
+
+"But she has improved."
+
+"Good, good. How?"
+
+"She thinks of things around her--and--takes care of the cabin since
+Amalia's hurt."
+
+"Hurt? How's that?"
+
+"She sprained her ankle--only, but enough to lay her up for a while."
+
+"I see. Shook her mother out of her dreams."
+
+"Not entirely. I think the improvement comes more from her firm
+conviction that you are to bring her husband with you, and Amalia
+agrees with me. If you have an excuse that will satisfy her--"
+
+"I see. She was satisfied in her mind that he was alive and would come
+to her--I see. Keep her quiet until I wake up and then we'll find a
+way out--if the truth is impossible. Now I'll sleep--for a day and a
+night and a day--as long as I've been on that forced march. It was to
+go back, or try to push through--or die--and I pushed through."
+
+"Don't sleep until I've brought you some hot broth. I'm sure they have
+it down there."
+
+"I'll be glad of it, yes."
+
+But he could not keep awake. Before Harry could throw another log on
+the fire he was asleep. Then Harry gently drew an army blanket over
+him and went out to the stable. There he saddled his own horse and led
+him toward the cabin. Before he reached it he saw Amalia coming to
+meet him, hobbling on her crutch. She was bareheaded and the light of
+morning was in her eyes.
+
+"Ah, 'Arry, 'Arry King! He has come. I see here marks of feet of
+horses in the snow--is not? Is well? Is safe? Larry Kildene so noble
+and kind! Yes. My mother? No, she prepares the food, and me, I shut
+the door when I run out to see is it sun to-day and the terrible snow
+no more falling. There I see the marks of horses, yes." She spoke
+excitedly, and looked up in Harry's face with smiles on her lips and
+anxious appeal in her eyes.
+
+"Throw down that crutch and lean on me. I'll lift you up--There! Now
+we'll go back to the cabin and lead Goldbug around a bit, so his
+tracks will cover the others and account for them. Then after
+breakfast I'll take you to the top of the trail and tell you."
+
+She leaned down to him from her seat on the horse and put her hand on
+his shoulder. "Is well? And you--you have not slept? No?"
+
+Looking up in her face so wonderful and beautiful, so filled with
+tender solicitude for him, and her glowing eyes fixed on his, he was
+covered with confusion even to scarcely comprehending what she said.
+He took the hand from his shoulder and kissed the tips of her fingers,
+then dropped it and walked on ahead, leading the horse.
+
+"I'm well, yes. Tired a bit, but, oh, yes! Larry Kildene? He's all
+right. We'll go out on the trail and consult--what is best to do about
+your mother--and say nothing until then."
+
+To Amalia a kiss on the finger tips meant no more than the usual
+morning greeting in her own country, and she rode on undisturbed by
+his demonstration, which he felt keenly and for which he would have
+knelt and begged her pardon. Ever since his first unguarded moment
+when he returned and found her fainting on the hillside, he had set
+such rigid watch over his actions that his adoration had been
+expressed only in service--for the most part silent and with averted
+eyes. This aloofness she felt, and with the fineness of her nature
+respected, letting her own play of imagination hover away from
+intimate intrusion, merely lightening the somber relationship that
+would otherwise have existed, like a breeze that stirs only the
+surface of a deep pool and sets dancing lights at play but leaves the
+depths undisturbed.
+
+Yet, with all her intuitiveness, she found him difficult and
+enigmatic. An impenetrable wall seemed to be ever between them,
+erected by his will, not hers; therefore she would not try by the
+least suggestion of manner, or even of thought, to know why, nor would
+she admit to her own spirit the hurt of it. The walled inclosure of
+his heart was his, and she must remain without. To have attempted by
+any art to get within the boundaries he had set she felt to be
+unmaidenly.
+
+In spite of his strength and vigor, Harry was very weary. But less
+from his long night's vigil than from the emotions that had torn him
+and left his heart heavy with the necessity of covering always this
+strong, elemental love that smoldered, waiting in abeyance until it
+might leap into consuming flame.
+
+During the breakfast Harry sat silent, while the two women talked a
+little with each other, speculating as to the weather, and rejoicing
+that the morning was again clear. Then while her mother was occupied,
+Amalia, unnoticed, gave him the broth to carry up to the shed, and
+there, as Larry still slept, he set it near the fire that it might be
+warm and ready for him should he wake during their absence. At the
+cabin he brought wood and laid it beside the hearth, and looked about
+to see if there were anything more he could do before he spoke.
+
+"Madam Manovska, Amalia and I are going up the trail a little way, and
+we may be gone some time, but--I'll take good care of her." He smiled
+reassuringly: "We mustn't waste the sunny days. When Mr. Kildene
+returns, you also must ride sometimes."
+
+"Ah, yes. When? When? It is long--very long."
+
+"But, maybe, not so long, mamma. Soon now must he come. I think it."
+
+They left her standing in the door as they went off up the trail, the
+glistening snow making the world so dazzling in the sunlight, so
+blinding to her eyes, used to the obscurity of the cabin, that the
+many tracks past the door were unnoticed by her. In silence they
+walked until they had almost reached the turn, when Amalia spoke.
+
+"Have you look, how I use but the one crutch, 'Arry King? Soon will I
+again walk on my foot, very well. I have so many times to thank you.
+Now of mamma we must speak. She thinks only, every day, every hour, of
+my father. If we shall speak the truth to her--I do not know. What she
+will do--we cannot tell. No. And it is well to keep her heart from too
+much sorrow. For Sir Kildene, he must not be afflicted by us--my mamma
+and I. We have take from him his house, and he is banish--all for us,
+to make pleasant, and what we can do is little, so little--and if my
+mamma sit always silent when we should be gay to each other and make
+happy the days, is not good, and all his peace will be gone. Now talk
+to me a little of your thoughts, 'Arry King."
+
+"My thoughts must be like yours, Amalia, if I would have them wise.
+It's best to leave her as undisturbed as possible until spring. The
+months will go by rapidly. He will not be troubled. Then we can take
+her to some place, where I will see to it that you are cared for--"
+
+The horse suddenly stopped and settled back on his haunches and lifted
+his head, looking wildly about. Harry sprang to the bridle, but he did
+not try to get away, and only stood quivering and breathing loudly as
+if in the direst fear, and leaned close to Harry for protection.
+
+"What ails you? Good horse." Harry petted and coaxed, but he refused
+to move on, and showed every sign of frantic fear. "I can't think what
+possesses him. He's afraid, but of what?"
+
+"There! There!" cried Amalia, pointing to the top of the trail at the
+cliff. "It's the beast. I have read of it--so terrible! Ah!"
+
+"Surely. That's a mountain lion; Goldbug scented him before he rounded
+the cliff. They're cowards; never fear." He shouted and flung his arm
+in the air, but did not dare let the bridle rein go for fear the horse
+would bolt with her. For a moment the beast stood regarding them, then
+turned and trotted off in a leisurely fashion.
+
+"'Arry, take my hand one minute. I am like the horse, afraid. If that
+animal had come when we were alone on the mountain in that night--it
+is my heart that will not stand still."
+
+"Don't be afraid now. He's gone. He was hunting there where I was last
+night, and no doubt he smells the horses that came up the mountain
+early this morning. It is the snow that has driven him out of the
+canyon to hunt for food." He let her cling to his hand and stood
+quietly, petting and soothing the horse.
+
+"All night? 'Arry King, you were there all night? Why?" she shivered,
+and, bending down, looked steadily in his eyes.
+
+"I had a fire. There was no danger. There is more danger for me in--"
+he cut his words short. "Shall we go on now? Or would you rather turn
+back?"
+
+She drew herself up and released his hand; still she trembled. "I will
+be brave like you are brave. If you so desire, we go on."
+
+"You are really braver than I. Then we'll go a few steps farther." But
+the horse would not go on. He snorted and quivered and pulled back.
+Harry looked up at Amalia. She sat calmly waiting, but was very pale.
+Then he yielded to the horse, and, turning, led him back toward the
+cabin. She drew a long sigh of relief then, and glanced at him, and
+they both laughed.
+
+"You see I am the coward, to only make believe I am not afraid. I am
+very afraid, and now more than always will I be afraid when that you
+go to hunt. 'Arry King, go no more alone." Her voice was low and
+pleading. "There is much to do. I will teach you to speak the French,
+like you have once said you wish to learn. Then is the book to write.
+Is much to do that is very pleasant. But of those wild lions on the
+hills, they are not for a man to fight alone." He restrained the
+horse, and walked slowly at her side, his hand on the pommel of the
+saddle, but did not speak. "You promise not? All night you stay in the
+cold, where is danger, and how may I know you will not again do such a
+thing? All is beautiful here, and great happiness may be if--if that
+you do no tragedy." So sweetly did she plead he could no longer remain
+silent.
+
+"There is only one happiness for me in life, Amalia, and that is
+forbidden me. I have expiation to make before I may ask happiness of
+heaven. You have been most patient with my silences--always--will you
+be patient still--and--understand?"
+
+She drew in her breath sharply and turned her face away from him, and
+for a moment was silent; then she spoke. Her voice was very low, and
+very sweet. "What is right, that must be. Always."
+
+Then they spoke again of Madam Manovska, and Amalia opened her heart
+to him as never before. It seemed as if she would turn his thoughts
+from whatever sorrow might be hanging over him, and impress him with
+the feeling that no matter what might be the cause of his reserve, or
+what wrong he might have done, her faith in him remained unshaken. It
+was a sweet return for his stammered confession.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXIII
+
+A DISCOURSE ON LYING
+
+
+All day Larry Kildene slept, hardly waking long enough toward
+nightfall to drink his broth, but the next day he was refreshed and
+merry.
+
+"Leave Madam Manovska alone," he admonished Harry. "Take Amalia off
+for another ride, and I'll go down to the cabin, and if there's a way
+to set her mind at rest about her husband, I'll find it. I'd not be
+willing to take an oath on what I may tell her, but it will be
+satisfying, never fear."
+
+The ride was a short one, for the air was chill, and there were more
+signs of snow, but when they returned to the cabin, they found Larry
+seated by the fire, drinking a brew of Madam's tea and conversing
+with her joyously about his trip and what he had seen of the new
+railroad. It was curious how he had succeeded in bringing her to take
+an interest in things quite alien to her. The very atmosphere of
+the cabin seemed to be cleared by his presence, big, genial, and
+all-embracing. Certainly nothing of the recluse appeared in his
+demeanor. Only when they were alone in their own quarters did he
+show occasionally a longing for the old condition of unmolested
+tranquillity. To go to his dinner at a set hour, no matter how well
+prepared it might be, annoyed him.
+
+"There's no reason in life why they should get a meal ready merely
+because a timepiece says twelve o'clock. Let them wait until a man's
+hungry," he would grumble. Then, arrived at the cabin, he would be all
+courtesy and geniality.
+
+When Harry rallied him on his inconsistency, he gravely replied: "An
+Irish gentleman is an Irish gentleman the world over, no matter where
+you find him, in court, camp, or wilderness; it's all one to him. Why
+do you think I brought that mirror you shave by all the way up the
+mountain? Why, to have a body to look at now and again, and to
+blarney, just that I might not forget the trick. What was the good of
+that, do you ask? Look at yourself, man. You're a dour Scotchman,
+that's what you are, and you keep your humor done up in a wet blanket,
+and when it glints out of the corner of your eye a bit, you draw down
+the corners of your mouth to belie it. What's the good of that, now?
+The world's a rough place to walk in for the most part, especially for
+women, and if a man carries a smile on his face and a bit of blarney
+on the tip of his tongue, he smooths the way for them. Now, there's
+Madam Manovska. What would you and Amalia have done to her? Driven her
+clean out of her head with your bungling. In a case like hers you must
+be very discreet, and lead her around, by the way she wants to go, to
+a place of safety."
+
+Harry smiled. Since his avowal to Amalia of his determination to make
+expiation for the crime that clouded his life, he had grown more
+cheerful and less restrained in manner. He would accept the present
+happiness, and so far as he could without wrong to her, he would fill
+his hours with the joy of her companionship, and his love should
+dominate him, and his heart should revel in the thought of her, and
+her nearness to him; then when the spring should come and melt the
+snowy barriers between him and the world below, he would go down and
+make his expiation, drinking the bitter cup to the dregs.
+
+This happy imprisonment on the mountain top with these two refined
+women and this kindly man with the friendly heart and splendid body
+and brain, he deemed worth a lifetime spent more sordidly. Here and
+now, he felt himself able to weigh true values, and learned that
+the usual ambitions of mortals--houses and gear and places of
+precedence--could become the end of existence only to those whose
+desires had become distorted by the world's estimates. Now he
+understood how a man might live for a woman's smile, or give his life
+for the touch of her hand, and how he might hunger for the pressing
+of children's lips to his own. The warm friendships of life grew to
+their true proportions in the vast scheme of things, as he looked in
+the big man's eyes and answered his kindly banter.
+
+"I see. It takes a genius to be a discreet and wise liar. Amalia's
+lacking there--for me, I might learn. Now pocket your blarney long
+enough to tell me why you called me a Scotchman."
+
+"How would I know the difference between a broncho and a mule? By the
+earmarks, boy. I've lived in the world long enough to know men. If
+there be only a drop of Scotch blood in a man, he shows it. Like the
+mule he brays at the wrong time, or he settles back and stands when he
+should go forward. Oh, there's many a sign to enlighten the wise."
+
+He rose and knocked the ashes from his pipe and thrust it in his
+pocket and began to look over his pack, which had not been opened. Two
+good-sized sacks hung on either side of the pack mule had held most
+of his purchases, all carefully tied in separate bundles. The good man
+had not been sparing of his gold. Since he had so long exiled himself,
+having no use for what he had accumulated, he had now reveled in
+spending.
+
+"We're to live like lords and ladies, now, Harry. I've two silver
+plates, and they're for the ladies. For us, we'll eat off the tin as
+before. And silver mugs for their drink. See? I would have got them
+china but it's too likely to break. Now, here's a luxury I've brought,
+and it was heavy to carry, too. Here's twenty-four panes of glass. I
+carried them, twelve on each side of my horse, like that, slung so,
+see? That's two windows of two sash each, and six panes to a sash. Oh,
+they're small, but see what a luxury for the women to do their pretty
+work by. And there's work for you, to be making the sash. I've done my
+share of that sort of thing in building the cabin for you, and
+then--young man--I'll set you to digging out the gold. That's work
+that'll put the worth of your body to the test, and the day will come
+when you'll need it."
+
+"I doubt my ever having much need of gold, but whatever you set me at
+I'll do to the best of my ability."
+
+"You may have your doubts, but I have none. Men are like bees; they
+must ever be laying by something, even if they have no use for it." As
+Larry talked he continued to sort over his purchases, and Harry looked
+on, astounded at their variety and number.
+
+While apparently oblivious of the younger man's interest, and absorbed
+in his occupation, whistling, and turning the bundles over in his
+hands as he tallied them off, he now and then shot a keen glance in
+his companion's face. He had noticed the change in Harry, and was
+alert to learn the cause. He found him more talkative, more eager and
+awake. He suspected Harry had passed through some mental crisis, but
+of what nature he was at a loss to determine. Certainly it had made
+him a more agreeable companion than the gloom of his former manner.
+
+"I'll dig for the gold, indeed I will, but I'd like to go on a hunt
+now and then. I'd like a shot at the beast we saw sniffing over the
+spot where I sat all night waiting for you to appear. It will no
+longer be safe for Amalia to wander about alone as she did before she
+hurt her ankle."
+
+"The creature was after sheep. He'll find his prey growing scarcer now
+that the railroad is so near. In ten years or less these mountain
+sheep will be extinct. That's the result of civilization, my boy."
+
+"I'd like to shoot this panther, though."
+
+"We'll have to set a bait for him--and that means a deer or a sheep
+must go. We'll do it soon, too."
+
+"You've reconciled Madam Manovska to your coming home without her
+husband! I didn't think it possible. Give me a lesson in diplomacy,
+will you?"
+
+"Wait till I light my pipe. Now. First, you must know there are several
+kinds of lying, and you must learn which kinds are permissible--and
+otherwise." With his pipe between his teeth, Larry stood, a mock
+gravity about his mouth, and a humorous twinkle in his eyes, while he
+looked down on Harry, and told off the lies on his fingers.
+
+"First, there's the fool's lie--you'll know it because there's no
+purpose in it, and there's the rogue's lie,--and as we're neither
+fools nor rogues we'll class them both as--otherwise; then there's
+the lie of pride, and, as that goes along with the fool's lie, we'll
+throw it out with the--otherwise--and the coward's lie also goes with
+the otherwise." Larry shook his fingers as if he tossed the four lies
+off from their tips, and began again. "Now. Here's the friend's lie--a
+man risks his soul to save a friend--good--or to help him out of
+trouble--very well. And then there's the lover's lie, it's what a lad
+tells his sweetheart--that goes along with what she tells him--and
+comes by way of nature--"
+
+"Or you might class it along with your own blarney."
+
+"Let be, lad. I'm teaching you the diplomacy, now. Then there's the
+lie of shame, and the lie of sorrow, wherein a man puts by, for his
+own loved one's sake, or his self-respect, what's better covered;
+that, too, comes by way of nature, even as a dog crawls away to die
+alone, and we'll accept it. Now comes the lie of the man who would
+tell a good tale for the amusement of his friends; very well, the
+nature of man loves it, so we'll count it in, and along with it comes
+a host of little lies like the sportsman's lie and the traveler's
+lie--they all help to make life merry, and the world can ill do
+without them. But now comes the lie of circumspection. You must learn
+to lie it without lying. See? It's the lie of wisdom, and it's a very
+subtle thing, and easily abused. If a man uses it for a selfish cause
+and merely to pervert the truth, it's a black lie, and one of the very
+worst. Or he may use it in a good cause, and it's fairly white. It
+must be used with discrimination. That's the lie I used for the poor
+Madam down there."
+
+"But what did you say?"
+
+"She says to me, 'And where is my 'usband?' I reply, 'Madam, your
+husband is in a very safe and secret place,'--and that is true
+enough--'where his enemies will never find him,'--and for all we know
+that is also true. 'But I cannot understand why he did not come to me.
+That is not like my 'usband.' 'No, Madam, it is not. But man must do
+what he must, and the way was too long and arduous for his strength;
+he could not take the long, weary climb.' And no more could he, true
+enough. 'No, Madam, you cannot go to him, nor he come to you, for the
+danger of the way and the wild beasts that are abroad looking for
+food.' And what more true than that, for did not her daughter see one
+hunting for food?
+
+"So she covers her face with her hand and rocks herself back and
+forth, and now, lad, here's where the blarney comes in. It's to tell
+her of the worth of her husband, and what a loss it would be to the
+world if he were to die on the trail, and what he would suffer if he
+thought she were unhappy, and then in the ardor of my speech comes the
+straight lie. I told her that he was writing the story of his life and
+that it was to be a great work which would bring about a tremendous
+revolution of justice and would bring confusion to his enemies, until
+at last she holds up her head proudly and speaks of his wonderful
+intellect and goodness. Then she says: 'He cannot come to me, very
+good. He is not strong enough--no. I go to him to-morrow.' Think of
+that, man! What I had to meet, and it was all to go over again. I
+would call it very circumspect lying and in a good cause, too, to
+comfort the poor soul. I told her of the snow, and how surely she
+would die by the way and make her husband very sad, he who was now
+happy in the writing of his book, and that to do so would break his
+heart and cause his own death,--while to wait until spring in peace
+would be wiser, because she might then descend the mountain in perfect
+safety. So now she sits sewing and making things no man understands
+the use of. She showed me the blouse she has made for you. Now, that
+is the best medicine for her sick brain. They're great women, these
+two. If we must have women about, we're in luck to have women of their
+quality."
+
+"We are, indeed."
+
+"I saw the women who follow the road as it creeps across the plains.
+They're pitiful to see. If these had been like them, we'd have been
+obliged to take them in just the same, but Lord be merciful to them,
+I'm glad they're not on my mountain." Larry shook his ponderous,
+grizzled head and turned again to his packages. "Since they love to
+sew, they may be making things for themselves next. Look you! Here is
+silk for gowns, for women love adornment, the best of them."
+
+Harry paused, his arms full of wood with which he was replenishing the
+fire, and stared in amazement, as Larry unrolled a mass of changeable
+satin wherein a deep cerise and green coloring shifted and shimmered
+in the firelight. He held the rich material up to his own waist and
+looked gravely down on the long folds that dropped to the floor and
+coiled about his feet. "I told you we're to live like lords and ladies
+now. Man! I'd like to see Amalia in a gown of this!"
+
+Harry dropped his wood on the fire and threw back his head and
+laughed. He even lay down on the floor to laugh, and rolled about
+until his head lay among the folds of satin. Then he sat up, and
+taking the material between his fingers felt of it, while the big man
+looked down on him, gravely discomfited.
+
+"And what did you bring for Madam Manovska?"
+
+"Black, man, black. I'm no fool, I tell you. I know what's discreet
+for an elderly lady." Then they gravely and laboriously folded
+together the yards of gorgeous satin. "And I'd have been glad of your
+measure to get you the suit of clothes you're needing. Lacking it, I
+got one for myself. But for me they're a bit too small. You'll maybe
+turn tailor and cut them still smaller for yourself. Take them, and if
+they're no fit, you'll laugh out of the other corner of your mouth."
+The two men stood a moment sheepishly eying each other, while Harry
+held the clothes awkwardly in his hands.
+
+"I--I--did need them." He choked a bit, and then laughed again.
+
+"So did I need them--yours and mine, too." Larry held up another suit,
+"See here. Mine are darker, to keep you from thinking them yours. And
+here are the buckskins for hunting. I used to make them for myself,
+but they had these for sale, and I was by way of spending money, so I
+bought them. Now, with the blouses the women have made for you, we're
+decent."
+
+All at once it dawned on Harry what a journey the big man had made,
+and he fairly shouted, "Larry Kildene, where have you been?"
+
+"I rode like the very devil for three days. When once I was started, I
+was crazed to go--and see--Then I reached the end of the road from the
+coast this way. Did you know they're building the road from both ways
+at once? I didn't, for I never went down to get news of the cities,
+and they might have put the whole thing through without my even
+knowing of it, if you hadn't tumbled in on me and told me of it.
+
+"It stirred me up a bit. I left my horse in charge of one I thought I
+might trust, and then took a train and rode over the new rails clean
+through to San Francisco, and there I groveled around a day or two,
+taking in the ways of men. They're doing big things. Now that the two
+oceans are to be united by iron rails, great changes will come like
+the wind,--the Lord knows when they will end! Now, the women will be
+wanting us to eat, I'm thinking, and I'm not ready--but eat we must
+when the hour comes, and we've done nothing this whole morning but
+stand here and talk."
+
+Thus Larry grumbled as they tramped down to the cabin through the
+snow, with the rolls of silk under his arm, and the silver plates in
+his hand, while Harry carried the sack of coffee and the paper for
+Amalia. As they neared the cabin the big man paused.
+
+"Take these things in for me, Harry. I--I--left something back in the
+shed. Drop that coffee and I'll fetch it as I come along."
+
+"Now, what kind of a lie would you call that, sir, since it's your
+courage you've left?"
+
+"Let be, let be. Can't you see I'm going back after it?"
+
+So Harry carried in the gifts and Larry went back for his "courage"
+and donned his new suit of clothes to help him carry it, and then came
+walking in with a jovial swagger, and accepted the mother's thanks and
+Amalia's embrace with a marvelous ease, especially the embrace, with
+which he seemed mightily pleased.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXIV
+
+AMALIA'S FETE
+
+
+The winter was a cold one, and the snows fell heavily, but a way was
+always kept open between the cabin and the fodder shed, and also by
+great labor a space was kept cleared around the cabin and a part of
+the distance toward the fall so that the women might not be walled in
+their quarters by the snow. With plenty to occupy them all, the weeks
+sped swiftly and pleasantly. Larry did a little trapping and hunting,
+but toward midwinter the sport became dangerous, because of the depth
+of the snow, and with the exception of stalking a deer now and then,
+for fresh food, he and Harry spent the most of their time burrowing in
+the mountain for gold.
+
+Amalia's crutches were gradually laid aside, until she ran about as
+lightly as before, but even had she not been prevented by the snow she
+would not have been allowed to go far away from the cabin alone. The
+men baited and lay in wait for the panther, and at last shot him, but
+Larry knew from long experience that when the snows were deep,
+panthers often haunted his place, and their tracks were frequently
+seen higher up the mountain where he was wont to hunt the mountain
+sheep.
+
+Sometimes Harry King rode with Amalia where the wind had swept the way
+bare, toward the bend in the trail, and would bring her back glowing
+and happy from the exercise. Sometimes when the storms were fierce
+without, and he suspected Larry longed for his old-time seclusion, he
+sat in the cabin. At these times Amalia redeemed her promise to teach
+him French. Few indeed were the books she had for help in giving these
+lessons. One little unbound book of old sonnets and songs and a small
+pamphlet of more modern poems that her father had loved, were all,
+except his Bible, which, although it was in Polish, contained copious
+annotations in her father's hand in French, and between the leaves of
+which lay loose pages filled with concise and plainly written
+meditations of his own.
+
+These Amalia loved and handled with reverence, and for Harry King they
+had such vital interest that he learned the more rapidly that he might
+know all they contained. He no longer wondered at her power and
+breadth of thought. As he progressed he found in them a complete
+system of ethics and religious faith. Their writer seemed to have
+drawn from all sources intrinsically vital truths, and separated them
+from their encumbering theologic verbiage and dogma, and had traced
+them simply through to the great "Sermon on the Mount." In a few pages
+this great man had comprised the deepest logic, and the sweetest and
+widest theology, enough for all the world to live by, and enough to
+guide nations in safety, if only all men might learn it.
+
+It was sufficient. He knew Amalia better, and more deeply he
+reverenced and loved her. He no longer quivered when he heard her
+mention the "Virgin" or when she spoke of the "Sweet Christ." It was
+not what his old dogmatic ancestry had fled from as "Popery." It was
+her simple, direct faith in the living Christ, which gave her eyes
+their clear, far-seeing vision, and her heart its quick, responsive
+intuition and understanding. She might speak of the convent where she
+had been protected and loved, and taught many things useful and good,
+other than legends and doctrines. She had learned how, through her
+father's understanding and study, to gather out the good, and leave
+the rest, in all things.
+
+And Harry learned his French. He was an apt scholar, and Larry fell in
+line, for he had not forgotten the scholastic Latin and French of his
+college days. He liked, indeed, to air his French occasionally,
+although his accent was decidedly English, but his grammar was good
+and a great help to Harry. Madam Manovska also enjoyed his efforts and
+suggested that when they were all together they should converse in the
+French alone, not only that they might help Harry, but also that they
+might have a common language. It was to her and Amalia like their
+native tongue, and their fluency for a time quite baffled Larry, but
+he was determined not to be beaten, and when Harry faltered and
+refused to go on, he pounded him on the back, and stirred him up to
+try again.
+
+Although Amalia's convent training had greatly restricted her
+knowledge of literature other than religious, her later years of
+intimate companionship with her father, and her mother's truly
+remarkable knowledge of the classics and fearless investigation of the
+modern thought of her day, had enlarged Amalia's horizon; while her
+own vivid imagination and her native geniality caused her to lighten
+always her mother's more somber thought with a delicate and gracious
+play of fancy that was at once fascinating and delightful. This, and
+Harry's determination to live to the utmost in these weeks of respite,
+made him at times almost gay.
+
+Most of all he reveled in Amalia's music. Certain melodies that she
+said her father had made he loved especially, and sometimes she would
+accompany them with a plaintive chant, half singing and half
+recitation, of the sonnet which had inspired them, and which had been
+woven through them. It was at these times that Larry listened with his
+elbows on his knees and his eyes fixed on the fire, and Harry with his
+eyes on Amalia's face, while the cabin became to him glorified with a
+light, no longer from the flames, but with a radiance like that which
+surrounded Dante's Beatrice in Paradise.
+
+Amalia loved to please Larry Kildene. For this reason, knowing the joy
+he would take in it, and also because she loved color and light and
+joy, and the giving of joy, she took the gorgeous silk he had brought
+her, and made it up in a fashion of her own. Down in the cities, she
+knew, women were wearing their gowns spread out over wide hoops, but
+she made the dress as she knew they were worn at the time Larry had
+lived among women and had seen them most.
+
+The bodice she fitted closely and shaped into a long point in front,
+and the skirt she gathered and allowed to fall in long folds to her
+feet. The sleeves she fitted only to her elbows, and gathered in them
+deep lace of her own making--lace to dream about, and the creation of
+which was one of those choice things she had learned of the good
+sisters at the convent. About her neck she put a bertha, kerchiefwise,
+and pinned it with a brooch of curiously wrought gold. Larry, "the
+discreet and circumspect liar," thought of the emerald brooch she had
+brought him to sell for her, and knowing how it would glow and blend
+among the changing tints of the silk, he fetched it to her, explaining
+that he could not sell it, and that the bracelet had covered all she
+had asked him to purchase for her, and some to spare.
+
+She thanked him, and fastened it in her bodice, and handed the other
+to her mother. "There, mamma, when we have make you the dress Sir
+Kildene have brought you, you must wear this, for it is beautiful with
+the black. Then we will have a fete. And for the fete, Sir Kildene,
+you must wear the very fine new clothes you have buy, and Mr. 'Arry
+will carry on him the fine new clothing, and so will we be all attire
+most splendid. I will make for you all the music you like the best,
+and mamma will speak then the great poems she have learned by head,
+and Sir Kildene will tell the story he can relate so well of strange
+happenings. Oh, it will be a fine, good concert we will make here--and
+you, Mr. 'Arry, what will you do?"
+
+"I'll do the refreshments. I'll roast corn and make coffee. I'll be
+audience and call for more."
+
+"Ah, yes! Encore! Encore! The artists must always be very much
+praised--very much--so have I heard, to make them content. It is Sir
+Kildene who will be the great artist, and you must cry 'Encore,' and
+honor him greatly with such calls. Then will we have the pleasure to
+hear many stories from him. Ah, I like to hear them."
+
+It was a strange life for Harry King, this odd mixture of finest
+culture and high-bred delicacy of manner, with what appeared to be a
+total absence of self-seeking and a simple enjoyment of everyday work.
+He found Amalia one morning on her knees scrubbing the cabin floor,
+and for the moment it shocked him. When they were out on the plains
+camping and living as best they could, he felt it to be the natural
+consequence of their necessities when he saw her washing their clothes
+and making the best of their difficulties by doing hard things with
+her own hands, but now that they were living in a civilized way, he
+could not bear to see her, or her mother, doing the rough work. Amalia
+only laughed at him. "See how fine we make all things. If I will not
+serve for making clean the house, why am I? Is not?"
+
+"It doesn't make any difference what you do, you are always
+beautiful."
+
+"Ah, Mr. 'Arry, you must say those compliments only in the French. It
+is no language, the English, for those fine eloquences."
+
+"No, I don't seem to be able to say anything I mean, in French. It's
+always a sort of make-believe talk with me. Our whole life here seems
+a sort of dream,--as if we were living in some wonderful bubble that
+will suddenly burst one day, and leave us floating alone in space,
+with nothing anywhere to rest on."
+
+"No, no, you are mistake. Here is this floor, very real, and dirt on
+it to be washed away,--from your boots, also very real, is not? Go
+away, Mr. 'Arry, but come to-night in your fine clothing, for we have
+our fete. Mamma has finish her beautiful new dress, and we will be
+gay. Is good to be sometimes joyful, is not? We have here no care,
+only to make happy together, and if we cannot do that, all is
+somber."
+
+And that evening indeed, Amalia had her "fete." Larry told his best
+stories, and Harry was persuaded to tell them a little of his life as
+a soldier, and to sing a camp song. More than this he would not do,
+but he brought out something he had been reserving with pride, a few
+little nuggets of gold. During the weeks he had worked he had found
+little, until the last few days, but happening to strike a vein of
+ore, richer than any Larry had ever found, the two men were greatly
+elated, and had determined to interest the women by melting some of it
+out of the quartz in which it was bedded, and turning out for each a
+golden bullet in Larry's mold.
+
+They heaped hard wood in the fireplace and the cabin was lighted most
+gloriously. While they waited for the red coals to melt the gold,
+Amalia took her violin and played and sang. It was nearly time for the
+rigor of the winter to abate, but still a high wind was blowing, and
+the fine snow was piling and drifting about the cabin, and even
+sifting through the chinks around the window and door, but the storm
+only made the brightness and warmth within more delightful.
+
+When Larry drew his crucible from the coals and poured the tiny
+glowing stream into his molds, Amalia cried out with joy. "How that is
+beautiful! How wonderful to dig such beauty from the dark ground down
+in the black earth! Ah, mamma, look!"
+
+Then Larry pounded each one flat like a coin, and drilled through a
+small hole, making thus, for each, a souvenir of the shining metal.
+"This is from Harry's first mining," he said, "and it represents good,
+hard labor. He's picked out a lot of worthless dirt and stone to find
+this."
+
+Amalia held the little disk in her hand and smiled upon it. "I love so
+this little precious thing. Now, Mr. 'Arry, what shall I play for you?
+It is yours to ask--for me, to play; it is all I have."
+
+"That sonnet you played me yesterday. The last line is, '"Quelle est
+donc cette femme?" et ne comprenda pas.'"
+
+"The music of that is not my father's best--but you ask it, yes." Then
+she began, first playing after her own heart little dancing airs, gay
+and fantastic, and at last slid into a plaintive strain, and recited
+the accompaniment of rhythmic words.
+
+ "Mon ame a son secret, ma vie a son mystere:
+ Un amour eternel en un moment concu.
+ Le mal est sans espoir, aussi j'ai du le taire
+ Et celle qui l'a fait n'en a jamais rien su."
+
+One minor note came and went and came again, through the melody, until
+the last tones fell on that note and were held suspended in a
+tremulous plaint.
+
+ "Elle dira, lisant ces vers tout remplis d'elle:
+ 'Quelle est donc cette femme?' et ne comprendra pas."
+
+Without pause she passed into a quick staccato and then descended
+to long-drawn tones, deep and full. "This is better, but I have never
+played it for you because that it is Polish, and to make it in
+English and so sing it is hard. You have heard of our great and good
+general Kosciuszko, yes? My father loved well to speak of him and
+also of one very high officer under him,--I speak his name for you,
+Julian Niemcewicz. This high officer, I do not know how to say in
+English his rank, but that is no matter. He was writer, and poet,
+and soldier--all. At last he was exiled and sorrowful, like my
+father,--sorrowful most of all because he might no more serve his
+country. It is to this poet's own words which he wrote for his grave
+that my father have put in music the cry of his sorrow. In Polish
+is it more beautiful, but I sing it for you in English for your
+comprehending."
+
+ "O, ye exiles, who so long wander over the world,
+ Where will ye find a resting place for your weary steps?
+ The wild dove has its nest, and the worm a clod of earth,
+ Each man a country, but the Pole a grave!"
+
+It was indeed a cry of sorrow, the wail of a dying nation, and as
+Amalia played and sang she became oblivious of all else a being
+inspired by lofty emotion, while the two men sat in silence, wondering
+and fascinated. The mother's eyes glowed upon her out of the obscurity
+of her corner, and her voice alone broke the silence.
+
+"I have heard my Paul in the night of the desert where he made that
+music, I have heard him so play and sing it, that it would seem the
+stars must fall down out of the heavens with sorrow for it."
+
+Amalia smiled and caught up her violin again. "We will have no more of
+this sad music this night. I will sing the wild song of the Ukraine,
+most beautiful of all our country, alas, ours no more--Like that
+other, the music is my father's, but the poem is written by a son of
+the Ukraine--Zaliski."
+
+A melody clear and sweet dominated, mounting to a note of triumph.
+Slender and tall she stood in the middle of the room. The firelight
+played on the folds of her gown, bringing out its color in brilliant
+flashes. She seemed to Harry, with her rich complexion and glowing
+eyes, absorbed thus in her music, a type of human splendor, vigorous,
+vivid, adorable. Mostly in Polish, but sometimes in English, she again
+half sang, half chanted, now playing with the voice, and again
+dropping to accompaniment only, while they listened, the mother in
+the shadows, Larry gazing in the fire, and Harry upon her.
+
+ "Me also has my mother, the Ukraine,
+ Me her son
+ Cradled on her bosom,
+ The enchantress."
+
+She ceased, and with a sigh dropped at her mother's feet and rested
+her head on her mother's knee.
+
+"Tell us now, mamma, a poem. It is time we finish now our fete with
+one good, long poem from you."
+
+"You will understand me?" Madam Manovska turned to Harry. "You do well
+understand what once you have heard--" She always spoke slowly and
+with difficulty when she undertook English, and now she continued
+speaking rapidly to Amalia in her own tongue, and her daughter
+explained.
+
+"Mamma says she will tell you a poem composed by a great poet, French,
+who is now, for patriotism to his country, in exile. His name is
+Victor Hugo. You have surely heard of him? Yes. She says she will
+repeat this which she have by head, and because that it is not
+familiar to you she asks will I tell it in English--if you so
+desire?"
+
+Again Madam Manovska addressed her daughter, and Amalia said: "She
+thinks this high mountain and the plain below, and that we are exile
+from our own land, makes her think of this; only that the conscience
+has never for her brought terror, like for Cain, but only to those who
+have so long persecuted my father with imprisonment, and drive him so
+far to terrible places. She thinks they must always, with never
+stopping, see the 'Eye' that regards forever. This also must Victor
+Hugo know well, since for his country he also is driven in exile--and
+can see the terrible 'Eye' go to punish his enemies."
+
+Then Madam Manovska began repeating in her strong, deep tones the
+lines:--
+
+ "Lorsque avec ses enfants vetus de peaux de betes,
+ Echevele, livide au milieu des tempetes,
+ Cain se fut enfui de devant Jehovah,
+
+ "Comme le soir tombait, l'homme sombre arriva
+ Au bas d'une montagne en une grande plaine;
+ Sa femme fatiguee et ses fils hors d'haleine;
+ Lui dire: 'Couchons-nous sur la terre et dormons.'"
+
+"Oh, mamma, that is so sad, that poem,--but continue--I will make it
+in English so well as I can, and for the mistakes--errors--of my
+telling you will forgive?
+
+"This is the story of the terrible man, Cain, how he go with his
+children all in the skins of animals dressed. His hairs so wild, his
+face pale,--he runs in the midst of the storms to hide himself from
+God,--and, at last, in the night to the foot of a mountain on a great
+plain he arrive, and his wife and sons, with no breath and very tired,
+say to him, let us here on the earth lie down and sleep." Thus, as
+Madam Manovska recited, Amalia told the story in her own words, and
+Harry King listened rapt and tense to the very end, while the fire
+burned low and the shadows closed around them.
+
+"But Cain did not sleep, lying there by the mountain, for he saw
+always in the far shadows the fearful Eye of the condemning power
+fixed with great sorrow upon him. Then he cried, 'I am too near!' and
+with trembling he awoke his children and his wife, and began to run
+furiously into space. So for thirty days and thirty nights he walked,
+always pale and silent, trembling, and never to see behind him,
+without rest or sleeping, until they came to the shore of a far
+country, named Assur.
+
+"'Now rest we here, for we are come to the end of the world and are
+safe,' but, as he seated himself and looked, there in the same place
+on the far horizon he saw, in the sorrowful heavens, the Eye. Then
+Cain called on the darkness to hide him, and Jabal, his son, parent of
+those who live in tents, extended about him on that side the cloth of
+his tent, and Tsilla, the little daughter of his son, asked him, 'You
+see now nothing?' and Cain replied, 'I see the Eye, encore!'
+
+"Then Jubal, his son, father of those who live in towns and blow upon
+clarions and strike upon tambours, cried, 'I will make one barrier, I
+will make one wall of bronze and put Cain behind it.' But even still,
+Cain said, 'The Eye regards me always!'
+
+"Then Henoch said: 'I will make a place of towers so terrible that no
+one dare approach to him. Build we a city of citadels. Build we a city
+and there fasten--shut--close.'
+
+"Then Tubal Cain, father of men who make of iron, constructed one
+city--enormous--superhuman; and while that he labored, his brothers in
+the plain drove far away the sons of Enos and the children of Seth,
+and put out the eyes of all who passed that way, and the night came
+when the walls of covering of tents were not, and in their place were
+walls of granite, every block immense, fastened with great nails of
+iron, and the city seemed a city of iron, and the shadow of its towers
+made night upon the plain, and about the city were walls more high
+than mountains, and when all was done, they graved upon the door,
+'Defense a Dieu d'entrer,' and they put the old father Cain in a tower
+of stone in the midst of this city, and he sat there somber and
+haggard.
+
+"'Oh, my father, the Eye has now disappeared?' asked the child,
+Tsilla, and Cain replied: 'No, it is always there! I will go and live
+under the earth, as in his sepulcher, a man alone. There nothing can
+see me more, and I no more can see anything.'
+
+"Then made they for him one--cavern. And Cain said, 'This is well,'
+and he descended alone under this somber vault and sat upon a seat in
+the shadows, and when they had shut down the door of the cave, the Eye
+was there in the tombs regarding him."
+
+Thus, seated at her mother's feet, Amalia rendered the poem as her
+mother recited, while the firelight played over her face and flashed
+in the silken folds of her dress. When she had finished, the fire was
+low and the cabin almost in darkness. No one spoke. Larry still gazed
+in the dying embers, and Harry still sat with his eyes fixed on
+Amalia's face.
+
+"Victor Hugo, he is a very great man, as my 'usband have say," said
+the mother at last.
+
+"Ah, mamma. For Cain,--maybe,--yes, the Eye never closed, but now have
+man hope or why was the Christ and the Holy Virgin? It is the
+forgiving of God they bring--for--for love of the poor human,--and who
+is sorrowful for his wrong--he is forgive with peace in his heart, is
+not?"
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXV
+
+HARRY KING LEAVES THE MOUNTAIN
+
+
+When the two men bade Amalia and her mother good night and took their
+way to the fodder shed, the snow was whirling and drifting around the
+cabin, and the pathway was obliterated.
+
+"This'll be the last storm of the year, I'm thinking," said Larry. But
+the younger man strode on without making a reply. He bent forward,
+leaning against the wind, and in silence trod a path for his friend
+through the drifted heaps. At the door of the shed he stood back to
+let Larry pass.
+
+"I'll not go in yet. I'll tramp about in the snow a bit until--Don't
+sit up for me--" He turned swiftly away into the night, but Larry
+caught him by the arm and brought him back.
+
+"Come in with me, lad; I'm lonely. We'll smoke together, then we'll
+sleep well enough."
+
+Then Harry went in and built up the fire, throwing on logs until the
+shed was flooded with light and the bare rock wall seemed to leap
+forward in the brilliance, but he did not smoke; he paced restlessly
+about and at last crept into his bunk and lay with his face to the
+wall. Larry sat long before the fire. "It's the music that's got in my
+blood," he said. "Katherine could sing and lilt the Scotch airs like a
+bird. She had a touch for the instrument, too."
+
+But Harry could not respond to his friend's attempted confidence in
+the rare mention of his wife's name. He lay staring at the rough stone
+wall close to his face, and it seemed to him that his future was
+bounded by a barrier as implacable and terrible as that. All through
+the night he heard the deep tones of Madam Manovska's voice, and the
+visions of the poem passed through his mind. He saw the strange old
+man, the murderer, Cain, seated in the tomb, bowed and remorseful, and
+in the darkness still the Eye. But side by side with this somber
+vision he saw the interior of the cabin, and Amalia, glowing and warm
+and splendid in her rich gown, with the red firelight playing over
+her, leaning toward him, her wonderful eyes fixed on his with a regard
+at once inscrutable and sympathetic. It was as if she were looking
+into his heart, but did not wish him to know that she saw so deeply.
+
+Towards morning the snow clouds were swept from the sky, and a late
+moon shone out clear and cold upon a world carved crisply out of
+molten silver. Unable longer to bear that waking torture, Harry King
+rose and went out into the night, leaving his friend quietly sleeping.
+He stood a moment listening to Larry's long, calm breathing; then
+buttoning his coat warmly across his chest, he closed the shed door
+softly behind him and floundered off into the drifts, without heeding
+the direction he was taking, until he found himself on the brink of
+the chasm where the river, sliding smoothly over the rocks high above
+his head, was forever tumbling.
+
+There he stood, trembling, but not with cold, nor with cowardice, nor
+with fatigue. Sanity had come upon him. He would do no untoward act to
+hurt the three people who would grieve for him. He would bear the hurt
+of forever loving in silence, and continue to wait for the open road
+that would lead him to prison and disgrace, or maybe a death of shame.
+He considered, as often before, all the arguments that continually
+fretted him and tore his spirit; and, as before, he knew the only
+course to follow was the hard one which took him back to Amalia, until
+spring and the melting of the snows released him--to live near her, to
+see her and hear her voice, even touch her hand, and feel his body
+grow tense and hard, suffering restraint. If only for one moment he
+might let himself go! If but once again he might touch her lips with
+his! Ah, God! If he might say one word of love--only once before
+leaving her forever!
+
+Standing there looking out upon the world beneath him and above him
+bathed in the immaculate whiteness of the snow, and the moonlight over
+all, he perceived how small an atom in the universe is one lone man,
+yet how overwhelmingly great in his power to love. It seemed to him
+that his love overtopped the hills and swept to the very throne of
+God. He was exalted by it, and in this exaltation it was that he
+trembled. Would it lift him up to triumph over remorse and death?
+
+He turned and plodded back the inevitable way. It was still
+night--cold and silver-white. He was filled with energy born of great
+renunciation and despair, and could only calm himself by work. If he
+could only work until he dropped, or fight with the elements, it would
+help him. He began clearing the snow from the ground around the cabin
+and cut the path through to the shed; then he quietly entered and
+found Larry still calmly sleeping as if but a moment had passed.
+Finally, he secured one of the torches and made his way through the
+tunnel to the place where Larry and he had found the quartz which they
+had smelted in the evening.
+
+There he fastened the torch securely in a crevice, and began to swing
+his pick and batter recklessly at the overhanging ledge. Never had he
+worked so furiously, and the earth and stone lay all about him and
+heaped at his feet. Deeper and deeper he fought and cut into the solid
+wall, until, grimed with sweat and dirt, he sank exhausted upon the
+pile of quartz he had loosened. Then he shoveled it to one side and
+began again dealing erratic blows with his spent strength, until the
+ledge hung dangerously over him. As it was, he reeled and swayed and
+struck again, and staggered back to gather strength for another blow,
+leaning on his pick, and this saved him from death; for, during the
+instant's pause, the whole mass fell crashing in front of him, and he
+went down with it, stunned and bleeding, but not crushed.
+
+Larry Kildene breakfasted and worked about the cabin and the shed half
+the day before he began to wonder at the young man's absence. He fell
+to grumbling that Harry had not fed and groomed his horse, and did the
+work himself. Noon came, and Amalia looked in his face anxiously as he
+entered and Harry not with him.
+
+"How is it that Mr. 'Arry have not arrive all this day?"
+
+"Oh, he's mooning somewhere. Off on a tramp I suppose."
+
+"Has he then his gun? No?"
+
+"No, but he's been about. He cleared away all the snow, and I saw he
+had been over to the fall." Amalia turned pale as the shrewd old man's
+eyes rested on her. "He came back early, though, for I saw footprints
+both ways."
+
+"I hope he comes soon, for we have the good soup to-day, of the kind
+Mr. 'Arry so well likes."
+
+But he did not come soon, and it was with much misgiving that Larry
+set out to search for him. Finding no trails leading anywhere except
+the twice trodden one to the fall, he naturally turned into the mine
+and followed along the path, torch in hand, hallooing jovially as he
+went, but his voice only returned to him, reverberating hollowly.
+Then, remembering the ledge where they had last worked, and how he had
+meant to put in props before cutting away any more, he ran forward,
+certain of calamity, and found his young friend lying where he had
+fallen, the blood still oozing from a cut above the temple, where it
+had clotted.
+
+For a moment Larry stood aghast, thinking him dead, but quickly seeing
+the fresh blood, he lifted the limp body and bound up the wound, and
+then Harry opened his eyes and smiled in Larry's face. The big man in
+his joy could do nothing but storm and scold.
+
+"Didn't I tell ye to do no more here until we'd the props in? I'm
+thinking you're a fool, and that's what you are. If I didn't tell ye
+we needed them here, you could have seen it for yourself--and here
+you've cut away all underneath. What did you do it for? I say!"
+Tenderly he gathered Harry in his arms and lifted him from the debris
+and loosened rock. "Now! Are you hurt anywhere else? Don't try to
+stand. Bear on me. I say, bear on me."
+
+"Oh, put me down and let me walk. I'm not hurt. Just a cut. How long
+have you been here?"
+
+"Walk! I say! Yes, walk! Put your arm here, across my shoulder, so.
+You can walk as well as a week-old baby. You've lost blood enough to
+kill a man." So Larry carried him in spite of himself, and laid him in
+his bunk. There he stood, panting, and looking down on him. "You're
+heavier by a few pounds than when I toted you down that trail last
+fall."
+
+"This is all foolishness. I could have made it myself--on foot," said
+Harry, ungratefully, but he smiled up in the older man's face a
+compensating smile.
+
+"Oh, yes. You can lie there and grin now. And you'll continue to lie
+there until I let you up. It's no more lessons with Amalia and no more
+violin and poetry for you, for one while, young man."
+
+"Thank God. It will help me over the time until the trail is open."
+Larry stood staring foolishly on the drawn face and quivering,
+sensitive lips.
+
+"You're hungry, that's what you are," he said conclusively.
+
+"Guess I am. I'm wretchedly sorry to make you all this trouble,
+but--she mustn't come in here--you'll bring me a bite to eat--yes, I'm
+hungry. That's what ails me." He drew a grimy hand across his eyes and
+felt the bandage. "Why--you've done me up! I must have had quite a
+cut."
+
+"I'll wash your face and get your coat off, and your boots, and make
+you fit to look at, and then--"
+
+"I don't want to see her--or her mother--either. I'm just--I'm a bit
+faint--I'll eat if--you'll fetch me a bite."
+
+Quickly Larry removed his outer clothing and mended the fire and then
+left him carefully wrapped in blankets and settled in his bunk. When
+he returned, he found him light-headed and moaning and talking
+incoherently. Only a few words could he understand, and these remained
+in his memory.
+
+"When I'm dead--when I'm dead, I say." And then, "Not yet. I can't
+tell him yet.--I can't tell him the truth. It's too cruel." And again
+the refrain: "When I'm dead--when I'm dead." But when Larry bent over
+him and spoke, Harry looked sanely in his eyes and smiled again.
+
+"Ah, that's good," he said, sipping the soup. "I'll be myself again
+to-morrow, and save you all this trouble. You know I must have
+accomplished a good deal, to break off that ledge, and the gold fairly
+leaped out on me as I worked."
+
+"Did you see it?"
+
+"No, but I knew it--I felt it. Shake my clothes and see if they aren't
+full of it."
+
+"Was that what put you in such a frenzy and made a fool of you?"
+
+"Yes--no--no. It--it--wasn't that."
+
+"You know you were a fool, don't you?"
+
+"If telling me of it makes me know it--yes."
+
+"Eat a little more. Here are beans and venison. You must eat to make
+up the loss. Why, man, I found you in a pool of blood."
+
+"Oh, I'll make it up. I'll make it up all too soon. I'm not to die so
+easily."
+
+"You'll not make it up as soon as you think, young man. You may lose a
+quart of blood in a minute, but it takes weeks to get it again," and
+Harry King found his friend was right.
+
+That was the last snow of winter, as Larry had predicted, and when
+Harry crawled out in the sun, the earth smelled of spring, and the
+waterfall thundered in its downward plunge, augmented by the melting
+snows of the still higher mountains. The noise of it was ever in their
+ears, and the sound seemed fraught with a buoyant impulse and
+inspiration--the whirl and rush of a tremendous force, giving a sense
+of superhuman power. Even after he was really able to walk about and
+help himself, Harry would not allow himself to see Amalia. He forbade
+Larry to tell them how much he was improved, and still taxed his
+friend to bring him up his meals, and sit by him, telling him the
+tales of his life.
+
+"I'll wait on you here no longer, boy," said Larry, at last. "What in
+life are you hiding in this shed for? The women think it strange of
+you--the mother does, anyway,--you may never quite know what her
+daughter thinks unless she wishes you to know, but I'm sure she thinks
+strange of you. She ought to."
+
+"I know. I'm perfectly well and strong. The trail's open now, and I'll
+go--I'll go back--where I came from. You've been good to me--I can't
+say any more--now."
+
+"Smoke a pipe, lad, smoke a pipe."
+
+Harry took a pipe and laughed. "You're better than any pipe, but I'll
+smoke it, and I'll go down, yes, I must, and bid them good-by."
+
+"And will you have nothing to tell me, lad, before you go?"
+
+"Not yet. After I've made my peace with the world--with the law--I'll
+have a letter sent you--telling all I know. You'll forgive me. You
+see, when I look back--I wish to see your face--as I see it
+now--not--not changed towards me."
+
+"My face is not one to change toward you--you who have repented
+whatever you've done that's wrong."
+
+That evening Harry King went down to the cabin and sat with his three
+friends and ate with them, and told them he was to depart on the
+morrow. They chatted and laughed and put restraint away from them, and
+all walked together to watch the sunset from a crag above the cabin.
+As they returned Madam Manovska walked at Harry's side, and as she
+bade him good night she said in her broken English:--
+
+"You think not to return--no? But I say to you--in my soul I know
+it--yet will you return--we no more to be here--perhaps--but you--yes.
+You will return."
+
+They stood a moment before the cabin, and the firelight streamed
+through the open door and fell on Amalia's face. Harry took the
+mother's hand as he parted from them, but he looked in Amalia's eyes.
+
+In the morning he appeared with his kit strapped on his back equipped
+for walking. The women protested that he should not go thus, but he
+said he could not take Goldbug and leave him below. "He is yours,
+Amalia. Don't beat him. He's a good horse--he saved my life--or tried
+to."
+
+"You know well it is my custom to beat animals. It is better you take
+him, or I beat him severely."
+
+"I know it. But you see, I can't take him. Ride him for me, and--don't
+let him forget me. Good-by!"
+
+He waved his hand and walked lightly away, and all stood in the
+doorway watching him. At the top of a slight rise he turned again and
+waved his hand, and was lost to their sight. Then Larry went back to
+the shed and sat by the fire and smoked a lonely pipe, and the mother
+began busily to weave at her lace in the cabin, closing the door, for
+the morning air was chilly, and Amalia--for a moment she stood at the
+cabin door, her hand pressed to her heart, her head bowed as if in
+despair. Then she entered the cabin, caught up her silken shawl, and
+went out.
+
+Throwing the shawl over her head she ran along the trail Harry had
+taken, until she was out of breath, then she paused, and looked back,
+hesitating, quivering. Should she go on? Should she return?
+
+"I will go but a little--little way. Maybe he stops a moment, if only
+to--to--think a little," and she went on, hurrying, then moving more
+slowly. She thought she might at least catch one more fleeting glimpse
+of him as he turned the bend in the trail, but she did not. "Ah, he is
+so quickly gone!" she sighed, but still walked on.
+
+Yes, so quickly gone, but he had stopped as she thought, to think a
+little, beyond the bend, there where he had waited the long night in
+the snow for Larry Kildene, there where he had sat like Elijah of old,
+despairing, under the juniper tree. He felt weary and old and worn. He
+thought his youth had gone from him forever, but what matter? What was
+youth without hope? Youth, love, life, all were to be relinquished. He
+closed his eyes to the wonder of the hills and the beauty before him,
+yet he knew they were there with their marvelous appeal, and he sat
+with bowed head.
+
+"'Arry! 'Arry King!" He raised his head, and there before him were all
+that he had relinquished--youth, love, life.
+
+He ran and caught her to him, as one who is drowning catches at life.
+
+"You have leave me so coldly, 'Arry King." He pressed her cheek to
+his. "You did not even speak to me a little." He kissed her lips. "You
+have break my heart." He held her closer to his own. "Why have you
+been so cold--like--like the ice--to leave me so hard--like--like--"
+
+"To save you from just this, Amalia. To save you from the touch of my
+hand--this is the crime I have fought against."
+
+"No. To love is not crime."
+
+"To dare to love--with the curse on my head that I feel as Cain felt
+it--is crime. In the Eye he saw it always--as I--I--see it. To touch
+you--it is like bringing the crime and curse on you, and through your
+beautiful love making you suffer for it. See, Amalia? It was all I
+could do to go out of your life and say nothing." His voice trembled
+and his hand quivered as it rested on her hair. "I sat here to fight
+it. My heart--my heart that I have not yet learned to conquer--was
+pulling me back to you. I was faint and old. I could walk no farther
+until the fight was won. Oh, Amalia--Amalia! Leave me alone, with the
+curse on my head! It is not yours."
+
+"No, and it is not yours. You have repent. I do not believe that poem
+my mother is thinking so great. It is the terror of the ancient ones,
+but to-day, no more. Take this. It is for you I bring it. I have wear
+it always on my bosom, wear it now on yours."
+
+She quickly unclasped from her neck a threadlike chain of gold, and
+drew from her bosom a small ivory crucifix, to which it was attached.
+Reaching up, she clasped it around his neck, and thrust the cross in
+his bosom. Then, thinking he meant to protest, she seized his hands
+and held them, and her words came with the impetuous rush of her
+thoughts.
+
+"No charm will help, Amalia. I killed my friend."
+
+"Ah, no, 'Arry King! Take this of me. It is not as you think for one
+charm I give it. No. It is for the love of Christ--that you remember
+and think of it. For that I wear it. For that I give it to you. If
+you have repent, and have the Christ in your heart, so are you
+high--lifted above the sin, and if they take you--if they put the iron
+on your hands--Ah, I know, it is there you go to give yourself
+up,--if they keep you forever in the prison, still forever are you
+free. If they put you to the death to be satisfied of the law, then
+quickly are you alive in Paradise with Christ. Listen, it is for
+the love that you give yourself up--for the sorrowfulness in your
+heart that you have killed your friend? Is not? Yes. So is good.
+See. Look to the hills, the high mountains, all far around us?
+They are beautiful. They are yours. God gives you. And the sky--so
+clear--and the bright sun and the spring life and the singing of the
+birds? All are yours--God gives. And the love in your heart--for me?
+God gives, yes, and for the one you have hurt? Yes. God gives it.
+And for the Christ who so loves you? Yes. So is the love the great
+life of God in you. It is yours. Listen. Go with the love in your
+heart--for me,--it will not hurt. It will be sweet to me. I carry
+no curse for you, as you say. It is gone. If I see you again in
+this world--as may be--is joy--great joy. If I see you no more
+here, yet in Paradise I will see you, and there also it will be joy,
+for it is the love that is all of life, and all of eternity, and
+lives--lives!"
+
+Again he held her to his heart in a long embrace, and, when at last he
+walked down the trail into the desert, he still felt her tears on his
+cheek, her kisses on his lips, and her heart against his own.
+
+
+
+
+BOOK THREE
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXVI
+
+THE LITTLE SCHOOL-TEACHER
+
+
+On a warm day in May, a day which opens the crab-apple blossoms and
+sets the bees humming, and the children longing for a chance to pull
+off shoes and stockings and go wading in the brook; on such a day the
+door of the little schoolhouse stood open and the sunlight lay in a
+long patch across the floor toward the "teacher's desk," and the
+breeze came in and tossed a stray curl about her forehead, and the
+children turned their heads often to look at the round clock on the
+wall, watching for the slowly moving hands to point to the hour of
+four.
+
+It was a mixed school. Children of all ages were there, from naughty
+little Johnnie Cole of five to Mary Burt and Hilton Le Moyne of
+seventeen and nineteen, who were in algebra and the sixth reader. It
+was well known by the rest of the children why Hilton Le Moyne
+lingered in the school this year all through May and June, instead of
+leaving in April, as usual, to help his uncle on the farm. It was
+"Teacher." He was in love with her, and always waited after school,
+hoping for a chance to walk home with her.
+
+Poor boy! Black haired, red cheeked, and big hearted, he knew his love
+was hopeless, for he was younger than she--not so much; but there was
+Tom Howard who was also in love with her, and he had a span of sorrel
+horses which he had raised and broken himself, and they were his own,
+and he could come at any time--when she would let him--and take her
+out riding.
+
+Ah, that was something to aspire to! Such a team as that, and
+"Teacher" to sit by his side and drive out with him, all in her pretty
+flat hat with a pink rose on it and green ribbons flying, and her
+green parasol over her head--sitting so easily--just leaning forward a
+bit and turning and laughing at what he was saying, and all the town
+seeing her with him, and his harness shining and new, making the team
+look as splendid as the best livery in town, and his buggy all painted
+so bright and new--well! The time would come when he too would have
+such an outfit. It would. And Teacher would see that Tom Howard was
+not the only one who could drive up after her in such style.
+
+Little Teacher was tired to-day. The children had been restless and
+noisy, and her heart had been heavy with a great disappointment. She
+had been carefully saving her small salary that she might go when
+school closed and take a course at the "Art Institute" in "Technique."
+For a long time she had clung to the idea that she would become an
+illustrator, and a great man had told her father that "with a little
+instruction in technique" his daughter had "a fortune at the tips of
+her fingers." Only technique! Yes, if she could get it!
+
+Father could help her, of course, only father was a painter in oils
+and not an illustrator--and then--he was so driven, always, and father
+and mother both thought it would be best for her to take the course of
+study recommended by the great man. So it was decided, for there was
+Martha married and settled in her home not far away from the
+Institute, and Teacher could live with her and study. Ah, the
+long-coveted chance almost within her reach! Then--one difficulty
+after another intervened, beginning with a great fire in the fall
+which swept away Martha's home and all they had accumulated, together
+with her husband's school, rendering it necessary for the young couple
+to go back to Leauvite for the winter.
+
+"Never mind, Betty, dear," Martha had encouraged her. "We'll return in
+the spring and start again, and you can take the course just the
+same."
+
+But now a general financial stringency prevailed all over the country.
+"It always seems, when there's a 'financial stringency,' that
+portraits and paintings are the things people economize on first of
+all," said Betty.
+
+"Naturally," said Mary Ballard. "When people need food and clothing--they
+want them, and not pictures. We'll just have to wait, dear."
+
+"Yes, we'll have to wait, Mary." Saucy Betty had a way of calling her
+mother "Mary." "Your dress is shabby, and you need a new bonnet; I
+noticed it in church,--you'd never speak of that, though. You'd wear
+your winter's bonnet all summer."
+
+Yes, Betty must see to it, even if it took every bit of the fund, that
+mother and Janey were suitably dressed. "Never mind, Mary, I'll catch
+up some day. You needn't look sorry. I'm all right about my own
+clothes, for Martha gave me a rose for my hat, and the new ribbons
+make it so pretty,--and my green parasol is as good as new for all
+I've had it three years, and--"
+
+Betty stopped abruptly. Three years!--was it so long since that
+parasol was new--and she was so happy--and Richard came home--? The
+family were seated on the piazza as they were wont to be in the
+evening, and Betty walked quietly into the house, and up to her room.
+
+Bertrand Ballard sighed, and his wife reached out and took his hand in
+hers. "She's never been the same since," he said.
+
+"Her character has deepened and she's fine and sweet--"
+
+"Yes, yes. I have three hundred dollars owing me for the Delong
+portrait. If I had it, she should have her course. I'll make another
+effort to collect it."
+
+"I would, Bertrand."
+
+Julien Thurbyfil and his wife walked down the flower-bordered path
+side by side to the gate and stood leaning over it in silence.
+Practical Martha was the first to break it.
+
+"There will be just as much need for preparatory schools now as there
+was before the fire, Julien."
+
+"Yes, dear, yes."
+
+"And, meanwhile, we are glad of this sweet haven to come to, aren't
+we? And it won't be long before things are so you can begin again."
+
+"Yes, dear, and then we'll make it up to Betty, won't we?"
+
+But Julien was distraught and somber, in spite of brave words. He had
+not inherited Mary Ballard's way of looking at things, nor his
+father-in-law's buoyancy.
+
+All that night Betty lay wakeful and thinking--thinking as she had
+many, many a time during the last three years, trying to make plans
+whereby she might adjust her thoughts to a life of loneliness, as
+she had decided in her romantic heart was all she would take. How
+could there be anything else for her since that terrible night
+when Richard had come to her and confessed his guilt--his love and
+his renunciation! Was she not sharing it all with him wherever he
+might be, and whatever he was doing? Oh, where was he? Did he ever
+think of her and know she was always thinking of him? Did he know
+she prayed for him, and was the thought a comfort to him? Surely
+Peter was the happier of the two, for he was not a sorrowing
+criminal, wandering the earth, hiding and repenting. So all her
+thoughts went out to Richard, and no wonder she was a weary little
+wight at the end of the school day.
+
+Four o'clock, and the children went hurrying away, all but Hilton Le
+Moyne, who lingered awhile at his desk, and then reluctantly departed,
+seeing Teacher did not look up from her papers except to give him a
+nod and a fugitive little smile of absent-minded courtesy. Left thus
+alone, Betty lifted the lid of her desk and put away the school
+register and the carefully marked papers to be given out the next day,
+and took from a small portfolio a packet of closely written sheets.
+These she untied and looked over, tossing them rapidly aside one after
+another until she found the one for which she searched.
+
+It was a short poem, hastily written with lead pencil, and much
+crumpled and worn, as if it had been carried about. Now she
+straightened the torn edges and smoothed it out and began scanning the
+lines, counting off on her fingers the rhythmic beats; she copied the
+verses carefully on a fresh white sheet of paper and laid them aside;
+then, shoving the whole heap of written papers from her, she selected
+another fresh sheet and began anew, writing and scanning and writing
+again.
+
+Steadily she worked while an hour slipped by. A great bumblebee flew
+in at one window and boomed past her head and out at the other window,
+and a bluebird perched for an instant on the window ledge and was off
+again. She saw the bee and the bird and paused awhile, gazing with
+dreamy eyes through the high, uncurtained window at drifting clouds
+already taking on the tint of the declining sun; then she stretched
+her arms across her wide desk, and putting her head down on them, was
+soon fast asleep. Tired little Teacher!
+
+The breeze freshened and tumbled her hair and fanned her flushed
+cheek, and it did more than that; for, as the drifting clouds
+betokened, the weather was changing, and now a gust of wind caught at
+her papers and took some of them out of the window, tossing and
+whirling them hither and thither. Some were carried along the wayside
+and lost utterly. One fluttered high over the tree tops and out across
+the meadow, and then suddenly ceased its flight and drifted slowly
+down like a dried leaf, past the face of a young man who sat on a
+stone, moodily gazing in the meadow brook. He reached out a long arm
+and caught it as it fluttered by, just in time to save it from
+annihilation in the water.
+
+For a moment he held the scrap of paper absently between his fingers,
+then glancing down at it he spied faintly written, half-obliterated
+verses and read them; then, with awakened interest, he read them
+again, smoothing the torn bit of paper out on his knee. The place
+where he sat was well screened from the road by a huge basswood tree,
+which spread great limbs quite across the stream, and swept both its
+banks with drooping branches and broad leaves. Now he held the scrap
+on his open palm and studied it closely and thoughtfully. It was the
+worn piece from which Betty had copied the verses.
+
+ "Oh, send me a thought on the winds that blow.
+ On the wing of a bird send a thought to me;
+ For the way is so long that I may not know,
+ And there are no paths on the troubled sea.
+
+ "Out of the darkness I saw you go,--
+ Into the shadows where sorrows be,--
+ Wounded and bleeding, and sad and slow,--
+ Into the darkness away from me.
+
+ "Out of my life and into the night,
+ But never out of my heart, my own.
+ Into the darkness out of the light,
+ Bleeding and wounded, and walking alone."
+
+Here the words were quite erased and scratched over, and the pathetic
+bit of paper looked as if it had been tear-stained. Carefully and
+smoothly he laid it in his long bill book. The book was large and
+plethoric with bank notes, and there beside them lay the little scrap
+of paper, worn and soiled, yet tear washed, and as the young man
+touched it tenderly he smiled and thought that in it was a wealth of
+something no bank note could buy. With a touch of sentiment
+unsuspected by himself, he felt it too sacred a thing to be touched by
+them, and he smoothed it again and laid it in a compartment by
+itself.
+
+Then he rose, and sauntered across the meadow to the country road, and
+down it past the schoolhouse standing on its own small rise of ground
+with the door still wide open, and its shadow, cast by the rays of the
+now setting sun stretched long across the playground. The young man
+passed it, paused, turned back, and entered. There at her desk Betty
+still slept, and as he stepped softly forward and looked down on her
+she stirred slightly and drew a long breath, but slept on.
+
+For a moment his heart ceased to beat, then it throbbed suffocatingly
+and his hand went to his breast and clutched the bill book where lay
+the tender little poem. There at her elbow lay the copy she had so
+carefully made. The air of the room was warm and drowsy, and the
+stillness was only broken by the low buzzing of two great bluebottle
+flies that struggled futilely against the high window panes. Dear
+little tired Betty! Dreaming,--of whom? The breath came through her
+parted lips, softly and evenly, and the last ray of the sun fell on
+her flushed cheek and brought out the touch of gold in her hair.
+
+The young man turned away and crossed the bare floor with light steps
+and drew the door softly shut after him as he went out. No one might
+look upon her as she slept, with less reverent eyes. Some distance
+away, where the road began to ascend toward the river bluff, he seated
+himself on a stone overlooking the little schoolhouse and the road
+beyond. There he took up his lonely watch, until he saw Betty come out
+and walk hurriedly toward the village, carrying a book and swinging
+her hat by the long ribbon ties; then he went on climbing the winding
+path to the top of the bluff overlooking the river.
+
+Moodily he paced up and down along the edge of the bluff, and finally
+followed a zigzag path to the great rocks below, that at this point
+seemed to have hurled themselves down there to do battle with the
+eager, dominating flood. For a while he stood gazing into the rushing
+water, not as though he were fascinated by it, but rather as if he
+were held to the spot by some inward vision. Presently he seemed to
+wake with a start and looked back along the narrow, steep path, and up
+to the overhanging edge of the bluff, scanning it closely.
+
+"Yes, yes. There is the notch where it lay, and this may be the very
+stone on which I am standing. What an easy thing to fall over there
+and meet death halfway!" He muttered the words under his breath and
+began slowly to climb the difficult ascent.
+
+The sun was gone, and down by the water a cold, damp current of air
+seemed to sweep around the curve of the bluff along with the rush of
+the river. As he climbed he came to a warmer wave of air, and the dusk
+closed softly around him, as if nature were casting a friendly curtain
+over the drowsing earth; and the roar of the river came up to him, no
+longer angrily, but in a ceaseless, subdued complaint.
+
+Again he paced the top of the bluff, and at last seated himself with
+his feet hanging over the edge, at the spot from which the stone had
+fallen. The trees on this wind-swept place were mostly gnarled oaks,
+old and strong and rugged, standing like a band of weather-beaten life
+guardsmen overlooking the miles of country around. Not twenty paces
+from where the young man sat, half reclining on his elbow, stood one
+of these oaks, and close to its great trunk on its shadowed side a man
+bent forward intently watching him. Whenever the young man shifted his
+position restlessly, the figure made a darting movement forward as if
+to snatch him from the dangerous brink, then recoiled and continued to
+watch.
+
+Soon the young man seemed to be aware of the presence and watchful
+eye, and looked behind him, peering into the dusk. Then the man left
+his place and came toward him, with slow, sauntering step.
+
+"Hullo!" he said, with an insinuating, rising inflection and in the
+soft voice of the Scandinavian.
+
+"Hallo!" replied the young man.
+
+"Seek?"
+
+"Sick? No." The young man laughed slightly. "What are you doing
+here?"
+
+"Oh, I yust make it leetle valk up here."
+
+"Same with me, and now I'll make it a little walk back to town." The
+young man rose and stretched himself and turned his steps slowly back
+along the winding path.
+
+"Vell, I tank I make it leetle valk down town, too," and the figure
+came sauntering along at the young man's side.
+
+"Oh, you're going my way, are you? All right."
+
+"Yas, I tank I going yust de sam your way."
+
+The young man set the pace more rapidly, and for a time they walked on
+in silence. At last, "Live here?" he asked.
+
+"Yas, I lif here."
+
+"Been here long?"
+
+"In America? Yes. I guess five--sax--year. Oh, I lak it goot."
+
+"I mean here, in this place."
+
+"Oh, here? Yas, two, t'ree year. I lak it goot too."
+
+"Know any one here?"
+
+"Oh, yas. I know people I vork by yet."
+
+"Who are they?"
+
+"Oh, I vork by many place--make garten--und vork wit' horses, und so.
+Meesus Craikmile, I vork by her on garten. She iss dere no more."
+
+The young man paused suddenly in his stride. "Gone? Where is she
+gone?"
+
+"Oh, she iss by ol' country gone. Her man iss gone mit." They walked
+on.
+
+"What! Is the Elder gone, too?"
+
+"Yas. You know heem, yas?"
+
+"Oh, yes. I know everybody here. I've been away for a good while."
+
+"So? Yas, yust lak me. I was gone too goot wile, bot I coom back too,
+yust lak you."
+
+Here they came to a turn in the road, and the village lights began to
+wink out through the darkness, and their ways parted.
+
+"I'm going this way," said the young man. "You turn off here? Well,
+good night."
+
+"Vell, goot night." The Swede sauntered away down a by-path, and the
+young man kept on the main road to the village and entered its one
+hotel where he had engaged a room a few hours before.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXVII
+
+THE SWEDE'S TELEGRAM
+
+
+As soon as the shadows hid the young man's retreating form from the
+Swede's watchful eye, that individual quickened his pace and presently
+broke into a run. Circling round a few blocks and regaining the main
+street a little below the hotel, he entered the telegraph office.
+There his haste seemed to leave him. He stood watching the clerk a few
+minutes, but the latter paid no attention to him.
+
+"Hullo!" he said at last.
+
+"Hallo, yourself!" said the boy, without looking up or taking his hand
+from the steadily clicking instrument.
+
+"Say, I lak it you send me somet'ing by telegraph."
+
+"All right. Hold on a minute," and the instrument clicked on.
+
+After a little the Swede grew impatient. He scratched his pale gold
+head and shuffled his feet.
+
+"Say, I lak it you send me a little somet'ing yet." He reached out and
+touched the boy on the shoulder.
+
+"Keep out of here. I'll send your message when I'm through with this,"
+and the instrument clicked on. Then the Swede resigned himself,
+watching sullenly.
+
+"Everybody has to take his turn," said the boy at last. "You can't cut
+in like that." The boy was newly promoted and felt his importance. He
+took the soiled scrap of paper held out to him. It was written over
+in a clear, bold hand. "This isn't signed. Who sends this?"
+
+"You make it yust lak it iss. I send dot."
+
+"Well, sign it." He pushed a pen toward him, and the Swede took it in
+clumsy fingers and wrote laboriously, "Nels Nelson."
+
+"You didn't write this message?"
+
+"No. I vork by de hotel, und I get a man write it."
+
+"It isn't dated. Been carrying it around in your pocket a good while I
+guess. Better date it."
+
+"Date it?"
+
+"Yes. Put down the time you send, you know."
+
+"Oh, dat's not'ing. He know putty goot when he get it."
+
+"Very well. 'To Mr. John Thomas,--State Street, Chicago. Job's ready.
+Come along.' Who's job is it? Yours?"
+
+"No. It's hees yob yet. You mak it go to-night, all right. Goot night.
+I pay it now, yas. Vell, goot night."
+
+He paid the boy and slipped out into the shadows of the street, and
+again making the detour so that he came to the hotel from the rear, he
+passed the stables, and before climbing to his cupboard of a room at
+the top of the building, he stepped round to the side and looked in at
+the dining room windows, and there he saw the young man seated at
+supper.
+
+"All right," he said softly.
+
+The omnibus sent regularly by the hotel management brought only one
+passenger from the early train next day. Times had been dull of late
+and travel had greatly fallen off, as the proprietor complained. There
+was nothing unusual about this passenger,--the ordinary traveling man,
+representing a well-known New York dry-goods house.
+
+Nels Nelson drove the omnibus. He had done so ever since Elder
+Craigmile went to Scotland with his wife. The young man he had found
+on the river bluff was pacing the hotel veranda as he drove up, and
+Nels Nelson glanced at him, and into the eyes of the traveling man, as
+he handed down the latter's heavy valise.
+
+Standing at the desk, the newcomer chatted with the clerk as he wrote
+his name under that of the last arrival the day before.
+
+"Harry King," he read. "Came yesterday. Many stopping here now? Times
+hard! I guess so! Nothing doing in my line. Nobody wants a thing.
+Guess I'll leave the road and 'go west, young man,' as old Greeley
+advises. What line is King in? Do' know? Is that him going into the
+dining room? Guess I'll follow and fill up. Anything good to eat
+here?"
+
+In the dining room he indicated to the waiter by a nod of his head the
+seat opposite Harry King, and immediately entered into a free and easy
+conversation, giving him a history of his disappointments in the way
+of trade, and reiterating his determination to "go west, young man."
+
+He hardly glanced at Harry, but ate rapidly, stowing away all within
+reach, until the meal was half through, then he looked up and asked
+abruptly, "What line are you in, may I ask?"
+
+"Certainly you may ask, but I can't tell you. I would be glad to do so
+if I knew myself."
+
+"Ever think of going west?"
+
+"I've just come from there--or almost there--whereever it is."
+
+"Stiles is my name--G. B. Stiles. Good name for a dry-goods salesman,
+don't you think so? I know the styles all right, for men, and women
+too. Like it out west?"
+
+"Yes. Very well."
+
+"Been there long?"
+
+"Oh, two or three years."
+
+"Had enough of it, likely?"
+
+"Well, I can scarcely say that."
+
+"Mean to stay east now?"
+
+"I may. I'm not settled yet."
+
+"Better take up my line. If I drop out, there'll be an opening with my
+firm--good firm, too. Ward, Williams & Co., New York. Been in New
+York, I suppose?"
+
+"No, never."
+
+"Well, better try it. I mean to 'go west, young man.' Know anybody
+here? Ever live here?"
+
+"Yes, when I was a boy."
+
+"Come back to the boyhood home. We all do that, you know. There's
+poetry in it--all do it. 'Old oaken bucket' and all that sort of
+thing. I mean to do it myself yet,--back to old York state." G. B.
+Stiles wiped his mouth vigorously and shoved back his chair. "Well,
+see you again, I hope," he said, and walked off, picking his teeth
+with a quill pick which he took from his vest pocket.
+
+He walked slowly and meditatively through the office and out on the
+sidewalk. Here he paused and glanced about, and seeing his companion
+of the breakfast table was not in sight, he took his way around to the
+stables. Nels Nelson was stooping in the stable yard, washing a
+horse's legs. G. B. Stiles came and stood near, looking down on him,
+and Nels straightened up and stood waiting, with the dripping rags in
+his hand.
+
+"Vell, I tol' you he coomin' back sometime. I vaiting long time all
+ready, but yust lak I tol' you, he coom."
+
+"I thought I told you not to sign that telegram. But it's no
+matter,--didn't do any harm, I guess."
+
+"Dot vas a fool, dot boy dere. He ask all tam, 'Vot for? Who write
+dis? You not? Eh? Who sen' dis?' He make me put my name dere; den I
+get out putty quvick or he ask yet vat iss it for a yob you got
+somebody, eh?"
+
+"Oh, well, we've got him now, and he don't seem to care to keep under
+cover, either." G. B. Stiles seemed to address himself. "Too smart to
+show a sign. See here, Nelson, are you ready to swear that he's the
+man? Are you ready to swear to all you told me?"
+
+"It is better you gif me a paper once, vit your name, dot you gif me
+half dot money."
+
+Nels Nelson stooped deliberately and went on washing the horse's legs.
+A look of irritation swept over the placid face of G. B. Stiles, and
+he slipped the toothpick back in his vest pocket and walked away.
+
+"I say," called the Swede after him. "You gif me dot paper. Eh?"
+
+"I can't stand talking to you here. You'll promise to swear to all you
+told me when I was here the first time. If you do that, you are sure
+of the money, and if you change it in the least, or show the least
+sign of backing down, we neither of us get it. Understand?"
+
+Again the Swede arose, and stood looking at him sullenly. "It iss ten
+t'ousand tallers, und I get it half, eh?"
+
+"Oh, you go to thunder!" The proprietor of the hotel came around the
+corner of the stable, and G. B. Stiles addressed himself to him. "I'd
+like the use of a horse to-day, and your man here, if I can get him.
+I've got to make a trip to Rigg's Corners to sell some dry goods. Got
+a good buggy?"
+
+"Yes, and a horse you can drive yourself, if you like. Be gone all
+day?"
+
+"No, don't want to fool with a horse--may want to stay and send the
+horse back--if I find a place where the grub is better than it is
+here. See?"
+
+"You'll be back after one meal at any place within a hundred miles of
+here." The proprietor laughed.
+
+"Might as well drive yourself. You won't want to send the horse back.
+I'm short of drivers just now. Times are bad and travel light, so I
+let one go."
+
+"I'll take the Swede there."
+
+"He's my station hand. Maybe Jake can drive you. Nels, where's Jake?"
+
+"He's dere in the stable. Shake!" he shouted, without glancing up, and
+Jake slouched out into the yard.
+
+"Jake, here's a gentleman wants you to drive him out into the
+country,--"
+
+"I'll take the Swede. Jake can drive your station wagon for once."
+
+G. B. Stiles laughed good-humoredly and returned to the piazza and sat
+tilted back with his feet on the rail not far from Harry King, who was
+intently reading the _New York Tribune_. For a while he eyed the young
+man covertly, then dropped his feet to the floor and turned upon him
+with a question on the political situation, and deliberately engaged
+him in conversation, which Harry King entered into courteously yet
+reluctantly. Evidently he was preoccupied with affairs of his own.
+
+In the stable yard a discussion was going on. "Dot horse no goot in
+buggy. Better you sell heem any vay. He yoomp by de cars all tam, und
+he no goot by buggy."
+
+"Well, you've got to take him by the buggy, if he is no good. I won't
+let Jake drive him around the trains, and he won't let Jake go with
+him out to Rigg's Corners, so you'll have to take the gray and the
+buggy and go." The Swede began a sullen protest, but the proprietor
+shouted back to him, "You'll do this or leave," and walked in.
+
+Nels went then into the stable, smiling quietly. He was well satisfied
+with the arrangement. "Shake, you put dot big horse by de buggy. No.
+Tak' d'oder bridle. I don't drive heem mit ol' bridle; he yoomp too
+quvick yet. All tam yoomping, dot horse."
+
+Presently Nels drove round to the front of the hotel with the gray
+horse and a high-top buggy. Harry King regarded him closely as he
+passed, but Nels looked straight ahead. A boy came out carrying
+Stiles' heavy valise.
+
+"Put that in behind here," said Stiles, as he climbed in and seated
+himself at Nels Nelson's side. The gray leaped forward on the instant
+with so sudden a jump that he caught at his hat and missed it. Harry
+King stepped down and picked it up.
+
+"What ails your horse?" he asked, as he restored it to its owner.
+
+"Oh, not'in'. He lak yoomp a little." And again the horse leaped
+forward, taking them off at a frantic pace, the high-topped buggy
+atilt as they turned the corner of the street into the country road.
+Harry King returned to his seat. Surely it was the Scandinavian who
+had walked down from the bluff with him the evening before. There was
+no mistaking that soft, drawling voice.
+
+"See here! You pull your beast down, I want to talk with you. Hi!
+There goes my hat again. Can't you control him better than that? Let
+me out." Nels pulled the animal down with a powerful arm, and he stood
+quietly enough while G. B. Stiles climbed down and walked back for his
+hat. "Look here! Can you manage the beast, or can't you?" he asked as
+he stood beside the vehicle and wiped the dust from his soft black
+felt with his sleeve. "If you can't, I'll walk."
+
+"Oh, yas, I feex heem. I leek heem goot ven ve coom to place nobody
+see me."
+
+"I guess that's what ails him now. You've done that before."
+
+"Yas, bot if you no lak I leek heem, ust you yoomp in und I lat heem
+run goot for two, t'ree mile. Dot feex heem all right."
+
+"I don't know about that. Sure you can hold him?"
+
+"Yas, I hol' heem so goot he break hee's yaw off, if he don't stop ven
+I tol' heem. Now, quvick. Whoa! Yoomp in."
+
+G. B. Stiles scrambled in with unusual agility for him, and again they
+were off, the gray taking them along with leaps and bounds, but the
+road was smooth, and the dust laid by frequent showers was like velvet
+under the horse's feet. Stiles drew himself up, clinging to the side
+of the buggy and to his hat.
+
+"How long will he keep this up?" he asked.
+
+"Oh, he stop putty quvick. He lak it leetle run. T'ree, four mile he
+run--das all." And the Swede was right. After a while the horse
+settled down to a long, swinging trot. "Look at heem now. I make heem
+go all tam lak dis. Ven I get my money I haf stable of my own und den
+I buy heem. I know heem. I all tam tol' Meester Decker dot horse no
+goot--I buy heem sheep. You go'n gif me dot money, eh?"
+
+"I see. You're sharp, but you're asking too much. If it were not for
+me, you wouldn't get a cent, or me either. See? I've spent a thousand
+hunting that man up, and you haven't spent a cent. All you've done is
+to stick here at the hotel and watch. I've been all over the country.
+Even went to Europe and down in Mexico--everywhere. You haven't really
+earned a cent of it."
+
+"Vat for you goin' all offer de vorld? Vat you got by dot? Spen'
+money--dot vot you got. Me, I stay here. I fin' heem; you not got heem
+all offer de vorld. I tol' you, of a man he keel somebody, he run vay,
+bot he goin' coom back where he done it. He not know it vot for he do
+it, bot he do it all right."
+
+"Look here, Nelson; it's outrageous! You can't lay claim to that
+money. I told you if he was found and you were willing to give in your
+evidence just as you gave it to me that day, I'd give you your fair
+share of the reward, as you asked for it, but I never gave you any
+reason to think you were to take half. I've spent all the money
+working up this matter, and if I were to go back now and do nothing,
+as I'm half a mind to do, you'd never get a cent of it. There's no
+proof that he's the man."
+
+"You no need spen' dot money."
+
+"Can't I get reason into your head? When I set out to get hold of a
+criminal, do you think I sit down in one place and wait? You didn't
+find him; he came here, and it's only by an accident you have him, and
+he may clear out yet, and neither of us be the better off because of
+your pig-headedness. Here, drive into that grove and tie your horse a
+minute and we'll come to an understanding. I can't write you out a
+paper while we're moving along like this."
+
+Then Nels turned into the grove and took the horse from the shafts and
+tied him some distance away, while G. B. Stiles took writing materials
+from his valise, and, sitting in the buggy, made a show of drawing up
+a legal paper.
+
+"I'm going to draw you up a paper as you asked me to. Now how do you
+know you have the man?"
+
+"It iss ten t'ousand tallers. You make me out dot paper you gif me
+half yet."
+
+"Damn it! You answer my question. I can't make this out unless I know
+you're going to come up to the scratch." He made a show of writing,
+and talked at the same time. "I, G. B. Stiles, detective, in the
+employ of Peter Craigmile, of the town of Leauvite, for the capture of
+the murderer of his son, Peter Craigmile, Jr., do hereby promise one
+Nels Nelson, Swede,--in the employ of Mr Decker, hotel proprietor, as
+stable man,--for services rendered in the identification of said
+criminal at such time as he should be found,----Now, what service have
+you rendered? How much money have you spent in the search?"
+
+"Not'ing. I got heem."
+
+"Nothing. That's just it."
+
+"I got heem."
+
+"No, you haven't got him, and you can't get him without me. Don't you
+think it. I am the one to get him. You have no warrant and no license.
+I'm the one to put in the claim and get the reward for you, and you'll
+have to take what I choose to give, and no more. By rights you would
+only have your fee as witness, and that's all. That's all the state
+gives. Whatever else you get is by my kindness in sharing with you.
+Hear?"
+
+A dangerous light gleamed in the Swede's eyes, and Stiles, by a slight
+disarrangement of his coat in the search for his handkerchief,
+displayed a revolver in his hip pocket. Nels' eyes shifted, and he
+looked away.
+
+"You'd better quit this damned nonsense and say what you'll take and
+what you'll swear to."
+
+"I'll take half dot money," said Nels, softly and stubbornly.
+
+"I'll take out all I've spent on this case before we divide it in any
+way, shape, or manner." Stiles figured a moment on the margin of his
+paper. "Now, what are you going to swear to? You needn't shift round.
+You'll tell me here just what you're prepared to give in as evidence
+before I put down a single figure to your name on this paper. See?"
+
+"I done tol' you all dot in Chicago dot time."
+
+"Very well. You'll give that in as evidence, every word of it, and
+swear to it?"
+
+"Yas."
+
+"I don't more than half believe this is the man. You know it's life
+imprisonment for him if it's proved on him, and you'd better be sure
+you have the right one. I'm in for justice, and you're in for the
+money, that's plain."
+
+"Yas, I tank you lak it money, too."
+
+"I'll not put him in irons to-night unless you give me some better
+reason for your assertion. Why is he the man?"
+
+"I seen heem dot tam, I know. He got it mark on hees head vere de blud
+run dot tam, yust de sam, all right. I know heem. He speek lak heem.
+He move hees arm lak heem. Yas, I know putty good."
+
+"You're sure you remember everything he said--all you told me?"
+
+"Oh, yas. I write it here," and he drew a small book from his pocket,
+very worn and soiled. "All iss here writed."
+
+"Let's see it." With a smile the Swede put it in Stiles' hand. He
+regarded it in a puzzled way.
+
+"What's this?" He handed the book back contemptuously. "You'll never
+be able to make that out,--all dirty and--"
+
+"Yas, I read heem, you not,--dot's Swedish."
+
+"Very well. Perhaps you know what you're about," and the discussion
+went on, until at last G. B. Stiles, partly by intimidation, partly by
+assumption of being able to get on without his services, persuaded
+Nels to modify his demands and accept three thousand for his evidence.
+Then the gray was put in the shafts again, and they drove to the town
+quietly, as if they had been to Rigg's Corners and back.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXVIII
+
+"A RESEMBLANCE SOMEWHERE"
+
+
+While G. B. Stiles and the big Swede were taking their drive and
+bargaining away Harry King's liberty, he had loitered about the town,
+and visited a few places familiar to him. First he went to the home of
+Elder Craigmile and found it locked, and the key in the care of one of
+the bank clerks who slept there during the owner's absence. After
+sitting a while on the front steps, with his elbows on his knees and
+his head in his hands, he rose and strolled out along the quiet
+country road on its grassy footpath, past the Ballards' home.
+
+Mary and Bertrand were out in the little orchard at the back of the
+house, gazing up at the apple blossoms that hung over their heads in
+great pale pink clouds. A sweet odor came from the lilacs that hung
+over the garden fence, and the sunlight streamed down on the peaceful
+home, and on the opening spring flowers--the borders of dwarf purple
+iris and big clusters of peonies, just beginning to bud,--and on the
+beehives scattered about with the bees flying out and in. Ah! It was
+still the same--tempting and inviting.
+
+He paused at the gate, looking wistfully at the open door, but did not
+enter. No, he must keep his own counsel and hold to his purpose,
+without stirring these dear old friends to sorrowful sympathy. So he
+passed on, unseen by them, feeling the old love for the place and all
+the tender memories connected with it revived and deepened. On he
+went, strolling toward the little schoolhouse where he had found dear
+Betty Ballard sleeping at the big school desk the evening before, and
+passed it by--only looking in curiously at the tousled heads bent over
+their lessons, and at Betty herself, where she sat at the desk, a
+class on the long recitation bench before her, and a great boy
+standing at the blackboard. He saw her rise and take the chalk from
+the boy's hand and make a few rapid strokes with it on the board.
+
+Little Betty a school-teacher! She had suffered much! How much did she
+care now? Was it over and her heart healed? Had other loves come to
+her? All intent now on her work, she stood with her back toward him,
+and as he passed the open door she turned half about, and he saw her
+profile sharply against the blackboard. Older? Yes, she looked older,
+but prettier for that, and slight and trim and neat, dressed in a soft
+shade of green. She had worn such a dress once at a picnic. Well he
+remembered it--could he ever forget? Swiftly she turned again to the
+board and drew the eraser across the work, and he heard her voice
+distinctly, with its singing quality--how well he remembered that
+also--"Now, how many of the class can work this problem?"
+
+Ah, little Betty! little Betty! Life is working problems for us all,
+and you are working yours to a sweet conclusion, helping the children,
+and taking up your own burdens and bearing them bravely. This was
+Harry King's thought as he strolled on and seated himself again under
+the basswood tree by the meadow brook, and took from his pocket the
+worn scrap of paper the wind had brought him and read it again.
+
+ "Out of my life, and into the night,
+ But never out of my heart, my own.
+ Into the darkness, out of the light,
+ Bleeding and wounded and walking alone."
+
+Such a tender, rhythmic bit of verse--Betty must have written it. It
+was like her.
+
+After a time he rose and strolled back again past the little
+schoolhouse, and it was recess. Long before he reached it he heard the
+voices of the children shouting, "Anty, anty over, anty, anty over."
+They were divided into two bands, one on either side of the small
+building, over which they tossed the ball and shouted as they tossed
+it, "Anty, anty over"; and the band on the other side, warned by the
+cry, caught the ball on the rebound if they could, and tore around the
+corner of the building, trying to hit with it any luckless wight on
+the other side, and so claim him for their own, and thus changing
+sides, the merry romp went on.
+
+Betty came to the door with the bell in her hand, and stood for a
+moment looking out in the sunshine. One of the smallest of the boys
+ran to her and threw his arms around her, and, looking up in her face,
+screamed in wildest excitement, "I caught it twice, Teacher, I did."
+
+With her hand on his head she looked in his eyes and smiled and
+tinkled her little bell, and the children, big and little, all came
+crowding through the door, hustling like a flock of chickens, and
+every boy snatched off his cap as he rushed by her.
+
+Ah, grave, dignified little Betty! Who was that passing slowly along
+the road? Like a wild rose by the wayside she seemed to him, with her
+pink cheeks and in her soft green gown, framed thus by the doorway of
+the old schoolhouse. Naturally she had no recognition for this bearded
+man, walking by with stiff, soldierly step, yet something caused her
+to look again, turning as she entered, and, when he looked back, their
+eyes met, and hers dropped before his, and she was lost to his sight
+as she closed the door after her. Of course she could not recognize
+him disguised thus with the beard on his face, and his dark, tanned
+skin. She did not recognize him, and he was glad, yet sore at heart.
+
+He had had all he could bear, and for the rest of the morning he wrote
+letters, sitting in his room at Decker's hotel. Only two letters, but
+one was a very long one--to Amalia Manovska. Out in the world he dared
+not use her own name, so he addressed the envelope to Miss McBride, in
+Larry Kildene's care, at the nearest station to which they had agreed
+letters should be sent. Before he finished the second letter the gong
+sounded for dinner. The noon meal was always dinner at the hotel. He
+thrust his papers and the unfinished letter in his valise and locked
+it--and went below.
+
+G. B. Stiles was already there, seated in the same place as on the day
+before, and Harry took his seat opposite him, and they began a
+conversation in the same facile way, but the manner of the dry-goods
+salesman towards him seemed to have undergone a change. It had lost
+its swagger, and was more that of a man who could be a gentleman if he
+chose, while to the surprise of Stiles the manner of the young man was
+as disarmingly quiet and unconcerned as before, and as abstracted. He
+could not believe that any man hovering on the brink of a terrible
+catastrophe, and one to avert which required concealment of identity,
+could be so unwary. He half believed the Swede was laboring under an
+hallucination, and decided to be deliberate, and await developments
+for the rest of the day.
+
+After dinner they wandered out to the piazza side by side, and there
+they sat and smoked, and talked over the political situation as
+they had the evening before, and Stiles was surprised at the young
+man's ignorance of general public matters. Was it ignorance, or
+indifference?
+
+"I thought all you army men would stand by Grant to the drop of the
+hat."
+
+"Yes, I suppose we would."
+
+"You suppose so! Don't you know? I carried a gun under Grant, and I'd
+swear to any policy he'd go in for, and what I say is, they haven't
+had quite enough down there. What the South needs is another licking.
+That's what it needs."
+
+"Oh, no, no, no. I was sick of fighting, long before they laid me up,
+and I guess a lot of us were."
+
+G. B. Stiles brought his feet to the floor with a stamp of surprise
+and turned to look full in the young man's face. For a moment he gazed
+on him thus, then grunted. "Ever feel one of their bullets?"
+
+"Oh, yes."
+
+"That the mark, there over your temple?"
+
+"No, it didn't do any harm to speak of. That's--where something--struck
+me."
+
+"Oh, you don't say!" Harry King rose. "Leaving?"
+
+"No. I have a few letters to write--and--"
+
+"Sorry to miss you. Staying in town for some time?"
+
+"I hardly know. I may."
+
+"Plans unsettled? Well, times are unsettled and no money stirring. My
+plans are all upset, too."
+
+The young man returned to his room and continued his writing. One
+short letter to Betty, inclosing the worn scrap of paper the wind had
+brought him; he kissed it before he placed it in the envelope. Then he
+wrote one to her father and mother jointly, and a long one to Hester
+Craigmile. Sometimes he would pause in his writing and tear up a page,
+and begin over again, but at last all were done and inclosed in a
+letter to the Elder and placed in a heavy envelope and sealed. Only
+the one to Amalia he did not inclose, but carried it out and mailed it
+himself.
+
+Passing the bank on the way to the post office, he dropped in and made
+quite a heavy deposit. It was just before closing time and the clerks
+were all intent on getting their books straight, preparatory to
+leaving. How well he remembered that moment of restless turning of
+ledgers and the slight accession of eagerness in the younger clerks,
+as they followed the long columns of figures down with the forefinger
+of the left hand--the pen poised in the right. The whole scene smote
+him poignantly as he stood at the teller's window waiting. And he
+might have been doing that, he thought! A whole lifetime spent in
+doing just that and more like it, year in and year out!
+
+How had his life been better? He had sinned--and failed. Ah! But he
+had lived and loved--lived terribly and loved greatly. God help him,
+how he loved! Even for life to end here--either in prison or in
+death--still he had felt the tremendous passions, and understood the
+meaning of their power in a human soul. This had life brought him, and
+a love beyond measure to crown all.
+
+The teller peered at him through the little window behind which he had
+stood so many years peering at people in this sleepy little bank, this
+sure, safe, little bank, always doing its conservative business in the
+same way, and heretofore always making good. He reached out a long,
+well-shaped hand,--a large-veined hand, slightly hairy at the wrist,
+to take the bank notes. How often had Harry King seen that hand
+stretched thus through the little window, drawing bank notes toward
+him! Almost with a shock he saw it now reach for his own--for the
+first time. In the old days he had had none to deposit. It was always
+for others it had been extended. Now it seemed as if he must seize the
+hand and shake it,--the only hand that had been reached out to him
+yet, in this town where his boyhood had been spent.
+
+A young man who had preceded Harry King at the teller's window paused
+near by at the cashier's desk and began asking questions which Harry
+himself would have been glad to ask, but could not.
+
+He was an alert, bright-eyed young chap with a smiling face. "Good
+afternoon, Mr. Copeland. Any news for me to-day?"
+
+Mr. Copeland was an elderly man of great dignity, and almost as much
+of a figure there as the Elder himself. It was an act of great
+temerity to approach him for items of news for the _Leauvite Mercury_.
+Of this fact the young reporter seemed to be blithely ignorant. All
+the clerks were covertly watching the outcome, and thus attention was
+turned from Harry King; even the teller glanced frequently at the
+cashier's desk as he counted the bank notes placed in his hand.
+
+"News? No. No news," said Mr. Copeland, without looking up.
+
+"Thank you. It's my business to ask for it, you know. We're making
+more of a feature of personal items than ever before. We're up to
+date, you see. 'Find out what people want and then give it to them.'
+That's our motto." The young man leaned forward over the high railing
+that corralled the cashier in his pen apart from the public, smilingly
+oblivious of that dignitary's objections to an interview. "Expecting
+the return of Elder Craigmile soon?"
+
+At that question, to the surprise of all, the cashier suddenly changed
+his manner to the suave affability with which he greeted people of
+consequence. "We are expecting Elder Craigmile shortly. Yes. Indeed he
+may arrive any day, if the voyage is favorable."
+
+"Thank you. Mrs. Craigmile accompanies him, I suppose?"
+
+"It is not likely, no. Her health demands--ahem--a little longer rest
+and change."
+
+"Ah! The Elder not called back by--for any particular reason? No.
+Business going well? Good. I'm told there's a great deal of
+depression."
+
+"Oh, in a way--there may be,--but we're all of the conservative sort
+here in Leauvite. We're not likely to feel it if there is. Good
+afternoon."
+
+No one paid any attention to Harry King as he walked out after the
+_Leauvite Mercury_ reporter, except Mr. Copeland, who glanced at him
+keenly as he passed his desk. Then, looking at his watch, he came out
+of his corral and turned the key in the bank door.
+
+"We'll have no more interruptions now," he said, as he paused at the
+teller's window. "You know the young man who just went out?"
+
+"Sam Carter of the _Mercury_. Old Billings no doubt sent him in to
+learn how we stand."
+
+"No, no, no. Sam Carter--I know him. Who's the young man who followed
+him out?"
+
+"I don't know. Here's his signature. He's just made a big deposit on
+long time--only one thousand on call. Unusual these days."
+
+Mr. Copeland's eyes glittered an instant. "Good. That's something. I
+decided to give the town people to understand that there is no need
+for their anxiety. It's the best policy, and when the Elder returns,
+he may be induced to withdraw his insane offer of reward. Ten thousand
+dollars! It's ridiculous, when the young men may both be dead, for all
+the world will ever know."
+
+"If we could do that--but I've known the Elder too long to hope for
+it. This deposit stands for a year, see? And the ten thousand the
+Elder has set one side for the reward gives us twenty thousand we
+could not count on yesterday."
+
+"In all the history of this bank we never were in so tight a place.
+It's extraordinary, and quite unnecessary. That's a bright boy--Sam
+Carter. I never thought of his putting such a construction on it when
+I admitted the fact that Mrs. Craigmile is to remain. Two big banks
+closed in Chicago this morning, and twenty small ones all over the
+country during the last three days. One goes and hauls another down.
+If we had only cabled across the Atlantic two weeks ago when I sent
+that letter--he must have the letter by now--and if he has, he's on
+the ocean."
+
+"This deposit tides us over a few days, and, as I said, if we could
+only get our hands on that reserve of the Elder's, we'd be safe
+whatever comes."
+
+"He'll have to bend his will for once. He must be made to see it, and
+we must get our hands on it. I think he will. He'd cut off his right
+hand before he'd see this bank go under."
+
+"It's his son's murder that's eating into his heart. He's been losing
+ground ever since."
+
+The clerks gradually disappeared, quietly slipping out into the
+sunshine one by one as their books were balanced, and now the two men
+stood alone. It was a time used by them for taking account of the
+bank's affairs generally, and they felt the stability of that
+institution to be quite personal to them.
+
+"I've seen that young man before," said Mr. Copeland. "Now, who is he?
+Harry King--Harry King,--the Kings moved away from here--twelve years
+ago--wasn't it? Their son would not be as old as this man."
+
+"Boys grow up fast. You never can tell."
+
+"The Kings were a short, thickset lot."
+
+"He may not be one of them. He said nothing about ever having been
+here before. I never talk with any one here at the window. It's quite
+against my rules for the clerks, and has to be so for myself, of
+course. I leave that sort of thing to you and the Elder."
+
+"I say--I've seen him before--the way he walks--the way he carries
+his head--there's a resemblance somewhere."
+
+The two men also departed, after looking to the safe, and the
+last duties devolving on them, seeing that all was locked and
+double-locked. It was a solemn duty, always attended to solemnly.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXIX
+
+THE ARREST
+
+
+Sam Carter loitered down the street after leaving the bank, and when
+Harry King approached, he turned with his ready smile and accosted
+him.
+
+"Pleasant day. I see you're a stranger here, and I thought I might get
+an item from you. Carter's my name, and I'm doing the reporting for
+the _Mercury_. Be glad to make your acquaintance. Show you round a
+little."
+
+Harry was nonplussed for a moment. Such things did not use to occur in
+this old-fashioned place as running about the streets picking up items
+from people and asking personal questions for the paper to exploit the
+replies. He looked twice at Sam Carter before responding.
+
+"Thank you, I--I've been here before. I know the place pretty well."
+
+"Very pretty place, don't you think so? Mean to stop for some time?"
+
+"I hardly know as yet." Harry King mused a little, then resolved to
+break his loneliness by accepting the casual acquaintance, and to
+avoid personalities about himself by asking questions about the town
+and those he used to know, but whom he preferred not to see. It was an
+opportunity. "Yes, it is a pretty place. Have you been here long?"
+
+"I've been here--let's see. About three years--maybe a little less.
+You must have been away from Leauvite longer than that, I judge. I've
+never left the place since I came and I never saw you before. No
+wonder I thought you a stranger."
+
+"I may call myself one--yes. A good many changes since you came?"
+
+"Oh, yes. See the new courthouse? It's a beauty,--all solid
+stone,--cost fifty thousand dollars. The _Mercury_ had a great deal to
+do with bringing it about,--working up enthusiasm and the like,--but
+there is a great deal of depression just now, and taxes running up.
+People think government is taking a good deal out of them for such
+public buildings, but, Lord help us! the government is needing money
+just now as much as the people. It's hard to be public spirited when
+taxes are being raised. You have people here?"
+
+"Not now--no. Who's mayor here now?"
+
+"Harding--Harding of the iron works. He makes a good one, too.
+There's the new courthouse. The jail is underneath at the back. See
+the barred windows? No breaking out of there. Three prisoners did
+break out of the old one during the year this building was under
+construction,--each in a different way, too,--shows how badly they
+needed a new one. Quite an ornament to the square, don't you think
+so?"
+
+"The jail?"
+
+"No, no,--The building as a whole. Better go over it while you're
+here."
+
+"I may--do so--yes."
+
+"Staying some time, I believe you said."
+
+"Did I? I may have said so."
+
+"Staying at the hotel, I believe?"
+
+"Yes, and here we are." Harry King stood an instant--undecided.
+Certain things he wished to know, but had not the courage to ask--not
+on the street--but maybe seated on the veranda he could ask this
+outsider, in a casual way. "Drop in with me and have a smoke."
+
+"I will, thank you. I often run in,--in the way of business,--but I
+haven't tried it as a stopping place. Meals pretty good?"
+
+"Very good." They took seats at the end of the piazza where Harry King
+led the way. The sun was now low, but the air was still warm enough
+for comfort, and no one was there but themselves, for it lacked an
+hour to the return of the omnibus and the arrival of the usual loafers
+who congregated at that time.
+
+"You've made a good many acquaintances since you came, no doubt?"
+
+"Well--a good many--yes."
+
+"Know the Craigmiles?"
+
+"The Craigmiles? There's no one there to know--now--but the Elder. Oh,
+his wife, of course, but she stays at home so close no one ever sees
+her. They're away now, if you want to see them."
+
+"And she never goes out--you say?"
+
+"Never since I've been in the town. You see, there was a tragedy in
+the family. Just before I came it happened, and I remember the town
+was all stirred up about it. Their son was murdered."
+
+Harry King gave a quick start, then gathered himself up in strong
+control and tilted his chair back against the wall.
+
+"Their son murdered?" he asked. "Tell me about it. All you know."
+
+"That's just it--nobody knows anything. They know he was murdered,
+because he disappeared completely. The young man was called Peter
+Junior, after his father, of course--and he was the one that was
+murdered. They found every evidence of it. It was there on the bluff,
+above the wildest part of the river, where the current is so strong no
+man could live a minute in it. He would be dashed to death in the
+flood, even if he were not killed in the fall from the brink, and that
+young man was pushed over right there."
+
+"How did they know he was pushed over?"
+
+"They knew he was. They found his hat there, and it was bloody, as if
+he had been struck first, and a club there, also bloody,--and it is
+believed he was killed first and then pushed over, for there is the
+place yet, after three years, where the earth gave way with the weight
+of something shoved over the edge. Well, would you believe it--that
+old man has kept the knowledge of it from his wife all this time. She
+thinks her son quarreled with his father and went off, and that he
+will surely return some day."
+
+"And no one in the village ever told her?"
+
+"All the town have helped the old Elder to keep it from her. You'd
+think such a thing impossible, wouldn't you? But it's the truth. The
+old man bribed the _Mercury_ to keep it out, and, by jiminy, it was
+done! Here, in a town of this size where every one knows all about
+every one else's affairs--it was done! It seems people took an
+especial interest in keeping it from her, yet every one was talking
+about it, and so I heard all there was to hear. Hallo! What are you
+doing here?"
+
+This last remark was addressed to Nels Nelson, who appeared just
+below them and stood peering up at them through the veranda railing.
+
+"I yust vaiting for Meestair Stiles. He tol' me vait for heem here."
+
+"Mr. Stiles? Who's he?"
+
+"Dere he coomin'."
+
+As he spoke G. B. Stiles came through the hotel door and walked
+gravely up to them. Something in his manner, and in the expectant,
+watchful eye of the Swede, caused them both to rise. At the same
+moment, Kellar, the sheriff, came up the front steps and approached
+them, and placing his hand on Harry King's shoulder, drew from his
+pocket a pair of handcuffs.
+
+"Young man, it is my duty to arrest you. Here is my badge--this is
+quite straight--for the murder of Peter Craigmile, Jr."
+
+The young man neither moved nor spoke for a moment, and as he stood
+thus the sheriff took him by the arm, and roused him. "Richard
+Kildene, you are under arrest for the murder of your cousin, Peter
+Craigmile, Jr."
+
+With a quick, frantic movement, Harry King sprang back and thrust both
+men violently from him. The red of anger mounted to his hair and
+throbbed in his temples, then swept back to his heart, and left him
+with a deathlike pallor.
+
+"Keep back. I'm not Richard Kildene. You have the wrong man. Peter
+Craigmile was never murdered."
+
+The big Swede leaped the piazza railing and stood close to him, while
+the sheriff held him pinioned, and Sam Carter drew out his notebook.
+
+"You know me, Mr. Kellar,--stand off, I say. I am Peter Craigmile.
+Look at me. Put away those handcuffs. It is I, alive, Peter Craigmile,
+Jr."
+
+"That's a very clever plea, but it's no go," said G. B. Stiles, and
+proceeded to fasten the irons on his wrists.
+
+"Yas, I know you dot man keel heem, all right. I hear you tol' some
+von you keel heem," said the Swede, slowly, in suppressed excitement.
+
+"You're a very good actor, young man,--mighty clever,--but it's no go.
+Now you'll walk along with us if you please," said Mr. Kellar.
+
+"But I tell you I don't please. It's a mistake. I am Peter Craigmile,
+Jr., himself, alive."
+
+"Well, if you are, you'll have a chance to prove it, but evidence is
+against you. If you are he, why do you come back under an assumed name
+during your father's absence? A little hitch there you did not take
+into consideration."
+
+"I had my reasons--good ones--I--came back to confess to
+the--un--un--witting--killing of my cousin, Richard." He turned from
+one to the other, panting as if he had been running a race, and threw
+out his words impetuously. "I tell you I came here for the very
+purpose of giving myself up--but you have the wrong man."
+
+By this time a crowd had collected, and the servants were running from
+their work all over the hotel, while the proprietor stood aloof with
+staring eyes.
+
+"Here, Mr. Decker, you remember me--Elder Craigmile's son? Some of you
+must remember me."
+
+But the proprietor only wagged his head. He would not be drawn into
+the thing. "I have no means of knowing who you are--no more than Adam.
+The name you wrote in my book was Harry King."
+
+"I tell you I had my reasons. I meant to wait here until the
+Elder's--my father's return and--"
+
+"And in the meantime we'll put you in a quiet little apartment, very
+private, where you can wait, while we look into things a bit."
+
+"You needn't take me through the streets with these things on; I've no
+intention of running away. Let me go to my room a minute."
+
+"Yes, and put a bullet through your head. I've no intention of running
+any risks now we have you," said the detective.
+
+"Now you have who? You have no idea whom you have. Take off these
+shackles until I pay my bill. You have no objection to that, have
+you?"
+
+They turned into the hotel, and the handcuffs were removed while the
+young man took out his pocketbook and paid his reckoning. Then he
+turned to them.
+
+"I must ask you to accompany me to my room while I gather my toilet
+necessities together." This they did, G. B. Stiles and the sheriff
+walking one on either side, while the Swede followed at their heels.
+"What are you doing here?" he demanded, turning suddenly upon the
+stable man.
+
+"Oh, I yust lookin' a leetle out."
+
+"Mr. Stiles, what does this mean, that you have that man dogging me?"
+
+"It's his affair, not mine. He thinks he has a certain interest in
+you."
+
+Then he turned in exasperation to the sheriff. "Can you give me a
+little information, Mr. Kellar? What has that Swede to do with me? Why
+am I arrested for the murder of my own self--preposterous! I, a man as
+alive as you are? You can see for yourself that I am Elder
+Craigmile's son. You know me?"
+
+"I know the Elder fairly well--every one in Leauvite knows him, but I
+can't say as I've ever taken particular notice of his boy, and,
+anyway, the boy was murdered three years ago--a little over--for it
+was in the fall of the year--well, that's most four years--and I must
+say it's a mighty clever dodge, as Mr. Stiles says, for you to play
+off this on us. It's a matter that will bear looking into. Now you sit
+down here and hold on to yourself, while I go through your things.
+You'll get them all, never fear."
+
+Then Harry King sat down and looked off through the open window, and
+paid no heed to what the men were doing. They might turn his large
+valise inside out and read every scrap of written paper. There was
+nothing to give the slightest clew to his identity. He had left the
+envelope addressed to the Elder, containing the letters he had
+written, at the bank, to be placed in the safety vault, and not to be
+delivered until ordered to do so by himself.
+
+As they finished their search and restored the articles to his valise,
+he asked again that the handcuffs be left off as he walked through the
+streets.
+
+"I have no desire to escape. It is my wish to go with you. I only wish
+I might have seen the--my father first. He could not have helped
+me--but he would have understood--it would have seemed less--"
+
+He could not go on, and the sheriff slipped the handcuffs in his
+pocket, and they proceeded in silence to the courthouse, where he
+listened to the reading of the warrant and his indictment in dazed
+stupefaction, and then walked again in silence between his captors to
+the jail in the rear.
+
+"No one has ever been in this cell," said Mr. Kellar. "I'm doing the
+best I can for you."
+
+"How long must I stay here? Who brings accusation?"
+
+"I don't know how long: as this is a murder charge you can't
+be bailed out, and the trial will take time. The Elder brings
+accusation--naturally."
+
+"When is he expected home?"
+
+"Can't say. You'll have some one to defend you, and then you can ask
+all the questions you wish." The sheriff closed the heavy door and the
+key was turned.
+
+Then began weary days of waiting. If it had been possible to get the
+trial over with, Harry would have been glad, but it made little
+difference to him now, since the step had been taken, and a trial in
+his case would only be a verdict, anyway--and confession was a simple
+thing, and the hearing also.
+
+The days passed, and he wondered that no one came to him--no friend of
+the old time. Where were Bertrand Ballard and Mary? Where was little
+Betty? Did they not know he was in jail? He did not know that others
+had been arrested on the same charge and released, more than once.
+True, no one had made the claim of being the Elder's own son and the
+murdered man himself. As such incidents were always disturbing to
+Betty, when Bertrand read the notice of the arrest in the _Mercury_,
+the paper was laid away in his desk and his little daughter was spared
+the sight of it this time.
+
+But he spoke of the matter to his wife. "Here is another case of
+arrest for poor Peter Junior's murder, Mary. The man claims to be
+Peter Junior himself, but as he registered at the hotel under an
+assumed name it is likely to be only another attempt to get the
+reward money by some detective. It was very unwise for the Elder to
+make it so large a sum."
+
+"It can't be. Peter Junior would never be so cruel as to stay away all
+this time, if he were alive, no matter how deeply he may have
+quarreled with his father. I believe they both went over the bluff and
+are both dead."
+
+"It stands to reason that one or the other body would have been found
+in that case. One might be lost, but hardly both. The search was very
+thorough, even down to the mill race ten miles below."
+
+"The current is so swift there, they might have been carried over the
+race, and on, before the search began. I think so, although no one
+else seems to."
+
+"I wish the Elder would remove that temptation of the reward. It is
+only an inducement to crime. Time alone will solve the mystery, and as
+long as he continues to brood over it, he will go on failing in
+health. It's coming to an obsession with him to live to see Richard
+Kildene hung, and some one will have to swing for it if he has his
+way. Now he will return and find this man in jail, and will bend every
+effort, and give all his thought toward getting him convicted."
+
+"But I thought you said they do not hang in this state."
+
+"True--true. But imprisonment for life is--worse. I'm thinking of what
+the Elder would like could he have his way."
+
+"Bertrand--I believe the Elder is sure the man will be found and that
+it will kill his wife, when she comes to know that Peter Junior was
+murdered, and that is why he took her to Scotland. She told me she was
+sure her son was there, or would go to see his great aunts there, and
+that is why she consented to go--but I'm sure the Elder wished to get
+her out of the way."
+
+"Strange--strange," said Bertrand. "After all, it is better to
+forgive. No one knows what transpired, and Richard is the real
+sufferer."
+
+"Do you suppose he'll leave Hester there, Bertrand?"
+
+"I hardly think she would be left, but it is impossible to tell. A
+son's loss is more than any other--to a mother."
+
+"Do you think so, Bertrand? It would be hardest of all to lose a
+husband, and the Elder has failed so much since Peter Junior's
+death."
+
+"Peter Junior seems to be the only one who has escaped suffering in
+this tragedy. Remorse in Richard's case, and stubborn anger in the
+Elder's--they are emotions that take large toll out of a man's
+vitality. If ever Richard is found, he will not be the young man we
+knew."
+
+"Unless he is innocent. All this may have been an accident."
+
+"Then why is he staying in hiding?"
+
+"He may have felt there was no way to prove his innocence."
+
+"Well, there is another reason why the Elder should withdraw his offer
+of a reward, and when he comes back, I mean to try what can be done
+once more. Everything would have to be circumstantial. He will have a
+hard time to prove his nephew's guilt."
+
+"I can't see why he should try to prove it. It must have been an
+accident--at the last. Of course it might have been begun in anger, in
+a moment of misunderstanding, but the nature of the boys would go to
+show that it never could have been done intentionally. It is
+impossible."
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXX
+
+THE ARGUMENT
+
+
+"Mr. Ballard, either my son was murdered, or he was a murderer. The
+crime falls upon us, and the disgrace of it, no matter how you look at
+it." The Elder sat in the back room at the bank, where his friend had
+been arguing with him to withdraw the offer of a reward for the
+arrest. "It's too late, now--too late. The man's found and he claims
+to be my son. You're a kindly man, Mr. Ballard, but a blind one."
+
+Bertrand drew his chair closer to the Elder's, as if by so doing he
+might establish a friendlier thought in the man's heart. "Blind?
+Blind, Elder Craigmile?"
+
+"I say blind. I see. I see it all." The Elder rose and paced the
+floor. "The boys fought, there on the bluff, and sought to kill each
+other, and for the same cause that has wrought most of the evil in the
+world. Over the love of a woman they fought. Peter carried a
+blackthorn stick that ought never to have been in my house--you know,
+for you brought it to me--and struck his cousin with it, and at the
+same instant was pushed over the brink, as Richard intended."
+
+"How do you know that Richard was not pushed over? How do you know
+that he did not fall over with his cousin? How can you dare work for a
+man's conviction on such slight evidence?"
+
+"How do I know? Although you would favor that--that--although--" The
+Elder paused and struggled for control, then sat weakly down and took
+up the argument again with trembling voice. "Mr. Ballard, I would
+spare you--much of this matter which has been brought to my
+knowledge--but I cannot--because it must come out at the trial. It was
+over your little daughter, Betty, that they fought. She has known all
+these years that Richard Kildene murdered her lover."
+
+"Elder--Elder! Your brooding has unbalanced your mind."
+
+"Wait, my friend. This falls on you with but half the burden that I
+have borne. My son was no murderer. Richard Kildene is not only a
+murderer, but a coward. He went to your daughter while we were
+dragging the river for my poor boy's body, and told her he had
+murdered her lover; that he pushed him over the bluff and that he
+intended to do so. Now he adds to his crime--by--coming here--and
+pretending--to be--my son. He shall hang. He shall hang. If he does
+not, there is no justice in heaven." The Elder looked up and shook his
+hand above his head as if he defied the whole heavenly host.
+
+Bertrand Ballard sat for a moment stunned. Such a preposterous turn
+was beyond his comprehension. Strangely enough his first thought was a
+mere contradiction, and he said: "Men are not hung in this state. You
+will not have your wish." He leaned forward, with his elbows on the
+great table and his head in his hands; then, without looking up, he
+said: "Go on. Go on. How did you come by this astounding information?
+Was it from Betty?"
+
+"Then may he be shut in the blackest dungeon for the rest of his life.
+No, it was not from Betty. Never. She has kept this terrible secret
+well. I have not seen your daughter--not--since--since this was told
+me. It has been known to the detective and to my attorney, Milton
+Hibbard, for two years, and to me for one year--just before I offered
+the increased reward to which you so object. I had reason."
+
+"Then it is as I thought. Your offer of ten thousand dollars reward
+has incited the crime of attempting to convict an innocent man. Again
+I ask you, how did you come by this astounding information?"
+
+"By the word of an eyewitness. Sit still, Mr. Ballard, until you hear
+the whole; then blame me if you can. A few years ago you had a Swede
+working for you in your garden. You boarded him. He slept in a little
+room over your summer kitchen; do you remember?"
+
+"Yes."
+
+"He saw Richard Kildene come to the house when we were all away--while
+you were with me--your wife with mine,--and your little daughter
+alone. This Swede heard all that was said, and saw all that was done.
+His testimony alone will--"
+
+"Convict a man? It is greed! What is your detective working for and
+why does this Swede come forward at this late day with his testimony?
+Greed! Elder Craigmile, how do you know that this testimony is not all
+made up between them? I will go home and ask Betty, and learn the
+truth."
+
+"And why does the young man come here under an assumed name, and when
+he is discovered, claim to be my son? The only claim he could make
+that could save him! If he knows anything, he knows that if he
+pretends he is my son--laboring under the belief that he has killed
+Richard Kildene--when he knows Richard's death can be disproved by
+your daughter's statement that she saw and talked with Richard--he
+knows that he may be released from the charge of murder and may
+establish himself here as the man whom he himself threw over the
+bluff, and who, therefore, can never return to give him the lie. I
+say--if this is proved on him, he shall suffer the extreme penalty of
+the law, or there is no justice in the land."
+
+Bertrand rose, sadly shaken. "This is a very terrible accusation, my
+friend. Let us hope it may not be proved true. I will go home and ask
+Betty. You will take her testimony before that of the Swede?"
+
+"If you are my friend, why are you willing my son should be proven a
+murderer? It is a deep-laid scheme, and Richard Kildene walks close in
+his father's steps. I have always seen his father in him. I tried to
+save him for my sister's sake. I brought him up in the nurture and
+admonition of the Lord, and did for him all that fathers do for their
+sons, and now I have the fool's reward--the reward of the man who
+warmed the viper in his bosom. He, to come here and sit in my son's
+place--to eat bread at my table--at my wife's right hand--with her
+smile in his eyes? Rather he shall--"
+
+"We will find out the truth, and, if possible, you shall be saved from
+yourself, Elder Craigmile, and your son will not be proven a murderer.
+Let me still be your friend." Bertrand's voice thrilled with
+suppressed emotion and the sympathy he could not utter, as he held out
+his hand, which the Elder took in both his own shaking ones. His
+voice trembled with suppressed emotion as he spoke.
+
+"Pray God Hester may stay where she is until this thing is over. And
+pray God you may not be blinded by love of your daughter, who was not
+true to my son. She was promised to become his wife, but through all
+these years she protects by her silence the murderer of her lover.
+Ponder on this thought, Bertrand Ballard, and pray God you may have
+the strength to be just."
+
+Bertrand walked homeward with bowed head. It was Saturday. The day's
+baking was in progress, and Mary Ballard was just removing a pan of
+temptingly browned tea cakes from the oven when he entered. She did
+not see his face as he asked, "Mary, where can I find Betty?"
+
+"Upstairs in the studio, drawing. Where would you expect to find her?"
+she said gayly. Something in her husband's voice touched her. She
+hastily lifted the cakes from the pan and ran after him.
+
+"What is it, dear?"
+
+He was halfway up the stairs and he turned and came back to her. "I've
+heard something that troubles me, and must see her alone, Mary. I'll
+talk with you about it later. Don't let us be disturbed until we come
+down."
+
+"I think Janey is with her now."
+
+"I'll send her down to you."
+
+"Bertrand, it is something terrible! You are trying to spare me--don't
+do it."
+
+"Ask no questions."
+
+"Tell Janey I want her to help in the kitchen."
+
+Mary went back to her work in silence. If Bertrand wished to be alone
+with Betty, he had a good reason; and presently Janey skipped in and
+was set to paring the potatoes for dinner.
+
+Bertrand found Betty bending closely over a drawing for which she had
+no model, but which was intended to illustrate a fairy story. She was
+using pen and ink, and trying to imitate the fine strokes of a steel
+engraving. He stood at her side, looking down at her work a moment,
+and his artist's sense for the instant crowded back other thoughts.
+
+"You ought to have a model, daughter, and you should work in chalk or
+charcoal for your designing."
+
+"I know, father, but you see I am trying to make some illustrations
+that will look like what are in the magazines. I'm making fairies,
+father, and you know I can't find any models, so I have to make them
+up."
+
+"Put that away. I have some questions to ask you."
+
+"What's the matter, daddy? You look as if the sky were falling." He
+had seated himself on the long lounge where she had once sat and
+chatted with Peter Junior. She recalled that day. It was when he
+kissed her for the first time. Her cheeks flushed hotly as they always
+did now when she thought of it, and her eyes were sad. She went over
+and established herself at her father's side.
+
+"What is it, daddy, dear?"
+
+"Betty,"--he spoke sternly, as she had never heard him before,--"have
+you been concealing something from your father and mother--and from
+the world--for the last three years and a half?"
+
+Her head drooped, the red left her cheeks, and she turned white to the
+lips. She drew away from her father and clasped her hands in her lap,
+tightly. She was praying for strength to tell the truth. Ah, could
+she do it? Could she do it! And perhaps cause Richard's condemnation?
+Had they found him?--that father should ask such a question now, after
+so long a time?
+
+"Why do you ask me such a question, father?"
+
+"Tell me the truth, child."
+
+"Father! I--I--can't," and her voice died away to a whisper.
+
+"You can and you must, Betty."
+
+She rose and stood trembling before him with clinched hands. "What has
+happened? Tell me. It is not fair to ask me such a question unless you
+tell me why." Then she dropped upon her knees and hid her face against
+his sleeve. "If you don't tell me what has happened, I will never
+speak again. I will be dumb, even if they kill me."
+
+He put his arm tenderly about the trembling little form, and the act
+brought the tears and he thought her softened. He knew, as Mary had
+often said, that "Betty could not be driven, but might be led."
+
+"Tell father all about it, little daughter." But she did not open her
+lips. He waited patiently, then asked again, kindly and persistently,
+"What have you been hiding, Betty?" but she only sobbed on. "Betty, if
+you do not tell me now and here, you will be taken into court and made
+to tell all you know before all the world! You will be proven to have
+been untrue to the man you were to marry and who loved you, and to
+have been shielding his murderer."
+
+"Then it is Richard. They have found him?" She shrank away from her
+father and her sobs ceased. "It has come at last. Father--if--if--I
+had--been married to Richard--then would they make me go in court and
+testify against him?"
+
+"No. A wife is not compelled to give testimony against her husband,
+nor may she testify for him, either."
+
+Betty rose and straightened herself defiantly; with flaming cheeks and
+flashing eyes she looked down upon him.
+
+"Then I will tell one great lie--father--and do it even if--if it
+should drag me down to--hell. I will say I am married to Richard--and
+will swear to it." Bertrand was silent, aghast. "Father! Where is
+Richard?"
+
+"He is there in Leauvite, in jail. You must do what is right in the
+eye of God, my child, and tell the truth."
+
+"If I tell the truth,--they will do what is right in their own eyes.
+They don't know what is right in the eye of God. If they drag me into
+court--there before all the world I will lie to them until I drop
+dead. Has--has--the Elder seen him?"
+
+"Not yet. He refused to see him until the trial."
+
+"He is a cruel, vindictive old man. Does he think it will bring Peter
+back to life again to hang Richard? Does he think it will save his
+wife from sorrow, or--or bring any one nearer heaven to do it?"
+
+"If Richard has done the thing he is accused of doing, he deserves the
+extremest rigor of the law."
+
+"Father! Don't let the Elder make you hard like himself. What is he
+accused of doing?"
+
+"He is making claim that he is Peter Junior, and that he has come back
+to Leauvite to give himself up for the murder of his cousin, Richard
+Kildene. He thinks, no doubt, that you will say that you know Richard
+is living, and that he has not killed him, and in that way he thinks
+to escape punishment, by proving that Peter also is living, and is
+himself. Do you see how it is? He has chosen to live here an impostor
+rather than to live in hiding as an outcast, and is trading on his
+likeness to his cousin to bear him out. I had hoped that it was all a
+detective's lie, got up for the purpose of getting hold of the reward
+money, but now I see it is true--the most astounding thing a man ever
+tried."
+
+"Did he send you to me?"
+
+"No, child. I have not seen him."
+
+"Father Bertrand Ballard! Have you taken some detective's word and not
+even tried to see him?"
+
+"Child, child! He is playing a desperate game, and taking an ignoble
+part. He is doing a dastardly thing, and the burden is laid on you to
+confess to the secret you have been hiding and tell the truth."
+
+Bertrand spoke very sadly, and Betty's heart smote her for his sorrow;
+yet she felt the thing was impossible for Richard to do, and that she
+must hold the secret a little longer--all the more because even her
+father seemed now to credit the terrible accusation. She threw her
+arms about his neck and implored him.
+
+"Oh, father, dear! Take me to the jail to see him, and after that I
+will try to do what is right. I can think clearer after I have seen
+him."
+
+"I don't know if that will be allowed--but--"
+
+"It will have to be allowed. How can I say if it is Richard until I
+see him. It may not be Richard. The Elder is too blinded to even go
+near him, and dear Mrs. Craigmile is not here. Some one ought to go in
+fairness to Richard--who loves--" She choked and could say no more.
+
+"I will talk to your mother first. There is another thing that should
+soften your heart to the Elder. All over the country there is
+financial trouble. Banks are going to pieces that never were in
+trouble before, and Elder Craigmile's bank is going, he fears. It will
+be a terrible crash, and we fear he may not outlive the blow. I tell
+you this, even though you may not understand it, to soften your heart
+toward him. He considers it in the nature of a disgrace."
+
+"Yes. I understand, better than you think." Betty's voice was sad, and
+she looked weary and spent. "If the bank breaks, it breaks the Elder's
+heart. All the rest he could stand, but not that. The bank, the bank!
+He tried to sacrifice Peter Junior to that bank. He would have broken
+Peter's heart for that bank, as he has his wife's; for if it had not
+been for Peter's quarrel with his father, first of all, over it, I
+don't believe all the rest would have happened. Peter told me a lot. I
+know."
+
+"Betty, did you never love Peter Junior? Tell father."
+
+"I thought I did. I thought I knew I did,--but when Richard came
+home--then--I--I--knew I had made a terrible mistake; but, father, I
+meant to stand by Peter--and never let anybody know until--Oh, father,
+need I tell any more?"
+
+"No, my dear. You would better talk with your mother."
+
+Bertrand Ballard left the studio more confused in his mind, and yet
+both sadder and wiser then he had ever been in his life. He had seen a
+little way into his small daughter's soul, and conceived of a power
+of spirit beyond him, although he considered her both unreasonable and
+wrong. He grieved for her that she had carried such a great burden so
+bravely and so long. How great must have been her love, or her
+infatuation! The pathetic knowledge hardened his heart toward the
+young man in the jail, and he no longer tried to defend him in his
+thoughts.
+
+He sent Mary up to talk with Betty, and that afternoon they all walked
+over to the jail; for Mary could get no nearer her little daughter's
+confidence, and no deeper into the heart of the matter than Betty had
+allowed her father to go.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXXI
+
+ROBERT KATER'S SUCCESS
+
+
+"Halloo! So it's here!" Robert Kater stood by a much-littered table
+and looked down on a few papers and envelopes which some one had laid
+there during his absence. All day long he had been wandering about the
+streets of Paris, waiting--passing the time as he could in his
+impatience--hoping for the communication contained in one of these
+very envelopes. Now that it had come he felt himself struck with a
+singular weakness, and did not seize it and tear it open. Instead, he
+stood before the table, his hands in his pockets, and whistled
+softly.
+
+He made the tour of the studio several times, pausing now and then to
+turn a canvas about, apparently as if he would criticize it, looking
+at it but not regarding it, only absently turning one and another as
+if it were a habit with him to do so; then returning to the table he
+stirred the envelopes apart with one finger and finally separated one
+from the rest, bearing an official seal, and with it a small package
+carefully secured and bearing the same seal, but he did not open
+either. "Yes, it's here, and that's the one," he said, but he spoke to
+himself, for there was no one else in the room.
+
+He moved wearily away, keeping the packet in his hand, but leaving the
+envelope on the table, and hung his hat upon a point of an easel and
+wiped his damp brow. As he did so, he lifted the dark brown hair from
+his temple, showing a jagged scar. Quickly, as if with an habitual
+touch, he rearranged the thick, soft lock so that the scar was
+covered, and mounting a dais, seated himself on a great thronelike
+chair covered with a royal tiger skin. The head of the tiger, mounted
+high, with glittering eyes and fangs showing, rested on the floor
+between his feet, and there, holding the small packet in his hand,
+with elbows resting on the arms of the throne, he sat with head
+dropped forward and shoulders lifted and eyes fixed on the tiger's
+head.
+
+For a long time he sat thus in the darkening room. At last it grew
+quite dark. Only the great skylight over his head showed a defined
+outline. The young man had had no dinner and no supper, for his
+pockets were empty and his last sou gone. If he had opened the
+envelopes, he would have found money, and more than money, for he
+would have learned that the doors of the Salon had opened to him and
+the highest medal awarded him, and that for which he had toiled and
+waited and hoped,--for which he had staked his last effort and
+sacrificed everything, was won. He was recognized, and all Paris would
+quickly know it, and not Paris only, but all the world. But when he
+would open the envelope, his hands fell slack, and there it still lay
+on the table concealed by the darkness.
+
+Down three flights of stairs in the court a strange and motley group
+were collecting, some bearing candles, all masked, some fantastically
+dressed and others only concealed by dominoes. The stairs went up on
+the outer wall of this inner court, past the windows of the basement
+occupied by the concierge and his wife and pretty daughter, and
+entered the building on the first floor above. By this arrangement the
+concierge could always see from his window who mounted them.
+
+"Look, mamma." The pretty daughter stood peering out, her face framed
+in the white muslin curtains. "Look. See the students. Ah, but they
+are droll!"
+
+"Come away, ma fille."
+
+"But the owl and the ape, there, they seem on very good terms. I
+wonder if they go to the room of Monsieur Kater! I think so; for
+one--the ghost in white, he is a little lame like the Englishman who
+goes always to the room of Monsieur.--Ah, bah! Imbecile! Away with
+you! Pig!"
+
+The ape had suddenly approached his ugly face close to the face framed
+in the white muslin curtains on the other side of the window, and made
+exaggerated motions of an embrace. The wife of the concierge snatched
+her daughter away and drew the curtains close.
+
+"Foolish child! Why do you stand and watch the rude fellows? This is
+what you get by it. I have told you to keep your eyes within."
+
+"But I love to see them, so droll they are."
+
+Stealthily the fantastic creatures began to climb the stairs, one,
+two, three flights, traversing a long hall at the end of each flight
+and turning to climb again. The expense of keeping a light on each
+floor for the corridors was not allowed in this building, and they
+moved along in the darkness, but for the flickering light of the few
+candles carried among them. As they neared the top they grew more
+stealthy and kept close together on the landing outside the studio
+door. One stooped and listened at the keyhole, then tried to look
+through it. "Not there?" whispered another.
+
+"No light," was the whispered reply. They spoke now in French, now in
+English.
+
+"He has heard us and hid himself. He is a strange man, this Scotchman.
+He did not attend the 'Vernissage,' nor the presentation of prizes,
+yet he wins the highest." The owl stretched out an arm, bare and
+muscular, from under his wing and tried the door very gently. It was
+not locked, and he thrust his head within, then reached back and took
+a candle from the ghost. "This will give light enough. Put out the
+rest of yours and make no noise."
+
+Thus in the darkness they crept into the studio and gathered around
+the table. There they saw the unopened envelopes.
+
+"He is not here. He does not know," said one and another.
+
+"Where then can he be?"
+
+"He has taken a panic and fled. I told you so," said the ghost.
+
+"Ah, here he is! Behold! The Hamlet of our ghost! Wake, Hamlet; your
+father's spirit has arrived," cried one in English with a very French
+accent.
+
+They now gathered before the dais, shouting and cheering in both
+English and French. One brought the envelopes on a palette and
+presented them. The young man gazed at them, stupidly at first, then
+with a feverish gleam in his eyes, but did not take them.
+
+"Yes, I found them when I came in--but they are--not for me."
+
+"They are addressed to you, Robert Kater, and the news is published
+and you leave them here unopened."
+
+"He does not know--I told you so."
+
+"You have the packet in your hand. Open it. Take it from him and
+decorate him. He is in a dream. It is the great medal. We will wake
+him."
+
+They began to cheer and cheer again, each after the manner of the
+character he had assumed. The ass brayed, the owl hooted, the ghost
+groaned. The ape leaped on the back of the throne whereon the young
+man still sat, and seized him by the hair, chattering idiotically
+after the manner of apes, and began to wag his head back and forth. In
+the midst of the uproar Demosthenes stepped forward and took the
+envelopes from the palette, and, tearing them open, began reading them
+aloud by the light of a candle held for him by Lady Macbeth, who now
+and then interrupted with the remark that "her little hand was stained
+with blood," stretching forth an enormous, hairy hand for their
+inspection. But as Demosthenes read on the uproar ceased, and all
+listened with courteous attention. The ape leaped down from the back
+of the throne, the owl ceased hooting, and all were silent until the
+second envelope had been opened and the contents made known--that his
+exhibit had been purchased by the Salon.
+
+"Robert Kater, you are at the top. We congratulate you. To be
+recognized by the 'Salon des Artistes Francaises' is to be recognized
+and honored by all the world."
+
+They all came forward with kindly and sincere words, and the young man
+stood to receive them, but reeling and swaying, weary with emotion,
+and faint with hunger.
+
+"Were you not going to the mask?"
+
+"I was weary; I had not thought."
+
+"Then wake up and go. We come for you."
+
+"I have no costume."
+
+"Ah, that is nothing. Make one; it is easy."
+
+"He sits there like his own Saul, enveloped in gloom. Come, I will be
+your David," cried one, and snatched a guitar and began strumming it
+wildly.
+
+While the company scattered and searched the studio for materials with
+which to create for him a costume for the mask, the ghost came limping
+up to the young man who had seated himself again wearily on the
+throne, and spoke to him quietly.
+
+"The tide's turned, Kater; wake up to it. You're clear of the
+breakers. The two pictures you were going to destroy are sold. I
+brought those Americans here while you were away and showed them. I
+told you they'd take something as soon as you were admitted. Here's
+the money."
+
+Robert Kater raised himself, looking in the eyes of his friend, and
+took the bank notes as if he were not aware what they really might
+be.
+
+"I say! You've enough to keep you for a year if you don't throw it
+away. Count it. I doubled your price and they took them at the price I
+made. Look at these."
+
+Then Robert Kater looked at them with glittering eyes, and his shaking
+hand shut upon them, crushing the bank notes in a tight grip. "We'll
+halve it, share and share alike," he whispered, staring at the ghost
+without counting it. "As for this," his finger touched the decoration
+on his breast--"it is given to a--You won't take half? Then I'll throw
+them away."
+
+"I'll take them all until you're sane enough to know what you're
+doing. Give them to me." He took them back and crept quietly,
+ghostlike, about the room until he found a receptacle in which he
+knew they would be safe; then, removing one hundred francs from the
+amount, he brought it back and thrust it in his friend's pocket.
+"There--that's enough for you to throw away on us to-night. Why are
+you taking off your decoration? Leave it where it is. It's yours."
+
+"Yes, I suppose it is." Robert Kater brushed his hand across his eyes
+and stepped down from the throne. Then lifting his head and shoulders
+as if he threw off a burden, he leaped from the dais, and with one
+long howl, began an Indian war dance. He was the center and life of
+the hilarious crowd from that moment. The selection of materials had
+been made. A curtain of royal purple hung behind the throne, and this
+they threw around him as a toga, then crowned him as Mark Antony. They
+found for him also a tunic of soft wool, and with a strip of gold
+braid they converted a pair of sheepskin bedroom slippers into
+sandals, bound on his feet over his short socks.
+
+"I say! Mark Antony never wore things like these," he shouted. "Give
+me a mask. I'll not wear these things without a mask." He snatched at
+the head of the owl, who ducked under his arm and escaped. "Go then.
+This is better. Mark, the illustrious, was an ass." He made a dive for
+the head of his braying friend and barely missed him.
+
+"Come. We waste time. Cleopatra awaits him at 'la Fourchette d'or';
+all our Cleopatras await us there."
+
+"Surely?"
+
+"Surely. Madame la Charne is there and the sisters Lucie and
+Bertha,--all are there,--and with them one very beautiful blonde whom
+you have never seen."
+
+"She is for you--you cold Scotchman! That stone within you, which you
+call heart, to-night it will melt."
+
+"You have everything planned then?"
+
+"Everything is made ready."
+
+"Look here! Wait, my friends! I haven't expressed myself yet." They
+were preparing to lift him above their heads. "I wish to say that you
+are all to share my good fortune and allow--"
+
+"Wait for the champagne. You can say it then with more force."
+
+"I say! Hold on! I ask you to--"
+
+"So we do. We hold on. Now, up--so." He was borne in triumph down the
+stairs and out on the street and away to the sign of the Golden Fork,
+and seated at the head of the table in a small banquet room opening
+off from the balcony at one side where the feast which had been
+ordered and prepared was awaiting them.
+
+A group of masked young women, gathered on the balcony, pelted them
+with flowers as they passed beneath it, and when the men were all
+seated, they trooped out, and each slid into her appointed place,
+still masked.
+
+Then came a confusion of tongues, badinage, repartee, wit undiluted by
+discretion--and rippling laughter as one mask after another was torn
+off.
+
+"Ah, how glad I am to be rid of it! I was suffocating," said a soft
+voice at Robert Kater's side.
+
+He looked down quickly into a pair of clear, red-brown eyes--eyes into
+which he had never looked before.
+
+"Then we are both content that it is off." He smiled as he spoke. She
+glanced up at him, then down and away. When she lifted her eyes an
+instant later again to his face, he was no longer regarding her. She
+was piqued, and quickly began conversing with the man on her left, the
+one who had removed her mask.
+
+"It is no use, your smile, mademoiselle. He is impervious, that man.
+He has no sense or he could not turn his eyes away."
+
+"I like best the impervious ones." With a light ripple of laughter she
+turned again to her right. "Monsieur has forgotten?"
+
+"Forgotten?" Robert was mystified until he realized in the instant
+that she was pretending to a former acquaintance. "Could I forget,
+mademoiselle? Permit me." He lifted his glass. "To your eyes--and to
+your--memory," he said, and drank it off.
+
+After that he became the gayest of them all, and the merriment never
+flagged. He ate heartily, for he was very hungry, but he drank
+sparingly. His brain seemed supplied with intellectual missiles which
+he hurled right and left, but when they struck, it was only to send
+out a rain of sparks like the balls of holiday fireworks that explode
+in a fountain of brilliance and hurt no one.
+
+"Monsieur is so gay!" said the soft voice of the blonde at his side.
+
+"Are we not here for that, to enjoy ourselves?"
+
+"Ah, if I could but believe that you remember me!"
+
+"Is it possible mademoiselle thinks herself one to be so easily
+forgotten?"
+
+"Monsieur, tell me the truth." She glanced up archly. "I have one very
+good reason for asking."
+
+"You are very beautiful."
+
+"But that is so banal--that remark."
+
+"You complain that I tell you the truth when you ask it? You have so
+often heard it that the telling becomes banal? Shall I continue?"
+
+"But it is of yourself that I would hear."
+
+"So? Then it is as I feared. It is you who have forgotten."
+
+They were interrupted at that moment, for he was called upon for a
+story, and he related one of his life as a soldier,--a little
+incident, but everything pleased. They called upon him for another and
+another. The hour grew late, and at last the banqueters rose and began
+to remask and assume their various characters.
+
+"What are you, monsieur, with that very strange dress that you wear, a
+Roman or a Greek?" asked his companion.
+
+"I really don't know--a sort of nondescript. I did not choose my
+costume; it was made up for me by my friends. They called me Mark
+Antony, but that was because they did not know what else to call me.
+But they promised me Cleopatra if I would come with them."
+
+"They would have done better to call you Petrarch, for I am Laura."
+
+"But I never could have taken that part. I could make a very decent
+sort of ass of myself, but not a poet."
+
+"What a very terrible voice your Lady Macbeth has!"
+
+"Yes; but she was a terror, you know. Shall we follow the rest?"
+
+They all trooped out of the cafe, and fiacres were called to take them
+to the house where the mask was held. The women were placed in their
+respective carriages, but the men walked. At the door of the house, as
+they entered the ballroom, they reunited, but again were soon
+scattered. Robert Kater wandered about, searching here and there for
+his very elusive Laura, so slim and elegant in her white and gold
+draperies, who seemed to be greatly in demand. He saw many whom he
+recognized; some by their carriage, some by their voices, but Laura
+baffled him. Had he ever seen her before? He could not remember. He
+would not have forgotten her--never. No, she was amusing herself with
+him.
+
+"Monsieur does not dance?" It was a Spanish gypsy with her lace
+mantilla and the inevitable red rose in her hair. He knew the voice.
+It was that of a little model he sometimes employed.
+
+"I dance, yes. But I will only take you out on the floor, my little
+Julie,--ha--ha--I know you, never fear--I will take you out on the
+floor, but on one condition."
+
+"It is granted before I know it."
+
+"Then tell me, who is she just passing?"
+
+"The one whose clothing is so--so--as if she would pose for the--"
+
+"Hush, Julie. The one in white and gold."
+
+"I asked if it were she. Yes, I know her very well, for I saw a
+gentleman unmask her on the balcony above there, to kiss her. It is
+she who dances so wonderfully at the Opera Comique. You have seen her,
+Mademoiselle Fee. Ah, come. Let us dance. It is the most perfect
+waltz."
+
+At the close of the waltz the owl came and took the little gypsy away
+from Robert, and a moment later he heard the mellifluous voice of his
+companion of the banquet.
+
+"I am so weary, monsieur. Take me away where we may refresh
+ourselves."
+
+The red-brown eyes looked pleadingly into his, and the slender fingers
+rested on his arm, and together they wandered to a corner of palms
+where he seated her and brought her cool wine jelly and other
+confections. She thanked him sweetly, and, drooping, she rested her
+head upon her hand and her arm on the arm of her chair.
+
+"So dull they are, these fetes, and the people--bah! They are dull to
+the point of despair."
+
+She was a dream of gold and white as she sat there--the red-gold hair
+and the red-brown eyes, and the soft gold and white draperies, too
+clinging, as the little gypsy had indicated, but beautiful as a gold
+and white lily. He sat beside her and gazed on her dreamily, but in a
+manner too detached. She was not pleased, and she sighed.
+
+"Take the refreshment, mademoiselle; you will feel better. I will
+bring you wine. What will you have?"
+
+"Oh, you men, who always think that to eat and drink something alone
+can refresh! Have you never a sadness?"
+
+"Very often, mademoiselle."
+
+"Then what do you do?"
+
+"I eat and drink, mademoiselle. Try it."
+
+"Oh, you strange man from the cold north! You make me shiver. Touch my
+hand. See? You have made me cold."
+
+"Cold? You are a flame from the crown of gold on your head to your
+shoes of gold."
+
+"Now that you are become a success, monsieur, what will you do? To you
+is given the heart's desire." She toyed with the quivering jelly,
+merely tasting it. It too was golden in hue, and golden lights danced
+in the heart of it.
+
+"A great success? I am dreaming. It is so new to me that I do not
+believe it."
+
+"You are very clever, monsieur. You never tell your thoughts. I asked
+if you remembered me and you answered in a riddle. I knew you did
+not, for you never saw me before."
+
+"Did I never see you dance?"
+
+"Ah, there you are again! To see me dance--in a great audience--one of
+many? That does not count. You but pretended."
+
+He leaned forward, looking steadily in her eyes. "Did I but pretend
+when I said I never could forget you? Ah, mademoiselle, you are too
+modest."
+
+She was maddened that she could not pique him to a more ardent manner,
+but gave no sign by so much as the quiver of an eyelid. She only
+turned her profile toward him indifferently. He noticed the piquant
+line of her lips and chin and throat, and the golden tones of her
+delicate skin.
+
+"Did I not also tell you the truth when you asked me? And you rewarded
+me by calling me banal."
+
+"And I was right. You, who are so clever, could think of something
+better to say." She gave him a quick glance, and placed a quivering
+morsel of jelly between her lips. "But you are so very strange to me.
+Tell me, were you never in love?"
+
+"That is a question I may not answer." He still smiled, but it was
+merely the continuation of the smile he had worn before she shot that
+last arrow. He still looked in her eyes, but she knew he was not
+seeing her. Then he rallied and laughed. "Come, question for question.
+Were you never in love--or out of love--let us say?"
+
+"Oh! Me!" She lifted her shoulders delicately. "Me! I am in love
+now--at this moment. You do not treat me well. You have not danced
+with me once."
+
+"No. You have been dancing always, and fully occupied. How could I?"
+
+"Ah, you have not learned. To dance with me--you must take me, not
+stand one side and wait."
+
+"Are you engaged for the next?"
+
+"But, yes. It is no matter. I will dance it with you. He will be
+consoled." She laughed, showing her beautiful, even teeth. "I make you
+a confession. I said to him, 'I will dance it with you unless the cold
+monsieur asks me--then I will dance with him, for it will do him
+good.'"
+
+Robert Kater rose and stood a moment looking through the palms. The
+silken folds of his toga fell gracefully around him, and he held his
+head high. Then he withdrew his eyes from the distance and turned them
+again on her,--the gold and white being at his feet,--and she seemed
+to him no longer human, but a phantom from which he must flee, if but
+he might do so courteously, for he knew her to be no phantom, and he
+could not be other than courteous.
+
+"Will you accept from me my laurel crown?" He took the chaplet from
+his head and laid it at her feet. Then, lifting her hand to his lips,
+he kissed the tips of her pink fingers, bowing low before her. "I go
+to send you wine. Console your partner. It is better so, for I too am
+in love." He smiled upon her as he had smiled at first, and was gone,
+walking out through the crowd--the weird, fantastic, bizarre company,
+as if he were no part of them. One and another greeted him as he
+passed, but he did not seem to hear them. He called a waiter and
+ordered wine to be taken to Mademoiselle Fee, and quickly was gone.
+They saw him no more.
+
+It was nearly morning. A drizzling rain was falling, and the air was
+chill after the heat of the crowded ballroom. He drew it into his
+lungs in deep draughts, glad to be out in the freshness, and to feel
+the cool rain on his forehead. He threw off his encumbering toga and
+walked in his tunic, with bare throat and bare knees, and carried the
+toga over one bare arm, and swung the other bare arm free. He walked
+with head held high, for he was seeing visions, and hearing a
+far-distant call. Now at last he might choose his path. He had not
+failed, but with that call from afar--what should he do? Should he
+answer it? Was it only a call from out his own heart--a passing,
+futile call, luring him back?
+
+Of one thing he was sure. There was the painting on which he had
+labored and staked his all now hanging in the Salon. He could see it,
+one of his visions realized,--David and Saul. The deep, rich
+shadows, the throne, the tiger skin, the sandaled feet of the
+remorseful king resting on the great fanged and leering head, the
+eyes of the king looking hungrily out from under his forbidding brows,
+the cruel lips pressed tightly together, and the lithe, thin hands
+grasping the carved arms of the throne in fierce restraint,--all
+this in the deep shadows between the majestic carved columns, their
+bases concealed by the rich carpet covering the dais and their tops
+lost in the brooding darkness above--the lowering darkness of purple
+gloom that only served to reveal the sinister outlines of the somber,
+sorrowful, suffering king, while he indulged the one pure passion
+left him--listening--gazing from the shadows out into the light,
+seeing nothing, only listening.
+
+And before him, standing in the one ray of light, clothed only in his
+tunic of white and his sandals, a human jewel of radiant color and
+slender strength, a godlike conception of youth and grace, his harp
+before him, the lilies crushed under his feet that he had torn from
+the strings which his fingers touched caressingly, with sunlight in
+his crown of golden, curling hair and the light of the stars in his
+eyes--David, the strong, the simple, the trusting, the God-fearing
+youth, as Robert Kater saw him, looking back through the ages.
+
+Ah, now he could live. Now he could create--work: he had been
+recognized, and rewarded--Dust and ashes! Dust and ashes! The hope of
+his life realized, the goblet raised to his lips, and the draft--bitter.
+The call falling upon his heart--imperative--beseeching--what did it
+mean?
+
+Slowly and heavily he mounted the stairs to his studio, and there
+fumbled about in the darkness and the confusion left by his admiring
+comrades until he found candles and made a light. He was cold, and his
+light clothing clung to him wet and chilling as grave clothes. He tore
+them off and got himself into things that were warm and dry, and
+wrapping himself in an old dressing gown of flannel, sat down to
+think.
+
+He took the money his friend had brought him and counted it over. Good
+old Ben Howard! Half of it must go to him, of course. And here were
+finished canvases quite as good as the ones that had sold. Ben might
+turn them to as good an account as the others,--yes,--here was enough
+to carry him through a year and leave him leisure to paint unhampered
+by the necessity of making pot boilers for a bare living.
+
+"Tell me, were you never in love?" That soft, insinuating voice
+haunted him against his will. In love? What did she know of love--the
+divine passion? Love! Fame! Neither were possible to him. He bowed his
+head upon the table, hiding his face, crushing the bank notes beneath
+his arms. Deep in his soul the eye of his own conscience regarded
+him,--an outcast hiding under an assumed name, covering the scar above
+his temple with a falling lock of hair seldom lifted, and deep in his
+soul a memory of a love. Oh, God! Dust and ashes! Dust and ashes!
+
+He rose, and, taking his candle with him, opened a door leading from
+the studio up a short flight of steps to a little cupboard of a
+sleeping room. Here he cast himself on the bed and closed his eyes. He
+must sleep: but no, he could not. After a time of restless tossing he
+got up and drew an old portmanteau from the closet and threw the
+contents out on the bed. From among them he picked up the thing he
+sought and sat on the edge of his bed with it in his hands, turning it
+over and regarding it, tieing and untieing the worn, frayed, but still
+bright ribbons, which had once been the cherry-colored hair ribbons of
+little Betty Ballard.
+
+Suddenly he rose and lifted his head high, in his old, rather
+imperious way, put out his candle, and looked through the small, dusty
+panes of his window. It was day--early dawn. He was jaded and weary,
+but he would try no longer to sleep. He must act, and shake off
+sentimentalism. Yes, he must act. He bathed and dressed with care, and
+then in haste, as if life depended on hurry, he packed the portmanteau
+and stepped briskly into the studio, looking all about, noting
+everything as if taking stock of it all, then sat down with pen and
+paper to write.
+
+The letter was a long one. It took time and thought. When he was
+nearly through with it, Ben Howard lagged wearily in.
+
+"Halloo! Why didn't you wait for me? What did you clear out for and
+leave me in the lurch? Fresh as a daisy, you are, old chap, and I'm
+done for, dead."
+
+"You're not scientific in your pleasures." Robert Kater lifted his
+eyes and looked at his friend. "Are you alive enough to hear me and
+remember what I say? Will you do something for me? Shall I tell you
+now or will you breakfast first?"
+
+"Breakfast? Faugh!" He looked disgustedly around him.
+
+"I'm sorry. You drink too much. Listen, Ben. I'll tell you what I mean
+to do and what I wish you to do for me--and--you remember all you can
+of it, will you? I must do it now, for you'll be asleep soon, and this
+will be the last I shall see of you--ever. I'm leaving in two
+hours--as soon as I've breakfasted."
+
+"What's that? Hold on!" Ben Howard sprang up, and darting behind a
+screen where they washed their brushes, he dashed cold water over his
+head and came back toweling himself. "I'm fit now. I did drink too
+much champagne, but I'll sleep it off. Now fire away,--what's up?"
+
+"In two hours I'll be en route for the coast, and to-morrow I'll take
+passage for home on the first boat." Robert closed and sealed the long
+letter he had been writing and tossed it on the table. "I want this
+mailed one week from to-day. Put it in your pocket so you won't lose
+it among the rubbish here. One week from to-day it must be mailed.
+It's to my great aunt, Jean Craigmile, who gave me the money to set
+up here the first year. I've paid that up--last week--with my last
+sou--and with interest. By rights she should have whatever there is
+here of any value, for, if it were not for her help, there would not
+have been a thing here anyway, and I've no one else to whom to leave
+it--so see that this letter is mailed without fail, will you?"
+
+The Englishman stood, now thoroughly awake, gazing at him, unable to
+make common sense out of Robert's remarks. "B--b--but--what's up? What
+are you leaving things to anybody for? You're not on your deathbed."
+
+"I'm going home, don't you see?"
+
+"But why don't you take the letter to her yourself--if you're going
+home?"
+
+"Not there, man; not to Scotland."
+
+"Your home's there."
+
+"I have allowed you to think so." Robert forced himself to talk
+calmly. "In truth, I have no home, but the place I call home by
+courtesy is where I was brought up--in America."
+
+"You--you--d--d--don't--"
+
+"Yes--it's time you knew this. I've been leading a double life, and
+I'm done with it. I committed a crime, and I'm living under an
+assumed name. There is no such man as Robert Kater that I know of on
+earth, nor ever was. My name is--no matter--. I'm going back to
+the place where I killed my best friend--to give myself up--to
+imprisonment--I do not know to what--maybe death--but it will end
+my torture of mind. Now you know why I could not go to the Vernissage,
+to be treated--well, I could not go, that's all. Nor could I accept
+the honors given me under a name not my own. All the time I've lived
+in Paris I've been hiding--and this thing has been following
+me--although my occupation seems to have been the best cover I could
+have had--yet my soul has known no peace. Always--always--night and
+day--my own conscience has been watching and accusing me, an eye of
+dread steadily gazing down into my soul and seeing my sin deep, deep
+in my heart. I could not hide from it. And I would have given up
+before only that I wished to make good in something before I stepped
+down and out. I've done it." He put his hand heavily on Ben Howard's
+shoulder. "I've had a revelation this night. The lesson of my life is
+learned at last. It is, that there is but one road to freedom and
+life for me--and that road leads to a prison. It leads to a
+prison,--maybe worse,--but it leads me to freedom--from the thing
+that haunts me, that watches me and drives me. I may write you from
+that place which I will call home--Were you ever in love?"
+
+The abruptness of the question set Ben Howard stammering again. He
+seized Robert's hand in both his own and held to it. "I--I--I--old
+chap--I--n--n--no--were you?"
+
+"Yes; I've heard the call of her voice in my heart--and I'm gone. Now,
+Ben, stop your--well, I'll not preach to you, you of all men,--but--do
+something worth while. I've need of part of the money you got for
+me--to get back on--and pay a bill or two--and the rest I leave to
+you--there where you put it you'll find it. Will you live here and
+take care of these things for me until my good aunt, Jean Craigmile,
+writes you? She'll tell you what to do with them--and more than likely
+she'll take you under her wing--anyway, work, man, work. The place is
+yours for the present--perhaps for a good while, and you'll have a
+chance to make good. If I could live on that money for a year, as you
+yourself said, you can live on half of it for half a year, and in that
+time you can get ahead. Work."
+
+He seized his portmanteau and was gone before Ben Howard could gather
+his scattered senses or make reply.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXXII
+
+THE PRISONER
+
+
+Harry King did not at once consult an attorney, for Milton Hibbard,
+the only one he knew or cared to call upon for his defense, was an old
+friend of the Elder's and had been retained by him to assist the
+district attorney at the trial. The other two lawyers in Leauvite, one
+of whom was the district attorney himself, were strangers to him.
+Twice he sent messages to the Elder after his return, begging him to
+come to him, never dreaming that they could be unheeded, but to the
+second only was any reply sent, and then it was but a cursory line.
+"Legal steps will be taken to secure justice for you, whoever you
+are."
+
+To his friends he sent no messages. Their sympathy could only mean
+sorrow for them if they believed in him, and hurt to his own soul if
+they distrusted him, and he suffered enough. So he lay there in the
+clean, bare cell, and was glad that it was clean and held no traces of
+former occupants. The walls smelled of lime in their freshly plastered
+surfaces, and the floor had the pleasant odor of new pine.
+
+His life passed in review before him from boyhood up. It had been a
+happy life until the tragedy brought into it by his own anger and
+violence, but since that time it had been one long nightmare of
+remorse, heightened by fear, until he had met Amalia, and after that
+it had been one unremitting strife between love and duty--delight in
+her mind, in her touch, in her every movement, and in his own soul
+despair unfathomable. Now at last it was to end in public exposure,
+imprisonment, disgrace. A peculiar apathy of peace seemed to envelop
+him. There was no longer hope to entice, no further struggle to be
+waged against the terror of fear, or the joy of love, or the horror of
+remorse; all seemed gone from him, even to the vague interest in
+things transpiring in the world.
+
+He had only a puzzled feeling concerning his arrest. Things had not
+proceeded as he had planned. If the Elder would but come to him, all
+would be right. He tried to analyze his feelings, and the thought that
+possessed him most was wonder at the strange vacuity of the condition
+of emotionlessness. Was it that he had so suffered that he was no
+longer capable of feeling? What was feeling? What was emotion: and
+life without either emotion, or feeling, or caring to feel,--what
+would it be?
+
+Valueless.--Empty space. Nothing left but bodily hunger, bodily
+thirst, bodily weariness. A lifetime, for his years were not yet half
+spent,--a lifetime at Waupun, and work for the body, but vacuity for
+the mind--maybe--sometimes--memories. Even thinking thus he seemed to
+have lost the power to feel sadness.
+
+Confusion reigned within him, and yet he found himself powerless to
+correlate his thoughts or suggest reasons for the strange happenings
+of the last few days. It seemed to him that he was in a dream wherein
+reason played no part. In the indictment he was arraigned for the
+murder of Peter Craigmile, Jr.,--as Richard Kildene,--and yet he had
+seen his cousin lying dead before him, during all the years that had
+passed since he had fled from that sight. In battle he had seen men
+clubbed with the butt end of a musket fall dead with wounded temples,
+even as he had seen his cousin--stark--inert--lifeless. He had felt
+the strange, insane rage to kill that he had seen in others and
+marveled at. And now, after he had felt and done it, he was arrested
+as the man he had slain.
+
+All the morning he paced his cell and tried to force his thoughts to
+work out the solution, but none presented itself. Was he the victim of
+some strange form of insanity that caused him to lose his identity and
+believe himself another man? Drunken men he had seen under the
+delusion that all the rest of the world were drunken and they alone
+sober. Oh, madness, madness! At least he was sane and knew himself,
+and this was a confusion brought about by those who had undertaken his
+arrest. He would wait for the Elder to come, and in the meantime live
+in his memories, thinking of Amalia, and so awaken in himself one
+living emotion, sacred and truly sane. In the sweetness of such
+thinking alone he seemed to live.
+
+He drew the little ivory crucifix from his bosom and looked at it.
+"The Christ who bore our sins and griefs"--and again Amalia's words
+came to him. "If they keep you forever in the prison, still forever
+are you free." In snatches her words repeated themselves over in his
+mind as he gazed. "If you have the Christ in your heart--so are you
+high--lifted above the sin." "If I see you no more here, in Paradise
+yet will I see you, and there it will be joy--great--joy; for it is
+the love that is all of life, and all of eternity, and lives--lives."
+
+Bertrand Ballard and his wife and daughter stood in the small room
+opening off from the corridor that led to the rear of the courthouse
+where was the jail, waiting for the jailer to bring his keys from his
+office, and, waiting thus, Betty turned her eyes beseechingly on her
+father, and for the first time since her talk with her mother in the
+studio, opened her lips to speak to him. She was very pale, but she
+did not tremble, and her voice had the quality of determination.
+Bertrand had yielded the point and had taken her to the jail against
+his own judgment, taking Mary with him to forestall the chance of
+Betty's seeing the young man alone. "Surely," he thought, "she will
+not ask to have her mother excluded from the interview."
+
+"I don't want any one--not even you--or--or--mother, to go in with
+me."
+
+"My child, be wise--and be guided."
+
+"Yes, father,--but I want to go in alone." She slipped her hand in her
+mother's, but still looked in her father's eyes. "I must go in alone,
+father. You don't understand--but mother does."
+
+"This young man may be an impostor. It is almost unmaidenly for you to
+wish to go in there alone. Mary--"
+
+But Mary hesitated and trusted to her daughter's intuition. "Betty,
+explain yourself," was all she said.
+
+"Suppose it was father--or you thought it might be father--and a
+terrible thing were hanging over him and you had not seen him for all
+this time--and he were in there, and I were you--wouldn't you ask to
+see him first alone? Would you stop for one moment to think about
+being proper? What do I care! If he is an impostor, I shall know it.
+In one moment I shall know it. I--I--just want to see him alone. It
+is because he has suffered so long--that is why he has come like
+this--if--they aren't accusing him wrongfully, and I--he will tell me
+the truth. If he is Richard, I would know it if I came in and stood
+beside him blindfolded. I will call you in a moment. Stand by the
+door, and let me see him alone."
+
+The jailer returned, alert and important, shaking the keys in his
+hand. "This way, please."
+
+In the moment's pause of unlocking, Betty again turned upon her
+father, her eyes glowing in the dim light of the corridor with wide,
+sorrowful gaze, large and irresistibly earnest. Bertrand glanced from
+her to his wife, who slightly nodded her head. Then he said to the
+surprised jailer: "We will wait here. My daughter may be able to
+recognize him. Call us quickly, dear, if you have reason to change
+your mind." The heavy door was closed behind her, and the key turned
+in the lock.
+
+Harry King loomed large and tall in the small room, standing with his
+back to the door and his face lifted to the small window, where he
+could see a patch of the blue sky and white, scudding clouds. For the
+moment his spirit was not in that cell. It was free and on top of a
+mountain, looking into the clear eyes of a woman who loved him. He was
+so rapt in his vision that he did not hear the grating of the key in
+the lock, and Betty stood abashed, with her back to the door, feeling
+that she was gazing on a stranger. Relieved against the square of
+light, his hair looked darker than she remembered Peter's ever to have
+been,--as dark as Richard's, but that rough, neglected beard,--also
+dark,--and the tanned skin, did not bring either young man to her
+mind.
+
+The pause was but for a moment, when he became aware that he was not
+alone and turned and saw her there.
+
+"Betty! oh, Betty! You have come to help me." He walked toward her
+slowly, hardly believing his eyes, and held out both hands.
+
+"If--I--can. Who are you?" She took his hands in hers and walked
+around him, turning his face to the light. Her breath came and went
+quickly, and a round red spot now burned on one of her cheeks, and her
+face seemed to be only two great, pathetic eyes.
+
+"Do I need to tell you, Betty? Once we thought we loved each other.
+Did we, Betty?"
+
+"I don't--don't--know--Peter! Oh, Peter! Oh, you are alive! Peter!
+Richard didn't kill you!" She did not cry out, but spoke the words
+with a low intensity that thrilled him, and then she threw her arms
+about his neck and burst into tears. "He didn't do it! You are alive!
+Peter, he didn't kill you! I knew he didn't do it. They all thought
+he did, and--and--your father--he has almost broken his bank
+just--just--hunting for Richard--to--to--have him hung--and oh!
+Peter, I have lived in horror,--for--fear he w--w--w--would, and--"
+
+"He never could, Betty. I have come home to atone. I have come home to
+give myself up. I killed Richard--my cousin--my best friend. I struck
+him in hate and saw him lying dead: all the time they were hunting him
+it was I they should have hunted. I can't understand it. Did they take
+his dead body for mine--or--how was it they did not know he was struck
+down and murdered? They must have taken his body for mine--or--he
+must have fallen over--but he didn't, for I saw him lying dead as I
+had struck him. All these years the eye of vengeance has been upon me,
+and my crime has haunted me. I have seen him lying so--dead. God!
+God!"
+
+Betty still clung to him and sobbed incoherently. "No, no, Peter, it
+was you who were drowned--they found all your things and saw where you
+had been pushed over, and--but you weren't drowned! They only thought
+it--they believed it--"
+
+He put his hand to his head as if to brush away the confusion which
+staggered him. "Yes, Richard lay dead--and they found him,--but why
+did they hunt for him? And I--I--living--why didn't they hunt me,--and
+he, dead and lying there--why did they hunt him? But my father would
+believe the worst of him rather than to see himself disgraced in his
+son. Don't cry, little Betty, don't cry. You've had too much to bear.
+Sit here beside me and I'll tell you all about it. That's why I came
+back."
+
+"B--b--ut if you weren't drowned, why--why didn't you come home and
+say so? Didn't you ever see the papers and how they were hunting
+Richard all over the world? I knew you were dead, because I knew you
+never would be so cruel as to leave every one in doubt and your father
+in sorrow--just because he had quarreled with you. It might have
+killed your mother--if the Elder had let her know."
+
+"I can't tell you all my reasons, Betty; mostly they were coward's
+reasons. I did my best to leave evidence that I had been pushed over
+the bluff, because it seemed the only way to hide myself. I did my
+best to make them think me dead, and never thought any one could be
+harmed by it, because I knew him to be dead; so I just thought we
+would both be dead so far as the world would know,--and as for you,
+dear,--I learned on that fatal night that you did not love me--and
+that was another coward's reason why I wished to be dead to you all."
+He began pacing the room, and Betty sat on the edge of the narrow jail
+bedstead and watched him with tearful eyes. "It was true, Betty? You
+did not really love me?"
+
+"Peter! Didn't you ever see the papers? Didn't you ever know all about
+the search for you and how he disappeared, too? Oh, Peter! And it was
+supposed he killed you and pushed you over the bluff and then ran
+away. Oh, Peter! But it was kept out of the home paper by the Elder so
+your mother should not know--and Peter--didn't you know Richard
+lived?"
+
+"Lived? lived?" He lifted his clasped hands above his head, and they
+trembled. "Lived? Betty, say it again!"
+
+"Yes, Peter. I saw him and I know--"
+
+"Oh, God, make me know it. Make me understand." He fell on his knees
+beside her and hid his face in the scant jail bedding, and his frame
+shook with dry sobs. "I was a coward. I told you that. I--I thought
+myself a murderer, and all this time my terrible thought has driven
+me--Lived? I never killed him? God! Betty, say it again."
+
+Betty sat still for a moment, shaken at first with a feeling of
+resentment that he had made them all suffer so, and Richard most of
+all. Then she was overwhelmed with pity for him, and with a glad
+tenderness. It was all over. The sorrow had been real, but it had all
+been needless. She placed her hand on his head, then knelt beside him
+and put her arm about his neck and drew his head to her bosom,
+motherwise, for the deep mother heart in her was awakened, and thus
+she told him all the story, and how Richard had come to her, broken
+and repentant, and what had been said between them. When they rose
+from their knees, it was as if they had been praying and at the same
+time giving thanks.
+
+"And you thought they would find him lying there dead and know you had
+killed him and hunt you down for a murderer?"
+
+"Yes."
+
+"Poor Peter! So you pushed that great stone out of the edge of the
+bluff into the river to make them think you had fallen over and
+drowned--and threw your things down, too, to make it seem as if you
+both were dead."
+
+"Yes."
+
+"Oh, Peter! What a terrible mistake! How you must have suffered!"
+
+"Yes, as cowards suffer."
+
+They stood for a moment with clasped hands, looking into each other's
+eyes. "Then it was true what Richard told me? You did not love me,
+Betty?" He had grown calmer, and he spoke very tenderly. "We must have
+all the truth now and conceal nothing."
+
+"Not quite--true. I--I--thought I did. You were so handsome! I was
+only a child then--and I thought I loved you--or that I ought to--for
+any girl would--I was so romantic in those days--and you had been
+wounded--and it was like a romance--"
+
+"And then?"
+
+"And then Richard came, and I knew in one instant that I had done
+wrong--and that I loved him--and oh, I felt myself so wicked."
+
+"No, Betty, dear. It was all--"
+
+"It was not fair to you. I would have been true to you, Peter; you
+would have never known--but after Richard came and told me he had
+killed you,--I felt as if I had killed you, too. I did like you,
+Peter. I did! I will do whatever is right."
+
+"Then it was not in vain--that we have all suffered. We have been
+saved from doing each other wrong. Everything will come right now. All
+that is needed is for father to hear what you have told me, and he
+will come and take me out of here--Where is Richard?"
+
+"No one knows."
+
+"Not even you, Betty?"
+
+"No; he has dropped out of the world as completely as you did."
+
+"Well, it will be all right, anyway. Father will withdraw his charge
+and--did you say his bank was going to pieces? He must have help. I
+can help him. You can help him, Betty."
+
+"How?"
+
+Then Peter told Betty how he had found Richard's father in his
+mountain retreat and that she must write to him. "If there is any
+danger of the bank's going, write for me to Larry Kildene. Father
+never would appeal to him if he lost everything in the world, so we
+must do it. As soon as I am out of here we can save him." Already he
+felt himself a new man, and spoke hopefully and cheerfully. He little
+knew the struggle still before him.
+
+"Peter, father and mother are out there in the corridor waiting. I
+was to call them. I made them let me come in alone."
+
+"Oh, call them, call them!"
+
+"I don't think they will know you as I did, with that great beard on
+your face. We'll see."
+
+When Bertrand and Mary entered, they stood for a moment aghast, seeing
+little likeness to either of the young men in the developed and
+bronzed specimen of manhood before them. But they greeted him warmly,
+eager to find him Peter, and in their manner he missed nothing of
+their old-time kindliness.
+
+"You are greatly changed, Peter Junior. You look more like Richard
+Kildene than you ever did before in your life," said Mary.
+
+"Yes, but when we see Richard, we may find that a change has taken
+place in him also, and they will stand in their own shoes hereafter."
+
+"Since the burden has been lifted from my soul and I know that he lives,
+I could sing and shout aloud here in this cell. Imprisonment--even
+death--means nothing to me now. All will come right before we know it."
+
+"That is just the way Richard would act and speak. No wonder you have
+been taken for him!" said Bertrand.
+
+"Yes, he was always more buoyant than I. Maybe we have both changed,
+but I hope he has not. I loved my friend."
+
+As they walked home together Mary Ballard said, "Now, Peter ought to
+be released right away."
+
+"Certainly he will be as soon as the Elder realizes the truth."
+
+"How he has changed, though! His face shows the mark of sorrow. Those
+drooping, sensitive lines about his mouth--they were never there
+before, and they are the lines of suffering. They touched my heart. I
+wish Hester were at home. She ought to be written to. I'll do it as
+soon as I get home."
+
+"Peter is handsomer than he was, in spite of the lines, and, as you
+say, he does look more like his cousin than he used to--because of
+them, I think. Richard always had a debonair way with him, but he had
+that little, sensitive droop to the lips--not so marked as Peter's is
+now--but you remember, Mary--like his mother's."
+
+"Oh, mother, don't you think Richard could be found?" Betty's voice
+trailed sorrowfully over the words. She was thinking how he had
+suffered all this time, and wishing her heart could reach out to him
+and call him back to her.
+
+"He must be, dear, if he lives."
+
+"Oh, yes. He'll be found. It can be published that Peter Junior has
+returned, and that will bring him after a while. Peter's physique
+seems to have changed as well as his face. Did you notice that
+backward swing of the shoulders, so like his cousin's, when he said,
+'I could sing and shout here in this cell'? And the way he lifted his
+head and smiled? That beard is a horrible disguise. I must send a
+barber to him. He must be himself again."
+
+"Oh, yes, do. He stands so straight and steps so easily. His lameness
+seems to have quite gone," said Mary, joyously,--but at that, Bertrand
+paused in his walk and looked at her, then glancing at Betty walking
+slowly on before, he laid his finger to his lips and took his wife's
+arm, and they said no more until they reached home and Betty was in
+her room.
+
+"I simply can't think it, Bertrand. I see Peter in him. It is Peter.
+Of course he's like Richard. They were always alike, and that makes
+him all the more Peter. No other man would have that likeness, and it
+goes to show that he is Peter."
+
+"My dear, unless the Elder sees him as we see him, the thing will have
+to be tried out in the courts."
+
+"Unless we can find Richard. Hester ought to be here. She could set
+them right in a moment. Trust a mother to know her own boy. I'll write
+her immediately. I'll--"
+
+"But you have no authority, Mary."
+
+"No authority? She is my friend. I have a right to do my duty by her,
+and I can so put it that it will not be such a shock to her as it
+inevitably will be if matters go wrong, or Peter should be kept in
+prison for lack of evidence--or for too much evidence. She'll have to
+know sooner or later."
+
+Bertrand said no more against this, for was not Mary often quite
+right? "I'll see to it that he has a barber, and try to persuade the
+Elder to see him. That may settle it without any trouble. If not, I
+must see that he has a good lawyer to help in his defense."
+
+"If that savage old man remains stubborn, Hester must be here."
+
+"If the thing goes to a trial, Betty will have to appear against
+him."
+
+"Well, it mustn't go to a trial, that's all."
+
+That night two letters went out from Leauvite, one to Hester Craigmile
+at Aberdeen, Scotland, and one to the other end of the earth, where
+Larry Kildene waited for news of Harry King, there on the mountain
+top. On the first of each month Larry rode down to the nearest point
+where letters could be sent, making a three days' trip on horseback.
+His first trip brought nothing, because Harry had not sent his first
+letter in time to reach the station before Larry was well on his way
+back up the mountain. He would not delay his return, for fear of
+leaving the two women too long alone.
+
+After Harry's departure, Madam Manovska had grown restless, and once
+had wandered so far away as to cause them great alarm and a long
+search, when she was found, sitting close to the fall, apparently too
+weak and too dazed to move. This had so awakened Amalia's fears that
+she never allowed her mother to leave the cabin alone, but always on
+one pretext or another accompanied her.
+
+The situation was a difficult one for them all. If Amalia took her
+mother away to some town, as she wished to do, she feared for Madam
+Manovska's sanity when she could not find her husband. And still, when
+she tried to tell her mother of her father's death, she could not
+convince her of its truth. For a while she would seem to understand
+and believe it, but after a night's rest she would go back to the old
+weary repetition of going to her husband and his need of her. Then it
+was all to go over again, day after day, until at last Amalia gave up,
+and allowed her mother the comfort of her belief: but all the more she
+had to invent pretexts for keeping her on the mountain. So she
+accepted Larry's kindly advice and his earnestly offered hospitality
+and his comforting companionship, and remained, as, perforce, there
+was nothing else for her to do.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXXIII
+
+HESTER CRAIGMILE RECEIVES HER LETTER
+
+
+The letters reached their opposite destinations at about the same
+time. The one to Amalia closely buttoned in Larry's pocket, and the
+short one to himself which he read and reread as his horse slowly
+climbed the trail, were halfway up the mountain when the postboy
+delivered Hester Craigmile's at the door of the sedate brick house
+belonging to the Craigmiles of Aberdeen.
+
+Peter Junior's mother and two elderly women--his grandaunts--were
+seated in the dignified parlor, taking afternoon tea, when the
+housemaid brought Hester her letter.
+
+"Is it from Peter, maybe?" asked the elder of the two aunts.
+
+"No, Aunt Ellen; I think it is from a friend."
+
+"It's strange now, that Peter's no written before this," said the
+younger, leaning forward eagerly. "Will ye read it, dear? We'll be
+wantin' to know if there's ae word about him intil't."
+
+"There may be, Aunt Jean." Hester set her cup of tea down untasted,
+and began to open her letter.
+
+"But tak' yer tea first, Hester. Jean's an impatient body. That's too
+bad of ye, Jean; her toast's gettin' cold."
+
+"Oh, that's no matter at all, Aunt Ellen. I'll take it as soon as I
+see if he's home all right. Yes, my friend says my husband has been
+home for three days and is well."
+
+"That's good. Noo ye're satisfied, lay it by and tak' yer tea." And
+Hester smilingly laid it by and took her tea, for Mary Ballard had
+said nothing on the first page to startle her friend's serenity.
+
+Jean Craigmile, however, still looked eagerly at the letter as it lay
+on a chair at Hester's side. She was a sweet-faced old lady, alert,
+and as young as Peter Junior's father, for all she was his aunt, and
+now she apologized for her eagerness by saying, as she often did: "Ye
+mind he's mair like my brither than my nephew, for we all used to play
+together--Peter, Katherine, and me. We were aye friends. She was like
+a sister, and he like a brither. Ah, weel, we're auld noo."
+
+Her sister looked at her fondly. "Ye're no so auld, Jean, but ye might
+be aulder. It's like I might have been the mither of her, for I mind
+the time when she was laid in my arms and my feyther tell't me I was
+to aye care for her like my ain, an' but for her I would na' be livin'
+noo."
+
+"And why for no?" asked Jean, quickly.
+
+"I had ye to care for, child. Do ye no' understand?"
+
+Jean laughed merrily. "She's been callin' me child for saxty-five
+years," she said.
+
+Both the old ladies wore lace caps, but that of Jean's was a little
+braver with ribbons than Ellen's. Small lavender bows were set in the
+frill all about her face, and the long ends of the ribbon were not
+tied, but fell down on the soft white mull handkerchief that crossed
+over her bosom.
+
+"I mind when Peter married ye, Hester," said Ellen. "I was fair wild
+to have him bring ye here on his weddin' journey, and he should have
+done so, for we'd not seen him since he was a lad, and all these years
+I've been waitin' to see ye."
+
+"Weel, 'twas good of him to leave ye bide with us a bit, an' go home
+without ye," said Jean.
+
+"It was good of him, but I ought not to have allowed it." Hester's
+eyes glistened and her face grew tender and soft. To the world,
+the Elder might seem harsh, stubborn, and vindictive, but Hester knew
+the tenderness in which none but she believed. Ever since the
+disappearance of their son, he had been gentle and most lovingly
+watchful of her, and his domination had risen from the old critical
+restraint on her thoughts and actions to a solicitous care for her
+comfort,--studying her slightest wishes with almost appealing
+thoughtfulness to gratify them.
+
+"And why for no allow it? There's naething so good for a man as
+lettin' him be kind to ye, even if he is an Elder in the kirk. I'm
+thinkin' Peter's ain o' them that such as that is good for--Hester!
+What ails ye! Are oot of ye're mind? Gi'e her a drap of whuskey, Jean.
+Hester!"
+
+While they were chatting and sipping their tea, Hester had quietly
+resumed the reading of her letter, and now she sat staring straight
+before her, the pages crushed in her hand, leaning forward, pale, with
+her eyes fixed on space as if they looked on some awful sight.
+
+"Hester! Hester! What is it? Is there a bit o' bad news for ye' in the
+letter? Here, tak' a sip o' this, dear. Tak' it, Hester; 'twill
+hairten ye up for whatever's intil't," cried Jean, holding to Hester's
+lips the ever ready Scotch remedy, which she had snatched from a wall
+cupboard behind her and poured out in a glass.
+
+Ellen, who was lame and could not rise from her chair without help,
+did not cease her directions and ejaculations, lapsing into the
+broader Scotch of her girlhood under excitement, as was the way with
+both the women. "Tell us what ails ye, dear; maybe it's no so bad. Gie
+me the letter, Jean, an' I'll see what's intil't. Ring the bell for
+Tillie an' we'll get her to the couch."
+
+But Hester caught Jean's gown and would not let her go to the bell
+cord which hung in the far corner of the room. "No, don't call her.
+I'll lie down a moment, and--and--we'll talk--this--over." She clung
+to the letter and would not let it out of her hand, but rose and
+walked wearily to the couch unassisted and lay down, closing her eyes.
+"After a minute, Aunt Ellen, I'll tell you. I must think, I must
+think." So she lay quietly, gathering all her force to consider and
+meet what she must, as her way was, while Jean sat beside, stroking
+her hand and saying sweet, comforting words in her broad Scotch.
+
+"There's neathin' so guid as a drap of whuskey, dear, for strengthnin'
+the hairt whan ye hae a bit shock. It's no yer mon, Peter? No? Weel,
+thank the Lord for that. Noo, tak ye anither bit sup, for ye ha'e na
+tasted it. Wull ye no gie Ellen the letter, love? 'Twill save ye
+tellin' her."
+
+Hester passively took the whisky as she was bid, and presently sat up
+and finished reading the letter. "Peter has been hiding--something
+from me for--three years--and now--"
+
+"Yes, an' noo. It's aye the way wi' them that hides--whan the day
+comes they maun reveal--it's only the mair to their shame," exclaimed
+Ellen.
+
+"Oh, but it's all mixed up--and my best friend doesn't know the
+truth. Yes, take the letter, Aunt Ellen, and read it yourself." She
+held out the pages with a shaking hand, and Jean took them over to her
+sister, who slowly read them in silence.
+
+"Ah, noo. As I tell't ye, it's no so bad," she said at last.
+
+"Wha's the trouble, Ellen? Don't keep us waitin'."
+
+"Bide ye in patience, child. Ye're always so easily excitet. I maun
+read the letter again to get the gist o't, but it's like this. The
+Elder's been of the opeenion noo these three years that his son was
+most foully murder't, an--"
+
+"He may ha'e been kill't, but he was no' murder't," cried Jean,
+excitedly. "I tell ye 'twas purely by accident--" she paused and
+suddenly clapped both hands over her mouth and rocked herself back and
+forth as if she had made some egregious blunder, then: "Gang on wi'
+yer tellin'. It's dour to bide waitin'. Gie me the letter an' lat me
+read it for mysel'."
+
+"Lat me tell't as I maun tell't. Ye maun no keep interruptin'. Jean
+has no order in her brain. She aye pits the last first an' the first
+last. This is a hopefu' letter an' a guid ain from yer friend, an' it
+tells ye yer son's leevin' an' no murder't--"
+
+"Thank the Lord! I ha'e aye said it," ejaculated Jean, fervently.
+
+"Ye ha'e aye said it? Child, what mean ye? Ye ha'e kenned naethin'
+aboot it."
+
+But Jean would not be set down. She leaned forward with glistening
+eyes. "I ha'e aye said it. I ha'e aye said it. Gie me the letter,
+Ellen."
+
+But Ellen only turned composedly and resumed her interpretation of
+the letter to Hester, who sat looking with dazed expression from one
+aunt to the other.
+
+"It all comes about from Peter's bein' a stubborn man, an' he'll no
+change the opeenion he's held for three years wi'oot a struggle. Here
+comes his boy back an' says, 'I'm Peter Junior, and yer son.' An' his
+feyther says till him, 'Ye're no my son, for my son was murder't--an'
+ye're Richard Kildene wha' murder't him.' And noo, it's for ye to go
+home, Hester, an' bring Peter to his senses, and show him the truth. A
+mither knows her ain boy, an' if it's Peter Junior, it's Peter Junior,
+and Richard Kildene's died."
+
+"I tell ye he's no dead!" cried Jean, springing to her feet.
+
+"Hush, child. He maun be dead, for ain of them's dead, and this is
+Peter Junior."
+
+"Read it again, Aunt Ellen," said Hester, wearily. "You'll see that
+the Elder brings a fearful charge against Richard. He thinks Richard
+is making a false claim that he is--Peter--my boy."
+
+Jean sat back in her chair crying silently and shrinking into herself
+as if she were afraid to say more, and Ellen went on. "Listen, now,
+what yer frien' says. 'The Elder is wrong, for Bertrand'--that's her
+husband, I'm thinkin'--?"
+
+"Yes."
+
+"'Bertrand and Betty,--' Who's Betty, noo?"
+
+"Betty is their daughter. She was to--have--married my son."
+
+"Good. So she would know her lover. 'Betty and I have seen him,' she
+says, 'and have talked with him, and we know he is Peter Junior,' she
+says. 'Richard Kildene has disappeared,' she says, 'and yet we know
+he is living somewhere and he must be found. We fear the Elder will
+not withdraw the charge until Richard is located'--An' that will be
+like Peter, too--'and meanwhile your son Peter will have to lie in
+jail, where he is now, unless you can clear matters up here by coming
+home and identifying him, and that you can surely do.'--An' that's all
+vera weel. There's neathin' to go distraught over in the like o' that.
+An' here she says, 'He's a noble, fine-looking man, and you'll be
+proud of him when you see him.' Oh, 'tis a fine letter, an' it's Peter
+wi' his stubbornness has been makin' a boggle o' things. If I were na
+lame, I'd go back wi' ye an' gie Peter a piece o' my mind."
+
+"An' I'll locate Richard for ye!" cried Jean, rising to her feet and
+wiping away the fast-falling tears, laughing and weeping all in the
+same moment. "Whish't, Ellen, it's ye'rsel' that kens neathin' aboot
+it, an' I'll tell ye the truth the noo--that I've kept to mysel' this
+lang time till my conscience has nigh whupped me intil my grave."
+
+"Tak' a drap o' whuskey, Jean, ye're flyin' oot o' yer heid. It's the
+hystiricks she's takin'."
+
+"Ah, no! What is it, Aunt Jean? What is it?" cried Hester, eagerly,
+drawing her to the seat by her side again.
+
+"It's no the hystiricks," cried Jean, rocking back and forth and
+patting her hands on her knees and speaking between laughing and
+crying. "It's the truth at last, that I've been lyin' aboot these
+three lang years, thank the Lord!"
+
+"Jean, is it thankin' the Lord ye are, for lyin'?"
+
+"Ellen, ye mind whan ye broke ye'r leg an' lay in the south chamber
+that lang sax months?"
+
+"Aye, weel do I mind it."
+
+"Lat be wi' ye're interruptin' while I tell't. He came here."
+
+"Who came here?"
+
+"Richard--the poor lad! He tell't me all aboot it. How he had a mad
+anger on him, an' kill't his cousin Peter Junior whan they'd been like
+brithers all their lives, an' hoo he pushed him over the brink o' a
+gre't precipice to his death, an' hoo he must forever flee fra' the
+law an' his uncle's wrath. Noo it's--"
+
+"Oh, Aunt Jean!" cried Hester, despairingly. "Don't you see that what
+you say only goes to prove my husband right? Yet how could he claim to
+be Peter--it--it's not like the boy. Richard never, never would--"
+
+"He may ha' been oot o' his heid thinkin' he pushed him over the
+brink. I ha'e na much opeenion o' the judgment o' a man ony way. They
+never know whan to be set, an' whan to gie in. Think shame to yersel',
+Jean, to be hidin' things fra me the like o' that an' then lyin' to
+me."
+
+"He was repentit, Ellen. Ye can na' tak the power o' the Lord in yer
+ain han's an' gie a man up to the law whan he's repentit. If ye'd seen
+him an' heard the words o' him and seen him greet, ye would ha' hid
+him in yer hairt an' covered wi' the mantle o' charity, as I did.
+Moreover, I saved ye from dour lyin' yersel'. Ye mind whan that man
+that Peter sent here to find Richard came, hoo ye said till him that
+Richard had never been here? Ye never knew why for that man wanted
+Richard, but I knew an' I never tell't ye. An' if ye had known what I
+knew, ye never could ha' tell't him what ye did so roundly an' sent
+him aboot his business wi' a straight face."
+
+"An' noo whaur is Richard?"
+
+"He's awa' in Paris pentin' pictures. He went there to learn to be a
+penter."
+
+"An' whaur gat he the money to go wi'? There's whaur the new black
+silk dress went ye should ha' bought yersel' that year. Ye lat me
+think it went to the doctor. Child! Child!"
+
+"Yes, sister; I lee'd to ye. It's been a heavy sin on my soul an' ye
+may well thank the Lord it's no been on yer ain. But hark ye noo. It's
+all come back to me. Here's the twenty pun' I gave him. It's come back
+wi' interest." Proudly Jean drew from her bosom an envelope containing
+forty pounds in bank notes. "Look ye, hoo he's doubl't it?" Again she
+laughed through her tears.
+
+"And you know where he is--and can find him?"
+
+"Yes, Hester, dear, I know. He took a new name. It was Robert Kater he
+called himsel'. So, there he's been pentin' pictures. Go, Hester, an'
+find yer son, an' I'll find Richard. Ellen, ye'll have to do wi'
+Tillie for a week an' a bit,--I'm going to Paris to find Richard."
+
+"Ye'll do nae sic' thing. Ye'll find him by post."
+
+"I'll trust to nae letter the noo, Ellen. Letters aften gang astray,
+but I'll no gang astray."
+
+"Oh, child, child! It's a sorrowful thing I'm lame an' can na' gang
+wi' ye. What are ye doin', Hester?"
+
+"I'm hunting for the newspaper. Don't they put the railroad
+time-tables in the paper over here, or must I go to the station to
+inquire about trains?"
+
+"Ye'd better ask at the station. I'll go wi' ye. Ye might boggle it by
+yersel'. Ring for Tillie, Jean. She can help me oot o' my chair an'
+get me dressed, while ye're lookin' after yer ain packin', Jean."
+
+So the masterful old lady immediately began to superintend the
+hasty departure of both Hester and Jean. The whole procedure was
+unprecedented and wholly out of the normal course of things, but if
+duty called, they must go, whether she liked the thought of their
+going or not. So she sent Tillie to call a cab, and contented
+herself with bewailing the stubbornness of Peter, her nephew.
+
+"It was aye so, whan he was a lad playin' wi' Jean an' Katherine,
+whiles whan his feyther lat his mither bring Katherine and him back to
+Scotland on a veesit. Jean and Katherine maun gie in til him if they
+liket it or no. I've watched them mony's the time, when he would haud
+them up in their play by the hour together, arguyin' which should be
+horse an' which should be driver, an' it was always Peter that won his
+way wi' them. Is the cab there, Tillie? Then gie me my crutch. Hester,
+are you ready? Jean, I'll find oot for ye all aboot the trains for
+Dover. Ye maun gang direc' an' no loiter by the way. Come, Hester. I
+doot she ought not to be goin' aboot alone. Paris is an' awfu' like
+place for a woman body to be goin' aboot alone. But it canna' be
+helpit. What's an old woman like me wi' only one sound leg and a pair
+o' crutches, to go on sic' like a journey?"
+
+"If I could, I'd take you home with me, Aunt Ellen; if I were only
+sure of the outcome of this trouble, I would anyway--but to take you
+there to a home of sorrow--"
+
+"There, Hester, dear. Don't ye greet. It's my opeenion ye're goin' to
+find yer son an' tak him in yer arms ance mair. Ye were never the
+right wife for Peter. I can see that. Ye're too saft an' gentle."
+
+"I'm thinking how Peter has borne this trouble alone, all these
+years, and suffered, trying to keep the sorrow from me."
+
+"Yes, dear, yes. Peter told us all aboot it whan he was here, an' he
+bade us not to lat ye ken a word aboot it, but to keep from ye all
+knowledge of it. Noo it's come to ye by way of this letter fra yer
+frien', an' I'm thinkin' it's the best way; for noo, at last ye ha'e
+it in ye're power to go an' maybe save an innocent man, for it's no
+like a son of our Katherine would be sic' like a base coward as to try
+to win oot from justice by lyin' himsel' intil his victim's own home.
+I'll no think it."
+
+"Nor I, Aunt Ellen. It's unbelievable! And of Richard--no. I loved
+Richard. He was like my own son to me--and Peter Junior loved him,
+too. They may have quarreled--and even he might--in a moment of anger,
+he might have killed my boy,--but surely he would never do a thing
+like this. They are making some horrible mistake, or Mary Ballard
+would never have written me."
+
+"Noo ye're talkin' sense. Keep up courage an' never tak an' affliction
+upo' yersel' until it's thrust upo' ye by Providence."
+
+Thus good Aunt Ellen in her neat black bonnet and shawl and black
+mits, seated at Hester's side in the cab holding to her crutches,
+comforted and admonished her niece all the way to the station and
+back, and the next day she bravely bade Jean and Hester both good-by
+and settled herself in her armchair to wait patiently for news from
+them.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXXIV
+
+JEAN CRAIGMILE'S RETURN
+
+
+When at last Jean Craigmile returned, a glance at her face was quite
+enough to convince Ellen that things had not gone well. She held her
+peace, however, until her sister had had time to remove her bonnet and
+her shawl and dress herself for the house, before she broke in upon
+Jean's grim silence. Then she said:--
+
+"Weel, Jean. I'm thinkin' ye'd better oot wi' it."
+
+"Is Tillie no goin' to bring in the tea? It's past the hour. I see she
+grows slack, wantin' me to look after her."
+
+"Ring for it then, Jean. I'm no for leavin' my chair to ring for it."
+So Jean pulled the cord and the tea was brought in due time, with hot
+scones and the unwonted addition of a bowl of roses to grace the
+tray.
+
+"The posies are a greetin' to ye, Jean; I ordered them mysel'. Weel?
+An' so ye ha'na' found him?"
+
+"Oh, sister, my hairt's heavy an' sair. I canna' thole to tell ye."
+
+"But ye maun do't, an' the sooner ye tell't the sooner ye'll ha'e it
+over."
+
+"He was na' there. Oh, Ellen, Ellen! He'd gone to America! I'm afraid
+the Elder is right an' Hester has gone home to get her death blow. Why
+were we so precipitate in lettin' her go?"
+
+"Jean, tell me all aboot it, an' I'll pit my mind to it and help ye
+think it oot. Don't ye leave oot a thing fra' the time ye left me till
+the noo."
+
+Slowly Jean poured her sister's tea and handed it to her. "Tak' yer
+scones while they're hot, Ellen. I went to the place whaur he'd been
+leevin'. I had the direction all right, but whan I called, I found
+anither man in possession. The man was an Englishman, so I got on vera
+weel for the speakin'. It's little I could do with they Frenchmen. He
+was a dirty like man, an' he was daubin' away at a picture whan I
+opened the door an' walked in. I said to him, 'Whaur's Richard'--no,
+no, no. I said to him, calling Richard by the name he's been goin' by,
+I said, 'Whaur's Robert Kater?' He jumped up an' began figitin' aboot
+the room, settin' me a chair an' the like, an' I asked again, 'Is this
+the pentin' room o' Robert Kater?' an' he said, 'It was his room,
+yes.' Then he asked me was I any kin to him, an' I told him, did he
+think I would come walkin' into his place the like o' that if I was no
+kin to him? An' then he began tellin' me a string o' talk an' I could
+na' mak' head nor tail o't, so I asked again, 'If ye're a friend o'
+his, wull ye tell me whaur he's gone?' an' then he said it straight
+oot, 'To Ameriky,' an' it fair broke my hairt."
+
+For a minute Jean sat and sipped her tea, and wiped the tears from her
+eyes; then she took up the thread of her story again.
+
+"Then he seemed all at once to bethink himsel' o' something, an' he
+ran to his coat that was hangin' behind the door on a nail, an' he
+drew oot a letter fra the pocket, an' here it is.
+
+"'Are ye Robert's Aunt Jean?' he asked, and I tell't him, an',
+'Surely,' he said, 'an' I did na' think ye old enough to be his Aunt
+Jean.' Then he began to excuse himsel' for forgettin' to mail that
+letter. 'I promised him I would,' he said, 'but ye see, I have na'
+been wearin' my best coat since he left, an' that's why. We gave him a
+banket,' he says, 'an' I wore my best coat to the banket, an' he gave
+me this an' told me to mail it after he was well away,' an' he says,
+'I knew I ought not to put it in this coat pocket, for I'd forget
+it,'--an' so he ran on; but it was no so good a coat, for the lining
+was a' torn an' it was gray wi' dust, for I took it an' brushed it an'
+mended it mysel' before I left Paris."
+
+Again Jean paused, and taking out her neatly folded handkerchief wiped
+away the falling tears, and sipped a moment at her tea in silence.
+
+"Tak' ye a bit o' the scones, Jean. Ye'll no help matters by goin'
+wi'oot eatin'. If the lad's done a shamefu' like thing, ye'll no help
+him by greetin'. He maun fall. Ye've done yer best I doot, although
+mistakenly to try to keep it fra me."
+
+"He was sae bonny, Ellen, and that like his mither 'twould melt the
+hairt oot o' ye to look on him."
+
+"Ha'e ye no mair to tell me? Surely it never took ye these ten days to
+find oot what ye ha'e tell't."
+
+"The man was a kind sort o' a body, an' he took me oot to eat wi' him
+at a cafy, an' he paid it himsel', but I'm thinkin' his purse was sair
+empty whan he got through wi' it. I could na' help it. Men are vera
+masterfu' bodies. I made it up to him though, for I bided a day or twa
+at the hotel, an' went to the room,--the pentin' room whaur I found
+him--there was whaur he stayed, for he was keepin' things as they
+were, he said, for the one who was to come into they things--Robert
+Kater had left there--ye'll find oot aboot them whan ye read the
+letter--an' I made it as clean as ye'r han' before I left him. He made
+a dour face whan he came in an' found me at it, but I'm thinkin' he
+came to like it after a', for I heard him whustlin' to himsel' as I
+went down the stair after tellin' him good-by.
+
+"Gin ye had seen the dirt I took oot o' that room, Ellen, ye would a'
+held up ye'r two han's in horror. There were crusts an' bones behind
+the pictures standin' against the wa' that the rats an' mice had been
+gnawin' there, an' there were bottles on a shelf, old an' empty an'
+covered wi' cobwebs an' dust, an' the floor was so thick wi' dirt it
+had to be scrapit, an' what wi' old papers an' rags I had a great
+basket full taken awa--let be a bundle o' shirts that needed mendin'.
+I took the shirts to the hotel, an' there I mended them until they
+were guid enough to wear, an' sent them back. So there was as guid as
+the price o' the denner he gave me, an' naethin said. Noo read the
+letter an' ye'll see why I'm greetin'. Richard's gone to Ameriky to
+perjure his soul. He says it was to gie himsel' up to the law, but
+from the letter to Hester it's likely his courage failed him. There's
+naethin' to mak' o't but that--an' he sae bonny an' sweet, like his
+mither."
+
+Jean Craigmile threw her apron over her head and rocked herself back
+and forth, while Ellen set down her cup and reluctantly opened the
+letter--many pages, in a long business envelope. She sighed as she
+took them out.
+
+"It's a waefu' thing how much trouble an' sorrow a man body brings
+intil the world wi' him. Noo there's Richard, trailin' sorrow after
+him whaurever he goes."
+
+"But ye mind it came from Katherine first, marryin' wi' Larry Kildene
+an' rinnin' awa' wi' him," replied Jean.
+
+"It was Larry huntit her oot whaur she had been brought for safety."
+
+They both sat in silence while Ellen read the letter to the very end.
+At last, with a long, indrawn sigh, she spoke.
+
+"It's no like a lad that could write sic a letter, to perjure his
+soul. No won'er ye greet, Jean. He's gi'en ye everything he possesses,
+wi' one o' the twa pictures in the Salon! Think o't! An' a' he got
+fra' the ones he sold, except enough to take him to America. Ye canna'
+tak' it."
+
+"No. I ha'e gi'en them to the Englishman wha' has his room. I could
+na' tak them." Jean continued to sway back and forth with her apron
+over her head.
+
+"Ye ha'e gi'en them awa'! All they pictures pented by yer ain niece's
+son! An' twa' acceptit by the Salon! Child, child! I'd no think it o'
+ye." Ellen leaned forward in her chair reprovingly, with the letter
+crushed in her lap.
+
+"I told him to keep them safe, as he was doin', an' if he got no word
+fra' me after sax months,--he was to bide in the room wi' them--they
+were his."
+
+"Weel, ye're wiser than I thought ye."
+
+For a long time they sat in silence, until at last Ellen took up the
+letter to read it again, and began with the date at the head.
+
+"Jean," she cried, holding it out to her sister and pointing to the
+date with shaking finger. "Wull ye look at that noo! Are we both daft?
+It's no possible for him to ha' gotten there before that letter was
+written to Hester. Look ye, Jean! Look ye! Here 'tis the third day o'
+June it was written by his own hand."
+
+"Count it oot, Ellen, count it oot! Here's the calendar almanac. Noo
+we'll ha'e it. It's twa weeks since Hester an' I left an' she got the
+letter the day before that, an' that's fifteen days--"
+
+"An' it takes twa weeks mair for a boat to cross the ocean, an' that
+gives fourteen days mair before that letter to Hester was written, an'
+three days fra' Liverpool here, pits it back to seventeen days,--an'
+fifteen days--mak's thirty-two days,--an' here' it's nearin' the last
+o' June--"
+
+"Jean! Whan Hester's frien' was writin' that letter to Hester, Richard
+was just sailin' fra France! Thank the Lord!"
+
+"Thank the Lord!" ejaculated her sister, fervently. "Ellen, it's you
+for havin' the head to think it oot, thank the Lord!" And now the dear
+soul wept again for very gladness.
+
+Ellen folded her hands in her lap complaisantly and nodded her head.
+"Ye've a good head, yersel', Jean, but ye aye let yersel' get excitet.
+Noo, it's only for us to bide in peace an' quiet an' know that the
+earth is the Lord's an' the fullness thereof until we hear fra'
+Hester."
+
+"An' may the Lord pit it in her hairt to write soon!"
+
+While the good Craigmiles of Aberdeen were composing themselves to the
+hopeful view that Ellen's discovery of the date had given them, Larry
+Kildene and Amalia were seated in a car, luxurious for that day,
+speeding eastward over the desert across which Amalia and her father
+and mother had fled in fear and privation so short a time before. She
+gazed through the plate-glass windows and watched the quivering heat
+waves rising from the burning sands. Well she knew those terrible
+plains! She saw the bleaching bones of animals that had fallen by the
+way, even as their own had fallen, and her eyes filled. She remembered
+how Harry King had come to them one day, riding on his yellow
+horse--riding out of the setting sun toward them, and how his
+companionship had comforted them and his courage and help had saved
+them more than once,--and how, had it not been for him, their bones,
+too, might be lying there now, whitening in the heat. Oh, Harry, Harry
+King! She who had once crossed those very plains behind a jaded team
+now felt that the rushing train was crawling like a snail.
+
+Larry Kildene, seated facing her and watching her, leaned forward and
+touched her hand. "We're going at an awful pace," he said. "To think
+of ever crossing these plains with the speed of the wind!"
+
+She smiled a wan smile. "Yes, that is so. But it still is very slowly
+we go when I measure with my thoughts the swiftness. In my thoughts we
+should fly--fly!"
+
+"It will be only three days to Chicago from here, and then one night
+at a hotel to rest and clean up, and the next day we are there--in
+Leauvite--think of it! We're an hour late by the schedule, so better
+think of something else. We'll reach an eating station soon. Get
+ready, for there will be a rush, and we'll not have a chance for a
+good meal again for no one knows how long. Maybe you're not hungry,
+but I could eat a mule. I like this, do you know, traveling in
+comfort! To think of me--going home to save Peter's bank!" He chuckled
+to himself a moment; then resumed: "And that's equivalent to saving
+the man's life. Well, it's a poor way for a man to go through life,
+able to see no way but his own way. It narrows his vision and shortens
+his reach--for, see, let him find his way closed to him, and whoop!
+he's at an end."
+
+Again Larry sat and watched her, as he silently chuckled over his
+present situation. Again he reached out and patted her hand, and again
+she smiled at him, but he knew where her thoughts were. Harry King had
+been gone but a short time when Madam Manovska, in spite of Amalia's
+watchfulness, wandered away for the last time. On this occasion she
+did not go toward the fall, but went along the trail toward the plains
+below. It was nearly evening when she eluded Amalia and left the
+cabin. Frantically they searched for her all night, riding through the
+darkness, carrying torches and calling in all directions, as far as
+they supposed her feet could have carried her, but did not find her
+until early morning, lying peacefully under a little scrub pine, far
+down the trail. By her side lay her husband's worn coat, with the
+lining torn away, and a small heap of ashes and charred papers. She
+had been destroying the documents he had guarded so long. She would
+not leave them to witness against him. Tenderly they took her up and
+carried her back to the cabin and laid her in her bunk, but she only
+babbled of "Paul," telling happily that she had seen him, and that he
+was coming up the trail after her, and that now they would live on the
+mountain in peace and go no more to Poland--and quickly after that she
+dropped to sleep again and never woke. She was with "Paul" at last.
+Then Amalia dressed her in the black silk Larry had brought her, and
+they carried her down the trail and laid her in a grave beside that of
+her husband, and there Larry read the prayers of the English church
+over the two lonely graves, while Amalia knelt at his side. When they
+went down the trail to take the train, after receiving Betty's letter,
+they marked the place with a cross which Larry had made.
+
+Truth to tell, as they sat in the car, facing each other, Larry
+himself was sad, although he tried to keep Amalia's thoughts cheerful.
+At last she woke to the thought that it was only for her he maintained
+that forced light-heartedness, and the realization came to her that he
+also had cause for sorrow on leaving the spot where he had so long
+lived in peace, to go to a friend in trouble. The thought helped her,
+and she began to converse with Larry instead of sitting silently,
+wrapped in her own griefs. Because her heart was with Harry
+King,--filled with anxiety for him,--she talked mostly of him, and
+that pleased Larry well; for he, too, had need to speak of Harry.
+
+"Now there is a character for you, as fine and sweet as a woman and
+strong, too! I've seen enough of men to know the best of them when I
+find them. I saw it in him the moment I got him up to my cabin and
+laid him in my bunk. He--he--minded me of one that's gone." His voice
+dropped to the undertone of reminiscence. "Of one that's long
+gone--long gone."
+
+"Could you tell me about it, a little--just a very little?" Amalia
+leaned toward him pleadingly. It was the first time she had ever asked
+of Larry Kildene or Harry King a question that might seem like seeking
+to know a thing purposely kept from her. But her intuitive nature told
+her the time had now come when Larry longed to speak of himself, and
+the loneliness of his soul pleaded for him.
+
+"It's little indeed I can tell you, for it's little he ever told
+me,--but it came to me--more than once--more than once--that he might
+be my own son."
+
+Amalia recoiled with a shock of surprise. She drew in her breath and
+looked in his eyes eloquently. "Oh! Oh! And you never asked him? No?"
+
+"Not in so many words, no. But I--I--came near enough to give him the
+chance to tell the truth, if he would, but he had reasons of his own,
+and he would not."
+
+"Then--where we go now--to him--you have been to that place before?
+Not?"
+
+"I have."
+
+"And he--he knows it? Not?"
+
+"He knows it well. I told him it was there I left my son--my little
+son--but he would say nothing. I was not even sure he knew the place
+until these letters came to me. He has as yet written me no word, only
+the message he sent me in his letter to you--that he will some time
+write me." Then Larry took Betty's letter from his pocket and turned
+it over and over, sadly. "This letter tells me more than all else, but
+it sets me strangely adrift in my thoughts. It's not at all like what
+I had thought it might be."
+
+Amalia leaned forward eagerly. "Oh, tell me more--a little, what you
+thought might be."
+
+"This letter has added more to the heartache than all else that could
+be. Either Harry King is my son--Richard Kildene--or he is the son of
+the man who hated me and brought me sorrow. There you see the reason
+he would tell me nothing. He could not."
+
+"But how is it that you do not know your own son? It is so strange."
+
+Larry's eyes filled as he looked off over the arid plains. "It's a
+long story--that. I told it to him once to try to stir his heart
+toward me, but it was of no use, and I'll not tell it now--but this.
+I'd never looked on my boy since I held him in my arms--a heartbroken
+man--until he came to me there--that is, if he were he. But if Harry
+King is my son, then he is all the more a liar and a coward--if the
+claim against him is true. I can't have it so."
+
+"It is not so. He is no liar and no coward." Amalia spoke with
+finality.
+
+"I tell you if he is not my son, then he is the son of the man who
+hated me--but even that man will not own him as his son. The little
+girl who wrote this letter to me--she pleads with me to come on and
+set them all right: but even she who loved him--who has loved him, can
+urge no proof beyond her own consciousness, as to his identity; it is
+beyond my understanding."
+
+"The little girl--she--she has loved your son--she has loved
+Harry--Harry King? Whom has she loved?" Amalia only breathed the
+question.
+
+"She has not said. I only read between the lines."
+
+"How is it so--you read between lines? What is it you read?"
+
+Larry saw he was making a mistake and resumed hurriedly: "I'll tell
+you what little I know later, and we will go there and find out the
+rest, but it may be more to my sorrow than my joy. Perhaps that's why
+I'm taking you there--to be a help to me--I don't know. I have a
+friend there who will take us both in, and who will understand as no
+one else."
+
+"I go to neither my joy nor my sorrow. They are of the world. I will
+be no more of the world--but I will live only in love--to the Christ.
+So may I find in my heart peace--as the sweet sisters who guarded me
+in my childhood away from danger when that my father and mother were
+in fear and sorrow living--they told me there only may one find peace
+from sorrow. I will go to them--perhaps--perhaps--they will take
+me--again--I do not know. But I will go first with you, Sir Kildene,
+wherever you wish me to go. For you are my friend--now, as no one
+else. But for you, I am on earth forever alone."
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXXV
+
+THE TRIAL
+
+
+After Mr. Ballard's visit to the jail, he took upon himself to do what
+he could for the young man, out of sympathy and friendship toward both
+parties, and in the cause of simple justice. He consulted the only
+available counsel left him in Leauvite, a young lawyer named Nathan
+Goodbody, whom he knew but slightly.
+
+He told him as much of the case as he thought proper, and then gave
+him a note to the prisoner, addressing him as Harry King. Armed with
+this letter the young lawyer was soon in close consultation with his
+new client. Despite Nathan Goodbody's youth Harry was favorably
+impressed. The young man was so interested, so alert, so confident
+that all would be well. He seemed to believe so completely the story
+Harry told him, and took careful notes of it, saying he would prepare
+a brief of the facts and the law, and that Harry might safely leave
+everything to him.
+
+"You were wounded in the hip, you say," Nathan Goodbody questioned
+him. "We must not neglect the smallest item that may help you, for
+your case needs strengthening. You say you were lamed by it--but you
+seem to have recovered from that. Is there no scar?"
+
+"That will not help me. My cousin was wounded also, but his was only a
+flesh wound from which he quickly recovered and of which he thought
+nothing. I doubt if any one here in Leauvite ever heard of it, but
+it's the irony of fate that he was more badly scarred by it than I. He
+was struck by a spent bullet that tore the flesh only, while the one
+that hit me went cleanly to the bone, and splintered it. Mine laid me
+up for a year before I could even walk with crutches, while he was
+back at his post in a week."
+
+"And both wounds were in the same place--on the same side, for
+instance?"
+
+"On the same side, yes; but his was lower down. Mine entered the hip
+here, while he was struck about here." Harry indicated the places with
+a touch of his finger. "I think it would be best to say nothing about
+the scars, unless forced to do so, for I walk as well now as I ever
+did, and that will be against me."
+
+"That's a pity, now, isn't it? Suppose you try to get back a little of
+the old limp."
+
+Harry laughed. "No, I'll walk straight. Besides they've seen me on the
+street, and even in my father's bank."
+
+"Too bad, too bad. Why did you do it?"
+
+"How could I guess there would be such an impossible development?
+Until I saw Miss Ballard here in this cell I thought my cousin dead.
+Why, my reason for coming here was to confess my crime, but they won't
+give me the chance. They arrest me first of all for killing myself.
+Now that I know my cousin lives I don't seem to care what happens to
+me, except for--others."
+
+"But man! You must put up a fight. Suppose your cousin is no longer
+living; you don't want to spend the rest of your life in the
+penitentiary because he can't be found."
+
+"I see. If he is living, this whole trial is a farce, and if he is
+not, it's a tragedy."
+
+"We'll never let it become a tragedy, I'll promise you that." The
+young man spoke with smiling confidence, but when he reached his
+office again and had closed the door behind him, his manner changed
+quickly to seriousness and doubt.
+
+"I don't know," he said to himself, "I don't know if this story can be
+made to satisfy a jury or not. A little shady. Too much coincidence to
+suit me." He sat drumming with his fingers on his desk for a while,
+and then rose and turned to his books. "I'll have a little law on this
+case,--some point upon which we can go to the Supreme Court," and for
+the rest of that day and long into the night Nathan Goodbody consulted
+with his library.
+
+In anticipation of the unusual public interest the District Attorney
+directed the summoning of twenty-five jurors in addition to the
+twenty-five of the regular panel. On the day set for the trial the
+court room was packed to the doors. Inside the bar were the lawyers
+and the officers of the court. Elder Craigmile sat by Milton Hibbard.
+In the front seats just outside the bar were the fifty jurors and back
+of them were the ladies who had come early, or who had been given the
+seats of their gentlemen friends who had come early, and whose
+gallantry had momentarily gotten the better of their judgment.
+
+The stillness of the court room, like that of a church, was suddenly
+broken by the entrance of the judge, a tall, spare man, with gray hair
+and a serious outlook upon life. As he walked toward his seat, the
+lawyers and officers of the court rose and stood until he was seated.
+The clerk of the court read from a large book the journal of the court
+of the previous day and then handed the book to the judge to be
+signed. When this ceremony was completed, the judge took up the court
+calender and said,--
+
+"The State _v._ Richard Kildene," and turning to the lawyers engaged
+in the case added, "Gentlemen, are you ready?"
+
+"We are ready," answered the District Attorney.
+
+"Bring in the prisoner."
+
+When Harry entered the court room in charge of the sheriff, he looked
+neither to the right nor to the left, and saw no one before him but
+his own counsel, who arose and extended a friendly hand, and led him
+to a seat beside himself within the bar.
+
+Nathan Goodbody then rose, and, addressing the court with an air of
+confident modesty, as if he were bringing forward a point so strong as
+to require nothing more than the simple statement to give it weight,
+said:--
+
+"If the court please, the defense is ready, but I have noticed, as no
+doubt the court has noticed, a distinguished member of this bar
+sitting with the District Attorney as though it were intended that he
+should take part in the trial of this case, and I am advised that he
+intends to do so. I am also advised that he is in the employ of the
+complaining witness who sits beside him, and that he has received, or
+expects to receive, compensation from him for his services. I desire
+at the outset of this case to raise a question as to whether counsel
+employed and paid by a private person has a right to assist in the
+prosecution of a criminal cause. I therefore object to the appearance
+of Mr. Hibbard as counsel in this case, and to his taking any part in
+this trial. If the facts I have stated are questioned, I will ask
+Elder Craigmile to be sworn."
+
+The court replied: "I shall assume the facts to be as stated by you
+unless the counsel on the other side dissent from such a statement.
+Considering the facts to be as stated, your objection raises a novel
+question. Have you any authorities?"
+
+"I do not know that the Supreme Court of this State has passed upon
+this question. I do not think it has, but my objection finds support
+in the well-established rule in this country, that a public prosecutor
+acts in a quasi-judicial capacity. His object, like that of the court,
+should be simple justice. The District Attorney represents the public
+interest which can never be promoted by the conviction of the
+innocent. As the District Attorney himself could not accept a fee or
+reward from private parties, so, I urge, counsel employed to assist
+him must be equally disinterested."
+
+"The court considers the question an interesting one, but the practice
+in the past has been against your contention. I will overrule your
+objection, and give you an exception. Mr. Clerk, call a jury!"[1]
+
+Then came the wearisome technicalities of the empaneling of a jury,
+with challenges for cause and peremptory challenges, until nearly the
+entire panel of fifty jurors was exhausted.
+
+In this way two days were spent, with a result that when counsel on
+both sides expressed themselves as satisfied with the jury, every one
+in the court room doubted it. As the sheriff confided to the clerk, it
+was an even bet that the first twelve men drawn were safer for both
+sides than the twelve men who finally stood with uplifted hands and
+were again sworn by the clerk. Harry King, who had never witnessed a
+trial in his life, began to grow interested in these details quite
+aside from his own part therein. He watched the clerk shaking the box,
+wondering why he did so, until he saw the slips of paper being drawn
+forth one by one from the small aperture on the top, and listened
+while the name written on each was called aloud. Some of the names
+were familiar to him, and it seemed as if he must turn about and speak
+to the men who responded to their roll call, saying "here" as each
+rose in his place behind him. But he resisted the impulse, never
+turning his head, and only glancing curiously at each man as he took
+his seat in the jury box at the order of the judge.
+
+During all these proceedings the Elder sat looking straight before
+him, glancing at the prisoner only when obliged to do so, and coldly
+as an outsider might do. The trial was taking more time than he had
+thought possible, and he saw no reason for such lengthy technicalities
+and the delay in calling the witnesses. His air was worn and weary.
+
+The prisoner, sitting beside his counsel, had taken less and less
+interest in the proceedings, and the crowds, who had at first filled
+the court room, had also lost interest and had drifted off about their
+own affairs until the real business of the taking of testimony should
+come on, till, at the close of the second day, the court room was
+almost empty of visitors. The prisoner was glad to see them go. So
+many familiar faces, faces from whom he might reasonably expect a
+smile, or a handshake, were it possible, or at the very least a nod of
+recognition, all with their eyes fixed on him, in a blank gaze of
+aloofness or speculation. He felt as if his soul must have been in
+some way separated from his body, and then returned to it to find all
+the world gazing at the place where his soul should be without seeing
+that it had returned and was craving their intelligent support. The
+whole situation seemed to him cruelly impossible,--a sort of insane
+delusion. Only one face never failed him, that of Bertrand Ballard,
+who sat where he might now and then meet his eye, and who never left
+the court room while the case was on.
+
+When the time arrived for the introduction of the witnesses, the court
+room again filled up; but he no longer looked for faces he knew. He
+held himself sternly aloof, as if he feared his reason might leave him
+if he continued to strive against those baffling eyes, who knew him
+and did not know that they knew him, but who looked at him as if
+trying to penetrate a mask when he wore no mask. Occasionally his
+counsel turned to him for brief consultation, in which his part
+consisted generally of a nod or a shake of the head as the case might
+be.
+
+While the District Attorney was addressing the jury, Milton Hibbard
+moved forward and took the District Attorney's seat.
+
+Then followed the testimony of the boys--now shy lads in their teens,
+who had found the evidences of a struggle and possible murder so long
+before on the river bluff. Under the adroit lead of counsel, they told
+each the same story, and were excused cross-examination. Both boys had
+identified the hat found on the bluff, and testified that the brown
+stain, which now appeared somewhat faintly, had been a bright red, and
+had looked like blood.
+
+Then Bertrand Ballard was called, and the questions put to him were
+more searching. Though the manner of the examiner was respectful and
+courteous, he still contrived to leave the impression on those in the
+court room that he hoped to draw out some fact that would lead to the
+discovery of matters more vital to the case than the mere details to
+which the witness testified. But Bertrand Ballard's prompt and
+straightforward answers, and his simple and courteous manner, were a
+full match for the able lawyer, and after two hours of effort he
+subsided.
+
+Then the testimony of the other witnesses was taken, even to that of
+the little housemaid who had been in the family at the time, and who
+had seen Peter Junior wear the hat. Did she know it for his? Yes. Why
+did she know it? Because of the little break in the straw, on the edge
+of the brim. But any man's hat might have such a break. What was there
+about this particular break to make it the hat of Peter Junior?
+Because she had made it herself. She had knocked it down one day when
+she was brushing up in the front hall, and when she hung it up again,
+she had seen the break, and knew she had done it.
+
+And thus, in the careful scrutiny of small things, relating to the
+habits, life, and manner of dressing of the two young men,--matters
+about which nobody raised any question, and in which no one except the
+examiner took any interest,--more days crept by, until, at last, the
+main witnesses for the State were reached.
+
+ [1] The question raised by the prisoner's counsel was ruled in favor
+ of his contention in Biemel v. State. 71 Wis. 444, decided in
+ 1888.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXXVI
+
+NELS NELSON'S TESTIMONY
+
+
+The day was very warm, and the jury sat without their coats. The
+audience, who had had time to debate and argue the question over and
+over, were all there ready to throng in at the opening of the doors,
+and sat listening, eager, anxious, and perspiring. Some were strongly
+for the young man and some were as determined for the Elder's views,
+and a tension of interest and friction of minds pervaded the very
+atmosphere of the court room. It had been the effort of Milton Hibbard
+to work up the sentiment of those who had been so eagerly following
+the trial, in favor of his client's cause, before bringing on the
+final coup of the testimony of the Swede, and, last of all, that of
+Betty Ballard.
+
+Poor little Betty, never for a moment doubting her perception in her
+recognition of Peter Junior, yet fearing those doubting ones in the
+court room, sat at home, quivering with the thought that the truth she
+must tell when at last her turn came might be the one straw added to
+the burden of evidence piled up to convict an innocent man. Wordlessly
+and continually in her heart she was praying that Richard might know
+and come to them, calling him, calling him, in her thoughts
+ceaselessly imploring help, patience, delay, anything that might hold
+events still until Richard could reach them, for deep in her heart of
+faith she knew he would come. Wherever in all the universe he might
+be, her cry must find him and bring him. He would feel it in his soul
+and fly to them.
+
+Bertrand brought Betty and her mother news of the proceedings, from
+day to day, and always as he sat in the court room watching the
+prisoner and the Elder, looking from one set face to the other, he
+tried to convince himself that Mary and Betty were right in their firm
+belief that it was none other than Peter Junior who sat there with
+that steadfast look and the unvarying statement that he was the
+Elder's son, and had returned to give himself up for the murder of his
+cousin Richard, in the firm belief that he had left him dead on the
+river bluff.
+
+G. B. Stiles sat at the Elder's side, and when Nels Nelson was brought
+in and sworn, he glanced across at Milton Hibbard with an expression
+of satisfaction and settled himself back to watch the triumph of his
+cause and the enjoyment of the assurance of the ten thousand dollars.
+He had coached the Swede and felt sure he would give his testimony
+with unwavering clearness.
+
+The Elder's face worked and his hands clutched hard on the arms of
+his chair. It was then that Bertrand Ballard, watching him with
+sorrowful glances, lost all doubt that the prisoner was in truth
+what he claimed to be, for, under the tension of strong feeling, the
+milder lines of the younger man's face assumed a set power of
+will,--immovable,--implacable,--until the force within him seemed to
+mold the whole contour of his face into a youthful image of that of
+the man who refused even to look at him.
+
+Every eye in the court room was fixed on the Swede as he took his
+place before the court and was bade to look on the prisoner.
+Throughout his whole testimony he never varied from his first
+statement. It was always the same.
+
+"Do you know the prisoner?"
+
+"Yas, I know heem. Dot is heem, I seen heem two, t'ree times."
+
+"When did you see him first?"
+
+"By Ballards' I seen heem first--he vas horse ridin' dot time. It vas
+nobody home by Ballards' dot time. Eferybody vas gone off by dot
+peek-neek."
+
+"At that time did the prisoner speak to you?"
+
+"Yas, he asket me where is Ballards' folks, und I tol' heem by
+peek-neek, und he asket me where is it for a peek-neek is dey gone,
+und I tol' heem by Carter's woods by der river, und he asket me is
+Mees Betty gone by dem yet or is she home, und I tol' heem yas she is
+gone mit, und he is off like der vind on hees horse already."
+
+"When did you see the prisoner next?"
+
+"By Ballards' yard dot time."
+
+"What time?"
+
+"It vas Sunday morning I seen heem, talkin' mit her."
+
+"With whom was he talking?"
+
+"Oh, he talk mit Ballards' girl--Mees Betty. Down by der spring house
+I seen heem go, und he kiss her plenty--I seen heem."
+
+"You are sure it was the prisoner you saw? You are sure it was not
+Peter Craigmile, Jr.?"
+
+"Sure it vas heem I saw. Craikmile's son, he vas lame, und valk by der
+crutch all time. No, it vas dot man dere I saw."
+
+"Where were you when you saw him?"
+
+"I vas by my room vere I sleep. It vas a wine growin' by der vindow
+up, so dey nefer see me, bot I seen dem all right. I seen heem kiss
+her und I seen her tell heem go vay, und push heem off, und she cry
+plenty."
+
+"Did you hear what he said to her?"
+
+Bertrand Ballard looked up at the examiner angrily, and counsel for
+the prisoner objected to the question, but the judge allowed it to
+pass unchallenged, on the ground that it was a question pertaining to
+the motive for the deed of which the prisoner was accused.
+
+"Yas, I hear it a little. Dey vas come up und stand dere by de vindow
+under, und I hear dem talkin'. She cry, und say she vas sorry he vas
+kiss her like dot, und he say he is goin' vay, und dot is vot for he
+done it, und he don't come back no more, und she cry some more."
+
+"Did he say anything against his cousin at that time?"
+
+"No, he don' say not'ing, only yust he say, 'dot's all right bouts
+heem,' he say, 'Peter Junior goot man all right, only he goin' vay all
+same.'"
+
+"Was that the last time you saw the prisoner?"
+
+"No, I seen heem dot day und it vas efening."
+
+"Where were you when you saw him next?"
+
+"I vas goin' 'long mit der calf to eat it grass dere by Ballards'
+yard, und he vas goin' 'long mit hees cousin, Craikmile's son, und he
+vas walkin' slow for hees cousin, he don' got hees crutch dot day, he
+valk mit dot stick dere, und he don' go putty quvick mit it." Nels
+pointed to the heavy blackthorn stick lying on the table before the
+jury.
+
+"Were the two young men talking together?"
+
+"No, dey don' speak much. I hear it he say, 'It iss better you valk by
+my arm a little yet, Peter,' und Craikmile's son, he say, 'You go vay
+mit your arm, I got no need by it,' like he vas little mad yet."
+
+"You say you saw him in the morning with Miss Ballard. Where were the
+family at that time?"
+
+"Oh, dey vas gone by der church already."
+
+"And in the evening where were they?"
+
+"Oh, dey vas by der house und eat supper den."
+
+"Did you see the prisoner again that day?"
+
+"No, I didn' see heem dot day no more, bot dot next day I seen
+heem--goot I seen heem."
+
+Harry King here asked his counsel to object to his allowing the
+witness to continually assert that the man he saw was the prisoner.
+
+"He does not know that it was I. He is mistaken as are you all." And
+Nathan Goodbody leaped to his feet.
+
+"I object on behalf of my client to the assumption throughout this
+whole examination, that the man whom the witness claims to have seen
+was the prisoner. No proof to that effect has yet been brought
+forward."
+
+The witness was then required to give his reasons for his assertion
+that the prisoner was the man he saw three years before.
+
+"By what marks do you know him? Why is he not the man he claims to be,
+the son of the plaintiff?"
+
+"Oh, I know heem all right. Meester Craikmile's son, he vos more white
+in de face. Hees hair vas more--more--I don' know how you call
+dot--crooked on hees head yet." Nels put his hand to his head and
+caught one of his straight, pale gold locks, and twisted it about. "It
+vas goin round so,--und it vas more lighter yet as dot man here, und
+hees face vas more lighter too, und he valked mit stick all time und
+he don' go long mit hees head up,--red in hees face like dis man here
+und dark in hees face too. Craikmile's son go all time limpin' so."
+Nels took a step to illustrate the limp of Peter Junior when he had
+seen him last.
+
+"Do you see any other points of difference? Were the young men the
+same height?"
+
+"Yas, dey vas yust so high like each other, but not so vide out yet.
+Dis man he iss vider yet as Meester Craikmile's son, he iss got more
+chest like von goot horse--Oh, I know by men yust de same like horses
+vat iss der difference yet."
+
+"Now you tell the court just what you saw the next day. At what time
+of the day was it?"
+
+"It vas by der night I seen heem."
+
+"On Monday night?"
+
+"Yas."
+
+"Late Monday night?"
+
+"No, not so late, bot it vas dark already."
+
+"Tell the court exactly where you saw him, when you saw him, and with
+whom you saw him, and what you heard said."
+
+"It vas by Ballards' I seen heem. I vas comin' home und it vas dark
+already yust like I tol' you, und I seen dot man come along by
+Ballards' house und stand by der door--long time I seen heem stan'
+dere, und I yust go by der little trees under, und vatching vat it is
+for doin' dere, dot man? Und I seen heem it iss der young man vat iss
+come dot day askin' vere iss Ballards' folks, und so I yust wait und
+look a little out, und I vatchin' heem. Und I seen heem stand und
+vaitin' minute by der door outside, und I get me low under dem little
+small flowers bushes Ballards is got by der door under dot vindow
+dere, und I seen heem, he goin' in, and yust dere is Mees Betty
+sittin', und he go quvick down on hees knees, und dere she yump lak
+she is scairt. Den she take heem hees head in her hands und she asket
+heem vat for is it dat blud he got it on hees head, und so he say it
+is by fightin' he is got it, und she say vy for is he fightin', und he
+say mit hees cousin he fight, und hees cousin he hit heem so, und she
+asket heem vy for is hees cousin hit heem, und vy for iss he fightin'
+mit hees cousin any vay, und den dey bot is cryin'. So I seen dot--und
+den she go by der kitchen und bring vater und vash heem hees head und
+tie clots round it so nice, und dere dey is talkin', und he tol' her
+he done it."
+
+"What did he tell her he had done?"
+
+"Oh, he say he keel heem hees cousin. Dot vat I tol' you he done it."
+
+"How did he say he killed him?"
+
+The silence in the court room was painful in its intensity. The Elder
+leaned forward and listened with contorted face, and the prisoner held
+his breath. A pallor overspread his face and his hands were clenched.
+
+"Oh, he say he push heem in der rifer ofer, und he do it all right for
+he liket to do it, but he say he goin' run vay for dot."
+
+"You mean to say that he said he intended to push him over? That he
+tried to do it?"
+
+"Oh, yas, he say he liket to push heem ofer, und he liket to do dot,
+but he sorry any vay he done it, und he runnin' vay for dot."
+
+"Tell the court what happened then."
+
+"Den she get him somedings to eat, und dey sit dere, und dey talk, und
+dey cry plenty, und she is feel putty bad, und he is feel putty bad,
+too. Und so--he go out und shut dot door, und he valkin' down der
+pat', und she yust come out der door, und run to heem und asket heem
+vere he is goin' und if he tell her somedings vere he go, und he say
+no, he tell her not'ing yet. Und den she say maybe he is not keel heem
+any vay, bot yust t'inkin' he keel him, und he tol' her yas, he keel
+heem all right, he push heem ofer und he is dead already, und so he
+kiss her some more, und she is cry some more, und I t'ink he is cry,
+too, bot dot is all. He done it all right. Und he is gone off den, und
+she is gone in her house, und I don't see more no."
+
+As the witness ceased speaking Mr. Hibbard turned to counsel for the
+prisoner and said: "Cross-examine."
+
+Rising in his place, and advancing a few steps toward the witness, the
+young lawyer began his cross-examination. His task did not call for
+the easy nonchalance of his more experienced adversary, who had the
+advantage of knowing in advance just what his witness would testify.
+It was for him to lead a stubborn and unwilling witness through the
+mazes of a well-prepared story, to unravel, if possible, some of its
+well-planned knots and convince the jury if he could that the witness
+was not reliable and his testimony untrustworthy.
+
+But this required a master in the art of cross-examination, and a
+master begins the study of his subject--the witness--before the trial.
+In subtle ways with which experience has made him familiar, he studies
+his man, his life, his character, his habits, his strength, his
+weakness, his foibles. He divines when he will hesitate, when he will
+stumble, and he is ready to pounce upon him and force his hesitation
+into an attempt at concealment, his stumble into a fall.
+
+It is no discredit to Nathan Goodbody that he lacked the skill and
+cunning of an astute cross-examiner. Unlike poets, they are made, not
+born, and he found the Swede to be a difficult witness to handle to
+his purpose. He succeeded in doing little more than to get him to
+reaffirm the damaging testimony he had already given.
+
+Being thus baffled, he determined to bring in here a point which he
+had been reserving to use later, should Milton Hibbard decide to take
+up the question of Peter Junior's lameness. As this did not seem to be
+imminent, and the testimony of Nels Nelson had been so convincing, he
+wished of all things to delay the calling of the next witness until he
+could gain time, and carry the jury with him. Should Betty Ballard be
+called to the stand that day he felt his cause would be lost.
+Therefore, in the moment's pause following the close of his
+cross-examination of the last witness, he turned and addressed the
+court.
+
+"May it please the Court. Knowing that there is but one more witness
+to be called, and that the testimony of that witness can bring forward
+no new light on this matter, I have excellent reason to desire at this
+time to move the Court to bring in the verdict of not guilty."
+
+At these words the eyes of every one in the court room were turned
+upon the speaker, and the silence was such that his next words, though
+uttered in a low voice, were distinctly heard by all present.
+
+"This motion is based upon the fact that the State has failed to prove
+the _corpus delicti_, upon the law, which is clear, that without such
+proof there can be no conviction of the crime of murder. If the
+testimony of the witness Nels Nelson can be accepted as the admission
+of the man Richard Kildene, until the State can prove the _corpus
+delicti_, no proof can be brought that it is the admission of the
+prisoner at the bar. I say that until such proof can be brought by the
+State, no further testimony can convict the prisoner at the bar. If it
+please the Court, the authorities are clear that the fact that a
+murder has been committed cannot be established by proof of the
+admissions, even of the prisoner himself that he has committed the
+crime. There must be direct proof of death as by finding and
+identification of the body of the one supposed to be murdered. I have
+some authorities here which I would like to read to your honor if you
+will hear them."
+
+The face of the judge during this statement of the prisoner's counsel
+was full of serious interest. He leaned forward with his elbow on the
+desk before him, and with his hand held behind his ear, intent to
+catch every word. As counsel closed the judge glanced at the clock
+hanging on the wall and said:--
+
+"It is about time to close. You may pass up your authorities, and I
+will take occasion to examine them before the court opens in the
+morning. If counsel on the other side have any authorities, I will be
+pleased to have them also."
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXXVII
+
+THE STRANGER'S ARRIVAL
+
+
+On taking his seat at the opening of court the next morning, the judge
+at once announced his decision.
+
+"I have given such thought as I have been able to the question raised
+by counsel last evening, and have examined authorities cited by him,
+and others, bearing upon the question, and have reached the conclusion
+that his motion must be overruled. It is true that a conviction for
+murder cannot rest alone upon the extra-judicial admission of the
+accused. And in the present case I must remind the court and the jury
+that thus far the identity of the prisoner has not yet been
+established, as it is not determined whether or not he is the man whom
+the witness, Nels Nelson, heard make the admission. It is true there
+must be distinct proof, sufficient to satisfy the jury, beyond a
+reasonable doubt, that homicide has been committed by some one, before
+the admission of the accused that he did the act can be considered.
+But I think that fact can be established by circumstantial evidence,
+as well as any other fact in the case, and I shall so charge the jury.
+I will give you an exception. Mr Nathan Goodbody, you may go on with
+your defense after the hearing of the next witness, which is now in
+order."[1]
+
+The decision of the court was both a great surprise and a disappointment
+to the defendant's young counsel. Considering the fact that the body of
+the man supposed to have been murdered had never been found, and that
+his death had been assumed from his sudden disappearance, and the
+finding of his personal articles scattered on the river bluff,
+together with the broken edge of the bluff and the traces of some
+object having been thrown down the precipice at that point, and the
+fact that the State was relying upon the testimony of the eavesdropping
+Swede to prove confession by the prisoner, he still had not been
+prepared for the testimony of this witness that he had heard the
+accused say that he had killed his cousin, and that it had been his
+intention to kill him. He was dismayed, but he had not entirely lost
+confidence in his legal defense, even now that the judge had ruled
+against him. There was still the Supreme Court.
+
+He quickly determined that he would shift his attack from the court,
+where he had been for the time repulsed, and endeavor to convince the
+jury that the fact that Peter Junior was really dead had not "been
+proven beyond a reasonable doubt."
+
+Applying to the court for a short recess to give him time to consult
+with his client, he used the time so given in going over with the
+prisoner the situation in which the failure of his legal defense had
+left them. He had hoped to arrest the trial on the point he had made
+so as to eliminate entirely the hearing of further testimony,--that of
+Betty Ballard,--and also to avoid the necessity of having his client
+sworn, which last was inevitable if Betty's testimony was taken.
+
+He had never been able to rid himself of the impression left upon his
+mind when first he heard the story from his client's lips, that there
+was in it an element of coincidence--too like dramatic fiction, or
+that if taken ideally, it was above the average juryman's head.
+
+He admonished the prisoner that when he should be called upon for his
+testimony, he must make as little as possible of the fact of their
+each being scarred on the hip, and scarred on the head, the two
+cousins dramatically marked alike, and that he must in no way allude
+to his having seen Betty Ballard in the prison alone.
+
+"That was a horrible mistake. You must cut it out of your testimony
+unless they force it. Avoid it. And you must make the jury see that
+your return was a matter of--of--well, conscience--and so forth."
+
+"I must tell the truth. That is all that I can do," said the prisoner,
+wearily. "The judge is looking this way,--shall we--"
+
+Nathan Goodbody rose quickly. "If the court please, we are ready to
+proceed."
+
+Then at last Betty Ballard was called to the witness stand. The hour
+had come for which all the village had waited, and the fame of the
+trial had spread beyond the village, and all who had known the boys in
+their childhood and in their young manhood, and those who had been
+their companions in arms--men from their own regiment--were there. The
+matter had been discussed among them more or less heatedly and now the
+court room could not hold the crowds that thronged its doors.
+
+At this time, unknown to any of the actors in the drama, three
+strangers, having made their way through the crowd outside the door,
+were allowed to enter, and stood together in the far corner of the
+court room unnoticed by the throng, intently watching and listening.
+They had arrived from the opposite sides of the earth, and had met at
+the village hotel. Larry had spied the younger man first, and,
+scarcely knowing what he was doing, or why, he walked up to him, and
+spoke, involuntarily holding out his hand to him.
+
+"Tell me who you are," he said, ere Richard could surmise what was
+happening.
+
+"My name is Kildene," said Richard, frankly. "Have you any reason for
+wishing to know me?"
+
+For the moment he thought his interlocutor might be a detective, or
+one who wished to verify a suspicion. Having but that moment arrived,
+and knowing nothing of the trial which was going on, he could think
+only of his reason for his return to Leauvite, and was glad to make an
+end of incognito and sorrowful durance, and wearisome suspense, and he
+did not hesitate, nor try any art of concealment. He looked directly
+into Larry's eyes, almost defiantly for an instant, then seeing in
+that rugged face a kindly glint of the eye and a quiver about the
+mouth, his heart lightened and he grasped eagerly the hand held out to
+him.
+
+"Perhaps you will tell me whom you are? I suppose I ought to know, but
+I've been away from here a long time."
+
+Then the older man's hand fell a-trembling in his, and did not release
+him, but rather clung to him as if he had had a shock.
+
+"Come over here and sit beside me a moment, young man--I--I've--I'm
+not feeling as strong as I look. I--I've a thing to tell you. Sit
+down--sit down. We are alone? Yes. Every one's gone to the trial. I'm
+on here from the West myself to attend it."
+
+"The trial! What trial?"
+
+"You've heard nothing of it? I was thinking maybe you were also--were
+drawn here--you've but just come?"
+
+"I've been here long enough to engage a room--which I shan't want
+long. No, I've come for no trial exactly--maybe it might come to
+that--? What have you to tell me?"
+
+But Larry Kildene sat silent for a time before replying. An eager joy
+had seized him, and a strange reticence held his tongue tied, a fear
+of making himself known to this son whom he had never seen since he
+had held him in his arms, a weak, wailing infant, thinking only of his
+own loss. This dignified, stalwart young man, so pleasant to look
+upon--no wonder the joy of his heart was a terrible joy, a hungering,
+longing joy akin to pain! How should he make himself known? In what
+words? A thousand thoughts crowded upon him. From Betty's letter he
+knew something of the contention now going on in the court room, and
+from the landlord last evening he had heard more, and he was impatient
+to get to the trial.
+
+Now this encounter with his own son,--the only one who could set all
+right,--and who yet did not know of the happenings which so
+imperatively required his presence in the court room, set Larry
+Kildene's thoughts stammering and tripping over each other in such a
+confusion of haste, and with it all the shyness before the great fact
+of his unconfessed fatherhood, so overwhelmed him, that for once his
+facile Irish nature did not help him. He was at a loss for words,
+strangely abashed before this gentle-voiced, frank-faced, altogether
+likable son of his. So he temporized and beat about the bush, and did
+not touch first on that which was nearest his heart.
+
+"Yes, yes. I've a thing to tell you. You came here to be at
+a--a--trial--did you say, or intimate it might be? If--if--you'll tell
+me a bit more, I maybe can help you--for I've seen a good bit of the
+world. It's a strange trial going on here now--I've come to hear."
+
+"Tell me something about it," said Richard, humoring the older man's
+deliberation in arriving at his point.
+
+"It's little I know yet. I've come to learn, for I'm interested in the
+young man they're trying to convict. He's a sort of a relative of
+mine. I wish to see fair play. Why are you here? Have you done
+anything--what have you done?"
+
+The young man moved restlessly. He was confused by the suddenness of
+the question, which Larry's manner deprived of any suggestion of
+rudeness.
+
+"Did I intimate I had done anything?" He laughed. "I'm come to make a
+statement to the proper ones--when I find them. I'll go over now and
+hear a bit of this trial, since you mention it."
+
+He spoke sadly and wearily, but he felt no resentment at the older
+man's inquisitiveness. Larry's face expressed too much kindliness to
+make resentment possible, but Richard was ill at ease to be talking
+thus intimately with a stranger who had but just chanced upon him. He
+rose to leave.
+
+"Don't go. Don't go yet. Wait a bit--God, man! Wait! I've a thing to
+tell you." Larry leaned forward, and his face worked and tears
+glistened in his eyes as he looked keenly up into his son's face.
+"You're a beautiful lad--a man--I'm--You're strong and fine--I'm
+ashamed to tell it you--ashamed I've never looked on you since
+then--until now. I should have given all up and found you. Forgive me.
+Boy!--I'm your father--your father!" He rose and stood looking levelly
+in his son's eyes, holding out both shaking hands. Richard took them
+in his and held them--but could not speak.
+
+The constraint of witnesses was not upon them, for they were quite
+alone on the piazza, but the emotion of each of them was beyond words.
+Richard swallowed, and waited, and then with no word they both sat
+down and drew their chairs closer together. The simple act helped
+them.
+
+"I've been nigh on to a lifetime longing for you, lad."
+
+"And I for you, father."
+
+"That's the name I've been hungering to hear--"
+
+"And I to speak--" Still they looked in each other's eyes. "And we
+have a great deal to tell each other! I'm almost sorry--that--that--that
+I've found you at last--for to do my duty will be harder now. I had no
+one to care--particularly before--unless--"
+
+"Unless a lass, maybe?"
+
+"One I've been loving and true to--but long ago given up--we won't
+speak of her. We'll have to talk a great deal, and there's so little
+time! I must--must give myself up, father, to the law."
+
+"Couldn't you put it off a bit, lad?"
+
+Larry could not have told why he kept silent so long in regard to the
+truth of the trial. It might have been a vague liking to watch the
+workings of his son's real self and a desire to test him to the full.
+From a hint dropped in Betty's letter he guessed shrewdly at the truth
+of the situation. He knew now that Richard and his young friend of the
+mountain top were actuated by the same motives, and he understood at
+last why Harry King would never accept his offer of help, nor would
+ever call him father. Because he could not take the place of the son,
+of whom, as he thought, he had robbed the man who so freely offered
+him friendship--and more than friendship. At last Larry understood why
+Peter Junior had never yielded to his advances. It was honor, and the
+test had been severe.
+
+"Put it off a little? I might--I'm tempted--just to get acquainted
+with my father--but I might be arrested, and I would prefer not to be.
+I know I've been wanted for three years and over--it has taken me that
+long to learn that only the truth can make a man free,--and now I
+would rather give myself up, than to be taken--"
+
+"I'm knowing maybe more of the matter than you think--so we'll drop
+it. We must have a long talk later--but tell me now in a few words
+what you can."
+
+Then, drawn by the older man's gentle, magnetic sympathy, Richard
+unlocked his heart and told all of his life that could be crowded in
+those few short minutes,--of his boyhood's longings for a father of
+his own--of his young manhood's love, of his flight, and a little of
+his later life. "We'd be great chums, now, father,--if--if it weren't
+for this--that hangs over me."
+
+Then Larry could stand it no longer. He sprang up and clapped Richard
+on the shoulder. "Come, lad, come! We'll go to this trial together. Do
+you know who's being tried? No. They'll have to get this off before
+they can take another on. I'm thinking you'll find your case none so
+bad as it seems to you now. First there's a thing I must do. My
+brother-in-law's in trouble--but it is his own fault--still I'm a mind
+to help him out. He's a fine hater, that brother-in-law of mine, but
+he's tried to do a father's part in the past by you--and done it well,
+while I've been soured. In the gladness of my heart I'll help him
+out--I'd made up my mind to do it before I left my mountain. Your
+father's a rich man, boy--with money in store for you--I say it in
+modesty, but he who reared you has been my enemy. Now I'm going to his
+bank, and there I'll make a deposit that will save it from ruin."
+
+He stood a moment chuckling, with both hands thrust deep in his
+pockets. "We'll go to that trial--it's over an affair of his, and he's
+fair in the wrong. We'll go and watch his discomfiture--and we'll see
+him writhe. We'll see him carry things his own way--the only way he
+can ever see--and then we'll watch him--man, we'll watch him--Oh, my
+boy, my boy! I doubt it's wrong for me to exult over his chagrin, but
+that's what I'm going for now. It was the other way before I met you,
+but the finding of you has given me a light heart, and I'll watch that
+brother-in-law's set-down with right good will."
+
+He told Richard about Amalia, and asked him to wait until he fetched
+her, as he wished her to accompany them, but still he said nothing to
+him about his cousin Peter. He found Amalia descending the long flight
+of stairs, dressed to go out, and knew she had been awaiting him for
+the last half hour. Now he led her into the little parlor, while
+Richard paced up and down the piazza, and there, where she could see
+him as he passed the window to and fro, Larry told her what had come
+to him, and even found time to moralize over it, in his gladness.
+
+"That's it. A man makes up his mind to do what's right regardless of
+all consequences or his prejudices, or what not,--and from that
+moment all begins to grow clear, and he sees right--and things come
+right. Now look at the man! He's a fine lad, no? They're both fine
+lads--but this one's mine. Look at him I say. Things are to come right
+for him, and all through his making up his mind to come back here and
+stand to his guns. The same way with Harry King. I've told you the
+contention--and at last you know who he is--but mind you, no word yet
+to my son. I'll tell him as we walk along. I'm to stop at the bank
+first, and if we tell him too soon, he'll be for going to the
+courthouse straight. The landlord tells me there's danger of a run on
+the bank to-morrow and the only reason it hasn't come to-day is that
+the bank's been closed all the morning for the trial. I'm thinking
+that was policy, for whoever heard of a bank's being closed in the
+morning for a trial--or anything short of a death or a holiday?"
+
+"But if it is now closed, why do we wait to go there? It is to do
+nothing we make delay," said Amalia, anxiously.
+
+"I told Decker to send word to the cashier to be there, as a deposit
+is to be made. If he can't be there for that, then it's his own fault
+if to-morrow finds him unprepared." Larry stepped out to meet Richard
+and introduced Amalia. He had already told Richard a little of her
+history, and now he gave her her own name, Manovska.
+
+After a few moments' conversation she asked Larry: "I may keep now my
+own name, it is quite safe, is not? They are gone now--those for whom
+I feared."
+
+"Wait a little," said Richard. "Wait until you have been down in the
+world long enough to be sure. It is a hard thing to live under
+suspicion, and until you have means of knowing, the other will be
+safer."
+
+"You think so? Then is better. Yes? Ah, Sir Kildene, how it is
+beautiful to see your son does so very much resemble our friend."
+
+They arrived at the bank, and Larry entered while Richard and Amalia
+strolled on together. "We had a friend, Harry King,"--she paused and
+would have corrected herself, but then continued--"he was very much
+like to you--but he is here in trouble, and it is for that for which
+we have come here. Sir Kildene is so long in that bank! I would go in
+haste to that place where is our friend. Shall we turn and walk again
+a little toward the bank? So will we the sooner encounter him on the
+way."
+
+They returned and met Larry coming out, stepping briskly. He too was
+eager to be at the courthouse. He took his son's arm and rapidly and
+earnestly told him the situation as he had just heard it from the
+cashier. He told him that which he had been keeping back, and
+impressed on him the truth that unless he had returned when he did,
+the talk in the town was that the trial was likely to go against the
+prisoner. Richard would have broken into a run, in his excitement, but
+Larry held him back.
+
+"Hold back a little, boy. Let us keep pace with you. There's really no
+hurry, only that impulse that sent you home--it was as if you were
+called, from all I can learn."
+
+"It is my reprieve. I am free. He has suffered, too. Does he know yet
+that I too live? Does he know?"
+
+"Perhaps not--yet, but listen to me. Don't be too hasty in showing
+yourself. If they did not know him, they won't know you--for you are
+enough different for them never to suspect you, now that they have, or
+think they have, the man for whom they have been searching. See here,
+man, hold back for my sake. That man--that brother-in-law of mine--has
+walked for years over my heart, and I've done nothing. He has despised
+me, and without reason--because I presumed to love your mother, lad,
+against his arrogant will. He--he--would--I will see him down in the
+dust of repentance. I will see him willfully convict his own son--he
+who has been hungering to see you--my son--sent to a prison for
+life--or hanged."
+
+Richard listened, lingering as Larry wished, appalled at this
+revelation, until they arrived at the edge of the crowd around the
+door, eagerly trying to wedge themselves in wherever the chance
+offered.
+
+"Oh! Sir Kildene--we are here--now what to do! How can we go in
+there?" said Amalia.
+
+Larry moved them aside slowly, pushing Amalia between Richard and
+himself, and intimating to those nearest him that they were required
+within, until a passage was gradually made for the three, and thus
+they reached the door and so gained admittance. And that was how they
+came to be there, crowded in a corner, all during the testimony of
+Betty Ballard, unheeded by those around them--mere units in the throng
+trying to hear the evidence and see the principals in the drama being
+enacted before them.
+
+ [1] The ruling of the court upon this point was afterwards justified
+ by the Supreme Court of Wisconsin in the case of Buel _v._
+ State, 104 Wis. 132, decided in 1899.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXXVIII
+
+BETTY BALLARD'S TESTIMONY
+
+
+Betty Ballard stood, her slight figure drawn up, poised, erect, her
+head thrown back, and her eyes fixed on the Elder's face. The silence
+of the great audience was so intense that the buzzing of flies
+circling around and around near the ceiling could be heard, while the
+people all leaned forward as with one emotion, their eyes on the
+principals before them, straining to hear, vivid, intent.
+
+Richard saw only Betty, heeding no one but her, feeling her presence.
+For a moment he stood pale as death, then the red blood mounted from
+his heart, staining his neck and his face with its deep tide and
+throbbing in his temples. The Elder felt her scrutiny and looked back
+at her, and his brows contracted into a frown of severity.
+
+"Miss Ballard," said the lawyer, "you are called upon to identify the
+prisoner in the box."
+
+She lifted her eyes to the judge's face, then turned them upon Milton
+Hibbard, then fixed them again upon the Elder, but did not open her
+lips. She did not seem to be aware that every eye in the court room
+was fastened upon her. Pale and grave and silent she stood thus, for
+to her the struggle was only between herself and the Elder.
+
+"Miss Ballard, you are called upon to identify the prisoner in the
+box. Can you do so?" asked the lawyer again, patiently.
+
+Again she turned her clear eyes on the judge's face, "Yes, I can."
+Then, looking into the Elder's eyes, she said: "He is your son, Elder
+Craigmile. He is Peter. You know him. Look at him. He is Peter
+Junior." Her voice rang clear and strong, and she pointed to the
+prisoner with steady hand. "Look at him, Elder Craigmile; he is your
+son."
+
+"You will address the jury and the court, Miss Ballard, and give your
+reasons for this assertion. How do you know he is Peter Craigmile,
+Jr.?"
+
+Then she turned toward the jury, and holding out both hands in sudden
+pleading action cried out earnestly: "I know him. He is Peter Junior.
+Can't you see he is Peter, the Elder's son?"
+
+"But how do you know him?"
+
+"Because it is he. I know him the way we always know people--by
+just--knowing them. He is Peter Junior."
+
+"Have you seen the prisoner before since his return to Leauvite?"
+
+"Yes, I went to the jail and I saw him, and I knew him."
+
+"But give a reason for your knowledge. How did you know him?"
+
+"By--by the look in his eyes--by his hands--Oh! I just knew him in a
+moment. I knew him."
+
+"Miss Ballard, we have positive proof that Peter Junior was murdered
+and from the lips of his murderer. The witness just dismissed says he
+heard Richard Kildene tell you he pushed his cousin Peter Junior over
+the bluff into the river. Can you deny this statement? On your sacred
+oath can you deny it?"
+
+"No, but I don't have to deny it, for you can see for yourselves that
+Peter Junior is alive. He is not dead. He is here."
+
+"Did Richard Kildene ever tell you he had pushed his cousin over the
+bluff into the river? A simple answer is required, yes, or no!"
+
+She stood for a moment, her lips white and trembling. "Yes!"
+
+"When did he tell you this?"
+
+"When he came to me, just after he thought he had done it--but he was
+mistaken--he did not--he only thought he had done it."
+
+"Did he tell you why he thought he had done it? Tell the court all
+about it."
+
+Then Betty lifted her head and spoke rapidly--eagerly. "Because he was
+very angry with Peter Junior, and he wanted to kill him, and he did
+try to push him over, but Peter struck him, and Richard didn't truly
+know whether he really pushed him over or not,--for he lay there a
+long time before he even knew where he was, and when he came to
+himself again, he could not find Peter there and only his hat and
+things--he thought he must have done it, because that was what he was
+trying to do, just as everyone else has thought it--because when Peter
+saw him lying there, he thought he had killed Richard, and so he
+pushed a great stone over to make every one think he had gone over the
+bluff and was dead, too, and he left his hat there and the other
+things, and now he has come back to give himself up, just as he has
+said, because he could not stand it to live any longer with the
+thought on his conscience that he had killed Richard when he struck
+him. But you would not let him give himself up. You have kept on
+insisting he is Richard. And it is all your fault, Elder Craigmile,
+because you won't look to see that he is your son." She paused,
+panting, flushed and indignant.
+
+"Miss Ballard, you are here as a witness," said the judge. "You must
+restrain yourself and answer the questions that are asked you and make
+no comments."
+
+Here the Elder leaned forward and touched his attorney, and pointed a
+shaking hand at the prisoner and said a few words, whereat the lawyer
+turned sharply upon the witness.
+
+"Miss Ballard, you have visited the prisoner since he has been in the
+jail?"
+
+"Yes, _I_ said so."
+
+"Your Honor," said the examiner, "we all know that the son of the
+plaintiff was lame, but this young man is sound on both his feet. You
+have been told that Richard Kildene was struck on the head and this
+young man bears the scar above his temple--"
+
+Richard started forward, putting his hand to his head and lifting his
+hair as he did so. He tried to call out, but in his excitement his
+voice died in his throat, and Larry seized him and held him back.
+
+"Watch him,--watch your uncle," he whispered in his ear. "He thinks he
+has you there in the box and he wants you to get the worst the law
+will give you. Watch him! The girl understands him. See her eyes upon
+him. Stand still, boy; give him a chance to have his will. He'll find
+it bitter when he learns the truth, and 'twill do him good. Wait, man!
+You'll have it all in your hands later, and they'll be none the worse
+for waiting a bit longer. Hold on for my sake, son. I'll tell you why
+later, and you'll not be sorry you gave heed to me."
+
+In these short ejaculated sentences, with his arm through Richard's,
+Larry managed to keep him by his side as the examiner talked on.
+
+"Your Honor, this young lady admits that she has visited the prisoner
+in the jail, and can give adequate reason for her assertion that he is
+the man he claims to be. She tells us what occurred in that fight on
+the bluff--things that she was not there to see, things she could only
+learn from the prisoner: is there not reason to believe that her
+evidence has been arranged between them?"
+
+"Yes, he told me,--Peter Junior told me, and he came here to give
+himself up, but you won't let him give himself up."
+
+"Miss Ballard," said the judge again, "you will remember that you are
+to speak only in reply to questions put to you. Mr. Hibbard, continue
+the examination."
+
+"Miss Ballard, you admit that you saw Richard Kildene after he fought
+with his cousin?"
+
+"Yes."
+
+"Was his head wounded?"
+
+"Yes."
+
+"What did you do?"
+
+"I washed his head and bound it up. It was all bleeding."
+
+"Very well. Then you can say on your sacred oath that Richard Kildene
+was living and not murdered?"
+
+"Yes."
+
+"Did you see Peter Junior after they fought?"
+
+"No. If I had seen him, I could have told everybody they were both
+alive and there would have been no--"
+
+"Look at the prisoner. Can you tell the jury where the cut on Richard
+Kildene's head was?"
+
+"Yes, I can. When I stood in front of him to bind it up, it was under
+my right hand."
+
+From this point the examiner began to touch upon things Betty would
+gladly have concealed in her own heart, concerning her engagement to
+Peter Junior, and her secret understanding with his cousin, and
+whether she loved the one or the other, and what characteristics in
+them caused her to prefer the one over the other, and why she had
+never confided her preferences to any of her relatives or friends.
+Still, with head erect, Betty flung back her answers.
+
+Bertrand listened and writhed. The prisoner sat with bowed head. To
+him she seemed a veritable saint. He knew how she suffered in this
+public revelation of herself--of her innocent struggle between love
+and loyalty, and maiden modesty, and that the desire to protect him
+and help him was giving her strength. He saw how valiantly she has
+been guarding her terrible secret from all the world while he had been
+fleeing and hiding. Ah, if he had only been courageous! If he had not
+fled, nor tried to cover his flight with proofs of his death! If he
+had but stood to his guns like a soldier! He covered his face in
+shame.
+
+As for Richard, he gloried in her. He felt his heart swell in triumph
+as he listened. He heard Amalia Manovska murmur: "Ah, how she is very
+beautiful! No wonder it is that they both loved her!"
+
+While he was filled with admiration for her, yet his heart ached for
+her, and with anger and reproach against himself. He saw no one but
+her, and he wanted to end it all and carry her away, but still yielded
+to his father's earnest plea that he should wait. He understood, and
+would restrain himself until Larry was satisfied, and the trial ended.
+Still the examination went on.
+
+"Miss Ballard, you admit that Peter Junior was lame when last you saw
+him, and you observe that the prisoner has no lameness, and you admit
+that you bound up a wound which had been inflicted on the head of
+Richard Kildene, and here you see the scar upon the prisoner; can you
+still on your sacred oath declare this man to be the son of the
+plaintiff?"
+
+"Yes!" She looked earnestly at the prisoner. "It is not the same head
+and it is not the same scar." Again she extended her hands toward the
+jury pleadingly and then toward the prisoner. "It is not by people's
+legs we know them,--nor by their scars--it is by themselves--by--by
+their souls. Oh! I know you, Peter! I know you!"
+
+With the first petulance Milton Hibbard had shown during the trial he
+now turned to the prisoner's counsel and said: "Take the witness."
+
+"No cross-examination?" asked Nathan Goodbody, with a smile.
+
+"No."
+
+Then Betty flung one look back at the Elder, and fled to her mother
+and hid her flushed face on Mary Ballard's bosom.
+
+Now for the first time Richard could take an interest in the trial
+merely for his own and Peter Junior's sake. He saw Nathan Goodbody
+lean over and say a few words hurriedly to the prisoner, then rise and
+slightly lift his hand as if to make a special request.
+
+"If the court please, the accused desires permission to tell his own
+story. May he be sworn on his own behalf?"
+
+Permission being given, the prisoner rose and walked to the witness
+chair, and having been sworn by the clerk to tell the truth, the whole
+truth, and nothing but the truth, began his statement.
+
+Standing there watching him, and listening, Richard felt his heart
+throb with the old friendship for this comrade of his childhood, his
+youth, and his young manhood, in school, in college, and, at last,
+tramping side by side on long marches, camping together, sleeping side
+by side through many a night when the morrow might bring for them
+death or wounds, victory or imprisonment,--sharing the same emotions
+even until the first great passion of their lives cut them asunder.
+
+Brought up without father or mother, this friendship had meant more to
+Richard than to most men. As he heard his cousin's plea he was only
+held from hurrying forward with extended arms by Larry's whispered
+words.
+
+"It's fine, son. Let him have his say out. Don't stop him. Watch how
+it works on the old man yonder," for Peter Junior was telling of his
+childhood among the people of Leauvite, speaking in a low, clear voice
+which carried to all parts of the room.
+
+"Your Honor, and Gentlemen of the Jury, Because I have no witness to
+attest to the truth of my claim, I am forced to make this plea, simply
+that you may believe me, that the accusation which my father through
+his lawyer brings against me could never be possible. You who knew my
+cousin, Richard Kildene, how honorable his life and his nature, know
+how impossible to him would be the crime of which I, in his name, am
+accused. I could not make this claim were I any other than I am--the
+son of the man who--does not recognize his son.
+
+"Gentlemen of the Jury, you all knew us as boys together--how we loved
+each other and shared our pleasures like brothers--or more than
+brothers, for we quarreled less than brothers often do. During all
+the deep friendship of our lives, only once were we angry with each
+other--only once--and then--blinded by a great passion and swept
+beyond all knowledge of our acts, like men drunken we fought--we
+struggled against each other. Our friendship was turned to hatred. We
+tried--I think my cousin was trying to throw me over the brink of the
+bluff--at least he was near doing it. I do not make the plea of
+self-defense--for I was not acting in self-defense. I was lame, as
+you have heard, and not so strong as he. I could not stand against
+his greater strength,--but in my arms and hands I had power,--and
+I struck him with my cane. With all my force I struck him, and
+he--he--fell--wounded--and I--I--saw the blood gush from the wound I
+had made in his temple--with the stick I carried that day--in the
+place of my crutch.
+
+"Your Honor and Gentlemen of the Jury, it was my--intent to kill him.
+I--I--saw him lying at my feet--and thought I had done so." Here Peter
+Junior bowed his head and covered his face with his hands, and a
+breathless silence reigned in the court room until he lifted his head
+and began again. "It is now three years and more--and during all the
+time that has passed--I have seen him lying so--white--dead--and red
+with his own blood--that I had shed. You asked me why I have at last
+returned, and I reply, because I will no longer bear that sight. It
+is the curse of Cain that hangs over a murderer's soul, and follows
+wherever he goes. I tell you the form of my dead friend went with me
+always--sleeping, he lay beside me; waking, he lay at my feet. When I
+looked into the shadows, he was there, and when I worked in the mine
+and swung my pick against the walls of rock, it seemed that I still
+struck at my friend.
+
+"Well may my father refuse to own me as his son--me--a murderer--but
+one thing can I yet do to expiate my deed,--I can free my cousin's
+name from all blame, and if I were to hang for my deed, gladly would I
+walk over coals to the gallows, rather than that such a crime should
+be laid at his door as that he tried to return here and creep into my
+place after throwing me over the bluff into those terrible waters.
+
+"Do with me what you will, Gentlemen of the Jury, but free his name. I
+understand that my cousin's body was never found lying there as I had
+left it when I fled in cowardice--when I tried to make all the world
+think me also dead, and left him lying there--when I pushed the great
+stone out of its place down where I had so nearly gone, and left my
+hat lying as it had fallen and threw the articles from my pocket over
+after the stone I had sent crashing down into the river. Since the
+testimony here given proves that I was mistaken in my belief that I
+had killed him, may God be thanked, I am free from the guilt of that
+deed. Until he returns or until he is found and is known to be living,
+do with me what you will. I came to you to surrender myself and make
+this confession before you, and as I stand here in your presence and
+before my Maker, I declare to you that what I have said is the
+truth."
+
+As he ceased speaking he looked steadily at the Elder's averted face,
+then sat down, regarding no one else. He felt he had failed, and he
+sat with head bowed in shame and sorrow. A low murmur rose and swept
+through the court room like a sound of wind before a storm, and the
+old Elder leaned toward his lawyer and spoke in low tones, lifting a
+shaking finger, then dropped his hand and shifted slightly in his
+chair.
+
+As he did so Milton Hibbard arose and began his cross-examination.
+
+The simplicity of Peter Junior's story, and the ingenuous manner in
+which it had been told, called for a different cross-examination from
+that which would have been adopted if this same counsel had been
+called upon to cross-examine the Swede. He made no effort to entangle
+the witness, but he led him instead to repeat that part of his
+testimony in which he had told of the motive which induced him to
+return and give himself up to justice. In doing so his questions, the
+tone of his voice, and his manner were marked with incredulity. It was
+as if he were saying to the jury: "Just listen to this impossible
+story while I take him over it again. Did you ever hear anything like
+it?" When he had gone in this direction as far as he thought discreet,
+he asked abruptly: "I understand that you admit that you intended to
+kill your cousin, and supposed you had killed him?"
+
+"Yes. I admit it."
+
+"And that you ran away to escape the consequences?"
+
+"Yes."
+
+"Is it your observation that acknowledged murderers are usually
+possessed of the lofty motives and high sense of justice which you
+claim have actuated you?"
+
+"I--"
+
+Without waiting for the witness to reply, the lawyer turned and looked
+at the jury and with a sneer, said: "That's all."
+
+"Your Honor, we have no other witness; the defense rests. I have
+proposed some requests for your charge to the jury which I will hand
+up."
+
+And the judge said: "Counsel may address the jury."
+
+During a slight pause which now ensued Larry Kildene tore a bit of
+blank paper from a letter and wrote upon it: "Richard Kildene is in
+this room and will come forward when called upon." This he folded and
+sent by a boy to Nathan Goodbody.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXXIX
+
+RECONCILIATION
+
+
+Milton Hibbard arose and began his argument to the jury. It was a
+clear and forcible presentation of the case from his standpoint as
+counsel for the State.
+
+After recapitulating all the testimony that had been brought out
+during the course of the trial, he closed with an earnest appeal for
+the State against the defendant, showing conclusively that he believed
+the prisoner guilty. The changing expressions on the faces of the jury
+and among his audience showed that he was carrying them largely with
+him. Before he began speaking, Richard again started forward, but
+still Larry held him back. "Let be, son. Stand by and watch the old
+man yonder. Hear what they have to say against Peter Junior. I want to
+know what they have in their hearts." The strong dramatic appeal which
+the situation held for Larry was communicated through him to Richard
+also, and again he waited, and Milton Hibbard continued his oratory.
+
+"After all, the evidence against the prisoner still stands
+uncontradicted. You may see that to be able to sway you as he has, to
+be able to stand here and make his most touching and dramatic plea
+directly in the face of conclusive evidence, to dare to speak thus,
+proves the man to be a most consummate actor. Your Honor and Gentlemen
+of the Jury, nothing has ever been said against the intellect or
+facile ability of the prisoner. The glimpses we have been shown of his
+boyhood, even, prove his skill in carrying a part and holding a power
+over his comrades, and here we have the talent developed in the man.
+
+"He is too wise to try to deny the statements made by the witnesses of
+the State, but from the moment Miss Ballard was allowed to see him
+alone in the jail, he has been able to carry the young lady with him.
+We do not bring any accusation against the young lady. No doubt she
+thinks him what he claims to be. No doubt he succeeded in persuading
+her he is her former fiance, knowing well that he saw her and talked
+with her before he fled, believing that her innocent acceptance of his
+story as the true explanation of his reappearance here and now will
+place him securely in the home of the man he claims is his father.
+That she saw Richard Kildene and knows him to be living is his reason
+for reappearing here and trying this most daring plea.
+
+"Is the true Peter Craigmile, Jr., dead? Then he can never arise to
+take the place this young man is now daring to usurp. Can Richard
+Kildene be proved to be living? Then is he, posing as Peter Craigmile,
+Jr., free from the charge of murder even if he makes confession
+thereto. He returns and makes this plea because he would live the life
+of a free man and not that of an outcast. He has himself told you
+why.
+
+"Now, as for the proofs that he is Richard Kildene, you have heard
+them--and know them to be unanswered. He has not the marks of Elder
+Craigmile's son. You have seen how the man he claims is his father
+refuses to even look upon him. Could a father be so deceived as not
+to know his own son? When Peter Craigmile, Jr., disappeared he was
+lame and feeble. This man returns,--strong and walking as well as one
+who never received a wound. Why, gentlemen, he stepped up here like a
+soldier--erect as a man who is sound in every limb. In that his
+subtlety has failed him. He forgot to act the part. But this
+forgetfulness only goes to further prove the point in hand. He was so
+sure of success that he forgot to act the part of the man he pretends
+to be.
+
+"He has forgotten to tell the court how he came by that scar above his
+temple,--yet he makes the statement that he himself inflicted such a
+wound on the head of Richard Kildene--the omission is remarkable in so
+clever an actor. Miss Ballard also admits having bound up that wound
+on the head of Richard Kildene,--but still she claims that this man is
+her former fiance, Peter Craigmile, Jr. Gentlemen of the Jury, is it
+possible that you can retire from this court room and not consider
+carefully this point? Is it not plainly to be seen that the prisoner
+thought to return and take the place of the man he has slain, and
+through the testimony of the young lady prove himself free from the
+thing of which he accuses himself in his confession, and so live
+hereafter the life of a free man without stain--and at last to marry
+the young girl he has loved, of whom he robbed his cousin, and for
+whom he killed him, and counting on the undeniable resemblance to that
+cousin, as proved in this court, to deceive not only the young lady
+herself--but also this whole community--thus making capital out of
+that resemblance to his own advantage and--"
+
+"Never! Never!" cried a voice from the far corner of the court room.
+Instantly there was a stir all over. The Elder jumped up and frowned
+toward the place from whence the interruption came, and Milton Hibbard
+lifted his voice and tried to drown the uproar that rose and filled
+the room, but not one word he uttered could be heard.
+
+Order was called, and the stillness which ensued seemed ominous. Some
+one was elbowing his way forward, and as he passed through the crowd
+the uproar began again. Every one was on his feet, and although the
+prisoner stood and gazed toward the source of commotion he could not
+see the man who spoke. He looked across to the place where Betty
+Ballard had been sitting between her father and mother, and there he
+saw her standing on a chair, forgetful of the throng around her and of
+all the eyes that had been fixed upon her during her testimony in cold
+criticism, a wonderful, transfiguring light in her great gray eyes,
+and her arms stretched out toward some one in the surging crowd who
+was drawing nearer to the prisoner's box. Her lips were moving. She
+was repeating a name over and over. He knew the name she was repeating
+soundlessly, with quivering lips, and his heart gave a great bound and
+then stopped beating, and he fell upon his knees and bowed his head on
+his hands as they clung to the railing in front of him.
+
+Amalia, watching them all, with throbbing pulses and luminous
+eyes, saw and understood, and her spirit was filled with a great
+thankfulness which she could not voice, but which lifted her, serene
+and still, above every one there. Now she looked only at Peter
+Junior. Then a tremor crept over her, and, turning, she clasped
+Larry's arm with shaking hands.
+
+"Let me that I lean a little upon you or I fall down. How this is
+beautiful!"
+
+Larry put his arm about her and held her to him, supporting her
+gently. "It's all coming right, you see."
+
+"Yes. But, how it is terrible for the old man! It is as if the
+lightning had fallen on him."
+
+Larry glanced at his brother-in-law and then looked away. After all
+his desire to see him humbled, he felt a sense of shame in watching
+the old man's abject humility and remorse. Thereafter he kept his eyes
+fixed on his son, as he struggled with the throng packed closely
+around him and shouting now his name. Suddenly, when he could no
+longer progress, Richard felt himself lifted off his feet, and there,
+borne on the shoulders of the men,--as he had so shortly before been
+borne in triumph through the streets of Paris,--he was carried
+forward, this time by men who had tramped in the same column of
+infantry with him. Gladly now they held him aloft and shouted his
+name, and the people roared it back to them as they made way, and he
+was set down, as he directed, in the box beside the prisoner.
+
+Had the Judge then tried to restore order it would have been futile.
+He did not try. He stood smiling, with his hand on the old Elder's
+shoulder. Then, while the people cheered and stamped and shouted the
+names of the two young men, and while women wept and turned to each
+other, clasping hands and laughing through tears, Milton Hibbard
+stooped and spoke in the Elder's ear.
+
+"I throw up the case, man, and rejoice with you and the whole town. Go
+down there and take back your son."
+
+"The Lord has visited me heavily for the wicked pride of my heart. I
+have no right to joy in my son's return. He should cast me off." The
+old man sat there, shriveled and weary--gazing straight before him,
+and seeing only his own foolish prejudice, like a Giant Despair,
+looming over him. But fortunately for him, no one saw him or noticed
+him but the two at his side, for all eyes were fixed on the young men,
+as they stood facing each other and gazed in each other's eyes.
+
+It was a moment of breathless suspense throughout the court room, as
+if the crowd by one impulse were waiting to hear the young man speak,
+and the Judge seized the opportunity to again call for order.
+
+When order had been secured, the prisoner's counsel rose and said: "If
+your Honor please, I ask leave to have the proofs opened, and to be
+permitted to call another witness."
+
+The Judge replied: "I have no doubt the District Attorney will consent
+to this request. You may call your witness."
+
+"Richard Kildene!" rang out the triumphant voice of Nathan Goodbody,
+and Richard stepped into the witness box and was sworn.
+
+The natural eloquence with which he had been endowed was increased
+tenfold by his intense earnestness as he stood, turning now to the
+Judge and now to the jury, and told his story. The great audience,
+watching him and listening breathlessly, perceived the differences
+between the two men, a strong individuality in each causing such
+diversity of character that the words of Betty Ballard, which had so
+irritated the counsel, and which seemed so childish, now appealed to
+them as the truest wisdom--the wisdom of the "Child" who "shall lead
+them."
+
+"It is not the same head and it is not the same scar. It is not by
+their legs or their scars we know people, it is by themselves--by
+their souls." Betty was vindicated.
+
+Poignantly, intently, the audience felt as he wished them to feel the
+truth of his words, as he described the eternal vigilance of a man's
+own soul when he has a crime to expiate, and when he concluded by
+saying: "It is the Eye of Dread that sees into the hidden recesses of
+the heart,--to the uttermost end of life,--that follows the sinner
+even into his grave, until he yields to the demands of righteousness
+and accepts the terms of absolute truth," he carried them all with
+him, and again the tumult broke loose, and they shouted and laughed
+and wept and congratulated each other. The Judge himself sat stiffly
+in his seat, his chin quivering with an emotion he was making a
+desperate effort to conceal. Finally he turned and nodded to the
+sheriff, who rapped loudly for order. In a moment the room was silent,
+every one eager to hear what was to be the next step in the legal
+drama.
+
+"Gentlemen of the Jury," said the Judge, "Notwithstanding what has
+occurred, it becomes our duty to proceed to an orderly determination
+of this case. If you believe the testimony of the last witness, then,
+of course, the crime charged has not been committed, the respondent is
+not guilty, and he is entitled to your verdict. You may, if you
+choose, consult together where you are, and if you agree upon a
+verdict, the court will receive it. If you prefer to retire to
+consider your verdict, you may do so."
+
+The foreman of the jury then wrote the words, "Not guilty" on a piece
+of paper, and writing his name under it, passed it to the others. Each
+juror quickly signed his name under that of the foreman, and when it
+was returned to him, he arose and said: "The jury finds the accused
+not guilty."
+
+Then for the first time every one looked at the Elder. He was seated
+bowed over his clasped hands, as if he were praying, as indeed he was,
+a fervent prayer for forgiveness.
+
+Very quietly the people left the court room, filled with a reverent
+awe by the sight of the old man's face. It was as if he had suddenly
+died to the world while still sitting there before them. But at the
+door they gathered and waited. Larry Kildene waited with them until he
+spied Mary Ballard and Bertrand, with Betty, leaving, when he followed
+them and gave Amalia into their charge. It was a swift and glad
+meeting between Larry and his old friends, and a hurried explanation.
+
+"I'm coming to tell you the whole, soon, but meantime I've brought
+this lovely young lady for you to care for. Go with them, Amalia, and
+tell them all about yourself, for they will be father and mother and
+sister to you. I've found my son--I've a world to tell you, but now I
+must hurry back and comfort my brother-in-law a bit." He took Mary's
+hand in his and held it a moment, then Bertrand's, and then he
+relieved the situation by taking Betty's and looking into her eyes,
+which looked tearfully back at him. Stooping, as if irresistibly drawn
+to her, he touched her fingers with his lips, and then lightly her
+hair. It was done with the grace of an old courtier, and he was gone,
+disappearing in the courthouse.
+
+For a good while the crowd waited around the doors, neighbor visiting
+with neighbor and recounting the events of the trial that had most
+impressed them, and telling one and another how they had all along
+felt that the young prisoner was no other than Peter Junior, and
+laying all the blame on the Elder's reckless offer of so large a
+reward. Nels Nelson crept sulkily back to the stable, and G. B. Stiles
+returned to the hotel and packed his great valise and was taken to the
+station in the omnibus by Nels Nelson. As they parted, G. B. Stiles
+asked for the paper he had given the Swede.
+
+"It's no good to you or any one now, you know. You're out nothing. I'm
+the only one that's out--all I've spent--"
+
+"Yas, bot I got heem. You not--all ofer de vorl. Dey vas bot' coom
+back, dot's all," and so they parted.
+
+Every one was glad and rejoiced over the return of the young men, with
+a sense of relief that resulted in hilarity, and no one would leave
+until he had had a chance to grasp the hands of the "boys." The men of
+the jury lingered with the rest, all eager to convince their friends
+that they would never have found the prisoner guilty of the charge
+against him, and at the same time chaffing each other about their
+discussions, and the way in which one and another had been caught by
+the evidence and Peter's changed appearance.
+
+At last the doors of the courthouse opened, and the Judge, and Milton
+Hibbard, Peter Junior, his father, and the lawyers, and Larry and
+Richard walked out in a group, when shouting and cheering began anew.
+Before descending the steps, the Elder, with bared head, stepped
+forward and stood regarding the people in silence, and the noise of
+shouting and cheering stopped as suddenly as it began. The devout old
+man stood erect, but his words came to them brokenly.
+
+"My friends and my neighbors, as you all know, I have this day been
+saved--from committing, in my blindness and my stubbornness, a great
+crime,--for which the Lord be thanked. Unworthy as I am, this day my
+son has been restored to me, fine and strong, for which the Lord be
+thanked. And here, the young man brought up as a brother to him, is
+again among you who have always loved him,"--he turned and took
+Richard by the hand, and waited a moment; then, getting control of
+himself, once more continued--"for which again, I say, the Lord be
+thanked.
+
+"And now let me present to you one whom many of you know already, who
+has returned to us after many years--one whom in the past I have
+greatly wronged. Let me here and now make confession before you all,
+and present him to you as a man--" He turned and placed his hand on
+Larry's shoulder. "Let me present him to you as a man who can forgive
+an enemy--even so far as to allow that man who was his enemy to claim
+him forevermore as--as--brother--and friend,--Larry Kildene!" Again
+cheers burst forth and again were held back as the Elder continued.
+"Neighbors--he has sent us back my son. He has saved me--more than
+me--from ruin and disaster, in these days when ruin is abroad in the
+land. How he has done it you will soon learn, for I ask you all to
+come round to my house this night and--partake of--of--a little
+collation to be prepared by Mr. Decker and sent in for this occasion."
+The old man's voice grew stronger as he proceeded, "Just to welcome
+home these boys of ours--our young men--and this man--generous and--"
+
+"You've not been the only one to blame." Larry stepped forward and
+seized the Elder's hand, "I take my share of the sorrow--but it is
+past. We're friends--all of us--and we'll go all around to Elder
+Craigmile's house this night, and help him give thanks by partaking of
+his bounty--and now--will ye lift your voices and give a cheer for
+Elder Craigmile, a man who has stood in this community for all that is
+excellent, for uprightness and advancement, for honor and purity, a
+man respected, admired, and true--who has stood for the good of his
+fellows in this town of Leauvite for fifty years." Larry Kildene
+lifted his hand above his head and smiled a smile that would have
+drawn cheers from the very paving stones.
+
+And the cheers came, heartily and strongly, as the four men, rugged
+and strong, the gray-haired and the brown-haired, passed through the
+crowd and across the town square and up the main street, and on to the
+Elder's home.
+
+Ere an hour had passed all was quiet, and the small town of Leauvite
+had taken up the even tenor of its way. After a little time, Larry
+Kildene and Richard left the Elder and his son by themselves and
+strolled away from the town on the familiar road toward the river.
+They talked quietly and happily of things nearest their hearts, as
+they had need to do, until they came to a certain fork of the road,
+when Larry paused, standing a moment with his arm across his son's
+shoulder.
+
+"I'll go on a piece by myself, Richard. I'm thinking you'll be wanting
+to make a little visit."
+
+Richard's eyes danced. "Come with me, father, come. There'll be others
+there for you to talk with--who'll be glad to have you there, and--"
+
+"Go to, go to! I know the ways of a man's heart as well as the next."
+
+"I'll warrant you do, father!" and Richard bounded away, taking the
+path he had so often trod in his boyhood. Larry stood and looked after
+him a moment. He was pleased to hear how readily the word, father,
+fell from the young man's lips. Yes, Richard was facile and ready. He
+was his own son.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XL
+
+THE SAME BOY
+
+
+Mary Ballard stepped down from the open porch where Amalia and the
+rest of the family sat behind a screen of vines, interestedly talking,
+and walked along the path between the rose bushes that led to the
+gate. She knew Richard must be coming when she saw Betty, who sat
+where she could glance now and then down the road, drop her sewing and
+hurry away through the house and off toward the spring. As Larry knew
+the heart of a man, so Mary Ballard knew the heart of a girl. She said
+nothing, but quietly strolled along and waited with her hand on the
+gate.
+
+"I wanted to be the first to open the gate to you, Richard," she said,
+as he approached her with extended arms. Silently he drew her to him
+and kissed her. She held him off a moment and gazed into his eyes.
+
+"Yes, I'm the same boy. I think that was what you said to me when I
+entered the army--that I should come back to you the same boy? I've
+always had it in mind. I'm the same boy."
+
+"I believe you, Richard. They are all out on the front porch, and
+Bertrand is with them--if you wish to see him--first--and if you wish
+to see Betty, take the path at the side, around the house to the
+spring below the garden."
+
+Betty stood with her back to the house under the great Bartlett pear
+tree. She was trembling. She would not look around--Oh, no! She would
+wait until he asked for her. He might not ask for her! If he did not,
+she would not go in--not yet. But she did look around, for she felt
+him near her--she was sure--sure--he was near--close--
+
+"Oh, Richard, Richard! Oh, Richard, did you know that I have been
+calling you in my heart--so hard, calling you, calling you?"
+
+She was in his arms and his lips were on hers. "The same little Betty!
+The same dear little Betty! Lovelier--sweeter--you wore a white dress
+with little green sprigs on it--is this the dress?"
+
+"Yes, no. I couldn't wear the same old one all this time." She spoke
+between laughing and crying.
+
+"Why is this just like it?"
+
+"Because."
+
+He held her away and gazed at her a moment. "What a lovely reason!
+What a lovely Betty!" He drew her to him again. "I heard it all--there
+in the court room. I was there and heard. What a load you have borne
+for me--my little Betty--all this time--what a load!"
+
+"It was horrible, Richard." She hid her flaming face on his breast.
+"There, before the whole town--to tell every one--everything.
+I--I--don't even know what I said."
+
+"I do. Every word--dear little Betty! While I have been hiding like a
+great coward, you have been bravely bearing my terrible burden,
+bearing it for me."
+
+"Oh, Richard! For weeks and weeks my heart has been calling you,
+calling you--night and day, calling you to come home. I told them he
+was Peter Junior, but they would not believe me--no one would believe
+me but mother. Father tried to, but only mother really did."
+
+"I heard you, Betty. I had a dingy little studio up three flights of
+stairs in Paris, and I sat there painting one day--and I heard you. I
+had sent a picture to the Salon, and was waiting in suspense to know
+the result, and I heard your call--"
+
+"Was--was--that what made you come home--or--or was it because you
+knew you ought to?" She lifted her head and looked straight into his
+eyes.
+
+Richard laughed. "It's the same little Betty! The same Betty with the
+same conscience bigger than her head--almost bigger than her heart. I
+can't tell you what it was. I heard it again and again, and the last
+time I just packed my things and wound up matters there--I had made a
+success, Betty, dear--let me say that. It makes me feel just a little
+bit more worth your while. I thought to make a success would be sweet,
+but it was all worthless--I'll tell you all about it later--but it was
+no help and I just followed the call and returned, hurrying as if I
+knew all about the thing that was going on, when really I knew
+nothing. Sometimes I thought it was you calling me, and sometimes I
+thought it was my own conscience, and sometimes I thought it was only
+that I could no longer bear my own thoughts--See here, Betty,
+darling--don't--don't ever kill any one, for the thought that you have
+committed a murder is an awful thing to carry about with you."
+
+She laughed and hid her face again on his breast. "Richard, how can
+we laugh--when it has all been so horrible?"
+
+"We can't, Betty--we're crying." She looked up at him again, and
+surely his eyes were filled with tears. She put up her hand and
+lightly touched his lips with her fingers.
+
+"I know. I know you've suffered, Richard. I see the lines of sorrow
+here about your mouth--even when you smile. I saw the same in Peter
+Junior's face, and it was so sad--I just hugged him, I was so glad it
+was he--I--I--hugged him and kissed him--"
+
+"Bless his heart! Somebody ought to."
+
+"Somebody will. She's beautiful--and so--fascinating! Let's go in so
+you can meet her."
+
+"I have met her, and father has told me a great deal about her. I've
+had a fine talk with my father. How wonderful that Peter should have
+been the means of finding my father for me--and such a splendid
+father! I often used to think out what kind of a father I would like
+if I could choose one, but I never thought out just such a combination
+of delightful qualities as I find in him."
+
+"It's like a story, isn't it? And we'll all live happily ever after.
+Shall we go in and see the rest, Richard? They'll be wanting to see
+you too."
+
+"Let's go over here and sit down. I don't want to see the rest quite
+yet, little one. Why, Betty, do you suppose I can let go of you yet?"
+
+"No," said Betty, meekly, and again Richard laughed. She lifted the
+hair from his temple and touched the old scar.
+
+"Yes, it's there, Betty. I'm glad he hit me that welt. I would have
+pushed him over but for that. I deserved it."
+
+"You're not so like him--not so like as you used to be. No one would
+mistake you now. You don't look so much like yourself as you used
+to--and you've a lot of white in your hair. Oh, Richard!"
+
+"Yes. It's been pretty tough, Betty, dear,--pretty tough. Let's talk
+of something else."
+
+"And all the time I couldn't help you--even the least bit."
+
+"But you were a help all the time--all the time."
+
+"How, Richard?"
+
+"I had a clean, sweet, perfect, innocent place always in my heart
+where you were that kept me from caring for a lot of foolishness that
+tempted other men. It was a good, sweet, wholesome place where you sat
+always. When I wanted to see you sitting there, I had only to take a
+funny little leather housewife, all worn, and tied with cherry-colored
+hair ribbons, in my hand and look at it and remember."
+
+Betty sighed a long sigh of contentment and settled herself closer in
+his arms. "Yes, I was there, and God heard me praying for you.
+Sometimes I felt myself there."
+
+"In the secret chamber of my heart, Betty, dear?"
+
+"Yes." They were silent for a while, one of the blessed silences which
+make life worth living. Then Betty lifted her head. "Tell me about
+Paris, Richard, and what you did there. It was Peter who was wild to
+go and paint in Paris and it was you who went. That was why no one
+found you. They never thought that of you--but I would have thought
+it. I knew you had it in you."
+
+"Oh, yes, after a fashion I had it in me."
+
+"But you said you met with success. Did that mean you were admitted to
+the Salon?"
+
+"Yes, dear."
+
+"Oh, Richard! How tremendous! I've read a lot about it. Oh, Richard!
+Did you like the 'Old Masters'?"
+
+"Did I! Betty, I learned a thing about your father, looking at the
+work of some of those great old fellows. I learned that he is a better
+painter and a greater man than people over here know."
+
+"Mother knew it--all the time."
+
+"Ah, yes, your mother! Would you like to go there, Betty? Then I'll
+take you. We'll be married right away, won't we, dear?"
+
+"You know, Richard, I believe I would be perfectly--absolutely--terribly
+happy--if--if I could only get over being mad at your uncle. He was so
+stubborn, he was just wicked. I hated him--I--I hated him so, and now
+it seems as if I had got used to hating him and couldn't stop."
+
+She had been so brave and had not once given way, but now at the
+thought of all the bitterness and the fight of her will against that
+of the old man, she sobbed in his arms. Her whole frame shook and he
+gathered her close and comforted her. "He--he--he was always
+saying--saying--"
+
+"Never mind now what he was saying, dear. Listen."
+
+"I--I--I--am afraid--I can never see him--or--or look at him
+again--I--I--hate him so!"
+
+"No, no. Don't hate him. Any one would have done the same in his place
+who believed as firmly as he did what he believed."
+
+"B--b--but he didn't need to believe it."
+
+"You see he had known through that Dane man--or whatever he is--from
+the detective--all I told you that night--how could he help it? I
+believed Peter was dead--we all did--you did. He had brooded over it
+and slept upon it--no wonder he refused even to look at Peter. If you
+had seen Uncle Elder there in the court room after the people had
+gone, if you had seen him then, Betty, you would never hate him
+again."
+
+"All the same, if--if--you hadn't come home when you did,--and the
+law of Wisconsin allowed of hanging--he would have had him,
+Peter Junior--he would have had his own son hanged,--and been
+glad--glad--because he would have thought he was hanging you. I do
+hate--"
+
+"No, no. And as he very tersely said--if all had been as it seemed,
+and it had been me--trying to take the place of Peter Junior--I would
+have deserved hanging--now wouldn't I, after all the years when Uncle
+Elder had been good to me for his sister's sake?"
+
+"That's it--for his sister's sake--n--n--not for yours, always himself
+and his came first. And then it wouldn't have been so. Even if it were
+so, it wouldn't have been so--I mean--I wouldn't have believed
+it--because it couldn't have been you and been so--"
+
+"Darling little Irish Betty! What a fine daughter you will be to my
+Irish Dad! Oh, my dear! my dear!"
+
+"But you know such a thing would have been impossible for you to do.
+They might have known it, too, if they'd had any sense. And that scar
+on Peter's head--that was a new one and yours is an old one. If they
+had had any sense, they could have seen that, too."
+
+"Never any man on earth had a sweeter job than I! It's worth all I've
+been through to come home here and comfort you. Let's keep it up all
+our lives, see? You always stay mad at Uncle Elder, and I'll always
+comfort you--just like this."
+
+Then Betty laughed through her tears, and they kissed again, and then
+proceeded to settle all their future to Richard's heart's content.
+Then, after a long while, they crept in where the family were all
+seated at supper, and instantly everything in the way of decorum at
+meals was demoralized. Every one jumped up, and Betty and Richard were
+surrounded and tumbled about and hugged and kissed by all--until a
+shrill, childish voice raised a shout of laughter as little Janey
+said: "What are we all kissing Betty for? She hasn't been away; she's
+been here all the time."
+
+It was Peter Junior who broke up the rout. He came in upon them,
+saying he had left his father asleep, exhausted after the day's
+emotion, and that he had come home to the Ballards to get a little
+supper. Then it was all to be done over again, and Peter was jumbled
+up among outstretched arms, and shaken and pounded and hugged, and
+happy he was to be taken once more thus vociferously into the home
+that had always meant so much to him. There they all were,--Martha and
+Julien--James and Bob, as the boys were called these days,--and little
+Janey--and Bertrand as joyous as a boy, and Mary--she who had always
+known--even as Betty said, smiling on him in the old way--and there,
+watching all with glowing eyes, Amalia at one side, waiting, until
+Peter had her, too, in his arms.
+
+Quickly Martha set a place for Peter between Amalia and herself. Yes,
+it was all as it should be--the circle now complete--only--"Where is
+your father, Richard?" asked Mary.
+
+"He went off for a walk. Isn't he a glorious father for a man to fall
+heir to? We're all to meet at Uncle Elder's to-night, and he'll be
+there."
+
+"Will he? I'm so glad."
+
+"Yes, Mrs. Ballard." Richard looked gravely into her eyes and from her
+to Bertrand. "You left after the verdict. You weren't at the
+courthouse at the last. It's all come right, and it's going to stay
+so."
+
+The meal progressed and ended amid laughter; and a little later the
+family all set out for the banker's home.
+
+"How I wish Hester were here!" said Mary. "I did not wish her here
+before--but now we want her." She looked at Peter.
+
+"Yes, now we want her. We're ready for her at last. Father leaves for
+New York to-morrow to fetch her. She's coming on the next steamship,
+and he'll meet her and bring her back to us all."
+
+"How that is beautiful!" murmured Amalia, as she walked at Peter's
+side. He looked down at her and noted a weariness in her manner she
+strove to conceal.
+
+"Come back with me a little--just a little while. I can go later to my
+father's, and he will excuse you, and I'll take you to him before he
+leaves to-morrow. Come, I think I know where we may find Larry
+Kildene." So Peter led her away into the dusk, and they walked
+slowly--slowly--along the road leading to the river bluff--but not to
+the top.
+
+After a long hour Larry came down from the height where he had been
+communing with himself and found them in the sweet starlight seated by
+the wayside, and passed them, although he knew they were Peter and
+Amalia. He walked lingeringly, feeling himself very much alone, until
+he was seized by either arm and held.
+
+"It is your blessing, Sir Kildene, we ask it."
+
+And Larry gave them the blessing they asked, and took Amalia in his
+arms and kissed her. "I thought from the first that you might be my
+son, Peter, and it means no diminution in my love for you that I find
+you are not. It's been a great day--a great day--a great day," he said
+as if to himself, and they walked on together.
+
+"Yes, yes! Sir Kildene, I am never to know again fear. I am to have
+the new name, so strong and fine. Well can I say it. Hear me.
+Peter-Craigmile-Junior. A strange, fine name--it is to be mine--given
+to me. How all is beautiful here! It is the joy of heaven in my
+heart--like--like heaven, is not, Peter?"
+
+"Now you are here--yes, Amalia."
+
+"So have I say to you before--to love is all of heaven--and all of
+life, is not?"
+
+Peter held in his hand the little crucifix he had worn on his bosom
+since their parting. In the darkness he felt rather than saw it. He
+placed it in her hand and drew her close as they walked. "Yes, Amalia,
+yes. You have taught me. Hatred destroys like a blast, but love--love
+is life itself."
+
+
+
+
+
+
+End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of The Eye of Dread, by Payne Erskine
+
+*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE EYE OF DREAD ***
+
+***** This file should be named 30031.txt or 30031.zip *****
+This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
+ https://www.gutenberg.org/3/0/0/3/30031/
+
+Produced by Roger Frank and the Online Distributed
+Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net
+
+
+Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
+will be renamed.
+
+Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
+one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
+(and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
+permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
+set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
+copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
+protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
+Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
+charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
+do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
+rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
+such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
+research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
+practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
+subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
+redistribution.
+
+
+
+*** START: FULL LICENSE ***
+
+THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
+PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
+
+To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
+distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
+(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
+Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
+Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at
+https://gutenberg.org/license).
+
+
+Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic works
+
+1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
+and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
+(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
+the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
+all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
+If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
+terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
+entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
+
+1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
+used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
+agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
+things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
+even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
+paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
+and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works. See paragraph 1.E below.
+
+1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation"
+or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
+collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
+individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
+located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
+copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
+works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
+are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
+Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
+freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
+this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
+the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
+keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
+Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
+
+1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
+what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
+a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
+the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
+before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
+creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
+Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
+the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
+States.
+
+1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
+
+1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
+access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
+whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
+phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project
+Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
+copied or distributed:
+
+This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
+almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
+re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
+with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
+
+1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
+from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
+posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
+and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
+or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
+with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the
+work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
+through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
+Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
+1.E.9.
+
+1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
+with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
+must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
+terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
+to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
+permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
+
+1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
+work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
+
+1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
+electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
+prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
+active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
+Gutenberg-tm License.
+
+1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
+compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
+word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
+distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
+"Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
+posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org),
+you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
+copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
+request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other
+form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
+
+1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
+performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
+unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
+
+1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
+access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
+that
+
+- You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
+ the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
+ you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
+ owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
+ has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
+ Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
+ must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
+ prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
+ returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
+ sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
+ address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to
+ the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
+
+- You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
+ you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
+ does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+ License. You must require such a user to return or
+ destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
+ and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
+ Project Gutenberg-tm works.
+
+- You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
+ money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
+ electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
+ of receipt of the work.
+
+- You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
+ distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
+
+1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
+forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
+both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
+Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
+Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
+
+1.F.
+
+1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
+effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
+public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
+collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
+"Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
+corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
+property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
+computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
+your equipment.
+
+1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
+of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
+Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
+Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
+liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
+fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
+LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
+PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH F3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
+TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
+LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
+INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
+DAMAGE.
+
+1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
+defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
+receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
+written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
+received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
+your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
+the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
+refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
+providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
+receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
+is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
+opportunities to fix the problem.
+
+1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
+in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS' WITH NO OTHER
+WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
+WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
+
+1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
+warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
+If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
+law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
+interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
+the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
+provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
+
+1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
+trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
+providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
+with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
+promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
+harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
+that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
+or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
+work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
+Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
+
+
+Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
+electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
+including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
+because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
+people in all walks of life.
+
+Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
+assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
+goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
+remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
+Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
+and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
+To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
+and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
+and the Foundation web page at https://www.pglaf.org.
+
+
+Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
+Foundation
+
+The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
+501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
+state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
+Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
+number is 64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at
+https://pglaf.org/fundraising. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
+Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
+permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
+
+The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
+Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
+throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at
+809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email
+business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact
+information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official
+page at https://pglaf.org
+
+For additional contact information:
+ Dr. Gregory B. Newby
+ Chief Executive and Director
+ gbnewby@pglaf.org
+
+
+Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
+Literary Archive Foundation
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
+spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
+increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
+freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
+array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
+($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
+status with the IRS.
+
+The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
+charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
+States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
+considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
+with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
+where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
+SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
+particular state visit https://pglaf.org
+
+While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
+have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
+against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
+approach us with offers to donate.
+
+International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
+any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
+outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
+
+Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
+methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
+ways including including checks, online payments and credit card
+donations. To donate, please visit: https://pglaf.org/donate
+
+
+Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works.
+
+Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
+concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
+with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project
+Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
+
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
+editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
+unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
+keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
+
+
+Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
+
+ https://www.gutenberg.org
+
+This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
+including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
+Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
+subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
diff --git a/old/30031.zip b/old/30031.zip
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..3904476
--- /dev/null
+++ b/old/30031.zip
Binary files differ